summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 19:39:16 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 19:39:16 -0800
commitf374e4808a3795470898c644b055e3eb0333f295 (patch)
tree3a8d2c4e8fc422c4a7c0fdc642551d833a679df7
parent64ffc97d7968d26d4e9755765078642b81a2bd64 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/65984-0.txt19295
-rw-r--r--old/65984-0.zipbin419678 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65984-h.zipbin545908 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65984-h/65984-h.htm22505
-rw-r--r--old/65984-h/images/cover.jpgbin80024 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 41800 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ad2d80d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #65984 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/65984)
diff --git a/old/65984-0.txt b/old/65984-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index d12516a..0000000
--- a/old/65984-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,19295 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of History of the Reformation in Europe
-in the Time of Calvin, Vol. 6 (of 8), by J. H. Merle D'Aubigné
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: History of the Reformation in Europe in the Time of Calvin, Vol.
- 6 (of 8)
-
-Author: J. H. Merle D'Aubigné
-
-Translator: William L. B. Cates
-
-Release Date: August 3, 2021 [eBook #65984]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Brian Wilson, Karin Spence, David Edwards, Colin Bell and
- the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
- https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
- generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION IN
-EUROPE IN THE TIME OF CALVIN, VOL. 6 (OF 8) ***
-
-
-
-
-
- HISTORY
-
- OF THE
-
- REFORMATION IN EUROPE
-
- IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.
-
- BY
-
- J. H. MERLE D’AUBIGNE, D.D.
-
- TRANSLATED BY
-
- WILLIAM L. B. CATES,
-
- JOINT AUTHOR OF WOODWARD AND CATES’S ‘ENCYCLOPÆDIA OF CHRONOLOGY,’
- EDITOR OF ‘THE DICTIONARY OF GENERAL BIOGRAPHY,’ ETC.
-
- ‘Les choses de petite durée ont coutume de devenir fanées, quand
- elles ont passé leur temps.
-
- ‘Au règne de Christ, il n’y a que le nouvel homme qui soit
- florissant, qui ait de la vigueur, et dont il faille faire cas.’
- CALVIN.
-
- VOL. VI.
- SCOTLAND, SWITZERLAND, GENEVA.
-
- NEW YORK:
- ROBERT CARTER & BROTHERS,
- 530 BROADWAY
- 1877.
-
-
-
-
- PREFACE.
-
-
-The author of the _History of the Reformation in the Sixteenth Century_
-died at Geneva, 21 October, 1872, when only a few chapters remained to
-be written to complete his great work. Feeling, as he often said, that
-_time was short for him now_ (he was not far from his eightieth year),
-and stimulated by the near prospect of the end towards which he had
-been incessantly straining for fifty years, he worked on with redoubled
-ardor. ‘I count the minutes,’ he used to say; and he allowed himself no
-rest. Unhappily the last minutes were refused him, and the work was not
-finished. But only a small portion is wanting; and the manuscripts of
-which the publication is continued in the present volume will bring the
-narration almost to its close.
-
-Ten volumes have appeared. It was the author’s intention to comprise
-the remainder of his history in two additional volumes. He had sketched
-his programme on a sheet of paper as follows:--
-
-
- ‘WITH GOD’S HELP.
-
- ‘Order of subjects, saving diminution or enlargement,
- according to the extent of each.
-
- ‘Vol. XI. to the death of Luther.
-
- ‘Scotland down to 1546.
- ‘Denmark.
- ‘Sweden.
- ‘Bohemia and Moravia.
- ‘Poland.
- ‘Hungary.
- ‘Geneva, Switzerland, and Calvin.
- ‘Germany, to death of Luther, 1546.
-
- ‘Vol. XII. to the death of Calvin.
-
- ‘Netherlands, 1566.
- ‘Spain.
- ‘Italy.
- ‘Scotland down to 1560.
- ‘England, to the Articles of 1552.
- ‘Germany, 1556.
- ‘France, 1559.
- ‘Calvin and his work in Geneva and in Christendom to his death,
- 1564.
-
-The numerous manuscripts left by M. MERLE D’AUBIGNÉ include
-all the articles set out in the programme as intended to form Vol. XI.
-(VI. of the second series), and three of the articles destined for Vol.
-XII., the first two and the fifth.
-
-The work will undoubtedly present important gaps. Nevertheless, the
-great period, the period of origination, will have been described
-almost completely. But there is one chapter which it is very much to be
-regretted that he has not written. That is the last, relating to the
-work and the influence of Calvin in Christendom. The man who for fifty
-years had lived in close intercourse with Calvin, who had made his
-writings, his works, and his person the objects of his continual study,
-and had become impregnated with his spirit more, perhaps, than any one
-in our age; the man who was the first to hold in his hand, to read
-without intermission, and to analyze almost all the innumerable pieces
-that proceeded from the pen of the reformer, would have been able to
-trace for us with unrivalled authority the grand figure of his hero,
-and to describe the immense influence which he had on the sixteenth
-century, in distant regions as well as in his immediate circle. The
-absence of this concluding chapter, which the author had projected
-and which he long meditated but still delayed to write, remains an
-irreparable loss.
-
-The editors (M. le pasteur ADOLPHE DUCHEMIN, son-in-law of the
-eminent historian, and M. E. BINDER, Professor of _Exegesis_
-at the Theological College of Geneva, colleague and friend of M.
-Merle d’Aubigné) have confined themselves to verifying the numerous
-quotations scattered through the text, to testing the accuracy of
-the references given in the notes, and to curtailing here and there
-developments which the author would assuredly have removed if he had
-edited the work himself. As the matters proposed to form Vol. XI. are
-sufficient to form two volumes and even to commence a third, it has
-been necessary to alter the arrangement indicated above.
-
-The division of the narrative into chapters, and the titles given to
-the chapters, are for the most part the work of the editors.
-
-Two other volumes are to follow the one now presented to the public.
-
- GENEVA _April, 1875_.
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
- OF
-
- THE SIXTH VOLUME.
-
-
- PAGE
-
- INTRODUCTION v
-
- BOOK X.
-
- THE REFORMATION IN SCOTLAND.
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
- PREPARATION OF REFORM.
-
- (FROM THE SECOND CENTURY TO THE YEAR 1522.)
-
- Religion the Key to History--The same Life everywhere produced by
- the Divine Spirit--Three successive Impulses: the Culdees,
- Wickliffe, John Huss--Struggle between Royalty and the
- Nobility--John Campbell, Laird of Cessnock--Charged with
- Heresy--Acquitted by the King--Battle of Flodden--Death of
- James IV.--Episcopal Election in Scotland--Alesius--Patrick
- Hamilton--John Knox--Troubles during the Minority of the
- King--Young Hamilton at the University of Paris--Becomes acquainted
- with the Lutheran Reformation 1
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
- BEGINNING OF THE MOVEMENT OF REFORM.
-
- (1522 TO APRIL 1527.)
-
- John Mayor Professor at Glasgow--Patrick Hamilton at University of
- St. Andrews--Luther’s Writings introduced into
- Scotland--Prohibited by the Parliament--Character of the young
- King--James V. declared of Age--Sides with the
- Priests--The Clerical Party overcome--Tyndale’s New Testament
- circulated--Evangelical Doctrines preached by Patrick
- Hamilton--Renewed Influence of Archbishop Beatoun--Hamilton
- declared a Heretic--Cited before the Archbishop--Escapes to the
- Continent 18
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
- DEDICATION OF HAMILTON IN GERMANY TO THE REFORMATION
- OF SCOTLAND.
-
- (SPRING, SUMMER, AND AUTUMN, 1527.)
-
- Hamilton at Marburg--His Introduction to Lambert
- d’Avignon--University of Marburg--Science and Faith--Hamilton’s
- Study of the Scriptures--Reason for his not visiting
- Wittenberg--Luther’s Illness--The Plague at Wittenberg--Hamilton’s
- Disputation at Marburg--His Theses--The Attack and the
- Defence--Hamilton’s new Theses--The pith of Theology in
- them--Hamilton’s Return to Scotland 30
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
- EVANGELIZATION, TRIBULATIONS AND SUCCESS OF HAMILTON IN
- SCOTLAND.
-
- (END OF 1527 TO END OF FEBRUARY 1528.)
-
- The New Testament proscribed--Hamilton’s Zeal--Reception of the
- Gospel by his Kinsfolk--His Preaching near Kincavil--Eagerness
- of Crowds to hear him--His Marriage--Plot of the Priests against
- his Life--Summoned to St. Andrews by the Archbishop--His increased
- Zeal--Snares laid for him by the Priests--His Disputation with
- Alesius--Conversion of Alesius to the Truth--Hamilton betrayed
- by Alexander Campbell--Hamilton’s Death determined on--The King
- removed out of the Way--Attempt of Sir James Hamilton to save his
- Brother--Armed Resistance of the Archbishop 42
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
- APPEARANCE, CONDEMNATION, MARTYRDOM OF HAMILTON.
-
- (END OF FEBRUARY-MARCH 1, 1528.)
-
- Hamilton’s Appearance before the Episcopal Council--His
- Heresies--His Answer--Attempt of Andrew Duncan to rescue
- him--Hamilton confined in the Castle--The Inquisitorial
- Court--Hamilton in the Presence of his Judges--Debates--Insults--His
- Sentence--Preparation of Execution--Hamilton at the Stake--Vexed and
- insulted by Campbell--Hamilton’s Family and Native Land--Duration of
- his Sufferings--The two Hamiltons 56
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
- ALESIUS.
-
- (FEBRUARY 1528 TO END OF 1531.)
-
- The ‘Crowns of the Martyrs’--Various Feelings excited about the
- Martyr--Escape of the King from his Keepers--The Reins of Government
- seized by James V.--Victory of the Priests--Alesius confirmed by
- death of Hamilton--His discourse before Provincial Synod--His
- imprisonment in a Dungeon--Order of the King to liberate
- him--Stratagem of Prior Hepburn--Removal of Alesius to a fouler
- Dungeon--Plot of the Prior against his Life--Scheme of the Canons
- for his Escape--His Flight by Night--Pursuit by the Prior--His
- Flight to Germany 70
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
- CONFESSORS OF THE GOSPEL AND MARTYRS MULTIPLIED IN
- SCOTLAND.
-
- (END OF 1531 TO 1534.)
-
- Conspiracy of the Nobles against the Priests--Their Compact with
- Henry VIII.--Intrigues of the Romish Party--Alexander Seaton,
- Confessor to the King--His boldness--His Flight to England--Letter
- of Alesius to the King--Reply of Cochlæus--Henry Forrest--His
- Degradation--His Execution--David Straiton, of Lauriston--His
- Conversion--His Trial--And Martyrdom--Trial of Catherine
- Hamilton--Flight of Evangelicals from Scotland 84
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
- BREACH OF THE KING OF SCOTLAND WITH ENGLAND--ALLIANCE
- WITH FRANCE AND THE GUISES.
-
- (1534 TO 1539.)
-
- Alliance of James V. sought by Henry VIII.--Failure--New attempts
- of Henry VIII.--Thomas Forrest--His fidelity--His Interview with
- the Bishop of Dunkeld--Discontent of the People--Negotiations at
- Rome--Marriage of James V. with Madeleine of Valois--Death of the
- young Queen--Second Marriage of the King with Mary of Lorraine 99
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
- INFLUENCE OF DAVID BEATOUN PREDOMINANT--REVIVAL OF
- PERSECUTION.
-
- (1539.)
-
- Cardinal David Beatoun--His complete Control of the King--War on
- the Rich--The Ransom of Balkerley--Numerous
- Imprisonments--Scotland watched by Henry VIII.--Killon’s
- audacious Drama--Trial of Killon and Thomas Forrest--Their
- Execution--Buchanan in Prison--His Escape--Kennedy and Jerome
- Russel--Their Imprisonment--Trial--Courage--And Martyrdom 110
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
- TERGIVERSATIONS OF JAMES V.--NEGOTIATIONS WITH HENRY
- VIII.--THEIR FAILURE.
-
- (1540 TO 1542.)
-
- Changed Inclination of the King of Scotland--His Censure of the
- Bishops--Cleverness of the Cardinal--Colloquies of Bishops at St.
- Andrews--Return of the King to the side of Rome--Birth of his
- Son--Birth of a second Son--His Remorse--A Dream--Death of his two
- Sons--Fresh Attempts of Henry VIII.--Project of an Interview at
- York--Journey of the King of England to York--Efforts of the
- Bishops to prevent the Interview--Absence of James V. from the
- Rendezvous 124
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
- WAR BETWEEN ENGLAND AND SCOTLAND.--DEATH OF JAMES V.
-
- (1542.)
-
- Anger of Henry VIII.--Skirmishes--Fears of James V.--Aim of Henry
- VIII.--The Crown of Scotland--Invasion of Scotland by Duke of
- Norfolk--Refusal of the Scottish Army to march--Proscription List
- drawn up by the Bishops--Their Alliance with the King--Levy of a
- new Army by Bishops--Oliver Sinclair named
- Commander-in-Chief--Disgraceful Rout--Anxiety of James V.--His
- Dejection--His Despair--Birth of Mary Stuart--Death of the King 136
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
- REGENCY OF EARL OF ARRAN.--IMPRISONMENT OF BEATOUN.--TREATY
- OF PEACE WITH ENGLAND.
-
- (1542 TO MARCH 1543.)
-
- Ambition of Beatoun--Pretended Will of the King--Assembly of the
- Nobles--Earl of Arran proclaimed Regent--Evangelicals associated
- with him--The two Chaplains--Projects of Henry
- VIII.--Negotiations--Arrest of the Cardinal--Results of this
- Act--Scotland laid under Interdict--Parliament of Edinburgh--The
- Scriptures in the Vulgar Tongue--Debates on the Subject--Freedom
- of the Scriptures--General Rejoicing--Treaty with
- England--Confirmation of the Treaty 151
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
- LIBERATION OF BEATOUN--HIS SEIZURE OF POWER--BREACH OF
- THE TREATY--FRESH PERSECUTIONS.
-
- (MARCH 1543 TO SUMMER 1544.)
-
- The Ultramontane Party--The Abbot of Paisley--Liberation of the
- Cardinal--His Intrigues--Insults offered to the English
- Ambassador--Refusal of the Regent to deliver the
- Hostages--Armed Gatherings--Weakness of the Regent--His Abjuration
- before the Cardinal--Coronation of Mary Stuart--Declaration of War
- in Scotland by Henry VIII.--Earl of Lennox--Triumph of the
- Cardinal--William Anderson, Hellen Stirke, James Raveleson, and
- Robert Lamb--Sentence of death passed on them--Fruitless
- Intercession--Affecting Death of Hellen Stirke--The English Fleet
- at Leith--Landing of the English Army--Capture and Pillage of
- Edinburgh--Plans of Henry VIII. postponed 166
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
- WISHART--HIS MINISTRY AND HIS MARTYRDOM.
-
- (SUMMER OF 1544 TO MARCH 1546.)
-
- Preaching of Wishart at Dundee--The Churches closed against
- him--Open-air Preaching--The Plague of Dundee--Wishart’s Return
- thither--Attempt of a Priest to Assassinate him--Snares laid for
- him--His Announcement of his approaching Death--Wishart joined by
- Knox--Approach of Wishart to Edinburgh--His redoubled
- Zeal--Desertion of his Friends--His last Preaching--His
- Arrest--Given up to the Cardinal--His Trial opposed by the
- Regent--Persistence of the Cardinal--The Ecclesiastical Court--The
- Accuser Lauder--Insults--Calumnies--Condemnation--Refusal of the
- Sacrament--A true Supper--Wishart’s Address to the People--His
- Martyrdom 185
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
- CONSPIRACY AGAINST BEATOUN--HIS DEATH.
-
- (MARCH TO MAY 1546.)
-
- Triumph of the Cardinal--Conspiracy of his Enemies--Meeting of the
- Conspirators at St. Andrews--Seizure of the Castle--The Cardinal’s
- Servants driven away--Murder of Beatoun--Wishart’s Sentence--Siege
- of the Castle--Capitulation of the Conspirators--Grounds of the
- Triumph of the Reformation in Scotland--Two Kings and Two
- Kingdoms--Priest and Pastor 207
-
-
- BOOK XI.
-
- CALVIN AND THE PRINCIPLES OF HIS REFORM.
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
- CALVIN AT GENEVA AND IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.
-
- (1536.)
-
- Geneva prepared for its Part--Calvin--His Desire for
- Retirement--Reader in Holy Scripture--Calvin’s Teaching--Authorship
- of Discipline--Application of Discipline before Calvin--Doctrine of
- Jesus Christ the Soul of the Church--Calvin and the Huguenots--His
- Engagement with the Council of Geneva--His Name not mentioned--The
- Gospel in the Pays de Vaud--Viret at Lausanne--Images--Two Masses a
- Week--Notice of a great Disputation--Prohibited by the
- Emperor--Convoked by Council of Berne--Indecision of the Townsmen
- of Lausanne 219
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
- THE DISPUTATION OF LAUSANNE.
-
- (OCTOBER 1536.)
-
- The Champions of the two Parties--Preparations of the two
- Parties--Ten Theses of Farel--His Discourse--Opening of the
- Disputation--Protest of the Canons--Farel’s Reply--Doctor
- Blancherose--The Vicar Drogy--Justification by Faith--The Church
- and the Scriptures--Caroli--The Real Presence--Testimony of the
- Fathers--Calvin--His Statement of the Doctrine of the
- Fathers--Christ’s Mortal Body and his Glorified Body--The Body and
- the Blood--The Spiritual Presence of Christ--Conversion of Jean
- Tandy--His Monastic Dress put off--The last Theses--The Trinity of
- Doctor Blancherose--Lent--Ignorance of the Priests--Calvin and
- Hildebrand--Closing Discourse by Farel--Jesus Christ and not the
- Pope--Salvation not in Outward Things--Appeal to the
- Priests--Address to the Lords of Berne 235
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
- EXTENSION OF THE REFORM IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.
-
- (END OF 1536.)
-
- Moral Reform at Lausanne--Images--Alarm of the Canons--Removal of
- Images ordered by Berne--Success of the Disputation at
- Lausanne--Reformation decreed at Lausanne--Caroli first
- Pastor--Reformation at Vevey--At Lutry--Farel’s Search for
- Evangelical Ministers--Ministers of the Pays de Vaud--Formula of
- the Lords of Berne--Unworthy Ministers--Edict of
- Reformation--Departure of Priests and Monks--Conference at
- Geneva 260
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
- THE REFORMATION AT GENEVA.--FORMULARY OF FAITH AND
- DISCIPLINE.
-
- (END OF 1536 TO 1537.)
-
- Liberty and Authority--Calvin Pastor at Geneva--The Christian
- Individual and the Christian Community--Analysis and
- Synthesis--Division among the Huguenots--Catechism and Confession
- of Faith--Calvin’s real Mind--Diversity of Religious Opinions--Need
- of Unity--Presentation of the Confession to the
- Council--Characteristics of the Confession--Its Authorship assigned
- to Calvin--Frequent Communion--Discipline of Excommunication--The
- true Beginning of a Church--Lay Intervention--Various
- Regulations--Discipline approved by the Council--The Syndic
- Porral--Distribution of the Confession--Its Acceptance required of
- each Citizen--Assembly of the People at St. Peter’s Church--Swearing
- of the Confession--Refusal of many to Swear it--The three Pastors of
- Geneva--The Schools--Activity of the
- Reformers--Discipline--Description of Geneva 274
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
- CALVIN’S CONTEST WITH FOREIGN DOCTORS--CHARGE OF ARIANISM
- BROUGHT AGAINST HIM.
-
- (JANUARY TO JUNE 1537.)
-
- Arrived of the Spirituals at Geneva--Their System--Public
- Disputation--Expulsion of the Spirituals--Caroli--His Ambition and
- his Morals--Prayers for the Dead--Scholasticism--Consistory of
- Lausanne--Charge of Arianism against Calvin--His Vindication
- necessary--Calvin’s Reply--His view on the Trinity--Accusation of
- Farel and Viret by Caroli--Convocation of a Synod resolved
- on--Farel’s Anxiety--Synod at Lausanne--Another Debate on the
- Trinity--Unmasking of Caroli by Calvin--The Divinity of Christ--The
- Tyranny of Creeds rejected by Calvin--The so-called Athanasian
- Creed--Condemnation of Caroli by the Synod--Appeal to
- Berne--Agitation of Men’s Minds--Accusation of Caroli--His
- Condemnation--His Flight to France 299
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
- CALVIN AT THE SYNOD OF BERNE.
-
- (SEPTEMBER 1537.)
-
- Disputation on the Lord’s Supper--The Doctrine of Zwingli at
- Berne--Acceptance of the Doctrine of Luther there--A patched-up
- Peace--Synod of September--Opinions of Bucer--Attacks of
- Megander--Growing Dissension--Intervention of Calvin--His Project
- of a Formula of Concord--The Tumult allayed 323
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
- THE CONFESSION OF FAITH SWORN TO AT ST. PETER’S.
-
- (END OF 1537.)
-
- Various Acts of Discipline--Parties at Geneva--Division amongst the
- Huguenots--Coercion in matter of Faith--Requirement of Oath to the
- Confession--Numerous Opponents--Decree of Banishment--Power of the
- Malcontents--Imprudence of the Bernese Deputies--The General
- Council--Discourse of the Syndics--The Leaders of Opposition
- silenced--Violent Attack on the Syndics--Tumultuous Debate--Confused
- Complaints--Growing Opposition--Vindication of the
- Reformers--Accusation against them by Berne--Their Vindication at
- Berne--Complete Justice done them 333
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
- TROUBLES AT GENEVA.
-
- (BEGINNING OF 1538.)
-
- Agitation--The Lord’s Supper--Nature of the Church--Communicants
- and Hearers--The Supper open to all--Disorders--Louis du
- Tillet--His Return to the Church of Rome--Parties face to face with
- each other--Menaces--No Freedom without Religion--Election of new
- Syndics--Their Hostility to Calvin--Moderation of their first
- Measures--Misleading Effects of Party Spirit--Exclusion of
- Evangelicals from the Councils--Censure of the Ministers by the
- Councils--Resistance of the Reformers--‘I can do no otherwise’ 350
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
- STRUGGLES AT BERNE.--SYNOD OF LAUSANNE.
-
- (JANUARY 1538.)
-
- Expulsion of Megander from Berne--Remonstrance of Country
- Pastors--Pacification--Calvin’s Regret for the Banishment of
- Megander--Hostility of Kunz to Calvin--Relations between Church and
- State--Variety of Usages at Geneva and at Berne--Synod at
- Lausanne--A strange Condition--Absence of Calvin and Farel from the
- Synod--Adoption by the Synod of the usages of Berne--Fruitless
- Conference--Letters from the Lords of Berne to Calvin and Farel and
- to the Council of Geneva 366
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
- SUCCESS OF THE COUNTER-REFORMATION--REFUSAL OF CALVIN
- AND FAREL TO ADMINISTER THE LORD’S SUPPER--PROHIBITION
- OF THEIR PREACHING.
-
- (MARCH AND APRIL 1538.)
-
- The Pulpit interdicted to Courault--Adoption by the Council of the
- Usages of Berne--Resistance of Calvin--Disorders in the
- Streets--Indignation of Courault--His Sermon at St. Peter’s--His
- Imprisonment--His Liberation demanded by the Reformers--Refusal of
- the Council--Loud Complaints--The Pulpit interdicted to Calvin and
- Farel--What to do?--General Confusion--Perplexity of the
- Reformers--Indifference of Forms--The Supper a Feast of
- Peace--Divisions and Violence of Parties--Administration of the
- Supper given up--Determination of the Reformers to
- preach--Heroism 376
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
- PREACHING OF CALVIN AND FAREL IN DEFIANCE OF THE
- PROHIBITION BY THE COUNCIL--THEIR BANISHMENT FROM
- GENEVA.
-
- (APRIL 1538.)
-
- Great Distress of mind--Easter Sunday--Farel’s Preaching at St.
- Gervais--Disorders in the Church--Calvin’s preaching at St.
- Peter’s--Statement of his Motives--The Church a Holy Body--A quiet
- Hearing given him--His Sermon at Rive--Great Disorder--Swords
- drawn--Deliberation of the Councils--Proposal to expel the
- Ministers--Denial of Justice--Expulsion voted by the General
- Council--Calvin’s Reply--Farel’s Reply--Departure of the Ministers
- from Geneva--A Prophecy of Bonivard--Journey of Farel and Calvin to
- Berne--Joy and Sorrow 393
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
- GREAT CONFUSION AT GENEVA--USELESS INTERVENTION OF
- THE COUNCIL OF BERNE.
-
- (END OF APRIL 1538.)
-
- Ridicule and Sarcasm--The New Ministers--Their Incompetency--Arrival
- of the Reformers at Berne--Their appearance before the
- Council--Their Grievances--Excitement in the Council of
- Berne--Letter of the Council to Geneva--Reply of the Council of
- Geneva 412
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
- SYNOD OF ZURICH--CALVIN RECONDUCTED TO GENEVA BY
- BERNESE AMBASSADORS--REFUSAL TO ADMIT HIM TO THE
- TOWN.
-
- (END OF APRIL TO END OF MAY 1538.)
-
- Farel and Calvin at Zurich--Their Claims--Their Moderation--Their
- Humility--The Justice of their Cause--Their approval by Synod of
- Zurich--Letter of the Synod to Geneva--Hostility of Kunz--His
- Wrath--His Accusations--Hesitation of Berne to intervene--Justice
- prevails--Embassy from Berne--Excitement at Geneva--Stoppage of
- Calvin and Farel at Genthod--The General Council--Favorable
- Appearances--Treachery of Kunz--Pierre Vandel--Passionate
- Excitement--Vote of the General Council--The Opponents--The
- Minority 420
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
- BANISHMENT OF THE MINISTERS--THEIR SUCCESSORS AT
- GENEVA.
-
- (END OF 1538.)
-
- Licentiousness--Journey of Calvin and Farel to Berne--Journey to
- Basel--Their Reception there--Their Vindication--Hesitation as to
- Choice of a Post--Rivalry between Basel and Strasburg in seeking
- for Calvin--Farel called to Neuchâtel--Settlement of Calvin at
- Strasburg--Death of Courault--Calvin’s Grief--The new Ministers of
- Geneva--Calvin’s Opinion of them--Discontent--Accusations--The
- Complaints not unfounded--Calvin’s Letter to Christians of
- Geneva--His Advice--Farel’s Letter--His deep Sadness 439
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
- STRASBURG AND GENEVA.
-
- (END OF 1538 TO 1539.)
-
- Calvin at Strasburg--Widening of his Horizon--Calvin a Pastor--His
- spiritual Joy--Calvin a Doctor--Treatise on the Lord’s
- Supper--Theological Debates--Calvin’s Poverty--Death of
- Olivétan--Calvin’s Courage--Despotism at Geneva--Purification--The
- Regents of the College--Their Banishment--Difficulty of finding
- Substitutes--The Friends of the Reformers--Prosecutions--New
- Syndics--Suppression of Disorders--Conference at Frankfort--Calvin
- at Frankfort--His intercourse with Melanchthon--On the Supper and
- on Discipline--On Ceremonies of Worship--Melanchthon called to
- Henry VIII.--Calvin’s opinion of Henry VIII.--Calvin’s Return to
- Strasburg 456
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
-
- CALVIN’S CORRESPONDENCE WITH SADOLETO.
-
- (1539.)
-
- Colloquy of Bishops at Lyons--Cardinal Sadoleto--His Letter to the
- Genevese--Its Portraiture of the Reformers--Its Conclusion--Delivery
- of his Letter to the Council--Immediate Consequences--An important
- Step towards Rome--Two Martyrs in Savoy--Calvin’s Reply to
- Sadoleto--Reason for his replying--Separation of the
- Church--Christian Antiquity--Justification by Faith--The Judgment
- Seat of God--Defence of Calvin--His first Faith--His Resistance--His
- Conversion--Who tears to Pieces the Spouse of Christ--To whom
- Dissensions are to be imputed--Luther’s Joy--Copy received at
- Geneva--Caroli--His End 478
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
-
- CATHOLICISM AT GENEVA--MARRIAGE OF CALVIN AT STRASBURG.
-
- (END OF 1539-1540.)
-
- Citation of Priests before the Council--Their Attitude--The former
- Syndic Balard--His Courage--His Abjuration--Calvin’s Thoughts on
- Geneva--His household Cares--His Desire to Marry--Various
- Projects--Hesitation--Idelette de Bure--Marriage--Catherine von
- Bora and Idelette de Bure--Second Assembly at Hagenau--Nothing
- done 499
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
-
- GENEVA--DISSENSIONS AND SEVERITIES.
-
- (1540.)
-
- Conflict between Berne and Geneva--Treaty with Berne--The
- _Articulants_--Refusal of Geneva to ratify the Treaty--Judgment
- given at Lausanne--Indignation at Geneva--Prosecution of the
- Articulants--Their Condemnation--Jean Philippe Captain-General--His
- Irritation--Riot excited by him--His Defeat--His Arrest--His
- Condemnation to Death--Death of Richardet--A Prediction of
- Calvin--The Ways of God 512
-
-
-
-
- HISTORY
-
- OF THE
-
- REFORMATION IN EUROPE
-
- IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK X.
-
- THE REFORMATION IN SCOTLAND.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
- PREPARATION OF REFORM.
-
- (FROM THE 2ND CENTURY TO THE YEAR 1522.)
-
-
-History is of various kinds. It may be literary, philosophical,
-political, or religious; the last entering most deeply into the inmost
-facts of our being. The political historian will sometimes disclose
-the hidden mysteries of the cabinets of princes, will fathom their
-counsels, unveil their intrigues, and snatch their secrets from a
-Cæsar, a Charles V., a Napoleon, while human nature in its loftiest
-aspects remains inaccessible to them. The inward power of conscience,
-which not seldom impels a man to act in a way opposed to the rules of
-policy and to the requirements of self-interest, the great spiritual
-evolutions of humanity, the sacrifices of missionaries and of martyrs,
-are for them covered with a veil. It is the Gospel alone which gives
-us the key of these mysteries, so that there remain in history, even
-for the most able investigators, enigmas which appear insoluble. How
-is it that schemes conceived with indisputable cleverness fail? How is
-it that enterprises which seem insane succeed? They cannot tell. No
-matter, they keep on their way, they pass into other regions and leave
-behind them territories which have not been explored.
-
-This is to be regretted, for the historian ought to embrace in his
-survey the whole field of human affairs. He must, of course, take
-into consideration the earthly powers which bear sway in the world,
-ambition, despotism, liberty; but he ought to mark also the heavenly
-powers which religion reveals. The living God must not be excluded from
-the world which He created. Man must not stop in his contemplations
-at elementary molecules, nor even at political influences, but must
-raise himself to this first principle, as Clement of Alexandria named
-it,--this existence, the idea of which is immediate, original, springs
-from no other, but is necessarily presupposed in all thought.
-
-God, who renews the greenness of our pastures, who makes the corn come
-forth out of the bosom of the earth, and covers the trees with blossoms
-and with fruit, does not abandon the souls of men. The God of the whole
-visible creation is much more the light and the strength of souls, for
-one of these is more precious in his sight than all the universe. The
-Creator, who every spring brings forth out of the winter’s ice and cold
-a nature full of life, smiling with light and adorned with flowers, can
-assuredly produce, when it pleases Him, a spiritual springtide in the
-heart of a torpid and frozen humanity. The Divine Spirit is the sap
-which infuses into barren souls the vivifying juices of heaven. The
-world has not seldom been like a desert in which all life seemed to be
-extinct; and yet, in those periods apparently so arid, subterranean
-currents were yielding sustenance here and there to solitary plants;
-and at the hour fixed by Divine providence the living water has gushed
-forth abundantly to reanimate perishing humanity. Such was the case in
-the two greatest ages of history, that of the Gospel and that of the
-Reformation.
-
-[Sidenote: THE SPIRITUAL SPRINGTIDE.]
-
-Such epochs, the most important in human history, are for that reason
-the worthiest to be studied. The new life which sprang up in the 16th
-century was everywhere the same, but nevertheless it bore a certain
-special character in each of the countries in which it appeared; in
-Germany, in Switzerland, in England, in Scotland, in France, in Italy,
-in the Netherlands, in Spain, and in other lands. At Wittenberg it
-was to man that Christian thought especially attached itself, to
-man fallen, but regenerated and justified by faith. At Geneva it
-was to God, to His sovereignty and His grace. In Scotland it was to
-Christ--Christ as expiatory victim, but above all Christ as king, who
-governs and keeps his people independently of human power.
-
-Scotland is peopled by a vigorous race, vigorous in their virtues
-and vigorous, we may add, in their faults. Vigor is also one of the
-distinguishing features of Scottish Christianity, and it is this
-quality perhaps which led Scotland to attach itself particularly to
-Christ as to the king of the Church, the idea of power being always
-involved in the idea of king.
-
-This country is now to be the subject of our narrative. It deserves to
-be so; for although of small extent and situated on the confines of the
-West, it has by nature and by faith a motive force which makes itself
-felt to the ends of the earth.
-
-Two periods are to be noted in the Scottish Reformation, that of
-Hamilton and that of Knox. It is of the first of these only that we
-are now to treat. The study of the beginnings of things attracts and
-interests the mind in the highest degree. Faithful to our plan, we
-shall ascend to the generative epoch of Caledonian reform, an epoch
-which Scotland herself has perhaps too much slighted, and we shall
-exhibit its simple beauty.
-
-Before the days of the Reformation, Scotland received three great
-impulses in succession from the Christian countries of the south.
-
-The persecutions which at the close of the second century, during
-the course of the third, and at the beginning of the fourth, fell on
-the disciples of the Gospel who dwelt in the southern part of Great
-Britain, drove a great number of them to take refuge in the country of
-the Scots. These pious men built for themselves humble and solitary
-hermitages, in green meadows or on steep mountains, and in narrow
-valleys of the glens; and there, devoting themselves to the service of
-God, they shed a soft gleam of light in the midst of the fogs of every
-kind which encompassed them, teaching the ignorant and strengthening
-the weak. They were called in the Gaelic tongue _gille De_, servants of
-God, in Latin _cultores Dei_; and in these phrases we find the origin
-of the name by which they are still known--_Culdees_. Such was the
-respect which they inspired that, after their death, their cells were
-often transformed into churches.[1] From them came the first impulse.
-
-[Sidenote: THE CULDEES.]
-
-Several centuries passed away; the feudal system was established in
-Scotland. The mountainous nature of the country, which made of every
-domain a sort of fortress, the fewness of the large towns, the absence
-of any influential body of citizens, the institution of clans, the
-limited number of the nobles,--all these circumstances combined to
-make the power of the feudal lords greater than in any other European
-country; and this power at a later period protected the Reformation
-from the despotism of the kings. But the influence of the Culdees,
-though really perceptible in the Middle Ages, was very feeble. It may
-be said of the things of grace in Scotland as of the works of Creation,
-that the sun did not come to scatter the mists which brooded over a
-nature melancholy and monotonous, and that the influence of the winds
-which, rushing forth from the neighboring seas, roared and raged over
-the barren heaths or over the fertile plains of Caledonia, was not
-softened by the breath divine which comes from heaven.
-
-But in the days of the revival a sweet and subtile sound was heard,
-and the surface of the lochs seemed to become animated. Wickliffe,
-having given to England the Word of God, some of his followers, and
-particularly John Resby, came into Scotland. ‘The pope is nothing,’
-said Resby in 1407,[2] and he taught at the same time that Christ is
-everything. He was burnt at Perth.... Thus it was from the disciples of
-Wickliffe, the _Lollards_, that the second impulse came.
-
-The _reveillé_ of Wickliffe was echoed in Eastern Europe by that of
-John Huss. In 1421, a Bohemian, one Paul Crawar, arriving from Prague,
-expounded at St. Andrews the Word of God, which he cited with a
-readiness and accuracy that astonished his hearers.[3] When led away to
-execution and bound to the stake, the bold Bohemian said to the priests
-who stood round him, ‘Generation of Satan, you, like your fathers, are
-enemies of the truth.’ The priests, not relishing such speeches in the
-presence of the crowd, had a ball of brass put into his mouth,[4] and
-the martyr thus silenced was burnt alive without any further protest on
-his part.
-
-However, Patrick Graham, archbishop of St. Andrews and primate of
-Scotland, nephew of James I., and a man distinguished for his
-abilities and his virtues, had heard Crawar. If the heart of the priest
-had been hard as a stone the heart of the archbishop was like a fertile
-field. The Word of the Lord took deep root in him. He formed the
-project of reformation of the Church; but the clergy were indignant;
-the primate was deprived, was condemned to imprisonment for life, and
-died in prison.
-
-Then began that struggle between royalty and the nobility which was
-afterwards to become one of the characteristic features of the time of
-reform. Kings, instigated by ambitious priests, sought to humble the
-nobles; the latter were thus predisposed to promote the Reformation.
-James II. (1437-1460) fought against the nobles both with the sword
-and by severe laws. James III. (1460-1488) removed them with contempt
-from his Court and gave himself up to unworthy favorites. James IV.
-(1488-1503), a man of a nobler spirit, esteemed the aristocracy the
-ornament of his Court and the strength of his kingdom. During the reign
-of this prince appeared the first glimmerings of the Reformation.
-Some pious men, dwellers most of them in the districts of Hill and
-Cunningham, were enlightened by the Gospel, and, confronting the Roman
-papacy, boldly declared that all true Christians receive every day
-spiritually the body of Jesus Christ by faith; that the bread remains
-bread after consecration, and that the natural body of Christ is not
-present; that there is a universal priesthood, of which every man and
-woman who believes in the Saviour is a member; that the pope, who
-exalts himself above God, is against God; that it is not permissible to
-take up arms for the things of faith; and that priests may marry.
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN CAMPBELL, LAIRD OF CESSNOCK.]
-
-Among the protectors of these brave folk was John Campbell, laird of
-Cessnock, a man well grounded in the evangelical doctrine, modest
-even to timidity, but abounding in works of mercy, and who received
-with goodwill not only the Lollards but those even whose opinions
-were opposed to his own. His partner, with a character of greater
-decision than his own, was a woman well versed in the Bible, and
-being thoroughly acquainted with the Scriptures was safe against
-intimidation. Every morning the family and the servants assembled in a
-room of the mansion, and a priest, the chaplain, opened in the midst
-of them a New Testament, a very rare book at that period, and read
-and explained it.[5] When this family worship and the first meal were
-over, the Campbells would visit the poor and the sick. At the dinner
-hour they called together some of their neighbors: monks as well as
-gentlefolk would come and sit at their table. One day the conversation
-turning on the conventual life and the habits of the priests, Campbell
-spoke on the subject with moderation but also with freedom. The
-monks, exasperated, put crafty questions to him, provoked him, and
-succeeded in drawing from him words which in their eyes were heretical.
-Forgetting the claims of hospitality they hastened to the house of the
-bishop and denounced their host and the lady of the house. Inquiry was
-set on foot; the crime of heresy was proved. Campbell saw the danger
-which threatened him and appealed to the king.
-
-James IV., who had married Margaret Tudor, daughter of Henry VII.,
-was then reigning in Scotland. His life had not been spotless: he was
-often tormented with remorse, and in his fits of melancholy he resolved
-to make up for his sins by applying himself to the administration of
-justice. He had the two parties appear before him; the monks cited
-decisions of the Church sufficient to condemn the prisoner. The weak
-and simple-minded Campbell was somewhat embarrassed;[6] his answers
-were timid and inadequate. He could talk with widows and orphans, but
-he could not cope with these monks. But his wife was full of decision
-and courage. When requested by the king to speak, she took up one by
-one the accusations of the monks, and setting them face to face with
-the Holy Scriptures, showed their falsehood. Her speech was clear,
-serious, and weighty with conviction. The king, persuaded by her
-eloquence, declared to the monks that if they should again persecute
-honest people in that way, they should be severely punished. And then,
-touched by the piety of this eminent woman and wishing to give her
-a token of his respect, he rose from his seat, went up to her and
-embraced her.[7] Turning to her husband, ‘As for you,’ said he, ‘I give
-you in fee such and such villages, and I intend them to be testimonies
-for ever of my good will towards you.’ The husband and wife withdrew
-full of joy, and the monks full of vexation and shame. Thirty other
-evangelicals, professing the same doctrines as the laird of Cessnock,
-were cited, but they were dismissed with the request to be satisfied
-with the faith of the Church. This took place about the year 1512,
-the year in which Zwingle began to search the Scriptures and in which
-Luther on Pilate’s Staircase at Rome heard that word which went on
-resounding in his heart, ‘The just shall live by faith.’ The brave
-Scotchwoman had fought a battle at an outpost and sounded the prelude
-to the Reformation.
-
-[Sidenote: ELECTION OF A BISHOP IN SCOTLAND.]
-
-Unhappily the accession of Henry VIII. to the throne of England turned
-the thoughts of the King of Scotland in another direction. Henry
-VII., as long as he lived, had striven to keep on good terms with
-his son-in-law; but Henry VIII., a monarch haughty, sensitive, and
-impatient, and who in mere wilfulness would quarrel with his neighbors,
-was far less friendly with his sister’s husband. He even delayed for a
-long time the payment of the legacy which her father had left her. The
-frequent attacks of the English, and the necessity thereby imposed on
-the Scots of constantly keeping watch on the borders, had given rise
-to distrust and hatred between the two nations. At the same time the
-ancient rivalry of France and England had thrown Scotland on the side
-of the French. When the English eagle pounced on unguarded France,
-‘the weasel Scot’ came sliding into its nest and devoured the royal
-brood.[8] Henry VIII. revived those ancient traditions; and France
-took advantage of them to enfeoff Scotland still further to herself
-at the very moment when the Medici and the Guises were on the point
-of seizing at Paris the reins of government. Insulted by Henry VIII.,
-James IV. resolved, in spite of the wise remonstrance of the old earl
-of Angus, to attack England. Scotland gave him the _élite_ of her
-people. He fought at Flodden with intrepid courage, but hit by two
-arrows and struck by a battle-axe he fell on the field, while round
-him lay the corpses of twelve earls, thirteen lords, two bishops, two
-mitred abbots, a great number of gentlemen, and more than ten thousand
-soldiers. Several students, and among them one named Andrew Duncan, son
-of the laird of Airdrie, whom we shall meet again, were either killed
-or made prisoners on that fatal day.
-
-The king’s son, James V. (afterwards father of Mary Stuart), was
-scarcely two years old at the time of his father’s death. His mother,
-sister of Henry VIII., assumed the regency, and during his minority
-the nobles exercised an influence which was to be one day favorable
-to liberty, and thereby to the Gospel. The king and the priests, both
-driving at absolute power, the former in the State, the latter in the
-Church, now made common cause against the nobles. Strange conflicts
-then took place between the various powers of Scotland. One of these
-conflicts had just disturbed the first city of the kingdom, St.
-Andrews, and had mingled with the noise of the stormy sea, which roared
-at the foot of the rocks, the voices of priests struggling around the
-Cathedral, the cries of soldiers and the reverberations of cannon.
-Alexander Stuart, archbishop of St. Andrews, primate of Scotland,
-having fallen on the field of Flodden, three competitors appeared for
-the possession of his primatial see. These were John Hepburn, prior
-of St. Andrews, the candidate of the canons; Gavin Douglas, brother
-of the earl of Angus, candidate of the nobles; and Andrew Forman,
-bishop of Murray, candidate of the pope. Douglas had already been put
-by the queen in possession of the castle of St. Andrews; but Hepburn,
-an ambitious man of high spirit, with the aid of the canons, took it
-by assault, fortified himself in it,[9] and then set out for Rome to
-secure the pontifical investiture. Forman, the pope’s candidate, taking
-advantage of his rival’s absence, seized the castle and the monastery,
-and placed there a strong garrison. Hepburn was pacified by the gift
-of a pension of 3,000 crowns; while Douglas, candidate of the nobles,
-finding that there was neither money nor mitre for him, cannonaded and
-captured the cathedral of Dunkeld.[10] In such fashion was the election
-of a bishop made in Scotland before the Reformation.
-
-The elections of priests were conducted after somewhat different
-methods. The lesser benefices were put up to auction and sold by
-wandering bards, diceplayers, or minions of the Court. The bishops, who
-gave their illegitimate daughters to the nobles, kept the best places
-in the Church for their bastards. These young worldlings, hurrying off
-to their pleasures, abandoned their flocks to monks, who retailed in
-the pulpit absurd legends of their saint, of his combats with the devil
-and of his flagellations, or amused the people with low jesting. This
-system, which passing for a representation of Christianity was merely
-its parody, destroyed not only Christian piety and morality, but the
-peace of families, the freedom of the people, and the prosperity of the
-kingdom.[11]
-
-While ambition, idleness and licentiousness thus prevailed among the
-clergy, God was preparing ‘new vessels’ into which to pour the new wine
-which the old vessels could no longer hold. Some simple-minded men were
-on the point of achieving by their Christian faith and life a victory
-over the rich, powerful, and worldly pontiffs. Three young men, born
-almost with the century, were just beginning a career, the struggles
-and trials of which were as yet unknown to them. These men were to
-become the reformers of the Church of Scotland.
-
-[Sidenote: BIRTH OF ALESIUS.]
-
-On April 23, 1500, the wife of an honest citizen of Edinburgh gave
-birth to a son who was afterwards called by some Alane, and by others
-Ales, but who signed his own name Alesius, the form which we shall
-adopt. Alexander--that was his baptismal name--was a child remarkable
-for liveliness, and the anxiety of his devoted parents lest any
-accident should befall him led them to hang round his neck, as a
-safeguard against every danger, a paper on which a priest had written
-some verses of St. John. Alesius was fond of going, with other boys of
-his own age, to the heights which environ Edinburgh. The great rock
-on the summit of which the castle stands, the beautiful Calton Hill,
-and the picturesque hill called Arthur’s Seat, in turn attracted them.
-One day--it was in 1512--Alexander and some friends, having betaken
-themselves to the last-named hill, amused themselves by rolling over
-and over down a slope which terminated in a precipice. Suddenly the
-lad found himself on the brink: terror deprived him of his senses:
-some hand grasped him and placed him in safety, but he never knew by
-whom or by what he had been saved. The priests gave the credit of this
-escape to the paper with which they had provided him, but Alexander
-himself attributed it to God and his father’s prayers. ‘Ah!’ said he,
-many years afterwards, ‘I never recall that event without a great
-shudder through my whole body.’[12] Some time after he was sent to the
-University of St. Andrews to complete his education.
-
-Another young boy, of more illustrious birth, gave promise of an
-eminent manhood; he belonged to the Hamilton family which, under
-James III., had taken the highest position in Scotland. Born in the
-county of Linlithgow, westward of Edinburgh, and somewhat younger than
-Alesius, he was to inaugurate the Reformation. Linlithgow was at that
-time the Versailles of the kingdom, and could boast of a more ancient
-origin than the palace of Louis XIV. Its projecting porticoes, its
-carvings in wood, its wainscot panelings, its massive balustrades, its
-roofs over-hanging the street, produced the most picturesque effect.
-The castle was at once palace, fortress, and prison; it was the
-pleasure-house to which the Court used to retire for relaxation, and
-within its walls Mary Stuart was born.
-
-[Sidenote: PATRICK HAMILTON.]
-
-Near Linlithgow was the barony of Kincavil, which had been given by
-James IV., in 1498, to Sir Patrick Hamilton. Catherine Stuart, the wife
-of the latter, was daughter of the duke of Albany, son of King James
-II. Sir Patrick, on his side, was second son of Lord Hamilton, and,
-according to trustworthy charters, of the princess Mary, countess of
-Arran, also a daughter of James II.[13] Sir Patrick had two sons and
-one daughter, James, Patrick, and Catherine.
-
-Patrick, the young man of whom we speak, was therefore of the blood
-royal, both by the father’s and the mother’s side. He was born probably
-at the manor of Kincavil, and was there brought up. He grew up
-surrounded with all the sweetnesses of a mother’s love, and from his
-childhood the image of his mother was deeply engraven on his heart.
-This tender mother, who afterwards engaged his latest thoughts on the
-scaffold, observed with delight in her son a craving for superior
-culture, a passion for science, a taste for the literature of Greece
-and Rome, and above all, lively aspirations after all that is elevated,
-and movements of the soul towards God.
-
-As for his father, Sir Patrick, he had the reputation of being the
-first knight of Scotland, and as cousin-german of King James IV. he had
-frequent occasions for displaying his courage. One day a German knight
-arriving in Scotland to challenge her lords and barons, Sir Patrick
-encountered and overthrew him. At the marriage of Margaret of England
-with the King of Scotland, it was once more Sir Patrick who most
-distinguished himself at the tournament. And at a later time, when sent
-ambassador to Paris with an elder brother, the earl of Arran, he won
-fresh honors in London on his way.[14] People were fond of recounting
-these exploits to his two boys, James and Patrick, and nothing
-appeared to them more magnificent than the glittering armor of their
-father hung upon the walls of the banqueting hall. Ambition awoke in
-the heart of the younger of the sons; but he was destined to seek after
-another glory, holier and more enduring.
-
-The Hamiltons having many relations at Paris, Sir Patrick determined
-to send thither his second son, and at the age of fourteen the lad
-set out for that celebrated capital.[15] His father, who destined him
-for the great offices of the Church, had already procured for him the
-title and the revenues of abbot of Ferne, in the county of Ross, and
-from that source the expenses of the young man’s journey and course
-of studies were to be defrayed. It was the moment at which the fire
-of the Reformation, which was just kindled on the Continent, began to
-throw out sparks on all sides. One of these sparks was to light on the
-soul of Patrick. But if Hamilton were destined to bring from Paris to
-Scotland the first stone of the building, another Scotchman, one year
-younger than he, was destined to bring the top-stone from Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: BIRTH OF JOHN KNOX.]
-
-In one of the suburbs of Haddington, near Edinburgh, called
-Gifford-gate, dwelt an honorable citizen, member of an ancient family
-of Renfrewshire, named Knox, who had borne arms, like his father and
-his grandfather, under the earl of Bothwell. Some members of this
-family had died under the colors.[16] In 1505 Knox had a son who was
-named John. The blood of warriors ran in the veins of the man who
-was to become one of the most intrepid champions of Christ’s army.
-John, after studying first at Haddington school, was sent at the age
-of sixteen to Glasgow University.[17] He was active, bold, thoroughly
-upright and perfectly honest, diligent in his duties, and full of
-heartiness for his comrades. But he had in him also a firmness which
-came near to obstinacy, an independence which was very much like pride,
-a melancholy which bordered on prostration, a sternness which some
-took for insensibility, and a passionate force sometimes mistakenly
-attributed to a vindictive temper. An important place was reserved for
-him in the history of his country and of Christendom.
-
-While God was thus preparing these young contemporaries, Alesius,
-Hamilton, and Knox, and others besides, to diffuse in Scotland the
-light of the Gospel, ambitious nobles were engaged in conflict around
-the throne of the king. The old earl of Angus, who had lost his two
-sons at the battle of Flodden, and had not long survived them, had
-left a grandson, a handsome young man, not very wise nor experienced,
-but with plenty of ambition, cleverness, liveliness, and courage. The
-widow of James IV., regent of the kingdom, married this youth, and by
-this rash step displeased the nobles. In the fierce encounters which
-took place between the Angus and Douglas parties on one side, and the
-Hamiltons on the other, pillage, murder, and arson were not seldom
-perpetrated. Another regency became necessary. John Stuart, duke of
-Albany, who was born in France of a French mother, and was residing at
-the court of Saint-Germain, but was the nearest relation of the King of
-Scotland, was summoned. He banished Angus, who withdrew with the queen
-to England. But Albany had soon to return to France, and Queen Margaret
-and her husband went back to Edinburgh.
-
-The old rivalries were not slow to reappear. When the parliament
-assembled at Edinburgh in April 1520, the Hamiltons gathered in
-great numbers in the palace of the primate Beatoun. The primate ran
-hither and thither, armed from head to foot, brandishing the torch
-of discord.[18] The bishop of Dunkeld entreated him to prevent a
-collision. When the primate, laying his hand on his heart, said: ‘On
-my conscience I am not able to prevent it,’ the sound of his coat mail
-was heard. ‘Ah, my lord,’ exclaimed Dunkeld, ‘that noise tells me
-that your conscience is not good.’ Sir Patrick Hamilton, the father
-of the reformer, counselled peace; but Sir James Hamilton, a natural
-son of the earl of Arran, a violent and cruel young man, cried out to
-him: ‘You are afraid to fight for your friend.’ ‘Thou liest, impudent
-bastard;’ retorted the haughty baron; ‘I will fight to-day in a place
-in which thou wilt not dare to set thy foot.’ The speaker immediately
-quitted the palace, and all the Hamiltons followed him.
-
-The earl of Angus then occupied the High Street, and his men, drawn up
-behind barricades, vigorously repulsed their adversaries with their
-pikes. Sir Patrick, with the most intrepid of his followers, cleared
-the entrenchments, threw himself into the High Street, and striking out
-vigorously all round him with his sword, fell mortally wounded, while
-the rash young man who had insulted him fled at full speed.
-
-[Sidenote: PATRICK HAMILTON IN FRANCE.]
-
-His son Patrick was no longer present in the manor-house of Kincavil,
-to mingle his tears with those of his mother. Escaping from the gloomy
-atmosphere of Caledonia, he had gone to enjoy in Paris the splendid
-light of civilization, almost at the same time at which the famous
-George Buchanan arrived there. ‘All hail!’ exclaimed these young
-Scotchmen, as they landed in France; ‘all hail! oh, happy Gaul! kind
-nurse of letters! Thou whose atmosphere is so healthful, whose soil is
-so fertile, whose bountiful hospitality welcomes all the universe, and
-who givest to the world in return the riches of thy spirit; thou whose
-language is so elegant, thou who art the common country of all peoples,
-who worshippest God in truth and without debasing thyself in outward
-observances! Oh! shall I not love thee as a son? shall I not honor thee
-all my life? All hail, oh, happy Gaul!’[19]
-
-It is probable that Hamilton entered the Collège de Montaigu, the same
-to which Calvin was admitted four or five years later. At the time
-of Hamilton’s arrival Mayor (Major), who soon after removed to St.
-Andrews, was teacher of philosophy there.
-
-To a strong dislike of the writings of the sophists Hamilton joined a
-great love for those of the true philosophers. But presently a light
-more pure than that of Plato and Aristotle shone in his eyes. As early
-as 1520 the writings of Luther were read with eager interest by the
-students of the schools of Paris; some of whom took part with, others
-against the Reformation. Hamilton was listening to these disputations
-and reading the books which came from Germany, when suddenly he learnt
-the tragical death of Sir Patrick. He was profoundly affected by the
-tidings, and began to seek God with yet more ardor than before. He
-was one more example of the well-known fact, that at the very moment
-when all the sorrows of the earthly life overwhelm the soul, God
-gives to it the heavenly life. Two great events--the death of Sir
-Patrick, and the beginning of the Reformation in Paris--occurring
-simultaneously--occasioned in the soul of the young Scotchman a
-collision by which a divine spark was struck out. The fire once kindled
-in his heart, nothing could thenceforth extinguish it.
-
-Hamilton took the degree of Master of Arts about the close of 1520,
-as still appears in the registers of the University. He may possibly
-have visited Louvain, where Erasmus then dwelt; he returned to Scotland
-probably in 1522.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
- THE MOVEMENT OF REFORM BEGINS.
-
- (1522 TO APRIL 1527.)
-
-
-The Reformation seems to have begun in Scotland with the profession of
-those principles, Catholic but antipapal, which had been maintained a
-century earlier at the Council of Constance. There were doctors present
-there who set out from the thought that from the age of the Apostles
-there always had been, and that there always will be, a church one and
-universal, capable of remedying by its own action all abuses in its
-forms of worship, dissensions among its members, the hypocrisy of its
-priests, and the despotic assumptions of the first of its pontiffs.
-John Mayor had been recently called to Glasgow University. Among
-his audience there John Knox distinguished himself by his passion
-for study; and not far from him was another young Scotchman, of a
-less serious turn, Buchanan. ‘The church universal,’--so were they
-taught by the disciple of d’Ailly and of Gerson--‘when assembled in
-council, is above the pope, and may rebuke, judge, and even depose
-him. The Roman excommunications have no force at all if they are not
-conformed to justice. The ambition, the avarice, the worldly luxury
-of the Roman court and of the bishops are to be sharply censured.’ On
-another occasion, the professor, passing from theology to politics,
-avowed doctrines far in advance of his age. He taught that a people,
-in its entirety, is above the monarch; that the power of the king is
-derived from the people, and that if a prince acts in opposition to
-the interests of his subjects, the latter have the right to dethrone
-him. Mayor went further still, even to the blameworthy extreme of
-asserting that in certain cases the king might be put to death.[20]
-These political principles, professed by one who occupied a Roman
-Catholic chair, thoroughly scholastic and superstitious, must have
-influenced the convictions of Buchanan, who afterwards, in his
-dialogue _De Jure Regni apud Scotos_, professed opinions which were
-energetically controverted, even by Protestants. ‘In the beginning,’
-said he, ‘we created legitimate kings, and we established laws binding
-equally on them and on ourselves.’[21] These political heresies of the
-sixteenth century are the truths of our days. The principles of Mayor
-were certainly not received without exception by Knox, but they had
-probably something to do with the firmness with which he maintained
-the rights of the Word of God in the presence of Mary Stuart. For the
-moment, Knox, disgusted with the barren theology of his master--a
-stanch scholastic on many points--forsook the wilderness of the schools
-and applied himself to the quest of the living fountains of the Word of
-God. In 1523 Mayor removed from Glasgow to St. Andrews.
-
-[Sidenote: PATRICK HAMILTON AT ST. ANDREWS.]
-
-It was to St. Andrews that Patrick Hamilton betook himself on his
-return from the Continent, after a visit to the bereaved family
-of Kincavil. He was admitted on June 9 of the same year into the
-University of the metropolitan city, and on October 3 of the following
-year he was received member of the faculty of letters. St. Andrews
-had powerful attractions for him. No other university in the kingdom
-had on its staff so many enlightened men; and the college of St.
-Leonard’s, which he entered, was the one whose teaching had the most
-liberal tendencies. The studies which he had pursued, the knowledge
-which he had acquired, and the rank which he held, gave him distinction
-among his fellow-disciples. Buchanan, a severe judge, looked on him
-as a ‘young man of great intellect and of astonishing learning.’[22]
-Hamilton held the hypocrisy of the monks in such abomination that he
-never would adopt either their dress or their way of life; and although
-he was abbot of Ferne he never took up his residence in his monastery.
-Skilled in the musical art, he composed a chant in parts, which was
-performed in the cathedral, and delighted the hearers. He did more:
-he dreamed, as all reformers do at the outset of their career, of
-the transformation of the Catholic Church; he resolved to seek the
-imposition of hands, ‘in order,’ says Fryth, ‘that he might preach the
-pure Word of God.’ Hamilton did not, to be sure, preach at that time
-with the boldness and the power of a Luther or a Farel. He loved the
-weak; he felt himself weak; and being full of lowly-mindedness, he was
-content to impart faithfully the truth which he had received.
-
-About a year after the combat in which Sir Patrick was killed, the duke
-of Albany returned, with the intention of bringing about an intimate
-alliance between Scotland and France. Margaret Tudor, who wished for an
-alliance with England, and who found herself deprived of power by the
-arrival of Albany, wrote on September 13, 1523, to her brother Henry
-VIII.: ‘The person and the kingdom of my son are exposed to very great
-danger; come to our aid, come in all haste, or it is all over with my
-son!’[23] It might perhaps have been all over with the Reformation
-too--a far more important matter. But Albany, although he was at the
-head of a fine army, fled on two occasions before the English, and
-being despised by everybody, quitted Scotland forever at the close of
-May 1524.[24]
-
-[Sidenote: WRITINGS OF LUTHER PROSCRIBED.]
-
-He had only just set sail when the cause of the Reformation, threatened
-by his presence, received a powerful reinforcement. In 1524, and at
-the beginning of 1525, some books of Luther and of other Reformers
-were brought into Scotland by merchant-ships, and getting dispersed
-over the country, produced there the same effect as they had in France
-and in Italy. Gawin Dunbar, the old bishop of Aberdeen, was the first
-to become aware of this. He discovered one day a volume of Luther
-in his own town. He was in consternation when he saw that the fiery
-darts hurled by the hand of the heretic were crossing the sea. As like
-discoveries were made in Linlithgow, St. Andrews, and other places, the
-affair was brought before Parliament. ‘Damnable heresies are spread
-abroad in various countries,’ said the partisans of Rome. ‘This kingdom
-of Scotland, its sovereigns and their subjects, have always stood fast
-in the holy faith since they received it in the primitive age; attempts
-are being made at this moment to turn them away from it. Let us take
-all needful steps to repulse the attack.’ Consequently, on July 17,
-1525, parliament enacted that no person arriving in any part of the
-kingdom should introduce any book of Luther or of his disciples, or
-should publish the opinions of that German except for the purpose of
-refuting them, ‘Scotland having always bene clene of all filth and
-vice.’[25]
-
-This act was immediately published throughout the country, and
-particularly at all ports, in order that no one might be able to
-pretend ignorance of it. About four days after the closing of
-parliament the sheriffs received orders from the king’s council to
-set on foot without delay the necessary inquiries for the discovery
-of persons who might possess any books of Luther, or who should
-profess his errors. ‘You will confiscate their books,’ the order ran,
-‘and transmit them to us.’ The Reformation, which till that time had
-been almost unknown in those regions, became suddenly a public fact,
-proclaimed by the highest body in the realm, and was on the point of
-preoccupying all minds. The enemies of the truth were preparing its
-triumph.
-
-However, the question was whether the young king would lean towards the
-side of Rome or the side of the Gospel. James V., in whose name the
-decree against the Reformation had been issued, had in reality nothing
-at all to do with it. Amiable and generous, but a weakling and lover of
-pleasure, he was so backward in his learning that for want of knowing
-English he could not read the letters of his uncle Henry VIII.[26] He
-was a child under tutelage; he spoke to no one except in the presence
-of some member of the council, and Angus took care to foster in him
-the taste for pleasure in order to turn away his attention from public
-affairs. That taste was moreover quite natural to the young prince. His
-life was devoted to games, to arms, to the chase; he made request to
-Henry VIII. to send him swords and bucklers, the armor made in London
-being far more beautiful than that of Edinburgh. He sacrificed business
-to pleasure all the more readily because those who were about him were
-living in a state of entire disunion. The three chief personages of the
-realm, archbishop Beatoun, head of the priests, Angus, leader of the
-nobles, and the queen-mother who intrigued with both parties, were at
-open war.[27] Margaret desired both to get a divorce from Angus and to
-avenge herself on the archbishop who thwarted her in her projects.[28]
-In the midst of all these ambitious ones the young king was like a prey
-over which the vultures fight.
-
-In May 1525, James having reached his fourteenth year, had been
-declared of age, in conformity with the law of Scotland. It had been
-a mere matter of form. Angus, supported by the most powerful of the
-nobles and by the parliament, verified the fears of the queen; he gave
-all places to the Douglases, and taking the Great Seal from archbishop
-Beatoun, kept it himself. The queen-mother indignantly entreated her
-very dear brother to secure the intervention of the pope on behalf of
-her son.[29] All was useless: the authority of the bold and ambitious
-Angus remained unimpaired.
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES V. AND THE PRIESTS.]
-
-The young prince, then, wearied with the yoke, threw himself, after the
-tradition of his fathers, into the arms of the priests, and in order
-to escape the aristocracy submitted himself to the clergy. This was a
-grievous prognostic for Reform. At the end of the summer of 1526, the
-queen, archbishop Beatoun, and other members of the priestly and royal
-party, assembled at Stirling Castle, and a plan was there considered
-and determined on which was to take away the chief power from the
-nobles and give it to the bishops. John Stuart, earl of Lennox, a
-friend of James V., set out from that fortress on September 4, at the
-head of from ten to twelve thousand men, and marched on Edinburgh. But
-Angus was already informed of what was in preparation, and Arran, who
-had made his peace with him, was ready. The same day, in the morning,
-the trumpet sounded in the capital, and the chief of the Douglases set
-forth at the head of his army, dragging after him the young monarch.
-The latter was in hope that the hour of his deliverance was come: he
-advanced slowly in the rear of the army, in spite of the brutal threats
-of Sir G. Douglas, his guardian. Presently the report of cannons was
-heard: the king stopped. George Douglas, fancying that he would attempt
-to escape, cried out, ‘Don’t think of running away, for if our enemies
-had hold of you on one side and we on the other, we would pull you in
-two rather than let you go.’ The King never forgot that word. Angus won
-the day. Lennox had been killed by the savage James Hamilton, and the
-father of the latter, when he heard it, had thrown his scarlet cloak
-over the body of Lennox, exclaiming: ‘Here lies a man, the boldest,
-the mightiest, and the wisest that Scotland ever possessed!’ At the
-tidings of this great disaster all was confusion in Stirling Castle.
-The queen fled in disguise and concealed herself: archbishop Beatoun
-put off his pontifical robes, took the dress of a shepherd, and went
-into retirement among the herdsmen of the Fifeshire hills, where for
-nearly three months he kept a flock, no one the while suspecting that
-he was the lord chancellor of the realm. Thus the anticipated triumph
-of the primate and the priests, which would have been fatal to the
-Reformation, was changed into a total rout, and greater religious
-freedom was given to Scotland.[30]
-
-But this was not enough. The reform of the Church by the Church itself
-would not suffice; nor would reform by the writings of the reformers;
-there was need of a mightier principle,--the Word of God. This Word
-does not merely communicate a bare knowledge; it works a transformation
-in the will and in the life of man, and as soon as such a change is
-accomplished in two or three individuals in any place whatsoever, there
-exists a church. The increased liberty enjoyed in Scotland after the
-flight of the primate favored the introduction of this mighty Word,
-to which it was reserved to effect the complete enfranchisement of the
-nation.
-
-[Sidenote: TYNDALE’S NEW TESTAMENTS IMPORTED.]
-
-Early in the summer, merchants of Leith, Dundee, St. Andrews, Montrose,
-and Aberdeen, sent out their ships laden with the productions of
-Scotland to the ports of the Netherlands, Middelburg, Antwerp, and
-other towns, there to procure commodities for which there was a demand
-among the Scotch. At that time there was no prohibition against the
-introduction of the New Testament into Scotland: only the books of
-Luther and other reformers were proscribed. These good Scottish seamen
-took advantage of this; and one day Hacket, who had received orders
-from Henry VIII. to burn all the Testaments translated by Tyndale
-(and this ‘for the preservation of the Christian faith’), learnt at
-Berg-op-Zoom, where he then was, that the Scottish traders had put on
-board many copies of the Gospels as they were on the point of setting
-sail for Edinburgh and St. Andrews. He started with all speed for the
-ports which had been named to him: ‘I will seize those books,’ said
-he, ‘even though they be already on board the ships, and I will make
-a good fire of them.’[31] He got there: but alas! no more Scottish
-vessels; they had sailed one day before his arrival. ‘Fortune,’ said
-he, ‘did not allow me to get there in time; ah, well, have patience.’
-And he gave good instructions on the matter to M. de Bever, admiral of
-Flanders, and to Mr. Moffit, conservator of the Scottish nation in that
-country.[32]
-
-It was during the time that archbishop Beatoun, arch-foe of the
-Reformation, was feeding his sheep on the Fifeshire hills in September,
-October, and November 1526, that the New Testaments arrived and were
-distributed in the towns and neighboring districts. Scotland and
-England received the Holy Scriptures from the same country and almost
-at the same time. The citizens of Edinburgh and the canons of St.
-Andrews were reading that astonishing book as well as the citizens of
-London and the canons of Oxford. There were monks who declared that it
-was a bad book ‘recently invented by Martin Luther,’ but the reading of
-it was not forbidden. At St. Andrews especially these sacred writings
-soon shed the evangelical light over the souls of men.[33]
-
-[Sidenote: PATRICK HAMILTON’S PREACHING.]
-
-There was in that town a young man who was already acquainted with
-the great facts of salvation announced in this book, and who was well
-qualified to circulate and explain it. Patrick Hamilton, gifted with
-keen intelligence and a Christian heart, knew how to set forth in a
-concise and natural manner the truths of which he was convinced. He
-knew that there is in the Scriptures a wisdom superior to the human
-understanding, and that in order to comprehend them there is need of
-the illumination of the Holy Spirit. He believed that with the written
-it is necessary to combine oral teaching; and that as Testaments were
-come from the Netherlands, Scotland needed the spoken word which
-should call restless and degenerate souls to seek in them the living
-water which springs up unto life eternal. God was then preparing His
-witnesses in Scotland, and the first was Patrick Hamilton. He laid
-open the New Testament; he set forth the facts and the doctrines
-contained in it; he defended the evangelical principles. His father,
-the foremost of Scottish knights, had not broken so many lances in the
-tournament as Patrick now broke in his college, at the university, with
-the canons, and with all who set themselves against the truth.[34] At
-the beginning of Lent 1527, he publicly preached in the cathedral and
-elsewhere the doctrines (heresies, said his sentence) taught by Martin
-Luther.[35] We have no further particulars of his preaching; but these
-are sufficient to show us that at this period the people who gathered
-together in the ancient churches of Scotland heard this faithful
-minister announce that ‘it is not the law, that terrible tyrant, as
-Luther said, that is to reign in the conscience, but the Son of God,
-the king of justice and of peace, who, like a fruitful rain, descends
-from heaven and fertilizes the most barren soil.’[36]
-
-Circumstances were by no means favorable to the Reformation. Archbishop
-Beatoun had soon thrown off his shepherd’s dress and left the flocks
-which he was feeding in the solitary pastures of Bogrian in Fifeshire.
-The simple, rude, and isolated life of the keeper of sheep was a
-sufficiently severe chastisement for an ambitious, intriguing, and
-worldly spirit: day and night, therefore, he was looking for some means
-of deliverance. Although he was then sleeping on the ground, he had
-plenty of gold and great estates: this wealth, the omnipotence of
-which he knew well, would suffice, said he to himself, to ransom him
-from the abject service to which a political reverse had reduced him.
-Since the victory of Linlithgow, Angus had exercised the royal power
-without opposition. It was needful then that Beatoun should gain over
-that terrible conqueror. The queen-mother, who had also fled at first,
-having ventured two months later to approach Edinburgh, her son had
-received her and conducted her to Holyrood palace. This encouraged the
-archbishop. His nephew, David Beatoun, abbot of Arbroath, was as clever
-and as ambitious as his uncle, but he hated still more passionately all
-who refused to submit to the Roman Church. The archbishop entreated him
-to negotiate his return; the party of the nobles was hard to win; but
-the abbot, having gained over the provost of Edinburgh, Sir Archibald
-Douglas, uncle of Angus, the bargain was struck. The archbishop was
-to pay two thousand Scottish marks to Angus, one thousand to George
-Douglas, the king’s gaoler, one thousand to cruel James Hamilton, the
-assassin of Lennox, and to make a present of the abbey of Kilwinning to
-the earl of Arran. Beatoun, charmed, threw away his crook, started for
-Edinburgh, and resumed his episcopal functions at St. Andrews.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON DECLARED A HERETIC.]
-
-It was some time after the return of Beatoun that the king’s cousin
-began to preach at St. Andrews the glad tidings of free salvation
-through faith in Christ. Such doctrines could not be taught without
-giving rise to agitation. The clergy took alarm, some priests and
-monks went to the castle and prayed the archbishop to chastise the
-young preacher. Beatoun ordered an inquiry: it was carried out very
-precisely. The persons with whom Hamilton had engaged in discussion
-were heard, and some of his hearers gave evidence as to the matter of
-his discourses. He was declared a heretic. Beatoun was not cruel; he
-would perhaps have been content with seeking to bring back by fatherly
-exhortations the young and interesting Hamilton into the paths of
-the Church. But the primate had by his side some fanatical spirits,
-especially his nephew David, and they redoubled their urgency to such
-a degree that the archbishop ordered Hamilton to appear before him to
-give an account of his faith.[37]
-
-The inquiry could not be made without this noble Christian hearing of
-it. He perceived the fate that awaited him; his friends perceived it
-too. If he should appear before the archbishop, it was all up with him.
-Everyone was moved with compassion; some of his enemies even, touched
-by his youth, the loveliness of his character, and his illustrious
-birth, wished to see him escape death. There was no time to lose, for
-the order of the archiepiscopal court was already signed; several
-conjured him to fly. What should he do? All his desire was to show to
-others the peace that filled his own soul; but at the same time he
-knew how much was still wanting to him. Who could better enlighten and
-strengthen him than the reformers of Germany? Who more able to put him
-in a position to return afterwards to preach Christ with power? He
-resolved to go. Two of his friends, Hamilton of Linlithgow and Gilbert
-Wynram of Edinburgh, determined to accompany him. Preparations for
-their departure were made with the greatest possible secrecy. Hamilton
-took with him one servant, and the three young Scotchmen, finding their
-way furtively to the coast, embarked on board a merchant-ship. It was
-in the latter half of the month of April 1527. This unlooked-for escape
-greatly provoked those who had set their minds on taking the life of
-the evangelist. ‘He, of evil mind, as may be presumed, passed forth of
-the realm,’[38] said the archbishop’s familiars. No: his intention was
-to be instructed, to increase in spiritual life from day to day. He
-landed at the beginning of May in one of the ports of the Netherlands.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
- HAMILTON PREPARES HIMSELF IN GERMANY FOR THE REFORMATION OF SCOTLAND.
-
- (SPRING, SUMMER, AUTUMN, 1527.)
-
-
-At the time of Hamilton’s arrival on the Continent, the germ of the
-Reformation of Scotland already lay in his heart. His association
-with the doctors of Germany would prove the identity of this great
-spiritual movement, which everywhere was overthrowing the same abuses,
-and bringing anew to the surface the same truths. In which direction
-should the young Christian hero of Scotland now turn his footsteps? All
-his ambition was to go to Wittenberg, to hear Luther, Melanchthon, and
-the other reformers; but circumstances led him to go first to Marburg.
-This town lay on his way, and a renowned printer, Hans Luft, was then
-publishing there the works of Tyndale. In fact, on May 8, 1527, at
-the moment of Patrick’s arrival on the Continent, there appeared at
-Marburg the _Parable of the Wicked Mammon_; and seven months later,
-December 11, Luft published _The Veritable Obedience of a Christian
-Man_. But Hamilton flattered himself that he should find at Marburg
-something more than Tyndale’s writings--Tyndale himself. English
-evangelical works had at that time to get printed in Germany, and, as
-far as possible, under the eye of the author. The young Scotchman had
-hopes then of meeting at Marburg the translator of the New Testament,
-the reformer of England, and even Fryth, who might be with him. One
-reason more positive still influenced Hamilton. He was aware that
-Lambert d’Avignon, the one man of all the reformers whose views most
-nearly approached those which prevailed afterwards in Scotland, had
-been called to Marburg by the landgrave. Philip of Hesse himself was
-the most determined, the most courageous of all the Protestant princes.
-How many motives were there inclining him to stay in that town! An
-extraordinary circumstance decided the young Scotchman. The landgrave,
-defender of piety and of letters,[39] was about to found there the
-first evangelical university, ‘for the restoration of the liberal
-sciences.’[40] Its inauguration was fixed to take place on May 30.
-Hamilton and his friends might arrive in time. They bent their course
-towards Hesse, and reached the banks of the Lahn.
-
-[Sidenote: UNIVERSITY OF MARBURG.]
-
-At the time of their arrival the little town was full of unaccustomed
-movement. Undiverted by this stir, Hamilton hastened to find out the
-Frenchman whose name had been mentioned to him and other learned
-men who were likely also to be at Marburg. He found the sprightly,
-pious, and resolute Lambert, an opponent, like the landgrave, of
-half-measures, and a man determined to take action in such wise that
-the Reformation should not be checked halfway. The young abbot of the
-North and the aged monk of the South thus met, understood each other,
-and soon lived together in great familiarity.[41] Lambert said to him
-that the hidden things had been revealed by Jesus Christ; that what
-distinguishes our religion from all others is the fact that God has
-spoken to us; that the Scriptures are sufficient to make us perfect. He
-did not philosophize much, persuaded that by dint of philosophizing one
-swerves from the truth. He set aside with equal energy the superstition
-which invents a marvellous mythology, and the incredulity which denies
-divine and supernatural action. ‘Everything which has been perverted
-[_déformé_] must be reformed [_réformé_],’ said Lambert, ‘and all
-reform which proceeds otherwise than according to the Word of God, is
-nothing.[42] All the inventions of human reason are, in the matter of
-religion, nothing but trifling and rubbish.’
-
-The commotion which then prevailed amongst the population of Marburg
-was occasioned by the approaching inauguration of the university
-founded by the landgrave. On May 30 the chancellor presided at that
-ceremony. No school of learning had ever been founded on such a basis;
-one must suppose that the union which ought to exist between science
-and faith was in this case unrecognized. There is nothing in Hamilton’s
-writings to show that in this matter he shared the opinions of Lambert.
-With great evangelical simplicity as to the faith, the Scotchman had
-rather, in his manner of setting it forth, a metaphysical, speculative
-tendency, which is a marked feature of the Scottish mind. The
-principles which were to characterize the new university were these:
-‘The Holy Scriptures,’ says a document of Marburg which has been
-preserved, ‘ought to be purely and piously interpreted, and no one who
-fails to do so is to teach in the school. From the science of law must
-be cut off everything which is either unchristian or impious.[43] It is
-not mere scholars who are to be appointed in the faculties of law, of
-medicine, of the sciences, and of letters, but men who shall combine
-with science the knowledge of the Holy Scriptures and piety.’
-
-[Sidenote: SCIENCE AND FAITH.]
-
-Thus we see that the opposition between science and faith was already
-attracting attention, and the landgrave settled the question by
-excluding science and those learned in it, since they were not in
-agreement with the Scriptures; just as in other ages men would have
-theology and theologians set aside, since they were not in agreement
-with human learning. No one ought to teach in the schools of theology
-except in conformity with the Scriptures of God, the supreme authority
-in the Church. To disregard this principle is to take in hand to
-destroy the flock of God. The fanaticism of the School, however,
-cannot justify the fanaticism of the Church. It is a grave matter
-to banish science on account of the dangers to which it exposes us.
-To exclude the fire from the hearth for fear of conflagration would
-not be reasonable; far better to take the precautions which good
-sense points out for preventing the evil. If science and faith are
-to advance together without peril, it can only be brought about by
-the intervention of the moral principle. The existence of so-called
-freethinkers arises from a moral decay; certain excesses of an
-exaggerated orthodoxy may perhaps proceed from the same cause. A
-presumptuous and passionate haste, affirming and denying to the first
-comer, is a grave fault. How many times has it happened that some law,
-some fact proclaimed by science at one period as sufficient to convict
-the Scriptures of error, has had to be given up soon after by science
-herself as a mistake. But let religious men be on their guard against
-the indolence and the cowardice which would lead them to repulse
-science, out of fear lest she should remain mistress of the field of
-battle. By so doing they would deprive themselves of the weapons most
-serviceable for the defence of their treasures as well as of the most
-fitting occasions for spreading them abroad. Lambert did not go to such
-a length; but he was persuaded that unless a breath divine, coming
-from on high, give life to academical teaching, the university would
-be nothing more than a dead mechanism, and that science, instead of
-propagating a healthy and enlightened cultivation, would only darken
-and pervert men’s minds. This is surely a very reasonable and very
-practical thought, and it is to be regretted that it has not always
-regulated public instruction.
-
-After the delivery of the inaugural discourses, the rector, Montanus,
-professor of Civil Law, opened the roll of the university, to enter in
-it the names of its members. Professors, pastors, state functionaries,
-nobles, foreigners, students, one hundred and ten persons in all,
-gave their names. The first to sign was the rector, the second was
-Lambert; then came Adam Crato, professor Ehrard Schnepf, one of
-the first Germans converted by Luther, Enricius Cordus, who had
-accompanied Luther to Worms, and Hermann von dem Busche, professor of
-Poetry and Eloquence. In a little while three young men of foreign
-aspect approached. The first of them signed his name thus: _Patricius
-Hamilton, a Litgovien, Scotus, magister Parisiensis_;[44] his two
-friends signed after him.
-
-From that time the Frenchman and the Scotchman frequently studied the
-Holy Scriptures together, and with interest always new. The large
-acquaintance with the Word of God which Hamilton possessed, astonished
-Lambert: the freshness of his thoughts and of his imagination charmed
-him; the integrity of his character inspired a high esteem for him;
-his profound remarks on the Gospel edified him. A short time after
-this, the Frenchman, speaking to the landgrave Philip, said:--‘This
-young man, of the illustrious family of the Hamiltons, which is
-closely allied, by the ties of blood, to the king and the kingdom of
-Scotland,[45] who although hardly twenty-three years of age, brings to
-the study of Scripture a very sound judgment, and has a vast store of
-knowledge, is come from the end of the world, from Scotland, to your
-academy, in order to be more fully established in God’s truth. I have
-hardly ever met a man who expresses himself with so much spirituality
-and truth on the Word of the Lord.’ Such is the testimony given in
-Germany, by a Frenchman, to the young reformer of Scotland.
-
-[Sidenote: LUTHER’S ILLNESS.]
-
-Will Hamilton remain at Marburg? Shall he not see Luther, Melanchthon,
-and the other doctors of the Reformation? It has been generally
-supposed that he did go to Wittenberg; but there is no evidence
-of this, either in the University registers or in Luther’s or
-Melanchthon’s letters. This tradition, therefore, appears to us to be
-unfounded. As Hamilton had, however, formed the intention of visiting
-Luther when he left Scotland, what motive led him to relinquish his
-design? It was this. Early in July, at the very time when the young
-Scotchman might have gone to Wittenberg, a report was spread abroad
-that Luther had suddenly fallen ill. On July 7 he had lost the use of
-his senses, his body lay motionless, the heart scarcely beating, while
-his wife and his weeping friends stood round the bed, on which he was
-stretched as if dead. He came to himself, however, and, persuaded that
-he was at the point of death,[46] he resigned himself entirely to the
-hand of God and prayed with much fervency. At the same time the report
-ran in Germany that the plague was raging at Wittenberg. When Luther
-had recovered a little strength, he wrote to Spalatin:--‘May the Lord
-have pity on me and not forsake _his_ sinner!’[47] Soon after, he had
-fresh attacks. ‘Ah,’ said he to his friends, ‘people fancy, because
-joy usually brightens my countenance, that I walk on roses, but God
-knows how rugged life is for me!’ One day, when Jonas had come to take
-supper with him, Luther, feeling ill during the meal, suddenly rose,
-and after taking a few steps fell in a fainting fit. ‘Water, water,’
-cried he, ‘or I die.’ As he lay on the bed, he lifted up his eyes and
-said: ‘O my beloved Lord, thou art master of life and of death, do
-as it pleaseth thee. Only remember that it is thou who didst bid me
-undertake this work, and that it is for thy truth, for thy Word, that I
-have fought.’
-
-On the following day, at six o’clock in the evening, as Jonas again
-stood by the bedside of his friend, he heard him calling on the Lord,
-sometimes in German, sometimes in Latin. The thought that he had not
-done enough, nor suffered enough for his Saviour, distressed him.
-‘Ah,’ said he, ‘I have not been judged worthy to shed my blood for
-the love of Christ, as several of my brethren have done.’ Presently a
-thought consoled him: ‘St. John the Evangelist also,’ said he, ‘had not
-that honor--he who nevertheless wrote a book (Apocalypse) against the
-papacy, far more severe than any that I could ever write.’[48] After
-that he had his little John brought to him, and looking at the mother
-of the boy, he said, ‘You have nothing; but God will provide for you.’
-
-[Sidenote: THE PLAGUE AT WITTENBERG.]
-
-The plague, as we have said, was at Wittenberg. Two persons died of it
-in Melanchthon’s house; one of his sons was attacked, and one of the
-sons of Jonas lost his life. Hans Luft, the printer of Marburg, who was
-at Wittenberg on business, fell ill, and his mind wandered.[49] He was
-removed to Marburg, where Hamilton was.
-
-Terror became general at Wittenberg. All who could do so, and
-especially the students, quitted the town; the university was
-transferred to Jena. Luther pressed the elector to go thither with
-his family, but, he added, in such calamities pastors must bide at
-their post. He remained therefore, and Melanchthon, who was visiting
-the churches in Saxony, received orders to go to Jena and resume his
-lectures there. During this period Luther, having regained some little
-strength, was visiting the sick and consoling the dying. In the course
-of a few days he had about him eighteen dead, some of whom even expired
-almost in his arms.[50] He received into his house the poor, widows,
-orphans, and even the plague-stricken; his house become a hospital.[51]
-His wife and his son were attacked. ‘What conflicts!’ cried he, ‘what
-terrors! No matter; though the malady waste the body, the Word of
-God saves the soul.’ He again fell ill himself, and thinking that he
-was nigh to death, he wrote to Melanchthon: ‘Pray for me, vile and
-miserable worm. I have only one glory, and that is that I have taught
-purely the word of God.[52] He who has begun the work will complete it.
-I seek only Him; I thirst for nothing but his grace.’
-
-Such, doubtless, were the circumstances which detained Hamilton at
-Marburg. On hearing that in consequence of the plague the courses of
-lectures had partly at least been transferred to Jena, he gave up
-Wittenberg; and thus is explained quite naturally the want of original
-documents respecting his alleged sojourn at the Saxon university. A
-very painful sacrifice was thus demanded of him. Lambert resolved
-to turn the disappointment to good account. Having a high idea of
-the faith, the judgment, and abilities of Hamilton, he begged him to
-compose some _theses_ on the evangelical doctrine, and to defend them
-publicly. Everyone supported this request; for an academical solemnity,
-at which a foreign theologian belonging to the royal family of
-Scotland should hold the chief place, could not fail to throw a certain
-_éclat_ over the new university. Hamilton consented.[53] His subject
-was quickly chosen. In his eyes a man’s religion was not sound unless
-it had its source in the Word of God and in the inmost experience of
-the soul which receives that Word, and is thereby led into the truth.
-He deemed it necessary to present the doctrine in this practical
-aspect, rather than to lose himself in the speculative theorems of an
-obscure scholasticism.
-
-On the appointed day Hamilton entered the great hall of the university,
-in which were gathered professors, students, and a numerous audience
-besides. He announced that he was about to establish a certain number
-of truths respecting _the law and the Gospel_, and that he would
-maintain them against all comers. These theses, all of a practical
-character, had however somewhat of that dialectical spirit which
-distinguished at a subsequent period the philosophical schools of
-Scotland, and were drawn up in a pure and _lapidary_ style which
-secures for this theologian of three-and-twenty a noteworthy place
-among the doctors of the sixteenth century.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON’S THESES.]
-
-‘There is a difference, and even an opposition, between the law and
-the Gospel,’ said Hamilton. ‘The law showeth us our sin; the Gospel
-showeth us remedy for it. The law showeth us our condemnation; the
-Gospel showeth us our redemption. The law is the word of ire; the
-Gospel is the word of grace. The law is the word of despair; the Gospel
-is the word of comfort. The law is the word of unrest; the Gospel is
-the word of peace.[54] The law saith, Pay thy debt; the Gospel saith,
-Christ hath paid it. The law saith, Thou art a sinner--despair, and
-thou shalt be damned; the Gospel saith, Thy sins are forgiven thee:
-be of good comfort, thou shalt be saved. The law saith, Make amends
-for thy sins; the Gospel saith, Christ hath made it for thee. The law
-saith, The Father of heaven is angry with thee; the Gospel saith,
-Christ hath pacified him with his blood. The law saith, Where is thy
-righteousness, goodness, and satisfaction? the Gospel saith, Christ
-is thy righteousness, thy goodness, thy satisfaction. The law saith,
-Thou art bound and obliged to me, to the devil and to hell; the Gospel
-saith, Christ hath delivered thee from them all.’[55]
-
-The attack began, and the defence of the young Master of Arts was as
-remarkable as his exposition. Even though he made use of the syllogism,
-he shook off the dust of the school, and put something perspicuous
-and striking in its place. When one opponent maintained that a man is
-justified by the law, Hamilton replied by this syllogism:--
-
-‘That which is the cause of condemnation cannot be the cause of
-justification.
-
-‘The law is the cause of condemnation.
-
-‘Therefore the law is not the cause of justification.’
-
-His phraseology, clear, concise, and salient--rare qualities in
-Germany, except perhaps in Luther--his practical, transparent,
-conscientious Christianity--struck the minds of his hearers. Certainly,
-said Lambert, Hamilton has put forward thoroughly Christian axioms, and
-has maintained them with a great deal of learning.[56]
-
-Hamilton engaged in other public disputations besides this. As faith in
-Christ and justification by faith is the principle which distinguishes
-Protestantism from other Christian systems, he felt bound to establish
-the nature, importance, and influence of that doctrine. He believed
-that faith is born in a man’s heart when, as he hears or reads the
-Word of God, the Holy Spirit bears witness in his heart to the main
-truth which is found in it, and shows him with clear proof that Jesus
-is really an almighty Saviour. Faith was for the young Scotchman a
-divine work, which he carefully distinguished from a faith merely
-human. On this subject he laid down and defended the following
-propositions:--‘He who does not believe the Word of God, does not
-believe God himself. Faith is the root of all that is good; unbelief is
-the root of all evil. Faith makes friends of God and of man; unbelief
-makes enemies of them. Faith lets us see in God a father full of
-gentleness; unbelief presents him to us as a terrible judge. Faith sets
-a man steadfast on a rock; unbelief leaves him constantly wavering and
-tottering. To wish to be saved by works is to make a man’s self his
-saviour, instead of Jesus Christ. Wouldst thou make thyself equal with
-God? Wouldst thou refuse to accept the least thing from him without
-paying him the value of it?’
-
-Fryth, who doubtless took part in the discussion, was so much struck
-with these theses that he translated them into English, and by that
-means they have come down to us. ‘The truths which Hamilton expounded
-are such,’ said he, ‘that the man who is acquainted with them has the
-_pith_ of all divinity.’[57] ‘This little treatise is short,’ said
-others who listened to him, ‘but in effect it comprehendeth matter able
-to fill large volumes.’[58] Yes, Christ is the author of redemption, and
-faith is the eye which sees and receives him. There are only these two
-things: Christ sacrificed and the eye which contemplates him. The eye,
-it is true, is not man’s only organ; we have besides hands to work,
-feet to walk, ears to hear, and other members more for our service. But
-none of all these members can see, but only the eye.[59]
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON’S THESES.]
-
-In the midst of all these labors, however, Hamilton was thinking of
-Scotland. It was not of the benefices which had been conferred on him,
-not of St. Andrews, nor of the misty lochs or picturesque glens; it was
-not even of his family, or of his friends that he thought the most.
-What occupied his mind night and day was the ignorance and superstition
-in which his countrymen were living. What powerfully appealed to him
-was the necessity of giving glory to God and of doing good to his own
-people. And yet would it not be madness to return to them? Had he not
-seen the animosity of the Scottish clergy? Did he not know well the
-power of the primate Beatoun? Had he not, only six or seven months
-before, left his country in all haste? Why then these thoughts of
-returning? There was good reason for them. Hamilton had been fortified
-in spirit during his sojourn at Marburg; his faith and his courage had
-increased; by living with decided Christians, who were ready to give
-their lives for the Gospel, he had been tempered like steel and had
-become stronger. It could not be doubted that extreme peril awaited
-him in Scotland; his two friends, John Hamilton and Wynram, did not
-understand his impatience and were resolved to wait. But neither their
-example nor the urgency of Lambert could quench the ardor of the young
-hero. He felt the sorrow of parting with Lambert and of finally giving
-up the hope of seeing Luther and Melanchthon; but he had heard God’s
-call; his one duty was to answer to it. About the end of autumn 1527
-he embarked with his faithful servant and sailed towards the shores of
-Caledonia.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
- EVANGELIZATION, TRIBULATIONS, AND SUCCESS OF HAMILTON IN SCOTLAND.
-
- (END OF 1527 TO THE END OF FEBRUARY 1528.)
-
-
-The Church of Rome, in the sixteenth century, especially in Scotland,
-was far from being apostolic, although it assumed that title: nothing
-was less like St. John or St. Peter than its primates and its prelates,
-worldlings and sometimes warriors as they were. The real successors
-of the apostles were those reformers, who taught the doctrines of the
-apostles, labored as they did, and like them were persecuted and put
-to death. The theocratic and political elements combined in Rome have,
-with certain exceptions, substituted the law, that is, outward worship,
-ceremonial ordinances, pilgrimages and the exercises of ascetic
-life for the Gospel. The Reformation was a powerful reaction of the
-evangelical and moral element against the legal, sacerdotal, ascetic
-and ritualistic elements which had invaded the Church. This reaction
-was about to display its energy in Scotland, and Hamilton was to be at
-first its principal organ.
-
-Already, before his return, the sacred books had arrived in large
-numbers in the principal ports of the kingdom. Attention had been
-awakened; but at the same time ignorance, dishonesty, and fanaticism
-had risen in revolt against the Evangelical Scriptures. The priests
-said that the _Old_ Testament was the only true one, and pretended
-that the _New_ had been recently invented by Martin Luther.[60]
-Consequently, in August 1527, the earl of Angus, at the instigation of
-Dunbar, bishop of Aberdeen, had confirmed the ordinance of 1525, and
-had decreed that the king’s subjects who circulated the sacred books
-should be visited with the same penalties as people from abroad. If,
-therefore, a vessel arrived at Leith, Dundee, St. Andrews, or Aberdeen,
-the king’s officers immediately went on board, and if any copies of
-the _New_ Testament were found there, the ship and the cargo were
-confiscated and the captain was imprisoned.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON’S ZEAL.]
-
-Some time after this ordinance, the ship which carried Hamilton reached
-port, and although this young Christian always had his New Testament
-in his pocket, he landed without being arrested and went his way to
-Kincavil. It was about the end of 1527. Patrick tenderly loved his
-mother and his sister; everybody appreciated his amiable character;
-the servants and all his neighbors were his friends. This gentleness
-made his work easier. But his strength lay above all in the depth and
-the sincerity of his Christian spirit. ‘Christ bare our sins on his
-back and bought us with his blood’;[61] this was the master chord which
-vibrated in his soul. In setting forth any subject he silenced his own
-reasonings and let the Bible speak. No one had a clearer perception
-of the analogies and the contrasts which characterize the evangelical
-doctrine. With these intellectual qualities were associated eminent
-moral virtues; he practised the principles which he held to be true
-with immovable fidelity; he taught them with a touching charity; he
-defended them with energetic decision. Whether he approached a laborer,
-a monk, or a noble, it was with the desire to do him good, to lead
-him to God. He taxed his ingenuity to devise all means of bearing
-witness to the truth.[62] His courage was firm, his perseverance
-unflagging, and in his dignified seriousness his youth was forgotten.
-His social position added weight to his influence. We have seen that
-the aristocracy played a far larger part in Scotland than in any other
-European country. It would have seemed a strange thing to the Scots
-for a man of the people to meddle with such a matter as reform of the
-Church; but if the man that spoke to them belonged to an illustrious
-family, the position which he took appeared to them legitimate, and
-they were all inclined to listen to his voice. Such was the reformer
-whom God gave to Scotland.
-
-Patrick’s elder brother, Sir James Hamilton, on succeeding to the
-estates and titles of his father, had been appointed sheriff of
-Linlithgowshire. James had not the abilities of his brother, but he was
-full of uprightness and humility. His wife, Isabella Sempill, belonged
-to an ancient Scottish family, and ten young children surrounded this
-amiable pair. Catherine, Patrick’s sister, bore some resemblance to
-him; she had much simplicity of character, sense, and decision. But it
-was most of all in the society of his mother, the widow of the valiant
-knight, that Patrick sought and enjoyed the pure and keen delight
-of domestic life. He opened his heart to all these beloved ones; he
-made known to them the peace which he had found in the Gospel, and
-by degrees his relations were brought to the faith, of which they
-afterwards gave brilliant evidence.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON’S PREACHING.]
-
-The zeal which was consuming him could not long be confined within the
-limits of his own family. His love for the Gospel silenced within him
-all fear and, full of courage, he was ready to endure the insults which
-his faith might bring on him. ‘The bright beams of the true light,
-which by God’s grace were planted in his heart, began most abundantly
-to burst forth, as well in public as in secret.’[63] Hamilton went
-about in the surrounding country, his name securing for him everywhere
-a hearty welcome. When the young laird was seen approaching, laborers
-left the field which they were cultivating, women came out of every
-poor cottage, and all gathered about him respectfully and lent him an
-attentive ear.[64] Priests, citizens from the neighboring town, women
-of rank, lords quitting their castles, people of all classes, met
-together there.[65] Patrick received them with a kindly smile and a
-graceful bearing. He addressed to souls that first word of the Gospel,
-_Be converted!_ but he also pointed out the errors of the Romish
-Church.[66] His hearers returned, astonished at his knowledge of the
-Scriptures, and the people touched by the salvation which he proclaimed
-increased in number from day to day. Southward of the manor-house of
-Kincavil extends a chain of rocky hills, whose lofty peaks and slopes,
-dotted with clumps of trees, produced in the midst of that district a
-most picturesque effect. There more than once he talked freely about
-the Gospel with the country-folk, who in the heat of the day came to
-rest under the shadow of the rocks. Sometimes he climbed the hills,
-and from their tops contemplated the whole range of country in which
-he announced the good news. That _Craig_ still exists, a picturesque
-monument of Hamilton’s Gospel mission.[67]
-
-He began soon to set forth the Gospel in the lowly churches of the
-neighboring villages; then he grew bolder and preached even in the
-beautiful sanctuary of St. Michael, at Linlithgow, in the midst of
-numerous and rich altars. No sooner had the report of his preaching
-begun to get abroad than everyone wanted to hear him. The name which
-he bore, his gracious aspect, his learning, his piety, drew about
-him day by day a larger number of hearers; for a long time such a
-crowd had not been seen flocking into the church.[68] Linlithgow, the
-favorite abode of the court, was sometimes bright with unaccustomed
-splendor. The members of the royal family, and the most illustrious
-nobles of the kingdom, came to unite with the citizens and the people
-in the church. This fashionable auditory, whose looks were fixed on
-the reformer of three-and-twenty, did not at all intimidate him; the
-plainness, clearness, and conciseness which characterized Hamilton’s
-style were better adapted to act on the minds of the great than pompous
-declamation. ‘Knowest thou what this saying means,’ said he, ‘_Christ
-died for thee_? Verily that thou shouldest have died perpetually: and
-Christ, to deliver thee from death, died for thee, and changed thy
-perpetual death into his own death; for thou madest the fault and He
-suffered the pain.... He desireth nought of thee but that thou wilt
-acknowledge what He hath done for thee and bear it in mind: and that
-thou wouldst help others for his sake, even as He hath holpen thee for
-nought and without reward.’[69]
-
-[Sidenote: HIS MARRIAGE.]
-
-Among his hearers was a young maiden of noble birth who with joy
-received the good news of salvation. Hamilton recognized in her a soul
-akin to his own. He had adopted the principles of Luther on marriage;
-he was familiar with the conversations which the reformer had with his
-friends on the subject and which were reported all over Germany. ‘My
-father and mother,’ said Luther one day, ‘lived in the holy state of
-marriage, even the patriarchs and prophets did the same; why should
-not I do so? Marriage is the holiest state of all, and the celibacy of
-priests has been the cause of abominable sins. We must marry and thus
-defy the pope, and assert the liberty which God gives us and which Rome
-presumes to steal away.’[70] However, to marry was a daring step for
-Hamilton to take, considering _the present necessity_, as speaks the
-apostle Paul. As abbot of Ferne, and connected with the first families
-of Scotland, his marriage must needs excite to the highest degree the
-wrath of the priests. Besides which, it would call for great decision
-on the part of Patrick and genuine sympathy on the part of the young
-Christian maiden, to unite themselves as it were in sight of the
-scaffold. The marriage however took place, probably at the beginning
-of 1528. ‘A little while before his death,’ says Alesius, ‘he married
-a noble young maiden.’[71] It is possible that the knowledge of this
-union did not pass beyond the family circle. It remained unknown to his
-biographers till our own time.[72]
-
-While Hamilton was preaching at Linlithgow, archbishop Beatoun was
-at the monastery of Dunfermline, about four leagues distant, on the
-other side of the Forth. The prelate, when he learnt the return of
-the young noble who had so narrowly escaped him, saw clearly that a
-missionary animated with Luther’s spirit, thoroughly familiar with the
-manners of the people, and supported by the powerful family of the
-Hamiltons, was a formidable adversary. News which crossed the Forth
-or came from Edinburgh, did but increase the apprehensions of the
-archbishop. Beatoun was a determined enemy of the Gospel.[73] Having
-governed Scotland during the minority of the king, he was indignant
-at the thought of the troubles with which Hamilton’s preaching menaced
-the Church and the realm. The clergy shared the alarm of their head;
-the city of St. Andrews, especially, which one Scottish historian has
-called ‘the metropolis of the kingdom of darkness’,[74] was in a state
-of great agitation. The dean Spence, the rector Weddel, the official
-Simson, the canon Ramsay and the heads of various monasteries consulted
-together and exclaimed that peril was imminent, and that it was
-absolutely necessary to get rid of so dangerous an adversary.
-
-The archbishop, therefore, took counsel with his nephew and some other
-clerics as to the best means of making away with Hamilton. Great
-prudence was needful. They must make sure of the inclinations of
-Angus; they must divert the attention of the young king who, with his
-generosity of character, might wish to save his relation; they must in
-some way ensnare the evangelist, for Beatoun did not dream of sending
-men-at-arms to seize Patrick at Kincavil in the house of his brother
-the sheriff. So the archbishop resolved to have recourse to stratagem.
-In pursuit of the scheme, Hamilton, only a few days after his marriage,
-received an invitation to go to St. Andrews for the purpose of a
-friendly conference with the archbishop concerning religion. The young
-noble, who the year before had divined the perfidious projects of
-the clergy, knew well the import of the interview which was proposed
-to him, and he told those who were dear to him that in a few days
-he should lose his life.[75] His mother, his wife, his brother, his
-sister, exerted all their influence to keep him from going; but he was
-determined not to flee a second time; and he asked himself whether the
-moment was not come in which a great blow might be struck, and the
-triumph of the Gospel be attained. He declared therefore that he was
-ready to go to the Scottish Rome.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON AT ST. ANDREWS.]
-
-On his arrival at St. Andrews the young reformer presented himself
-before the archbishop, who gave him the most gracious reception. Is it
-possible that these good graces were sincere, and not treacherous as
-was generally supposed? Did Beatoun hope to win him back by such means
-to the bosom of the Church? Every one in the palace testified respect
-to Hamilton. The prelate had provided for him a lodging in the city, to
-which he was conducted. Patrick, when he saw the respect with which he
-was treated, felt still more encouraged to set forth frankly the faith
-that was in his heart. He went back to the castle where the conference
-with the archbishop and the other doctors was to be held. All of them
-displayed a conciliatory spirit: all appeared to recognize the evils
-in the church; some of them seemed even to share on some points the
-sentiments of Hamilton. He left the castle full of hope. He thought
-that he could see in the dense wall of Romish prejudices a small
-opening which by the hand of God might soon be widened.
-
-He lost no time. Left perfectly free he went and came whithersoever
-he would, and was allowed to defend his opinions without any obstacle
-being thrown in his way. This was part of the plot. If the archbishop
-himself were capable of some kindly feeling, his nephew David and
-several others were pitiless. They wished Hamilton to speak, and
-to speak a good deal; he must be taken in the very fact, that they
-might dare to put him to death. Among those who listened to him there
-were present, without his being aware of it, some who took notes
-of his sayings and immediately made their report. His enemies were
-not satisfied with letting him move about freely in private houses,
-but even the halls of the university were opened to him; he might
-‘teach there and discuss there openly,’ as an eyewitness tells
-us,[76] respecting the doctrines, the sacraments, the rites and the
-administration of the Church. Many people were pleased to hear this
-young noble announce, with the permission of the primate of Scotland,
-dogmas so strange. ‘They err,’ said Hamilton to his audience, ‘whose
-religion consists in men’s merits, in traditions, laws, canons, and
-ceremonies, and who make little or no mention of the faith of Christ.
-They err who make the Gospel to be a law, and Christ to be a Moses. To
-put the law in the place of the Gospel is to put on a mourning gown
-in the feast of a marriage.’[77] Then he repeated what he had already
-asserted at Marburg, what Luther had said, what Jesus Christ had
-said:--‘It is not good works which make a good man; but it is a good
-man who makes good works.’[78] It was above all for this proposition,
-so Christian, so clear, that he was to be attacked.
-
-The enemies of the young reformer exulted when they heard him avow
-principles so opposed to those of Rome; but desirous of compromising
-him still further, they engaged him in private conversations, in
-which they tried hard to draw him to the extreme of his anti-Romish
-convictions. Nevertheless, there were among his hearers righteous men
-who loved this young Scotchman, so full of love for God and for men,
-who went to his house, confided to him their doubts, and desired his
-guidance. He received them with kindliness, frequently invited them to
-his table, and sought to do good to them all.
-
-[Sidenote: HIS DISCUSSION WITH ALESIUS.]
-
-Among the canons of St. Andrews was Alexander Alane, better known under
-the Latin name of Alesius, who in his boyhood had narrowly escaped
-death on Arthur’s Seat. This young man, of modest character, with a
-tender heart, a moderate yet resolute spirit, and a fine intelligence
-which had been developed by the study of ancient languages, had made
-great progress in scholastic divinity, and had taken his place at an
-early age among the adversaries of the Reformation.[79] His keenest
-desire was to break a lance with Luther; controversy with the reformer
-was at that time the great battle-field on which the doctors, young
-and old, aspired to give proof of their valor. As he could not measure
-himself personally with the man whom he named _arch-heretic_, Alesius
-had refuted his doctrine in a public discussion held at the university.
-The theologians of St. Andrews had covered him with applause.[80]
-‘Assuredly,’ said they, ‘if Luther had been present, he would have
-been compelled to yield.’ The fairest hopes, too, were entertained
-respecting the young doctor. Alesius, alive to these praises, and a
-sincere Catholic, thought that it would be an easy task for him to
-convince young Hamilton of his errors. He had been acquainted with him
-before his journey to Marburg; he loved him; and he desired to save him
-by bringing him back from his wanderings.
-
-With this purpose he visited the young noble. Conversation began.
-Alesius was armed cap-à-pié, crammed with scholastic learning,[81]
-and with all the formulæ _quomodo sit, quomodo non sit_. Hamilton
-had before him nothing but the Gospel, and he replied to all the
-reasonings of his antagonist with the clear, living, and profound
-word of the Scriptures. It has happened more than once that sincere
-men have embraced the truth a little while after having pronounced
-against it. Alesius, struck and embarrassed, was silenced, and felt as
-if ‘the morning-star were rising in his heart.’ It was not merely his
-understanding that was convinced. The breath of a new life penetrated
-his soul, and at the moment when the scaffolding of his syllogisms
-fell to the ground, the truth appeared to him all radiant with glory.
-He did not content himself with that first conference, but frequently
-came again to see Hamilton, taking day by day more and more pleasure
-in his discourse. His conscience was won, his mind was enlightened.
-On returning to his priory cell, he pondered with amazement on the
-way he had just gone. ‘The result of my visit has been contrary to
-all my expectation,’ said he; ‘I thought that I should bring Hamilton
-back to the doctrine of Rome, and instead of that he has brought me to
-acknowledge my own error.’[82]
-
-[Sidenote: ALEXANDER CAMPBELL.]
-
-One day another speaker came to Hamilton. This was a young
-ecclesiastic, Alexander Campbell, prior of the Dominicans, who
-like Alesius had a fine genius, great learning,[83] and a kindly
-disposition.[84] The archbishop, who knew his superiority, begged
-him to visit Hamilton frequently, and to spare no efforts to win him
-back to the Roman doctrine. Campbell obeyed his chief; but while
-certain priests or monks craftily questioned the young doctor with
-the intention of destroying him, the prior of the Dominicans had it
-in mind to save him. It is a mistake to attribute to him from the
-first any other intention. Campbell, like Alesius, was open to the
-truth, but the love of the world and its favors prevailed in him, and
-therein lay his danger. He frequently conversed with Hamilton on the
-true sense of the Scriptures, and acknowledged the truth of Patrick’s
-words. ‘Yes,’ said the prior, ‘the Church is in need of reformation
-in many ways.’[85] Hamilton, pleased with this admission, hoped to
-bring him to the faith, like Alesius, and having no fear of a friend
-whom he already looked on almost as a brother, he kept back none of his
-thoughts, and attached himself to him with all sincerity. But after
-several interviews, Campbell received orders from the archbishop to
-go to him to give an account of the result of his proceedings. This
-request astonished and disturbed the prior; and when he stood before
-Beatoun and his councillors, he was intimidated, overpowered by fear at
-the thought of offending the primate, and of incurring the censures of
-the Church. He would fain have obeyed at the same time both the Lord
-and the bishop,--he would fain have served God and _sucked-in_ honors;
-but he saw no means of reconciling the Gospel and the world. When he
-saw all looks turned on him he was agitated, he wavered, and told
-everything which the young noble of Kincavil had said to him in the
-freedom of brotherly confidence. He appeared to condemn him, and even
-consented to become one of his judges. Choosing ease, reputation, and
-life rather than persecution, opprobrium, and death, Campbell turned
-his back on the truth and abandoned Hamilton.
-
-When the young reformer heard of Campbell’s treachery, it was a great
-sorrow to him; but he was not disheartened. On the contrary, he went
-on teaching with redoubled zeal, both at his own lodging and in the
-university. He bore witness, ‘with hand and with foot,’ as used to be
-said at that time (that is to say, with all his heart and with all
-his might), to the Word of God. For making a beginning of the work of
-reformation there was no place in the kingdom more important than St.
-Andrews. Hamilton found there students and professors, priests, monks
-of the orders of St. Augustine, St. Francis, and St. Dominic, canons,
-deans, members of the ecclesiastical courts, nobles, jurisconsults,
-and laymen of all classes. This was the wide and apparently favorable
-field on which for one month he scattered plentifully the divine
-seed.[86]
-
-The adversaries of the New Testament, when they saw the success of
-Hamilton’s teachings, grew more and more alarmed every day. There
-must be no more delay, they thought; all compliance must cease, and
-the great blow must be struck. Patrick was cited to appear at the
-archiepiscopal palace, to make answer to a charge of heresy brought
-against him. His friends in alarm conjured him to fly: it seemed that
-even the archbishop would have been glad to see him set out once more
-for Germany. Lord Hamilton, earl of Arran, was at once Patrick’s uncle
-and the primate’s nephew by marriage. The primate would naturally show
-some consideration for a young man whose family he respected;[87] but
-the obstacle was to be raised on the part of Hamilton himself. When
-he crossed the North Sea to return to Scotland, he had resolved to
-lay down his life, if need be, if only by his death _Christ should be
-magnified_. The joy of a good conscience was so firmly established in
-his soul that no bodily suffering could take it away.
-
-As Patrick was not minded to fly from the scaffold, his enemies
-determined to rid themselves of so formidable an antagonist.
-
-One obstacle, however, lay in their way. Would the king, feeble and
-thoughtless, but still humane and generous, permit them to sacrifice
-this young member of his family, who excited the admiration even of his
-adversaries? James V. felt really interested in Patrick: he wished to
-see him, and had urged him to be reconciled with the bishops.[88] If
-at the last moment the Hamiltons should entreat his pardon, how could
-he refuse it? To evade this difficulty, the Roman clergy resolved to
-get the young monarch removed out of the way. His father, James IV.,
-used to make a yearly pilgrimage to the chapel of St. Duthac, founded
-by James III., in Ross-shire, in the north of Scotland. The bishops
-determined to persuade this prince, then only seventeen, to undertake
-this long journey although it was then the depth of winter.[89] The
-king consented, either because he was artfully misled by the priests,
-or because, seeing that they were determined to get rid of Hamilton, he
-would rather let them alone, and wash his hands of it. He set out for
-St. Duthac,[90] and the priests immediately applied themselves to their
-task.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON’S DEATH RESOLVED ON.]
-
-The tidings of the imminent danger which threatened Patrick brought
-anxiety into the manor-house of Kincavil. His wife, his mother, and
-his sister were deeply moved: Sir James was determined not to confine
-himself to useless lamentation, but to snatch his brother out of the
-hands of his enemies. As sheriff of Linlithgow and captain of one of
-the king’s castles, he could easily assemble some men-at-arms, and he
-set out for St. Andrews at the head of a small force, confident that
-in case of success James V., on his return from Duthac, would grant
-him a bill of indemnity.[91] But when he reached the shores of the
-Forth, which had to be crossed on his way into Fifeshire, he found
-the waters in agitation from a violent storm, so that he could not
-possibly make the passage.[92] Sir James and his men-at-arms stopped
-on the coast, watching the waves with mournful hearts, and listening
-in anguish to the roar of the storm. When the archbishop heard of the
-appearance of a troop on the other side the Forth, he collected a large
-body of horsemen to repulse the attack.[93] Those who were bent on
-rescuing Hamilton were as full of ardor as those who were bent on his
-destruction. Which of the two parties would win the day?
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
- APPEARANCE, CONDEMNATION, MARTYRDOM.
-
- (END OF FEBRUARY-MARCH 1, 1528.)
-
-
-The Word of God, when heard among men, has a twofold effect. The
-first, as we have seen, is to win souls for God by the charm of the
-divine love which it reveals; but that is not all. It not only gives
-but demands: it insists on a new heart and a new life. The pride of
-man revolts against the commandments of God: the heart incensed is
-bitter against those who announce them, and impels to persecution. The
-evangelical word, like the creative, separates light from darkness,
-those who are obedient from those who rebel. This is what was then
-taking place in Scotland.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON BEFORE THE BISHOPS.]
-
-Hamilton rose early on the day on which he was to appear before the
-bishop’s council.[94] Calm and yet fervent in spirit, he burned
-with desire to make confession of the truth in the presence of that
-assembly. Without waiting for the hour which had been fixed, he left
-his abode and presented himself unexpectedly at the archbishop’s
-palace, between seven and eight o’clock not long after sunrise. Beatoun
-was already at his task, wishing to confer with the members of his
-council before the sitting. They went and told him that Hamilton was
-come and was asking for him. The archbishop took good care not to
-give him a private interview. The several heresies of which Hamilton
-was accused had been formulated. All who took part in the affair were
-agreed as to the heads of the indictment. Beatoun resolved at once to
-take advantage of Hamilton’s eagerness, and to advance the sitting. The
-archbishop directed the court to constitute itself: each member took
-his place according to his rank, and they had the accused before them.
-One of the members of the council was commissioned to unfold before
-the young doctor the long catalogue of heresies laid to his charge.
-Hamilton was brought in. He had expected to converse with Beatoun in
-private, but he found himself suddenly before a tribunal of sombre and
-inquisitorial aspect; the lion’s jaws were open before him. However, he
-remained gentle and calm before the judges, although he knew that they
-had resolved to take away his life.
-
-‘You are charged,’ said the commissioner, ‘with teaching false
-doctrines: 1st, that the corruption of sin remains in the child after
-baptism; 2nd, that no man is able by mere force of free will to do any
-good thing; 3rd, that no one continues without sins so long as he is
-in this life; 4th, that every true Christian must know if he is in the
-state of grace; 5th, that a man is not justified by works but by faith
-alone; 6th, that good works do not make a good man, but that a good
-man makes good works; 7th, that faith, hope and charity are so closely
-united that he who has one of these virtues has also the others; 8th,
-that it may be held that God is cause of sin in this sense, that when
-he withholds his grace from a man, the latter cannot but sin; 9th,
-that it is a devilish doctrine to teach that remission of sins can be
-obtained by means of certain penances; 10th, that auricular confession
-is not necessary to salvation; 11th, that there is no purgatory; 12th,
-that the holy patriarchs were in heaven before the passion of Jesus
-Christ; and 13th, that the pope is Antichrist, and that a priest has
-just as much power as a pope.’[95]
-
-The young reformer of Scotland had listened attentively to this long
-series of charges, drawn up in somewhat scholastic terms. In the
-official indictment of the priests were included some doctrines for
-the maintenance of which Hamilton was willing to lay down his life;
-others which, he admitted, were fair subjects for discussion; but
-the primate’s theologians had, in their zeal, piled up all that they
-could find, true or false, essential or accidental, and had flung
-the confused mass at the young man in order to crush him. One of the
-clergy, who had visited him for the purpose of catching him unawares
-in some heresy, had given out that the reformers made God the author
-of sin. Patrick had denied it, saying,--and this was matter of
-reproach in the 8th article,--that a sinner may get to such a pitch
-of obduracy that God leaves him because he will no longer hear him.
-Hamilton, therefore, made a distinction between the various heads of
-the indictment. ‘I declare,’ said he, ‘that I look on the first seven
-articles as certainly true, and I am ready to attest them with a solemn
-oath. As for the other points they are matter for discussion; but I
-cannot pronounce them false until stronger reasons are given me for
-rejecting them than any which I have yet heard.’
-
-The doctors conferred with Hamilton on each point; and the thirteen
-articles were then referred to the judgment of a commission of divines
-nominated by the primate. A day or two later, the commissioners made
-their report, and declared all the articles, without exception, to
-be heretical. The primate then, in order that the judgment might be
-invested with special solemnity, announced that sentence would be
-delivered in the cathedral on the last day of February, before an
-assembly of the clergy, the nobility, and the people.[96]
-
-[Sidenote: ANDREW DUNCAN’S ATTEMPT.]
-
-While the priests were making ready to put to death one of the members
-of the illustrious family of the Hamiltons, some noble-hearted laymen
-were preparing to rescue him. The men of Linlithgow were not the only
-ones to stir in the matter. John Andrew Duncan, laird of Airdrie, who,
-as we have seen, was taken prisoner by the English at the battle of
-Flodden, had, during his captivity, found friends in England, whom he
-gained for the Gospel. On his return to Scotland, he had opened his
-house as an asylum for the gospellers, and had become intimate with
-the Hamiltons. Hearing of the danger that beset Patrick, indignant
-at the conduct of the bishops and burning with desire to save the
-young reformer, Duncan had armed his tenants and his servants, and
-then marching towards the metropolitan city, intended to enter it by
-night, to carry off his friend and conduct him to England. But the
-archbishop’s horsemen, warned of the enterprise, set out and surrounded
-Duncan’s feeble troop, disarmed them and made Duncan prisoner. The life
-of this noble evangelical Christian was spared at the intercession of
-his brother-in-law, who was in command of the forces which captured
-him, but he had once more to quit Scotland.[97]
-
-This attempt had been frustrated just at the moment when the
-commissioners presented their report on the alleged heresies of
-Hamilton. There was no longer any need for hesitation on the part
-of the archbishop; he therefore ordered the arrest of the young
-evangelist. Wishing to prevent any resistance, the governor of the
-castle of St. Andrews, who was to carry out the order, waited till
-night; and then putting himself at the head of a well-armed body of
-men, he silently surrounded the house in which Hamilton dwelt.[98]
-According to one historian, he had already retired to rest; according
-to others, he was in the society of pious and devoted friends and was
-conversing with them. The young reformer, while he appreciated the
-affection and the eagerness of his friend Duncan, had no wish that
-force should be employed to save him. He knew that of whatever nature
-the war is, such must the weapons be; that for a spiritual war the
-weapons must be spiritual; that Christ’s soldiers must fight only with
-the sword of the holy Word. He remained calm in the conviction that God
-disposes all that befalls his children in such wise that what the world
-thinks an evil turns out for good to them. At the very moment when
-the soldiers were surrounding his house, he felt himself encompassed
-with solid ramparts, knowing that God marshals his forces around his
-people, as if for the defence of a fortress. At that moment there were
-knocks at the door: it was the governor of the castle. Hamilton knew
-what it meant. He rose, went forward accompanied by his friends, and
-opening the door asked the governor whom he wanted;[99] the latter
-having answered, Hamilton said, ‘It is I!’ and gave himself up. Then
-pointing to his friends he added, ‘You will allow them to retire;’[100]
-and he entreated them not to make any resistance to lawful authority.
-But these ardent Christians could not bear the thought of losing their
-friend. ‘Promise us,’ they said to the governor, ‘promise us to bring
-him back safe and sound.’ The officer only replied by taking away his
-prisoner. On the summit of huge rocks which rise perpendicularly from
-the sea, and whose base is ceaselessly washed by the waves, stood at
-that time the castle whose picturesque remains serve still as a beacon
-to the mariner. It was within the walls of this feudal stronghold that
-Hamilton was taken and confined.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON IN THE CASTLE.]
-
-The last day of February at length arrived, the day fixed by the
-archbishop for the solemn assembly at which sentence was to be
-pronounced. The prelate, followed by a large number of bishops, abbots,
-doctors, heads of religious orders, and the twelve commissioners,
-entered the cathedral--a building some centuries old, which was to
-be cast down in a day by a word of Knox, and whose magnificent ruins
-still astonish the traveller.[101] Beatoun sat on the bench of the
-inquisitorial court, and all the ecclesiastical judges took their
-places round him. Among these was observed Patrick Hepburn, prior of
-St. Andrews, son of the earl of Bothwell, a worthless and dissolute
-man, who had eleven illegitimate children, and who gloried in bringing
-distress and dishonor into families. This veteran of immorality--who
-ought to have been on the culprit’s seat, but whose pride was greater
-even than his licentiousness--took his place with a shameless
-countenance on the judges’ bench. Not far from him was David Beatoun,
-abbot of Arbroath, an ambitious young man, who was already coveting
-his uncle’s dignity, and who, as if to prepare himself for a long work
-of persecution, vigorously pressed on the condemnation of Patrick.
-In the midst of these hypocrites and fanatics sat one man in a state
-of agitation and distress--the prior of the Dominicans, Alexander
-Campbell--with his countenance gloomy and fallen. A great crowd of
-canons, priests, monks, nobles, citizens, and the common people, filled
-the church; some of them greedy for the spectacle which was to be
-presented to them, others sympathizing with Hamilton. ‘I was myself
-present,’ said Alesius, ‘a spectator of that tragedy.’[102]
-
-The tramp of horses was presently heard: the party of troops sent to
-seek Hamilton were come. The young evangelist passed into the church,
-and had to mount a lofty desk, from which he could be easily seen and
-heard by the assembly. All eyes were turned towards him. ‘Ah,’ said
-pious folk, ‘if this young Christian had been a worldling, and had
-given himself up, like the other lords of the court, to a life of
-dissipation and rioting,[103] he would doubtless have been loved by
-everybody; and this flower of youth which we now look on would have
-blown amidst flatteries and delights. But because to his rank he has
-added piety and virtue, he must fall under the blows of the wicked.’
-
-[Sidenote: THE TRIAL.]
-
-The proceedings began. The commissioners presented their report to the
-court, duly signed. Then Alexander Campbell rose, for the archbishop
-had charged him to read the indictment, and the unfortunate man had
-not dared to refuse the horrible task. Hamilton was affected at seeing
-that man whom he took for his friend appear as his accuser. However,
-he listened with calmness to the address. His quietude, his noble
-simplicity, his frankness, his trust in the Lord, impressed every one.
-‘Truly,’ said Alesius, ‘no man ever more fully realized that saying,
-‘Trust in the Lord and do good.’[104] A contest began between the
-prior of the Dominicans and the young reformer. The latter, determined
-to defend his faith in the presence of that great assembly, pointed
-out the sophistry of his accusers, and established the truth by the
-testimony of the Holy Scriptures. Campbell replied; but Hamilton,
-always armed with the Word of God, rejoined, and his adversary was
-silenced. Campbell, unhappy and distressed, inwardly convinced of
-the doctrine professed by his old friend, could do no more. He
-approached the tribunal and asked for instructions. The bishops and
-the theologians, having no mind for a public debate, directed Campbell
-to enumerate with a loud voice certain errors which had not yet been
-reduced to formal articles, and to call Hamilton _heretic_.[105] This
-was putting the poor Dominican to fresh torture; but he must hold on to
-the end. He turned therefore towards Hamilton and said aloud--‘Heretic!
-thou hast said that all men have the right to read the Word of God.
-Thou hast said that it is against the divine law to worship images.
-Thou hast said that it is idle to invoke the saints and the Virgin.
-Thou hast said that it is useless to celebrate masses to save souls
-from purgatory....’ Here the unfortunate Campbell stopped. ‘Purgatory!’
-exclaimed Patrick; ‘nothing purifies souls but the blood of Jesus
-Christ.’[106] At these words, Campbell turned to the archbishop and
-said, ‘My lords, you hear him; he despises the authority of our holy
-father the pope.’ Then, as if he meant to stifle by insults the voice
-of the noble and courageous Christian, ‘Heretic,’ cried he, ‘rebel!
-detestable! execrable! impious!...’ Hamilton, turning towards him,
-said, in accents full of kindness, ‘My brother, thou dost not in thy
-very heart believe what thou art saying.’[107] This was too much. The
-word of tender reproof pierced like a dart the soul of the unhappy
-Dominican. To find himself treated with so much gentleness by the man
-whose death he was urging rent his heart, and an accusing cry was
-heard in the depths of his soul.[108] Campbell was embarrassed and
-silenced. Hamilton’s charity had heaped coals of fire on his head.[109]
-
-Then began the taking of votes. The members of the court unanimously
-condemning the innocent man, the primate rose and said,--‘_Christi
-nomine invocato_,--We, James, by the grace of God archbishop of St.
-Andrews, primate of Scotland, sitting in judgment in our metropolitan
-church, have found Patrick Hamilton infected with divers heresies of
-Martin Luther, which have been already condemned by general councils.
-We therefore declare the said Hamilton a heretic; we condemn him; we
-deprive him of all dignities, orders, and benefices, and we deliver him
-over to the secular arm to be punished.’[110]
-
-Having thus spoken, the primate laid on the table the sentence which
-he had just read, and the bishops, priors, abbots, and doctors present
-came and signed the document one by one. The primate next, with the
-view of investing the act with more authority, invited such persons
-as had a certain rank in the university to set their hands likewise
-to it. Young boys--the earl of Cassilis, for example, who was only
-thirteen--were of the number. The priests persuaded them that they
-thereby did God service, and this was very flattering to such children.
-The court rose, and an escort of some thousands of armed men conducted
-Hamilton back to the castle.[111]
-
-This numerous escort showed the fears which the clergy entertained.
-Duncan’s attempt had failed, but Sir James Hamilton was still at
-the head of his soldiers, and many other persons in Scotland were
-interested about this young man. But nothing short of the death
-of their victim could pacify the priests. They decided that the
-sentence should be executed the same day. The primate was sure of the
-coöperation of the government. Angus offered no opposition to this
-iniquitous proceeding. Thus condemnation had hardly been pronounced
-when the executioner’s servants were seen before the gate of St.
-Salvator’s College, raising the pile on which Hamilton was to be burnt.
-
-[Sidenote: AT THE STAKE.]
-
-While they were heaping up the wood and driving in the stake, Patrick
-was taking his last meal in one of the rooms of the castle; he ate
-moderately, as his custom was, but without the slightest agitation; his
-countenance was perfectly serene. He was going to meet death with good
-courage, because it would admit him into his Father’s house; he hoped,
-too, that his martyrdom would be gain to the Church of God. The hour
-of noon struck: it was the time appointed for the execution. Hamilton
-bade them call the governor of the castle. That officer appeared; he
-was deeply affected. Hamilton, without leaving the table, inquired
-of him _whether all was ready_?[112] The governor, whose heart was
-breaking to see such innocence and nobleness requited with a cruel
-death, could not find courage to pronounce a single word which would
-point to the scaffold, and he answered with emotion, _Dii meliora_,
-‘God give you a better fate!’ Hamilton understood him, got up, took the
-Gospel in one hand, grasped affectionately with the other the hand of
-the sympathizing governor, and went like a lamb to execution.[113] He
-was accompanied by a few friends, his faithful servant followed, and
-a numerous guard escorted him. He set the cross of Christ, which he
-then bore, above all the delights of life.[114] His soul was full of a
-glorious and solid joy, which was worth more than the joy of the world.
-
-He arrived at the spot. All was ready--wood, coal, powder, and other
-combustible material. Standing before the pile, he uncovered his head,
-and lifting up his eyes to heaven, remained motionless for some moments
-in prayer.[115] Then he turned to his friends and handed to one of
-them his copy of the Gospels. Next, calling his servant, he took off
-his cloak, his coat, and his cap, and with his arms stretched out
-presented them to him and said--‘Take these garments, they can do me no
-service in the fire, and they may still be of use to thee. It is the
-last gift thou wilt receive from me, except the example of my death,
-the remembrance of which I pray thee to bear in mind. Death is bitter
-for the flesh ... but it is the entrance into eternal life, which
-none can possess who deny Jesus Christ.’[116] The archbishop, wishing
-to ingratiate himself with the powerful family of the Hamiltons, had
-ordered some of his clergy to offer the young reformer his life on
-condition of his submitting to the absolute authority of the pope.
-‘No,’ replied Hamilton, ‘your fire will not make me recant the faith
-which I have professed. Better that my body should burn in your flames
-for having confessed the Saviour, than that my soul should burn in hell
-for having denied him. I appeal to God from the sentence pronounced
-against me, and I commit myself to his mercy.’[117]
-
-[Sidenote: INSULTS OF CAMPBELL.]
-
-The executioners came to fulfil their part. They passed an iron chain
-round the victim’s body, and thus fastened him to the stake which
-rose above the pile. Conscious that acute pains might lead him to
-err, Hamilton prayed to God that the flames might not extort from him
-the least word which should grieve his divine master. ‘In the name of
-Jesus,’ he added, ‘I give up my body to the fire, and commit my soul
-into the hands of the Father.’ Three times the pile was kindled, and
-three times the fire went out because the wood was green.[118] Suddenly
-the powder placed among the faggots exploded, and a piece of wood shot
-against Hamilton flayed part of his body; but death was not yet come.
-Turning to the deathsman, he said mildly, ‘Have you no dry wood?’
-Several men hastened to get some at the castle. Alexander Campbell
-was present, struggling with his evil conscience, and in a state of
-violent agitation which rose with his distress and misery. The servants
-of the executioner brought some dry wood and quickened the fire.
-‘Heretic,’ said Campbell, ‘be converted! recant! call upon Our Lady;
-only say, _Salve Regina_.’ ‘If thou believest in the truth of what thou
-sayest,’ replied Patrick, ‘bear witness to it by putting the tip only
-of thy finger into the fire in which my whole body is burning.[119]’
-The unhappy Dominican took good care to do no such thing. He began
-to insult the martyr. Then Hamilton said to him, ‘Depart from me,
-messenger of Satan.’ Campbell, enraged, stormed round the victim like
-a roaring lion. ‘Submit to the pope,’ he cried; ‘there is no salvation
-but in union with him.’ Patrick was broken-hearted with grief at seeing
-to what a pitch of obduracy his old friend had come. ‘Thou wicked man,’
-said he to him, ‘thou knowest the contrary well enough; thou hast
-told me so thyself.’ This noble victim, then, chained to the post and
-already half-burnt, feeling himself to be superior to the wretched man
-who was vexing him, spoke as a judge, commanded as a king, and said
-to the Dominican, ‘I appeal thee before the tribunal seat of Christ
-Jesus.’[120] At these words Campbell, ceasing his outcries, remained
-mute, and leaving the place, fled affrighted into his monastery. His
-mind wandered; he was seized with madness; he was like one possessed by
-a demon, and in a little while he died.[121]
-
-The tenderest affections succeeded these most mournful emotions in
-Hamilton’s heart. He was drawing near to the moment of heart-rending
-separations: but his thoughts, though turning heavenward, were not
-turned away from his home at Kincavil. He had cherished the hope of
-becoming a father; and some time afterwards his wife gave birth to a
-daughter who was named Issobel. She lived at court in later years, and
-received on more than one occasion tokens of the royal favor.[122]
-Hamilton, who had always felt the tenderest respect for his mother,
-did not forget her at the stake, but commended her to the love of his
-friends.[123] After his wife and his mother, he was mindful of his
-native place. ‘O God,’ said he, ‘open the eyes of my fellow-citizens,
-that they may know the truth!’
-
-[Sidenote: HAMILTON’S DEATH.]
-
-While the martyr’s heart was thus overflowing with love, several of
-the wretches who stood round him aggravated his sufferings. A baker
-took an armful of straw and threw it into the fire to increase its
-intensity; at the same moment a gust of wind from the sea quickened
-the flames, which rose above the stake. The chain round Patrick’s body
-was red-hot, and had by this time almost burnt him in two.[124] One of
-the bystanders, probably a friend of the Gospel, cried to him, ‘If
-thou still holdest true the doctrine for which thou diest, make us a
-sign.’ Two fingers of his hand were consumed; stretching out his arm,
-he raised the other three, and held them motionless in sign of his
-faith.[125] The torment had lasted from noon, and it was now nearly six
-o’clock. Hamilton was burnt over a slow fire.[126] In the midst of the
-tumult he was heard uttering this cry, ‘O God, how long shall darkness
-cover this realm, how long wilt thou permit the tyranny of men to
-triumph?’ The end was drawing nigh. The martyr’s arm began to fail: his
-three fingers fell. He said, ‘Lord Jesus! receive my spirit.’ His head
-drooped, his body sank down, and the flames completed their ravage and
-reduced it to ashes.
-
-The crowd dispersed, thrilled by this grand and mournful sight, and
-never was the memory of this young reformer’s death effaced in the
-hearts of those who had been eyewitnesses of it. It was deeply engraven
-in the soul of Alesius. ‘I saw,’ said he, several years afterwards
-in some town in Germany, ‘I saw in my native land the execution of
-a high-born man, Patrick Hamilton.’[127] And he told the story in
-brief and penetrating words. ‘How singular was the fate of the two
-Hamiltons! Father and son both died a violent death: the former died
-the death of a hero; the latter, that of a martyr. The father had been
-in Scotland the last of the knights of the Middle Ages; the son was
-in the same land the first of the soldiers of Christ in the new time.
-The father brought honor to his family by winning many times the palm
-of victory in tournaments and combats; the son,’ says an illustrious
-man, Théodore Beza, ‘ennobled the royal race of the Hamiltons, sullied
-afterwards by some of its members, and adorned it with that martyr’s
-crown which is infinitely more precious than all kingly crowns.’[128]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
- ALESIUS.
-
- (END OF FEBRUARY 1528 TO THE END OF 1531.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: EFFECTS OF HAMILTON’S DEATH.]
-
-That saying of Christian antiquity, ‘The blood of the martyrs is
-the seed of the church,’ was perhaps never verified in a more
-striking manner than in the case of Hamilton. The rumor of his death,
-reverberating in loud echoes from the Highlands, ran over the whole
-land. It was much the same as if the famous big cannon of Edinburgh
-Castle, Mons Meg, had been fired and the report had been re-echoed from
-the Borders to Pentland Frith. Nothing was more likely to win feudal
-Scotland to the Reformation than the end, at once so holy and so cruel,
-of a member of a family so illustrious. Nobles, citizens, and the
-common people, nay, even priests and monks, were on the point of being
-aroused by this martyrdom. Hamilton, who by his ministry was reformer
-of Scotland, became still more so by his death. For God’s work, a
-life long and laborious would have been of less service than were his
-trial, condemnation, and execution, all accomplished on one day. By
-giving up his earthly life for a life imperishable, he announced the
-end of the religion of the senses, and began the worship in spirit and
-in truth. The pile to which the priests had sent him became a throne,
-his torture was a triumph, and when the _Crowns of the Martyrs_ were
-celebrated in Scotland, voices were heard exclaiming:--
-
- E cœlo alluxit primam Germania lucem,
- Qua Lanus et vitreis qua fluit Albis aquis.
- Intulit huic lucem nostræ Dux prævius oræ.
- O felix terra! hoc si foret usa duce!
- Dira superstitio grassata tyrannide in omnes,
- Omniaque involvens Cimmeriis tenebris,
- Illa nequit lucem hanc sufferre. Ergo omnis in unum,
- Fraude, odiis, furiis, turba cruenta coit.
- Igne cremant. Vivus lucis qui fulserat igne,
- Par erat, ut moriens lumina ab igne daret.[129]
-
-People everywhere wanted to know the cause for which this young
-noble had given his life, and everyone took the side of the victim.
-‘Just at the time when those cruel wolves,’ said Knox, ‘had, as they
-supposed, clean devoured their prey, a great crowd surrounded them
-and demanded of them an account for the blood which they had shed.’
-‘The faith for which Hamilton was burnt,’ said many, ‘is that which we
-will have.’ In vain was it that the guilty men, convicted by their own
-consciences, were inflamed with wrath, and uttered proud threats;[130]
-for everywhere the abuses and errors which up to that time had been
-venerated were called in question.[131] Such were the happy results of
-Hamilton’s death.
-
-As the news spread, however, in foreign lands, very different feelings
-were aroused. The doctors of Louvain, writing to the clergy of
-Scotland, said, ‘We are equally delighted with the work which you
-have done and with the way in which you have done it.’[132] Others
-showed themselves not so much charmed with such hatred, stratagem,
-and cruelty. A Christian man in England wrote to the Scottish nobles,
-‘Hamilton is now living with Christ whom he confessed before the
-princes of this world, and the voice of his blood, like the blood of
-Abel, cries to heaven.’[133] Francis Lambert, especially his friend
-and companion, was a prey to intense grief: he said to the landgrave,
-‘Hamilton has offered up to God and to the Church, as a sacrifice, not
-only the lustre of his rank, but also his youthful prime.’[134]
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES V. FLIGHT.]
-
-Some days after, the king returned from the north of Scotland, whither
-the priests had sent him to worship some relics. Hamilton was no more.
-What were the feelings of James V. when he learnt the death of this
-noble scion of the royal house? We have no means of ascertaining them.
-The young prince seemed to be more alive to the humiliation to which
-the nobles subjected him than to the cruelty of the priests. Fretted
-by the state of dependence in which Angus kept him, he made complaint
-of it to Henry VIII.[135] Hunting was his only amusement, and for the
-sake of enjoying it he had taken up his abode at Falkland Castle. On
-a sudden, caring no more for hounds, foxes, or deer, he conceived
-the project of regaining his freedom and his authority. This might
-be fraught with grave consequences for the Reformation. If at a time
-when the nobles kept a tight hand over the priestly party Hamilton had
-been put to death, what might happen in Scotland when the priests, on
-whom James leaned for support, should have once more seized the chief
-power? The deliverance of the young king, however, was no easy matter.
-A hundred men, selected by Angus, were about him night and day; and the
-captain of his guards, the minister of the royal house and the lord
-treasurer of the kingdom, had orders to keep their eyes constantly
-upon him. He determined to resort to stratagem. He said one evening to
-his courtiers, ‘We will rise very early to-morrow to go stag-hunting;
-be ready.’ Everyone retired early to rest; but no sooner had the prince
-entered his chamber than he called one of his pages in whom he had full
-confidence. ‘Jockie,’ said he to him; ‘dost thou love me?’ ‘Better than
-myself, Sire.’--‘Wilt thou run some risk for my sake?’ ‘Risk my life,
-Sire.’ James explained to him his design; and then, disguising himself
-as a groom, he went into his stables with the page and a valet. ‘We are
-come to get the horses ready for the hunt to-morrow,’ said the three
-grooms. Some moments elapsed; they went noiselessly out of the castle,
-and set off at a gallop for Stirling Castle, where the queen-mother
-was residing. The king arrived there in the early morning. ‘Draw up
-the bridges,’ said he, so fearful was he of his pursuers. ‘Let down
-the portcullises, set sentinels at all points.’ He was worn out with
-fatigue, having been on horseback all night; but he refused to lie down
-until the keys of all the gates had been placed under his pillow; then
-he laid down his head upon them and went to sleep. On the morning after
-this flight, Sir George Douglas, the king’s guardian, rose without
-suspicion, thinking only of the hunt which James had appointed. While
-he was taking certain precautions against the escape of the prince, a
-stranger arrived and asked to speak to Sir George. It was the bailiff
-of Abernethy. He entered the apartment of the royal gaoler, and
-announced to him that in the course of the night the king had crossed
-the bridge at Stirling. Sir George, startled at this unlooked-for news,
-ran to the apartment of the king; he knocked, and as no one answered,
-he had the door burst open. He looked round on all sides and exclaimed,
-‘Treachery! the king is fled!’ He gave instant notice to his brother,
-the earl of Angus, and sent messengers in all directions with orders
-to arrest the king wheresoever he might be found. All was useless. The
-tidings of this event being spread abroad, the enemies of the Douglases
-hastened in crowds to Stirling. Without loss of time the king called
-together the parliament and got a decree of banishment issued against
-Angus. The latter, cast down suddenly from the height of greatness,
-made his escape into England, passing safely through many difficulties
-and dangers.
-
-From that time James V. bore rule himself, so far at least as the
-priests would allow him. In the character of this strange prince were
-combined insatiable ambition and unparalleled feebleness, kindliness
-full of affability and implacable resentment, a great regard for
-justice and violent passions, an eager desire to protect the weak from
-the oppression of the powerful and fits of rage which did not spare
-even the lowly. The king reigned, but the clergy governed. As the
-aim of James V. was to humble the nobles, a close alliance with the
-clergy was a necessity for him, and once having taken the side of the
-priests, he went to great lengths. The archbishops of St. Andrews and
-Glasgow, the bishop of Dunkeld, and the abbot of Holyrood were placed
-at the head of the government, and the most distinguished members
-of the aristocracy were immediately imprisoned or sent into exile.
-No Douglas, and no partisan even of that house, was allowed to come
-within twelve miles of the court. Persecution attacked at the same
-time the evangelical Christians; men who might have elevated their
-country perished on the scaffold. The course pursued by the priests
-tended to defeat their own end. The nobles, exasperated by the tyranny
-of the bishops, began to feel the aversion for the Church of Rome
-which they felt for its leading men. It was not indeed from the Romish
-religion that they broke off, but only from an ambitious and merciless
-hierarchy. But erelong we shall find the nobles, ever more and
-more provoked by the clergy, beginning to lend a willing ear to the
-evangelical doctrine of those who opposed the clergy.
-
-[Sidenote: ALESIUS.]
-
-Before that moment arrived, the conquests of the Reformation in
-Scotland had begun. It counted already many humble but devout adherents
-in convents, parsonage houses and cottages. At the head of the canons
-of St. Augustine at St. Andrews was an immoral man, an enemy of the
-Gospel, prior Hepburn; nevertheless, it was among them that the
-awakening began. One of the canons, Alesius, had been confirmed in the
-faith of the Gospel by the testimony which Hamilton had borne to the
-truth during his trial, and by the simple and heroic beauty of his
-death, which he had witnessed. On returning to his priory he had felt
-more deeply the need of reformation. ‘Ah,’ said he, ‘how wretched is
-the state of the Church! Destitute of teachers competent to teach her,
-she finds herself kept far away from the Holy Scriptures,[136] which
-would lead her into all truth.’ Alesius gave utterance at the same time
-to the love which he felt even for the persecutors. ‘I do not hate the
-bishops,’ he said; ‘I do not hate any of the religious orders; but
-I tremble to see Christ’s doctrine buried under thick darkness, and
-pious folk subjected to horrible tortures. May all learn what power
-religion displays in men’s souls, by examining with care its divine
-sources.’[137] The death of Hamilton was day after day the subject of
-the canons’ conversation, and Alesius steadily refused to condemn him.
-
-The worthless Hepburn and his satellites could not endure this. They
-denounced Alesius to the archbishop as a man who had embraced the
-faith for which Hamilton had been burnt, and they added that other
-canons seemed likely to take the same path. In order to ascertain the
-sentiments of the young man, the primate resolved to lay a snare for
-him; and when a provincial synod met at St. Andrews, he appointed
-Alesius to preach the sermon at its opening. Alesius entered the
-pulpit, and, while avoiding anything which might uselessly offend his
-hearers, he brought forward the doctrines of the truth, and boldly
-urged the clergy to give an example of holy living, and not to be
-stumbling-blocks to the faithful by scandalous licentiousness.
-
-[Sidenote: HIS IMPRISONMENT.]
-
-As they went out of the church, many expressed approval. The archbishop
-was grave, and did not say a word; but Hepburn, a proud, violent, and
-domineering man, whose shameless connexions, says Bayle,[138] were
-known to everybody, thought that Alesius meant to point him out and to
-excite his superiors against him, and he resolved to take vengeance
-on him. His fears were not unfounded. The discourse of Alesius had
-impressed the best men among the canons, and these, convinced of the
-necessity of putting an end to public scandals, joined together, and
-decided to carry to the king a complaint against the prior. Hepburn
-was immediately informed of their purpose, and, being constitutionally
-more fit for a soldier than for a canon, he took some armed men and
-entered suddenly into the hall in which the conference was held, to the
-great astonishment of the assembly. ‘Seize that man!’ said he to his
-men-at-arms, pointing to Alesius. The young canon begged the prior to
-keep his temper; but at these words the proud Hepburn, no longer master
-of himself, drew his sword, advanced towards Alesius, and was going to
-attack him, when two canons thrust themselves in front of their chief,
-and turned the blow aside.[139] The impetuous prelate, however, was
-not pacified, and, calling his men to his aid, he followed up Alesius,
-in order to strike him. The latter, in confusion and terror, finding
-himself within an inch of death, fell at the prior’s feet, and implored
-him not to shed innocent blood. Hepburn, to show his contempt for him,
-would not honor him so much as to pierce him with his sword, but gave
-him several kicks, and this with such force that the poor canon fainted
-away, and lay stretched on the floor before his enemy.[140] When he
-came to himself, the fierce prior ordered the soldiers to take him to
-prison, as well as the other canons; and they were all cast into a foul
-and unwholesome dungeon.
-
-These deeds of violence were noised abroad in the whole city, and
-men’s feelings were divided between contempt and horror. Some of the
-nobles, however, who had esteemed Hamilton, were profoundly indignant;
-and they betook themselves to the king, and implored him to check the
-intolerable tyranny of the prior. The young king gave orders that
-all the canons should be set at liberty, and kindly added, that ‘he
-would go himself and deliver them with his own hand if he did not
-know that the place in which they were confined was infected with the
-plague.’[141] The prior obeyed the royal command, but only in part; he
-had Alesius thrust into a place that was fouler still.[142] And now he
-was alone; had no longer a friend to clasp his hand; saw only hostile
-faces. He knew that God was with him; but the sufferings inflicted on
-him by the cruel prior, the filth, the bad smells, the vermin that
-began to prey on him, the dark and perpetual night which filled that
-frightful sink, endangered his life. It was known in the city that he
-was ill; it was even reported one day that he was dead. James V. had
-the prior of St. Augustine’s called before him, and commanded him
-to liberate Alesius. The hypocritical prior swore by the saints that
-the canon was free; and returning immediately to the priory, he gave
-orders to bring out of the frightful dungeon the wretched man, who had
-languished there for twenty days. Alesius came out, covered with filth,
-and horrible to look on.[143] It was some comfort to him to once more
-see the light of day. Some of the servants took him; they put off his
-filthy garments, washed him carefully, and then put on him clean and
-even elegant clothes.[144] Thus attired, the victim was led before
-Hepburn, who forbade him to tell anyone how he had been treated. The
-prior then summoned the city magistrates, and showing them, with an air
-of triumph, Alesius, clean and well dressed, said--‘There is the man
-who is reported to be kept in prison by me, and even to be dead. Go,
-sirs, and give the lie to these calumnies.’ The wretch added to his
-cruelty, falsehood, stratagem, and shamelessness.
-
-The magistrates then turning with kind looks to the prisoner, required
-him in the king’s name to tell the whole truth; and Alesius related
-the shameful treatment which he had suffered. The prior, embarrassed,
-could not deny the fact, but assured the provost and his colleagues
-that from that moment the prisoner was and would remain free; on which
-the council withdrew. The door had hardly closed before the enraged
-prior loaded Alesius with reproaches, and ordered him to be taken
-back to prison. A year passed, and neither king nor magistrate had
-snatched from that savage beast the prey on which he set his mind. In
-vain was it that Alesius had his complaint laid before the archbishop;
-the latter replied that he had noticed in his discourse a leaning to
-Lutheranism, and that he deserved the penalty which had fallen on him.
-His deliverance seemed impossible.
-
-[Sidenote: ALESIUS AGAIN IMPRISONED.]
-
-One day, however, it became known in the monastery that the prior
-was going out, and would be absent for several days. The canons,
-immediately hastening to their unhappy friend, took him out of the
-prison, conducted him into the open air, and paid him the most
-affectionate attentions. By degrees his strength was restored; he took
-courage, and one day he undertook to perform divine service at the
-altar. But this act of devotion was suddenly interrupted. The prior
-came back sooner than he was expected; he entered the church, and saw
-Alesius officiating, and the chapter around him. The blood rose to his
-face, and, without the slightest hesitation about interrupting divine
-service, he ordered the prisoner to be carried off from the altar,
-and again cast into his foul dungeon.[145] The canons, scandalized at
-this order, rose from their stalls, and represented to their superior
-that it was not lawful to interrupt the worship. Hepburn then allowed
-Alesius to go on with the service; but as soon as it was finished,
-he had him again confined in the place from which his colleagues had
-rescued him.
-
-In order to prevent the canons taking such liberties again, the prior
-appointed as keeper of the prison one John Hay, a cruel and fanatical
-priest, a man who would servilely carry out his master’s orders. The
-canons, friends of Alesius, had no doubt that the prior had given the
-office to that scoundrel with the intention of making away with the
-prisoner. They said to one another, that if they did not bring about
-his escape immediately, his life would be taken. The same day, before
-Hay had entered upon his office, the first shades of night had scarcely
-spread their veil over the ancient city when a few of them bent their
-way secretly to the dungeon. They succeeded, though not without
-difficulty, in penetrating to the place where the prisoner lay, and
-told him that Hay had been named his keeper, and that consequently he
-had nothing to look for but horrible tortures and certain death. They
-added, that the king being absent, the opportunity would assuredly be
-taken to get rid of him, as it had been in Hamilton’s case; and that
-he could therefore only save his life by taking flight and quitting
-Scotland.[146] Alesius was in amazement; to forsake his country and
-his friends seemed to him an extreme course. He proposed to go first
-to those with whom he was most closely connected, to take counsel with
-them as to what he ought to do. ‘Take care not to do that,’ replied the
-canons; ‘leave the country immediately without a word to anybody, for
-as soon as the prior finds that you are no longer in your dungeon, he
-will send horsemen to seize you on the road, or to carry you off from
-your friends’ house.’
-
-[Sidenote: HIS LOVE FOR SCOTLAND.]
-
-Alesius could not make up his mind to follow this advice. The thought
-of bidding adieu to Scotland, perhaps for ever, filled him with the
-keenest sorrow.[147] His dream had been to consecrate all his energies
-to the salvation of his fellow-citizens, and to do good even to those
-who wronged him; and now he was to be condemned never again to see
-Scottish faces, Edinburgh, its valleys, its lofty houses, its narrow
-streets, its castle, Holyrood, the fertile plains of Caledonia, its
-low hills covered with pasture, its heaths wrapped in mists, and its
-marsh-lands, monotonous and yet poetic, which a gloomy sea environs
-with its waters, now mournful and still, now agitated by the violence
-of the winds. All these he must quit, though he had loved them from
-childhood. ‘Ah!’ exclaimed he, ‘what is there more dear to souls
-happily born than their native land?’[148] But presently he corrected
-himself. ‘The Church,’ said he, ‘is the Christian’s country far more
-than the place which gave him birth.[149] Assuredly the name of one’s
-native land is very dear, but that of the Church is dearer still.’ He
-perceived that if he did not go away, it was all over with him; and
-that if he did go away, he might contribute, even from afar, towards
-the triumph of the truth in the land of his fathers, and possibly might
-return thither at a later day. ‘Go!’ repeated the noble canons, who
-would fain save at any cost a life so precious; ‘all honest people
-desire it.’ ‘Well,’ said Alesius, ‘I bend to the yoke of necessity;
-I will go.’ The canons, who had everything ready, immediately got
-him secretly out of the priory, conducted him beyond the city, and
-gave him the money needful for his voyage. These generous men, less
-advanced than their friend in knowledge of the Scriptures, perceived
-that by his departure they would lose an inestimable treasure; but they
-thought rather of him than of themselves--they strove to dissipate his
-melancholy, and they called to his recollection the illustrious men
-and the saints who had been compelled, like him, to fly far from the
-wrath of tyrants. At length the solemn moment of farewell was come, and
-all of them, deeply affected at the thought that perhaps they would
-never meet again, burst into tears.[150] They paid the tribute due to
-nature; for, as Calvin says, ‘The perfection of the faithful does not
-lie in throwing off every affection, but in cherishing them for worthy
-causes.’[151]
-
-It was midnight. Alesius had to pass on foot across the north of
-Fifeshire, then to cross the Firth of Tay and go on to Dundee, whence
-a ship was on the point of sailing. He set out alone, and travelled
-onwards in the thick darkness.[152] He directed his steps towards
-the Tay, having the sea at a certain distance on his right; traversed
-Leuchars, and arrived at Newport, opposite Dundee, where he had to
-take a boat to cross the Firth. During this night-journey he was beset
-with the saddest thoughts. ‘Oh!’ said he to himself, ‘what a life
-full of bitterness is offered me--to forsake one’s kinsfolk and one’s
-country;[153] to be exposed to the greatest dangers so long as the
-vessel is not reached; to fly into foreign lands, where no hospitable
-roof is ready to receive me; to have in prospect all the ills of exile;
-to live among foreign peoples, where I have not a single friend; to
-be called to converse with men speaking unknown languages; to wander
-to and fro on the Continent at a time when so many vagabonds, driven
-from their own country for fanatical or seditious opinions, are justly
-looked on with suspicion. Oh! what anxieties, what griefs.’ His soul
-sank within him; but having lifted up his eyes to Christ with full
-trust, he was suddenly consoled, and after a rude conflict, he came
-victorious out of the trial.[154]
-
-His fears, however, were only too well founded. No sooner had the
-violent Hepburn learnt the flight of the prisoner than he assembled
-some horsemen, set off in pursuit of him,[155] and reached Dundee,
-from which port he knew that a vessel was sailing for Germany. Alesius
-was expecting every moment to see him appear. ‘How shameful in a
-dignitary of the Church,’ said he, ‘is this man’s cruelty! What rage
-moved him when he drew his sword against me! To what sufferings has he
-exposed me, and with what perils has he threatened me! It is a complete
-tragedy!...’
-
-[Sidenote: FLIGHT OF ALESIUS.]
-
-In the morning Alesius entered the town of Dundee. Fearing that, in
-case of being arrested, he should fall into the hands of the prior, he
-went immediately on board the ship, which was going to sail; and the
-captain, who was a German and probably a Protestant, received him very
-kindly.[156]
-
-The prior and the horsemen, who had set out from St. Andrews, arrived
-a little later at Dundee, and, alighting from their horses, began to
-search for Alesius. He was nowhere to be found; the vessel had already
-cleared the port. The prior, enraged to find that his prey had escaped
-him, must needs vent his wrath on some one. ‘It is you,’ said he to a
-citizen well known for his attachment to the Reformation, ‘it is you
-who furnished the canon with the means of escape.’ This man denied
-the charge, and then the provost or mayor, Sir James Scrymgeour of
-Dornlope, avowed to the prior that he would with all his heart have
-provided a vessel for Alesius; and, he added, ‘I would have given him
-the necessary funds for the purpose of rescuing him from the perils to
-which your cruelty exposed him.’ The Scrymgeours, whose chief was the
-provost of Dundee, formed a numerous and powerful family, connected
-with several other noble houses of the realm. They were not the only
-family among the aristocracy which was favorable to the Gospel; several
-illustrious houses had from the first welcomed the Reformation--the
-Kirkaldys and the Melvilles of Fifeshire, the Scrymgeours and the
-Erskines of Angus, the Forresters and Sandilands of Stirlingshire and
-the Lothians, and others besides. The prior, who had not at all looked
-for such a remonstrance as he had just received, went back, annoyed and
-furious, to St. Andrews.
-
-While the ship on which Alesius had embarked sailed towards France, the
-refugee felt his own weakness, and found strength in the Lord. ‘O God,’
-said he, ‘thou dost put the oil of thy compassion only into the vessel
-of a steadfast and filial trust.[157] I must assuredly have gone down
-to the gates of hell unless all my hope had been in thy mercy alone.’
-The ship had not long been on her way when a westerly wind, blowing
-violently, carried her eastward, drove her into the Sound, and made it
-necessary to go ashore at Malmoe, in Sweden, in order to refit her.
-Alesius was very lovingly welcomed there by the Scots who had settled
-in the town.[158] At length he reached France, traversed part of the
-coast of that kingdom,[159] then betook himself to Cologne, where he
-was favorably received by archbishop Hermann, count of Wied.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
- CONFESSORS OF THE GOSPEL AND MARTYRS ARE MULTIPLIED IN SCOTLAND.
-
- (END OF 1531 TO 1534.)
-
-
-The bishops of Scotland appeared to triumph. Hamilton was dead, Alesius
-in exile, and not one evangelical voice was any longer heard in the
-realm. They now turned their thoughts to the destruction of that proud
-aristocracy which assumed that the functions of the state belonged to
-the nobles and not to the priests. The estates of the earl of Crawford
-had already been confiscated; the earls of Argyle and Bothwell and
-several others had been imprisoned, and insults had been offered
-to the earl of Murray, Lord Maxwell, Sir James Hamilton, and their
-friends.[160] The archbishop of Glasgow, chancellor of Scotland, went
-still further; he deprived the nobles of their ancient jurisdiction,
-and set up in its place a _College of Justice_, composed exclusively of
-ecclesiastics. The nobles thought now only of delivering Scotland from
-the yoke of the clergy, and determined to invite the aid of Henry VIII.
-Some of them were beginning even to feel interested in those humble
-evangelical believers who were, like themselves, the object of the
-priests’ hatred. This interest was one day to contribute to the triumph
-of the Reformation. It was resolved that the earl of Bothwell should
-open negotiations with Henry VIII., and this at the very time that that
-prince was separating from Rome. This alliance might lead a long way.
-
-[Sidenote: BOTHWELL AND NORTHUMBERLAND.]
-
-The earl of Northumberland was then at Newcastle, charged by the King
-of England to watch over affairs in the north. It was to him that
-Bothwell addressed himself. Northumberland having referred to Henry
-on the subject, it was agreed that the two earls should meet by night
-at Dilston, a place almost equally distant from Newcastle and from
-the Scottish frontier. At the mid-hour of the long night of December
-21, 1531, Bothwell, accompanied by three of his friends, arrived at
-the appointed place, where Northumberland was awaiting him.[161] They
-entered immediately on the conference. The English lord was struck
-with the intelligence, the acquirements, and the refined manners of
-Bothwell. ‘Verily,’ said he to Henry VIII., ‘I have never in my life
-met a lord so agreeable and so handsome.’ Bothwell, angered by the
-pride of the priests, reported their conduct with respect to Angus,
-Argyle, and Murray. ‘They kept me, too, confined in Edinburgh Castle
-for six months,’ said he, ‘and but for the intervention of my friends
-they would have put me to death. I know that such a fate is still
-impending over me.’ Bothwell added, that if the King of England would
-deliver the Scottish nobles from the evils which they had reason to
-dread, he himself (Bothwell) was ready to join Henry VIII. with one
-thousand gentlemen and six thousand men-at-arms. ‘We will crown him
-in a little while,’ he added, ‘in the town of Edinburgh.’[162] The
-enraged nobles were actually giving themselves up to strange fancies:
-according to their view, the only remedy for the ills of their country
-was the union of Scotland with England under the sceptre of Henry VIII.
-Scotland would in that case have submitted to a reform at the king’s
-hand; but she was reserved for other destinies, and her reform was to
-proceed from the people, and to be effected by the Word of God.
-
-The King of England was in no lack of motives for intervention in
-Scotland. James V. had just concluded an alliance for a hundred years
-with Charles V., the mortal enemy of Henry VIII., and had even asked
-for the hand of the emperor’s sister, the ex-queen of Hungary. This
-princess had rejected the match, and the emperor had proposed to James
-his niece Dorothea, daughter of the King of Denmark.
-
-Bothwell was able even to tell Northumberland, in this
-night-conference, of matters graver still. A secret ambassador from
-Charles V., said he, Peter von Rosenberg, has recently been at
-Edinburgh and, in a long conversation which he had with the king in
-his private apartments, has promised him that the emperor would put
-him in a position, before Easter, to assume the title of _prince of
-England_ and duke of York.[163] The Roman party, despairing of Henry
-VIII., were willing to transmit the crown to his nephew, the King
-of Scotland. Bothwell added that James, as he left the conference,
-met the chancellor of the kingdom and several nobles, and made haste
-to communicate to them the magnificent promise of Charles V. The
-chancellor contented himself with saying, ‘Pray God I may live to see
-the day on which the Pope will confirm it.’ The king replied, ‘Only let
-the emperor act; he will labor strenuously for us.’ It was not James
-V., but his grandson, who was to ascend the throne of the Tudors.
-
-The project formed by the Scottish nobles of placing Scotland under the
-sceptre of England was not so easy to carry out as they imagined. The
-priests, who supposed that they had surmounted the dangers proceeding
-from reform, undertook to remove in like manner those with which they
-were threatened by the nobility. But they were mistaken when they
-believed that the fire kindled by the Word of God was extinguished.
-Flames shot up suddenly even in places where it was least of all
-expected to see them.
-
-[Sidenote: ALEXANDER SEATON.]
-
-A monk of the Dominican order, the order so devoted to the Inquisition,
-Alexander Seaton, confessor to the king--a man of lofty stature,
-downright, ready-witted and bold even to audacity[164]--was held in
-great esteem at the court. The state of the Church profoundly grieved
-him, and therefore, having been appointed to preach in Lent (1532)
-in the cathedral of St. Andrews, he resolved courageously to avow in
-that Scottish Rome the heavenly doctrine which was making exiles and
-martyrs. Preaching before a large congregation, he said--‘Jesus Christ
-is the end of the law, and no one is able by his works to satisfy
-divine justice. A living faith which lays hold of the mercy of God in
-Christ, can alone obtain for the sinner the remission of sins. But
-for how many years has God’s law, instead of being faithfully taught,
-been darkened by the tradition of men?’ People were astonished at this
-discourse: some wondered why he did not say a word about pilgrimages
-and other meritorious works; but the priests themselves were afraid to
-lay a complaint against him. ‘He is confessor to the king,’ they said,
-‘and enjoys the favor both of prince and people.’[165]
-
-In the absence of Seaton, after Lent, the archbishop and the clergy
-took courage, condemned the doctrine which he had preached, and
-appointed another Dominican to refute him. Seaton immediately returned
-from Dundee, whither he had gone, had the cathedral bells rung, and,
-ascending the pulpit, repeated with more energy and clearness still
-what he had previously said. Then, recalling to mind all that a bishop
-ought to be according to St. Paul, he asked, where are such bishops to
-be found in Scotland? The primate, when informed of this discourse,
-summoned him before him, and rebuked him for having asserted that the
-bishops were only dumb dogs. Seaton replied that it was an unfounded
-accusation. ‘Your answer pleases me well,’ exclaimed Beatoun. But the
-witnesses confirmed their deposition. ‘These are liars,’ said again the
-king’s confessor to the archbishop; ‘consider what ears these asses
-have, who cannot decern Paul, Isaiah, Zechariah and Malachi, and friar
-Alexander Seaton. In very deed, my lord, I said that Paul says it
-behoves a bishop to be a teacher. Isaiah said that they that fed not
-the flock are _dumb dogs_. And Zechariah says, they are idle pastors.
-I of my own head affirmed nothing, but declared what the Spirit of God
-before had pronounced.’
-
-[Sidenote: SEATON’S FLIGHT.]
-
-Beatoun did not hesitate: this bold preacher was evidently putting to
-his mouth the trumpet of Hamilton and Alesius. The primate undertook to
-obtain authority from the king to proceed against his confessor, and it
-was an easier task than he imagined. Seaton, like John the Baptist, had
-no dread of incurring the king’s displeasure, and had rebuked him for
-his licentiousness. James had said nothing at the time, thinking that
-the confessor was only doing his duty. But when he saw the archbishop
-denouncing Seaton, ‘Ah,’ said this young prince, who was given up to
-a loose life,[166] ‘I know more than you do of his audacity;’ and
-from that time he showed great coolness towards Seaton. The latter
-perceiving what fate awaited him, quitted the kingdom, and took refuge
-at Berwick. It was about two years after the Lent sermon preached by
-him in 1532.
-
-He did not remain idle. He had a last duty to discharge to his master
-the king. ‘The bishops of your kingdom,’ he wrote to him, ‘oppose our
-teaching the Gospel of Christ. I offer to present myself before your
-majesty, and to convince the priests of error.’[167] As the king made
-him no answer, Seaton went to London, where he became chaplain to the
-duke of Suffolk, brother-in-law of Henry VIII., and preached eloquently
-to large audiences.
-
-The King of England liked well enough to receive the friends of the
-Gospel who were banished from Scotland. One priest, more enlightened
-than the rest, Andrew Charteris, had called his colleagues children of
-the devil; and he said aloud--‘If anyone observes their cunning and
-their falsehood, and accuses them of impurity, they immediately accuse
-him of heresy. If Christ himself were in Scotland, our priestly fathers
-would heap on him more ignominy than the Jews themselves in old time
-did.’ Henry desired to see the man, talked with him at great length,
-and was much pleased with him. ‘Verily,’ said the king to him, ‘it is a
-great pity that you were ever made a priest.’[168]
-
-The clergy had now got rid of Hamilton, Seaton, and Alesius; but they
-were nevertheless disquieted because they knew that the Holy Scriptures
-were in Scotland. Notice was therefore given in every parish that ‘it
-is forbidden to sell or to read the New Testament.’ All copies found in
-the shops were ordered to be burnt.[169] Alesius, who was in Germany at
-that time, was greatly afflicted, and resolved to speak.
-
-[Sidenote: LETTER OF ALESIUS.]
-
-‘I hear, sire,’ he wrote to the king, ‘that the bishops are
-driving souls away from the oracles of Christ. Could the Turks do
-anything worse? Would morality exist in independence of the Holy
-Scriptures?[170] Would religion itself be anything else than a certain
-discipline of public manners? That is the doctrine of Epicurus; but
-what will become of the Church if the bishops propagate Epicurean
-dogmas? God ordains that we should hear the Son, not as a doctor who
-philosophizes on the theory of morals, but as a prophet who reveals
-holy things unknown to the world. If the bishops promote the infliction
-of the severest penalties on those who hear his word, the knowledge of
-Jesus Christ will become extinct, and the people will take up pagan
-opinions.[171]
-
-‘Most serene king, resist these impious counsels! Those who are in the
-fulness of age, infancy, and the generation to come, unite in imploring
-you to do so. We are punished, we are put to death.... Eurybiades of
-Sparta, commander-in-chief, having in the course of a debate raised his
-staff against Themistocles while forbidding him to speak, the Athenian
-replied, “Strike, but hear!” We shall say the same. We shall speak, for
-the Gospel alone can strengthen souls amidst the infinite perils of the
-present time.’
-
-Neither king nor priests replied to the _Letter of Alesius_; but a
-famous German, Cochlæus, the opponent of Luther, undertook to induce
-James V. to pay no attention to that discourse. ‘Sire,’ he wrote
-to him, ‘the calamities which the New Testaments disseminated by
-Luther have brought down upon Germany are so great, that the bishops,
-in turning their sheep away from that deadly pasture, have shown
-themselves to be faithful shepherds. Incalculable sums have been
-thrown away on the printing of a hundred thousand copies of that book.
-Now, what advantage have its readers drawn from it, unless it be an
-advantage to be cast into prison, to be banished, and made to suffer
-other tribulations? A decree is not enough, sire; it is necessary to
-act. The bishop of Treves has had the New Testaments thrown into the
-Rhine, and with them the booksellers who sold them. This example has
-frightened others, and happily so, for that book is the Gospel of
-Satan, and not of Jesus Christ.’[172] This was the model proposed to
-King James.
-
-At the same time the Romish party was endeavoring to embroil Scotland
-with England, and James was already engaging in several skirmishes. One
-day, under the pretext of the hunt, he threw himself, with ‘a small
-company’ of _three hundred persons_, on the estates the possession of
-which was disputed by his uncle.[173] Shortly afterwards, four hundred
-Scots invaded the Marches (frontier districts) at sunrise, and were
-carrying off what they found there. Northumberland repulsed them, and
-put to death the prisoners which fell into his hands. The Scots took
-and burnt some English towns; the English invaded Scotland, and ravaged
-its towns and country districts. The King of Scotland, intimidated,
-applied to the pope and the King of France, and cried out for aid
-with all his might. And then, in order to please at the same time the
-priests, the pope, and Francis I., he took the advice of Cochlæus; with
-the exception, that in Scotland the fire at the stake was substituted
-for the waters of the Rhine.
-
-[Sidenote: HENRY FORREST.]
-
-A young monk, named Henry Forrest, who was in the Benedictine
-monastery at Linlithgow, a man equally quick in his sympathies and
-his antipathies, had been touched by Hamilton’s words, and uttered
-everywhere aloud his regret for the death of that young kinsman of the
-king, calling him a martyr. This monk was presently convicted of a
-crime more enormous still: he was a reader of the New Testament. The
-archbishop had him imprisoned at St. Andrews. One day a friar (sent by
-the prelate) came to him for the purpose, he said, of administering
-consolation; and offering to confess him, he succeeded by crafty
-questions in leading the young Benedictine to tell him all he thought
-about Hamilton’s doctrines. Forrest was immediately condemned to be
-delivered over to the secular authorities to be put to death, and a
-clerical assembly was called together for the purpose of degrading
-him. The young friend of the Gospel had hardly passed the door where
-the assembly was sitting, when, discovering the archbishop and the
-priests drawn up in a circle before him, he became aware of what
-awaited him, and cried out with a voice full of contempt, ‘Fie on
-falsehood! fie on false friars, revealers of confession!’[174] When one
-of the clerks came up to him to degrade him, the Benedictine, weary of
-so much perfidy, exclaimed, ‘Take from me not only your own orders
-but also your own baptism.’ He meant by that, says an historian, the
-superstitious practices which Rome has added to the institutions of the
-Lord. These words provoked the assembly still more. ‘We must burn him,’
-said the primate, ‘in order to terrify the others.’ A simple-minded
-and candid man who was by the side of Beatoun said to him in a tone of
-irony, ‘My lord, if you burn him, take care that it be done in a cave,
-for the smoke of Hamilton’s pile infected with heresy all who caught
-the scent of it.’
-
-This advice was not taken. To the northward of St. Andrews, in the
-counties of Forfar and Angus, there were a good many people who loved
-the New Testament which was come from Germany. There still exist in
-that district a village named _Luthermoor_, _Luther’s torrent_, which
-falls into the North Esk, _Luther’s Bridge_, and _Luther’s Mill_.[175]
-Forrest’s persecutors determined to erect his funeral pile in such
-a situation that the population of Forfar and Angus might see the
-flames,[176] and thus learn the danger which threatened them if they
-should fall into Protestantism. The pile was therefore placed to the
-north of the abbey church of St. Andrews, and the fire was visible in
-those districts of the north which were afterwards to bear Luther’s
-name. Henry Forrest was Scotland’s second martyr.
-
-[Sidenote: DAVID STRAITON.]
-
-In the same neighborhood there soon after appeared one who was to be
-the third to lay down his life for the Reformation in Scotland. A small
-country seat, situated on the sea-coast near the mouth of the North
-Esk, was inhabited by one of the Straitons of Lauriston, a family which
-had held the estate of that name from the sixth century. The members
-of this family were for the most part distinguished for their tall
-stature, their bodily strength, and their energy of character. David, a
-younger son (the eldest resided in Lauriston Castle), a man worthy of
-his ancestors, was of rude manners and obstinate temper. He displayed
-great contempt for books, especially for religious books, and found his
-chief pleasure in launching his boat on the sea, giving the sails to
-the wind, casting his nets, and struggling hand to hand with the winds
-and the waves. He had soon to engage in struggles of another kind. The
-prior of St. Andrews, Patrick Hepburn, afterwards bishop of Murray,
-a very avaricious man, hearing that David had great success in his
-fishing, demanded tithe of his fish. ‘Tell your master,’ said the proud
-gentleman, ‘that if he wants to have it, he may come and take it on the
-spot.’ From that time, every day as he drew up his nets, he exclaimed
-to the fishermen, ‘Pay the prior of St. Andrews his tithe,’ and the men
-would straightway throw every tenth fish into the sea.
-
-When the prior of St. Andrews heard of this strange method of
-satisfying his claim, he ordered the vicar of Eglesgreg to go to take
-the fish. The vicar went; but as soon as the rough gentleman saw the
-priest and his men set to work without ceremony on their part, he
-cast the fish to him, and so sharply that some of them fell into the
-sea.[177]
-
-The prior then instituted proceedings against Straiton for the _crime
-of heresy_. Never had a council applied that name to a man’s method of
-paying his tithe. No matter; the word _heretic_ at that time inspired
-such terror that the stout-hearted gentleman began to give way; his
-pride was humbled, and, confessing his sins, he felt the need of a
-forgiving God. He sought out therefore all those who could tell him of
-the Gospel or could read it to him, for he could not read himself.
-
-Not far from his abode was Dun Castle, whose lord, John Erskine,
-provost of Montrose, a descendant of the earls of Mar, had attended
-several universities in Scotland and abroad, and had been converted to
-the evangelical faith.
-
-‘God,’ says Knox, ‘had _miraculously_ enlightened him.’ His castle,
-in which the words of prophets and apostles were heard, was ever open to
-those who were athirst for truth; and thus the evangelical Christians
-of the neighborhood had frequent meetings there. Erskine detected the
-change which was taking place in the soul of his rude neighbor; he went
-to see him, conversed with him, and exhorted him to change his life.
-Straiton soon became a regular attendant at the meetings in the castle,
-‘and he was,’ says Knox, ‘transformed as by a miracle.’[178]
-
-His nephew, the young baron of Lauriston, possessed a New Testament.
-Straiton frequently went to the castle to hear portions of the Gospels
-read. One day the uncle and his nephew went out together, wandered
-about in the neighborhood, and then retired into a lonely place to read
-the Gospels. The young laird chose the tenth chapter of St. Matthew.
-Straiton listened as attentively as if it were to himself that the Lord
-addressed the discourse which is there reported. When they came to
-this declaration of Jesus Christ, ‘Whosoever shall deny me before men,
-him will I also deny before my Father which is in heaven,’ Straiton,
-affected and startled, fell on his knees, stretched his hands upwards,
-and turned for a long time a humble and earnest gaze towards heaven,
-but without speaking the while; he appeared to be in an ecstasy.[179]
-At last, no longer able to restrain the feelings which crowded on
-him, he exclaimed--‘I have been sinful, O Lord, and thou wouldst be
-only just wert thou to withhold thy grace from me! Nevertheless, for
-the sake of thy mercy, suffer not the dread of pain or of death to
-lead me ever to deny thee or thy truth.’[180] Thenceforward he set
-himself to serve zealously the master whose mighty love he had felt.
-The world appeared to him like a vast sea, full of movement, on which
-men are ever rudely tossed until they have entered into the haven of
-the Gospel. The fisherman became a fisher of men. He exhorted his
-friends and acquaintances to seek God, and he replied to the priests
-with firmness. On one occasion, when they urged him to do some pious
-works which deliver from purgatory, he answered, ‘I know of no other
-purgatory than Christ’s passion and the tribulations of this life.’
-Straiton was carried off to Edinburgh, and cast into prison.
-
-There was another Scotchman, Norman Gourlay, who after taking holy
-orders had travelled on the continent, and had there been enlightened
-by the word of the Gospel. Convinced that ‘marriage is honorable in
-all,’ Gourlay had married on his return to Scotland; and when a priest
-reminded him of the prohibition by Rome, ‘The pope,’ replied he, ‘is no
-bishop, but an Antichrist, and he has no jurisdiction in Scotland.’
-
-On August 26, 1534, these two servants of God were led into a hall of
-Holyrood Abbey. The judges were seated, and with them the king, who,
-appareled in red from head to foot, seemed to be there for the purpose
-of assisting them. James V. pressed these two confirmed Christians
-to abjure their doctrines. ‘Recant; burn your bill,’[181] he said to
-them; but Straiton and Gourlay chose rather to be burnt themselves. The
-king, affected and giving way, would fain have pardoned them; but the
-priests declared that he had no authority to do so, since these people
-were condemned by the Church. In the afternoon of August 27 a huge pile
-was lit on the summit of Calton Hill, in order that the flames might
-be visible to a great distance; and the fire devoured these two noble
-Christians. If the Reform was afterwards so strong in Scotland it was
-because the seed was holy.
-
-Enough however was not done yet. All these heresies, it was thought,
-proceed from Hamilton; his family must therefore be extirpated from the
-Scottish soil. But Sir James, a good-natured man, an upright magistrate
-and a lover of the Gospel, was for all that not in the humor to let
-himself be burnt like his brother. So, having received one day an order
-to appear before the tribunal, he addressed himself immediately to the
-king, who had him privately told not to appear. Sir James therefore
-quitted the kingdom; he was then condemned, excommunicated, banished,
-and deprived of his estates, and he lived for nearly ten years in
-London in the utmost distress.
-
-[Sidenote: TRIAL OF CATHERINE HAMILTON.]
-
-His sister Catherine was both a warm-hearted Scotchwoman and a decided
-Huguenot. She would not make her escape, but appeared at Holyrood in
-the presence of the ecclesiastical tribunal and of the king himself.
-‘By what means,’ they said to her, ‘do you expect to be saved?’--‘By
-faith in the Saviour,’ she replied, ‘and not by works.’ Then one
-of the canonists, Master John Spence, said at great length--‘It is
-necessary to distinguish between various kinds of works. In the first
-place, there are works of _congruity_, secondly, there are works of
-_condignity_. The works of the just are of this latter category, and
-they merit life _ex condigno_. There are also _pious_ works; then works
-of _supererogation_;’ and he explained in scholastic terms what all
-these expressions meant. These strange words sounded in Catherine’s
-ears like the noise of a false-bass (_faux-bourdon_). Wearied with this
-theological babbling, she got excited, and exclaimed--‘Works here,
-works there.... What signify all the works?... There is one thing alone
-which I know with certainty, and that is that no work can save me,
-except the work of Christ my Saviour.’ The doctor sat amazed and made
-no answer, while the king strove in vain to hide a fit of laughter. He
-was anxious to save Catherine, and made a sign for her to come to him;
-he then entreated her to declare to the tribunal that she respected the
-Church. Catherine, who had never had a thought of setting herself in
-rebellion against the higher powers, gave the king leave to say what he
-wished, and withdrew first into England, then to France. She probably
-entered the family of her husband,[182] who, during his lifetime, was a
-French officer in the suite of the duke of Albany.
-
-But these punishments and banishments did not put an end to the storm.
-Several other evangelical Christians were also obliged at that time
-to leave Scotland. Gawin Logie, a canon of St. Andrews, and principal
-regent of St. Leonard’s College, at which Patrick Hamilton had
-exercised so powerful an influence, had diffused scriptural principles
-among the students to such an extent that people were accustomed to
-say, when they would make you understand that anyone was an evangelical
-Christian, ‘He has drunk at the well of St. Leonard’s.’ Logie quitted
-Scotland in 1534. Johnston, an Edinburgh advocate, Fife, a friend of
-Alesius, M’Alpine, and several others had to go into exile at the same
-time. The last-named, known on the continent by the name of Maccabæus,
-won the favor of the King of Denmark, and became a professor at the
-university of Copenhagen.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
- THE KING OF SCOTLAND BREAKS WITH ENGLAND, AND ALLIES HIMSELF WITH
- FRANCE AND THE GUISES.
-
- (1534-1539.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: BREAK WITH ENGLAND.]
-
-Notwithstanding the literary and liberal pretensions of Francis I.,
-the ultramontane spirit seemed secure of a triumph in France. There
-doubtless existed freer and holier aspirations, but certain of the
-bishops were more popish than the pope, and kings found it convenient
-to show themselves very indulgent to the licentiousness of the clergy,
-provided that they in return would lend a hand in support of their
-despotism. The priests of Scotland therefore redoubled their efforts to
-make a breach between James and his uncle of England, and to ally him
-with the eldest daughter of the papacy.
-
-Henry VIII., who received into his realm many of the exiles who were
-driven from their own country, was troubled at seeing his nephew throw
-himself into the arms of the Roman pontiff. It was for the interest
-of England that Scotland should not take a course opposed to her own:
-the whole of Great Britain ought to cast off the authority of the pope
-at the same time. The Tudor, impatient to reach this end, conceived
-the project of giving his daughter Mary in marriage to the King of
-Scotland; and in order to bring about by degrees a reconciliation,
-he determined to send Lord William Howard to Scotland. To this
-intent he had instructions drawn up in full detail to the effect
-following:[183]--First after your arrival at the court of the king my
-nephew, you will offer on our part the most friendly greetings, you
-will thank him for his noble present of falcons, and you will assure
-him that the ties of blood which unite us lead me to rejoice at every
-piece of good fortune that befalls him. You will then practise with
-the lord treasurer by some means to get you the measure of the king’s
-person, and you will cause to be made for him the richest and most
-elegant garments possible, by the tailor whom you will have at hand for
-that intent. Then you will tell him that I am greatly desirous to have
-conference with him.
-
-Henry VIII., full of hatred for the papacy, and anxious to see other
-kingdoms strengthen his position by following his example, urged
-his nearest neighbors to found, as he had done, national churches
-acknowledging no other head than the king. He had seen his endeavors
-fail in France, and was all the more desirous of succeeding in
-Scotland. As uncle to the king, the task seemed easy to him. To
-accomplish it he was resolved to use all means, and among others he
-sought to gain over the king by fine clothes made after the London
-fashion. He sent to him at the same time some books against the usurped
-authority of the pope.
-
-[Sidenote: DR. BARLOW’S EMBASSY]
-
-In October, Dr. Barlow, prior of Bisham, one of the king’s councillors,
-‘a man sufficiently instructed,’ wrote Henry to James, ‘in the
-specialities of certain great and weighty causes,’[184] arrived in
-Scotland, and the queen-dowager Margaret procured him a private
-conversation with her son.[185] The pope’s partisans at once took the
-alarm, and conjured James not to read the books which Henry VIII.
-had sent to him; they depicted the unheard-of dangers to which he
-would expose his person, his crown, and his kingdom by following
-his uncle’s example. They had the best of it, and James commanded a
-reply to be written to Cromwell, that assuredly no means would be
-neglected of strengthening the bonds of friendship between the two
-sovereigns; but that, in Scotland, there could be no agreement with
-the King of England ‘_in the opinions concerning the authority of the
-pope and kirkmen_.’[186] ‘Here be,’ wrote Barlow to Cromwell, ‘plenty
-of priests, sundry sorts of religions, multitudes of monks, flocking
-companies of friars, yet among them all so many is there not a few, no
-not one, that sincerely preacheth Christ.’
-
-‘It shall be no more dyspleasant for me to depart,’ he wrote on May 23,
-1536, ‘than it was for Lot to pass out of Sodom.’[187]
-
-Henry was not discouraged, and he sent Lord William Howard a second
-time, in February, 1535. At a solemn session which was held at Holyrood
-with great pomp, Howard delivered to James V., at one and the same
-time, the order of the Garter, which Charles V., Francis I., and
-King Ferdinand had already received, and a declaration touching the
-ecclesiastical supremacy. The king accepted the order with respect,
-and handed over the declaration to his bishops to do what they wished
-with it.[188] In vain had Henry given James a glimpse of the prospect
-of sitting on the throne of England by marrying his daughter Mary;
-the priests, and especially Beatoun, got the proposals rejected, from
-which they anticipated nothing but evil. They represented to him the
-risk which he would run if he went to London and put his head at the
-disposal of so treacherous and cruel a prince; and what admiration
-posterity would cherish for him, if at the time when all Europe was
-threatening the Church, he should remain true to the faith of his
-forefathers.
-
-Among the Scottish people there were earnest aspirations after the
-Gospel: but in that country, as in France, the priesthood and the
-government forcibly repressed them. The more the state separated itself
-from the pope in the south of Britain, the more it clung to him in
-the north. The king, now become the direct instrument of the clergy,
-required the parliament to check the progress which the Bible seemed to
-be making in Scotland; and on June 8 this body, adding severity to the
-former laws, enacted that whosoever possessed a New Testament should
-deliver it to his bishop under pain of confiscation and imprisonment,
-and that all _discussion_ about _religious opinions_ was prohibited.
-It gave permission, however, to _clerks of the schools to read that
-book, in order that they might the more efficiently contend against
-its adherents_. Many priests, monks, and students therefore read the
-New Testament; but this reading produced a quite contrary effect, for
-it led them to receive and to defend the Gospel. This could not but
-irritate the king and his priests, and make them feel still more the
-necessity of an alliance with some ultramontane power. The conversion
-of a Churchman who, through his family, was connected with the court,
-especially attracted their attention.
-
-[Sidenote: THOMAS FORREST.]
-
-In a small island in the Firth of Forth, not far from Edinburgh,
-stood the ancient abbey of St. Colme, occupied by Augustinian canons.
-Distinguished among them was the son of the master of the stables
-to King James IV. His name was Thomas Forrest, and he is not to be
-confounded with the Benedictine, Henry Forrest, of whom we have already
-spoken. A quarrel had broken out between the abbot and the canons;
-the latter, in order to support their claims, seized the deeds of
-foundation of the monastery. The abbot came in, scolded them sharply,
-recovered the volume, and gave them in its place an old folio of St.
-Augustine. The canons scornfully turned their backs on the book and
-went back to their cells.
-
-Forrest, left alone, looked at the volume. A work of the great
-Augustine interested him. He took it into his cell, read it, and
-ere long was able to say, with the bishop of Hippo--‘That which the
-dispensation of works commands, is accomplished by the dispensation of
-grace. O happy and blessed book!’ he would often say, ‘God has made
-use of thee to enlighten my soul.’[189] St. Augustine led Forrest to
-the Gospel, and he was not long in making known to his brethren the
-treasure which he had found in the writings of this Father and in the
-New Testament. Aged men stopped their ears. ‘Alas,’ said the son of the
-king’s master-stabler, ‘the _old_ bottles will not receive the _new_
-wine.’[190] The old canons complained to the abbot, and the abbot said
-to Forrest, ‘Look after your own salvation, but talk as other men do.’
-
-‘Before I will recant,’ he replied, laying his hand on his breast,
-‘this body shall be burnt and the wind shall scatter its ashes.’ The
-abbot, anxious to be rid of this innovator, gave him the parish of
-Dollar.
-
-Forrest was one of those men who receive the grace which is offered
-them not only lovingly but with a vehement impetuosity. While many lay
-sleeping he was vigorously going forward to take the kingdom of God.
-There were in him those marvellous impulses, that grand earnestness,
-which the Gospel denotes in the saying, ‘the violent take it by force.’
-He used to study from six in the morning till midday: he learnt every
-day three chapters of the Bible: in the afternoon visited families,
-instructed his parishioners, and endeavored to bring souls to God. When
-he returned in the evening to his vicarage, wearied with his labors, he
-used to say to his servant, ‘Come, Andrew,’ and making him sit down
-beside him, piously recited the three chapters of the Word of God which
-he had learnt in the morning, hoping thus to fix them in his own memory
-and to impress them on the soul of his servant.[191] A party of monks
-having invaded his parish to sell indulgences there, Forrest went into
-the pulpit and said, like Luther, ‘You cannot receive pardon for your
-sins either from the pope or from any created being in the world, but
-only by the blood of Jesus Christ.’
-
-[Sidenote: FORREST AND THE BISHOP.]
-
-His enemies hastened to denounce him to the bishop of Dunkeld, calling
-upon him to put a stop to conduct so strange. ‘My joy dean Thomas,’
-said the bishop to him, ‘I am told that you preach every Sunday. That
-is too much. Take my advice, and don’t preach unless you find any
-good gospel or any good epistle that setteth forth the liberty of
-Holy Church.’--‘My lord,’ replied Forrest, ‘I would wish that your
-lordship preach also every Sunday.’ ‘Nay, nay, dean Thomas,’ said
-the bishop, alarmed, ‘let that be.’--‘Whereas your lordship biddeth
-me preach,’ continued Forrest, ‘when I find any _good_ epistle, or a
-_good_ gospel, truly, my lord, I have read the New Testament and the
-Old, all the gospels, all the epistles, and among them all I could
-never find an evil epistle or an evil gospel; but if your lordship
-will shew me the good and the evil ones, I will preach the former and
-pass over the latter.’ The bishop, more and more affrighted, exclaimed
-with all his might,[192] ‘Thank God, I never knew what the Old and New
-Testament was, and I will to know nothing but my _portuese_[193] and my
-_pontifical_!’
-
-For the moment Forrest escaped death. The bishop’s saying got abroad
-in Scotland, and people used for a long time to say to any ignorant
-person, ‘_Ye are like the bishop of Dunkeldene that knew neither new
-nor old law_.’[194]
-
-The discontent of the people with the clergy went on increasing, and
-at a provincial council which met at Edinburgh in March, 1536, Sir
-James Hamilton, in the king’s name, demanded various reforms. The men
-of the kirk were indignant. ‘Never had they been so ill content,’ said
-Angus.[195]
-
-The monks, in alarm, began to attack the Reformation from their pulpits.
-
-Bishop Barlow, the English envoy, thought the moment a favorable one
-for reform in Scotland. ‘If I may obtain the king’s license,’ he wrote
-to Cromwell, then first secretary of state to Henry VIII., ‘otherwise
-shall I not be suffered to preach, I will not spare for no bodily
-peril, boldly to publish the truth of God’s Word among them. Whereat
-though the clergy shall repine, yet many of the lay people will gladly
-give hearing. And until the Word of God be planted among them, I
-suppose their feigned promises shall be finally found frustrate without
-any faithful effect.’[196]
-
-It seemed as if the hopes of the Anglican bishop were beginning to be
-realized. It was rumored that the King of Scotland, offended at the
-reception which his demands had met in the council, was going to have
-a conference with his uncle. The prelates thought that if that project
-were carried out they were undone. ‘Pray do not allow,’ they said to
-the king, ‘a single word to be spoken by the King of England to induce
-you to adopt his new constitutions of the Scripture.’[197] James was
-willing and unwilling: but he yielded, and the interview with the
-terrible Tudor was given up. But the bishops were not yet freed from
-their alarm; they dreaded the influence of the English ambassadors, and
-that of the queen-mother, and they feared that they might not be strong
-enough another time. In order to confirm the prince in his resolution,
-they conceived the plan of getting him to request a brief from the pope
-to _forbid_ his holding intercourse with Henry VIII. Thompson, the
-apostolic prothonotary, was secretly charged with this strange mission,
-and the priests thought it a capital stroke to ask the King of England
-to grant this agent a passport, taking good care to conceal from him
-the object of the mission. Henry, not at all suspicious, agreed to
-their request, and these cunning clerks could laugh together at their
-paltry trick. But the queen-mother, when she became acquainted with
-all these intrigues, sharply rebuked her son. Sensitive and violent,
-as weak men frequently are, James forgot all respect, and accused his
-mother of accepting gifts from the king her brother to betray the
-king her son. Margaret indignantly declared that she would return to
-London,[198] and the two English envoys hastened their departure from
-Scotland. The Scottish clergy had been very much alarmed at the project
-formed by Henry VIII. of giving his daughter Mary to his nephew; but
-the daughter of Catherine of Aragon would not have been wanting in
-submissiveness to the pope. The clerical party, having succeeded in
-stirring up quarrels in the royal family, between the mother and the
-son and between the uncle and the nephew, and anxious to make the
-proposed union forever impossible, hinted to the young prince that the
-eldest daughter of the King of France, the sister-in-law of Catherine
-de’ Medici, would be for him a far more glorious and advantageous
-alliance. This scheme pleased James, and when the rumor ran that the
-emperor was on the point of invading France, the King of Scotland,
-in order to win the favor of the father of the bride whom he desired,
-offered to him the aid of his army.[199] Then he set sail, September
-1, with six vessels, accompanied by a suite of five hundred persons,
-all of noble or gentle birth. In ten days he reached Dieppe,[200] and
-without consulting the opinion of his uncle, he asked for and obtained
-the hand of Madame Madeleine, who had been very tenderly brought up
-by her aunt, Margaret of Valois.[201] The Scottish priests were in
-high glee, because in their view this alliance with France tended to
-strengthen the papacy in Scotland; but their joy was premature. The
-kings of France were beginning to assume an air of superiority towards
-Scotland, which was offensive to a nation proud though small. It was
-far worse afterwards, when Henry II., king of France, marrying his son
-to Mary Stuart, required that princess to sign contracts which were
-humiliating to ancient Caledonia.
-
-[Sidenote: MADELEINE DE VALOIS.]
-
-James had found in Madeleine an accomplished princess. Her health was
-frail, but her heart was virtuous and her soul was no stranger to
-the piety of her aunt. How great a gain for the Reformation if there
-should be seated on the throne of Scotland a queen who was a lover
-of the Word of God! James embarked with his young wife on a fleet of
-seventeen sail. On reaching Leith, the amiable queen, who was of noble
-bearing though of unhealthy aspect, set foot on land, knelt down on
-the shore, and taking up a handful of the sand of Scotland, kissed it
-with deep feeling, and implored God’s blessing on her beloved husband
-and on her new country. Madeleine was received at Edinburgh with great
-enthusiasm by the people and the nobles; but the churchmen, better
-informed than they were at first, were disquieted, and were afraid that
-this princess would diffuse around her the evangelical opinions of the
-sister of Francis I. This happiness was not in store for Scotland.
-The flower transplanted into that rough climate withered and fell.
-On July 2 [1537] the queen breathed her last. All who had known her,
-except the priests, deeply regretted her. Buchanan, struck with such
-glory and such mourning, composed an epitaph on her in Latin verse,
-to the following effect:--‘I was wife of a king, daughter of a king,
-niece of a king, and, according to my wish and my hope, I was to become
-mother of a king. But cruel death, unwilling that I should stand on the
-highest pinnacle of honor that a mortal creature can attain to, has
-laid me in this tomb before that bright day dawned.’[202]
-
-[Sidenote: SECOND MARRIAGE OF JAMES V.]
-
-The prelates began to bestir themselves immediately to negotiate
-another French marriage, but one which should be at the same time what
-the first had not been,--a Romish marriage. They did not intend to be
-taken in a second time. The ardent David Beatoun, the primate’s nephew,
-who had accompanied the king to Paris, returned to France immediately
-after the death of the young queen, in order to seek for James V. a new
-alliance agreeable to the priests. David, who was very well liked at
-the court of St. Germain, was made bishop of Mirepoix, by Francis I.,
-and through his intervention was afterwards created cardinal. His whole
-life was to be consecrated to a conflict with the Gospel in Scotland.
-Now for this end he needed a fanatical queen, and it was not difficult
-to find one.
-
-There was at that time at the court of France a family which was
-beginning to be known for its zeal for the papacy. Claude de
-Lorraine, Duke of Guise, who had married Antoinette de Bourbon, had
-distinguished himself on several occasions, and particularly at the
-battle of Marignano. Surrounded by six sons and four daughters, he
-founded a powerful house, which at a later period was near taking
-the throne from the Valois and the Bourbons. Hence, the last word of
-Francis I. to his son was this, ‘Beware of the Guises!’ It appears
-that James, during his visit to France, had seen and observed the
-eldest of the duke’s children, Mary, a young woman of three-and-twenty,
-widow of Louis of Orléans.[203] To her Beatoun addressed himself. The
-alliance was promptly concluded. The Scottish clergy triumphed; but the
-evangelical Christians saw with sorrow ‘this egg taken from the bloody
-nest of the Guises’[204] brought into their native land.
-
-The young queen, having arrived at St. Andrews on June 16, 1538, strove
-to gain the affection of the king and of her mother-in-law. She failed
-to win the favor of the people; but the priests were enamored of her,
-and feeling themselves thenceforth sure of the victory, they began to
-set the authority of the pope higher than ever in their discourses.[205]
-
-The pope then, through cardinal Pole, proposed an alliance between
-the emperor and the kings of France and Scotland for the invasion of
-England; and at the same time he withdrew from Henry VIII. and his
-successors the title of _Defender of the Faith_, and transferred it to
-the crown of Scotland.
-
-James V., the slave at once of his wife and his bishops, seemed to be
-positively chained to the chariot of the Roman pontiff.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
- DAVID BEATOUN ESTABLISHES HIS INFLUENCE: PERSECUTION REVIVES.
-
- (1539.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: DAVID BEATOUN.]
-
-A man with whom we have already made acquaintance was now for
-eight years to play a prominent part in Scotland, and to contend
-energetically against the Reformation. This was David Beatoun, one
-of the members of the Fifeshire family, and nephew of archbishop
-James. He belonged to the class of minds which take their place
-with enthusiasm under an absolute government, and become its most
-formidable instruments. Thoroughly at home and highly esteemed at the
-court of France, it was he who had conducted the negotiations for the
-king’s marriage, first with Madeleine of Valois, afterwards with Mary
-of Lorraine. But his intent was to devote his life to a union more
-sublime--that of Scotland and the papacy. Animated with hearty sympathy
-for Gregory VII., Boniface VIII., and Innocent III., he believed, as
-they did, that Rome, formerly mistress of the pagan world, should now
-be mistress of the Christian world. In his eyes all authority emanated
-from her, and he was resolved to consecrate to her his life, his
-energies, and everything that he possessed. As he meant to fight with
-carnal weapons, he must attain some dignity which would invest him with
-authority to make use of them. He speedily attained his end. Paul III.,
-alarmed at seeing the separation of England from Rome, and fearing lest
-Scotland, as she had a nephew of Henry VIII. for her king, should
-follow her example, was anxious to have in that country one man who
-would be absolutely devoted to him. David Beatoun offered himself.
-The pope created him cardinal in December 1538, and thenceforth the
-_red_, a color thoroughly congenial with him, became his own, and as
-it were his symbol. Not that he was by any means a religious fanatic;
-he was versed neither in theology nor in moral philosophy. He was a
-hierarchical fanatic. Two points above all were offensive to him in
-evangelical Christians: one that they were not submissive to the pope;
-the other, that they censured immorality in the clergy, for his own
-licentiousness drew on himself similar rebukes. He aimed at being in
-Scotland a kind of Wolsey, only with more violence and bloodshed. The
-one thing of moment in his eyes was that everything in church and state
-should bend under a twofold despotism. Endowed with large intelligence,
-consummate ability, and indomitable energy, he had all the qualities
-needed to insure success in the aim on which his mind was perpetually
-bent without ever being diverted from it. Passionately eager for his
-projects, he was insensible to the ills which must result from them.
-One matter alone preoccupied him: the destruction of all liberty. The
-papacy divined his character, and created him cardinal.
-
-For the suppression of evangelical Christianity, which upheld the
-supreme authority of the Divine Word in the presence of the tiara and
-its oracles, Beatoun needed the royal support. His first step therefore
-must be to make himself master of the king. This was not difficult. The
-nobility had rights which they meant to make respected, and which the
-crown wished to take away. The king and the cardinal were naturally
-impelled to unite against the Gospellers and the nobles. In addition,
-James V., a prince of good natural endowments both of body and of
-mind, and of a frank and amiable disposition, was strongly inclined
-to sensual pleasures. In order to keep him out of the way of state
-affairs, the courtiers and the regent had fostered in him the taste for
-intrigues and adventures of gallantry, a vice which he never got rid of
-even after his marriage.[206] Dissolute as a man, prodigal as a king,
-and superstitious as a Catholic, he could not but easily fall under the
-sway of superior minds,[207] especially if they promised him money, and
-that Beatoun could do.
-
-Henry VIII., who, like his nephew, was habitually in want of money, had
-sought it in the treasures of the monasteries and other ecclesiastical
-institutions. The King of Scotland might be tempted to follow that
-example. Beatoun, and the other ecclesiastical dignitaries who were
-about the prince, discovered a certain means of preventing it. Instead
-of taking the money of the clergy, they said, let the king take that of
-the Gospellers; let the property of those who may be condemned to death
-for their faith, and even that of those who, after having embraced
-the Reform, may abjure it, be confiscated for his majesty’s benefit.
-This scheme was all the more seductive in that, while it secured their
-wealth to the clergy, it at the same time deprived the friends of the
-Reformation of theirs. This was killing two birds with one stone. The
-plan gives a special character to the Scottish persecutions. The cruel
-Gardiner said in England, that when people went stag-hunting they
-must fire at the leader of the herd, and that the same course must be
-pursued in hunting the Gospellers. In Scotland it was agreed not to
-harass those poor Christians who had nothing to leave at their death.
-Why seize these lean sheep? The knife must be laid on the big fat
-ones--on those which have a rich fleece. War on the rich! This was
-the cry raised by the party of the persecutors. For about four years
-the sword had not been drawn from its scabbard, and the horror excited
-by the persecution of 1534 had, as it seemed, subsided. The Gospel
-had reaped advantage from the lull: the number of those who confessed
-Christ as their only Saviour had increased, and thus the irritation of
-the priests was soon aroused again.
-
-[Sidenote: WAR ON THE RICH.]
-
-Martin Balkerley, a wealthy citizen of Edinburgh, was confined in the
-castle at the time when David Beatoun was going to be made cardinal at
-Rome. The latter had already acquired great influence. As coadjutor
-to his uncle, the archbishop of St. Andrews, who was then advanced in
-years and in ill health, and whom he was to succeed, the administration
-of all ecclesiastical affairs was even then in his hands.[208]
-Balkerley, who was imprisoned for reading the prohibited books,
-complained as follows: ‘I have done nothing,’ said he, ‘but refuse to
-give up my book of matins to the officer.’ The king sent him back to
-Beatoun, who then referred the case to the privy council. The lords
-composing the council promised the accused his liberty on condition of
-his giving a ransom of one thousand pounds sterling, an enormous sum
-according to the value of money at that period. This ransom was paid on
-February 27, 1539, but Balkerley remained in prison. It was not enough.
-Beatoun, who had then been cardinal for a month or two, demanded an
-additional ransom of double the amount. Three rich Scotchmen offered
-themselves as bail on March 7, pledging themselves that the prisoner
-would do the king’s will. Five days later he was set at liberty. Thus
-the sum of three thousand pounds, paid down, was at length thought
-sufficient to expiate the crime of reading the New Testament.
-
-Beatoun did not think it necessary thenceforward to have recourse to
-the privy council. His arrogance had increased, and he assumed a
-haughty air. As the consuls of ancient Rome had their lictors, who
-bore the _fasces_ before them as the symbol of their power, so the
-cardinal, whithersoever he went, had the cross carried before him; and
-this symbol of the love of God, which signifies _pardon_, signified,
-when it preceded Beatoun, _condemnation_, and spread terror everywhere.
-The cardinal claimed to be master of souls, and to dispose of the
-lives of men. The money which he had so shamefully acquired served
-only to stimulate his desire to get more by the same means. Several
-eminent and wealthy citizens--Walter Stewart, son of Lord Ochiltree,
-Robert Forester, brother of the laird of Arngibbon, David Graham, John
-Steward, son of Lord Methven, with others belonging to the _élite_ of
-Scotland--were thrown into prison. In the castles, and in the towns of
-Stirling, Edinburgh, Perth, and Dundee, numerous families were left
-desolate.[209]
-
-[Sidenote: MISSION OF THE DUKE OF NORFOLK.]
-
-Henry VIII. saw in these acts of the government of his nephew the
-signal of an impending attack, and he sent one of the greatest lords
-of his court, the duke of Norfolk, to Berwick and to Carlisle to
-watch Scotland. Norfolk attentively investigated the condition of
-that country, and perceived there two opposite currents. ‘The clergy
-of Scotland,’ he wrote to London, ‘be in such fear that their king
-should do there as the king’s highness hath done in this realm, that
-they do their best to bring their master to the war; and by many ways
-I am advertised that a great part of the temporalty there would their
-king should follow our example, which I pray God give him grace to
-come unto.’[210] Presently Norfolk learnt that James V. was making his
-cannon ready; that a proclamation was published at Edinburgh and in all
-parts of Scotland, enjoining every man between the ages of sixteen and
-sixty to be in readiness to set out; and that the fanatic cardinal was
-gone to the continent to make sure of the aid which Scotland might hope
-for, both from the king of France and from the pope. Norfolk ere long
-saw with his own eyes the sad effects of the intrigues of the clergy.
-Not a day passed but some gentlemen and priests, who were compelled to
-flee the country because they had had the audacity to read the Holy
-Scriptures in English, came to him to seek a refuge. ‘Ah,’ they to said
-him, ‘if we should be captured we should be put to execution.’[211]
-In the midst of these persecutions and preparations for war, James,
-initiated in the art of Roman policy, feigned the most pacific
-sentiments. ‘You may be sure,’ he said to one of the English agents,
-‘that I shall never break with the king, my uncle.’ But Norfolk was not
-deceived: he felt the greatest distrust of the influence of Mary of
-Guise. ‘The young queen,’ he wrote to Cromwell, ‘is all papist.’[212]
-That ill-starred marriage linked in his eyes the family and the realm
-of the Stuarts with France and the papacy.
-
-Norfolk was not wrong. The cardinal, having won over the king by
-flattery and by the heavy fines extorted from the evangelical
-Christians, was eager to take advantage of the circumstance for the
-destruction of the Reform and the satisfaction of some grudges of
-long standing. A monk named Killon, possessing some poetic talent,
-had composed, after the fashion of the age, a tragedy on the death of
-Christ. On the morning of Good Friday, probably in 1536, a numerous
-audience had assembled at Stirling to hear it. The king himself and
-the court were present. The piece presented a lively picture of the
-spirit and the conduct of the Romish clergy. The action was animated,
-the characters well marked, and the words vigorous and sometimes rude.
-Fanatical priests and hard-hearted Pharisees instigated the people to
-demand the death of Jesus, and procured from Pilate his condemnation.
-The design of this work was so marked that the simplest folk said to
-one another, ‘It is just the same with us: the bishops and the monks
-get those persecuted who love Jesus Christ.’[213] The clergy abstained
-for the moment from molesting Killon, but they took note of his daring
-drama.
-
-Another Gospeller had left very unpleasant memories in Beatoun’s mind.
-This was the good dean Forrest, who had boldly said that he had never
-found either a bad epistle or a bad gospel. The cardinal was only
-waiting for an opportunity to arrest him, Killon, and others. He had
-not long to wait. When the vicar of Tullybody, near Stirling, was
-married, Forrest and Killon had attended the ceremony, as well as a
-monk named Beverage, Sir Duncan Sympson, a priest, a gentleman named
-Robin Forrester, and three or four other people of Stirling.[214]
-At the marriage feast, at the beginning of Lent, they had eaten
-flesh, according to that word of St. Paul, ‘Whatsoever is sold in
-the shambles, that eat.’ On March 1, 1539, or according to some
-authorities, on the last day of February,[215] they were all seized and
-taken before the cardinal and the bishops of Glasgow and Dunkeld, who
-indulged in practices far more criminal than the eating of what God
-made for that purpose.
-
-[Sidenote: PROSECUTION OF FORREST AND KILLON.]
-
-The official accuser, John Lauder, one of Beatoun’s creatures,
-addressing Forrest rudely, said to him--‘False heretic! thou sayest it
-is not lawful to kirkmen to take their teinds [tithes] and offerings
-and corpse presents.’ And the dean Forrest replied, ‘Brother, I said
-not so: but I said it was not lawful to kirkmen to spend the patrimony
-of the kirk as they do, as on riotous feasting and on fair women, and
-at playing at cards and dice: and neither the kirk well maintained
-nor the people instructed in God’s Word, nor the sacraments duly
-administered to them as Christ commanded.’
-
-_Accuser_: ‘Dare thou deny that which is openly known in the country?
-that thou gave again to thy parishioners _the cow_ and the _upmost
-cloths_, saying you had no right to them? ’
-
-_Dean_: ‘I gave them again to them that had more mister [need] than I’
-
-_Accuser_: ‘Thou false heretic! thou learned all thy parishioners to
-say the Paternoster, the creed, and the Ten Commandments _in English_.’
-
-_Dean_: ‘Brother, my people are so rude and ignorant they understand
-no Latin, so that my conscience provoked me to learn them the words
-of their salvation in English, and the Ten Commandments which are the
-law of God, whereby they might observe the same. I teached the belief,
-whereby they might know their faith in God and Jesus Christ his Son,
-and of his death and resurrection. Moreover I teached them and learned
-them the Lord’s own prayer in the mother-tongue, to the effect that
-they might know how they should pray.’
-
-_Accuser_: ‘Why did you that? By our acts and ordinances of our holy
-father the pope?’
-
-_Dean_: ‘I follow the acts of our master and Saviour Jesus Christ, and
-of the apostle Paul, who saith that he had rather speak five words to
-the understanding and edifying of his people than ten thousand in a
-strange tongue which they understand not.’
-
-_Accuser_: ‘Where finds thou that?’
-
-_Dean_: ‘In my book here, in my sleeve.’
-
-At these words the accuser, rushing at a bound on the dean, snatched
-from his hands the New Testament, and holding it up, said with a loud
-voice, ‘Behold, sirs, he has the book of heresy in his sleeve that
-makes all the din and play in our kirk.’
-
-_Dean_: ‘Brother, ye could say better if ye pleased, nor to call the
-book of the Evangel of Jesus Christ the book of heresy.’
-
-‘It is enough to burn thee for,’ said the accuser, coolly.[216]
-
-Five of these pious men were immediately condemned to death and were
-taken the same day to the castle hill, where the piles were ready; and
-the king, following the example of Francis I., was present with his
-court at this cruel execution.[217] Those who went first to the stake
-piously and wonderfully consoled those who were to follow them. ‘At
-the beginning of 1539,’ says Buchanan, ‘many suspected of Lutheranism
-were arrested; five were burnt at the end of February, nine recanted,
-and others were sentenced to banishment.’[218] The same day orders
-were issued to confiscate the property of those who had been declared
-heretics.[219] The king, the cardinals, and their subordinates took
-their reward out of the penalties.
-
-[Sidenote: GEORGE BUCHANAN.]
-
-The illustrious Buchanan was himself in prison at that time. He was
-thirty-two years of age, and after a residence at the university of
-Paris, he had returned to Scotland and had been named preceptor to
-the earl of Murray, a natural son of James V. He was a poet as well
-as a historian, and his genius grew and developed itself under the
-influence of the classical poetry which charmed his leisure hours.
-There was something sharp and biting in his temperament, peculiarly
-apt for satire; and he had not spared the clergy in his _Somnium_, his
-_Palinode_, and above all in his satire against the _Franciscans_. It
-was for this last poem he was imprisoned. The companies of monks had
-keenly resented his sarcasm, and there was not a man in all Scotland
-whose death was more eagerly desired by the Romish party. It was said
-that the cardinal offered the king a considerable sum of money in
-order to compass it. However that may be, Buchanan was at that time
-a prisoner and was carefully watched in the prison of St. Andrews,
-some of the guards even spending the night in his room. The young man,
-already an illustrious writer, knew that they were seeking his life;
-the death of five martyrs showed him clearly enough the fate which
-awaited himself. One night he perceived that his keepers had fallen
-asleep.[220] He went on tiptoe towards the window, and climbing up
-the walls, succeeded, although with difficulty, in getting out. He
-then passed on and surmounted other obstacles as great;[221] and thus
-by the aid of God, and stimulated by the desire of saving his life,
-‘he escaped the rage of those that sought his blood.’[222] He betook
-himself to France, taught for several years in the Collège de Guienne
-at Bordeaux, and afterwards in a college at Paris. Henry Stephens,
-when he published at Paris the first edition of Buchanan’s Paraphrase
-of the Psalms, calls him on the title-page of the book, ‘Poetarum
-nostri sæculi facile princeps.’ His escape took place, as nearly as we
-can learn, in March 1539. Many Gospellers, as we have said, followed
-the example of Buchanan that same month. As for himself, he appears
-at that period of his life to have been nothing more than one of the
-numerous poets and prose-writers who were then attacking the vices and
-the follies of the Romish clergy. But while attacking superstition,
-Buchanan did not fall as many did into infidelity: he adhered heartily
-at a later period to the evangelical reform, and Knox bears noble
-witness to him.[223]
-
-Beatoun, while sacrificing many victims, had lit a fire on elevated
-ground, ‘to the effect that the rest of the bischoppes myght schaw
-thame selfis no less fervent to suppress the light of God.’[224] That
-signal was not made in vain. In the town of Ayr, in the midst of
-the rich plains of that fertile county, was a young gentleman named
-Kennedy, about eighteen years of age, who had received a liberal
-education, and had tasted of the Gospel, without however attaining a
-well-grounded faith; a state sufficiently accounted for by his years.
-Gifted with some poetic faculty he had not spared the ignorance of the
-priests. Kennedy was seized and cast into prison.
-
-In the same diocese, that of Glasgow, there lived in a convent of the
-Cordeliers one of those enlightened and pious monks who shone like
-stars in the deep night of the age. His name was Jerome Russel; his
-character was good, his wit ready, and his mind enriched with literary
-acquirements. Wharton, writing to Lord Cromwell in November 1538,
-speaks of a friar John, a well-informed man who was imprisoned at
-Dumfries at the instance of the bishops, and who had been loaded with
-chains because he professed respecting the law of God the same opinions
-which were held in England.[225] It is not to be doubted that he speaks
-of Russel. Dumfries is not far from Ayr.
-
-The archbishop of Glasgow, Gawin Dunbar, was not of so persecuting a
-spirit as Beatoun, and as lord chancellor he was invested with the
-highest authority in the state. It was then the summer of 1539, and as
-Beatoun, although named cardinal, had not yet received the pontifical
-act which conferred on him that dignity, he could not have dared to
-appear in the diocese of Glasgow with his cross borne before him. But
-it was not enough for him to know that the learned Russel and the young
-Kennedy were in prison, he must get them burnt. Consequently he sent to
-Glasgow his favorite agent Lauder, who could affect insinuating manners
-and put on exaggerated pretensions to compass his ends. The clever
-notary Andrew Oliphant and the ardent monk Mortman accompanied him,
-charged to obtain from the archbishop the promise ‘that he would imbrue
-his hands in the blood of the friends of God.’ Knox therefore calls
-these three men _Satan’s sergeants_.
-
-[Sidenote: TRIAL OF KENNEDY AND RUSSEL.]
-
-Having reached Glasgow the three men got round the chancellor-prelate,
-and demanded of him far more than he could lawfully grant: he was not
-only to have the two evangelical Christians examined, he must put them
-to death. What reproaches he would incur if he protected heretics! what
-praises would he not win if he were ardent in serving the Church! Gawin
-yielded, and Russel and Kennedy were put on their trial. They appeared
-before the court, over which the archbishop himself presided, and the
-proceedings began. Thanks to the inventive zeal of Lauder and his
-colleagues, numerous charges were brought forward against the accused.
-Kennedy had an upright soul, but had rather an inclination to the faith
-than faith itself. The imposing display of judicial pomp, the gravity
-of the accusations, the severity of the punishment which was preparing,
-and the horrible agony which was to precede it, all disturbed the young
-man; he was distressed, and being sharply pressed to retract what he
-had written, he was intimidated and went astray.
-
-Russel, on the other hand, whose faith, the fruit of close examination
-of the Word of God, was developed and established by long-continued
-studies, appeared full of decision. He replied with wisdom to his
-accusers, defended by powerful proofs the doctrines which he professed,
-and repulsed with calmness, dignity, and intrepidity the false
-accusations of his enemies. His words had an unlooked-for result: they
-reawakened the conscience of his young companion. The Spirit of God,
-the Spirit of all consolation, worked in him. The Christian life, which
-had scarcely begun in his heart, now expanded itself. ‘He felt himself
-as it were a new creature; his mind was changed;’ a living faith filled
-his heart; he was confirmed in his resolution.[226] From that time he
-no longer hesitated to give up his life for the truth. The happiness
-which he had lost came back to him; his countenance brightened, his
-tongue was loosed, there was a radiance in his whole person; and,
-falling on his knees, he exclaimed with joy--‘O eternal God, how
-wondrous is that love and mercy that thou bearest unto mankind, and
-unto me the most caitiff and miserable wretch above all others; for
-even now, when I would have denied thee and thy Son, our Lord Jesus
-Christ, my only Saviour, and so have casten myself in everlasting
-damnation, thou by thine own hand hast pulled me from the very bottom
-of hell, and makest me to feel that heavenly comfort which takes from
-me that ungodly fear wherewith before I was oppressed. Now I defy
-death.’ Then, rising, he turned towards his persecutors and said, ‘Do
-what ye please; I praise God I am ready.’[227]
-
-The prayer of Kennedy touched the archbishop of Glasgow. He was
-disturbed. ‘It is better to spare these men,’ said he; ‘executions
-such as those which have taken place only do harm to the cause which
-they are meant to serve.’ The cardinal’s agents resolved to frighten
-the prelate, whose weakness they well knew, and they cried out
-lustily--‘Take care what ye are doing, my lord. Will ye condemn all
-that my lord cardinal and the other bishops and we have done? If so ye
-do, ye show yourself enemy to the kirk.’ Fear fell on the archbishop.
-Repressing the pity which had touched him, and silencing his conscience
-for the sake of preserving his reputation and his comfortable and easy
-life, he gave way.
-
-[Sidenote: THEIR MARTYRDOM.]
-
-Russel had remained calm till then, but exasperated by the calumnies of
-his enemies, indignant at the weakness of the archbishop, and confident
-in his own innocence, he said with dignity--‘This is your hour and
-power of darkness; now sit ye as judges, we stand wrongously accused,
-and more wrongously to be condemned; but the day shall come when our
-innocency shall appear, and that ye shall see your own blindness, to
-your everlasting confusion. Go forward, and fulfil the measure of
-your iniquity.’ Russel and Kennedy, condemned to the flames, were
-immediately handed over to the secular power.
-
-The day following, as they passed to the place of execution, Russel
-thought that he perceived some apprehension in his friend. ‘Brother,’
-said he, ‘fear not: more potent is he that is in us than is he that
-is in the world. The pain that we shall suffer is short and shall be
-light, but our joy and our consolation shall never have end.’ They who
-heard it were wonderfully affected. When the two martyrs arrived at
-the pile, they fell on their knees and prayed; then, rising, they were
-bound to the stake without uttering a word, and supported the fire with
-patience, making no sign of fear. ‘They won the victory over death,
-looking with faith,’ says a historian, ‘for everlasting habitations.’
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
- TERGIVERSATIONS OF KING JAMES V.--NEGOTIATIONS WITH HENRY VIII.--THEY
- FAIL.
-
- (1540-JANUARY, 1542.)
-
-
-The Romish party was not yet satisfied. ‘These cruel beasts,’ says
-Knox, ‘did intend nothing but murder in all quarters of the realm.’
-James was surrounded with men who urged him on in that direction.
-Many of his courtiers, associates of his dissipation, instigated
-him to persecution because they were pensioners to priests for that
-purpose.[228] Oliver Sinclair was the foremost of these secret tools
-of the clergy. The cardinal’s influence was increased by circumstances
-which occurred at this time. Archbishop James Beatoun died in the
-autumn of 1539, after having attended as a witness at the baptism of
-the king’s eldest son. By his last will he left his archbishopric of
-St. Andrews to his nephew David, who, when confirmed by the king, was
-thenceforth both cardinal and primate of Scotland.
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES V. AND HIS BISHOPS.]
-
-Henry VIII. was induced by these changes to take fresh steps towards
-gaining over his nephew. He was acquainted with the cardinal, and knew
-his relations with France and the papacy. At the beginning of 1540
-Sir R. Sadler was sent to Scotland.[229] The moment was well chosen.
-James V. was just then fully disposed to make peace with his uncle.
-The Lords Murray, Huntley, and Bothwell were in disgrace, and James
-wrote to Henry VIII. as his ‘dearest brother and uncle,’ and commended
-himself to him in his most hearty and affectionate manner. Henry sent
-him presents and the most gracious messages, inquiring earnestly after
-his health; and all this courtesy James received in the most amiable
-manner imaginable. Henry however meant to go to the main point, and
-Thomas Eure, one of his envoys, strove to discover what were the
-purposes of the King of Scotland respecting the bishop of Rome and the
-Reformation. One of the councillors, Ballenden, replied to him with
-great politeness, ‘The King of Scottes himself, with all his temporall
-counsaile, was gretely geven to the reformation of the mysdemeanors of
-busshops, religious personnes, and priests within the realme.’[230]
-James gave even then some proofs of this disposition. On the day of
-the Epiphany, January 6, 1540, there was a grand feast at the court,
-and a dramatic spectacle was given in the palace of Linlithgow. The
-king, the queen, and all the councillors spiritual and temporal were
-present; and the purport of the piece was to exhibit the presumption of
-the bishops, the iniquities of the courts spiritual, the evil ways of
-the priests, and in one word, the ‘noughtines’ of such religion as then
-existed. Perhaps the king was minded to let the bishops hear a sermon
-in that shape. It is very unlikely that anyone would have dared to give
-such a spectacle without his authority. However that may be, James was
-struck with it; and when the piece was finished, he had the archbishop
-in Glasgow, chancellor of the realm, called to him, as well as the
-other bishops, whose thoughts and fears during the representation may
-be imagined. ‘I exhort you,’ said the king to them, ‘to reform your
-fashions and manners of living. If you do not, I will send six of the
-proudest of you unto my uncle of England,[231] and after he has put
-them in order, I will do the same with the rest if they will not
-amend.’ The chancellor, in consternation, humbly answered, ‘One word
-of your grace’s mouth shall suffice them to be at commandment.’ James
-rejoined immediately and angrily, ‘I shall gladly bestow any words of
-my mouth that can amend them,’ The notion of applying to Henry VIII.
-to set his bishops right was original; and the prelates of Scotland,
-knowing that that preceptor did not spare the rod nor even the sword,
-trembled to the very marrow of their bones. Ballenden, in confirmation
-of these new intentions of James, said to Thomas Eure, ‘The king is
-fully minded to expel all spiritual men from having any authority by
-office under his grace, either in household or elsewhere.’ It appears
-that the author of the drama, author also in part of the change wrought
-in the prince, was Sir David Lyndsay, who had been the king’s guardian
-and companion during his minority. This bold man of letters composed
-many satires against the superstitions of the age, and above all
-against the ignorance and licentiousness of the clergy; but the king
-never allowed the cardinal to lift a finger to harm him.
-
-The convictions of James were not very deep, and his own life was not
-such as to give him the right to criticise the lives of the bishops. So
-long as this liberal humor of the prince lasted, the cardinal seems to
-have abstained from demonstrations hostile to the reform of the Church.
-He was sure of getting him to change his mind, and he did not trouble
-himself about comedies to which he was bent on replying by tragedies.
-He was not long in showing his inflexibility, and the capricious humor
-of the king again bent under his immovable firmness. Other men have
-been named great, just, or well-bred. Beatoun deserved to be called
-persecutor. This surname, which history inflicts on him as a disgrace,
-he seems to have aspired to as a glory.
-
-[Sidenote: SIR JOHN BORTHWICK.]
-
-Beatoun assembled at St. Andrews the prelates and the nobles who
-enjoyed his confidence. An elevated seat was provided for him in the
-cathedral, and he sat there in his twofold character of primate and of
-cardinal. The earls of Huntley, Arran, and Montrose, the earl Marshall,
-and Lords Erskine, Lyndsay, Fleming, Seaton, and many other barons and
-men of rank, Gawin, archbishop of Glasgow and chancellor, the bishops
-of Aberdeen, Galloway, and others besides, abbots and priors, deans
-and doctors of theology, were around him. David Beatoun, proud to see
-beneath him that illustrious and brilliant assembly, began to speak.
-He set forth with warm feeling the dangers to which the multiplication
-of heretics was exposing the Roman faith: the audacity with which they
-avowed their opinions, even at the court, where they found too much
-support, he added, alluding thus to the famous dramatic representation
-with which James had been so struck. Then impatient to show the serious
-import of his words, he announced that he had cited before that
-assembly Sir John Borthwick, brother of the lord of the same name,
-provost of Linlithgow, who had probably had a hand in the satirical
-drama. ‘This heretic gives out,’ he said, ‘that the pope has no more
-authority than other bishops, that his indulgences have no other
-effect than to deceive the people, that the religious orders ought to
-be abolished, that all ecclesiastics are at liberty to marry, and in
-short, that the Scots, blinded by their clergy, do not profess the true
-faith. He reads and circulates the New Testament in English, and divers
-treatises of Melanchthon, Œcolampadius, and Erasmus, and refuses to
-submit to the see of Rome.’
-
-Borthwick, instead of going to St. Andrews, set out in all haste for
-England, where he was well received by Henry VIII., and was afterwards
-employed by him as one of his commissioners to the princes of Germany.
-But although Beatoun could not send the lamb to the slaughter, he could
-at least find the way to possess himself of the fleece. On May 28 the
-confiscation of Sir John’s property was pronounced and his effigy was
-burnt, first at St. Andrews and two days after at Edinburgh. The fire
-did him no great harm, but it served to give a certain point to the
-cardinal’s discourse.[232]
-
-The king had now again returned, under the influence of the cardinal,
-to the side of Rome. This prince, so thoughtless, hasty, violent, and
-unprincipled, bent before every breeze and changed his opinion and his
-will at a word from those who were about him. Money he wanted, and
-he would have received it from one party as readily as from another,
-from the nobles as well as from the priests: but the latter were more
-persevering and more skilful in finding out the crowns of which he had
-need. ‘They are always at the king’s ear,’ said Sadler, one of the
-envoys of Henry VIII. Sir James Hamilton, his treasurer, was at his
-left ear, and Beatoun, the cardinal, at his right. The treasurer had
-at that time received large sums from the cardinal for the king, and
-James, won by that argument, pronounced himself against the friends
-of the Reformation with the passion which he had before shown towards
-the prelates. Sir James Hamilton, brother of the earl of Arran, a
-man of dishonorable character, cruel, and the murderer of the earl
-of Lennox, was then invested by command of the king with functions
-resembling those of an inquisitor. ‘I charge you,’ said James, ‘to
-seize all persons suspected of heresy, and to inflict on them after
-judgment such penalties as they have deserved.’ In the excess of his
-popish zeal he exclaimed, ’Not a man of that sort shall find any mercy
-at my hands, not even my own son, if it were proved that he was in the
-number of the guilty.’ This declaration alarmed many. It was plain
-that an inquisitorial court was to be set up, and Hamilton was already
-preparing everything for that end. But on a sudden he was himself
-thrown into the prison in which he meant to confine the friends of the
-Reformation. Accused either justly or unjustly of treason, even of a
-conspiracy against the life of the king, he was arrested, and James, in
-his wrath, had him put to death in August 1540.
-
-[Sidenote: BIRTH OF A SON TO JAMES.]
-
-James spoke of his son. He had indeed a son, but one not old enough to
-excite any fears with respect to what he called heresy. The child was
-born on May 22, 1540, and had been named James after his father. ‘He is
-fair and lively,’ wrote the king to his uncle Henry VIII., ‘and will
-succeed to us and this our realm.’[233] Very proud of this son and of
-having an heir, he felt his crown to be more secure than ever,[234] and
-began to contemn the nobles. ‘They will no longer dare,’ said he, ‘to
-attempt anything against my house.’
-
-The baptism of the boy took place May 28, and on the next day the king
-embarked on some voyage. Nobody could give an explanation of this
-abrupt departure. Some said that the king was going to France, others
-said to Ireland, where the leading men, it was reported, would take
-him for their king.[235] ‘I am only going to visit the isles, to put
-everything in order,’ he wrote to Henry VIII. The cardinal and the
-prelates resolved to take advantage of his absence. The king, they saw,
-was in ill humor with the nobles, and all those who were suspected in
-the matter of doctrine must be got rid of. But one discreet man, James
-Kirkcaldy of Grange, the lord treasurer, having received information
-of this project, made it known to the king, and set before him all the
-calamities to which he would expose himself if he gave his support
-to the conspiracy. James, once more turning about, was enraged at
-this intrigue hatched in his absence. The cardinal, attended by many
-bishops, came to Holyrood palace to greet him, and presented to
-him a paper on which were inscribed the names of nobles suspected
-of heresy and of whom it would be well to get rid. He dwelt even on
-the gain which would flow to the crown from that course. James said
-sharply--‘Pack, you jefwellis![236] Get ye to your charges and reform
-your own lives: be not instruments of discord betwixt my nobility and
-me: or else I vow to God I shall reform you by sharp whingers if ever I
-hear such motion of you again.’
-
-The prelates, astounded at this rebuke, withdrew in confusion, and gave
-up their scheme for a time.
-
-[Sidenote: SCOTT OF PITGORNO.]
-
-A second son was born to James in the town of Stirling in April 1541,
-and this event both heightened his joy and increased his pride. His
-happiness however was frequently disturbed. Certain people were
-incessantly endeavoring to deceive him. Hateful informers denounced
-to him one or other of his earls, his barons, and other subjects, as
-bent on taking his life, and thus threw him into a state of great
-alarm. In another direction some of his favorites were leading him
-to blameworthy acts. He had to pay dearly for his errors, and was
-punished by his very crimes. His mind was often in a state of gloomy
-reverie. Thomas Scott of Pitgorno, a courtier who had enjoyed his
-good graces and had been named by him lord of Lefries, and afterwards
-promoted to a higher office in the administration of justice,[237] had
-been guilty of many misdeeds. He was accused, among other things, of
-having plundered pretended Lutherans, and it was added that the king
-had gained something by it. Remorse tormented these two wretched men.
-One night, while James was at Linlithgow, he dreamed that he saw Scott
-coming towards him surrounded by a company of devils, and that he
-heard him say in a sepulchral tone--‘Woe to the day that ever I knew
-thee or thy service. For, for serving of thee against God, against
-his servants, and against justice I am adjudged to endless torment.’
-The king awoke in terror. With a loud voice he called for torches (it
-was midnight), and he made all who were in the palace get up, and
-said to them--‘Thomas Scott is dead! He has appeared to me.’ He then
-related his horrible dream. That same night Thomas Scott, then at
-Edinburgh, was stricken with a terrible agony. ‘I am damned,’ said he,
-‘I am damned! It is by the just judgment of God--_justo Dei judicio
-condemnatus sum_.’ He died in the midst of these torments. James heard
-of this death the next morning and was still more terrified. Such is
-the tale of the chroniclers and historians of Scotland.[238] It is
-certainly wonderful, but stranger coincidences have been known.
-
-James had yet other causes of uneasiness. His sleepless nights were
-disturbed, gloomy, and agitated; and even the light of morning did not
-disperse his inward darkness. The death of Hamilton, whose execution
-he had hastily ordered on mere suspicion, frequently gave him bitter
-pain. That unfortunate lord had done for the prince all that he had
-wished; and the latter now asked himself whether he had done well to
-deprive himself of so devoted a secretary. Perhaps he was innocent.
-He might have been calumniated. One night, at Linlithgow, James saw
-Hamilton in a dream, with his sword drawn, rush upon him and cut off
-first his right then his left arm,[239] saying to him, ‘Take that!
-while thou receive a final payment for all thine impiety.’ James
-awoke trembling, and asked himself what this dream could mean. His
-imagination was impressed by it. He mused mournfully on the strange
-vision, and expected that some heavy blow was about to fall on him. It
-was in this state of mind that a message reached him from Stirling that
-his son Arthur has just died. Shortly after, another message came from
-St. Andrews to announce to him that his son James was dead. These two
-young princes, his hope, his joy, and his glory, were no more. Within
-twenty-four hours of each other (some say at the same hour), they had
-been taken from him. He now comprehended his dream. His two arms were
-already cut off: it only remained for him to lose his own life, and all
-would be accomplished. Nothing could divert this prince, who was guilty
-at once of profligacy and of persecution: nothing could beguile his
-grief. His heart was broken, his mind was disordered.
-
-He shut himself up, and the only person whom he would see was his
-mother. Unhappy father! unhappy king! The queen-dowager did all she
-could to console her son and her daughter-in-law. ‘I am never from
-them,’ she wrote to her brother, Henry VIII., May 12, 1541, ‘but ever
-in their company.’ It appears that by this large sorrow the natural
-affections were reawakened in the king. He wrote to his uncle that he
-desired to see good will and the most perfect friendship and peace
-prevail between them.[240]
-
-[Sidenote: PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION.]
-
-While James was thus taken up with his sorrows alone, the doctrine of
-the Reformation made progress, and, if only liberty were accorded to
-it, its triumph in Scotland appeared to be at hand. A great multitude
-of the common people, both in the country districts and in the towns,
-held meetings more or less secretly at which they heard the Holy Word
-read and even explained. By 1540 many eminent men had received the
-evangelical doctrine. The earls of Errol and of Glencairn, the Lords
-Ruthven and Kilmaurs and their children, Sir David Lyndsay, Sir James
-Sandilands, Melville of Raith, and a large number of other influential
-persons appeared to be attached to the Gospel by genuine conviction.
-
-Henry VIII., when informed of this state of things, thought that he
-ought to avail himself of it for his own advantage. His favorite notion
-was to engage the King of Scotland to make his country independent
-of Rome, and as James was his nephew he did not despair of success.
-As long ago as 1535 he had sent Barlow to him with books against the
-authority of the pope. That measure failed. Next he had despatched Lord
-Howard to James, who was still unmarried, to offer to him the hand of
-his daughter Mary, and with her the prospect of the crown of England,
-if he would establish the royal supremacy in the Church. Another
-failure. In 1540 Henry had charged Sir Ralph Sadler to set before James
-the advantages which he would obtain from a Reformation, and to propose
-an interview with him. Sadler, in order to counteract beforehand the
-cardinal’s influence, communicated to the King of Scotland some letters
-from that prelate to the pope, which had been intercepted by the
-English, and from which it was manifest that Beatoun’s aim was to place
-the state in subjection to the Romish Church. The prince answered with
-a smile that the cardinal had already shown him those letters.[241]
-
-All the endeavors of the English envoy had proved futile. At bottom,
-the end which Beatoun was pursuing was the ruin of Henry VIII.; and in
-order the more surely to attain it, he was ambitious to be appointed
-legate _a latere_, a dignity which would invest him in Scotland
-with the extraordinary powers which he did actually obtain. He did
-everything to conduct to a happy issue the alliance against England
-which had been previously projected by the pope. The English Council of
-the North wrote to Cromwell--‘We think that the cardinal of Scotland
-intendeth to take his journey towards Rome in Lent next coming, and
-we think it should appear by the schedule of instructions herein
-inclosed, which was taken on a ship lost at Bamborough, that the Scots
-intend some mystery with some of their allies.’[242] Henry, alarmed
-at this news, caused fresh entreaties to be pressed on his nephew.
-His ambassadors promised James that if he would go to York to confer
-with his uncle, the meeting would have the happiest consequences for
-him, and would afford him the most unanswerable proof of the love
-which Henry bore him.[243] It appears even that one of them, speaking
-of the feeble health of prince Edward, held before the eyes of James
-Stuart the brilliant prospect of the crown of England, leaving Mary
-and Elizabeth entirely out of sight. The nobles of Scotland, natural
-enemies of the priests, urged the king to agree to the interview with
-his uncle. Articles were drawn up at the beginning of December 1541,
-by the commissioners of Scotland and England. They purported that King
-James would meet his dear uncle, the King of England, on January 15,
-1542, at the city of York, for the purpose of mutual communications
-tending to increase their cordial love, to draw closer the ties of
-blood, and to promote the prosperity of their kingdoms.[244] These
-articles raised Henry to the summit of his wishes, and he took measures
-immediately for imparting to this interview extraordinary solemnity
-and brilliancy. This conference of the two kings made a great noise in
-Scotland, and preparations were also made there. Henry VIII. set out
-and went to York full of hope. Uncle and nephew were at last to see
-each other, and to talk together, and every one saw that this meeting
-would have weighty consequences. Never was Scotland nearer having a
-reform after the fashion of Henry VIII.
-
-[Sidenote: PROJECTED INTERVIEW AT YORK.]
-
-No one understood this better than Beatoun. What he feared more than
-all besides was that the power of the Romish hierarchy would be
-abolished, and the Gospel be put in its place. The cardinal, for the
-first time in his life, had been anticipated, surpassed in cleverness
-and in influence. He did not however lose courage, but with all the
-adherents of his party applied himself to the task with all his soul.
-They sowed hatred between the king and the nobles. They employed all
-imaginable means to dissuade the king from the fatal meeting. At first
-they sought to alarm him. ‘By going to York,’ said the cardinal to him,
-‘you will expose yourself to the suspicions of the emperor, you will
-make an enemy of your old ally the King of France, and you will bring
-down on yourself the disgrace of the pope. In short’ (and it was this
-which most terrified James), ‘you will expose yourself to the greatest
-dangers. This treacherous king will keep you prisoner in England as
-James I. was kept in former days.’ James replied that he had given
-his word, and that the king was awaiting him, that to absent himself
-from the _rendezvous_ would lead to war with England, and that he
-had not the means of carrying it on. The cardinal was amazed at this
-independence of the king, for he was not accustomed to it. Discerning
-more and more clearly the greatness of the peril, his bishops and he
-agreed that there was but one means available for inducing James to
-renounce his purpose. As this prince was always in want of money, they
-sought to gain him by gifts of large sums.[245] This argument did not
-miss the mark. They then appealed to him anew and said--‘Sire, there is
-a good deal of money in Scotland, and it is easy to get possession of
-it. If war should break out, the clergy will give you thirty thousand
-crowns per annum, and you will be able to get a hundred thousand more
-by confiscating the property of heretics, if you will only authorize
-proceedings against them by a judge whom we will name to you and who
-is well qualified for the purpose. Will you spare this wicked people?
-Do they not read the Old and New Testaments? Are they not in rebellion
-against the authority of the pope and against the king’s majesty?
-Have they not, by new and detestable errors, troubled the churches,
-destroyed piety, and overthrown institutions established for many
-centuries? They refuse to the priests whom God has consecrated all
-obedience and respect. But there must be no delay.’ James yielded. He
-conceded to the bishops the inquisition which they claimed, and sent
-Sir James Learmont, one of the officers of his court, to offer his
-excuses to his uncle. Of all James’s proceedings this was the most
-perilous.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
- WAR BETWEEN ENGLAND AND SCOTLAND--DEATH OF JAMES V.
-
- (1542.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: PREPARATIONS FOR WAR.]
-
-It is easy to imagine the wrath of Henry VIII. when he found himself
-alone at York. He had made an agreement with his nephew; he had left
-London to have a conference with him; he had made great preparations;
-he had gone to the north; and then the young man was missing at the
-_rendezvous_! He was beside himself with anger. His sister, the mother
-of James, had died at the end of November 1541. But even if she had
-lived it was hardly likely that her influence would have appeased the
-rage of the king. He was provoked not only because his favorite project
-broke down just at the moment when he expected to see it carried out,
-but still more by the intolerable affront which the King of Scotland
-had just offered him. He could not endure it, and he swore that he
-would wash his name and his memory of that insult by a startling act of
-vengeance. He wrote to James letters full of the sharpest reproaches
-and the most violent menaces. ‘I have still in my hand,’ said he,
-‘the very rod which chastised your father.’ That rod was the duke of
-Norfolk, who while earl of Surrey had commanded at Flodden, where James
-IV. was killed. Henry immediately authorized piratical expeditions
-by sea, and invasions on the Scottish borders; but these pirates and
-marauders were only the precursors of the chastisements which he was
-preparing.
-
-James was frightened; and as it was to please his prelates that he had
-failed to keep his promise, it was his wish that the expenses of the
-war should fall on them. He told them that, thanks to them, he was
-going to war with the King of England, and demanded the subsidies which
-they had promised. ‘If you do not furnish me with them,’ he added,
-‘I shall have no choice but to confer with my uncle and satisfy his
-wishes.’ This menace terrified the prelates; ‘for rather would they
-have gone to hell.’[246] What would France say? What would the pope
-say? thought the cardinal. The bishops promised mountains of gold.
-After deliberation on the matter, they agreed to give the king fifty
-thousand crowns a year so long as the war lasted. They added, that
-their servants and other dependents who were exempt from military
-service would take up arms. These promises filled the heart of the
-rash young monarch with confidence and pride. Troops were sent to
-Jedburgh and to Kelso, and the priests and all their party were pluming
-themselves on their wealth and their power, and talking of nothing
-but their victory. They were mad with joy, and were already dreaming
-of again bringing England under the papal sway. It was possible for
-an instant to suppose that they were right. The parliament of England
-had not shown itself so forward as the clergy of Scotland; its members
-had closed their ears to Henry’s demands for money. This slackened
-his preparations for war. There were, however, some troops on the
-frontier, and they formed the design of seizing Jedburgh. The earl
-Angus and Sir George Douglas, his brother, who had been banished from
-Scotland for some years, joined these troops, which numbered four
-thousand men. But the Scots had taken their measures. Lord Huntley, at
-the head of a large force, encountered the English troops at Halidon
-on August 24. The fight was already begun, when another Scottish party
-appeared. The English, perceiving that they were in danger of being
-surrounded, retreated. Only a few were killed, but very many were taken
-prisoners.[247]
-
-There was no longer any limit to the joy of prelate and priest. They
-encouraged the king; they vaunted themselves as if they had in person
-gained a victory. In bishops’ palaces, in the parsonages of priests,
-and in the convents of monks, nothing was heard but shouts of triumph.
-‘All is ours,’ said they; ‘they are but heretics. If we be a thousand
-and they ten thousand, they dare not fight. France shall enter the
-one part and we the other, and so shall England be conquered within a
-year.’[248]
-
-[Sidenote: PROJECTS OF HENRY VIII.]
-
-James, notwithstanding his imprudence, did not indulge in these foolish
-illusions. He knew that Henry VIII. was much stronger than himself.
-The blow which the wrath of his uncle had inflicted on him made him
-turn from left to right. He wished to take advantage of the petty
-victory of Halidon for making peace with England. Persecution ceased in
-Scotland, and liberty of conscience was more liberally granted. On the
-day after the engagement, and before James was informed of the result,
-he had already written to Henry, and had asked him for passports for
-his plenipotentiaries. On September 1 he wrote to him again: ‘We assure
-you, dearest uncle,’ said he, ‘there is within our realm neither of
-spiritual nor temporal state that may or shall change our favor and
-kindness toward you.’[249] But Henry was not of such an easy temper:
-he bore in mind the affront at York, and he intended to avenge it.
-He forbade the ambassadors of his nephew to pass beyond that city.
-During this time he was collecting all kinds of munitions of war, and
-in very large quantities. He assembled an army such as Scotland had
-not for a long time seen at her borders, and gave the command of it to
-that duke of Norfolk who was to defeat the son as he had defeated the
-father. The King of England wanted also to be the king of Scotland,
-and wished that the whole of Great Britain should belong to the same
-prince. This dream was one day to be realized, but with this great
-difference, that it would not be the King of England who should become
-king of Scotland, but the King of Scotland who should become king of
-England. We find in the State Papers the following despatch, addressed
-by the English privy council to the archbishop of York:--‘Minding to
-have the king’s majesty’s title to the realm of Scotland more fully,
-plainly, and clearly set forth to all the world, that the justness of
-our quarrel and demand may appear, we have appointed certain learned
-men to travail in the same. And for because we knew that your lordship
-in times past hath taken some pains in the same thing, we pray you not
-only to cause all your old registers and ancient places to be sought,
-where you think anything may be found for the more clear declaration
-to the world of his majesty’s title to that realm, and so what shall
-be found to certify us thereof accordingly; but also to signify unto
-us what ancient charters and monuments for that purpose you have seen,
-and where the same are to be sought for.’ For having failed to make the
-promised visit, James must lose his crown. Once let the King of England
-have possessed himself of Scotland (thanks to his soldiers, without
-doubt, more than to his charters and muniments), he would banish popery
-and establish his own bishops in its place, and above all his own
-papacy.
-
-Henry published a manifesto in which he declared that his nephew had
-been the aggressor. He claimed for the Tudors the crown of the Stuarts.
-He resented as bitterly as ever the wound received at York; and the
-vengeance which he reckoned on taking was to be cruel, memorable,
-and revolutionary. The energy of the uncle was as conspicuous as
-the feebleness of the nephew; and when James wrote again with all
-_naïveté_, ‘I love you,’ Henry replied savagely, ‘I hate you.’
-
-Norfolk, impatient to avenge the retreat from Halidon, determined to
-make an inroad into Scotland before the whole of the army was mustered.
-He therefore marched from Berwick, at the northeastern extremity of
-England, ravaged the country districts, took several unimportant
-places, got himself into various scrapes, and announced that he should
-immediately appear at Edinburgh. But within eight or ten days after
-passing the Borders he withdrew. He had merely paid an unceremonious
-visit, preliminary to one official and in state.
-
-[Sidenote: MUTINY OF THE SCOTS.]
-
-Meanwhile James was putting himself into a position to receive that
-visit gallantly, and was assembling his army before Edinburgh. He had
-there about twenty thousand men, besides ten thousand more on the
-frontier, under the command of the earl of Huntley. But dissension
-prevailed in his camp. There were some who cared little for the old
-doctrine, but who were eager above everything to break the iron yoke
-of the cardinal. Others there were, attached to the Douglases and the
-Anguses, who were in the English army, and who had no mind to fight
-against them. Others, again, feeling the inferiority of the Scottish
-army, steadily insisted that they ought to remain strictly on the
-defensive. On a sudden, the Scots encamped at Fala learnt that for want
-of supplies the English were retreating on the Tweed. James, who was
-easily excited, immediately called together his lords, and exclaimed,
-‘Forward! follow me into England!’ His words were received in a gloomy
-silence. ‘We are ready, sire,’ said some of the lords to him, ‘to risk
-life and whatsoever we have to defend your person and your realm,
-but we do not see any sufficient reason for invading England. Our
-provisions are spent, our horses wearied; and as for ourselves, we
-have so long been absent from our homes, that we think it high time to
-return.’
-
-James dissembled his chagrin, and even assumed an air of approval
-of the discretion of his lords. But he trembled to see his kingly
-authority trampled under foot by his subjects. He was plainly master
-no longer. His subservience to the priests had ruined him. The nobles
-and the common soldiers, instead of falling upon the English, returned
-every man to his own home, and the king, abandoned and left almost
-alone, consumed by the profound vexation which was gradually wearing
-him away, returned mournfully to Edinburgh.
-
-It was now November 2 or 3. He immediately convoked a council at
-Holyrood palace. But in his rage against the nobles, he summoned only
-the bishops, the priests, and their partisans; all those who made a
-trade of pandering to the passions of the prince and who had no other
-aim but to secure the triumph of the clergy. When they saw the king’s
-discouragement, and his anger against the nobles, they persuaded
-themselves that the moment was come for them to make an end of their
-enemies. That, they thought, would not be very difficult. These men,
-branded by public opinion, did not care to furnish evidence in support
-of their denunciations. The only trouble they took was to deprive
-the innocent of all means of clearing themselves. They thought that
-it would for the moment suffice them to obtain a hearing, to accuse
-some noble of heresy and to call as witnesses certain men of infamous
-character in their own pay. With one accord, therefore, they all strove
-to inflame the king against the Reformation and its friends. Oliver
-Sinclair, among the laymen, distinguished himself in these proceedings,
-and among the churchmen, Beatoun. ‘The cardinal and the priests,’ it
-was said, ‘cast fagots in the fire with all their force.’[250] They
-drew up a list containing the names of all of whom they wished to be
-rid. There were the names of about one hundred nobles, among whom were
-Lord Hamilton, the first person of the realm after the king, the earls
-of Cassilis and Glencairn, the earl Marshal, and other nobles, all well
-disposed towards the Word of God.[251] This fact shows what progress
-the Reformation had made in Scotland. The majority of these _suspects_,
-to be sure, were not decided evangelical Christians, but they had
-leanings that way. Once already James had refused to accept such a
-list. But the case was different now, and he accepted it at once, and
-expressed to the prelates his regret that he had so long set their
-counsels aside. ‘I see clearly at this moment that you are right,’
-he said; ‘the nobles neither desire my honor nor my continuance; for
-they would not ride a mile for my pleasure to follow enemies. Will
-ye therefore find me the means that I may have raid made in England
-without their knowledge and consent, that may be known to be my own
-raid, and I shall bind me to your counsel forever.’
-
-[Sidenote: A PROSCRIPTION LIST.]
-
-The joy of the cardinal and his friends was unbounded. They
-congratulated each other, they clapped their hands;[252] the game was
-won. They made promises one to another of diligent service, discretion,
-and fidelity. They encountered however some few difficulties. The king
-required before all else an invasion, and he wanted to be able to say
-to the nobles, ‘Where you fell back I advanced and have conquered.’ How
-proceed so as to insure success in the enterprise? They resolved to
-select as the battle-field not the east, in the direction of Berwick,
-where the forces of Henry VIII. lay, but the northwestern quarter,
-which was stripped, left without an army, almost without a garrison.
-Carlisle would presently be taken, and James would triumph at the same
-time over the nobles and the king of England.
-
-He attached the utmost importance to this deed of arms. The royal
-banner was secretly brought out, letters were addressed to the men
-selected by the priests, inviting them to meet the king on such a
-day, at such a place. The bishops undertook to bear the expenses of
-this affair. The cardinal and the earl of Arran, by way of diversion,
-went eastward, as if the Scots purposed to pass the frontier in that
-quarter, where frequent combats had taken place between them and
-the English. The king, satisfied with all these preparations, and
-entertaining no doubt of success, accepted the fatal list presented by
-the cardinal and put it into his pocket. Immediately after his triumph
-and in the very midst of his glory, all those suspected should be
-seized and executed. The Reformation should be extinguished, and Rome
-should definitively reign. Everything was to be done with the strictest
-secrecy.
-
-On the night before the day appointed for setting out, James slept at
-Lochmaben,[253] where stood one of the royal castles. There, without
-incurring any danger, he was as near as possible to the scene of the
-exploits all the honor of which he wished to reap. Troops arrive from
-all sides, without any knowledge of what was wanted with them. On the
-day fixed, at midnight, the trumpets sound, the companies are formed,
-and the command is given to march forward ‘in the suite of the king,’
-who was supposed to be with the expedition. At daybreak begins the
-campaign which is to deliver up Scotland into the cruel hands of the
-cardinal. The Scots approach the territory of England and pass the
-water without meeting any resistance. They set fire to the houses and
-corn fields which lie on their way, and the poor dwellers in those
-country places, starting out of their sleep, see before them to their
-great amazement an army of ten thousand men, and flames shooting up on
-all sides. They tremble with fright and resign themselves to despair,
-wondering in themselves how such an army could possibly have advanced
-so far without their having the faintest suspicion of it. Whence comes
-it? Whither is it going? Is it come from the abyss of hell?
-
-[Sidenote: ROUT OF THE SCOTS.]
-
-Everything about this expedition was indeed extraordinary, and even the
-Scots themselves did not know who was in command. Lord Maxwell, warden
-of the western marches, was present, and to him that office naturally
-belonged; but neither he nor the troops knew anything at all about the
-matter. At ten o’clock an unexpected event occurred. The Scots finding
-themselves on English ground at Solway, the trumpets were sounded,
-the army halted, and the royal flag was displayed and floated in the
-midst of them. The wretched Oliver Sinclair mounted on a kind of shield
-formed by lances which rested on the shoulders of some of the soldiers.
-He presented letters which had been sent him by the king. This prince,
-in the belief that this worthless courtier was a great captain, had
-named him commander-in-chief. These letters were read to the army, and
-the favorite had himself proclaimed lieutenant-general, with orders to
-render obedience to him as to the king himself. By what the courtiers
-said, to put Sinclair at the head of the army was to make victory
-certain. James would not rely upon any of his nobles. Not one of them
-was to have the glory of the expedition; it was to be the achievement
-of James, to whom the command belonged. Maxwell was present at that
-ceremony, seeing everything, hearing everything, and he was astounded
-at it, ‘but he thought more than he spoke.’[254] Other lords who were
-present did the same. No sooner had the proclamation been read than
-murmurs, discouragement, and disorder spread through the army. At the
-same time the English took up arms in all haste, ten in one company,
-twenty in another. Carlisle closed its gates, and shortly after about
-five hundred horsemen appeared on the neighboring heights for the
-purpose of reconnoitring the Scottish force.[255] The Scots took these
-horsemen for the advance guard of the army of the duke of Norfolk, and
-being seized with a panic terror, many of them broke from the ranks.
-Some wanted to fight, others wanted to fly. Everything was disorder and
-confusion. The troops disbanded and took to flight in all directions.
-Lord Maxwell, who had foreseen from the first moment the end of this
-mad business, alighted from his horse and spoke to some friends. ‘To
-horse and fly,’ they said to him. ‘Nay,’ replied he, ‘I will rather
-abide here the chance that it shall please God to send me than to go
-home and then be hanged.’[256] The Scots, both horse and foot, threw
-away their arms and ran with all their might. A great number of them
-were taken prisoners by the soldiers of Henry VIII., and some were
-captured by Scottish adventurers and sold to the English.[257] To such
-a degree had James’s soldiers lost heart, that those who did not fall
-into the hands of men rushed into houses and surrendered themselves
-to women.[258] The water had to be recrossed: the tide was high, the
-river deep. Many were drowned, and a good number of those who escaped
-the river perished in the marshes. Oliver Sinclair, who was ‘fleeing
-full manfully,’[259] was captured without having struck a single
-blow. The most distinguished among the Scottish nobles, the earls of
-Cassilis and Glencairn, the Lords Somerville, Grey, and Oliphant, were
-seen laying down their arms. Maxwell found thus the fate which he had
-desired. These lords and gentlemen were sent to London and committed
-to the Tower. Two days after, Henry commanded that they should pass
-through the streets of London on foot, exposed thus as a spectacle to
-the populace,[260] like the captives who adorned the triumphs of Roman
-generals. When they arrived at the palace, they were received there by
-the Lord Chancellor, who addressed to them severe rebukes, accused them
-of having violated the faith of treaties, and extolled the goodness and
-clemency of Henry VIII., who assigned them various houses for their
-abode.
-
-[Sidenote: MURDER OF AN ENGLISH ENVOY.]
-
-During the battle, if such a word is to be used, James, who took good
-care to keep out of it, was concealed in his castle at Lochmaben,
-northeast of Dumfries.[261] There he was awaiting the issue of that
-famous expedition which was to be his title to glory. He had made
-sure of taking at the first blow the town of Carlisle, situated at
-a distance of some miles from the frontier, and formerly one of the
-principal military posts of the Romans, at which the wall of Hadrian
-terminated, and which had been more than once besieged and taken.
-Thence he hoped to pass on and reach York, and pay an _armed_ visit
-to his dear uncle there. He was expecting the tidings of his triumph,
-when some of the fugitives made known to him the total rout of his
-army. Overwhelmed with sudden fear and astonishment, he could hardly
-utter a word. It was night when he heard of his defeat, and not daring
-to venture before daylight into unknown, untrodden ways, he retired to
-bed, but without finding the least repose. His distress was unbounded.
-He experienced the most acute pangs, could hardly breathe, and only
-uttered some vague cries. The manner in which his unworthy favorite
-had deceived his expectation, his defeat and flight, disturbed him as
-much as the victory of the English. He got up, paced up and down in
-his chamber, uttered lamentations, and cried out--‘Oh, fled Oliver? Is
-Oliver taken? Oh, fled Oliver?’[262] He was attacked with a kind of
-catalepsy. The constant contemplation of that extraordinary defeat and
-of the conduct of that despicable man on whom he had rested his hopes
-had in some degree suspended sensation in him, and he lay as in a long
-and painful trance until his death, continually repeating, ‘Oh, fled
-Oliver?’
-
-The next morning, November 25, 1542, the king returned to Edinburgh.
-He could hardly conceal his disgrace in his splendid palace; and there
-a new disgrace was reported to him which still further heightened
-his grief. On November 14, two envoys from the duke of Norfolk had
-arrived there with a letter addressed to the king. The cardinal had
-replied that he was gone a-hunting in Fifeshire. Ten days later, on
-the fatal day of Solway, towards evening, when the English envoys on
-their return were approaching Dunbar, one of them, J. Ponds, Somerset
-herald, was attacked by two men and assassinated. James, when he
-heard of this on his return, was in consternation. It might seriously
-aggravate the crisis which was already so alarming. Notwithstanding the
-painful state in which he then was, he wrote immediately to his uncle:
-‘Be assured that punishment shall thereafter follow according to the
-quality of the crime, and that there is no prince now living who could
-be more afflicted than we are that such an odious crime should remain
-unpunished.’ He offered to send ambassadors and heralds to explain the
-criminal deed.[263] That was probably the last letter written by the
-king.
-
-James had a painful interview with the cardinal, who might now
-understand to what a condition his hatred of the Reformation and his
-ambition had reduced the king and the realm. James, who believed
-himself pursued by a fatal destiny, took account sorrowfully, when
-left alone, of his treasures and his jewels; and then, full of shame
-and melancholy, and afraid to show himself to anyone whomsoever in his
-capital, set out secretly for Fifeshire. He stopped at Hallyards, where
-he was warmly received by the lady of Grange, a respectable and pious
-woman, whose husband was absent at the time. This Christian woman,
-observing at supper that the prince was plunged in melancholy, sought
-to comfort him, and exhorted him to bow with resignation to the will of
-God. ‘My portion of this world is short,’ sorrowfully answered James;
-‘in fifteen days I shall be with you no more.’ Some time afterwards one
-of the officers of his court having said to him, ‘Sire, Christmas is
-nigh; where will your majesty wish to celebrate that festival?’ James
-replied with a scornful smile, ‘I cannot tell: choose ye the place. But
-this I can tell you, on Yule day ye will be masterless, and the realm
-without a king.’
-
-[Sidenote: LAST HOURS OF JAMES V.]
-
-Haunted by these thoughts, the king went thence to Carney castle,
-and next to his palace at Falkland, where he took to his bed. It
-would have been natural for him to go to Linlithgow, to his queen,
-who was on the point of giving birth to a child. He chose rather to
-be at a distance from her. Loose living is incompatible with domestic
-happiness. No symptom showed that his death was near. James, however,
-was always repeating the words, ‘Before such a day I shall be dead.’
-His courtiers, astonished and afflicted, said to one another that if
-the queen gave him a son, the happiness so much desired would restore
-him; but on December 8, 1542, she gave birth to a girl--the celebrated
-Mary Stuart. On learning that the newborn infant was a girl, James,
-wounded afresh in his dearest wish, turned to the wall, away from those
-who had brought him the sad tidings. ‘The devil go with it,’ he said;
-‘it will end as it began; it came with a lass, and it will go with a
-lass.’[264] He saw his family extinct, his crown lost. Other Stuarts,
-however, bore it after Mary. Both Scotland and England, unhappily, knew
-that to their cost. But this circumstance--the hope frustrated of a son
-to take the place of the two which he had lost--was a fresh and fatal
-blow for the unfortunate James:
-
- De douleur en douleur il traversait la vie.
-
-The cardinal presented himself at the castle. His visit was natural at
-that moment. But the ambitious prelate, supposing the king to be near
-death, came not to console him, but to secure his own position. As the
-king in his present dangerous state could only hear with difficulty,
-the primate cried in his ear--‘Take order, sir, with the realm. Who
-shall rule during the minority of your daughter? Ye have known my
-service; what will ye have done? Shall there not be four regents
-chosen, and shall not I be principal of them?’ The clever prelate
-succeeded in getting a document prepared which was in his favor. The
-king was sinking. But the memory of Solway ran continually in his
-head, and disturbed his last moments. ‘Fie,’ cried he; ‘fled is Oliver?
-is Oliver taken? All is lost.’ On December 14, 1542, at the age of
-thirty-two, six days after the birth of Mary Stuart, James V. died.
-When disrobing him, they found in his pocket the famous proscription
-list. What was to come of that now?
-
-James was buried at Holyrood January 8, and the cardinal who had driven
-him along that fatal path in which he was to meet death presided at the
-ceremony. This prince, thus taken away in the flower of his age, died
-not so much of disease as of a broken heart.[265] ‘The sorrow of the
-world worketh death.’ He had understanding, but it was uncultivated; he
-was moderate in respect to the pleasures of the table, but he had been
-thrown in his youth into other irregularities, from which he never got
-free. He might be seen in the bitterest winter weather, on horseback
-night and day, endeavoring to surprise the freebooters in their
-retreats; and poor men had always easy access to him. But for want of
-thoughtfulness and solid principles he was incessantly tossed to and
-fro between the nobles and the priests, and whichever of these two was
-the most adroit easily took the upper hand. He sinned much, but perhaps
-he was still more ‘sinned against.’
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
- REGENCY OF THE EARL OF ARRAN.--IMPRISONMENT OF BEATOUN.--TREATY OF
- PEACE WITH ENGLAND.
-
- (1542-MARCH 1543.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: GENERAL DEPRESSION.]
-
-The political and religious events in the midst of which James V. had
-been taken from Scotland were of so grave a character that the wisest
-heads felt some alarm, and expected to see a storm break forth such as
-no one had ever seen the like.[266] An unexpected blow, considering the
-youthful years of the prince, had fallen on the nation. With eyes fixed
-on the future, nobles and people talked together of their fears and the
-faintness of their hopes.[267] In the Lowlands, in the heart of the
-Highlands, at Edinburgh, at Glasgow, at Stirling, and in other towns
-of Scotland, men with pale faces and a restless air were questioning
-one another in distress of mind about the fate in reserve for their
-country. The shameful defeat at Solway, which had given the king his
-death-blow, had filled the people with mourning and dread. The most
-illustrious lords of Scotland, taken prisoners by the English, had been
-exposed to the gaze of the citizens of London. Those who still remained
-in Scotland were divided by implacable hatred, and by religious views
-diametrically opposed to each other; and it was anticipated that
-dissensions long suppressed by the fear of the king would now burst
-forth. The cardinal and the bishops, giving themselves up without
-restraint to their passion for dominion, were going to take advantage
-of the death of James to bring the people into subjection. Henry VIII.,
-glorying in the unexpected victory which he had just won, did not fail,
-now that his nephew was no more, to turn to account (and in what a
-fashion!) his pretensions to Scotland. For maintaining order in the
-country there was a queen eight days old. The next heir to the crown
-after her, Hamilton, earl of Arran, was not fitted by his virtues, or
-his intelligence, or his courage to rule the people. Many destructive
-agencies were at work in Scotland; loud lamentations were heard. One
-thing alone could save the country--the Gospel.
-
-[Sidenote: ALLEGED WILL OF JAMES V.]
-
-The king being dead, it appeared to Beatoun that the public troubles
-offered him a favorable opportunity for becoming master, for securing
-the triumph of the French party, for abolishing the Reformation, and
-establishing the supremacy of the clergy. Since Scotland was abased,
-he was to be exalted. It was needful to act quickly. The nobles who
-were recently made prisoners, and those who had for a long time lived
-in exile in England, were about to return. The cardinal knew well that
-they detested his subservience to the pope, his ambition, and his
-arrogance; and he had no doubt that they would vigorously oppose him.
-The earl of Arran, next heir after Mary to the crown, was it is true
-in Scotland, and seemed to be called to make head against him; but the
-haughty cardinal made little account of that. The earl is unambitious,
-said he; he has no energy, and all his wish is to have nothing to do.
-Besides, Arran was his near relation, a son of one of his aunts.[268]
-The king had scarcely breathed his last when the cardinal went boldly
-to the queen-mother at Linlithgow, fortified with the document on
-which he assumed to found his pretensions. ‘Welcome, my lord,’ said
-the queen, who as yet knew nothing more than the serious illness of
-her husband; ‘is not the king dead?’ Mary of Guise supposed that the
-first prelate of the kingdom was come solely to announce to her the
-sovereign’s death. But Beatoun had another end in view in this visit.
-Without loss of time he produced the king’s testament containing the
-nomination of a regency composed of the cardinal and the earls of
-Argyle, Huntley, and Murray, the first-named to be president of the
-council and guardian to the royal infant. This document was generally
-considered to have been extorted from the dying king. Many persons
-even believed that the cardinal’s agent had guided the hand of the
-dead king, and obtained a signature in blank which the cardinal
-had afterwards filled up at his own will. Buchanan states that the
-cardinal, having gained over a certain priest named Balfour, had with
-his assistance forged a false testament. Knox, Sadler, and Lesley
-also speak in the same way.[269] At the market-cross at Edinburgh the
-cardinal had proclamation made, on the Monday after the king’s death,
-of the alleged deed which made him the first personage in the realm.
-
-Many of the Scots were indignant at this proceeding, and said openly
-that both the regency and the guardianship of the infant Mary belonged
-to Hamilton, earl of Arran, who, as next heir to the crown through his
-grandmother, the daughter of James II., would be king, it was said,
-if the little princess should chance to die. Had not her two brothers
-died in their infancy? The general hatred of the cardinal, and the
-horror felt at the thought of living under the government of a priest,
-impelled a large number of people to support the cause of Hamilton.
-‘Occasion offers herself to you,’ they said to him; ‘do not let her
-pass.’ The laird of Grange especially urged this noble to maintain his
-rights. But Arran, for want of spirit, was ready to abandon them. It
-was at last determined to call together the nobility of the realm, that
-they might decide to whose hands the government should be intrusted
-during the minority. The nobles met on the appointed day. The cardinal
-and his partisans resisted with all their might the proposal to commit
-the government of the realm to the earl of Arran. ‘The Hamiltons,’ said
-they, ‘are cruel murderers, oppressors of innocents, proud, avaricious,
-double and false, and finally, the pestilence in this commonwealth.’
-Arran had, indeed, given himself up to the domination of dishonorable
-men. However, he remained calm, and contemned these insults. ‘Call me
-what you please,’ replied he, ‘but defraud me not of my right. Whatever
-my friends have been, yet unto this day has no man cause to complain
-upon me. Neither yet am I minded to flatter my friends in their evil
-doing, but by God’s grace shall be forward to correct their enormities.
-Therefore yet again, my lord, in God’s name I crave that ye do me no
-wrong, nor defraud me of my just title before ye have experience of my
-government.’ This appeal touched the hearers, and all cried out that
-unless the fear of God and his righteousness were trampled under foot,
-the claim of Arran could not be rejected. He was therefore proclaimed
-governor of Scotland, in spite of Beatoun; and the king’s palace, his
-treasures, his jewels, and other chattels of the crown were delivered
-up to him by the officials who had charge of them. This took place on
-January 10, a few days after the cardinal’s proclamation.
-
-[Sidenote: ARRAN PROCLAIMED REGENT.]
-
-Arran, it is true, was not distinguished for his virtues nor for his
-intelligence, but he was very generally liked, as weak men often are.
-‘The earl of Arran,’ wrote Lord Lisle to Henry VIII., ‘is himself a
-good soft God’s man, and loveth well to look on the Scripture, but he
-hath many that ruleth about him of his kin which be shrewd and evil
-men.’[270] Never had any regent been received with so much liking and
-hope, and this was the case especially because people were glad to be
-delivered from the cardinal. It was thought that he would reform all
-that went wrong in the church or state, and his first acts corresponded
-with this hope.[271] That Arran should thus get possession of power
-was astonishing, for he was as weak as Beatoun was strong, and the
-weakest, they say, always goes to the wall. In this case the reverse
-happened. But many people thought that the arrangement would be only
-temporary. Arran was the earthen pot of the fable, Beatoun the iron
-pot, and it was not difficult to foresee which of the two would break
-the other. It was not long before Arran gave a proof of his too easy
-temper. Instead of adopting measures for withdrawing the realm from
-the influence of Beatoun, as soon as the latter claimed to be made
-chancellor of Scotland, Arran committed that office to his hands, in
-order to alleviate the disgrace to which the assembly of the nobles had
-just subjected him.[272] The ambitious cardinal, however, did not long
-keep that post of influence.
-
-Many eminent and pious men supported the cause of the earl of Arran.
-One of his first acts was to appoint as his chaplains, on the
-recommendation of those supporters, two ministers who preached the
-pure Gospel. A former Dominican, Thomas Guillaume (or Williams), who
-had been very eminent in his order, having been converted by the Word
-of God, had thrown off his cowl. He was called to preach at Edinburgh.
-The soundness of his judgment, the purity of his doctrine, the force
-of his eloquence, and the clearness of his exposition of Scripture,
-together with a certain moderation in controversy, attracted a crowd
-to his preaching. The regent associated with him another evangelical
-minister, John Rough. He had entered a convent at seventeen years of
-age, had twice visited Rome, and having been painfully shocked by what
-he had seen there, he had embraced the Reformation. Less of a scholar
-than Guillaume, he was more simple-minded, and more ardent against
-superstition and impiety, and against the authority of the pope. Arran,
-urged on by his evangelical friends, sent his faithful ministers into
-various parts of the kingdom. Among their numerous hearers was Knox,
-and it was while listening to Guillaume that the great reformer began
-to be acquainted with the beauty of evangelical truth.[273]
-
-But while those who had their hearts opened to the truth received with
-joy the words of the two chaplains, the monks, the priests, and all
-the friends of the papacy attacked them vehemently. ‘Heresy! heresy!’
-cried a Franciscan named Scot; ‘Guillaume and Rough will carry the
-governor unto the devil.’ And all the monks and sacristans took up
-the cry, ‘Heresy!’ A man named Watson, of the household of the bishop
-of Dunkeld, composed a satirical ballad against the chaplains and the
-regent which had a great vogue. The cardinal on his part was moving
-heaven and earth, and worried Arran to silence the two preachers. ‘All
-these men,’ says Knox, ‘roupit [croaked] as they had been ravens, yea
-rather they yelled and roared as devils in hell.’ For the moment, these
-cries were futile. The divine Word prevailed.
-
-[Sidenote: PROPOSAL OF HENRY VIII.]
-
-While these things were passing in Scotland, Henry VIII. was fully
-occupied in England. The death of James had startled him, and his
-first thought had been that the succession must fall to him. He would
-unite the two kingdoms, and it would be an immense advantage to Great
-Britain to be all under one government, and that his own. To this end a
-marriage should be concluded between his son Edward, aged five years,
-and the young Queen of Scotland, aged a few days. He lost no time
-in sending for the most notable of the Scottish captives to Hampton
-Court palace, where he was then residing. The earls of Cassilis and
-Glencairn, and the Lords Maxwell, Fleming, and Grey, men who only a
-few days before had been made a spectacle to the populace of London,
-appeared before him. He stated to them his project. ‘God,’ said he,
-‘now offers you a most favorable occasion for establishing agreement
-and peace in Great Britain. Let a contract be concluded between your
-queen and my son. I offer to set you at liberty if you will pledge
-yourselves to do all you can to get the consent of the regent and of
-the other nobles of Scotland to this marriage.’ The project highly
-pleased the lords, for they saw in it a certain means of obtaining not
-only liberty for themselves, but a lasting peace for their country.
-Agreement was made that the Queen Mary should marry the prince Edward
-when she was ten years old. After this conference the noble prisoners
-set out, December 29, on their way to Scotland, to secure the success
-of their scheme.
-
-Henry, however, did not yet feel himself secure, and he wanted to have
-the young queen in his own hands and some others with her. He had no
-confidence in Scotland, knowing how easily she might tack about: and he
-was afraid of the cardinal’s cleverness. Consequently, on January 9 he
-wrote to viscount Lisle, then lord warden of the military frontiers of
-England. ‘It is essential,’ said he, ‘to get the child, the person of
-the cardinal, and of such as be chief lettes of our purpose, and also
-of the chief holds and fortresses into our hands.’[274] Henry’s fears
-were not without foundation. At the moment of James’s death everyone
-foreboded a war with the powerful King of England. But the Scottish
-lords whom Henry had set at liberty arrived on January 24. They were
-accompanied by the earl of Angus and his brother, Sir George Douglas,
-who had long endured the life of exiles in England. These lords
-hastened to fulfil the commission of Henry VIII. On their admission to
-the council, of which the regent was president, they laid before it the
-proposal of marriage between the heirs of the two crowns. The earl of
-Arran and the great majority of the members of the council appeared to
-be favorable to it; but the cardinal, supported by the queen-mother,
-strenuously opposed it. In their judgment nothing was more dangerous
-for Scotland, nothing could be more offensive to France and to Rome.
-Now Mary of Guise and Beatoun were the representatives of these powers.
-The more chance there seemed to be of the adoption of the proposal
-by the council, the more Beatoun struggled and the more vehement the
-resistance he offered to it. He incessantly interrupted the debate: he
-put questions to other members: he thus hindered them from speaking
-and made the taking of votes altogether impossible.[275] The majority
-of the council revolted against conduct so unparliamentary, which did
-not allow them the free exercise of their right. The other members, and
-especially the Scots who were just come from England, were indignant.
-The latter conceived a bold design which did not occur to anyone else.
-They would turn the cardinal’s insolence to account in getting him
-wholly set aside. It was proposed that Beatoun should be excluded
-from the assembly and confined in an apartment of the palace until
-the votes had been collected. This plan was at once voted and carried
-out.[276] What a blow for this proud priest! He, primate, cardinal,
-legate of Rome, the most important personage of the realm, as he
-thought, to find himself excluded from the council and treated as a
-prisoner! He was not even to regain his liberty very soon. Never,
-perhaps, had any assembly struck so unlooked for a blow. The Scottish
-lords had arrived January 24, and the discussion and exclusion of the
-cardinal certainly took place on the 25th or 26th. The prelate was
-removed to the prison at Dalkeith.[277] The earls of Huntley, Murray,
-and Bothwell demanded his liberation and offered themselves as his
-bail, but they did not succeed in obtaining it. The voting resulted in
-a resolution in favor of the marriage and of the union with England; it
-only remained for parliament to confirm it.
-
-[Sidenote: RESULTS OF BEATOUN’S ARREST.]
-
-The Scottish lords who had returned from England, above all the earl
-of Angus and his brother, had learnt during their sojourn in London
-not to spare the cardinals and other Romish dignitaries. The stormy
-presumption of the cardinal in the council had been the occasion of
-the measure adopted against him; but these lords perfectly understood
-that unless the cardinal were kept in confinement there could be no
-religious nor even civil liberty in the land. ‘It is not possible,’
-says Calvin, ‘to deprive an able and powerful tyrant of his supremacy
-except by first taking away his arms and bringing against him a
-force superior to his own. He will never quit his post of his own
-accord.’[278] Sir George Douglas, brother of Angus, went to Berwick
-where Lord Lisle was stationed, and pointed out to him that in sending
-the cardinal to prison they had given him certain proof of their
-activity. Lisle immediately reported it to the Duke of Suffolk,
-brother-in-law of Henry VIII.[279] All the friends of the Gospel, and
-even the Scottish political party, looked on that measure as a great
-deliverance. Beatoun, however, was not surrendered to Henry VIII., as
-he had required him to be.
-
-It is hardly possible to imagine the effect produced in Scotland by
-this bold deed. The bishops and the priests as soon as they heard of
-the extraordinary proceeding were beside themselves. All the clergy,
-struck with horror, at once adopted the same course as they would have
-done if Scotland were laid under an interdict by the pope. The churches
-were closed, religious services were suspended, and the priests refused
-to discharge any of their functions. One might have conjectured that
-some appalling crime had been committed, and that the whole nation was
-excommunicated. A funereal veil hung over Scotland. The Romish clergy
-accused those who had laid hands on the cardinal not only of injustice
-but of sacrilege. The people, submissive in some places to the bidding
-of their priests, and even many lords, cried out with the others.
-Argyle left Edinburgh, retired to his estates, and assembled his clan.
-Lord Lisle wrote to London, February 1, ‘Since the cardinal was seized,
-no one in Scotland can get a priest to sing masse, to christen or
-bury.’[280]
-
-[Sidenote: PARLIAMENT AT EDINBURGH.]
-
-The Scottish Parliament was to open at Easter, and the moment
-was approaching. Instead of one there would be (so to speak) two
-parliaments. The party of the opposition, the earls of Huntley, Argyle,
-Murray, and Bothwell, a very great number of barons, knights, bishops,
-and abbots, met at Perth a week before the day of convocation, and
-having drawn up certain articles, they sent them to the regent and his
-council by the hands of the bishop of Orkney and Sir John Campbell,
-uncle to the earl of Argyle. Let the cardinal, they said, be set at
-liberty; let the New Testament be interdicted; let the regent confer
-with us on all affairs of the realm, and let other ambassadors be
-sent to the King of England, charged with a quite different mission
-from that which has been determined on. The regent by the advice of
-his council declined to accede to ‘demands so unreasonable.’ The next
-step, immediately taken, was to send a herald-at-arms to Perth, to
-summon the lords who were there to Edinburgh, under penalty of treason,
-to discharge their duties. This citation took effect. The earl of
-Murray, the bishops, and abbots arrived on the eve of the opening of
-parliament. The other lords presented themselves later. Argyle alone
-remained on his estates. His two uncles, however, offered excuse for
-him, on the ground of ill health.[281]
-
-Parliament opened on Monday, March 12. The assembly was numerous,
-for the gravity of the occasion was universally understood. ‘This
-parliament,’ said the earl of Angus, ‘is the most _substantial_ that
-was ever seen in Scotland; the three estates are present in great
-force, and the multitude of on-lookers is so great that no more
-could find lodging in the two towns of Edinburgh and Leith.’ The
-first resolution of this important assembly approved the marriage of
-prince Edward and the little Queen Mary, and empowered ambassadors to
-negotiate it with England.[282] The second resolution (Tuesday) was the
-confirmation of the earl of Arran in the office of regent. On Wednesday
-the earl of Angus and his brother were reinstated in the honors and the
-estates of which they had been deprived during their fifteen years’
-exile. On Thursday the most important of all the resolutions of this
-body was to be presented and debated.
-
-Lord Maxwell, whom the folly of James V. had deprived of the command in
-the affair at Solway, was generally known as ‘a man of good intentions
-with respect to the Word of God.’ He had not openly professed the
-evangelical doctrine so long as the cardinal was in possession of the
-supreme power; but his sojourn in England, though short, had induced
-him to take a more decisive course. He rose and introduced a bill
-providing ‘that all the subjects of the kingdom might read the Holy
-Scriptures in their mother-tongue.’ The debate began immediately.
-Dunbar, archbishop of Glasgow, who since the imprisonment of the
-cardinal had become chancellor of the realm, declared that he would
-oppose the motion in his own name and in the name of all the prelates,
-at least until the period when a provincial council of all the clergy
-of Scotland should have decided the question. ‘Wherefore,’ answered
-the friends of the Scriptures, ‘should it not be lawful to men that
-understood no Latin, to use this word of their salvation in the tongue
-they understand, as it was for Latin men to have it in Latin, Grecians
-and Hebrews to have it in their tongues.’ ‘The kirk,’ replied the
-priests, ‘had forbidden all kind of tongues but these three.’ ‘When was
-that inhibition given?’ retorted the friends of the Gospel. ‘Christ
-has commanded his word to be preached to all nations. Now if it ought
-to be preached to all nations, it must be preached in the tongue they
-understand. Now if it be lawful to preach it in all tongues, why shall
-it not be lawful to read it and to hear it read in all tongues? To the
-end that the people may try the spirits according to the commandment of
-the apostle.’[283]
-
-[Sidenote: FREEDOM TO READ THE BIBLE.]
-
-The prelates finding themselves beaten admitted that the Holy
-Scripture might indeed be read in the vulgar tongue, provided that the
-translation were true. Some of the members of the assembly then handed
-to the priests some copies of the Holy Scriptures which they drew from
-their pockets, and begged them to point out any faults they could find
-in them. The prelates, in great embarrassment, began to make search,
-turned over the leaves of the book, opening it at the beginning, at the
-end, and in all parts, taking infinite pains to find some mistake. But
-nothing could be found. At last, ‘Here,’ said one of them, ‘here is
-a passage to be reprehended; love is put in the place of _charity_.’
-‘What difference is there,’ it was replied, ‘betwixt the one and the
-other? It seems you do not understand the Greek term ἀγάπη.’ Before the
-Greek word the priests stood dumb.[284]
-
-The deputies of the burgesses and a part of the nobles then required
-that the reading asked for should be permitted; as well as the reading
-of Christian treatises, until such time as the clergy should give a
-better translation of the Bible. The prelates still stood out; but at
-length, reduced to silence, they submitted, and it was enacted by Act
-of Parliament that ‘all men and women should be free to read the Holy
-Scriptures in their own tongue or in the English tongue, and that all
-acts passed to the contrary should be abolished.’ This bill, which
-passed on March 15, was promulgated on the 19th, and sent into all
-parts of the kingdom by order of the regent. The priests immediately
-began to cry out with one voice against him as the promoter of
-heresy.[285]
-
-This was the first public Act passed in Scotland in favor of religious
-liberty. The victory, says Knox, which Christ Jesus then won over
-the enemies of his truth was of no little importance. The trumpet of
-the Gospel gave at once a certain sound, from Wigton to Inverness,
-from south to north. No small comfort was given to the souls, to the
-families, who till then durst not read the Lord’s Prayer or the Ten
-Commandments in English through fear of being accused of heresy. The
-Bible, which had long lain hidden in some out-of-the-way corner, was
-now openly placed on the tables of pious and well-informed men. The
-New Testament was indeed already widely circulated, but many of those
-who possessed it had shown themselves unworthy of it, never having read
-ten sentences in it through fear of men.
-
-Now they brought out their New Testaments, and ‘they would chop their
-familiars on the cheek with it.’[286] ‘Here,’ said they, ‘this book has
-lain hid under my bed feet these ten years.’ Others, on the contrary,
-exclaimed with joy, ‘Oh, how often have I been in danger for this
-book! how secretly have I stolen away from my wife at midnight to read
-upon it in that lonely silent hour!’ Some, who were minded to turn
-everything to account, made a great parade of their joy, on purpose
-to pay court to the regent, who was then esteemed the most fervent
-Protestant in all Europe. ‘But in general,’ add the historians, ‘the
-knowledge of God was wonderfully increased by the perusal of the sacred
-writings, and the Holy Spirit was given in great abundance to simple
-men.’ Many works were also published at the same time in Scotland,
-which were intended to disclose the abuses of the Romish Church, and
-others of the same character were brought from England. That important
-Act of the Scottish parliament was never repealed.
-
-[Sidenote: MISSION OF SIR R. SADLER.]
-
-While these wholesome measures were being adopted, the alliance of the
-country with England appeared to be growing stronger; and even if a
-purely evangelical reformation was not to be looked for, the ties which
-bound Scotland to Rome must certainly be broken. On Sunday afternoon,
-March 18, the day after the closing of the session of parliament,
-arrived Sir Ralph Sadler, an envoy from Henry VIII. He betook himself
-that very evening to Holyrood, and there learnt from the regent the
-resolutions which had just been taken. Sadler was charged with the duty
-of concluding the marriage contract between Edward and Mary, as well as
-the project of a perpetual alliance between the two countries.[287]
-Sadler, who acted in the business with his utmost energy, soon found
-that the Scots were not prepared to go to the same length as his
-master. ‘In my opinion,’ he wrote (March 27), ‘they had lever suffer
-extremity than come to the obedience and subjection of England: they
-will have their realm free and live within themselves after their own
-laws and customs.... I think assuredly all the nobles and the whole
-temporality of this realm desire the marriage and to join with us
-in perfect friendship: in which case I think also they will utterly
-abandon France.’ This was not what Henry was aiming at. After the death
-of the young princess, the Tudors, in his view, were to inherit her
-kingdom.
-
-The alliance, nevertheless, was concluded. On July 1 the earl of
-Glencairn, Sir George Douglas, Learmont, and Balnaves, the Scottish
-envoys, signed at Greenwich the treaty of marriage and of peace. This
-treaty was solemnly read, August 25, in Holyrood abbey, and was there
-signed, sealed, and approved by the regent and the nobles. The queen
-was to remain in Scotland until she should be ten years old, and then
-be taken into England to be educated. Three Scottish lords should be
-given as hostages to Henry; and in confirmation of the alliance a
-consecrated wafer, according to a Romish usage, was broken between
-the regent and Sir R. Sadler, the representative of Henry VIII. Each
-of them received and ate half of it, in token of their unity and as a
-pledge of their fidelity,--a strange method of cementing an alliance
-which had for its end the destruction of Romish superstitions. The
-treaty was published everywhere as a basis of perpetual agreement; but
-the union of the two nations had still many a storm to encounter.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
- BEATOUN IS LIBERATED AND RECOVERS HIS POWER.--BREACH OF THE
- TREATY.--FRESH PERSECUTION.
-
- (MARCH, 1543.-SUMMER OF 1544.)
-
-
-At present everything was getting on well in Scotland, and the
-continuance of this well-being was all that was desired. The severest
-eye could find nothing to censure in the court of the regent; and he
-acted with so much moderation in the government that not a single
-complaint was heard of his administration. Arran was as much respected
-and obeyed as any king could have been. All men were promising
-themselves a quiet life, when a sudden gust upset everything.
-
-There was one party which was full of wrath at the recent changes.
-The alliance of Scotland with England, the imprisonment of the
-cardinal, the regency of Arran, the freedom conferred on the Holy
-Scriptures,--all these things filled the friends of the papacy with
-excitement and horror, whether at Rome, in France, or in Scotland. The
-earl of Lennox had arrived from Paris for the purpose of giving his
-support to the French party in Scotland; and he flattered himself that
-he should be appointed regent, and even that he should marry the queen
-dowager. The pope had sent the legate Marco Grimani into Scotland, with
-orders to join the cardinal, the earl of Lennox, and all the other
-adversaries of Arran; to fulminate anathemas, and to use all other
-means which he could devise for effecting the fall of the regent and
-the elevation of the cardinal.[288] Grimani and Lennox expected to
-find the material all ready, so that it would be an easy task for them
-to set fire to it. They were not entirely mistaken. The ultramontanes
-of Scotland were in a rage with the regent and with the lords who were
-on his side.[289] Their scheme was to liberate the cardinal, who should
-then go with his adherents to Linlithgow, get possession of the young
-queen and depose the regent.
-
-[Sidenote: THE ABBOT OF PAISLEY.]
-
-Lennox and Grimani had not come from the continent alone. Two Scottish
-priests, who had lived for a long time in France and had there become
-imbued with Roman Catholicism of the deepest dye, landed in Scotland
-in the month of April. These men were likely to do, perhaps, more than
-all others towards the restoration of ultramontanism. They were John
-Hamilton, abbot of Paisley, a natural brother of the regent, and Master
-David Panter,[290] who was afterwards bishop of Ross. Their learning,
-their lowliness, and their religion were much talked of, and people
-thought that their coming would prove a great comfort to the Church of
-God.[291] ‘They will soon,’ it was said, ‘go into the pulpit and truly
-preach Jesus Christ.’
-
-The abbot of Paisley was admitted to intimacy with the regent. He
-might converse with him at any time, and he undertook to break down
-bit by bit the evangelical views of Arran and to sunder his connexion
-with England. First of all, it was necessary to get rid of the two
-evangelical chaplains. The two priests therefore began, immediately
-after their arrival, to disparage the preaching of Williams and Rough.
-The abbot of Paisley had always some fault to find. ‘Their sermons,’
-said he to his brother, ‘are heretical and scandalous.’ The latter,
-naturally weakminded, let himself be caught. Williams was ordered to
-put an end to his preaching, and he set out for England. Rough was
-sent to preach in Kyle, where for some time there had been lovers of
-the Bible. This was not enough. The men of sound judgment and genuine
-piety who were about the regent, and who had contributed to the general
-prosperity and peace, must also be removed out of the way. What
-terrors, what promises, ‘what boxes full of enchantments,’ says Knox,
-these two priests had brought with them from France, no one could tell.
-Be it as it may, some were got rid of by crafty expedients, others by
-false insinuations. ‘If you remain, your life is at stake,’ they said
-to them. At the same time the partisans of the clergy, who had till
-then held themselves aloof from the court, winged their way thither
-like ravens to the carrion.[292]
-
-One day when there was a great gathering at Holyrood, and the regent
-saw around him at the same moment both the faithful attendants who
-had deserved well of their country and the fanatical supporters of
-the cardinal, one of the latter cried out in a voice loud enough for
-Arran and all present to hear him, ‘My lord governor and his friends
-will never be at ease nor quietness till that a dozen of these knaves
-that abuse his grace be hanged.’[293] After that, people saw the men
-whose labors had been so useful to Scotland,--Durham, Borthwick,
-Bothwell, the laird of Grange, Balnaves, Ballanden[294] and Sir David
-Lyndsay,--withdraw from the court, while he who had threatened them
-with the gallows received a pension for his insolent speech.
-
-The liberation of the cardinal could be no longer deferred. He was
-imprisoned at Dalkeith on January 26, was removed thence to Seaton,
-next to Blackness castle on the Forth, and finally to St. Andrews, the
-seat of his archbishopric. There he was set at liberty at the request,
-especially, of the queen-mother, who had never ceased her intercession
-for him.[295] Once free, this arrogant man, exasperated by the affront
-which had been offered him, thought only of recovering his own power
-and of reëstablishing the cause of the papacy.
-
-[Sidenote: INTRIGUES OF BEATOUN.]
-
-He now had frequent communication with Mary of Guise, and shared her
-indignation at the favors granted to the Scottish nobles just returned
-from England, who had passed from exile to the most influential
-positions. They resolved to do their utmost to reëstablish the alliance
-with Francis I. and the pope. The cardinal completely won over the earl
-of Bothwell, and the Lords Home, Buccleugh, and others. He induced
-such of them as were on the frontier to make inroads on the English
-territory. He assembled at St. Andrews, on July 6, the earls of Lennox,
-Argyle, Huntley, and Bothwell, Lord Home, and the other noblemen and
-gentlemen who were favorable to the pope; and at this conference they
-determined to oppose the regent, who instead of executing their designs
-was only bent on promoting heretical opinions.[296]
-
-Meanwhile Beatoun found opportunities for secret interviews with
-the regent’s brother, who had everything in his own hands; for this
-bastard was as remarkable for force of character as his legitimate
-brother was for the want of it. The cardinal did not confine himself to
-intrigues in high places, but he had it at heart to win the multitude,
-and he tried all imaginable schemes in order to succeed.[297] When
-he thought that he had at last secured his position, both above and
-below, he convoked the clergy at St. Andrews. The bishop, abbot, and
-primate unfolded before this assembly all the dangers which were then
-impending over Scotland. ‘In order to avert them,’ said he, ‘contribute
-generously from your purses, and urge all your friends to do the same.
-Tell them that their property and their lives are at stake. Nay, more
-than that,’ he exclaimed, ‘our task is to prevent the ruin which
-is threatening the universal church of the pope.’[298] The clergy
-declared that they would place all their resources at his disposal, and
-determined to set on foot a general subscription. ‘The cardinal,’ wrote
-the ambassador Sadler to Lord Parr, brother of the Queen of England,
-‘the cardinal here hath not only stirred almost this whole realm
-against the governor, but also hath procured the earl Bothwell [and
-others] to stir all the mischief and trouble they can on the Borders,
-and to make roads and incursions into England, only of intent to break
-the peace and to breed contention and breach between both realms.’[299]
-At the same time the monks were preaching passionately against the
-union with England; and the population, excited by them, was in
-agitation and ready to revolt, threatening those who were opposed to
-the Church of Rome, and even insulting the English ambassador. Jesters
-used to assail both him and his suite with insolent speeches. But the
-envoy of Henry VIII., knowing that the one matter of moment for his
-master was to succeed, took these indignities patiently, through fear
-of hastening a rupture.
-
-[Sidenote: THE HOSTAGES REFUSED.]
-
-As Scotland was under obligation to give hostages to England as
-security for the execution of the treaties, the cardinal set himself
-strenuously against the measure, not only with those of his own
-faction, but also with those of the other side. He was prodigal of
-promises to the relations and the friends of the intended hostages,
-in the hope of inducing them to oppose their delivery to England. The
-same influences were brought to bear on the regent. On the day fixed
-for giving up the lords to the English ambassador, the latter went
-to the regent, and after making complaint of the insults to which
-he was exposed, demanded the hostages. The regent promised that the
-perpetrators of the outrages of which Sadler complained should be
-punished. ‘As for the hostages,’ he added, ‘the authority with which I
-am invested is of such a nature that, while I have rights as against
-the queen’s subjects, they also have their rights as against me. You
-are yourself a witness of the immense agitation stirred up by the
-cardinal.[300] All my plans are upset, and, carried away by the force
-of popular passion, I can no longer answer for anything.’[301] Arran
-was indeed wanting in the strength to stand against such a storm as
-was conjured up by the cardinal. Weakminded himself, he bent before
-the violence of those who had powerful convictions. Sadler, indignant
-at his refusal, called upon the Scots who had been captives in England
-to return to their confinement, as they had pledged themselves to do
-in case the treaty should be violated. Kennedy, earl of Cassilis, was
-the only one who kept his word. He set out for London, in spite of the
-pressing entreaties of his own circle.[302] Henry, touched by this
-act of good faith, generously sent him back to Scotland with his two
-brothers who had remained as hostages.
-
-The clerical reaction was steadily gathering fresh force. In pursuance
-of the colloquy of July 6, the nobles hostile to the regent assembled
-some troops; and on July 21 they arrived, at the head of ten thousand
-men, at Leith, the port of Edinburgh. At the same moment Arran, the
-earl of Angus, Lord Maxwell, and their friends were at Edinburgh, at
-the head of their armed force. There was equal animation on both sides.
-They might have been likened to two electric clouds, whose lightning
-was ready to burst forth with violence. However, the two opposed bodies
-of troops remained motionless for five or six days. ‘What will be the
-end of this,’ wrote Sadler to Lord Parr, ‘I cannot tell; but my opinion
-is that they will not fight for all their bragges.’[303] In fact, they
-did not fight.
-
-[Sidenote: IRRESOLUTION OF ARRAN.]
-
-The two queens were at Linlithgow palace, in which the young Mary was
-born. The regent and the cardinal each gave out that the queens were
-on his side, but all the sympathies of the queen-mother were with the
-cardinal. The latter, accompanied by the earls of Argyle, Huntley,
-and Bothwell, and by many bishops, went to Linlithgow. Supposing that
-the princesses were not safe there, he persuaded them to go with him
-to Stirling, which they did. These lords talked without reserve among
-themselves, and with the queen, of deposing the regent, on the ground
-of disobedience to their holy mother the Church. This greatly alarmed
-Arran, who at that same time was persecuted by the abbot of Paisley,
-his natural brother. ‘Consider,’ said the latter, ‘the danger to
-which you expose yourself by allowing the authority of the pope to be
-impaired. It is the authority on which your own rests.’ As Arran was in
-dread of the anger of Henry VIII., the abbot exalted to the utmost the
-power of the King of France, and the great advantages of an alliance
-with him. But above everything else he insisted on the obligation of
-making peace with the Church, ‘out of whose pale,’ he repeated, ‘there
-is no salvation.’ The poor regent, weak, inconstant, and not at all
-grounded in the faith of the Gospel, halted between the wish to follow
-the advice of his brother and the shame involved in abandoning his
-party and giving the precedence to the cardinal. He wavered between
-the pope and the Gospel, between France and England. His irresolution
-was torture to him; he endured bitter pangs. The abbot never wearied
-of repeating the question, ‘What will ye do? will you then destroy
-yourself and your house for ever?’[304] He hesitated no longer. Beaten
-on all sides by contending waves; conscious that his forces were
-inferior to those of his adversaries; hemmed in by the snares of the
-cardinal, who chose rather to gain him by terror than to subdue him
-by arms; abandoned by many of the nobles; no longer in favor with the
-people, who were offended by his weakness; lowered in the esteem of
-his own friends, and disgraced in the eyes of the English, the unhappy
-man at last took the fatal leap. Nine days after the ratification of
-the alliance with England, and only six days after he had published
-a proclamation against the cardinal, Arran secretly stole away from
-Holyrood palace, betook himself to Stirling on September 3, and threw
-himself into the arms of his cousin Beatoun.
-
-This was not all. He was resolved also to throw himself into the arms
-of the pope; desirous only of doing so without too much ostentation,
-and fancying, says Buchanan, that he could thus lessen the infamy of
-this base deed. For this purpose the convent of the Franciscans was
-chosen.[305] The queen-mother attended. For a Guise the scene was one
-of exquisite enjoyment such as Mary would not willingly lose. Some of
-the courtiers who were devoted to Rome were also present. There, in the
-dim light of the chapel, that weak man, to whom people had been looking
-for the triumph of the Reformation in Scotland, fondly fancying that
-he was performing a secret action, knelt down before the altar, humbly
-confessed his errors, trampled under foot the oaths which he had taken
-to his own country and to England, renounced the evangelical profession
-of Jesus Christ, submitted to the pope, and received absolution of
-the cardinal.[306] The spectators exulted in Arran’s humiliation. The
-wretched man continued indeed to be regent in name, but from that hour
-he possessed nothing more than the phantom of authority, having for his
-own governor the lord cardinal. He therefore fell into contempt, and
-those even for whom he had sacrificed everything had no respect for
-him. ‘He who will save his life shall lose it.’
-
-The report of his perjury spread rapidly abroad. Few were surprised
-to hear it, but a great many were angry. The English ambassador wrote
-to him as follows: ‘Forasmuch as I do hear sundry reports of your
-sudden departure to Stirling, which if they were true in part ... might
-highly touch your honor: ... I cannot well satisfy myself without
-the address of these my letters unto your lordship, only to require
-of your goodness to signify unto me how you do remain towards the
-king’s majesty and the accomplishment of your oath and promise afore
-expressed. I beseech your lordship to let me know the truth by your
-own advertisement, to the intent that I may undelayedly write the same
-to the king’s majesty before he shall receive any sinister or wrong
-informations in that behalf, which might percase alter his highness’
-affection and good opinion conceived towards you. Whereof for my part I
-would be right loath.’[307]
-
-[Sidenote: CORONATION OF MARY STUART.]
-
-Another ceremony followed that of the abjuration. It was the coronation
-of the little queen, which took place on September 9, with great
-pomp. The alliance between Scotland and France was renewed, and fresh
-promises were made to Francis I. The cardinal thus brilliantly opened
-his reign, and by placing the crown on the head of a little girl, he
-said to himself that at least he had no need to fear that the child
-would take it into her head to thwart his schemes.[308]
-
-Henry VIII. was in consternation. The abjuration of the regent and the
-political revolution which accompanied it upset his most cherished
-plans. But the ratification of the treaty with him was so recent
-that the question might be raised whether the whole of this Stirling
-business was anything more than a transient mistake, the fruit of
-Arran’s weakness. He therefore enjoined his ambassador to use his
-utmost endeavors to recall the regent to his first intentions. It
-appeared to Henry impossible that Arran should act in a manner so
-foolish, so dishonorable, so cruel, so pitiless for Scotland, as not
-only to throw away all the advantages offered to himself, but still
-more to give up his country to fire and sword and to all the calamities
-of a terrible war. All these considerations urged by Sadler were
-fruitless. At length, indignant at the perjury and the insult, Henry
-recalled his ambassador, declared war on Scotland, ordered the seizure
-of the numerous Scottish ships which lay in his ports, threw into
-prison the seamen and the merchants, and sent a herald to announce to
-the Scots ‘that they had covenanted with a prince of honor that would
-not suffer their disloyalty unpunished and unrevenged, whose power and
-puissance, by God’s grace, is and shall be sufficient against them to
-make them know and feel their own faults and offences. Fear,’ said he,
-‘the hand of God over you.’ It was war, war with all its horrors of
-fire and sword, that Henry in his wrath had determined to wage with
-Scotland. ‘You shall beat down and overthrow the castle of Edinburgh,
-burn and sack the capital, with Holyrood and Leith and the villages
-around, putting man, woman, and child to the sword without exception.
-To overthrow St. Andrews so as the upper stone may be the nether, and
-not one stick stand by another.’[309] The wrath of Henry was terrible;
-but nothing could alarm the presumptuous cardinal. When he heard of the
-imprisonment of the Scottish merchants and seamen, he smiled and said
-jestingly, ‘When we have conquered England we will make compensation to
-the merchants.’
-
-[Sidenote: THE EARL OF LENNOX.]
-
-When the cardinal came out of prison, his eyes had fallen on two men
-who stood in his way. One of these was the regent, and he had got rid
-of him by becoming his master. The other was the earl of Lennox, a man
-formidable by his rank and his pretensions, who had even supposed it
-possible that he might marry the queen-mother. But Mary of Guise, like
-all her kindred, was a fanatical devotee of Rome, and at the instance
-of the cardinal she prayed the King of France to recall Lennox on any
-specious pretext, adding that his residence in Scotland might lead to
-a disturbance of peace. Lennox saw that they were trifling with him.
-He was quite as versatile as Arran but more capable, and seeing that
-he had lost the favor of France, he offered his services to the King
-of England, who eagerly accepted them. Lennox was then looked upon as
-the head of Scottish Protestantism. The two foremost lords of Scotland
-had performed a feat of what is vulgarly called _chassé-croisée_. The
-leader of the Protestants had become a papist, and the man of the
-court of Francis I. had turned Protestant. Instead of the daughter of
-the Guises, he married Lady Margaret Douglas, a niece of Henry VIII.
-That is how men of the world manage matters. Evangelical religion
-had not lost much in losing Arran. Neither had it gained more by
-acquiring Lennox. These men were only moved by political interests, and
-Scottish Protestantism more than any other was to reject these shameful
-combinations of Christ and Baal, and was to have one king alone, Jesus
-Christ.
-
-The cardinal, victorious along the whole line, set himself immediately
-to the work which he had most at heart,--to crush the Reformation. The
-law which authorized the reading of Holy Scripture had borne its fruit,
-and ‘in sundry parts of Scotland,’ says the chronicler, ‘thereby were
-opened the eyes of the elect of God to see the truth and abhor the
-papistical abominations.’[310] This abhorrence might possibly drive
-them to deplorable excesses, an instance of which we are soon to see.
-
-There were at Perth, on the left bank of the pleasant river Tay, some
-friends of the Reformation. Endowed for the most part with genuine
-piety, they held meetings, read the Holy Scriptures together, searched
-out their meaning, and gave or listened to the exposition of them.[311]
-
-They had also at times simple social meals together. Certain priests
-of the town, with whom they were connected, and whose character
-they esteemed without sharing their opinions, were invited to these
-gatherings. The churchmen ate, drank, and talked with them, and thought
-themselves fortunate to be invited to these honest men’s houses.[312]
-This circumstance shows a large-heartedness among these Christian folk
-of Perth, which could see and appreciate whatever good qualities their
-adversaries possessed. They did not, however, tie themselves down
-to the Roman rules about meat-days and fish-days, rules from which
-exemption may be had for a little money: and one Friday it happened
-that a goose appeared on their table.
-
-Three of these people, Robert Lamb, William Anderson, and James
-Raveleson, daring characters and given to raillery, were among those
-who were taken up with Reform on its negative side. They were disgusted
-at the abuses of the monastic life, and the Franciscans most of all
-offended them. The sight of one of these mendicant friars in the
-street, with his brown frock, his girdle of cord, his cowl, and his
-bare feet, excited in them the keenest aversion. ‘These monks,’ as has
-been said by a very distinguished Catholic priest, ‘feign chastity, but
-they know what voluptuousness is, and they often outdo men of the world
-in luxurious indulgence.’[313] And yet these monks pretend that all
-that is needed for salvation is to put on a frock of their order at the
-moment of death. In the judgment of Anderson and of his two friends,
-the founder of that order, who was nevertheless a better man than
-most of his successors, must have been the devil himself. They took
-therefore an image of Francis of Assisi, nailed rams’ horns on the head
-and hung a cow’s tail behind, and having thus given to it the semblance
-of a demon, they hung it. The Scots are not jesters by nature. They are
-on the contrary earnest and energetic towards those whom they oppose;
-and this blameworthy execution was carried out by these three men with
-imperturbable gravity.[314]
-
-[Sidenote: RAVELESON AND LAMB.]
-
-Among these reformed Christians of Perth there were some manifestations
-of opinion characterized by simplicity and decision, which however
-occasionally took a strange shape. One of the women who frequented the
-evangelical meetings, Hellen Stirke, was near her confinement, and in
-her hour of travail, when surrounded by female friends and neighbors,
-all of them fervent worshippers of the Virgin Mary, she called upon
-God and upon God alone in the name of Jesus Christ. The women said
-to her--‘You ought to call upon the Virgin. Is not Mary immaculate
-as Christ is, and even above him as first source of redemption? Is
-she not the queen of heaven, the head of the church?’ The Franciscan
-friars were continually impressing on the minds of these good women
-the notion that no one could obtain a blessing from God ‘except by the
-dispensation of his pious mother.’[315] Hellen revered Mary as a holy
-and blessed woman, but she held her to be of the same nature as other
-women, and she told her neighbors so. It was of his mercy, as Mary
-herself said, that God had looked upon the low estate of his servant.
-That her friends might better understand her meaning, she boldly added,
-‘If I had lived in the days of the Virgin, God might have looked
-likewise to my humility and base estate, as he did to the Virgin’s,
-and might have made me the mother of Christ.’[316] The women about her
-could not believe their own ears, and her words, reported in the town
-by her neighbors, were counted execrable in the judgment of the clergy
-and of the multitude.
-
-If St. Francis was Anderson’s nightmare, the pope was Raveleson’s.
-But the latter gave expression to his sentiments in a less insulting
-fashion. When he had built a house of four stories, he placed at the
-top of his staircase, by way of ornament, over the last baluster and
-the supporting tablet which masked it, the triple diadem of the pope,
-carved in wood. This was not a very criminal act: a good papist might
-have done the like. But Raveleson, doubtless, meant to show thereby
-that in his house the pope was consigned to the top story. Be that as
-it may, he paid dear for it.
-
-These Protestants of Perth were certainly originals, of which not many
-copies were to be found. There were some of them, however, who were
-free from these eccentricities while displaying no less courage. On one
-occasion, when a monk named Spence very loudly asserted in the church
-that ‘prayer made to saints is so necessary that without it there could
-be no hope of salvation to man,’ Robert Lamb rose and accused him
-before the whole assembly of teaching false doctrines. ‘In the name of
-God,’ said he, ‘I adjure you to speak the truth.’ The friar, stricken
-with fear, promised to do so; but there was so much excitement and
-tumult in the church that the monk could not make himself heard, and
-Robert, at the peril of his life, barely escaped the violence of the
-people. The women, above all, uttered piercing screams, and urged on
-the multitude to the most cruel actions.[317]
-
-[Sidenote: THE PERTH PROTESTANTS.]
-
-The cardinal, in January, 1544, seeing that his authority was firmly
-established, thought that the time was come for suppressing the
-Reformation and glorifying the pope. Having heard of what was going on
-at Perth, he set out for that place, taking with him the regent, some
-of the chief lords, bishops, and judges. When he reached Perth on St.
-Paul’s day, January 19, he ordered the seizure of Robert Lamb, William
-Anderson, James Hunter, James Raveleson, James Finlason, and Hellen
-Stirke his wife,[318] and had them imprisoned the same evening in the
-Spay Tower.
-
-On the following morning the prisoners appeared before their judge.
-They were accused on several grounds, and particularly of having met
-together to hear the Holy Scriptures read. A special charge was made
-against Lamb of having interrupted a friar. ‘It is the duty of no
-man,’ he answered, ‘who understands and knows the truth to hear the
-same impugned without contradiction. There are sundry here present in
-judgment who, while they know what is true, are consenting to what is
-false; but they will have to bear the burden in God’s presence.’[319]
-The six prisoners were condemned to death, and were cruelly treated.
-Many of the inhabitants of Perth were deeply interested in their case,
-and appealed to the regent to save their lives. But when Arran spoke
-a word to the cardinal in their behalf, the latter replied, ‘If you
-refuse to take part in the execution of this sentence, I will depose
-you.’ Arran trembled, and held his peace.
-
-The friends of the victims, then, remembering that certain priests in
-the town had frequently sat at the tables of the accused, entreated
-them to bear in mind their old friends who were then in misfortune, and
-to intercede with the cardinal in their behalf. But these poor priests
-were terrified at the thought that the cardinal might hear of their
-former relations with the condemned, and they answered that they would
-much rather see them dead than living. That was their way of showing
-their gratitude. So the chronicler, whose phrase is not always elegant,
-adds, ‘So cruel are these beasts, from the lowest to the highest.’
-
-Agitation was increasing in the town. The cardinal had ready a great
-band of armed men, who were charged to conduct the victims to the place
-of execution. Robert Lamb, standing at the foot of the gallows, said to
-the people, ‘Fear God, and forsake the pope.’ Then he announced that
-calamity and ruin would not be slow to light upon the cardinal.[320]
-The five Christians comforted one another with the hope ‘that they
-should sup together in the kingdom of heaven that night.’
-
-Hellen desired earnestly to die with her husband, but this was not
-permitted her. At the moment of their parting she gave him a kiss
-and said, ‘Husband, rejoice, for we have lived together many joyful
-days; but this day in which we must die ought to be most joyful unto
-us both, because we must have joy forever. Therefore I will not bid
-you good-night, for we shall suddenly meet with joy in the kingdom
-of heaven.’ She was then taken to a pond to be drowned. She was
-holding her infant in her arms and giving it suck for the last time.
-But this pathetic incident did not touch the pitiless hearts of her
-executioners. She had entreated her neighbors to take care of her
-children. She took the ‘sucking bairn’ from her breast and gave it
-to the nurse, and was then flung into the water. The cardinal was
-satisfied.[321]
-
-From Perth the cardinal passed into Forfarshire, always dragging along
-with him the unhappy regent. Many inhabitants of that region appeared
-before him for having committed the hateful crime of reading the New
-Testament. Among them was a Dominican named John Rogers, a man of piety
-and learning, who, by preaching Christ in Forfarshire, had led many
-souls into peace. He was confined with others in the castle of St.
-Andrews, and a few days later his dead body was found at the foot of
-the walls. It was very generally believed that the cardinal had ordered
-him to be put to death in his dungeon, and to be thrown over the
-walls. A report was then circulated that the prisoner, in attempting
-to escape, had fallen on the rocks and been killed. A considerable
-number of Scots, among them Sir Henry Elder, John Elder, Walter Piper,
-Lawrence Pullar, and others were banished, merely on suspicion of
-having read the Gospel.[322]
-
-[Sidenote: THE ENGLISH FLEET AT LEITH.]
-
-The cardinal now returned to Edinburgh, and took the regent with him.
-He was perfectly satisfied with his campaign, and was meditating
-fresh exploits of the same kind, when, at the very moment of his
-saying ‘Peace and security,’ a fleet appeared at sea. Messengers came
-suddenly to announce to the regent and the cardinal that a multitude of
-vessels were entering the Firth of Forth, and were making for Leith and
-Edinburgh. ‘It is the English,’ said most people, ‘and it is greatly to
-be feared that they will land.’ The cardinal dissembled his anxiety,
-affected to smile and to jest, and said, with a contemptuous air, ‘It
-is but the island fleet; they are come to make us a show and to put
-us in fear. I shall lodge the men-of-war in my eye that shall land in
-Scotland.’[323] Then he went to his dinner-table, and talked with every
-one as though no danger were threatening. All Edinburgh was eager to
-gaze on the wonderful vessels, and great crowds assembled for that
-purpose on the castle hill and on the heights near the town. ‘But what
-then can it all mean?’ people said to one another. By a little after
-six o’clock in the evening more than two hundred ships had cast anchor
-in Leith roads. The admiral had a ship’s boat launched, which began
-carefully to take soundings from Granton craigs to East Leith. All
-sensible men understood what it meant, but if any one of them uttered
-what he thought, the clerics shrugged their shoulders. All men went to
-bed, just as if those ships had brought their broadsides to bear for
-the defence of the sleepers.
-
-At daybreak on Sunday, May 4, Lord Lisle, who was in command of the
-fleet, ordered the disembarkation. The pinnaces and other small vessels
-approached as near as they could to the shore, while the larger vessels
-discharged their men into the long-boats, and so they got to land.
-By ten o’clock the operation was completed, and the spectators from
-Edinburgh beheld, to their great astonishment, more than ten thousand
-men under arms. The cardinal and the regent, dropping their false show
-of calmness, appeared now very much alarmed, and, forgetting their
-ridiculous bluster and bragging, jumped into a carriage and fled as
-fast as their horses could carry them. They did not halt till they
-had put twenty miles of country between them and the danger which
-frightened them. Before starting they had given orders, for the purpose
-of pacifying the English, that the earl of Angus, Sir George Douglas,
-and two other lords, advocates of the English alliance, who had been
-cast into prison at Blackness, should be set at liberty. This was done
-that night, and Sir George said, merrily, ‘I thank King Henry and my
-gentle masters of England.’[324]
-
-The troops which had landed entered Leith, under the command of
-the earl of Hertford, between twelve and one o’clock, after having
-dispersed a small body of men which resisted them. As they found dinner
-ready in all the houses, and the tables loaded with wines and victuals,
-they sat down and refreshed themselves. On Monday, May 5, two thousand
-English horsemen came from Berwick to reinforce the infantry, and the
-whole army, after taking one day’s rest, forced the gates of Edinburgh
-on Wednesday and entered the town. People called to mind the terrible
-threats of Henry VIII. The town was first pillaged and then burnt. The
-palace of Holyrood, Leith and the environs shared the same fate. The
-English were not able to take the castle, and after having satiated
-themselves with pillage, burning, and eating, they carried off their
-plunder to the ships. The English army returned to their own country
-by way of Berwick, sacking and burning Haddington and Dunbar, castles,
-country seats, and all the districts through which they passed. The
-army had lost only forty men.[325]
-
-Henry VIII. had entertained the vastest projects. His aims were that
-Scotland should renounce the French alliance; that the queen should be
-placed in his own household; that the title of elector of the kingdom
-should be given to him; that Lennox should be named regent in the place
-of Arran; and that the Word of God should be preached, of course in his
-own way. This appears from the instructions given by himself to the
-governors of the marches.[326] But he felt it necessary to postpone his
-scheme, and to content himself with the chastisement inflicted on the
-capital. We have to encounter facts such as these in the history of
-every people and of all ages. It is impossible to narrate or to read
-them without horror. Happily, Scotland at this epoch offers to our
-notice facts of a quite different kind, which are within the province
-of Christian civilization.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
- WISHART: HIS MINISTRY AND HIS MARTYRDOM.
-
- (SUMMER OF 1544-MARCH, 1546.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: GEORGE WISHART.]
-
-In the summer of 1544, shortly after the events of which we have
-just spoken, a pious man, George Wishart, returned from England to
-Scotland. He was a brother of the laird of Pittarow, in the county of
-Mearns. While at Montrose, in 1538, he had read the Greek New Testament
-with several youths whom he was educating, and had been cited by the
-bishop of Brechin to appear before him. Wishart had then retired to
-Cambridge, and there he devoted himself to study for six years. In
-1544, the Scottish commissioners who came into England respecting
-the treaty with Henry VIII. took him back with them, to Scotland. He
-went first to Montrose, his old abode, and thence to Dundee, where he
-wished to preach the Word of God. His personal appearance was entirely
-prepossessing. He was amiable, unassuming, polite. His chief delight
-was to learn and to teach. He was tall; his black hair was cut short,
-his beard was long. His physiognomy was indicative of a somewhat
-melancholy temperament. He wore a French cap of the best material, a
-gown which fell to his heels, and a black doublet. There was about
-his whole person an air of decorum and grace. He spoke with modesty
-and with great seriousness. He slept on straw, and his charity had
-no end, night nor day. He loved all men. He gave gifts, consolation,
-assistance: he was studious of all means of doing good to all and hurt
-to none. He distributed periodically among the poor various articles
-of clothing, always ‘saving his French cap, which he kept the whole
-year of my being with him,’ says the Cambridge student who drew this
-portrait of Wishart just before the latter set out for Scotland.[327]
-
-Wishart’s reputation having preceded him, a multitude of hearers
-gathered about him at Dundee. He expounded in a connected series of
-discourses the doctrine of salvation, according to the Epistle to the
-Romans, and his knowledge and eloquence excited general admiration.
-But the priests declared everywhere that if he were allowed to go on,
-the Roman system must inevitably fall to the ground. They therefore
-sought the assistance of an influential layman, Robert Mill, who had
-once professed the truth, but had since forsaken it. One day, just
-as Wishart was finishing his discourse, Mill rose in the church and
-forbade him in the queen’s name and the regent’s to trouble them any
-more. Wishart was silent for awhile, with his eyes turned heavenward,
-and then looking sorrowfully on the assembly he said--‘God is witness
-that I never minded [intended] your trouble, but your comfort. But I am
-assured that to refuse God’s Word and to chase from you his messenger
-shall not preserve you from trouble, but shall bring you into it. I
-have offered unto you the word of salvation, and with the hazard of
-my life I have remained among you. But and [if] trouble unlooked for
-apprehend you, turn to God, for He is merciful. But if ye turn not at
-the first he will visit you with fire and sword.’ When he had thus
-spoken, he came down from the pulpit and went away at once into the
-western part of Scotland.[328]
-
-[Sidenote: HIS PREACHING.]
-
-Having arrived at Ayr, he preached there to large numbers of people
-who gladly received his words. Dunbar, bishop of Glasgow, as soon
-as he was informed of it, hastened to the town with a body of men
-and took possession of the church in order to prevent Wishart from
-preaching. The reformer’s friends were indignant at this step. The earl
-of Glencairn, the laird of Loch Norris,[329] and several gentlemen of
-Kyle went to Wishart and offered to get possession of the church and
-to place him in the pulpit. ‘No,’ said the evangelist, wisely, ‘the
-bishop’s sermon will not much hurt: let us go to the market-cross.’
-They did so, and he there preached with so much energy and animation
-that some of his hearers, who were enemies of the truth till that day,
-received it gladly. Meanwhile the bishop was in the church with a very
-small audience. There was hardly anyone to hear him but some vestry
-attendants and some poor dependents. They were expecting a sermon, but
-he had forgotten to put one in his pocket. He made them the best excuse
-he could. ‘Hold us still for your bishop,’ he said, ‘and we shall
-provide better the next time.’ He then with haste departed from the
-town, not a little ashamed of his enterprise.[330]
-
-Wishart persevered in his work, and his reputation spread all around.
-The men of Mauchlin came and asked him to preach the Gospel to them
-on the following Sunday. But the sheriff of Ayr heard of it, and sent
-a body of men in the night to post themselves about the church. ‘We
-will enter by force,’ said Hugh Campbell to Wishart. ‘Brother,’ replied
-the evangelist, ‘it is the word of peace which God sends by me; the
-blood of no man shall be shed this day for the preaching of it. I find
-that Christ Jesus oftener preached in the desert, at the seaside, and
-other places judged profane, than he did in the temple of Jerusalem.’
-He then withdrew to the country, saying to the people who followed him
-that the Saviour was ‘as potent upon the fields as in the kirk.’ He
-climbed up a dike raised on the edge of the moorland, and there, in the
-fair warm day, preached for more than three hours. One man present,
-Lawrence Ranken, laird of Shield, who had previously led a wicked life,
-was impressed by what he heard. ‘The tears ran from his eyes in such
-abundance that all men wondered.’[331] Converted by that discourse,
-the laird of Shield gave evidence in his whole after-life that his
-conversion was genuine. Wishart preached with like success in the whole
-district. The harvest was great, says one historian.
-
-The reformer heard on a sudden that the plague had broken out at Dundee
-four days after he left the town, and that it was raging cruelly. He
-resolved instantly to go there. ‘They are now in trouble and they need
-comfort,’ he said to those who would fain hold him back: ‘perchance
-this hand of God will make them now to magnify and reverence that word
-which before, for the fear of men, they set at light part.’
-
-He reached Dundee in August, 1544, and announced the same morning that
-he would preach. It was necessary to keep apart the plague-stricken
-from those who were in health, and for that purpose he took his station
-at the east gate of the town. Those who were in health had their
-place within the city, and those who were sick remained without. Such
-a distribution of an audience was surely never seen before! Wishart
-opened the Bible and read these words--‘He sent his word and healed
-them.’ (Ps. cvii. 20.) ‘The mercy of God,’ said he, ‘is prompt to fall
-on all such as truly turn to Him, and the malice of men can neither eik
-nor pair [add to nor diminish] his gentle visitation.’[332]--‘We do not
-fear death,’ said some of his hearers; ‘nay, we judge them more happy
-that should depart, than such as should remain behind.’ That east gate
-of Dundee (Cowgate) was left standing in memory of Wishart when the
-town walls were taken down at the close of the eighteenth century, and
-it is still carefully preserved.
-
-Wishart was not satisfied with speech alone, he personally visited the
-sick, fearlessly exposing himself to infection in the most extreme
-cases. He took care that the sick should have what they needed, and the
-poor were as well provided for as the rich.
-
-The town was in great distress lest the mouth from which so much
-sweetness flowed should be closed.
-
-[Sidenote: ATTEMPT TO MURDER WISHART.]
-
-Nevertheless, at the cardinal’s instigation, says Knox, a priest named
-Wighton took a sword, and concealing it under his gown mixed with the
-crowd as if he were a mere hearer, and stood waiting at the foot of the
-steps by which Wishart must come down. The discourse was finished, the
-people dispersed. Wishart, whose glance was keen and whose judgment was
-swift, noticed as he came down the steps a priest who kept his hand
-under his gown, and as soon as he came near him he said, ‘My friend,
-what would ye do?’ At the same moment he laid hold of the priest’s hand
-and snatched the weapon from him. The assassin fell at his feet and
-confessed his fault. Swiftly ran the report that a priest had attempted
-to kill the reformer, and the sick who heard it turned back and cried,
-‘Deliver the traitor to us, or else we will take him by force.’ And so
-indeed they rushed on him. But Wishart put his arms round the assassin.
-‘Whosoever troubles him,’ said he, ‘shall trouble me, for he has hurt
-me in nothing.’ His friends however insisted that for the future one of
-them, in arms, should accompany him whithersoever he went.[333]
-
-When the plague had ceased at Dundee, Wishart thought that, as God had
-put an end to that battle, he called him to another. It was indeed
-proposed that he should hold a public disputation. He inquired of the
-bishops where he should be heard. But first he went to Montrose ‘to
-salute the kirk there,’ and although sometimes preaching the Gospel,
-he was ‘most part in secret meditation, in the which he was so earnest
-that night and day he would continue in it.’[334]
-
-[Sidenote: HIS NIGHT OF PRAYER.]
-
-While there he received a letter purporting to be written by his friend
-the laird of Kynneir, who being sick desired him to come to him.[335]
-It was a trick of the cardinal. Sixty armed horsemen were lying in
-wait behind a hill to take him prisoner. He set out unsuspecting,
-but when he had gone some distance, he suddenly stopped in the midst
-of the friends who were accompanying him and seemed absorbed in deep
-musing. Then he turned and went back. What mean you?’ said his friends,
-wondering. ‘I will go no further,’ he replied: ‘I am forbidden of
-God. I am assured there is treason.’ Pointing to the hill he added,
-‘Let some of you go to yon place, and tell me what they find.’ These
-brave men reported with all speed what they saw. ‘I know,’ said he,
-‘that I shall end my life in that bloodthirsty man’s hands, but it
-will not be of this manner.’ Shortly after, he set out for Edinburgh
-in spite of the entreaties of the laird of Dundee, and went to lodge
-at Innergowrie at the house of a Christian man named James Watson. A
-little after midnight two men of good credit who were in the house,
-William Spalding and John Watson, heard him open his door and go down
-stairs. They followed him secretly, and saw him go into the garden and
-walk for some time up and down an alley. Wishart, persuaded that he was
-drawing near to his end, and thinking of the horrors of martyrdom and
-of his own weakness, was greatly agitated and felt the need of calling
-upon God that he might not fail in the midst of the conflict. He was
-heard sighing and groaning, and just as day began to dawn, he was seen
-to fall on his knees and afterwards on his face. For a whole hour his
-two friends heard confused sounds of his prayer, interrupted now and
-then by his tears. At length he seemed to grow quiet and to have found
-rest for his soul. He rose and went quietly back to his chamber. In
-the morning his anxious friends began to ask him where he had been.
-He evaded the question. ‘Be plain with us,’ they said, ‘for we heard
-your groans, yea, we heard your mourning, and saw you both upon your
-knees and upon your face.’--‘I had rather ye had been in your beds,’
-said he, ‘for I was scarce well occupied.’ And as they urged him, he
-spoke to them of his approaching death and of his need of God’s help.
-They were much saddened and wept. Wishart said to them--‘God shall
-send you comfort after me. This realm shall be illuminated with the
-light of Christ’s Evangel as clearly as ever was any realm since the
-days of the apostles. The house of God shall be built into it: yea, it
-shall not want, whatsoever the enemy imagine to the contrary, the very
-cape-stone’ [top-stone].[336] Meaning, adds Knox, that the house of God
-should there be brought to full perfection. Wishart went on--‘Neither
-shall this be long to; there shall not many suffer after me, till
-that the glory of God shall evidently appear and shall once triumph
-in despite of Satan. But alas! if the people shall be afterwards
-unthankful, then fearful and terrible shall the plagues be that after
-shall follow.’ Wishart soon after went into the Lothians, i. e. into
-the shires of Linlithgow, Edinburgh, and Haddington.
-
-A man like Wishart assuredly belongs to the history of the Reformation.
-But there is another motive leading us to narrate these circumstances.
-The great reformer of Scotland was trained in the school of Wishart.
-Among those who followed the latter from place to place as he preached
-the Gospel was John Knox. He had left St. Andrews because he could not
-endure either the superstition of the Romish system or the cardinal’s
-despotism, and having betaken himself to the south of Scotland he had
-been for some time tutor in the family of Douglas of Langniddrie. He
-had openly professed the evangelical doctrine, and the clergy in their
-wrath had declared him a heretic and deprived him of the priesthood.
-Knox, attracted by the preaching and the life of Wishart, attached
-himself to him and became his beloved disciple. In addition to his
-public discourses, to which he listened with eager attention, he
-received also instructions in private. He undertook for Wishart a duty
-which was full of danger, but which he discharged joyfully. During
-Wishart’s evangelical excursions he kept watch for the safety of his
-person, and bore the sword which his friends had provided after the
-attempt of the Dundee priest to assassinate him. Knox was soon to bear
-another sword, the sword of the Spirit, like his master.
-
-[Sidenote: HIS PREACHING.]
-
-The earl of Cassilis and some other friends of Wishart had appointed to
-meet him at Leith, and as that town is very near Edinburgh, they had
-advised him not to show himself until their arrival. After awaiting
-them for a day or two he fell into a deep melancholy. ‘What differ I
-from a dead man,’ said he, ‘except that I eat and drink? To this time
-God has used my labors to the disclosing of darkness, and now I lurk as
-a man that was ashamed and durst not show himself before men.’--‘You
-know,’ said his friends, ‘the danger wherein ye stand.’ ‘Let my God,’
-he replied, ‘provide for me as best pleases him.’ On the following
-Sunday, fifteen days before Christmas, he preached on the parable
-of the sower.[337] From Leith he went to Brownston, Langniddrie and
-Ormiston, and preached on the Sunday both morning and afternoon at
-Inveresk to a large concourse of people. Two Franciscan friars came and
-stood by the church door, and whispered something to those who were
-going in to turn them back. Wishart observing this said to some who
-were near the pulpit, ‘I heartily pray you to make room to these two
-men; it may be that they be come to learn.’ Then addressing the monks
-he said, ‘Come near, for I assure you ye shall hear the word of verity,
-which shall either seal unto you this same day your salvation or your
-condemnation.’ He continued his discourse, but the two friars, who had
-taken up their places, did not cease whispering right and left, and
-troubling all that stood near them. Wishart turned sharply to them and
-said--‘O sergeants of Satan, and deceivers of the souls of men, will ye
-neither hear God’s truth nor suffer others to hear it? Depart, and take
-this for your portion; God shall shortly confound and disclose your
-hypocrisy within this realm; ye shall be abominable unto men, and your
-places and habitations shall be desolate.’ He then resumed his sermon,
-and preached with so much power that Sir George Douglas, brother of the
-earl of Angus, who was present at the meeting, said publicly after the
-sermon, ‘I know that my lord governor and my lord cardinal shall hear
-that I have been at this preaching (for they were then in Edinburgh).
-Say unto them that I will avow it, and will not only maintain the
-doctrine that I have heard, but also the person of the teacher to the
-uttermost of my power.’ Those who were present greatly rejoiced at
-these words, spoken by so influential a man. As for Wishart, it was
-enough for him to know that God keeps his own people for the end to
-which he calls them.[338] He preached in other places to large numbers,
-and with all the more fervor for his persuasion and assertion that the
-day of his death was at hand.
-
-After Christmas he passed into Haddingtonshire. The cardinal, hearing
-of his purpose, had informed the earl of Bothwell, who immediately
-let it be known, both in the town and in the country, that no one
-was to go and hear that heretic under pain of his displeasure. The
-prohibition of this powerful lord had its effect. The first day there
-was a large gathering to hear Wishart, but the next day his audience
-was very small. A new trial now came to afflict him. His friends in
-western Scotland had promised to come to Edinburgh to discuss with him
-the means of advancing the cause of the Gospel. Now on the third day
-after his arrival in Haddingtonshire, when he had already entered the
-church and was about to go into the pulpit, a messenger approached and
-handed him a letter. He opened it. His friends at Ayr and other places
-wrote to tell him that certain obstacles prevented them from fulfilling
-their promises. Struck with sorrow, ‘he called for John Knox, who had
-waited upon him carefully from the time he came to Lothian.’[339] ‘I
-am wearied of the world,’ said he, ‘for I perceive that men begin
-to be weary of God.’ Knox wondered that Wishart should enter into
-conversation with him before sermon, which he was never accustomed to
-do, and said to him, ‘Sir, the time of sermon approaches, I will leave
-you for the present to your meditations.’ He then took the letter and
-withdrew.
-
-[Sidenote: HIS LAST SERMON.]
-
-Wishart, left to himself, began to walk about slowly at the back of the
-high altar. He paced to and fro, sadness depicted on his countenance,
-and everything about him revealing the deep grief that was in his soul.
-This lasted about half an hour. At length he passed into the pulpit.
-The audience was small, as it had been the day before. He had not power
-to treat the subject which he had proposed: his heart was too full,
-and he must needs unburden it before God. ‘O Lord,’ said he, ‘how long
-shall it be that thy holy Word shall be despised and men shall not
-regard their own salvation? I have heard of thee, Haddington, that in
-thee would have been at a vain clerk-play two or three thousand people,
-and now to hear the messenger of the eternal God, of all the town or
-parish cannot be numbered one hundred persons. Sore and fearful shall
-the plagues be that shall ensue this thy contempt, with fire and sword
-shalt thou be plagued. And that because ye have not known nor will
-not know the time of God’s merciful visitation.’ After saying these
-words he made a short paraphrase of the second table of the law. He
-exhorted to patience, to the fear of God, and to works of mercy; and
-impressed by the presentiment that this was the last time he should
-publicly preach, he made (so to speak) his last testament, declaring
-that the spirit of truth and judgment were both in his heart and on his
-lips.[340]
-
-He quitted the church, bade farewell to his friends, and then prepared
-to leave the town. ‘I will not leave you alone,’ said Knox to him.
-But Wishart, who had his approaching end constantly before his eyes,
-said--‘Nay, return to your bairns [his pupils], and God bless you. One
-is sufficient for a sacrifice.’ He then compelled Knox to give up the
-sword, and parted with him. The laird of Ormiston, who was at the time
-with Wishart, had invited him to his house in the country. They set
-out on their journey with several gentlemen of the neighborhood. The
-cold was severe, and they therefore travelled on foot. While at supper
-Wishart spoke of the death of God’s children. Then he said with a
-cheerful smile--‘Methinks that I desire earnestly to sleep. We’ll sing
-a psalm.’ He chose Psalm li., and struck up the tune himself:--‘Have
-mercy upon me, O God, according to thy loving kindness.’ As soon as the
-psalm was ended, he went to his chamber and to bed.
-
-[Sidenote: ARREST OF WISHART.]
-
-A little before midnight a troop of armed men silently approached,
-surrounded the house that no one might escape, and demanded Wishart.
-But neither promises nor threats could induce Ormiston to deliver up
-his guest. They then went for the earl of Bothwell, the most powerful
-lord of that region. Bothwell came, and said to the laird--‘It is
-but vain to make him to hold his house, for the governor and the
-cardinal with all their power are coming. But and if you will deliver
-the man unto me, I will promise upon my honor that he shall be safe
-and sound, and that it shall pass the power of the cardinal to do
-him any harm or scathe.’ Ormiston, confiding in this promise, told
-Wishart what had occurred. ‘Open the gates,’ replied he, immediately;
-‘the blessed will of my God be done.’ Bothwell entered, with several
-gentlemen who accompanied him. Wishart said to him, ‘I praise my God
-that so honorable a man as you, my lord, receives me this night in
-the presence of these noblemen; for now I am assured that, for your
-honor’s sake, ye will suffer nothing to be done unto me besides the
-order of law.’ The earl replied--‘I shall preserve your body from all
-violence, neither shall the governor nor cardinal have their will over
-you: but I shall retain you in my own hands till that either I shall
-make you free or else restore you in the same place where I receive
-you.’ Immediately after giving this promise, the earl set out with
-Wishart for Elphinston. The cardinal, bent on getting possession of
-Wishart’s friends, sent five hundred horsemen to Ormiston to seize the
-laird, together with the lairds of Brownston and Calder. Brownston
-fled through the woods, but the other two were carried off to Edinburgh
-castle. Wishart was removed to the strong castle of Hailes on the banks
-of the Tyne, the principal mansion of Bothwell in the Lothians.[341]
-
-That did not satisfy the cardinal, who wanted Wishart more than all.
-The queen-mother, Mary of Guise, who was not on friendly terms with
-Bothwell, promised him her support if he would give up the evangelist.
-The cardinal, on his part, ‘gave gold, and that largely.’ ‘Gold and
-women have corrupted all worldly and fleshly men from the beginning,’
-says Knox.[342] The earl raised some objections: ‘but an effeminate
-man,’ adds Knox, ‘cannot long withstand the assaults of a gracious
-queen.’ Wishart was first taken to Edinburgh castle, and at the end of
-January, 1546, the regent gave him up to the cardinal, who confined
-him at St. Andrews, in the sea tower. The assistance of a civil judge
-was, it seems, necessary to give validity to the judgment. The cardinal
-requested one of Arran, but one of the regent’s councillors, Hamilton
-of Preston, said to him--‘What, will you deliver up to wicked men those
-whose uprightness is acknowledged even by their enemies? Will you put
-to death those who are guilty of no more crime than that of preaching
-the Gospel of Christ? What ingratitude towards God!’
-
-The regent consequently wrote to the cardinal that he would not
-consent that any hurt should be done to that man without a careful
-investigation of his cause. The cardinal, on receiving this letter,
-flew into a violent passion. ‘It was only for civility’s sake,’ said
-he, ‘that I made the request. I and my clergy have the power in
-ourselves to inflict on Wishart the chastisement which he deserves.’
-He invited the archbishop of Glasgow, and all bishops and other
-dignitaries of the Church, to assemble at St. Andrews on February 27
-to consult on the matter, although it was already decided in his own
-mind.’[343]
-
-The next day the dean of St. Andrews went to the prison where Wishart
-was confined, and summoned him in the cardinal’s name to appear before
-the judges on the morrow. ‘What needed,’ replied the prisoner, ‘my
-lord cardinal to summon me to answer for my doctrine openly before
-him, under whose power and dominion I am thus straitly bound in irons?
-May not my lord compel me to answer to his extorted power?’ On March
-1 the cardinal ordered all the household servants of his palace to
-put themselves under arms. The civil power, it is remembered, had
-refused to take part in the proceedings, and therefore Beatoun took
-its place. His men at once equipped themselves with lances, swords,
-axes, knapsacks, and other warlike array. It might have been thought
-that some military action was in hand, rather than a gathering of
-priests who assumed to busy themselves about God’s Church. These armed
-champions, putting themselves in marching order, first escorted the
-bishops with great ceremony to the abbey church, and then went for
-Wishart. The governor of the castle put himself at the head of the
-band, and so they led the prisoner ‘like a lamb to sacrifice.’ As he
-entered the door of the abbey church he threw his purse to a poor
-infirm man lying there, and at length he stood in the presence of the
-numerous and brilliant assembly. To invest the proceedings with due
-formality, Beatoun had caused two platforms to be erected, facing
-each other. Wishart was set on one of them, and the accuser, Lauder,
-took his place on the other. The dean, Winryme,[344] then appeared in
-the pulpit. This worthy churchman, who was charged to deliver the
-customary sermon, was secretly a friend to the Gospel. He read the
-parable of the ‘good seed’ and the tares (Matt. xiii. 24-30), and set
-forth various pious considerations which told more against the judges
-than against the accused, and which the latter heard with pleasure.
-Winryme concluded, however, by saying that the tares were heresy,
-and that heretics ought to be put down in this life by the civil
-magistrate; yet in the passage he was treating stood the words, ‘Let
-both grow together until the harvest.’ It remained to ascertain which
-were heretics, the judges or the accused.[345]
-
-[Sidenote: PREPARATIONS FOR HIS TRIAL.]
-
-When the sermon was ended, the bishops ordered Wishart to stand up
-on his platform to hear the accusation. Then rose the accuser, John
-Lauder, a priest whom the chronicler calls a monster, and, facing
-Wishart, unrolled a long paper full of threatenings and devilish
-maledictions, and, addressing the guiltless evangelist in cruel words,
-hurled pitilessly at him all the thunders of the papacy. The ignorant
-crowd who heard him, expected to see the earth open and swallow the
-unhappy reformer; but he remained quiet, and listened with great
-patience and without a change of countenance to the violent accusations
-of his adversary. When Lauder had finished reading at the top of his
-voice the threatening indictment, he turned to Wishart, his face ‘all
-running down with sweat,’ says the chronicler, ‘and frothing at the
-mouth like a boar, he spat at Mr. George’s face, saying, What answerest
-thou to these sayings, thou renegade, traitor, and thief, which we have
-duly proved by sufficient witness against thee?’[346]
-
-Wishart knelt down and prayed for the help of God. Then rising, he made
-answer with all sweetness--‘My lords, I pray you quietly to hear me,
-so that instead of condemning me unjustly, to the great peril of your
-souls, you may know that I have taught the pure Word of God, and that
-you may receive it yourselves as the source from which health and life
-shall spring forth for you. In Dundee I taught the Epistle of St. Paul
-to the Romans, and shall show your discretions faithfully what fashion
-and manner I used when I taught, without any human dread....’
-
-At these words the accuser interrupted him, and cried with all his
-might, ‘Thou heretic, renegade, traitor, and thief, it was not lawful
-for thee to preach, ... and we forethink that thou hast been a preacher
-too long.’ Then all the prelates, terrified at the thought that he was
-going to set before that vast audience the very substance and pith
-of his teaching, said one to another, ‘He is so crafty, and in Holy
-Scriptures so exercised, that he will persuade the people to his own
-opinion and raise them against us.’ Wishart, perceiving that he had no
-chance of a fair hearing before that ecclesiastical court, said, ‘I
-appeal from my lord cardinal to my lord the governor.’ ‘What,’ replied
-Lauder, ‘is not my lord cardinal the second person within this realm,
-chancellor of Scotland, archbishop of St. Andrews, bishop of Mirepoix
-[in Languedoc], commendator of Arbroath, _legatus natus, legatus a
-latere_...?’ He recited so many titles, says the chronicler, that
-you might have laden a ship with them, much sooner an ass.[347] ‘Whom
-desirest thou to be thy judge?’ cried Lauder.
-
-[Sidenote: THE TRIAL.]
-
-Wishart replied with meekness, ‘I refuse not my lord cardinal, but
-I desire the Word of God to be my judge, and the temporal estate,
-with some of your lordships mine auditory; because I am here my lord
-governor’s prisoner.’ But the priests mocked him, saying, ‘Such
-man, such judge!’ According to them, the laymen who might have been
-appointed his judges were heretics also, like him.
-
-The cardinal, without further delay, was going to have sentence of
-condemnation passed; but some who stood by counselled him to read the
-articles of accusation, and to permit Wishart to answer to them, in
-order that the people might not be able to say that he was condemned
-without a hearing.
-
-Lauder therefore began--‘Thou, false heretic, renegade, traitor, and
-thief, deceiver of the people, despisest the holy Church’s, and in like
-case contemnest my lord governor’s authority; for when thou preachedst
-in Dundee, and wert charged by my lord governor’s authority to desist,
-thou wouldst not obey, but perseveredst in the same. Therefore the
-bishop of Brechin cursed thee, and delivered thee into the hands of the
-devil, and gave thee in commandment that thou shouldst preach no more;
-yet notwithstanding thou didst continue obstinately.’
-
-_Wishart_: ‘My lords, I have read in the Acts of the Apostles that it
-is not lawful for the threatenings and menaces of men to desist from
-the preaching of the Evangel.’
-
-_Lauder_: ‘Thou, false heretic, didst say that a priest standing at the
-altar saying mass was like a fox wagging his tail in July.’[348]
-
-_Wishart_: ‘My lords, I said not so. These were my sayings: the moving
-of the body outward, without the inward moving of the heart, is nought
-else but the playing of an ape, and not the true serving of God.’
-
-_Lauder_: ‘Thou false heretic, traitor, and thief, thou saidst that the
-sacrament of the altar was but a piece of bread baken upon the ashes.’
-
-_Wishart_: ‘I once chanced to meet with a Jew when I was sailing upon
-the water of the Rhine. By prophecies and many other testimonies of the
-Scriptures I approved that the Messiah was come, the which they called
-Jesus of Nazareth. He answered, You adore and worship a piece of bread
-baken upon the ashes, and say that is your God. I have rehearsed here
-but the sayings of the Jew, which I never affirmed to be true.’ At
-these words the bishops shook their heads, spitting on the ground and
-crying out, and showed in all ways that they would not hear him.
-
-_Lauder_: ‘Thou, false heretic and renegade, hast said that every
-layman is a priest, and that the pope hath no more power than another
-man.’
-
-_Wishart_: ‘I have read in some places of St. John and St. Peter, of
-the which one sayeth, He hath made us kings and priests; the other
-sayeth, He hath made us the kingly priesthood. Wherefore I have
-affirmed any man, being cunning and perfect in the Word of God and the
-true faith of Jesus Christ, to have his power given him of God. And
-again I say, any unlearned man, and not exercised in the Word of God,
-nor yet constant in his faith, whatsoever estate or order he be of,
-hath no power to bind nor to loose.’[349]
-
-These words greatly amused the assembly; the reverends and the most
-reverends burst out laughing, mocking Wishart, and calling him an
-imbecile. The notion that a layman should have a power which the holy
-father had not seemed to them the very height of madness. ‘Laugh ye,
-my lords?’ said the messenger of Christ. ‘Though that these my sayings
-appear scornful and worthy of derision to your lordships, nevertheless
-they are very weighty unto me and of great value, because they stand
-not only upon my life but also the honor and glory of God.’
-
-Some pious men who were in the assembly were indignant at the madness
-of the prelates and affected by the invincible patience of Wishart.
-But others cried aloud, ‘Wherefore let we him speak any further?’ A
-man named John Scot, who stood behind Lauder, said to him. ‘Tarry not
-upon his witty and godly answers, for we may not abide them, no more
-nor the devil may abide the sign of the cross when it is named.’[350]
-There was no due form of trial, nor any freedom of discussion, says
-Buchanan, but a great din of voices, shouts of disapprobation, and
-hateful speeches. The accuser thundered from his platform, but that was
-all.[351] The bishops unanimously pronounced that the pious Wishart
-must be burnt. Falling on his knees, Wishart prayed and said--‘O
-immortal God, how long shalt thou suffer the wodness [madness] and
-great cruelty of the ungodly to exercise their fury upon thy servants
-which do further thy Word in this world. O Lord, we know surely that
-thy true servants must needs suffer persecution for thy name’s sake,
-affliction and troubles in this present life which is but a shadow; but
-yet we desire thee, merciful Father, that thou defend thy congregation
-which thou hast chosen before the beginning of the world.’
-
-[Sidenote: THE SENTENCE.]
-
-The sentence must be pronounced, but the bishops were afraid to
-pronounce it before the people. They therefore gave orders to have the
-church cleared, and this could only be done slowly, as many of the
-people who had a wish to hear Wishart were removed with difficulty.
-At length, when the prelates and their colleagues found themselves
-almost alone, sentence of death was passed on Wishart, and the cardinal
-ordered his guards to take him back to the castle. Confined in the
-governor’s room, he spent the greater part of the night in prayer.
-The next morning the bishops sent to him two friars who asked him if
-he did not want a confessor. ‘I will make no confession unto you,’ he
-answered; ‘go and fetch me yonder man that preached yesterday, and I
-will make my confession unto him.’ When Winryme was come, they talked
-together for some time. Then the dean said, ‘Have you a wish to
-receive the sacrament of the supper?’ ‘Assuredly,’ replied Wishart, ‘if
-it be administered according to the institution of the Lord, with the
-bread and the wine.’ Winryme then went to the cardinal and declared to
-him that the man was innocent. Beatoun, inflamed with anger, said, ‘And
-you, we have long known what you are!’ Winryme having inquired if he
-might give the sacrament to the prisoner. ‘No,’ replied the cardinal,
-‘it is not fitting to grant any of the benefits of the Church to a
-heretic.’[352]
-
-The next morning at nine o’clock the governor of the castle informed
-Wishart that the communion was refused him. Then, as he was going to
-breakfast with his dependents and servants, he invited Wishart to join
-them at the meal. ‘Right willingly,’ he answered, ‘especially because I
-know that you and yours are good men and are united with me in the same
-body of Christ.’[353]
-
-When the table was spread and the members of the household had taken
-their places, Wishart said to the governor, ‘Give me leave, for
-the Saviour’s sake, to make a brief exhortation.’ It was to him an
-opportunity of celebrating the true Supper. He reminded his hearers
-of the institution of the sacred feast, and of the Lord’s death. He
-exhorted those who sat at table with him to lay aside all hatred, to
-love one another and to lead a holy life. After this he gave thanks,
-and then took the bread and brake it, and gave of it to such as he knew
-were willing to communicate, and bade them feed spiritually on Christ.
-Taking a cup, he spoke of the blood shed for the remission of sins,
-drank of it and gave them to drink. ‘I shall no more drink of this
-cup,’ said he, ‘no more eat of this bread in this life; a bitterer
-draught is reserved for me, because I have preached Christ. Pray that
-I may take that cup with patience, as the Lord’s appointment.’ He
-concluded with further giving of thanks and then retired to his chamber.
-
-[Sidenote: FINAL PREPARATIONS.]
-
-On a plot of ground to the west of the castle and not far from the
-priory, men were already busily engaged, some in preparing the pile,
-others erecting the gallows. The place of execution was surrounded by
-soldiers, and the gunners had their cannon in position and stood beside
-them ready to fire. One would have thought that preparations were
-making for a siege. The cardinal had ordered these measures fearing
-lest Wishart’s many friends should take him away, and perhaps still
-more for the sake of making a display of his own power. Meanwhile
-the windows in the castle-yard were adorned with hangings, silken
-draperies, and velvet cushions, that the cardinal and the prelates
-might enjoy at their ease the spectacle of the pile and of the tortures
-which they were going to inflict on that righteous man.[354]
-
-When all was ready, two of the deathsmen entered Wishart’s prison. One
-of them brought and put on him a coat of black cloth, the other tied
-small bags of powder to various parts of his body. Next they bound his
-hands firmly behind him, put a rope round his neck and a chain about
-his waist, and led him forth in the midst of a party of soldiers. When
-he came to the pile he knelt down and prayed. Then he rose and said
-to the people--‘Christian brethren and sisters, be not offended in
-the Word of God for the affliction and torments which ye see already
-prepared for me; but I exhort you that you love the Word of God, and
-suffer patiently and with a comfortable heart, for the Word’s sake
-which is your undoubted salvation and everlasting comfort. My doctrine
-was no old wives’ fable after the constitutions made by men. But for
-the true evangely, which was given to me by the grace of God, I suffer
-this day by men, not sorrowfully, but with a glad heart and mind. For
-this cause I was sent: that I should suffer this fire, for Christ’s
-sake. This grim fire I fear not. Some have said of me that I taught
-that the soul of man should sleep until the last day. But I know surely
-and my faith is such that my soul shall sup with my Saviour Christ this
-night (ere it be six hours), for whom I suffer this.’[355] Then he
-prayed--‘I beseech thee, Father of heaven! to forgive them that have of
-any ignorance or else have of any evil mind forged any lies upon me: I
-forgive them with all my heart. I beseech Christ to forgive them that
-have condemned me to death this day ignorantly.’ The hangman fell on
-his knees before him and said, ‘I pray you forgive me.’ ‘Come hither
-to me,’ replied Wishart; and he kissed him, and added, ‘Lo, here is
-a token that I forgive thee. My heart, do thine office.’ He was then
-bound with ropes to the stake, and said, ‘Saviour of the world, have
-mercy on me! Father of heaven, into thy hands I commit my spirit.’ The
-executioner lighted the fire. The cardinal and his accomplices beheld
-from the windows the martyr and the fire which was consuming him. The
-governor of the castle watching the flames exclaimed, ‘Take courage.’
-Wishart answered, ‘This fire torments my body, but noways abates my
-spirit.’ Then catching sight of the cardinal at the window with his
-courtiers, he added, ‘He who in such state, from that high place,
-feedeth his eyes with my torments, within few days shall be hanged out
-at the same window to be seen with as much ignominy as he now leaneth
-there in pride.’[356] Some authors consider these words, reported by
-Buchanan, to be an instance of that _second sight_ with which they
-allege the Scots to be endowed. Wishart, however, did not need an
-extraordinary revelation to teach him that ‘the wicked goeth away in
-his wickedness.’ He had hardly uttered those words when the rope was
-tightened about his neck, so that he lost the power of speaking. The
-fire reduced his body to ashes; and the bishops, full of steadfast
-hatred of this servant of God, caused an order to be published that
-same evening through all the town, that no one should pray for their
-victim under the severest penalties. They knew what respect was felt
-for him by many even of the Catholics themselves.
-
-There are people who say that religion is a fable. A life and a death
-such as those of Wishart show that it is a great reality.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
- CONSPIRACY AGAINST BEATOUN.--HIS DEATH.
-
- (MARCH TO MAY 1546.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: FEELING CONCERNING WISHART’S DEATH.]
-
-The death of Wishart excited in Scotland feelings of very diverse
-character. The bishops and their adherents extolled to the skies the
-cardinal who, without troubling himself about the regent’s authority,
-and suppressing the insolence of the people, had constituted himself
-the defender of Rome and of the priesthood. ‘Ah,’ said they, ‘if the
-Church had formerly had such champions, she would keep all things under
-her dominion by the very force and weight of her majesty.’
-
-Simple-hearted Christians lamented the martyrdom without a thought of
-revenge. But one part of the people, and with them several of the most
-eminent men, condemned aloud at table and everywhere the cardinal’s
-cruelty, and declared that the blood which had been shed called for
-vengeance. Even those who, without sharing Wishart’s views, were
-actuated by just and generous sentiments, asked themselves what hope
-they could have of preserving their liberties under the most cruel of
-tyrants; under a prelate who made war alike on men and on God; who
-pursued with his enmity every one that possessed wealth or was animated
-by piety, and sacrificed them to his caprice like beasts taken from
-the stall;[357] who gave his sanction to connections with worthless
-mistresses, and dissolved lawful marriages at his pleasure; who in his
-own house wallowed in debauchery with prostitutes, and out of doors, in
-his wrath, revelled in the slaughter of innocent men and in the blood
-of heretics.[358] Such is the portrait of Beatoun drawn by Buchanan.
-
-The cardinal, who could not remain ignorant of these speeches, was
-desirous of strengthening his power by means of new alliances. He
-therefore gave one of his daughters, Margaret Beatoun--whose mother
-was Mary, daughter of Sir James Ogilvy--in marriage to David Lindsay,
-son of the earl of Crawford, with a portion of four thousand marks.
-The nuptials were celebrated with a magnificence almost royal. That a
-priest could celebrate with so much parade the nuptials of his daughter
-showed that he was destitute even of that honorable shame which is
-excited by the dread of anything that violates decency. He believed
-himself to be stronger than all Scotland, and by his despotic measures
-he was constantly adding to the number of his enemies.
-
-[Sidenote: CONSPIRACY AGAINST BEATOUN.]
-
-Among those who had served him with the utmost devotion was Norman
-Lesley, brother of the earl of Rothes. On occasion of Lesley’s
-reminding the cardinal of certain promises which he had made to him,
-they got to high words and parted bitter foes.[359] Thenceforth
-Lesley was head of the disaffected, and by setting before his friends
-the intolerable pride of the cardinal he induced them to join in a
-conspiracy against his life.[360] His uncle, John Lesley, did not
-shrink from saying before them all, clapping his right hand at the
-same time on his sword, ‘This hand shall draw this old sword, and they
-two shall be the cardinal’s confessors,’ meaning thereby that they
-should dismiss him into the other world. The saying was reported to
-Beatoun, but he made light of it, fancying himself perfectly safe in
-the blockhouse--a kind of fortress--which he had built. ‘I laugh at all
-that noise,’ said he, ‘and I would not give a button for such bragging.
-Is not my lord governor mine? Witness his eldest son their pledge at
-my table. Have I not the queen at my own devotion? Is not France my
-friend, and am not I friend to France? What danger should I fear?’
-Nevertheless Beatoun, for the purpose of cutting off those who troubled
-him, ordered all his creatures, gentlemen of Fifeshire, to meet him at
-Falkland on Monday, May 31. The Lesleys and a certain number of their
-friends were to be taken prisoners and put to death. On the other side,
-Lesley and his accomplices had no embarrassing scruples at all. The
-right of the strongest was still frequently appealed to in that half
-barbarian age. A _coup d’état_, with deeds of violence, was a quite
-familiar occurrence. These nobles looked on Wishart’s death, without
-the concurrence of the civil judges, which the lawful government
-had refused, as a murder; and they considered that as Beatoun was a
-murderer he ought to be himself put to death. They did not reflect
-that they were making themselves guilty of the very crime which Beatoun
-had committed, that of putting themselves in the place of the regular
-judges. The right of war between feudal lords, which had not yet ceased
-to be recognized, sufficed to justify them in their own eyes. It was
-arranged that Norman Lesley, with his brother and four of his friends,
-should go to St. Andrews, where the cardinal was residing, and that
-they should take up their lodging in the hostelry at which they were
-accustomed to stay, so as not to awaken any suspicion. They entered the
-town accordingly, and without fear, although the place swarmed with the
-friends, dependents, and creatures of the mighty primate. Some of the
-inhabitants who shared their views held themselves in readiness at the
-first signal to give them assistance. They agreed to seize the castle
-at early morning, before the household were up.
-
-[Sidenote: SEIZURE OF THE CASTLE.]
-
-On Friday, May 28, in the evening, Norman Lesley arrived at St.
-Andrews, where he found William Kirkaldy of Grange awaiting him. John
-Lesley, on whom the cardinal’s suspicions chiefly fell, came last. The
-conspirators took counsel in the night, and on Saturday, May 29, at
-three o’clock in the morning, started on their enterprise, the capture
-of a strong castle which was held by more than a hundred men prepared
-for resistance. They came by various ways, and met in the churchyard of
-the abbey, not far from the castle. Beatoun, well knowing the feelings
-of indignation which his proceedings had aroused in the country, even
-amongst his own flatterers, had determined to turn his place of abode
-into a citadel fit to stand a siege.[361] The works were in progress,
-and this circumstance facilitated the daring attempt now to be made
-by his enemies. The primate pressed the work on so urgently that it
-hardly ceased by day or by night. Consequently the gates were open
-early in the morning, and the drawbridge was let down for the workmen
-to bring in stone, mortar, and other necessary building materials. The
-Lesleys, who with some of their companions were concealed in a small
-house near the gates, had sent thence William Kirkaldy and six others.
-These having passed the gates hailed the porter, and said to him, ‘Is
-my lord cardinal waking?’ ‘No,’ replied he. Mary Ogilvy, the mother of
-Margaret and of two sons, David and Alexander Beatoun, had spent the
-night at the castle. She was seen going away early in the morning by
-the private postern.[362] The cardinal, at the moment of the arrival
-of the Lesleys and their friends, was in a sound sleep. While William
-Kirkaldy was talking to the porter, and the latter was about to show
-him the way, Norman and John Lesley came up one after the other with
-arms. The porter, in alarm, would have put himself on the defensive;
-but one of the conspirators broke his head, got possession of his
-keys, and threw his body into the fosse. At that moment the workmen,
-numbering more than a hundred, fled through the wicket-gate at full
-speed, and William Kirkaldy took possession of the private postern,
-‘fearing that the fox should have escaped.’ As the assailants were
-only sixteen, they felt the need of proceeding with great caution. The
-leaders sent four of their company, among whom were Peter Carmichael, a
-tall, stout-hearted gentleman, and James Melville of Cumbec, to guard
-the cardinal’s door and see that no one gave him warning of his danger.
-Others of the company, who had some acquaintance with the place and the
-people, were set to watch the bedrooms of the officers and servants of
-the cardinal. Distributing themselves in small groups, they entered
-the rooms successively, found the occupants half asleep, and said to
-them, ‘If you utter the faintest cry you are dead men!’[363] Those men
-therefore, in their fright, dressed themselves hastily and were led out
-of the castle, no violence being done to any of them and no noise made.
-The only person whom they left in the castle was the regent’s eldest
-son. John Lesley, alone in this vast abode, knocked loudly at the
-cardinal’s door. ‘What means that noise?’ said he. ‘That Norman Lesley
-has taken the castle,’ was the reply; ‘open.’ At these words Beatoun
-ran towards the postern, but seeing that it was guarded, he returned
-straightway into his room, seized his two-handed sword, and bade his
-valet barricade the door. ‘Open,’ they cried again. The cardinal
-answered, ‘Who calls?’--‘My name is Lesley.’--‘Is that Norman?’--‘Nay,
-my name is John.’ The cardinal, remembering John’s words, cried, ‘I
-will have Norman, for he is my friend.’--‘Content yourself with such as
-are here, for other shall ye get none,’ replied John. While the knocks
-at the door grew louder, the cardinal seized a box of gold and hid it
-in a corner. Then he said, ‘Will ye save my life?’--‘It may be that we
-will,’--said John.--‘Nay,’ replied Beatoun, ‘swear unto me by God’s
-wounds, and I shall open to you.’
-
-Then John Lesley cried out, ‘Fire! fire!’ The door was too strong to
-burst open, and they brought a grate full of burning coals. Just as
-it was ready the cardinal ordered the door to be opened. Lesley and
-his companions rushed into the chamber and found Beatoun seated on a
-chair. Lesley threw himself violently upon him. ‘I am a priest! I am a
-priest!’ exclaimed the cardinal. ‘Ye will not slay me!’
-
-But Lesley struck him with his sword, and Carmichael, full of wrath,
-did the same. Melville, a man of gentle and serious character, says
-Knox,[364] seeing his comrades in so great a rage, checked them. He
-said, ‘This work and judgment of God, although it be secret, yet ought
-to be done with greater gravity.’ Melville and others, by reason of
-the ignorance and the prejudices of the age, sincerely believed in
-the legal virtue of the Mosaic system, abolished by the Gospel, which
-conferred on certain persons the right of killing a murderer, but which
-founded at the same time the cities of refuge in which the guilty man
-should be safe from the vengeance of the pursuer.[365]
-
-[Sidenote: MURDER OF BEATOUN.]
-
-Melville forgot that there was no city of refuge for Beatoun. Regarding
-him as a murderer, and not supposing that by killing him he did himself
-incur the guilt of murder, he presented to him the point of his sword,
-and said gravely to him, ‘Repent thee of thine former wicked life, but
-especially of the shedding of the blood of that notable instrument of
-God, Mr. George Wishart; which albeit the flame of fire consumed before
-men, yet cries it a vengeance upon thee, and we from God are sent to
-revenge it. Here before my God I protest that neither the hatred of thy
-person, the love of thy riches, or the fear of any trouble thou couldst
-have done to me in particular, moved or moveth me to strike thee.’ And
-he struck him with his sword.
-
-The cardinal fell under repeated blows, without a word heard out of his
-mouth except these, ‘I am a priest! I am a Priest! Fie, fie! All is
-gone!’[366]
-
-It was very soon known all over the city that the castle had been
-taken. The friends and the creatures of the cardinal rose very quietly
-from their beds, says Buchanan, armed themselves, and presently
-appeared in a crowd about the fosse. They shouted with all their might,
-uttered threats and insults, and demanded shells and all the necessary
-means for making the assault. ‘You are making much noise to little
-purpose,’ said those in the castle to them; ‘the best it were to you to
-return to your own houses.’
-
-The crowd answered, ‘What have ye done with my lord cardinal? Let us
-see my lord cardinal!’--‘The man that you call the cardinal,’ it was
-replied, ‘has received his reward, and in his own person will trouble
-the world no more.’ But his partisans only cried the louder, ‘We shall
-never depart till we see him,’ still persuaded that he was alive. Then
-one or two men took up the body, and bearing it to the very window
-at which a little while before Beatoun had sat to contemplate with
-gladness, and as if in triumph, the execution of the pious Wishart,
-exposed it there to the gaze of all.[367] Beatoun’s friends and the
-populace, struck with amazement and terror by the unexpected sight, and
-remembering Wishart’s prediction, dispersed in gloom and consternation.
-
-The tidings of this murder were speedily spread over all the land, and,
-while some angrily denounced it, others welcomed it as an event which
-restored their country to liberty. There were indeed some who, like
-James Melville, reckoned it a lawful act. But even among the enemies of
-the cardinal there were men wise and moderate, who looked on the murder
-with horror. It is remarked by one historian that of those who took
-part in it few escaped the judgment of God, who punishes transgressors
-by smiting them with the same stroke with which they have smitten
-others.[368]
-
-The Lesleys and their friends remained masters of the castle, and
-they kept with them James, Lord Hamilton, afterwards earl of Arran,
-the regent’s eldest son, whom Beatoun had detained as his hostage,
-and who now became theirs. One of the conspirators, who believed that
-in delivering Scotland from the tyrant they had done a praiseworthy
-deed, William Kirkaldy, went to London. He obtained from Henry VIII.,
-who considered the taking of the castle and the events which had
-accompanied it to be a lawful revolution, a declaration that he was
-prepared to take the party under his protection, on condition, however,
-that the marriage contract between Edward and Mary should be carried
-out. As communication by sea was easy between the castle and London,
-English ships conveyed thither all supplies that were needful.
-
-[Sidenote: OPINIONS ON THE MURDER.]
-
-Hamilton, a bastard brother of the regent, was named by him archbishop
-of St. Andrews, and was confirmed by Pope Paul III. This energetic
-prelate immediately pressed on his brother the duty of besieging the
-castle and of punishing all those who had taken it. He was strongly
-supported by others. On August 23, 1546, the main body of the army
-set out from Edinburgh to form the siege; but at the end of July,
-1547,[369] the capture of the fortress being evidently hopeless, terms
-were made with the besieged advantageous to them, but which neither
-side had any intention of observing. This period forms an important
-epoch, and we must suspend for a while the course of our narrative.
-
-We have now traced the history of the ministry and the martyrdom of
-Patrick Hamilton and George Wishart. We shall have by-and-by to trace,
-_Deo adjuvante_, the mighty action of the third and greatest of the
-Scottish reformers, John Knox.
-
-The period, the history of which we have just gone over, was one of
-active persecution. It remains for us to recount the events of the
-contest with the papacy, into which the Scottish nobility energetically
-entered, and the victory of the Reformation. Without entering at
-present upon the narrative of facts, we shall cast a glance forward
-in order to point out what was to give the victory to evangelical
-Christianity. Assuredly it was not such actions as the capture of the
-castle and the violent death of the persecutor. Such things are more
-likely to ruin a cause than to save it. The Christian life and death
-of Wishart contributed far more powerfully than the death of Beatoun
-to the advancement of the kingdom of God. The history of the Scottish
-Reformation serves to show the untruth of one assertion frequently made
-by the enemies of the Reform.
-
-According to them, the Reform could triumph only in those countries in
-which it had the protection of princes. This is a serious error. It was
-not the bloodthirsty Philip II. who established the Reformation in the
-United Provinces of the Netherlands. It was neither the feeble James
-V. nor the popish Mary Stuart who secured its triumph in Scotland.
-That worthy niece of the Guises sought only to crush it. A stronger
-arm than theirs fought against those mighty ones and gave the victory
-to the weak. The enemies of the Reformation made use in Scotland of
-the very weapons which in Italy, in Spain, and elsewhere arrested the
-movement of regeneration. The reformers were burnt also in Scotland,
-but the Reform arose out of their ashes. It was neither to their
-character nor to their strength that the Scots attributed the triumph.
-They knew that Jesus is the king of the Church, and that it is he who
-saves it. This is the feature which more than any other, as we shall
-see, characterized the Scottish Reformation. Andrew Melville said to
-James VI., ‘Sire, there are two kings and two kingdoms in Scotland.
-There is King James, the head of the state, and there is Jesus Christ
-who is head of the Church.’[370] To the king enthroned at Rome, the
-Scottish Reformation opposed the king enthroned in heaven, and to him
-it attributed the victory.
-
-[Sidenote: PRIEST AND PASTOR.]
-
-But in proclaiming this supreme authority, the reformation in Scotland
-also established the duties and the rights of Christians. The charge
-of leading the Church in conformity with the law of God was there
-intrusted to general assemblies elected by the free choice of a
-Christian people.[371] The clergy had ruled in Scotland throughout
-the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, and during the first part of
-the sixteenth. The Reformation rescued the country from that clerical
-domination, and gave to it the first of all liberties, the freedom of
-faith. For centuries three powers had existed there,--the king, the
-nobles, and the priests, and the last had kept the upper hand. After
-the Reformation, two of these still remained, the king and the nobles;
-but the people took the place of the clergy. It was under a popular
-form, that of Presbyterianism, that the Church of Scotland constituted
-itself. The feudal castles had for some time still a marked influence
-on the destinies of the country; but the tide of national and Christian
-life was steadily rising all round their walls and soon overflowed the
-ancient battlements which crowned the summits of those old fortresses.
-Laymen, the deputies of the people, obtained a voice in the presbytery,
-in the synod, and in the general assembly. Thus, by successive steps,
-the voice of the people became, through the influence of Reform, the
-expression of the main force of the country.
-
-It is a grave error to attribute, as some have done, to the Protestant
-pastors of Scotland an incomprehensible domination, ‘an authority
-nowise inferior to that which they had exercised as Catholic priests,’
-and to represent them as ‘the most effectual obstacle to popular
-progress.’[372] Nothing has in fact been less like the haughty Catholic
-prelates of St. Andrews, Glasgow, and other dioceses, than a Scottish
-minister. The Reformation gave to Scotland not only Christian truth,
-but religious and political liberty besides. There, as everywhere,
-it took from the priesthood its magic and its supremacy, which had
-been its two main attributes in the Middle Ages. The ministers, whom
-it substituted for the priests, having no longer the marvellous power
-of transforming a bit of bread into God the Creator,--these disciples
-of Jesus, no longer seated on the despotic throne of the confessional
-to give pardon for sins, became simple heralds of the divine Word.
-This holy Word has its place in every family and reigns supreme in
-the Church. Thus, ministers have ceased to be masters and have become
-servants. The real offence of these Scottish pastors, in the sight of
-their detractors, is that they have always been a great obstacle, not
-to the progress of the people and of civilization, as some have said,
-but to the progress of unbelief and materialism. Now these mischievous
-doctrines are mortal enemies to the freedom and prosperity of nations.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK XI.
-
- CALVIN, AND THE PRINCIPLES OF HIS REFORM.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
- CALVIN AT GENEVA AND IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.
-
- (1536.)
-
-
-For years, and even for centuries, persistent and perilous endeavors
-had been made at Geneva for a firm establishment of freedom. We have
-already described some of the impressive scenes which marked the
-successful close of these efforts at the beginning of the sixteenth
-century, the noble principles and the mighty words of the energetic
-laborers in this great enterprise.[373] It would certainly be going too
-far to consider their labors and the truths which they announced as the
-source whence our modern liberties have sprung. But it is impossible to
-study the events of that epoch without emotion, or without recognizing
-aspirations, principles, sacrifices, and actions worthy of admiration,
-which were in fact the first great burst of light, the first noteworthy
-manifestation of the politics and the virtues which must determine the
-existence and make the prosperity of nations.[374]
-
-That small town was, however, to give to the world a higher lesson
-still. It was to do for religion what it had first done for politics,
-and to render to faith the service which it had rendered to freedom.
-These two achievements are closely related to each other; and it is
-one of the characteristics of this history, that while it attributes
-transcendent importance to Christian truth and life, it recognizes
-at the same time all that is great and salutary in freedom. If the
-author, as some have thought, had erred in assigning too high a place
-to the heroic struggles to which Geneva owed her independence, he would
-assuredly regret that he had not more skilfully handled the pen of
-the historian for the purpose of immortalizing the great men and the
-heroic actions of which the smallest and humblest of states afforded
-the spectacle. But he would count himself fortunate if he should,
-nevertheless, have contributed to bring into clear light the great
-maxim, that political freedom and Christian truth must advance hand
-in hand for the salvation of nations and the salvation of souls. Of
-course, a blind demagogy, the formidable rock of our age, is at once
-contrary to freedom and hostile to religion.
-
-Geneva was fitted by various concurring conditions to play a part from
-which the small extent of her territory seemed inevitably to shut her
-out. Situated as this town was between Italy, France, and Germany, its
-position formed the central point of the three great nations who were
-distinguished in the first half of the sixteenth century for their new
-or newly awakened love of letters, philosophy, and the arts. On several
-occasions Frenchmen, Italians, and Germans came in large numbers to
-settle at Geneva. By the reception of these three diverse elements into
-her bosom she seemed to be called to blend them with each other and to
-harmonize their opposing qualities. If any spark from the evangelical
-fire which was then kindled should chance to escape from either of
-those countries and to fall on the materials thus prepared at the foot
-of the Alps, it might kindle a great fire, and might make Geneva a
-hearth from which light, radiating far and wide, should contribute to
-scatter the humiliating darkness which Rome and those princes whose
-power was at her service then made to weigh heavily on the nations.
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN CALVIN.]
-
-This is what actually came to pass. To convert the spark into a pure,
-vivid, dazzling light, there was need of an intellect of vast depth, a
-will of vast energy, and a faith of vast power.
-
-God sent the man that was needed.
-
-A young stranger, a native of Picardie, had lately arrived at Geneva.
-It had not occurred to him nor to his friends that he could be the
-organ by whose agency and means God would bring about such great ends.
-After his arrival Farel still continued to hold the first place in
-the city. This young man, John Calvin, was naturally timid, and was
-possessed by a dread of publicity which had already shown itself at
-Basel and which led him to shun every occasion that would draw public
-attention to himself. He was fond of study and of writing: and in that
-path he believed that it was appointed for him to contribute to the
-diffusion in the world of a truth which was already dearer to him than
-life. He purposed to turn to account that one talent in retirement,
-without quitting his study. That is what he was then doing at Geneva.
-He was steadily engaged in translating into French his ‘_little book_,’
-the _Institution Chrétienne_, which he hoped ere long to send to his
-friends in France.[375] The letter mentioned in the note shows clearly
-that the _Institution Chrétienne_ was first written in Latin.
-
-Farel wished for more: he desired Calvin to become, at Geneva,
-pastor, preacher, and doctor. The young man refused this threefold
-function. The office of pastor would have required him to take part
-in the government of the Church, and he was not willing to do so. As
-to the office of preacher, we have the most positive testimony of his
-contemporaries and of his most intimate friends that, in the fresh
-glow of his faith, he had simply undertaken the task of an evangelist
-in some districts of France. But the post which was offered to him at
-Geneva would have compelled him to mix more or less in public affairs
-and in the debates of the councils. He trembled at the thought, and
-wished rather to confine himself strictly within the bounds of that
-literary and theological life which he loved so well. He consented
-therefore to dwell in the city, not for the purpose of preaching, but
-to read in theology.[376] He went even further. ‘I would not,’ he said,
-‘bind myself to undertake an official charge.’[377] He consented to
-make trial of teaching, but without any title or any engagement, and
-thus reserved to himself perfect liberty. Probably no one ever entered
-as he did on a career at once painful and brilliant without suspecting
-its results, and even rejecting it with his utmost energy.
-
-[Sidenote: CHURCH DISCIPLINE.]
-
-Calvin commenced his work as Reader in the Holy Scriptures at Geneva,
-or, as he styles himself, Professor of Sacred Literature in the
-Genevese Church. His lectures were delivered not in any house or in
-any academic hall, but in the cathedral itself, a circumstance which
-invested his teaching with an importance of which Calvin had certainly
-not dreamed. The doors were opened for this novel service in the
-afternoon, and the Genevese, who felt the need of substantial teaching,
-crowded to hear the young doctor. He expounded several books of the
-New Testament, particularly the Epistles. One characteristic of his
-manner of teaching at Geneva from the first was the combination of
-simplicity and solidity. A new light was then rising. It was not,
-to be sure, the sun in its brightness. The timidity and the shyness
-which Calvin attributes to himself may well have shown themselves in
-his first attempts. The _Commentaries_ on the New Testament, which he
-published at a later period, have a completeness which his earliest
-expositions could not attain. But they are a sufficiently faithful
-representation of the kind of teaching which he adopted at St. Peter’s
-church. It was not grammatical and etymological explanation of the
-text; nor was it, on the other hand, a pathetic discourse. Calvin set
-forth in clear light everything in the Scriptures which characterizes
-the Christian doctrine and life. He first meditated on his subject,
-then delivered his lectures extempore; and the animated and powerful
-individuality of the master imparted to them an influence which carried
-away and multiplied his hearers. It was not in his nature to do a
-merely intellectual task. He consoled, he exhorted, he censured. But
-his chief aim was to illustrate the labor of love which Jesus Christ
-had accomplished, and to make known its necessity and grandeur. Two
-points in the Christian doctrine especially struck him, the one dark
-and mournful, the other bright like sunshine. ‘Our souls,’ said he,
-‘are an abyss of iniquity, so that we are compelled to have recourse to
-the fountain of all good, which is Jesus Christ.’[378]
-
-[Sidenote: CHURCH DISCIPLINE.]
-
-The exposition, defence, and application of the great facts of
-Christianity formed the substance of Calvin’s work at Geneva and in
-Christendom. It is a mistake to suppose that his principal business was
-the introduction and the maintenance of discipline in the Church. It is
-not to be doubted that he wished for order: that he wished absolutely
-for a Christian way of life; but it was not he who, as some believe,
-first introduced measures of discipline, nor was the maintenance of
-those measures the task of his life. Speaking of them,[379] he defends
-himself from the charge of being their author. ‘I observe and do
-whatsoever I have found,’ said he, ‘as one who takes no pleasure in
-making any innovation.’ It was the magistrate, who, being in Geneva
-head both of the Church and of the state, prescribed and enforced the
-laws of discipline. Before Calvin’s arrival at Geneva, we have seen how
-De la Rive was sentenced to banishment for having his child baptized
-by a priest. The year before some men, women, and magistrates had
-been condemned to the _crotton_ (black hole) for immorality. At the
-moment at which this stranger, whose name even was hardly known, had
-just crossed the threshold of the city--on the eve of the day on which
-Farel was to introduce him to the magistrate (Monday, September 4,
-1536)--a remarkable scene was taking place in the Council of the Two
-Hundred, which seems placed at that epoch as if on purpose to resolve
-distinctly the question which engages our attention. ‘Gentlemen,’ said
-the syndics, ‘we have all pledged ourselves in public council to live
-according to the Gospel, and nevertheless there are some here who do
-not go to preaching.’ At these words the councillor and former syndic
-Richardet, a fine, tall, and powerful man, but very passionate, rose
-in wrath and exclaimed with loud voice, ‘Nobody shall lord it over my
-conscience; and I will not go to sermon at the bidding of a Syndic
-Porral.’[380] Porral, a man of highly cultivated mind and a very
-active magistrate, had declared himself decisively for the Reform,
-and he was even charged to prosecute certain classes of delinquents.
-It had been enacted, on July 24, that those who refused to go to the
-preaching must quit the city in ten days. Richardet was not alone in
-his resolution. The question having been put to J. Philippe and two
-other councillors whether they would attend the preaching of the Word
-of God, ‘We will not be compelled,’ they said, ‘but will live in our
-liberty.’ These citizens were right in maintaining their liberty, and
-the magistrates were in the wrong. Calvin was far away from Geneva on
-July 24; and, generally speaking, he was not of so peremptory a temper
-as some imagine. There was a certain sphere in which he maintained
-liberty, and maintained it even against powerful adversaries. ‘Touching
-ceremonies,’ thus he wrote to the formidable lords of Berne, ‘they are
-things indifferent, and the churches are free to adopt a diversity of
-them.’[381] Still, we cannot deny it, Calvin thought--and these are his
-own words--that since there is no house, however small it be, which
-can be maintained in its proper state without discipline, it is much
-more requisite in the Church, which ought to be better ordered than
-any house. He went further. He asserted that the state has the right
-and is bound to take notice of matters of discipline, and to punish
-transgressors. It is to be regretted that the fine genius of Calvin did
-not make an exception in this case to the rule adopted ten centuries
-earlier by all Christendom, and that he did not convince the state that
-its heavy hand must not intervene in matters of religion. It is however
-fair to ask ourselves whether, in the sixteenth century, such an effort
-would not have been a superhuman task.
-
-Calvin himself made known to us his own thought when he said, ‘THE
-DOCTRINE OF OUR LORD JESUS CHRIST IS THE SOUL OF THE CHURCH.’[382]
-He set forth that doctrine in the church of St. Peter just as it is
-found in Scripture, and so diffused it in the world. Certainly it was
-not by discipline that he made his conquests. He bore the torch of
-truth. Devoid of ambition, having no designs reaching beyond Geneva,
-without any secret policy such as the Jesuits are skilled in, and
-armed with one weapon only, the truth, he triumphed over the greatest
-difficulties. Farel, Viret, Beza would not have sufficed. In this man
-of feeble constitution and humble aspect there were an unquenchable
-resolution, an energetic will. _He held fast, as seeing him who is
-invisible._ Established in this small town, he became God’s instrument,
-first for the spread of the Reformation in the West, then for defending
-it against the attacks of Rome and Loyola and Philip II. A new time was
-born for the world.
-
-Nevertheless it was not Calvin alone, as some appear to believe,
-who effected this great revolution. Had he come into the midst of a
-people indolent and effeminate, such victories would not have been
-won. But the Genevese had been preparing for centuries, by means of
-the struggles which they had gone through, for the maintenance of
-their liberty. A life of toil, incessant industry, and rude combats
-had inured them to blows. Their souls had been elevated. They were
-naturally keen and decisive; but that iron, already brilliant, had
-acquired by tempering an inflexible hardness. The heroism of the
-Huguenots of Geneva became one of the elements which contributed to
-the triumph of the Reformation. The character of those strong men was
-as essential to the work as coal is for the conversion of iron into
-steel. It was not Calvin the individual, it was Geneva in its entirety,
-that vanquished Rome. The energy of the Bertheliers, the Lévriers,
-and of many others, was one of the ingredients of the moral energy
-of which Geneva became the hearth, and which had almost disappeared
-from history. The most earnest of the Genevese Huguenots joined the
-reformer; the masses supported him; and some Frenchmen who had passed
-through the sieve of persecution, worthy also to be called Huguenots,
-gave the hand to the sons of Geneva. And when, after achieving its
-triumph, the Reformation found itself attacked by a numerous and
-powerful army, assembled under the banners of kings, of Ignatius
-Loyola, and the pope, Geneva and the men of her school, who were found
-in all parts of Christendom, were able to resist the hostile force, and
-to say to it, ‘No further shalt thou go!’
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN RETAINED AT GENEVA.]
-
-There was, indeed, in the struggle for the renewal of Christendom, one
-will which conceived, one personality which acted, one voice which
-resounded with a force till then almost unknown, and in a thousand
-directions: it was, next to Luther’s, that of Calvin. But while a great
-general is indispensable in the day of battle, so also is an army
-trained by him for energetic conflict. The part which Geneva played
-in the sixteenth century is not explained by the character of one man
-alone, but by many concurrent circumstances both moral and political.
-That army, created by a vivifying breath from on high, was soon in
-action wherever a struggle became necessary. Those soldiers went forth
-into the world, braved danger, displayed their colors, and proclaimed
-salvation, until at length Rome gave them the martyr’s death, and
-God gave them the crown of immortality. CALVIN and the HUGUENOTS, that
-is the great motto of the sixteenth century.
-
-Farel, as we have seen, had taken on himself the responsibility
-of enrolling the young doctor and of opening to him the church of
-St. Peter. Charmed with Calvin’s method of exposition of the Holy
-Scriptures, that veteran champion of the Reformation expressed his
-opinion on the subject to the magistrates. On Tuesday, September 5,
-1536, the day after the famous altercation respecting religious liberty
-had taken place in the Council of the Two Hundred, William Farel
-appeared before the council and gave an account of the teaching of the
-young foreigner, which some of the members of that body had probably
-attended, and added--‘The lectures which this Frenchman[383] has begun
-at St. Peter’s are very necessary. I therefore entreat you to retain
-him and to make provision for his maintenance.’ The council determined
-to advise that the stranger, whose name was not even uttered, should be
-retained. Many had seen him. The pale countenance, the spare form, the
-modest bearing, the timorous air of this refugee of twenty-seven, had
-not given the impression of his being a person of note. The council did
-not even make him a present of a dress or anything of the kind, as it
-was customary to do. It waited, no doubt, to see whether it was worth
-while. The man whose name was shortly to fill the city and the whole
-Christian world, entered almost _incognito_ into Geneva. Every one was
-at that time thinking of Farel. On September 8 that reformer, ‘having
-addressed a remonstrance to the council,’ it was resolved ‘that since
-the writings of the aforesaid Guillaume _are so divine_, he should
-preach at six o’clock in the morning in the church of St. Germain, and
-that the councillors should be bound to attend there, and pass thence,
-at seven, into the council.’[384]
-
-Calvin’s lectures were soon interrupted. At the end of September,
-Farel with his young friend as his assistant quitted Geneva to go to
-Lausanne, whither an urgent duty called them. An important assembly was
-going to be held in the chief city of the Pays de Vaud.
-
-Farel, Viret, and other evangelists, as already related, had introduced
-the Reformation into such parts of that country as were subject to
-the Swiss cantons; but the other parishes of that fair land had
-still remained subject to the pope. Meanwhile Luther’s writings were
-everywhere circulated, the eyes of the people began to be opened,
-and several evangelists, particularly Jean Lecomte, a gentleman of
-Picardie, had preached the Gospel in various places. The occupation
-of the country by the Bernese, on occasion of the expedition which
-delivered Geneva in 1536, hastened the fall of Roman Catholicism. When
-the Bernese had taken Yverdon with the sword, they transformed the
-church of that town in a somewhat soldierly fashion. They bluntly put
-an end to the exercise of the Romish religion; appointed Malingre to
-be minister; on March 15 had their religious ordinances published;
-burnt, March 17, the images out of the churches in the market-place,
-and ordered the ministers to preach in temples cleared of those
-abominations. Lecomte, Tissot, Meige, and other evangelists introduced
-the Reform, but by the spiritual means of preaching, at Cossonay,
-Montagny, Yvonand, Sainte-Croix, and other places. Avenches and Lutry
-showed themselves decidedly Catholic, and they determined that if by
-any chance a minister should go there, they would not go to hear him.
-
-[Sidenote: THE GOSPEL IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.]
-
-In March 1536, as Viret and Fabry were passing near Yverdon during the
-siege of that town by the Bernese army, some Lausannese officers who
-were serving in it and who were acquainted with Viret, stopped him and
-said, ‘When Yverdon is taken, we shall go to Lausanne: come with us
-and preach the Gospel there in spite of the bishop.’ They did so. The
-amiable and discreet Viret would have been ill pleased to see Lausanne
-reformed by the military method, like Yverdon. He preferred the sword
-of the Spirit to that of the Bernese soldiery. He would choose that, in
-the sloping streets of that city and within its beautiful cathedral,
-the still small voice should be heard, and not the hissing of the
-tempest and the crash of thunder. He preached therefore the ‘glad
-tidings of great joy,’ and preached them with success, in the church
-of the convent of St. Francis. The Canons complained bitterly to the
-council. ‘A strange thing this,’ they said, ‘to see in Lausanne _two_
-preachers at a time! A whole multitude of do-nothing monks, well and
-good! But two preachers of Jesus Christ, what useless waste!’ ‘The less
-preaching there is the better,’ said the friends of Rome. ‘The more
-preaching the better,’ said the friends of the Gospel. If the Canons
-did their duty, remarked some one, instead of two preachers we should
-have thirty.[385] The burgesses, as usual, took a middle course which
-must fail to satisfy either one party or the other. They resolved that
-the evangelists should preach in the church of Mary Magdalene, but
-without removing the altars, the fonts, the organs, the images, and
-other decorations, ‘which did no harm to anybody,’ said the burgesses;
-and that the friars of the Dominican order should also celebrate in the
-same church the Roman Catholic service in the usual way.[386] That is
-what the great Saxon reformer called ‘trying to bring together Luther
-and the pope.’
-
-[Sidenote: IMAGE WORSHIP.]
-
-Viret therefore preached in that church. But when Lent was come, the
-Dominican Monbouson began to discourse in the cathedral, and maintained
-their Romish traditions with violence and plenty of lying. Viret was
-informed of it, and as he thought that the best way to refute the
-papal doctrine was to make it distinctly known, he put in writing the
-assertions of the friar and called upon him publicly to defend them,
-announcing that he was prepared to reply to him. Monbouson felt strong
-enough to maintain his thesis when he stood surrounded by a whole
-phalanx of scholastic doctors and had nobody to contradict him, but he
-grew pale in the presence of the young Viret. ‘Ah,’ said he, ‘I would
-gladly do what you propose at Avignon, at Paris, or at Dôle; but at
-Lausanne there is nobody capable of judging of the matter.’--‘You ought
-then to preach only at Dôle, Paris, or Avignon,’ replied Viret; ‘but
-since you have lied at Lausanne, it is at Lausanne that satisfaction
-is due.’ Then the friar, anxious to get out of his embarrassment,
-withdrew in the quietest manner and disappeared.[387] The reformed
-Christians did not think, with those gentlemen of Lausanne, that
-images, altars, etc., did nobody any harm. They believed that the
-paintings did harm. They believed that the people, thanks to the
-images, made for themselves many minor gods before which they bent
-their knees in order to obtain this or that favor, or the healing of
-this or that malady: that the visible made them forget the invisible:
-that it was frightful to think that, every time some simple soul
-came to worship God in his temple, those figures of saints became
-occasions of falling or of scandal. ‘Alas!’ they said, ‘how many
-poor creatures called to be children of God have been made by those
-images children of the devil!’ Those, therefore, of the reformed of
-Lausanne, in whose judgment the pictures of saints and angels seduced
-and almost inevitably led astray the weak, began to stir in the matter.
-Commencing with the church of the Magdalene, they removed the images
-and the altars and broke or burnt them. Then betaking themselves
-to the church of St. Francis, they did the same there, and counted
-themselves happy in thus keeping the commandment, _Thou shalt have
-no other gods before me_. The old folk of Lausanne, who were already
-disconsolate at being left without a bishop, were still more distressed
-when they found themselves deprived of their images and their masses;
-and they sent deputies to Berne to complain of it. The Bernese council
-listened to them with all politeness, and dismissed them with good
-words. Lausanne then sent another deputation, consisting of twelve
-persons of distinction. At Berne they were asked, ‘What is it that you
-want?’ ‘Two masses weekly,’ they replied, according to a Lausannese
-manuscript.[388] If the statement is true, the request was certainly
-very moderate for zealous Catholics. The concession was made to
-them, but it was coupled with the condition that they should provide
-ministers for all the churches that asked for them. At the same time
-they gave them to understand that it would be well to hold at Lausanne
-a great disputation on religion, in order to decide between Rome and
-Reform. That was a good deal to ask for the two masses which were
-granted them.
-
-The Bernese, indeed, were anxious that the Vaudois, whose country they
-had recently conquered, should attach themselves to the Reformation.
-It was no doubt partly from a regard to political interests that they
-wished this, but they did not overlook the interest of religion.
-Be that as it may, the reformation of religion in that country was
-a source of great prosperity both temporal and spiritual. The Pays
-de Vaud was to offer the stranger, at a later time, not only those
-beauties of nature which excite our admiration, but still more,
-numerous examples of sincere and vital piety, which is far sweeter
-and pleasanter than its lakes, and more sublime than its peaks and
-glaciers. The seed which was scattered at the epoch of the Reformation,
-in its valleys and on its mountains, was truly the Word of God; and one
-cannot but see there the fulfilment of that ancient oracle, _He that
-soweth to the Spirit shall of the Spirit reap everlasting life_.
-
-The conversion of Yverdon had been somewhat checked by the siege which
-the town had sustained. The lords of Berne wished in general to employ,
-like Viret, evangelical means; to reveal to their new subjects the
-grosser superstitions under whose yoke they had been held, and to give
-them the knowledge of the truth. For that end they resolved to appoint
-first a public disputation such as had been held at Zurich, Berne,
-and Geneva. As soon as the report was circulated in the country that
-a great assembly for discussion on matters of faith was to be held at
-Lausanne, the priests and their friends were alarmed. The excitement
-extended to all the villages. The friends of the papacy expected to see
-black clouds gathering on the horizon, and a violent storm presently
-burst on the old ship which had carried their fathers, and make it
-founder, thus engulfing in the depths of the sea all the traditions of
-their doctrine and all the pomps of their worship. They determined to
-do everything in their power to oppose such an assembly, and they wrote
-to the bishop and to the council at Friburg, to the pope and to the
-emperor.
-
-[Sidenote: A DISPUTATION APPOINTED.]
-
-The cry of distress which they uttered was heard. The council of
-Friburg sent a deputation to Berne to oppose the projected meeting.
-Charles V., who was then in Italy, addressed a letter to the council
-of _his imperial city_, requiring it ‘to prevent that disputation as
-well as any change in matters of faith, to restore everything to its
-former state, to allow nothing contrary to the tenor of his edicts, and
-to await quietly the council.’ This missive was dated from Savigliano,
-July 3, 1536.[389]
-
-It was evident that the country had arrived at a critical pass, and
-that it was necessary to find some way of escape. The remedy proposed
-by the priests and the monks was,--to draw back. They assailed the
-Reformation from the pulpit, and they hurried from house to house and
-circulated in the streets the most outrageous reports against the
-reformed and the Reformation. Some of them opposed the disputation by
-asserting that ‘the ministers are magicians who have in their service
-a multitude of demons by means of which they bewitch their hearers.’
-Other priests made up their mind to put a good face on the matter.
-They blustered a good deal; they bragged of having already won many
-a victory over their adversaries. ‘Let them only give us permission
-to contend with them in a regular discussion,’ they said, ‘and we are
-strong enough to beat them.’[390]
-
-The council of Berne no longer hesitated. Without awaiting the possible
-decision of the emperor, they issued, July 16, an edict in opposition
-to the orders of Charles. ‘We desire,’ the edict ran, ‘that the people
-of our territories, (which by the grace of God we have justly acquired
-by conquest,) should walk with all their hearts in the way which our
-Lord has commanded. Nevertheless that has not been done, and even gross
-insults have been offered to the preachers and to those who wished to
-follow the Gospel. Desirous of putting in order all these confused
-affairs, we enjoin all priests and monks, as well as the preachers,
-to present themselves at Lausanne, on October 1 next, for the purpose
-of proving what they believe, freely and frankly, by argument on the
-grounds of Holy Scripture. We address this appeal not only to those
-of our own territories, but to all comers and goers, of whatsoever
-nation they be, and we promise them safe-keeping. We further order that
-our priests and preachers attend the assembly from its opening to its
-close, without default, and under pain of our indignation.’[391]
-
-A few days after the edict of Berne, some Savoyard ambassadors, on
-their way to the diet of Berne, delivered the emperor’s letter to
-the council of Lausanne. That body having laid on the table side by
-side the epistle of his Catholic majesty and the edict of the lords
-of Berne, found themselves, to their great dismay, placed between the
-anvil and the hammer. Pressed thus by the two conflicting parties,
-they foresaw nothing but calamity whether they resisted the one or
-the other. The imperial document was read to the general council July
-23. Its members, the majority of whom were attached to the Romish
-Church, thought that the wisest plan was to obey the most powerful,
-and therefore, sheltering themselves under the order of the great
-potentate, they enacted that the parties should live peaceably
-together, but that no innovation should be made until after the
-decision of the council. At the same time a deputation set out for
-Berne in order to prevent the disputation. But all was useless. Berne
-was stronger than the Emperor Charles V. That prince was in Italy, and
-the absent are in the wrong.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
- THE DISPUTATION AT LAUSANNE.
-
- (OCTOBER, 1536.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: THE DISPUTATION AT LAUSANNE.]
-
-The disputation of Lausanne inaugurates with a certain grandeur the
-Reformation of the Vaudois. Some look upon it as merely a Bernese
-project. But that imposing assembly, among whose speakers were all or
-nearly all the reformers of western Switzerland; at which the great
-evangelical questions were discussed; and by means of which some of
-those who were present were converted; is evidence that the Reform
-was truly the work of God. The Reformation had begun in that country,
-obscurely and modestly, in some districts on the banks of the Rhone,
-on the shores of the lake of Neuchâtel, and in others besides. It now
-announced itself with power, and the mass of the people were going to
-embrace it. Men discourse much in books about the beautiful. We find
-true beauty, Christian beauty, evangelical, inward, more veiled perhaps
-than that of the world, but more pure and more solid, in the doctrine
-then proclaimed at Lausanne, and often in the manner in which it was
-set forth, although we have to make allowance for the time. We find it
-in the Farels, the Calvins, the Virets and other heroic men of that
-epoch, who lived with God, who were unwearied in their work, and were
-always ready to give their lives for the truth which they proclaimed.
-That synod was a beautiful portico erected to lead men into a temple of
-divine beauty.
-
-[Sidenote: PREPARATIONS AT LAUSANNE.]
-
-Farel was preparing for the disputation; and on the Roman Catholic
-side there was much ado to find valiant champions. At Lausanne there
-was no canon, no priest, no monk who came forward to defend the
-doctrine by which till that day they had lived. It was necessary to
-beat to arms elsewhere. They did so; and at the end of September
-the Dominican Monbouson, Michod dean of Vevey, the vicars Drogy
-and Berrilly, and others besides, arrived, in the town. Two laymen
-alone represented Lausanne, the captain of the youth,[392] Fernand
-de Loys, and the French physician Blancherose. The latter was ‘_un
-homme tenant de la lune_’ (something of a lunatic), said the Catholic
-Pierrefleur, ‘who blends in his discussions medicine and theology, and
-excites boundless merriment.’ Viret, Marcourt, and Lecomte appeared
-for the reformed. From Geneva came Chapuis, a former Dominican, then
-pastor at Compesières, and Jacques Bernard, formerly superior of the
-Cordeliers. But the man who chiefly attracted attention was Farel, who
-was accompanied by a young man pale and modest, unknown by sight to
-most, and who appeared to be his assistant. It was John Calvin. Farel
-had urged him to come to Lausanne, but Calvin shrank from the thought
-of speaking in that great assembly. Still he was deeply interested in
-its proceedings. ‘The Senate of Berne,’ said he, ‘has declared that
-everyone is at liberty to state his objections freely, without need to
-fear being disturbed in consequence of it. That is the fittest means
-of exposing the ignorance of those who set themselves against the
-Gospel.’[393] These two men had set out in company with the Syndic
-Porral, and they arrived with many others at the cathedral, in which
-the disputation was to be held. An amphitheatre had been constructed.
-The altars, pictures, statues, and rich ornaments of the Romish worship
-still displayed their magnificence; and even the canons, who were
-determined to keep silence, but nevertheless wished to do something,
-had brought out of their hiding-places the image of the holy Virgin and
-all those of the saints, trusting more, it would seem, to the eloquence
-of those dumb figures than to their own.
-
-On the side of the Reformation there was no other preparation but
-some simple evangelical theses drawn up by Farel, and affixed to the
-doors of all the churches. They were entitled, ‘Conclusions which are
-to be discussed at Lausanne, a new province of Berne.’ In the form of
-ten articles it was declared,--that Holy Scripture teaches no other
-justification than that which is by faith in Jesus Christ, once for
-all offered in sacrifice--that it acknowledges no other head, priest,
-saviour, or mediator of the Church than Jesus Christ, seated at the
-right hand of God;--that it gives the name ‘Church of God’ only to
-the assembly of those who believe in their redemption by Jesus Christ
-alone. The other seven articles established the sacraments of baptism
-and the Lord’s supper--the ministry of the Word of God--confession
-made to God--absolution coming from God--spiritual service rendered
-to God, such as is ordained by the Word, and without the infinite
-mockeries which pervert religion--the civil magistrate ordained of God
-to maintain the peace of the Republic--marriage a divine institution
-for any class whatsoever--and the free use, so it be with charity, of
-things indifferent.[394]
-
-On Sunday, October 1, all the bells were set a-going, and a great crowd
-filled the cathedral. But the lords of Berne, in whose presence the
-disputation was to take place, had not yet arrived. It was a great
-disappointment. However, the opening took place on Sunday, although
-the discussion only began on Monday. It was Farel, the senior of the
-French reformers, the great champion of the Gospel in the district of
-Geneva, Vaud, and Neuchâtel, that Christian man, at once so learned and
-so pious, so devout and so active, who made the first speech, in which
-his design was to prepare the minds of those present for a becoming
-and Christian conference.[395] He said,--‘While Satan leads the sheep
-astray in order to destroy them, our Lord seeks to bring them back
-to his holy flock in order to save them. We shall never attain real
-unity except by means of the truth. A safe-conduct has therefore been
-given to all, to go and come, to speak and to hear, as shall seem good
-to them, for the truth must not be hidden. May it be the truth that
-wins the day! If I myself were wholly vanquished and put to confusion,
-while the truth had its triumph, I should count that the greatest gain
-and the best possible victory. Let all therefore, whether priests
-or preachers, have respect to the great shepherd Jesus Christ, who
-gave his body and his blood for the poor people. Let us prefer to be
-nothing, if only the poor sheep, gone so far astray, may find the right
-way, may come to Jesus and give themselves to God. That will be better
-than if we should gain all the world and lose those for whom Jesus
-died. If any man will exalt himself against Jesus, if any man will
-light against the faith, it would be better for him if he had never
-been born. Let us not despise our neighbor. Let us not mock him. Let
-us not shut the door of the kingdom of heaven and take away the key of
-knowledge. Let us be free from all hatred and rancor. Let us love all
-men, pray for all men, do good to all men. Let us visit the poor and
-the afflicted, that is the true pilgrimage. Those little ones are the
-images of God, and it is to those images that we ought to resort, to
-them that we should carry food and candles.... My dear brethren, when
-you hear the bell ring, present yourselves here in God’s name, in peace
-and unity, without disturbance or murmuring.’ This was indeed a good
-and Christian address, and after hearing it the assembly dispersed.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL’S DISCOURSE.]
-
-On Monday, October 2, at seven o’clock in the morning, the cathedral
-was again filled, and ‘as soon as the shrill sound of the bell had
-ceased, there appeared on the platform the ambassadors of Berne,’ J.
-J. de Watteville, formerly _avoyer_,[396] J. de Diesbach, and the
-_baillifs_ of Yverdon and Lausanne. They were easily recognized by
-their red and black doublets, skirts, and hose. The council of Geneva
-had sent as its representative the Syndic A. Porral, a warm friend
-of Reform. Presidents were chosen from among the men of Berne and
-Lausanne. Then Farel rose and read his first thesis, which treated of
-man’s justification before God, developed and proved it.
-
-When he had finished, the vice-bailiff of Lausanne said aloud, ‘If
-any man has aught to say against these first conclusions, let him
-come forward and we shall willingly listen to him.’ The canons of the
-cathedral then rose, who were determined not to carry on but to prevent
-the discussion, and one of them, Perrini, said, ‘When doubts arise
-respecting the faith, they must be resolved according to the true sense
-of the Scriptures. Now, that is lawful only to the Church universal,
-which is not liable to error. Therefore, we, the provost and canons of
-this church, do solemnly protest against this controversy, and refer it
-to the next council.’[397]
-
-This proposal not to proceed was inadmissible. The courageous Farel
-opposed it. ‘It is nowhere asserted in the Scripture,’ said he, ‘that
-any particular Church is liable to error and that the universal Church
-is exempt from it. On the contrary, it is to a particular Church that
-Jesus Christ addresses the words, _Where two or three are gathered
-together in my name, there am I in the midst of them_. This promise
-cannot fail. The Canons refrained from accusing by their protest all
-the early doctors and the holy fathers, for whom they make pretence of
-so much reverence. We find in fact, in the writings of those ancients,
-only particular disputations, held for the purpose of examining
-articles at that time controverted. There are ten such articles in
-Cyprian, and twenty or thereabouts, in Augustine. If they accuse us,
-who are now assembled here, how shall they defend their own provincial
-councils, their monks’ chapters, all their schools and Sorbonnes, in
-which they hold conferences for the research of truth? Most of those
-whom they have condemned as heretics were not condemned in a general
-council, but in some particular assembly. Paul, speaking with reference
-to churches as they were, scattered in towns or villages, said, _Let
-the prophets speak two or three, and let the other judge_. (1 Cor. xiv.
-29.)
-
-‘And how do these reverend gentlemen prove that the Church general
-cannot err? This is their pretty assertion, invented too by them,
-according to their excellent custom. They say that our Lord prayed
-for St. Peter that his faith might not fail. Who then has revealed
-to them the fact, either asleep or awake, that Peter is the Church
-universal? If it were indeed represented by St. Peter, then it would
-follow that the Church universal may, in one single day, three times
-deny Jesus Christ, as Peter did so after that word had been spoken to
-him. If an assembly of the Church universal were the only body capable
-of resolving doubts, then all the martyrs of Jesus Christ, who in the
-first three centuries set the seal with their blood to the truth of the
-Gospel, would have suffered death for things doubtful, for the Church
-universal had not yet been assembled in general council.
-
-[Sidenote: THE DISPUTATION.]
-
-‘If there be now a universal council which pretends to infallibility,
-let it then show us that it assembles _in the name of Jesus_! A holy
-company indeed is that of the pope and his cardinals! Fair pillars of
-the church are bishops and prelates! Great zealots for the faith are
-the monks! It is greatly to be doubted whether, if all that multitude
-were thoroughly sifted, one man among them would be found deserving to
-be called a true member of the Church of Christ! It is of men who are
-all trying to get the benefices and the dignities of the Church that a
-general council consists, and this calls itself the Church universal.
-Ah! to secure their wealth, their honor, and their gain, they would be
-ready not only to trample in the dust the word of Jesus Christ, but
-they would go further and put himself to death, if he were present
-in his own person. Such is the fine band with whom, if we take their
-word, the Holy Spirit dwells! If any man offer to contend with them on
-reasonable grounds, proceedings will be taken against him to punish him
-for his audacity, and, as was the case at the council of Constance, he
-will be condemned and burnt.’[398]
-
-Thus spake Farel. We may perhaps think some of his remarks severe, but
-if we take into account the time, the form of his speech is certainly
-not amiss, and the substance of it is unanswerable. After that
-discourse, the Dominican Monbouson and the reformer Viret argued on the
-same subject till eleven o’clock. Then the call was heard, ‘Retire for
-dinner,’ and the meeting broke up. In the afternoon the old priests and
-monks of Thonon, who had bragged that they would put the ministers to
-confusion, were in the assembly. Fabry, who was well acquainted with
-Thonon and its clergy, invited them to speak. Not one of them did so.
-Two of them declared that they believed the theses to be true, and most
-of the others contented themselves with giving their adhesion to the
-protest of the canons.
-
-On Tuesday, October 3, Dr. Blancherose (of whom it was said _il tenait
-de la lune_) addressed the assembly. Even if the clergy were silent he
-thought himself quite competent to maintain his cause. ‘Magnificent
-and mighty lords,’ he began, ‘I am a physician; my profession is that
-of medicine, not that of theology.’ To which Farel politely answered,
-‘To be a physician does not at all clash with true theology. St. Luke
-was a physician likewise.’--‘I have taught,’ said Blancherose, ‘in many
-cities and universities of France; moreover, I was once physician to
-the king, and afterwards to the princess of Orange.’ He then began to
-set forth strange theories on what he called the _monarchies_ of the
-Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost. Caroli was present. It is known
-that this inconsistent and whimsical man was sometimes a Papist and
-sometimes a Protestant. For the moment he was Protestant. So he raised
-the cry, just as if he were with a hunting party, ‘A hare started out
-of the Donatist warren!’ The priests themselves were not particularly
-pleased with their lay companion in arms. Mimard, therefore,
-schoolmaster of Vevey, and Jacques Drogy, vicar of Morges, hastened to
-the rescue, hoping to retake from the enemy what he had carried off.
-But their attempt had no great success.
-
-Drogy renewed his speech on Wednesday, October 4. He must have
-known well what kind of life was led by many priests, monks, and
-laymen, who at the same time that they were doing everything to save
-themselves by legal works, found therein a support, and, so to say, an
-indulgence, for giving themselves up unscrupulously to an impure life.
-Nevertheless, he showed that he was greatly alarmed, and no doubt
-sincerely, at the dangers to which the doctrine of justification by
-faith alone would expose the work of sanctification. He therefore said,
-‘If you say that a man is justified by faith and not by works, people
-will not take the trouble to live well.’ Drogy was seeking light. The
-sayings of the reformers had disturbed him, and all that he desired was
-to see the truth clearly.
-
-[Sidenote: THE CHURCH AND THE SCRIPTURES.]
-
-Caroli, once Romanist and now Protestant, whose inconsistencies we
-have seen and shall again see, spoke on this occasion with fairness.
-As doctor of the Sorbonne and a man of intelligence, he was well
-acquainted with the doctrine; only he did not walk according to its
-teaching. He rose and said, ‘To allege that works must be partners in
-justification is to enervate Jesus Christ; that is, to say that he
-alone is not sufficient to justify us. If a man be absolved through
-faith, it is certainly not in order that he may again begin doing evil.
-Just as when a king grants a pardon, it is not that the man may repeat
-his offence. God forgives all my offences only in order that I may do
-good works. Are you not yourselves in the habit of saying to a dying
-man, God is a greater _pardoner_ than man is an offender? The death of
-Jesus is more effectual in the punishment of sin than the death of all
-mankind.’[399]
-
-The laity were ashamed to see their cause so ill defended by their
-priests. The captain of the youth of Lausanne, Fernand de Loys,
-therefore entered the lists. He was a clear-headed man; he had learnt
-carefully some theses of the Romish theology, and had a little of that
-presumption which is frequently seen in the young men of whom he was
-one of the chiefs. He came forward, with his baton raised, speaking
-bluntly and without palliation. ‘The Church is before the Scripture,
-worthier than the Scripture, and invested with higher authority.
-Now the Church teaches justification by works.’ Farel, roused by
-hearing such assertions, exclaimed, ‘Which is first, the Church or
-the Scripture?... Certainly, the Scripture is before the Church. The
-Church has its existence through the Word of God; and Jesus himself
-proved what he said by reference to the Scriptures.’ Upon this the
-physician Blancherose thought he must come to the aid of the captain of
-the young men, and said to Farel, ‘In saying so much of faith, and in
-making it the cause of all good, you are very much like the sorcerers
-and enchanters, who, through the faith which they have in certain
-words, pretend to do so many great and wonderful things.’ Farel, taking
-little heed to these jests, said, ‘Jesus was beaten and wounded; he
-bore the discipline for our sakes; for us he died.’ The master of the
-Catholic school of Vevey, who was present, seems to have had a truer
-Christian feeling than his colleagues, and, profiting by Farel’s words,
-he said, ‘Precisely so; it is Jesus who justifies us, and not faith.’
-This was more serious. Farel therefore supported the first part of the
-proposition. In opposing the second part, he said--‘Yes, it is Jesus
-alone who justifies; but he justifies only those who receive him by
-faith, and he dwells in those who believe. But as for those who do not
-believe in him, he is for them only a stone of stumbling and of ruin.’
-
-The truth began to be pursued more closely. The reverend Jean Michod,
-of Vevey, who had studied at Paris and was acquainted with the
-interpretations of Romish theology, rose and said--‘St. Peter tells
-us that there are unlearned persons who pervert the Holy Scriptures
-to their own destruction. I have often listened to wise doctors at
-Paris, and they all declared that that passage of the Epistle to
-the Romans--_A man is justified by faith without the works of the
-law_--had reference exclusively to the Jewish _ceremonies_, such as
-circumcision.’ Then turning to Caroli, ‘You, sir, our master,’ said
-he, ‘I have heard you at Paris, at the College of Cambrai, expound
-that passage in the same way.’ That was an _argumentum ad hominem_,
-and Michod believed that the circumstances peculiar to the person
-himself to whom he addressed it rendered it unanswerable. But Caroli,
-who was not deficient in presence of mind, replied, ‘The fact is that
-I was at that time one of those unlearned persons of whom St. Peter
-speaks in the passage which you have just cited, who _pervert the
-Holy Scriptures_. But God has now given me the true understanding of
-the matter. I have changed, and it will be well for you to do the
-same.’[400]
-
-[Sidenote: THE REAL PRESENCE.]
-
-In the afternoon of the third day they passed to the second thesis,
-affirming that Jesus is the only pontiff. As no one raised an
-objection, even in favor of the pope, which was a very significant
-fact, they went on to the third proposition, respecting the true
-Church. _That Church_, it was said, _Christ, who in his corporal
-presence has been taken away from us, fills, governs, and vivifies by
-his Holy Spirit_. The Roman Catholics took advantage of the thesis to
-turn the discussion on the corporal presence. Blancherose, who was
-always confident that he could answer everything, rose first, and
-began to speak of the sun and of all sorts of things. He undertook to
-prove the doctrine of transubstantiation by the example of an egg,
-which is converted into a chick, which chick is afterwards eaten by
-a man. Viret did not think that strange argument deserving of a very
-grave answer. ‘That proof,’ he said, ‘reverses the order of things.
-To make it applicable, it would be necessary for the priests to sit
-on the object transformed, as hens sit on their eggs.’ Blancherose,
-having offered other instances of the same kind, was invited to carry
-on the discussion by the Scripture, and not by proofs taken from the
-sun, which is everywhere at once, from hens, from their eggs changed
-into chicks, and from chickens which are eaten, and from other natural
-transformations.
-
-On Thursday, October 5, in the morning, the presidents, offended by
-the extravagances of the doctors, and perceiving that the method till
-then pursued would entail digressions and interminable prolixity,
-announced that, instead of resuming the debate, and with the hope of
-shortening the proceedings, the following alternative would be offered
-to all canons, abbots, priors, monks, curés, and vicars in the whole
-country, as well as to the ministers: ‘Argue, get some one to argue for
-you, or subscribe the theses.’ All were then called by name, and those
-who declared themselves willing to subscribe passed into the choir.
-Megander, a minister of Berne, exhorted them to preach nothing but the
-pure Word of God, and after that they were allowed to withdraw if they
-wished. But those who declined to adhere to the theses were ordered to
-remain to the close of the disputation.
-
-In the afternoon, Mimard appeared with a long manuscript of his own
-composition, intended to vindicate the mass. The subject was treated
-under thirteen heads, which did not seem to promise much for shortening
-the business. Mimard was, at any rate, a serious speaker, although
-a little dull and rather prolix. ‘Do you pretend,’ he said, ‘to be
-wiser and more enlightened by the Holy Spirit than the holy doctors,
-St. Augustine, St. Jerome, St. Ambrose, and St. Gregory, who all
-believed in the real presence? If you reject them as unlearned, it is
-merely because they are opposed to you.’ Farel replied on the thirteen
-heads, without omitting one of them. What was said by each of the two
-champions may easily be imagined. The subject has already been so
-frequently brought forward that it is needless to spend more time over
-it now. But there was present in the assembly one young theologian,
-who rejoiced to hear his friends defending the true doctrine, and
-who by reason of his youth and his modesty had been kept silent till
-that time. It was Calvin. For four days he had sat there without
-speaking, contenting himself with the part of a hearer. But he had a
-brave heart. That Ambrose, that Augustine, those other doctors, he was
-well acquainted with them. He knew their words by heart. They were
-his friends, and he could not stand by and see them insulted by being
-ranked with the pope’s army. He could not be silent any longer; his
-heart burnt within him, and he felt impelled to defend the principles
-which were brought to light by the Reformation. But he wished also to
-restore to those great men of Christian antiquity, and above all to his
-beloved Augustine, the honor which was due to them. This was the first
-occasion on which Calvin took part in any of the great discussions of
-the time, and it is worth while to listen to him.
-
-[Sidenote: SPEECH OF CALVIN.]
-
-‘I have abstained from speaking till this moment,’ he said, ‘and it
-was my intention to abstain to the end, perceiving that any speech of
-mine was unnecessary, because my brethren Farel and Viret have made
-sufficient reply. But the reproach which you have uttered against us
-with regard to the ancient doctors compels me to show again briefly how
-grievously you err in accusing us on this point.
-
-‘We despise them and reject them altogether, you say, and that because
-we find them opposed to our cause. Verily, all the world, we own, might
-esteem us not only rash men, but arrogant beyond measure, if we held
-in derision such servants of God, and considered them _asses_, as you
-say we do. Those who make pretence of holding them in great reverence,
-frequently honor them less than we do, and would not deign to employ
-in reading their works the time which we gladly devote to it. But we
-do not exalt their authority to such a height as to allow it to lessen
-the dignity of the Word of the Lord, to which, exclusively, entire
-obedience ought to be given in the Church of Christ. We should fear
-being found rebels against that Word of the Lord which asks whether
-his people ought not to be content with _his voice_, and which adds,
-_without hearing either the living or the dead_. Yes, we do rest in
-his sacred Word, and we fasten on it our hearts, our understandings,
-our eyes, our ears, without turning aside to the right hand or to the
-left. _If any one speak_, says Peter, _let him speak as the oracles of
-God_; we therefore teach the people of Jesus not human doctrines, but
-heavenly wisdom. With the ancient doctors, we seek for God’s truth,
-with them we listen to it and keep it with all reverence, reserving to
-the Lord this glory, _that his mouth alone be opened in the Church, to
-speak with authority_. Let every ear then hear him, and let every soul
-be ready to obey him!
-
-‘As to your assertion that we despise the fathers because they are not
-on our side, it would be easy for me to show that whatever matters are
-in controversy between us, that assertion is no more true than your
-reproach. But, to confine myself to the subject before us, I will lay
-before you only a small number of passages of such a character that
-there will be nothing left for you to reply to.’
-
-Calvin had not with him the voluminous works of the fathers; but his
-memory was a library abridged. Tertullian, Chrysostom, and the writers
-of his time, especially Augustine, came immediately to his aid.
-‘Tertullian,’ said he, ‘when refuting Marcion, speaks thus, “Christ
-in the supper has left us the _figure_ of his body.” The author of
-the commentary on St. Matthew, contained in the works of Chrysostom,
-says, “It is a far greater offence to defile ourselves, who are the
-true vessels in which God dwells, than to profane the vessels in which
-the supper is administered, since that _the real body of Jesus Christ
-is not contained in them_, but only the mystery of his body.” St.
-Augustine, in his twenty-third Epistle,[401] says, “The bread and the
-wine, which are sacraments of the body and blood of Christ, _we call
-them in a certain sense_ (_quodammodo_) his body and his blood.” And
-in his book against Adimantus, he adds, “The Lord did not hesitate to
-say, This is my body, when he gave the _sign of his body_.” Weigh all
-these words, every syllable of them if you will, and see whether these
-declarations in any way favor your error. When you taunt us with the
-charge that the ancients are against us, everybody sees your rashness.
-Assuredly, if you had read only a few pages you would not have been
-so bold; but you have not even seen the covering of the book. The
-foregoing testimonies, which may easily be pointed out, prove it.’
-
-[Sidenote: DOCTRINE OF THE FATHERS.]
-
-At this point, Calvin, wishing to show fully how chimerical the Romish
-opinion is, offered one or two considerations which, while they display
-his fine intelligence, are not lacking in solidity. ‘It is not without
-reason,’ he said, ‘that we reject the foolish opinion which the craft
-of Satan introduced into the world. In the supper we certainly eat
-the same body of Christ as the apostles ate at its institution, and
-it must be either his mortal body or his glorified body. If it be his
-mortal body, Jesus is then at this hour mortal and passible, while the
-Scripture declares to us that he has laid aside all infirmity. If it
-be his immortal and glorified body, Jesus, at the first supper, was in
-a certain place (seated at the table) in his mortal and passible body,
-and he was in another place (in the hands and mouths of his disciples)
-in his immortal and glorified body. The dreams of Marcion were never so
-fantastic!...’
-
-Calvin, however, went further and, knowing the importance which Rome
-attached to the letter, felt bound to show to what that method leads.
-He has explained his own doctrine elsewhere in a more complete manner,
-but we must not suppress what he said on this solemn occasion. ‘If you
-tie yourselves to words,’ said he, ‘if you so rigorously insist on
-these words, _Hoc est corpus meum_, you are compelled by such verbal
-strictness to separate the body of the Lord from his blood. For he
-said, _This is my body_, pointing to the bread, and when pointing to
-the wine, _This is my blood_. Now, to imagine that the body of Christ
-was separated from his blood is an abominable thing. I know that you
-evade this by what you call the _concomitance_. But do not allege it,
-for it is mere mockery. If the real body is in the cup, as you affirm
-it to be, the Lord of truth then spoke falsely when he said, _This is
-my blood_.
-
-‘No, it is neither the natural body nor the natural blood of our Lord
-Jesus which is given to us in the holy supper. But there is a spiritual
-communication, by virtue of which he gives to us all the grace that
-we can receive from his body and his blood. _Christ makes us truly
-participants, but altogether in a spiritual way, by the bond of his
-Holy Spirit._ St. Luke and St. Paul write that Jesus said, _This is
-the new testament in my blood_; that is to say, the new alliance which
-the Father has made with us, blotting out our iniquities by his mercy,
-receiving us into his favor that we may be his children, and writing
-his law in our hearts by his Spirit; an alliance really new, and
-ratified and confirmed by the body and the blood of Jesus Christ.
-
-‘Constrained by reasons so forcible, we interpret the Scripture
-according to the true analogy of faith. We do not put glosses on it out
-of our own heads, and we give no explanation which is not expressed in
-itself.’
-
-[Sidenote: CONVERSION OF JEAN TANDY.]
-
-Calvin was silent. The young man, whose face was unknown but full
-of expression, had been listened to with astonishment, and people
-recognized in him a master. Everyone felt the force of his words,
-and no one raised an objection. ‘At this point,’ say the Acts of the
-Disputation, ‘both the Mimards and the Blancheroses remained without
-making any attempt to reply.’ The minds of the hearers seemed to be
-enlightened by fresh knowledge. This was soon evident.
-
-A monk of the order of Cordeliers, the Franciscan Jean Tandy,[402] who
-had been present at the disputation from its opening, listened with
-eager interest to Calvin’s speech, and felt that its truth reached him.
-His heart was affected, his understanding was satisfied. He embraced by
-faith the sacrifice of the Saviour; and, according to the expression
-of the Evangelist, he ate of his flesh and drank his blood. For awhile
-he sat silent, awaiting the objections which might be offered. But
-‘when he saw that those who had taken part in discussion till that hour
-had their lips closed,’ he took courage, rose and said, the assembly
-listening to him attentively--‘Holy Scripture teaches that there is
-no remission for the sin against the Holy Ghost. Now this sin is that
-of men who, through unbelief, willing to contend against the clearest
-truth, choose rather to exalt themselves against God and his Word than
-to humble themselves and obey him. As I desire now not to resist the
-truth, but to receive it and confess it openly, I acknowledge before
-you all that I have long been mistaken. While I thought that I was
-living in a state of perfection, as they had given me to understand, I
-have been, on the contrary, only the servant of men, submitting myself
-to their traditions and commandments. Nothing is good but that which
-God commands. I have heard the truth. I see that I must hold fast to
-Jesus alone, must stand to his Word, and must have no other head,
-leader, or Saviour, but him who by his sacrifice has made us acceptable
-to the Father. I will henceforth live and die according to his Gospel.
-I ask forgiveness of God for all that I have done and said against
-his honor. I ask pardon of you and of all the people, so far as by my
-preaching or by my life I have taught you amiss, or have given you a
-bad example. And since, by following the rule of the Cordeliers and
-assuming this garb of dissimulation, I have been led out of the right
-way, at this moment in which I renounce all superstition, I abandon
-also this garb full of all hypocrisy and trumpery.’ As he uttered these
-words, Jean Tandy cast off his monastic dress, and then added--
-
-‘Let no one be offended, but let each examine himself and confess that
-if the state in which he has lived be contrary to the will of God, he
-ought not to persevere in it, nor to reënter after quitting it. I will
-live as a Christian, and not as a Cordelier; according to the Gospel of
-Jesus, and not according to the rule of the monks; in true and living
-faith in Christ, and united with all true Christians. To this God calls
-us all, to the intent that, instead of being divided into so many
-rules, we may be all one in Jesus Christ.’
-
-This frank, noble, and affecting conversion gave great joy to those
-who loved the Gospel, and Farel, as their spokesman, said, ‘How great
-God is! how good and how wise! How he smites and heals, how he casts
-down to hell and brings up again to heaven, we see with our own eyes.
-What superstition is there equal to that of the Cordeliers, in which
-the enemy has with so much skill colored his work that even the elect
-are deceived! Let us rejoice, therefore, that the poor sheep which was
-straying on the mountains and in the deserts, in the midst of wolves
-and wild beasts, now, by the grace of the Lord, abandoning the barren
-deserts, the vexatious thorns of human traditions, is entering into his
-fold, and finds now his pasture in God’s holy Word.’
-
-‘This done,’ add the Acts, ‘because it was late, everyone retired.’[403]
-
-The last theses were discussed during the remaining two or three days,
-and for the most part by the same combatants, each of the champions
-expressing himself well or ill, according to his character and the
-spirit which actuated him. ‘The Lord,’ said the intelligent and
-spiritual Viret, ‘commands Peter to _feed his sheep_, but according
-to the well-known by-word, the Romish court want _no sheep without
-wool_.[404] The true key of the kingdom of heaven is the Gospel of the
-Lord, but the pope and his priests have devised others which close the
-door instead of opening it. If the pope be willing to imitate Jesus and
-Peter, let him then go about hither and thither in every place, seeking
-and saving souls. The apostles had no holy see like the Romish pontiff.
-They were not often even seated, except, indeed, it were in a prison.
-And instead of a triple crown and a chain of gold, they had chains of
-iron on their hands and their feet.’[405]
-
-[Sidenote: THE TRINITY OF BLANCHEROSE.]
-
-Dr. Blancherose, who unhesitatingly considered himself the most valiant
-of the defenders of Rome, began now to lose heart. His only consolation
-was in the thought that if he were beaten it was not for want of
-talent, but because he stood alone; and quoting a word of the ancients,
-he said, ‘The opponents (reformers) are too strong, and as some one
-said, Hercules himself could do nothing against two.’[406] The two, in
-his case, were doubtless Farel and Calvin.
-
-He continued to complain of his comrades in the fight. ‘Instead of
-aiding me,’ he said, ‘the priests have begged me to begone. There are
-six score of us, they added, who will be compelled, if the disputation
-is to last much longer, to sell our gowns and hoods to pay our
-hosts.’ Then, after this trifling, returning to his grand theses, the
-fantastical doctor said, ‘The holy Trinity represents three monarchies.
-The father represents the emperor; the Son represents the pope; and
-the third monarchy, which is only now beginning, is that of the Holy
-Spirit, and _belongs to physicians_.’ Thus he claimed a great part
-for himself. This recalled him to his duty, and he applied himself to
-matters within his grasp. ‘The time of Lent, in which people fast,’
-he said, ‘has been well regulated, because in the spring nature is
-awakening, the blood is warm and impels to pleasure, and, moreover,
-people have eaten a good deal during the winter.’ The energetic Farel,
-who knew as well as the doctor how to be popular and sarcastic, met
-him on his own ground, and replied in his medical language, ‘that, on
-the contrary, the least fitting season had been fixed for Lent; for in
-the spring the poor people work in the fields and the vineyards, and
-after having crammed themselves with flesh in the winter, they give
-them well-salted, fish, hot spices, etc. This method gives origin to
-legions of maladies, so that the priests make their harvest of them and
-the doctors their vintage. The sicknesses put money into the purses of
-these two classes of men, especially into those of the Romish priests,
-according to the anagram of _Roma_. If each letter of that word be
-taken as the initial of another word, we get the sentence, _Radix
-Omnium Malorum Avaritia_: Rome is avarice, the root of all evil. She
-shows this in all kinds of ways, but above all in granting for a money
-payment the liberty to eat flesh, which otherwise she prohibits and
-declares to be a sin.’[407] It is clear that Farel knew how to profit
-by that precept, _Answer a fool according to his folly_.
-
-The vicar of Morges, Drogy, a man more enlightened than the others,
-and who saw clearly the weakness of the Romish teaching, apologized
-in the best way he could for his comrades, and made excuse for their
-defeat. ‘The poor priests are ignorant,’ he said, ‘and they deserve to
-be pitied. It is no great glory for the ministers to have beaten them.
-What they want is time given them for study, and a long time too; but
-instead of that they have been pitilessly bantered.’ ‘Do not take as
-insults,’ said the amiable Viret, ‘the charitable admonitions which we
-have given them. So far from wishing them any harm, we are ready to
-shed our blood for their salvation.’ ‘No doubt,’ added the reformer
-Marcourt, who had not hitherto spoken, a man of much good sense, but
-somewhat more severe than Viret, ‘no doubt the poor priests deserve
-to be pitied, but still more the poor people. No man would intrust a
-flock of sheep to a shepherd who was blind and dumb; why then are the
-churches placed under leaders who are blind and unable to explain the
-Word of God?’[408]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND HILDEBRAND.]
-
-Calvin then rose to speak again, and without stopping to argue with
-the feeble apologists of Rome, who were sufficiently refuted, he
-selected for his adversary the most illustrious and the most valiant
-of the champions of the papacy, the man who was indeed its chief
-founder, Hildebrand, made pope under the name of Gregory VII. These
-two men were well fitted to contend with equal strength in the lists.
-It is a pity that five centuries stood in the way of their measuring
-their forces hand to hand. It was Hildebrand who had launched over
-Christendom these stupendous assertions, ‘that the name of the pope
-is sole in the world,--that the Romish Church never did err and never
-will err,--that the pope may depose the emperor, and that all princes
-must kiss his feet.’[409] Calvin frequently contended against these
-presumptuous lies,[410] and he had done so before this time, at least
-to some extent. On this occasion he made use of a document written
-by a cardinal, a contemporary of Hildebrand, which relates, among
-other things, that that pope, wanting for once _to get through his
-incantations_, took the bread which he affirmed to be God, and threw
-it into the fire.[411] An occasion for the natural exclamation, ‘Say
-now that the bread is your God!’ This story, told by a cardinal at
-the expense of a pope, appears to us to be apocryphal. But it is quite
-true, as we know from the relations which existed between Gregory VII.
-and Berenger, that the famous pontiff had doubts about the doctrine of
-transubstantiation, and that he did not pronounce himself in support
-of it until he perceived that his enemies would take advantage of his
-doubts on the subject to strike a blow at his hierarchical rights and
-supreme authority.
-
-When the debate on the ten theses had been brought to a close, Farel
-entered the pulpit, in the afternoon of Sunday, October 8, and
-delivered the closing discourse. We shall allow the orator to speak
-his own language, although it be not always that of our age, for it
-is essential that the Reformation should be set before us just as
-it actually appeared. Farel was struck with the fact that a band of
-ministers, feeble men and few in number, had been capable, in that
-conflict of eight days, of filling mighty Catholicism with alarm and
-vanquishing it. He remembered, too, how when he arrived at Aigle, at
-Neuchâtel, at Geneva, poor, weak, and contemptible in the eyes of
-many, he had seen the papacy reel and fall down before the Word of
-God. ‘What is it then,’ said he, ‘which makes you tremble, you who are
-a great multitude covering the whole land? What! a poor prophet makes
-his appearance, alone in the face of so many rich men; unknown and
-friendless before so many people who have powerful allies; he knows not
-whither to go, has no one to speak to, while you are all comfortably
-lodged, you all know one another, and fill the whole world with terror.
-Of what then are you afraid? The prophet will not strike you, for he is
-unarmed. When, for one reason or another, a whole city or even a whole
-people revolts against you, you have no fear at all, and you act even
-worse than usual.... Whence is this difference? Is one then more than a
-multitude? The fact is this: With that poor prophet comes the truth,
-the wonderful truth of God, which is mightier than all men, and which,
-whenever it encounters enemies, pursues them, confounds them and puts
-them to flight, while they are unable to make any resistance.’[412]
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL’S CLOSING DISCOURSE.]
-
-Farel did not confine himself to giving the solution of the enigma.
-He desired above all to teach consciences and to lead souls to Jesus
-Christ, while he rescued them from the pope. This was the great aim of
-his long life. That is the reason why, in addressing a vast audience,
-he cried out, ‘Come then to Jesus, to Jesus who hath borne our sorrows,
-and trust wholly in him that you may be saved. Abandon the perverse
-doctrines which the pope and his servants teach, the masses and the
-confessions, the absolutions, indulgences, and pardons for life. Run
-no more hither and thither to the broken cisterns. Trust no longer
-in persons so impotent and so cruel; receive neither the pope nor
-Mohammed, nor anyone who assumes to govern you by his own ordinances.
-Hold fast to the sole head, Jesus, who when he entered into the great
-sanctuary, offered to his Father his own blood, thus making peace
-between God and us, so that Christians are made immortal. If you trust
-in the pope you will be put to shame when you hear from the mouth of
-God these words: Who commanded what you have done? You have had the
-popes for your gods.... Go then, and let them save you if they can.
-Then will come upon you great desolation. It is greatly to deceive
-yourselves to seek Jesus Christ in the wafers of the priests, in bread,
-in wine, in flesh, in tears, thorns, nails, wood, shrouds, cloths, and
-all the other mockeries which Rome offers you, which lay low everything
-that is of God. It is in another way, it is in his Spirit, it is by
-faith, that you must seek the Saviour. A church of Jesus, governed
-by its spouse, does not receive all these papal errors; it directs
-poor sinners to God, that he may open their hearts, and that they may
-implore his mercy.
-
-‘Then do not send your wives nor your daughters to those whom you know
-so well. Do not give your souls up to the guidance of men to whom you
-would hardly like to intrust your sheep. Let all go to God, go to him
-with the heart, for it is the heart he asks for and not our money. To
-sing a mass, to mutter prayers and _Ave Marias_ before a piece of wood,
-to make so many journeys hither and thither; these are not what he
-wants of us. He wants us to cling wholly to him alone, and he will save
-us.’
-
-Farel then turning to the priests, of whom there was a large number
-present, said to them, ‘Leave off then, you poor priests, who till
-now have been deceived, and have deceived others, leave off teaching
-that without your confessions, your penances, your satisfactions and
-absolutions, whether made in this world or in the world to come, it is
-not possible to enter into paradise. Lead your sheep to the shepherd
-who gave his life for them. The church of Jesus gets nothing out of all
-your trash. God does not care how you muffle yourselves up, what sort
-of shirts you wear under your gowns, whether your cloaks are bordered
-in the proper way, or whether you keep in good condition the ornaments
-and furnishings of your chapels and altars. To place salvation in these
-outward things is to reverse the doctrine of Jesus, for _the kingdom of
-God is within you_.’
-
-[Sidenote: HIS APPEAL TO THE PRIESTS.]
-
-Farel, as he closed his discourse, raised a song of triumph, and
-pointed out that the Reformation did not adopt the weapons of its
-adversaries, but that its method formed the most striking contrast to
-theirs. ‘Many,’ said he, ‘have tried to assail my propositions, but the
-truth has been the strongest. Yet the priests and the monks have been
-subjected to no secret interrogatories; they have not been forbidden
-to speak; they have not been threatened with prison or with death; no
-deathsmen have appeared on the scene to settle the questions before us
-by fire or sword. All have been kindly invited. All those who wished
-to dispute have been listened to, and no one has taken offence even at
-their frequent repetitions. Receive then the holy doctrine of Jesus
-which has been set before you, and let him alone suffice you. One
-better, wiser, or more powerful, we cannot find. Be Christians; be no
-longer papists.
-
-‘O priests, canons, and monks, if henceforth you have no more the
-honors which you have previously enjoyed, if you should not be so well
-treated and fed, do not on that account destroy yourselves and the poor
-people. Better is it to enter into life eternal with the poor Lazarus
-than go with the rich bad man to hell. Leave, then, your songs and
-your masses, and follow Jesus. Instead of chanting Latin before the
-people, preach to them the sacred Gospel. When some came like brigands
-to kill us, we did not demand vengeance, but grace and forgiveness for
-them. And now we ask that you may be joyfully and tenderly received, as
-wandering sheep returning to the fold.
-
-‘And you, my lords,’ said Farel, addressing the delegates from Berne,
-‘since God has led you to the conquest of this country, and has
-committed its people to you as a child is committed to its father, see
-to it that God be holily honored in the lands which are intrusted to
-your rule. Let not Jesus be to you of less estimation than the poorest
-man in the land. May God touch the hearts of all kings and lords, to
-the end that the poor people may live according to God’s will, without
-war and in peace; that human blood may not be shed; that a man who is
-made in God’s image may not kill his fellow who is made in the same
-image; but that each may love and aid his neighbor as he would that
-his neighbor should aid him. And may all those who have suffered for
-the faith in Jesus be strengthened to persevere even to the end, and
-declare the goodness and the power of God, so that all the earth may
-worship him.’[413]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
- EXTENSION OF THE REFORM IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.
-
- (END OF 1536.)
-
-
-The assembly of Lausanne was a great event for the Vaudois; it was
-talked of in every village. Berne, by her ordinance, ‘that all priests,
-monks, and other people of the Church, whatever they might be, should
-appear,’ had awakened universal attention. While there was one great
-disputation at Lausanne, there were many little ones in the towns and
-villages. They discussed the _pros_ and the _cons_, and they wondered
-whether the priests on their return would be converted to the _new
-faith_ or not. At Lausanne itself, hardly had a session closed, and
-the crowd passed out of the doors of the beautiful cathedral, than the
-debates were renewed in the streets and in private houses.
-
-[Sidenote: RESULTS OF THE CONFERENCE.]
-
-The results of the conference were not long in showing themselves.
-Some, like the Cordelier Tandy, owned themselves convinced, took the
-side of the Reformation, and became in their turn its missionaries.
-Ministers and laymen were seen traversing all the land, reporting the
-discussions, showing that the evangelical religion is indeed the true,
-and intensifying the universal excitement. The two deputies sent by
-the parish of Villette, Sordet and Clavel, were so much impressed by
-the truths expounded by Farel and his friends, that they took Viret
-back with them to Cully, that he might preach there. The whole country,
-indeed, was not converted, but the light was penetrating from place to
-place, even into the remotest corners. Not only was there the bright
-flame in those fair regions, but there was also the warmth, which was
-further diffused than the light, quickening and transforming hearts.
-
-At Lausanne itself the first effect of the disputation was remarkable,
-and showed clearly that morals were quite as much as doctrine the
-business of the Reformation, and that they were possibly its most
-distinctive characteristic. Only two days after the close of the
-disputation, on October 10, the council, very much engrossed by the
-great event which had just taken place, resolved ‘to destroy once
-for all the houses of ill-fame which existed in the town,’ to drive
-away the foul women who lived in them, as well as all others who were
-known to be leading an evil life. On Thursday, October 12, the order
-given to those ‘unfortunates’ to quit the city and the bailiwick was
-published with sound of trumpet in all the streets.[414] It has been
-said that morals are the science of man.[415] The Lausannese edileship
-thought that they were especially the science of the magistrate.
-Those discussions, in which justification by faith had been the chief
-subject in question, had for their first consequence works of Christian
-morality. This proceeding of the magistrates gave great joy to those
-who had taken part in the disputation. They saw in it the apology for
-their doctrine. ‘When justification by faith is spoken of,’ remarks
-one of them,[416] ‘the mind of man takes the matter the wrong way,
-and is shocked, like a ship which, instead of keeping to the right
-course marked out for it, drives on to strike first on one rock then
-on another. The death of Christ is efficacious for extinguishing the
-evil of our flesh, and his resurrection for originating in us a new
-condition of better nature.’
-
-The people drew from the disputation another consequence. The most
-ardent even of the reformers had, while the debates lasted, tolerated
-the images in the cathedral. Viret had shown that God prohibited
-them, and that they turn men away from the true service of God. ‘The
-priests,’ he had said, ‘for their convenience set in their own place
-preachers of wood and of stone, the images, arraying them in rich
-garments at the cost of the poor. And as for themselves, they sleep,
-they make good cheer, and are free from care. These images are their
-vicars, they do their work, and they cost nothing to feed. And the poor
-people are stupefied and kiss the wood and the stone.’[417] No one had
-answered Viret. It was in vain that the defenders of images had been
-invited to come forward; not one appeared. For the reformed it seemed
-therefore a legitimate course to remove them from the cathedral. A
-sinister rumor of this project alarmed the canons, and they resolved to
-do their utmost to resist the impious proceeding. They took the keys
-of the cathedral and, running to the sacred edifice, closed the doors
-that no one might be able to carry off the objects of their veneration.
-In spite of all their precautions one of the images was removed. The
-fact was immediately noised over the town. The most grievous blow had
-just fallen on our great Lady of Lausanne! The reformed honored the
-mother of the Saviour as a blessed woman, but they refused to make a
-goddess of her. The clamor and threats of the priests recalled to mind
-the cries of the worshippers of Diana at Ephesus, spoken of in the Acts
-of the Apostles, who said, ‘The temple of the great goddess Diana is
-in danger of being despised and her magnificence of being destroyed,
-whom all Asia and the world worshippeth.’[418] The canons not feeling
-themselves strong enough for the occasion, betook themselves to the
-council, gave up to them the keys of the cathedral, and implored them
-to protect the building and what it contained.[419] But the reformed,
-who earnestly longed to see worship given to God alone, turned their
-back on those figures of wood and stone:
-
- Dès maintenant, trompeuse idole,
- D’un culte honteux et frivole,
- Nous n’entourons plus tes autels.
-
-[Sidenote: BERNESE ORDINANCES.]
-
-It was the intention of the authorities to oppose the arbitrary removal
-of images by private persons. But these same authorities lost no time
-in suppressing them by their own act throughout the country. A few days
-later, Thursday, October 19, the chief magistrate and the councillors
-of Berne addressed all their trusty subjects of Vaud, and announced
-to them by proclamation that being bound to govern them not only by
-means of ‘corporal and outward ordinances, but also by exercising all
-diligence to see that they walked according to the will of God, in
-the true and living faith which brings forth good works; considering
-that the ten conclusions which had been discussed at Lausanne were
-based on Holy Scripture, they enjoined everyone to abstain from all
-papistical ceremonies, sacrifices, and institutions; to cast down
-all images and idols, as well as the altars, and this in an orderly
-manner without disturbance; to hear the Word of God, to receive the
-preachers with kindness, and not to molest and worry them, so that all
-may dwell together in true peace, brotherly love and union.’[420] These
-ordinances in the matter of religion and worship would seem strange in
-our day; and we might wonder whether such would be tolerated even in
-Japan. But they were in accordance with the spirit of that time, and
-the rulers of Berne were doing their best.
-
-The Reformation achieved greater triumphs still than the abolition of
-images. It could count souls won to the Gospel, not only among the
-general population of the country, but also among the very champions
-of Rome who had encountered Farel. The amiable captain of the youth,
-Ferdinand de Loys, embraced the glorious promises of the Gospel,
-and subsequently exerted himself with great earnestness to maintain
-Protestantism in France. Moreover, a brilliant testimony to his zeal
-was given him. Soubise sent him grateful acknowledgment, as well on his
-own behalf as on behalf of the prince of Condé, the Admiral (Coligny)
-and other princes and lords.[421] By arrangement with the lords of
-Berne, Valais, and Neuchâtel, he had sent to him some men; these men
-(_gens_), however, we must add, appear to have been not evangelists but
-soldiers. A priest who had taken part in the defence of the papacy, but
-who had been convinced by the powerful words of the reformers, Dom Jean
-Drogy, also embraced the evangelical faith. He became afterwards pastor
-at Bevay in the territory of Neuchâtel. Megander, too, wrote on October
-19, to the ministers of Zurich, ‘The disputation of Lausanne has had
-the happiest results.’
-
-[Sidenote: CAROLI AND VIRET.]
-
-These successes encouraged the friends of the Reform, and the Bernese
-government demanded of the authorities of Lausanne the definitive
-establishment of the evangelical faith and worship. The canons opposed
-the measure with all their energy, alleging that reverence is due to
-all old customs and religions; they conjured the rulers of Lausanne
-not to allow their city to be faithless to Rome. At the same time they
-sent deputies to Berne. But the council was already treating with the
-lords of Berne, partly swayed by conviction and partly by prudence.
-The Bernese were disposed to grant various rights, advantages, and
-privileges to their new subjects, on condition of their renouncing the
-foreign authority of the pope, with which they well knew that it was
-impossible to be on good terms, and of their receiving the Gospel,
-which enlightens the mind, gives peace to the soul, and promotes the
-prosperity of nations. They knew also that in order to persuade men, it
-is necessary to act kindly towards them. Consequently, on November 1, a
-contract was concluded at Berne, by virtue of which their excellencies
-conceded to the burgesses of Lausanne the higher, middle, and lower
-jurisdiction in civil and criminal causes, various convents and abbeys,
-the châlet and the mill of Gobet, and certain vineyards. With these
-gifts the Bernese coupled the promise that, as soon as ‘popery and
-its mummery should be abolished,’ their excellencies would exercise
-generosity towards the priests. This _grande largition_ was read on the
-5th of the same month in grand council at Lausanne, and was solemnly
-ratified. Meanwhile the chiefs of Berne presented, November 5, to the
-chiefs of Lausanne, as first pastor, Caroli, who was a doctor of the
-Sorbonne, and whose fluent talk and engaging manners prepossessed men
-in his favor. At this choice the friends of the Gospel were indignant.
-Viret, who had for so many years labored for the diffusion of the
-light in his own country, and had done so with perfect earnestness,
-wisdom, and self-renunciation, at the risk of his life--Viret, the
-true Vaudois reformer--saw this new man, unfit as he was for the work
-to be done, preferred to himself. The pastors of Geneva wrote to
-Lausanne--‘Everyone knows the labors, the faith, the zeal of Viret,
-and we are astonished to learn that they are treating him in that
-way. We cannot endure it without complaining. If ever it becomes us
-to be indignant, surely it is on this occasion.’[422] The Bernese
-lords settled Caroli comfortably in the house of the canon Benoît de
-Pontareuse, which had beautiful gardens in which he might philosophize
-and entertain himself as Epicurus did of old. They assigned him,
-besides, an annual salary of five hundred florins. His wife displayed
-a degree of luxury which was offensive. Viret was joined with him
-as second pastor, but no tithe was assigned to him, nor any means of
-living. De Watteville contented himself with requesting him to show
-respect for the great merit of his colleague. The Bernese, however,
-very soon discovered that they had been mistaken in this matter. They
-therefore wrote to Viret, December 1, that since he was already well
-acquainted with the country, and Caroli was a sort of novice, they
-advised him to give Caroli a gratuity, ‘advancement and service,
-and this by way of charity.’[423] This was not giving Viret a sort
-of guardianship of Caroli, as has been said. On the contrary, Farel
-complained a few days later that it was difficult to say whether the
-Bernese or the Lausannese cared least for Viret.[424] The Bernese
-merely admitted that the Vaudois reformer, being a native of the
-country, had more experience of its customs, ‘of the popular way of
-doing things.’ Viret subsequently received a lodging in the Franciscan
-convent, with a salary of thirty florins and a certain allowance of
-wine and wheat. It was not one-third of the pay of Caroli. Some of the
-reformed lent furniture to the humble minister for his room, because he
-had no means of buying any.[425]
-
-[Sidenote: REFORM AT VEVEY.]
-
-Of all the districts of the Pays de Vaud, Vevey, a town situated in
-that lovely region which, at the extremity of the lake of Geneva, is
-so rich both in grace and in brilliancy, appears to have been the most
-inclined to embrace the Reform. For eight years past Aigle and the
-surrounding villages had heard the Gospel by the ministry of Farel.
-The ministers who came and went from Berne to Aigle, and from Aigle
-to Berne, passed through Vevey, and left light behind them in their
-passage. Moreover, there was frequent intercourse between the people of
-the government of Aigle and the people of Vevey. One historian worthy
-of credit is even led to believe that the dean Michod and the regent J.
-Mimard returned from Lausanne to their own town convinced of the truth
-of the theses which they had at first attacked.[426] Even if they were
-not themselves much troubled, they might by their narrations awaken
-in the people the desire to become acquainted with the Gospel which
-had been proclaimed with so much life by Farel, Viret, and Calvin. At
-that epoch of the Reformation there was no other public disputation at
-which so large a number of the champions of papal dogmas passed over to
-the banner of the Gospel. The men of Vevey spontaneously asked for a
-pastor; and one was sent them, November 24, whose name was Daillé. This
-name became distinguished in the seventeenth century as that of one of
-the most learned ministers of the Reformed Churches.
-
-The Gospel met with opposition in the district of La Vaux, which lies
-between Vevey and Lausanne. At a consultative meeting, held October
-15, the deputies of La Vaux had demanded a general assembly, and had
-declared that they would oppose ‘any innovation in the churches.’ Those
-of Lutry, a small town bordering on Lausanne, were of the same mind.
-But when the bailiff of Lausanne came three days after to dine there,
-the wind began to change. The magistrates, flattered with this visit,
-offered him with high compliments the wine of honor (_vin d’honneur_);
-and all their zeal was limited to getting the papacy buried in the most
-decorous manner possible. When the bailiff presented himself, November
-2, to burn the images and destroy the altars, the municipal officers
-demanded permission to remove them themselves, desiring to do it with
-more delicacy. They caused the _Corpus Domini_ to be carried into the
-_Grotto_, where they gave it an honorable position, and lighted lamps
-just as if it were in the church. They also put there the vessel of
-holy water, covering it up carefully. Some weeks later, January 16,
-1537, there appeared, on the part of Berne, one Matthieu de la Croix,
-a converted monk, a man of discretion and benevolence. He said to the
-council, ‘I offer to preach, if you approve it, and even to preach
-every day if you will assent to it; and further, when any one dies I
-will deliver a sermon for the consolation of the family.’ Anxious still
-more powerfully to work upon their hearts, he added, ‘I propose that a
-request be addressed to the lords of Berne in favor of the poor.’ One
-might fancy that De la Croix did nothing more than put in practice the
-proverb, _More flies are to be caught with honey than with vinegar_.
-But there is nothing to show that his gracious way did not proceed
-from a sincere charity. This zeal for their commune touched the hearts
-of the Lutry people, and they accepted the ministry of this man of
-goodwill, and at the same time added to their acceptance the express
-request to Berne to maintain the poor. On February 8, 1537, the church
-was cleansed, and the stones of the altar were removed to a place
-apart.[427]
-
-[Sidenote: SEARCH FOR MINISTERS.]
-
-The great transformation was being effected in the whole country. The
-lords of Berne, understanding, doubtless, that their hands were not
-the right ones for the task, had wisely intrusted to Farel the care
-of providing for the spiritual wants of the people. Unfortunately it
-was not a very easy matter. ‘He looked round on all sides for faithful
-ministers, but could hardly find any.’ The nomination of Caroli by
-the Bernese magistrates had annoyed him. He was afraid that men who
-preached in its purity the cross of Christ would not be accepted.
-‘They do not care much for those who preach Jesus Christ purely, and
-they praise to the skies braggarts and hypocrites.’ However, he was
-not disheartened. ‘Write,’ said he to his friend Fabri, ‘beseech,
-come to our aid; send us competent men.’ One circumstance, unhappy
-in itself, facilitated Farel’s work. Persecution was driving many
-evangelical Christians out of France; and these men, full of love for
-the faith which they had confessed in their native land, rejoiced
-in the opportunity of preaching it in the beautiful valley of the
-Leman. Farel, who was at that time the real bishop of these churches,
-was indefatigable in his inquiries. As soon as he had found any
-pious ministers, he recommended them to the lords of Berne, and the
-bailiffs settled them in the various parishes. But as there were not
-ministers enough for all, the same pastor had frequently to preach in
-three different churches. A few priests were called to the ministry,
-who did not seem to be mere deserters, with Christ on the lips only.
-These were, in addition to those already mentioned, Tissot, Gredat,
-Goudot, Meige, Malingre de la Molière, Motin, and Jacques d’Yverdon.
-Some others also took charge of souls. Dubois was sent to Payerne, Du
-Rivier to Moudon, Le Coq to Morges, J. Vallier to Aubonne, Melchior
-d’Yvonant to Rolle, Morand to Nyon, Furet to Coppet, Colomb to Concise,
-Masuyer to Cossonay, Epilon to Yvonant, and Eustache André (also named
-Fortunat), to Cully.[428] For the most part they were foreigners. Some
-of them had attended the disputation, and had been gained over by the
-Christian eloquence of Farel, Viret, and Calvin. But whether they came
-from the battle of Lausanne or from the ruder battles of France, they
-all desired to publish the good news of the Gospel; and some of them
-were inflamed with a zeal so ardent that ‘that one passion swallowed
-up all others.’ They were well aware that they would have to face a
-keen opposition; but ‘they were going willingly to offer their heads,
-to receive all the obloquy which evil-minded men cast on God.’ The
-following is the formula, somewhat free in character, which the lords
-of Berne usually employed in their letters to these evangelists:--‘Have
-ordered that thou, forthwith on receiving these presents, go to our
-bailiff of ----, who will present thee to our subjects of ----, and then
-thou wilt exercise the office of minister of the Gospel, according to
-the grace which God has given thee.’ The bailiffs, for the purpose
-of preparing people’s minds, went frequently beforehand with Viret
-and other ministers into parishes that were to be provided for. They
-preached and endeavored to make evident the great benefits of the
-Reformation. But there was many a village in which the curé endeavored
-to keep the people away from the sermon, excited his friends, who threw
-stones at those who were hearers, and did the worst they could.[429]
-
-[Sidenote: TRIALS OF FABRI.]
-
-Farel persevered in his exertions, exhorting and consoling. Fabri,
-pastor at Thonon, in the Chablais, had to pass through trials of
-special severity. He wrote to Farel, ‘I cannot tell you how cruel are
-the crosses which so violent an opposition lays upon me.’ Farel was
-prompt to offer him consolation, and he shows in his answer how well he
-had himself learnt to profit by the blows struck at him by the enemies
-of the Gospel. ‘There is no ground for dejection,’ said he, ‘although
-so many distresses weigh on you. It is in this way that the Lord
-teaches us to depend entirely on him, and to call down by our sighing
-the favor of our heavenly Father, which we are so backward to do.’ At
-the same time Farel communicated to his friend his own experiences, and
-made fresh allusion to the case of Caroli and Viret, which appears to
-have greatly troubled him. ‘I am bidden,’ he said, ‘to call ministers
-from all quarters, but where to find them I cannot tell. People slight
-those who are the fittest, and who always breathe Jesus Christ; but
-they exalt to the skies those who are mere masks, and breathe nothing
-but arrogance. Some ministers, of too fastidious taste, are unwilling
-to come into this country; they would rather bury themselves in the
-tombs of Egypt than eat manna in the desert and be led by the pillar of
-fire.’[430] At the same time that Farel wrote to Fabri at the foot of
-the Alps, he wrote also to Hugues, pastor of Gex, at the foot of the
-Jura. ‘Act with firmness,’ he said to him, ‘but with wisdom and without
-passion. Put forward weighty proofs drawn from Scripture, and let your
-words always be accompanied with the moderation of Christ.’[431] He
-wrote likewise to many others. Calvin began at this time to exercise
-the functions pertaining to the government of the Church. A minister,
-Denis Lambert, formerly a monk, but who having been since 1534 pastor
-in the country of Neuchâtel, had been chosen almoner to the little army
-which marched in 1534 to the aid of Geneva, and fought the battle of
-Gingins, had been settled by the Bernese as pastor in the neighborhood
-of that town. He had remained full of monkery (_moinerie_), and he
-had a wife of sorry reputation; so that their life and their manners
-might ruin, but could not build up the Church. Some better ministers,
-particularly Henry de la Mare, having been preferred to him, he flew
-into a great rage at a colloquy held at the beginning of December,
-1536. ‘Everybody persecutes me,’ he exclaimed; ‘it is not on the part
-of men that I am sent!’ And he loaded his colleagues with insults,
-threats, and innumerable calumnies. ‘Truly,’ said Farel, ‘the man
-speaks like a Mars or a Bacchus.’[432] ‘It is not I,’ Farel said to
-him, ‘that made you a preacher; I always suspected you too much.’
-‘No,’ replied Denis, ‘I was sent by the Bernese, and we shall see
-whether you dare resist them.’ Calvin then rose to speak, and we must
-notice it as the first occasion of his taking part in the government of
-the Church. He entreated Denis in the name of them all to resign the
-holy ministry, promised that he should be provided for. Denis cared
-nothing for this young doctor, and refused to comply with his request.
-Farel desired to separate him from the population to which his life was
-a scandal. The Bernese bailiff of Thonon thought that Denis was monk
-from head to foot, and that he ought to be relegated to the convent of
-the Augustinians of that town.
-
-Although they were influenced quite as much by political as by
-religious motives, and made some mistakes, as in the case of Caroli,
-the lords of Berne neglected no means of enlightening the Vaudois, and
-of leading them to accept with their heart the evangelical doctrines.
-They enjoined on all fathers and mothers, all pastors and bailiffs,
-the duty of seeing that children were well instructed according to the
-Gospel. Without going so far as to say, as some have alleged, that
-education is everything, the Bernese did believe that _if a child be
-trained up in the way he should go, he will not depart from it_.[433]
-
-[Sidenote: BERNESE EDICT OF REFORMATION.]
-
-To crown its work, the council of Berne made, on Christmas eve,
-December 24, 1536, a complete edict of reformation for its new
-territories; and at the beginning of 1537 it caused proclamation to be
-made in all the country that the ministers were to preach purely the
-Word of God; that they were to celebrate only two sacraments, baptism
-and the supper; that it was lawful to eat flesh at any time; that
-ecclesiastics were not forbidden to marry; that all popish ceremonies,
-masses, processions, lustrations, pilgrimages, and ringing of bells
-for the dead and for bad weather, were abolished. These were followed
-by many ordinances against gluttony, drunkenness, impurity, adultery,
-blasphemy, gaming, military service abroad, and dancing. Three modest
-dances for marriage festivals were, however, conceded.[434] Priests
-and monks were at liberty to remain in the country, where they
-received fitting allowances, or if they preferred it, to withdraw
-into a Catholic country. The canons of Lausanne having no wish to be
-witnesses of such a reform, took the latter course. They crossed the
-lake and settled at Evian. The sisters of Sainte-Claire of Vevey did
-the same.[435]
-
-Calvin and the other ministers of Geneva and its neighborhood watched
-with interest the changes which were taking place in the Pays de Vaud.
-But they did not conceal from themselves how much there still remained
-to do. On October 13, Calvin, before he started for Berne, whither
-he was summoned, wrote from Lausanne to one of his friends--‘Already
-in many places the idols and the altars of the papacy have begun to
-totter, and I hope that ere long all the superstitions that still
-prevail will be abolished. The Lord grant that idolatry may be
-altogether uprooted in all hearts.’[436] These words characterize the
-condition of the Pays de Vaud at that epoch.
-
-On November 21, 1536, a conference was held at Geneva, at which the
-pastors of the surrounding districts appear to have been present. Those
-of the Pays de Gex and of the Chablais undoubtedly attended.[437] A
-letter addressed by the conference to their brethren of Lausanne and
-of Vaud sufficiently refutes the calumnies cast upon the Reformation,
-and shows to what extent the reformers took heed of the purity of
-the Church. ‘The pontifical tyranny has been overthrown,’ they said;
-‘silence has been imposed upon the monks, because of their doctrines
-and their unchaste lives. Brethren, take heed lest another tyranny
-erect itself in place of the former. See that order and discipline be
-maintained among you, and everything that becomes a holy assembly. To
-that end seek your directions, not from any pontiff, nor in the rites
-of the pope, but from Jesus Christ and in his Word.... Examine with
-the utmost care the brethren whom you accept as pastors; see that
-their doctrine be pure and their lives spotless. Inform yourselves
-even of their family and the family of their wives, as St. Paul
-enjoins. Without such care you will prepare your own ruin and that of
-your people. As for ceremonies, let them be wholesome. Exercise your
-Christian liberty, but in such a way as to cause offence to no one.’
-The pastors of Geneva, they said, had received two letters in which
-they found no Christian charity or moderation at all, but which savored
-of pontifical authority. This passage doubtless refers to Caroli.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
- THE REFORM AT GENEVA.--FORMULARY OF FAITH AND OF DISCIPLINE.
-
- (END OF 1536-1537.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: LIBERTY AND AUTHORITY.]
-
-Calvin had displayed at Lausanne a steadfastness in the faith, and
-a faculty of unfolding his views, which attracted more and more
-attention to him. Bucer and Capito, in reading his _Institution_,
-had already recognized the lofty reach of his intellect, and they
-eagerly desired to have a conference with him on the evangelical
-doctrine. They both wrote to him on December 1. ‘We acknowledge,’ said
-Bucer, ‘that it is the Lord’s will to make use of you abundantly for
-the good of our churches, and to make your ministry greatly useful.
-We desire to be in agreement with you in all things, and we will go
-to meet you wherever you please.’[438] Thus, then, the Strasburgers
-acknowledged in Calvin a vocation for all the churches. They saw in him
-the reformer. The author of the _Institution_ had in fact conceived
-an ideal of a Church which was to take the place of the papacy--an
-ideal difficult, perhaps impossible of realization in this world, but
-to which he desired that Geneva should make as near an approach as
-possible. Luther had announced with power the doctrine of remission of
-sins, without concerning himself much about the constitution of the
-Church. That doctrine, by penetrating the hearts of men, was to form
-the congregation of the Lord. The great aim of Calvin was certainly to
-proclaim before everything, like Luther, the redemption accomplished
-by Jesus Christ, and the salvation which it gives; but he sought also,
-more than the German reformer, to found a faithful Church, which, being
-quickened and sanctified by the virtue of God’s word and the grace
-of the Holy Spirit, should truly be the body of the Lord. Zwingli
-had also busied himself with this subject; but there is an important
-difference between the labors of the reformers of Zurich and Geneva.
-At Zurich, Zwingli had looked downward: it was the people, so far as
-they believed in the Scriptures, who were the foundation of the Church.
-Calvin, on the other hand, looked upward, and placed the origin and the
-subsistence of the Church in God himself. At Zurich, the Church existed
-by the will of the reformed majority of the nation; at Geneva, it was
-the will and the Word of God that formed it. At Zurich, the _fulcrum_
-was in liberty; at Geneva, in authority. Both of these are salutary;
-but each has its own danger. The best system is that in which authority
-and liberty are combined; but this is not always easy to realize.
-
-After Calvin’s return from the disputation of Lausanne, he resumed
-his lectures and expositions of St. Paul’s Epistles in the church of
-St. Peter. These lectures were well attended, and created an interest
-which continually increased. Ere long, the superiority of the young
-doctor and of his teaching, at once so profound and so animated,
-excited in the Genevese the desire that he should definitely settle
-among them. Towards the close of the year 1536, the office of pastor
-was added to that of doctor. ‘He was elected and declared such in that
-church by regular election and approbation.’[439] Calvin, at a later
-period, felt bound to insist, in his letter to Cardinal Sadoleto,
-on the regularity of that call. ‘In the first place,’ said he, ‘I
-discharged in that church the office of reader, and afterwards that of
-minister and pastor. And as far as regards my undertaking the second
-charge, I maintain for my right that I did so lawfully and by a regular
-call.’[440]
-
-Calvin had not forgotten France, and he never did forget her. He had
-himself just instigated an intervention of several German and Swiss
-towns in favor of the French Protestants. It was doubtless on this
-subject that he wrote from Lausanne to his friend François Daniel,
-October 13, 1536: ‘To-morrow, if the Lord will, I am going to Berne,
-respecting a business of which I will speak to you another time. I am
-afraid that it may even be necessary for me to go as far as Basel,
-notwithstanding the state of my health and the present ungenial
-season.’[441] But nevertheless, without forgetting his old country, he
-attached himself to his new one. That republic appeared to suit his
-taste. Having become pastor at Geneva, he gave his attention to what
-he had to do in order to substitute for the Church of the pope a real
-evangelical Church.
-
-[Sidenote: THE INDIVIDUAL AND SOCIETY.]
-
-Farel, Viret, and Froment had begun the work at the right end. In
-building a temple the first process is the cutting of the stones one by
-one. Science has sometimes disparaged the individual. She has said, ‘An
-individual, of whatsoever species it be, is nothing to the universe;
-a hundred individuals, or a thousand, they are still nothing.’[442]
-It is not so with individuals that have souls. Christ anticipated
-and refuted these audacious assertions when he said, ‘What shall it
-profit a man if he gain the whole world and lose his own soul?’ It
-was by the conversion of individuals (Cornelius, Lydia, &c.) that the
-Apostles established the Christian religion in the world; and it was
-by proceeding in the same way that Farel and his friends laid the
-foundations of Reform. Calvin, while appreciating this work, felt
-nevertheless that another was necessary. After analysis must come
-synthesis; and after the individual, society. Catholicism neglected
-the individual, and concerned itself almost exclusively with society.
-The Gospel proceeds otherwise. Farel had been everywhere, enlightening
-minds one by one with the torch of the Word. It was now needful to bind
-together the souls thus enlightened. The Christian individual must
-first be created, afterwards the Christian Church. The Reformation
-had begun in Geneva with the law of life. Another law, the law of
-unity, must now be fulfilled. Calvin was alarmed when he considered
-the state of Geneva. ‘When I first came into this town,’ said he,
-‘there was as it were nothing--no morals, no discipline, no life.
-Preaching went on, and that was all. To be sure they burnt the idols,
-but there was no reformation at all.’[443] This judgment is perhaps
-too severe. It was twenty-eight years after the time referred to that
-Calvin thus expressed himself; and the ‘wonderful conflicts’ which he
-had been engaged in may possibly have led him to depict in too dark
-colors the church which Farel had left to him. Be that as it may,
-Calvin, while attaching the utmost importance to individual conversion,
-was profoundly convinced that a task of another kind remained to be
-achieved. We find that the same conviction possessed Luther when he
-returned to Wittenberg after his confinement in the Wartburg. It is the
-conviction that upon the revolutionary principle (and the revolution,
-we must admit, had been necessary and admirable) the conservative
-principle must erect itself.
-
-[Sidenote: DIVISION AMONG THE HUGUENOTS.]
-
-When a brilliant victory is won, we usually find, both in the world
-and in the Church, that a number of men gather around the victor who
-have indeed something in common with him, but who have at the same
-time characters and propensities opposed to his own. All who muster
-and fight under the same flag, however, have not always the same
-thoughts and the same affections as the brave warrior who hoists the
-flag. The Genevese, who were designated by the name of Huguenots,
-had declared for the Reformation because it attacked the abuses and
-the superstitions of popery, and because, in bidding them prove all
-things, it restored to them those privileges of free men of which Rome
-had robbed them; many had also been attracted by the love of novelty,
-others by the prospect of a new career opened to their ambition. There
-were doubtless a certain number of citizens who sincerely agreed with
-the Reformation, with the faith which it professed, and with the morals
-which it prescribed; but they did not form the most numerous class. In
-any expedition of great daring, and which exposes to many toils and
-privations, we know that many of the soldiers quit the standard under
-which they first ranked themselves; so it was inevitable that a large
-number of the Genevese would abandon the flag around which they had
-rallied, and would place themselves in opposition to the leaders whom
-at first they had followed. Calvin was not long in observing this.
-‘The abomination of papistry,’ said he, ‘is now cut down by the power
-of the Word.[444] The senate has decreed that its superstitions, with
-all their _paraphernalia_, shall be suppressed, and that religion
-shall be regulated in the city according to the purity of the Gospel.
-However, the form of the Church does not appear to us to be such as the
-legitimate exercise of our office requires. Whatever others may think,
-we for our part cannot imagine that our ministry ought to be anything
-so slight as that when once we have preached our sermon, we have
-nothing to do but to fold our arms, like people that have done their
-task.’
-
-Calvin’s first thought for insuring a prosperous state of things in
-Geneva--and this deserves to be noticed--was that it was essential to
-pay great attention to Christian instruction. He had no sooner returned
-from his journey than he began to draw up a catechism, to which he
-added a confession of faith.[445] Although his own word was full of
-force and authority, it was to the understanding, to the conscience,
-and to conviction that he appealed. The Holy Scriptures possessed in
-his eyes an infallible authority to which every soul of man is bound
-to submit. Nevertheless, he did not mean that men were to submit in a
-slavish manner, as Rome required; He would have them understand the
-Holy Scriptures in order that they might grasp their truth and beauty.
-‘It is mere nothing,’ said he, ‘that words are thrown out, until
-our minds are enlightened by the gift of intelligence. If we cannot
-comprehend with our own understanding and know what is right, how
-should our will suffice to obey?’[446]
-
-It was not difficult for the author of the _Institution Chrétienne_ to
-compose, according to the same notions, a book designed for religious
-instruction. Calvin therefore prepared a catechism in French, which was
-not divided into question and answer. It seemed, from the way in which
-it was drawn up, less fitted to be placed in the hands of children than
-of masters, as a clue; or rather in the hands of adults, to aid their
-attempts after self-instruction. It appears, nevertheless, that the
-book was also used by children. It has hitherto been found impossible
-to discover a single copy of it. It is conjectured that the leaves of
-the book were used up, being torn out with the wear and tear of daily
-lessons, as frequently happens still with school-books.[447]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN’S CATECHISM.]
-
-A Latin translation of the catechism appeared at Basel in 1538.[448]
-This catechism reveals in its first lines the true thought, the real
-mind of Calvin. We say the real mind, because it is very different
-from that attributed to Calvin by so many men who are filled with
-prejudices, and for whom the word _Calvinism_ is like a scarecrow set
-up on the top of a pole in the fields to frighten timid birds. ‘There
-is not a man in existence,’ said he, ‘no matter how uncivilized he be,
-no matter though his heart be altogether savage, that is destitute of
-the religious sentiment. It is certain that the end for which we were
-created is to know the majesty of our Creator, and to embrace him when
-known, and to adore him with all fear, love, and reverence.’[449] Of
-course this declaration does not show that Calvin was blind to the
-evil that is in humanity. It does not prevent his declaring that ‘the
-heart of man, which the poison of sin has penetrated to its inmost
-depths, sins, not because it is constrained by necessity, but because
-the will impels him to it.’ Calvin afterwards expounds, with the hand
-of a master, the three great articles of the Christian Church--the
-Decalogue, the Apostles’ Creed, and the Lord’s Prayer. But this is not
-the place for a copy of his exposition.
-
-Calvin, at the same time that he provided instruction for the young,
-interested himself warmly in the character of the men and women who
-were called to become members of the Church of God. As he longed for
-a pure Church, his first care was to ascertain the purity of faith
-and life of those who composed it. The great diversity of religious
-opinions which then prevailed in Geneva troubled him, for he knew
-that _every house divided against itself shall not stand_. ‘How,’
-said he, ‘can we receive into a Church of the Gospel people who,
-for all we know, may not have renounced papistical idolatries and
-superstitions?’[450] The members composing a Church ought, in his
-judgment, to be united by a bond both holy and strong. As Geneva had to
-contend against the Goliath of the papacy, her strength must be found
-in faith and union. Sound doctrine must be imprinted on the hearts
-of the Genevese, in order that neither mysticism, nor infidelity,
-nor a fanatical enthusiasm might approach to enfeeble and lead them
-astray. Christians must ‘lean upon the promises of God with trust and
-certainty, that they may stand firm against all the artillery which
-might threaten the destruction of their confidence.’[451]
-
-Before Calvin’s arrival, Farel had spoken to the council about the
-necessity of preparing the edicts for establishing unity in matters
-of religion at Geneva, but nothing had been done. Now that Calvin was
-come, he conversed with his old colleague on the means of _making the
-people live in the faith of God_. The two friends agreed to prepare a
-confession of evangelical faith, and the author of the _Institution
-chrétienne_ was in reality charged with the task of drawing it up;
-not however without consulting Farel, who was better acquainted with
-Geneva, and more clearly understood what was expedient, than the
-newly arrived teacher. The biographers of Calvin, who were also his
-friends and knew his labors better than any one, speak of this matter.
-‘When he was named pastor,’ says one of them, ‘he prepared a brief
-formulary of doctrine and discipline.’[452] ‘Then (after the Lausanne
-disputation),’ says another, ‘a formula of Christian faith was published
-by Calvin.’[453] It has been asserted that Calvin’s formula is lost,
-but that Farel had at the same time prepared another, and that the
-latter is preserved. In this assertion there are two statements highly
-improbable: first, that separate confessions of faith were drawn up at
-the same time by Calvin and Farel, for the same purpose: second, that
-it is Calvin’s which is lost, and Farel’s that is preserved.
-
-[Sidenote: THE CONFESSION OF FAITH.]
-
-Whatever the fact may be, Farel, on November 10, presented the
-Confession to the council; and that was quite natural. He had stood
-for years in close relation with that body, and was recognized by it
-as the chief leader in the Church: while Calvin, a new-comer, and
-somewhat shy, was not fond of showing himself, and least of all of
-appearing before the Council of the Two Hundred. Farel, therefore,
-having been introduced into the hall of the great council, communicated
-the document to them. He stood in the presence of the deputies of the
-people of Geneva, who were invested with large powers and whom it was
-dangerous to offend. But, although he took into consideration the
-religious state of those whom he addressed, he laid before them the
-purport of the Christian dispensation with that freedom, clearness, and
-courage which were characteristic of the epoch of the Reformation, and
-which appear strange to a generation more enervated, more unbelieving,
-and more timid. ‘The rule of our faith and our religion,’ said he, ‘is
-Holy Scripture alone, without admixture of anything invented by the wit
-of man. We worship one God only, not putting our trust in any creature,
-whether angel or saint, or men still living on the earth. Man, who is
-by nature full of corruption, stands in need of enlightenment from God
-that he may attain to the true knowledge of his salvation; and all that
-is lacking in ourselves we receive from Christ. By his righteousness
-we obtain remission of our sins. By the shedding of his blood we are
-cleansed from all our stains. By his Holy Spirit we are born again in a
-new spiritual nature. By our communion with him, the works which we do
-are made acceptable to God.’[454]
-
-It has been observed that this confession of faith, in twenty-one
-articles, does not set forth the Christian doctrines in so complete
-and didactic a manner as Calvin subsequently did. From this
-circumstance it has been inferred that it was composed by Farel. A
-reply to this reasoning is furnished in the statement of Theodore
-Beza,--that the confession was adapted to the wants of the Genevese
-Church, which had then hardly escaped from the corruptions of the
-papacy. Calvin and Farel had given especial prominence to those
-truths which stood in opposition to papal errors, and had not felt
-it necessary to establish the doctrines which the Romish Church
-had retained: for example, the doctrine of the Trinity. At a later
-period, when these doctrines were controverted by men who professedly
-adhered to the Reformation, Calvin felt the need of formally avowing
-them; and this he did in his _Sommaire de la doctrine chrétienne_.
-Further, we would willingly admit that there may have been, as some
-competent judges suppose, a confession of faith prepared by Farel,
-and that it was that which was presented to the people, if the two
-contemporary writers whom we have cited were not silent about such
-a document, and did not insist on that of which Calvin was author.
-But there is stronger evidence still. Calvin himself, when speaking
-of the publication of his catechism, says, ‘that he annexed to it _a
-confession which was sanctioned_ (_editam_, published) _by the solemn
-oath of all the people_.’[455] To us this appears to be decisive.
-We shall presently see that the spirit pervading that confession is
-exactly the spirit which at that time animated Calvin. If anyone
-asserts the contrary, he must have forgotten the dispute which took
-place between Calvin and Caroli. The best reception was given to the
-work from the moment of its presentation to the government. The council
-resolved, say the registers, that the articles proposed by Farel should
-all be adopted.[456]
-
-[Sidenote: FREQUENT COMMUNION.]
-
-If the rule of faith were Christian, the rule of morals must be pure.
-At the beginning of the year 1537, Calvin, doubtless in conjunction
-with Farel, prepared a memoir on the subject of order in the Church.
-On January 15 Farel stated the fact to the council; and the next
-day the articles ‘presented by Master Guillaume Farel and the other
-preachers’ were read before the Two Hundred.[457] The ministers
-said,[458]--‘Considering what trouble and confusion prevailed in our
-city before the Gospel was received by common consent, it has been
-found impossible to bring everything into good order at once. But now
-that it hath pleased the Lord to establish his rule here somewhat more
-perfectly, we have thought it good and profitable to confer on these
-matters; and we have decided to lay before you these articles.’
-
-There was no ground of objection to this introduction.
-
-‘It would be desirable,’ continued Calvin and his friends, ‘that the
-holy supper of Jesus Christ should be celebrated every Sunday at the
-least, since we are _made, in it, partakers of the body, the blood, the
-life, the spirit, and all the benefits of Jesus Christ_, and because
-it is an admonition to us to live as Christians in brotherly unity. It
-was not instituted for commemoration two or three times in a year, but
-for frequent observance. Such was the practice of the ancient Church,
-until the abomination of masses was introduced, the effect of which was
-the entire abolition of the Lord’s supper. However, as we foresee that
-by reason of the infirmity of men, there might be some danger of that
-sacred mystery falling into contempt through so frequent a celebration,
-we have judged it well that the holy supper should be observed once a
-month.’
-
-It was natural that such good Christians as these reformers should
-desire frequent communion. But the lesser council was of opinion that,
-for the majority, the supper would be more solemn and more beneficial
-if it were less frequent. It was therefore resolved to propose to the
-Council of the Two Hundred that it should be celebrated not more than
-four times in the year.[459] The reading of the memoir of the pastors
-was continued.
-
-‘But the main point is that the supper, which was instituted for the
-purpose of uniting Christians in one spirit with their head and with
-each other, should not be defiled and contaminated by any persons
-whose evil life shows plainly that they do not belong to Jesus Christ.
-We must not associate, says St. Paul, with those who are notoriously
-profligate, covetous, idolatrous, railers, drunkards, or thieves. Care
-must therefore be taken that only those come to the supper who are
-approved members of Jesus Christ. To this end, our Lord established in
-his Church the correction and discipline of _excommunication_. This
-discipline existed in the Church until wicked bishops, or rather say
-brigands assuming the title of bishops, converted it to an instrument
-of tyranny, and abused it for the gratification of their own evil
-lusts, to such a degree that, at the present day, excommunication is
-one of the most cursed things to be seen in the realm of the pope. It
-has therefore seemed to us expedient that this discipline should be
-restored in the Church, according to the rule laid down in Scripture.
-
-[Sidenote: EXCOMMUNICATION.]
-
-‘Choose ye therefore certain persons of good report, belonging to all
-quarters of the city, who may have an eye on each man’s life, in order
-that, if they discover open vice in any one, the latter may be exhorted
-by one of the ministers in a brotherly way to amend his life. If he
-will not listen to the exhortation, then let the minister report to
-the assembly what he has done for the reclamation of the sinner. If he
-still persist in evil, then the time will be come to excommunicate
-him; that is, to treat him as cast out of the society of Christians.
-Should there be any who only laugh at your excommunication, it will be
-for you to consider whether, in the long run, that contempt for God
-and his Gospel is to be suffered.’ After thus insisting on a moral
-life, the reformers required that the confession of faith which they
-had presented should be put in force. ‘It is much to be suspected,’
-said the ministers, ‘if it be not even plainly apparent, that there
-are many of the inhabitants of this city who have not by any means
-submitted to the Gospel, but still cherish in their hearts all manner
-of superstitions. It would be a highly expedient course to begin in
-the first place to ascertain who are willing to avow themselves of the
-Church of Jesus Christ, and who are not. If those who are in agreement
-with us in respect to the faith are to be excommunicated solely because
-of their vices, much more ought those to be excommunicated who are
-wholly opposed to us in religion; for there is no division greater than
-that which is made by the faith. As yet it has not been ascertained
-what doctrine each man holds; but this is _the real beginning of a
-church_ (_le droit commencement d’une Église_). The remedy which has
-occurred to us is that all the inhabitants of this city should be
-bound to make confession and give a reason for their faith. And you,
-Gentlemen of the Council, make you confession in your council, and
-thus, by example show what each man will have to do.’
-
-We have said that before Calvin’s arrival at Geneva, rules of
-discipline were in existence and in force. There is here however
-something new, as is evident from the language of the pastors. It is
-_excommunication_. This is a point of great importance, for it was
-on this subject that violent conflicts soon after began in Geneva.
-It does not however appear, from the official records, that the
-articles met with any opposition in the council. Surely a Christian
-life and a Christian faith ought to characterize a Christian society.
-If profligates and drunkards ought not to be admitted to what the
-world calls good society, much more, they thought, ought they to be
-excluded from a religious society. Moreover, they were _laymen_ of good
-report who were to watch over moral order, and even those laymen were
-appointed by other laymen, members themselves of the council. This
-fact made a great difference between the Romish discipline and that
-which the reformers desired. In this case there was no suggestion of a
-reign of clericalism; and this doubtless contributed to the adoption
-of the rules. Calvin was convinced that morality ought to distinguish
-the reformed Church from the deformed (_l’église réformée de l’église
-déformée_). Was it not dissolute living, both on the part of the laity,
-and still more on the part of the monks and the priests, which had
-called forth in the Church the sharpest rebukes? It was not possible
-to purify the faith without purifying the life. That would have been
-a flagrant contradiction. If the Reformation made light of morality,
-it would destroy itself as Rome had done. With regard to doctrine, no
-one supposed that the reformed Church could hold in its bosom either
-Roman Catholics or pantheists who believed neither in God nor in the
-immortality of the soul. Why then should it tolerate impure persons or
-robbers? All this is true: but nevertheless there is something in the
-system that does not work smoothly. Calvin was right, and he was wrong
-too. We shall have to say wherein lay his truth and wherein his error.
-
-The articles presented to the senate dealt also with the spiritual
-songs of the Church. If only the minister speak, worship remains cold:
-but the singing ‘has power to raise our hearts to God,’ said Calvin,
-‘and to stimulate us to exalt his name.’ He urged the education of
-children, ‘in order to correct the wonderful rudeness and ignorance in
-which they were left through the negligence of their parents, and which
-is not by any means allowable in the Church of God.’ Then he treated
-of the order of marriage, ‘a subject involved in much confusion by the
-pope, who undertook to establish degrees at his own pleasure.’ Calvin
-closed his articles with an eloquent exhortation to the council. ‘Take
-not these admonitions,’ said he, ‘as coming from us, but from Him who
-gives them in his Word. And should any one allege the difficulty of
-putting them in practice, let it not trouble you; for we must cherish
-the hope that whenever we are willing to do what God has commanded, His
-goodness will prosper our enterprise and bring it to a good end, as you
-yourselves have found by experience to this day.’
-
-Calvin thus set about his task like a great master. A catechism which
-bore at once the impress of genius and of piety: a confession of faith,
-pure and living: a Church order which had for its aim the removal of
-vice and the quickening of piety:--these formed the threefold labor
-with which the illustrious reformer began his work.
-
-[Sidenote: THE ARTICLES APPROVED.]
-
-The articles, after being sanctioned by the lower council, were carried
-the same day before the Council of the Two Hundred, and were allowed.
-The council further decreed that no shops should be open on Sundays
-during the time of divine service: that all persons who had images and
-idols in their houses should destroy them or bring them to be burnt:
-that no one should sing foolish songs nor play at games of chance: and
-finally that the syndic Porral and Jean Goulaz should be commissioned
-to see to the maintenance of good morals in the city, and that people
-led lives conformed to the will of God.[460] The choice of Porral was
-very good: that of Goulaz, who was personally no enemy to play or to
-taverns, was not so good. The council showed by these measures with
-what seriousness it meant to proceed in the accomplishment of the
-Reformation. Soon after it adopted another resolution. Many children
-of Geneva were sent away to various places and intrusted to foreign
-governors. The council decreed, January 30, that those persons who had
-children at schools not in Geneva, should have them brought into that
-town or placed in other _Christian_ schools; that otherwise the said
-children would be deprived of citizenship.[461] This was a rigorous
-measure; but it shows what spirit actuated the council, and its zeal in
-the cause of sound education.
-
-These important acts met with no opposition even from the citizens who
-subsequently so sturdily resisted the rules of discipline. There was
-however a certain show of opposition, but it was in mere sport. The
-high-spirited youth of the town, easily excited, indulged in laughter
-and sarcasm. They were especially annoyed at the zeal of the syndic
-Porral, which crossed them in their pastimes; and when new syndics
-had been elected, February 4, and Porral went out of office, these
-youngsters began the next day to _play at Picca-Porral_. They wore in
-the hat, as a badge, a leek (_porreau_), and served at their feasts a
-dish of leeks. Each of them would prick the _porral_ with abundance
-of jests. ‘Légier Beschaut and some other young men of the town’ were
-imprisoned, February 5, for this sport.[462] Porral requested Farel to
-accompany him to the prison, for the purpose of admonishing them. But
-the young folk did not profit by it. Some have called them frolicsome,
-others dissolute. We think that the former term is the most fitting.
-As the council saw in the proceedings of the young culprits, says a
-contemporary,[463] more of youth and foolishness than of malicious
-intention, they set them at liberty four days after their arrest,
-under promise to appear again when required. It is very likely that
-Porral had acted with a little too much rigor in this affair.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN’S REQUIREMENTS.]
-
-The Genevese people testified their hearty acceptance of this
-Christian constitution by electing, February 5, syndics devoted to
-the Reformation. Other candidates of note were rejected. It was
-acknowledged that the equality of the citizens was established by
-this constitution, the rules applying to all alike, ‘and families of
-the highest distinction being bound to submit like other people.’
-This gratified the commonalty. Calvin, however, did not indulge in
-illusions. He was afraid that a certain number of citizens, and even
-some of the highest eminence, would oppose the Reform; and he urgently
-required that all should be called upon to profess it. ‘In default
-of this,’ he said, ‘he would stay no longer at Geneva.’[464] What he
-had presented was for the benefit of all. If all would not accept it,
-he would go away, for he had no intention of invading or usurping by
-force or by fraud. On March 13, the council resolved to see to the
-Lord’s Supper, and to the observance of the other articles.[465] On
-April 17 it was decreed that a syndic, the captain of the quarter,
-and the tithing men (_dizeniers_) should visit all the houses of the
-tithings (_dizaines_) to propose the articles respecting the faith.
-On the 27th of the same month it was resolved to print the confession
-of faith, and to furnish a sufficient number of copies to the tithing
-men for the inhabitants of their tithings, in order that when the
-people should be visited they might be better instructed and well
-informed.[466] Each man should know what he was going to do; there
-must be no surprise. Calvin, indeed, was not content with the mere
-instruction of the Genevese in accordance with the confession. It
-would have sufficed Saunier, who saw with regret, at least at this
-time, that adhesion to the formula of the confession was required of
-every Genevese.[467] But it was not enough for Calvin that the document
-should be officially recognized by the council as an expression of the
-faith of the Genevese, a course which had been deemed satisfactory in
-other places. He demanded that each individual should accept it. He
-did not believe that the state was in this case responsible for the
-people. Every Genevese was responsible before God. He did not want
-religion in the mass. Does not Christ say, _Whosoever shall confess me
-before men_? Whosoever--that is, each individual. This is perfectly
-true; but the mistake is to suppose that, in order to confess Christ,
-it is necessary to sign a theological confession. ‘If thou believest
-in thy heart, thou shalt be saved,’ says Paul. We are reminded of a
-poor woman who desired participation at the supper, and whose pastor
-subjected her to an examination on the three offices of Christ, as
-prophet, priest, and king. ‘Ah, sir,’ she replied, ‘I know nothing
-of those things, but I am ready to die for him.’ ‘That will do,’
-said the minister, with some sense of shame. Theology is necessary
-to theologians; it must not be demanded of simple folk. The three
-leading ministers, Farel, Calvin, and Courault, the latter blind and
-old, being of the same mind on the subject, appeared before the Two
-Hundred, presented their formula, and earnestly pressed the council to
-give glory to God by confessing His truth. ‘It is right,’ said Calvin,
-‘that in so sacred a duty you, who are bound to set an example of all
-virtue, should go before the people.’ But that was not enough for him.
-‘Then,’ he added, ‘assemble the country by tithings, and let every man
-swear to this confession.’[468] The council adopted the views of the
-reformer, which Saunier himself had embraced. All the tithing men were
-summoned to give first their own adhesion; and the council charged them
-to exhort those over whom they were set to follow the commandments of
-God, and to bring their men (_leurs gens_) to St. Peter’s, tithing
-by tithing (there were twenty-eight of them), to adhere to the
-confession. The adhesion was given through the medium of the tithing
-men, successively, and not simultaneously. A principle, from which
-there was no deviation, excluded women from the general council. But in
-this instance the assembly was of a religious rather than a political
-character. It was well known how great the influence of woman is in
-the family as regards religion. It is therefore possible that both men
-and women were summoned together to St. Peter’s, distributed in groups
-by their tithing men. The decree which we have just cited directs them
-to bring their _gens_, a word which may include both sexes. However,
-we have found no positive evidence on this point. One single fact
-appears to indicate that women were present. On September 28, 1537, the
-council dealt with the case of _Jeanne la Gibescière_, who would not
-swear to the new reformation, and banished her on that account. But
-more than a month earlier, on August 21, this same Jeanne, belonging
-to a particular sect (_the Spirituals_), on its being proposed to
-her to swear to the new reformation, had refused to do so, and had
-consequently been placed under arrest. That case, therefore, cannot be
-alleged as an absolute proof that women also swore to the confession at
-St. Peter’s.
-
-[Sidenote: CONVOCATION OF THE PEOPLE.]
-
-Accordingly, on Sunday, July 29, the council assembled in the
-cathedral, and the tithings passed in successively. Young people who
-had attained their majority, and old men with white hair, perhaps women
-as well as men, came forward. Rozet, secretary to the council, read the
-confession of faith. Next came the oath of fidelity and obedience,
-which each in his turn took by lifting up his hand.[469] ‘The people,’
-says Calvin, ‘show no less alacrity in taking the oath than the senate
-had shown diligence in publishing it.’[470] A large number of the
-Genevese professed with all their heart the evangelical doctrines.
-
-Nevertheless, the opinion of Saunier might be supported by weighty
-reasons. If he was opposed to the imposition of a personal engagement,
-it was because he knew that the confession was not the exact expression
-of the faith of each individual; that some of those who would swear to
-it did not understand it either wholly or in part; and that others,
-while understanding it better, had only an intellectual belief, which
-might fail when assailed by captious objections. Individuality did
-not appear to be at that time adequately respected. But the public
-profession of faith of July 29 had been so solemn a proceeding that
-many rejoiced at it. There were however many people who abstained from
-joining in it, because they were still attached to Roman Catholicism.
-There were also a certain number who were unwilling to submit to moral
-discipline. George Lesclefs and his servant said that they could not
-bring their minds to swear to keep the ten commandments, because they
-were so difficult.[471] Others refused to take the oath from a spirit
-of political independence.
-
-Nevertheless, we may assert in a general way that the people gave
-their adhesion to the confession; and that was a glorious day for the
-Reformation on which those hands were lifted up for the Gospel in the
-old cathedral of St. Peter. The sky, indeed, was afterwards clouded,
-but that day was clear and serene.
-
-[Sidenote: THE OATH REFUSED BY MANY.]
-
-Calvin might well rejoice in having obtained results so large in so
-short a time; and his colleagues rejoiced with him. The aged Courault,
-persecuted in France, had been compelled to take refuge in Basel; and
-Calvin, knowing that although deprived of sight, ‘he was clear-sighted
-with the eyes of the mind,’ had called him to Geneva. Courault was
-happy to find himself a witness in that city of the triumph of the
-Reformation, which had been so rudely assailed in his native country.
-Farel, on his part, saw that God was crowning the work that had cost
-him so much labor. He displayed at all times unwearied zeal and heroic
-courage; and his continual prayers in behalf of the Reformation were
-so fervent, that those who heard them felt themselves lifted up to
-heaven, says Beza. Farel had cast the seed into the ground, and had
-seen the stalk spring up. Now, to the time of sowing succeeded the time
-of harvest. The ear had appeared, the grain was formed in the ear, and
-another laborer, a robust harvestman, had come to cut the wheat and
-bind the sheaves. But this excited no envy in him. On the contrary,
-his Christian soul acknowledged with thanksgiving the precious gifts
-bestowed on Calvin. The superiority of his intellect, the extent of
-his acquirements, the accuracy of his judgment, and his faculty for
-organization, filled the old pioneer with admiration and respect. He
-was delighted to see a constantly increasing auditory thronging into
-the cathedral to hear Calvin expound the Holy Scriptures. Thenceforth
-the old man sat almost a disciple at the feet of the young doctor.
-On all subjects he desired Calvin’s opinion, and he looked on him as
-the man chosen of God to complete the Reformation. Calvin on his part
-gave to Farel the honor which was due to him. ‘After you had begun to
-build up this Church of Geneva, with great labor and danger,’ he said,
-‘I came in unexpectedly in the first instance as _conductor_, and
-afterwards I remained as your successor, to carry on the work which
-you had well and happily begun.’ This cordial relation between Calvin
-and Farel, in spite of the difference of their ages, is among the
-most beautiful instances of the kind in history. Calvin subsequently
-extolled what he called _their sacred friendship and union_, and said
-affectionately, ‘You and I are one.’[472] There was between them, says
-Calvin on another occasion, a good understanding and a friendship
-which, consecrated by the name of Christ, was profitable to his Church.
-
-The school, placed under the direction of Saunier, likewise flourished.
-Lessons began at five o’clock in the morning.[473] The pupils were
-instructed ‘in the three most excellent languages, Greek, Hebrew,
-and Latin, in addition to the French, which, in the opinion of the
-learned, is by no means to be despised.’ Mathurin Cordier, formerly
-Calvin’s teacher, soon devoted himself to this task. Numerous scholars,
-attracted to Geneva by the great work which was being achieved there,
-came from Basel, Berne, Bienne, Zurich, and other places, to study
-there. These messmates lived at the College, with Saunier, whose house
-was ordered in a Christian manner. ‘Daily, before they sat down to
-meat, one of them read aloud a chapter of the Bible and all the rest
-listened. While seated at the table, they each repeated a sentence
-of Holy Scripture.’[474] Thus were fashioned the strong men of the
-sixteenth century. The system which excludes from the school the Bible
-and even religion, that is to say, the regenerative and training
-element, will never form the like.
-
-[Sidenote: DISCIPLINE.]
-
-The reformers, whose intercourse with each other was pleasant and
-refreshing, enjoyed in addition the approval of the majority of
-the people, and particularly of the magistrates. Receiving so much
-encouragement in their ministry, they were brave, active, and
-unwearied in their calling. Far from being weighed down with their
-great task, they appeared rather to grow stronger under the burden;
-and this is a distinctive mark of great men. If any difficulty arose,
-if any village were in need of a preacher, Farel and Calvin applied
-with confidence to the council, which usually acceded to their request,
-and acted even with generosity.[475] When a good citizen pointed out,
-February 13, that Calvin had not yet received anything, the council
-decreed to present him with _six écus_.[476] The next day, Farel, with
-his brother and Saunier, applied for the grant of citizenship; it was
-resolved that they should receive it free of charge. Calvin did not
-become a citizen of Geneva till a later period. Nor was he the only
-one who deferred that matter. Other celebrated Frenchmen declined the
-citizenship of Geneva, their city of refuge, on the ground that they
-could not renounce France. That love for the old country was probably
-one of the motives which led Calvin to put off for three-and-twenty
-years becoming a citizen of the city of which he was the very soul. On
-February 27 they presented to Saunier thirty measures of wheat; and, on
-June 6, _six écus_ to Courault. The gifts were not large, but every age
-has its own measure.
-
-The council, which concerned itself about the wants of the ministers,
-watched likewise, in conformity with the constitution, over the wants
-of the Church and the purity of morals. Letters were written, February
-7, at the request of Farel, to Besançon and to Neuchâtel, respecting
-Olivétan’s Bible.[477] The lay magistrates were severe. On the 23d of
-the same month, a player and sharper, who was cheating the people
-out of their money, was sentenced to be exposed for an hour, with his
-fraudulent cards hung round his neck. The ‘_grand Francois_,’ guilty of
-impurity, had to give as a fine a halter, eighteen feet long, such as
-is used for tying up cattle. A man and woman guilty of adultery, were
-banished, June 1, for a year. On March 13 the council, intruding even
-into the spiritual domain, determined to make arrangements about the
-Lord’s Supper and other things.[478]
-
-Thus Geneva took an important place both as a Church and a school.
-Foreigners resorted to it, or sent their children there. The beauty of
-its situation formed also a powerful attraction. Of all descriptions
-of Geneva, the following is doubtless one of the most ancient. ‘Do
-not imagine,’ said Saunier, ‘that Geneva is some frightful, almost
-uninhabitable town, in the midst of barren and solitary rocks. The
-streets, with a few exceptions, are broad and in good condition, and
-there are several large public places. Encircled by a continuous chain
-of mountains, it has nevertheless on all sides a tract of level country
-extending round it in the form of a great theatre. As for the lake, it
-is difficult to say in what respect it is of most value to the city,
-whether for profit, for defence (_parement_), or for beauty. The water
-is not at all muddy or turbid, but to the very bottom is clear as fine
-glass, so that people take a wonderful pleasure in looking at it. To
-sum up, the said town is situated on the frontiers of three great
-countries, to wit, Gaul, Germany, and Italy, as it were a place marked
-out (_députée_) for gatherings of merchants.’[479] Geneva was going to
-be marked out for other gatherings. ‘Already Mathurin Cordier,’ says a
-contemporary, ‘a man more skilful in training schools in the French
-tongue than any man of our time has been, brought with him a large
-number of learned men.’[480] We have already spoken elsewhere of the
-arrival of young Englishmen at the foot of the Alps, for the sake of
-enjoying intercourse with Calvin. Saunier’s description shows that the
-reformers were not unobservant of the beauties of nature. They loved
-them, and contemplated them at Geneva in the height and perfection of
-their majesty.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
- CALVIN CONTENDS WITH FOREIGN DOCTORS, AND IS ACCUSED OF ARIANISM.
-
- (MARCH TO JUNE, 1537.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: ARRIVAL OF FOREIGN DOCTORS.]
-
-[Sidenote: THE SPIRITUALS.]
-
-The peace and satisfaction which were the fruit of the settled order,
-and even of the beauty of the places in which these great changes had
-been effected, did not long remain undisturbed. Some foreign doctors
-came to Geneva, Herman of Liége and Andrew Benoît, the latter also a
-native of the Netherlands, both of them belonging to that enthusiastic
-sect, some of whose leaders Calvin had previously encountered
-in France, and who called themselves the Spirituals.[481] These
-sectaries had found their way into western Europe, but Germany and the
-Netherlands were, above all, their proper countries. The German mind
-has a philosophical and even mystical tendency, which gives rise to a
-longing to penetrate deeper than the Bible itself into the knowledge
-of divine things. The central position of Geneva, the important
-revolution in politics and religion which had just been accomplished
-there, excited in those sectaries the hope of establishing themselves
-in the city for the purpose of spreading themselves afterwards over
-France, Italy, and other countries. These new doctors, from the time of
-their arrival, had labored to diffuse their opinions, and had gained
-partisans. Among these were some members of the council.[482] Proud of
-this first success, they expected to substitute in Geneva their dreams
-for the Gospel. The claim set up by these Spirituals, of penetrating
-further into the truth than the reformers did, gave them a certain
-attractiveness for minds eager for novelties. They boldly announced
-that they were willing to dispute with the preachers. As early as March
-9 they were called before the council, and were invited to communicate
-in writing the articles which they intended to maintain.[483] Herman
-and Benoît complied with this request, and delivered their theses to
-the council. The council took them into consideration on March 13. In
-calling themselves the _Spirituals_, these men meant to assert that the
-spirit alone acted in them. Their doctrine was a more or less gross
-kind of Pantheism. They did not think, in general, ‘that the soul was
-a substance, a creature having essence; it was merely, in their view,
-the property which a man has of breathing, of moving, and of performing
-other vital actions.[484] They said that in place of our souls it is
-God who lives in us, and does in us all the actions pertaining to
-life. God became the creature,’ adds Calvin, ‘and the latter was no
-longer anything.’[485] An assassination having been committed at Paris,
-Quintin, a leader among the Spirituals, replied to some who asked him
-who committed it, ’Tis thou, ’tis I, ’tis God, for what thou and I
-do, ’tis God that does it.’ They had also peculiar ideas respecting
-Jesus Christ. They did not hold that he had been very man, but made
-him a kind of phantom, as to his body. They held similar errors about
-baptism, excommunication, the magistrate, oaths, and other matters.
-We are not in possession of the articles which they presented to the
-council, and it is probable that they did not put forward the most
-offensive points of their system. But the majority of the council
-‘believed that it would be dangerous to discuss those articles in
-public, on account of the weakness (_tendrité_) of men’s minds. They
-therefore determined to give them a hearing on the following day, March
-14, but only in the Council of the Two Hundred.’[486]
-
-The sensation created in the city by the presence of Herman and Benoît,
-and the eagerness with which certain citizens were pleased to listen
-to them, had not escaped the notice of the reformers. If these doctors
-were not refuted, Geneva, withdrawn from the errors of the papacy,
-might fall into the dreams of Pantheism. The reformers therefore asked
-permission to attend the sitting. Herman and Benoît expounded their
-system. The council wished to hush up the affair; but Farel, confident
-in the force of truth, requested that it might be publicly discussed.
-His entreaties were complied with, and the debate was fixed for the
-next day, March 15.[487]
-
-The disputation took place in the grand auditory of Rive, on March
-15, 16, and 17, and on each occasion lasted the whole day. No report
-of these debates has come down to us. But some notion may be formed
-of them from the two tractates which Calvin devoted to the exposition
-and refutation of the system.[488] The discussion was very animated.
-The reformers so forcibly confuted, by the Word of God alone, the
-doctrines advanced by the two Spirituals in the public disputation,
-that the whole tribe thenceforth disappeared from that Church.[489]
-The Council of the Two Hundred having assembled, March 18, declared
-that the assailant was not _sufficient_, that is to say, that
-his opinions were erroneous. But they remarked that this disputation
-might beget differences, and that the faith might be imperilled. The
-reformers were therefore forbidden for the future to engage in such
-discussions. Then Herman and Benoît being called in, the syndics said
-to them, ‘We have been quite willing to hear you, for we listen to
-everybody, but _seeing that you are not able to prove the truth of
-your propositions by Holy Scripture_, we have pronounced them to be
-_contrary to the truth_. Are you willing to retract, and to return to
-God and ask his forgiveness?’ ‘We submit to the will of God,’ they
-replied, ‘but we will not by any means retract our words.’
-
-[Sidenote: EXPULSION OF THE SPIRITUALS.]
-
-Those of the Genevese who had taken them from the time of their coming
-for good evangelical Christians had called them _brethren_. But these
-foreigners had shown themselves very quarrelsome; and having refused
-even to pray with the Christians of Geneva--an offensive sign of their
-sectarian spirit--they were no longer called by the name of brethren.
-However, no penalty was at that time imposed on them, in the hope
-that they might be brought to more Christian sentiments. But that was
-indulging in a mere illusion. It was therefore decreed, according
-to the custom of the age, that these doctors, and every member of
-their sect, should be banished for ever from Geneva, under pain of
-death. ‘The most admirable feature of this business,’ said the early
-biographers of Calvin, ‘is, that if some churches of Germany have been
-delivered from these doctors, they were so by mere rigor of justice;
-while at Geneva _the magistrate had no hand in it_.’[490] Certainly,
-he did not employ against them either imprisonment or torture; Calvin
-endeavored only to convince them by argument. But banishment, under
-pain of death, is nevertheless a very palpable act of the magistrate.
-On the other hand, it is also a mistake to say that the Registers
-knew nothing of Calvin’s victory.[491] On the contrary, the decree of
-the council was expressly based on the fact that the doctors had been
-unable to prove the truth of their propositions by Holy Scripture.
-
-These were not the only attacks which the reformers had to sustain at
-the outset of their career. There were certain restless spirits who saw
-with vexation Calvin, Farel, and Viret at the head of the Reformation
-in French-speaking lands, and who wished to deprive them of their
-position, that they might occupy it themselves. These new troubles,
-caused by jealousy and ambition, were of a sharper kind, and lasted
-longer.[492] Their originator was that doctor of the Sorbonne, Caroli,
-whom we saw arrive from France at Geneva at the time of the great
-disputation of 1535.[493] Caroli was a sort of theological adventurer.
-He did not at heart care for the sacred end which the Reformation had
-in view. An incurable levity, which would not allow him to adhere
-to any party, a liking for anything which seemed to him new and
-fashionable, a burning thirst for glory and for fortune, a craving for
-liberty to satisfy his vicious inclinations, these were the feelings
-which actuated him, and threw him into a camp which he soon abandoned
-to seek in another the gratification of the same evil desires. Vain,
-proud, cringing, and inconsistent, he appeared as an assailant of the
-monks when a sort of reformation was in vogue in France. Next, when
-the era of persecution had begun, he made his escape to Geneva. The
-object of his dreams was to become a sort of bishop, to govern the
-reformed churches in French Switzerland; and he proposed to establish
-a doctrine which should hold a middle place between the Gospel and the
-pope. He had made acquaintance with the principal cities of his future
-diocese. From Geneva he had gone to Neuchâtel, and there he had become
-pastor, and had married. We have seen him appointed first pastor at
-Lausanne. ‘In every place that he visited he left some traces of his
-baseness.’[494] He tacked before every breeze. In a little while he
-passed from the Romish camp into the Protestant; then, because the
-reformers remonstrated with him, he returned to his vomit, according
-to the Scripture phrase; quitted the papal hierarchy a second time,
-to associate with the evangelicals; and finally ended his roving and
-wretched life at Rome. Caroli is one of the most despicable characters
-of that epoch--one of those ecclesiastical Don Quixotes who boast of
-smiting all their enemies. Besides vainglory, he had another passion
-quite as intense--hatred. He detested Farel, who had known him at Paris
-and had rebuked him for his vices. He detested Viret, who had once
-preached on impurity before him; a sermon which Caroli, convicted by
-his own conscience, thought was meant for him. In vain Viret assured
-him that he had preached for everybody: Caroli never forgave him. And
-lastly, the high esteem in which Calvin was held filled this Parisian
-doctor with envy and jealousy. He was hardly settled at Lausanne when,
-eager to realize his dreams, he demanded at Berne the oversight of
-a certain number of pastors and of churches. The Bernese refused
-this, and at the same time begged Viret to aid with his advice a
-foreigner who did not perfectly know the country, and decreed that no
-innovation should be introduced among the people by any pastor without
-a preliminary deliberation of all the brethren.[495]
-
-[Sidenote: CHARACTER OF CAROLI.]
-
-Caroli was not at all inclined to submit to this rule. A fantastic
-schoolman, he was fond of putting forward strange paradoxes, and
-of raising discussions which irritated men’s minds and gave him an
-opportunity of showing off his cleverness. That sort of thing was a
-remnant of the Middle Ages; but the age of the Reformation demanded
-a different method. Caroli was an anachronism. His rank as doctor
-of the Sorbonne ought, in his view, to set him at the top of the
-ecclesiastical hierarchy, before which the rude herdsmen of Helvetia
-must bend. He meant to make a reformation _sui generis_, to advance
-views peculiar to himself, and to set up doctrines to which no one
-had before attained. An opportunity soon presented itself. Viret,
-his young colleague, having gone to pay a visit to his friends at
-Geneva, Caroli took advantage of his absence, and, ascending the
-pulpit, read a series of theses tending to prove that prayers ought
-to be made for the dead. ‘I have no intention,’ he said as he closed,
-‘of taking lessons from a young man,’ thus pointing to Viret. It was
-plain, from his gestures, his voice, his words so arrogant and so full
-of tartness, that he was over-excited.[496] Viret, being informed by
-one of his friends, soon returned, and rebuked him for his freak. But
-Caroli, proud of what he impudently called his discovery, replied--‘I
-do not believe in purgatory, nor do I suppose that the dead can be
-comforted by the prayers of the living; those things are mere fictions.
-But I believe that we ought to ask God to hasten his judgment for
-the happiness of his saints and of all the members of the Church,
-the Virgin, the prophets, and the apostles, who will be the first to
-profit thereby.’[497] Caroli thus pitched his tent between Rome and
-the Gospel, being neither with the one nor with the other, but being
-merely himself. That was his wish. Had he only urged the Church to
-say to the Lord, ‘Come quickly,’ he would have spoken in conformity
-with Holy Scripture. But his intention was that the prayer should be
-offered in favor of the dead, a pretence which finds no justification
-in the Bible. Viret replied to him--‘You know that we ought not to
-preach any merely private views without having first communicated
-them to one another. If you have found in Scripture any instruction
-which is unknown to me, I will freely embrace it; but if you preach
-some erroneous doctrine, allow me, as your colleague, to make some
-observations on it.’[498] That was just what Caroli did not want. He
-answered Viret haughtily, and proudly maintained his doctrine.
-
-[Sidenote: CAROLI AT LAUSANNE.]
-
-Many friends of the Gospel looked to Calvin, who enjoyed their entire
-confidence, and begged him to go immediately to Lausanne. This he did.
-Farel would have liked to accompany him; but the Bernese requested
-him to look after his own church and not after theirs. Delegates from
-Berne were sent to Lausanne, and a kind of consistory was thus formed,
-in which Calvin, it appears, stated the case. But the proud Caroli,
-who thought it beneath his dignity to make any defence, refused in the
-haughtiest manner to give the least explanation of his conduct. He was
-greatly annoyed to find himself accused by Calvin, whose superiority
-was so troublesome to him. He immediately formed his plan. He resolved
-to turn against the reformer the sword with which the latter had
-threatened him, and to plunge it into him up to the hilt. ‘If the
-minister of Geneva,’ he exclaimed, ‘has shown so much zeal in bringing
-this business before your assembly, it is a shameful conspiracy, the
-only object of which is to ruin me completely.’ Viret then spoke, and
-so clearly set forth the subterfuges and calumnies of Caroli, that
-the assembly condemned him to make a retractation, regardless of his
-_amour propre_. Astounded by a sentence so severe, this man, who so
-easily passed from one extreme to another, humbled himself, and with
-lamentings and tears asked for pardon. Calvin was touched by this
-demeanor, and in the abundance of his moderation prayed the assembly to
-spare Caroli the act which wounded his pride. Viret did the same. Their
-request was granted. The doctor of the Sorbonne had then nothing better
-to do than to retire quietly to his own house, with a grateful feeling
-towards his two noble adversaries. But their well-meant interposition
-had not really softened him; his humility was a mere feint. He was
-determined at all cost to reach his end and become the foremost man in
-the Church. Jealous of the influence exercised by Calvin, Farel, and
-Viret in Switzerland, he said to himself that in order to get firmly
-seated in the saddle, the man already riding must first be dismounted.
-The ruin of these three doctors was the task which he had to undertake.
-He felt sure of the secret support, at least at Geneva, of some of the
-leading men; and he flattered himself that he should be able to involve
-Calvin in hopeless embarrassment.[499] He resolved therefore to assume
-the character of accuser, and to reduce his enemies to play the part of
-the guilty and the accused.
-
-People thought that they had done with this man, and the assembly was
-on the point of breaking up, when he suddenly rose, with a preoccupied
-look, as if he had some burden on his conscience of which he was
-anxious to be rid. ‘For the glory of God,’ said he, speaking in a
-declamatory tone, ‘for the honor of the lords of Berne, for the purity
-of the faith, for the safety of the Church, for the public peace, and
-for the relief of my own conscience, I have now to set before you,
-my honorable lords, a matter on which I have long kept silence. The
-silence must now be broken. I must speak. There are in the city of
-Geneva, as well as in your country, many ministers who are tainted with
-the Arian heresy.’ Putting himself forward like a second Athanasius, he
-named a great number of ministers, good men, whom he declared guilty
-of the error of Arius, but without giving any evidence at all.[500]
-Calvin was among the first in this catalogue of heretics. To accuse him
-of being an Arian required an audacity and a passion carried to the
-pitch of madness. It appears that he was even accused, in common with
-his friends, of maintaining the errors of the Spaniard Servetus.[501]
-The Genevese theologians had very recently encountered and defeated an
-Arian at Geneva, Claude of Savoy. There was something more than passion
-in this attack; there was absurdity. Calvin leaning towards Deism,
-indeed! The Reformation was not a beginning of Deism, with which stupid
-enemies have charged it: it was a reëstablishing of Christianity.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN ACCUSED OF ARIANISM.]
-
-The reformer was struck with astonishment. ‘It had never entered into
-my imagination,’ he wrote, ‘that we had to fear being accused on this
-point.’[502] Calvin perceived the scope of the attack which Caroli had
-just made. If he were to remain under this charge, his ministry would
-be compromised, his zeal suspected, his labors fruitless. Discord would
-be thrown into the evangelical camp, and Rome exult to see the most
-devoted champions of the Reformation accused of denying the divinity of
-the Saviour. The reformer immediately rose; and without any exhibition
-of violence, with which his enemies are always ready to reproach him,
-he pointed out with much spirit the inconsistency of his opponent.
-‘Only a few days ago,’ he said, ‘Caroli invited me to his table. I was
-at that time a _very dear brother_. He bade me present his compliments
-to Farel; he treated as Christians all those whom he looks on to-day as
-heretics, and protested that he wished to maintain for ever a brotherly
-union with us. Where, at that time, was the glory of God, where the
-purity of the faith and the unity of the Church?’ Then, turning towards
-the doctor of the Sorbonne--‘How could you,’ he said, ‘conscientiously
-celebrate the holy supper on two occasions with an Arian associate?
-From what source have you learnt that I am tainted with that heresy?
-Tell me, for I will clear myself of that infamy.’ As Caroli brought
-forward no evidence, the reformer appealed to the catechism which he
-had recently published. ‘This is the faith,’ said he, ‘which I have but
-lately professed. We confess that we believe in the Father, in the Son,
-and in the Holy Spirit; and when we name the Father, the Son, and the
-Spirit, we do not imagine to ourselves three gods. But we believe that
-Scripture and the experience of piety show us the Father, the Son, and
-the Spirit in simplest divine unity.’[503]
-
-Caroli was not by any means satisfied. The words in his view essential
-were missing. Calvin thought it advisable, in works of a practical and
-popular character, to avoid the use of expressions which are not found
-in holy Scripture. Therefore he had avoided the use, in the passage
-cited, of the terms _Trinity_, _substance_, or _persons_. Luther had
-done the same. ‘This term, _Trinity_,’ said he, ‘is nowhere to be
-found in holy Scripture; it was invented by men. Moreover the word
-is frigid, and it is far better to say _God_ than _Trinity_.’[504]
-Calvin, who was full of spirit and life, was afraid that by the use of
-these theological terms Christianity should be placed solely in the
-understanding of the man and of the child, and not in his conscience,
-his heart, his will, and his works. He had employed them the year
-before in the first edition of his _Institution_, which was intended
-for professed theologians:[505] but he had excluded them both from his
-_Confession_, prepared chiefly for the laity, and from his _Catechism_,
-composed for children. All this did not pacify Caroli, who, if he was
-orthodox, was only orthodox in the head. He alleged that if Calvin
-was innocent of Arianism, he was guilty of Sabellianism. ‘You will be
-under suspicion on that matter,’ said he, ‘until you have subscribed
-the Athanasian creed.’ ‘My practice,’ replied Calvin, ‘is not to
-approve of anything as in conformity with the Word of God until after
-due consideration.’ Caroli, thinking that the Athanasian creed was
-compromised by this reserve, flew into a passion and cried out, ‘that
-this avowal was unworthy of a Christian.’[506]
-
-[Sidenote: CONVOCATION OF A SYNOD.]
-
-Up to this moment Calvin had restrained himself; but he felt deeply
-the injustice of the doctor’s accusations. When he had received an
-unmerited blow, he not seldom replied by striking another himself. The
-blow was just, but sometimes rather sharp. ‘You will not find any one,’
-he said to Caroli, ‘more earnest than I am in maintaining the divinity
-of Jesus Christ. I think that I have given a sufficiently clear account
-of my faith. My works are in everybody’s hands, and all the orthodox
-churches approve my doctrine. But as for you, what evidence have
-you ever given of your faith, except possibly in public-houses and
-the haunts of vice? For it is in such places that you have hitherto
-practised.’
-
-Caroli, knowing all that could be told of his abandoned life, and
-as cowardly as he was rash, trembled when he found that Calvin was
-approaching that subject. In order to break the force of the blow, he
-retracted his charge, and declared that the writings of his opponent
-were good; that he had always spoken well of the Holy Trinity; and that
-no accusation could be drawn up against him, ‘provided that he did not
-support the cause of Farel.’ Caroli feared Farel less than Calvin, and
-hated him more. Viret then spoke, and compelled the presumptuous doctor
-to retract what concerned himself (_Viret_). ‘These retractations are
-not sufficient,’ said the two reformers; ‘we mean to defend likewise
-the cause of Farel and of our other absent brothers, whom you have
-unjustly accused.’ The delegates of Berne, when they saw what an
-important character the debate was assuming, declared that it was
-necessary to carry it before a general assembly, and undertook to get
-one held. The meeting then broke up.[507]
-
-These circumstances occurred in February. Calvin, on his return to
-Geneva, fearing that the Bernese delegates might be slow to fulfil
-their promise, and perceiving moreover that this affair concerned the
-Church rather than the state, persuaded the ministers of Geneva to
-write to the ministers of Berne, pressing them to take the matter in
-hand.[508] He wrote himself to Megander, the chief among the Bernese
-pastors. ‘I cannot find words,’ he said, ‘adequately to express the
-imminent peril to which the Church will be exposed if this business
-be indefinitely postponed. The influence which your position gives
-you lays on you more than any one else the obligation to use all your
-efforts to promote an early meeting of the assembly. You cannot imagine
-how severely the blow struck by Caroli has shaken the foundation which
-we have laid. People are saying, especially, even in country places,
-that we ought to begin by agreeing among ourselves before we think of
-converting others. Let us not allow the coat of the Gospel, woven in
-one piece, to be rent by wicked men. Do all that is possible to secure
-the meeting, before Easter, of all the French-speaking ministers who
-live under the government of your republic.’[509] Easter fell in that
-year on April 1.
-
-As the reformer received no satisfactory reply, he set out for Berne
-in the first fortnight in March, and implored the magistrates, the
-councillors, and the pastors to convoke the synod immediately. This
-was refused him, probably on account of the business which accumulates
-during the weeks preceding the feast of Easter; but they promised him
-that the assembly should be convoked immediately after Easter.[510]
-We see what courage and activity Calvin displayed; this was one of
-the signs of his genius. Farel, on the contrary, was worn out by the
-distress of mind which this affair had occasioned him. His condition
-was afflicting to his friends. ‘I should never have believed,’ said
-Calvin to Viret, ‘that with his iron constitution he could have been so
-pulled down.’ Farel’s age and his immense labors, however, accounted
-for his state. Calvin, alarmed at the prospect of losing so invaluable
-a fellow-laborer, wrote to Viret: ‘It is indispensable that you should
-return to us, unless we are prepared to see Farel die of grief. If we
-allow a breach to be made in the Genevese Church, I am afraid that
-schism will tear it to pieces.’[511] Instead of diminishing, the
-energy of Calvin appeared to increase, for he felt the justice of his
-cause. ‘I am ready,’ he said, ‘to maintain the contest with the utmost
-energy. The charges, first of Arianism, and then of Sabellianism, have
-not greatly disturbed us; our ears have been long accustomed to such
-calumnies, and we are confident that they will all end in smoke.’[512]
-The valiant champion therefore awaited fearlessly the convocation of
-the synod. The council of Geneva, on receiving the letters from the
-lords of Berne respecting this gathering, invited the _preachers_ to
-go thither; and on May 11 the treasurer placed in Farel’s hands fifty
-florins, to cover the expenses of the journey.[513]
-
-[Sidenote: SYNOD OF LAUSANNE.]
-
-The assembly met at Lausanne. On May 13[514] there were seen entering
-the church of St. Francis the banderet Rodolph de Graffenried, Nicholas
-Zerkinden, secretary of state, the pastor Grosmann, commonly called
-Megander, and another deputy from Berne. From Geneva came Calvin,
-Farel, and Courault; about twenty ministers from Neuchâtel, and a
-hundred pastors from the Pays de Vaud, among the latter, Viret. Caroli,
-it seems, came with a bag such as barristers are accustomed to carry,
-containing the brief of his proceedings.[515] Megander was president.
-He stated that the assembly had met in consequence of the charge
-brought by Caroli against several ministers, of not believing in the
-Trinity, nor in the divinity of Jesus Christ. Then addressing Viret, a
-subject of Berne, he inquired what was his opinion on that doctrine.
-‘When we confess one only God,’ replied the pastor of Lausanne, ‘we
-comprehend the Father, with his eternal Word, and his Spirit, in one
-single and divine essence. Nevertheless we do not confound the Father
-with the Word, nor the Word with the Spirit.’ Caroli rose and said
-with bitterness, ‘This profession is too short, too dry, too obscure.
-No mention is made in it of the _Trinity_, nor of _substance_, nor
-of _person_.’ Then taking a declamatory tone, he began to recite the
-Nicene creed, afterwards the Athanasian creed, making undignified
-gestures with his hands and arms, and moving his head and his body
-about in such an extraordinary way that the grave assembly could not
-refrain from laughter. In closing his speech, he said to his adversary,
-‘Nothing can clear you from the charge of heresy except your signing
-the three œcumenical creeds.’[516]
-
-[Sidenote: CAROLI UNMASKED.]
-
-Calvin listened to him without interrupting him; but he could no longer
-keep silence. A justification on his part was almost superfluous. He
-had fully professed the doctrine in his popular writings; he had even,
-as we have seen, employed the terms of the school in his theological
-_Institution_. But the point of importance for the safety of the Church
-was to make his adversary known, to tear the mask from his face. That
-man, of dissolute life, destitute of convictions, destitute of faith,
-whose only thought was how to get possession of the highest place,
-and who was endeavoring to conceal the licentiousness of his evil life
-under the pretence of religion, dared to accuse, with hypocritical
-lips, the faithful servants of God. A course so revolting roused
-Calvin’s indignation; and from his lips fell such earnest words as
-were inspired by the fraud, the vices, and the shamelessness of his
-adversary. He completely stripped the man. ‘What wickedness this is,’
-said he, ‘without any cause but mere lawless passions, to disturb the
-Church and to check the progress of the Gospel by bringing atrocious
-accusations against persons entirely innocent, who have rendered the
-most conspicuous services to the truth! Caroli sets up a quarrel with
-us about the distinction of the persons in God. I am going to examine
-him in turn, but I take up the subject at a higher point, and I ask
-him if only he believes in God. I declare before God and before men,
-that he has no more faith in the divine Word than the dog and the swine
-that trample under foot holy things.’ Some will perhaps exclaim against
-this language, but it must be remembered that Calvin took these two
-words from holy Scripture, where they are used to mark two different
-characters, of both of which we must equally beware.[517] ‘Give not
-that which is holy unto the dogs,’ said Jesus, ‘neither cast ye your
-pearls before swine.’ The swine represent men defiled by debauchery,
-and the dog is the beast that barks, pursues, and bites. These two
-kinds of excess precisely characterized Caroli.
-
-But Calvin did not stop there. He did not mean that people should be
-able to say that the ministers were not cleared of the charges brought
-against them. He therefore made a confession which had been beforehand
-approved by his colleagues. ‘When we distinguish the Father, his
-eternal Word, and his Spirit,’ said he, ‘we believe, in common with
-ecclesiastical writers, that in the simple unity of God there are
-three hypostases or substances, which, although they be one sole and
-identical essence, are nevertheless not confounded with each other.
-With respect to Jesus Christ,’ he added, ‘before taking on himself our
-flesh, he was the eternal Word, begotten of the Father before time was,
-very God, of one same essence, power, and majesty with the Father,
-Jehovah himself, who has ever existed of himself, and gives to others
-the property of existing.’[518]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND THE EARLY CREEDS.]
-
-This declaration baffled Caroli; and now, after having very strongly
-asserted that Calvin was not orthodox enough, he began to cry out that
-he was too much so. ‘What,’ said he, ‘you attribute to Jesus Christ
-the name and the nature of Jehovah; you say that he has of himself
-the divine essence!’ Calvin replied, ‘If we attentively consider
-the difference between the Father and the Word, we must acknowledge
-that the Word proceeds from the Father. But if we concern ourselves
-with the essence itself of the Word, so far as the Word is God with
-the Father, all that is said of the one must likewise be said of the
-other.’[519] Caroli, giving up the matter, took refuge in the words.
-‘In your confession,’ said he, ‘there is not the word _Trinity_, there
-is not the word _person_.’ Then, wishing to compel Calvin and the other
-ministers to adopt the confessions made by men,--‘I demand,’ said he,
-‘that you sign the three ancient creeds.’ Calvin and the ministers
-who were with him would have given their signature under other
-circumstances, but they now refused it for very wise reasons. ‘Caroli,’
-they said, ‘by compelling us to sign, wishes to throw suspicion on our
-faith. We do not consider it fitting to show him so much deference.
-Moreover, we will not, by our example, promote the introduction into
-the Church of a _tyranny_ which would brand every man as a heretic who
-will not express himself in terms dictated by another.’[520] Herein
-Calvin gave proof at the same time of a magnanimity and a fidelity
-which do him honor. Every Church, in his opinion, ought to confess its
-doctrine, but he would rather that the confession should be the product
-of the life and the faith of those who make it; and not a mere return
-to ten or twelve centuries back, in order to seek the truth in the
-antiquated phrases of another age. He professed with all his heart the
-doctrine enunciated in the early creeds, the Nicene and the so-called
-Athanasian, which set forth, perhaps with superfluity of words, but
-nevertheless with much force, a faith which is dear to Christian men.
-But he felt that these writings were wanting in evangelical simplicity.
-The phrases ‘God of God, Light of Light’ (Θεὸς ἐκ Θεοῦ, Φῶς ἐκ Φωτὸς),
-used in the Nicene creed, appeared to him less apostolic than Oriental
-in their character. It shocked him that the _Quicunque_, better known
-under the name of the Athanasian creed, just at the time when it is
-going to make subtle distinctions, such as the faith of a simple
-Christian man cannot comprehend, should begin by asserting--‘Whosoever
-will be saved, before all things it is necessary that he hold the
-Catholic faith (that of the creed). Which faith, except every one do
-keep whole and undefiled, without doubt he shall perish everlastingly.’
-Caroli’s ignorance as to this profession of faith was so great that
-he believed it was drawn up at Nicæa in A.D. 325, and by
-Athanasius. This was startling to Calvin. The creed appears, in
-fact, to have been formed gradually in the African church, some of
-its formulæ being met with towards the close of the seventh century;
-but it did not exist as a whole until the age of Charlemagne, nearly
-five centuries after the council of Nicæa. That was an age in which,
-if the doctrine of the divine nature was truly stated, the doctrines
-of justification by grace and of the new birth by the Spirit were
-obscured. Semi-Pelagianism was more and more invading the Church;
-literary and scientific culture, decried by the monks as belonging to
-paganism, was becoming rare; the state, not content with deciding on
-the exterior relations of the Church, published edicts on the articles
-of faith or of doctrine; miracles were alleged to be wrought by relics;
-the bishops of Rome assumed the title of universal bishop, a title
-branded by Gregory the Great as antichristian; the controversy about
-images was especially agitating men’s minds; both the Church and the
-state were in the utmost confusion; the bishops took up arms against
-the lords; the clergy, both regular and secular, were without culture
-and without discipline; and, in one word, Christianity had lost the
-life which was peculiarly its own. It was, doubtless, the existence
-of this melancholy condition of society at the period in which the
-_Quicunque_ was formed that induced Calvin to make reservations, and to
-declare that it was to the belief in one only God that he made oath,
-and not to the belief of Athanasius, whose creed no genuine Church
-would have accepted.[521]
-
-[Sidenote: SYNOD OF BERNE.]
-
-The synod, having heard both parties and maturely considered the
-matter, acknowledged the confession of the Genevese ministers to
-be good and orthodox; and they condemned Caroli, and declared him
-henceforth unworthy to fulfil the functions of the ministry. ‘We
-have, by our refutation,’ said Calvin, ‘exhausted all that bag of
-Caroli’s;[522] with regard to ourselves there now remains not the
-slightest suspicion.’ Caroli appealed from the sentence of the synod
-to the lords of Berne. Who was right? Who was wrong? Calvin or
-Caroli? Judgments have differed on the point. Some have said, ‘The
-denunciation by Caroli was not altogether unfounded; it is no wonder
-that he declared himself dissatisfied and maintained his charge.’
-Others have added that Calvin fell on his adversary with a violence
-which made the assembly tremble, and which afforded the first instance
-of that fearful anger with which so often afterwards he struck down
-those who were against him.[523] This is not our opinion. As to his
-expressions, Calvin’s defence is not so terrible, so passionate, if we
-call to mind the sort of man with whom he had to deal; and as for the
-hardest words of the reformer, they are, as we have seen, two which he
-adopted from the Saviour himself. As to the substance of the defence,
-he would not bring forward, as Roman Catholics do, human authorities;
-he preferred to hold fast to the Word of God. That is his chief glory,
-and therein does he show himself a genuine reformer, as Luther did. His
-adversary was an immoral character, and the Reformation would make no
-covenant with immorality. Who would blame him for that? Calvin could
-not consent that a dissolute man, whose hand was stained with the
-blood of the saints, should pass for an Athanasius, one of the noblest
-of the ancient doctors of the Church. He was, above all, profoundly
-afflicted by the thought that the blow struck by that man was shaking
-the foundations of the spiritual building which was being erected to
-the glory of God.
-
-These debates made a great noise in other lands. All kinds of rumors
-were current at a distance, and evil reports were circulated about the
-Genevese reformers. People were asking one another what this contest
-between Caroli and Calvin was about, and they waited impatiently for
-the issue of it. French vivacity had been offensive to some theologians
-of German Switzerland. Megander himself complained to Bullinger of the
-annoyance which those turbulent Frenchmen had caused him.[524] People,
-however, were as easily agitated in German Switzerland, and even in
-the land of Luther. Some Catholics began to attach importance to these
-struggles, and to take advantage of them. Letters were exchanged on
-the subject. Bucer and Capito wrote from Strasburg, the former to
-Melanchthon, the latter to Farel; and Myconius wrote from Basel to
-the assembly itself. This must needs invest with more solemnity the
-judgment on the appeal which was about to be heard at Berne.
-
-‘On May 24, Guillaume Farel requested of the council of Geneva to send
-to that city Master Cauvin (Calvin) for any battle (_journée_) there
-was to be, to take part in the disputation. Upon which it was resolved
-that he should go.’[525] Berne had shown a certain favor towards
-Caroli. It might therefore be feared that the judgment pronounced at
-Lausanne would not be confirmed. We cannot tell what the sentence would
-have been if it had been pronounced by the state authorities. But the
-council, finding that it was a question of doctrine, had convoked at
-Berne the synod of the Bernese Church for the end of May. The debate
-was opened in the presence of the great council, which doubtless took
-part so far in the cause. The would-be Athanasius supported his charge
-with confidence and a haughty spirit, assuming to play in the sixteenth
-century the part which the great bishop of Alexandria had played in the
-fourth. Calvin completely justified both himself and his colleagues.
-Consequently the reformer was once more entirely acquitted, and
-declared free not only from all fault but also from all suspicion. As
-for Caroli, he was pronounced a slanderer, and as such condemned.
-
-[Sidenote: CONDEMNATION OF CAROLI.]
-
-When that was over, the lords of Berne inquired of Calvin, Farel, and
-Viret whether Caroli was, so far as they knew, guilty in any respect,
-either in his private life or especially in his ministry. As soon as
-he heard these words, the doctor of the Sorbonne, seeing that his own
-turn was come, was terror-struck, and vehemently opposed the inquiry.
-‘Those whom I have just accused of great crimes,’ said he, ‘cannot be
-allowed to bring formal charges against me.’ ‘You have indeed accused
-them,’ replied the Bernese, ‘and without being able to substantiate
-your charges. Why then should they not be allowed to accuse you?’ And
-the doctors were enjoined to communicate anything they knew with regard
-to him. Thereupon this man, who had no heart, no moral sentiment,
-was disconcerted; and as he dreaded above all the revelations of his
-adversaries, he fancied that the best way to avert them was to accuse
-himself. He began therefore to confess the faults with which he knew
-that Farel and his friends were well acquainted--the debaucheries to
-which he had addicted himself in France, the meanness with which he had
-dissembled his sentiments in matters of religion, and the cruel perfidy
-which had prompted him to deliver to death two young Christians whose
-way of thinking he himself approved. It was a strange sight! Here was a
-singular penitent, without repentance and without scruple, assuming a
-contrite air and confessing his faults solely because he hoped in that
-way to secure exemption from punishment. ‘A devil’s penitent!’ said
-Tertullian in such cases.
-
-Farel had let him speak; nevertheless he did not think that he was
-thereby discharged from the injunction which had been given him. He
-was acquainted with certain traits of Caroli’s life which might give
-the lords of Berne the intelligence of which they were in need. He
-narrated the shameful licentiousness of the man, who had lived at Paris
-with women of the vilest reputation, and had actually been accused of
-keeping five or six at a time. He showed how two young men, carried
-away by their zeal against images, had taken it into their heads to
-hang some of them; and how that same Caroli, who at that time professed
-that the worship of images diverts men from the knowledge of the true
-God, had caused these youths to be kept in the prison into which they
-had been cast until two judges arrived, who had them delivered over to
-the executioners. Viret related the discussion which he had held with
-Caroli on the subject of prayers for the dead; and, at the request of
-the Bernese, reported various details of his conduct, among others his
-drunkenness, which had more than once exposed him to the derision of
-the public.
-
-[Sidenote: BERNE PROMOTES THE REFORMATION.]
-
-In consequence of these debates, Caroli was deprived of his functions
-by the synod. The great council of Berne confirmed this sentence;
-pronounced Farel, Calvin, and Viret innocent of the charges brought
-against them; condemned Caroli to banishment as guilty of slander
-and other excesses; and remitted the cause to the consistory to be
-formally terminated. As the presumptuous doctor was unwilling to
-submit to that authority, the parties were summoned before the civil
-magistrates (_avoyers_) and the councils. Calvin, Farel, and Viret
-accordingly presented themselves, June 6, but Caroli did not appear.
-An usher, sent by the lords of Berne to seek him, brought word that he
-had disappeared.[526] He had in fact fled early in the morning, and had
-taken the road to Soleure. From that place he withdrew into France, to
-the cardinal of Tournon, the great enemy of the Reformation. The latter
-obtained absolution for Caroli from the pope. The wretched man had
-hoped that, by returning into the Roman Church, he should get a good
-benefice; but he found that he was held in equal contempt by Catholics
-and Protestants. To close the affair, it was agreed to approve the
-terms Trinity, substance, and persons (Calvin himself had made use of
-them); but at the same time that if any pious man declined to employ
-them, ‘he should not be cast out of the Church, nor should be looked on
-as one who thought wrongly as to the faith.’[527]
-
-This episode in Calvin’s life shows us not only his firm attachment
-to the truth, which everyone acknowledges, but likewise a spirit of
-freedom which is ordinarily denied to him. It is clear that with
-him the Word of God stood before all, and that the faith, the life,
-and essence of Christianity had more value in his eyes than mere
-traditional terms, which are not to be found in the Scriptures.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
- CALVIN AT THE SYNOD OF BERNE.
-
- (SEPTEMBER, 1537.)
-
-
-This was not the only triumph which Calvin achieved, nor the only synod
-of Berne in which he took part. Keen debates were at that time going
-on in the evangelical Churches of Switzerland. They had gradually
-arisen after the disaster of Cappel in 1531. In the canton of Soleure
-the Reformation had indeed been crushed by the intervention of the
-Catholics, although the majority in the country and a minority in
-the town were Protestants. But other cantons had remained faithful
-to the Reform. In Bullinger, Zurich had found a worthy successor to
-Zwingli; and Oswald Myconius happily filled the place of the amiable
-Œcolampadius at Basel. Berne, not satisfied with having adopted the
-Reformation herself, eagerly promoted its establishment everywhere.
-The great question which was then under discussion was this--Should
-the Swiss Churches unite themselves with the Lutheran Churches or not?
-Bucer, at Strasburg, warmly advocated the union; and the magistrates,
-above all those of Berne, were not at all opposed to it. They had
-political skill enough to perceive that the Church of the Reformation,
-then so formidably threatened, had need to combine its whole forces.
-The pastors of Berne, Haller, Megander, and Kolb, were desirous of
-extending a friendly hand to Luther; but those free Swiss, disciples
-and friends of Zwingli, disliked the equivocal formulæ of Bucer. The
-Zuricher Megander, in particular, a learned professor and an eloquent
-preacher, but of rash character, violent and somewhat domineering,
-designated by his opponents the _ape of Zwingli_,[528] had set himself
-the task of maintaining at Berne the theology of the Zurich reformer.
-As Haller and Kolb were then enfeebled by age and ill-health, Megander
-exercised a powerful influence over the country pastors; and the
-magistrates themselves, aware of his abilities, committed to his hands
-the most important affairs. The Zurichers had drawn up a confession on
-the Lord’s supper in conformity with Bucer’s wishes. Basel, St. Gall,
-and Schaffhausen had approved it; but Megander induced his colleagues
-to reject it. The French diplomatists also, who were anxious to obtain
-the assistance of the Swiss and German Protestants against Charles
-V., said--‘All the Swiss towns agree with Luther except these Bernese
-blockheads, who walk backwards like crabs, and stick obstinately to an
-opinion which they cannot possibly defend.’[529]
-
-[Sidenote: THE ZWINGLIANS AT BERNE.]
-
-The Bernese magistrates, however, were not willing to break with their
-allies. The war against Savoy, which they had undertaken in 1536,
-for the defence of Geneva and the occupation of the Pays de Vaud,
-had convinced them of the need of their support. Consequently, they
-sent delegates to the four colloquies which were held that same year
-at Basel, to take into consideration the agreement with the doctors
-of Wittenberg. But the council, so far from breaking with Megander,
-put him at the head of these theologians. So the confession which was
-prepared at the first of these colloquies, in January 1536 (the second
-conference of Basel and the first of Switzerland,) when speaking of
-eating the body and drinking the blood of Christ, added that this
-took place only in a spiritual sense. This displeased Bucer. The
-Zwinglians, in turn, called him ‘a doubled-faced man,’ and said that
-this pretended peacemaker brought division into the Helvetic Churches.
-It was to no purpose that his defence was undertaken by Myconius, who,
-since 1532, had presided as overseer of the Church at Basel, and the
-learned professor Grynæus. The Zwinglian party would not hear a word
-about an agreement with the _Strasburg trimmer_. Various circumstances
-occurred to bring about a change in this state of things. The Swiss
-and the Bernese themselves were touched by the beautiful letter which
-Luther had written to the burgomaster of Basel, in which he spoke
-approvingly of the confession drawn up in that city. The aged Kolb,
-pastor of Berne, had died at the end of 1535; and on February 25,
-1536, Haller also had passed into the unseen world. A great change
-then took place in Berne. Kunz, a man of a very different spirit from
-Zwingli and Haller, became pastor in the place of Kolb. Having studied
-at Wittenberg, he was a passionate admirer of Luther and of his
-doctrine. Of ardent temperament, Kunz longed to promote the triumph of
-his master’s doctrine, and so much the more as he was his inferior in
-respect to the living faith of the Gospel. Sebastian Meyer, a former
-Franciscan, who from the beginning of his ministry had been remarkable
-for the violence of his discourses, and who was a friend of Bucer, had
-taken the place of Haller. The council had probably been influenced in
-the election of these men by the Strasburg doctors, with whose projects
-the members were more and more pleased. Thus it seemed likely that in
-Berne the Lutheran party would succeed the Zwinglian. The new pastors,
-however, did not immediately set up their claim; they rather applied
-themselves to the preparation of men’s minds, and their conquests
-were very numerous, especially among politicians. But Megander, the
-inflexible Zwinglian, still kept the upper hand; and it was he who
-spoke in the name of Berne in the Swiss assemblies. Bucer, doubtless,
-had him in mind when he complained to Luther ‘of those untractable
-heads which are found in Switzerland, which for every trifle make so
-much ado.’[530]
-
-[Sidenote: A PATCHED-UP PEACE.]
-
-The new pastors of Berne, encouraged by their friends abroad, threw
-off the restraint which they had at first imposed on their speech.
-Sebastian Meyer, in particular, giving way to his natural disposition,
-thoroughly headlong and incautious, taught publicly that in the supper
-the body of Christ is truly eaten and his blood truly drunk, but took
-care to add, _by faith_. Kunz supported him. The conflict thus began.
-Megander and Erasmus Ritter started up to oppose this doctrine; and
-Meyer did not hesitate to say in the colloquies that the doctrine of
-the supper had never been rightly taught in the canton of Berne. The
-Bernese council convoked a synod, at which three hundred ministers
-of the German and French cantons of Switzerland were present. Meyer,
-together with Kunz, vividly depicted the evils which would be involved
-in a rejection of the agreement. Erasmus Ritter, with Megander, replied
-that an agreement was certainly very much to be desired, but that the
-truth must not be sacrificed to it. The Zwinglian party had the best
-of it. They agreed to stand by the second confession of Basel, and to
-avoid the use of terms which gave origin to the disputes; such as,
-_corporal_, _real_, _natural_, _supernatural_, _invisible_, _carnal_,
-_miraculous_, _inexpressible presence_. But this patched-up peace was
-of short duration. The secret correspondence between Bucer and Luther
-having been published, the Zwinglians were scandalized, people’s minds
-were thrown into agitation, and the edifice of concord, which they had
-toiled to rear, threatened to crumble away. Bucer then applied to the
-council of Berne, and requested it to convoke a synod at which he might
-be allowed to vindicate himself. ‘This whole business of the supper,’
-said he, ‘is a mere dispute about words, but it is of the utmost
-importance to put an end to it; and I appeal to the justice of the
-Bernese magistrates, who cannot allow a man, whoever he may be, to be
-condemned before he is heard.’ Another synod was consequently convoked
-at Berne, for the month of September.[531]
-
-Everybody was aware of the importance of this assembly. Bucer and
-Capito arrived in the city, provided with a letter of introduction
-from the magistrates of Strasburg, and accompanied by two theologians
-from Basel, Myconius and Grynæus, who though sincerely adhering to
-the reformed party, earnestly desired the union. Almost at the same
-time, three ministers from the French cantons, who had been specially
-invited, entered Berne; they were Calvin, Farel, and Viret. Those who
-knew that at Geneva they allowed neither unleavened bread nor baptismal
-fonts, nor the feasts and rites to which the Lutherans were strongly
-attached, could entertain no doubt that these bold champions would
-take the side of the Zwinglians. The pastors of the canton of Berne
-were represented only by delegates of classes. The government, fearing
-lest the spirit of discord should mar the meeting, requested Bucer
-and Capito to confine themselves to their own justification, and not
-to meddle with other matters. They were not even permitted to preach,
-except on condition that they did not introduce disputed topics in
-the pulpit. The assembly met at the Town Hall, in the presence of the
-two councils of the republic, and under the presidency of the mayor
-(_Schultheiss_) de Watteville. After the customary formalities, this
-magistrate invited the Strasburgers to begin. ‘Union in matters which
-concern the glory of God and the benefit of the Church,’ said Bucer,
-‘is already established in a great number of kingdoms, duchies, and
-principalities; and the churches of the Swiss confederation form almost
-the only exception, it is thus that Satan opposes the kingdom of God.
-Yes, it is to Satan that are owing those suspicions which are prevalent
-respecting the agreement which we are striving to bring about. We
-demand that passion should be silenced, and that God should be regarded
-rather than men. You have lent one ear to calumny, lend the other now
-to the voice of truth. If you condemn us, you will condemn many other
-Churches, and particularly that Church whose representatives met at
-Smalcalde, and which includes within its pale many learned and pious
-men.’ Bucer next, desirous of clearing himself from the reproaches
-which had been addressed to him, pointed out that Zwingli and Luther
-had set out from two different points of view; Zwingli striving to keep
-as far away as possible from the Roman dogma of transubstantiation,
-and Luther endeavoring to maintain that there is nevertheless some kind
-of real presence in the bread. In making afterwards his own confession
-of faith, he said, ‘No, the bread and the wine are not mere signs;
-the presence of Christ by faith is not a mere logical presence, not
-imaginary, such as that which I have when I say, for instance, that I
-now see my wife at Strasburg.[532] Faith requires something higher than
-that. When I say with you, Christ is present in a celestial manner,
-and with Luther, Christ is present in an essential manner, I express
-fundamentally one and the same faith.’ On the following day, Capito
-coming to the support of his colleague, preached a sermon in which he
-endeavored to show that Zwingli and Œcolampadius were in agreement with
-Luther. They were so on the essential point of seeking and finding in
-the supper a true communion with the Saviour.
-
-[Sidenote: BUCER’S VIEWS.]
-
-Megander had been charged with the duty of speaking on behalf of the
-synod. Brevity and moderation had been recommended, lest any imprudent
-word should give rise to a dispute. For him this task was not an easy
-one. In fact, the next day he attacked Bucer and Capito with some
-vehemence, upbraiding them for being with Luther rather than with the
-Swiss, and with having, in other places, signed _certain acts_ which
-the Swiss could not sign. ‘I have,’ said he, in drawing to a close,
-‘some letters in which Bucer is spoken of. However, I think better
-of him than those letters, and I should be pleased if we could agree
-with him.’ Unhappily, they were far enough from such agreement. The
-discussion grew warm. ‘You teach children in your catechism,’ said
-Bucer, ‘to receive a sign in the supper, without reminding them of the
-thing signified.’ ‘How then,’ exclaimed some of the Bernese ministers,
-‘can you pretend that we hold the same faith?’ ‘Let Bucer speak,’
-said Megander; ‘we will reply to him in the afternoon.’ But, in that
-afternoon sitting, Bucer began anew to discourse to the Swiss about the
-sacrament. ‘Enough of these homilies,’ said Megander, impatiently. ‘You
-shut our mouths,’ said Bucer. ‘Let all those,’ said Megander, ‘who have
-anything to say speak freely.’ But not one of the Bernese pastors rose.
-
-A good understanding seemed impossible. The leaders on both sides
-were angry and provoked each other. The vessel of concord, built by
-the careful toil of the pastors of Strasburg, was violently tossed
-and was going to founder in the Helvetic waters. Disagreeing in
-doctrine, said one of those who were present on this occasion, there
-was nothing between them but debate, a deadly plague in a Church. Where
-were they to find the last plank, the desperate resource for escape
-from shipwreck? They must founder, or be saved as if by miracle. A
-young man, of only eight-and-twenty, but known for his love of the
-Holy Scriptures and his slight respect for tradition, was sorrowfully
-contemplating these discussions. It was John Calvin, he who called the
-discussions ‘a deadly plague’ for the Church. His convictions were free
-and spontaneous. They did not proceed, as with others, from a desire
-for compromise, but from a perception of what is the essence of the
-faith. He would not at any price have sought some expedient for the
-union of minds by a sacrifice of truth. But he knew by experience the
-power of the Holy Spirit; and he was the man called to stand between
-the two armies, to get the sword returned to its sheath, and to found
-unity and peace.
-
-[Sidenote: INTERVENTION OF CALVIN.]
-
-We almost hesitate to report his words, because they will be difficult
-to comprehend. He spoke, for the faithful, of a complete union with
-Christ, even with his flesh and his blood, and nevertheless of a
-union which is effected only by the Spirit. Calvin’s speech was of
-so much importance that we cannot think of suppressing it. Vulgar
-minds insist on comprehending everything as they do the working of a
-steam-engine; but the greatest minds have acknowledged the reality
-of the incomprehensible. Descartes said that ‘in order to attain a
-true idea of the infinite, it is not in any sense to be comprehended,
-inasmuch as incomprehensibility itself is contained in the formal
-definition of the infinite.’ ‘Infinity is everywhere, and consequently
-incomprehensibility likewise,’ said Nicole.[533] The Christian
-however comprehends to a certain extent the mystery which we are now
-considering, and above all he experiences its reality. ‘If, as the
-Scriptures clearly testify,’ said Calvin at the synod of Berne (1537),
-‘the flesh of Christ is meat indeed, and his blood is drink indeed, it
-follows that if we seek life in Christ, we must be thereby veritably
-fed. The spiritual life which Christ gives us consists not only in his
-making us alive by his Spirit, but in his rendering us, by the power of
-his Spirit, partakers of his life-giving flesh, and by means of this
-participation, nourishing us for eternal life.[534] Therefore, when we
-speak of the communion which the faithful have with Christ, we teach
-that they receive the communication of his body and his blood, no less
-than that of his Spirit, so that they possess Christ wholly.
-
-‘It is true that our Lord has gone up on high, and that his local
-presence has thus been withdrawn from us. But this fact does not
-invalidate our assertion, and that local presence is by no means
-necessary here. So long as we are pilgrims on the earth, we are not
-contained in the same place with him. But there is no obstacle to the
-efficacy of the Spirit; he can collect and unite elements existing
-in far separated places. The Spirit is the means by which we are
-partakers of Christ. That Spirit nourishes us with the flesh and the
-blood of the Lord, and thus quickens us for immortality. Christ offers
-this communion under the symbols of bread and wine to all those who
-celebrate the supper aright and in accordance with his institution.’
-
-Such was Calvin’s speech. ‘I embrace as orthodox,’ said Bucer, ‘this
-view of our excellent brothers Calvin, Farel, and Viret. I never held
-that Christ was locally present in the holy supper.[535] He has a real
-finite body, and that body remains in the celestial glory. But in
-raising us by faith to heaven, the bread which we eat and the cup which
-we drink are for us the communication of his body and his blood.’
-
-Calvin wrote down his view. Bucer appended to it the words last
-reported. Capito signed them. Bucer even succeeded, by dint of
-moderation and kindliness, in _taming_ Kunz; and the latter showed
-in this instance some goodwill. ‘But,’ said Calvin at a later time,
-‘that single moment was soon past, and he became worse than himself.’
-The synod acknowledged the Strasburgers as justified, as faithful,
-as Christians, and their confession of faith as not in any respect
-contrary to the Helvetic confessions. Megander was invited to modify
-his catechism to a small extent so far as it treated of the doctrine
-of the supper, and this he agreed to do. The deputies of the pastors
-of the canton went to the hostelry where Bucer and Capito lodged, and
-requested their co-operation in putting an end to the difficulties
-which existed between the ministers of the city. The council itself
-exhorted these pastors to concord and peace. Such was the force of
-the speech of a single man, that at the moment when the waves were in
-stormiest agitation, there was suddenly a great calm.
-
-God was in the midst of us, said one of the attendants. The divine
-power had employed the speech of the reformer to appease the tumult and
-establish agreement and unity.[536]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
- GENEVA.--THE CONFESSION OF FAITH SWORN AT ST. PETER’S.
-
- (END OF 1537.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: GENEVA.]
-
-It was not only in his relations with those Christian men, Megander and
-Bucer, or with the wretched Caroli, that Calvin’s efforts were crowned
-with success. Happy presages seemed to announce to him a blessed and
-powerful ministry at Geneva. His reformation, as we have seen, was
-not only doctrinal but moral, a fact of the highest importance for
-the Church and for the people. But, as happens in all human affairs,
-a few spots sullied this beautiful aspect of his work. Rules were
-introduced which were too circumstantial, and a mode of repression
-which was too legal. Calvin found at the time a sympathy on the part of
-the magistrates which was pleasant to him, but which at the same time
-intruded the civil power into matters for which the moral influence of
-the Church ought to have sufficed. All his requests were complied with.
-He asked, together with Farel, for four preachers and two deacons, and
-they were granted. He represented that there was a preacher, a good
-man from Provence, who would fain retire to Geneva; and they gave him
-a place.[537] One of the most violent politicians, Janin, surnamed
-Colony, a great lover of novelties, after ardently embracing the
-Reformation, had thrown himself with his natural impetuosity into the
-notions of the _Spirituals_ or Anabaptists, and was uttering everywhere
-audacious speeches on matters of faith. The council requested him
-‘not to grieve the preachers,’ and added grave menaces in case he
-should refuse to be corrected.[538] Another citizen, a hosier, who
-was suspected of holding the same views, having been exhorted by the
-pastors and the magistrates, declared that his doubts about baptism had
-vanished, and took an oath, says the Register, ‘to live as we do.’[539]
-On October 5, Farel and Calvin announced that they would administer the
-supper, but ‘that there were some who kept aloof, holding the opinions
-of Benoît and Herman; and others who still kept their beads, which are
-implements of idolatry.’ Thereupon the council determined ‘to take away
-all the beads.’ That was far easier than to take away the faith of
-which the beads were a sign.
-
-[Sidenote: PARTIES AT GENEVA.]
-
-Nothing could check the zeal of Calvin. On October 30 he presented
-himself to the council, and set forth various grievances. ‘The
-hospital,’ he said, ‘is very poorly furnished, and the sick are
-suffering in consequence. Geneva has a Christian school, and
-nevertheless some children go to the school of the papacy. Lastly it
-is to be feared that dissensions will arise between the citizens, for
-while some have taken the oath as to the manner of living, others have
-not done so.’ The sick, the young, and peace among the citizens, these
-were the matters which occupied the mind of the reformer, subjects well
-worthy of his attention. The council decreed--‘The hospital shall be
-supplied; all children shall be bound to go to the Christian school,
-and not to the papistical; and the confession shall be required of all
-who have not yet made it.’ This last point must inevitably be the most
-difficult. A conflict was about to begin, and what would be its result?
-We have just seen that there were in Geneva two parties, more or less
-considerable, who set themselves in opposition to the evangelical
-Reformation--the Roman Catholics and the Spirituals or Anabaptists.
-But there was yet a third party, more respectable and therefore more
-formidable. The Genevese people were naturally restless, and delighted
-in freedom and in pleasure. At first they had warmly embraced the
-Reformation, merely thinking that they should thereby be delivered from
-their bishop and from the practices which they disliked. But as soon as
-the Reformation demanded a Christian faith and life, the ardor of the
-Genevese rapidly diminished. The severity of Calvin and his colleagues
-chilled the violent ebullition of their zeal. They felt the ordinances
-imposed on them to be troublesome and exorbitant. Moreover, it was not
-only the jolly fellows, the lovers of pleasure and the libertines as
-they are called, who were refractory. It would be a great mistake not
-to acknowledge that in the ranks of the opposition there were other
-motives and other men.
-
-We have already related the heroic struggles which had restored to
-Geneva her freedom and her independence.[540] We did so, less on
-account of their intrinsic interest than because they exercised a
-powerful influence, whether for good or for evil, on the Reformation.
-We have seen how political emancipation permitted and was favorable to
-religious emancipation. We have now to observe the obstacles raised
-up by those who, while they rejected popery, did not embrace the
-Gospel. The Huguenots (that is, as our readers will recollect, the
-name which was given to the partisans of the alliance with the Swiss
-Confederation) were divided after Calvin’s arrival. Some of them were
-friendly to and supported the Reformation; others pronounced themselves
-against him, and opposed his work. The opposition did not consist
-merely of men of the lowest rank, vulgar and dissolute. There were on
-both sides, in the great national party, some generous characters,
-some honorable citizens. Unfortunately, as the State and the Church
-were at that time not only united but blended with each other, these
-two parties were at the same time both right and wrong. The political
-Huguenots were right with respect to the State, and in error respecting
-the Church; and the evangelical Christians were right with respect
-to the Church, and in error with respect to the State. To make the
-confusion greater still, the true principles of Church and State were
-at that period very little understood. Many of the eminent citizens
-who had exposed themselves to famine, pillage, and death for the sake
-of being free, who had resolved not to have for their master either
-their bishop, or the Duke of Savoy, or the King of France, or even
-Berne; who had marched in the van for the political emancipation of
-Geneva; now asserted their right to enjoy in peace the liberty for
-which they had so long fought. We have admired them in their heroical
-struggles. We will not brand them in this new opposition. Politically
-they were right. In a certain sense they were also right religiously.
-The religion of Jesus Christ will not be imposed by force, and it
-rejects all compulsion. In the attempt to establish itself in any town,
-it refuses alike the intervention of the martyr-fires of the Holy
-Office and the decrees of a council of state. Jesus Christ said, _Wilt
-thou be made whole?_ This is not the place for an inquiry into the
-aids which this will of man receives from on high: we hold simply to
-the declarations of the Saviour, and we say that man ought to feel the
-want of the Gospel, and if he does not want it, no one has any right
-to impose it on him. To act as the syndics then did was to ignore the
-divine spirituality of the kingdom of God, and to make of it a human
-institution. Another motive may possibly have contributed to arouse
-opposition. Farel, Calvin, Courault, Saunier, Froment, and Mathurin
-Cordier were foreigners, Frenchmen. They had drawn around them their
-brothers, their cousins, and some of their friends. These foreigners
-appeared to be taking the upper hand in Geneva, and this hurt the
-feelings of the old citizens. They wished that Geneva should belong to
-the Genevese, as France did to the French and Germany to the Germans.
-
-[Sidenote: FAITH BY COMPULSION.]
-
-Calvin having pointed out to the council, October 30, the danger to
-which the republic was exposed by the existence within it of two
-opposing parties, it was decreed that those citizens who had abstained,
-on July 29, from swearing to the evangelical confession, should be
-called upon to do so without delay; and November 12 was appointed for
-that purpose. Calvin, Farel, and their friends, who assuredly knew the
-worth of a voluntary adhesion, did what they could to induce opponents
-to receive the Gospel with all their heart, and not to separate
-themselves from their fellow-citizens in a matter of such moment. They
-urged them with kindness to listen to the good tidings of salvation,
-and affectionately exhorted them to peace and union.[541] There were
-indeed some vexatious proceedings. A tithing man (_dizenier_) having
-in his district two young lads who refused obstinately to answer to
-the summons, gave them legal notice of the order of the council, and
-cited them to obey it. Thereupon these two opponents flew into a rage
-and assaulted him, and for this they were imprisoned. But this was the
-only case of the kind. Kindliness, however, had little more effect than
-violence. In vain mild persuasion flowed from the lips of the ministers
-and their friends; it repelled instead of attracting.
-
-At length November 12 arrived. Each tithing man having called together
-those of his quarter who had not yet taken the oath, they were
-conducted to St. Peter’s in groups, tithing by tithing. The looks of
-the people were fixed on these late comers. They were counted, but the
-whole number was not large. Many did not come at all; ‘and likewise,
-of those who lived in the Rue des Allemands, not one came.’[542] This
-was a blow for the friends of the Reformation. The Rue des Allemands
-(of the German Swiss) was chiefly inhabited by those who had early
-declared themselves for liberty, and afterwards for the Reformation,
-and who had adhered to the Helvetic confessions. When the Genevese
-Catholics, March 28, 1533, had attacked this party by force of arms, it
-was in the Rue des Allemands that the reformed were drawn up in order
-of battle, five in a row. It was there that the most pious had said,
-‘There is not one single drop of comfort assured to us except in God
-alone.’ It was there that all had exclaimed, ‘Rather die than give way
-a single step.’[543] And now, of all those who inhabited that street,
-not a single man came! Doubtless some of them had already sworn to
-the confession. But there were probably some also who objected to the
-doctrine, and others who, like Desclefs, felt the divine commandments
-too hard for them to pledge themselves to keep them. But what chiefly
-repelled these Huguenots was the fact that an act was commanded which
-they knew they were free to do or not to do. They were determined not
-to bend under that yoke. After having dared all kinds of hardship for
-the sake of winning their freedom, they did not intend that, when they
-had gained it in the state, it should be snatched away from them in the
-Church. They were more in the right perhaps than they imagined; for it
-is hardly likely that they fully understood this great principle, ‘The
-power of the magistrate ends at the point at which that of conscience
-begins.’ The difficulty was still more increased by the circumstance
-that ‘those who had refused to swear to the confession, whether
-Catholics or Huguenots, were among the most influential persons in the
-city.’ Such is the testimony of Rozet, the secretary of state, who is
-assuredly a witness above suspicion. But the syndics and their council
-were no more disposed to give way than their adversaries. They thought
-that they had as much right to impose that act as to order a military
-review. On the same day the council decreed ‘that those who will not
-take the oath to the Reformation must go and dwell in some other place,
-where they may live according to their fancy.’ Two days later the Two
-Hundred confirmed the decree, expressing themselves somewhat bluntly,
-‘that they must quit the city, since they will not obey.’[544] The
-bow was tightly bent, and no one was willing to unbend it. The crisis
-became more violent; a shock and a catastrophe were inevitable. The
-only question was, who would be the victims.
-
-[Sidenote: OPPONENTS OF COMPULSION.]
-
-The citizens thus lightly banished from their native land by the
-council could hardly believe their own ears. What! they had delivered
-Geneva, ‘and will Geneva drive them away?’ Is it resolved that they
-must forsake their homes, their families, their friends, to go and
-eat the bread of the stranger? They murmured aloud and stoutly stood
-out against this strange edict, confident in their strength and their
-number. ‘There was no obedience at all;’ no one thought of packing
-up. ‘The hostile band was of such a character that the lords dared
-not execute their own decree.’ Complaints and threats grew louder
-from day to day. The most influential men exclaimed--‘The present
-syndics were elected by means of underhand dealings and intrigues.
-They have violated our franchises and made an attack on our liberties.
-There are three or four among them who do just as they will with the
-ordinary council, and even with the great council. We must take the
-government of the republic out of the hands of these two councils, and
-henceforth everything must be managed by a general council. These
-gentlemen want to reign over us as princes; but it is the people, it
-is we ourselves, who are princes.’ These powerful malcontents, among
-whom De Chapeaurouge distinguished himself, sought even to gain over
-those of their friends who had already taken the oath, and addressed to
-them the most vehement reproaches. Many of the latter were shaken, and
-sought to excuse themselves. They laid the blame on the secretary of
-the town. They reprimanded him (_l’impropéraient_) and blamed him for
-getting them to swear without knowing what they were doing. Some even
-of those who had sworn ‘adhered to the rebels.’ All these malcontents
-excited one another more and more, and they thought of nothing but of
-securing for themselves at the next election the place of the syndics.
-The authoritative act of the council was to bring about the revolution.
-
-Ambassadors of Berne were at Geneva at the time on some question of
-jurisdiction, and the opposition party endeavored to gain them over
-to their cause. This was not difficult. Calvin and Farel had adhered
-to the confession of Basel, which was likewise received at Berne. Now
-adherence to another confession was in their eyes a violation of the
-first oath. One day, at an entertainment at which the Bernese deputies
-were present with the magistrates and the notabilities of Geneva, one
-of the ambassadors said with a loud voice that all those who had taken
-the oath to the confession of Calvin and Farel were perjured persons.
-One of the leaders of the opposition, Jean Lullin, who was there, was
-delighted to hear it and did not fail to publish the rash remark. It
-seemed to be a giving up of the cause to the opposition, which, proud
-of finding the Bernese on its side, believed its victory secured. The
-people began to be restless; and many, whom the council registers
-call _the mutineers_ cried out in the streets that ‘everything was to
-be settled in a general council.’ These signs of resistance greatly
-afflicted the reformers and, says a chronicler, ‘put Calvin about
-(_pourmenait_) in a strange way.’ Within the walls of Geneva the
-agitation increased. The day grew dark, and a storm appeared ready to
-burst forth.[545]
-
-[Sidenote: THE GENERAL COUNCIL.]
-
-The council was deeply moved. Its members were accused of having
-obtained their seats by illegal practices, and appeal was made to the
-people. It seemed indeed as if it would be needful for the general
-council to decide between them and their adversaries. The syndics
-therefore, on November 23, convoked the Two Hundred to deliberate on
-the matter. The latter showed themselves determined to support the
-government. The magistrates in office must not think of resigning,
-they said, nor attach so much importance to these clamors. ‘All this
-noise is made by certain people who have no mind to amend their
-ways and who want to take the place of the syndics.’ Nevertheless,
-everyone perceived that it was impossible to refuse the convocation
-of a general council. It was necessary, besides, to name a deputation
-to Berne to treat of important business. The day fixed was Sunday,
-November 25. It was agreed to prepare some fair ordinances to be read
-to the assembled people. The opposition were aiming at getting rid not
-only of the magistrates but of the reformers. What took place in the
-council is therefore of great importance. It was the beginning of the
-counter-reformation.
-
-On the day appointed, the Two Hundred, in order to impart more
-solemnity to their proceedings, assembled at the Town Hall and thence
-accompanied the syndics and the council to St. Peter’s church. These
-magistrates felt keenly the accusations which were spread abroad
-against them by the opposition; and having a good conscience they
-wished the people to decide between them and their calumniators.
-Consequently, when the assembly had been formed, the following
-_remonstrance_ was addressed to the people in the name of the syndics
-and the councils.
-
-‘Magnificent, discreet, most dear and honored lords,--
-
-‘The lords syndics whom you have elected according to your custom, as
-likewise their ordinary council, that of the Sixty and that of the Two
-Hundred, feel hurt by the talk of some private persons, who speak as if
-they had charge of the general council, alleging that the said councils
-were elected by intrigues and have violated the franchises; that it
-is they (the opponents) who are princes, and that they wish that for
-the future everything should be transacted in a general council. The
-syndics and councils desire to learn from you, gentlemen, before they
-proceed further in the investigation of the matter, whether you allow
-that. You know whether or not your magistrates were elected by the
-intrigues of three or four citizens, as they are alleged to have been.
-You know that the four syndics were chosen by you in general council;
-and while in time past the ordinary council was chosen by the four
-syndics, this election, since 1530, has been made by the Council of the
-Two Hundred.
-
-[Sidenote: PROCEEDINGS AT THE COUNCIL.]
-
-‘Elected thus, the councils ask you whether you will not acknowledge
-them as your magistrates, that they may continue to exercise the power
-which God has given them by your general election. They are prepared
-to submit to punishment with all legal rigor, if it be found that they
-are in fault; but if it be otherwise, they demand that those who defame
-them should suffer chastisement, so that God may not be angry with us,
-nor take away the spiritual lordship and liberty which he has given us
-by his Son Jesus Christ. Assuredly he has shown us more favor than he
-ever did to the children of Israel. But it might happen to us as it did
-to the Romans, who by civil discords of this sort lost little by little
-the empire which they had acquired over the world, and fell into the
-bondage in which they still remain.
-
-‘We ought to pray God to send us well-instructed and Godfearing men to
-administer justice. But if we will treat them with contempt, we shall
-by-and-by find no one to serve us. Well may the heart of a citizen ache
-when, after laying aside his private affairs to serve the community, he
-gets for his reward the censure of those who dread correction and will
-not obey the lawful authorities.
-
-‘Come then, gentlemen, one after the other, peaceably to give your
-opinion, _yes_ or _no_, in order that all things may be done well and
-orderly, to the glory of God and our own great benefit.’[546]
-
-One might have expected that, after this declaration, the leaders of
-the opposition, De Chapeaurouge and his adherents, would state in
-due form their alleged grievances. They remained silent. This was an
-acknowledgment that their accusation was unfounded. They would have
-found it difficult to assert that the election of the magistrates had
-been due to the intrigues of a few individuals, in the presence of the
-people who had themselves made that election freely and honorably.
-Moreover, ten weeks only had to elapse before the regular renewal of
-the council; and the opposition did not think that they ought to unmask
-their batteries so long beforehand. It would be better to employ the
-time in preparing the change which they wished to bring about. Thus,
-therefore, after the address of the syndics there was a long silence.
-After some time De Chapeaurouge rose; but instead of speaking as a
-tribune who seeks to draw the people after him, he made a remark on
-acoustics; ‘We cannot hear well,’ said he, ‘the place gives a dull
-sound.’ There are none so deaf as those who will not hear. In fact, the
-chief of the opposition pretended that the challenge and invitation
-of the council had not reached his ears, and that this excused his
-making a reply. ‘Is a second reading desired?’ said the first syndic;
-no one demanded it. As the leaders were silent, the youngest and most
-blustering of their followers began to speak. The opportunity was too
-tempting not to cry out, and instead of the great piece which was
-looked for, a little one was produced. Men destitute of culture and
-acquirements attacked the chief magistrates. One man, who had just
-come out of prison, flung in the face of the reformers the most absurd
-accusations. There was an ebullition in the assembly; a tempest in a
-teacup. The young people caused this first outbreak of excitement,
-which they show in their pursuit of pleasure and which they easily
-transfer to public affairs. Claude Sérais, a tailor, one of those
-who in February had played at _Picca-Porral_, came forward and laid
-a complaint against Ami Perrin, who enjoyed great respect. It was he
-who had accompanied Farel the first time that he preached (in 1534)
-in the convent of Rive. He had not heartily embraced the Reformation,
-but he was still associated with the reformers. ‘Perrin,’ said Sérais,
-‘said that there are traitors at Geneva, people who speak ill of the
-preachers. He said that Porral was a good man.’ As Porral was a great
-friend of the Reformation, he was at least as hateful to these people
-as Farel and Calvin. ‘I replied to him,’ said Sérais, ‘that if he were
-so, he had no occasion to bring Farel to the prison, to preach to
-us as if we were thieves who were to be prepared for death.’ ‘Yes,’
-cried one of those who had been in prison with Sérais, Jacques Pattu,
-‘yes, they brought Farel to prison and he told us that he would sooner
-drink a glass of blood than drink with us.’ Scarcely had he let fall
-these strange words, when Pierre Butini mounted on a bench and cried
-out, ‘The franchise has been taken from us by the Porrets (Porral’s
-friends), for we were seized, many good men, without informations and
-without plaintiffs.’--‘I complain,’ resumed Pattu, ‘that they gave me
-the halter without cause,’--‘I complain,’ said Sérais, further, ‘that
-Claude Bernard told me that I would not go to hear Farel preach.’--‘Let
-the others speak now!’ cried Baudichon de la Maisonneuve, annoyed at
-Sérais beginning over again. But the friends of Sérais cried, ‘And we,
-we will have Baudichon hold his tongue.’ Then Etienne Dadaz, resuming
-the series of grievances, said, ‘I complain that I have been sent to
-prison and accused of meaning to sell the town.’--‘Thou oughtest to be
-silent,’ said the syndic Goutaz, ‘for thou hast brought from France
-articles designed to make us subjects of the king.’ On which Dadaz
-replied, ‘It is not I who made them, it is M. de Langey who gave them
-me.’ This was certainly not justifying himself, for Langey was a
-minister to the king.[547]
-
-[Sidenote: CONFUSED COMPLAINTS.]
-
-The most reasonable of the leaders saw that they must put a stop to
-these turbulent complainings, which were ruining their interests. The
-former syndic, Jean Philippe, a friend of freedom and courageous, but
-also rash and leading a loose life, began to speak, and, addressing
-the secretary of the council, Rozet, accused him of having caused the
-confession to be sworn which he declared he had not sworn. This was not
-escaping from the question, but plunging into it. This was the master
-grievance of the opposition, and the matter to be investigated. ‘We
-did ill to swear it,’ said Jean Lullin. ‘The ambassadors of Berne have
-told us that we were perjured.’ De Chapeaurouge himself, who at first
-had kept silence, getting enraged with the secretary of the council,
-Rozet, who had caused the confession to be sworn, accused him of being
-‘a witness of Susanna’ (that is to say, a false witness). ‘Gentlemen,’
-said the respectable Rozet, with much feeling, ‘I have served you
-long, and I have neither done wickedly nor borne false witness; and
-here is De Chapeaurouge making me out to be a _witness of Susanna_!’
-Chapeaurouge replied, ‘You told me, before the syndic Curtet, that
-you had no conscience at all.’ Curtet answered, ‘I never heard that;’
-and everyone began to laugh. Jean Philippe, a clever man, then made a
-proposition which he thought likely to satisfy the opponents. He wished
-to place the syndics under guardianship. ‘Gentlemen,’ he said, ‘it
-would be a long task to listen in this place to all these plaintiffs
-and to provide for them. It seems to me better that we should
-choose, in general council, twenty-five men.’ These were twenty-five
-superintendents whom he wished to set over the syndics and the council,
-as representatives of the people. ‘That done,’ continued Philippe,
-‘these gentlemen will hold their Little and Great Councils, and the
-plaintiffs shall be heard before all.’ Naturally, Philippe wished
-these twenty-five to be of his party. The syndics understood and were
-indignant. ‘Do you mean, then,’ said they, ‘to have men set over us?’
-The crafty Philippe did not lose the thread. ‘Not _men_ over you,’ he
-said, ‘but the general council is over all.’ Then, like a very tribune,
-he turned boldly to the people. ‘Gentlemen,’ said he, ‘do you not
-intend that the general council should be supreme over all?’ Instantly
-the cry was heard from all sides, ‘Yes, yes!’ The opposition succeeding
-thus in getting the people on their side, the days of the party in
-power were numbered. The syndics hastened to cut short. ‘Now then,’
-said the syndic Curtet, let us talk of business.’[548]
-
-It then occurred to them that the general council had to appoint
-deputies to go to Berne. The three leaders of the opposition, Jean
-Philippe, Ami de Chapeaurouge and Jean Lullin, were proposed by the
-council itself, which would much rather see them at Berne, where
-they might support the cause of the republic, than at Geneva, where
-they were making war on the government. But the three opponents saw
-through the trick. ‘For my part,’ said Lullin, ‘I have an excuse
-which prevents my going.’ ‘I hold to what was decreed,’ said Philippe,
-‘that those who have begun the business should go thither to complete
-it.’--‘I say the same,’ added De Chapeaurouge. The three conspirators
-(if we may give them such a name) will therefore spend the winter at
-Geneva, and they will not be idle there.
-
-[Sidenote: VINDICATION OF THE REFORMERS.]
-
-The angry recriminations, the rash charges, and the turbulent movements
-of this council came to the ears of the reformers, and the report
-gave them much pain. The next day therefore, November 26, when the
-Council of the Two Hundred assembled, Farel and Calvin appeared before
-them. The former said, ‘Sérais accuses me of having said that rather
-than drink with him, I would drink a glass of _his_ blood. Now what
-really passed was this. One of them having said to me, You wish us
-no good, I answered, I wish you so much harm that I would willingly
-_shed my blood for you_.’ Then coming to the essential point; ‘I have
-heard,’ continued Farel, ‘that they call those _perjurers_ who have
-sworn the confession. If you examine carefully its contents, you will
-find that it is made in conformity with God’s Word, and is adapted to
-unite the people. You have not sworn to anything else than to hold
-fast faith in God, and to believe in his commandments.’ One of the
-members said, ‘It is not we, it is the deputies from Berne who spoke
-of perjury.’--‘We should very much like to know when they did so,’
-replied Farel, astonished. ‘They spoke of it at table, in the presence
-of people,’ said the syndics Curtet and Lullin. ‘We offer to maintain
-this confession at the cost of our lives,’ replied the reformers. The
-syndics, beginning to fear lest the murmurs of the people should be
-excited, entreated the preachers to be careful that this business might
-end well.
-
-The discovery that the lords of Berne blamed them in the affair of the
-confession was a very heavy blow to the reformers. If that powerful
-city should unite with the party of the opposition, the Reformation
-would be in great danger. They were not long in finding that their
-fears were not unfounded. The Bernese, who intended to act as if they
-had the superintendence of the Church of Geneva, wrote to Farel and
-Calvin--‘It has come to our knowledge that you, Calvin, have written to
-certain Frenchmen at Basel that your confession has been approved by
-our congregation, and that our preachers have ratified it, which will
-not be proven (_ne constera pas_). On the contrary, it is you and Farel
-who have been consenting parties to sign our confession made at Basel,
-and to hold to it. We are amazed that you should attempt to contravene
-it. We pray you to desist from the attempt, otherwise we shall be
-compelled to have resource to other remedies.’[549]
-
-It was supposed at Berne that the two confessions differed, while in
-fact they were fundamentally the same; and the lords of that city
-believed that if Geneva had a confession of her own, their ascendancy
-would be risked. That young Frenchman, who had arrived only the year
-before, had a soul, as they thought, too independent. He was ready to
-break the ties which bound Geneva to the Swiss Churches. Calvin saw how
-matters stood. He felt that it was necessary to enlighten the Bernese
-about the confession of Geneva, and therefore set out immediately with
-Farel for Berne. The two reformers represented to the council that the
-confession which they had prepared, so far from making them perjurers,
-confirmed the confession of Basel. At the same time they presented it
-to the Bernese senate. That body had it examined, and it was pronounced
-to be very good. ‘We are going to send ambassadors,’ said the Bernese
-lords, ‘and they will declare to your general council that the words
-spoken by our deputies were not uttered in our name.’ The satisfaction
-made was brilliant. The reformers had gained their cause.[550] They
-returned to Geneva without delay; and having been received, December
-10, in the ordinary council, they communicated to it the happy issue of
-their journey.[551] But there were at Berne certain persons who desired
-to see the Church of Geneva placed in subordination to that of Berne.
-The projected embassy might baffle their schemes, and they resolved to
-prevent it. For that purpose they did not shrink even from blackening
-the reformers. They asserted that the Genevese preachers had said in
-their sermons that _all the mischief_ came from Germany! (that is to
-say, from German Switzerland, from Berne). The Bernese changed their
-mind, and wrote to Geneva, ‘that they would not send ambassadors.’[552]
-
-[Sidenote: THEIR VINDICATION AT BERNE.]
-
-Calvin and Farel were struck with astonishment. The letter from Berne
-had arrived on December 13. On the morning of the 14th they went to
-the council and asked that the Two Hundred might be convoked for
-the afternoon. Before that assembly they repeated that after having
-heard them, the Bernese magistrates had declared that ‘the thing (the
-confession) had been well done.’ As to the charge of having said
-that _all the mischief came from Germany_, they pointed out, that as
-ambassadors were about to be sent to Berne, they ought to be instructed
-to ascertain who it was that had reported such things. The council
-determined that Farel himself should go to Berne with the ambassadors,
-and should make inquiry.[553]
-
-The deputies of Geneva, charged with the defence before the Bernese
-government, of certain interests of state, were Claude Savoye,
-Michel Sept, Claude Rozet, secretary of the council and father of
-the chronicler; all of them true friends of the reformers and the
-magistrates; and Jean Lullin, who had at last consented to form part
-of the embassy, and who was the only member of the opposition.[554]
-They went to Berne with Farel; and the latter having given satisfactory
-explanations, the Bernese magistrates wrote, December 22, to Geneva,
-‘that they and their preachers had found the Genevese confession to
-be according to God’s will and the Holy Scriptures, and thereby in
-conformity with their own religion.’ They added, ‘Set then these
-matters in good order. May dissensions cease, and may the sinister
-intrigues of the wicked be confounded.’[555]
-
-Would the passions which actuated one part of the Genevese people allow
-them to follow such good counsel? They were not to wait long for an
-answer to this question.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
- TROUBLES IN GENEVA.
-
- (JAN. AND FEB. 1538.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: AGITATION IN GENEVA.]
-
-Six days later, December 28, Farel and Calvin appeared before the
-council, and stated that they were about soon to celebrate the Lord’s
-supper, and requested to be sustained in their _admonition to those
-who were leading evil lives_.[556] An exhortation to live well had
-nothing revolting about it. If a man is living ill, it becomes a duty
-to entreat him to live well. That is most of all the duty of faithful
-pastors, especially on the approach of the supper. But what need had
-the ministers of being _sustained_ by the magistrate? This request
-transformed a religious act into a matter of civil business, and thus
-totally altered its nature. The answer to be made to the reformers
-was put off until the return of the delegates sent to Berne. This
-step of the reformers was irritating to those who supposed they would
-be among the subjects of the admonition. Claude Sérais, who had a
-free tongue, that source of all debate, said daringly in the presence
-of a numerous company, ‘Farel is a bad man.’[557] Others took part
-with him in censuring the ministers. They indulged in detraction, in
-aspersions, in cutting speeches; they cast about in all directions
-for anything which might be taken amiss. It was but a small fire at
-first, but little by little it spread far and wide. On January 1 and
-2 (1538) the council was occupied with the affair, and resolved that
-‘those who had circulated insults against the preachers about the
-town should be taken before the lieutenant, at the instance of the
-attorney-general.’ ‘We shall see,’ they said, ‘who is bad, and the bad
-shall be punished.’[558] The preachers made no complaint; but it was
-their unfortunate application to the council which had given occasion
-to these insults. This agitation would certainly not have arisen had
-each pastor, in conformity with the precept of Jesus Christ--‘Go and
-tell him his fault between thee and him alone’--addressed those who
-were blameworthy kindly and privately. One fact, however, exonerates
-the preachers: they were not at liberty to act otherwise than they
-did. The state had resolutely placed itself above the Church, and was
-intermeddling with matters which pertained only to the pastors. If the
-latter had rebuked some citizens without the consent of the council,
-they would certainly have been liable to rebuke themselves. The fault
-was above all with the magistrate. Geneva sailed for some years on a
-high tide of _Cesaropapia_ (government of the Church by the state).[559]
-
-On January 3 the reformers presented themselves again before the
-council. They did not come to complain of the insults to which they had
-been subjected. They proposed a nobler object, the union of all the
-members of the Church in the same faith and the same charity. They drew
-a vivid picture of the discord which was increasing day after day, and
-of the divisions which were fomented in the republic by restless and
-factious spirits; and they represented that one of the best methods of
-applying a remedy would be to keep the disturbers away from the supper.
-‘As it is determined to celebrate it on Sunday next,’ they said, ‘we
-are of opinion that, those persons should not be admitted. On this
-point we desire the opinion of the council.’[560]
-
-[Sidenote: THE CHURCH AND THE STATE.]
-
-This exclusion proposed to the senate is one of the gravest facts in
-the reformation of Geneva, and it kept up excitement in the city for
-nearly a whole generation. Wherein then were the reformers right, and
-wherein were they wrong? A society is a collection of men who, while
-differing on some matters, are in agreement on the subject which is the
-very essence of their union. A society of financiers is not composed
-of people who know nothing of money matters. It is not the unlearned
-who are admitted to a learned faculty. A regiment is not recruited
-with one-armed men. Men who know nothing of French are not elected
-to form the Forty of the Academy. It is just the same with Christian
-society. Its members may differ in many respects--political, literary,
-social, etc.--but Christian faith must actuate them all. A Jew or a
-Mohammedan does not belong to the Church of Jesus Christ; and a man who
-rejects the facts, the doctrines, and the duties of Christianity is
-not a Christian. ‘Birds of a feather flock together,’ says a common
-proverb. Ought the reformers to ignore such an elementary truth? There
-were still some Roman Catholics at Geneva; there were the so-called
-_Spirituals_, many of whom did not believe even in the immateriality
-of the soul; there were also a great number of citizens who did not
-consent to the faith as set forth in the confession made at St.
-Peter’s. Should such a confused mass, in which it would be impossible
-to know where one was, form the Church of Geneva? Should that Church be
-
- ‘De tant d’objets divers le bizarre assemblage?’[561]
-
-Would it not in such a case remind one of certain monsters, which are
-spoken of by the ancients, possessing a conformation which was against
-nature? The reformers were with the truth when they answered No. But
-where they were wrong was in requiring all the citizens to take an oath
-to their confession. Was it possible for them to fancy that the act by
-which Geneva had broken with the pope had transformed, as by the stroke
-of the enchanter’s wand, all the Genevese, so that from that moment
-they all believed heartily, and ought all to make confession with their
-lips? _Nascitur homo, fit Christianus_, said Tertullian in the second
-century. One _is born_ a man, but one _becomes_ a Christian. To pretend
-that all those who belonged to the state belonged at the same time to
-the Church was irrational. To decree that those who would not take the
-oath to the confession should depart from the city and go elsewhither
-was iniquitous. What, drive from Geneva the men to whom Geneva owed
-her independence! Such an enormity could not fail to lead to a
-revolution. The fusion of the Church and the state in a single society
-is the origin of those blemishes which in some instances disfigured
-the otherwise glorious work of the Reformation. But how to settle the
-dilemma? how admit two contradictory propositions? How to exclude and
-to keep at the same time?
-
-The early Church accomplished this. It had its ἀκροώμενοι, _audientes_,
-hearers. Instead of excluding those whose faith was not yet formed,
-it invited them lovingly to hear the preaching of the Word. They
-attended the service and joined in the prayers, without taking part
-in the mysteries of the Lord’s supper, which they shrank timidly from
-approaching. And when in their experience that great process of the
-Christian life was accomplished of which St. Paul speaks--_Faith cometh
-by hearing_--they shared the communion at the sacred feast. Perhaps
-Geneva was not yet ripe for this order of things.[562]
-
-The council assembled the Two Hundred to consider what answer should
-be made to the reformers. Since the scenes which had taken place in
-the council of November 25, the syndics had become more timid. They
-dreaded whatever might provoke the people and drive them on to any
-rash proceeding, and they felt less inclined to support the reformers.
-A letter was read from Berne which bore approving testimony to the
-confession, and exhorted to concord. Three of the members who had not
-sworn the confession--De Lesclefs, Manlich, and Ameaux--were urged to
-do as others had done. The first two took the oath required; Ameaux
-alone refused. The council then believing that they had gone far
-enough, recoiled from a measure which might have grave consequences,
-and determined ‘not to refuse the supper to any one.’[563]
-
-Thus did the magistrates give a flat refusal to the ministers. It
-was a lesson for Calvin and his friends. This decision was contrary
-to their convictions; but as they knew that the council was at heart
-friendly to the Reformation, they did not feel bound to oppose its
-will. They gave proof of moderation, conciliation, and patience. Some
-will perhaps say that they pushed these virtues too far. They yielded.
-That is not the crime of which they are commonly accused. The supper
-was celebrated, and there was no disturbance.
-
-[Sidenote: DISORDERS.]
-
-But although the communion passed off in an orderly manner, troubles
-arose afterwards. The opposition party looked on this general admission
-as a triumph for them; and as they saw that the representations of the
-ministers were no longer listened to by the councils, their audacity
-increased. Again were seen bands of men, consisting of the least
-respectable classes of the people, parading the city with green flowers
-in their hats. They indulged in acts of violence; they annoyed those
-who had sworn to the Reformation; ‘they drew their swords and terrified
-others into flight.’ The taverns were thronged with these people, who
-ate and drank to excess. Puns and sarcasms were showered on all sides.
-Even holy things were turned into ridicule. Just as St. Paul addressed
-his Epistles to his _brethren in Christ_, so the evangelical Christians
-of the Reformation gave each other that title. The wags had noticed
-it, and did not fail to laugh at it. ‘A party of drunken men,’ say
-the Registers of January 16, ‘went in the night through the town and
-to the wine-shops, mocking the preachers and saying to each other,
-‘_Thou art one of the brethren in Christ_,’ and other things of the like
-kind. These mockers having come to the Lord’s supper, to which all
-were admitted by order of the Council, gave themselves in jest the name
-of _brethren_. Jean d’Orbe said to Claude Jaccard, ‘Art thou of the
-_brethren in Christ_?’ and swearing a great oath, he added, ‘Thou wilt
-repent of it.’ Many persons, alarmed at these disorderly proceedings,
-trembled for the general council which was to be held fifteen days
-later. ‘Many a sword-thrust will be given there,’ they said, ‘so
-that we shall not wish to go.’ The discord which prevailed in Geneva
-agitated also the neighboring country districts. The Council of the
-Two Hundred was deeply affected by all these reports, and determined
-to have inquiry made and to punish the guilty. The measure which the
-council adopted in order to prevent disturbances was precisely that
-which actually gave rise to them.[564]
-
-All these things greatly afflicted Calvin, and he had at the same time
-other sorrows to bear. A man of mild disposition, with a spirit given
-to contemplation, on which the incessantly renewed struggles to which
-the reformer was called made a most painful impression, was at that
-time living in intimate friendship with him. Louis du Tillet, canon
-and archdeacon of Angoulême, had been first won to the Gospel by the
-lively piety of Calvin, whom he had followed to Switzerland, to Italy,
-and to Geneva. But by slow degrees a perceptible difference grew up
-between the master and the disciple. In Du Tillet’s view the doctrine
-of the Church was the essential matter, and the re-establishment of
-the apostolic Church ought to be the aim of the Reformation. ‘Let us
-protest,’ said he, ‘against the abuses of the Roman Church, but let
-us re-establish the Catholicism of the first centuries. It is there
-that lies hidden the Christian germ; let us beware of arresting its
-developments. The Reformation, unless it is to disappoint the fair
-hopes which it has excited, must re-establish in the world the one
-holy, universal Church. The only way open to us for accomplishing the
-work which the state of Christendom claims at our hands, is to go
-back to the beginning, and to re-establish the Church of the first
-ages. Alas! fatal discords are already threatening to make division
-in the new Church. May the hand of God recall her from this error,
-and establish her on the foundation of the apostles and the fathers.
-The Reformation must not, while highly exalting Jesus Christ, too much
-abase the Church. Let us take care that the torrent which we turn
-into the stables to cleanse them do not carry away the walls and the
-foundation. The reform of the Church must not become its annihilation.
-Assuredly the Catholic Church is the pillar of the truth, and the
-consent of this Church is the infallible support and the full assurance
-of the truth.’[565]
-
-[Sidenote: LOUIS DE TILLET.]
-
-Calvin was at no loss for an answer to his friend, the Old Catholic. He
-pointed out to him that where falsehood reigns there can be no Church;
-that the state of the papacy, although it might still hold some remains
-of truth, was such that those who abandoned it did not create a schism.
-He added, that we could not wait until the papacy reformed itself; that
-the councils assembled in the fifteenth century, and even earlier, for
-the purpose of working out that the reform, had all failed. He insisted
-that it was not to Catholicism of the first five or six centuries
-that we must return, but to the Gospel--to the sacred writings of
-the apostles--in which the truth was taught in its purity. Calvin
-maintained his thesis with energy, nay, as he said, with rudeness.[566]
-Driven from point to point, hesitating between the doctrine of the Holy
-Scriptures and that of the councils and the fathers, melancholy and
-pining, Du Tillet secretly quitted Geneva, adopted the resolution of
-re-entering the Catholic Church, and told Calvin so.
-
-The reformer wrote to him, January 31, 1538, with moderation and
-humility, but at the same time firmly. ‘What afflicts me most of all,’
-he said to him, ‘is the fear of having hurt your mind by my imprudence,
-for I confess that I have not exhibited in my intercourse with you
-the modesty which I owed to you. I cannot, however, conceal from you
-that I was greatly astonished on learning your intention and the reason
-which you assign in your letters to me. This change, so suddenly made,
-seemed very strange, considering the constancy and the decision which
-you displayed. It is separation from the Church to join ourselves to
-that which is contrary to it.’[567] This did not prevent Du Tillet from
-again becoming and remaining a Roman Catholic.
-
-[Sidenote: THE TWO PARTIES.]
-
-However, Calvin’s attention was at this time attracted and absorbed by
-other objects. The disturbances which were agitating Geneva did not
-arise exclusively from religious doctrines. The opposition wanted to
-get into power; and if it succeeded, the days of the Reformation were
-apparently numbered. The leaders acted prudently, but they could not
-restrain the restlessness of their adherents. There were two entirely
-distinct parties in the republic. The one aimed at any cost to take the
-government out of the hands of the syndics and councillors who favored
-the reformers, and to occupy their place; the other wished to appoint
-magistrates who would persevere in the course on which the council had
-entered. The two parties were now face to face. The attacking party
-marched to the assault with decision and much noise, determined to come
-to blows if necessary. ‘Insults and outcries were multiplied throughout
-the town, both by night and by day.’[568] Excitement was daily becoming
-more intense. ‘Next Sunday syndics are to be appointed,’ it was said;
-‘there will be strife; we must go to the election in arms.’ One of the
-most furious of the opponents, who carried leeks in his hat, cried out,
-‘To-day we are wearing _green_ gillyflowers, but the day will make
-plenty of _red_ heads.’[569] These symptoms alarmed not only the aged
-and the sick, but also moderate men, who are sometimes a little timid.
-To make use of menaces in order to keep citizens of the opposite party
-from voting, is commonly enough the practice of a blind demagogy. It
-gained its end. These violent speeches greatly grieved the pastors.
-Fearing that blood would be shed, they appeared, February 1, two days
-before the election, before the Council of the Two Hundred, and made
-a wise (_belle_) remonstrance. The lieutenant of police, Henriod
-Dumolard, one of the champions of freedom, who enjoyed general respect,
-confirmed these fears ‘from good information.’ The council determined
-to imprison those who had threatened to shed blood, and to take other
-measures for the purpose of preventing on the appointed day either
-tumult or conflict.
-
-But if the violent members of the opposition injured their influence,
-the abler men dealt effective blows at the order of things established
-by the reformers and the magistrates. They called to mind the ancient
-franchises of Geneva and the battles fought in their defence. They
-showed that the bishop himself had not required of them so positive an
-adhesion to doctrine, nor imposed on them ordinances so harassing in
-respect to morality. Under the pretext of aiming at the maintenance
-of freedom, these men acquired high esteem among the people.[570]
-They wished, nevertheless, so they said, for reform. Doubtless they
-did. But if we may judge by their opposition to the confession and
-to discipline, they wanted a reform without either faith or law.
-Such was not that of Calvin; and this alone, in the grand crisis of
-the sixteenth century, and in the midst of attacks so numerous and
-so varied, could make Geneva a strong and invincible city. The vital
-doctrines of Christianity, which are the salvation of the individual,
-are likewise necessary to the prosperity of nations. This is proved
-by great examples. Geneva without the Gospel, without Calvin, would
-not have won the sympathy of the evangelical nations, nor would she
-have possessed the moral force to surmount great perils. Weakened,
-enervated, and corrupted, this city would soon have lost her
-independence, as all those free cities of the Middle Ages in Italy
-and elsewhere did. These were one after another compelled to stoop
-under the sword of their neighbors and under the yoke of Rome. A free
-people must have a religion of high quality (_de bon aloi_). To invite
-the nations to cast Christianity out of their bosom, as some rash
-or criminal voices did, is to invite them to put to death liberty,
-morality, and prosperity. It is to preach suicide to them.
-
-[Sidenote: ELECTION OF SYNDICS.]
-
-Was Geneva, then, going to make trial of it? February 3, the day of
-election, at length arrived. The opposition, which was at the outset a
-minority, but a minority of the inflexible kind which generally wins,
-had succeeded in persuading the people that if they wished to keep
-their liberties they must change the government. The council general
-assembled in the cloisters of St. Peter’s, and the first syndic said,
-after the customary formalities--‘The election of syndics is a matter
-of so great importance, that it will be enough to occupy us to-day
-without any other business. Let everyone give his vote peaceably, and
-let no one be so rash as to stir up disorders, either by word or by
-sword. Any man who does so will be sent to prison, and will afterwards
-be punished according to his desert.’ The Two Hundred, according to
-custom, presented eight names, and the council general was to retain
-four of them. Two secretaries were at hand to enter the votes; and
-presently the citizens, coming forward group by group, gave their
-votes. Of the eight candidates the people chose three who had put
-themselves at the head of the opposition, and whom the impartiality of
-the Two Hundred had led them to present with the others. These three
-were Claude Richardet, who, with furious gesture, had declared that
-they would not get him to go to prison; Jean Philippe, who had proposed
-in the council general to name twenty-five citizens to watch the
-syndics; and Jean Lullin, who had accused the council of violating the
-franchises. These three enemies of the new order of things were named
-syndics. But there must be four of them. The opposition intended that
-the fourth should likewise be one of their party, but it did not find
-another set down in the list of the council. Regardless of the rule on
-that point, they chose a citizen who had not been proposed by the Two
-Hundred--De Chapeaurouge--who had greatly compromised himself by the
-vehemence of his speeches against the reformers. On February 4 and 5
-the election of councillors as assistants to the syndics was conducted
-in almost the same spirit.
-
-The victory of the opposition was complete. A great revolution had
-been wrought in this small city. The citizens had come to a decision
-of such a character as must excite disturbances and prepare the way
-to their ruin. This soon became apparent among the lower classes.
-The election was followed, especially at night, by noisy promenades,
-licentious songs in the taverns, insults and blasphemies. At Geneva,
-as in France, the song was one form of opposition. The people feasted,
-drank, and made songs on their enemies. Thus these lawless subjects
-had their triumph after their own fashion. But Calvin and Farel did
-not hesitate to present themselves before the council in which their
-antagonists sat, and to demand the suppression of these disorders.
-The new syndics were the most decided of the citizens in the sense
-opposed to the reformers; but they were intelligent men, and they
-had no wish that the mischief should run to an extreme. History,
-moreover, gives us many examples of a change effected in individuals
-by accession to power. Sometimes an ecclesiastic vehemently opposed
-to the encroachments of the Roman see has been made pope, and he has
-thereupon become the most thoroughgoing papist. The magistrates had
-no wish to compromise themselves at the outset by making common cause
-with the libertines; they therefore ordered that justice should be
-done at the demand of the pastors. The sound of the trumpet was heard
-in the streets, and the officer of the council cried, ‘No one shall
-sing indecent songs containing the names of the inhabitants of Geneva;
-no one shall go into the city without a candle after nine o’clock at
-night; no one shall create excitement or strife, under pain of being
-imprisoned on bread and water, for three days for the first offence,
-six days for the second, and nine for the third.’[571] Immediately
-after its election the new council had given a proof of moderation and
-impartiality. Jean Jacques Farel, a brother of the reformer, having
-replied to the threats of the opposition that he would go armed to the
-council general, had been sent to prison by the council formed of his
-own party. After the new election Farel interceded for his brother, and
-the new council, in its session of February 5, released him, because he
-had, according to the Registers, already remained three or four days
-in prison. The blustering fellows thought it very strange that the
-magistrates, who set Farel’s brother at liberty, should reward them,
-the men who had placed them in office, by prohibiting songs at their
-tables, in the midst of their cups, which were so delightful to them.
-But notwithstanding these appearances, the revolution was none the
-less profound and decisive; and it is doubtful whether, even after the
-trumpet-blast, the disorders ceased.
-
-[Sidenote: MONTCHENU AT GENEVA.]
-
-The conduct of the syndics with regard to those who had preceded them
-showed immediately that they did not lose sight of one of the chief
-objects of their election. A Frenchman, the Seigneur de Montchenu,
-being at Geneva, caused letters to be sent to three Genevese
-councillors, Claude Richardet, Claude Savoye, and Michel Sept, in which
-it was stated that if the Genevese would become subjects of the King
-of France, he would leave to them their usages and liberties, would
-fortify their city, and answer for them when attacked. Berne took alarm
-on hearing this, and cautioned the Genevese to be on their guard. When
-the councils met they ordered answer to be made to the French agent
-that Geneva would no more entertain such projects, and decreed that
-every Frenchman found wandering on the territory of the republic should
-be expelled. It was not easy to treat the letter which had been written
-to them as a crime on the part of the three Genevese, especially as the
-first to whom it was addressed was Claude Richardet, then syndic, the
-fierce enemy of the ministers and the priests. Nevertheless they found
-means of employing these letters without taking Richardet into account.
-He, however, was not only compromised, like the other two, in having
-received a letter, but there was one grave fact against him. Montchenu
-having presented himself by night, with some horsemen, at the gates of
-Geneva, Richardet, syndic at the time, went to them at their request,
-ordered the great gate to be opened, and introduced the Frenchmen into
-the city. Montchenu having proposed to Richardet to go to supper with
-him at the Tête-Noire, he declined. When he was subsequently called
-upon by Claude Savoye to explain this circumstance in the council,
-Richardet stated that he had thought that Montchenu was going on an
-embassy into Germany to bring soldiers for the king. If this adventure
-had happened to either of the other Genevese who had received the
-letter, Claude Savoye, for instance, what would not have been said?
-But Richardet was as innocent as his compatriots. A Genevese does not
-betray his country. For the rest, he assured the council that he had
-had no intention but to please it.
-
-Whatever the fact may have been, on the proposition of Monathier, one
-of the most violent members of the party then in power, the council
-suspended Claude Savoye and Michel Sept from their functions until
-this business should be cleared up. It has been remarked that, to take
-advantage of their ascendency in order to get up any bad case against
-their antagonists, was a traditional propensity which Genevese parties
-had too long indulged.[572] Similarly, three of the former syndics and
-a councillor were suspended on account of charges brought by people
-of doubtful respectability. In this way the new government secured a
-majority in the Council of the Two Hundred.[573] A pitiful victory of
-party spirit! Everyone was eagerly hunting up grievances against the
-fallen magistrates.
-
-[Sidenote: CONFUSION OF CHURCH AND STATE.]
-
-It appears that Calvin blamed this proceeding, and, holding it to be
-contrary to justice and to truth, called it the work of him whom the
-Scriptures name _the father of lies_. Hereupon it was determined to
-warn the preachers that they must not intermeddle with the business of
-the magistrate, but preach the Gospel.[574] Calvin felt this deeply.
-Is not justice also in the Gospel? Ought not a minister to demand it?
-So much hostility was at that time exhibited against the reformers by
-the majority of the Genevese, that the Bernese themselves, when they
-came to Geneva to oppose Montchenu, undertook their defence. Farel was
-accused of having said at Berne, ‘There is strife at Geneva because one
-party wants the mass and another the Gospel.’--‘Farel never said such a
-thing,’ said the Bernese to the general council; ‘we beg you to treat
-him with favor, for he has freely made known the Gospel.’ Certainly
-Calvin, Farel, and all the pastors ought to set an example of respect
-for the authorities. But the state and the Church were then so closely
-united that they were almost confounded with one another; and as the
-magistrates themselves dealt with religion in their councils, it is not
-to be wondered at that the ministers should speak of the proceedings
-of the councils in their sermons. The independence of the temporal and
-the spiritual was as yet far off. It must not be forgotten that it was
-for Geneva a creative epoch. Magistrates and reformers were working
-at the organization of the State and the Church. Moreover, in this
-business morality was in question, and no wonder that the ministers
-of God thought that morality was within their province. But the
-magistrates looked on the matter in another light, and did not intend
-that anyone should give them a lecture. Calvin was fettered not only in
-his preaching but still more in the discharge of his pastoral duties.
-‘In general,’ he wrote to Bullinger, February 21, ‘we are looked on
-here as preachers rather than pastors. We cannot have a Church that
-will stand unless the discipline of the apostles be restored.’ However,
-he had not lost hope. ‘There is much alteration which we earnestly
-desire,’ he further wrote to his friend at Zurich, ‘but which can be
-effected only by our applying ourselves to it with faith, diligence,
-and perseverance. Oh, that a pure and sincere agreement might at length
-be established among us! Would there be any obstacle in the way of the
-meeting of a synod, at which everyone might propose what he believed to
-be useful to the Churches?’[575]
-
-Having lost all hope in the institutions of the state, the reformer
-turned his attention to those of the Church. So long as sincere friends
-of the Reformation had been in power, Farel and Calvin had displayed
-a spirit of concession even on important points. When the council,
-for instance, had determined that the supper should not be refused
-to anyone, they had yielded. But now, when they saw at the head of
-affairs men who were opposed to order in the Church, they no longer
-felt it their duty to yield. They will not allow the state authorities
-to organize the spiritual body at their will. They will contend against
-notions contrary, as they think, to the Word of God. They will contend
-against them by their prayers and efforts, and by their resistance. The
-moment is come for them to say with Luther, I can do no otherwise (_Ich
-kann nicht anders_). There was enough in such a resolution to arouse
-a storm. But other blasts, not less impetuous, and blowing from other
-quarters, were soon to assail the reformers.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
- STRUGGLES AT BERNE.--SYNOD OF LAUSANNE.
-
- (1538.)
-
-
-The state of affairs at Berne had changed since the synod of September
-1537, at which Calvin, appearing on the scene as the messenger of
-peace, had brought in concord after strife. Megander, Erasmus Ritter,
-and Rhellican complained of the progress of _Bucerism_, and their
-adversaries complained of them as disturbers. Megander, it may be
-recollected, had agreed at the time of the synod to amend his catechism
-to a small extent. Now Bucer himself had in his zeal undertaken the
-task, and the council, without consulting Megander, had printed the
-revised and amended catechism. This was an act at once imprudent and
-wanting in respect. The lords of Berne were accustomed to play to
-some extent the part of autocrats. Megander was deeply wounded; and
-presenting himself before the council with Erasmus Ritter, he declared
-that he was fully determined not to become a Lutheran, and that
-consequently he could not allow the corrections of Bucer. Kunz and
-Sebastian Meyer on the other hand stoutly defended the catechism as
-revised by the Strasburg doctor.
-
-[Sidenote: STRUGGLES AT BERNE.]
-
-The State, when it intrudes into theological discussions, is wanting
-in the necessary tact, and is too often influenced by considerations
-foreign to religion. The council replied magisterially that the
-catechism was in conformity with Scripture; and it added despotically
-that Megander and Ritter must accept it as it is, or they would be
-immediately deprived of their offices. Ritter, who did not find in the
-catechism anything which at bottom imperilled the Christian faith,
-submitted. But Megander raised objections more or less well founded.
-He was wounded in his _amour-propre_ as author, and observing the
-eagerness of his adversaries to annoy him, he perceived that his
-position at Berne had become untenable. Therefore he held his ground
-and received his _congé_: a measure in which, however, they showed
-a certain consideration. It was the end of the year 1537. He then
-withdrew to Zurich, which received him with open arms.[576]
-
-This proceeding of the Bernese government excited a great sensation.
-Zurich addressed to Berne a sharp remonstrance. The country pastors
-of the canton of Berne complained loudly of the government and of
-the ecclesiastical councillors, and inquired whether these gentlemen
-meant to abjure the Reformation. A meeting was held at Aarau, January
-22, 1538, at which it was resolved to make representations to the
-council; and the dean of Aarau, Zehnder, named chief of the deputation,
-presented the complaint. February 1 was fixed for the hearing of the
-two opposing parties. But while Kunz and his colleagues were admitted
-into the council chamber and took their places by the side of the
-president, the dean and the country ministers waited at the door. No
-sooner were they admitted than Kunz addressed them with a haughty air,
-and rebuked them in a loud and stern voice. The country deans replied
-that they did not mean to be ruled by the city ministers as boys are by
-their schoolmaster. The discussion grew warm,[577] and even the members
-of the council took part in the quarrel.
-
-Theological motives, as we may see, were not the only cause of the
-opposition raised by the country ministers. There were, besides, the
-rule which the city ministers assumed to exercise, and the power which
-the council arrogated to itself in the Church, and by virtue of which
-it had despotically deprived Megander. The country party did not want
-an aristocracy of the city clergy; the city party, lay and clerical,
-understood this. Little by little, therefore, they both lowered their
-tone, and instead of quarrelling they sought reconciliation. The city
-members assented to two alterations in the catechism revised by Bucer,
-and they declared that the country deputies had acted honorably. The
-latter on their part acknowledged that their colleagues of Berne had
-not become faithless to the Reformation. Apologies were made for the
-sharpness which had been imparted to the discussion. The city ministers
-paid visits to those from the country; they conducted them to the house
-of the provost, the first ecclesiastic of the canton, who gave them the
-warmest reception; they ate and drank together; and at last these good
-Swiss parted on the best terms with each other.[578] The cordial letter
-which Luther had written to the Swiss, December 1, 1537,[579] soothed
-their minds still more. The doctrine set forth by Calvin at the synod
-of September, to which Bucer and Capito had given their adhesion, was
-recognized at Berne as the true doctrine. Erasmus Ritter, above all,
-was heartily devoted to it. There was some hope of finding in it a
-basis of union; and by its means the petty divisions of Protestantism
-were to disappear.
-
-[Sidenote: EXILE OF MEGANDER.]
-
-Unfortunately, Luther has always had some disciples who were more
-Lutheran than himself. Kunz and Sebastian Meyer were of that number.
-Dissatisfied with Calvin’s confession, which to them was an irksome
-yoke, they were eager to shake it off. A new minister, just then called
-to Berne, joined them; but as he was endowed with a quiet, prudent,
-and tractable disposition, he constantly sought, although a decided
-follower of Luther, to moderate his two violent colleagues. This was
-Simon Sulzer. He was an illegitimate son of the Catholic provost of
-Interlaken, and had spent his earliest youth in the châlets and on
-the magnificent Alps of the Hasli. Haller had afterwards found him in
-a barber’s shop where he was earning a living in a humble way; and
-discovering his great abilities, he had recommended him to the council.
-In 1531 Sulzer became Master of Arts at Strasburg. The council of Berne
-had then intrusted to him the task of directing the establishment
-of schools in all the places of the canton which had none. He had
-afterwards applied himself to theology; had gone to Saxony for the
-purpose of holding intercourse with Luther, and on his return had been
-named professor of theology at Berne, as successor of Megander. Step by
-step he became the most influential representative in Switzerland of
-the system which aimed at union with the German reformer.[580]
-
-Kunz, whose aim was the same, was not only a votary of tradition, in
-opposition to the Scriptural spirit of the Genevese minister, but he
-was also a man actuated by strong personal enmities. Calvin, although
-he did not wholly approve of Megander, had emphatically signified the
-pain which he had felt at his deprivation. ‘What a loss to the Church,’
-he wrote to Bucer, January 12, 1538, ‘and how the enemies of the Gospel
-will exult when they see that we begin to banish our pastors; and
-that instead of considering how to overcome the powerful adversaries
-in whose presence we stand, we are inflicting mortal wounds on one
-another. This news of the deprivation of Megander has struck us as
-sharp a blow as if we had been told that great part of the Church of
-Berne had fallen down.[581] I admit that there was a mixture of what
-is human in his cause. But would it not be better to retain such a man
-and forgive him that trifling weakness, than to deprive him of his
-ministry, to the dishonor of God and of his Word, to the great injury
-of the Church, and with serious risk for the future? True, Sebastian
-Meyer and Kunz remain; but what can the former do except ruin the cause
-of the Gospel by his extravagances,[582] and by the violent outbreaks
-in which, when he is no longer master of himself, he indulges? As for
-Kunz, I can hardly trust myself to say what he is. Farel tells me that
-when he had lately to do with him, he never saw any beast more furious.
-His countenance, his gestures, his words, and his very complexion, said
-he, reminded him of the Furies.’[583] It is true that Calvin wrote
-thus to a friend, to Bucer. He said to him, ‘If I speak so freely to
-you, it is because I know to whom I am writing.’ But it was hardly
-possibly that Kunz should not hear from some one what Calvin thought
-of him. He became his mortal enemy, and he cherished the like hatred
-towards the other ministers of Geneva.[584] He let no opportunity
-escape him of opposing them. It was to no purpose that the Genevese
-sought to show him that they were not his enemies, and to appease him
-by their moderation. It was gratifying to him to appoint ministers in
-the Bernese territories about whom Calvin had expressed himself in the
-severest manner;[585] and when competent men had been examined and
-approved at Geneva, he would not receive them until after they had been
-re-examined by the Bernese classes.[586] Calvin however knew better
-than Kunz. ‘What do such beginnings forebode?’ exclaims Calvin; ‘while
-he fancies that he is inflicting lashes on us he is in fact preparing
-his own ruin. Assuredly, if that be the will of God, he will fall into
-the pit which he has digged, rather than continue to be the cause of so
-great troubles to the Church of Christ.’[587]
-
-[Sidenote: RELATIONS OF CHURCH AND STATE.]
-
-In addition to the question of Lutheranism, there was also that of
-the relations between the Church and the State, which was a subject
-of difference between Berne and the Genevese reformers. At Berne the
-magistrate was considered, according to the views of Zwingli, the
-representative of the members of the flock; he was the bishop; the
-Church was a State Church. Calvin on the contrary, who had seen in
-France how the state treated the Reformation, wished for the autonomy
-of the Church. He did not indeed demand the complete separation of
-Church and State, but he desired that each of these two societies
-should have its own government. This was the end for which he was
-striving, and Kunz, when once aware of it, was still more enraged. To
-these two questions was added that of worship. On this matter, as on
-others, Kunz was the ape of Luther, as Megander was of Zwingli. Calvin
-was no imitator of either the one or the other, but adopted generally a
-middle course. With respect to worship he wished for great simplicity.
-Berne had retained certain Catholic usages. They baptized as formerly
-in a baptistery; at Geneva they put away the font and made use of a
-simple vessel. Berne, at the supper, used wafers and unleavened bread;
-Geneva used common bread. Berne had retained several festivals, even
-that of the Annunciation of the Virgin; Geneva celebrated none but the
-Lord’s day, the Sunday.[588] Farel having found these usages, at least
-in part, among the Vaudois, in the visit which he made to those valleys
-in 1532, had introduced them at Geneva, and Calvin, finding them there,
-had made no change.
-
-Kunz detested these practices, and directed attention to them at Berne.
-The Lords of Berne saw these differences with regret, either because
-they intended to exercise a certain supremacy over the Church of
-Geneva, which they thought was indebted to them to a great extent for
-its reformation, and because they desired to see it in all respects
-like their own: or because they were afraid that these diversities
-would furnish the Catholics with weapons: or because the Churches of
-the canton of Vaud seemed inclined to adopt the order of Geneva and
-not that of Berne, which in the eyes of those gentlemen was almost an
-act of rebellion. The Bernese bailiffs forbade the Vaudois pastors of
-their department to receive Calvin and Farel at their colloquies, or
-to attend themselves those which were held at Geneva.[589] Farel, who
-had rendered signal services to Berne and to Vaud, was now forbidden
-to appear in the canton, into which, nevertheless, the fanatic
-‘Spirituals’ had free admission. The reformer was indignant. ‘The
-Lord reward Kunz according to his deserts,’ he wrote to Fabri. ‘Yes,
-the Lord destroy those who go on destroying the Church.’[590] These
-expressions are, as we think, more in the spirit of the Old Testament
-than of the New.
-
-[Sidenote: SYNOD AT LAUSANNE.]
-
-The Bernese magistrates, in order to establish an outward unity, to
-which they attached great importance, as politicians generally do,
-determined to convoke a synod at Lausanne, and they wrote on the
-subject, March 10, to the magistrates of Geneva. The Council of the
-Two Hundred were quite inclined to adopt the usages of Berne as far as
-regarded ceremonies. Calvin and Farel having expressed to the council
-a desire to attend the proposed assembly, it was decided to send
-them, but at the same time to associate with them the councillor Jean
-Philippe.
-
-The synod met at Lausanne, March 31. The temper of the Bernese was more
-dictatorial than conciliatory. The lords of Berne had indeed requested
-that Calvin and Farel should go to Lausanne; but instead of expecting
-of the assembly a work of conciliation, they had positively stipulated,
-in a letter to the council of Geneva, that the Genevese preachers must
-pledge themselves beforehand to adopt the order of worship established
-at Berne; and that on this condition only would they be allowed to take
-part in the deliberations of the synod. If their adhesion were not
-given before the meeting, they should be heard afterwards and should
-be separately treated with. The Genevese reformers, therefore, were
-invited neither to a free assembly nor a free discussion. No other
-right was conceded to them but that of submission. The Bernese added
-that the motive of this strange proceeding was to avoid giving their
-neighbors an opportunity of slandering the reformed religion, and to
-promote the union of the Churches. But the latter object, and through
-it the former, too, would probably have been more promptly attained by
-treating the ministers of Geneva in a brotherly and not in a despotic
-spirit. ‘The Bernese,’ according to Rozet, ‘inquired in a friendly
-way of Farel and Calvin on their arrival, whether they accepted their
-ceremonial.’ The reformers replied ‘that the subject was well deserving
-of discussion.’ Discussion was refused to them.[591]
-
-The Bernese senate had named Kunz one of the presidents of the synod.
-Associated with him were the ministers of Erasmus Ritter, and two
-members of the great council, Huber and Amman. Kunz was one of those
-overbearing characters which inspire awe in other men, and whose
-influence is almost irresistible. His colleagues, moreover, were in
-agreement with him. The affair did not encounter any difficulty. The
-synod, which opened on March 31, unanimously accepted the usages of
-Berne,--the baptisteries, the unleavened bread at the supper, and the
-festivals, including that of the Annunciation of the Virgin.
-
-Did Calvin and Farel attend the synod or not? It seems hardly probable
-that they would be willing by their presence to give a kind of sanction
-to an assembly from which they were virtually excluded. The letter
-of Berne to Geneva seems, moreover, to indicate clearly that unless
-they humbly received the ecclesiastical decisions of the magistrates
-and councils of Berne, they would only have a hearing apart. A highly
-partial biographer[592] states that they were seen in the town and
-even that they ‘went outside of it for pleasure.’ There would have
-been no great harm in their taking walks on the surrounding hills and
-on the banks of the Aar, enjoying the beauties of Swiss scenery, while
-they waited till it should please the lords of Berne to permit them to
-speak. But they would have been open to blame for not attending the
-synod if the order of Berne had not absolutely prohibited them. History
-therefore has been guilty of an error in that, while she mentions their
-absence from the synod, she has not reported the fact which justifies
-it; that is to say, the strange requirement of Berne,--a grave
-omission, which we would fain think was unintentional.[593]
-
-[Sidenote: ABSENCE OF CALVIN AND FAREL.]
-
-The conference between Calvin and Farel and the delegates of Berne
-took place. The ministers of Geneva, while they objected to the use
-of baptisteries and unleavened bread, had no intention of causing
-division on account of such things. They adhered more firmly to their
-views respecting festivals. ‘On what ground,’ said Calvin, ‘will you
-honor the day of the circumcision more than that of the death of the
-Redeemer?’ In fact, Good Friday was not celebrated at Berne. Kunz was
-silent.[594] Calvin and Farel wished that questions of this kind should
-be settled, not by delegates of the government but by the Church in
-its assemblies. They demanded therefore that the decision should be
-referred to a synod of the whole Reformed Church of Switzerland, which
-was to be held without delay at Zurich. All appearance of compulsion
-would thus be avoided; liberty and order would be equally respected,
-and the Church would be spared much grievous dissension. ‘There was an
-excellent remedy,’ Calvin wrote afterwards to the Zurichers, ‘by means
-of which danger might have been obviated; it was that we should be
-invited to your synod. But this we could not obtain.’[595]
-
-When the lords of Berne found that their delegates had failed in their
-conference with the Genevese ministers, they resolved to write, on the
-same day, April 15, two letters: one to Calvin and Farel, the other to
-the council of Geneva, having no doubt that this clever contrivance
-would succeed. Their two missives were very nearly alike. They urged
-the ministers to accept the decision of the synod, without waiting for
-the assembly at Zurich, in order that the two Churches, united in the
-fundamentals of the faith, might likewise be in conformity in matters
-of ceremonial. And to the council they addressed entreaties to accept
-the same decision, ‘in the hope that Masters Farel and Calvin, although
-they had raised some difficulties, would advise for the best.’[596]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
- THE COUNTER-REFORMATION PREVAILS.--CALVIN AND FAREL REFUSE TO
- GIVE THE LORD’S SUPPER.--THE PULPIT IS CLOSED TO THEM.
-
- (APRIL 15 TO 20, 1538.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: RESISTANCE OF CALVIN.]
-
-The very circumstances which inspired the confidence of Berne were
-exactly those which roused the resistance of Calvin. Those powerful and
-magnificent lords could not believe that so dignified an intervention
-would fail to secure submission; and Calvin could not consent that
-the interests of the Church of Christ should be regulated by the
-magistrate, like those of the highways and the soldiery. Besides,
-in the present case, the question was about foreign magistrates. To
-their intervention the citizen and the Christian could not but be
-equally opposed. Calvin wished to maintain the principle of religious
-liberty, and he requested that time should be allowed him to come to
-an understanding with the other Churches. However, if the letter to
-the ministers was unsuccessful, that sent to the council had a success
-so abundant that it not only surpassed the hopes of the Bernese,
-but crossed their desires and threw an obstacle in the way of their
-projects. The syndics who had been named in a spirit hostile to the
-reformers, and all the citizens who had placed them in office, were
-delighted to see variance between Berne and Calvin and Farel. For them
-it was a piece of real good fortune, although for the ministers it was
-a grievous event. The two states, Berne and Geneva, acting in unison,
-would soon get the better of two poor ministers. Further, the council
-was at this time in a bad humor. The third preacher, the aged and
-energetic Courault, who had remained at Geneva, had blamed the syndics
-in one of his sermons, and it was resolved to reprimand him. It is safe
-to rely, in this matter, on what the Registers state. It is not right
-to receive, as some have done, the burlesque and lying imputations of
-the notorious slanderer Bolsec, who, ‘after the example of Herostratos,
-chose to pass down to posterity branded with infamy.’[597] The council
-forbade Courault to preach. This was the state of things when the
-letters from Berne arrived. The council immediately gave orders that
-Calvin and Farel should appear before them on Friday, April 19. It
-was the Holy week, and that day was the day of the Passion. This
-consideration caused no hesitation on the part of the enemies of the
-Reformation. As the holy supper was to be celebrated two days later on
-Easter Sunday, they were anxious to hurry forward the business. The
-ministers then found themselves between the anvil and the hammer; they
-must submit or fall, and do which they would, they would be weakened
-and lowered. The secretary having read the letter from Berne, the first
-syndic declared to the reformers that the council was determined to
-accede to the demand of that city, and to conform to the usages there
-established with respect to ceremonies. Then he asked them if they
-would themselves observe them, and requested them to answer Yes or No.
-Calvin and Farel demanded the time necessary, not merely, as has been
-asserted, for reflection on the subject, but also and especially, that
-the question might be settled by the competent authorities, the Swiss
-synod, which in ten days (April 29) was to be held at Zurich. Meanwhile
-they begged that no innovation should be made until the next supper. In
-making this request Calvin pledged himself to accept whatever should
-be decreed by that legitimate authority. This was on his part a large
-concession. To his Scriptural and just judgment it did not appear
-consistent, after separating from Roman Catholicism, still to retain
-any part of the system, even were it only a trifle, such as unleavened
-bread, baptisteries, and festivals. To one of the latter, especially,
-he felt great objection. He knew that small concessions lead on to
-large ones, and he feared that Rome would act according to the proverb,
-and if you gave an inch would take an ell. It is needless to repeat how
-decided and firm Calvin was, and yet, out of love for peace and for
-unity, he conceded to his adversaries what he might justly have refused
-them. All he asked was that they would wait for ten days the decision
-of the synodal authority. This, assuredly, was not saying No in an
-absolute manner.[598] It was quite the reverse; and the adversaries
-of Calvin ought rather to have wondered at his compliance than have
-blamed him for his inflexible obstinacy. His request was fair, and it
-ought to have been granted. But they would not listen to it. It was
-ordered that the supper should be celebrated conformably to the Bernese
-usage; and the council appointed the magistrates who were to take care
-that it was thus celebrated in the churches of St. Peter, St. Gervais,
-and Rive. It may be asked how it was that men who were by no means
-remarkable for their attachment to traditional observances should be so
-obstinate in sacrificing the ritual of Geneva to the ritual of Berne.
-Impartial judges have said, ‘The Council had taken this resolution in
-order to win over the Bernese and to implicate them in the opposition
-to the reformers.’[599] We confess that this explanation appears to us
-very probable.
-
-[Sidenote: DISTURBANCES AT GENEVA.]
-
-This decision was despotic, and in that very quality was in accordance
-with the order which the councils intended to establish at Geneva, that
-of _Césaropapia_, in which the prince and the magistrate, taking the
-place of the pope, settle everything in the Church. The inflexibility
-of the council on the one side and the firmness of the reformers on
-the other came into collision, and the result was a shock to the
-people which troubled their everyday life and could not, but lead to
-a conflict. Those who formed the lowest section of the opposition,
-excited and agitated, began to cry out against the resistance of the
-ministers, and they thought that if the latter would not obey with a
-good grace, they must be compelled to yield by terror and by force.
-If the people were to express their will with energy, if they took up
-arms, and filled the streets and massed themselves like roaring waves
-in front of the houses of Farel, Calvin, and Courault, those men, no
-matter what their strength might be, would have no choice but to give
-way before that impetuous torrent. ‘Thereupon,’ says the chronicler
-Rozet, ‘great excesses and blasphemies were committed. Dissolute men
-went about the town by night in dozens, armed with arquebuses, which
-they discharged in front of the ministers’ houses. They shouted, _The
-Word of God!_ and after that, _The word of Andrew!_ They threatened
-to throw them into the Rhone if they did not come to some agreement
-with the magistrates respecting the ceremonies in question; and these
-proceedings, all open and notorious, went unpunished.’[600] It is not
-easy to ascertain what the cry, _The word of Andrew_, meant.[601]
-The cry, _To the Rhone!_ was invariably heard at Geneva when popular
-risings took place. Froment was greeted with it when he began to preach
-the Gospel there; and some women would have thrown him _over the
-bridge_ (_du pont en bas_) if a party of men had not rescued him. They
-did not, indeed, fling every one into the Rhone whom they threatened;
-but these cries could not but seem to Farel and Calvin a mournful
-return for their great and severe labors.
-
-[Sidenote: INDIGNATION OF COURAULT.]
-
-These disorderly deeds had lamentable consequences. Neither Farel
-nor Calvin complained of them. They had now at heart interests more
-important than their own, more precious even than their lives. They
-did not return evil for evil. But the former preacher to the Queen
-of Navarre, the blind and aged Courault, was not so forbearing. He
-likewise had heard these insults. A man of integrity and devoted to
-duty, he had at the same time a heart easily wounded, and he knew how
-to speak hard words. The night between Friday and Saturday, during
-which these cries had resounded in the city, was not a pleasant or a
-peaceful one for him. He was more irritated, perhaps, on account of
-the indignities which were heaped upon Calvin and Farel than for what
-concerned himself. Chagrin, disquietude, and anger kept him sleepless.
-His blood was heated, his heart was incensed, his imagination inflamed.
-
- ‘Je me tourne et m’agite et ne peux nulle part
- Trouver que l’insomnie, amère, impatiente,
- Qu’un malaise inquiet et qu’une fièvre ardente.’[602]
-
-The state of poor old Courault seems to be described in these lines.
-To him these disorders were intolerable, and he said that if men
-should hold their peace the very stones would cry aloud. He would cry
-out, and cry out in the pulpit. True, that was forbidden him; but no
-matter, in spite of the prohibition of men he would preach. He rose
-very early and went to St. Peter’s church to perform the service of
-six o’clock A.M., with no other preparation, alas! than the
-distress and bitterness which had preyed on his mind through the
-night. The character of his preaching was not such as was wanted for a
-people so sensitive as the Genevese. His eloquence somewhat resembled
-that of the monks to whose order he had belonged, which consisted,
-for the most part, in making a noise and in shouting.[603] His mind
-was not cultivated, but he had a glowing imagination, which animated
-his discourse and enabled him to hit hard blows. Although he was of
-a more serious turn, he shared, to some extent, the faults of the
-most illustrious orators of the preceding period, Barletta, Maillard,
-and Menot; and he sometimes attacked, as they did, the vices of his
-hearers by satire occasionally delicate and occasionally coarse, but
-always prompted by a good and grave intention. He would now discharge
-his conscience. Let them put him in prison, banish him, or beat
-him soundly; his soul, wearied with grief, must burst its bonds.
-He uttered, doubtless, some excellent things, some true and pious
-words; but, agitated as he was, he allowed himself to indulge in that
-intemperate mode of speech which was then so common. With his spirit
-still disturbed by those noisy and tumultuous crowds collected under
-the windows of the reformers, from the midst of which came redoubled
-shouts, jesting songs, insults, accusations, and menaces, he likened
-them to the ‘kingdom of the frogs,’ that from the bosom of the marshes
-croak and make a loud noise. Then recalling a vulgar phrase, the old
-Frenchman, hardly escaped from the rough life of persecution, inquired
-of the Genevese what they complained of,--they who were ‘like rats in
-straw,’ that is to say, were folk greatly at their ease, possessing
-everything they could wish and in want of nothing.[604] In another
-passage, rising to a higher strain, and recalling the image of
-Nebuchadnezzar, with its head of gold and its feet part of iron and
-part of clay, fragile and broken by a little stone, he predicted to the
-syndics and councils that as intrigue had placed them in office they
-would not long retain their power. ‘You, gentlemen of the government,’
-said he, ‘you have feet of wax.’ These feet, in his opinion, would soon
-melt in the sunshine of their victory and prosperity. This comparison,
-imitative of Biblical style, was not unbefitting to a preacher, and
-the prophecy which it contained did not fail of accomplishment. At the
-news of this minister preaching in defiance of the prohibition, and
-at the report of his sayings, which were most likely misrepresented,
-the government felt that they were insulted, and determined to act
-rigorously. Officers of state went to the old man’s house, arrested
-and took him to prison. It was the eve of Easter Day. It was customary
-to make presents at that period; and this was the present which was
-bestowed on the aged, noble, but free-spoken minister and confessor of
-Christ, who had already experienced treatment too rough at the hands of
-the adherents of the pope in the kingdom of France.[605]
-
-[Sidenote: PROTEST AGAINST HIS IMPRISONMENT.]
-
-The news of the imprisonment of Courault rapidly spread through Geneva,
-and deeply affected the friends of the Reformation. A pastor in prison!
-Yes, and justly, if he were guilty of any common offence. But he had
-done what he believed to be his duty. From the Christian pulpit he
-had rebuked scandalous excesses, and on that account he was committed
-to prison, while those who were really guilty of them were let alone
-and went unpunished.[606] It appears from the protocol of the 19th,
-that two men, forming part of the band which had gone about singing by
-night and had made disturbances at Rive, had been themselves placed
-in confinement. But the place and the date of that affair prove that
-it was on a quite different charge. The incarceration of Courault
-filled Calvin and Farel with sorrow, for they esteemed their old and
-venerable colleague, and they knew how much he had already suffered
-for the truth’s sake. Some of the councillors and citizens friendly
-to the Reformation resolved to protest against the imprisonment of
-their pastor. Claude Savoye, Michel Sept, Lambert, Chautemps, Domaine
-d’Arlod, Claude and Louis Bernard, Deserts, Claude Pertemps, and many
-others joined Calvin and Farel, and they all went together in a long
-procession to the Hôtel de Ville. They entered the hall of the council,
-and found there two out of the four syndics, and these the men who were
-most against them, Richardet and de Chapeaurouge.
-
-Farel spoke first. He complained that they had acted ‘ill, wickedly,
-and unjustly in putting Courault in prison,’ and demanded that the
-Council of the Two Hundred should be assembled. The laymen thought
-it strange that their adversaries should not be satisfied with
-announcing, like Richardet, that they would not go to the preaching,
-but should seem to intend also to deprive their fellow-citizens of
-it by committing the preachers to prison. The notion that a syndic
-should presume to hinder him from hearing the Word of God especially
-irritated Michel Sept. ‘They shall preach!’ he said, vehemently.
-Farel, remembering all that he had done and borne through long years
-for this city of Geneva, to the emancipation of which he had probably
-contributed more than any other man by his teaching, his courage, his
-prayers, and his deeds, said to the magistrates, ‘Without me you would
-not be what you are.’
-
-The syndics replied that, as the pulpit had been interdicted to
-Courault, and he had nevertheless preached that very morning, and had
-announced that he should continue to do so, they would not set him at
-liberty. The magistrates wished to see if this incident would furnish
-them with an opportunity of attaining the end which they had set before
-them. ‘Will you,’ they said to Farel and Calvin, ‘submit to the letters
-and ordinances of the lords of Berne? In that case we might restore
-to you your colleague.’ This bargain, which consisted in the release
-to them of an innocent prisoner if they on their part would do what
-they held to be wrong, appeared to the ministers a piece of shameful
-trafficking. ‘We will do, in such matters, what God commands,’ they
-replied. However, they were not willing to abandon their colleague.
-They offered to give bail, that he might under that guarantee be set
-at liberty. This proposition was a usual one in such cases, but the
-magistrates declined to accept it, and the reason which they gave
-for their refusal aggravated the harshness of the act. ‘Courault,’
-they said, ‘is not a _citizen of Geneva_, and he is imprisoned _for
-contempt of justice_.’ The members of the council were thoroughly bent
-on getting rid of Courault, who was less prudent than his colleagues.
-It appears from authentic documents, that they even offered Calvin to
-wait, as to the question of ritual, for the decision of the synod of
-Zurich, if he would consent that Courault should be deprived of his
-office of preacher. This Calvin refused.[607] The petitioners withdrew,
-much pained by the severity of the council towards their friend, and
-some of the laymen, especially Lambert, complained aloud as they
-quitted the Hôtel de Ville. They spoke of ‘_false witnesses_ who had
-been examined; of _traitors_ in the general council; and it is well
-known,’ they said, ‘who they are.’[608]
-
-[Sidenote: FAILURE OF THE INTERVENTION.]
-
-The council met after the departure of the reformers and their friends,
-and again decided that the Lord’s supper should be celebrated the
-next day, Easter Sunday, according to the rites established at Berne,
-and not according to those of Geneva; and it decreed that, if the
-ministers still refused to celebrate it, they should be forbidden to
-preach. One cannot but be astonished at this decision, and at the
-mean spirit which it displays on the part of the council. Simple and
-evangelical usages had been established in Geneva: the citizens had
-been called upon to take an oath in St. Peter’s church to a confession
-of faith which in its spirit is entirely in agreement with those
-practices; and now, in a matter which but little concerns it, in order
-to gratify the lords of Berne, whom it could easily resist when it
-chose to do so, the council determined to compel the ministers to
-observe a ceremony essentially Judaic,[609] even at the risk of seeing
-worship suspended and the Church overthrown. This looks very much like
-a pretext, good or bad, which they laid hold of for the purpose of
-getting rid of the reformers. The chief-usher went in the afternoon
-to the pastors to communicate the decree to them. He did not find
-Farel, but Calvin, learning from the officer that the civil magistrate,
-without waiting for the resolution of the synod of Zurich, was himself
-deciding this ecclesiastical question, just as if it were an affair of
-military orders to give to an officer, refused to accept the order.
-Thereupon the chief-usher, in the name of the council, prohibited his
-preaching.[610]
-
-What to do? This was the question which Calvin put to himself. He
-longed for unity and peace in Geneva. He appealed afterwards to the
-Genevese themselves. ‘We take God to witness,’ said he, ‘and your own
-consciences, in the light of his countenance, that while we have been
-among you all our exertions have been directed towards preserving you
-in happy union and pleasing concord. But those who had a mind to form
-a party by themselves have separated from us, and have introduced
-division in your Church and in your city.’[611] Lambert’s exclamation,
-when he spoke aloud of _traitors_ and _false witnesses_, is sufficient
-to show us what was the state of Geneva at that time. Concord was
-nothing more than a lovely dream. The most violent passions were called
-into play. One would have said that God was giving up the inhabitants
-of the city to the unruly motions of their own hearts; and that is the
-most terrible chastisement which he ever employs in the punishment of
-men. Not, indeed, that these motions showed themselves violent alike in
-all. The lower classes were agitated, like their lake when the north
-wind, blowing impetuously, lifts up the waves and dashes them furiously
-on the rocks, the walls, and the banks. But among other classes
-appearances were better kept up. Nevertheless, if any reason were still
-left, it was too often only passion that made use of it for its own
-ends.
-
-[Sidenote: CONFUSION.]
-
-The confusion that prevailed in Geneva at this period is attested
-by contemporaries. ‘Popery had indeed been forsworn,’ says Theodore
-Beza,[612] ‘but many had not cast away with it those numerous and
-disgraceful disorders which had for a long time flourished in the city,
-given up as it was for so many years to canons and impure priests.
-Some of the families which stood in the highest rank still kept alive
-those old enmities which grew up at the period of the wars with
-Savoy.’[613] ‘The mischief had gone to such a length that the city,
-owing to the factious temper of some of the citizens, was divided into
-various parties.’[614] ‘Nothing was to be heard,’ says Michel Rozet,
-‘but informations (_dénonces_) and quarrels between the former and
-the present lords (the former and the new councils), some being the
-ringleaders, others following in their steps; the whole mingled with
-reproaches about the booty taken in the war, or the spoils carried off
-from the churches.’[615]
-
-‘There was nothing but confusion.’[616]
-
-Neither the mild admonitions which were at first tried, nor the more
-rigorous reprimands to which recourse was afterwards had, produced any
-effect on the disturbers of the peace, and they failed to put an end to
-their disorderly proceedings.[617]
-
-‘I have lived here,’ says Calvin himself, when speaking of this period,
-‘engaged in strange contests. I have been saluted in mockery, of an
-evening, before my own door, with fifty or sixty shots of arquebuses.
-You may imagine how that must astound a poor scholar, timid as I am,
-and as I confess I always was.’[618]
-
-Such was the melancholy condition of Geneva according to men who,
-on questions of fact and of public fact, are the most respectable
-authorities that history can produce. She has but few witnesses endowed
-with the moral courage of Michel Rozet, Theodore Beza, and Calvin.[619]
-
-[Sidenote: PERPLEXITY OF THE REFORMERS.]
-
-The reformers were in great perplexity. The synod of Lausanne, at
-which the Bernese had opposed the hearing of the representatives of
-the Genevese Church, could not bind the latter. Their resistance to
-the introduction of new usages, which was ordered by the council
-without awaiting the decision of the synod of Zurich, was legitimate.
-If matters of that kind are left to the decision of the civil power,
-the natural order of things is inverted, the autonomy of the Church is
-disowned; and who knows whether, in a turbulent democracy, religion
-may not fall into the hands of an excited people who will, according
-to the saying of a celebrated but scoffing writer, take it up ‘to play
-at ball with it, and make it bound upwards as readily with the foot
-as with the fist.’[620] However, Calvin could not help asking himself
-whether the actual question, the acceptance of unleavened bread which
-the Jews used to eat at the time of the Passover, was of a sufficiently
-weighty kind to put an end to his ministry at Geneva. He did not
-think it was. ‘If we have at heart,’ he said, ‘union and peace, let
-us seek after a unity of minds in doctrine, rather than insist in a
-too scrupulous manner on a conformity of the most exact kind to this
-or that ceremony. There are some points on which the Lord leaves us
-freedom, in order that our edification may be the greater. Not to be
-careful about this edification, and to seek instead of it a slavish
-conformity, is unworthy of a Christian.’[621] Such were Calvin’s views
-on the question about leavened or unleavened bread.
-
-But the question was about a quite different matter. The reformer had
-before him a town in agitation and division, its parties, quarrels,
-hatreds, scoffings, cries, disorders, and scandals. Is this the temple
-in which the festival of peace is to be celebrated? ‘No,’ said he,
-‘the aspect of the Church is not at present such as the legitimate
-administration of our office requires.[622] Whatever people may say,
-we do not believe that our ministry ought to be confined within such
-narrow limits that when once we have delivered our sermon we have
-nothing more to do except to rest as if we had accomplished our task.
-It is more than that; it is that we must with greater vigilance take
-care of those whose blood will be demanded at our hands if they should
-perish through our negligence. This solicitude fills us with distress
-of mind at all times, but when we have to distribute the Lord’s supper,
-then it fiercely consumes and cruelly torments us.[623] While the faith
-of many of those who wish to take part in it is in our opinion doubtful
-and even open to suspicion, we see them all rushing headlong and
-pell-mell to the sacred table. And one would say that they are eating
-greedily the wrath of God rather than partaking of the sacrament of
-life.’[624] Calvin, as these words show, had still before his eyes that
-riotous communion of January, previous to which the council had decreed
-‘that the supper _should not be refused to anyone_.’ He recollected the
-disposition, the look, the deportment, with which many had taken part
-in it; he still felt the heaviness of heart which he had experienced
-when giving the bread of life to such men. Now all had grown worse. The
-evil which had then shown itself, bursting the few chains which kept it
-down, now broke forth with violence. The population was excited, angry,
-rebellious. It was no longer merely the profligacy of some individuals;
-there was general perplexity, disturbance, and confusion. The agitation
-was not confined to the coarser minds; some of the most cultivated were
-going beyond all bounds. The saying of a celebrated writer with respect
-to another city might be applied to Geneva, ‘The devil is let loose on
-this town: within the memory of man so frightful a time has not been
-seen.’
-
-[Sidenote: VIOLENCE OF PARTIES.]
-
-Was this the moment for celebrating the feast of peace? In the judgment
-of every sensible man it would have been an absurdity. If a feast is
-to be held on board ship, is it to be just when the whirlwind of the
-tempest strikes the vessel, when the sea-waves lift themselves up, when
-those on board shake and totter like a drunken man, while they go up to
-the heavens and down to the abysses? Is that the time for the dance to
-begin, and for the passengers gracefully to execute measured paces, to
-the sound of musical instruments? Or would anyone choose for attendance
-at a sweet and harmonious concert the moment when the hall is on fire?
-And yet it was proposed, in the midst of burning lawless passions,
-to have by force, by the decree of the magistrate, a display of holy
-things which would be nothing but a profanation.
-
-It cannot even be said, as is usually said, that the subject of
-excommunication was in question here. Not to give the supper at
-present did not mean that it should not be given afterwards. Calvin
-had given it. But it was not the time for it. _Non erat hic locus._
-The reformer acted with the wisdom of a physician who will not give
-leave to impatient sick folk to take a mountain journey; he will do
-so afterwards, when they have regained their strength, but not now.
-Perhaps there may be individuals among them who will never scale the
-rocks because they will never have the power to do so. But that has
-nothing to do with those who are whole. For the physician there will
-be no more lovely day than that on which, at the head of his party, he
-shall be able to breathe with his friends the keen and healthful air of
-the heights, which at an earlier period would have killed them. That
-joy, we say again, Calvin had once tasted.
-
-Calvin and Farel, having considered everything, took such a resolution
-as circumstances demanded; they would not give the supper on the
-following day, which was Easter Day. Having adopted this resolution,
-they communicated it to the authorities. ‘Farel and Calvin,’ says
-Rozet, ‘informed the council that they could not administer the supper
-_in the midst of these divisions, gangs, and blasphemies, and with
-profligacies multiplying around them_.’[625] Such was their motive
-clearly expressed. But they would do more than that. They had been
-prohibited from preaching. What! on this Easter Day should the doors
-of the churches be closed and the pulpit be dumb! Moreover, since
-they had refused to celebrate the supper, they owed to those whom God
-had confided to their ministry to give them their reasons. That was
-not for their harm but for their good, and they were bound to do it.
-Nevertheless, to occupy the pulpit on that day in defiance of the
-prohibition of the government, which was supported by the majority of
-the people, would be a grave affair for these two men, both feeble
-in body, the one in consequence of his labors, and the other by
-constitution. ‘But,’ said Calvin one day, recalling a saying of David,
-‘though _a camp, an army_, that is to say, everything which is terrible
-and appalling in the world, should rise up against us, though all men
-should conspire to destroy us, we have no fear of all their might, for
-the power of God is far greater. We shall not be entirely free from
-fear; if we were, it would rather be from stupidity than from courage.
-But we shall hold before us the shield of faith, lest our hearts should
-faint or fail through the terrors which beset us.’[626] A victory which
-the court of Turin, with the aid of Spain and of the pope, failed to
-gain over the senate and people of Geneva, these two feeble men attempt
-and win. Here was one of the most beautiful triumphs of which the cause
-of religious liberty engaged in a conflict with the despotism of the
-state can boast. It was more than that. It was Christian heroism which
-prefers the fulfilment of the will of God, with exile, to a comfortable
-abode in one of the fairest countries in the world, with a conscience
-sacrificed and a slavish submission to Cæsar in things pertaining to
-God. It was in this character that the two principal witnesses to
-Calvin’s life regarded it. ‘Thenceforth Calvin,’ says one of them, ‘as
-he was of a spirit essentially heroic, stoutly and steadily resisted
-the seditious, together with the aforesaid Farel.’[627]--‘Farel and
-Calvin,’ says the other, ‘each endowed with a noble and heroic spirit,
-openly declared that they could not celebrate in a religious manner the
-Lord’s supper, among citizens who were so miserably at variance with
-each other, and so opposed to all discipline in the church.’[628] The
-decay of Christian principle is the only possible explanation of the
-fact that some should have ventured a judgment on them, contrary to
-that which was pronounced by contemporaries.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
- CALVIN AND FAREL PREACH IN SPITE OF THE PROHIBITION BY THE
- COUNCIL.--THEY ARE BANISHED FROM GENEVA.
-
- (EASTER, 1538.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: APPROACH OF THE CRISIS.]
-
-The crisis was approaching. The danger was increasing. Geneva was
-in one of those perilous but decisive moments in which some sudden
-change takes place, whether for better or for worse. The population
-was getting more and more excited. The news that the ministers would
-not celebrate the supper in Geneva raised irritation to the highest
-pitch. All explanations were useless; many people would not listen to
-anything; anger had stopped their ears. It is said that in the evening
-the streets were in an uproar, and that bands of factious men were
-shouting against the ministers. It is even added that a masquerade had
-been organized for the purpose of presenting a parody of scenes from
-the Gospel. We are not sure that the libertines went to that length;
-but there was during the evening a great agitation in the town, as the
-next day too plainly showed. These scenes of tumult greatly grieved
-Calvin. If he turned his thoughts to the past, the great sorrows
-which he had already borne in Geneva appeared to him again; and he
-foresaw that those which were approaching would be more bitter still.
-Interfered with in the preaching of the Word, in the administration of
-the sacraments, in the maintenance of apostolical discipline and in
-the organization of the Church (the council refused its consent to the
-division of the town into parishes, a measure which would have greatly
-facilitated the discharge of pastoral duties, and have promoted the
-good of families), what was he to do? ‘I confess,’ he wrote, ‘that the
-first letters by which the senate endeavored to turn aside my will
-from the right path struck me a heavy blow.[629] I saw that I was thus
-again plunged into the distresses from which I had hoped that I was
-delivered by the great goodness of God. When I accepted the government
-of this Church, in conjunction with my excellent and most faithful
-colleague Farel, I applied myself in all good conscience to seeking
-out the means by which it might be maintained; and although it was for
-me a very laborious charge, I never thought of abandoning the place.
-I considered myself as set by the hand of God at a post from which
-I could not withdraw. And nevertheless, if I were to tell the least
-part of the cares, or rather of the miseries, which we were forced
-to endure throughout a whole year, I am sure that you would think it
-incredible.[630] I can assure you that not a day has passed in which I
-did not ten times wish for death.’[631] This Easter eve, when he was on
-the point of exposing himself to the greatest griefs, while giving unto
-God the honor which is due to him, was doubtless one of those days. He
-must drink the cup of the people’s wrath. He, the timid scholar, as he
-declares that he always had been, must now face these furious men. But
-one thought gave him strength; it is the will of God, and his will must
-be done.
-
-[Sidenote: EASTER SUNDAY.]
-
-Easter Sunday dawned. From early morning great agitation prevailed
-in the town. The adversaries and friends of the reformers were both
-troubled, but in different ways. The former were impatient to see
-if they would really preach notwithstanding the prohibition of the
-council, and to hear what they might have to say. The latter also were
-eager to go to divine service, either from a sentiment of piety or in
-order to defend the ministers in case, as some expected, there should
-be any disturbance in the churches. The movements of the multitude,
-the groups which were forming at various points, the violent speeches
-which were uttered from time to time, all were calculated to inspire
-fear. In timid souls there was also an inward trouble, an anxiety, and
-a heart-ache, inevitable under circumstances so grave. Men, women,
-and children, the roar of the crowd, and the confused voices of the
-people, filled the streets. Strange things were fancied, evil reports
-were circulated. One would almost have said, seeing the general stir,
-that some one was going to be led to execution. The crowd was drifting
-towards the places of execution. The inhabitants of the right bank
-betook themselves to the church of St. Gervais, in which Farel was to
-preach; those of the left bank and of the upper part of the town to the
-cathedral of St. Peter, where Calvin would preach. They entered the
-doors and filled the churches. The friends of the reformers took their
-places in general about the pulpit. Their adversaries, distributed
-over all parts of the building, and exchanging bold words with each
-other, asked themselves whether it was not their duty to aid the
-magistrate and prevent the ministers from speaking. The district on the
-right bank was that in which most of the opponents of the ministers
-lived. Probably some of their most violent enemies had come from
-other quarters to hear Farel, whose presence was less imposing than
-Calvin’s, and with whom they were more familiarly acquainted. The brave
-evangelist had not ceased for some years lavishing his powers for the
-good of Geneva, and for this they meant to pay him on this day. Farel
-appeared, entered the pulpit, and at the sight of him considerable
-excitement was manifested by the audience. No attempt, however, was
-made to close his mouth. The preaching of this popular orator at the
-present moment was a spectacle which interested them as much as or even
-more than any other. The prayer and the hymns being over, the discourse
-began. Farel, with his intrepid heart, his fervent spirit, his strong
-convictions, and his power of impressing and carrying away his hearers,
-did not conceal the truth. Without dwelling on the question of bread,
-which he declared was a secondary matter, he spoke of the holiness of
-the supper. He remonstrated with the people, as if they intended, in
-his opinion, to defile the holy sacrament,’[632] and he declared that,
-to prevent such a profanation, the holy supper would not be celebrated.
-These words moved the whole assembly, and roused a great part of them
-to indignation. Adversaries became disorderly, friends were in alarm.
-Imaginations were heated, anger burst forth, and outcries were heard.
-_In the morning a disturbance was got up against Farel in the church of
-St. Gervais._[633] But the preacher’s habit was to brave danger; and,
-above all, he knew no fear when unworthy men
-
- Voulaient du Dieu vivant braver la majesté.
-
-[Sidenote: DISTURBANCE AT ST. GERVAIS.]
-
-He therefore went on. His popular eloquence, his animated movements,
-his imagery so well adapted to make his ideas more lively and more
-obvious, his energetic gestures, his voice like thunder, the resounding
-of which, according to Theodore Beza, made his hearers tremble, made
-him the most captivating of the orators of France and Switzerland.
-Farel, who generally spoke extempore, could not but be struck at the
-spectacle which presented itself to him, for the congregation in such
-circumstances always reacts on the preacher. He was standing in the
-presence of a stormy sea, the surging waves of which appeared about
-to engulf him. But he felt that he stood on a rock, and he had learnt
-long ago to brave the tempest. He then courageously unfolded the act of
-accusation. He set forth those things which would profane the supper.
-He enumerated ‘those divisions, those bands, those blasphemies, those
-profligacies which were multiplying, and which made it impossible for
-the ministers to administer it.’[634] For a long time people could
-not listen to him without being charmed, but it was quite otherwise
-at this moment. Men’s minds were more and more agitated, hearts were
-rebellious, the opposition burst forth, voices changed by passion
-were heard, and the disturbance of which the chronicler tells filled
-the church of St. Gervais. Farel, however, kept the upper hand. His
-character and his action awed the rebels. His friends protected his
-departure, and he succeeded in reaching his own house unharmed.
-
-Meanwhile Calvin was preaching at St. Peter’s. What was passing there?
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN’S MORNING SERMON.]
-
-The worship appears to have been quiet and dignified; the scenes of
-St. Gervais, at any rate, were not repeated here. The quarter in which
-the cathedral stood, its imposing and solemn aspect, the composition
-of the congregation, the magistrates, who doubtless were present in
-large numbers, the grave countenance of the reformer, partly explain
-this decorum. But the character of his speech, calm, simple, rich
-in thought, luminous, and illuminating all the subjects of which he
-treated, concise, awe-inspiring, and convincing, without the vivid and
-popular flashes of Farel, doubtless contributed thereto to a great
-extent. Nevertheless Calvin kept back nothing. ‘We protest before
-you all,’ he said, ‘that we are not obstinate on the question about
-bread, leavened or unleavened; that is a matter of indifference which
-is left to the discretion of the Church. If we decline to administer
-the supper, it is because we are in a great difficulty which prompts
-us to this course.’ Then he spoke of the divisions, the bands of men,
-the blasphemies, the profligacies, disorders, abominations, mockery of
-God and his Gospel, the troubles and the sects which prevailed in the
-town. ‘For,’ he said, ‘in public, and without any kind of punishment
-being inflicted for it, a thousand derisive speeches have been uttered
-against the Word of God and likewise against the supper.’[635] He then
-stated unreservedly the motives which deterred him from celebrating
-the communion. But he does not appear to have gone further. He had
-doubtless more than once in his discourses transgressed the limits
-of moderation; but it seems that the solemnity of the occasion and
-the dignity of the pulpit led him to suppress those violent phrases
-with which his speech sometimes bristled. He had a difficult task
-to accomplish. He was bound to make these people understand the
-obligations imposed on them by the profession of Christianity. Every
-member of a society has, in fact, certain duties to discharge, which
-are essential to the very existence of the community; in the same
-way, every member of the Church owes to it an edifying and blameless
-life. Christians form but one body, and it is a matter of concern to
-each of its members that God should be honored in them all. Evident
-hypocrisy and shameless depravity, in any man making profession of
-being a Christian, are an injury to the whole Christian society. Union
-with God is incompatible with a state of sin; vice and virtue are two
-things which never go together. To regard as a trifle and a matter
-of indifference the implacable opposition which exists between truth
-and falsehood, between holiness and licentiousness, so that the one
-or the other may be pursued without any ground for preference, is the
-degradation of humanity and the scandal of scandals. If this mode of
-thought prevail, the Christian Church is in a state of suffering;
-it must be defended, it must be saved; and a Church unwilling to be
-defended would be in a very unhealthy condition. More than that, and
-Calvin frequently called it to mind, to maintain the necessity of a
-life conformed to the Word of God is of importance even to the man
-whose conduct is in opposition to his commandments. This necessity is
-insisted on not to destroy but to save him. ‘It is maintained in such a
-manner,’ said Calvin, ‘as to bring him back into the way of salvation,
-and the Church is quite ready to receive him as a friend. She must not
-exercise a too rigorous severity; she must not proceed strictly to
-extremities and show herself inexorable, but must rather come forward
-with gentleness. If this moderation be not carefully adhered to, there
-is danger that from correctors we should become executioners.’[636]
-
-These were Calvin’s principles. His discourse has not been handed down
-to us, but it is impossible to suppose that he did not speak according
-to his deepest convictions; and if he did so, that would partly account
-for the calmness with which he was listened to. He was, however,
-mistaken on one point, and this we cannot too fully acknowledge. At
-that time the Church and the state were everywhere almost confounded,
-so that ‘the state did not hesitate to intermeddle in many subjects
-which were within the province of the Church.’[637] This was
-particularly the case at Geneva. Of all the reformers, Calvin was the
-one who had it most at heart to establish the autonomy of the Church,
-and thereby a certain independence of the two societies. But, like his
-contemporaries, he adhered to the opinions of his own age and of those
-which had preceded it. The elements of Judaic discipline had, from the
-first century, trenched on the ground of Christian discipline. The
-Reformation doubtless effected everywhere a great change in this state
-of things; but still the state was seen, even at Geneva, thrusting its
-iron arm into the midst of the Christian societies for the purpose of
-striking the guilty. That is a coarse and fatal error, one which every
-true Christian must energetically cast from him. Fortunately there
-could be no question on this point in the great conflict of Easter
-1538. The state was then for the moment separated from the Church, and
-the reformers did not and would not make use of any other weapons than
-those of the Spirit.
-
-[Sidenote: HIS EVENING SERMON.]
-
-If the reformer had been able to preach with tranquillity in the
-morning, it was to be otherwise in the evening. The most furious of
-his adversaries thought that they owed him something, and in their
-wrath meant to discharge the debt. So long as they had had to do
-only with the good-natured Farel, matters had gone on pretty well,
-notwithstanding his lively sallies; but this young man from Noyon was
-a spirit of a different stamp, and since he came to Geneva everything
-had changed. He had a methodical intellect and the faculty for
-organization. Had he not prepared a fundamental law of the Church, to
-which they had been obliged to take the oath at St. Peter’s? He wanted
-to regulate everything, and this was not convenient. Since Farel had
-been attacked, it was not fair to let Calvin escape. An uproar had
-been made in the morning at St. Gervais; another shall be made in the
-evening at the church of St. Francis at Rive. It was in that convent
-that Farel had for the first time appeared in the pulpit, March 1,
-1534; and there Calvin was to preach, April 21, 1538. The quarter in
-which this convent stood was situated in the lower part of the town,
-not far from the shores of the lake, and it was probably less quiet
-than the neighborhood of the cathedral. The church was speedily filled,
-and Calvin arrived. He began his sermon. Knowing that Farel had been
-treated worse than himself, it is possible that, to leave no ground
-for reproaching himself, he might think it his duty to put a stronger
-emphasis on his words, and to lay stress on certain things, in order to
-make them observed and felt. For the rest, had he spoken like an angel,
-he would not have escaped the tumult. Men’s minds were irritated; the
-thought of resisting this inflexible man had seized on many, and made
-them frantic; they had even taken their swords, and had come to church
-as to a military parade. Violence often remains at first smouldering,
-silent, and makes no sign. It appears to have been so in this case; but
-at some word uttered by the preacher, it revealed itself in a sudden
-explosion. One would have said that a stormy wind passed over that
-crowd, and impressed on it a passionate movement. In the church of
-Rive there were violent speeches and threatening gestures. This was not
-all. In sight of that orator, whose dignity and power irritated them,
-the most furious drew their swords, and the flash of steel was seen in
-the sanctuary of peace. No one, it is true, directed the fatal edge at
-the throat of the orator. It appears, however, that a struggle took
-place between the friends and the enemies of the Reformation, and that
-arms were crossed; for the great magistrate of Geneva in the sixteenth
-century, Michel Rozet, felt bound to say in his chronicle that the
-affair passed off _without bloodshed_.[638] The syndic Gautier, too,
-looks on this fortunate circumstance as _a kind of miracle_. Thus,
-after having heard the firing of arquebuses, fifty or sixty times in
-the course of the evening, against his own house, the reformer at this
-hour saw glittering swords brandished against him in the very house of
-God. Luther and other reformers were also tried by such tribulations,
-but in their case they came from the pope and his adherents, not from
-people of their own Church. Was Calvin agitated, or did he remain calm
-in the presence of this outbreak? We do not know. It is probable that,
-while inwardly agitated, he preserved an outward calmness. While some
-of his friends gathered around the pulpit to defend him, there were
-happily found a few moderate men, belonging to both sides, who exerted
-themselves to restore peace, to check the outbursts of passion, and
-to bring to reason those excited men who were dishonoring by their
-violence the temple of the Lord. Gradually feeling calmed down, speech
-became less violent, swords were returned to their scabbards, and
-the storm was laid. The friends of Calvin accompanied and conducted
-him safe and sound to his abode, which was not far off. ‘And in the
-evening, at Rive,’ says the syndic Rozet, ‘a disturbance broke out
-against Calvin. Swords were drawn; but it was all quelled.’
-
-[Sidenote: DISTURBANCE AT RIVE.]
-
-The same day, after the services, the council met to deliberate on
-the occurrences of the day. Twelve members were present, and these
-were fully determined to punish, not the factious, but the reformers.
-Desirous that their resolutions should be passed by the highest
-authorities of the state, they decreed that the Council of the Two
-Hundred should assemble the next day, and the general council on the
-following day. They could hardly proceed more speedily.
-
-On April 22 the syndics set forth the facts before the Two Hundred,
-dwelling particularly on the subject of the bread, although the
-ministers had stated that that question had nothing to do with their
-resolution. The _bread_ seemed, therefore, to be merely used as a
-pretext. The syndics inquired of the Two Hundred whether they wished
-to adopt the ritual used at Berne. They replied in the affirmative.
-We have seen that the dominant party had obtained a majority in this
-council, and by what means they did so. The syndics next complained
-that the ministers had preached on Easter Day, although the magistrate
-had forbidden it, and they inquired whether they ought not to be
-committed to prison. The Two Hundred would not hear of imprisonment;
-but, with no less severity, they resolved to interdict the three
-ministers, Calvin, Farel, and Courault, from occupying the pulpit in
-the churches of the republic, and to order them to leave the city
-immediately upon the appointment of their successors. It is remarkable
-that, according to the Registers of the council, no mention was made
-either of the charges of licentiousness and blasphemy which Farel
-and Calvin had made in the pulpit, or of the refusal to celebrate
-the supper which had been the consequence. It is easy, however, to
-understand this silence. Those charges, were, undoubtedly, the most
-important fact in the conflict, and the magistrates, in omitting
-them, were straining at the gnat and swallowing the camel. Calvin
-said subsequently, but not with reference to this special instance,
-‘Hypocrites, while they do not hesitate to give themselves up to
-indulgence in the grossest vices, are all the more austere and rigorous
-in matters which are of comparatively slight importance; and while
-they make pretence in that way of humbling themselves before God, they
-proudly insult him to his face.’[639] Licentiousness and blasphemy were
-very unpleasant topics, and on them the council was not at all inclined
-to dwell. Besides, had these grievances been spoken of, there must have
-been an investigation, evidence must have been taken, and witnesses
-called; and all this would have been very troublesome, and have taken a
-long time. Even if the government had commenced proceedings against the
-pastors, to punish them for making those charges, it is very doubtful
-whether they would have gained their cause, at least in the judgment
-of impartial men. It was a far more simple and expeditious plan to
-insist on this single fact, that preaching had been prohibited to the
-ministers, and that nevertheless they had preached. This required no
-proof, for all the town had seen and heard them. It is quite evident
-that it was on this ground they were punished. The council stood on its
-right, but it was assuredly a case to which the saying applies, _Summum
-jus summa injuria_.[640]
-
-[Sidenote: DENIAL OF JUSTICE.]
-
-After these disorders, these stormy scenes, and the banishment of the
-reformers, what was likely to happen? The bond of religion, so powerful
-to keep in check criminal desires and actions, being once broken,
-would not confusion, already so great, overrun the unhappy city? Would
-not the evangelical faith be trampled under foot? Should we not find
-Protestants themselves willing to join the mass with the Gospel?
-Would not Rome conspire to reintroduce in Geneva ‘the old religion’?
-Would not political independence itself be endangered? Would not the
-enemies of the Reformation attempt to make some compact with Savoy,
-and would not Berne itself, to whose influence Calvin seemed to be
-sacrificed, imperil the Genevese liberties? These fears, alas, were
-only too well founded! Calvin, who had so rigorously resisted Farel
-when the latter pressed him to settle at Geneva, could not now make up
-his mind to abandon the place. He wished to remain there to contend
-with all his might against the dangers which he saw besetting the
-city. ‘We perceived very clearly,’ he said, ‘that in this extremity,
-the safety of the Church required that she should not be deprived of
-her leaders. We therefore labored to retain our ministry as if it
-had been a struggle for our own existence.’[641] Calvin was anxious
-at all cost to prevent any overturn or convulsion in the Church and
-in the State. He felt the necessity of enlightening the people, of
-making them understand the importance of moral conduct, Christian
-faith, and cordial union. ‘It appeared to him,’ said he, ‘far easier
-to uphold the Church at the moment when she was ready to fall, than
-to re-establish her when once she had fallen, and was as good as
-lost.’[642] He therefore claimed, and claimed instantly, to be allowed
-to give an account of his reasons to the general council. He would
-explain everything, and the right side would win. It is unjust to deny
-a man accused the opportunity of setting forth the reasons of his
-conduct. But all was fruitless. Were the syndics afraid that Calvin
-would convince the people, or that the people would insult Calvin? We
-cannot decide the point. However it might be, they refused him what
-was due to him. It was a denial of justice. They preferred to condemn
-him without a hearing. Neither his own representations nor those of his
-colleagues were of any avail. Party spirit went so far as to close the
-mouth of the most eloquent, the most profound, the most learned, the
-most sincere, and the most able man of the age.[643]
-
-The next day, April 23, the general council met in the cloisters of St.
-Peter’s to decide the fate of the reformers without having heard them.
-
- Le pire des états, c’est l’état populaire,--
-
-said great men of the seventeenth century.[644] We think
-otherwise in the nineteenth. It is nevertheless true that the people
-frequently disappoint the expectation formed of them, and deceive
-themselves. Every age has presented terrible examples of this. The
-people allow themselves to be easily influenced, and they rush headlong
-in the footsteps of those whom they have chosen for guides. This was
-what took place at Geneva. The syndics inquired of the people whether
-they wished to make use of unleavened bread at the supper, as was done
-at Berne, ‘without further dispute.’ The majority was in favor of
-unleavened bread, although they probably did not very clearly know what
-it meant. The syndics then informed the general council ‘that Farel,
-Calvin, and their colleagues had refused to obey the command of the
-magistrate; and inquired whether they would dismiss them or not.’ The
-‘greatest voice,’ that of the majority of the people, in accordance
-with the resolution of the Little and the Great Councils, determined
-that they must leave the city within the next three days. ‘Thus was
-it ordered, the greater number in the council overcoming the better
-part.’[645] Such a course adopted against the most eminent men at that
-time in Geneva, the only ones whose names have come down to posterity,
-and carried out without giving them a hearing, was one of those violent
-measures to which bad governments sometimes have recourse--a _coup
-d’état_.
-
-[Sidenote: ORDER OF EXPULSION.]
-
-Further, this same council deposed the secretary who had read the
-articles of reformation. This secretary was Claude Rozet, who had
-received the oath to the confession of faith on the famous day of July
-29, 1537. While banishing the three ministers, they wished to inflict
-a blow on at least one layman, and they made choice of the man who,
-in his official capacity, had established in Geneva the _articles of
-reformation_.[646]
-
-Orders were given to make known to the reformers without delay the
-decree of the people, and the head usher was appointed, without further
-ceremony, to discharge that office. This man, having reached Calvin’s
-house, told him that he was enjoined by decree of the general council
-‘to preach no more in the town, and to take his departure within the
-next three days.’[647] The reformer calmly made answer, ‘If we had
-served men, we should certainly be ill repaid; but happily for us we
-serve a greater master, who pays servants even what he does not owe
-them.’[648] The usher went next to Farel’s house. His reply to the
-announcement was, ‘Well and good; it is well, it is from God.’ In
-these words of the reformers there is a peace, firmness, and grandeur
-of soul which immediately strike those who read them, which some
-historians have called heroic,[649] and which no one has a right to
-call feigned.[650] Meanwhile the council was busied with other matters.
-
-The sorrow of Calvin, however, was deep. Feeling how great had been the
-goodness of God to him, he desired to be grateful for it. ‘Assuredly,’
-he said, ‘no small honor has been conferred on us, in that a leader so
-mighty--Jesus Christ--has placed us in the ranks of his servants. We
-are therefore the most unthankful of men if we do not devote ourselves
-entirely to his service.’[651] He had devoted himself to that work,
-and the voice of conscience told him that he must give account of
-every soul lost. Successes had from time to time gladdened his soul.
-‘Nevertheless,’ he said with sadness and alarm after his banishment,
-‘seditions occurred in the town, one after another, which caused us
-grief and agitation of no light order. And however timid, weak, and
-spiritless I confess myself to be by nature, I had, nevertheless, from
-the first beginnings to bear up against those impetuous waves.[652] I
-cannot express what trouble and distress filled my heart night and day;
-and every time that I think of it I still inwardly tremble.’ It was not
-only the recollection of the past that was grievous, but still more the
-prospect of the future; of the evils which might fall on Geneva, and of
-the great injury which might be done to the Reformation if the torch,
-which ought to cast its rays all around on France, on Italy, and on
-other lands, should be miserably extinguished. This was burden enough
-to weigh down the strongest soul.
-
-On April 25th Courault was set at liberty, and on the following day,
-probably, the three pastors quitted Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: A PREDICTION OF BONIVARD.]
-
-[Sidenote: JOY AND GRIEF.]
-
-Thus was fulfilled a prophecy of Bonivard, uttered ten years before. It
-will be remembered that in 1528 some of the Genevese, who were desirous
-of the Reformation only that they might get rid of the priests, with
-their vices and their superstitions, having declared to the prior
-of the depraved ecclesiastics of St. Victor that they wished to put
-in their place ministers of the Gospel who would introduce a true
-Christian Reformation, Bonivard replied to them, ‘If you wish to reform
-others, ought you not in the first place to reform yourselves? Animals
-that live on the same meat naturally hate one another. It is just the
-same with us. We are unchaste; so are you. We are drunkards; you are
-the same. We are swearers, blasphemers; so are you. You want to drive
-us away, you say, to put Lutheran ministers in our place.... Gentlemen,
-take great care what you undertake to do. According to their doctrine,
-a man will be prohibited from gaming and from giving himself up to
-debauchery, and that under a heavy penalty. How that will vex you! You
-will not have had them for two years before you will regret us.’[653]
-Bonivard spoke candidly and even rudely, but his words fully confirm
-the testimony and the complaints of Calvin, of Farel, and of Rozet.
-It is all true, even to the time fixed by the prior--_not two years_.
-Farel and Calvin undoubtedly showed themselves in this business subject
-to human weaknesses. As they were both men of strong character, they
-easily stimulated each other to an inflexibility to which they were
-naturally inclined. Calvin himself tells us that the prudent Bucer,
-at a later period, wished that they should not live together, lest
-the influence which they had over each other should be hurtful to
-them.[654] They have said themselves that they might have displayed
-more gentleness. But it is impossible not to acknowledge that they did
-what fidelity to the Gospel demanded of them. The question about the
-bread was a little pennant raised by the councils, in opposition to
-the great evangelical banner courageously borne by Calvin and Farel.
-The two classes of combatants in this warm affair were representatives
-of two systems which not only bore no resemblance to each other but
-were diametrically opposed. If the reformers had given way, the great
-cause of religion and of morals would have been injured, the dignity
-of their ministry lowered, and their activity for the extension of
-the kingdom of God in Geneva fettered, perhaps rendered impossible.
-Their compliance in such a case would have been not only blameworthy,
-it would have been blamed. It was for them the question of ‘To be or
-not to be.’ They were bound to strive to win the victory; and if they
-failed to conquer, then they were bound to suffer as witnesses to the
-rejected truth. They had neglected no means of scaling the citadel,
-and of planting on it their noble flag. They had failed, and it only
-remained for them to retreat, conquered and yet in reality conquerors;
-for they had not drawn back one step in the battle, and had thus
-prepared the day of triumph. Leaving behind them the city, with its
-tumult, its menaces, insults, and deeds of violence, Farel and Calvin
-set out for Berne. It was at the end of April. As they passed along
-the shores of the lake in the midst of the beautiful and peaceful
-scenes of nature, they felt greatly relieved. Escaped from those narrow
-walls within which their hearts had been torn with grief and broken
-with sadness, they once more breathed freely. A pure and keen air was
-around them instead of that heavy and thick atmosphere, and it gave
-them new life. ‘When, on occasion of certain troubles, I was driven
-away,’ said Calvin, ‘I did not find in myself such magnanimity as not
-to rejoice more than was meet--that then and by that means I was at
-liberty.’[655] There was in him, however, no murmuring, no bitterness.
-He had learnt many lessons in the midst of that agitation, especially
-that of self-renunciation. ‘As soon as one becomes a self-seeker,’ he
-said at that period, ‘contests begin: the true principle of action
-for a soldier is to lay aside all pride, and to depend entirely on
-the will of his chief.’[656] The will of his chief was that he should
-quit Geneva, and he quitted it; in this very dependence realizing the
-highest independence. Stripped and wounded, like the man who went
-down to Jericho, he felt the Lord near him, who bound up his wounds
-and poured in oil and wine. ‘Let us remember,’ said he further, ‘that
-declaration of Jesus Christ, that no one can inflict a wound on one of
-his little ones but he regards it as inflicted on himself.’[657] Then
-glancing towards the friends to whom they were going, ‘We have turned
-towards you, brethren,’ said he, ‘towards you who have been set to feed
-the churches of Christ, under the influence of the Holy Spirit. Ah! if
-it be under the guidance of the same prince, against the same enemy,
-in the same war, and in the same camp that we fight, shall we not be
-greatly stimulated in our endeavor after agreement and harmony?’[658]
-He did not lose courage even with respect to the Reformation. ‘The
-Church,’ he said, ‘is not wearied, distressed, or overthrown by
-these struggles and fightings; on the contrary, she derives strength
-from them, she begins to flourish, she is consolidated by new
-developments.’[659] Such, indeed, was the fruit borne by this great
-trial. ‘Events have shown,’ said Theodore Beza, ‘that the providence
-of God appointed these dispensations, to the end that his servant, by
-means of various experience, might be fitted for greater things; and
-that while seditious men destroy themselves by their own violence, the
-Church of Geneva might be purified from all stains.’[660]
-
-Poor blind Courault did not feel strong enough to follow his two
-colleagues, and therefore took refuge with Fabri, who was pastor at
-Thonon, on the lake of Geneva.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
- GREAT CONFUSION IN GENEVA.--THE COUNCIL OF BERNE MAKES A FRUITLESS
- INTERVENTION.
-
- (END OF APRIL, 1538.)
-
-
-Meanwhile, the friends of the Gospel in Geneva had received a very
-severe blow, which had fallen on them in an unexpected way. Many were
-plunged into excessive grief; some lost all hope of ever seeing the
-Gospel honored in that turbulent city. Some mourned silently, others
-spoke their grief aloud. The most pious of them undoubtedly expected
-from the faithfulness of God that restoration of faith, order, and
-prosperity for which they longed so ardently. But ‘all good men,’ says
-Beza, ‘saw with great pain their three pastors, in obedience to the
-edict of banishment,’[661] depart from that town to which they had
-desired to do so much good; and with regretful eyes, or with tender
-thoughts, they followed them as if they could not part with them.
-
-[Sidenote: GREAT CONFUSION IN GENEVA.]
-
-The vulgar and mischievous demonstrations by which the most lawless
-part of the population celebrated its triumph still further aggravated
-the grief of serious men. The discomfiture of the pastors was laughed
-at and turned into ridicule. Professional jesters have almost all a
-false and superficial wit, and in every country it rains insects of
-this kind.[662] They were not wanting at Geneva. We do not know whether
-they went on the stage, but they played in masquerades. Large bodies of
-these jesters were seen parading the streets, laughing, brawling, and
-making disturbances. One of them, and he was the principal personage,
-was holding a fryingpan by its long handle; and in the fryingpan were
-lamp-wicks, which were called in the patois of the country _farets_.
-Those who surrounded this standard-bearer exclaimed that they had
-fricasseed _Farel_ (and his colleagues with him) like chickens or
-turnips which are cut in pieces and then cooked in a stewpan. These
-poor wretches were at bottom right: the ministers had in fact been
-burned over a slow fire. _Bons mots_ and sarcasms gave a relish to this
-strange dish; and there were persons in those days who would have been
-glad to see the ministers who left Geneva ‘fall out of the fryingpan
-into the fire’--from one state of vexation into another still worse.
-Insults and derision were showered from all quarters. ‘Processions
-of this sort usually end in debauchery. The citizens took license,’
-says Rozet, ‘for impurity, dancing, games, and drunkenness.’ ‘Nothing
-was talked of but masquerades, gallantries, and excesses in wine and
-good cheer.’[663] Thus did the mass of the population celebrate the
-departure of the pastors. ‘The wicked travaileth with iniquity, and
-hath conceived mischief, and brought forth falsehood.’
-
-As for the members of the councils, they let things take their course.
-If they did issue any proclamation for the purpose of repressing these
-disorders, little attention was paid to it. Besides, they did not
-insist on its being obeyed. They attempted, however, to establish a
-Church of some kind. The minister, Henri de la Mare, had not dared,
-in spite of the order which he had received, to preach and administer
-the supper on Easter Day, for fear of offending Farel and Calvin.
-But, like the former superior of the Franciscans Jacques Bernard,
-he had abstained from joining in their protest. These two men were
-intrusted by the council with the functions of the three banished
-ministers. At the same time the lords of Berne were requested to send
-the ministers Marcourt and Morand, who did not come till afterwards.
-The magistrates also ordered the restoration of the baptismal fonts
-which had been taken down, and which were thenceforth to be used at
-the baptism of children. Then they had proclamation made, with sound
-of trumpet, that everyone would have to conform to what had been
-decreed touching the supper, baptism, festivals, etc. But De la Mare
-and Bernard were not men powerful enough to fill the place of Farel
-and Calvin. They were far from enjoying high consideration, and were
-frequently exposed to the criticism and even to the rebukes of their
-hearers. Porral especially made loud complaint of their preaching. The
-council took their part; and one Groli having accused Bernard of not
-preaching according to the Word of God, the critic was condemned ‘to
-beg for mercy at the hands of God and of the law, _with both knees on
-the ground_.’ Had this happened in the time of Calvin, it would have
-been a very godsend for those who delight in slandering that great
-man; but the punishment was inflicted by his adversaries on one of
-his partisans. The question, however, remains ever the same; and this
-act of compulsion in the sphere of religious opinion was even more
-censurable because it was the act of the very men who had driven away
-the reformers for having attempted to infringe on their liberty. There
-were, however, some cases more quietly settled. An influential citizen,
-the former syndic Porral, having also criticised the preachers, the
-council did nothing more than threaten him with its _indignation_; he
-had not _to go down on his knees and beg for mercy_.
-
-[Sidenote: THE REFORMERS AT BERNE.]
-
-The exile of the two great reformers and this lamentable state of
-things, which rejoiced the men of the Romish party, everywhere filled
-the friends of the Reformation with sorrow. They wept over ‘the great
-joy of the Pharisees and of the enemies of God’s holy name.’ There were
-groans, prayers, and exclamations. ‘How is it that this town, which the
-Son of God had chosen as his abode and his sanctuary, was nevertheless
-as deeply sunk in its pollutions as before, just as if no single
-drop of God’s grace had ever fallen upon it?’[664] People thought
-of Capernaum, which was at first lifted up to heaven and then cast
-down to hell! Calvin perceived that the causes which had led to his
-exile endangered not only the progress but the very existence of the
-Reformation. Terrified at the peril, he was resolved to do his utmost
-to prevent such a calamity.
-
- Où le danger est grand, c’est là que je m’efforce.
-
-Will not the Churches and even the States of Switzerland sympathize
-in their trials? Will they not help them to save Geneva? If Roman
-Catholicism were reëstablished there and if by that means Savoy should
-become predominant, the Reformation in Berne and the other cantons
-would be more or less menaced, and the Pays de Vaud might return to
-its former lords. Calvin, assuredly, might have elsewhere a more
-peaceful and comfortable life than at Geneva; but he had decided to
-‘lose his life,’ and had given it up for God and his kingdom. This
-town, in which he hoped to raise the standard of the Gospel, might have
-become one day a fortress whose formidable front would have repelled
-the combined attacks of the enemy. And now he has to abandon it. He
-hastened to Berne, where he expected to obtain assistance, as formerly
-the Bertheliers and the Besançon Hugh had done, when threatened by the
-forces of Savoy.
-
-[Sidenote: THE COUNCIL OF BERNE.]
-
-The arrival of the two reformers created a sensation in that town. At
-the sight of that Farel whose labors in French Switzerland had been
-for ten years crowned with such signal success; of that Calvin who
-was already hailed as a master-spirit; of those two men banished,
-driven away, having no refuge, men’s minds were struck and their
-hearts touched. The Bernese magistrates themselves had not anticipated
-measures so extreme. Admitted to the council April 27, the reformers
-said,--‘We have been falsely accused. The Genevese (_Messieurs de
-Genève_) have brought forward two charges: the one that we have
-rebelled against their commands, and the other that we have refused
-to conform to the ceremonies in use at Berne. These accusations are
-both false; for we have done all that we could to obey them, and never
-did we directly refuse such conformity, but on the other hand we have
-rather protested our willingness to consider in what manner it could
-best be arranged for the edification of the church. Further, it is
-evident that these accusations are a mere cloak, for these gentlemen
-were prepared to consent that this affair of ritual should be postponed
-till the assembly at Zurich, on condition that we would consent to
-our colleague Courault being deprived of his office as preacher. But
-to this, as contrary to the express word of Scripture, we refused to
-agree. On Easter Day we protested that if we did not administer the
-supper it was not on account of the unleavened bread, the use of which
-is in itself a matter of indifference, but for fear of profaning a
-mystery so holy,--unless the people were better disposed. The reason
-we gave was this,--the disorders and abominations prevailing at this
-time in the town, as well execrable blasphemies and mockings of God and
-of his Gospel, as disturbances, sects, and divisions. In public, and
-unrepressed, a thousand derisive speeches are uttered against the Word
-of God and even against the supper. And, more than that, the members
-of the council have all along refused us leave to state our reasons;
-and, without hearing us, they have stirred up against us both the Two
-Hundred and the people, making charges against us which are not true
-either in God’s sight or in the sight of men. By acting thus they show
-plainly that they are only seeking for slanders and scandals to defame
-the Gospel. And it is a fact that, six months ago, there was a rumor
-at Lyons and at other places in France of such a nature that some
-merchants were desirous of selling goods for large sums _payable when
-we should be expelled_!... From this it appears that there are secret
-intrigues of long standing. Likewise they are not content with loading
-us with ignominy, but they have several times exclaimed that we should
-be thrown into the Rhone.’ The reformers having thus spoken handed in a
-memoir in which the same grievances were set forth.[665]
-
-This discourse was severe; but the evil was great. It is useless to
-deny it; the evidence is too positive. All the people, indeed, were
-not guilty of these disorders and mockeries; but it happened then, as
-it too often happens, that the agitators took the upper hand and good
-men held their peace. We must also observe what Calvin said, that he
-feared a profanation of the mystery of the supper, _unless the people
-were better disposed_. He allows, therefore, a better disposition of
-the people; he desires it; and then, he is certainly ready to celebrate
-the sacred feast. As to his assertion that his colleagues and he
-_had done all that in them lay_ to obey the magistrates, he indicates
-clearly thereby that something _did not lie in their power_; to wit,
-to act against their conscience and the command of God. Many in their
-own time blamed them for this; but who now will make it a matter of
-reproach? The most strenuous upholders of the union of church and state
-say themselves, ‘That no state authority ought to interfere with any
-man’s religious belief. If such a principle were really involved in
-the maintenance of an established church, I should probably have been
-found on the other side.’[666] No man, in our days, will censure the
-reformers. In maintaining the independence of the faith, they did what
-they were bound to do.
-
-The council of Berne, which was not swayed by passion, like that of
-Geneva, saw clearly into these matters, and was impressed with a sense
-of the danger which was impending over their allies. Without loss of
-time, they wrote the same day to their ‘singular good friends and
-loyal fellow-citizens’: ‘Masters G. Farel and Calvin have this day
-appeared before us and made the complaints comprised in the enclosed
-schedule. We heard them with much sorrow of heart, for if these things
-have actually taken place, they cause great offence and will turn _to
-the dishonor of the Christian religion_. For this cause we earnestly
-beg you, and in brotherly affection admonish and require you, to
-abate the severity with which you deal with Farel and Calvin, for the
-love of us and to avoid scandal. What we wrote touching conformity in
-matters of ceremonial, we wrote from affection and not by any means
-to constrain you. But you must know _that the troubles which exist at
-the present time in your town, and the rigorous treatment which you
-adopt towards your preachers, have been very offensive to us, and
-that our enemies are greatly rejoiced at it_. Herein you will do us
-a most welcome favor.’[667] This was the view of the lords of Berne,
-themselves opponents of Calvin; and they might have a grudge against
-him, particularly in this business, on the subject of unleavened bread.
-But their views were loftier, wiser, and more profoundly religious and
-politic than those of Richardet and his friends.
-
-[Sidenote: REPLY OF THE GENEVESE COUNCIL.]
-
-On receiving this letter the council of Geneva was still more excited
-than that of Berne had been. The angry feelings which actuated its
-members and which had led them to banish the reformers were not yet
-soothed; and, as it has been remarked, their reply was of such a nature
-as was to be expected from men dominated by passion.[668] They wrote
-to Berne that they considered ‘very strange’ the complaints which were
-sent to them; that they ‘could not imagine how Farel and Calvin were
-so bold as to make untrue statements to their Excellencies; that there
-was no great discord in their town, for on the previous Sunday the
-supper had been observed, according to their own ceremonial, by a great
-number of people, all of one mind.’ Which amounted to this--that the
-pastors having been driven away without a hearing, their hearers being
-intimidated, and the party opposed to the Gospel triumphant, uniformity
-prevailed by means of violence and of fear. This is, indeed, the usual
-result of a _coup d’état_.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
- SYNOD OF ZURICH.--THE BERNESE AMBASSADORS CONDUCT CALVIN BACK
- TO GENEVA.--HE CANNOT ENTER THE TOWN.
-
- (END OF APRIL TO END OF MAY, 1538.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL AND CALVIN AT ZURICH.]
-
-Farel and Calvin did not allow themselves to hesitate by reason of the
-obduracy of their enemies. They were determined to do all they could
-to save the Church and likewise the town of Geneva from the calamities
-which, in the opinion of good men in Switzerland, must certainly fall
-upon them. The synod of the reformed Churches of this country, to the
-decision of which they had appealed, was now sitting at Zurich. They
-went thither without delay, to inform the assembly of the important
-events which had taken place at Geneva, and to claim its mediation. The
-deputies of Basel, Berne, Schaffhausen, St. Gall, Glaris, Mulhausen,
-and Bienne, in conjunction with the doctors of Zurich, constituted the
-assembly, which sat from April 29 to May 3. Bucer and Capito had also
-come from Strasburg to be present at it. The principal business of the
-synod was the union with Luther, who at that time showed a conciliatory
-disposition. All the members, except Kunz, the Bernese deputy, received
-the two exiles with true Christian cordiality. It appears that Farel
-and Calvin found relief and relaxation in this meeting of brethren.
-From their life at Geneva, constantly in the presence of violent
-adversaries, they had probably experienced a kind of moral tension. But
-the loyal affection of the Swiss allowed their minds to unbend, and
-their souls expanded in the sunshine of charity. After being engaged
-on matters relating to the _Concordia_ of Wittenberg, the synod passed
-on to the subject of rites, and decided that with respect to them the
-Churches ought to retain full liberty--a resolution favorable to Calvin
-and Farel. After settling this point, the synod took into consideration
-the state of Geneva. Calvin laid before it the divisions and troubles
-which afflicted the Church, the forlorn condition to which the good
-Christians were reduced, and the dangers to which the Reformation was
-there exposed. He displayed no obstinacy with respect to subordinate
-points, but immovable firmness on those which he believed to be
-indispensable to the prosperity of Geneva. He readily assented to the
-use of baptismal fonts; and also, he added, the introduction ‘into
-our Church of unleavened bread; but,’ said he, ‘we desire to request
-of the Bernese that this bread should be broken.’[669] The act of
-_breaking bread_, according to the institution and the practice of the
-apostles, appeared to him essential to the symbol which was intended to
-commemorate the body of the Lord offered in sacrifice. He felt somewhat
-perplexed about the question of the festivals; but he gave his consent
-to four of them, on condition that any persons who might desire it
-should be at liberty to work after the service. He was anxious not to
-open the door to the uproar and licentiousness which characterize the
-Roman populations during the latter part of those festival days.[670]
-He continued: ‘If there be any thought of reëstablishing us at Geneva,
-we demand first of all that we should be allowed to clear ourselves
-of the calumnies which have been heaped on us. We have been condemned
-unheard, and that,’ said he, ‘is an inhuman, a barbarous proceeding,
-not to be tolerated.[671] Next, it will be essential to establish
-discipline, for want of which all that we may restore would soon be
-overthrown. We demand that the town should be divided into parishes,
-for no order is possible in the church unless the flock be near its
-pastor, and the pastor near his flock. We demand that a seasonable use
-of excommunication should be allowed; and that, for this purpose, the
-council should select in the several quarters of the town upright and
-wise men to whom, by common consent, its control should be intrusted.
-We demand that in the institution of pastors legitimate order should
-be maintained, and that the authority of the magistrate should not
-supersede the laying-on of hands, which ministers ought to receive. We
-demand a more frequent administration of the supper; that it should be
-celebrated, if not according to the custom of the early Church,[672]
-at least once a month. We demand that with the public preaching should
-be joined the singing of psalms. Finally, we demand that, as our own
-townsmen bring forward the example of the countries which are subject
-to Berne in justification of lascivious songs and dances,[673] the
-Bernese should be entreated to put an end to such profligacy in their
-own states, in order that our people may not take advantage of it to
-justify themselves in similar excesses.’
-
-[Sidenote: THEIR MODERATION.]
-
-The above articles, fourteen in number, were in Calvin’s handwriting,
-but they were read to the synod by Bucer.[674] Calvin and Farel were
-probably unwilling to put themselves too forward, and preferred to have
-the question settled on its merits, independently of their personal
-leaning; and they selected the most moderate of the theologians of
-the period to be its exponent. Calvin was not a man to exalt himself
-in the feeling of his own righteousness; he knew by experience that
-‘in many ways we offend all.’ ‘We know,’ he said afterwards to Farel,
-when speaking to him of what had just taken place, ‘we know that
-our adversaries cannot calumniate us to any further extent than God
-permits, and we know the end which He has in view in permitting it at
-all. Let us therefore humble ourselves; unless we choose to contend
-with God because He humbles us;[675] but let us not cease to wait on
-Him. “The crown of pride, the drunkards of Ephraim, shall be trodden
-under foot,” said the prophet (Isaiah xxviii. 3). Let us acknowledge
-before God, and before his people, that it is to some extent owing to
-our incompetency, indolence, carelessness, and mistakes that the Church
-committed to our care has fallen into so lamentable a condition. But
-let us also maintain, as it is our duty to do, our own innocence and
-purity against those who by their fraud, malignity and wickedness have
-certainly caused this ruin.’[676] Calvin, in charging himself with
-indolence, assuredly went too far. But it was not to his colleague only
-that he spoke in this way; he did not hesitate to express the same
-views before the synod. While depicting the dangers of Geneva, ‘the
-destruction which seemed to threaten’ the edifice reared by Farel and
-himself, ‘We openly acknowledge,’ he said to the deputies of the Swiss
-Churches assembled at Zurich, ‘that in some things we have perhaps been
-too severe, and on those points we are ready to listen to reason.’[677]
-
-The synod did not censure the reformers. It advised them, indeed,
-to use ‘moderation and Christian gentleness, necessary with that
-uncultivated people;’[678] but it acknowledged that, far from
-displaying obstinacy in unimportant matters, the reformers in their
-fourteen articles demanded only what is just, legitimate and important.
-It is true that a Christian ought not to be appointed minister by the
-mere decree of a council of state, but, after examination, by the
-laying-on of hands of the elders or pastors. It is true that a more
-frequent celebration of the Lord’s Supper was according to the Word of
-God. The subject of greatest delicacy was excommunication. But could
-not the Genevese commit the management of it _to upright and discreet
-laymen_, elected by the councils, themselves an elected body? The good
-sense of the Swiss told them that men entirely destitute of Christian
-character ought not to form part of a Christian society.
-
-[Sidenote: THE JUSTICE OF THEIR CAUSE.]
-
-Not one of the theologians present at the synod seems to have taken
-the cause of Calvin more to heart than the man who, with Melanchthon,
-was perhaps the most cautious of the reformers, Capito. A man of
-naturally gentle spirit, he had nevertheless displayed courage in
-recalling Luther to moderation, and in doing the same afterwards with
-respect to his colleague of Strasburg, Mathias Zell. He approved of
-the course of Farel and Calvin; he even set himself to console them.
-‘There is nothing disgraceful,’ he said to them, ‘in your banishment,
-and we have no fear that it will prove hurtful to the Church. Your
-enemies themselves only reproach you with too much warmth of zeal.
-Unhappily, there are not wanting ministers who teach the Gospel without
-discipline; who prefer to hold an office which they treat as nothing
-more than an office that yields profit. This leads to license instead
-of the liberty of Christ.[679] Discipline is necessary to the Churches.
-Some persons fancy that what each man may do is no concern of ours;
-as if Christ had not said that if a man has a hundred sheep, and only
-one of them go astray he must go in search of it. What! because the
-authority of the papacy has been cast off, must the power of the Word
-and of the ministry be treated as likewise abolished? Some one may
-say, I know enough of the Gospel; I can read; what do I want with you?
-Preach to those who wish to hear you! Ah! discipline is a thing to
-which our Churches are not accustomed, a thing which flesh and blood
-detest. Ought we then to wonder that you have not been able, you two
-alone, to reform at once a town so large?’[680]
-
-The assembly therefore approved the fourteen articles presented by
-Calvin and Farel, and then ‘declared the causes of their banishment
-from Geneva to be not legitimate.’[681] In the eyes of these Swiss
-Christians assembled at Zurich, these two exiles were the glory of
-the Reformation; doctors whose praise was in all the Churches; two
-of the prime movers in the great transformation which was being
-effected in Christendom. The honor, the duty of the Christians of
-Switzerland, demanded that these pious and illustrious men, victims
-of passions hostile to the Gospel, should be restored to the position
-in which God had set them. The synod, therefore, wrote to Geneva, and
-earnestly requested measures adapted to raise the Church up again,
-and particularly the recall of the pastors. At the same time, it
-recommended the Bernese, and especially Kunz, to support this request;
-and Kunz accepted the charge. Zurich being desirous likewise of doing
-something, Bullinger wrote on the subject, May 4, to the provost de
-Watteville. Farel and Calvin then returned to Berne, disposed to endure
-with patience and meekness, but at the same time full of hope.[682]
-
-A man of whose ill-will they had already had experience was soon to
-disturb their joy. Kunz, who had been first a pastor at Erlenbach,
-had contributed to the Reformation in the lower Siebenthal. He was,
-so far as we can learn, born of a well-to-do family of peasants
-of those parts,[683] and had retained a certain rusticity and
-coarseness. A partisan, of energetic character, passionately earnest
-for everything that concerned the cause which he had embraced, blind
-and unjust towards the opposite opinions, with no kindly feeling for
-his adversaries, he fell easily into the indulgence of animosities,
-jealousies, and quarrels; and had sometimes as much trouble to get
-on with those of his own party as to endure those who belonged to
-the other side. With reference to the matter in hand, his hostility
-had to his mind an excuse. If he warmly opposed Calvin and Farel,
-it was because the slight interest which they felt in the question
-about unleavened bread and in other analogous questions might, in
-his opinion, annoy the Germans, whose indefatigable champion in
-Switzerland he had constituted himself. He had appeared to share the
-sentiments expressed to Calvin and Farel by the synod of Zurich, which
-was unanimous in their favor. He had no wish, in the presence of so
-considerable an assembly, to give way to his personal hatred. But the
-reformers were to lose nothing by this reserve. He awaited them at
-Berne. There Kunz would be on his own ground, and let the adversaries
-of human traditions beware!
-
-[Sidenote: HOSTILITY OF KUNZ.]
-
-Calvin and Farel, when they reached Berne, did not find Kunz there.
-They had to wait for him eight days.[684] He was at Nidau, at a meeting
-of pastors before whom, forgetting the solemn promise which he had made
-at Zurich,[685] he had said, ‘I have been requested to go to Geneva
-to restore those exiles; but I would much rather renounce my ministry
-and quit my country than assist those men who, I know, have treated
-me frightfully.’ This delay, considering the present position of the
-two reformers, put their patience to the proof. They waited, however,
-convinced that the blame would be thrown on them if the business failed
-in consequence of their departure. When at length they heard of the
-arrival of Kunz, they went to his house, and found him in company with
-Sebastian Meyer and Erasmus Ritter. There, in his own house, he let
-himself out at his ease. He began with long complaints and finished
-with violent insults.[686] Calvin and Farel, who had not anticipated
-this outburst, received it, however, quietly; for they knew that if
-they answered him with any sharpness, the only effect would be to throw
-the hotheaded Kunz into a great fit of rage.[687] Ritter and Meyer
-joined with them in the endeavor to pacify him. When he was a little
-calm, he said to them, ‘I wish to know whether you ask me to interfere
-in your business; for I foresee that if it should end otherwise than
-as you desire, you will blame me for it.’ They assured him three times
-over that they had no intention of changing anything in the mission
-with which the synod had charged him and which he had accepted. But
-they talked to no purpose. Kunz, who was very desirous to be freed from
-that duty, went on incessantly harping on the same string. At last,
-exhausted with his passion and wearied with the noise that he had made,
-‘I will do,’ said he, ‘what I ought to do.’ They then parted, agreeing
-to discuss the subject on the following day.
-
-[Sidenote: HIS WRATH.]
-
-The next day, then, at the hour appointed, Calvin and Farel went to the
-Hôtel de Ville. They had to wait two hours. Then word was brought to
-them that the ministers had too much business in the Consistory to be
-able to attend to them. After dinner the two Genevese reformers again
-presented themselves; and, the assembly having taken up the matter,
-they were very much surprised to hear that the first thing to do was to
-examine carefully the fourteen articles already approved by the synod
-of Zurich. They suppressed the feelings which this indignity excited
-in them and consented. There was hardly a syllable in the articles to
-which objection was not taken;[688] and when they came to the question
-of unleavened bread, Kunz lifted up his voice, and apostrophizing the
-two reformers, said, ‘You have disturbed all the Churches of Germany,
-which were till then at peace, by your unseasonable and passionate
-innovations.’ Calvin replied that it was not they who had introduced
-the use of leavened bread; that the practice existed in the early
-Church, and that traces of it were found even in the papacy. But
-Kunz would listen to nothing, and grew more and more violent.[689]
-His colleagues, wishing to put an end to this dispute, begged that
-they would pass on to the third article, which related to festivals.
-Thereupon matters became much worse. Kunz did not confine himself to
-loud talking; he rose violently from the table, and his whole body
-shook with rage, so that his colleagues attempted in vain to restrain
-him.[690] ‘It is false,’ said he, ‘that the articles have been approved
-at Zurich.’ ‘On that point we appeal,’ replied Calvin, with firmness,
-‘to the testimony of all who were present at the Synod.’ When Kunz had
-come a little to himself, he accused the two doctors of intolerable
-craft; the articles, he said, being full of exceptions. ‘We thought,
-on the contrary,’ Calvin very justly replied, ‘that we gave evidence
-of sincerity in thus plainly and openly making exceptions where they
-ought to be made.’ The two reformers withdrew with deep feeling from
-the strange scene which they had just witnessed. Two years afterwards,
-Farel still wrote to his friend, ‘Every time that the recollection of
-Kunz returns to my mind, I am filled with horror at that Fury who had
-no consideration for the Church, but whom the devil made beside himself
-with hatred against me.’[691] Kunz pretended that the two reformers
-wished to withdraw, and not to keep the promise made at Zurich. Calvin,
-on the contrary, said, ‘We are ready to do anything sooner than not try
-all means of providing for the wants of religion, and of acquitting
-ourselves of our duty towards the Church.’[692] As Kunz and his friends
-declined their mission, there was no one else to take the matter in
-hand but the senate of Berne.
-
-A few days later, Farel and Calvin were received by that body. The
-representations which the Bernese were to make at Geneva, in conformity
-with the decisions of the synod of Zurich, could not but be very
-disagreeable to those who wished to introduce the Bernese rites into
-that town. Must Berne plead against Berne? Did ever any one hear of
-such a thing? No state whatever voluntarily undertakes to discharge
-such a duty; and least of all a state which, like Berne, had the
-reputation of being positive and inflexible in its views. The council
-therefore attempted to induce Calvin and Farel to renounce their
-fourteen articles, but this they refused to do. They were then asked
-to retire. When they were recalled the same attempt was again made,
-three times over, within an hour.[693] ‘It belongs to the Church,’ they
-replied, ‘to establish uniformity in a lawful manner.’ It has already
-been established, said the council. ‘Yes,’ they answered, ‘but by a
-handful of seditious men, who at the same time cried that we should be
-thrown into the Rhone.[694] We are resolved to endure everything rather
-than seem to approve the measures adopted for securing uniformity.’
-Farel and Calvin could not answer otherwise: one cannot yield to evil.
-The Bernese council gave way; thus displaying on this occasion an
-independence and a sense of justice that were most honorable.
-
-[Sidenote: AGITATION IN GENEVA.]
-
-Having once more called in the reformers, the council announced to
-them that two envoys from the senate should accompany them, and that
-when they came within four miles of Geneva, Calvin and Farel should
-stop, while the Bernese lords go on their way. The place named by the
-Bernese was below the village of Genthod; this was perhaps at that time
-on the frontier. The deputies of Berne were to require of the council
-of Geneva the return of Farel and Calvin; and in case they obtained it
-they were to conduct them into the town, and to see to it that they
-were reinstated in their ministry. Farel and Calvin represented that
-if this course were taken they would seem to be restored only because
-they acknowledged themselves to be in the wrong, which they could not
-do. They complained also that no minister formed part of the embassy.
-The council, consequently, adopted a new resolution, according to
-which the two reformers should immediately enter the town, and the
-Bernese envoys should present to the people the fourteen articles
-of Zurich, in the presence of Farel and Calvin, in order that, if
-any objection should be raised, the latter might reply to it without
-delay. The reformers should then set forth their cause, and, if their
-justification were accepted, they should be restored to their offices.
-Two ministers, Erasmus Ritter and Viret, were to accompany them. ‘We
-are now setting out on our journey,’ wrote Calvin to Bullinger; ‘may
-it please the Lord to prosper it. To him we look to guide us in our
-goings, and it is from his wise disposal that we expect success.’[695]
-The delegation set out, and was joined by Viret at Lausanne.
-
-Meanwhile it had become known at Geneva that Calvin and Farel were
-returning, under the conduct and the patronage of delegates from the
-state of Berne. This news created much astonishment. What! these two
-ministers were banished for having refused to adopt the ritual of
-Berne, and now Berne takes them into her favor and brings them back!
-Berne appreciated the grandeur of the Reformation and the worth of
-the reformers. But there were some of the Genevese who could not
-see beyond their own walls, and who seemed to have no apprehension
-whatever of the great change which was renewing all Christendom, and
-of which Calvin and Farel were two of the most illustrious agents. The
-confirmation of the tidings caused a great stir in men’s minds. The
-council determined to refuse the reformers permission to enter the
-town, and the most violent of their adversaries resolved to oppose
-their return by force. An ambush was laid at some distance from the
-ramparts, and twenty gladiators, as Calvin calls them, were posted
-in arms at the very gate of the city, as if the repulse of a hostile
-force were intended.[696] The deputation was not more than a mile from
-Geneva when a messenger of the council met them.[697] He handed to
-the Bernese ambassadors a dispatch from the council, in which it was
-written, ‘To prevent a scandal, do not bring back Farel and Calvin, for
-it would be in violation of the decree passed by the community, and
-of the will of the same.’[698] But their conscience bore them witness
-that their cause was good, and they desired to get this acknowledged
-on the part of those whom God had committed to their care. They were
-therefore willing to pursue their journey, not suspecting what awaited
-them. But the Bernese delegates, who had doubtless been informed by
-the messenger of the excited state of the people, strongly urged them
-to give it up. ‘We should have gone on our way calmly,’ said Calvin
-to his friends, when he had heard of the violent measures taken to
-stop them, ‘if the delegates had not forcibly resisted our intention;
-and this saved our lives.’ The fact that their lives were in danger,
-attested by Calvin in a letter addressed to Bullinger a few days after
-the event, cannot be called in question. True, it is easy to invent,
-more than three centuries later, contrary hypotheses; but the state of
-agitation prevailing in Geneva, far from invalidating the testimony of
-the reformers, confirms it.
-
-[Sidenote: THE BERNESE EMBASSY.]
-
-The two Bernese ambassadors, accompanied by Viret and Ritter, entered
-Geneva alone, and were immediately received (May 23) by the council.
-They stated that the deputies of the cantons who met recently at Zurich
-had been unanimously of opinion that it was just to allow Farel,
-Calvin, and Courault to re-enter the town in order to explain and
-defend themselves from the accusations made against them; and that if
-their justification were accepted, their restoration to their offices
-could not be refused. ‘Do you not owe this mark of gratitude to them,’
-they said, ‘and especially to Farel, who has undergone so much labor
-and suffering for the good of this people? In short is it not essential
-to deprive the enemies of the Reformation of an occasion for rejoicing,
-as they would rejoice at the banishment without hope of returning of
-the men who established it in Geneva?’ The council replied that it
-could not accede to this demand, because the ministers had been sent
-away by the decision of the Council of the Two Hundred and of the
-general council; the Little Council having only required that they
-should be committed to prison. In consequence of this the Council of
-the Two Hundred was convoked for the next day, May 24. The attendance
-was not at all numerous, only fourteen members being present, doubtless
-because the meeting appeared to be a mere formality, and because
-the battle had to be fought and decided in the general council. The
-members present, among whom were the most thoroughgoing enemies of
-the reformers, decreed that the resolutions previously taken must be
-maintained; and for the rest, they referred the deputies of Berne to
-the assembly of the people.[699]
-
-On Sunday, May 26, the general council of the citizens met. Louis
-Amman and his colleague, Viret and Erasmus Ritter, appeared as
-advocates for the two banished ministers. Amman spoke first. He showed
-the great injustice involved in the banishment of these excellent
-men. They had to do with Farel, who was justly designated the apostle
-of French Switzerland, and with Calvin, the greatest theologian of
-the age. He earnestly requested that they should be recalled, and
-that, according to the rules of equity, their justification should be
-heard, for it was not usual for any man to be condemned unheard. He
-reminded them of the distinguished services of Farel, of the labors
-and hardships which he had undergone for the good of that people. Was
-it not Farel who, in 1532, standing in the midst of the council of
-priests, had seen them rush at him and knock him down with their blows,
-crying, ‘Kill him! kill him!’ One of their attendants had discharged
-his arquebuse at him, and he had been driven from the town with threats
-of being thrown into the Rhone. Since that time to what tribulations
-had he not been exposed! Was it not incumbent on the people of Geneva
-to testify their gratitude to him in some other way than by exile?
-Then Amman spoke of the joy which the adversaries of the Reformation,
-the subjects of the pope, would feel, and did already feel, to see
-Geneva banishing her reformers, and he conjured the citizens not to
-give them such an occasion of triumph and exultation. Next Viret spoke,
-in his own name and in the name of his colleague Ritter; and we know
-how well adapted the mild eloquence of this pious pastor was to soothe
-exasperated spirits. The union of the pastors and the seriousness of
-the ambassador in pleading the cause of the reformers did not fail to
-make an impression. A large assembly is always susceptible of wholesome
-impressions: there is in it a contagion of good. Hearts were moved, and
-the disposition of many was changed. It was possible for the deputies
-to suppose that the battle was won. As they were not to attend the
-deliberations of the general council, they went out full of hope.[700]
-
-[Sidenote: THE GENERAL COUNCIL.]
-
-But Kunz had spared no pains that this hope might be disappointed. It
-appears that Pierre Vandel, one of the leaders of the party hostile to
-the reformers, had been at Berne. Kunz had possession of the fourteen
-articles proposed by Calvin and approved at Zurich, which doubtless
-had been intrusted to him because the conduct of the business was
-especially placed in his hands. Some expressions made use of in them
-had seemed likely to irritate the people of Geneva. Kunz had placed
-the articles in the hands of Vandel without the knowledge of the
-council.[701] Vandel was a man of good family, and one of the most
-violent opponents of the reformers. ‘I believe,’ said Bonivard, ‘that
-he was possessed with a demon while yet in his mother’s womb; as is
-said of St. John with regard to the Holy Spirit. He was not so tall
-as a spindle when he committed homicide, not with his own hand, but
-through malice. He and another man killed likewise the bastard son of
-a canon. He was a great rake, a glutton and a drunkard, talking and
-acting rashly in his drunken fits. His father, a highly respectable
-man, had said a hundred times, “Pierre! Pierre! he will never be worth
-anything; and would God that immediately after his baptism he had been
-dashed against a wall, for he will bring disgrace on our house.” He was
-very vainglorious, dressed himself like a nobleman, and was fond of
-bragging (_usait de braveries_); for this reason his companions called
-him _Bobereau_.’[702] Vandel was very proud of possessing the fourteen
-articles; and when he met on his way anyone who took an interest in
-the exile of the reformers, and who asked him what was likely to
-happen to them, he answered boastfully, according to his wont, but
-without entering further into details, ‘I have in my pocket a poison
-which will be the death of them.’[703] The ambassadors of Berne were
-themselves the bearers of these articles, but they had been instructed
-not to read them to the people except in the presence of Calvin and
-Farel, that they might have the opportunity of at once setting aside
-the mischievous inferences which would be drawn from them.[704] Vandel
-was at his post in the general council. Hardly had the deputies of
-Berne gone out, when he rose, drew the paper from his pocket, and
-began to read the articles of Zurich,[705] as an important piece of
-evidence which must cause the rejection of the demand of Berne. When
-he had read the document he began to comment on it, putting forward
-ill-natured interpretations, and fastening especially on three points
-fitted to excite hatred against the two reformers.[706] ‘See,’ said
-he, ‘how, in speaking of the Church of Geneva, they dare to speak of
-_our_ Church, as if it were their property. See how, in speaking of
-the lords of Berne, they call them simply the Bernese, without the
-honorary formula,[707] thus with the utmost arrogance putting contempt
-on princes themselves. See how they aspire to tyranny, for what else
-is excommunication but a tyrannical domination?’ The first two charges
-were baseless and almost childish; and as to excommunication, Calvin
-remarks that the general council of Geneva had allowed it, July 29,
-1537, as ‘a holy and salutary proceeding among the faithful;’ and now
-they were horrified at the very word. The question was constantly
-arising for discussion whether the Church is not, like any other
-society, a union of persons possessing certain common characteristics,
-aiming at a certain object and under certain conditions, _a communion
-of persons united by a like Christian faith_,[708] or whether it is a
-receptacle for everything (_un tout y va_); which of all definitions
-would be by far the most opposed to the word of its founder.
-
-[Sidenote: PIERRE VANDEL.]
-
-It had been arranged between Vandel and his friends that, when he
-read or commented on the articles, they should support him with their
-acclamations, in order to inflame the minds of those present.[709]
-This plan succeeded. Cries of displeasure, furious and redoubled,
-were soon heard; one might have thought that the harmless articles
-were a statement of the blackest conspiracy. The irritation displayed
-by these partisans infected the whole assembly. It is well known how
-easily the crowd passes from any mood to its opposite. The lungs of a
-few passionate men played the part of bellows in setting all hearts on
-fire.[710] A spark was enough to kindle a conflagration. The flames
-spread from place to place; nothing stood against them, at least in
-appearance; and presently the assembly was in a blaze. ‘Better die,’
-they shouted, ‘than hear them give us an account of the motives which
-have actuated them!’[711]
-
-As soon as order was partially restored, the first syndic, Richardet,
-a hot-tempered man, as we know, put to the vote the demand made by
-the ambassadors of Berne; or rather, taking a less regular but more
-artful course, proposed the rejection of the demand. ‘Let all those,’
-he said, ‘who wish that Farel, Calvin, and Courault should not enter
-the town, hold up their hands.’ The secretary of the council said that
-almost all hands were held up. This secretary was Ruffi, who had been
-elected in the place of Claude Rozet on the very day of the banishment
-of the reformers. His partiality was manifest in the fact that he wrote
-at the same time that the fourteen articles contained some untruths;
-untruths which the passionate Vandel himself had not been able to
-detect. It was a piece of gratuitous falsehood, and imputations of
-that kind do not inspire much confidence in anything that Ruffi might
-report. After the voting, the first syndic requested that those who
-wished the preachers to be readmitted to the town and to be heard
-should hold up their hands. ‘A few were raised,’ said Michel Rozet, ‘to
-signify that they wished for the ministers.’ The secretary named two
-or three of them, amongst others Chautemps, in whose house Olivétan, a
-kinsman of Calvin, had lived; but he added, ‘and certain others, few in
-number.’ Timid men, in the presence of the storm which threatened to
-break out, thought it prudent to be silent; some courage was required
-to face it. In fact, at the mere sight of these few hands raised, a
-transport of spite and wrath broke out; they could not endure an act of
-independence, which was at the same time, with many there, an act of
-respect for the reformers and the Reformation. _The rage was so great_,
-says Rozet, _that the first two were compelled to fly_. Many pursued
-them; some drew their swords; others, ‘glancing at them fiercely,’
-cried out, _Kill them! kill them!_ ‘The majority of votes,’ say the
-Registers, ‘decided that the preachers should not again be admitted
-into the town.’ The people of Geneva thus adopted a resolution which,
-if they had not repented of it, would have prevented light going forth
-from that city, and would have thrown an obstacle in the way of its
-greatness.[712]
-
-Thus was the matter decided. _Alea jacta est._ The powerful party
-which, in their contest with the pope, the bishop, and the princes
-of Savoy, had taken for their flag liberty and the truth, and had
-transformed Geneva into an evangelical republic, had quarrelled after
-their victory, as very commonly happens, and those who did not wish for
-the Gospel had remained conquerors. But the citizens, _few in number_,
-who had made their voice heard in the general council, were not the
-only ones who longed for a Christian republic. This minority gradually
-increased, or rather dared to show itself. It continued united,
-fervent, determined, active; and to it ultimately the victory was to be
-given.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
- THE BANISHED MINISTERS AND THEIR SUCCESSORS.
-
- (END OF 1538.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: THE REFORMERS SET OUT TO BERNE.]
-
-The reformers set out on their journey to Berne. Calvin at length
-breathed freely, but not without sadness; for while he felt himself
-free, as if standing on an invigorating height, he looked on Geneva
-sunk in the flats. It was in fulfilment of a sacred duty that he had
-made a last effort. He had not, succeeded. ‘It is evident now from
-the experiment that we have just made,’ said he, ‘that it was no
-mere groundless fear that influenced us when, although pressed (at
-Zurich) by the authority of the Church, we could, nevertheless, only
-with great reluctance consent to reënter that labyrinth. Now we have
-got clear of it. We have complied with the desire of all pious men,
-although with no result, except perhaps to render the evil twofold or
-threefold worse than it was before.[713] Satan exulted at Geneva and
-in the whole of France on occasion of our first banishment; but this
-refusal to receive us has added not a little to his presumption and
-to that of his members. It is incredible with what recklessness and
-insolence wicked men now give themselves up to all manner of vice;
-with what effrontery they insult the servants of Christ; with what
-violence they make a mock at the Gospel. This is a calamity which to
-us is very painful indeed....’ Afterwards, addressing Bullinger and
-all the ministers of Zurich, he said to them, ‘Entreat the Lord with
-us, dearly beloved brethren, with earnest prayer, that very soon he
-may arise.’[714] It is possible that the reports which reached Calvin
-may have been a little exaggerated and that his own phrases may be a
-little sharp; but there is no doubt that the condition of Geneva was at
-this time extremely critical. ‘_There was nothing but confusion_,’ says
-Rozet; ‘the citizens abandoned themselves to licentiousness, dancing,
-gaming, and drinking. The finger was pointed at those who mourned over
-these things; they were men marked and hated. No preaching could be
-fruitful in the midst of such confusion.’[715] The syndic Gautier,
-a man who was above all a champion of government, and who censured
-Calvin for not acknowledging that the very foundation of every society
-is subordination and obedience, duties to the civil magistrate which
-are as obligatory on pastors as on other men, after examining whether
-Calvin’s complaints were just, pronounced the following sentence:
-‘Calvin was right so far as he had reference to the licentious lives of
-his adversaries, and to their love for libertinism and independence;
-but he was certainly mistaken if he considered them as enemies of God
-for wishing to observe the four principal festivals, and to introduce
-the use of unleavened bread.’[716] This is likewise our own opinion.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND FAREL AT BERNE.]
-
-When they reached Berne, Calvin and Farel found their friends in great
-astonishment at what had taken place. The latter told them that if they
-were not wanted at Geneva, they should stay at Berne. ‘It would be
-unpardonable in you,’ they added, ‘to refuse such a call.’[717] To be
-at Berne with Kunz would have been to abandon their lives to perpetual
-dissension. They were in haste to be gone. However, they were anxious
-to express their gratitude to the senate for its conduct towards them,
-and for that purpose they requested an audience. They were put off to
-the following day. Remembering all the delays of their recent sojourn,
-fearing lest they should find themselves beset by claims to which they
-could not yield, and believing that they had discharged their duty
-to the council by the request which they had made, they departed for
-Basel. They did not reach the city without encountering danger on the
-way. They had to cross a river, believed to be the Aar, and one of them
-was almost carried away by the swift current, which was swollen by the
-rain. ‘However,’ wrote Calvin to Viret, ‘the river was more merciful
-to us than men. The latter had determined, contrary to all right and
-reason, to compel us to undertake this journey, even were it on foot;
-but the Lord, in his compassion, preserved us from all evil.’ From the
-postscript to the same letter it appears that Farel and Calvin crossed
-the river on horseback. It is not known which of the two narrowly
-escaped drowning. They arrived at Basel, wet through with the rain, and
-half dead with fatigue.
-
-At Basel Calvin found a valued friend, Grynæus. Already during the stay
-of the two reformers at Berne he had written to them--‘I hope that
-by your Christian meekness and your humility you will overcome all
-your adversaries, and take away from the enemies of the Gospel every
-occasion of calumniating you. Oh, that the eyes now sparkling with the
-fire of Satan may be cast down, and that the passion with which men
-are inflamed against your ministry may be quenched![718] Work on, work
-on, my well-beloved brethren, hearts most noble and most holy (_optima
-ac sanctissima pectora_); be ready for the conflict, arrayed in the
-whole armor of Christian warfare, ready and willing, especially at this
-time, when iniquity prevails, to lead us on with heroic fidelity. Let
-us apply ourselves to the work of the Lord with unconquerable hearts.
-The hatred of those who in this proceeding show themselves so worthy
-of hatred will not win the day. For our part, we are of those who can
-pray for our enemies, much more support and embrace them. Let not the
-senseless judgment of the people, let not the foolish and futile dread
-of popular opinion, disturb you in the least. Rule and protect this
-Church, which threatens to fall, by your courage and your persistency.
-How glorious is the function you will discharge! How solid and real the
-praise which you will deserve if, completely forgetting yourselves in
-this cause, you think of Jesus Christ alone!’
-
-[Sidenote: THEIR RECEPTION.]
-
-We can imagine how affectionately Grynæus and his friends received the
-two brethren banished on account of the noble fidelity which they had
-displayed. Grynæus had already invited the reformer, while he was still
-at Geneva, to go to his house rather than bend under the yoke which his
-enemies wished to put on him. ‘We welcome thee joyfully,’ he said to
-Calvin afterwards, ‘as our brother in the Lord, and we embrace thee as
-a distinguished ornament of our Church.’[719] Calvin therefore abode
-with Grynæus at Basel, where the most brotherly hospitality was shown
-him. Farel took up his abode in the house of the famous printer, Oporin.
-
-Calvin and Farel bore their great trial with much patience and
-meekness, forgiving their enemies and praying for them, and endeavoring
-to avoid everything which might become an occasion of grief to their
-brethren. Viret was very anxious to see them and to share their
-tribulations. ‘Thou knowest well,’ replied Calvin to him, ‘that no
-greater happiness could befall us at this moment than to talk with thee
-for a short time. But the danger to which the journey would expose thee
-checks our desire: thou wouldst reap more hatred from it than we should
-joy.’ Thus did Calvin think of his friends before thinking of himself.
-It appears, however, that Viret did see him at Basel.[720] This was
-doubtless at a later period. Calvin was anxious to avoid everything
-which might lead to any useless dispute. ‘I beg of thee, my dear
-brother,’ he said to Farel, ‘take pains in these evil times to preserve
-whatever can be tolerated. Our brethren must not so obstinately dispute
-about mere ceremonies. Let us be free; but let us be the slaves of
-concord and of peace.’[721] ‘What I have above all at heart,’ he said
-further to him, ‘is that we may not cause new quarrels, nor be the
-occasion of any strife.’
-
-At the same time, nevertheless, one of the first things which the
-reformers had done after their arrival at Basel was to give an
-account of what had befallen them to their brethren of Zurich and
-Strasburg. Their enemies did not cease, indeed, to pursue them with
-their accusations; and those who had forced them to leave Geneva cried
-out that they were schismatics, forgetting that they themselves had
-compelled the two reformers to separate from their Church. Such is
-party logic. Calvin, Farel, and their friends, therefore, thought
-it advisable to hold a meeting at which delegates from the towns of
-Zurich, Berne, Basel, Strasburg, and one of that place (_un dudit
-lieu_) (probably Geneva), should attend, and at which it should
-be ‘declared that they had duly and faithfully administered their
-office.’[722] They did not, however, eagerly press for this. They knew
-that their judge was in heaven. ‘I can do nothing,’ said Calvin, ‘but
-commend the issue to the great physician, who alone can provide for it
-and give it shape.’[723]
-
-[Sidenote: CALLS AND HESITATIONS.]
-
-If Calvin committed himself to God as to his past, he did the same as
-to his future. ‘I withdraw to Basel,’ he says, in the same letter,
-‘awaiting what the Lord will do with me.’ Calls were not wanting.
-They wished to retain him at Basel. Toussaint desired that he should
-settle at Lausanne, or in the canton of Berne, that he might there be
-an example of decision and devotion. Others thought it their duty to
-recommend him to the Duke of Würtemburg.[724] But Strasburg appeared
-to be the place to choose. Already in November, 1536, Bucer, delighted
-with the _Institution_, which had just appeared, had asked for an
-interview with Calvin. ‘We will go wherever you wish for the purpose of
-conferring with you on the whole doctrine of Christ.’[725] They saw each
-other subsequently at Berne and at Zurich. Bucer and Capito, now that
-they knew he was at liberty and staying at Basel, did not fail to press
-him to come to them. At the beginning of July he went to Strasburg. ‘I
-have been so earnestly entreated to come by the two chief ministers of
-this town,’ he wrote on the 10th of that month, ‘that to satisfy them I
-have made a journey hither.’[726] It did not at that time appear likely
-to him that he was to settle there. The terrible conflicts through
-which he had passed at Geneva made him view with alarm the proposal to
-accept a new ministry. He recurred to his studious projects. ‘I shrink,
-above all things,’ said he, ‘from reëntering on the office from which I
-am delivered, considering in what perplexities I was involved from the
-time when I was first engaged in it.’ He adds, ‘there are other reasons
-which I can explain only by word of mouth.’ What were these? Doubtless
-the too accommodating theology of the doctors of that town. Basel was
-his favorite city. He returned thither, saying, ‘It is not the fault
-of the Strasburgers that I am not their guest, but they have burden
-enough without me.’ He might, however, have found good reasons for
-accepting their invitation, for his poverty was so great that he found
-it necessary to sell ‘a part of his books’ for his maintenance.[727]
-
-The entreaties of the Strasburgers, nevertheless, became more urgent.
-They wrote to Grynæus to do all he could to induce Calvin to settle at
-Strasburg: only they would rather that he should come without Farel,
-because they were afraid that, if the two Frenchmen were together, the
-Germans would have too great difficulty in bending them to their views.
-This was also the opinion of Grynæus. To give up Farel entirely was
-too great a sacrifice for Calvin to make. He again declined the offer,
-giving as his reason the condition which was imposed on him not to take
-Farel with him.[728] ‘I await thy counsel,’ wrote Calvin to his friend;
-and impelled by the warmest affection for this man of God, he adds,
-‘O that I could now fly to thee! I am only held back by the strongest
-motives.’
-
-Farel was not at Basel at that moment, and was not to return thither.
-The tidings of the persecutions which had fallen upon him, of his exile
-and his sufferings, had grieved the people of Neuchâtel, and revived
-in their hearts their old love for the man from whom they had learned
-the elements of the faith. The Council of the Sixty, representatives
-of the city, after calling upon the Lord, communicated to the class
-of ministers the desire which they felt of inviting Farel to become
-their pastor.[729] The post was, as we shall see, actually vacant.
-Two councillors and two members of the class went to Basel. ‘Come,’
-they said to him, ‘and complete the building of which you laid the
-foundation.’ Farel, like Calvin, could not make up his mind to accept
-a pastoral charge, but preferred to devote himself to study.[730] At
-length, encouraged by his friends, entreated in the name of the Lord,
-and ‘persuaded to it with great earnestness by the German Churches,’
-he consented; but it was on condition that he should introduce in
-the Church the order prescribed in the Holy Scriptures. Having once
-decided, he set out suddenly for Neuchâtel, about the end of July,
-‘with his customary promptitude,’ says Calvin.[731] Thenceforth Farel
-and Calvin were separated; but this removal from each other did not in
-any degree impair the union of their hearts nor the firmness of their
-characters, whatever the moderates of Strasburg might think.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL CALLED TO NEUCHATEL.]
-
-The latter once more renewed their call. Would not the ministerial
-office conferred on Calvin by a Church of such high standing as that
-of Strasburg be a brilliant justification which would silence evil
-tongues? What good service might he not render there! The empire had
-need of able theologians, and perhaps the Strasburgers desired to
-have him settled among them by way of counterpoise to the powerful
-personality and authority of Luther. Be that as it may, his friends
-on the banks of the Rhine could not bear the thought that so powerful
-a servant of God ‘should be satisfied to live in retirement without
-undertaking any public office;’[732] and as he still refused, they took
-steps towards inducing the Genevese to recall the reformer. If he will
-not come to Strasburg, let him go to Geneva. This proceeding appears
-to have had some effect on Calvin. He would go anywhere rather than
-return to the city of his sorrows. The Strasburgers, finding that he
-was somewhat giving way, made a fresh advance. ‘That excellent servant
-of Christ, Martin Bucer,’ says Calvin, ‘addressing to me a remonstrance
-and protest similar to that which Farel had previously made, called me
-to another place. Alarmed by the case of Jonah, which he set before me,
-I persevered still in the office of teacher.’[733] Calvin therefore
-went to Strasburg in September, and began to preach in the choir of the
-church of the Dominicans to the French refugees in the town, with whom
-were associated other persons, some of whom understood and others did
-not understand the tongue, but all of them were desirous of seeing the
-face and hearing the voice of the famous exile. These refugees, it is
-said, were fifteen hundred in number.
-
-Calvin was no sooner settled at Strasburg than he heard that his
-colleague, the blind old Courault, who, ‘after having fought valiantly
-at Paris for the truth,’[734] had first retired to Thonon, and then
-had been called as pastor to Orbe, had departed this life on October
-4, and gone to God. This was a terrible blow for his loving heart. He
-wrote to Farel--‘I am so dismayed at the death of Courault, that my
-grief overpasses all bounds. Not one of my daily occupations is any
-longer able to fix my attention, and I am incessantly returning to the
-same thought. To the lamentations and pains of the day succeed the
-more terrible torments of the night.’[735] This death, so unexpected,
-was attributed to poison. Suspicions of that kind were very common,
-and were in those unhappy times too often justified. Calvin rejected
-this thought, but in spite of himself it was continually presenting
-itself to his imagination.[736] He endeavored, nevertheless, to
-console himself and to revive his own courage and that of Farel. ‘All
-testify,’ he said to him, ‘by their grief and their regrets how highly
-they esteemed his courage and his uprightness, and this is a great
-consolation. For us whom the Lord leaves for a time in this world, let
-us hold on in the path which he pursued until we have finished our
-course. Whatever difficulties we may have to encounter, they will not
-prevent us from entering into that rest which is even now his portion.’
-‘When we get there,’ said he on another occasion, ‘it will be known
-on which side rashness or error was. To that court I appeal from the
-sentence of all the wise. There the angels of God will bear witness
-which are the schismatics.’[737] He adds, ‘Only let us stand firm on
-the height we have reached, which commands the field of battle, until
-the kingdom of Christ, at present hidden, shall appear.’
-
-Thus the three pastors expelled from Geneva had each found his place;
-and that of the old blind minister was the best.
-
-[Sidenote: NEW PASTORS AT GENEVA.]
-
-It was not long before the Genevese established the institutions
-to which the reformers had objected. It was decreed to reërect the
-baptismal fonts which had been cast down, and to baptize children in
-them, to celebrate the four festivals, and to conform to the ceremonies
-agreed upon. On Whit-Sunday, which this year fell at the beginning
-of June, there were only two pastors at Geneva, Henri de la Mare and
-Jacques Bernard, both Genevese. The Lord’s supper was to be celebrated,
-and for that purpose two ministers were needed in each church. The
-council deputed two of its members to act instead of them, one at St.
-Peter’s, the other at St. Gervais’.
-
-The government exerted itself to find substitutes for the two exiles.
-The states of Berne and Neuchâtel gave up to it Jean Morand, pastor
-at Cully,[738] on the shores of the lake of Geneva, and Antoine
-Marcourt, of Lyons, pastor of Neuchâtel, who were installed about the
-end of June. The council determined to give them, considering their
-age and their large families, three hundred Genevese florins;[739]
-the two Genevese each had two hundred and fifty florins. We became
-acquainted with Marcourt at the synod of Lausanne. He had published
-several treatises on the Eucharist, on the mass; to him likewise
-were attributed the famous placards of 1534, which Florimond Raemond
-believes to have been the work of Farel. The governor and councils of
-Neuchâtel, in resigning Marcourt to Geneva, declared, June 18, ‘that
-they had always found him a man of peace, one who desired, and to the
-utmost of his power maintained, peace and public tranquillity.’ This
-character seems hardly like that of the author of the _Placards_, one
-of the most violent writings of the sixteenth century, which were
-pronounced by the Roman Catholics[740] to be filled with ‘execrable
-blasphemies and horrible threats against the king,’ and which gave rise
-to that bloody persecution by the Valois and the Bourbons of which
-the reformed Christians were the victims for more than two centuries.
-However, we must confess that pacific men are not always consistent. It
-would seem that Marcourt was not so much a man of peace as the people
-of Neuchâtel had said; at least if we take literally what Calvin says.
-‘How our successors will demean themselves,’ he wrote on August 4 to
-Farel, ‘is a point on which we can form an opinion from their first
-proceedings. They break off by their irritable temper every promise of
-peace, and they seem to suppose that the best thing they have to do is
-to tear to pieces both in public and in private the reputation which
-we enjoyed, and to make us as hateful as possible.’[741] Calvin is
-especially severe, perhaps too much so, with regard to the two Genevese
-ministers. There was, however, some truth in the last touch in the
-picture which he drew of them for Bullinger: ‘Both of them are very
-ignorant, and when they open their mouths, it is to rave. This does not
-prevent them from assuming an insolent pride.’[742]
-
-[Sidenote: ACCUSATIONS.]
-
-These words of Calvin are rather sharp. This is doubtless explained
-by his recent sorrow. Subsequently he expressed himself with more
-moderation. His partisans at Geneva did the same. While the wisest
-men still held their peace, the most violent did not spare their
-adversaries. The two parties were very ill-disposed towards one
-another, and some of those who belonged to them threw off all restraint
-both in their deeds and in their words. Licentious men among the
-enemies of the reformers ‘triumphed over the banished ministers,
-insulted the servants of God, laughed at the Gospel, and abandoned
-themselves to impurity, dancing, gaming, and drunkenness. Nothing was
-talked of but masquerades, gallantries and excesses, and the services
-of the church turned to the disgrace of the Reformation.’ On the other
-side, the most vehement partisans of Calvin and Farel had no mercy on
-the lay and ecclesiastical chiefs under whose administration these
-things took place. They called the new pastors _wolves_, and the
-magistrates _the unrighteous_. They murmured as they went out from
-sermon, and their ill-humor was not sparing of criticism. ‘The Gospel
-which is preached at present,’ said Richard after one of the services,
-‘is only _the Gospel for twenty days_.’ He had no doubt that, when that
-time had elapsed, the new preachers would be dismissed. For this they
-sent him to prison. ‘The syndics of to-day,’ said another, ‘are of no
-use but to bring back lascivious men and women into the town.’ For this
-saying he was expelled from the town for a year.[743] ‘The mass is sung
-in Geneva,’ said many, ‘and the people who love the Gospel are expelled
-the town.’ These charges were circulated in Switzerland, and greatly
-alarmed the friends of reform.
-
-None felt these reproaches more keenly than the pastors, for they
-knew that they all recoiled on themselves. On September 17 they all
-appeared, the two Genevese and the two foreigners, before the council.
-‘Calumniators,’ they said, ‘are spreading reports in the cantons
-which are doing serious injury to the Gospel.’ They requested that
-two of their number might have leave of absence to go and refute the
-slanders, which inflicted a blow on the honor of the town. The request
-was granted. Marcourt and Morand set out for Berne, and presented
-themselves before the assembly of the pastors, in which Kunz could not
-fail to support them. In fact it was resolved at this meeting ‘that
-those who rose against the persons in office at Geneva were worse than
-wicked men, traitors, and Jews.’ The Bernese pastors communicated
-this declaration to the council, which contented itself with deciding
-that if any defamers of Geneva appeared at Berne, information should
-be given to the magistrates of that town. The lay authorities were
-obviously less under the influence of passion than the ecclesiastics.
-It appears even that the council of Berne did not place implicit
-confidence in the report of the Genevese ministers, for one of their
-own number was immediately after sent to Geneva to see with his own
-eyes what was the real state of the Genevese Church.
-
-The complaints made both at Geneva and in other places were well
-grounded. This is proved by the proceedings of the magistrates, who,
-although they were hostile to the reformers, perceived that their
-own honor required them not to authorize licentiousness. It is quite
-certain that people ‘went about the streets at night, uttering cries
-and singing indecent songs;’ that ‘gaming, lewdness, haunting of
-taverns, and drunkenness,’ were common offences; for a decree of July
-19 prohibited them under a penalty of sixty sous for the first time;
-and, as the evil continued, other decisions of a similar character
-were taken on August 20 and October 22. It is certain that, as was
-said in Switzerland, some citizens went to mass, for according to the
-intolerant customs of the age, they were ordered ‘to leave the town.’
-The councils were seen to be as much opposed to religious liberty as
-Calvin had been. Perhaps they went even further than he would have
-gone; for, on August 20, they ordered the priests who were still on
-Genevese soil to go to sermon if they wished to remain there.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN’S LETTER TO THE GENEVESE.]
-
-Calvin, at Strasburg, was watching attentively what was passing at
-Geneva. He heard that a certain number of Genevese kept faithfully
-to the path which they had taken under his direction. Some of his
-adherents cried out rather loudly, but the majority led a quiet life,
-and the most decided of the latter displayed their opposition in no
-other way than by absenting themselves from a form of worship which
-they did not consider to be in conformity with the principles of
-the Gospel. Calvin had not written to them during the first months
-of his exile. He was not willing to lay himself open to the charge
-of attempting to draw them over to himself. But he felt keenly that
-the trials of his friends at Geneva proceeded from their supineness
-in adhering to the Word of God, and that the remedy for them was in
-humbling themselves before God and waiting upon Him for the remedy.
-‘However the affection which he always cherished for them’ did not
-permit him to remain longer silent, and on October 1 he wrote to
-them a letter remarkable for the pacific, discreet, charitable, and
-elevated spirit which it breathed. He addressed it, not to all the
-Genevese, but to those who had received into their hearts the seed of
-the divine Word, and who were still deeply affected by the blow which
-had struck them in the punishment of their pastor. He named them his
-brethren, _the relics of the dispersion of the Genevese church_. He
-spoke of the love which he bore them. ‘I cannot refrain from writing to
-you,’ said he, ‘to assure you of the affection which I always cherish
-for you. Our conscience is fully persuaded before God that it is by
-his call that we were at one time associated with you, and it ought
-not to be in the power of men to break such a bond.’ He begs them to
-forget themselves and their sufferings, to forget even the hostility
-of their adversaries. ‘If we lose our time in fighting against men,’
-he said, ‘thinking only of taking vengeance and getting indemnified
-for the injuries which they have done us, it is doubtful whether we
-can overcome them, but it is certain that we shall be overcome by the
-devil. If on the contrary we resist the devices of that spiritual
-enemy, there is no fear then of our not coming off conquerors. Cast
-away every evil affection, be led only by zeal for God, controlled
-by his Spirit and the rule of his Word.’ Calvin went further. He
-showed himself severe to his friends. ‘It is easy for you to justify
-yourselves before men, but your conscience will feel burdened before
-God.’ He did himself what he required of others. ‘I doubt not,’ he
-said, ‘that God has humbled us in order to make us acquainted with our
-ignorance, our imprudence, and our other infirmities, of which I for
-my part have been fully conscious, and which I have no hesitation in
-confessing before the Church. However,’ he adds, ‘we did faithfully
-administer our office. The Lord will cause our innocence to come forth
-like the morning-star, and our righteousness to shine like the sun.’
-But he endeavors chiefly to console the believers of Geneva. ‘Be not
-cast down because it hath pleased the Lord to humble you for a time,
-for he lifts up the humble out of the dust and takes the poor from
-the dunghill. He gives the manna of joy to those who are in tears; he
-gives back light to them that sit in darkness, and he restores to life
-them that walk in the shadow of death. Be of good courage then, and
-endure with patience the chastening of his hand, until the time that
-he reveal his grace to you.’[744] It is impossible not to recognize
-the wisdom and the Christian charity which have left their impress on
-this letter. It is indeed a pastor that speaks. Calvin was so far from
-the excessive strictness imputed to him that he wrote at the same time
-to Farel--‘If we find in any Church the ministry of the Word and the
-sacraments, it is better not to separate from it. It is not right even
-to do so on the ground that some doctrines are not purely taught in it;
-for there is hardly a Church in existence which does not retain some
-traces of its former ignorance. It is sufficient for us if the doctrine
-on which the Church is founded has its place there and keeps it.’[745]
-Calvin held that there are some doctrines fundamental and vital,
-essential to salvation; but he acknowledged that there are others on
-which difference is permissible.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL’S LETTER TO THE GENEVESE.]
-
-Farel likewise wrote to the Christians of Geneva. He did so even before
-Calvin, in June, in August, and again in November. He expressed to
-them his deep sadness. He would fain be ‘so far away that he could
-hear nothing of the miserable breaking-up and dispersion of the
-Church.’ He strives ‘to banish from his heart the pains, the labors
-that he undertook for that town; for nothing pierces the heart like
-ingratitude; to see evil rendered for good, hate for love, death and
-shame in place of the life and the honor which were procured.’ He
-contents himself with praying for the town and commending it to all who
-are able to give it any assistance. Meanwhile he cannot help seeing
-the unhappy condition in which his own friends and all the faithful of
-Geneva are, deprived of their pastors, and witnessing the triumph of
-their enemies. He shares largely in their troubles; they are his only
-trial. ‘I should be too happy,’ he wrote to them, ‘if you were not so
-unhappy.’ But at the same time he exhorts them to Christian charity
-and gives evidence of it himself. ‘Cherish in your hearts no rancor,’
-he said to his former flock, ‘no root of bitterness, no anger. Do not
-reproach this man nor that man, but let each one reproach himself: lay
-all the blame on yourselves and say nothing but good of others. Let
-God’s holy will be your rule, and not _poor man_ (the natural man),
-and what is in him.’ He does not hesitate to rebuke his friends. ‘You
-have not obeyed God wholly, but have halted and swerved to one side and
-the other.’ Then he earnestly exhorts them to repentance. ‘You, great
-and small, men and women, cast yourselves humbly before God, with all
-earnestness and love, beseeching his grace, and praying him to turn
-away his anger from you. Yes, cast yourselves before him with sobs
-and tears, with fasting and prayer, like the king of Nineveh and his
-people. Cry, weep, lift up your voices; that your cry going forth from
-the depths of this terrible calamity may reach the ear of God.’[746]
-Thus spoke Farel and Calvin.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
- STRASBURG AND GENEVA.
-
- (END OF 1538-1539.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AT STRASBURG.]
-
-Calvin, meanwhile, notwithstanding the melancholy which sprang from
-the remembrance of his recent struggles, was happy at Strasburg. This
-town, in which, as in a common centre, met the influences of Germany,
-Switzerland, and France, was esteemed, next to Wittenberg, the most
-important seat of the Reformation. It was called the _Antioch_ of that
-epoch, in remembrance of what Antioch was in the apostolic age. Some
-named it subsequently the _New Jerusalem_, and this partly because
-it was ‘the hostess of the man who gave his name to Calvinism.’[747]
-At the period of Calvin’s arrival, Strasburg was already the home
-of several distinguished men--Capito, Bucer, Hedio, Niger, Mathias
-Zell, and others besides, who shone in its Church like precious and
-transparent jewels.[748] ‘What gratitude we owe you,’ they wrote to
-Farel, ‘for resigning Calvin to us!’ He was a treasure for them. He
-very much enjoyed their society, and this sojourn was to be beneficial
-to him. Not only did the affection of Strasburg for him heal the wounds
-inflicted by the hostility of Geneva, but his mind was to receive still
-further development. The small city on the shores of the Leman lake
-was a narrow platform on which it was not easy to move about. But on
-reaching Strasburg Calvin set foot on the vast Germanic realm which
-contained so many illustrious men, in which so many profound thoughts
-were stirring, and in which the Reformation had already fought so
-many battles and won so many victories. There were, it is true, some
-opposite teachings, but it was necessary to be acquainted with them.
-Strasburg, moreover, was the place in which doctrines were weighed
-one against the other, and where the labor destined to conciliate
-them was undertaken. At Geneva Calvin might have occupied the post
-of a spectator who attempts to distinguish by means of a telescope
-an action fought at a great distance. But now he was in the thick
-of the battle, learnt to recognize the feeble and the strong, and
-became one of the combatants, or at least one of the negotiators. His
-horizon was widened, his intelligence in this vast sphere would be
-enlarged, his ideas would be developed, would grow, ripen, and move
-with greater freedom. He would be brought under influences to which he
-was not exposed at Geneva, and which would contribute to form the great
-theologian. Embracing at a glance the whole extent of the kingdom of
-God, he would become familiar with its various provinces. Winds blowing
-from so many and adverse regions would bring to him new reports.
-There would doubtless be sometimes stormy blasts, powerful enough to
-overthrow the strongest, but often also a pure and life-giving air
-fitted to sanctify his Christian energy.
-
-The theological and Christian circle which he entered at Strasburg
-was in more than one way in sympathy with him. He was convinced, as
-the doctors of this town were, that it was necessary not to stick at
-trifling differences, but to consider Christianity in its great facts,
-its great doctrines, the new life which it creates, in the great whole
-on which all the reformers were agreed. All those who took their stand
-on the same rock, Jesus Christ, no matter whether a little higher up
-or a little lower down, ought in his view to join hand in hand. Calvin
-and the theologians of Strasburg were disgusted with the theological
-subtilties and the scholastic nomenclature beneath which the living
-doctrine of the Gospel, especially as to the supper, was stifled. ‘Can
-I in very deed believe that I receive in the holy supper the body and
-the blood of the Lord, _substantialiter_, _essentialiter_, _realiter_,
-_naturaliter_, _præsentialiter_, _localiter_, _corporaliter_,
-_quantitative_, _qualitative_, _ubiqualiter_, _carnaliter_? The devil
-has brought us all these terms from the abyss of hell. Christ said
-simply, _This is my body_. If all these fantastic expressions had been
-necessary, he would certainly have employed them.’ Calvin, like Zell,
-the author of the above passage, found in that heap of qualifying terms
-a mass of rubbish and confusion. There was, however, one difference
-between the doctors of Strasburg and the doctor of Geneva. Bucer and
-Capito were willing to bring union by the way of accommodation, perhaps
-by the use of phrases in a double sense. The eagle of Geneva, soaring
-in the higher regions, called on Christians to have but one thought
-in contemplating one and the same sun, and in attaching themselves to
-one and the same truth.[749]
-
-[Sidenote: HIS SPIRITUAL JOYS.]
-
-Another happiness awaited Calvin at Strasburg. His greatest sufferings
-at Geneva had their source in that state-church, that people-church,
-that shapeless community which comprised the whole nation, believers
-and unbelievers, righteous men and profligates. In its place at
-Strasburg he found some Christians exiled on account of their faith,
-purified by their trial like gold, who had given up all for Christ,
-their righteousness and their life. The mass of professing Christians
-at Geneva had as it were suffocated him. Now at Strasburg he was in the
-midst of brethren and sisters, and almost all of them belonged to his
-own country, France. He breathed freely. The evangelical order intended
-by the apostles prevailed in his Church.[750] He preached four times a
-week. He met his elders and deacons once a week for the study of the
-Holy Scriptures and for prayer; and some of those lay friends well
-endowed by God were soon qualified to take the place of their pastor in
-case of his absence, and to edify their brethren. The first supper was
-celebrated in September, and it was repeated every month. How wide the
-difference for Calvin between that repast at Geneva, to which men came
-who drank, gamed, quarrelled, and sang indecent songs, and whom, for
-all that, he had to admit to the communion of the body and the blood
-of the Redeemer, and this brotherly supper at Strasburg, celebrated
-in company with pious Christians, persecuted for righteousness’ sake,
-whose names were written in heaven, and who drew nigh to the Lord with
-devotion, as members of his family! Calvin gave all his attention to
-the cure of souls. If there were any Christians who had not an adequate
-acquaintance with the doctrine of salvation, he instructed them; if any
-were reproached by their own conscience, cast down and in distress, he
-consoled and lifted them up; if any had gone astray from the path of
-righteousness, he rebuked them. He certainly met with some opposition,
-especially on the part of the younger folk; but he held his ground.
-While he required a pure faith and life, he protested against the
-tyranny exercised by the priests in auricular confession, and declared
-that no man had the right to bind the conscience of his brethren. Thus
-he saw his flock thriving from day to day under his direction.[751]
-‘It was at Strasburg that the first Church was organized to serve as a
-model to others,’ says Raemond. A remarkable conversion distinguished
-its early days. Herman of Liége, who had engaged in discussion with
-Calvin at Geneva, was converted by him and joined his Church. He
-embraced the doctrines which Calvin found in the Holy Scriptures, on
-free will, the divinity and humanity of Christ, regeneration, and
-baptism. He was in doubt only as to predestination. Calvin gained other
-victories besides.
-
-[Sidenote: VIEW OF THE LORD’S SUPPER.]
-
-He was now not only a pastor, but also a teacher. At the beginning
-of the year 1539, Capito, struck with his gifts for theological
-teaching, entreated him to join that office with his pastorate.
-Although he felt reluctant to do so, from his sense of the difficulty
-of that ministry, he at length consented. Every day he preached in
-the church of St. Nicholas, in which he taught the students of the
-academy. The interpretation of the Scriptures was for him the basis
-of theological science, and for his exposition he selected two of
-the richest books of the New Testament--the Gospel of St. John and
-the Epistle to the Romans. His plan was to search out the meaning of
-the sacred writer, and to set it forth with an easy ‘brevity which
-did not entail obscurity;’ and for that purpose ‘he took pains to
-regulate and proportion his style.[752]’ In his view the Epistle to
-the Romans was ‘a path to the understanding of the whole Scripture.’
-Some doctors attended these lectures, and expressed their high
-admiration.[753] He did not content himself with being at the same
-time pastor and professor, he also worked diligently in his study. He
-revised his _Institution_, and prepared a second edition; he recast
-his _Catechism_; he composed a treatise on the Supper, of which he
-sent a copy to Luther. Calvin, like Zwingli, regarded the bread and
-the wine as signs, as pledges that Christ gives to the believer his
-crucified body and his shed blood; that is to say, communicates to him
-the expiatory virtue of his death. He taught that the believer receives
-the body and the blood by faith, which is _the mouth of the soul_, and
-not by the bodily mouth. But he differed from the reformer of Zurich in
-that he saw in the supper a mysterious union with the glorified person
-of Christ. ‘With good reason,’ he said, ‘the bread is called body,
-since it not only _represents_ him, but also _presents_ him to us. We
-must therefore really receive in the supper the body and the blood of
-Jesus Christ, since the Lord sets forth to us therein the communion of
-both. If God gave us only bread and wine, leaving behind the spiritual
-truth, would it not be the case that he had instituted this mystery
-on fictitious grounds?[754] This alliance is effected on our part by
-faith, and on the part of God by his secret and miraculous virtue. The
-Spirit of God is the bond of this participation; that is why it is
-called spiritual. When Luther began his course, he appeared to say that
-the bread was the body of Christ. Œcolampadius and Zwingli appeared to
-leave in the supper nothing but the bare signs without their spiritual
-substance. Thus Luther failed on his side, Zwingli and Œcolampadius on
-their side. Nevertheless, let us not forget the grace which the Lord
-gave to all of them, and the benefits which he has conferred on us by
-their instrumentality.’[755]
-
-Luther acknowledged that Calvin’s doctrine went beyond that of Zwingli,
-and expressed the delight which it gave him. As early as October, 1539,
-the Saxon reformer wrote to Bucer--‘Greet John Calvin respectfully,
-whose book I have read with singular enjoyment.’[756] As the treatise
-on the Supper appeared only in 1541, the _Institution_ must be the
-book spoken of, in which the doctrine of the Eucharist was already set
-forth. When the reformer of Germany read the little treatise to which
-we have just referred, he said, ‘Ah, if the Swiss did the same, we
-should now be at peace instead of quarrelling.’[757]
-
-In addition to his other labors, Calvin attended the theological
-debates in the universities, sometimes even presiding at them. He held
-conferences with the Roman Catholic doctors, at which he defended
-the evangelical theology; thereby acquiring so high a renown that a
-great number of students and even of learned men came from France to
-Strasburg to hear him.[758]
-
-This man, who already occupied so important a position, was at the
-same time in the most humble circumstances. Poverty was added to
-his other trials. He received from the publishers of his works only
-very low remuneration. He did not think that he had any right to ask
-remuneration from the state or even from the Church; but he would not
-have refused it if it had been spontaneously offered to him. He was
-living at this time on a small sum derived partly from his paternal
-inheritance and partly from the sale of his library and other property
-of various kinds. But this was far short of his need, and sometimes
-the payment for his lodging was a great embarrassment. He wrote to
-Farel--‘I am obliged to live at my own expense, unless I were willing
-to become a burden to my brethren; and my destitution is now so great
-that _I do not possess a farthing_.[759] It is not, you see, so easy
-for me to take care of my health as you with so much kind care counsel
-me to do.’ Calvin afterwards received a salary, but too small to
-suffice even for his modest wants.
-
-[Sidenote: DEATH OF OLIVÉTAN.]
-
-Just at the time when Calvin was gaining new friends at Strasburg, he
-lost some of his oldest and most beloved ones. We have seen his grief
-on hearing of the death of Courault. At the beginning of January 1539,
-he received a letter from Francesca Bucyronia, wife of the physician
-Sinapi, tutor to the children of the Duchess of Ferrara, informing
-him that his cousin Olivétan, one of the first evangelists of Geneva,
-and translator of the French version of the Bible, had just died in
-that town. Calvin’s pain at this news was increased by the report
-that his friend, while at Rome, had taken poison, and that of this
-he died. This was a conjecture at that period commonly put forward
-to account for unexpected deaths. There is little probability of its
-truth. Calvin does not speak of it. He contents himself with calling
-Olivétan _our friend_, and adds that the natural sorrow which he feels
-must be his apology to his correspondents for his short and disjointed
-letters.[760] Few men have had so many friends as Calvin. His was no
-ordinary friendship; it was always felt to be deep and unchangeable.
-
-But Calvin’s thought was at this time occupied with affection of
-another kind. He believed that those who have received a new life from
-Christ are called to love all those who have received the same grace;
-‘to love them with that simple affection, that natural proneness,
-with which relations love each other.’ It was, however, no exclusive
-love that he required. ‘In bidding us begin by loving the faithful,
-the Lord leads us on, by a kind of apprenticeship, to the loving of
-all men without exception.’[761] But union and agreement between the
-children of God was the great need of his heart. When writing to
-Bullinger (March 12, 1539) he said--‘Satan, who plots the ruin of the
-kingdom of Christ, sows discord between us. Let us all then have a
-cordial agreement with one another, and may it be the same with all the
-Churches. I clasp you in my arms, wishing you all good.’[762]
-
-With this cordial charity Calvin maintained an indomitable courage.
-Capito was given to looking at the dark sides of things: black thoughts
-often hovered around him and took possession of his imagination. In
-vain his faith strove to lighten the darkness; mournful forebodings
-overwhelmed him, and a dull distress was often read in his countenance.
-One day he protested before God and men that the Church was lost unless
-prompt aid should arrive. Afterwards, when he found that the state of
-things did not improve, he prayed God that he might die.[763] It was
-not so with Calvin. ‘Ah,’ said he, ‘the Lord will bless us although
-everything should be against us. Let us therefore try all remedies; and
-if we do not find any to be efficacious, let us nevertheless persevere
-as long as we have any breath of life.’[764] It is this unconquerable
-steadfastness which made Calvin the great reformer.
-
-[Sidenote: DESPOTISM AT GENEVA.]
-
-The faith of Calvin was not to deceive him. But few voices had been
-raised in his favor at Geneva in the general council of May 26, 1538.
-The minority which adhered to the Reformation had at first shrunk
-away into retirement and silence. The most active men, who are not
-always the wisest, alone had spoken. But gradually the more competent
-influential men appeared, recognized and united with each other, and
-took combined action. The government party made little account of them;
-and as Master Guillaume, as they called Farel, was in the popular
-judgment the chief of the Evangelicals, they used to call these, with
-a shrug of the shoulders, the _Guillemins_, nor had they a suspicion
-that these people would ever recover themselves. The council, which was
-little disposed to respect individual freedom, less so perhaps than
-Calvin and Farel, ordered all heads of families to attend sermon on the
-Sunday. This order was especially aimed at the friends of the reformers
-and their refusal to hear the ministers who had taken the place of the
-latter, and who, to make themselves agreeable to the magistrate, openly
-censured their predecessors.
-
-Farel and Calvin had established in Geneva not only the Church but
-also the school; and some of their best friends, Saunier and Mathurin
-Cordier were among the most eminent masters. This institution naturally
-remained faithful to its founders, and the conduct of the government
-towards it showed that they looked on it as decidedly opposed to
-their views and opinions. The council did not intend to allow its
-subordinates to show themselves hostile to its scheme for the direction
-of ecclesiastical affairs. However, while they shrank perhaps from
-disorganizing the school, they resolved, sparing at the outset the
-leading men, to give them a lesson by energetically prosecuting one or
-two of their under-masters.
-
-Eynard and Gaspard were consequently cited, September 10, before
-the council, which made complaint of their publicly censuring the
-_preachers_, and inquired of them where they had received the supper
-at Easter and Whitsuntide. They replied that they had not joined in
-the communion anywhere, because St. Paul enjoined _that every man
-should examine himself_, and that they had not felt in the right frame
-of mind. They had no doubt been unwilling to receive the bread and
-the wine, which are the communion of the body and the blood of the
-Saviour, from the hands of pastors whom they judged unworthy. The
-council ordered them to leave the town in three days. After having thus
-inflicted disciplinary penalties on the humble under-masters, they
-awaited Christmas.
-
-Matters were by that time far worse. Many foreigners, chiefly refugees,
-did not take the supper. They were condemned to leave the town, ten
-days only being allowed to them to set their affairs in order. The
-councillors and other Genevese who had been guilty of the same offence
-were obliged to apologize and to promise ‘to live from this time forth
-according to the way of the town.’ These things did not pass without
-lively altercations; and in consequence of a dispute which took place
-in the street on the night of December 30, 1538, one man was killed
-and many were wounded.[765] The most enraged of the refractory party,
-thinking to justify their conduct in attacking the settled ministers,
-called them infidels, corrupters of Scripture, and papists, who tried
-to deceive the people. The pastors, who were certainly not possessed
-of ability enough to fill the place of the eminent doctors banished by
-the council, but who endeavored for the most part to do as much good
-as their moral and intellectual qualities permitted, were greatly
-annoyed, complained to the council, and desired to withdraw and make
-room for others better qualified than themselves. ‘These reproaches,’
-they said, ‘we find it very hard to bear.’ The council assured them
-that it meant to keep them, and to reconcile them with their accusers.
-
-[Sidenote: THE REGENTS OF THE COLLEGE.]
-
-After this second act of discipline, or rather, at the same time, the
-council undertook a third, of graver character still. In their eyes the
-college was still a fortress in which Calvinism had entrenched itself,
-with the intention of resisting the attacks of its adversaries. The
-magistrate resolved to give the regents an opportunity of declaring
-themselves, and if they offered resistance, to expel them. To join
-the ministers who had succeeded Farel and Calvin, to administer the
-supper with them, to do an act which those great doctors had refused
-to do,--this was the requirement addressed by the magistrate to
-Saunier, rector of the college, and to the three regents, Mathurin
-Cordier, Vautier, and Vindos. It would have been straining a point
-for them to take the supper; but to be in the number of those who
-administered it, after all the controversies which had taken place, was
-not this ‘to be an occasion of stumbling’ for many, and a taking part
-against those venerated men whose absence they deplored? These four
-professors therefore stated to the council that their conscience did
-not allow them to do what was required. The magistrates ought to have
-considered that this act is not within the province of the regents,
-and that they ought not to do anything which might, by depriving the
-college of the able men who directed it, possibly lead to its ruin.
-But Richardet and his friends were despots who did not intend to allow
-any resistance to their will. On the day after Christmas, they ordered
-the rector and the three regents to quit Geneva in the space of three
-days. Saunier was dismayed. He had a very numerous household. Many
-boys of good family from Basel, Berne, Zurich, Bienne, and other
-towns, lived in his house; and he had a young daughter, in delicate
-health, whom he would be obliged to take with him in the depth of
-winter. The next day, December 27, he appeared before the Council of
-the Two Hundred, stated the circumstances which we have just related,
-reminded them that he was a citizen of the town, and showed them
-that the resolution which they had adopted might be the ruin of the
-college, which was indispensable to the youth of Geneva. In fine, he
-could not possibly make the necessary arrangements in so short a time.
-This last point was the only one to which the Great Council took any
-heed. It confirmed the resolution of the Little Council, but granted
-to the regents fifteen days to act upon it. He must therefore depart.
-Saunier and his colleagues took the same road as Calvin and Farel had
-taken. Mathurin Cordier, who had received the knowledge of the Gospel
-from the celebrated Robert Etienne, had devoted his life to the task
-‘of training youth in piety and in good morals, cultivating in them
-a pure and elegant style, and the love of literature;’ had composed
-some important works;[766] and was one of those antique souls, it has
-been said, who always prefer the public good to their own interest.
-The loss of such a man was irreparable, but it was not final. The
-council sought for substitutes for these men; but they were forced to
-acknowledge that to find them was no easy matter. The first candidate
-who offered himself was rejected because he was a German. The second,
-Claude Viguier, beat one of his pupils so severely as to draw blood.
-The republican magistrates of 1538 placed submission to their arbitrary
-orders before the real interests of the schools and the people.[767]
-Calvin seemed to regret the course taken by Saunier. He entreated Farel
-to do everything in his power to prevent division and confusion from
-extending, and to induce the brethren no longer to refuse the rites
-adopted by the council.
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION OF CALVIN’S FRIENDS.]
-
-When this matter was settled, the council undertook another campaign.
-Among the partisans of Calvin and of the Reformation were several
-eminent men whose submission was much desired. The severity which had
-just been displayed towards the learned might induce these citizens
-to yield to the conquerors. Two former syndics especially, Porral and
-Pertemps, looking more at the lamentable occurrences which had attended
-the government appointment of the supper than at the supper itself,
-had not yet been able to bring themselves to sanction blameworthy
-proceedings (the banishment of their well-beloved pastors) by taking
-part in the ceremonies condemned by their friends. They had, it is
-true, received the letter from Calvin which urged them ‘to have
-only a zeal for God moderated by his Spirit and ruled by his Word.’
-But when Christmas drew near, and the supper was to be given with
-unleavened bread, they had hesitated as to what they should do; and
-as they doubted, they had abstained. The council was not inclined to
-decide this case of conscience in an accommodating way. On January 9,
-1539, Porral having appeared and being asked by the council whether
-he would conform to the ordinances respecting the supper, made answer
-at first in a rather vague way; and on being requested to answer
-more distinctly, he said, without entering into the question of the
-ordinances, ‘If it please God, I am ready to take the supper, _after
-having examined myself_.’ Pertemps spoke to the same effect.[768]
-
-The friends of Calvin knew that the reformer was distressed at the
-disorders which prevailed in Geneva, and which reduced the town to
-the saddest state. ‘Nothing causes me more sorrow,’ he wrote to his
-friends, ‘than the quarrels and the debates which you have with the
-ministers who have succeeded us. There is hardly a hope of amelioration
-while altercation and discord exist. Turn away, then, your minds and
-your hearts from men, and cling solely to the Redeemer.’ Calvin did not
-approve the renunciation of the communion by his friends on the ground
-of its celebration with unleavened bread, and he gave them a serious
-admonition not to disturb the peace on this immaterial question.[769]
-
-The council did not stop here. There were still some principal citizens
-of whom they had a wish to be rid. Claude Savoye, formerly first
-syndic, who had shown so much love for Geneva and even so much heroism,
-was a friend of the reformers and had censured the council. He was put
-in prison, September 6, 1538, on merely frivolous charges. He refused
-to answer magistrates whom he regarded as his personal enemies. The
-council deliberated whether it should not cause torture to be applied
-to this great citizen. But honorable men revolted against this notion;
-and the council, having nothing against him but presumptions without
-any foundation, contented themselves with taking from him all his
-offices, depriving him of all his rights, and making the town his
-prison. Savoye escaped, went to Berne, and from that city announced to
-the syndics that he resigned the citizenship of Geneva. Jean Goulaz,
-who in 1532 had posted on the walls of the town _the great pardon
-of Jesus Christ_ in opposition to the indulgences of the pope,[770]
-informed the council that he likewise renounced the citizenship,
-requested them to release him from his oath, and withdrew. While the
-council were deliberating on his request, he felt it prudent to quit
-the territory. The council, receiving information of this, ordered
-pursuit to be made. He was overtaken on the bridge of Arve and was
-sent to prison. Michel Rozet says with reference to these various
-prosecutions, ‘Those, in a word, who had banished the ministers,
-omitted no occasion of entirely dislodging their adherents.’[771]
-
-[Sidenote: SUPPRESSION OF DISORDERS.]
-
-An improvement, however, had just been made in the government. On
-February 9, 1539, the general assembly of the people having to elect
-the syndics of the year, not one of the citizens who had played a
-part in the expulsion of Calvin and his friends was chosen. The new
-magistrates were taken from the moderate party, and one of them,
-Antoine Chiccand, was attached to the reformer. The less respectable
-class of the people did not seem to be aware of the change, and they
-celebrated the accession of the new magistrates after a strange
-fashion. It was the time of Carnival, Easter falling that year on April
-6; and although Geneva had no longer any wish for the religion of the
-papacy, this class of the inhabitants still kept up its festivals and
-its amusements. Their pastimes were numerous, burlesque, and even
-indecent. ‘There were mummeries, lewdness, indecent songs, dances, and
-blasphemies. Some went naked about the town with timbrels and pipes,’
-says a contemporary.[772] Did these disorderly doings form part of
-the Roman Catholic reaction that was then attracting attention? We do
-not assert this. However it might be, the pastors complained to the
-council, and the latter ordered an inquiry, especially against those
-who went about the streets at night without their clothes. It appeared
-from the inquiry that ‘those who had done so were all young, and had
-intended nothing more than a freak of youthful folly.’ The council
-‘remonstrated’ with the delinquents; and some women who had ‘danced to
-the songs’ were put in prison for a day, and afterwards were severely
-censured by the syndic. Three days later the council issued a decree
-which enjoined the people ‘devoutly to listen to the Word of God on
-Sundays, and to govern themselves according to it; not to swear nor
-blaspheme, nor play for gold or silver;’ and forbade them ‘to go about
-the town after nine o’clock without candles, to dance at any dances
-except at weddings, to sing any indecent songs, to disguise themselves,
-or to indulge in masks or mummeries.’
-
-At the time when magistrates who were better disposed towards Calvin
-were called to the government of the republic, a door was opened on
-another side which revealed to the reformer a new world, Germany
-with her doctors and her princes. Calvin was living on the banks of
-the Rhine at the period when the emperor was convoking frequent and
-important assemblies, which were attended by the princes either in
-person or by their delegates, and in which they discussed the deepest
-questions of theology with as much eagerness as diplomatists in
-congress discuss the interests of their respective governments. From
-the year 1535 to 1539 Protestantism had been gaining in strength; it
-had made many conquests in North Germany, and appeared to be on the
-point of winning the decisive victory. The Catholics were beginning to
-lose heart, and the successive congresses at which they required the
-Protestants to come to terms with them might well lead one to call them
-a weakened army which desired only favorable conditions for lowering
-its flag. Calvin watched with his keen eye this astonishing process. He
-continually asserted in his letters that it was not the existence of
-one Church (that of Geneva), but of all Churches, that was at stake.
-There were moments when he thought that he had a glimpse of the triumph
-of the Gospel in Europe; at other times he was seized with great
-despondency. There was a conflict within him. His natural timidity led
-him to shrink from appearing in the Germanic assemblies; but his faith
-and his zeal for the kingdom of God made him long to take part in them.
-
-[Sidenote: CONFERENCE AT FRANKFORT.]
-
-Charles V., after making peace with Francis I., had convoked, at
-Frankfort, for the month of February 1539, a conference of evangelical
-and Roman Catholic theologians, who were to endeavor to find a basis
-of agreement. We have not to devote our attention to all the work done
-at the German assemblies which Calvin attended, but only to that which
-concerns him personally. Deputies from Strasburg went to Frankfort,
-but the young French doctor did not accompany them. He contented
-himself with earnestly commending to Bucer the cause of the persecuted
-Protestants. But shortly after, having received a letter from Bucer,
-informing him that he found it was impossible for him to do anything
-for his co-religionists, and hearing at the same time that Melanchthon
-was present at the conferences, his spiritual earnestness overcame
-the timidity of his nature. He was seized with a strong desire to go
-to Frankfort and to converse with the friend of Luther on religion
-and the affairs of the Church. He set out in great haste the next
-day. At Frankfort he met some of the most prominent characters of the
-Reformation. Here were the pious John Frederick, elector of Saxony;
-young Maurice of Saxony, who was one day to prove so formidable to
-Charles V.; the famous landgrave Philip of Hesse, the Duke of Luneburg,
-and many other princes, whose acquaintance could not be a matter of
-indifference to the young reformer. Several of these young princes were
-accompanied by a great number of knights and soldiers, and all appeared
-to be full of courage for the defence of the Gospel. Calvin, in long
-letters to Farel, gave an account of all that he saw and thought. He
-formed a most just conception of the Protestant question in Germany, of
-the disposition of the princes, of the policy of Charles V., and of the
-various matters under discussion. But one man was there whose society
-he coveted more than that of all the princes. Calvin’s sojourn at
-Frankfort is especially marked by the conversations which he had with
-Melanchthon ‘on many subjects.’[773] Several of the most influential
-men of the Reformation, in Switzerland and in France, were not well
-informed as to the opinions of this celebrated doctor. Calvin wished
-to be able to bear testimony to them with certitude. The great idea of
-the French doctor was agreement between all evangelical Christians.
-He was convinced that it was necessary, not only for the sake of
-obedience to the commandments of Jesus Christ, but further to promote
-the triumph of the evangelical cause. He wished for union, not only of
-the various parties in Germany, but of Germany and Switzerland. Now
-Melanchthon appeared to him the fittest man to bring about agreement
-among the Protestants. No sooner had these two great doctors met and
-exchanged the most kindly greetings, than Calvin opened the question.
-He had communicated to Melanchthon some articles in which his view
-of the supper was set forth in a way to terminate dissension. ‘There
-is no room for controversy between you and me,’ said Melanchthon,
-immediately; ‘I accept your articles.’[774] This was a great pleasure
-to Calvin. It was however soon disturbed. ‘But,’ continued the friend
-of Luther, ‘I must confess to you that we have some among us who
-demand something more material, and this so obstinately, not to say so
-despotically,[775] that I have found myself for a long time exposed
-to danger because they know that I differ from them on this subject.
-I do not believe that a solid agreement is attainable. But I desire
-that we should abide by the present agreement, such as it is, until the
-Lord lead us by one way or another into union in the truth.’ Calvin
-perfectly satisfied, hastened to write to Farel--‘Entertain no more any
-doubt about him, but consider him as holding altogether the same views
-as we do.’ Farel and Calvin found in Melanchthon an important ally.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND MELANCHTHON.]
-
-There was another question on which Calvin desired to ascertain the
-opinion of Melanchthon; it was that of discipline. On this subject he
-was not fully satisfied. Hardly had he mentioned it when his companion
-began, like others, says Calvin, to lament its absence in the Church.
-‘Ah,’ said Calvin, ‘it is easier to mourn over the miserable state of
-the Church in this respect than to change it. And meanwhile how many
-examples are there which ought to animate us in seeking a remedy for
-this evil! Not long ago a good and learned man, who could not take on
-himself to tolerate vice, was driven from Ulm in disgrace, while his
-colleagues gave him the most honorable references. The news received
-from Augsburg is no better. Some day people will make a sport of
-deposing their pastors and sending them into exile.’ ‘We are in the
-midst of such a storm,’ said Melanchthon, ‘that we can do nothing
-better than give way for a short time to adverse winds.[776] We may
-hope that when external foes give us more repose, we shall be able to
-apply ourselves to remedying the evils that are within.’
-
-These conversations of Calvin and Melanchthon possessed a great
-attraction for both of them. We can imagine how interesting was this
-exchange of views between two of the most distinguished minds of the
-age. Their speech was simple, profound, and natural. They listened
-well and replied well. Calvin spoke with great freedom, although
-without dogmatism. The ceremonies of worship in the Lutheran churches,
-the singing in Latin, the images and other things quite as much to
-be censured, were among the subjects which he had at heart. ‘I must
-confess to you frankly,’ he said to Melanchthon, ‘that this superfluity
-of ceremonies pains me; it seems to me that the forms which you have
-kept are not far removed from Judaism.’[777] Calvin having given
-his reasons, ‘I will not dispute with you on this subject,’ said
-Melanchthon; ‘I own that we have among us too many of these senseless,
-or at any rate certainly superfluous rites.[778] But it was necessary
-to concede this to the canonists, who show themselves very obstinate
-with respect to it. For the rest, there is no place in Saxony which
-is less overloaded with them than Wittenberg, and even there much of
-this farrago will be thrown overboard. Luther disapproves just as much
-the ceremonies which he has been compelled to keep as he does your
-parsimony in regard to them.’ Calvin when relating this conversation
-to Farel adds, ‘Bucer cannot endure that for the sake of these paltry
-outward observances we should separate from Luther; and I too believe
-that they are not legitimate causes of division.’[779] From all these
-conversations Calvin derived the conviction of the complete sincerity
-of Melanchthon, and this he was anxious to communicate to those who
-doubted it.
-
-[Sidenote: HENRY VIII. AND MELANCHTHON.]
-
-Henry VIII. was at this time requesting that a new embassy should
-be sent to him, and that Melanchthon should be a member of it. The
-princes were not inclined to intrust the mission to this doctor, as
-they feared that he might, for want of firmness of character, make
-imprudent concessions to the king.[780] Calvin opened his mind freely
-to Melanchthon on the subject. ‘I swear most solemnly to you,’ replied
-the latter, ‘that there is no ground for this fear.’ ‘I rely on him no
-less than on Bucer,’ wrote Calvin to Farel. ‘When the business is to
-treat with those who require to be treated with some indulgence, Bucer
-is animated with so much zeal for the propagation of the Gospel that,
-content with having obtained the most important things, he is perhaps
-sometimes rather too ready to give up those which he looks on as very
-subordinate, and which for all that have their weight.’ Further,
-Calvin’s opinion of Henry VIII. was formed, and he did not conceal
-it. ‘This prince,’ said he, ‘is scarcely half wise.[781] He prohibits
-the marriage of priests and bishops, not only under the penalty of
-deprivation of their offices, but by severe punishments besides. He
-maintains the daily masses and the seven sacraments. He has thus a
-mutilated Gospel, half of it torn off, and a Church still full of many
-absurdities.[782] He has recently published a new edict, by which he
-endeavors to keep the people from the reading of the Bible; and to
-show you that it is not mere thoughtlessness, but that he takes up the
-matter in earnest, he has lately had a good and wise man burnt because
-he denied the carnal presence of Christ in the bread.’[783] Calvin
-afterwards says, ‘The worst of it is that the king tolerates nothing
-but what he has sanctioned with his own authority. Thus it will come
-to pass that Christ shall profit them nothing, except the king should
-be willing to permit him. The Lord will punish such arrogance by some
-notable chastisement.’[784]
-
-It was determined at Frankfort that another assembly should be held in
-the course of the summer. Melanchthon, soon after his arrival in that
-town, had seen in a dream a large picture in which was represented the
-figure of Christ on the cross, and around him souls clothed in white.
-The electors of the empire, bearing the ensigns of their dignity, were
-approaching it in regular order. Next after them came an ass, covered
-with a linen cope and dragging after him with a rope the emperor and
-the pope, as if he were going to conduct them to that assembly of the
-blessed.[785] ‘I think,’ said Myconius, who was then at Frankfort,
-‘that it is the Germanic ass which the emperor and the pope have
-hitherto ridden so hard and miserably treated.’ The good Melanchthon
-was very much taken up with the thought of leading to Christ all the
-German princes, and even the emperor and the pope; and it appears that
-in his great humility he had represented himself in his dream under the
-figure of an ass. Luther in his reply thinks decidedly that it was a
-two-footed ass.[786] Be that as it may, the assembly at Frankfort does
-not appear to have led anybody to the crucified, and especially neither
-pope nor emperor. It would have taken more than one rope to draw them
-thither. Calvin did not wait for the close of the colloquy to return to
-Strasburg.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
-
- CALVIN’S RELATIONS WITH SADOLETO.
-
- (1539.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: MEETING OF PRELATES AT LYONS.]
-
-Rome, meanwhile, was not indifferent to what was taking place at
-Geneva. Between the papacy and the Reformation there were action and
-reaction, which kept both in constant agitation. When once the Catholic
-reaction began, not content with mere resistance, it assumed the
-offensive. The partisans of the pope, still pretty numerous in Geneva,
-informed the Bishop de la Baume of what occurred in the town; and he,
-who like all dispossessed princes was always expecting to be restored
-to his episcopal see, the sweets of which he remembered better than the
-bitterness, communicated with the pope. The latter gave to La Baume
-the cardinal’s hat, in the hope that this dignity might be a bait to
-draw the Genevese to place themselves once more under the crook of
-their bishop. Then he invited the prelates who were nearest neighbors
-to Geneva to take in hand the cause of their colleague. The Bishops of
-Lyons, Besançon, Lausanne, Vienne, Turin, Langres and Carpentras, met
-the Bishop of Geneva in the first of these towns. ‘The flock,’ they
-said, ‘being now deprived of its pastors, men so eminent, we must seize
-the opportunity to rescue it from the Reformation.’[787] Many Genevese
-Catholics had emigrated to Lyons, and they spared no pains to bring
-about the restoration of the prelate. Pierre de la Baume asked of his
-colleagues ‘the recovery of his diocese.’ The Cardinal of Tournon,
-the notorious persecutor of the Vaudois, and the introducer of the
-Jesuits into France, who was at this time archbishop of Lyons, was
-president of the meeting. He had thus an opportunity of satisfying his
-inextinguishable passion against the _Calvinists_. Jean Philippe, chief
-author of the banishment of Calvin, met with Tournon in the church
-at Lyons, and carried on intrigues with him.[788] The affair might
-perhaps have had a violent ending, but that a man was there present of
-a different stamp from the archbishop. This was Cardinal Sadoleto, who,
-as bishop Carpentras, a town in Dauphiné bordering on Savoy, seemed by
-his neighboring position bound to concern himself more particularly
-with Geneva. He was connected with Bembo, secretary to Leo X., was a
-great lover of the classics, of philosophy and the arts, and was a man
-of great eloquence, says Beza, but used it for extinguishing the true
-light.[789] He very much regretted that the Reformation appeared to be
-taking precedence of the Renaissance. He was, however, of more liberal
-mind than adherents of the pope usually were. He loved Melanchthon. He
-thought that it was not right to address the Genevese in the imperious
-tone of a master, with dogmatic arguments of the school, or with the
-intolerance of inquisitors, but rather in a polite style. Sadoleto was
-therefore instructed to write a letter to the Genevese in which he was
-to invite them mildly to return to the bosom of the Church. That the
-contrivances and efforts of the pope, of the Bishop de la Baume, of the
-Cardinal of Tournon and his colleagues, should issue only in a letter,
-was rather a feeble conclusion.
-
- Parturiunt montes, nascetur ridiculus mus.
-
-[Sidenote: LETTER OF SADOLETO TO GENEVA.]
-
-But they probably saw that they were powerless to do more. The
-cardinal-bishop hoped to gain over the Genevese ‘by wheedling them with
-fine words to turn them away from Jesus Christ,’ says a contemporary,
-‘and by blaming the ministers of whom God had made use for reforming
-the town.’[790] On March 26 his messenger, Jean Durand, of Carpentras,
-was admitted into the hall of the council, and delivered the missive
-addressed by his bishop to his _well-beloved brethren_ the syndics,
-councils, and citizens of Geneva. There was not a word about the
-conference at Lyons. ‘It has seemed good to the Holy Spirit and to me
-to write to you. The reason is that while at Carpentras I have heard
-reports concerning you which partly make me sad and partly give me
-hope.’ Knowing how seductive flattery is, he writes the most beautiful
-eulogy of Geneva. ‘I love the noble aspect of your town, the order and
-form of your republic, the excellence of the citizens, and, above all,
-the exquisite humanity which you display towards all foreign people
-and nations.’ But by the side of this flattering picture he hastens
-to place a portrait not so pleasing of the reformers. ‘Certain crafty
-men, enemies of Christian union and peace, have cast into your town
-the seeds of discord. I hear on one side the weeping, sighing, and
-groaning of our holy Church. On the other side I perceive that these
-innovators are not only pestilential to souls, but also pernicious in
-a high degree to public and private affairs.’ Next he himself makes an
-almost evangelical profession. He exalts the Word of God which, says
-he, ‘does not entangle minds in difficult processes of reasoning; but,
-a heavenly affection of the heart coming to its aid, offers itself with
-clearness to our understandings.’ He exalts the work of Christ, ‘who
-was willing to be our salvation, by suffering death in the flesh and
-afterwards resuming an immortal life.’ He even exalts justification by
-faith, _faith alone_, which all Roman controversialists curse. ‘This
-everlasting salvation comes to us,’ said he, ‘by faith alone in God
-and in Jesus Christ. When I say _by faith alone_, I do not mean that
-charity and the duty of a Christian are dispensed with.’ Sadoleto was
-undoubtedly sincere in these professions. He belonged, as is known,
-to a small body of men feebly inclined towards the Gospel, who were
-at that time supported by the papacy in the hope that they would be
-the means of bringing back the Protestants. But he must have known
-well that the doctrine of the reformers, far from dispensing with duty
-and charity, asserted them, made them possible, and at the same time
-necessary.
-
-Having thus gained his hearers, as he thought, the cardinal-bishop
-began the contest. ‘The loss of the soul,’ said he, ‘being the greatest
-ill possible to a man, our duty is, to the utmost of our power, to
-take care. Amidst the waves of our life we are in need of some means
-of escape from striking on the rocks and losing the vessel. This is
-what the Catholic Church has provided for fifteen hundred years; while
-these crafty men only began their innovations against the perpetual
-authority of the Church five-and-twenty years ago.’ Then follows a fine
-rhetorical burst which lacks nothing but truth and solidity. ‘Here is
-the point,’ said he; ‘here is the parting of the ways, the one road
-leading unto life, the other unto everlasting death. Every man arrives
-by his own road before the judgment-seat of the supreme Judge, Catholic
-and Protestant alike, there to have his cause investigated.’
-
-The Catholics get off wonderfully, but when the turn of the
-Evangelicals comes it is quite otherwise with them. Sadoleto takes good
-care not to let the simple faithful ones appear, and brings before
-the tribunal only ‘one of the promoters of these divisions.’ He does
-not name either Luther or Calvin, but it is evident that it is one of
-them that he brings on the scene, probably the latter. Having leave to
-speak, the reformer begins thus: ‘O sovereign God! when I considered
-how all but universally corrupt are the morals of ecclesiastics, I was
-justly moved to anger against them; and when I thought also how much
-time I had spent in the study of theology and of human science, and
-that nevertheless I had not attained in the Church the rank which my
-labors deserved, while other men, my inferiors, were raised to honors
-and to benefices, I induced the greater part of the people to despise
-the decrees of the Church. I asserted that the bishops of Rome had
-falsely usurped the title of vicars of Christ; and having by this
-reputation of learning and wisdom obtained renown among the nations, I
-caused many seditions and divisions in the Church.’
-
-[Sidenote: CONCLUSION OF THE LETTER.]
-
-Sadoleto having made the reformer speak in this fashion, again
-addresses the men of Geneva, and says to them, ‘How will it turn
-out, then, brethren, whom I wish to be united with me?’ The result
-of this double appearance is inevitable, and the promoter of all
-this evil, ‘taking his stand upon his works, holding in contempt the
-general assemblies of bishops, dismembering the one spouse of Christ,
-and tearing to pieces the Lord’s robe, can only weep for ever over
-his misery, gnashing his teeth even at himself.’ Consequently, the
-cardinal-bishop exhorts his brethren of Geneva, after having removed
-all the mists of error, to abide in union with our holy mother
-Church.[791]
-
-The reasoning of Sadoleto failed in its basis. He had confounded the
-Reformation of the sixteenth century with the so-called reforms of the
-preceding centuries. Those attempts, numerous enough, aimed at the
-morals of the clergy and the abuses of the Church without attacking
-the doctrine, and they miscarried. But the true Reformation directed
-its efforts against the false doctrines of Rome, in order to put the
-doctrine of the Gospel in its place. ‘It took the bull by the horns,’
-as Luther says, and had him down. Liberal Catholics have imagined, that
-if from the first such a course as Sadoleto’s had been adopted, the
-course of the Reformation would have been entirely different.[792] But
-they are mistaken, as the Bishop of Carpentras was, who, aiming his
-blows at an enemy in the air, hit nothing but the air.
-
-The council having heard the letter, very gladly accepted the
-compliments paid to Geneva, sincerely thanked the cardinal’s messenger,
-and charged him to say that a full reply should be sent in due
-course. This was necessary, for the partisans of the pope in Geneva
-praised the cardinal’s letter to the skies, and eagerly circulated
-it in all directions. But there was no one able to answer it. The
-pastors established by the government were not strong enough to
-venture a struggle with Sadoleto. Morand himself, who was requested
-by the council to undertake it, was incompetent. All those who in any
-degree adhered to the Reformation were in a state of alarm, for they
-understood that silence in this state of things would inevitably be a
-great calamity to Geneva.[793]
-
-It was on March 26 that the letter in which Sadoleto urged the Genevese
-to forsake the Reformation had been delivered to the council, and on
-the 27th this body resolved to reply to it in due time and place. On
-the 28th several citizens appeared before the council; one of them,
-François Chamois, demanding on their behalf that the confession of
-faith of the Reformation which had been sworn at St. Peter’s, July 29,
-1537, should be withdrawn from the possession of the former official
-secretary, as contrary to their liberties; and that they themselves
-should be released from the oath which they had taken to that
-confession.[794] There is so intimate and evident a relation between
-the proposal of Sadoleto and this proceeding of the citizens, the one
-so punctually followed upon the other, that it is very difficult not
-to suppose that the letter of the bishop had much to do in promoting
-the requisition of Chamois and his friends. The audience given by the
-council to the deputy of a cardinal, and the proposal of which he was
-the bearer, were a matter so considerable and of such exciting interest
-that the rumor of it could not fail to spread immediately in this town,
-where people so habitually used to say, ‘What is the news? What is
-talked of? What is going on?’
-
-[Sidenote: IMMEDIATE CONSEQUENCES.]
-
-Among the citizens who accompanied Chamois there might be some who
-did not belong to the Catholic party, and who merely took advantage
-of the opportunity for getting rid of a confession of faith which
-was burdensome to them. But it is not to be wondered at that some
-Roman writers have looked on the demand of Chamois as the consequence
-of the letter of Sadoleto. Michael Rozet, the son of Claude, says,
-not undesignedly, in his Chronicles, that it was one day after the
-reception at Geneva of the cardinal’s despatch, that the citizens
-_protested_ against the articles. He even adds, ‘There was warning
-from neighbors of a body of armed men in preparation by the enemy,
-and that these had an understanding with a party in the town.’ This
-measure was not unsuccessful. Claude Rozet had received the oaths of
-the citizens on July 29, and in his hands the original of the famous
-articles was still deposited. The council gave him orders to deliver
-them up. However grave a step this might be, it cannot be said that
-the faith was given up with the articles of faith. Many had never held
-this faith, and those who had held it, held it still. Nevertheless, the
-surrender of the fundamental document of the evangelical reformation
-was certainly an important step towards Rome.[795]
-
-It was soon apparent what was to be thought of the _Christian charity,
-and the affection touched with double pity and compassion_, of which
-Sadoleto had given assurance. In the very month which followed the
-delivery of his letter, an eminent Genevese, Curtet, castellan of
-Chaumont on the Mount du Vuache, went to Annecy, which was not far
-distant; and during his stay, April 17, in his hostelry, talked with
-the country people of God and his Gospel.[796] Among those present was
-Montchenu, who, annoyed at having failed in his scheme for giving up
-Geneva to Francis I., continued to feel much bitterness about it; and,
-quite as much out of pique as from hatred of the Reformation, denounced
-the Genevese citizen and inflamed the clergy against him. Curtet was
-seized and burnt alive.
-
-Another Genevese, Jean Lambert, brother of the councillor, had been
-for some time a prisoner in Savoy, on a like charge. A week after the
-execution of Curtet, the public place of Chambery was filled with
-such a crowd as always runs after the terrible spectacle of a violent
-death. Lambert was brought there about three o’clock. He was a ruddy
-and strong young man, and they led him up and down to show him to
-the people. ‘This is one of the bigots of Geneva,’ people said as he
-passed, with other speeches of the like kind. He was taken to the front
-of the castle, where a pile was erected. The provost wanted him to make
-some confession, but Lambert did not open his mouth. ‘Slit his tongue
-if he will not speak,’ barbarously cried the enraged provost to the
-executioner. The priests who stood round their victim would fain have
-compelled him to recite the _Ave Maria_, but the martyr refused to do
-it. Then addressing the Father who is in heaven, he uttered aloud the
-Lord’s prayer. This provoked the priests and the monks, who cried to
-the spectators, ‘Do not pray for this cursed dog, for he is damned to
-all the devils.’ ‘Lambert died,’ says one of the narratives, ‘for his
-faith in God and without any trial.’ If the words of Sadoleto were
-tender, the deeds of his fellow religionists were harsh.[797]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN’S REPLY TO SADOLETO.]
-
-The letter of the Bishop of Carpentras could not remain unknown to
-Calvin; in fact it was communicated to him in April by Sulzer, a pastor
-of Berne. The reformer read it, and his first impulse was to consider
-whether it was worth while to reply to it. But apprehending the evil
-which the letter might bring on Geneva, ‘forgetting all the wrongs that
-he had received,’[798] and yielding to the entreaties of his Strasburg
-friends, he undertook the task. ‘It will occupy me for six days,’ he
-wrote to Farel. Calvin’s letter bears date September 1, 1539.[799] It
-is an important document, both for the light which it throws on the
-character and the work of Calvin, and because it is necessary to know
-in what manner the blow then struck by Rome at the Reformation was
-parried. This letter, we may say, was the mighty voice which led back
-Geneva to the true Gospel.[800] Two feelings are conspicuous in it with
-regard to Sadoleto. Calvin, in addressing one of the most distinguished
-and most enlightened men in the Catholic Church, will speak to him with
-respect and even with praise, but at the same time he will not hide
-from him the indignation aroused by his attacks.
-
-‘Thy surpassing learning,’ says he in beginning his letter, ‘thine
-admirable elegance of speech, have deservedly caused thee to be held in
-high esteem and admiration by the true votaries of polite literature,
-and it is exceedingly painful to me to be obliged by this complaint to
-sully thy fair renown. I should never have undertaken the task if I had
-not been compelled to do so.... No one can suppose that I could have
-abandoned the cause without great cowardice and contempt of my ministry.
-
-‘Thou hast very recently written a letter to the council and people of
-Geneva, and having no wish to display harshness towards those of whom
-thou hadst need in order to gain thy cause, thou hast attempted by soft
-words to circumvent them. Next, thou hast come up impetuously, and
-so to speak, at full speed to discharge thy force against those who,
-according to thy saying, have involved that poor town in trouble by
-their sophistries. I would have thee know, Sadoleto, that I am one of
-those against whom thou speakest; and although I am at the present time
-relieved of the administration of the Genevese Church, this does not
-prevent my cherishing towards it a fatherly love.
-
-‘But for thyself, Sadoleto, a foreigner, who hast hitherto had no
-acquaintance at all with the people of Geneva, thou professest on
-a sudden to feel for them singular love and goodwill, of which,
-nevertheless, no fruit ever appeared. Thou who didst serve thine
-apprenticeship at the Court of Rome, that shop of all artifice and
-cunning, who wert not only brought up as it were in the arms of Pope
-Clement, but what is more, made a cardinal, thou hast certainly many
-spots which render thee suspected. The duty of pastors is to lead
-obedient souls straight to Christ; but thy chief aim is to deliver them
-over to the power of the pope.
-
-‘With a view to cast suspicion on us thou taxest us, unjustly (for thou
-well knowest the contrary), with having wished only to gratify our
-ambition and avarice. Certain it is that if I had paid regard to my
-personal advantage, I should never have separated from your faction.
-And who would dare to cast such charges at Farel, who, born of a
-noble house, had no need to ask assistance from others? Was not our
-shortest way of attaining to wealth and honors to accept from the first
-the conditions which you have offered us? For what price would your
-pope then have purchased the silence of many, and for how much would
-he still purchase it to-day? Did we not require that, after having
-assigned to the ministers so much as was fitting for their condition,
-the wealth of the Church, swallowed up by those gulfs, should be
-distributed to the poor as in the primitive Church? Our only thought
-has been the extension of the kingdom of God by means of our littleness
-and lowliness; and to attempt to persuade men of the contrary is a
-thing most unbecoming to Sadoleto, a man of such high reputation for
-knowledge, prudence, and seriousness.
-
-[Sidenote: CHRISTIAN ANTIQUITY.]
-
-‘The men of Geneva, extricating themselves from the slough of error in
-which they were sunk, have returned to the doctrine of the Gospel, and
-this thou callest abandoning the truth of God! They have retired from
-papal subjection and tyranny in order to have a better ecclesiastical
-government, and this, sayest thou, is a real separation from the
-Church! Surely, Sadoleto, I shall stop thee on the way. Where is, on
-your side, the Word of God, which is the mark of the true Church? If
-a man belongs to God’s army he must be prepared for the battle. See,
-the enemy is quite near; he approaches, he fights, and he is indeed an
-enemy so well-conditioned that no earthly power can resist him. What
-armor will this poor Christian be able to put on, to save him from
-being overwhelmed? It is the Word of God. The soul deprived of the Word
-of God is delivered over to the devil, quite defenceless, to be slain.
-The first attempt of the enemy, therefore, will be to take from the
-combatant the sword of Jesus Christ. The pope, like the “illuminés,”
-arrogantly boasts of possessing the Spirit. But it is to insult the
-Holy Spirit to separate him from the Word.
-
-‘We are more nearly in agreement with antiquity than you our opponents,
-as thou knowest, Sadoleto, and we ask for nothing else than to see
-restored that ancient face of the Church which has been torn to pieces
-and almost destroyed by the pope and his faction. And, not to speak
-of the condition of the Church as constituted by the apostles (which,
-however, we are bound to accept), consider what it was among the Greeks
-in the days of Chrysostom and Basil, and among the Latins in the days
-of Cyprian, Ambrose, and Augustin, and afterwards contemplate the
-ruins which are all that now remain to you. Thou wilt find as much
-difference between the two as between the Church as it flourished under
-David, and the Church as fallen into all kinds of superstitions under
-Zedekiah. Wilt thou call that man an enemy of antiquity, who, full
-of zeal for ancient piety, longs to restore in their first splendor
-the things which are now corrupted? With what right are we accused of
-having subverted the ancient discipline, by the very party that has
-abolished them?
-
-‘Dost thou not recollect that at the time when our people began to
-appear, nothing was taught in the schools but pure sophistries, so
-tangled and twisted that scholastic theology might well be called a
-kind of secret magic? There were no sermons from which foolish old
-women did not learn more dreams than they could relate in a month by
-their own fireside. The first portion was devoted to obscure questions
-of the schools, to excite the wonder of the poor people, and the
-second portion to merry tales or amusing speculations, to rouse their
-hearts to mirth. But no sooner had our preachers raised their banner
-than the shadows were dispersed, and your preachers, taught by them
-and compelled by shame and the murmurs of the people, were obliged to
-follow their example, although they have still traces of these old
-follies.
-
-‘Thou touchest on justification by faith. But this article, which
-stands supreme in our religion, has been effaced by you from the memory
-of men. Thou allegest that we take no account of good works. If thou
-lookest into my catechism, at the first word thou wilt be silent as
-if overcome. We deny, it is true, that they are of any avail in the
-justification of man, not even so much as a hair, for the Scripture
-gives us no hope except in the goodness of God alone. But while we deny
-the virtue of works in the justification of man, we attribute worth
-to them in the life of the just, for Christ came to create _a people
-zealous of good works_.’
-
-We pass over the beautiful passages in which Calvin speaks of the
-supper, confession, the invocation of saints, purgatory, the ministry,
-and the Church, and we come to the moment at which he remembers that
-Sadoleto had cited him and his brethren ‘as criminals before the
-judgment-seat of God.’ He accepts that summons.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN’S DEFENCE.]
-
-‘We prick up our ears,’ said he, ‘at this sound of the trumpet which
-the very ashes of the dead will hear in the depths of their graves.’
-And then, not only in his own name but in that of all the reformers,
-Calvin says to God:--
-
-‘I have ever appealed to thy tribunal, Lord, from the accusations
-with which I have been harassed on the earth, and it is with the same
-confidence that I now appear before thee, knowing that in thy judgments
-truth prevails. They have accused me of very grievous crimes and of
-heresy. But in the first place, what have I done? Seeing that, with
-no regard to thy Word, they abused the common people, and made a mock
-at them by I know not what sort of drivelling, I dared to contradict
-their constitutions. Thy Christ was indeed adored as God, but he was
-virtually without honor; for deprived of his virtue and of his power,
-he was lost sight of in the crowd of saints, as if merely one of the
-common mass. There were none who rested in his righteousness alone; and
-if any one, enjoying thy loving kindness and the righteousness of thy
-Son, conceived a sure hope of salvation, this was, they said, rash
-presumption and foolish arrogance. Then, O Lord, thou didst set before
-me thy Word, like a torch, to make me know how pernicious these things
-are; and thou hast touched my heart, to the end that I may hold them in
-abhorrence.
-
-‘They have accused me of schism. But is that man to be reputed a
-traitor who, when he sees the soldiers quitting the ranks, forgetting
-their captain, the battle, and the oath which they have taken,
-scattered, wandering to and fro, raises the standard, calls them back,
-and sets them again in order? To recall them from such wanderings I
-have not given to the wind a strange flag, but that noble standard
-which it is necessary we should follow, if we would be enrolled in the
-number of thy people. But those whose duty it was to keep the soldiers
-in good order and who have on the contrary cast them into error, have
-laid hands on me, and the conflict has been so furious as to break up
-union. But on which side is the fault? It is for thee, Lord, now to say
-and to decide.
-
-‘If I had desired to maintain peace with those who boast of being
-the foremost in the Church, I could have purchased it only by the
-renunciation of the truth. I have felt it my duty to risk all the
-dangers of the world rather than stoop to a compact so abominable.
-But I do not think that by being at war with those great ones I am at
-variance with thy Church. Thy Son, and thine apostles, had foretold
-that there would be ravening wolves even amongst those who gave
-themselves out for pastors. Was I bound then to give them my hand? The
-prophets were not schismatics by reason of their contending against the
-priests. For my part, confirmed by their example, I have so persisted
-in my course that neither their threats nor their denunciations have in
-the least degree amazed me.
-
-‘Commotions have followed; but as they were not caused by me, they
-ought not to be imputed to me. Thou knowest well, Lord, that I have had
-no other object in view except this, that by thy Word all controversy
-might be terminated. Thou knowest that I have not objected, even at the
-peril of my life, that peace should be restored in the Church. But what
-did our adversaries do? Did they not run off suddenly and furiously to
-the fire, to the gallows, to the sword? Did they not stir up people of
-all ranks to the same rage?... Hence it has come to pass that such a
-war has been kindled. And whatever may be thought, I am freed from all
-fear, since we are before thy judgment-seat where justice and truth
-meet together.’
-
-[Sidenote: HIS FIRST FAITH.]
-
-At this point Calvin narrates his conversion. It is an important part
-of his defence, and we cannot omit it. He still addresses the Supreme
-Judge:--
-
-‘As for me,[801] Lord, I confessed the Christian faith as I had learnt
-it from my youth.
-
-‘At that time there were but few people to whom was committed the
-pursuit of that divine and secret philosophy, and it was with them
-that the oracles had to be sought. But they had not instructed me
-well respecting either the adoration of thy divinity, or an assured
-hope of salvation, or the obligation of a Christian life. To obtain
-thy mercy they showed no other means than making satisfaction for our
-sins, and blotting out thy remembrance of them by our good works. They
-said that thou wast a rigorous judge, severely avenging iniquity; they
-pointed out how terrible thy look must be, and commanded us to address
-the saints, to the end that through their intercession thou mightest
-be made propitious to us. But when I had done all these things, and
-although to some extent I relied on them, I was very far from having a
-quiet and trustful conscience. Every time that I descended into myself,
-or lifted up my heart to thee, a horror so extreme seized upon me that
-there were neither purifications nor satisfactions that could heal me.
-The more closely I considered my case, the sharper became the stings
-with which my conscience was tormented: there was neither solace nor
-comfort left me.
-
-‘As nothing better was offered me, I pursued the course which I had
-begun, when there arose an entirely different form of doctrine, not
-intended to turn us away from the Christian profession, but to trace
-it back to its real source, and to restore it in its purity, cleansed
-from all defilement. Offended with this novelty, I would not listen
-to it; and I confess that at the outset I did courageously resist it.
-One thing especially kept me from believing those people; this was
-reverence for the Church.
-
-‘But after I had consented sometimes to be instructed, I perceived that
-the fear of seeing the majesty of the Church lessened was idle. These
-people showed that there was a wide difference between forsaking the
-Church and correcting the vices with which she was defiled; and that
-if they spoke freely against the Pope of Rome, held to be the vicar of
-Christ and head of the Church, they did so because these titles were
-only idle terrors which ought not to dazzle the eyes of the faithful;
-that the pope had risen to such magnificence only when ignorance
-oppressed the world like deep sleep; that it was by his own authority
-and sole will that he had elected himself, and that we were under no
-obligation to endure the tyranny with which he oppressed the nations,
-if we desired that the kingdom of Christ should remain in its fulness
-amongst us; that when this principality was erected, the genuine order
-of the Church was wholly lost, the keys (ecclesiastical order) wickedly
-falsified, Christian liberty suppressed, and the kingdom of Christ
-totally overthrown.
-
-‘When I began to discover in what a slough of errors I had wallowed
-and with how many stains I was disgraced, desperately alarmed and
-distracted at the sight of the misery into which I had fallen, and
-by the knowledge of the eternal death which was at hand, I condemned
-with tears and groans my former way of life, and esteemed nothing more
-needful for me than to betake myself to thine. What then is left for
-me to do, for me poor and miserable, but to offer to thee, as all my
-vindication, a humble supplication not to impute to me the so horrible
-forsaking and estrangement from thy Word, from which thou hast once
-rescued me by thy marvellous kindness?’
-
-[Sidenote: THE REAL SCHISMATICS.]
-
-Having finished his pleading before the Judge, Calvin returns to
-Sadoleto and says: ‘Now, if it seem good to thee, compare this address
-with that which thou hast put into the mouth of thy man, whose defence
-turns only on this hinge, to wit, that he constantly kept the religion
-which had been handed down to him by his forefathers and predecessors.
-His salvation is in great peril, without a shadow of doubt; for on the
-same ground Jews, Turks, and Saracens would escape the judgment of God.
-The tribunal will not then be prepared to accept the authority of men,
-but to maintain the truth of God. Your doctors will not then have a
-stage at hand for the sale, without risk, of their imitation gems, and
-for the abuse of consciences by their trumpery and inventions. They
-will remain what they are, and they will fall by the judgment of God,
-which depends not on popular favor, but on his unchangeable justice.
-
-‘Although thou treatest us with too little humanity in the whole of thy
-letter, it is nevertheless in the last clause, in the plainest terms,
-that thou imputest to us the most enormous of all crimes, to wit, _that
-we disperse and tear to pieces the spouse of Jesus Christ_. What! would
-the spouse of Jesus Christ be torn in pieces by those who desire to
-present her as a chaste virgin to Christ, and who, finding her polluted
-with many stains, recall her to her plighted faith? Was not the purity
-of the Church destroyed by strange doctrines, disgraced by innumerable
-superstitions, tainted by the worship of images? Indeed, because we did
-not endure that the sacred resting place and nuptial chamber of Christ
-should be thus defiled by you, we are accused of having dismembered
-his spouse. It is you that have been guilty of this laceration, and
-not with regard to the Church only, but with regard to Jesus Christ
-himself, whom you have miserably cut in pieces. Where is the wholeness
-of Christ, when the glory of his righteousness, of his holiness, of his
-wisdom, is transferred to others?
-
-‘I acknowledge that since the Gospel has appeared anew, great conflicts
-have been occasioned. But it is not at our door that the guilt of this
-is to be laid. We ask for a peace with which the kingdom of Christ
-shall flourish; but you judge that all that is gained for Christ is
-lost to you. Pray the Lord, Sadoleto, that thou and thy people may once
-for all understand that there is no other bond in the church but Christ
-our Lord, who withdraws us from the dissipations of the world to place
-us in the society of his body, to the end that by his only Word and by
-his Spirit, we may be united in one heart and one thought!
-
-‘Strasburg, the 1st day of September, 1539.’
-
-This letter found its way wherever the great question of the age was
-discussed, and made a deep impression. There were in it an impulse, a
-strength, a freedom, and a life which people were not accustomed to
-find in the writings of the Roman doctors. Luther greatly rejoiced in
-it, and soon after its publication sent a ‘respectful’ greeting to
-Calvin. At the same time, struck by the Romish presumption of Sadoleto,
-he added, with a touch of malice, ‘I wish that Sadoleto could believe
-that God is the Creator of men even beyond the borders of Italy.’[802]
-He expressed his joy that God raised up men like Calvin, and, far from
-looking on him as an antagonist, he saw in him a doctor who would
-continue what he had himself begun against Antichrist, and with God’s
-help would complete it.
-
-[Sidenote: EFFECT OF THE REPLY AT GENEVA.]
-
-But it was especially at Geneva that Calvin’s letter made a deep
-impression. The respect which he had shown to Sadoleto prepossessed
-people in his favor; and the eloquence of his discourse, that gift
-of the soul which he possessed, made him master of men’s minds. In
-his thought and in his expressions there was a close correspondence
-with the disposition of a large number of his readers. Moreover, it
-was impossible to read the two letters without seeing that the young
-evangelical doctor had beaten the Roman cardinal. And then, was not the
-cause in behalf of which Calvin had given battle that of Geneva? Was
-not the defeat of Sadoleto, and thereby also that of his constituents,
-the pope and the conference of Lyons, the greatest service that could
-be rendered to the republic? And finally had not this man whom they had
-driven away spoken of the town which had expelled him with fatherly
-love? Did he not say in his letter, ‘I cannot divert my attention from
-the Church of Geneva; I cannot love it less nor hold it less dear than
-my own soul.... Consider what folly it would be not to lay to heart the
-ruin of those for whose protection I am bound to watch day and night.’
-
-Sadoleto could not conceal from himself the force of the blow which he
-had received, nor did he venture to reply. The general himself being
-beaten, the staff dispersed. There was nothing more said about the
-conference of Lyons, and the Bishop de la Baume was not long before he
-disappeared from the scenes of this world. At the same time that Calvin
-replied to Sadoleto, he wrote to Neuchâtel, Lausanne, and Geneva. He
-called the inhabitants of the latter town to repentance towards God, to
-patient bearing with the wicked, and to peace with their pastors; and
-above all he exhorted them to call upon God.[803] Geneva was confirmed
-in her love for a cause which had been so well defended against the
-attacks of one of the most distinguished orators of the age, and the
-gates of the city, lately closed against the reformer, began to open
-again.
-
-Calvin had at this time to do with another Catholic doctor of much
-less worth than Sadoleto, Caroli. This man is not worth the trouble of
-dwelling long on anything that concerns him. As he had not succeeded
-in gaining the good graces of the pope or of the Cardinal Tournon,
-he made one more change and turned anew towards the reformers. Farel
-received him with much kindness, believed in his promises and made
-peace with him. Caroli came to Strasburg. Bucer, as kind by nature
-as Farel, nevertheless requested Calvin to make known all the faults
-of the adventurer. This the reformer declined to do, believing that
-it would have no good result; but he invited the haughty doctor to
-confess cordially and sincerely that he had sinned. Instead of this a
-writing was handed to Calvin in which Caroli said, ‘that he left to
-the judgment of the Lord the offences which had been committed against
-himself, and which had induced him to quit the Evangelical Church.’
-The reformer was indignant. ‘This stirred my bile so much,’ said he,
-‘that I discharged it with bitterness. I declared that I would sooner
-die than sign such a paper as that.’ He yielded, however, a little
-to his friends, and said that he would consider the matter with more
-care before giving a decisive answer. Hardly had he returned to his
-own house when he was seized with an extraordinary paroxysm. ‘I could
-find no consolation,’ said he to Farel, ‘but in sighs and tears; and
-what afflicted me most was the circumstance that you were the cause
-of all this mischief. You ought not to have received him anew into
-our communion until he solemnly confessed his offence and declared
-that he repented of it. But now that you have received him, prevent
-at least your people from insulting him.’[804] Ere long, however,
-Calvin’s friends at Strasburg and Farel himself acknowledged that
-they had been too indulgent. Caroli, finding that the churches of
-Neuchâtel and Strasburg refused to comply with the requests that he
-addressed to them, retired to Metz. From that place he wrote to Calvin
-a letter in which he offered to be reconciled with him if he would get
-a benefice for him. He seemed to wish to overawe him by reproaches and
-idle bravado. Calvin asked him how it came to pass that he had made a
-boast before the adversaries of Christ at Metz that he was prepared to
-convict of heresy the reformer and his friends. He added that he was
-not able to procure for him the church which he asked for, in the first
-place because he had none at his disposal, and further because he could
-not do so while they were not in agreement about doctrines. ‘Turn you
-seriously to the Lord,’ he said to him, ‘and then you will be able to
-return to us with that friendship and brotherly concord which Farel and
-I are prepared, in that case, to show you.’ Caroli did not adopt this
-friendly council. He returned to Rome, and died in a hospital there of
-want and, it is said, of foul diseases.[805]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
-
- CATHOLICISM AT GENEVA.--MARRIAGE OF CALVIN AT STRASBURG.
-
- (END OF 1539-1540.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: RESULTS OF CALVIN’S LETTER.]
-
-The results of Calvin’s letter to Cardinal Sadoleto, and perhaps to
-some extent of his relations with Caroli, were not slow to appear.
-Henceforward the Catholics had little hope of regaining the ascendency
-at Geneva. Some of them had previously dreamed of this. ‘At this
-time,’ says the chronicler Rozet, ‘the priests _lifted up the horn_,
-talking about the mass.’[806] It was believed that some priests who
-had retired to the convents of Savoy had received orders to return
-into the territory of the republic, for the purpose of re-establishing
-the Romish worship. It may have been so; but all that appears from the
-statement of Rozet is that certain priests, who had dwelt either in the
-town or in the country, began at this time to defy the prohibitions of
-the council and to say mass. The magistrate resolved to oppose this
-recrudescence of Catholicism, and it is probable that this was partly
-in consequence of Calvin’s letter. The priests who were really taking
-active steps were doubtless few in number; but the council adopted
-a general measure, and ordered that all the Catholic ecclesiastics
-who were on their territory should appear before them on December 23
-(1539). It was further ordered that all those who alleged that the
-mass is good, and should not be able to maintain this assertion after
-conference with the pastors, should be sent away to the place where
-mass is sung (_là où on la chante_). ‘The tranquillity and security of
-the state,’ says an historian, ‘did not permit them to tolerate any
-other religion than that which had been established by the evangelical
-Reformation.’[807] Thirty-three priests made their appearance, in
-great alarm, at the Hôtel de Ville, and they did little honor to their
-doctrine. The thought that if they declared that the mass was good they
-would be banished, doubtless contributed to disincline them to it.
-Each of them was interrogated, and the following are their answers.
-‘Thomas Genoud!’ cried the secretary. The priest replied, ‘_The mass is
-wicked_.’ Eight of his associates made the same answer pure and simple.
-Others declared themselves likewise against this act of worship, but
-added a few words. Ami Messier being called, said, ‘I wish to live and
-die with Messieurs’ (members of the council); ‘I have not studied, but
-I believe the mass to be wicked.’ Jean Cottand: ‘It is of no value.’
-Guillaume Vellès: ‘I never believed in it.’ Don Propositi (Prevost):
-‘It is good if Messieurs think it good; bad if Messieurs think it bad.
-For the rest I am not a clerk, and finally ... it is wicked.’ Higher
-respect for the magistrate it was not possible to show. Don Amici
-and his brother: ‘At the good pleasure of Messieurs.’ The spirit of
-accommodation could go no further. The priest Ramel: ‘It is wicked;
-otherwise I should not have married.’ Claude de Lolme: ‘Wicked.’ Jean
-Hugonier: ‘I should not have married if I believed it good.’ Guillaume
-Marchand and Maurice de la Rue: ‘The mass is nothing worth, nor those
-who wish to uphold it.’ Louis Bernard and Th. Collier: ‘Wicked.’ Some
-of them emphasized their condemnation more strongly. Jacques l’Hoste:
-‘The devil take it, for that’s all it’s fit for.’ Jean Louis Nicolas:
-‘It is abominable.’ Jean Sorel: ‘It is the abhorrence of all the world,
-and wicked.’
-
-[Sidenote: THE PRIESTS BEFORE THE COUNCIL.]
-
-Others were not so flippant, nor so ready to denounce their former
-faith without embarrassment or constraint. Guillaume Maniglier said,
-‘Neither good nor bad.’ Rodet Villanel said, ‘On my conscience, I could
-not swear; but I esteem it as Messieurs do.’ Jean Volland: ‘I am an
-inexperienced person, and ignorant of the matter. Since the learned are
-at variance about it, I can not judge.’ Thomas Vandel: ‘I do not know.’
-Pierre Bothy: ‘Alas! I could not say whether it is good or wicked; but
-I have not said mass since it was prohibited.’ Antoine Alliod made his
-reservations, and they were not bad: ‘I renounce it, saving the _Pater_
-and the _Credo_, the Epistle and the Gospel.’ Etienne de la Maisonneuve
-alone uttered a Christian sentiment: ‘The mass must be wicked, for
-Jesus Christ has made the true redemption.’ Only one of them entirely
-declined to condemn the mass, and still he did it prudently. Pierre
-Papaz said, ‘I never called it wicked.’[808]
-
-These were strange declarations, and the council, who expected to find
-the clerks refractory, were extraordinarily surprised to hear them. It
-was a complete breakdown. Compare all these priests, without faith and
-without principle, with the reformers, men so noble and so courageous,
-and it is easy to see to which side victory ought to belong. There was
-barely one of the clerks, Papaz, who could be suspected of having a
-wish to re-establish Catholicism. It is true that ten of those who had
-been summoned did not present themselves; probably those who had been
-the cause of the summons by the council. These men doubtless quitted
-the territory without delay, and without waiting for an order to do so.
-
-There was, however, one man who exhibited a character rather more
-honorable, but he was a layman. On the very benches of the council, of
-which he was a member, sat at that time ‘a papist of great influence
-and reputation,’ says Rozet. This was the former syndic Balard. The
-president, wishing to show no respect of persons, invited him likewise
-to declare whether the mass was good or bad. ‘If I, Balard,’ replied
-he, ‘knew certainly that the mass was good or bad, I should need no
-pressing to say so, but as I do not know with certainty I ought not to
-judge rashly, and you ought not to advise me to do so. I am resolved
-heartily to believe all the articles of our faith, just as the town
-believes them. I wish my body to be united with the body of the
-city,[809] as becomes a loyal citizen. You ask me whether the mass is
-good or bad; I reply that I believe in the Holy Spirit, in the holy
-universal Church, and as they believe it I believe it.’
-
-[Sidenote: EX-SYNDIC BALARD.]
-
-This answer, which Balard gave in writing, did not satisfy the council,
-which requested him again to say if the mass was bad, yes or no. ‘I
-mean to live according to the gospel,’ replied he, ‘and to believe
-in the Holy Spirit and the Church universal, and I cannot answer as
-to what I do not know.’ This reply caused a great commotion. The
-councillors were shocked and indignant that one of their members
-should obstinately refuse to make the declaration which some priests
-themselves had made, and should doubt of that which the council
-asserted. It was resolved that Balard should be expelled the council,
-and that he and his family should be compelled to leave the town and
-its territories in ten days. The usher carried this decree to him.
-Balard appeared the next day before the Council of the Two Hundred, the
-decree needing confirmation by this body. The sentence had produced
-some effect on him. He said, ‘Since it is the wish of the two councils
-that I should say that the mass is bad, I say that the mass is bad.’
-Then, as if to satisfy his conscience, he added, ‘And as for me, I am
-worse still to judge rashly of that which I do not know. So I cry to
-God for mercy, and I renounce Satan and all his works.’ At bottom the
-second speech of Balard was a retractation of the first, since he added
-that he did not know what he had just asserted. The reply was somewhat
-ambiguous. But who could hear without emotion the cry ‘God have mercy
-on me!’ which the honest syndic immediately uttered?
-
-The next day (December 26) Balard had to appear once more. He now laid
-down his arms, and said simply and categorically that the mass was bad.
-After this he resumed his seat in the council. He did therefore as the
-priests had done, only after having several times repeated previously
-that he could not assert what he did now assert. The excuse offered for
-him is doubtless that political interests demanded this declaration.
-But the truth is too precious to be made a sacrifice to political
-interests.
-
-If the cause of Catholicism was declining, that of the reformer was
-rising. In the course of March 1540 his friends wrote to him that he
-might now return to Geneva. But he trembled at the thought of again
-embarking on that troubled sea. ‘I had rather die a hundred times
-elsewhere,’ he wrote to Farel, ‘than place myself on that cross on
-which I should have to bear death a thousand times a day.[810] Oppose
-with all your power the projects of those who will strive to get me
-back to Geneva.’ Two months later, Viret, who ardently desired to see
-Calvin resume a task of which he felt the importance, put forward a
-pretext to draw him back to Geneva, and, expressing anxiety about the
-health of his friend, who was really suffering from severe pains in the
-head, conjured him to come to Geneva, as the air of the place would be
-likely to strengthen him. ‘I could not refrain from smiling,’ Calvin
-replied to him, ‘on reading that passage of thy letter. Thou wishest me
-to go to Geneva for the sake of being in good health; why not rather
-say, Hang thyself on the gallows? Better perish once for all than
-be again in that place where I should be put to the torture without
-ceasing.[811] If thou wishest well to me, my dear Viret, pray do not
-make this proposal again.’
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN’S HOUSEHOLD TROUBLES.]
-
-It must be told that at this period Calvin was taken up with a quite
-different matter. He was now nine-and-twenty, and was thinking of
-marriage. His home left much to be wished for. His servant was a
-foolish, hotheaded woman, quick to utter insults, and sparing neither
-her master nor those who came to see him. One day she spoke to Calvin’s
-brother with so much impertinence that Anthony, unable to endure it,
-went quietly out of the house, without anger; but declared that he
-would not enter it again so long as that woman was in it. Calvin was
-much grieved about it, and the servant-mistress, observing him, said,
-‘Well, I’m going too,’ and quitted him.[812] It has been supposed
-that Calvin’s nature drew him rather towards relations of friendship
-with the brethren, the learned, and colleagues such as Farel, Viret,
-Grynæus, Beza, and others, than to married life. If he had contended
-against celibacy, he had not been in a hurry to escape from it; nay,
-he even made a boast of it, saying, ‘People will not charge me with
-having assailed Rome, as the Greeks besieged Troy, for the sake of a
-woman.’ Doubtless, in wishing to marry he had above all before him
-these words of the first pages of the Bible: _It is not good for the
-man to be alone; I will make him an help meet for him_. He wished,
-as he said himself, to be freed from the petty worries of life, to
-the end that he might be able the better to apply himself to the
-service of the Lord.[813] His friends seem to have been at this time
-busying themselves more than he did about finding him a partner, and
-their object seems to have been to rid him thus of the irksomeness of
-housekeeping, for which he had little relish. But all that we know of
-Calvin’s sentiments, and of his life with his wife, makes it plain
-that he saw in marriage something far higher than the management of
-a household. ‘It is a thing against nature,’ he said, ‘that anyone
-should not love his wife, for God has ordained marriage in order that
-of two there may be made one, one person; a result which, certainly,
-no other alliance can bring about. When Moses says that a man shall
-leave father and mother and cleave unto his wife, he shows that a man
-ought to prefer marriage to every other union, as being the holiest of
-all.’[814] It has been said that Calvin made a _mariage de raison_.
-This seems to me doubtful, and every thing indicates at least that when
-once married he had a genuine affection for his wife. There was in him
-a lofty intellect, a sublime genius, but also that love of kindred,
-those affections of the heart, which complete the great man.
-
-As early as February 1539, Calvin’s friends at Strasburg wished him to
-marry. He wrote himself to Farel that the lady would arrive shortly
-after Easter, and expressed a wish to see him present to bless the
-union. This marriage did not take place. Could it be because Calvin did
-not find in that unknown lady the qualities which he sought for? This
-appears probable from the circumstance that two or three months later
-the ardent and energetic Farel, still unmarried though much older than
-his friend, having made him another overture, the young doctor stated
-to him what virtues he wished to find in a wife. ‘I am not,’ said he,
-‘one of that mad kind of lovers who, when once they are smitten with
-the beauty of a woman, are ready at the same time to dote foolishly
-on her faults.[815] The only beauty which charms me in a woman is
-chastity, modesty, submission, economy, patience, and the inclination
-to be careful for the health of her husband. If then thou thinkest that
-she of whom thou speakest possesses these qualities, follow up the
-matter; but if thou dost not think so, say no more of it.’ In fact,
-nothing more was said of it. Farel had not been fortunate.
-
-[Sidenote: MARRIAGE PROJECTS.]
-
-Among the connections of Calvin at Strasburg there was a German
-patrician or noble, a very pious man, who felt the warmest affection
-for Calvin and recognized him as a great man. The thought occurred to
-him of marrying Calvin to his sister; and his wife, who likewise had
-the highest opinion of the reformer, supported her husband with all
-her influence. The young lady, Calvin said himself, was above him in
-rank, and few men would have rejected so flattering a proposal. But the
-rich dower did not allure the reformer, poor as he was. It was indeed
-the very brilliancy of the match that made him hesitate. The young
-maiden, who was probably not pious like her brother, was more struck
-with Calvin’s mean appearance than with his high qualities, and was by
-no means eager to yield to her brother’s wishes. Calvin perceived this.
-He was afraid that the noble maiden would not easily forget her rank
-and her education. He was also very sensitive on another point. The
-wealthy young lady did not understand French. In this circumstance he
-saw a way of escape without offence to the brother and sister-in-law,
-and he told her brother, who appeared inclined to press him unduly
-in the matter, that he required above all that the young lady should
-undertake to learn the French language. She asked for time to consider
-of it. The scheme failed, and Calvin, anxious to put an end to the
-solicitations of the brother, thought of another person who was highly
-spoken of, but whose qualifications seem not to have answered to her
-high reputation. Calvin certainly wished to marry, but it must be with
-a Christian woman. He thought of it frequently. During one of the
-journeys which he made into Germany on religious affairs, sitting one
-day at table with a few friends, one of whom was Melanchthon, the young
-French doctor was dreamy and absent. ‘Our theologian,’ said the friend
-of Luther, ‘is evidently thinking of marrying.’[816] The difficulty
-that he experienced in finding such a wife as he wished for speaks in
-his favor, and shows how much he thought of moral qualities. He was,
-however, saddened and distressed about it. He questioned with himself
-whether it would not be better to give up all thought of marrying. This
-man, to whom it is the fashion to attribute a heart so dry, so hard,
-shows us by his very sufferings, which were soon succeeded by great
-joy, what wealth of true feeling and of tender affection lay in his
-heart. But it was precisely at the time when he nearly despaired that
-he found what he was longing for.
-
-[Sidenote: IDELETTE DE BURE.]
-
-There was at that time at Strasburg a pious, grave, and virtuous woman,
-living in retirement, esteemed by all who knew her, and particularly
-by Bucer; a most choice woman, says Theodore Beza.[817] She came from
-Liége and her name was Idelette de Bure. Lambert de Bure, probably one
-of her kinsfolk, had been banished from Liége in 1533, with six other
-citizens, because they professed the Gospel.[818] It is known that
-Liége was among those cities of the Netherlands in which the awakening
-had been most remarkable. Idelette was a widow. Her husband, Jean
-Storder, had been amongst the number of those who called themselves
-Spirituals. Bucer, it appears, had introduced Calvin to the family, in
-the hope, doubtless, of enlightening Storder. Calvin had held private
-conversations with him, and the Belgian had been converted to the true
-Gospel by the ministry of the reformer. Idelette had probably also
-been converted at the same period. The like change was wrought in
-many of their fellow-religionists. ‘He had the happiness of bringing
-to the faith _a very large number who were directed to him from all
-quarters_,’[819] and amongst others an ex-abbé named Paul Volse, to
-whom Erasmus had dedicated, in 1518, his _Chevalier Chrétien_, and who
-was a minister at Strasburg. Idelette paid to her children all the
-attention of the tenderest mother, and at the same time administered
-consolation to those who were in affliction. Calvin had observed
-in her a deep-seated faith, an affection full of devotedness, and a
-Christian courage which enabled her to face all the perils to which the
-confession of Jesus Christ at that time exposed her. This distinguished
-woman, as Theodore Beza calls her, was exactly such a one as Calvin
-wanted. Unfortunately there was one thing which was wanting to her, as
-also to Calvin--good health. But the soul of Idelette was prospering;
-and the reformer asked for her hand.
-
-The nuptials were celebrated about the end of August 1540, with a
-certain solemnity. Calvin’s friends, and they were many, testified
-their sympathy with him. Some deputies even came from Neuchâtel to
-attend the marriage. The friends of the bridegroom in France likewise
-took part on the occasion. ‘The tidings of thy marriage,’ wrote one
-of his old fellow students at the university of Bourges, ‘was very
-pleasant to us. As thou hast found according to thy wish an upright
-and faithful wife, endowed with the virtues to which thou attachest so
-much value, we hope that this union will be a source of happiness to
-thee.’ It was so. From the beginning of his married life Calvin felt
-happy in having a faithful companion who served the Lord with him, who
-loved her husband, and sought to make life peaceful and sweet to him.
-The happiness which Calvin enjoyed at this time Idelette gave him to
-the last. He prized ever more and more highly the treasure which God
-had intrusted to him. He called Idelette ‘the excellent companion of my
-life,[820] the ever-faithful assistant of my ministry.’ ‘Never,’ adds
-he, ‘did she throw the least hindrance in my way.’ Her greatness of
-soul filled him with admiration.[821] He understood well that saying
-of the Bible, that a wise woman is a crown to her husband, and that
-_whoso findeth a wife findeth a good thing and obtaineth favor of the
-Lord_.
-
-Catherine von Bora and Idelette de Bure, the wives of the two great
-reformers, eminent women, whose surnames are nearly alike, were not
-alike in person or in character. There was also a marked difference in
-the way in which their husbands spoke of them. Catherine is frequently
-mentioned in Luther’s letters to his friends, often, it is true, with
-a touch of archness. Sometimes he calls her _Herr Kathe_. Calvin, on
-the contrary, seldom speaks of Idelette. We may say indeed that Calvin
-in his letters, as in his life, was always swayed by one sovereign
-thought, to which all others had to yield: the work of God, the glory
-of Jesus Christ, this was the aim of his life. All that concerned his
-mere personal existence and his domestic circumstances was eclipsed
-by Jesus Christ, that sun of righteousness which he delighted to
-contemplate and exalt. There is however another explanation of the
-fact. What Calvin most highly prized in Idelette was ‘the _hidden man_
-of the heart, the incorruptibility of a meek and quiet spirit,’ her
-modesty. ‘Nothing is more becoming to women than a meek and peaceful
-spirit,’ he said; ‘we know what kind of creature a bold and obstinate
-woman is, who, from pride, vanity, and wantonness, is fond of showing
-herself off. Happy is the woman whose style of dress is modest, who
-does not go gadding about the streets, but keeps the house because of
-her love to her husband and her children.’ Calvin being happy, and
-feeling respect for the modesty and humility that he found in Idelette,
-no more thought of speaking of her in his letters than of seeing her
-gadding about the streets.
-
-[Sidenote: ASSEMBLY AT HAGENAU.]
-
-Happy both in this Christian union and in the sphere of action which
-opened before him at Strasburg and in Germany, Calvin thought less
-than ever of returning to Geneva. In fact his intercourse with Germany
-became more frequent. In June 1540, in accordance with the decision
-come to at Frankfort, a new assembly was held at Hagenau in Alsace,
-at which the doctors of the two parties were to seek a good basis of
-agreement. The Protestant princes, summoned too late, were not present,
-but their envoys and theologians came. Calvin went, ‘by way of rest,’
-he says, as if for relaxation. He was rejoiced to see the Protestant
-doctors ‘thoroughly united together.’ They held several consultations
-among themselves on the way to establish discipline in the Church. This
-was doubtless at Calvin’s instigation. ‘This will be,’ said he, ‘the
-most weighty subject for our consideration.’ As Luther, Melanchthon,
-and other doctors were absent as well as the princes, nothing was
-done; ‘but each one promised to exert himself to the end that at some
-meeting attention should be paid to it.’ Cruciger, a colleague of
-Luther and Melanchthon, who was present at Hagenau, was astonished
-at the knowledge and activity of Calvin. In fact, nothing that
-concerned the evangelical cause escaped him. He perceived distinctly
-the contrivances of politicians. ‘Our adversaries,’ he said, ‘wish
-to extend their league and to weaken ours, but God will avert that
-misfortune. Our friends seek the enlargement of the kingdom of Christ,
-and will not give way. Some Catholics desire nothing but war, and the
-pope has caused 300,000 ducats to be offered to begin it. The emperor,’
-he thinks, ‘would like nothing better than to crush the forces of
-Germany, in order to subdue it with greater ease. But on the one side
-the emperor is so involved that he dare not undertake a war, and on the
-other all the electors wish to have things quietly settled.’ If Calvin
-were not particularly pleased with the pope, he was pleased with the
-archbishops. The following passage is striking enough for quotation:
-‘The Archbishops of Mayence and Treves love peace and the liberties
-of the country, and they think that they would be lost if the emperor
-had subdued us.’ This shows in Calvin a fair temper, a man free from
-prejudice.[822] ‘The Archbishop of Cologne is not among the worst,’
-says he, ‘for he knows that the Church ought to be reformed, and sees
-clearly that we are superior in respect of truth.’
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
-
- GENEVA.--DISSENSION AND SEVERITY.
-
- (1540.)
-
-
-At the same time that Calvin’s reputation was rising in other
-countries, the judgment formed at Geneva of the men who had compelled
-him to quit the town was daily becoming more unfavorable, and ere long
-opinion was altogether opposed to them. ‘The time was come,’ says
-Theodore Beza, ‘when the Lord had determined to have pity on the Church
-of Geneva.’[823]
-
-[Sidenote: BERNE AND GENEVA.]
-
-When, in 1536, the Bernese had repulsed the troops of Savoy and
-insured the independence of Geneva, an arrangement was effected
-between these two states respecting five or six villages belonging to
-the priory of St. Victor, of which Bonivard had been the last prior.
-Geneva had claimed the sovereignty, and had conceded to Berne the
-_rights of ancient custom_ which had belonged to Savoy. The treaty
-not being sufficiently clear, the Bernese claimed prerogatives which
-the Genevese disputed with them. Consequently, on March 6, 1539, the
-council of Geneva sent to Berne Ami de Chapeaurouge, Jean Lullin and
-Monathon, all three of them opponents of Calvin. The first two had
-indeed been syndics in 1538, and as such had taken the lead in the
-banishment of the reformers. They were to settle the matters in
-dispute, but ‘without infringing on the franchises of the town or on
-the treaty of 1536.’ These delegates signed at Berne, on March 30, a
-treaty comprising twenty-one articles, ‘the most part of which,’ says
-the syndic Gautier, who is moderate in his account, ‘were humiliating
-to the Genevese, and deprived them of their rights over those
-territories.’ The first article of the treaty said in fact, ‘To us of
-Berne the chief lordship, that is to say, _the sovereignty_ over men
-and goods, is entirely to belong.’ The three Genevese were far less
-clever as politicians than the Bernese, and we prefer to attribute
-their error to their inferior diplomatic skill rather than to treason.
-On their return to Geneva they merely reported to the council ‘that
-they had done their work well (_avaient bien besogné_), and that the
-contract entered into would shortly be brought to Berne.’ It was
-strange that these plenipotentiaries not only should not present the
-treaty, but still more should not state _viva voce_ what it contained.
-‘As they had trifled with the orders which they had received,’ says
-Gautier, ‘they were afraid of being completely ruined if they gave
-an exact account of their management, and they hoped by delaying the
-matter to obliterate the recollections of what might be criminal
-in their proceedings.’[824] They reckoned among the members of the
-council many of their kinsfolk and friends. Their word was taken. These
-three councillors, the signatories of the articles, were consequently
-called the _Articulants_; and the people, adopting a word almost the
-same in sound and more familiar to them, called them the _Artichauts_
-(Artichokes). This designation was extended to the whole party opposed
-to Calvin, which was at this time in the ascendency.[825]
-
-About two months later a Bernese _bailli_ (De Thiez) having caused a
-man belonging to the estates of St. Victor to be put to the torture,
-the council of Geneva complained of it, and the _bailli_ immediately
-justified himself by appealing from them to the treaty concluded
-at Berne. The Genevese magistrates, who were not acquainted with
-it, sent Monathon to procure it. He brought it back, but it was in
-German! The document was returned, in order to be translated into
-French; and when the articles were at last read in the council many
-murmured, and said that most of those points were contrary to the
-rights and the prerogatives of the town. The three deputies justified
-themselves by asserting that this document was not the one which they
-had signed. This statement was credited. The council declared that it
-did not accept the paper, and decreed that the three _articulants_
-should return to Berne to demand explanations. But in vain did the
-two councils implore and even command Lullin to go; he declared that
-he would sooner quit the town than consent to be a delegate to Berne.
-He had private reasons for not having a mind to this mission. Three
-other notables were associated with De Chapeaurouge and Monathon. The
-two _articulants_ represented to the Bernese that they had not heard
-the articles couched in such terms. But the Bernese replied that it
-was the genuine treaty, and that they would have the council of Geneva
-cited before judges charged to investigate the difficulties existing
-between the two towns, in order to get it condemned to sign and seal
-the treaty. Lambert, one of the deputies who had accompanied Monathon
-and De Chapeaurouge to Berne, heard, in a conversation with some
-people of the town, that at the time of drawing them up, Jean Lullin
-had consented to the articles in German, and had got them passed by
-his colleagues without telling them in French what they contained.
-From this one must infer that Jean Lullin, the only one of the three
-who knew German, remained responsible. The other two, however, still
-lay under the imputation, it must be confessed, of incredible
-thoughtlessness. On April 6 the deputies made their report to the
-council.
-
-[Sidenote: QUARREL ABOUT THE TREATY.]
-
-The Bernese, sure of their case, continued to enforce their rights of
-sovereignty, and took pleasure in annoying the Genevese in various
-ways. They even carried their ill-will to the length of cruelty.
-Two murderers, subjects of St. Victor, having been condemned by the
-Genevese magistrates to be beheaded, the Bernese _bailli_ substituted
-the rack, and sent to Geneva the executioner’s bill to be paid.
-Discontent with the government party was increasing from day to day.
-People said that the treaty made at Berne was an act of treason. Was
-it possible that after having ruined religion by expelling Farel and
-Calvin, the same party should ruin the state as well, by sacrificing
-its most precious rights? Some went farther still. Bonnet, a member of
-the Two Hundred, exclaimed, ‘The council mean to deliver up the town to
-the lords of Berne.’ For this rash speech he was put in prison.[826]
-But it served to increase the prevailing irritation. Many members of
-the Two Hundred, among whom was Claude Bonna, declared to that council
-that they would never allow the articles drawn up at Berne to receive
-the seal of the republic. The matter at stake was the maintenance of
-the honor of Geneva, her pre-eminence and the justice of her cause,
-perhaps of her very existence. The friends of Calvin declared that the
-powerful town of Berne should not trample their country under foot. The
-opposition to the government had become so strong that, in the sitting
-of August 25, all the members of the Two Hundred cried unanimously, ‘We
-will not submit to these articles, considering that they are opposed to
-our liberties, our franchises, and our good customs.’[827]
-
-The Bernese, annoyed and irritated by the constant refusals of Geneva,
-announced at the beginning of January 1540 that, having an authentic
-document, they summoned their allies of Geneva to Lausanne, for the
-29th of the month, in order that the cause might be decided by judges,
-two from each town. Geneva, on the 21st, named De la Rive and Gerbel
-to go to Lausanne with five assistants. On the 25th the general
-council rejected the treaty, prohibited the deputies from accepting
-a judicial decision, and ordered them to say to the Bernese that the
-people _would set fire to the city_ rather than accept the articles.
-Matters got worse and worse. Berne was inflexible. On the 26th, at nine
-o’clock in the evening, a Genevese, Béguin, arrived at full speed from
-Lausanne with important despatches. The general council, assembled on
-the following day, was greatly excited by them. They caused the three
-_articulants_ to be arrested, and Béguin was instructed to inform the
-Bernese. But the latter commanded their judges to proceed, and the
-Genevese were condemned for contumacy to seal the treaty and to pay
-the costs. The gravity of the situation was at length understood at
-Geneva. The very day, January 27, on which the judgment was delivered
-at Lausanne, the general council, suddenly convoked by the tones of the
-great bell at one o’clock in the morning, had decreed that the deputies
-should sit as judges. But when this news arrived sentence was already
-given. They had dispensed with the Genevese.
-
-[Sidenote: INDIGNATION AT GENEVA.]
-
-Great was the consternation at Geneva. On Sunday, February 1, it was
-resolved to close all dissension at home by a general reconciliation,
-in token of which the citizens took each other by the hand.
-Chapeaurouge, Lullin, and Monathon were set at liberty on giving bail,
-and Jean Philippe was named captain-general. This internal peace,
-brought about by the war with which they were menaced from without,
-was solemnized by a procession of the people to the sound of the drum
-through the whole town. The ministers urged the appointment of a day
-of prayer to celebrate and confirm the reconciliation. But this peace
-was not rooted in the depth of their hearts. ‘Nevertheless,’ says
-Rozet, ‘people still heard talk of several fights in the town,’ and the
-son of the captain-general killed a citizen. The more violent men, when
-they saw the dangers to which the treason or the thoughtlessness of the
-_articulants_ exposed them, exclaimed, ‘Cut off their heads, pack them
-all three in one trunk, and send them to Berne.’[828]
-
-‘Meanwhile,’ says a contemporary biographer, ‘the Lord was about to
-execute his judgments at Geneva in expressly punishing those who
-while they were syndics had been the cause of driving away Farel
-and Calvin.’[829] The councillor De Watteville, De Diesbach, and De
-Graffenried, deputies of Berne, on April 16, declared to the Two
-Hundred that the Bernese wished nothing so much as to give pleasure to
-Geneva, and that, without taking advantage of the sentence pronounced
-at Lausanne, they offered to discuss the affair anew. The general
-council having been convoked on April 25 to decide the matter, no way
-was found of coming to an understanding. These interminable disputes
-with Berne (it took years to settle the question) had aroused the anger
-of the Genevese against the _articulants_ who were the cause of them.
-They believed these men to be more culpable than they really were. The
-assembly was in violent agitation. Groups were formed, and transports
-of wrath burst forth. ‘Justice! justice on the traitors!’ they cried.
-They demanded that, before any deliberation, these deputies should be
-again committed to prison. The three culprits were themselves present
-in the council. The captain-general, Jean Philippe, going up to them
-advised them in a whisper to go out instantly and make their escape.
-The Little Council ordered their immediate incarceration. They had
-signed the undertaking to appear when called for; but overcome with
-fright, they disguised themselves and quitted the town in great haste,
-thus violating the pledge which they had given. When the lieutenant
-went to their homes to arrest them, they had disappeared. The tidings
-were at once carried to the general council. ‘Let them be summoned
-to appear by sound of trumpet,’ said a citizen, ‘and let seals be
-affixed on their houses.’ ‘Yes! yes!’ cried the people; ‘so be it!’ The
-assembly of the people being dissolved, a great concourse of citizens
-surrounded the town hall and demanded justice with loud voices. The
-public crier, traversing the streets, summoned the three deputies to
-appear in three hours, in default of which they would be immediately
-brought to trial. The Bernese having expressed to the council their
-astonishment that this citation had been made without a word said to
-them about it; ‘Ah!’ was the reply, ‘if we are slow to execute the
-decision of the general council, the people will fall on us!’ The
-general irritation extended at the same time to the pastors who had
-taken the place of Farel and Calvin. These men were alarmed at it,
-and, on April 30, presenting themselves before the council, they made
-a statement of the reproaches which were heaped on them, and requested
-their discharge. After turning away from the reformers, people were
-now turning to them again. ‘At this time,’ says Rozet, a poor woman,
-a foreigner, went about the town crying, What God keeps is well
-kept.’[830]
-
-The three fugitives having been summoned with sound of trumpet, for
-three days in succession, and failing to appear, the solicitor-general
-presented their indictment in seventy-four counts. Thirty-two witnesses
-made their depositions; and on June 5 De Chapeaurouge, Lullin, and
-Monathon, were condemned by default to be beheaded, as forgers and
-rebels, who had been the cause and might again be the cause of great
-evils to the state. Capital punishment was readily inflicted in the
-sixteenth century; but the accused had fled, and it was a long way from
-the sentence to the execution.
-
-[Sidenote: JEAN PHILIPPE.]
-
-The party which was favorable to the three _articulants_ and hostile
-to the reformers continued to exist in Geneva, and had for its chief a
-capable man, the captain-general Jean Philippe, who was syndic in 1538,
-with Jean Lullin and Ami de Chapeaurouge. These three men, with the
-violent Richardet, had, as we have seen, got Farel and Calvin banished,
-and after having done much harm to the Church, had not hesitated to
-involve the state in the most cruel perplexities. Jean Philippe, by his
-violence, was on the point of still further increasing the troubles of
-the city. ‘A rich man, and not niggardly,’ says Bonivard, ‘he was very
-liberal to his comrades, especially those of the sword; and this made
-him beloved of all. A man of courage for action, he was not prudent
-in his projects, and he no more hesitated to risk his person than his
-purse. Imprudent and impudent, hasty to believe, slow to disbelieve,
-as soon as any hectoring fellow, among those whom he thought fit for
-the battle, made a report to him, he believed it. And he was hard to
-be undeceived because he had not capacity for appreciating a sound
-reason; and this caused him to do many rash things.’ Such was the
-man who had at his beck the party which, after having been supreme
-in Geneva, had just received so severe a check. Jean Philippe could
-not, without annoyance, see the sentence carried out against his
-colleagues; and he understood that the result of it must be the ruin
-of his whole party, unless he succeeded in arresting the course of
-the popular torrent which was now rushing in a direction opposed to
-them. Discontented and murmuring against those who had obliged Lullin
-and De Chapeaurouge to take flight, he was a prey to the bitterest
-apprehensions. After the sentence, Philippe and his adherents ‘banded
-themselves together,’ says Bonivard, ‘and waited for an opportunity of
-vengeance and of reinstating _the three_ in their former honors. Their
-party, in defiance of their opponents, held banquets in the public
-places. After all this thunder there must needs be rain, hail, and fall
-of thunderbolts, to clear the sky.’ The storm indeed did not fail to
-burst forth.
-
-[Sidenote: A RIOT.]
-
-A phenomenon was at this time visible at Geneva which has been produced
-in almost all nations; the conquerors were divided amongst themselves.
-The party which in 1538 had banished the reformers was divided into
-two. The more fiery minds were for pushing their victory to an
-extreme, the more discreet, on the other hand, slackened their pace
-and restrained their passions. The impetuous young men of Geneva were
-irritated at seeing the leaders under whom they had fought condemned
-to death and fugitives. On the day after their condemnation, Sunday,
-June 16, many Genevese, according to custom, were assembled on the
-plain of Plainpalais, situated at the gates of the town, and were
-practising archery. Some of them meeting Jean Philippe and his friends,
-shouted at them, ‘Artichokes!’ It will not be forgotten that this was
-the popular nickname given to the _articulants_. This little word did
-a great deal of mischief. ‘The tongue,’ says Calvin, ‘carries a man
-away and sweeps him along like a flood, just as wild unbroken horses
-whirl along a chariot with such force and swiftness that nothing can
-stop it.’ This is what now occurred at Geneva. The nickname greatly
-annoyed the captain-general, and he swore to take vengeance. ‘There
-are three hundred of us who will one day arise and hamstring so many
-of these evangelists and Lutherans that it shall be a thing never to
-be forgotten.’ This saying was attributed to him, but he afterwards
-denied it. The captain-general, on returning from Plainpalais, went
-to sup with some of his friends at the hotel _de l’Ange_; while other
-adherents of his were eating and drinking at his expense at the hotel
-_du Brochet_. Some of them, after leaving the table, met some citizens
-of the opposite party on the bridge over the Rhone. ‘Nothing more than
-hard words passed between them,’ says Bonivard, ‘with the exception
-of Jean Philippe, who seized a halberd, and, as though he were out
-of his mind, without distinguishing friend from foe, struck blows
-right and left, and wounded two or three persons.’ Then this fierce
-partisan crossed the Rhone to go to St. Gervais, where most of his
-familiar associates lived. He summoned and got them together, a grave
-proceeding for a captain-general, and passing the bridge with them,
-reached the square of La Fusterie. There he found a large body of his
-adversaries. A conflict began. Jean Philippe struck other blows. ‘With
-the point of his halberd he wounded one Jean d’Abères in the breast,’
-says Bonivard, ‘so seriously that he had to be carried to his house.’
-One Jean de Lesclefs gave with his partisan a blow on the head to Ami
-Perrin, ‘a citizen,’ says Bonivard, ‘who was fond of being splendidly
-attired and of good living, and who at this time belonged to the party
-of honest men.’ Claude of Geneva, a friend of Perrin, discharged a
-pistol at Lesclefs, and the shot entering near the heart killed him.
-The captain-general, repulsed, withdrew to his own house with his
-adherents, who kept firing their arquebuses from within. The syndic
-Philippin, wishing to allay the disturbance, was wounded by these men,
-and a servant of one of their own number, putting his head out at
-the window, was also struck. It was very generally believed that the
-captain-general had formed a conspiracy to upset the government which
-had just condemned his friends. It is difficult to decide. We may,
-however, suppose that it was a riot rather than a conspiracy.[831]
-
-At nine o’clock in the evening of the same day the council convoked
-the Two Hundred, and gave orders to guard the town-gates to prevent
-the flight of the culprits. The next day, _at five_ in the morning,
-the Council of the Two Hundred held a sitting, gave orders that the
-citizens should assemble in arms before the town-house to support their
-decisions, and commanded the officers of justice to go to the house of
-the captain-general to arrest him and all who should be with him. But
-Jean Philippe, well aware that the position of a commander-in-chief
-of the Genevese militia, who placed himself in open and armed revolt
-against the government, was a very grave one, had quitted his house,
-escaped by the roofs, and thus reached the hostelry of the _Tour
-Perce_, which belonged to a brother of Lullin. As the agents of the
-council did not find him either at home or elsewhere, proclamation
-was made in the town with sound of trumpet, that whosoever might know
-where he was, was to disclose it. The magistrate was informed, it is
-not known by whom, that the captain-general was concealed in the _Tour
-Perce_. ‘At once everybody was off thither,’ says Bonivard; ‘then they
-searched for Philippe from cellar to garret, and he was at last found
-lying in the stable under the hay.’ They led him immediately to the
-syndics, who were waiting for him at the door. They had him seized by
-the guards and taken to the _Evêché_ (a prison). But it was effected
-with great difficulty, for it was all that the guards with their
-halberds and the syndics with their bâtons could do to prevent the
-people from killing him in their hands. ‘Here we may see an instance,’
-adds the prisoner of Chillon, ‘of the trust we should place in a
-people.’[832]
-
-[Sidenote: TRIAL OF JEAN PHILIPPE.]
-
-The witnesses were heard, and Jean Philippe underwent an examination
-on the criminal acts with which he stood charged. These acts were
-proved and he confessed them. The whole town was stirred. The people
-cried aloud for justice and said ‘that they would do execution on the
-murderers if the tribunals failed to do it. The preachers themselves
-exhorted to pray and to execute justice.’[833] A scene at once pathetic
-and terrible occurred to raise still higher the general excitement.
-Jean d’Abères having sunk under his wounds, ‘his wife caused the body
-of her husband to be carried on a bench to the front of the town-house,
-and accompanied it crying incessantly, Justice! justice! justice!
-weeping and smiting herself.’[834] Her children were round her, weeping
-and crying out as she did. A dead body, and especially the body of
-a husband and father, surrounded by those who loved him, has always
-great power to touch the heart. The solicitor-general presented his
-bill of indictment. It set forth that Jean Philippe ‘had always been
-esteemed a seditious man, who had been accustomed to gather round him
-all the restless spirits; that he had assembled them on the previous
-Sunday, taking up arms against the city of Geneva; that in order to
-accomplish his murderous intentions he had placed armed men in his
-house; that he was a murderer and voluntary homicide, his hands dyed
-with blood; that out of the fulness of his heart he had uttered these
-words or the like of them, ‘I will kill so many people that I shall be
-surfeited.’ The solicitor-general moved in conclusion that the council
-should execute justice immediately, ‘as shameless and tumultuous
-proceedings and horrid enterprises, and in the same manner as in cases
-of high treason.’ Sentence was pronounced by the syndic Etienne de
-Chapeaurouge, nephew of one of the fugitives. Philippe was condemned
-‘to have his head severed from shoulders till the soul was separated
-from the body.’ The execution took place the same day. De Chapeaurouge,
-after having pronounced sentence, absented himself from the council,
-and one or two others likewise withdrew.
-
-Thus, of the four syndics who had decreed the banishment of Farel and
-Calvin, two had been condemned as forgers and rebels, and a third
-had just been executed as a mover of sedition and a homicide. There
-remained the fourth of them, Richardet. He had united force with
-ridicule, and had said ironically to Calvin when expelling him, ‘The
-gates of the town are wide enough for you to go out.’ As he had taken
-part in the sedition of Jean Philippe, he took fright and wished to
-make his escape. Unwilling to go out by the gates of the town, however
-wide they were, for fear of being recognized and arrested, ‘he let
-himself down through a window in the town walls,’ says Rozet, ‘burst
-(_se creva_) because he was heavy, and did not live long after.’ ‘As he
-was very fat,’ says Gautier, ‘the rope broke, and the fall caused him a
-contusion of which he shortly after died.’[835]
-
-It is hardly possible to avoid being struck with the fate of these four
-men. The Greeks conceived the idea of a goddess, Nemesis, charged with
-the duty of overthrowing an insolent prosperity and of avenging crimes,
-who winged her way through the air, encompassed by serpents, provided
-with torches and inflicting terrible vengeance. ‘We cannot pass over,’
-says Rozet, ‘the remarkable judgment of God on the four syndics of
-the year 1538, who being elected by the people as adversaries of the
-religion of the reformation sworn to, had banished the ministers and
-routed their friends. Two years later, in one and the same year,
-in the month of June, all four of them, at the instigation of the
-people themselves, came to confusion and ruin by their crimes.’[836]
-History can hardly furnish a more striking illustration of the truth
-proclaimed by the great poet, ‘Punishment, though lame, seldom fails to
-overtake the guilty.’
-
-[Sidenote: THE WAYS OF GOD.]
-
-However, in our opinion, the _articulants_, though chargeable with
-carelessness and incompetency, were not guilty of treachery. On the
-other hand, it is not fair to attribute to the friends of Farel and
-Calvin some odious acts of which they were completely innocent. It
-has been alleged that on the third day after the execution of Jean
-Philippe, the most religious persons ‘publicly celebrated their victory
-by a feast at the town hall.’ Strong evidence would be necessary
-to establish a fact so adapted to arouse in honorable men aversion
-and indignation; but not a single document is known in which it is
-mentioned.[837] We are bound to say, however, that the verdict of
-contemporaries was more severe than our own. ‘These men,’ says Theodore
-Beza, ‘having been cast away like vile dregs, the city began to ask
-again for its Calvin and Farel.’[838] All was in course of preparation
-for their return to it. Some vacancies having been made in the council
-by the blows which had just been struck, men were appointed who were
-friendly to the Reformation, and from that time their party formed the
-majority. The far-seeing intelligence of Calvin had foretold that the
-ascendency of his adversaries would be of short duration; and his word
-was fulfilled.
-
-The ways of God are deep and mysterious. Two years previously the
-work of the reformer appeared to be brought to a stand in Geneva.
-His victorious enemies held up their heads in the general council;
-their power seemed invincible; and the few citizens who dared to
-declare themselves on the side of the banished ministers found
-themselves threatened and prosecuted, and were compelled to retire
-into silence or to flee their country. The reformers were wandering
-about as exiles in the cantons of Switzerland, not knowing where to
-seek refuge. But time passed on, and the state of things was altered.
-The authors of the proscription sank beneath the weight of their
-faults, and were proscribed in their turn. Geneva was weary of leaders
-without intelligence, and rejected them. No longer able to face the
-perils gathering around it, the city will soon recall and receive as
-liberators the men whom she has driven away as enemies of her freedom.
-Calvin, on his part, had found in exile not weakness but strength. God
-had removed him to a vaster scene, where his horizon was widened. His
-thought had been elevated, his soul strengthened and purified. He had
-seen Germany, and had played a part, not one of the least, in her great
-assemblies; he had held communication with Melanchthon, and established
-a connection between the German Reformation and that of the Swiss
-cantons and of France. The differences between the two great movements
-had grown less; the communion of spirit had been strengthened. On both
-sides a reciprocal influence had been felt. In the next volume we shall
-see Calvin return to his post a greater and stronger man, more master
-of himself, no less firm and no less determined, once more to undertake
-his task and to conduct it to a happy end.
-
-
- END OF THE SIXTH VOLUME.
-
-
-
-
- =530 BROADWAY, NEW YORK,=
- November, 1876.
-
- =ROBERT CARTER & BROTHERS’=
-
- =NEW BOOKS.=
-
-
-=Forty Years in the Turkish Empire.=
-
- Memoirs of Rev. William Goodell, D.D., late Missionary at
- Constantinople. By E. D. G. PRIME, D.D. 2.50
-
- Dr. GOODELL was the first American Missionary at
- Constantinople, his wife the first American lady that ever
- visited the Turkish Capital, and they both remained at this
- post in labors of usefulness, until in their old age they
- returned to this country to die among their kindred. This
- volume is largely autobiographical, being compiled from Dr.
- GOODELL’s Letters and Journal, containing also his
- personal Reminiscences written during the last year of his
- life. He was inimitable as a letter writer, and everything
- that came from his pen was marked by spirituality, a
- peculiarly apt use of Scripture language, and a spice of wit
- that enlivened his conversation and his writings to the day of
- his death.
-
-
-=Autobiography and Memoir of Dr. Guthrie.=
-
- 2 vols., 12mo. 3.00; Cheap Edition, in 1 vol. 2.00
-
- “His stories which give sparkle and zest to the narrative, and
- greet us on almost every page, are woven together in a picture
- of Scottish life that is wonderfully graphic.”--_Harper’s
- Magazine._
-
-
-=The Life and Works of Thomas Guthrie, D.D.=
-
- 10 vols. In a box. (The volumes are sold separately). 15.00
-
-
-=D’Aubigne’s History of the Reformation.=
-
- In the TIME OF CALVIN. Vol. 7. 2.00
-
-
-=D’Aubigne’s History of the Reformation.=
-
- In the TIME OF CALVIN. 7 vols. 14.00
-
-
-=D’Aubigne’s History of the Reformation.=
-
- 5 vols. in 1. 8vo., 3.00; in 5 vols., 12mo. 6.00
-
- Without doing violence to historical truth, he seems to
- invest history with all the charms of romance, and with the
- enthusiasm and skill of a poet he sketches on the historic
- page his fascinating and life-like pictures.
-
-
-=Hugh Miller’s Life and Works.=
-
- New edition, very neat. 12 vols., 12mo. 18.00
-
- FOOTPRINTS OF THE CREATOR 1.50
- OLD RED SANDSTONE 1.50
- SCHOOLS AND SCHOOLMASTERS 1.50
- TESTIMONY OF THE ROCKS 1.50
- CRUISE OF THE BETSEY 1.50
- FIRST IMPRESSIONS OF ENGLAND 1.50
- POPULAR GEOLOGY 1.50
- TALES AND SKETCHES 1.50
- ESSAYS. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL 1.50
- HEADSHIP OF CHRIST 1.50
- LIFE AND LETTERS. 2 vols. 3.00
-
- “There is in HUGH MILLER’s geological works a freshness of
- conception, a depth of thought, and a purity of feeling rarely
- met with in works of that character.”--_Professor Agassiz._
-
-
-=Hugh Miller’s Life and Letters.=
-
- By PETER BAYNE. 2 vols. 3.00
-
- Mr. BAYNE carries the absorbed reader with him through the
- whole period, unfolding leaf after leaf of the history of a
- life, certainly one of the most interesting and striking as
- well as useful of this century.
-
-
-=By the Author of “The Wide, Wide World.”=
-
- THE LITTLE CAMP ON EAGLE HILL 1.25
- WILLOW BROOK 1.25
- SCEPTRES AND CROWNS 1.25
- THE FLAG OF TRUCE 1.25
- BREAD AND ORANGES 1.25
- THE RAPIDS OF NIAGARA 1.25
-
-
-=The Say and Do Series.=
-
- Comprising the above 6 vols. on the Lord’s Prayer. In
- a neat box 7.50
-
- “Every new work of fiction by this gifted author we receive
- with a cordial welcome, for we know that it will be an
- addition to that pure, elevating, and delightful class of
- books which we may love as the fireside literature of our
- country. She writes for the home circle.”--_N. Y. Observer._
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- The Story of Small Beginnings. 4 vols. In a box 5.00
- Walks from Eden 1.50
- House of Israel 1.50
- The Old Helmet 2.25
- Melbourne House 2.00
-
-
-=Elsie’s Santa Claus.=
-
- By Miss JOANNA H. MATHEWS, author of the “Bessie Books.” 1.25
-
-
-=Miss Ashton’s Girls.=
-
- By Miss JOANNA H. MATHEWS. Comprising “Fanny’s Birthday Gift,”
- “The New Scholars,” “Rosalie’s Pet,” “Eleanor’s Visit,” “Mabel
- Walton’s Experiment,” and “Elsie’s Santa Claus.” 6 vols. In a
- box 7.50
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- The Bessie Books. 6 vols. 7.50
- The Flowerets. 6 vols. 3.60
- Little Sunbeams. 6 vols. 6.00
- Kitty and Lulu Books. 6 vols. 6.00
-
- “The children in Miss MATHEWS’ stories are perfectly natural.
- They get into trouble and get out of it. They say sweet
- things, and sharp things, and funny things, yet all the time
- childish things. They illustrate the right and the wrong, but
- in either case in a manner to attract to the former.”--_Albany
- Express._
-
-
-=Dare to Do Right Series.=
-
- By Miss JULIA A. MATHEWS. 5 vols. 5.50
-
- “Miss JULIA A. MATHEWS’ boys are as live and wide-awake as any
- one could wish, into mischief, now and then, like the majority
- of boys, yet frank and manly withal, and not ashamed to ‘own
- up’ when they find themselves in fault.”--_Hearth and Home._
-
-
-=Coulyng Castle; or, a Knight of the Olden Days.=
-
- By AGNES GIBERNE. 16mo. 1.50
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- Aimee; a Tale of James II. 1.50
- Day Star; or, Gospel Stories 1.25
- The Curate’s Home 1.25
- Floss Silverthorn 1.25
-
-
-=The Odd One.=
-
- By Mrs. A. M. MITCHELL PAYNE. 16mo. 1.25
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- Cash Boy’s Trust 1.00
- Rhoda’s Corner 1.25
-
-
-=Fred and Jeanie: How they learned about God.=
-
- By JENNIE M. DRINKWATER. 16mo. 1.25
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- Only Ned 1.25
- Not Bread Alone 1.25
-
-
-=Brentford Parsonage.=
-
- By the author of “Win and Wear.” 16mo. 1.25
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- WHO WON? 1.25
- MABEL HAZARD’S THOROUGHFARE 1.25
- DOORS OUTWARD 1.25
-
- Win and Wear Series. 6 vols. 7.50
- Green Mountain Stories. 5 vols. 6.00
- Ledgeside Series. 6 vols. 7.50
- Butterfly’s Flights. 3 vols. 2.25
-
-
-=Imogen; a Tale.=
-
- By EMILY SARAH HOLT. 1.50
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- Isoult Barry. 16mo. 1.50
- Robin Tremayne. 12mo. 1.50
- The Well in the Desert. 16mo. 1.25
- Ashcliffe Hall. 16mo. 1.25
- Verena. 12mo. 1.50
- White Rose of Langley. 12mo. 1.50
-
-
-=Mind and Words of Jesus, Faithful Promiser, and Morning and Night
-Watches.=
-
- By J. R. MACDUFF, D.D. All in one vol. RED LINE EDITION.
- Handsomely bound in cloth, gilt 1.50
-
- _By the same author_:
-
- Footsteps of St. Paul 1.50
- Family Prayers 1.25
- Memories of Gennesaret 1.50
- Memories of Bethany 1.00
- Bow in the Cloud 0.50
- Grapes of Eschol 1.00
- Sunsets on Hebrew Mountains 1.50
- Thoughts of God 0.50
- Prophet of Fire 1.50
- Altar Incense 1.00
- Shepherd and his Flock 1.50
- Hart and Water Brooks 1.00
- Memories of Olivet 2.00
- Noontide at Sychar 1.50
- Memories of Patmos 2.00
- St. Paul in Rome 1.25
- Tales of Warrior Judges 1.00
- Comfort Ye, Comfort Ye 1.50
- The Healing Waters of Israel 1.25
- The Gates of Prayer 1.00
- A Golden Sunset 0.35
- Clefts of the Rock 1.50
-
-
-=The Pilgrim’s Progress.=
-
- Twenty full-page pictures. Handsomely bound in cloth. Gilt
- and black, 4to. 2.00
-
- “The CARTERS have done a good service to the cause of juvenile
- literature in publishing the ‘Pilgrim’s Progress’ in a style
- more attractive for boys and girls than any other edition
- before the public.”--_Christian Observer._
-
-
-=Nurses for the Needy.=
-
- By L. N. R. 1.25
-
-
-=The Golden Chain.=
-
- By MISS MARSH 0.90
-
-
-=Four Years in Ashantee.=
-
- By RAMSEYER and KUHNE 1.75
-
-
-=Twelve Months in Madagascar.=
-
- By Dr. MULLENS 1.75
-
-
-=Little Brothers and Sisters.=
-
- By MARSHALL. 16mo. 1.25
-
-
-=New A. L. O. E. Books.=
-
- AN EDEN IN ENGLAND. 16mo., 1.25; 18mo. 0.75
- FAIRY FRISKET 0.75
- THE LITTLE MAID 0.75
- THE SPANISH CAVALIER 0.75
-
-
-=Alice Neville and Riversdale.=
-
- By C. E. BOWEN. 4 illustrations 1.25
-
-
-=All about Jesus.=
-
- By Rev. ALEXANDER DICKSON. 12mo. 2.00
-
- “I have read it with the delight which every reader of the
- ‘Pilgrim’s Progress’ recalls. Compared with the current
- literature of the time it produces a feeling akin to that
- of one who passes from barren sand into the verdure and
- fragrance of a spring garden, when each lily and rose is still
- touched with the morning dew, and rejoicing in the early
- sunshine.”--_From Judge John K. Porter._
-
-_This book has been reprinted in England at the earnest request of Mr._
-MOODY, _who gave away nearly 100 copies to friends in Great
-Britain before parting, each containing his autograph_.
-
-
-=Nature and the Bible.=
-
- By J. W. DAWSON, L.L.D., Principal of McGill University,
- Montreal, Canada. With ten full-page illustrations. 1.75
-
- “It contains the well-considered opinions of one who is a
- student of nature, and of the sacred record as well. The
- questions considered are of interest to a great many, both in
- the religious and scientific world.”--_Presbyterian._
-
-
-=The Shadowed Home, and the Light Beyond.=
-
- By Rev. E. H. BICKERSTETH, author of “Yesterday, To-day, and
- Forever.” 1.50
-
- _By the same author_:
-
-=Yesterday, To-Day, and Forever.=
-
- 12mo. edition, mor., 5.00; full gilt, 3.00; cloth 2.00
- Cheap edition, 16mo. 1.25
-
-
-=The Reef, and other Parables.=
-
- By Rev. E. H. BICKERSTETH. 16 illustrations. 1.25
-
-
-=Dr. Williams on the Lord’s Prayer.=
-
- 12mo. 1.25
-
-
-=Dr. Williams on Religious Progress.=
-
- 12mo. 1.25
-
-
-=The Suffering Saviour.=
-
- By F. W. KRUMMACHER 1.50
-
-
-=The Works of James Hamilton, D.D.=
-
- Comprising “Royal Preacher,” “Mount of Olives,” “Pearl of
- Parables,” “Lamp and Lantern,” “Great Biography,” “Harp
- on the Willows,” “Lake of Galilee,” “Emblems from Eden,”
- and “Life in Earnest.” In 4 handsome uniform 16mo. vols. 5.00
-
-
-=Earth’s Morning; or, Thoughts on Genesis.=
-
- By Rev. HORATIUS BONAR, D.D. 2.00
-
-
-=The Rent Veil.=
-
- By Dr. BONAR 1.25
-
-
-=Follow the Lamb; or, Counsels to Converts.=
-
- By Dr. BONAR 0.40
-
-
-=*Carters’ Cheap S. S. Library. No. 1.=
-
- Fifty vols. in neat cloth. In a wooden case. Net 20.00
-
-
-=*Carters’ 50-volume S. S. Library. No. 2.=
-
- Net 20.00
-
- These fifty choice volumes for the Sabbath School Library, or
- the home circle, are printed on good paper, and very neatly
- bound in fine light-brown cloth. They contain an aggregate of
- 12,350 pages, and are put up in a wooden case.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] ‘Tanta sanctitatis opinione apud omnes vixerant, ut ... cellæ in
-templa commutarentur.’--Buchanan, _Rer. Scot. Hist._, lib. iv. 35 Rex.
-
-[2] ‘Nullus est Papa.’ (Walter Bower, lib. xv. c. 20.) Knox, _Hist. of
-the Ref._, i. 498.
-
-[3] ‘Paulus Crawar, in sacris litteris et in allegatione Bibliæ
-promptus et exercitatus.’--_Scoti-Chronicon_, vol. ii. p. 495.
-
-[4] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, i. 6.
-
-[5] ‘Sacerdotem domi habebat, qui ipsi et familiæ Novum Testamentum
-lingua vernacula prælegebat.’--(_Regi Scotorum Jacobo V._, Alexander
-Alesius.) There is no paging.
-
-[6] ‘Terroribus monachorum non nihil perturbatus.’--(_Regi Scotorum
-Jacobo V._, Alexander Alesius.)
-
-[7] ‘Ut rex, etiam surgens, complexus sit mulierem.’--_Ibid._
-
-[8]
-
- For once the eagle England being in prey,
- To her unguarded nest the weasel Scot
- Comes sneaking, and so sucks her princely eggs.
- --Shakespeare, _Hen. V._, Act i. sc. 2.
-
-[9] ‘Hepburnus, Gavini ministris pulsis, arcem valido præsidio
-communit.’--Buchanan, lib. xiii, 106 Rex.
-
-[10] Buchanan, _Ibid._ Spotswood, _Hist. of the Church of Scotland_.
-London, 1677, pp. 61, 62.
-
-[11] Knox, Buchanan, Fox, Spotswood, McCrie.
-
-[12] Alesius relates this story in his ‘Epistola dedicatoria _Comment.
-in Johannem_.’ Bayle, in the article _Alesius_, says, ‘Il avait été
-préservé de la mort, par miracle, dans sa jeunesse.’
-
-[13] ‘Hamiltonium familia regium quoque sanguinem attingente,
-natus.’--_Bezæ Icones_. This is the opinion of Pinkerton, McCrie, and
-other authors. Others suppose that Sir Patrick Hamilton (of Kincavil)
-was a natural son of Lord Hamilton. But in a charter of April 1498 he
-is called _brother-german_ of James Lord Hamilton, eldest son of his
-father, which seems plainly to mean that he was not half-brother by the
-father’s side; and in a charter of January 1513 he is distinguished
-from another Hamilton, a _natural_ son of the same lord. This last
-circumstance doubtless gave rise to a _qui pro quo_.
-
-[14] Pitscottie, _Hist. of Scotland_. Leland’s _Collectanea_. Lorimer,
-_Patrick Hamilton_.
-
-[15] The inscription sought and found in the _Acta rectoria_ of the
-University of Paris by Professor Rosseeuw Saint-Hilaire, at the request
-of Professor Lorimer, proves that Hamilton studied at Paris.
-
-[16] ‘My great-grandfather, gudeschir, and father have served your
-Lordship’s predecessors, and some of them have dyed under their
-standartis’.--John Knox, _Hist. of the Reformation_, edited by D.
-Laing, ii. p. 323.
-
-[17] Not to the university of St. Andrews, as was formerly supposed.
-‘The name occurs ... in the year 1522.... He was seventeen years of
-age.’--M’Crie, _Life of Knox_, Note B.
-
-[18] ‘Velut seditionis fax, volitaret armatus.’--Buchanan.
-
-[19]
-
- ‘.... At tu, beata Gallia,
- Salve, bonarum blanda nutrix artium,’ &c.
- --Buchanani _Poemata_. Adventus in Galliam.
-
-
-[20] ‘Potes hunc tyrannum occidere.’--Major, _Sentent._, fol. 139.
-
-[21] ‘Reges legitimos ab initio creavimus, leges et nobis et illis
-æquas imposuimus.’--_De Jure Regni apud Scotos_, p. 24.
-
-[22] ‘Juvenis ingenio summo et eruditione singulari.’--Buchanan, _Scot.
-Hist._, p. 494.
-
-[23] Margaret to Henry VIII.--_State Papers_, iv. p. 17.
-
-[24] _State Papers_, pp. 51, 52, 70, 71.--‘Albany embarked probably on
-May 31.’--_Ibid._, p. 77.
-
-[25] _Acta parl. Scot._, vol. ii. p. 255.--_State Papers_, vol. iv. p.
-387.
-
-[26] ‘The young king cannot by himself rede an English letter.’--_State
-Papers_, iv. p. 368.
-
-[27] ‘They are at all times of contrary opinion.’--_Ibid._, iv. p. 362.
-
-[28] ‘May destroy the king, my son, and me.’--_Ibid._, iv. pp. 81, 169,
-188, 227, 237.
-
-[29] ‘We may have your supplications direct for us unto His
-Holyness.’--Margaret to Wolsey, _State Papers_, iv. p. 452.
-
-[30] _State Papers_, iv. pp. 457-458.--Scott, _Hist. of Scotland_, i.
-ch. xxv.--Lindsay, _Chronicles_.
-
-[31] ‘I went suddenly thitherward, thinking that I would cause to make
-a good fire of them.’--MS. Cotton, Galba B., vi. fol. 4.
-
-[32] _State Papers_, iv. p. 561.
-
-[33] ‘Most part to the town of St. Andrews.’--Cotton, MS. Calig. ii. 77.
-
-[34] ‘Disputing, holding, and maintaining divers heresies of Martin
-Luther.’--Sentence Pronounced against Hamilton. Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 560.
-
-[35] _Certain articles preached by him_ (_ibid._) It is clear that
-these articles were preached as early as 1527, before Hamilton had
-quitted Scotland. The sentence states: ‘Faithful inquisition being made
-in _Lent last past_.’ It is of Lent _last past_ that it speaks. Now the
-sentence was of the last February. The Lent of 1528 was hardly begun.
-Besides, the sentence states that Hamilton, after having preached,
-_passed forth of the realm to other parts_; which decides the question.
-
-[36] Luther, _Ep. to the Galatians_.
-
-[37] _See_ ‘The Sentence against P. Hamilton.’--Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 560.
-
-[38] Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 560.
-
-[39] ‘Unicus et pietatis et literarum vindex.’--Registers of the
-University of Marburg, A. D. 1527.
-
-[40] ‘Ad instaurandas liberales disciplinas.’--_Ibid._
-
-[41] ‘Conference and familiarity.’--Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 558.
-
-[42] _Paradoxa Lamberti_, in Schultetus, _Annales Evangel_.
-
-[43] ‘Cautelæ impiæ.’--Baum, _Lambert d’Avignon_, p. 152.
-
-[44] ‘P. Hamilton, of the county of Linlithgow (in which Kincavil is
-situated), a Scotchman, Master of Arts of Paris.’ The three names may
-still be seen in the registers under the numbers 37, 38, 39.
-
-[45] ‘Ex illustrissima Hamiltonum familia, quæ ex summis regni Scotiæ
-et regi sanguine proximius juncta est.’ Baum, _Lambert d’Avignon_, p.
-152.
-
-[46] ‘Prorsus arbitrarer me extinctum iri.’--Luther, _Epp._ iv. p. 187.
-
-[47] ‘Ut non deserat peccatorem suum.’--_Ibid._
-
-[48] ‘Viel ein _aerger_ Buch wider das Papsthum.’--Statement of Jonas.
-
-[49] ‘Hans Luft jam nono die ægrotat.’--Luther, _Epp._ iv. p. 189.
-
-[50] ‘Fere expiravit inter brachia mea heri.’--Luther, _Epp._ iv. p.
-189.
-
-[51] ‘In domo mea cœpit esse hospital.’--_Ibid._
-
-[52] ‘Verbum Dei pure tradidi.’--_Ibid._
-
-[53] ‘Me hoc illi consulente.’--Lamberti dedicatio, _Exegeseos in
-Apocalypsim_.
-
-[54] Patrick’s _Places_.--Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 566.
-
-[55] _Ibid._, and Knox, _Hist. of Ref._, i. p. 25.
-
-[56] ‘Axiomata doctissime asseruit.’--Lambert, Dedication, _Exeges
-Apocal._
-
-[57] Fryth, _To the Reader_. Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 563.
-
-[58] Notes on Patrick’s _Places_. Fox, _Ibid._ p. 572.
-
-[59] _Ibid._ p. 573.
-
-[60] ‘Plerique sacerdotum, _novitatis_ nomine offensi,
- contenderunt Novum Testamentum _nuper a Martino Luthero_ fuisse
-scriptum.’--Buchanan, _Hist._, lib. xv. p. 534.
-
-[61] Patrick’s _Places_, in Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 565.
-
-[62] ‘To testify the truth, he sought all means.’--Fox, _Acts_, iv. p.
-563.
-
-[63] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, ed. Wodrow, p. 15.
-
-[64] ‘Whereunto many gave ear.’--Spotswood’s _Hist._, p. 62.
-
-[65] ‘All sorts of people.’--_Ibid._
-
-[66] ‘He spared not to show the errors crept into Christian religion,’
-&c.--_Ibid._
-
-[67] ‘To the south of the house of Kincavil, in the _craig
-quarter_.’--Charter of 3 Sept. 1507.--Lorimer’s _Hamilton_.
-
-[68] ‘A great following he had.’--Spotswood’s _Hist._, p. 62.
-
-[69] See Fox, _Acts and Monuments_, iv. pp. 570, 571.
-
-[70] ‘Man soll’s dem Papst zuwider thun,’ &c.--Luther’s _Tischreden_,
-c. 43.
-
-[71] ‘Paulo ante mortem duxit nobilem virginem uxorem.’--Alesius,
-_Liber Psalm._ 1554.
-
-[72] The only author who has mentioned it before us is Professor
-Lorimer, in his _Memoirs_, 1857.
-
-[73] ‘A conjured enemy to Christ Jesus.’--Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, i.
-p. 15.
-
-[74] Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 12.
-
-[75] ‘Prædixit etiam se brevi moriturum, cum adhuc apud suos
-esset.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[76] Alesius.
-
-[77] _On the Law and the Gospel._ Fox, _Acts_, iv. pp. 575, 576.
-
-[78] ‘Bona opera non faciunt bonum hominem, sed homo bonus facit bona
-opera.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[79] Bayle, _Dict. crit._; art. ‘Alesius.’
-
-[80] ‘Lutheri assertiones refutans, cum applausu
-theologorum.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[81] ‘Doctrinæ sententiarum.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[82] ‘Verum præter expectationem meam evenit, ut ex ipsius colloquio
-meam errorem agnoscerem.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[83] ‘Eorum qui Thomae Aquinatis sectam imitantur inter eruditiores
-habitus.’--Buchanan, lib. xiv. an. 1527.
-
-[84] ‘Erat enim in eo placida natura.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[85] Knox, Alesius, Spotswood, Scots’ _Worthies_.
-
-[86] ‘Docuit et disputavit palam in Academia, plus minus
-mensem.’--Alesius, in _Psalm._
-
-[87] ‘Metu cognatorum ejus.’--Lambert, _Apocal._
-
-[88] ‘Adhortante rege ipso.’--Lesley, _De Rebus Gestis_, &c. p. 421.
-
-[89] ‘They travailled with the king, that he should pass in pilgrimage
-to St. Duthac.’--Knox, _Reform._, i. p. 16.
-
-[90] The fact of this journey has been disputed in spite of the
-testimonies of Knox, Spotswood, and others. But a letter of Angus to
-Wolsey, of March 30, 1528, states that the king was at that time in the
-_north country_, in the extreme parts of his realm. This evidence is
-decisive.
-
-[91] ‘Cum frater Patricii duxisset exercitum.’--Lambert, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[92] ‘Ventis fuit impeditus.’--_Ibid._
-
-[93] ‘Aliquot millia conscripserunt equitum.’--_Ibid._ The number is
-doubtless exaggerated.
-
-[94] ‘Very early in the morning.’--Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 559. The last
-of February.--Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, i. 18 and 511. Pridie Cal.
-Martii.--Lambert, _in Johan. Apocal. in Dedicat._
-
-[95] Spotswood, _Hist. of the Church of Scotland_, p. 63.
-
-[96] Spotswood, _Hist. of the Church of Scotland_, p. 63.
-
-[97] M’Crie, _Life of Melville_, i. note D, p. 416.
-
-[98] ‘Cum ii qui missi erant sub noctem ab episcopis hospitium ejus
-obsidissent.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[99] ‘Processit ille obvius eis et petit quem quærerent.’--Alesius,
-_Liber Psalm._
-
-[100] ‘Orans ut discedere permitteret suos.’--_Ibid._
-
-[101] The author, during a visit which he paid to St. Andrews in 1845,
-studied on the spot the places here referred to, having as his guide to
-the beautiful antiquities of St. Andrews the historian of the Scottish
-Church, Dr. Hetherington.
-
-[102] ‘Affui ego, spectator tragediæ.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[103] ‘After the manner of other courtiers in all kinds of licentious
-riotousness.’--Knox, _Hist._, i. App. p. 505.
-
-[104] It is in reference to this verse (Ps. xxxvii. 3) that Alesius, in
-his _Comm. des Psaumes_, narrates the trial of Hamilton.
-
-[105] ‘Jusserunt episcopi et theologi ut ei conviciaretur et vocaret
-eum hereticum.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[106] Pitscottie, _Hist. of Scotland_, pp. 133, 134.
-
-[107] ‘Mi frater, non ita sentis in animo.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[108] ‘Hoc dicto ita conscientiam illius percutit.’--_Ibid._
-
-[109] ‘Domum rediens, inciderit in phrenesin.’--_Ibid._ Buchanan adds,
-lib. xiv. ad an. 1527, ‘Nunquam ex eo die compos mentis fuit.’
-
-[110] The sentence is given at full length in Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 560.
-
-[111] ‘Conclusus inter aliquot millia armatorum.’--Alesius, _Liber
-Psalm._
-
-[112] ‘Cum ipse adhuc in mensa sederet, jubet vocari præfectum et
-quærit utrum omnia parata sint.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[113] ‘Apprehensa ejus dextera, properat ad locum supplicii.’--_Ibid._
-
-[114] ‘Christi cruce cunctis vitæ commodis anteposita.’--Bezæ _Icones_.
-
-[115] ‘Viso palo, ad quam alligandus erat, aperit caput, suscipiensque
-in cœlum, orat.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[116] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, p. 17. Spotswood, p. 63.
-
-[117] Pittscottie, Lorimer.
-
-[118] Pittscottie, Lorimer.
-
-[119] ‘Tu, si vera doces, infer digitum huc, ubi totus
-ardeo.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[120] Knox, _Hist._, i. p. 18.
-
-[121] ‘Insania conflictatus mortem obiit.’--Buchanan, lib. xiv. an.
-1527.--‘Ut in phrenesin inciderit, et non longe post mortuus sit.’
-Alesius, _Lib. Psalm._
-
-[122] The learned Mr. David Laing found a note of this in the Records
-of the Treasury.--See his appendix to Knox’s _Hist. of the Ref._, i. p.
-515.
-
-[123] ‘Commendat matrem amicis.’--Alesius, _Liber Psalm._
-
-[124] ‘Cum jam scissus per medium ignita catena ferrea.’--_Ibid._
-
-[125] ‘Erexit tres digitos, aliis duobus combustis.’--Alesius, _Liber
-Psalm._
-
-[126] ‘In igne, ab hora xii. usque ad vi., vespere, sedit ustulatus
-magisquam combustus.’--_Ibid._
-
-[127] ‘Alesii responsio ad Cochlæum.’
-
-[128] Théodore Beza, _Icones_.
-
-[129] These verses relating to Hamilton occur in a poem, _De Coronis
-Martyrum in Scotia_, written by John Jonston, the manuscript of which
-is preserved in the Advocates’ Library, Edinburgh. [Note by Translator.]
-
-[130] ‘Tunc incandescerunt,’ etc.--Alesius, _Regi Scot._
-
-[131] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, i. p. 36.
-
-[132] Letters from the doctors of Louvain to the doctors of
-Scotland.--Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 561. Knox, _Hist._, i. 512.
-
-[133] ‘An epistil to the nobil lords of Scotland.’--Knox, _Hist._, i.
-App. 3, p. 544.
-
-[134] _Ibid._ p. 503.
-
-[135] _State Papers_, iv p. 499.
-
-[136] ‘A sacris libris arcetur.’--Alesius, _Regi contra Cochlæum_.
-
-[137] ‘Vim religionis, inspectis fontibus, cognoscant.’--_Ibid._
-
-[138] Bayle, _Dict. crit._; art. ‘Alesius.’
-
-[139] ‘Stringit ferrum in me, meque confodisset, nisi duo canonici, eum
-vi retrahentes, ferrum a meo corpore avertissent.’--Alesius, _Regi adv.
-Cochlæum_.
-
-[140] ‘Ita ut collapsus, aliquamdiu jacerem exanimis.’--Alesius, _Regi
-adv. Cochlæum_.
-
-[141] ‘Nisi locus fuisset infectus pestilentia.’--_Ibid._
-
-[142] ‘Ego in latrinam quamdam inducor.’--_Ibid._
-
-[143] ‘Post vigesimum diem extrahit me squalentem ex latrina
-illa.’--Alesius, _Regi adv. Cochlæum_.
-
-[144] ‘Lavari et nitide vestiri.’--_Ibid._
-
-[145] ‘Jubet me ab ara avelli et in latrinam rapi.’--Alesius, _Regi
-adv. Cochlæum_.
-
-[146] ‘Certum exitium impendere, nisi fuga mihi consulam.’--Alesius,
-_Regi adv. Cochl._
-
-[147] ‘Maximo dolore afficiebar cum cogitarem mihi e patria discedendum
-esse.’--_Ibid._
-
-[148] ‘Patria qua nihil dulcius est bene institutis naturis.’--_Ibid._
-
-[149] ‘Ecclesia, cuilibet pio, verius est patria, quam ille locus qui
-nascentem excepit.’--Alesius, _Regi adv. Cochlæum_.
-
-[150] ‘Cum lacrymantes inter nos vale dixissemus.’--_Ibid._
-
-[151] Comment. on _Acts_, xx. 37.
-
-[152] ‘Media jam nocte in densissimis tenebris solus iter
-aggredior.’--Comment. on _Acts_, xx. 37.
-
-[153] ‘Acerbissimum patriam et cognatos deserere.’--_Ibid._
-
-[154] ‘Fiducia Christi sustentabar.’--_Ibid._
-
-[155] ‘Equites missi a meo præposito.’--_Ibid._
-
-[156] ‘Me quidem homo germanus admodum excepit, meque sibi
-adjunxit’--Comment. on _Acts_, xx. 37. The word _germanus_ in this
-passage doubtless means _German_, and not _kinsman_, as some have
-supposed.
-
-[157] ‘Oleum misericordiæ, nisi in vase fiduciæ ponis.’--Comment. on
-_Acts_, xx. 37.
-
-[158] Alesius, _De Traditionibus Apostolicis_, in dedicatione.
-
-[159] ‘Pervagatus sum quamdam Galliæ oram.’--Alesius, _Regi adv.
-Episcop._
-
-[160] ‘The sore imprisonment of the erle of Argyll, the little
-exstymation of the erle of Murray and the Lord Maxwell,’
-etc.--Northumberland to Henry VIII., _State Papers_, iv. p. 598.
-
-[161] ‘The erle Bothwell in the night and other three.’--_State
-Papers_, iv. p. 597.
-
-[162] ‘To crown your Grace in the town of Edinburgh within bref
-tyme.’--_State Papers_, iv. p. 574, Sept. 29, 1531.
-
-[163] ‘That we may lawfully write ourself _prince of England_ and Duke
-of York.’--_State Papers_, iv. p. 599.
-
-[164] ‘Of an audacious and bold spirit.’--Spotswood, p. 63.
-
-[165] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, pp. 45, 46.
-
-[166] ‘This carnal prince who altogether was given unto the filthy
-lusts of the flesh.’--Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, p. 48.
-
-[167] _Ibid._ pp. 48-52.
-
-[168] _Calderwood_, i.
-
-[169] MS., Advocates’ Library.--Pitcairn’s _Crim. Trials_, i. p. 161.
-
-[170] ‘Mores regi posse sine sacris libris?’ (_Alesii Epistola contra
-Decretum quoddam Episcoporum in Scotia._) This letter bears no name
-either of its publisher or of the place where it was printed. There is
-at the end only Anno MDXXXIII.
-
-[171] ‘Ut populus paulatim induat ethnicas persuasiones.’--_Alesii
-Epistola contra Decretum quoddam Episcoporum in Scotia._
-
-[172] This treatise, in the form of a letter, is entitled, _An expediat
-laicis legere Novi Testamenti libros lingua vernacula?_--Ex Dresda. Id.
-Junii 1533.
-
-[173] _State Papers_, iv. pp. 608-611.
-
-[174] Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 579.
-
-[175] Anderson, _Bible Annals_, ii. p. 443, note.
-
-[176] ‘To the intent that all the people of Forfar might see the fire,’
-etc.--Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 579.
-
-[177] Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 579.
-
-[178] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, i. p. 59. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 20.
-
-[179] ‘On hearing them he became of a sudden as one enraptured or
-inspired.’--Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 20.
-
-[180] ‘He threw himself on his knees, extended his hands.’ etc.--Scots’
-_Worthies_.
-
-[181] Spotswood, p. 66.
-
-[182] Fox, _Acts_, iv. p. 579. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 16.
-
-[183] _State Papers_, v. pp. 1-6. These instructions, which have
-no date, belong to the second half of the year 1534, and they are
-corrected by the hand of Cromwell, by whom they were also probably
-drawn up. [The instructions extend over five printed quarto
-pages.--_Translator._]
-
-[184] ‘King Henry VIII. to King James V.’--_State Papers_, v. p. 7.
-
-[185] ‘Audience he himself only.’ Letter from Margaret to Henry VIII.
-and to Cromwell.--_Ibid._ pp. 10-12.
-
-[186] _State Papers_, p. 14. Otterburn’s Letters to Cromwell. See also
-the note taken from the _Diurnall_.
-
-[187] _State Papers_, v. p. 52, p. 19.
-
-[188] _State Papers_, v. pp. 18-20.
-
-[189] Calderwood’s _Hist._ Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 21.
-
-[190] _Ibid._
-
-[191] These and other details were communicated by Andrew to the
-minister John Davidson, who inserted them in his _History of the
-Scottish Martyrs_.--Scots’ _Worthies_.
-
-[192] ‘Stoutly.’ Fox’s _Acts_, v. p. 622.
-
-[193] [Or _portass_, a _portable_ breviary, or small
-prayer-book.--_Translator._]
-
-[194] Fox’s _Acts_. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 22.
-
-[195] Letter from Angus to Sir G. Douglas.
-
-[196] _State Papers_, v. p. 38.
-
-[197] See the Letter from the Queen-mother to Henry VIII.--_State
-Papers._
-
-[198] Howard and Barlow to Henry VIII.--_State Papers_, pp. 46, 48.
-
-[199] _Unpublished Letters of Margaret of Angoulême_, p. 349.
-
-[200] Sutchyll’s Letters to the Lord Admiral.--_State Papers_, v. p. 59.
-
-[201] ‘Sub amitæ reginæ Navarræ disciplina educata.’--Buchanan, lib.
-xiv. ad an. 1537. See also _Unpublished Letters of the Queen of
-Navarre_, p. 77.
-
-[202]
-
- Regia eram conjux, et regia filia, neptis
- Regia, spe et votis regia mater eram ... etc.
- Buchanan, _Opera_, p. 81.
-
-[203] ‘Rex, id quod evenit, de exitu uxoris veritus, in illam oculos
-conjecerat.’--Buchanan, lib. xiv.
-
-[204] Kirkton, _True History of the Church of Scotland_, p. 7.
-
-[205] ‘The great part of the sermon was in extolling of the Richess of
-Rome authority.’--_State Papers_, v. p. 154.
-
-[206] ‘Most vicious prince we shall call, for he neither spared
-manis wieff, nor madyn, no more after his marriage than he did
-before.’--Knox, _Ref. in Scotland_, _Works_, 1846, i. p. 66.
-
-[207] ‘His velut machinis admotis, quum regis animum superstitionibus
-obnoxium labefactassent.’--Buchanan, lib. xiv. an. 1535.
-
-[208] Spotswood, _Church of Scotland_, p. 67.
-
-[209] _Criminal Trials._ Anderson, _Bible Annals_, p. 498.
-
-[210] Norfolk to Cromwell, March 29, 1539.--_State Papers_, v. p. 154.
-
-[211] ‘Daily commeth unto me some gentlemen and some clerks.’--_State
-Papers_, v. p. 154.
-
-[212] _Ibid._
-
-[213] ‘The verray sempill people understood that as the preastis and
-pharisyes....’--Knox, _Ref. in Scotland_, i. p. 62
-
-[214] ‘Because they were at the bridal and marriage of a priest.’--Fox,
-_Acts_, v. p. 623.
-
-[215] ‘Mars 1, 1539, accusatio hereticorum et eorum
-combustio.’--_Archæologia_, xxii. p. 7. ‘The last day of
-February.’--Knox, _Ref. in Scotland_, p. 63.
-
-[216] Anderson, _Annals of the English Bible_, ii. 500, 501.
-
-[217] ‘Eorum combustio apud Edinburgh rege presente.’--_Archæologia_,
-xxii. p. 7.
-
-[218] ‘Lutheranismo suspecti complures capti sunt, quinque
-cremati.’--Buchanan, _Res Scoticæ_, p. 309.
-
-[219] Lord Treasurer’s _Accounts_.
-
-[220] ‘Sopitis custodibus.’--Lord Treasurer’s _Accounts_.
-
-[221] ‘Per cubiculi fenestram evaserat.’
-
-[222] Knox, _Ref. in Scotland_, p. 71.
-
-[223] Knox, _Ref. in Scotland_, p. 71.
-
-[224] _Ibid._ p. 63.
-
-[225] ‘One frere Jerome, a well learned man, lyeth in sore
-yerons.’--_State Papers_, v. p. 141.
-
-[226] Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 24.
-
-[227] Knox, _Ref._, p. 65. Spotswood, p. 67. Petrie, _History of the
-Church_, p. 180.
-
-[228] ‘For many of his minions were pensioners to priests.’--Knox,
-_Ref. in Scotland_, p. 67.
-
-[229] _State Papers_, v. p. 174.
-
-[230] _State Papers_, v. p. 170.
-
-[231] _State Papers_, v. p. 170.
-
-[232] Spotswood, p. 70. Petrie, p. 180.
-
-[233] _State Papers_, v. p. 177.
-
-[234] ‘Rex provisus jam hæredibus de sua salute securior.’--Buchanan,
-p. 510.
-
-[235] _State Papers_, v. p. 178.
-
-[236] Knox, _Ref._, p. 82. It is difficult to say what this word
-_jefwellis_ exactly means. Another manuscript has _josrellis_; another
-_jeffels_; and a fourth, _Jesuits_. The last reading is improbable. The
-Jesuits had only been confirmed by the pope the year before, and their
-name had not yet become a term of reproach.
-
-[237] The _State Papers_, v. p. 125, contain a letter from him to Lord
-Cromwell, on a political subject, and suggesting that Henry VIII.
-should give his nephew a young lion, in token of his friendship. ‘He
-saw one _zoung lyoun_ in Flandris.’ The King of Scotland wished for it,
-and Scott thought that his wish should be gratified.
-
-[238] Knox, _Ref. in Scotland_, p. 69. Spotswood, p. 71.
-
-[239] ‘J. Hamiltonium ense stricto in se ruentem.’--Buchanan, p. 512.
-
-[240] _State Papers_, v. pp. 188-190.
-
-[241] _State Papers_, v. p. 168.
-
-[242] _State Papers_, v. p. 168.
-
-[243] ‘Ac prolixe de sui regis amore et benevolentia erga eum
-sponderent.’--Buchanan, p. 516.
-
-[244] _State Papers_, v. p. 198.
-
-[245] ‘Si animum regis largitionibus immensis
-aggrederentur.’--Buchanan, _Rer. Scot. Hist._, p. 510. D. de Foe,
-_Church of Scotland_, p. 9. Spotswood, _Hist._, pp. 70, 71. Petrie,
-_Hist._, p. 181. Knox, _Ref._, p. 77.
-
-[246] Knox, _Ref._, p. 77.
-
-[247] ‘Cæsi non adeo multi, plurimi capti.’--Buchanan, p. 512.
-
-[248] Knox, _Ref._, p. 78.
-
-[249] _State Papers_, v. pp. 207, 209.
-
-[250] Knox, _Ref._, p. 81.
-
-[251] Sadler’s _Papers_, i. p. 94. Knox, _Ref._, p. 81.
-
-[252] Knox, _Ref._, p. 86.
-
-[253] Knox, _Ref._, p. 89.
-
-[254] Knox, _Ref._, p. 86.
-
-[255] ‘Quum circiter 500 equites Angli in propinquis collibus
-cernerentur.’--Buchanan, p. 513.
-
-[256] Knox, _Ref._, p. 87.
-
-[257] Plures a Scotis latronibus capti et Anglis divenditi.’--Buchanan,
-p. 513.
-
-[258] Knox, _Ref._, p. 88.
-
-[259] _Ibid._
-
-[260] ‘Velut ad publicum spectaculum per ora vulgi
-traducti.’--Buchanan, p. 516. Their names and their fortunes are set
-forth in _State Papers_, v. pp. 232-235.
-
-[261] Lesley says that it was at Carlaverock, but Knox, p. 89, and
-Pitscottie, p. 174, say ‘Lochmaben,’ which seems to me established.
-
-[262] Knox, _Ref._, p. 89.
-
-[263] _State Papers_, v. pp. 225-228.
-
-[264] Spotswood, p. 71. Knox, _Ref._, p. 91.
-
-[265] ‘Rege in ætatis flore non tam morbo quam mœroris vi
-extincto.’--Buchanan, p. 515.
-
-[266] ‘Imminere videbatur tempestas quantam vix ulla proximorum
-sæculorum memoria ... meminisset.’--Buchanan, p. 515.
-
-[267] ‘Multi pro sua cujusque spe aut metu varie disserebant.’--_Ibid._
-
-[268] ‘Minime turbidus, ex amita cardinalis natus,’--Buchanan, p. 515.
-
-[269] ‘Many affirm that a dead man’s hand was made to subscribe a
-blank.’--Knox, _Ref._, p. 92. ‘Conducto Balfurio sacrificulo mercenario
-falsum testamentum subjecit.’--Buchanan, p. 515. Sadler, _Papers_, i.
-p. 38. Lesley, _Hist._, p. 169.
-
-[270] _State Papers_, v. pp. 238, 240. Knox, _Ref._, pp. 32, 94.
-
-[271] Spotswood, p. 71. Buchanan, Knox.
-
-[272] _State Papers_, v. p. 250.
-
-[273] Knox, _Ref._, p. 95. Spotswood, p. 72. McCrie, _Life of Knox_, p.
-21. Edit. 1855.
-
-[274] _State Papers_, v. p. 242.
-
-[275] ‘Quum cardinalis non solum repugnaret sed obturbando et alios
-interpellando, nihil decerni pateretur.’--Buchanan, p. 517. It appears
-to us that Buchanan, although a contemporary and an eminent historian,
-is in error here. He assigns this opposition of the cardinal to the
-month of March in the parliament, while it is evident that it took
-place on January 26 at the latest.
-
-[276] ‘Communi prope omnium consensu cardinalis in cubiculum seorsum
-seclusus est.’--Buchanan, _ibid._
-
-[277] _State Papers_, v. p. 242 n.
-
-[278] Calvin, _Harm. de Matth._, xii. 29.
-
-[279] _State Papers_, v. 249.
-
-[280] _State Papers_, v. 249.
-
-[281] _State Papers_, v. pp. 262-264. Angus to Lisle.
-
-[282] ‘The marriage of the said queen, and to contract the same by
-their said ambassadors.’--_Ibid._
-
-[283] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, p. 98.
-
-[284] Knox, _Hist. of the Ref._, p. 99.
-
-[285] _Ibid._, p. 100. Spotswood, p. 72. Petrie, _Church Hist._, p. 182.
-
-[286] Knox, _Ref._, p. 100.
-
-[287] ‘Affuit R. Sadlerius, eques ab Anglo legatus, qui nuptias et
-pacem publicam procuraret.’--Buchanan, p. 517.
-
-[288] ‘With his fulmination of cursing, and all other means that he
-shall be able to excogitate.’--_State Papers_, v. p. 286.
-
-[289] Knox, _Ref._, p. 103.
-
-[290] ‘Hamilton, abbas Passerensis, et David Panitarius.’--Buchanan,
-lib. xv. anno 1543. ‘David Panter.’--Spotswood. ‘David Panteyr.’--Knox.
-
-[291] ‘Great esperance there was that their presence should have been
-comfortable to the kirk of God,’--Knox, _Ref._, p. 105.
-
-[292] Knox, _Ref._, p. 107.
-
-[293] Knox, _Ref._, p. 107.
-
-[294] Spotswood. Knox writes ‘Ballantyne.’
-
-[295] _State Papers_, v. p. 242. Spotswood, p. 73. In Laing’s edition
-of Knox it is stated in a note, p. 97, ‘He at last obtained permission
-to go to his own castle of St. Andrews, under the guard of George,
-fifth Lord Seaton.’ But the text of Knox, p. 57, says, ‘Was put first
-in Dalkeith, after in Seatoun.’
-
-[296] ‘He took no heed to them, but to new opinions of heresy.’--_State
-Papers_, v. 322.
-
-[297] ‘The cardinal ceased not to traffic with such of the multitude as
-he might draw to his faction.’--Knox, _Ref._, p. 108.
-
-[298] ‘Imminentem universæ papanæ Ecclesiæ ruinam
-averteret.’--Buchanan, p. 518.
-
-[299] _State Papers_, v. p. 321. Edinb. July 20, 1543.
-
-[300] ‘Tanta seditione quantam ipse vides a cardinale
-excitata.’--Buchanan, p. 518. Spotswood, p. 73.
-
-[301] ‘Vi publici furoris abreptus.’--Buchanan, p. 519.
-
-[302] ‘Recta Londinum, multis reclamantibus, est profectus.’--_Ibid._
-
-[303] _State Papers_, v. p. 323.
-
-[304] Knox, _Ref._, p. 109.
-
-[305] ‘Ut infamia flagitii minueretur ad vulgus, non propalam, sed in
-æde Franciscanorum, ... sententiam suam prorex mutavit.’--Buchanan, p.
-521.
-
-[306] ‘He received absolution, renounced the profession of Christ Jesus
-his holy Evangel.’--Knox, _Ref._, p. 109.
-
-[307] _State Papers_, v. p. 333. Sept. 8, 1543.
-
-[308] ‘At that time was our queen crouned’--Knox, _Ref._, p. 109.
-
-[309] _State Papers_, v. 335, 351. Buchanan, p. 524. _Bible Annals_,
-ii. 529. Knox, _Ref._, p. 110.
-
-[310] Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 623.
-
-[311] ‘Their conferences and assemblies, in hearing and expounding of
-Scripture,’--_Ibid._ p. 624.
-
-[312] ‘Certain priests did eat and drink in these honest men’s houses,
-to whom they were much bounden.’--_Ibid._ p. 625.
-
-[313] ‘Variarum copia voluptatum ultra omnem mundanorum luxuriam
-exuberant.’--M. Clamengis, _Ep._ 35.
-
-[314] Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 624.
-
-[315] ‘Nisi secundum ipsius piæ matris dispensationem.’--Bernardus de
-Bustis, Franciscanus, _Sermones_, 1500.
-
-[316] Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 624.
-
-[317] ‘Women who, contrary to nature, addressed them to extreme cruelty
-against him.’--Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 623.
-
-[318] _Ibid._ v. p. 623.
-
-[319] Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 624.
-
-[320] ‘Prophesied of the ruin and plague which came upon the
-cardinal.’--_Ibid._ v. p. 625.
-
-[321] Knox, _Ref._, p. 118. Fox, _Acts_, v. pp. 623-625. Spotswood, pp.
-74, 75.
-
-[322] Knox, _Ref._, p. 119. Spotswood, p. 76.
-
-[323] Knox, _Ref._, p. 119.
-
-[324] Knox, _Ref._, p. 119.
-
-[325] ‘Urbe spoliata ac deinde incensa ... multos pagos
-arcesque nonnullas et villas hominum nobilium ferro flammaque
-vestarunt.’--Buchanan, p. 525.
-
-[326] _State Papers_, v. pp. 361-366.
-
-[327] Emery Tylney’s Account.--Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 626.
-
-[328] Knox, _Ref._, p. 127. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 28. Spotswood, p. 76.
-
-[329] Or Leifnorris. See Laing’s note, Knox, _Ref._, p. 127.
-
-[330] _Ibid._
-
-[331] Knox, _Ref._, p. 44. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 20. _Hist._, p. 129.
-
-[332] Knox, _Ref._, p. 130.
-
-[333] Knox, _Ref._, p. 131.
-
-[334] Knox, _Ref._, p. 131.
-
-[335] _Ibid._ Scots’ _Worthies_, pp. 29, 30. Spotswood, p. 77.
-
-[336] Knox, _Ref._, p. 133. Some MSS. read ‘copestone,’
-‘keapestone,’--‘keepestone.’ Spotswood, p. 77.
-
-[337] Knox, _Ref._, p. 134. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 31.
-
-[338] Knox, _Ref._, p. 135. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 31.
-
-[339] This is the first time that Knox speaks of himself in his History
-(p. 137).
-
-[340] Knox, _Ref._, p. 138. Scots’ _Worthies_. Spotswood.
-
-[341] Knox, _Ref._, p. 143. _Diurnall of Occurrents_, p. 41. Spotswood,
-p. 78.
-
-[342] Knox, _Ref._, p. 143. Spotswood, p. 79.
-
-[343] Knox, _Ref._, p. 144. Buchanan, p. 556. Spotswood, p. 79. Fox,
-_Acts_, v. 626. Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 33.
-
-[344] Fox. In Scots’ _Worthies_, p. 34, the name is written, ‘Winram.’
-In Buchanan, ‘Viniramus.’ In Knox, ‘Winram.’
-
-[345] Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 627.
-
-[346] Fox, _Acts_, v p. 628. Knox, _Ref._, p. 152.
-
-[347] Knox, _Ref._, p. 154.
-
-[348] Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 630.
-
-[349] ‘He wanteth the instrument by which he bindeth or looseth, that
-is to say, the Word of God.’--Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 631.
-
-[350] Fox, _Acts_, v. p. 633.
-
-[351] ‘Nulla judicii aut liberæ disceptationis ibi forma fuit:
-accusator enim ... cum summa verborum acerbitate detonabat.’--Buchanan,
-p. 538. Spotswood, pp. 80, 81.
-
-[352] ‘Non videri æquum ut pertinax hereticus ... ullis ecclesiæ
-beneficiis frueretur.’--Buchanan, p. 538.
-
-[353] Scots’ _Worthies_, pp. 35, 36. ‘Viros vos esse bonos et in eodem
-Christi corpore mecum esse sociatos.’--Buchanan, p. 539.
-
-[354] ‘Fenestra ... tapetibus, stragulis sericis et pulvinis
-ornabatur.’--Buchanan, p. 559.
-
-[355] Fox, _Acts_, p. 635.
-
-[356] ‘At qui nos tam superbe despicit, intra paucos dies non minus
-ignominiose jacebit quam nunc arroganter cubat.’--Buchanan, p. 540.
-
-[357] ‘Velut pecus ex hara suæ libidini mactaret.’--Buchanan, p. 540.
-
-[358] ‘Domi cum scortis volutetur; foris in cæde innoxiorum et sanguine
-hæreticorum debaccharetur.’--_Ibid._
-
-[359] ‘Discesserunt utrimque animis infensissimis.’--Buchanan p. 541.
-
-[360] ‘Leslius ad suos rediit, intolerandam cardinalis superbiam iis
-exposuit; facile omnes in cædem ejus conjurarunt.’--Buchanan, p. 541.
-Knox, _Ref._, pp. 172, 173.
-
-[361] ‘Cardinalis arcem suam in usum belli communiebat.’--Buchanan, p.
-542.
-
-[362] Knox, _Ref._, p. 74.
-
-[363] ‘Eos quum semisomnes sigillatim evocassent mortem præsentem si
-quisquam mutiret, comminati.’--Buchanan, xv. p. 545.
-
-[364] Knox, _Ref._, p. 177.
-
-[365] Numbers, ch. xxxv.
-
-[366] Knox, _Ref._, p. 177.
-
-[367] ‘Cadaver exanimatum oculis omnium exponunt, in illo ipso loco
-unde ipse non multo ante Georgii [Wishart] supplicium tam lætus
-spectaverat.’--Buchanan, p. 542.
-
-[368] Spotswood, p. 84.
-
-[369] Spotswood, p. 88. The last of July. Knox, _Ref._, p. 205.
-Buchanan assigns the capture of the castle or the capitulation to the
-month of August 1547. ‘Hæc in mensem Augusti anni MDXLVII. inciderunt,’
-p. 543.
-
-[370] Melville’s _Diary_, pp. 276-278. M’Crie, _Andrew Melville_, ii.
-p. 66.
-
-[371] Second Book of Discipline.
-
-[372] Buckle, _History of Civilization_, ch. xvi.
-
-[373] See vols. i. and ii. of the second series: _The Reformation in
-the Time of Calvin_.
-
-[374] This thought was expressed to the author by a distinguished
-writer, to whom we owe a remarkable _History of the French Revolution_,
-published a few years ago.
-
-[375] ‘Singulis momentis de Gallica libelli nostri editione
-cogitabamus.’ Letter to Francois Daniel; Lausanne, Oct. 13. 1536. Bibl.
-de Berne. Calvin, _Opera_, edid. Theol. Argent. vol. x. p. 63. The
-earliest known edition of the _Institution_ in French is that of 1540.
-
-[376] _Vie de Calvin_, p. 29. Paris edition of 1864. The Latin edition,
-speaking of the office of preacher, says, ‘Hoc autem primum recusavit.’
-
-[377] _Comment. sur les Psaumes_, vol. i. p. ix. Paris, 1859.
-
-[378] _Lettres Françaises de Calvin_ (J. Bonnet), i. p. 270. To the
-Protector of England.
-
-[379] _Lettres Françaises de Calvin_, ii. p. 30.
-
-[380] Registers of the Council of Geneva, Sept. 4, 1536.
-
-[381] _Lettres Françaises de Calvin_ to the lords of Berne, ii. p. 29.
-
-[382] _Institution Chrétienne_, iv. ch. 12.
-
-[383] ‘Iste Gallus.’--Registers of the Council, Sept. 5, 1536.
-
-[384] Registers of the Council, Sept. 8. The church of St. Germain,
-where the Council assembled, is near the Hôtel de Ville.
-
-[385] Ruchat, iv. p. 138.
-
-[386] _Mémoire de Pierrefleur_, p. 152. Ruchat, iv. pp. 130-160.
-
-[387] Ruchat, iv. p. 142.
-
-[388] MS. Pinaut. Ruchat, iv. p. 158.
-
-[389] Ruchat, iv. p. 504.
-
-[390] _Ibid._ p. 366.
-
-[391] Edicts of the Lords of Berne. _Pièces justificatives_ of Ruchat,
-iv. p. 500, note 2.
-
-[392] ‘Capitaine de la jeunesse.’
-
-[393] Calvin’s Letter to F. Daniel, Lausanne, Oct. 13,
-1536.--Bibliothèque de Berne. Calvin, Opp. x. p. 63.
-
-[394] Acts of the Disputation of Lausanne. _Mémoire de Pierrefleur_, p.
-161. Ruchat, iv. pp. 179, 505.
-
-[395] The Acts of this Disputation form a handsome manuscript volume
-in folio, preserved in the Library of Berne. The author having worked
-there in 1859, noticed this volume among others. Subsequently,
-Professor Gaussen, who had had a large portion of it copied several
-years before, presented the copy to the author. This narration is
-therefore drawn up from the original text.
-
-[396] _Avoyer_ was the title of the first magistrate of the Bernese
-republic. The _baillifs_ were the deputy governors of the Bernese
-dependencies.
-
-[397] Acts of the Disputation. Berne MS. folio xviii.
-
-[398] Acts of the Disputation, fol. xxi. and xxv.
-
-[399] Acts of the Disputation of Lausanne, fol. lxix.
-
-[400] Acts of the Disputation of Lausanne, fol. lxxv. and xcii.
-
-[401] Edition of Erasmus. 1528.
-
-[402] Some authors name him also ‘Caudy’ or ‘Candy;’ Ruchat writes
-‘Tandi.’
-
-[403] Acts, fol. xcii.-clxix.
-
-[404] ‘Curia Romana non quærit ovem sine lana.’
-
-[405] Acts, fol. clxxxix., cxc.
-
-[406] Ne Hercules quidem contra duos.
-
-[407] Acts, fol. ccxix.-ccxxi. and cclxi.-cclxiii.
-
-[408] Acts, fol. cclxxiii., cclxxiv., cclxxix.
-
-[409] ‘Quod solius papæ pedes omnes principes deosculentur,’
-etc.--_Dictatus Papæ_, Ep. ii. p. 55.
-
-[410] _Institution Chrétienne_, iv. ch. 6, 7, 8.
-
-[411] Acts of the Disputation, fol. ccxxxviii.
-
-[412] Acts, fol. cclxxxvii.
-
-[413] Farel’s discourse begins at fol. cclxxxv. of the Berne MS. and
-ends at ccci.; Ruchat, iv. p. 361.
-
-[414] MS. of Lausanne, p. 516. Ruchat, iv. p. 379.
-
-[415] Rollin.
-
-[416] Calvin.
-
-[417] Acts of the Disputation, fol. ccxiii., ccxiv.
-
-[418] Acts, xix. 27.
-
-[419] _Mémoire de Pierrefleur_, p. 168. Ruchat, iv. p. 380.
-
-[420] _Pièces justificatives._ Ruchat, iv. p. 520.
-
-[421] Letter from the prince of Soubise to F. de Loys.--_Pièces
-justificatives_ de Ruchat, iv. p. 508.
-
-[422] Herminjard, _Correspondance_, iv. p. 107.
-
-[423] Herminjard, _Correspondance_, iv. p. 94.
-
-[424] ‘Qui magis negligant Viretum nostrum, Bernatesne an
-Lausannenses.’--_Ibid._ p. 109.
-
-[425] _Mémoire de Pierrefleur_, p. 110. Ruchat, iv. p. 385. Le
-Chroniqueur. Herminjard.
-
-[426] Ruchat, iv. p. 374.
-
-[427] MS. of Lutry, p. 77. Ruchat, iv. p. 377.
-
-[428] Herminjard, iv. pp. 62, 92. Ruchat, iv. pp. 365, 411.
-
-[429] Farel’s Letter to the bailiff Naegueli, of Nov. 14, 1536.
-Herminjard, iv. p. 102.
-
-[430] ‘Malunt in sepulcris Ægyptiorum sepeliri, quam manna edere
-columnaque dirigi in eremo.’--Bibl. de Neuchâtel. Herminjard, iv. p.
-109.
-
-[431] Herminjard, iv. p. 112. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 70.
-
-[432] ‘Bacchum vere nobis præstitit vel Martem.’--Farel to Fabri, Dec.
-6, Bibl. de Neuchâtel. Herminjard, iv. p. 122.
-
-[433] Edict of the Lords of Berne, Ruchat, iv. p. 378. Prov. xxii. 6.
-
-[434] Ordinances of Reformation of the Lords of Berne, Ruchat, iv. p.
-522.
-
-[435] _Mémoire de Pierrefleur_, p. 166.
-
-[436] ‘Faxit Dominus ut ex omnium cordibus idolatria
-corruat.’--Calvin’s Letter to Francois Daniel. Bib. de Berne.
-Herminjard, _Correspondance_, iv. p. 89. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 63.
-
-[437] ‘Fratres qui Genevæ et in vicinia Christum annuntiant.’--Calv.
-_Opp._ x. p. 71. Herminjard, iv. p. 105.
-
-[438] Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 67. Herminjard, iv. p. 119.
-
-[439] _Vie de Calvin_, in French, p. 29, edit. of 1864. There are three
-lives of Calvin, which down to the present time have been generally
-attributed to Theodore Beza. The first (in French), published in 1564,
-the year of Calvin’s death, is entirely the work of Beza. The second,
-also in French, but more extensive than the first, is of the year 1565.
-It is substantially Beza’s, but was published with augmentations by
-Nicholas Colladon, who was first a pastor at Vandœuvres, then, in 1562,
-at Geneva, became rector in 1564, and succeeded Calvin in 1566 in the
-chair of Theology. This life of Calvin was reprinted at Paris in 1864,
-and the passage we have cited is found in it, p. 29. Lastly, Theodore
-Beza, in 1575, prefixed to Calvin’s Letters a Life written in Latin.
-The work of Colladon is perhaps richer as regards facts, although that
-of Beza is superior in other respects.
-
-[440] Epistle of J. Sadoleto, and Reply of Calvin. Geneva, Fick, 1860.
-
-[441] Calvin’s Letter of Oct. 13 (Library of Berne). Calv. _Opp._ x.
-p. 63. Letter from the Council of Strasburg to the Council of Basel,
-Nov. 4, 1536. Herminjard, iv. p. 95. Calvin is said to have purposed
-visiting Basel, to set its affairs in order. Our hypothesis appears to
-us to be more in harmony with the letter.
-
-[442] Buffon.
-
-[443] Calvin’s Farewell. Tronchin MS. Coll. J. Bonnet: _Lettres
-Françaises de Calvin_, ii. p. 574.
-
-[444] ‘Post abominationem papismi, verbi virtute hic
-prostratam.’--Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 319.
-
-[445] ‘Jam vero confessionem non sine ratione adjungendam
-curavimus.’--Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 319.
-
-[446] Calvin, _Comment. on Luke_, xxiv. p. 45.
-
-[447] Calv. _Opp._ v. 43.
-
-[448] A version executed by Calvin himself. _Opp._ v. pp. 317-362.
-
-[449] _Opp._ v. 323.
-
-[450] _Vie de Calvin_, p. 30. Paris, 1864.
-
-[451] Calvin on _James_, i. 6.
-
-[452] _Vie de Calvin_, p. 29. Paris, 1864.
-
-[453] ‘Tunc edita est a Calvino Christianæ doctrinæ quædam veluti
-formula.’--_Vita Calvini_, 1575, narrated by Beza.
-
-[454] See this confession in Latin, Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 357; and in
-French, in the _Pièces Justificatives_ of Gaberel, i. p. 120. Ruchat,
-iv. p. 111.
-
-[455] ‘Jam vero confessionem solemni jurejurando ab universo populo
-editam adjungimus.’--Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 319.
-
-[456] Registers of the Council, Nov. 10, 1536.
-
-[457] Registers of the Council, Jan. 16, 1537.
-
-[458] Archives of Geneva. Pièces hist., 1170. Gaberel, i. p. 102. Calv.
-_Opp._ x. p. 6.
-
-[459] Registers of the Council, Jan. 16, 1537.
-
-[460] Registers of the Council, Jan. 16, 1537.
-
-[461] Registers of the Council, Jan. 30, 1537.
-
-[462] See the Registers of Feb. 5, 6, and 9, 1537, together with the
-remarks of Flournois appended to one copy of the Registers, p. 1019.
-
-[463] Bolsec, _Vie de Calvin_, vii.
-
-[464] Rozet, _Chron. de Genève_, iv. ch. 9.
-
-[465] Registers of the Council, Mar. 13.
-
-[466] _Ibid._ of the days mentioned.
-
-[467] ‘Videbatur initio Sonerius ægre ferre quod exigeretur
-confessionis formula.’--Calv. _Opp._ p. 11. Ed. princ. of Geneva. 1575.
-
-[468] ‘Ut plebs decuriatim convocata in confessionem istam
-juraret.’--_Calv. Opp._ (Stras. Br.), v. p. 320.
-
-[469] Registers, July 29. Rozet, _Chron. de Genève_, iv. ch. 9.
-
-[470] ‘In præstando juramento non minor fuit plebis alacritas, quam in
-edicendo senatus diligentia.’--Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 320.
-
-[471] Registers, Sept. 19. Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, p. 43.
-
-[472] Dedication of the _Epître à Tite_ (1549). Calvin includes Viret
-in this friendship.
-
-[473] Saunier, _Ordre et manière d’enseigner en la ville de Genève_,
-1538; reprinted by E. A. Bétant, 1866.
-
-[474] _Ibid._
-
-[475] Registers, May 1, 1537.
-
-[476] Six écus are 18 francs (about 15 shillings).
-
-[477] [The French version of the Bible, bearing the name of Pierre
-Robert Olivétan, one of the reformers, was published at Neuchâtel in
-1535.--_Translator._]
-
-[478] _See_ Registers for the days named. As different dates have been
-assigned, we add that ours are taken from the Registers. We only make
-this remark, which we acknowledge is of no great importance, that no
-one may suspect any trickery in the matter.
-
-[479] Saunier, _Ordre et manière_, etc.
-
-[480] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 239.
-
-[481] _Hist. of the Reform. in the Time of Calvin_, iii. book 4, ch. 8.
-
-[482] _Chronique de Rozet_, book iv. ch. 4.
-
-[483] Registers, Mar. 9.
-
-[484] Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 176.
-
-[485] _Ibid._ pp. 179 and 180.
-
-[486] Registers, Mar. 13.
-
-[487] _Ibid._ Mar. 14.
-
-[488] _See_ ‘Briève instruction pour armer tous bons fidèles,’
-etc.--Calv. _Opp._ vi. pp. 49-112; and ‘Contre la secte phantastique et
-furieuse des Libertins qui se nomment Spirituels.’--_Ibid._ pp. 149-248.
-
-[489] Beza, _Vita Calvini_. _Vie de Calvin_ (in French), p. 31. Paris,
-1864.
-
-[490] _Vie de Calvin_, by Beza-Colladon, p. 31.
-
-[491] _Johann Calvin_, by Kampschulte, i. p. 295.
-
-[492] ‘Alter ecclesiæ turbator majores et diuturniores turbas
-dedit.’--Beza, _Vita Calv._, 1575. p. 5.
-
-[493] Vol. v. book ix. ch. 3 and 4.
-
-[494] ‘Ut quocumque venisset, certa suæ turpitudinis impressa vestigia
-relinqueret.’--Beza, p. 5.
-
-[495] Calvin’s Letter to Megander, probably of Mar. 1537.--Library of
-Geneva. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 85. Herminjard, iv. p. 187.
-
-[496] Herminjard, iv. p. 187.
-
-[497] ‘Voluit Carolus ecclesiam catholicam ... semper orare
-ut resurgant, vitamque futuri seculi corpora defunctorum
-consequantur.’--Megander to Bullinger, Mar. 8, 1537. Calv. _Opp._ x. p.
-89.
-
-[498] Ruchat, v. p. 21. Calv. _Opp._ p. 89.
-
-[499] _Vie de Calvin_, Beza-Colladon, p. 31.
-
-[500] Ruchat, _Hist. de la Réf._ v. p. 22.--Calvin’s Letter to
-Megander. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 85.
-
-[501] ‘Serveti Hispani pessimum errorem confirmare.’--Calv. _Opp._ x.
-p. 103.
-
-[502] ‘Quod id ne timere quidem unquam in mentem venerit.’--Calvin to
-Grynæus. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 108.
-
-[503] ‘In simplicissima Dei unitate, et Scriptura et ipsa
-pietatis experientia, Deum patrem, ejus Filium et Spiritum nobis
-ostendunt.’--Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 337, and x. p. 83.
-
-[504] Luther, _Kirchenpostill_ (Walch, xi.) _am Trinität_.
-
-[505] ‘Ii quibus tam pietas cordi erat (the opponents of Arius and
-Sabellius) affirmarunt vere immo Deo tres _personas_ subsistere,
-seu (quod idem erat) in Dei unitate subsistere _personarum
-trinitatem_.’--Calv. _Opp._ i. p. 61. Afterwards, Calvin said,
-‘Christus ut quatenus Deus est, sit unus cum patre Deus ejusdem
-_naturæ_ seu _substantiæ_ seu _essentiæ_, non aliter quam persona
-distinctus.’--_Ibid._ p. 61.
-
-[506] Calvin to Megander.--Ruchat, v. p. 25.
-
-[507] Calvin’s Letters to Megander and Grynæus.--Ruchat, _Hist. de la
-Réf._ v. pp. 22, 23.
-
-[508] Calvin to Megander.
-
-[509] Calvin to Megander.
-
-[510] ‘Quam ob causam Calvinus Bernam veniens obnixe petit ut synodus
-cogeretur, quod abnegatum est homini usque post Paschatis.’--Fueslin,
-_Epp. Ref. Eccl. Helvet._ p. 173.
-
-[511] Calvin, _Opp._ x. p. 95.
-
-[512] Calvin to Grynæus, _Opp._ x. p. 106.
-
-[513] Registers of Council of Geneva, May 5 and 11. The florin was
-rather less than half a franc.
-
-[514] The synod met, not in March, as has been said (Kampschulte,
-_Johann Calvin_, i. p. 296), but two months later. See preceding note.
-
-[515] ‘Quomodo jurisconsulti præcipiunt nempe cum _sacco_
-paratior.’--Calvin, _Epp._ x. p. 107.
-
-[516] The Apostles’, Nicene, and so-called Athanasian Creeds.--Ruchat,
-v. p. 25.
-
-[517] Matt. vii. 6.
-
-[518] Ruchat, v. pp. 27, 28.
-
-[519] ‘Quatenus unus est cum patre Deus, quidquid dici de Deo potes in
-illum competit.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 107.
-
-[520] ‘Tantum nolebamus hoc _tyrannidis_ exemplum in ecclesiam
-induci, ut is hereticus haberetur qui non ad alterius præscriptum
-loqueretur.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 120.
-
-[521] Nos in Dei unius fidem jurasse, non Athanasii, cujus symbolum
-nulla unquam legitima ecclesia approbasset.’--The Genevese to the
-Bernese Ministers. MS. of Geneva, Feb. 1537. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 83.
-Ruchat, v. pp. 24-30.
-
-[522] ‘Totum illum saccum nostra refutatione sic exhausimus.’--Calvin
-to Grynæus. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 107.
-
-[523] Kampschulte, _Johann Calvin_, i. p. 296.
-
-[524] ‘Quantum negotii nobis facturi sint _Galli illi_ ...
-_seditiosi_.’--Megander to Bullinger, Mar. 8, 1537. Calv. _Opp._ x. p.
-89.
-
-[525] Registers of the Council, May 24, 1537.
-
-[526] The authentic Acts of the Council of Berne are to be found in
-Ruchat, v. p. 39. Calvin, _Opp._ x. p. 105.
-
-[527] ‘Ne abjiciamus eum ab ecclesia, aut tanquam de fide male
-sentientem notemus.’--Formula Concordiæ de Trinitate. Berne, Sept.
-1537. Ruchat, v. p. 501.
-
-[528] ‘Megander est Figuri natus, _Simia_ olim _Zwingli_
-creditus.’--Conceni Epist. ad Neobulum, Feb. 2, 1538. Luther, _Opp._
-Walch, xvii. p. 2602. Hunderhagen-Beylage, ii.
-
-[529] Hunderhagen Conflikt, p. 65. Kirchhofer, B. Haller, p. 219.
-
-[530] Buceri Epist. ad Lutherum, Jan. 19. 1537. Hunderhagen Conflikt,
-p. 72.
-
-[531] Hunderhagen Conflikt, pp. 73, 79.
-
-[532] ‘Wie ich myn Husfrow z’ Strasburg yetzt sieh.’--- Original
-Protocols of the class of Brugg. Hunderhagen Conflikte, p. 83.
-
-[533] Descartes, _Réponses aux cinquièmes objections_. Nicole, _Essais
-de Morale_.
-
-[534] ‘Vitam spiritualem, quam nobis Christus largitur non in eo
-duntaxat.’--Calv. _Opp._ ix. p. 711. Ruchat, v. p. 502. Henry Beylage,
-5.
-
-[535] Nec unquam sensi Christum dominum in sacra Cœna præ sentem
-localiter.’--Calvin, _Opp._ ix. p. 711.
-
-[536] Formula Concordiæ. Bernæ, Sept. 22, 1537. Hunderhagen Conflikte,
-p. 90.
-
-[537] Registers of the Council, July 3 and Sept. 1, 1537.
-
-[538] Registers of the Council, July 27.
-
-[539] _Ibid._ Sept. 11.
-
-[540] See _Hist. of the Ref._, second series, vol. i. book 1; vol. ii.
-book 3; vol. iii. book 5.
-
-[541] ‘_Quibus leni primum admonitione_ ...’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_,
-_p._ 5.
-
-[542] Register of the Council, Nov. 12.
-
-[543] See second series, vol. iii. book v. ch. 5.
-
-[544] Registers, Nov. 12 and 15, 1537. Rozet, Chron. MS. of Geneva,
-book iv. ch. 10.
-
-[545] Rozet, _Chron. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 10. _Vie de Calvin_, p.
-34, Gautier, _Hist. MS. de Genève_, book v.
-
-[546] Registers, Nov. 25.
-
-[547] Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, i. p. 51.
-
-[548] Registers, Nov. 25, 1537. _Fragments historiques de Grenus.
-Extraits de F. Rocco_, same date. Gautier, etc.
-
-[549] Archives of Berne. Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, p. 57.
-
-[550]... exultabam, et quis de successu tam bonæ causæ
-dubitasset?’--Calvin to Bucer, Jan. 12, 1538. Calvin, _Opp._ x. p. 137.
-
-[551] Registers, Dec. 10, 1537.
-
-[552] Registers, Dec. 14, 1537.
-
-[553] _Ibid._
-
-[554] Registers, Dec. 15, 1537.
-
-[555] Archives of Geneva. _Pièces historiques_, No. 1162. The original,
-according to M. Reuss (Calv. _Opp._ p. 133), is dated Dec. 28. One copy
-bears date Dec. 22.--[_Editor._]
-
-[556] Registers of the day.
-
-[557] Registers, Jan. 1, 1538.
-
-[558] _Ibid._ Jan. 1 and 2.
-
-[559] Roget, _L’Église et l’État de Genève du vivant de Calvin_.
-
-[560] Registers, Jan. 3. Gautier, _Hist. MS. de Genève_, book vi.
-
-[561] Racine.
-
-[562] This order prevails in the United States of America. In each
-flock distinction is made between the church, composed of communicants,
-and the congregation, which consists of all those who, having religious
-convictions, take part in all the service except the supper. From the
-congregation the church is regularly recruited; and these two bodies,
-united in charity together, contribute to the wants of the flock. [This
-statement is equally true of the orthodox Dissenting churches of Great
-Britain.--_Translator._]
-
-[563] Registers, Jan. 3 and 4, 1538.
-
-[564] Registers, Jan. 16. _Chron. MS. de Rozet_, book iv. ch. 10.
-
-[565] Letters of Calvin and Tillet, published by the pastor Crottet. p.
-38, etc.
-
-[566] _Lettres françaises_, i. p. 2. Cal. _Op._, x. p. 147.
-
-[567] _Lettres françaises_, i. pp. 1-7.
-
-[568] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 12.
-
-[569] Registers, Feb. 1.
-
-[570] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 10.
-
-[571] Registers, Feb. 12, 1538.
-
-[572] Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, p. 72.
-
-[573] Registers, Feb. 15 _et seq._ _Chron. MS. de Rozet_, book iv. ch.
-14.
-
-[574] Registers, March 11. _Chron. MS. de Rozet_, book iv. ch. 14.
-
-[575] Calvin to Bullinger, Feb. 21, 1538 (Archives of Zurich). Calv.
-_Opp._ x. p. 153.
-
-[576] Actes du Chap. de Brugg. Stettler, Berner Chronik. Hunderhagen,
-Conflikte, p. 91.
-
-[577] ‘In summa hierum zanggten wir ein gut wyl.’--Actes originaux de
-la Classe de Brugg. Hunderhagen, Conflikte, p. 101.
-
-[578] ‘Die praedikanten von der Statt assend mit uns,’ etc.--_Ibid._ p.
-103.
-
-[579] Luther, _Epp._ v. p. 83.
-
-[580] Kirchhofer, _B. Haller_, p. 203. Iselin, _Hist. Lexicon_.
-Hunderhagen, Conflikte, p. 105. Hagenbach, _Gesch. d. ersten Baseler
-Conf._ p. 90.
-
-[581] ‘Quo nuntio perinde perculsi fuimus, ac si Bernensem ecclesiam
-majore ex parte collapsam audissemus’--Calvin to Bucer. Henry, Beylage,
-6, p. 36. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 138.
-
-[582] ‘Sed quid ille aliud potest, quam suis deliramentis invertere
-Evangelii puritatem?’--Henry, Beylage, p. 39. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 140.
-
-[583] ‘Vultus, gestus, verba, color ipse furias, ut inquit,
-spirabant.’--Calv. _Opp._ x, p. 141.
-
-[584] ‘Nos ita capitaliter odit.’--Cal. _Opp._ x. p. 141.
-
-[585] ‘Quos ad verbi ministerium erigit, dignos esse judicamus, qui in
-patibulum tollantur.’--_Ibid._
-
-[586] ‘Bonos viros, qui a nobis probati sunt, non audet coöptare, nisi
-a tota ejus regionis cui destinantur classe, sint explorati.’--_Ibid._
-
-[587] See _J. Calvins Leben_, by Paul Henry, Th. D., pastor at Berlin,
-vol. i. Bevlage, 6, p. 40.
-
-[588] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 16.
-
-[589] ‘Omnibus ministris qui vicinis ecclesiis præsunt
-interdictum fuit ne quid haberent negotii nobiscum aut ullo modo
-commnunicarent.’--Calvin to Bucer, Jan. 12. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 144.
-
-[590] ‘Reddat Dominus Cunzeno juxta id quod meritus est. Qui perdere
-pergunt ecclesiam, perdat eos Dominus.’--Farel’s Letter to Fabri, Jan.
-14, 1538. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 145.
-
-[591] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, iv. ch. 16. Roget, _Peuple de
-Genève_, p. 82.
-
-[592] Bolsec, chap. viii.
-
-[593] Kampschulte, _Johann Calvin_, i. p. 310. Roget, _Peuple de
-Genève_, i. p. 83.
-
-[594] ‘Quo jure circumcisio plus haberet honoris quam mors
-Christi? ... Obmutescere coactus esset.’--Calvin to Haller, _Epp. et
-Responsa_, p. 102. Hunderhagen Conflikte, p. 132.
-
-[595] ‘Optimum erat remedium quo periculo obviaretur, si ad vestrum
-synodum fuissemus vocati. Impetrari non potuit.’--Calv. ad Tigur.
-Ratisb., Mar. 31, 1541. Archives of Zurich.
-
-[596] Registers of the day. _Chron. MS. de Rozet_, book iv. ch. 13.
-Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, pp. 84, 85.
-
-[597] _France Protestante_, by M. Haag; article Bolsec.
-
-[598] Registers of the day.
-
-[599] ‘Um die Berner zu gewinnen und ernstlich in die Opposition gegen
-jene (Calvin und Farel) zu verflechten.’--Hunderhagen, Conflikte, p.
-133.
-
-[600] _Chron. MS. of Rozet_, book iv. ch. 17.
-
-[601] It was perhaps a reference to _Andrew_ Benoît, one of the
-founders of the sect of the Spirituals at Geneva. See p. 299 of this
-volume.--[EDITOR].
-
-[602] Chénier, _Elég._ xxiii.
-
-[603] Valla, _Antidot. in Poggium_, book iii. p. 357.
-
-[604] This is the meaning of the above expression, which has been
-misunderstood by some writers, who have taken it for a gross
-insult.--See _Dict. de l’Académie_. Kampschulte, i. p. 310.
-
-[605] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 17. Gautier, Hist.
-MS. book vi.
-
-[606] Rozet, _ibid._
-
-[607] Archives of Geneva. _Pièces historiques_, No. 2101. Calv. _Opp._
-x. p. 189.
-
-[608] Registers of the day. Gautier, _Hist. MS. de Genève_, book vi.
-
-[609] ‘Seven days shall ye eat unleavened bread.’ Ex. xii. 15.
-
-[610] Registers of the Council, April 20, 1538.
-
-[611] Calvin to the Church of Geneva, Oct. 8, 1538.--_Archives de
-Genève._ Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 251.
-
-[612] ‘Papatus ejuratus; sed extrusa simul a plerisque non fuerant
-indigna multa flagitia, quæ in ea urbe canonicis et impuro illi clero
-tot annos addicta diu viguerant.’--Beza, _J. Calv. Vita_.
-
-[613] ‘Veteres inter quasdam primarias familias inimicitiæ, bello
-Sabaudico susceptæ, adhuc exercebantur.’--_Ibid._
-
-[614] ‘Cum eo usque malum processisset ut civitas privatorum quorundam
-factione, in diversas partes scinderetur.’--_Ibid._
-
-[615] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 15.
-
-[616] _Ibid._
-
-[617] ‘Quibus leni primum admonitione, deinde graviori adversus
-refractarios increpatione, tollendis, quum nihil proficeret.’--Beza,
-_J. Calv. Vita_.
-
-[618] Calvin’s Farewell to the Genevese Ministers.--Bonnet, _Lettres
-françaises_, ii. p. 575.
-
-[619] Michel Rozet, son of Claude Rozet, who was at that time secretary
-of the council and editor of the Register, was member of the Council of
-Geneva for nearly sixty years. He was fourteen times elected syndic,
-and was sent on thirty-four missions into Switzerland, France, and
-Germany, and to Turin. He concluded several important treaties on
-the part of Geneva. He was very young at the time of which we are
-speaking, but as his father played a part there which enabled him to
-become acquainted with all that took place, no one could be better
-informed than Michel as to the facts of the period. If there be some
-touches in the _Chroniques_ which are not found in the Registers of
-the Council, that does not in any way invalidate his authority. There
-are some details which a council is unwilling and ought not to insert
-in its Registers. It is needless to speak of Theodore Beza, who was
-unanimously elected to represent the Protestants at the famous Colloquy
-of Poissy, and in honor of whom after his death poets of all nations
-composed poems in Latin, Greek, and Hebrew to the number of fifty-four.
-
-[620] Rabelais.
-
-[621] ‘Doctrinæ potius animorumque urgeamus unitatem, quam cærimoniis
-ad unguem conformandis morosius insistamus. Indignissimum est enim
-ut in quibus libertatem Dominus reliquit ... servilem præterita
-ædificatione conformitatem quæramus.’--_Catechismus, sive Christ,
-relig. institutio_, _J. Calvino auctore_, _Basileæ_, anno MDXXXVIII.
-Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 322.--Calvin printed this work in the year in which
-he left Geneva; and not after but before his departure; _mense Martis_.
-See also _Vie de Calvin_ (Bèze-Colladon), b. 30. Paris, 1864.
-
-[622] ‘Nondum ea exstare nobis videbatur ecclesiæ facies quam legitima
-muneris nostri administratio requireret.’--_Ibid._ p. 319.
-
-[623] ‘Tunc vero acerrime urebat et discruciabat, quoties distribuenda
-erat Domini Cœna.’--_Ibid._ p. 319.
-
-[624] ‘Omnes tamen promiscue irrumpebant; et illi quidam iram Dei
-vorabant potius quam vitæ sacramentum participabant.’--Calv. _Opp._ v.
-
-[625] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, iv. ch. 18.
-
-[626] Calvin _sur le Psaume_ xxvii. 3.
-
-[627] Bèze-Colladon, _Vie de Calvin_, p. 34.
-
-[628] ‘Ut magno heroicoque spiritu præditi, Farellus et Calvinus ...
-aperte testarentur....’--Beza, _Calvini Vita_.
-
-[629] ‘Me non leviter perculsum fuisse.’--Calvin to the Zurich pastors.
-Pridie Cal. Jun. Henry. Calvin, i. App. p. 82.
-
-[630] ‘Incredibile vobis futurum scio si minimam partem vobis referam
-molestiarum, vel potius miseriarum, quæ toto anno devorandæ nobis
-fuerunt.’--Calvin, i. App. p. 82.
-
-[631] ‘Nullum præteriisse diem quo non decies mortem optarem.’--_Ibid._
-
-[632] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, iv. ch. 16. Mém. of Farel and
-Calvin to the Lords of Berne. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 188. Roget, _Peuple de
-Genève_, p. 92.
-
-[633] Rozet.
-
-[634] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 18.
-
-[635] _Mémoir_ by Farel and Calvin to the Lords of Berne.--Calv. _Opp._
-x. p. 189.
-
-[636] Calvin, _Institution Chrétienne_, book iv. ch. 12, paragraphs 9
-and 10.
-
-[637] Roget, _L’église et l’état à Genève du temps de Calvin_, p. 5.
-
-[638] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 18.
-
-[639] Calvin, _Comment. sur Saint Matthieu_, xxiii. 24.
-
-[640] Registers of Councils, April 2. _Chron. MS. de Rozet_, book iv.
-ch. 18.
-
-[641] ‘Pro retinendo nostro ministerio non minus laboravimus quam si de
-capitibus nostris certamen fuisset.’--Calvin to the Pastors of Zurich.
-Prid. Cal. Jun.
-
-[642] ‘Multo facilius tum fuisset, labanti ecclesiæ subvenire, quam
-penitus perditam restituere.’--Calvin to the Pastors of Zurich.
-
-[643] Eoque rem perducunt, _frustra_ sese Calvino, cum ejusdem
-sententiæ collegis, ad reddendam _omnium_ rationem offerente.’--Beza,
-_Vita Calvini_.
-
-[644] Corneille and Bossuet.
-
-[645] Bèze-Colladon, _Vie de Calvin_, p. 35. Beza says the same thing
-in his Latin Life: Majore parte meliorem superante.
-
-[646] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv, ch, 18. Registers, April
-23.
-
-[647] Registers, _Ibid._
-
-[648] Registers, Beza’s Latin Life of Calvin, the French Life, Rozet
-in his Chronicles, subsequently the syndic Gautier in his History, all
-report this answer with unimportant variations.
-
-[649] Ruchat, v. p. 66. Trechsel, i. p. 171, etc.
-
-[650] ‘_Scheinbar_,’ Kampschulte, _J. Calvin_, p. 313.
-
-[651] ‘Proinde ingratissima sumus, nisi nos illi devovemus
-totos.’--Calvin, Omnibus Christi Evangel. religionem colentibus, 1538,
-_Opp._ x. p. 321.
-
-[652] Calvin, _Préface des Psaumes_, p. ix.
-
-[653] See _Hist. of the Reform._ 2 series, vol. ii. book iii. ch. 6,
-and Bonivard, _Avis des difformes réformateurs_, pp. 149-151.
-
-[654] ‘Diligenter cavendum monet, ne simul conjugamur.’--Calvin to
-Farel, Aug. 4, 1538 (Bibl. de Genève). Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 23.
-
-[655] _Préface des Psaumes_, p. ix.
-
-[656] ‘Deposita omni contumelia, prorsus a ducis arbitrio
-pendere.’--Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 321.
-
-[657] ‘Advertamus ad id quod Christus clamat: non posse servis suis
-vulnus imprimi, quin ipse sibi inflictum imputet.’--_Ibid._
-
-[658] ‘Ad vos peculiariter sermonem convertimus, O fratres,’
-etc.--Calv. _Opp._ v. p. 321.
-
-[659] ‘Sed vigescit potius, florescit, novisque incrementis
-confirmatur.’--_Ibid._ p. 322.
-
-[660] ‘Partim ut seditiosis illis ipsorum impetu subversis,’
-etc.--Beza, _Calvini Vita_.
-
-[661] ‘Tum vero magno cum bonorum omnium dolore tres illi edicto
-parentes.’--Beza, _Calvini Vita_.
-
-[662] Labruyère.
-
-[663] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 22, Gautier, _Hist.
-MS. de Genève_, book vi. Spon, ii. p. 26.
-
-[664] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 18. Registers of the
-Council, May 7, 10, 16, etc. Hist. MS. of Gautier, book vi.
-
-[665] The Memoir is preserved in the archives of Geneva, _Pièces
-historiques_, No. 1201.--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 190.
-
-[666] These words were uttered in London, in the House of Commons, May
-9, 1871, by Sir Roundell Palmer (Lord Selborne), who made the most
-remarkable speech against the proposal for separation of Church and
-State.
-
-[667] Archives of Geneva. _Pièces historiques_, No. 1201.--Calv. _Opp._
-x. p. 188.
-
-[668] Kirchhofer, _Das Leben Farels_, p. 244.
-
-[669] ‘Cupimus a Bernatibus impetratum ut _fractionem panis_ nobiscum
-accipiant’ (Articuli ipsa manu Calvini scripti, Conventu Tigurino
-proposito).--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 190. _See_ Matt. xxvi. 26; Luke xxiv.
-30; 1 Cor. x. 16; xi. 24; Acts xx. 7.
-
-[670] ‘Non tamen fenestram ardemus aperire tot turbis, quas jam
-prospicimus, si aliter fiat.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 190.
-
-[671] ‘Barbaries enim et inhumanitas non ferenda!’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p.
-190.
-
-[672] ‘Continuing daily with one accord in the temple, and breaking
-bread from house to house.’--Acts ii. 46. ‘Ut frequentior cœnæ usus
-restituatur; si non secundum veteris ecclesiæ consuetudinem, at _saltem
-singulis quibusque mensibus semel_.’--_Ibid._
-
-[673] ‘Quum in lascivis et obscœnis cantilenis ac choreis ... e sua
-ditione tales spurcitias eliminent.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 190.
-
-[674] _Ibid._ p. 204.
-
-[675] ‘Humiliemur ergo nisi Deo inhumiliationem nostram tendenti
-velimus obluctari.’--Calvin to Farel, Basel, Aug. 4, 1538. _Bibl. de
-Genève._--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 229.
-
-[676] Calvin to Farel, Strasburg, Sept. 1538.--_Ibid._ p. 246.
-
-[677] ‘Dass sie in etlicher Dingen hatten vielleicht zu streng gewesen,
-und erklärten sich gern weisen zu lassen.’--Abschied des Tages zu
-Zurich gehalten. Kirchhofer, _Farel’s Leben_, i. p. 244.
-
-[678] ‘Bey diesem unerbauenen Volk christliche
-Sanftmüthigkeit.’--_Ibid._
-
-[679] ‘Otiosam enim functionem quidam tueri malunt quam fructuosam,
-quidam licentiam pro Christi libertate induxerunt.’--Calv. _Opp._ p.
-226. Capito to Farel.
-
-[680] ‘Quod vos duo semel tantam urbem reformare non
-potueritis.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 227.
-
-[681] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, iv. ch. 20.
-
-[682] Farel and Calvin to Bullinger; mid. June 1538. Calv. _Opp._ x. p.
-20.
-
-[683] Hundeshagen, Conflikte, p. 70.
-
-[684] ‘Octavo demum die, postquam Bernam appuleramus, Cunzenum eo se
-recepisse.’--Calvin to Bullinger, June, 1538; Henry, Beylage, p. 48.
-Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 203.
-
-[685] ‘Fides ecclesiæ Christi solenniter data.’--_Ibid._ p. 53. Calv.
-_Opp._ x. p. 207.
-
-[686] ‘Exorsus est Cunzenus longas expostulationes, a quibus ad
-gravissimas contumelias prosiliit.’--_Ibid._ p. 49. Calv. _Opp._ p. 203.
-
-[687] ‘Insanientem in extremam rabiem.’--_Ibid._
-
-[688] ‘Nulla pæne syllaba erat, de qua non litigarent.’--Calv. _Opp._
-x. p. 204.
-
-[689] ‘Ille nullis rationibus auscultare, sed crudelius semper
-debacchari.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 204.
-
-[690] ‘Ex abaco se proripuit; ac toto corpore sic ebulliebat, ut
-injecta etiam manu retineri a collegis non posset.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p.
-50. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 204.
-
-[691] Farel to Calvin, Sept. 6, 1540.
-
-[692] Calvin to Bullinger. Berne, May 28, 1538.--Archives of Zurich.
-Calvin, x. p. 201.
-
-[693] ‘Ac ter una hora revocati.’--Calvin to Bucer. Henry, Beylage, p.
-51. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 205.
-
-[694] ‘Recepta autem fuerat a paucis seditiosis eodem decreto, quo in
-Rhodanum præcipitari nos oportebat.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 205.
-
-[695] Calvin to Bullinger, Berne, May 20, 1538. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 201.
-
-[696] ‘Constitit non procul mœnibus collocatas fuisse insidias; in ipsa
-autem porta considebant armati viginti gladiatores.’--Calvin to Bucer;
-Henry, Beylage, p. 52. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 206.
-
-[697] ‘Jam unum milliare ab urbe aberramus, cum obviam prodiit nuntius
-qui ingressum interdiceret.’--_Ibid._ The Roman mile is doubtless
-meant, which was about 1,614 yards (1,472 mètres, or about one
-kilomètre and a half). At this distance from Geneva the messenger met
-the deputation, at Sécheron, where the hôtel d’Angleterre formerly
-stood, near the country seats Bartholony and Paccard. According to the
-first arrangement the reformers were to have stopped at a distance of
-about four miles (or about six kilomètres), probably near the road
-called du Saugy, leading to Genthod.
-
-[698] Registers, May 22.
-
-[699] Registers of the day. _Hist. MS. de Genève_, by Gautier, book vi.
-
-[700] ‘Tanta gravitate Ludovicus Ammanus, alter legatus et Viretus,
-qui Erasmi ac suo nomine loquebatur, causam tractarunt ut _flecti
-multitudinis animi ad æquitatem_ viderentur.’--Calvin to Bullinger.
-Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 206. Henry, p. 52. Gautier, MS. book vi. Kirchhofer,
-_Leben Farels_, p. 249.
-
-[701] ‘Clanculum illos submisit.’--Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 52.
-Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 207.
-
-[702] Bonivard, _Ancienne et nouvelle police de Genève_, Mém. d’Arch.
-v. p. 414.
-
-[703] ‘Vandelius ille apud multos gloriose in via effutivit se venenum
-nobis letale ferre.’--Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 52. Calv. _Opp._
-x. p. 207.
-
-[704] ‘Ne antequam ipsi adessemus.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 207.
-
-[705] ‘Illis egressis, unus ex præsidibus senatus articulos nostros
-recitare cœpit.’--_Ibid._
-
-[706] ‘Ad conflandum nobis odium.’--_Ibid._
-
-[707] Most dread, most mighty, high and magnificent lords, etc. The
-formula employed in addressing the council.
-
-[708] See the _Dict. de l’Acad. française_, and the definition of the
-church in all languages.
-
-[709] ‘Ita convenerat, ut illo recitante ad inflammandos animos plebis
-acclamarent.’--Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 52, Calv. _Opp._ x. p 206.
-
-[710] ‘Valuerunt tamen illa flabella ad accendendos in rabiem omnium
-animos.’--_Ibid._
-
-[711] ‘Potius moriendum quam ut ad reddendam rationem
-audiremus.’--Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 52. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 206.
-
-[712] Registers, 26 June. Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_. Gautier,
-_Hist. MS. de Genève_.
-
-[713] ‘Nisi forte quod duplo aut triplo malum, quam antea, deterius
-recruduit.’--Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 53. Calv. _Opp._ x. 207.
-
-[714] ‘Ut mature exsurgat.’--Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 54 Calv.
-_Opp._ x. 208.
-
-[715] _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 15, 22, 26.
-
-[716] Gautier, _Hist. MS. de Genève_, book vi.
-
-[717] ‘Nos nullæ fere veniæ dignos, si tam justam vocationem
-abnueremus.’--Calvin to Viret. _Bibl. de Genève._ Calv. _Opp._ x. p.
-202.
-
-[718] ‘O scintillantes igne Satanæ oculos et accensum studium in
-vestrum ministerium dejiciendum.’--Grynæus to Calvin and Farel. Calvin,
-_Epp._ x. 196.
-
-[719] ‘Pro eximio monumento Ecclesiæ nostræ complectimur.’--Grynæus to
-Calvin, 1540.
-
-[720] ‘Claudio Feræo quem _mecum vidisti Basileæ_.’--Calvin, _Epp._ p.
-25, Mar. 1541, ed. 1575.
-
-[721] ‘Servi simus pacis et concordiæ.’--Calvin, _Epp._ 11. _Opp._ x.
-276.
-
-[722] Calvin to Viret, Basel, June 14, 1538. _Bibl. de Genève._
-
-[723] _Lettres françaises_, i. p. 9.
-
-[724] Jean Zwick to Bullinger, May 17, 1538.
-
-[725] ‘Veniemus quo tu voles,’ etc.--Calvin, _Epp._ p. 6. _Opp._ x. 67.
-
-[726] Bonnet, _Lettres françaises de Calvin_, i. p. 9.
-
-[727] Bonnet, _Lettres françaises de Calvin_, p. 10.
-
-[728] ‘De integro tamen excusari, quoniam et adhibere non
-poteram.’--Calvin to Farel, Henry. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 236.
-
-[729] ‘Classis neocomensis ad ecclesias vicinas.’ April 29, 1541.
-
-[730] ‘Licet valde refragati simus.’--Farel. Pastoribus Tigur. Apr. 30,
-1541.
-
-[731] ‘Solitæ tunc festinationi.’--Calvin to Farel, Aug. 4, 1538
-(_Bibl. de Genève_). Calv. _Opp._ x. 228.
-
-[732] Calvin, _Préface des Psaumes_.
-
-[733] _Ibid._
-
-[734] ‘Strenue Lutetiæ pro veritate depugnasset.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_.
-
-[735] ‘Miserrimi diei tormenta excipiunt acerbiores noctis
-cruciatus.’--Calvin. _Epp._ p. 10. _Opp._ x. 273.
-
-[736] ‘Suspicio cui velim nolim cogor locum aliquem dare.’--_Ibid._
-
-[737] _Lettres françaises_, i. p. 23.
-
-[738] Calvin, _Opp._ x. 266.
-
-[739] Rather less than a hundred and fifty francs, which would be
-equivalent to more than two thousand francs of the present day; or
-about eighty pounds sterling.
-
-[740] Maimbourg, _Histoire du Calvinisme_, book i.
-
-[741] Calvin to Farel. Aug. 4, 1538. _Bibl. de Genève._ Calv. _Opp._ x.
-p. 228.
-
-[742] Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, p. 117.
-
-[743] Registers of the Council. Rozet, _Chron. de Genève_. Gautier,
-_Hist. MS. de Genève_. Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, etc.
-
-[744] _Lettres françaises_, i. p. 11. See also Rozet, _Chron. de
-Genève_, iv. ch. 26.
-
-[745] Calvin, _Opp._ x. p. 275.
-
-[746] _Archives de Genève._ Letters of Farel, of June 19, August 7, and
-November 8. Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, p. 136. Calvin, _Opp._ x. p. 210.
-
-[747] Fl. Raemond, _Naissance de l’hérésie_, book vii. ch. i.
-
-[748] ‘Quibus tamquam lucidis gemmis, illa tua ecclesia
-fulgebat.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 6.
-
-[749] Bochrich, _Mittheilungen aus der Gesch. der Ev. Kirch des
-Elsass_, iii, p. 133.
-
-[750] ‘Gallicam ecclesiam, constituta ecclesiastica disciplina
-plantavit.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 6. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 288.
-
-[751] Letters of Calvin to Farel, 1538, etc. (_Bibl. de Genève._) Calv.
-_Opp._ x. p. 273. Raemond, in _loc. cit._
-
-[752] Calvin’s epistle to Grynæus, prefixed to the Comment. on Ep. to
-the Romans.
-
-[753] ‘Theologiam illic docuit magno cum doctorum omnium
-applausu.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 6.
-
-[754] _De la Cène._ Calv. _Opp._ v. pp. 439, 440.
-
-[755] Calv. _Opp._ v. pp. 458-460.
-
-[756] ‘Salutabis Sturmium et Johannem Calvinum reverenter, quorum
-libellos cum singulari voluptate legi.’--Luther, _Epp._ v. p. 211.
-Calv. _Opp._ x. 402.
-
-[757] ‘Helvetii si idem facerent, jam pax esset in hac controversia.’
-The same thought was expressed by several churches. (Mecklenburg,
-Churpfälz, Würtemberg, Pommern, etc., Kirchenordnungen.)
-
-[758] ‘Quod ex Gallia multi propter Calvinum accesserunt studiosi
-adolescentes atque etiam litterati viri.’--Sturm, _Antipapp._ vi. p. 21.
-
-[759] ‘Ea enim mea nunc est conditio, ut _assem_ a me numerare
-nequeam.’--Calv. _Epp._ edit. of 1575, p. 12. _Opp._ x. 332.
-
-[760] Calvin to Farel. (_Bibl. de Genève._) _Opp._ x. 315.
-
-[761] Calvin on Romans xii. 10; 1 John v. 1.
-
-[762] Calvin to Bullinger, Strasburg, Mar. 12. (_Bibl. de Genève._)
-
-[763] ‘Quia profectum nullum videt, mortem precatur.’--Calv. _Opp._ x.
-p. 331.
-
-[764] ‘Pergamus tamen usque ad ultimum spiritum.’--Calv. _Epp._, Mar.
-1539.
-
-[765] Calvin’s Letter to Farel, Aug. 4, 1538. Calv. _Opp._ x. 229.
-Registers of the Council of Sept. 10, Nov. 28, and Dec. 26, 27, and
-31. Rozet, _Chron. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 24. Gautier, _Hist. MS. de
-Genève_, book vi. p. 332. Roget, _Hist._ pp. 123, 124.
-
-[766] See their titles, _France Protestante_, vii, p. 60.
-
-[767] Registers of the Council, Dec. 23 and 27, 1538. Rozet, iv. 26.
-Roget, p. 140. Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 275.
-
-[768] Registers, Dec. 24 and 27 and Jan. 8 and 9. Rozet, Gautier, _loc.
-cit._
-
-[769] Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 354. Letter of June 24, 1539, to the Church
-of Geneva. ‘Nisi Calvinus serio monuisset ne ob istud ἀδιάφορον litem
-moverent.’--Beza, _Calvini Vita_, p. 6.
-
-[770] See second series, vol. ii. book iii. ch. 15.
-
-[771] Book iv. ch. 28. Gautier, book vi. Registers of the day.
-
-[772] Rozet, _Chron. de Genève_, book iv. ch. 27.
-
-[773] ‘Cum Philippo fuit mihi multis de rebus colloquium.’--Calv.
-_Epp._, Mar. 1539. _Opp._ x. p. 331.
-
-[774] ‘Iis sine controversia ipse quidem assentitur.’--_Ibid._
-
-[775] ‘Qui crassius aliquid requirunt; atque id tanta pervicacia, ne
-dicam tyrannide.’--_Ibid._
-
-[776] ‘Ut in tanta tempestate ventis adversis aliquantum
-abscondamur.’--Calv. _Epp._, Mar. 1539. _Opp._ x. p. 331.
-
-[777] ‘Formam quam tenent non procul esse a Judaismo.’--_Epp._, April
-1539. _Opp._ x. p. 340.
-
-[778] ‘Nimis abundarent in ritibus illis aut ineptis aut certe super
-vacuis.’--_Ibid._
-
-[779] ‘Nec sane justas esse puto discidii causas.’--_Epp._, April 1539.
-_Opp._ x. p. 340.
-
-[780] ‘Quod mollitiem animi ejus suspectam habeant.’--_Ibid._ p. 328.
-
-[781] ‘Rex ipse vix dimidia ex parte sapit.’--_Epp._, April 1539.
-_Opp._ x. p. 340.
-
-[782] ‘Habet mutilum et semilacerum Evangelium, ecclesiam vero multis
-adhuc nugis refertam.’--_Ibid._
-
-[783] John Lambert.
-
-[784] To Farel, June 21, 1540.
-
-[785] ‘Post hoc vexit asinus quidam ... qui fune quodam post se
-trahebat Cæsarem et Papam.’--_Corp. Reform._ iii. p. 640.
-
-[786] ‘Asinum stantem duobus pedibus.’--Luther, _Epp._ v. p. 172.
-
-[787] ‘Observata ejus temporis occasione, destitutum tantis pastoribus,
-gregem facile se intercepturum arbitratus.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 6.
-
-[788] Registers, June 7, 1540.
-
-[789] ‘Sadoletus magna eloquentia homo sed qua imprimis ad opprimendam
-veritatis lucem abutetur.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 6.
-
-[790] Bèze-Colladon, _Vie de Calvin_, p. 38.
-
-[791] See ‘Sadoleti Epistola ad Genevates.’--_Calvini Opera_, v. pp.
-365-384. We cite the French edition, published at Geneva, 1860.
-
-[792] Kampschulte, _Johann Calvin_, p. 353.
-
-[793] ‘Magnum civitati in eo rerum statu damnum.’--Beza, _Vita
-Calvini_, p. 6.
-
-[794] Registers, Mar. 27, 28, etc. Rozet, _Chron. MS._ book iv. ch. 28.
-Roget, p. 147.
-
-[795] Registers of the day. Rozet, _Chron. MS._ book iv. ch. 28.
-Gautier.
-
-[796] Roget, i. p. 163.
-
-[797] Registers, April 29, 1539. Report to the Lords of Berne. Rozet.
-Gaberel.
-
-[798] ‘Omnium injuriarum oblitus.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 6.
-
-[799] Bèze-Colladon, _Vie de Calvin_, p. 39.
-
-[800] The original of this letter is in Latin. See Calv. _Opp._ v. pp.
-385-416. Calvin translated it into French in 1540. Edition of Geneva,
-1860.
-
-[801] Calvin puts this passage into the mouth of any one of the
-reformed appearing before the supreme tribunal:--‘Neque iis qui
-prædicatione nostra edocti ad eamdem nobiscum causam accesserint,
-deerit quod pro se loquantur quando hæc _cuique_ parata erit defensio:
-Ego,’ etc. But there is no doubt that he is relating his own
-history.--EDITOR.
-
-[802] ‘Sadoleto optarem ut crederet Deum esse creatorem hominum, etiam
-extra Italiam.’--Luther, _Epp._ v. p. 211. _Calvini Opera_, x. p. 402.
-
-[803] ‘Ad tolerantiam adversus improbos ... et ad Dei invocationem
-imprimis exhortetur.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 7.
-
-[804] Calvin’s letters to Farel, Sept. 1539, Oct. 8, 1539, and April
-10, 1540. Calv. _Opp._ x. pp. 374-401.
-
-[805] Ruchat, _Hist. de la Réform._ v. p. 134.
-
-[806] Rozet, _Chron MS._ book iv. ch. xxxiii. Gautier, _Hist. MS._
-vi. p. 356, says,--‘There were some ex-priests who visited at certain
-houses, and whose proceedings were greatly suspected.’ We quote from
-a copy revised by Gautier himself, which belongs to a member of his
-family.
-
-[807] Gautier, _Hist. MS._ iv. p. 356.
-
-[808] Registers, Sept. 15 and 22, 1589. Rozet, _Chron. MS._ book
-iv. ch. xxxiii. Gautier, book vi. pp. 356, 357. Gaberel, _Pièces
-Justificatives_. Roget, _Peuple de Genève_, p. 157.
-
-[809] Gautier, interpreting this speech, makes him say,--‘I do not
-pride myself on making a sect apart.’
-
-[810] ‘Sed centum potius aliæ mortes quam ilia crux, in qua millies
-quotidie pereundum esset.’--Calvin to Farel, Strasburg, Mar. 29, 1540.
-_Opp._ ix. p. 259.
-
-[811] ‘Cur non potius ad crucem?’--Calvin to Viret, Strasburg, May 19,
-1540. _Bibl. de Genève._
-
-[812] Calvin to Farel, Strasburg, Oct. 1540. _Bibl. de Genève._
-
-[813] ‘Ut expeditior multis tricis, Domino vacare possim.’--Calv.
-_Opp._ ix. Bonnet, _Récits du seizième Siècle_, p. 81.
-
-[814] Calvin on _Ephes._ v. 28-33.
-
-[815] ‘Non sum enim ex insano amatorum genere, qui vitia etiam
-exosculantur, ubi semel forma capti sunt.’--Calv. _Opp._ x. p. 348.
-
-[816] ‘Meministi illud Phillippi _cogitare te de_ accipienda
-uxore.’--Fontanius to Calvin, Jan. 1541. Bonnet, _Récits_.
-
-[817] ‘Lectissima femina,’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 13.
-
-[818] _Bulletin de Protestantisme français._
-
-[819] Beza-Colladon, _Vie de Calvin_, p. 4.
-
-[820] ‘Optima socia vitæ.’--Calvin to Viret, April 7, 1549. _Epp._
-edition of 1575, p. 84.
-
-[821] ‘Fida quidem ministerii mei adjutrix fuit. Ab ea ne minimum
-quidem impedimentum unquam sensi.... Hæc animi magnitudo,’
-etc.--_Ibid._
-
-[822] _Lettres françaises de Calvin_, i. p. 28, to Du Tailly, July 1540.
-
-[823] ‘Advenerat illud tempus quo constituerat Dominus Genevensis
-Ecclesiæ misereri.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 7.
-
-[824] Gautier, _Hist. MS. de Genève_, book vi. p. 341.
-
-[825] Rozet, _Chron. MS._ book iv. ch. xxix. Gautier, _Hist. MS._ book
-vi. Registers of the Council.
-
-[826] Registers, July 9, 24, and 25, August 5 and 6. Rozet, book iv.
-ch. xxxi. Gautier.
-
-[827] Registers of the day.
-
-[828] Rozet, _Chron._ book iv. ch. xxxv. Registers. Gautier.
-
-[829] Beza-Colladon, _Vie de Calvin_, p. 44.
-
-[830] Registers. Rozet, Gautier, Roget.
-
-[831] _Chron. de Rozet_, book iv. ch. xxxix. Gautier, Deposition of
-Witnesses. Roget.
-
-[832] Bonivard, _Ancienne et nouvelle police de Genève_, pp. 48-51.
-Rozet, _Chron. MS._ ch. xxxix. Gautier, _Hist. MS._
-
-[833] Rozet, _Chron. MS._ book iv. ch. xl.
-
-[834] Bonivard, _Ancienne et nouvelle police de Genève_, p. 51. See
-also Registers, Gautier, Bill of Indictment.
-
-[835] Gautier, _Hist. MS._ book vi. p. 393. Rozet, _Chron. MS. de
-Genève_, book iv. ch. xli.
-
-[836] Rozet, _Chron. MS. de Genève_, book iv, ch. xli.
-
-[837] ‘Zwei Tage später hielten die Sieger (die Frömme) in dem Rathhaus
-ein öffentliches Freudenmahl.’--Kampschulte, _Johann Calvin_, p. 303.
-This _Freudenmahl_ is a fable which the German writer too readily
-accepted.
-
-[838] ‘His veluti spumæ sordibus ejectis, civitas Farellum suum et
-Calvinum cœpit requirere.’--Beza, _Vita Calvini_, p. 7.
-
-
-Transcriber’s Note:
-
-1. Obvious spelling, punctuation and printer’s errors have been
-silently corrected.
-
-2. Italics are shown as _xxx_, bold print is shown as =xxx=.
-
-3. Unbalanced quotation marks were remedied when the change was
-obvious, and otherwise left unbalanced.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION IN
-EUROPE IN THE TIME OF CALVIN, VOL. 6 (OF 8) ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/65984-0.zip b/old/65984-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 2dce50d..0000000
--- a/old/65984-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65984-h.zip b/old/65984-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 26204f5..0000000
--- a/old/65984-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65984-h/65984-h.htm b/old/65984-h/65984-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 7b92655..0000000
--- a/old/65984-h/65984-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,22505 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of History of the Reformation in Europe in the Time of Calvin Vol. 6, by J. H. Merle D’Aubigne, D.D..
- </title>
-
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2,h3,h4 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
- font-weight: normal;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
- text-indent: 1.2em;
-}
-
-.p-bottom {margin-bottom: 0em;}
-.p0 {margin-top: 0em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-
-.p-left {text-indent: 0em; }
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-right: 17.5%; margin-left: 17.5%;}
-
-
-hr.r15 {width: 15%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-right: 42.5%; margin-left: 42.5%;}
-
-hr.r25 {width: 25%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-right: 37.5%; margin-left: 37.5%;}
-
-ul { list-style-type: none; }
-
-.hangingindent {
- padding-left: 2em ;
- text-indent: -2em ;}
-
-
-div.chapter {
-page-break-before: always;}
-
-
-@media handheld {
-
-table {
-width: 90%;
-margin: auto 5%;}
-}
-
-table {
-margin: auto;
-width:auto;
-border: 0;
-border-spacing: 0;
-border-collapse: collapse; }
-
-td {
-padding: .05em .2em .2em 2.5em;
-border: .1em none white;
-text-align: left;
-text-indent: -2em; }
-
-th.pag {
-font-weight: normal;
-font-size: x-small;
-text-align: right;
-padding-left: 2em; }
-
-td.header {
-padding: 1.5em .2em .2em .2em;
-text-align: center;
-text-indent: 3em;
-font-size: 125%; }
-
-td.header1 {
-padding: .5em .2em .2em .2em;
-text-align: center;
-text-indent: 3em;
-font-size: 90%; }
-
-td.header2 {
-padding: 1.5em .2em .2em .2em;
-text-align: center;
-text-indent: 3em;
-font-size: 90%; }
-
-td.header3 {
-padding: 1em .2em .2em .2em;
-text-align: center;
-text-indent: 3em;
-font-size: 85%; }
-
-td.header4 {
-padding: .5em .2em .2em .2em;
-text-align: center;
-text-indent: 3em;
-font-size: 80%; }
-
-td.cht {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 1em;
-padding-top: 1em;
-text-indent: -1em;}
-
-td.cht1 {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 2em;
-padding-right: 1em;
-padding-top: 0em;
-padding-bottom: 0em;
-text-indent: 0em;
-width: 30em;}
-
-td.cht2 {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 2em;
-text-indent: 0em;
-width: 30em;}
-
-td.pag {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: bottom;
-padding-left: 2em;}
-
-td.right {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: bottom;
-padding-left: 1em;
-padding-top: 0em;
-padding-bottom: 0em;
-text-indent: -1em;}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-blockquote {font-size: 85%; }
-
-.sidenote {
- width: 25%;
- padding-bottom: .5em;
- padding-top: .5em;
- padding-left: .5em;
- padding-right: .5em;
- margin-left: 1em;
- float: right;
- clear: right;
- margin-top: 1em;
- font-size: small;
- color: black;
- background: #eeeeee;
- border: dashed 1px;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .sidenote {float: right;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.r2 {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 2em;}
-
-.xs { font-size: x-small;}
-
-.sm { font-size: small;}
-
-.normal { font-size: 85%;}
-
-.lg { font-size: large;}
-
-.xl { font-size: x-large;}
-
-.xxl { font-size: xx-large;}
-
-.smaller {font-size: 90%; }
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.gesperrt
-{
- letter-spacing: 0.2em;
- margin-right: -0.2em;
-}
-
-em.gesperrt
-{
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnotes {border: dashed 1px;}
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration:
- none;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-
-.poetry-container
-{
-text-align: center;
-font-size: 90%;
-}
-
-.poetry
-{
-display: inline-block;
-text-align: left;
-margin-left: 2.5em;
-line-height: 100%;
-}
-
-@media handheld
-{
- .poetry
- {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- }
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza
-{
-margin: 1em 0em 1em 1em;
-}
-
-.poetry .ileft {margin-left: -.4em;}
-.poetry .i2 {text-indent: 2em;}
-.poetry .i5 {text-indent: 5em;}
-.poetry .i8 {text-indent: 8em;}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of History of the Reformation in Europe in the Time of Calvin, Vol. 6 (of 8), by J. H. Merle D'Aubigné</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: History of the Reformation in Europe in the Time of Calvin, Vol. 6 (of 8)</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: J. H. Merle D'Aubigné</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Translator: William L. B. Cates</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: August 3, 2021 [eBook #65984]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Brian Wilson, Karin Spence, David Edwards, Colin Bell and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION IN EUROPE IN THE TIME OF CALVIN, VOL. 6 (OF 8) ***</div>
-
-<h1><span class="lg gesperrt">HISTORY</span><br />
-
-<span class="xs">OF THE</span><br />
-
-<span class="xxl">REFORMATION IN EUROPE</span><br />
-
-<span class="lg">IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.</span></h1>
-
-<p class="center p-left xs p2">BY</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">J. H. MERLE D’AUBIGNE, D.D.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left xs p2">TRANSLATED BY</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left gesperrt">WILLIAM L. B. CATES,</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left xs">JOINT AUTHOR OF WOODWARD AND CATES’S ‘ENCYCLOPÆDIA OF CHRONOLOGY,’
-EDITOR OF ‘THE DICTIONARY OF GENERAL BIOGRAPHY,’ ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="sm">‘Les choses de petite durée ont coutume de devenir fanées, quand
-elles ont passé leur temps.</p>
-
-<p class="sm p-bottom">‘Au règne de Christ, il n’y a que le nouvel homme qui soit
-florissant, qui ait de la vigueur, et dont il faille faire cas.’</p>
-
-<p class="smcap r2 sm p0">Calvin.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left p2">VOL. VI.<br />
-SCOTLAND, SWITZERLAND, GENEVA.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left p2">NEW YORK:<br />
-<span class="gesperrt">ROBERT CARTER &amp; BROTHERS,<br />
-530 BROADWAY</span><br />
-1877.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_iii" id="Page_iii">[iii]</a></span></p></div>
-
-
-<h2>PREFACE.</h2>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p>The author of the <i>History of the Reformation in the Sixteenth Century</i>
-died at Geneva, 21 October, 1872, when only a few chapters remained to
-be written to complete his great work. Feeling, as he often said, that
-<i>time was short for him now</i> (he was not far from his eightieth year),
-and stimulated by the near prospect of the end towards which he had
-been incessantly straining for fifty years, he worked on with redoubled
-ardor. ‘I count the minutes,’ he used to say; and he allowed himself no
-rest. Unhappily the last minutes were refused him, and the work was not
-finished. But only a small portion is wanting; and the manuscripts of
-which the publication is continued in the present volume will bring the
-narration almost to its close.</p>
-
-<p>Ten volumes have appeared. It was the author’s intention to comprise
-the remainder of his history in two additional volumes. He had sketched
-his programme on a sheet of paper as follows:&mdash;</p>
-
-
-<p class="p-left center sm">‘WITH GOD’S HELP.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>‘Order of subjects, saving diminution or enlargement,
-according to the extent of each.</p>
-
-<p>‘Vol. XI. to the death of Luther.</p>
-
-<ul>
- <li>‘Scotland down to 1546.</li>
- <li>‘Denmark.</li>
- <li>‘Sweden.</li>
- <li>‘Bohemia and Moravia.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_iv" id="Page_iv">[iv]</a></span></li>
- <li>‘Poland.</li>
- <li>‘Hungary.</li>
- <li>‘Geneva, Switzerland, and Calvin.</li>
- <li>‘Germany, to death of Luther, 1546.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>‘Vol. XII. to the death of Calvin.</p>
-
-<ul>
- <li>‘Netherlands, 1566.</li>
- <li>‘Spain.</li>
- <li>‘Italy.</li>
- <li>‘Scotland down to 1560.</li>
- <li>‘England, to the Articles of 1552.</li>
- <li>‘Germany, 1556.</li>
- <li>‘France, 1559.</li>
- <li class="hangingindent">‘Calvin and his work in Geneva and in Christendom to his death, 1564.</li>
-</ul>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p>The numerous manuscripts left by <span class="smcap">M. Merle d’Aubigné</span> include
-all the articles set out in the programme as intended to form Vol. XI.
-(VI. of the second series), and three of the articles destined for Vol.
-XII., the first two and the fifth.</p>
-
-<p>The work will undoubtedly present important gaps. Nevertheless, the
-great period, the period of origination, will have been described
-almost completely. But there is one chapter which it is very much to be
-regretted that he has not written. That is the last, relating to the
-work and the influence of Calvin in Christendom. The man who for fifty
-years had lived in close intercourse with Calvin, who had made his
-writings, his works, and his person the objects of his continual study,
-and had become impregnated with his spirit more, perhaps, than any one
-in our age; the man who was the first to hold in his hand, to read
-without intermission, and to analyze almost all the innumerable pieces
-that proceeded from the pen of the reformer, would have been able to
-trace for us with unrivalled authority the grand figure of his hero,
-and to describe the immense influence which he had on the sixteenth
-century, in distant regions as well as in his immediate circle. The
-absence of this concluding chapter, which the author had pro<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_v" id="Page_v">[v]</a></span>jected
-and which he long meditated but still delayed to write, remains an
-irreparable loss.</p>
-
-<p>The editors (M. le pasteur <span class="smcap">Adolphe Duchemin</span>, son-in-law of the
-eminent historian, and <span class="smcap">M. E. Binder</span>, Professor of <i>Exegesis</i>
-at the Theological College of Geneva, colleague and friend of M.
-Merle d’Aubigné) have confined themselves to verifying the numerous
-quotations scattered through the text, to testing the accuracy of
-the references given in the notes, and to curtailing here and there
-developments which the author would assuredly have removed if he had
-edited the work himself. As the matters proposed to form Vol. XI. are
-sufficient to form two volumes and even to commence a third, it has
-been necessary to alter the arrangement indicated above.</p>
-
-<p>The division of the narrative into chapters, and the titles given to
-the chapters, are for the most part the work of the editors.</p>
-
-<p>Two other volumes are to follow the one now presented to the public.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Geneva</span> <i>April, 1875</i>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vii" id="Page_vii">[vii]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CONTENTS<br />
-
-<span class="xs">OF</span><br />
-
-<span class="gesperrt normal">THE SIXTH VOLUME.</span></h2>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<table summary="contents" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <th></th>
- <th class="pag">PAGE</th>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht smcap">Introduction</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_v">v</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header">BOOK X.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1">THE REFORMATION IN SCOTLAND.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER I.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">PREPARATION OF REFORM.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(From the Second Century to the Year 1522.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht hangingindent">Religion the Key to History&mdash;The same Life everywhere produced
-by the Divine Spirit&mdash;Three successive Impulses:
-the Culdees, Wickliffe, John Huss&mdash;Struggle between Royalty
-and the Nobility&mdash;John Campbell, Laird of Cessnock&mdash;Charged
-with Heresy&mdash;Acquitted by the King&mdash;Battle of
-Flodden&mdash;Death of James IV.&mdash;Episcopal Election in Scotland&mdash;Alesius&mdash;Patrick
-Hamilton&mdash;John Knox&mdash;Troubles
-during the Minority of the King&mdash;Young Hamilton at the
-University of Paris&mdash;Becomes acquainted with the Lutheran
-Reformation </td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_1">1</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER II.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">BEGINNING OF THE MOVEMENT OF REFORM.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(1522 to April 1527.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">John Mayor Professor at Glasgow&mdash;Patrick Hamilton at University
-of St. Andrews&mdash;Luther’s Writings introduced into
-Scotland&mdash;Prohibited by the Parliament&mdash;Character of the
-young King&mdash;James V. declared of Age&mdash;Sides with the
-Priests&mdash;The Clerical Party overcome&mdash;Tyndale’s New Testament
-circulated&mdash;Evangelical Doctrines preached by Patrick
-Hamilton&mdash;Renewed Influence of Archbishop Beatoun&mdash;Hamilton
-declared a Heretic&mdash;Cited before the Archbishop&mdash;Escapes
-to the Continent<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_viii" id="Page_viii">[viii]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_18">18</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER III.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">DEDICATION OF HAMILTON IN GERMANY TO THE REFORMATION
-OF SCOTLAND.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(Spring, Summer, and Autumn, 1527.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Hamilton at Marburg&mdash;His Introduction to Lambert d’Avignon&mdash;University
-of Marburg&mdash;Science and Faith&mdash;Hamilton’s
-Study of the Scriptures&mdash;Reason for his not visiting Wittenberg&mdash;Luther’s
-Illness&mdash;The Plague at Wittenberg&mdash;Hamilton’s
-Disputation at Marburg&mdash;His Theses&mdash;The
-Attack and the Defence&mdash;Hamilton’s new Theses&mdash;The
-pith of Theology in them&mdash;Hamilton’s Return to Scotland</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_30">30</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER IV.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">EVANGELIZATION, TRIBULATIONS AND SUCCESS OF HAMILTON IN
-SCOTLAND.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1527 to End of February 1528.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The New Testament proscribed&mdash;Hamilton’s Zeal&mdash;Reception
-of the Gospel by his Kinsfolk&mdash;His Preaching near Kincavil&mdash;Eagerness
-of Crowds to hear him&mdash;His Marriage&mdash;Plot
-of the Priests against his Life&mdash;Summoned to St.
-Andrews by the Archbishop&mdash;His increased Zeal&mdash;Snares
-laid for him by the Priests&mdash;His Disputation with Alesius&mdash;Conversion
-of Alesius to the Truth&mdash;Hamilton betrayed
-by Alexander Campbell&mdash;Hamilton’s Death determined on&mdash;The
-King removed out of the Way&mdash;Attempt of Sir
-James Hamilton to save his Brother&mdash;Armed Resistance of
-the Archbishop<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ix" id="Page_ix">[ix]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_42">42</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER V.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">APPEARANCE, CONDEMNATION, MARTYRDOM OF HAMILTON.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of February&ndash;March 1, 1528.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Hamilton’s Appearance before the Episcopal Council&mdash;His
-Heresies&mdash;His Answer&mdash;Attempt of Andrew Duncan to
-rescue him&mdash;Hamilton confined in the Castle&mdash;The Inquisitorial
-Court&mdash;Hamilton in the Presence of his Judges&mdash;Debates&mdash;Insults&mdash;His
-Sentence&mdash;Preparation of Execution&mdash;Hamilton
-at the Stake&mdash;Vexed and insulted by Campbell&mdash;Hamilton’s
-Family and Native Land&mdash;Duration of his
-Sufferings&mdash;The two Hamiltons</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_56">56</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER VI.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">ALESIUS.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(February 1528 to End of 1531.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The ‘Crowns of the Martyrs’&mdash;Various Feelings excited about
-the Martyr&mdash;Escape of the King from his Keepers&mdash;The
-Reins of Government seized by James V.&mdash;Victory of the
-Priests&mdash;Alesius confirmed by death of Hamilton&mdash;His discourse
-before Provincial Synod&mdash;His imprisonment in a
-Dungeon&mdash;Order of the King to liberate him&mdash;Stratagem
-of Prior Hepburn&mdash;Removal of Alesius to a fouler Dungeon&mdash;Plot
-of the Prior against his Life&mdash;Scheme of the Canons
-for his Escape&mdash;His Flight by Night&mdash;Pursuit by the Prior&mdash;His
-Flight to Germany</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_70">70</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER VII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">CONFESSORS OF THE GOSPEL AND MARTYRS MULTIPLIED IN
-SCOTLAND.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1531 to 1534.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Conspiracy of the Nobles against the Priests&mdash;Their Compact
-with Henry VIII.&mdash;Intrigues of the Romish Party&mdash;Alexander
-Seaton, Confessor to the King&mdash;His boldness&mdash;His
-Flight to England&mdash;Letter of Alesius to the King&mdash;Reply
-of Cochlæus&mdash;Henry Forrest&mdash;His Degradation&mdash;His Execution&mdash;David
-Straiton, of Lauriston&mdash;His Conversion&mdash;His
-Trial&mdash;And Martyrdom&mdash;Trial of Catherine Hamilton&mdash;Flight
-of Evangelicals from Scotland<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_x" id="Page_x">[x]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_84">84</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER VIII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">BREACH OF THE KING OF SCOTLAND WITH ENGLAND&mdash;ALLIANCE
-WITH FRANCE AND THE GUISES.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(1534 to 1539.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Alliance of James V. sought by Henry VIII.&mdash;Failure&mdash;New
-attempts of Henry VIII.&mdash;Thomas Forrest&mdash;His fidelity&mdash;His
-Interview with the Bishop of Dunkeld&mdash;Discontent of
-the People&mdash;Negotiations at Rome&mdash;Marriage of James V.
-with Madeleine of Valois&mdash;Death of the young Queen&mdash;Second
-Marriage of the King with Mary of Lorraine</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_99">99</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER IX.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">INFLUENCE OF DAVID BEATOUN PREDOMINANT&mdash;REVIVAL OF
-PERSECUTION.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4">(1539.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Cardinal David Beatoun&mdash;His complete Control of the King&mdash;War
-on the Rich&mdash;The Ransom of Balkerley&mdash;Numerous
-Imprisonments&mdash;Scotland watched by Henry VIII.&mdash;Killon’s
-audacious Drama&mdash;Trial of Killon and Thomas Forrest&mdash;Their
-Execution&mdash;Buchanan in Prison&mdash;His Escape&mdash;Kennedy
-and Jerome Russel&mdash;Their Imprisonment&mdash;Trial&mdash;Courage&mdash;And
-Martyrdom</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_110">110</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER X.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">TERGIVERSATIONS OF JAMES V.&mdash;NEGOTIATIONS WITH HENRY
-VIII.&mdash;THEIR FAILURE.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(1540 to 1542.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Changed Inclination of the King of Scotland&mdash;His Censure of
-the Bishops&mdash;Cleverness of the Cardinal&mdash;Colloquies of
-Bishops at St. Andrews&mdash;Return of the King to the side
-of Rome&mdash;Birth of his Son&mdash;Birth of a second Son&mdash;His
-Remorse&mdash;A Dream&mdash;Death of his two Sons&mdash;Fresh Attempts
-of Henry VIII.&mdash;Project of an Interview at York&mdash;Journey
-of the King of England to York&mdash;Efforts of the
-Bishops to prevent the Interview&mdash;Absence of James V.
-from the Rendezvous<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xi" id="Page_xi">[xi]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_124">124</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XI.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">WAR BETWEEN ENGLAND AND SCOTLAND.&mdash;DEATH OF JAMES V.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4">(1542.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Anger of Henry VIII.&mdash;Skirmishes&mdash;Fears of James V.&mdash;Aim
-of Henry VIII.&mdash;The Crown of Scotland&mdash;Invasion of Scotland
-by Duke of Norfolk&mdash;Refusal of the Scottish Army to
-march&mdash;Proscription List drawn up by the Bishops&mdash;Their
-Alliance with the King&mdash;Levy of a new Army by Bishops&mdash;Oliver
-Sinclair named Commander-in-Chief&mdash;Disgraceful
-Rout&mdash;Anxiety of James V.&mdash;His Dejection&mdash;His Despair&mdash;Birth
-of Mary Stuart&mdash;Death of the King</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_136">136</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">REGENCY OF EARL OF ARRAN.&mdash;IMPRISONMENT OF BEATOUN.&mdash;TREATY
-OF PEACE WITH ENGLAND.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(1542 to March 1543.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ambition of Beatoun&mdash;Pretended Will of the King&mdash;Assembly
-of the Nobles&mdash;Earl of Arran proclaimed Regent&mdash;Evangelicals
-associated with him&mdash;The two Chaplains&mdash;Projects
-of Henry VIII.&mdash;Negotiations&mdash;Arrest of the Cardinal&mdash;Results
-of this Act&mdash;Scotland laid under Interdict&mdash;Parliament
-of Edinburgh&mdash;The Scriptures in the Vulgar
-Tongue&mdash;Debates on the Subject&mdash;Freedom of the Scriptures&mdash;General
-Rejoicing&mdash;Treaty with England&mdash;Confirmation
-of the Treaty<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xii" id="Page_xii">[xii]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_151">151</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XIII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">LIBERATION OF BEATOUN&mdash;HIS SEIZURE OF POWER&mdash;BREACH OF
-THE TREATY&mdash;FRESH PERSECUTIONS.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(March 1543 to Summer 1544.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Ultramontane Party&mdash;The Abbot of Paisley&mdash;Liberation
-of the Cardinal&mdash;His Intrigues&mdash;Insults offered to the English
-Ambassador&mdash;Refusal of the Regent to deliver the
-Hostages&mdash;Armed Gatherings&mdash;Weakness of the Regent&mdash;His
-Abjuration before the Cardinal&mdash;Coronation of Mary
-Stuart&mdash;Declaration of War in Scotland by Henry VIII.&mdash;Earl
-of Lennox&mdash;Triumph of the Cardinal&mdash;William Anderson,
-Hellen Stirke, James Raveleson, and Robert Lamb&mdash;Sentence
-of death passed on them&mdash;Fruitless Intercession&mdash;Affecting
-Death of Hellen Stirke&mdash;The English Fleet at
-Leith&mdash;Landing of the English Army&mdash;Capture and Pillage
-of Edinburgh&mdash;Plans of Henry VIII. postponed</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_166">166</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XIV.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">WISHART&mdash;HIS MINISTRY AND HIS MARTYRDOM.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(Summer of 1544 to March 1546.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Preaching of Wishart at Dundee&mdash;The Churches closed against
-him&mdash;Open-air Preaching&mdash;The Plague of Dundee&mdash;Wishart’s
-Return thither&mdash;Attempt of a Priest to Assassinate
-him&mdash;Snares laid for him&mdash;His Announcement of his approaching
-Death&mdash;Wishart joined by Knox&mdash;Approach of
-Wishart to Edinburgh&mdash;His redoubled Zeal&mdash;Desertion of
-his Friends&mdash;His last Preaching&mdash;His Arrest&mdash;Given up to
-the Cardinal&mdash;His Trial opposed by the Regent&mdash;Persistence
-of the Cardinal&mdash;The Ecclesiastical Court&mdash;The Accuser
-Lauder&mdash;Insults&mdash;Calumnies&mdash;Condemnation&mdash;Refusal of
-the Sacrament&mdash;A true Supper&mdash;Wishart’s Address to the
-People&mdash;His Martyrdom</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_185">185</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XV.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">CONSPIRACY AGAINST BEATOUN&mdash;HIS DEATH.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(March to May 1546.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Triumph of the Cardinal&mdash;Conspiracy of his Enemies&mdash;Meeting
-of the Conspirators at St. Andrews&mdash;Seizure of the
-Castle&mdash;The Cardinal’s Servants driven away&mdash;Murder of
-Beatoun&mdash;Wishart’s Sentence&mdash;Siege of the Castle&mdash;Capitulation
-of the Conspirators&mdash;Grounds of the Triumph of
-the Reformation in Scotland&mdash;Two Kings and Two Kingdoms&mdash;Priest
-and Pastor<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiii" id="Page_xiii">[xiii]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_207">207</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header">BOOK XI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1">CALVIN AND THE PRINCIPLES OF HIS REFORM.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER I.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">CALVIN AT GENEVA AND IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4">(1536.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Geneva prepared for its Part&mdash;Calvin&mdash;His Desire for Retirement&mdash;Reader
-in Holy Scripture&mdash;Calvin’s Teaching&mdash;Authorship
-of Discipline&mdash;Application of Discipline before
-Calvin&mdash;Doctrine of Jesus Christ the Soul of the Church&mdash;Calvin
-and the Huguenots&mdash;His Engagement with the
-Council of Geneva&mdash;His Name not mentioned&mdash;The Gospel
-in the Pays de Vaud&mdash;Viret at Lausanne&mdash;Images&mdash;Two
-Masses a Week&mdash;Notice of a great Disputation&mdash;Prohibited
-by the Emperor&mdash;Convoked by Council of Berne&mdash;Indecision
-of the Townsmen of Lausanne</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_219">219</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER II.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">THE DISPUTATION OF LAUSANNE.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(October 1536.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Champions of the two Parties&mdash;Preparations of the two
-Parties&mdash;Ten Theses of Farel&mdash;His Discourse&mdash;Opening of
-the Disputation&mdash;Protest of the Canons&mdash;Farel’s Reply&mdash;Doctor
-Blancherose&mdash;The Vicar Drogy&mdash;Justification by
-Faith&mdash;The Church and the Scriptures&mdash;Caroli&mdash;The Real
-Presence&mdash;Testimony of the Fathers&mdash;Calvin&mdash;His Statement
-of the Doctrine of the Fathers&mdash;Christ’s Mortal Body
-and his Glorified Body&mdash;The Body and the Blood&mdash;The
-Spiritual Presence of Christ&mdash;Conversion of Jean Tandy&mdash;His
-Monastic Dress put off&mdash;The last Theses&mdash;The Trinity
-of Doctor Blancherose&mdash;Lent&mdash;Ignorance of the Priests&mdash;Calvin
-and Hildebrand&mdash;Closing Discourse by Farel&mdash;Jesus
-Christ and not the Pope&mdash;Salvation not in Outward Things&mdash;Appeal
-to the Priests&mdash;Address to the Lords of Berne<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiv" id="Page_xiv">[xiv]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_235">235</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER III.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">EXTENSION OF THE REFORM IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1536.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Moral Reform at Lausanne&mdash;Images&mdash;Alarm of the Canons&mdash;Removal
-of Images ordered by Berne&mdash;Success of the Disputation
-at Lausanne&mdash;Reformation decreed at Lausanne&mdash;Caroli
-first Pastor&mdash;Reformation at Vevey&mdash;At Lutry&mdash;Farel’s
-Search for Evangelical Ministers&mdash;Ministers of the
-Pays de Vaud&mdash;Formula of the Lords of Berne&mdash;Unworthy
-Ministers&mdash;Edict of Reformation&mdash;Departure of Priests and
-Monks&mdash;Conference at Geneva</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_260">260</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER IV.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">THE REFORMATION AT GENEVA.&mdash;FORMULARY OF FAITH AND
-DISCIPLINE.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1536 to 1537.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Liberty and Authority&mdash;Calvin Pastor at Geneva&mdash;The Christian
-Individual and the Christian Community&mdash;Analysis
-and Synthesis&mdash;Division among the Huguenots&mdash;Catechism
-and Confession of Faith&mdash;Calvin’s real Mind&mdash;Diversity of
-Religious Opinions&mdash;Need of Unity&mdash;Presentation of the
-Confession to the Council&mdash;Characteristics of the Confession&mdash;Its
-Authorship assigned to Calvin&mdash;Frequent Communion&mdash;Discipline
-of Excommunication&mdash;The true Beginning
-of a Church&mdash;Lay Intervention&mdash;Various Regulations&mdash;Discipline
-approved by the Council&mdash;The Syndic Porral&mdash;
-Distribution of the Confession&mdash;Its Acceptance required of
-each Citizen&mdash;Assembly of the People at St. Peter’s Church&mdash;Swearing
-of the Confession&mdash;Refusal of many to Swear
-it&mdash;The three Pastors of Geneva&mdash;The Schools&mdash;Activity
-of the Reformers&mdash;Discipline&mdash;Description of Geneva<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xv" id="Page_xv">[xv]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_274">274</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER V.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">CALVIN’S CONTEST WITH FOREIGN DOCTORS&mdash;CHARGE OF ARIANISM
-BROUGHT AGAINST HIM.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(January to June 1537.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Arrived of the Spirituals at Geneva&mdash;Their System&mdash;Public
-Disputation&mdash;Expulsion of the Spirituals&mdash;Caroli&mdash;His Ambition
-and his Morals&mdash;Prayers for the Dead&mdash;Scholasticism&mdash;Consistory
-of Lausanne&mdash;Charge of Arianism against
-Calvin&mdash;His Vindication necessary&mdash;Calvin’s Reply&mdash;His
-view on the Trinity&mdash;Accusation of Farel and Viret by
-Caroli&mdash;Convocation of a Synod resolved on&mdash;Farel’s Anxiety&mdash;Synod
-at Lausanne&mdash;Another Debate on the Trinity&mdash;Unmasking
-of Caroli by Calvin&mdash;The Divinity of Christ&mdash;The
-Tyranny of Creeds rejected by Calvin&mdash;The so-called
-Athanasian Creed&mdash;Condemnation of Caroli by the Synod&mdash;Appeal
-to Berne&mdash;Agitation of Men’s Minds&mdash;Accusation of
-Caroli&mdash;His Condemnation&mdash;His Flight to France</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_299">299</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER VI.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">CALVIN AT THE SYNOD OF BERNE.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(September 1537.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Disputation on the Lord’s Supper&mdash;The Doctrine of Zwingli
-at Berne&mdash;Acceptance of the Doctrine of Luther there&mdash;A
-patched-up Peace&mdash;Synod of September&mdash;Opinions of Bucer&mdash;Attacks
-of Megander&mdash;Growing Dissension&mdash;Intervention
-of Calvin&mdash;His Project of a Formula of Concord&mdash;The Tumult
-allayed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xvi" id="Page_xvi">[xvi]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_323">323</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER VII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">THE CONFESSION OF FAITH SWORN TO AT ST. PETER’S.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1537.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Various Acts of Discipline&mdash;Parties at Geneva&mdash;Division
-amongst the Huguenots&mdash;Coercion in matter of Faith&mdash;Requirement
-of Oath to the Confession&mdash;Numerous Opponents&mdash;Decree
-of Banishment&mdash;Power of the Malcontents&mdash;Imprudence
-of the Bernese Deputies&mdash;The General Council&mdash;Discourse
-of the Syndics&mdash;The Leaders of Opposition
-silenced&mdash;Violent Attack on the Syndics&mdash;Tumultuous
-Debate&mdash;Confused Complaints&mdash;Growing Opposition&mdash;Vindication
-of the Reformers&mdash;Accusation against them by
-Berne&mdash;Their Vindication at Berne&mdash;Complete Justice done
-them</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_333">333</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER VIII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">TROUBLES AT GENEVA.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(Beginning of 1538.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Agitation&mdash;The Lord’s Supper&mdash;Nature of the Church&mdash;Communicants
-and Hearers&mdash;The Supper open to all&mdash;Disorders&mdash;Louis
-du Tillet&mdash;His Return to the Church of Rome&mdash;Parties
-face to face with each other&mdash;Menaces&mdash;No Freedom
-without Religion&mdash;Election of new Syndics&mdash;Their Hostility
-to Calvin&mdash;Moderation of their first Measures&mdash;Misleading
-Effects of Party Spirit&mdash;Exclusion of Evangelicals from the
-Councils&mdash;Censure of the Ministers by the Councils&mdash;Resistance
-of the Reformers&mdash;‘I can do no otherwise’</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_350">350</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER IX.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">STRUGGLES AT BERNE.&mdash;SYNOD OF LAUSANNE.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(January 1538.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Expulsion of Megander from Berne&mdash;Remonstrance of Country
-Pastors&mdash;Pacification&mdash;Calvin’s Regret for the Banishment
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xvii" id="Page_xvii">[xvii]</a></span>of Megander&mdash;Hostility of Kunz to Calvin&mdash;Relations
-between Church and State&mdash;Variety of Usages at Geneva
-and at Berne&mdash;Synod at Lausanne&mdash;A strange Condition&mdash;Absence
-of Calvin and Farel from the Synod&mdash;Adoption by
-the Synod of the usages of Berne&mdash;Fruitless Conference&mdash;Letters
-from the Lords of Berne to Calvin and Farel and to
-the Council of Geneva</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_366">366</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER X.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">SUCCESS OF THE COUNTER-REFORMATION&mdash;REFUSAL OF CALVIN
-AND FAREL TO ADMINISTER THE LORD’S SUPPER&mdash;PROHIBITION
-OF THEIR PREACHING.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(March and April 1538.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Pulpit interdicted to Courault&mdash;Adoption by the Council
-of the Usages of Berne&mdash;Resistance of Calvin&mdash;Disorders
-in the Streets&mdash;Indignation of Courault&mdash;His Sermon at St.
-Peter’s&mdash;His Imprisonment&mdash;His Liberation demanded by
-the Reformers&mdash;Refusal of the Council&mdash;Loud Complaints&mdash;The
-Pulpit interdicted to Calvin and Farel&mdash;What to do?&mdash;General
-Confusion&mdash;Perplexity of the Reformers&mdash;Indifference
-of Forms&mdash;The Supper a Feast of Peace&mdash;Divisions
-and Violence of Parties&mdash;Administration of the Supper
-given up&mdash;Determination of the Reformers to preach&mdash;Heroism</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_376">376</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XI.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">PREACHING OF CALVIN AND FAREL IN DEFIANCE OF THE
-PROHIBITION BY THE COUNCIL&mdash;THEIR BANISHMENT FROM
-GENEVA.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(April 1538.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Great Distress of mind&mdash;Easter Sunday&mdash;Farel’s Preaching
-at St. Gervais&mdash;Disorders in the Church&mdash;Calvin’s preaching
-at St. Peter’s&mdash;Statement of his Motives&mdash;The Church a
-Holy Body&mdash;A quiet Hearing given him&mdash;His Sermon at
-Rive&mdash;Great Disorder&mdash;Swords drawn&mdash;Deliberation of the
-Councils&mdash;Proposal to expel the Ministers&mdash;Denial of Justice&mdash;Expulsion
-voted by the General Council&mdash;Calvin’s Reply&mdash;Farel’s
-Reply&mdash;Departure of the Ministers from Geneva&mdash;A
-Prophecy of Bonivard&mdash;Journey of Farel and Calvin to
-Berne&mdash;Joy and Sorrow<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xviii" id="Page_xviii">[xviii]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_393">393</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">GREAT CONFUSION AT GENEVA&mdash;USELESS INTERVENTION OF
-THE COUNCIL OF BERNE.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of April 1538.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ridicule and Sarcasm&mdash;The New Ministers&mdash;Their Incompetency&mdash;Arrival
-of the Reformers at Berne&mdash;Their appearance
-before the Council&mdash;Their Grievances&mdash;Excitement in
-the Council of Berne&mdash;Letter of the Council to Geneva&mdash;Reply
-of the Council of Geneva</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_412">412</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XIII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">SYNOD OF ZURICH&mdash;CALVIN RECONDUCTED TO GENEVA BY
-BERNESE AMBASSADORS&mdash;REFUSAL TO ADMIT HIM TO THE
-TOWN.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of April to End of May 1538.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Farel and Calvin at Zurich&mdash;Their Claims&mdash;Their Moderation&mdash;Their
-Humility&mdash;The Justice of their Cause&mdash;Their approval
-by Synod of Zurich&mdash;Letter of the Synod to Geneva&mdash;Hostility
-of Kunz&mdash;His Wrath&mdash;His Accusations&mdash;Hesitation
-of Berne to intervene&mdash;Justice prevails&mdash;Embassy from
-Berne&mdash;Excitement at Geneva&mdash;Stoppage of Calvin and
-Farel at Genthod&mdash;The General Council&mdash;Favorable Appearances&mdash;Treachery
-of Kunz&mdash;Pierre Vandel&mdash;Passionate
-Excitement&mdash;Vote of the General Council&mdash;The Opponents&mdash;The
-Minority</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_420">420</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XIV.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">BANISHMENT OF THE MINISTERS&mdash;THEIR SUCCESSORS AT
-GENEVA.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1538.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Licentiousness&mdash;Journey of Calvin and Farel to Berne&mdash;Journey
-to Basel&mdash;Their Reception there&mdash;Their Vindication&mdash;Hesitation
-as to Choice of a Post&mdash;Rivalry between Basel
-and Strasburg in seeking for Calvin&mdash;Farel called to Neuchâtel&mdash;Settlement
-of Calvin at Strasburg&mdash;Death of
-Courault&mdash;Calvin’s Grief&mdash;The new Ministers of Geneva&mdash;Calvin’s
-Opinion of them&mdash;Discontent&mdash;Accusations&mdash;The
-Complaints not unfounded&mdash;Calvin’s Letter to Christians
-of Geneva&mdash;His Advice&mdash;Farel’s Letter&mdash;His deep Sadness<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xix" id="Page_xix">[xix]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_439">439</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XV.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">STRASBURG AND GENEVA.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1538 to 1539.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Calvin at Strasburg&mdash;Widening of his Horizon&mdash;Calvin a
-Pastor&mdash;His spiritual Joy&mdash;Calvin a Doctor&mdash;Treatise on the
-Lord’s Supper&mdash;Theological Debates&mdash;Calvin’s Poverty&mdash;Death
-of Olivétan&mdash;Calvin’s Courage&mdash;Despotism at Geneva&mdash;Purification&mdash;The
-Regents of the College&mdash;Their Banishment&mdash;Difficulty
-of finding Substitutes&mdash;The Friends of the
-Reformers&mdash;Prosecutions&mdash;New Syndics&mdash;Suppression of
-Disorders&mdash;Conference at Frankfort&mdash;Calvin at Frankfort&mdash;His
-intercourse with Melanchthon&mdash;On the Supper and
-on Discipline&mdash;On Ceremonies of Worship&mdash;Melanchthon
-called to Henry VIII.&mdash;Calvin’s opinion of Henry VIII.&mdash;Calvin’s
-Return to Strasburg</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_456">456</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XVI.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">CALVIN’S CORRESPONDENCE WITH SADOLETO.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4">(1539.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Colloquy of Bishops at Lyons&mdash;Cardinal Sadoleto&mdash;His Letter
-to the Genevese&mdash;Its Portraiture of the Reformers&mdash;Its
-Conclusion&mdash;Delivery of his Letter to the Council&mdash;Immediate
-Consequences&mdash;An important Step towards Rome&mdash;Two
-Martyrs in Savoy&mdash;Calvin’s Reply to Sadoleto&mdash;Reason
-for his replying&mdash;Separation of the Church&mdash;Christian Antiquity&mdash;Justification
-by Faith&mdash;The Judgment Seat of God&mdash;Defence
-of Calvin&mdash;His first Faith&mdash;His Resistance&mdash;His
-Conversion&mdash;Who tears to Pieces the Spouse of Christ&mdash;To
-whom Dissensions are to be imputed&mdash;Luther’s Joy&mdash;Copy
-received at Geneva&mdash;Caroli&mdash;His End<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xx" id="Page_xx">[xx]</a></span></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_478">478</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XVII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">CATHOLICISM AT GENEVA&mdash;MARRIAGE OF CALVIN AT STRASBURG.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4 smcap">(End of 1539&ndash;1540.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Citation of Priests before the Council&mdash;Their Attitude&mdash;The
-former Syndic Balard&mdash;His Courage&mdash;His Abjuration&mdash;Calvin’s
-Thoughts on Geneva&mdash;His household Cares&mdash;His Desire
-to Marry&mdash;Various Projects&mdash;Hesitation&mdash;Idelette de
-Bure&mdash;Marriage&mdash;Catherine von Bora and Idelette de Bure&mdash;Second
-Assembly at Hagenau&mdash;Nothing done</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_499">499</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header2">CHAPTER XVIII.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header3">GENEVA&mdash;DISSENSIONS AND SEVERITIES.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header4">(1540.)</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Conflict between Berne and Geneva&mdash;Treaty with Berne&mdash;The
-<i>Articulants</i>&mdash;Refusal of Geneva to ratify the Treaty&mdash;Judgment
-given at Lausanne&mdash;Indignation at Geneva&mdash;Prosecution
-of the Articulants&mdash;Their Condemnation&mdash;Jean
-Philippe Captain-General&mdash;His Irritation&mdash;Riot excited by
-him&mdash;His Defeat&mdash;His Arrest&mdash;His Condemnation to Death&mdash;Death
-of Richardet&mdash;A Prediction of Calvin&mdash;The Ways of
-God</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_512">512</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p></div>
-
-
-<p class="center p-left gesperrt">HISTORY</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left xs">OF THE</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left gesperrt lg">REFORMATION IN EUROPE</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.</p>
-
-<hr class="r25" />
-
-<p class="center p-left xl">BOOK X.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm">THE REFORMATION IN SCOTLAND.</p>
-
-<hr class="r25" />
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER I.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">PREPARATION OF REFORM.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(From the 2nd Century to the Year 1522.)</span></h2>
-
-
-<p>History is of various kinds. It may be literary, philosophical,
-political, or religious; the last entering most deeply into the inmost
-facts of our being. The political historian will sometimes disclose
-the hidden mysteries of the cabinets of princes, will fathom their
-counsels, unveil their intrigues, and snatch their secrets from a
-Cæsar, a Charles V., a Napoleon, while human nature in its loftiest
-aspects remains inaccessible to them. The inward power of conscience,
-which not seldom impels a man to act in a way opposed to the rules of
-policy and to the requirements of self-interest, the great spiritual
-evolutions of humanity, the sacrifices of missionaries and of martyrs,
-are for them covered with a veil. It is the Gospel alone which gives
-us the key of these mysteries, so that there remain in history, even
-for the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span> most able investigators, enigmas which appear insoluble. How
-is it that schemes conceived with indisputable cleverness fail? How is
-it that enterprises which seem insane succeed? They cannot tell. No
-matter, they keep on their way, they pass into other regions and leave
-behind them territories which have not been explored.</p>
-
-<p>This is to be regretted, for the historian ought to embrace in his
-survey the whole field of human affairs. He must, of course, take
-into consideration the earthly powers which bear sway in the world,
-ambition, despotism, liberty; but he ought to mark also the heavenly
-powers which religion reveals. The living God must not be excluded from
-the world which He created. Man must not stop in his contemplations
-at elementary molecules, nor even at political influences, but must
-raise himself to this first principle, as Clement of Alexandria named
-it,&mdash;this existence, the idea of which is immediate, original, springs
-from no other, but is necessarily presupposed in all thought.</p>
-
-<p>God, who renews the greenness of our pastures, who makes the corn come
-forth out of the bosom of the earth, and covers the trees with blossoms
-and with fruit, does not abandon the souls of men. The God of the whole
-visible creation is much more the light and the strength of souls, for
-one of these is more precious in his sight than all the universe. The
-Creator, who every spring brings forth out of the winter’s ice and cold
-a nature full of life, smiling with light and adorned with flowers, can
-assuredly produce, when it pleases Him, a spiritual springtide in the
-heart of a torpid and frozen humanity. The Divine Spirit is the sap
-which infuses into barren souls the vivifying juices of heaven. The
-world has not seldom been like a desert in which all life seemed to be
-extinct; and yet, in those periods apparently so arid, subterranean
-currents were yielding sustenance here and there to solitary plants;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span>
-and at the hour fixed by Divine providence the living water has gushed
-forth abundantly to reanimate perishing humanity. Such was the case in
-the two greatest ages of history, that of the Gospel and that of the
-Reformation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SPIRITUAL SPRINGTIDE.</div>
-
-<p>Such epochs, the most important in human history, are for that reason
-the worthiest to be studied. The new life which sprang up in the 16th
-century was everywhere the same, but nevertheless it bore a certain
-special character in each of the countries in which it appeared; in
-Germany, in Switzerland, in England, in Scotland, in France, in Italy,
-in the Netherlands, in Spain, and in other lands. At Wittenberg it
-was to man that Christian thought especially attached itself, to
-man fallen, but regenerated and justified by faith. At Geneva it
-was to God, to His sovereignty and His grace. In Scotland it was to
-Christ&mdash;Christ as expiatory victim, but above all Christ as king, who
-governs and keeps his people independently of human power.</p>
-
-<p>Scotland is peopled by a vigorous race, vigorous in their virtues
-and vigorous, we may add, in their faults. Vigor is also one of the
-distinguishing features of Scottish Christianity, and it is this
-quality perhaps which led Scotland to attach itself particularly to
-Christ as to the king of the Church, the idea of power being always
-involved in the idea of king.</p>
-
-<p>This country is now to be the subject of our narrative. It deserves to
-be so; for although of small extent and situated on the confines of the
-West, it has by nature and by faith a motive force which makes itself
-felt to the ends of the earth.</p>
-
-<p>Two periods are to be noted in the Scottish Reformation, that of
-Hamilton and that of Knox. It is of the first of these only that we
-are now to treat. The study of the beginnings of things attracts and
-interests the mind in the highest degree. Faithful to our plan, we
-shall ascend to the generative epoch of Caledonian re<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span>form, an epoch
-which Scotland herself has perhaps too much slighted, and we shall
-exhibit its simple beauty.</p>
-
-<p>Before the days of the Reformation, Scotland received three great
-impulses in succession from the Christian countries of the south.</p>
-
-<p>The persecutions which at the close of the second century, during
-the course of the third, and at the beginning of the fourth, fell on
-the disciples of the Gospel who dwelt in the southern part of Great
-Britain, drove a great number of them to take refuge in the country of
-the Scots. These pious men built for themselves humble and solitary
-hermitages, in green meadows or on steep mountains, and in narrow
-valleys of the glens; and there, devoting themselves to the service of
-God, they shed a soft gleam of light in the midst of the fogs of every
-kind which encompassed them, teaching the ignorant and strengthening
-the weak. They were called in the Gaelic tongue <i>gille De</i>, servants of
-God, in Latin <i>cultores Dei</i>; and in these phrases we find the origin
-of the name by which they are still known&mdash;<i>Culdees</i>. Such was the
-respect which they inspired that, after their death, their cells were
-often transformed into churches.<a name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> From them came the first impulse.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE CULDEES.</div>
-
-<p>Several centuries passed away; the feudal system was established in
-Scotland. The mountainous nature of the country, which made of every
-domain a sort of fortress, the fewness of the large towns, the absence
-of any influential body of citizens, the institution of clans, the
-limited number of the nobles,&mdash;all these circumstances combined to
-make the power of the feudal lords greater than in any other European
-country; and this power at a later period protected the Reformation
-from the despotism of the kings. But the influence of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span> Culdees,
-though really perceptible in the Middle Ages, was very feeble. It may
-be said of the things of grace in Scotland as of the works of Creation,
-that the sun did not come to scatter the mists which brooded over a
-nature melancholy and monotonous, and that the influence of the winds
-which, rushing forth from the neighboring seas, roared and raged over
-the barren heaths or over the fertile plains of Caledonia, was not
-softened by the breath divine which comes from heaven.</p>
-
-<p>But in the days of the revival a sweet and subtile sound was heard,
-and the surface of the lochs seemed to become animated. Wickliffe,
-having given to England the Word of God, some of his followers, and
-particularly John Resby, came into Scotland. ‘The pope is nothing,’
-said Resby in 1407,<a name="FNanchor_2_2" id="FNanchor_2_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> and he taught at the same time that Christ is
-everything. He was burnt at Perth.... Thus it was from the disciples of
-Wickliffe, the <i>Lollards</i>, that the second impulse came.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>reveillé</i> of Wickliffe was echoed in Eastern Europe by that of
-John Huss. In 1421, a Bohemian, one Paul Crawar, arriving from Prague,
-expounded at St. Andrews the Word of God, which he cited with a
-readiness and accuracy that astonished his hearers.<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> When led away to
-execution and bound to the stake, the bold Bohemian said to the priests
-who stood round him, ‘Generation of Satan, you, like your fathers, are
-enemies of the truth.’ The priests, not relishing such speeches in the
-presence of the crowd, had a ball of brass put into his mouth,<a name="FNanchor_4_4" id="FNanchor_4_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> and
-the martyr thus silenced was burnt alive without any further protest on
-his part.</p>
-
-<p>However, Patrick Graham, archbishop of St. Andrews and primate of
-Scotland, nephew of James I., and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span> a man distinguished for his
-abilities and his virtues, had heard Crawar. If the heart of the priest
-had been hard as a stone the heart of the archbishop was like a fertile
-field. The Word of the Lord took deep root in him. He formed the
-project of reformation of the Church; but the clergy were indignant;
-the primate was deprived, was condemned to imprisonment for life, and
-died in prison.</p>
-
-<p>Then began that struggle between royalty and the nobility which was
-afterwards to become one of the characteristic features of the time of
-reform. Kings, instigated by ambitious priests, sought to humble the
-nobles; the latter were thus predisposed to promote the Reformation.
-James II. (1437&ndash;1460) fought against the nobles both with the sword
-and by severe laws. James III. (1460&ndash;1488) removed them with contempt
-from his Court and gave himself up to unworthy favorites. James IV.
-(1488&ndash;1503), a man of a nobler spirit, esteemed the aristocracy the
-ornament of his Court and the strength of his kingdom. During the reign
-of this prince appeared the first glimmerings of the Reformation.
-Some pious men, dwellers most of them in the districts of Hill and
-Cunningham, were enlightened by the Gospel, and, confronting the Roman
-papacy, boldly declared that all true Christians receive every day
-spiritually the body of Jesus Christ by faith; that the bread remains
-bread after consecration, and that the natural body of Christ is not
-present; that there is a universal priesthood, of which every man and
-woman who believes in the Saviour is a member; that the pope, who
-exalts himself above God, is against God; that it is not permissible to
-take up arms for the things of faith; and that priests may marry.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN CAMPBELL, LAIRD OF CESSNOCK.</div>
-
-<p>Among the protectors of these brave folk was John Campbell, laird of
-Cessnock, a man well grounded in the evangelical doctrine, modest
-even to timidity, but abounding in works of mercy, and who received
-with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span> goodwill not only the Lollards but those even whose opinions
-were opposed to his own. His partner, with a character of greater
-decision than his own, was a woman well versed in the Bible, and
-being thoroughly acquainted with the Scriptures was safe against
-intimidation. Every morning the family and the servants assembled in a
-room of the mansion, and a priest, the chaplain, opened in the midst
-of them a New Testament, a very rare book at that period, and read
-and explained it.<a name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> When this family worship and the first meal were
-over, the Campbells would visit the poor and the sick. At the dinner
-hour they called together some of their neighbors: monks as well as
-gentlefolk would come and sit at their table. One day the conversation
-turning on the conventual life and the habits of the priests, Campbell
-spoke on the subject with moderation but also with freedom. The
-monks, exasperated, put crafty questions to him, provoked him, and
-succeeded in drawing from him words which in their eyes were heretical.
-Forgetting the claims of hospitality they hastened to the house of the
-bishop and denounced their host and the lady of the house. Inquiry was
-set on foot; the crime of heresy was proved. Campbell saw the danger
-which threatened him and appealed to the king.</p>
-
-<p>James IV., who had married Margaret Tudor, daughter of Henry VII.,
-was then reigning in Scotland. His life had not been spotless: he was
-often tormented with remorse, and in his fits of melancholy he resolved
-to make up for his sins by applying himself to the administration of
-justice. He had the two parties appear before him; the monks cited
-decisions of the Church sufficient to condemn the prisoner. The weak
-and simple-minded Campbell was somewhat embarrassed;<a name="FNanchor_6_6" id="FNanchor_6_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span> answers
-were timid and inadequate. He could talk with widows and orphans, but
-he could not cope with these monks. But his wife was full of decision
-and courage. When requested by the king to speak, she took up one by
-one the accusations of the monks, and setting them face to face with
-the Holy Scriptures, showed their falsehood. Her speech was clear,
-serious, and weighty with conviction. The king, persuaded by her
-eloquence, declared to the monks that if they should again persecute
-honest people in that way, they should be severely punished. And then,
-touched by the piety of this eminent woman and wishing to give her
-a token of his respect, he rose from his seat, went up to her and
-embraced her.<a name="FNanchor_7_7" id="FNanchor_7_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> Turning to her husband, ‘As for you,’ said he, ‘I give
-you in fee such and such villages, and I intend them to be testimonies
-for ever of my good will towards you.’ The husband and wife withdrew
-full of joy, and the monks full of vexation and shame. Thirty other
-evangelicals, professing the same doctrines as the laird of Cessnock,
-were cited, but they were dismissed with the request to be satisfied
-with the faith of the Church. This took place about the year 1512,
-the year in which Zwingle began to search the Scriptures and in which
-Luther on Pilate’s Staircase at Rome heard that word which went on
-resounding in his heart, ‘The just shall live by faith.’ The brave
-Scotchwoman had fought a battle at an outpost and sounded the prelude
-to the Reformation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ELECTION OF A BISHOP IN SCOTLAND.</div>
-
-<p>Unhappily the accession of Henry VIII. to the throne of England turned
-the thoughts of the King of Scotland in another direction. Henry
-VII., as long as he lived, had striven to keep on good terms with
-his son-in-law; but Henry VIII., a monarch haughty, sensitive, and
-impatient, and who in mere wilfulness would quarrel with his neighbors,
-was far less friendly with his sister’s husband. He even delayed for a
-long time the payment of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span> the legacy which her father had left her. The
-frequent attacks of the English, and the necessity thereby imposed on
-the Scots of constantly keeping watch on the borders, had given rise
-to distrust and hatred between the two nations. At the same time the
-ancient rivalry of France and England had thrown Scotland on the side
-of the French. When the English eagle pounced on unguarded France,
-‘the weasel Scot’ came sliding into its nest and devoured the royal
-brood.<a name="FNanchor_8_8" id="FNanchor_8_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> Henry VIII. revived those ancient traditions; and France
-took advantage of them to enfeoff Scotland still further to herself
-at the very moment when the Medici and the Guises were on the point
-of seizing at Paris the reins of government. Insulted by Henry VIII.,
-James IV. resolved, in spite of the wise remonstrance of the old earl
-of Angus, to attack England. Scotland gave him the <i>élite</i> of her
-people. He fought at Flodden with intrepid courage, but hit by two
-arrows and struck by a battle-axe he fell on the field, while round
-him lay the corpses of twelve earls, thirteen lords, two bishops, two
-mitred abbots, a great number of gentlemen, and more than ten thousand
-soldiers. Several students, and among them one named Andrew Duncan, son
-of the laird of Airdrie, whom we shall meet again, were either killed
-or made prisoners on that fatal day.</p>
-
-<p>The king’s son, James V. (afterwards father of Mary Stuart), was
-scarcely two years old at the time of his father’s death. His mother,
-sister of Henry VIII., assumed the regency, and during his minority
-the nobles exercised an influence which was to be one day favorable
-to liberty, and thereby to the Gospel. The king and the priests, both
-driving at absolute power, the former in the State, the latter in the
-Church, now made<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span> common cause against the nobles. Strange conflicts
-then took place between the various powers of Scotland. One of these
-conflicts had just disturbed the first city of the kingdom, St.
-Andrews, and had mingled with the noise of the stormy sea, which roared
-at the foot of the rocks, the voices of priests struggling around the
-Cathedral, the cries of soldiers and the reverberations of cannon.
-Alexander Stuart, archbishop of St. Andrews, primate of Scotland,
-having fallen on the field of Flodden, three competitors appeared for
-the possession of his primatial see. These were John Hepburn, prior
-of St. Andrews, the candidate of the canons; Gavin Douglas, brother
-of the earl of Angus, candidate of the nobles; and Andrew Forman,
-bishop of Murray, candidate of the pope. Douglas had already been put
-by the queen in possession of the castle of St. Andrews; but Hepburn,
-an ambitious man of high spirit, with the aid of the canons, took it
-by assault, fortified himself in it,<a name="FNanchor_9_9" id="FNanchor_9_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> and then set out for Rome to
-secure the pontifical investiture. Forman, the pope’s candidate, taking
-advantage of his rival’s absence, seized the castle and the monastery,
-and placed there a strong garrison. Hepburn was pacified by the gift
-of a pension of 3,000 crowns; while Douglas, candidate of the nobles,
-finding that there was neither money nor mitre for him, cannonaded and
-captured the cathedral of Dunkeld.<a name="FNanchor_10_10" id="FNanchor_10_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> In such fashion was the election
-of a bishop made in Scotland before the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>The elections of priests were conducted after somewhat different
-methods. The lesser benefices were put up to auction and sold by
-wandering bards, diceplayers, or minions of the Court. The bishops, who
-gave their illegitimate daughters to the nobles, kept the best places
-in the Church for their bastards. These young world<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span>lings, hurrying off
-to their pleasures, abandoned their flocks to monks, who retailed in
-the pulpit absurd legends of their saint, of his combats with the devil
-and of his flagellations, or amused the people with low jesting. This
-system, which passing for a representation of Christianity was merely
-its parody, destroyed not only Christian piety and morality, but the
-peace of families, the freedom of the people, and the prosperity of the
-kingdom.<a name="FNanchor_11_11" id="FNanchor_11_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a></p>
-
-<p>While ambition, idleness and licentiousness thus prevailed among the
-clergy, God was preparing ‘new vessels’ into which to pour the new wine
-which the old vessels could no longer hold. Some simple-minded men were
-on the point of achieving by their Christian faith and life a victory
-over the rich, powerful, and worldly pontiffs. Three young men, born
-almost with the century, were just beginning a career, the struggles
-and trials of which were as yet unknown to them. These men were to
-become the reformers of the Church of Scotland.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BIRTH OF ALESIUS.</div>
-
-<p>On April 23, 1500, the wife of an honest citizen of Edinburgh gave
-birth to a son who was afterwards called by some Alane, and by others
-Ales, but who signed his own name Alesius, the form which we shall
-adopt. Alexander&mdash;that was his baptismal name&mdash;was a child remarkable
-for liveliness, and the anxiety of his devoted parents lest any
-accident should befall him led them to hang round his neck, as a
-safeguard against every danger, a paper on which a priest had written
-some verses of St. John. Alesius was fond of going, with other boys of
-his own age, to the heights which environ Edinburgh. The great rock
-on the summit of which the castle stands, the beautiful Calton Hill,
-and the picturesque hill called Arthur’s Seat, in turn attracted them.
-One day&mdash;it was in 1512&mdash;Alexander and some friends, having betaken
-themselves to the last-named hill, amused themselves by rolling over
-and over<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span> down a slope which terminated in a precipice. Suddenly the
-lad found himself on the brink: terror deprived him of his senses:
-some hand grasped him and placed him in safety, but he never knew by
-whom or by what he had been saved. The priests gave the credit of this
-escape to the paper with which they had provided him, but Alexander
-himself attributed it to God and his father’s prayers. ‘Ah!’ said he,
-many years afterwards, ‘I never recall that event without a great
-shudder through my whole body.’<a name="FNanchor_12_12" id="FNanchor_12_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> Some time after he was sent to the
-University of St. Andrews to complete his education.</p>
-
-<p>Another young boy, of more illustrious birth, gave promise of an
-eminent manhood; he belonged to the Hamilton family which, under
-James III., had taken the highest position in Scotland. Born in the
-county of Linlithgow, westward of Edinburgh, and somewhat younger than
-Alesius, he was to inaugurate the Reformation. Linlithgow was at that
-time the Versailles of the kingdom, and could boast of a more ancient
-origin than the palace of Louis XIV. Its projecting porticoes, its
-carvings in wood, its wainscot panelings, its massive balustrades, its
-roofs over-hanging the street, produced the most picturesque effect.
-The castle was at once palace, fortress, and prison; it was the
-pleasure-house to which the Court used to retire for relaxation, and
-within its walls Mary Stuart was born.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PATRICK HAMILTON.</div>
-
-<p>Near Linlithgow was the barony of Kincavil, which had been given by
-James IV., in 1498, to Sir Patrick Hamilton. Catherine Stuart, the wife
-of the latter, was daughter of the duke of Albany, son of King James
-II. Sir Patrick, on his side, was second son of Lord Hamilton, and,
-according to trustworthy charters, of the princess Mary, countess of
-Arran, also a daughter of James<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span> II.<a name="FNanchor_13_13" id="FNanchor_13_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> Sir Patrick had two sons and
-one daughter, James, Patrick, and Catherine.</p>
-
-<p>Patrick, the young man of whom we speak, was therefore of the blood
-royal, both by the father’s and the mother’s side. He was born probably
-at the manor of Kincavil, and was there brought up. He grew up
-surrounded with all the sweetnesses of a mother’s love, and from his
-childhood the image of his mother was deeply engraven on his heart.
-This tender mother, who afterwards engaged his latest thoughts on the
-scaffold, observed with delight in her son a craving for superior
-culture, a passion for science, a taste for the literature of Greece
-and Rome, and above all, lively aspirations after all that is elevated,
-and movements of the soul towards God.</p>
-
-<p>As for his father, Sir Patrick, he had the reputation of being the
-first knight of Scotland, and as cousin-german of King James IV. he had
-frequent occasions for displaying his courage. One day a German knight
-arriving in Scotland to challenge her lords and barons, Sir Patrick
-encountered and overthrew him. At the marriage of Margaret of England
-with the King of Scotland, it was once more Sir Patrick who most
-distinguished himself at the tournament. And at a later time, when sent
-ambassador to Paris with an elder brother, the earl of Arran, he won
-fresh honors in London on his way.<a name="FNanchor_14_14" id="FNanchor_14_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> People were fond of recounting
-these<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span> exploits to his two boys, James and Patrick, and nothing
-appeared to them more magnificent than the glittering armor of their
-father hung upon the walls of the banqueting hall. Ambition awoke in
-the heart of the younger of the sons; but he was destined to seek after
-another glory, holier and more enduring.</p>
-
-<p>The Hamiltons having many relations at Paris, Sir Patrick determined
-to send thither his second son, and at the age of fourteen the lad
-set out for that celebrated capital.<a name="FNanchor_15_15" id="FNanchor_15_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> His father, who destined him
-for the great offices of the Church, had already procured for him the
-title and the revenues of abbot of Ferne, in the county of Ross, and
-from that source the expenses of the young man’s journey and course
-of studies were to be defrayed. It was the moment at which the fire
-of the Reformation, which was just kindled on the Continent, began to
-throw out sparks on all sides. One of these sparks was to light on the
-soul of Patrick. But if Hamilton were destined to bring from Paris to
-Scotland the first stone of the building, another Scotchman, one year
-younger than he, was destined to bring the top-stone from Geneva.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BIRTH OF JOHN KNOX.</div>
-
-<p>In one of the suburbs of Haddington, near Edinburgh, called
-Gifford-gate, dwelt an honorable citizen, member of an ancient family
-of Renfrewshire, named Knox, who had borne arms, like his father and
-his grandfather, under the earl of Bothwell. Some members of this
-family had died under the colors.<a name="FNanchor_16_16" id="FNanchor_16_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> In 1505 Knox had a son who was
-named John. The blood of warriors ran in the veins of the man who
-was to become one of the most<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span> intrepid champions of Christ’s army.
-John, after studying first at Haddington school, was sent at the age
-of sixteen to Glasgow University.<a name="FNanchor_17_17" id="FNanchor_17_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> He was active, bold, thoroughly
-upright and perfectly honest, diligent in his duties, and full of
-heartiness for his comrades. But he had in him also a firmness which
-came near to obstinacy, an independence which was very much like pride,
-a melancholy which bordered on prostration, a sternness which some
-took for insensibility, and a passionate force sometimes mistakenly
-attributed to a vindictive temper. An important place was reserved for
-him in the history of his country and of Christendom.</p>
-
-<p>While God was thus preparing these young contemporaries, Alesius,
-Hamilton, and Knox, and others besides, to diffuse in Scotland the
-light of the Gospel, ambitious nobles were engaged in conflict around
-the throne of the king. The old earl of Angus, who had lost his two
-sons at the battle of Flodden, and had not long survived them, had
-left a grandson, a handsome young man, not very wise nor experienced,
-but with plenty of ambition, cleverness, liveliness, and courage. The
-widow of James IV., regent of the kingdom, married this youth, and by
-this rash step displeased the nobles. In the fierce encounters which
-took place between the Angus and Douglas parties on one side, and the
-Hamiltons on the other, pillage, murder, and arson were not seldom
-perpetrated. Another regency became necessary. John Stuart, duke of
-Albany, who was born in France of a French mother, and was residing at
-the court of Saint-Germain, but was the nearest relation of the King of
-Scotland, was summoned. He banished Angus, who withdrew with the queen
-to England. But Albany had soon to return to France, and Queen Margaret
-and her husband went back to Edinburgh.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The old rivalries were not slow to reappear. When the parliament
-assembled at Edinburgh in April 1520, the Hamiltons gathered in
-great numbers in the palace of the primate Beatoun. The primate ran
-hither and thither, armed from head to foot, brandishing the torch
-of discord.<a name="FNanchor_18_18" id="FNanchor_18_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> The bishop of Dunkeld entreated him to prevent a
-collision. When the primate, laying his hand on his heart, said: ‘On
-my conscience I am not able to prevent it,’ the sound of his coat mail
-was heard. ‘Ah, my lord,’ exclaimed Dunkeld, ‘that noise tells me
-that your conscience is not good.’ Sir Patrick Hamilton, the father
-of the reformer, counselled peace; but Sir James Hamilton, a natural
-son of the earl of Arran, a violent and cruel young man, cried out to
-him: ‘You are afraid to fight for your friend.’ ‘Thou liest, impudent
-bastard;’ retorted the haughty baron; ‘I will fight to-day in a place
-in which thou wilt not dare to set thy foot.’ The speaker immediately
-quitted the palace, and all the Hamiltons followed him.</p>
-
-<p>The earl of Angus then occupied the High Street, and his men, drawn up
-behind barricades, vigorously repulsed their adversaries with their
-pikes. Sir Patrick, with the most intrepid of his followers, cleared
-the entrenchments, threw himself into the High Street, and striking out
-vigorously all round him with his sword, fell mortally wounded, while
-the rash young man who had insulted him fled at full speed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PATRICK HAMILTON IN FRANCE.</div>
-
-<p>His son Patrick was no longer present in the manor-house of Kincavil,
-to mingle his tears with those of his mother. Escaping from the gloomy
-atmosphere of Caledonia, he had gone to enjoy in Paris the splendid
-light of civilization, almost at the same time at which the famous
-George Buchanan arrived there. ‘All hail!’ exclaimed these young
-Scotchmen, as they landed in France; ‘all hail! oh, happy Gaul! kind
-nurse of letters! Thou whose atmosphere is so healthful, whose soil<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span> is
-so fertile, whose bountiful hospitality welcomes all the universe, and
-who givest to the world in return the riches of thy spirit; thou whose
-language is so elegant, thou who art the common country of all peoples,
-who worshippest God in truth and without debasing thyself in outward
-observances! Oh! shall I not love thee as a son? shall I not honor thee
-all my life? All hail, oh, happy Gaul!’<a name="FNanchor_19_19" id="FNanchor_19_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is probable that Hamilton entered the Collège de Montaigu, the same
-to which Calvin was admitted four or five years later. At the time
-of Hamilton’s arrival Mayor (Major), who soon after removed to St.
-Andrews, was teacher of philosophy there.</p>
-
-<p>To a strong dislike of the writings of the sophists Hamilton joined a
-great love for those of the true philosophers. But presently a light
-more pure than that of Plato and Aristotle shone in his eyes. As early
-as 1520 the writings of Luther were read with eager interest by the
-students of the schools of Paris; some of whom took part with, others
-against the Reformation. Hamilton was listening to these disputations
-and reading the books which came from Germany, when suddenly he learnt
-the tragical death of Sir Patrick. He was profoundly affected by the
-tidings, and began to seek God with yet more ardor than before. He
-was one more example of the well-known fact, that at the very moment
-when all the sorrows of the earthly life overwhelm the soul, God
-gives to it the heavenly life. Two great events&mdash;the death of Sir
-Patrick, and the beginning of the Reformation in Paris&mdash;occurring
-simultaneously&mdash;occasioned in the soul of the young Scotchman a
-collision by which a divine spark was struck out. The fire once kindled
-in his heart, nothing could thenceforth extinguish it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hamilton took the degree of Master of Arts about the close of 1520,
-as still appears in the registers of the University. He may possibly
-have visited Louvain, where Erasmus then dwelt; he returned to Scotland
-probably in 1522.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER II.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">THE MOVEMENT OF REFORM BEGINS.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(1522 to April 1527.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<p>The Reformation seems to have begun in Scotland with the profession of
-those principles, Catholic but antipapal, which had been maintained a
-century earlier at the Council of Constance. There were doctors present
-there who set out from the thought that from the age of the Apostles
-there always had been, and that there always will be, a church one and
-universal, capable of remedying by its own action all abuses in its
-forms of worship, dissensions among its members, the hypocrisy of its
-priests, and the despotic assumptions of the first of its pontiffs.
-John Mayor had been recently called to Glasgow University. Among
-his audience there John Knox distinguished himself by his passion
-for study; and not far from him was another young Scotchman, of a
-less serious turn, Buchanan. ‘The church universal,’&mdash;so were they
-taught by the disciple of d’Ailly and of Gerson&mdash;‘when assembled in
-council, is above the pope, and may rebuke, judge, and even depose
-him. The Roman excommunications have no force at all if they are not
-conformed to justice. The ambition, the avarice, the worldly luxury
-of the Roman court and of the bishops are to be sharply censured.’ On
-another occasion, the professor, passing from theology to politics,
-avowed doctrines far in advance of his age. He taught that a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span> people,
-in its entirety, is above the monarch; that the power of the king is
-derived from the people, and that if a prince acts in opposition to
-the interests of his subjects, the latter have the right to dethrone
-him. Mayor went further still, even to the blameworthy extreme of
-asserting that in certain cases the king might be put to death.<a name="FNanchor_20_20" id="FNanchor_20_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a>
-These political principles, professed by one who occupied a Roman
-Catholic chair, thoroughly scholastic and superstitious, must have
-influenced the convictions of Buchanan, who afterwards, in his
-dialogue <i>De Jure Regni apud Scotos</i>, professed opinions which were
-energetically controverted, even by Protestants. ‘In the beginning,’
-said he, ‘we created legitimate kings, and we established laws binding
-equally on them and on ourselves.’<a name="FNanchor_21_21" id="FNanchor_21_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a> These political heresies of the
-sixteenth century are the truths of our days. The principles of Mayor
-were certainly not received without exception by Knox, but they had
-probably something to do with the firmness with which he maintained
-the rights of the Word of God in the presence of Mary Stuart. For the
-moment, Knox, disgusted with the barren theology of his master&mdash;a
-stanch scholastic on many points&mdash;forsook the wilderness of the schools
-and applied himself to the quest of the living fountains of the Word of
-God. In 1523 Mayor removed from Glasgow to St. Andrews.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PATRICK HAMILTON AT ST. ANDREWS.</div>
-
-<p>It was to St. Andrews that Patrick Hamilton betook himself on his
-return from the Continent, after a visit to the bereaved family
-of Kincavil. He was admitted on June 9 of the same year into the
-University of the metropolitan city, and on October 3 of the following
-year he was received member of the faculty of letters. St. Andrews
-had powerful attractions for him. No other university in the kingdom
-had on its staff<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span> so many enlightened men; and the college of St.
-Leonard’s, which he entered, was the one whose teaching had the most
-liberal tendencies. The studies which he had pursued, the knowledge
-which he had acquired, and the rank which he held, gave him distinction
-among his fellow-disciples. Buchanan, a severe judge, looked on him
-as a ‘young man of great intellect and of astonishing learning.’<a name="FNanchor_22_22" id="FNanchor_22_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a>
-Hamilton held the hypocrisy of the monks in such abomination that he
-never would adopt either their dress or their way of life; and although
-he was abbot of Ferne he never took up his residence in his monastery.
-Skilled in the musical art, he composed a chant in parts, which was
-performed in the cathedral, and delighted the hearers. He did more:
-he dreamed, as all reformers do at the outset of their career, of
-the transformation of the Catholic Church; he resolved to seek the
-imposition of hands, ‘in order,’ says Fryth, ‘that he might preach the
-pure Word of God.’ Hamilton did not, to be sure, preach at that time
-with the boldness and the power of a Luther or a Farel. He loved the
-weak; he felt himself weak; and being full of lowly-mindedness, he was
-content to impart faithfully the truth which he had received.</p>
-
-<p>About a year after the combat in which Sir Patrick was killed, the duke
-of Albany returned, with the intention of bringing about an intimate
-alliance between Scotland and France. Margaret Tudor, who wished for an
-alliance with England, and who found herself deprived of power by the
-arrival of Albany, wrote on September 13, 1523, to her brother Henry
-VIII.: ‘The person and the kingdom of my son are exposed to very great
-danger; come to our aid, come in all haste, or it is all over with my
-son!’<a name="FNanchor_23_23" id="FNanchor_23_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a> It might perhaps have been all over with the Reformation
-too&mdash;a far more important<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span> matter. But Albany, although he was at the
-head of a fine army, fled on two occasions before the English, and
-being despised by everybody, quitted Scotland forever at the close of
-May 1524.<a name="FNanchor_24_24" id="FNanchor_24_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">WRITINGS OF LUTHER PROSCRIBED.</div>
-
-<p>He had only just set sail when the cause of the Reformation, threatened
-by his presence, received a powerful reinforcement. In 1524, and at
-the beginning of 1525, some books of Luther and of other Reformers
-were brought into Scotland by merchant-ships, and getting dispersed
-over the country, produced there the same effect as they had in France
-and in Italy. Gawin Dunbar, the old bishop of Aberdeen, was the first
-to become aware of this. He discovered one day a volume of Luther
-in his own town. He was in consternation when he saw that the fiery
-darts hurled by the hand of the heretic were crossing the sea. As like
-discoveries were made in Linlithgow, St. Andrews, and other places, the
-affair was brought before Parliament. ‘Damnable heresies are spread
-abroad in various countries,’ said the partisans of Rome. ‘This kingdom
-of Scotland, its sovereigns and their subjects, have always stood fast
-in the holy faith since they received it in the primitive age; attempts
-are being made at this moment to turn them away from it. Let us take
-all needful steps to repulse the attack.’ Consequently, on July 17,
-1525, parliament enacted that no person arriving in any part of the
-kingdom should introduce any book of Luther or of his disciples, or
-should publish the opinions of that German except for the purpose of
-refuting them, ‘Scotland having always bene clene of all filth and
-vice.’<a name="FNanchor_25_25" id="FNanchor_25_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a></p>
-
-<p>This act was immediately published throughout the country, and
-particularly at all ports, in order that no one might be able to
-pretend ignorance of it. About four days after the closing of
-parliament the sheriffs<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span> received orders from the king’s council to
-set on foot without delay the necessary inquiries for the discovery
-of persons who might possess any books of Luther, or who should
-profess his errors. ‘You will confiscate their books,’ the order ran,
-‘and transmit them to us.’ The Reformation, which till that time had
-been almost unknown in those regions, became suddenly a public fact,
-proclaimed by the highest body in the realm, and was on the point of
-preoccupying all minds. The enemies of the truth were preparing its
-triumph.</p>
-
-<p>However, the question was whether the young king would lean towards the
-side of Rome or the side of the Gospel. James V., in whose name the
-decree against the Reformation had been issued, had in reality nothing
-at all to do with it. Amiable and generous, but a weakling and lover of
-pleasure, he was so backward in his learning that for want of knowing
-English he could not read the letters of his uncle Henry VIII.<a name="FNanchor_26_26" id="FNanchor_26_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> He
-was a child under tutelage; he spoke to no one except in the presence
-of some member of the council, and Angus took care to foster in him
-the taste for pleasure in order to turn away his attention from public
-affairs. That taste was moreover quite natural to the young prince. His
-life was devoted to games, to arms, to the chase; he made request to
-Henry VIII. to send him swords and bucklers, the armor made in London
-being far more beautiful than that of Edinburgh. He sacrificed business
-to pleasure all the more readily because those who were about him were
-living in a state of entire disunion. The three chief personages of the
-realm, archbishop Beatoun, head of the priests, Angus, leader of the
-nobles, and the queen-mother who intrigued with both parties, were at
-open war.<a name="FNanchor_27_27" id="FNanchor_27_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> Margaret desired both to get a divorce from Angus and to
-avenge herself on the arch<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span>bishop who thwarted her in her projects.<a name="FNanchor_28_28" id="FNanchor_28_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a>
-In the midst of all these ambitious ones the young king was like a prey
-over which the vultures fight.</p>
-
-<p>In May 1525, James having reached his fourteenth year, had been
-declared of age, in conformity with the law of Scotland. It had been
-a mere matter of form. Angus, supported by the most powerful of the
-nobles and by the parliament, verified the fears of the queen; he gave
-all places to the Douglases, and taking the Great Seal from archbishop
-Beatoun, kept it himself. The queen-mother indignantly entreated her
-very dear brother to secure the intervention of the pope on behalf of
-her son.<a name="FNanchor_29_29" id="FNanchor_29_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a> All was useless: the authority of the bold and ambitious
-Angus remained unimpaired.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES V. AND THE PRIESTS.</div>
-
-<p>The young prince, then, wearied with the yoke, threw himself, after the
-tradition of his fathers, into the arms of the priests, and in order
-to escape the aristocracy submitted himself to the clergy. This was a
-grievous prognostic for Reform. At the end of the summer of 1526, the
-queen, archbishop Beatoun, and other members of the priestly and royal
-party, assembled at Stirling Castle, and a plan was there considered
-and determined on which was to take away the chief power from the
-nobles and give it to the bishops. John Stuart, earl of Lennox, a
-friend of James V., set out from that fortress on September 4, at the
-head of from ten to twelve thousand men, and marched on Edinburgh. But
-Angus was already informed of what was in preparation, and Arran, who
-had made his peace with him, was ready. The same day, in the morning,
-the trumpet sounded in the capital, and the chief of the Douglases set
-forth at the head of his army, dragging after him the young monarch.
-The latter was in hope that the hour of his de<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span>liverance was come: he
-advanced slowly in the rear of the army, in spite of the brutal threats
-of Sir G. Douglas, his guardian. Presently the report of cannons was
-heard: the king stopped. George Douglas, fancying that he would attempt
-to escape, cried out, ‘Don’t think of running away, for if our enemies
-had hold of you on one side and we on the other, we would pull you in
-two rather than let you go.’ The King never forgot that word. Angus won
-the day. Lennox had been killed by the savage James Hamilton, and the
-father of the latter, when he heard it, had thrown his scarlet cloak
-over the body of Lennox, exclaiming: ‘Here lies a man, the boldest,
-the mightiest, and the wisest that Scotland ever possessed!’ At the
-tidings of this great disaster all was confusion in Stirling Castle.
-The queen fled in disguise and concealed herself: archbishop Beatoun
-put off his pontifical robes, took the dress of a shepherd, and went
-into retirement among the herdsmen of the Fifeshire hills, where for
-nearly three months he kept a flock, no one the while suspecting that
-he was the lord chancellor of the realm. Thus the anticipated triumph
-of the primate and the priests, which would have been fatal to the
-Reformation, was changed into a total rout, and greater religious
-freedom was given to Scotland.<a name="FNanchor_30_30" id="FNanchor_30_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a></p>
-
-<p>But this was not enough. The reform of the Church by the Church itself
-would not suffice; nor would reform by the writings of the reformers;
-there was need of a mightier principle,&mdash;the Word of God. This Word
-does not merely communicate a bare knowledge; it works a transformation
-in the will and in the life of man, and as soon as such a change is
-accomplished in two or three individuals in any place whatsoever, there
-exists a church. The increased liberty enjoyed in Scotland after the
-flight of the primate favored the introduction<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span> of this mighty Word,
-to which it was reserved to effect the complete enfranchisement of the
-nation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">TYNDALE’S NEW TESTAMENTS IMPORTED.</div>
-
-<p>Early in the summer, merchants of Leith, Dundee, St. Andrews, Montrose,
-and Aberdeen, sent out their ships laden with the productions of
-Scotland to the ports of the Netherlands, Middelburg, Antwerp, and
-other towns, there to procure commodities for which there was a demand
-among the Scotch. At that time there was no prohibition against the
-introduction of the New Testament into Scotland: only the books of
-Luther and other reformers were proscribed. These good Scottish seamen
-took advantage of this; and one day Hacket, who had received orders
-from Henry VIII. to burn all the Testaments translated by Tyndale
-(and this ‘for the preservation of the Christian faith’), learnt at
-Berg-op-Zoom, where he then was, that the Scottish traders had put on
-board many copies of the Gospels as they were on the point of setting
-sail for Edinburgh and St. Andrews. He started with all speed for the
-ports which had been named to him: ‘I will seize those books,’ said
-he, ‘even though they be already on board the ships, and I will make
-a good fire of them.’<a name="FNanchor_31_31" id="FNanchor_31_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> He got there: but alas! no more Scottish
-vessels; they had sailed one day before his arrival. ‘Fortune,’ said
-he, ‘did not allow me to get there in time; ah, well, have patience.’
-And he gave good instructions on the matter to M. de Bever, admiral of
-Flanders, and to Mr. Moffit, conservator of the Scottish nation in that
-country.<a name="FNanchor_32_32" id="FNanchor_32_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was during the time that archbishop Beatoun, arch-foe of the
-Reformation, was feeding his sheep on the Fifeshire hills in September,
-October, and November 1526, that the New Testaments arrived and were
-distributed in the towns and neighboring districts. Scotland and
-England received the Holy Scriptures from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span> same country and almost
-at the same time. The citizens of Edinburgh and the canons of St.
-Andrews were reading that astonishing book as well as the citizens of
-London and the canons of Oxford. There were monks who declared that it
-was a bad book ‘recently invented by Martin Luther,’ but the reading of
-it was not forbidden. At St. Andrews especially these sacred writings
-soon shed the evangelical light over the souls of men.<a name="FNanchor_33_33" id="FNanchor_33_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PATRICK HAMILTON’S PREACHING.</div>
-
-<p>There was in that town a young man who was already acquainted with
-the great facts of salvation announced in this book, and who was well
-qualified to circulate and explain it. Patrick Hamilton, gifted with
-keen intelligence and a Christian heart, knew how to set forth in a
-concise and natural manner the truths of which he was convinced. He
-knew that there is in the Scriptures a wisdom superior to the human
-understanding, and that in order to comprehend them there is need of
-the illumination of the Holy Spirit. He believed that with the written
-it is necessary to combine oral teaching; and that as Testaments were
-come from the Netherlands, Scotland needed the spoken word which
-should call restless and degenerate souls to seek in them the living
-water which springs up unto life eternal. God was then preparing His
-witnesses in Scotland, and the first was Patrick Hamilton. He laid
-open the New Testament; he set forth the facts and the doctrines
-contained in it; he defended the evangelical principles. His father,
-the foremost of Scottish knights, had not broken so many lances in the
-tournament as Patrick now broke in his college, at the university, with
-the canons, and with all who set themselves against the truth.<a name="FNanchor_34_34" id="FNanchor_34_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a> At
-the begin<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span>ning of Lent 1527, he publicly preached in the cathedral and
-elsewhere the doctrines (heresies, said his sentence) taught by Martin
-Luther.<a name="FNanchor_35_35" id="FNanchor_35_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a> We have no further particulars of his preaching; but these
-are sufficient to show us that at this period the people who gathered
-together in the ancient churches of Scotland heard this faithful
-minister announce that ‘it is not the law, that terrible tyrant, as
-Luther said, that is to reign in the conscience, but the Son of God,
-the king of justice and of peace, who, like a fruitful rain, descends
-from heaven and fertilizes the most barren soil.’<a name="FNanchor_36_36" id="FNanchor_36_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a></p>
-
-<p>Circumstances were by no means favorable to the Reformation. Archbishop
-Beatoun had soon thrown off his shepherd’s dress and left the flocks
-which he was feeding in the solitary pastures of Bogrian in Fifeshire.
-The simple, rude, and isolated life of the keeper of sheep was a
-sufficiently severe chastisement for an ambitious, intriguing, and
-worldly spirit: day and night, therefore, he was looking for some means
-of deliverance. Although he was then sleeping on the ground, he had
-plenty of gold and great estates: this wealth, the omnipotence of
-which he knew well, would suffice, said he to himself, to ransom him
-from the abject service to which a political reverse had reduced him.
-Since the victory of Linlithgow, Angus had exercised the royal power
-without opposition. It was needful then that Beatoun should gain over
-that terrible conqueror. The queen-mother, who had also fled at first,
-having ventured two months later to approach Edinburgh, her son had
-re<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span>ceived her and conducted her to Holyrood palace. This encouraged the
-archbishop. His nephew, David Beatoun, abbot of Arbroath, was as clever
-and as ambitious as his uncle, but he hated still more passionately all
-who refused to submit to the Roman Church. The archbishop entreated him
-to negotiate his return; the party of the nobles was hard to win; but
-the abbot, having gained over the provost of Edinburgh, Sir Archibald
-Douglas, uncle of Angus, the bargain was struck. The archbishop was
-to pay two thousand Scottish marks to Angus, one thousand to George
-Douglas, the king’s gaoler, one thousand to cruel James Hamilton, the
-assassin of Lennox, and to make a present of the abbey of Kilwinning to
-the earl of Arran. Beatoun, charmed, threw away his crook, started for
-Edinburgh, and resumed his episcopal functions at St. Andrews.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON DECLARED A HERETIC.</div>
-
-<p>It was some time after the return of Beatoun that the king’s cousin
-began to preach at St. Andrews the glad tidings of free salvation
-through faith in Christ. Such doctrines could not be taught without
-giving rise to agitation. The clergy took alarm, some priests and
-monks went to the castle and prayed the archbishop to chastise the
-young preacher. Beatoun ordered an inquiry: it was carried out very
-precisely. The persons with whom Hamilton had engaged in discussion
-were heard, and some of his hearers gave evidence as to the matter of
-his discourses. He was declared a heretic. Beatoun was not cruel; he
-would perhaps have been content with seeking to bring back by fatherly
-exhortations the young and interesting Hamilton into the paths of
-the Church. But the primate had by his side some fanatical spirits,
-especially his nephew David, and they redoubled their urgency to such
-a degree that the archbishop ordered Hamilton to appear before him to
-give an account of his faith.<a name="FNanchor_37_37" id="FNanchor_37_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a></p>
-
-<p>The inquiry could not be made without this noble<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span> Christian hearing of
-it. He perceived the fate that awaited him; his friends perceived it
-too. If he should appear before the archbishop, it was all up with him.
-Everyone was moved with compassion; some of his enemies even, touched
-by his youth, the loveliness of his character, and his illustrious
-birth, wished to see him escape death. There was no time to lose, for
-the order of the archiepiscopal court was already signed; several
-conjured him to fly. What should he do? All his desire was to show to
-others the peace that filled his own soul; but at the same time he
-knew how much was still wanting to him. Who could better enlighten and
-strengthen him than the reformers of Germany? Who more able to put him
-in a position to return afterwards to preach Christ with power? He
-resolved to go. Two of his friends, Hamilton of Linlithgow and Gilbert
-Wynram of Edinburgh, determined to accompany him. Preparations for
-their departure were made with the greatest possible secrecy. Hamilton
-took with him one servant, and the three young Scotchmen, finding their
-way furtively to the coast, embarked on board a merchant-ship. It was
-in the latter half of the month of April 1527. This unlooked-for escape
-greatly provoked those who had set their minds on taking the life of
-the evangelist. ‘He, of evil mind, as may be presumed, passed forth of
-the realm,’<a name="FNanchor_38_38" id="FNanchor_38_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a> said the archbishop’s familiars. No: his intention was
-to be instructed, to increase in spiritual life from day to day. He
-landed at the beginning of May in one of the ports of the Netherlands.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER III.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">HAMILTON PREPARES HIMSELF IN GERMANY FOR THE REFORMATION OF SCOTLAND.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(Spring, Summer, Autumn, 1527.)</p>
-
-<p>At the time of Hamilton’s arrival on the Continent, the germ of the
-Reformation of Scotland already lay in his heart. His association
-with the doctors of Germany would prove the identity of this great
-spiritual movement, which everywhere was overthrowing the same abuses,
-and bringing anew to the surface the same truths. In which direction
-should the young Christian hero of Scotland now turn his footsteps? All
-his ambition was to go to Wittenberg, to hear Luther, Melanchthon, and
-the other reformers; but circumstances led him to go first to Marburg.
-This town lay on his way, and a renowned printer, Hans Luft, was then
-publishing there the works of Tyndale. In fact, on May 8, 1527, at
-the moment of Patrick’s arrival on the Continent, there appeared at
-Marburg the <i>Parable of the Wicked Mammon</i>; and seven months later,
-December 11, Luft published <i>The Veritable Obedience of a Christian
-Man</i>. But Hamilton flattered himself that he should find at Marburg
-something more than Tyndale’s writings&mdash;Tyndale himself. English
-evangelical works had at that time to get printed in Germany, and, as
-far as possible, under the eye of the author. The young Scotchman had
-hopes then of meeting at Marburg the translator of the New Testament,
-the reformer of England, and even Fryth, who might be with him. One
-reason more positive still influenced Hamilton. He was aware that
-Lambert<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span> d’Avignon, the one man of all the reformers whose views most
-nearly approached those which prevailed afterwards in Scotland, had
-been called to Marburg by the landgrave. Philip of Hesse himself was
-the most determined, the most courageous of all the Protestant princes.
-How many motives were there inclining him to stay in that town! An
-extraordinary circumstance decided the young Scotchman. The landgrave,
-defender of piety and of letters,<a name="FNanchor_39_39" id="FNanchor_39_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a> was about to found there the
-first evangelical university, ‘for the restoration of the liberal
-sciences.’<a name="FNanchor_40_40" id="FNanchor_40_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a> Its inauguration was fixed to take place on May 30.
-Hamilton and his friends might arrive in time. They bent their course
-towards Hesse, and reached the banks of the Lahn.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">UNIVERSITY OF MARBURG.</div>
-
-<p>At the time of their arrival the little town was full of unaccustomed
-movement. Undiverted by this stir, Hamilton hastened to find out the
-Frenchman whose name had been mentioned to him and other learned
-men who were likely also to be at Marburg. He found the sprightly,
-pious, and resolute Lambert, an opponent, like the landgrave, of
-half-measures, and a man determined to take action in such wise that
-the Reformation should not be checked halfway. The young abbot of the
-North and the aged monk of the South thus met, understood each other,
-and soon lived together in great familiarity.<a name="FNanchor_41_41" id="FNanchor_41_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a> Lambert said to him
-that the hidden things had been revealed by Jesus Christ; that what
-distinguishes our religion from all others is the fact that God has
-spoken to us; that the Scriptures are sufficient to make us perfect. He
-did not philosophize much, persuaded that by dint of philosophizing one
-swerves from the truth. He set aside with equal energy the superstition
-which invents a marvellous mythology,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span> and the incredulity which denies
-divine and supernatural action. ‘Everything which has been perverted
-[<i>déformé</i>] must be reformed [<i>réformé</i>],’ said Lambert, ‘and all
-reform which proceeds otherwise than according to the Word of God, is
-nothing.<a name="FNanchor_42_42" id="FNanchor_42_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a> All the inventions of human reason are, in the matter of
-religion, nothing but trifling and rubbish.’</p>
-
-<p>The commotion which then prevailed amongst the population of Marburg
-was occasioned by the approaching inauguration of the university
-founded by the landgrave. On May 30 the chancellor presided at that
-ceremony. No school of learning had ever been founded on such a basis;
-one must suppose that the union which ought to exist between science
-and faith was in this case unrecognized. There is nothing in Hamilton’s
-writings to show that in this matter he shared the opinions of Lambert.
-With great evangelical simplicity as to the faith, the Scotchman had
-rather, in his manner of setting it forth, a metaphysical, speculative
-tendency, which is a marked feature of the Scottish mind. The
-principles which were to characterize the new university were these:
-‘The Holy Scriptures,’ says a document of Marburg which has been
-preserved, ‘ought to be purely and piously interpreted, and no one who
-fails to do so is to teach in the school. From the science of law must
-be cut off everything which is either unchristian or impious.<a name="FNanchor_43_43" id="FNanchor_43_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a> It is
-not mere scholars who are to be appointed in the faculties of law, of
-medicine, of the sciences, and of letters, but men who shall combine
-with science the knowledge of the Holy Scriptures and piety.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SCIENCE AND FAITH.</div>
-
-<p>Thus we see that the opposition between science and faith was already
-attracting attention, and the landgrave settled the question by
-excluding science and those learned in it, since they were not in
-agreement with the Scriptures; just as in other ages men would have
-the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span>ology and theologians set aside, since they were not in agreement
-with human learning. No one ought to teach in the schools of theology
-except in conformity with the Scriptures of God, the supreme authority
-in the Church. To disregard this principle is to take in hand to
-destroy the flock of God. The fanaticism of the School, however,
-cannot justify the fanaticism of the Church. It is a grave matter
-to banish science on account of the dangers to which it exposes us.
-To exclude the fire from the hearth for fear of conflagration would
-not be reasonable; far better to take the precautions which good
-sense points out for preventing the evil. If science and faith are
-to advance together without peril, it can only be brought about by
-the intervention of the moral principle. The existence of so-called
-freethinkers arises from a moral decay; certain excesses of an
-exaggerated orthodoxy may perhaps proceed from the same cause. A
-presumptuous and passionate haste, affirming and denying to the first
-comer, is a grave fault. How many times has it happened that some law,
-some fact proclaimed by science at one period as sufficient to convict
-the Scriptures of error, has had to be given up soon after by science
-herself as a mistake. But let religious men be on their guard against
-the indolence and the cowardice which would lead them to repulse
-science, out of fear lest she should remain mistress of the field of
-battle. By so doing they would deprive themselves of the weapons most
-serviceable for the defence of their treasures as well as of the most
-fitting occasions for spreading them abroad. Lambert did not go to such
-a length; but he was persuaded that unless a breath divine, coming
-from on high, give life to academical teaching, the university would
-be nothing more than a dead mechanism, and that science, instead of
-propagating a healthy and enlightened cultivation, would only darken
-and pervert men’s minds. This is surely a very reasonable and very
-practical thought, and it is to be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span> regretted that it has not always
-regulated public instruction.</p>
-
-<p>After the delivery of the inaugural discourses, the rector, Montanus,
-professor of Civil Law, opened the roll of the university, to enter in
-it the names of its members. Professors, pastors, state functionaries,
-nobles, foreigners, students, one hundred and ten persons in all,
-gave their names. The first to sign was the rector, the second was
-Lambert; then came Adam Crato, professor Ehrard Schnepf, one of
-the first Germans converted by Luther, Enricius Cordus, who had
-accompanied Luther to Worms, and Hermann von dem Busche, professor of
-Poetry and Eloquence. In a little while three young men of foreign
-aspect approached. The first of them signed his name thus: <i>Patricius
-Hamilton, a Litgovien, Scotus, magister Parisiensis</i>;<a name="FNanchor_44_44" id="FNanchor_44_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a> his two
-friends signed after him.</p>
-
-<p>From that time the Frenchman and the Scotchman frequently studied the
-Holy Scriptures together, and with interest always new. The large
-acquaintance with the Word of God which Hamilton possessed, astonished
-Lambert: the freshness of his thoughts and of his imagination charmed
-him; the integrity of his character inspired a high esteem for him;
-his profound remarks on the Gospel edified him. A short time after
-this, the Frenchman, speaking to the landgrave Philip, said:&mdash;‘This
-young man, of the illustrious family of the Hamiltons, which is
-closely allied, by the ties of blood, to the king and the kingdom of
-Scotland,<a name="FNanchor_45_45" id="FNanchor_45_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a> who although hardly twenty-three years of age, brings to
-the study of Scripture a very sound judgment, and has a vast store<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span> of
-knowledge, is come from the end of the world, from Scotland, to your
-academy, in order to be more fully established in God’s truth. I have
-hardly ever met a man who expresses himself with so much spirituality
-and truth on the Word of the Lord.’ Such is the testimony given in
-Germany, by a Frenchman, to the young reformer of Scotland.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LUTHER’S ILLNESS.</div>
-
-<p>Will Hamilton remain at Marburg? Shall he not see Luther, Melanchthon,
-and the other doctors of the Reformation? It has been generally
-supposed that he did go to Wittenberg; but there is no evidence
-of this, either in the University registers or in Luther’s or
-Melanchthon’s letters. This tradition, therefore, appears to us to be
-unfounded. As Hamilton had, however, formed the intention of visiting
-Luther when he left Scotland, what motive led him to relinquish his
-design? It was this. Early in July, at the very time when the young
-Scotchman might have gone to Wittenberg, a report was spread abroad
-that Luther had suddenly fallen ill. On July 7 he had lost the use of
-his senses, his body lay motionless, the heart scarcely beating, while
-his wife and his weeping friends stood round the bed, on which he was
-stretched as if dead. He came to himself, however, and, persuaded that
-he was at the point of death,<a name="FNanchor_46_46" id="FNanchor_46_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a> he resigned himself entirely to the
-hand of God and prayed with much fervency. At the same time the report
-ran in Germany that the plague was raging at Wittenberg. When Luther
-had recovered a little strength, he wrote to Spalatin:&mdash;‘May the Lord
-have pity on me and not forsake <i>his</i> sinner!’<a name="FNanchor_47_47" id="FNanchor_47_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a> Soon after, he had
-fresh attacks. ‘Ah,’ said he to his friends, ‘people fancy, because
-joy usually brightens my countenance, that I walk on roses, but God
-knows how rugged life is for me!’ One day, when Jonas had come<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span> to take
-supper with him, Luther, feeling ill during the meal, suddenly rose,
-and after taking a few steps fell in a fainting fit. ‘Water, water,’
-cried he, ‘or I die.’ As he lay on the bed, he lifted up his eyes and
-said: ‘O my beloved Lord, thou art master of life and of death, do
-as it pleaseth thee. Only remember that it is thou who didst bid me
-undertake this work, and that it is for thy truth, for thy Word, that I
-have fought.’</p>
-
-<p>On the following day, at six o’clock in the evening, as Jonas again
-stood by the bedside of his friend, he heard him calling on the Lord,
-sometimes in German, sometimes in Latin. The thought that he had not
-done enough, nor suffered enough for his Saviour, distressed him.
-‘Ah,’ said he, ‘I have not been judged worthy to shed my blood for
-the love of Christ, as several of my brethren have done.’ Presently a
-thought consoled him: ‘St. John the Evangelist also,’ said he, ‘had not
-that honor&mdash;he who nevertheless wrote a book (Apocalypse) against the
-papacy, far more severe than any that I could ever write.’<a name="FNanchor_48_48" id="FNanchor_48_48"></a><a href="#Footnote_48_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a> After
-that he had his little John brought to him, and looking at the mother
-of the boy, he said, ‘You have nothing; but God will provide for you.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE PLAGUE AT WITTENBERG.</div>
-
-<p>The plague, as we have said, was at Wittenberg. Two persons died of it
-in Melanchthon’s house; one of his sons was attacked, and one of the
-sons of Jonas lost his life. Hans Luft, the printer of Marburg, who was
-at Wittenberg on business, fell ill, and his mind wandered.<a name="FNanchor_49_49" id="FNanchor_49_49"></a><a href="#Footnote_49_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a> He was
-removed to Marburg, where Hamilton was.</p>
-
-<p>Terror became general at Wittenberg. All who could do so, and
-especially the students, quitted the town; the university was
-transferred to Jena. Luther pressed the elector to go thither with
-his family, but, he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span> added, in such calamities pastors must bide at
-their post. He remained therefore, and Melanchthon, who was visiting
-the churches in Saxony, received orders to go to Jena and resume his
-lectures there. During this period Luther, having regained some little
-strength, was visiting the sick and consoling the dying. In the course
-of a few days he had about him eighteen dead, some of whom even expired
-almost in his arms.<a name="FNanchor_50_50" id="FNanchor_50_50"></a><a href="#Footnote_50_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a> He received into his house the poor, widows,
-orphans, and even the plague-stricken; his house become a hospital.<a name="FNanchor_51_51" id="FNanchor_51_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a>
-His wife and his son were attacked. ‘What conflicts!’ cried he, ‘what
-terrors! No matter; though the malady waste the body, the Word of
-God saves the soul.’ He again fell ill himself, and thinking that he
-was nigh to death, he wrote to Melanchthon: ‘Pray for me, vile and
-miserable worm. I have only one glory, and that is that I have taught
-purely the word of God.<a name="FNanchor_52_52" id="FNanchor_52_52"></a><a href="#Footnote_52_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a> He who has begun the work will complete it.
-I seek only Him; I thirst for nothing but his grace.’</p>
-
-<p>Such, doubtless, were the circumstances which detained Hamilton at
-Marburg. On hearing that in consequence of the plague the courses of
-lectures had partly at least been transferred to Jena, he gave up
-Wittenberg; and thus is explained quite naturally the want of original
-documents respecting his alleged sojourn at the Saxon university. A
-very painful sacrifice was thus demanded of him. Lambert resolved
-to turn the disappointment to good account. Having a high idea of
-the faith, the judgment, and abilities of Hamilton, he begged him to
-compose some <i>theses</i> on the evangelical doctrine, and to defend them
-publicly. Everyone supported this request; for an academical solemnity,
-at which a foreign theologian belonging to the royal family<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span> of
-Scotland should hold the chief place, could not fail to throw a certain
-<i>éclat</i> over the new university. Hamilton consented.<a name="FNanchor_53_53" id="FNanchor_53_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a> His subject
-was quickly chosen. In his eyes a man’s religion was not sound unless
-it had its source in the Word of God and in the inmost experience of
-the soul which receives that Word, and is thereby led into the truth.
-He deemed it necessary to present the doctrine in this practical
-aspect, rather than to lose himself in the speculative theorems of an
-obscure scholasticism.</p>
-
-<p>On the appointed day Hamilton entered the great hall of the university,
-in which were gathered professors, students, and a numerous audience
-besides. He announced that he was about to establish a certain number
-of truths respecting <i>the law and the Gospel</i>, and that he would
-maintain them against all comers. These theses, all of a practical
-character, had however somewhat of that dialectical spirit which
-distinguished at a subsequent period the philosophical schools of
-Scotland, and were drawn up in a pure and <i>lapidary</i> style which
-secures for this theologian of three-and-twenty a noteworthy place
-among the doctors of the sixteenth century.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON’S THESES.</div>
-
-<p>‘There is a difference, and even an opposition, between the law and
-the Gospel,’ said Hamilton. ‘The law showeth us our sin; the Gospel
-showeth us remedy for it. The law showeth us our condemnation; the
-Gospel showeth us our redemption. The law is the word of ire; the
-Gospel is the word of grace. The law is the word of despair; the Gospel
-is the word of comfort. The law is the word of unrest; the Gospel is
-the word of peace.<a name="FNanchor_54_54" id="FNanchor_54_54"></a><a href="#Footnote_54_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a> The law saith, Pay thy debt; the Gospel saith,
-Christ hath paid it. The law saith, Thou art a sinner&mdash;despair, and
-thou shalt be damned; the Gospel<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span> saith, Thy sins are forgiven thee:
-be of good comfort, thou shalt be saved. The law saith, Make amends
-for thy sins; the Gospel saith, Christ hath made it for thee. The law
-saith, The Father of heaven is angry with thee; the Gospel saith,
-Christ hath pacified him with his blood. The law saith, Where is thy
-righteousness, goodness, and satisfaction? the Gospel saith, Christ
-is thy righteousness, thy goodness, thy satisfaction. The law saith,
-Thou art bound and obliged to me, to the devil and to hell; the Gospel
-saith, Christ hath delivered thee from them all.’<a name="FNanchor_55_55" id="FNanchor_55_55"></a><a href="#Footnote_55_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a></p>
-
-<p>The attack began, and the defence of the young Master of Arts was as
-remarkable as his exposition. Even though he made use of the syllogism,
-he shook off the dust of the school, and put something perspicuous
-and striking in its place. When one opponent maintained that a man is
-justified by the law, Hamilton replied by this syllogism:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>‘That which is the cause of condemnation cannot be the cause of
-justification.</p>
-
-<p>‘The law is the cause of condemnation.</p>
-
-<p>‘Therefore the law is not the cause of justification.’</p>
-
-<p>His phraseology, clear, concise, and salient&mdash;rare qualities in
-Germany, except perhaps in Luther&mdash;his practical, transparent,
-conscientious Christianity&mdash;struck the minds of his hearers. Certainly,
-said Lambert, Hamilton has put forward thoroughly Christian axioms, and
-has maintained them with a great deal of learning.<a name="FNanchor_56_56" id="FNanchor_56_56"></a><a href="#Footnote_56_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a></p>
-
-<p>Hamilton engaged in other public disputations besides this. As faith in
-Christ and justification by faith is the principle which distinguishes
-Protestantism from other Christian systems, he felt bound to establish
-the nature, importance, and influence of that doctrine. He believed
-that faith is born in a man’s heart when, as he hears<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span> or reads the
-Word of God, the Holy Spirit bears witness in his heart to the main
-truth which is found in it, and shows him with clear proof that Jesus
-is really an almighty Saviour. Faith was for the young Scotchman a
-divine work, which he carefully distinguished from a faith merely
-human. On this subject he laid down and defended the following
-propositions:&mdash;‘He who does not believe the Word of God, does not
-believe God himself. Faith is the root of all that is good; unbelief is
-the root of all evil. Faith makes friends of God and of man; unbelief
-makes enemies of them. Faith lets us see in God a father full of
-gentleness; unbelief presents him to us as a terrible judge. Faith sets
-a man steadfast on a rock; unbelief leaves him constantly wavering and
-tottering. To wish to be saved by works is to make a man’s self his
-saviour, instead of Jesus Christ. Wouldst thou make thyself equal with
-God? Wouldst thou refuse to accept the least thing from him without
-paying him the value of it?’</p>
-
-<p>Fryth, who doubtless took part in the discussion, was so much struck
-with these theses that he translated them into English, and by that
-means they have come down to us. ‘The truths which Hamilton expounded
-are such,’ said he, ‘that the man who is acquainted with them has the
-<i>pith</i> of all divinity.’<a name="FNanchor_57_57" id="FNanchor_57_57"></a><a href="#Footnote_57_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a> ‘This little treatise is short,’ said
-others who listened to him, ‘but in effect it comprehendeth matter able
-to fill large volumes.’<a name="FNanchor_58_58" id="FNanchor_58_58"></a><a href="#Footnote_58_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a> Yes, Christ is the author of redemption, and
-faith is the eye which sees and receives him. There are only these two
-things: Christ sacrificed and the eye which contemplates him. The eye,
-it is true, is not man’s only organ; we have besides hands to work,
-feet to walk, ears to hear, and other members more for our service. But
-none of all these members can see, but only the eye.<a name="FNanchor_59_59" id="FNanchor_59_59"></a><a href="#Footnote_59_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON’S THESES.</div>
-
-<p>In the midst of all these labors, however, Hamilton was thinking of
-Scotland. It was not of the benefices which had been conferred on him,
-not of St. Andrews, nor of the misty lochs or picturesque glens; it was
-not even of his family, or of his friends that he thought the most.
-What occupied his mind night and day was the ignorance and superstition
-in which his countrymen were living. What powerfully appealed to him
-was the necessity of giving glory to God and of doing good to his own
-people. And yet would it not be madness to return to them? Had he not
-seen the animosity of the Scottish clergy? Did he not know well the
-power of the primate Beatoun? Had he not, only six or seven months
-before, left his country in all haste? Why then these thoughts of
-returning? There was good reason for them. Hamilton had been fortified
-in spirit during his sojourn at Marburg; his faith and his courage had
-increased; by living with decided Christians, who were ready to give
-their lives for the Gospel, he had been tempered like steel and had
-become stronger. It could not be doubted that extreme peril awaited
-him in Scotland; his two friends, John Hamilton and Wynram, did not
-understand his impatience and were resolved to wait. But neither their
-example nor the urgency of Lambert could quench the ardor of the young
-hero. He felt the sorrow of parting with Lambert and of finally giving
-up the hope of seeing Luther and Melanchthon; but he had heard God’s
-call; his one duty was to answer to it. About the end of autumn 1527
-he embarked with his faithful servant and sailed towards the shores of
-Caledonia.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">EVANGELIZATION, TRIBULATIONS, AND SUCCESS OF HAMILTON IN SCOTLAND.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(End of 1527 to the end of February 1528.)</p>
-
-<p>The Church of Rome, in the sixteenth century, especially in Scotland,
-was far from being apostolic, although it assumed that title: nothing
-was less like St. John or St. Peter than its primates and its prelates,
-worldlings and sometimes warriors as they were. The real successors
-of the apostles were those reformers, who taught the doctrines of the
-apostles, labored as they did, and like them were persecuted and put
-to death. The theocratic and political elements combined in Rome have,
-with certain exceptions, substituted the law, that is, outward worship,
-ceremonial ordinances, pilgrimages and the exercises of ascetic
-life for the Gospel. The Reformation was a powerful reaction of the
-evangelical and moral element against the legal, sacerdotal, ascetic
-and ritualistic elements which had invaded the Church. This reaction
-was about to display its energy in Scotland, and Hamilton was to be at
-first its principal organ.</p>
-
-<p>Already, before his return, the sacred books had arrived in large
-numbers in the principal ports of the kingdom. Attention had been
-awakened; but at the same time ignorance, dishonesty, and fanaticism
-had risen in revolt against the Evangelical Scriptures. The priests
-said that the <i>Old</i> Testament was the only true one, and pretended
-that the <i>New</i> had been recently invented by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span> Martin Luther.<a name="FNanchor_60_60" id="FNanchor_60_60"></a><a href="#Footnote_60_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a>
-Consequently, in August 1527, the earl of Angus, at the instigation of
-Dunbar, bishop of Aberdeen, had confirmed the ordinance of 1525, and
-had decreed that the king’s subjects who circulated the sacred books
-should be visited with the same penalties as people from abroad. If,
-therefore, a vessel arrived at Leith, Dundee, St. Andrews, or Aberdeen,
-the king’s officers immediately went on board, and if any copies of
-the <i>New</i> Testament were found there, the ship and the cargo were
-confiscated and the captain was imprisoned.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON’S ZEAL.</div>
-
-<p>Some time after this ordinance, the ship which carried Hamilton reached
-port, and although this young Christian always had his New Testament
-in his pocket, he landed without being arrested and went his way to
-Kincavil. It was about the end of 1527. Patrick tenderly loved his
-mother and his sister; everybody appreciated his amiable character;
-the servants and all his neighbors were his friends. This gentleness
-made his work easier. But his strength lay above all in the depth and
-the sincerity of his Christian spirit. ‘Christ bare our sins on his
-back and bought us with his blood’;<a name="FNanchor_61_61" id="FNanchor_61_61"></a><a href="#Footnote_61_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a> this was the master chord which
-vibrated in his soul. In setting forth any subject he silenced his own
-reasonings and let the Bible speak. No one had a clearer perception
-of the analogies and the contrasts which characterize the evangelical
-doctrine. With these intellectual qualities were associated eminent
-moral virtues; he practised the principles which he held to be true
-with immovable fidelity; he taught them with a touching charity; he
-defended them with energetic decision. Whether he approached a laborer,
-a monk, or a noble, it was with the desire to do him good, to lead<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span>
-him to God. He taxed his ingenuity to devise all means of bearing
-witness to the truth.<a name="FNanchor_62_62" id="FNanchor_62_62"></a><a href="#Footnote_62_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a> His courage was firm, his perseverance
-unflagging, and in his dignified seriousness his youth was forgotten.
-His social position added weight to his influence. We have seen that
-the aristocracy played a far larger part in Scotland than in any other
-European country. It would have seemed a strange thing to the Scots
-for a man of the people to meddle with such a matter as reform of the
-Church; but if the man that spoke to them belonged to an illustrious
-family, the position which he took appeared to them legitimate, and
-they were all inclined to listen to his voice. Such was the reformer
-whom God gave to Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>Patrick’s elder brother, Sir James Hamilton, on succeeding to the
-estates and titles of his father, had been appointed sheriff of
-Linlithgowshire. James had not the abilities of his brother, but he was
-full of uprightness and humility. His wife, Isabella Sempill, belonged
-to an ancient Scottish family, and ten young children surrounded this
-amiable pair. Catherine, Patrick’s sister, bore some resemblance to
-him; she had much simplicity of character, sense, and decision. But it
-was most of all in the society of his mother, the widow of the valiant
-knight, that Patrick sought and enjoyed the pure and keen delight
-of domestic life. He opened his heart to all these beloved ones; he
-made known to them the peace which he had found in the Gospel, and
-by degrees his relations were brought to the faith, of which they
-afterwards gave brilliant evidence.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON’S PREACHING.</div>
-
-<p>The zeal which was consuming him could not long be confined within the
-limits of his own family. His love for the Gospel silenced within him
-all fear and, full of courage, he was ready to endure the insults which
-his faith might bring on him. ‘The bright beams of the true light,
-which by God’s grace were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span> planted in his heart, began most abundantly
-to burst forth, as well in public as in secret.’<a name="FNanchor_63_63" id="FNanchor_63_63"></a><a href="#Footnote_63_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a> Hamilton went
-about in the surrounding country, his name securing for him everywhere
-a hearty welcome. When the young laird was seen approaching, laborers
-left the field which they were cultivating, women came out of every
-poor cottage, and all gathered about him respectfully and lent him an
-attentive ear.<a name="FNanchor_64_64" id="FNanchor_64_64"></a><a href="#Footnote_64_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a> Priests, citizens from the neighboring town, women
-of rank, lords quitting their castles, people of all classes, met
-together there.<a name="FNanchor_65_65" id="FNanchor_65_65"></a><a href="#Footnote_65_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a> Patrick received them with a kindly smile and a
-graceful bearing. He addressed to souls that first word of the Gospel,
-<i>Be converted!</i> but he also pointed out the errors of the Romish
-Church.<a name="FNanchor_66_66" id="FNanchor_66_66"></a><a href="#Footnote_66_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a> His hearers returned, astonished at his knowledge of the
-Scriptures, and the people touched by the salvation which he proclaimed
-increased in number from day to day. Southward of the manor-house of
-Kincavil extends a chain of rocky hills, whose lofty peaks and slopes,
-dotted with clumps of trees, produced in the midst of that district a
-most picturesque effect. There more than once he talked freely about
-the Gospel with the country-folk, who in the heat of the day came to
-rest under the shadow of the rocks. Sometimes he climbed the hills,
-and from their tops contemplated the whole range of country in which
-he announced the good news. That <i>Craig</i> still exists, a picturesque
-monument of Hamilton’s Gospel mission.<a name="FNanchor_67_67" id="FNanchor_67_67"></a><a href="#Footnote_67_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a></p>
-
-<p>He began soon to set forth the Gospel in the lowly churches of the
-neighboring villages; then he grew bolder and preached even in the
-beautiful sanctuary of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span> St. Michael, at Linlithgow, in the midst of
-numerous and rich altars. No sooner had the report of his preaching
-begun to get abroad than everyone wanted to hear him. The name which
-he bore, his gracious aspect, his learning, his piety, drew about
-him day by day a larger number of hearers; for a long time such a
-crowd had not been seen flocking into the church.<a name="FNanchor_68_68" id="FNanchor_68_68"></a><a href="#Footnote_68_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a> Linlithgow, the
-favorite abode of the court, was sometimes bright with unaccustomed
-splendor. The members of the royal family, and the most illustrious
-nobles of the kingdom, came to unite with the citizens and the people
-in the church. This fashionable auditory, whose looks were fixed on
-the reformer of three-and-twenty, did not at all intimidate him; the
-plainness, clearness, and conciseness which characterized Hamilton’s
-style were better adapted to act on the minds of the great than pompous
-declamation. ‘Knowest thou what this saying means,’ said he, ‘<i>Christ
-died for thee</i>? Verily that thou shouldest have died perpetually: and
-Christ, to deliver thee from death, died for thee, and changed thy
-perpetual death into his own death; for thou madest the fault and He
-suffered the pain.... He desireth nought of thee but that thou wilt
-acknowledge what He hath done for thee and bear it in mind: and that
-thou wouldst help others for his sake, even as He hath holpen thee for
-nought and without reward.’<a name="FNanchor_69_69" id="FNanchor_69_69"></a><a href="#Footnote_69_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS MARRIAGE.</div>
-
-<p>Among his hearers was a young maiden of noble birth who with joy
-received the good news of salvation. Hamilton recognized in her a soul
-akin to his own. He had adopted the principles of Luther on marriage;
-he was familiar with the conversations which the reformer had with his
-friends on the subject and which were reported all over Germany. ‘My
-father and mother,’ said Luther one day, ‘lived in the holy state of
-marriage, even the patriarchs and prophets did the same;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span> why should
-not I do so? Marriage is the holiest state of all, and the celibacy of
-priests has been the cause of abominable sins. We must marry and thus
-defy the pope, and assert the liberty which God gives us and which Rome
-presumes to steal away.’<a name="FNanchor_70_70" id="FNanchor_70_70"></a><a href="#Footnote_70_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a> However, to marry was a daring step for
-Hamilton to take, considering <i>the present necessity</i>, as speaks the
-apostle Paul. As abbot of Ferne, and connected with the first families
-of Scotland, his marriage must needs excite to the highest degree the
-wrath of the priests. Besides which, it would call for great decision
-on the part of Patrick and genuine sympathy on the part of the young
-Christian maiden, to unite themselves as it were in sight of the
-scaffold. The marriage however took place, probably at the beginning
-of 1528. ‘A little while before his death,’ says Alesius, ‘he married
-a noble young maiden.’<a name="FNanchor_71_71" id="FNanchor_71_71"></a><a href="#Footnote_71_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a> It is possible that the knowledge of this
-union did not pass beyond the family circle. It remained unknown to his
-biographers till our own time.<a name="FNanchor_72_72" id="FNanchor_72_72"></a><a href="#Footnote_72_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a></p>
-
-<p>While Hamilton was preaching at Linlithgow, archbishop Beatoun was
-at the monastery of Dunfermline, about four leagues distant, on the
-other side of the Forth. The prelate, when he learnt the return of
-the young noble who had so narrowly escaped him, saw clearly that a
-missionary animated with Luther’s spirit, thoroughly familiar with the
-manners of the people, and supported by the powerful family of the
-Hamiltons, was a formidable adversary. News which crossed the Forth
-or came from Edinburgh, did but increase the apprehensions of the
-archbishop. Beatoun was a determined enemy of the Gospel.<a name="FNanchor_73_73" id="FNanchor_73_73"></a><a href="#Footnote_73_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a> Having
-governed Scotland dur<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span>ing the minority of the king, he was indignant
-at the thought of the troubles with which Hamilton’s preaching menaced
-the Church and the realm. The clergy shared the alarm of their head;
-the city of St. Andrews, especially, which one Scottish historian has
-called ‘the metropolis of the kingdom of darkness’,<a name="FNanchor_74_74" id="FNanchor_74_74"></a><a href="#Footnote_74_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a> was in a state
-of great agitation. The dean Spence, the rector Weddel, the official
-Simson, the canon Ramsay and the heads of various monasteries consulted
-together and exclaimed that peril was imminent, and that it was
-absolutely necessary to get rid of so dangerous an adversary.</p>
-
-<p>The archbishop, therefore, took counsel with his nephew and some other
-clerics as to the best means of making away with Hamilton. Great
-prudence was needful. They must make sure of the inclinations of
-Angus; they must divert the attention of the young king who, with his
-generosity of character, might wish to save his relation; they must in
-some way ensnare the evangelist, for Beatoun did not dream of sending
-men-at-arms to seize Patrick at Kincavil in the house of his brother
-the sheriff. So the archbishop resolved to have recourse to stratagem.
-In pursuit of the scheme, Hamilton, only a few days after his marriage,
-received an invitation to go to St. Andrews for the purpose of a
-friendly conference with the archbishop concerning religion. The young
-noble, who the year before had divined the perfidious projects of
-the clergy, knew well the import of the interview which was proposed
-to him, and he told those who were dear to him that in a few days
-he should lose his life.<a name="FNanchor_75_75" id="FNanchor_75_75"></a><a href="#Footnote_75_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a> His mother, his wife, his brother, his
-sister, exerted all their influence to keep him from going; but he was
-determined not to flee a second time; and he asked himself whether the
-moment was not come in which a great blow might be struck,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span> and the
-triumph of the Gospel be attained. He declared therefore that he was
-ready to go to the Scottish Rome.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON AT ST. ANDREWS.</div>
-
-<p>On his arrival at St. Andrews the young reformer presented himself
-before the archbishop, who gave him the most gracious reception. Is it
-possible that these good graces were sincere, and not treacherous as
-was generally supposed? Did Beatoun hope to win him back by such means
-to the bosom of the Church? Every one in the palace testified respect
-to Hamilton. The prelate had provided for him a lodging in the city, to
-which he was conducted. Patrick, when he saw the respect with which he
-was treated, felt still more encouraged to set forth frankly the faith
-that was in his heart. He went back to the castle where the conference
-with the archbishop and the other doctors was to be held. All of them
-displayed a conciliatory spirit: all appeared to recognize the evils
-in the church; some of them seemed even to share on some points the
-sentiments of Hamilton. He left the castle full of hope. He thought
-that he could see in the dense wall of Romish prejudices a small
-opening which by the hand of God might soon be widened.</p>
-
-<p>He lost no time. Left perfectly free he went and came whithersoever
-he would, and was allowed to defend his opinions without any obstacle
-being thrown in his way. This was part of the plot. If the archbishop
-himself were capable of some kindly feeling, his nephew David and
-several others were pitiless. They wished Hamilton to speak, and
-to speak a good deal; he must be taken in the very fact, that they
-might dare to put him to death. Among those who listened to him there
-were present, without his being aware of it, some who took notes
-of his sayings and immediately made their report. His enemies were
-not satisfied with letting him move about freely in private houses,
-but even the halls of the university were opened to him; he might
-‘teach there and discuss there openly,’ as an eyewitness tells<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span>
-us,<a name="FNanchor_76_76" id="FNanchor_76_76"></a><a href="#Footnote_76_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a> respecting the doctrines, the sacraments, the rites and the
-administration of the Church. Many people were pleased to hear this
-young noble announce, with the permission of the primate of Scotland,
-dogmas so strange. ‘They err,’ said Hamilton to his audience, ‘whose
-religion consists in men’s merits, in traditions, laws, canons, and
-ceremonies, and who make little or no mention of the faith of Christ.
-They err who make the Gospel to be a law, and Christ to be a Moses. To
-put the law in the place of the Gospel is to put on a mourning gown
-in the feast of a marriage.’<a name="FNanchor_77_77" id="FNanchor_77_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a> Then he repeated what he had already
-asserted at Marburg, what Luther had said, what Jesus Christ had
-said:&mdash;‘It is not good works which make a good man; but it is a good
-man who makes good works.’<a name="FNanchor_78_78" id="FNanchor_78_78"></a><a href="#Footnote_78_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a> It was above all for this proposition,
-so Christian, so clear, that he was to be attacked.</p>
-
-<p>The enemies of the young reformer exulted when they heard him avow
-principles so opposed to those of Rome; but desirous of compromising
-him still further, they engaged him in private conversations, in
-which they tried hard to draw him to the extreme of his anti-Romish
-convictions. Nevertheless, there were among his hearers righteous men
-who loved this young Scotchman, so full of love for God and for men,
-who went to his house, confided to him their doubts, and desired his
-guidance. He received them with kindliness, frequently invited them to
-his table, and sought to do good to them all.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS DISCUSSION WITH ALESIUS.</div>
-
-<p>Among the canons of St. Andrews was Alexander Alane, better known under
-the Latin name of Alesius, who in his boyhood had narrowly escaped
-death on Arthur’s Seat. This young man, of modest character, with a
-tender heart, a moderate yet resolute spirit, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span> a fine intelligence
-which had been developed by the study of ancient languages, had made
-great progress in scholastic divinity, and had taken his place at an
-early age among the adversaries of the Reformation.<a name="FNanchor_79_79" id="FNanchor_79_79"></a><a href="#Footnote_79_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a> His keenest
-desire was to break a lance with Luther; controversy with the reformer
-was at that time the great battle-field on which the doctors, young
-and old, aspired to give proof of their valor. As he could not measure
-himself personally with the man whom he named <i>arch-heretic</i>, Alesius
-had refuted his doctrine in a public discussion held at the university.
-The theologians of St. Andrews had covered him with applause.<a name="FNanchor_80_80" id="FNanchor_80_80"></a><a href="#Footnote_80_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a>
-‘Assuredly,’ said they, ‘if Luther had been present, he would have
-been compelled to yield.’ The fairest hopes, too, were entertained
-respecting the young doctor. Alesius, alive to these praises, and a
-sincere Catholic, thought that it would be an easy task for him to
-convince young Hamilton of his errors. He had been acquainted with him
-before his journey to Marburg; he loved him; and he desired to save him
-by bringing him back from his wanderings.</p>
-
-<p>With this purpose he visited the young noble. Conversation began.
-Alesius was armed cap-à-pié, crammed with scholastic learning,<a name="FNanchor_81_81" id="FNanchor_81_81"></a><a href="#Footnote_81_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a>
-and with all the formulæ <i>quomodo sit, quomodo non sit</i>. Hamilton
-had before him nothing but the Gospel, and he replied to all the
-reasonings of his antagonist with the clear, living, and profound
-word of the Scriptures. It has happened more than once that sincere
-men have embraced the truth a little while after having pronounced
-against it. Alesius, struck and embarrassed, was silenced, and felt as
-if ‘the morning-star were rising in his heart.’ It was not merely his
-understanding that was convinced. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span> breath of a new life penetrated
-his soul, and at the moment when the scaffolding of his syllogisms
-fell to the ground, the truth appeared to him all radiant with glory.
-He did not content himself with that first conference, but frequently
-came again to see Hamilton, taking day by day more and more pleasure
-in his discourse. His conscience was won, his mind was enlightened.
-On returning to his priory cell, he pondered with amazement on the
-way he had just gone. ‘The result of my visit has been contrary to
-all my expectation,’ said he; ‘I thought that I should bring Hamilton
-back to the doctrine of Rome, and instead of that he has brought me to
-acknowledge my own error.’<a name="FNanchor_82_82" id="FNanchor_82_82"></a><a href="#Footnote_82_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ALEXANDER CAMPBELL.</div>
-
-<p>One day another speaker came to Hamilton. This was a young
-ecclesiastic, Alexander Campbell, prior of the Dominicans, who
-like Alesius had a fine genius, great learning,<a name="FNanchor_83_83" id="FNanchor_83_83"></a><a href="#Footnote_83_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a> and a kindly
-disposition.<a name="FNanchor_84_84" id="FNanchor_84_84"></a><a href="#Footnote_84_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a> The archbishop, who knew his superiority, begged
-him to visit Hamilton frequently, and to spare no efforts to win him
-back to the Roman doctrine. Campbell obeyed his chief; but while
-certain priests or monks craftily questioned the young doctor with
-the intention of destroying him, the prior of the Dominicans had it
-in mind to save him. It is a mistake to attribute to him from the
-first any other intention. Campbell, like Alesius, was open to the
-truth, but the love of the world and its favors prevailed in him, and
-therein lay his danger. He frequently conversed with Hamilton on the
-true sense of the Scriptures, and acknowledged the truth of Patrick’s
-words. ‘Yes,’ said the prior, ‘the Church is in need of reformation
-in many ways.’<a name="FNanchor_85_85" id="FNanchor_85_85"></a><a href="#Footnote_85_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a> Hamilton, pleased with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span> this admission, hoped to
-bring him to the faith, like Alesius, and having no fear of a friend
-whom he already looked on almost as a brother, he kept back none of his
-thoughts, and attached himself to him with all sincerity. But after
-several interviews, Campbell received orders from the archbishop to
-go to him to give an account of the result of his proceedings. This
-request astonished and disturbed the prior; and when he stood before
-Beatoun and his councillors, he was intimidated, overpowered by fear at
-the thought of offending the primate, and of incurring the censures of
-the Church. He would fain have obeyed at the same time both the Lord
-and the bishop,&mdash;he would fain have served God and <i>sucked-in</i> honors;
-but he saw no means of reconciling the Gospel and the world. When he
-saw all looks turned on him he was agitated, he wavered, and told
-everything which the young noble of Kincavil had said to him in the
-freedom of brotherly confidence. He appeared to condemn him, and even
-consented to become one of his judges. Choosing ease, reputation, and
-life rather than persecution, opprobrium, and death, Campbell turned
-his back on the truth and abandoned Hamilton.</p>
-
-<p>When the young reformer heard of Campbell’s treachery, it was a great
-sorrow to him; but he was not disheartened. On the contrary, he went
-on teaching with redoubled zeal, both at his own lodging and in the
-university. He bore witness, ‘with hand and with foot,’ as used to be
-said at that time (that is to say, with all his heart and with all
-his might), to the Word of God. For making a beginning of the work of
-reformation there was no place in the kingdom more important than St.
-Andrews. Hamilton found there students and professors, priests, monks
-of the orders of St. Augustine, St. Francis, and St. Dominic, canons,
-deans, members of the ecclesiastical courts, nobles, jurisconsults,
-and laymen of all classes. This was the wide and apparently favorable<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span>
-field on which for one month he scattered plentifully the divine
-seed.<a name="FNanchor_86_86" id="FNanchor_86_86"></a><a href="#Footnote_86_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a></p>
-
-<p>The adversaries of the New Testament, when they saw the success of
-Hamilton’s teachings, grew more and more alarmed every day. There
-must be no more delay, they thought; all compliance must cease, and
-the great blow must be struck. Patrick was cited to appear at the
-archiepiscopal palace, to make answer to a charge of heresy brought
-against him. His friends in alarm conjured him to fly: it seemed that
-even the archbishop would have been glad to see him set out once more
-for Germany. Lord Hamilton, earl of Arran, was at once Patrick’s uncle
-and the primate’s nephew by marriage. The primate would naturally show
-some consideration for a young man whose family he respected;<a name="FNanchor_87_87" id="FNanchor_87_87"></a><a href="#Footnote_87_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a> but
-the obstacle was to be raised on the part of Hamilton himself. When
-he crossed the North Sea to return to Scotland, he had resolved to
-lay down his life, if need be, if only by his death <i>Christ should be
-magnified</i>. The joy of a good conscience was so firmly established in
-his soul that no bodily suffering could take it away.</p>
-
-<p>As Patrick was not minded to fly from the scaffold, his enemies
-determined to rid themselves of so formidable an antagonist.</p>
-
-<p>One obstacle, however, lay in their way. Would the king, feeble and
-thoughtless, but still humane and generous, permit them to sacrifice
-this young member of his family, who excited the admiration even of his
-adversaries? James V. felt really interested in Patrick: he wished to
-see him, and had urged him to be reconciled with the bishops.<a name="FNanchor_88_88" id="FNanchor_88_88"></a><a href="#Footnote_88_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a> If
-at the last moment the Hamiltons should entreat his pardon, how could
-he refuse it? To evade this difficulty, the Roman clergy resolved to
-get<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span> the young monarch removed out of the way. His father, James IV.,
-used to make a yearly pilgrimage to the chapel of St. Duthac, founded
-by James III., in Ross-shire, in the north of Scotland. The bishops
-determined to persuade this prince, then only seventeen, to undertake
-this long journey although it was then the depth of winter.<a name="FNanchor_89_89" id="FNanchor_89_89"></a><a href="#Footnote_89_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a> The
-king consented, either because he was artfully misled by the priests,
-or because, seeing that they were determined to get rid of Hamilton, he
-would rather let them alone, and wash his hands of it. He set out for
-St. Duthac,<a name="FNanchor_90_90" id="FNanchor_90_90"></a><a href="#Footnote_90_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a> and the priests immediately applied themselves to their
-task.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON’S DEATH RESOLVED ON.</div>
-
-<p>The tidings of the imminent danger which threatened Patrick brought
-anxiety into the manor-house of Kincavil. His wife, his mother, and
-his sister were deeply moved: Sir James was determined not to confine
-himself to useless lamentation, but to snatch his brother out of the
-hands of his enemies. As sheriff of Linlithgow and captain of one of
-the king’s castles, he could easily assemble some men-at-arms, and he
-set out for St. Andrews at the head of a small force, confident that
-in case of success James V., on his return from Duthac, would grant
-him a bill of indemnity.<a name="FNanchor_91_91" id="FNanchor_91_91"></a><a href="#Footnote_91_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a> But when he reached the shores of the
-Forth, which had to be crossed on his way into Fifeshire, he found
-the waters in agitation from a violent storm, so that he could not
-possibly make the passage.<a name="FNanchor_92_92" id="FNanchor_92_92"></a><a href="#Footnote_92_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a> Sir James and his men-at-arms stopped
-on the coast, watching the waves with mournful hearts,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span> and listening
-in anguish to the roar of the storm. When the archbishop heard of the
-appearance of a troop on the other side the Forth, he collected a large
-body of horsemen to repulse the attack.<a name="FNanchor_93_93" id="FNanchor_93_93"></a><a href="#Footnote_93_93" class="fnanchor">[93]</a> Those who were bent on
-rescuing Hamilton were as full of ardor as those who were bent on his
-destruction. Which of the two parties would win the day?</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER V.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">APPEARANCE, CONDEMNATION, MARTYRDOM.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(End of February&ndash;March 1, 1528.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<p>The Word of God, when heard among men, has a twofold effect. The
-first, as we have seen, is to win souls for God by the charm of the
-divine love which it reveals; but that is not all. It not only gives
-but demands: it insists on a new heart and a new life. The pride of
-man revolts against the commandments of God: the heart incensed is
-bitter against those who announce them, and impels to persecution. The
-evangelical word, like the creative, separates light from darkness,
-those who are obedient from those who rebel. This is what was then
-taking place in Scotland.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON BEFORE THE BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>Hamilton rose early on the day on which he was to appear before the
-bishop’s council.<a name="FNanchor_94_94" id="FNanchor_94_94"></a><a href="#Footnote_94_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a> Calm and yet fervent in spirit, he burned
-with desire to make confession of the truth in the presence of that
-assembly. Without waiting for the hour which had been fixed, he left
-his abode and presented himself unexpectedly at the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span> archbishop’s
-palace, between seven and eight o’clock not long after sunrise. Beatoun
-was already at his task, wishing to confer with the members of his
-council before the sitting. They went and told him that Hamilton was
-come and was asking for him. The archbishop took good care not to
-give him a private interview. The several heresies of which Hamilton
-was accused had been formulated. All who took part in the affair were
-agreed as to the heads of the indictment. Beatoun resolved at once to
-take advantage of Hamilton’s eagerness, and to advance the sitting. The
-archbishop directed the court to constitute itself: each member took
-his place according to his rank, and they had the accused before them.
-One of the members of the council was commissioned to unfold before
-the young doctor the long catalogue of heresies laid to his charge.
-Hamilton was brought in. He had expected to converse with Beatoun in
-private, but he found himself suddenly before a tribunal of sombre and
-inquisitorial aspect; the lion’s jaws were open before him. However, he
-remained gentle and calm before the judges, although he knew that they
-had resolved to take away his life.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are charged,’ said the commissioner, ‘with teaching false
-doctrines: 1st, that the corruption of sin remains in the child after
-baptism; 2nd, that no man is able by mere force of free will to do any
-good thing; 3rd, that no one continues without sins so long as he is
-in this life; 4th, that every true Christian must know if he is in the
-state of grace; 5th, that a man is not justified by works but by faith
-alone; 6th, that good works do not make a good man, but that a good
-man makes good works; 7th, that faith, hope and charity are so closely
-united that he who has one of these virtues has also the others; 8th,
-that it may be held that God is cause of sin in this sense, that when
-he withholds his grace from a man, the latter cannot but sin; 9th,
-that it is a devilish doctrine to teach that remission of sins can<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span> be
-obtained by means of certain penances; 10th, that auricular confession
-is not necessary to salvation; 11th, that there is no purgatory; 12th,
-that the holy patriarchs were in heaven before the passion of Jesus
-Christ; and 13th, that the pope is Antichrist, and that a priest has
-just as much power as a pope.’<a name="FNanchor_95_95" id="FNanchor_95_95"></a><a href="#Footnote_95_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a></p>
-
-<p>The young reformer of Scotland had listened attentively to this long
-series of charges, drawn up in somewhat scholastic terms. In the
-official indictment of the priests were included some doctrines for
-the maintenance of which Hamilton was willing to lay down his life;
-others which, he admitted, were fair subjects for discussion; but
-the primate’s theologians had, in their zeal, piled up all that they
-could find, true or false, essential or accidental, and had flung
-the confused mass at the young man in order to crush him. One of the
-clergy, who had visited him for the purpose of catching him unawares
-in some heresy, had given out that the reformers made God the author
-of sin. Patrick had denied it, saying,&mdash;and this was matter of
-reproach in the 8th article,&mdash;that a sinner may get to such a pitch
-of obduracy that God leaves him because he will no longer hear him.
-Hamilton, therefore, made a distinction between the various heads of
-the indictment. ‘I declare,’ said he, ‘that I look on the first seven
-articles as certainly true, and I am ready to attest them with a solemn
-oath. As for the other points they are matter for discussion; but I
-cannot pronounce them false until stronger reasons are given me for
-rejecting them than any which I have yet heard.’</p>
-
-<p>The doctors conferred with Hamilton on each point; and the thirteen
-articles were then referred to the judgment of a commission of divines
-nominated by the primate. A day or two later, the commissioners made
-their report, and declared all the articles, without exception, to
-be heretical. The primate then, in order<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span> that the judgment might be
-invested with special solemnity, announced that sentence would be
-delivered in the cathedral on the last day of February, before an
-assembly of the clergy, the nobility, and the people.<a name="FNanchor_96_96" id="FNanchor_96_96"></a><a href="#Footnote_96_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANDREW DUNCAN’S ATTEMPT.</div>
-
-<p>While the priests were making ready to put to death one of the members
-of the illustrious family of the Hamiltons, some noble-hearted laymen
-were preparing to rescue him. The men of Linlithgow were not the only
-ones to stir in the matter. John Andrew Duncan, laird of Airdrie, who,
-as we have seen, was taken prisoner by the English at the battle of
-Flodden, had, during his captivity, found friends in England, whom he
-gained for the Gospel. On his return to Scotland, he had opened his
-house as an asylum for the gospellers, and had become intimate with
-the Hamiltons. Hearing of the danger that beset Patrick, indignant
-at the conduct of the bishops and burning with desire to save the
-young reformer, Duncan had armed his tenants and his servants, and
-then marching towards the metropolitan city, intended to enter it by
-night, to carry off his friend and conduct him to England. But the
-archbishop’s horsemen, warned of the enterprise, set out and surrounded
-Duncan’s feeble troop, disarmed them and made Duncan prisoner. The life
-of this noble evangelical Christian was spared at the intercession of
-his brother-in-law, who was in command of the forces which captured
-him, but he had once more to quit Scotland.<a name="FNanchor_97_97" id="FNanchor_97_97"></a><a href="#Footnote_97_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a></p>
-
-<p>This attempt had been frustrated just at the moment when the
-commissioners presented their report on the alleged heresies of
-Hamilton. There was no longer any need for hesitation on the part
-of the archbishop; he therefore ordered the arrest of the young
-evangelist. Wishing to prevent any resistance, the governor of the
-castle of St. Andrews, who was to carry out the order, waited till
-night; and then putting himself at the head<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span> of a well-armed body of
-men, he silently surrounded the house in which Hamilton dwelt.<a name="FNanchor_98_98" id="FNanchor_98_98"></a><a href="#Footnote_98_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a>
-According to one historian, he had already retired to rest; according
-to others, he was in the society of pious and devoted friends and was
-conversing with them. The young reformer, while he appreciated the
-affection and the eagerness of his friend Duncan, had no wish that
-force should be employed to save him. He knew that of whatever nature
-the war is, such must the weapons be; that for a spiritual war the
-weapons must be spiritual; that Christ’s soldiers must fight only with
-the sword of the holy Word. He remained calm in the conviction that God
-disposes all that befalls his children in such wise that what the world
-thinks an evil turns out for good to them. At the very moment when
-the soldiers were surrounding his house, he felt himself encompassed
-with solid ramparts, knowing that God marshals his forces around his
-people, as if for the defence of a fortress. At that moment there were
-knocks at the door: it was the governor of the castle. Hamilton knew
-what it meant. He rose, went forward accompanied by his friends, and
-opening the door asked the governor whom he wanted;<a name="FNanchor_99_99" id="FNanchor_99_99"></a><a href="#Footnote_99_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a> the latter
-having answered, Hamilton said, ‘It is I!’ and gave himself up. Then
-pointing to his friends he added, ‘You will allow them to retire;’<a name="FNanchor_100_100" id="FNanchor_100_100"></a><a href="#Footnote_100_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a>
-and he entreated them not to make any resistance to lawful authority.
-But these ardent Christians could not bear the thought of losing their
-friend. ‘Promise us,’ they said to the governor, ‘promise us to bring
-him back safe and sound.’ The officer only replied by taking away his
-prisoner. On the summit of huge rocks which rise perpendicularly from
-the sea,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span> and whose base is ceaselessly washed by the waves, stood at
-that time the castle whose picturesque remains serve still as a beacon
-to the mariner. It was within the walls of this feudal stronghold that
-Hamilton was taken and confined.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON IN THE CASTLE.</div>
-
-<p>The last day of February at length arrived, the day fixed by the
-archbishop for the solemn assembly at which sentence was to be
-pronounced. The prelate, followed by a large number of bishops, abbots,
-doctors, heads of religious orders, and the twelve commissioners,
-entered the cathedral&mdash;a building some centuries old, which was to
-be cast down in a day by a word of Knox, and whose magnificent ruins
-still astonish the traveller.<a name="FNanchor_101_101" id="FNanchor_101_101"></a><a href="#Footnote_101_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a> Beatoun sat on the bench of the
-inquisitorial court, and all the ecclesiastical judges took their
-places round him. Among these was observed Patrick Hepburn, prior of
-St. Andrews, son of the earl of Bothwell, a worthless and dissolute
-man, who had eleven illegitimate children, and who gloried in bringing
-distress and dishonor into families. This veteran of immorality&mdash;who
-ought to have been on the culprit’s seat, but whose pride was greater
-even than his licentiousness&mdash;took his place with a shameless
-countenance on the judges’ bench. Not far from him was David Beatoun,
-abbot of Arbroath, an ambitious young man, who was already coveting
-his uncle’s dignity, and who, as if to prepare himself for a long work
-of persecution, vigorously pressed on the condemnation of Patrick.
-In the midst of these hypocrites and fanatics sat one man in a state
-of agitation and distress&mdash;the prior of the Dominicans, Alexander
-Campbell&mdash;with his countenance gloomy and fallen. A great crowd of
-canons, priests, monks, nobles, citizens, and the common people, filled
-the church; some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span> of them greedy for the spectacle which was to be
-presented to them, others sympathizing with Hamilton. ‘I was myself
-present,’ said Alesius, ‘a spectator of that tragedy.’<a name="FNanchor_102_102" id="FNanchor_102_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a></p>
-
-<p>The tramp of horses was presently heard: the party of troops sent to
-seek Hamilton were come. The young evangelist passed into the church,
-and had to mount a lofty desk, from which he could be easily seen and
-heard by the assembly. All eyes were turned towards him. ‘Ah,’ said
-pious folk, ‘if this young Christian had been a worldling, and had
-given himself up, like the other lords of the court, to a life of
-dissipation and rioting,<a name="FNanchor_103_103" id="FNanchor_103_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a> he would doubtless have been loved by
-everybody; and this flower of youth which we now look on would have
-blown amidst flatteries and delights. But because to his rank he has
-added piety and virtue, he must fall under the blows of the wicked.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE TRIAL.</div>
-
-<p>The proceedings began. The commissioners presented their report to the
-court, duly signed. Then Alexander Campbell rose, for the archbishop
-had charged him to read the indictment, and the unfortunate man had
-not dared to refuse the horrible task. Hamilton was affected at seeing
-that man whom he took for his friend appear as his accuser. However,
-he listened with calmness to the address. His quietude, his noble
-simplicity, his frankness, his trust in the Lord, impressed every one.
-‘Truly,’ said Alesius, ‘no man ever more fully realized that saying,
-‘Trust in the Lord and do good.’<a name="FNanchor_104_104" id="FNanchor_104_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a> A contest began between the
-prior of the Dominicans and the young reformer. The latter, determined
-to defend his faith in the presence of that great assembly, pointed
-out the sophistry of his accusers, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span> established the truth by the
-testimony of the Holy Scriptures. Campbell replied; but Hamilton,
-always armed with the Word of God, rejoined, and his adversary was
-silenced. Campbell, unhappy and distressed, inwardly convinced of
-the doctrine professed by his old friend, could do no more. He
-approached the tribunal and asked for instructions. The bishops and
-the theologians, having no mind for a public debate, directed Campbell
-to enumerate with a loud voice certain errors which had not yet been
-reduced to formal articles, and to call Hamilton <i>heretic</i>.<a name="FNanchor_105_105" id="FNanchor_105_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a> This
-was putting the poor Dominican to fresh torture; but he must hold on to
-the end. He turned therefore towards Hamilton and said aloud&mdash;‘Heretic!
-thou hast said that all men have the right to read the Word of God.
-Thou hast said that it is against the divine law to worship images.
-Thou hast said that it is idle to invoke the saints and the Virgin.
-Thou hast said that it is useless to celebrate masses to save souls
-from purgatory....’ Here the unfortunate Campbell stopped. ‘Purgatory!’
-exclaimed Patrick; ‘nothing purifies souls but the blood of Jesus
-Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_106_106" id="FNanchor_106_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a> At these words, Campbell turned to the archbishop and
-said, ‘My lords, you hear him; he despises the authority of our holy
-father the pope.’ Then, as if he meant to stifle by insults the voice
-of the noble and courageous Christian, ‘Heretic,’ cried he, ‘rebel!
-detestable! execrable! impious!...’ Hamilton, turning towards him,
-said, in accents full of kindness, ‘My brother, thou dost not in thy
-very heart believe what thou art saying.’<a name="FNanchor_107_107" id="FNanchor_107_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a> This was too much. The
-word of tender reproof pierced like a dart the soul of the unhappy
-Dominican. To find himself treated with so much gentleness by the man
-whose death he was urging rent his heart, and an accusing cry<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span> was
-heard in the depths of his soul.<a name="FNanchor_108_108" id="FNanchor_108_108"></a><a href="#Footnote_108_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a> Campbell was embarrassed and
-silenced. Hamilton’s charity had heaped coals of fire on his head.<a name="FNanchor_109_109" id="FNanchor_109_109"></a><a href="#Footnote_109_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a></p>
-
-<p>Then began the taking of votes. The members of the court unanimously
-condemning the innocent man, the primate rose and said,&mdash;‘<i>Christi
-nomine invocato</i>,&mdash;We, James, by the grace of God archbishop of St.
-Andrews, primate of Scotland, sitting in judgment in our metropolitan
-church, have found Patrick Hamilton infected with divers heresies of
-Martin Luther, which have been already condemned by general councils.
-We therefore declare the said Hamilton a heretic; we condemn him; we
-deprive him of all dignities, orders, and benefices, and we deliver him
-over to the secular arm to be punished.’<a name="FNanchor_110_110" id="FNanchor_110_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a></p>
-
-<p>Having thus spoken, the primate laid on the table the sentence which
-he had just read, and the bishops, priors, abbots, and doctors present
-came and signed the document one by one. The primate next, with the
-view of investing the act with more authority, invited such persons
-as had a certain rank in the university to set their hands likewise
-to it. Young boys&mdash;the earl of Cassilis, for example, who was only
-thirteen&mdash;were of the number. The priests persuaded them that they
-thereby did God service, and this was very flattering to such children.
-The court rose, and an escort of some thousands of armed men conducted
-Hamilton back to the castle.<a name="FNanchor_111_111" id="FNanchor_111_111"></a><a href="#Footnote_111_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a></p>
-
-<p>This numerous escort showed the fears which the clergy entertained.
-Duncan’s attempt had failed, but Sir James Hamilton was still at
-the head of his soldiers, and many other persons in Scotland were
-interested<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span> about this young man. But nothing short of the death
-of their victim could pacify the priests. They decided that the
-sentence should be executed the same day. The primate was sure of the
-coöperation of the government. Angus offered no opposition to this
-iniquitous proceeding. Thus condemnation had hardly been pronounced
-when the executioner’s servants were seen before the gate of St.
-Salvator’s College, raising the pile on which Hamilton was to be burnt.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">AT THE STAKE.</div>
-
-<p>While they were heaping up the wood and driving in the stake, Patrick
-was taking his last meal in one of the rooms of the castle; he ate
-moderately, as his custom was, but without the slightest agitation; his
-countenance was perfectly serene. He was going to meet death with good
-courage, because it would admit him into his Father’s house; he hoped,
-too, that his martyrdom would be gain to the Church of God. The hour
-of noon struck: it was the time appointed for the execution. Hamilton
-bade them call the governor of the castle. That officer appeared; he
-was deeply affected. Hamilton, without leaving the table, inquired
-of him <i>whether all was ready</i>?<a name="FNanchor_112_112" id="FNanchor_112_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a> The governor, whose heart was
-breaking to see such innocence and nobleness requited with a cruel
-death, could not find courage to pronounce a single word which would
-point to the scaffold, and he answered with emotion, <i>Dii meliora</i>,
-‘God give you a better fate!’ Hamilton understood him, got up, took the
-Gospel in one hand, grasped affectionately with the other the hand of
-the sympathizing governor, and went like a lamb to execution.<a name="FNanchor_113_113" id="FNanchor_113_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a> He
-was accompanied by a few friends, his faithful servant followed, and
-a numerous guard escorted him. He set the cross of Christ, which he
-then bore, above all the delights of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span> life.<a name="FNanchor_114_114" id="FNanchor_114_114"></a><a href="#Footnote_114_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a> His soul was full of a
-glorious and solid joy, which was worth more than the joy of the world.</p>
-
-<p>He arrived at the spot. All was ready&mdash;wood, coal, powder, and other
-combustible material. Standing before the pile, he uncovered his head,
-and lifting up his eyes to heaven, remained motionless for some moments
-in prayer.<a name="FNanchor_115_115" id="FNanchor_115_115"></a><a href="#Footnote_115_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a> Then he turned to his friends and handed to one of
-them his copy of the Gospels. Next, calling his servant, he took off
-his cloak, his coat, and his cap, and with his arms stretched out
-presented them to him and said&mdash;‘Take these garments, they can do me no
-service in the fire, and they may still be of use to thee. It is the
-last gift thou wilt receive from me, except the example of my death,
-the remembrance of which I pray thee to bear in mind. Death is bitter
-for the flesh ... but it is the entrance into eternal life, which
-none can possess who deny Jesus Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_116_116" id="FNanchor_116_116"></a><a href="#Footnote_116_116" class="fnanchor">[116]</a> The archbishop, wishing
-to ingratiate himself with the powerful family of the Hamiltons, had
-ordered some of his clergy to offer the young reformer his life on
-condition of his submitting to the absolute authority of the pope.
-‘No,’ replied Hamilton, ‘your fire will not make me recant the faith
-which I have professed. Better that my body should burn in your flames
-for having confessed the Saviour, than that my soul should burn in hell
-for having denied him. I appeal to God from the sentence pronounced
-against me, and I commit myself to his mercy.’<a name="FNanchor_117_117" id="FNanchor_117_117"></a><a href="#Footnote_117_117" class="fnanchor">[117]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">INSULTS OF CAMPBELL.</div>
-
-<p>The executioners came to fulfil their part. They passed an iron chain
-round the victim’s body, and thus fastened him to the stake which
-rose above the pile.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span> Conscious that acute pains might lead him to
-err, Hamilton prayed to God that the flames might not extort from him
-the least word which should grieve his divine master. ‘In the name of
-Jesus,’ he added, ‘I give up my body to the fire, and commit my soul
-into the hands of the Father.’ Three times the pile was kindled, and
-three times the fire went out because the wood was green.<a name="FNanchor_118_118" id="FNanchor_118_118"></a><a href="#Footnote_118_118" class="fnanchor">[118]</a> Suddenly
-the powder placed among the faggots exploded, and a piece of wood shot
-against Hamilton flayed part of his body; but death was not yet come.
-Turning to the deathsman, he said mildly, ‘Have you no dry wood?’
-Several men hastened to get some at the castle. Alexander Campbell
-was present, struggling with his evil conscience, and in a state of
-violent agitation which rose with his distress and misery. The servants
-of the executioner brought some dry wood and quickened the fire.
-‘Heretic,’ said Campbell, ‘be converted! recant! call upon Our Lady;
-only say, <i>Salve Regina</i>.’ ‘If thou believest in the truth of what thou
-sayest,’ replied Patrick, ‘bear witness to it by putting the tip only
-of thy finger into the fire in which my whole body is burning.<a name="FNanchor_119_119" id="FNanchor_119_119"></a><a href="#Footnote_119_119" class="fnanchor">[119]</a>’
-The unhappy Dominican took good care to do no such thing. He began
-to insult the martyr. Then Hamilton said to him, ‘Depart from me,
-messenger of Satan.’ Campbell, enraged, stormed round the victim like
-a roaring lion. ‘Submit to the pope,’ he cried; ‘there is no salvation
-but in union with him.’ Patrick was broken-hearted with grief at seeing
-to what a pitch of obduracy his old friend had come. ‘Thou wicked man,’
-said he to him, ‘thou knowest the contrary well enough; thou hast
-told me so thyself.’ This noble victim, then, chained to the post and
-already half-burnt, feeling himself to be superior to the wretched man
-who was vexing him,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span> spoke as a judge, commanded as a king, and said
-to the Dominican, ‘I appeal thee before the tribunal seat of Christ
-Jesus.’<a name="FNanchor_120_120" id="FNanchor_120_120"></a><a href="#Footnote_120_120" class="fnanchor">[120]</a> At these words Campbell, ceasing his outcries, remained
-mute, and leaving the place, fled affrighted into his monastery. His
-mind wandered; he was seized with madness; he was like one possessed by
-a demon, and in a little while he died.<a name="FNanchor_121_121" id="FNanchor_121_121"></a><a href="#Footnote_121_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a></p>
-
-<p>The tenderest affections succeeded these most mournful emotions in
-Hamilton’s heart. He was drawing near to the moment of heart-rending
-separations: but his thoughts, though turning heavenward, were not
-turned away from his home at Kincavil. He had cherished the hope of
-becoming a father; and some time afterwards his wife gave birth to a
-daughter who was named Issobel. She lived at court in later years, and
-received on more than one occasion tokens of the royal favor.<a name="FNanchor_122_122" id="FNanchor_122_122"></a><a href="#Footnote_122_122" class="fnanchor">[122]</a>
-Hamilton, who had always felt the tenderest respect for his mother,
-did not forget her at the stake, but commended her to the love of his
-friends.<a name="FNanchor_123_123" id="FNanchor_123_123"></a><a href="#Footnote_123_123" class="fnanchor">[123]</a> After his wife and his mother, he was mindful of his
-native place. ‘O God,’ said he, ‘open the eyes of my fellow-citizens,
-that they may know the truth!’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMILTON’S DEATH.</div>
-
-<p>While the martyr’s heart was thus overflowing with love, several of
-the wretches who stood round him aggravated his sufferings. A baker
-took an armful of straw and threw it into the fire to increase its
-intensity; at the same moment a gust of wind from the sea quickened
-the flames, which rose above the stake. The chain round Patrick’s body
-was red-hot, and had by this time almost burnt him in two.<a name="FNanchor_124_124" id="FNanchor_124_124"></a><a href="#Footnote_124_124" class="fnanchor">[124]</a> One of
-the bystanders, prob<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span>ably a friend of the Gospel, cried to him, ‘If
-thou still holdest true the doctrine for which thou diest, make us a
-sign.’ Two fingers of his hand were consumed; stretching out his arm,
-he raised the other three, and held them motionless in sign of his
-faith.<a name="FNanchor_125_125" id="FNanchor_125_125"></a><a href="#Footnote_125_125" class="fnanchor">[125]</a> The torment had lasted from noon, and it was now nearly six
-o’clock. Hamilton was burnt over a slow fire.<a name="FNanchor_126_126" id="FNanchor_126_126"></a><a href="#Footnote_126_126" class="fnanchor">[126]</a> In the midst of the
-tumult he was heard uttering this cry, ‘O God, how long shall darkness
-cover this realm, how long wilt thou permit the tyranny of men to
-triumph?’ The end was drawing nigh. The martyr’s arm began to fail: his
-three fingers fell. He said, ‘Lord Jesus! receive my spirit.’ His head
-drooped, his body sank down, and the flames completed their ravage and
-reduced it to ashes.</p>
-
-<p>The crowd dispersed, thrilled by this grand and mournful sight, and
-never was the memory of this young reformer’s death effaced in the
-hearts of those who had been eyewitnesses of it. It was deeply engraven
-in the soul of Alesius. ‘I saw,’ said he, several years afterwards
-in some town in Germany, ‘I saw in my native land the execution of
-a high-born man, Patrick Hamilton.’<a name="FNanchor_127_127" id="FNanchor_127_127"></a><a href="#Footnote_127_127" class="fnanchor">[127]</a> And he told the story in
-brief and penetrating words. ‘How singular was the fate of the two
-Hamiltons! Father and son both died a violent death: the former died
-the death of a hero; the latter, that of a martyr. The father had been
-in Scotland the last of the knights of the Middle Ages; the son was
-in the same land the first of the soldiers of Christ in the new time.
-The father brought honor to his family by winning many times the palm
-of victory in tournaments and combats; the son,’ says an illustrious
-man, Théodore<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span> Beza, ‘ennobled the royal race of the Hamiltons, sullied
-afterwards by some of its members, and adorned it with that martyr’s
-crown which is infinitely more precious than all kingly crowns.’<a name="FNanchor_128_128" id="FNanchor_128_128"></a><a href="#Footnote_128_128" class="fnanchor">[128]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER VI.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">ALESIUS.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(End of February 1528 to the end of 1531.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EFFECTS OF HAMILTON’S DEATH.</div>
-
-<p>That saying of Christian antiquity, ‘The blood of the martyrs is
-the seed of the church,’ was perhaps never verified in a more
-striking manner than in the case of Hamilton. The rumor of his death,
-reverberating in loud echoes from the Highlands, ran over the whole
-land. It was much the same as if the famous big cannon of Edinburgh
-Castle, Mons Meg, had been fired and the report had been re-echoed from
-the Borders to Pentland Frith. Nothing was more likely to win feudal
-Scotland to the Reformation than the end, at once so holy and so cruel,
-of a member of a family so illustrious. Nobles, citizens, and the
-common people, nay, even priests and monks, were on the point of being
-aroused by this martyrdom. Hamilton, who by his ministry was reformer
-of Scotland, became still more so by his death. For God’s work, a
-life long and laborious would have been of less service than were his
-trial, condemnation, and execution, all accomplished on one day. By
-giving up his earthly life for a life imperishable, he announced the
-end of the religion of the senses, and began the worship in spirit and
-in truth. The pile to which the priests had sent him became a throne,
-his torture<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span> was a triumph, and when the <i>Crowns of the Martyrs</i> were
-celebrated in Scotland, voices were heard exclaiming:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>E cœlo alluxit primam Germania lucem,</div>
- <div>Qua Lanus et vitreis qua fluit Albis aquis.</div>
- <div>Intulit huic lucem nostræ Dux prævius oræ.</div>
- <div>O felix terra! hoc si foret usa duce!</div>
- <div>Dira superstitio grassata tyrannide in omnes,</div>
- <div>Omniaque involvens Cimmeriis tenebris,</div>
- <div>Illa nequit lucem hanc sufferre. Ergo omnis in unum,</div>
- <div>Fraude, odiis, furiis, turba cruenta coit.</div>
- <div>Igne cremant. Vivus lucis qui fulserat igne,</div>
- <div>Par erat, ut moriens lumina ab igne daret.<a name="FNanchor_129_129" id="FNanchor_129_129"></a><a href="#Footnote_129_129" class="fnanchor">[129]</a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>People everywhere wanted to know the cause for which this young
-noble had given his life, and everyone took the side of the victim.
-‘Just at the time when those cruel wolves,’ said Knox, ‘had, as they
-supposed, clean devoured their prey, a great crowd surrounded them
-and demanded of them an account for the blood which they had shed.’
-‘The faith for which Hamilton was burnt,’ said many, ‘is that which we
-will have.’ In vain was it that the guilty men, convicted by their own
-consciences, were inflamed with wrath, and uttered proud threats;<a name="FNanchor_130_130" id="FNanchor_130_130"></a><a href="#Footnote_130_130" class="fnanchor">[130]</a>
-for everywhere the abuses and errors which up to that time had been
-venerated were called in question.<a name="FNanchor_131_131" id="FNanchor_131_131"></a><a href="#Footnote_131_131" class="fnanchor">[131]</a> Such were the happy results of
-Hamilton’s death.</p>
-
-<p>As the news spread, however, in foreign lands, very different feelings
-were aroused. The doctors of Louvain, writing to the clergy of
-Scotland, said, ‘We are equally delighted with the work which you
-have done and with the way in which you have done it.’<a name="FNanchor_132_132" id="FNanchor_132_132"></a><a href="#Footnote_132_132" class="fnanchor">[132]</a> Others<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span>
-showed themselves not so much charmed with such hatred, stratagem,
-and cruelty. A Christian man in England wrote to the Scottish nobles,
-‘Hamilton is now living with Christ whom he confessed before the
-princes of this world, and the voice of his blood, like the blood of
-Abel, cries to heaven.’<a name="FNanchor_133_133" id="FNanchor_133_133"></a><a href="#Footnote_133_133" class="fnanchor">[133]</a> Francis Lambert, especially his friend
-and companion, was a prey to intense grief: he said to the landgrave,
-‘Hamilton has offered up to God and to the Church, as a sacrifice, not
-only the lustre of his rank, but also his youthful prime.’<a name="FNanchor_134_134" id="FNanchor_134_134"></a><a href="#Footnote_134_134" class="fnanchor">[134]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES V. FLIGHT.</div>
-
-<p>Some days after, the king returned from the north of Scotland, whither
-the priests had sent him to worship some relics. Hamilton was no more.
-What were the feelings of James V. when he learnt the death of this
-noble scion of the royal house? We have no means of ascertaining them.
-The young prince seemed to be more alive to the humiliation to which
-the nobles subjected him than to the cruelty of the priests. Fretted
-by the state of dependence in which Angus kept him, he made complaint
-of it to Henry VIII.<a name="FNanchor_135_135" id="FNanchor_135_135"></a><a href="#Footnote_135_135" class="fnanchor">[135]</a> Hunting was his only amusement, and for the
-sake of enjoying it he had taken up his abode at Falkland Castle. On
-a sudden, caring no more for hounds, foxes, or deer, he conceived
-the project of regaining his freedom and his authority. This might
-be fraught with grave consequences for the Reformation. If at a time
-when the nobles kept a tight hand over the priestly party Hamilton had
-been put to death, what might happen in Scotland when the priests, on
-whom James leaned for support, should have once more seized the chief
-power? The deliverance of the young king, however, was no easy matter.
-A hundred men, selected by Angus, were about him night and day; and the
-captain of his guards, the minister of the royal house and the lord
-treasurer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span> of the kingdom, had orders to keep their eyes constantly
-upon him. He determined to resort to stratagem. He said one evening to
-his courtiers, ‘We will rise very early to-morrow to go stag-hunting;
-be ready.’ Everyone retired early to rest; but no sooner had the prince
-entered his chamber than he called one of his pages in whom he had full
-confidence. ‘Jockie,’ said he to him; ‘dost thou love me?’ ‘Better than
-myself, Sire.’&mdash;‘Wilt thou run some risk for my sake?’ ‘Risk my life,
-Sire.’ James explained to him his design; and then, disguising himself
-as a groom, he went into his stables with the page and a valet. ‘We are
-come to get the horses ready for the hunt to-morrow,’ said the three
-grooms. Some moments elapsed; they went noiselessly out of the castle,
-and set off at a gallop for Stirling Castle, where the queen-mother
-was residing. The king arrived there in the early morning. ‘Draw up
-the bridges,’ said he, so fearful was he of his pursuers. ‘Let down
-the portcullises, set sentinels at all points.’ He was worn out with
-fatigue, having been on horseback all night; but he refused to lie down
-until the keys of all the gates had been placed under his pillow; then
-he laid down his head upon them and went to sleep. On the morning after
-this flight, Sir George Douglas, the king’s guardian, rose without
-suspicion, thinking only of the hunt which James had appointed. While
-he was taking certain precautions against the escape of the prince, a
-stranger arrived and asked to speak to Sir George. It was the bailiff
-of Abernethy. He entered the apartment of the royal gaoler, and
-announced to him that in the course of the night the king had crossed
-the bridge at Stirling. Sir George, startled at this unlooked-for news,
-ran to the apartment of the king; he knocked, and as no one answered,
-he had the door burst open. He looked round on all sides and exclaimed,
-‘Treachery! the king is fled!’ He gave instant notice to his brother,
-the earl of Angus, and sent messengers in all directions<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span> with orders
-to arrest the king wheresoever he might be found. All was useless. The
-tidings of this event being spread abroad, the enemies of the Douglases
-hastened in crowds to Stirling. Without loss of time the king called
-together the parliament and got a decree of banishment issued against
-Angus. The latter, cast down suddenly from the height of greatness,
-made his escape into England, passing safely through many difficulties
-and dangers.</p>
-
-<p>From that time James V. bore rule himself, so far at least as the
-priests would allow him. In the character of this strange prince were
-combined insatiable ambition and unparalleled feebleness, kindliness
-full of affability and implacable resentment, a great regard for
-justice and violent passions, an eager desire to protect the weak from
-the oppression of the powerful and fits of rage which did not spare
-even the lowly. The king reigned, but the clergy governed. As the
-aim of James V. was to humble the nobles, a close alliance with the
-clergy was a necessity for him, and once having taken the side of the
-priests, he went to great lengths. The archbishops of St. Andrews and
-Glasgow, the bishop of Dunkeld, and the abbot of Holyrood were placed
-at the head of the government, and the most distinguished members
-of the aristocracy were immediately imprisoned or sent into exile.
-No Douglas, and no partisan even of that house, was allowed to come
-within twelve miles of the court. Persecution attacked at the same
-time the evangelical Christians; men who might have elevated their
-country perished on the scaffold. The course pursued by the priests
-tended to defeat their own end. The nobles, exasperated by the tyranny
-of the bishops, began to feel the aversion for the Church of Rome
-which they felt for its leading men. It was not indeed from the Romish
-religion that they broke off, but only from an ambitious and merciless
-hierarchy. But erelong we shall find the nobles, ever more and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span>
-more provoked by the clergy, beginning to lend a willing ear to the
-evangelical doctrine of those who opposed the clergy.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ALESIUS.</div>
-
-<p>Before that moment arrived, the conquests of the Reformation in
-Scotland had begun. It counted already many humble but devout adherents
-in convents, parsonage houses and cottages. At the head of the canons
-of St. Augustine at St. Andrews was an immoral man, an enemy of the
-Gospel, prior Hepburn; nevertheless, it was among them that the
-awakening began. One of the canons, Alesius, had been confirmed in the
-faith of the Gospel by the testimony which Hamilton had borne to the
-truth during his trial, and by the simple and heroic beauty of his
-death, which he had witnessed. On returning to his priory he had felt
-more deeply the need of reformation. ‘Ah,’ said he, ‘how wretched is
-the state of the Church! Destitute of teachers competent to teach her,
-she finds herself kept far away from the Holy Scriptures,<a name="FNanchor_136_136" id="FNanchor_136_136"></a><a href="#Footnote_136_136" class="fnanchor">[136]</a> which
-would lead her into all truth.’ Alesius gave utterance at the same time
-to the love which he felt even for the persecutors. ‘I do not hate the
-bishops,’ he said; ‘I do not hate any of the religious orders; but
-I tremble to see Christ’s doctrine buried under thick darkness, and
-pious folk subjected to horrible tortures. May all learn what power
-religion displays in men’s souls, by examining with care its divine
-sources.’<a name="FNanchor_137_137" id="FNanchor_137_137"></a><a href="#Footnote_137_137" class="fnanchor">[137]</a> The death of Hamilton was day after day the subject of
-the canons’ conversation, and Alesius steadily refused to condemn him.</p>
-
-<p>The worthless Hepburn and his satellites could not endure this. They
-denounced Alesius to the archbishop as a man who had embraced the
-faith for which Hamilton had been burnt, and they added that other
-canons seemed likely to take the same path. In order to ascertain the
-sentiments of the young man, the primate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span> resolved to lay a snare for
-him; and when a provincial synod met at St. Andrews, he appointed
-Alesius to preach the sermon at its opening. Alesius entered the
-pulpit, and, while avoiding anything which might uselessly offend his
-hearers, he brought forward the doctrines of the truth, and boldly
-urged the clergy to give an example of holy living, and not to be
-stumbling-blocks to the faithful by scandalous licentiousness.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS IMPRISONMENT.</div>
-
-<p>As they went out of the church, many expressed approval. The archbishop
-was grave, and did not say a word; but Hepburn, a proud, violent, and
-domineering man, whose shameless connexions, says Bayle,<a name="FNanchor_138_138" id="FNanchor_138_138"></a><a href="#Footnote_138_138" class="fnanchor">[138]</a> were
-known to everybody, thought that Alesius meant to point him out and to
-excite his superiors against him, and he resolved to take vengeance
-on him. His fears were not unfounded. The discourse of Alesius had
-impressed the best men among the canons, and these, convinced of the
-necessity of putting an end to public scandals, joined together, and
-decided to carry to the king a complaint against the prior. Hepburn
-was immediately informed of their purpose, and, being constitutionally
-more fit for a soldier than for a canon, he took some armed men and
-entered suddenly into the hall in which the conference was held, to the
-great astonishment of the assembly. ‘Seize that man!’ said he to his
-men-at-arms, pointing to Alesius. The young canon begged the prior to
-keep his temper; but at these words the proud Hepburn, no longer master
-of himself, drew his sword, advanced towards Alesius, and was going to
-attack him, when two canons thrust themselves in front of their chief,
-and turned the blow aside.<a name="FNanchor_139_139" id="FNanchor_139_139"></a><a href="#Footnote_139_139" class="fnanchor">[139]</a> The impetuous prelate, however, was
-not pacified, and, calling his men to his aid, he followed up Alesius,
-in order to strike<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span> him. The latter, in confusion and terror, finding
-himself within an inch of death, fell at the prior’s feet, and implored
-him not to shed innocent blood. Hepburn, to show his contempt for him,
-would not honor him so much as to pierce him with his sword, but gave
-him several kicks, and this with such force that the poor canon fainted
-away, and lay stretched on the floor before his enemy.<a name="FNanchor_140_140" id="FNanchor_140_140"></a><a href="#Footnote_140_140" class="fnanchor">[140]</a> When he
-came to himself, the fierce prior ordered the soldiers to take him to
-prison, as well as the other canons; and they were all cast into a foul
-and unwholesome dungeon.</p>
-
-<p>These deeds of violence were noised abroad in the whole city, and
-men’s feelings were divided between contempt and horror. Some of the
-nobles, however, who had esteemed Hamilton, were profoundly indignant;
-and they betook themselves to the king, and implored him to check the
-intolerable tyranny of the prior. The young king gave orders that
-all the canons should be set at liberty, and kindly added, that ‘he
-would go himself and deliver them with his own hand if he did not
-know that the place in which they were confined was infected with the
-plague.’<a name="FNanchor_141_141" id="FNanchor_141_141"></a><a href="#Footnote_141_141" class="fnanchor">[141]</a> The prior obeyed the royal command, but only in part; he
-had Alesius thrust into a place that was fouler still.<a name="FNanchor_142_142" id="FNanchor_142_142"></a><a href="#Footnote_142_142" class="fnanchor">[142]</a> And now he
-was alone; had no longer a friend to clasp his hand; saw only hostile
-faces. He knew that God was with him; but the sufferings inflicted on
-him by the cruel prior, the filth, the bad smells, the vermin that
-began to prey on him, the dark and perpetual night which filled that
-frightful sink, endangered his life. It was known in the city that he
-was ill; it was even reported one day that he was dead. James V. had
-the prior of St. Augustine’s called before him, and com<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span>manded him
-to liberate Alesius. The hypocritical prior swore by the saints that
-the canon was free; and returning immediately to the priory, he gave
-orders to bring out of the frightful dungeon the wretched man, who had
-languished there for twenty days. Alesius came out, covered with filth,
-and horrible to look on.<a name="FNanchor_143_143" id="FNanchor_143_143"></a><a href="#Footnote_143_143" class="fnanchor">[143]</a> It was some comfort to him to once more
-see the light of day. Some of the servants took him; they put off his
-filthy garments, washed him carefully, and then put on him clean and
-even elegant clothes.<a name="FNanchor_144_144" id="FNanchor_144_144"></a><a href="#Footnote_144_144" class="fnanchor">[144]</a> Thus attired, the victim was led before
-Hepburn, who forbade him to tell anyone how he had been treated. The
-prior then summoned the city magistrates, and showing them, with an air
-of triumph, Alesius, clean and well dressed, said&mdash;‘There is the man
-who is reported to be kept in prison by me, and even to be dead. Go,
-sirs, and give the lie to these calumnies.’ The wretch added to his
-cruelty, falsehood, stratagem, and shamelessness.</p>
-
-<p>The magistrates then turning with kind looks to the prisoner, required
-him in the king’s name to tell the whole truth; and Alesius related
-the shameful treatment which he had suffered. The prior, embarrassed,
-could not deny the fact, but assured the provost and his colleagues
-that from that moment the prisoner was and would remain free; on which
-the council withdrew. The door had hardly closed before the enraged
-prior loaded Alesius with reproaches, and ordered him to be taken
-back to prison. A year passed, and neither king nor magistrate had
-snatched from that savage beast the prey on which he set his mind. In
-vain was it that Alesius had his complaint laid before the archbishop;
-the latter replied that he had noticed in his discourse a leaning to
-Lutheranism, and that he deserved the penalty which had fallen on him.
-His deliverance seemed impossible.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ALESIUS AGAIN IMPRISONED.</div>
-
-<p>One day, however, it became known in the monastery that the prior
-was going out, and would be absent for several days. The canons,
-immediately hastening to their unhappy friend, took him out of the
-prison, conducted him into the open air, and paid him the most
-affectionate attentions. By degrees his strength was restored; he took
-courage, and one day he undertook to perform divine service at the
-altar. But this act of devotion was suddenly interrupted. The prior
-came back sooner than he was expected; he entered the church, and saw
-Alesius officiating, and the chapter around him. The blood rose to his
-face, and, without the slightest hesitation about interrupting divine
-service, he ordered the prisoner to be carried off from the altar,
-and again cast into his foul dungeon.<a name="FNanchor_145_145" id="FNanchor_145_145"></a><a href="#Footnote_145_145" class="fnanchor">[145]</a> The canons, scandalized at
-this order, rose from their stalls, and represented to their superior
-that it was not lawful to interrupt the worship. Hepburn then allowed
-Alesius to go on with the service; but as soon as it was finished,
-he had him again confined in the place from which his colleagues had
-rescued him.</p>
-
-<p>In order to prevent the canons taking such liberties again, the prior
-appointed as keeper of the prison one John Hay, a cruel and fanatical
-priest, a man who would servilely carry out his master’s orders. The
-canons, friends of Alesius, had no doubt that the prior had given the
-office to that scoundrel with the intention of making away with the
-prisoner. They said to one another, that if they did not bring about
-his escape immediately, his life would be taken. The same day, before
-Hay had entered upon his office, the first shades of night had scarcely
-spread their veil over the ancient city when a few of them bent their
-way secretly to the dungeon. They succeeded, though not without
-difficulty, in penetrating to the place where the prisoner lay, and
-told<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span> him that Hay had been named his keeper, and that consequently he
-had nothing to look for but horrible tortures and certain death. They
-added, that the king being absent, the opportunity would assuredly be
-taken to get rid of him, as it had been in Hamilton’s case; and that
-he could therefore only save his life by taking flight and quitting
-Scotland.<a name="FNanchor_146_146" id="FNanchor_146_146"></a><a href="#Footnote_146_146" class="fnanchor">[146]</a> Alesius was in amazement; to forsake his country and
-his friends seemed to him an extreme course. He proposed to go first
-to those with whom he was most closely connected, to take counsel with
-them as to what he ought to do. ‘Take care not to do that,’ replied the
-canons; ‘leave the country immediately without a word to anybody, for
-as soon as the prior finds that you are no longer in your dungeon, he
-will send horsemen to seize you on the road, or to carry you off from
-your friends’ house.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS LOVE FOR SCOTLAND.</div>
-
-<p>Alesius could not make up his mind to follow this advice. The thought
-of bidding adieu to Scotland, perhaps for ever, filled him with the
-keenest sorrow.<a name="FNanchor_147_147" id="FNanchor_147_147"></a><a href="#Footnote_147_147" class="fnanchor">[147]</a> His dream had been to consecrate all his energies
-to the salvation of his fellow-citizens, and to do good even to those
-who wronged him; and now he was to be condemned never again to see
-Scottish faces, Edinburgh, its valleys, its lofty houses, its narrow
-streets, its castle, Holyrood, the fertile plains of Caledonia, its
-low hills covered with pasture, its heaths wrapped in mists, and its
-marsh-lands, monotonous and yet poetic, which a gloomy sea environs
-with its waters, now mournful and still, now agitated by the violence
-of the winds. All these he must quit, though he had loved them from
-childhood. ‘Ah!’ exclaimed he, ‘what is there more dear to souls
-happily born than their native land?’<a name="FNanchor_148_148" id="FNanchor_148_148"></a><a href="#Footnote_148_148" class="fnanchor">[148]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span> But presently he corrected
-himself. ‘The Church,’ said he, ‘is the Christian’s country far more
-than the place which gave him birth.<a name="FNanchor_149_149" id="FNanchor_149_149"></a><a href="#Footnote_149_149" class="fnanchor">[149]</a> Assuredly the name of one’s
-native land is very dear, but that of the Church is dearer still.’ He
-perceived that if he did not go away, it was all over with him; and
-that if he did go away, he might contribute, even from afar, towards
-the triumph of the truth in the land of his fathers, and possibly might
-return thither at a later day. ‘Go!’ repeated the noble canons, who
-would fain save at any cost a life so precious; ‘all honest people
-desire it.’ ‘Well,’ said Alesius, ‘I bend to the yoke of necessity;
-I will go.’ The canons, who had everything ready, immediately got
-him secretly out of the priory, conducted him beyond the city, and
-gave him the money needful for his voyage. These generous men, less
-advanced than their friend in knowledge of the Scriptures, perceived
-that by his departure they would lose an inestimable treasure; but they
-thought rather of him than of themselves&mdash;they strove to dissipate his
-melancholy, and they called to his recollection the illustrious men
-and the saints who had been compelled, like him, to fly far from the
-wrath of tyrants. At length the solemn moment of farewell was come, and
-all of them, deeply affected at the thought that perhaps they would
-never meet again, burst into tears.<a name="FNanchor_150_150" id="FNanchor_150_150"></a><a href="#Footnote_150_150" class="fnanchor">[150]</a> They paid the tribute due to
-nature; for, as Calvin says, ‘The perfection of the faithful does not
-lie in throwing off every affection, but in cherishing them for worthy
-causes.’<a name="FNanchor_151_151" id="FNanchor_151_151"></a><a href="#Footnote_151_151" class="fnanchor">[151]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was midnight. Alesius had to pass on foot across the north of
-Fifeshire, then to cross the Firth of Tay and go on to Dundee, whence
-a ship was on the point of sailing. He set out alone, and travelled
-on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>wards in the thick darkness.<a name="FNanchor_152_152" id="FNanchor_152_152"></a><a href="#Footnote_152_152" class="fnanchor">[152]</a> He directed his steps towards
-the Tay, having the sea at a certain distance on his right; traversed
-Leuchars, and arrived at Newport, opposite Dundee, where he had to
-take a boat to cross the Firth. During this night-journey he was beset
-with the saddest thoughts. ‘Oh!’ said he to himself, ‘what a life
-full of bitterness is offered me&mdash;to forsake one’s kinsfolk and one’s
-country;<a name="FNanchor_153_153" id="FNanchor_153_153"></a><a href="#Footnote_153_153" class="fnanchor">[153]</a> to be exposed to the greatest dangers so long as the
-vessel is not reached; to fly into foreign lands, where no hospitable
-roof is ready to receive me; to have in prospect all the ills of exile;
-to live among foreign peoples, where I have not a single friend; to
-be called to converse with men speaking unknown languages; to wander
-to and fro on the Continent at a time when so many vagabonds, driven
-from their own country for fanatical or seditious opinions, are justly
-looked on with suspicion. Oh! what anxieties, what griefs.’ His soul
-sank within him; but having lifted up his eyes to Christ with full
-trust, he was suddenly consoled, and after a rude conflict, he came
-victorious out of the trial.<a name="FNanchor_154_154" id="FNanchor_154_154"></a><a href="#Footnote_154_154" class="fnanchor">[154]</a></p>
-
-<p>His fears, however, were only too well founded. No sooner had the
-violent Hepburn learnt the flight of the prisoner than he assembled
-some horsemen, set off in pursuit of him,<a name="FNanchor_155_155" id="FNanchor_155_155"></a><a href="#Footnote_155_155" class="fnanchor">[155]</a> and reached Dundee,
-from which port he knew that a vessel was sailing for Germany. Alesius
-was expecting every moment to see him appear. ‘How shameful in a
-dignitary of the Church,’ said he, ‘is this man’s cruelty! What rage
-moved him when he drew his sword against me! To what sufferings has he
-exposed me, and with what perils has he threatened me! It is a complete
-tragedy!...’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FLIGHT OF ALESIUS.</div>
-
-<p>In the morning Alesius entered the town of Dundee. Fearing that, in
-case of being arrested, he should fall into the hands of the prior, he
-went immediately on board the ship, which was going to sail; and the
-captain, who was a German and probably a Protestant, received him very
-kindly.<a name="FNanchor_156_156" id="FNanchor_156_156"></a><a href="#Footnote_156_156" class="fnanchor">[156]</a></p>
-
-<p>The prior and the horsemen, who had set out from St. Andrews, arrived
-a little later at Dundee, and, alighting from their horses, began to
-search for Alesius. He was nowhere to be found; the vessel had already
-cleared the port. The prior, enraged to find that his prey had escaped
-him, must needs vent his wrath on some one. ‘It is you,’ said he to a
-citizen well known for his attachment to the Reformation, ‘it is you
-who furnished the canon with the means of escape.’ This man denied
-the charge, and then the provost or mayor, Sir James Scrymgeour of
-Dornlope, avowed to the prior that he would with all his heart have
-provided a vessel for Alesius; and, he added, ‘I would have given him
-the necessary funds for the purpose of rescuing him from the perils to
-which your cruelty exposed him.’ The Scrymgeours, whose chief was the
-provost of Dundee, formed a numerous and powerful family, connected
-with several other noble houses of the realm. They were not the only
-family among the aristocracy which was favorable to the Gospel; several
-illustrious houses had from the first welcomed the Reformation&mdash;the
-Kirkaldys and the Melvilles of Fifeshire, the Scrymgeours and the
-Erskines of Angus, the Forresters and Sandilands of Stirlingshire and
-the Lothians, and others besides. The prior, who had not at all looked
-for such a remonstrance as he had just received, went back, annoyed and
-furious, to St. Andrews.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>While the ship on which Alesius had embarked sailed towards France, the
-refugee felt his own weakness, and found strength in the Lord. ‘O God,’
-said he, ‘thou dost put the oil of thy compassion only into the vessel
-of a steadfast and filial trust.<a name="FNanchor_157_157" id="FNanchor_157_157"></a><a href="#Footnote_157_157" class="fnanchor">[157]</a> I must assuredly have gone down
-to the gates of hell unless all my hope had been in thy mercy alone.’
-The ship had not long been on her way when a westerly wind, blowing
-violently, carried her eastward, drove her into the Sound, and made it
-necessary to go ashore at Malmoe, in Sweden, in order to refit her.
-Alesius was very lovingly welcomed there by the Scots who had settled
-in the town.<a name="FNanchor_158_158" id="FNanchor_158_158"></a><a href="#Footnote_158_158" class="fnanchor">[158]</a> At length he reached France, traversed part of the
-coast of that kingdom,<a name="FNanchor_159_159" id="FNanchor_159_159"></a><a href="#Footnote_159_159" class="fnanchor">[159]</a> then betook himself to Cologne, where he
-was favorably received by archbishop Hermann, count of Wied.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">CONFESSORS OF THE GOSPEL AND MARTYRS ARE MULTIPLIED IN SCOTLAND.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(End of 1531 to 1534.)</p>
-
-<p>The bishops of Scotland appeared to triumph. Hamilton was dead, Alesius
-in exile, and not one evangelical voice was any longer heard in the
-realm. They now turned their thoughts to the destruction of that proud
-aristocracy which assumed that the functions of the state belonged to
-the nobles and not to the priests. The estates of the earl of Crawford
-had already been confis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span>cated; the earls of Argyle and Bothwell and
-several others had been imprisoned, and insults had been offered
-to the earl of Murray, Lord Maxwell, Sir James Hamilton, and their
-friends.<a name="FNanchor_160_160" id="FNanchor_160_160"></a><a href="#Footnote_160_160" class="fnanchor">[160]</a> The archbishop of Glasgow, chancellor of Scotland, went
-still further; he deprived the nobles of their ancient jurisdiction,
-and set up in its place a <i>College of Justice</i>, composed exclusively of
-ecclesiastics. The nobles thought now only of delivering Scotland from
-the yoke of the clergy, and determined to invite the aid of Henry VIII.
-Some of them were beginning even to feel interested in those humble
-evangelical believers who were, like themselves, the object of the
-priests’ hatred. This interest was one day to contribute to the triumph
-of the Reformation. It was resolved that the earl of Bothwell should
-open negotiations with Henry VIII., and this at the very time that that
-prince was separating from Rome. This alliance might lead a long way.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BOTHWELL AND NORTHUMBERLAND.</div>
-
-<p>The earl of Northumberland was then at Newcastle, charged by the King
-of England to watch over affairs in the north. It was to him that
-Bothwell addressed himself. Northumberland having referred to Henry
-on the subject, it was agreed that the two earls should meet by night
-at Dilston, a place almost equally distant from Newcastle and from
-the Scottish frontier. At the mid-hour of the long night of December
-21, 1531, Bothwell, accompanied by three of his friends, arrived at
-the appointed place, where Northumberland was awaiting him.<a name="FNanchor_161_161" id="FNanchor_161_161"></a><a href="#Footnote_161_161" class="fnanchor">[161]</a> They
-entered immediately on the conference. The English lord was struck
-with the intelligence, the acquirements, and the refined manners of
-Bothwell. ‘Verily,’ said he to Henry VIII., ‘I have never in my<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span> life
-met a lord so agreeable and so handsome.’ Bothwell, angered by the
-pride of the priests, reported their conduct with respect to Angus,
-Argyle, and Murray. ‘They kept me, too, confined in Edinburgh Castle
-for six months,’ said he, ‘and but for the intervention of my friends
-they would have put me to death. I know that such a fate is still
-impending over me.’ Bothwell added, that if the King of England would
-deliver the Scottish nobles from the evils which they had reason to
-dread, he himself (Bothwell) was ready to join Henry VIII. with one
-thousand gentlemen and six thousand men-at-arms. ‘We will crown him
-in a little while,’ he added, ‘in the town of Edinburgh.’<a name="FNanchor_162_162" id="FNanchor_162_162"></a><a href="#Footnote_162_162" class="fnanchor">[162]</a> The
-enraged nobles were actually giving themselves up to strange fancies:
-according to their view, the only remedy for the ills of their country
-was the union of Scotland with England under the sceptre of Henry VIII.
-Scotland would in that case have submitted to a reform at the king’s
-hand; but she was reserved for other destinies, and her reform was to
-proceed from the people, and to be effected by the Word of God.</p>
-
-<p>The King of England was in no lack of motives for intervention in
-Scotland. James V. had just concluded an alliance for a hundred years
-with Charles V., the mortal enemy of Henry VIII., and had even asked
-for the hand of the emperor’s sister, the ex-queen of Hungary. This
-princess had rejected the match, and the emperor had proposed to James
-his niece Dorothea, daughter of the King of Denmark.</p>
-
-<p>Bothwell was able even to tell Northumberland, in this
-night-conference, of matters graver still. A secret ambassador from
-Charles V., said he, Peter von Rosenberg, has recently been at
-Edinburgh and, in a long conversation which he had with the king in
-his private apartments, has promised him that the emperor would<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span> put
-him in a position, before Easter, to assume the title of <i>prince of
-England</i> and duke of York.<a name="FNanchor_163_163" id="FNanchor_163_163"></a><a href="#Footnote_163_163" class="fnanchor">[163]</a> The Roman party, despairing of Henry
-VIII., were willing to transmit the crown to his nephew, the King
-of Scotland. Bothwell added that James, as he left the conference,
-met the chancellor of the kingdom and several nobles, and made haste
-to communicate to them the magnificent promise of Charles V. The
-chancellor contented himself with saying, ‘Pray God I may live to see
-the day on which the Pope will confirm it.’ The king replied, ‘Only let
-the emperor act; he will labor strenuously for us.’ It was not James
-V., but his grandson, who was to ascend the throne of the Tudors.</p>
-
-<p>The project formed by the Scottish nobles of placing Scotland under the
-sceptre of England was not so easy to carry out as they imagined. The
-priests, who supposed that they had surmounted the dangers proceeding
-from reform, undertook to remove in like manner those with which they
-were threatened by the nobility. But they were mistaken when they
-believed that the fire kindled by the Word of God was extinguished.
-Flames shot up suddenly even in places where it was least of all
-expected to see them.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ALEXANDER SEATON.</div>
-
-<p>A monk of the Dominican order, the order so devoted to the Inquisition,
-Alexander Seaton, confessor to the king&mdash;a man of lofty stature,
-downright, ready-witted and bold even to audacity<a name="FNanchor_164_164" id="FNanchor_164_164"></a><a href="#Footnote_164_164" class="fnanchor">[164]</a>&mdash;was held in
-great esteem at the court. The state of the Church profoundly grieved
-him, and therefore, having been appointed to preach in Lent (1532)
-in the cathedral of St. Andrews, he resolved courageously to avow in
-that Scottish Rome the heavenly doctrine which was making exiles and
-martyrs. Preaching before a large congregation, he said&mdash;‘Jesus Christ
-is the end of the law, and no one is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span> able by his works to satisfy
-divine justice. A living faith which lays hold of the mercy of God in
-Christ, can alone obtain for the sinner the remission of sins. But
-for how many years has God’s law, instead of being faithfully taught,
-been darkened by the tradition of men?’ People were astonished at this
-discourse: some wondered why he did not say a word about pilgrimages
-and other meritorious works; but the priests themselves were afraid to
-lay a complaint against him. ‘He is confessor to the king,’ they said,
-‘and enjoys the favor both of prince and people.’<a name="FNanchor_165_165" id="FNanchor_165_165"></a><a href="#Footnote_165_165" class="fnanchor">[165]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the absence of Seaton, after Lent, the archbishop and the clergy
-took courage, condemned the doctrine which he had preached, and
-appointed another Dominican to refute him. Seaton immediately returned
-from Dundee, whither he had gone, had the cathedral bells rung, and,
-ascending the pulpit, repeated with more energy and clearness still
-what he had previously said. Then, recalling to mind all that a bishop
-ought to be according to St. Paul, he asked, where are such bishops to
-be found in Scotland? The primate, when informed of this discourse,
-summoned him before him, and rebuked him for having asserted that the
-bishops were only dumb dogs. Seaton replied that it was an unfounded
-accusation. ‘Your answer pleases me well,’ exclaimed Beatoun. But the
-witnesses confirmed their deposition. ‘These are liars,’ said again the
-king’s confessor to the archbishop; ‘consider what ears these asses
-have, who cannot decern Paul, Isaiah, Zechariah and Malachi, and friar
-Alexander Seaton. In very deed, my lord, I said that Paul says it
-behoves a bishop to be a teacher. Isaiah said that they that fed not
-the flock are <i>dumb dogs</i>. And Zechariah says, they are idle pastors.
-I of my own head affirmed nothing, but declared what the Spirit of God
-before had pronounced.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SEATON’S FLIGHT.</div>
-
-<p>Beatoun did not hesitate: this bold preacher was evidently putting to
-his mouth the trumpet of Hamilton and Alesius. The primate undertook to
-obtain authority from the king to proceed against his confessor, and it
-was an easier task than he imagined. Seaton, like John the Baptist, had
-no dread of incurring the king’s displeasure, and had rebuked him for
-his licentiousness. James had said nothing at the time, thinking that
-the confessor was only doing his duty. But when he saw the archbishop
-denouncing Seaton, ‘Ah,’ said this young prince, who was given up to
-a loose life,<a name="FNanchor_166_166" id="FNanchor_166_166"></a><a href="#Footnote_166_166" class="fnanchor">[166]</a> ‘I know more than you do of his audacity;’ and
-from that time he showed great coolness towards Seaton. The latter
-perceiving what fate awaited him, quitted the kingdom, and took refuge
-at Berwick. It was about two years after the Lent sermon preached by
-him in 1532.</p>
-
-<p>He did not remain idle. He had a last duty to discharge to his master
-the king. ‘The bishops of your kingdom,’ he wrote to him, ‘oppose our
-teaching the Gospel of Christ. I offer to present myself before your
-majesty, and to convince the priests of error.’<a name="FNanchor_167_167" id="FNanchor_167_167"></a><a href="#Footnote_167_167" class="fnanchor">[167]</a> As the king made
-him no answer, Seaton went to London, where he became chaplain to the
-duke of Suffolk, brother-in-law of Henry VIII., and preached eloquently
-to large audiences.</p>
-
-<p>The King of England liked well enough to receive the friends of the
-Gospel who were banished from Scotland. One priest, more enlightened
-than the rest, Andrew Charteris, had called his colleagues children of
-the devil; and he said aloud&mdash;‘If anyone observes their cunning and
-their falsehood, and accuses them of impurity, they immediately accuse
-him of heresy. If Christ himself were in Scotland, our priestly fathers
-would heap on him more ignominy than the Jews themselves in old<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span> time
-did.’ Henry desired to see the man, talked with him at great length,
-and was much pleased with him. ‘Verily,’ said the king to him, ‘it is a
-great pity that you were ever made a priest.’<a name="FNanchor_168_168" id="FNanchor_168_168"></a><a href="#Footnote_168_168" class="fnanchor">[168]</a></p>
-
-<p>The clergy had now got rid of Hamilton, Seaton, and Alesius; but they
-were nevertheless disquieted because they knew that the Holy Scriptures
-were in Scotland. Notice was therefore given in every parish that ‘it
-is forbidden to sell or to read the New Testament.’ All copies found in
-the shops were ordered to be burnt.<a name="FNanchor_169_169" id="FNanchor_169_169"></a><a href="#Footnote_169_169" class="fnanchor">[169]</a> Alesius, who was in Germany at
-that time, was greatly afflicted, and resolved to speak.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LETTER OF ALESIUS.</div>
-
-<p>‘I hear, sire,’ he wrote to the king, ‘that the bishops are
-driving souls away from the oracles of Christ. Could the Turks do
-anything worse? Would morality exist in independence of the Holy
-Scriptures?<a name="FNanchor_170_170" id="FNanchor_170_170"></a><a href="#Footnote_170_170" class="fnanchor">[170]</a> Would religion itself be anything else than a certain
-discipline of public manners? That is the doctrine of Epicurus; but
-what will become of the Church if the bishops propagate Epicurean
-dogmas? God ordains that we should hear the Son, not as a doctor who
-philosophizes on the theory of morals, but as a prophet who reveals
-holy things unknown to the world. If the bishops promote the infliction
-of the severest penalties on those who hear his word, the knowledge of
-Jesus Christ will become extinct, and the people will take up pagan
-opinions.<a name="FNanchor_171_171" id="FNanchor_171_171"></a><a href="#Footnote_171_171" class="fnanchor">[171]</a></p>
-
-<p>‘Most serene king, resist these impious counsels! Those who are in the
-fulness of age, infancy, and the generation to come, unite in imploring
-you to do so. We are punished, we are put to death.... Eurybiades<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span> of
-Sparta, commander-in-chief, having in the course of a debate raised his
-staff against Themistocles while forbidding him to speak, the Athenian
-replied, “Strike, but hear!” We shall say the same. We shall speak, for
-the Gospel alone can strengthen souls amidst the infinite perils of the
-present time.’</p>
-
-<p>Neither king nor priests replied to the <i>Letter of Alesius</i>; but a
-famous German, Cochlæus, the opponent of Luther, undertook to induce
-James V. to pay no attention to that discourse. ‘Sire,’ he wrote
-to him, ‘the calamities which the New Testaments disseminated by
-Luther have brought down upon Germany are so great, that the bishops,
-in turning their sheep away from that deadly pasture, have shown
-themselves to be faithful shepherds. Incalculable sums have been
-thrown away on the printing of a hundred thousand copies of that book.
-Now, what advantage have its readers drawn from it, unless it be an
-advantage to be cast into prison, to be banished, and made to suffer
-other tribulations? A decree is not enough, sire; it is necessary to
-act. The bishop of Treves has had the New Testaments thrown into the
-Rhine, and with them the booksellers who sold them. This example has
-frightened others, and happily so, for that book is the Gospel of
-Satan, and not of Jesus Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_172_172" id="FNanchor_172_172"></a><a href="#Footnote_172_172" class="fnanchor">[172]</a> This was the model proposed to
-King James.</p>
-
-<p>At the same time the Romish party was endeavoring to embroil Scotland
-with England, and James was already engaging in several skirmishes. One
-day, under the pretext of the hunt, he threw himself, with ‘a small
-company’ of <i>three hundred persons</i>, on the estates the possession of
-which was disputed by his uncle.<a name="FNanchor_173_173" id="FNanchor_173_173"></a><a href="#Footnote_173_173" class="fnanchor">[173]</a> Shortly afterwards, four hundred
-Scots invaded the Marches<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span> (frontier districts) at sunrise, and were
-carrying off what they found there. Northumberland repulsed them, and
-put to death the prisoners which fell into his hands. The Scots took
-and burnt some English towns; the English invaded Scotland, and ravaged
-its towns and country districts. The King of Scotland, intimidated,
-applied to the pope and the King of France, and cried out for aid
-with all his might. And then, in order to please at the same time the
-priests, the pope, and Francis I., he took the advice of Cochlæus; with
-the exception, that in Scotland the fire at the stake was substituted
-for the waters of the Rhine.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HENRY FORREST.</div>
-
-<p>A young monk, named Henry Forrest, who was in the Benedictine
-monastery at Linlithgow, a man equally quick in his sympathies and
-his antipathies, had been touched by Hamilton’s words, and uttered
-everywhere aloud his regret for the death of that young kinsman of the
-king, calling him a martyr. This monk was presently convicted of a
-crime more enormous still: he was a reader of the New Testament. The
-archbishop had him imprisoned at St. Andrews. One day a friar (sent by
-the prelate) came to him for the purpose, he said, of administering
-consolation; and offering to confess him, he succeeded by crafty
-questions in leading the young Benedictine to tell him all he thought
-about Hamilton’s doctrines. Forrest was immediately condemned to be
-delivered over to the secular authorities to be put to death, and a
-clerical assembly was called together for the purpose of degrading
-him. The young friend of the Gospel had hardly passed the door where
-the assembly was sitting, when, discovering the archbishop and the
-priests drawn up in a circle before him, he became aware of what
-awaited him, and cried out with a voice full of contempt, ‘Fie on
-falsehood! fie on false friars, revealers of confession!’<a name="FNanchor_174_174" id="FNanchor_174_174"></a><a href="#Footnote_174_174" class="fnanchor">[174]</a> When one
-of the clerks came up to him to degrade him, the Benedictine, weary of
-so<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span> much perfidy, exclaimed, ‘Take from me not only your own orders
-but also your own baptism.’ He meant by that, says an historian, the
-superstitious practices which Rome has added to the institutions of the
-Lord. These words provoked the assembly still more. ‘We must burn him,’
-said the primate, ‘in order to terrify the others.’ A simple-minded
-and candid man who was by the side of Beatoun said to him in a tone of
-irony, ‘My lord, if you burn him, take care that it be done in a cave,
-for the smoke of Hamilton’s pile infected with heresy all who caught
-the scent of it.’</p>
-
-<p>This advice was not taken. To the northward of St. Andrews, in the
-counties of Forfar and Angus, there were a good many people who loved
-the New Testament which was come from Germany. There still exist in
-that district a village named <i>Luthermoor</i>, <i>Luther’s torrent</i>, which
-falls into the North Esk, <i>Luther’s Bridge</i>, and <i>Luther’s Mill</i>.<a name="FNanchor_175_175" id="FNanchor_175_175"></a><a href="#Footnote_175_175" class="fnanchor">[175]</a>
-Forrest’s persecutors determined to erect his funeral pile in such
-a situation that the population of Forfar and Angus might see the
-flames,<a name="FNanchor_176_176" id="FNanchor_176_176"></a><a href="#Footnote_176_176" class="fnanchor">[176]</a> and thus learn the danger which threatened them if they
-should fall into Protestantism. The pile was therefore placed to the
-north of the abbey church of St. Andrews, and the fire was visible in
-those districts of the north which were afterwards to bear Luther’s
-name. Henry Forrest was Scotland’s second martyr.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DAVID STRAITON.</div>
-
-<p>In the same neighborhood there soon after appeared one who was to be
-the third to lay down his life for the Reformation in Scotland. A small
-country seat, situated on the sea-coast near the mouth of the North
-Esk, was inhabited by one of the Straitons of Lauriston, a family which
-had held the estate of that name from the sixth century. The members
-of this family were for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span> the most part distinguished for their tall
-stature, their bodily strength, and their energy of character. David, a
-younger son (the eldest resided in Lauriston Castle), a man worthy of
-his ancestors, was of rude manners and obstinate temper. He displayed
-great contempt for books, especially for religious books, and found his
-chief pleasure in launching his boat on the sea, giving the sails to
-the wind, casting his nets, and struggling hand to hand with the winds
-and the waves. He had soon to engage in struggles of another kind. The
-prior of St. Andrews, Patrick Hepburn, afterwards bishop of Murray,
-a very avaricious man, hearing that David had great success in his
-fishing, demanded tithe of his fish. ‘Tell your master,’ said the proud
-gentleman, ‘that if he wants to have it, he may come and take it on the
-spot.’ From that time, every day as he drew up his nets, he exclaimed
-to the fishermen, ‘Pay the prior of St. Andrews his tithe,’ and the men
-would straightway throw every tenth fish into the sea.</p>
-
-<p>When the prior of St. Andrews heard of this strange method of
-satisfying his claim, he ordered the vicar of Eglesgreg to go to take
-the fish. The vicar went; but as soon as the rough gentleman saw the
-priest and his men set to work without ceremony on their part, he
-cast the fish to him, and so sharply that some of them fell into the
-sea.<a name="FNanchor_177_177" id="FNanchor_177_177"></a><a href="#Footnote_177_177" class="fnanchor">[177]</a></p>
-
-<p>The prior then instituted proceedings against Straiton for the <i>crime
-of heresy</i>. Never had a council applied that name to a man’s method of
-paying his tithe. No matter; the word <i>heretic</i> at that time inspired
-such terror that the stout-hearted gentleman began to give way; his
-pride was humbled, and, confessing his sins, he felt the need of a
-forgiving God. He sought out therefore all those who could tell him of
-the Gospel or could read it to him, for he could not read himself.</p>
-
-<p>Not far from his abode was Dun Castle, whose lord,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span> John Erskine,
-provost of Montrose, a descendant of the earls of Mar, had attended
-several universities in Scotland and abroad, and had been converted to
-the evangelical faith.</p>
-
-<p>‘God,’ says Knox, ‘had <i>miraculously</i> enlightened him.’ His castle,
-in which the words of prophets and apostles were heard, was ever open to
-those who were athirst for truth; and thus the evangelical Christians
-of the neighborhood had frequent meetings there. Erskine detected the
-change which was taking place in the soul of his rude neighbor; he went
-to see him, conversed with him, and exhorted him to change his life.
-Straiton soon became a regular attendant at the meetings in the castle,
-‘and he was,’ says Knox, ‘transformed as by a miracle.’<a name="FNanchor_178_178" id="FNanchor_178_178"></a><a href="#Footnote_178_178" class="fnanchor">[178]</a></p>
-
-<p>His nephew, the young baron of Lauriston, possessed a New Testament.
-Straiton frequently went to the castle to hear portions of the Gospels
-read. One day the uncle and his nephew went out together, wandered
-about in the neighborhood, and then retired into a lonely place to read
-the Gospels. The young laird chose the tenth chapter of St. Matthew.
-Straiton listened as attentively as if it were to himself that the Lord
-addressed the discourse which is there reported. When they came to
-this declaration of Jesus Christ, ‘Whosoever shall deny me before men,
-him will I also deny before my Father which is in heaven,’ Straiton,
-affected and startled, fell on his knees, stretched his hands upwards,
-and turned for a long time a humble and earnest gaze towards heaven,
-but without speaking the while; he appeared to be in an ecstasy.<a name="FNanchor_179_179" id="FNanchor_179_179"></a><a href="#Footnote_179_179" class="fnanchor">[179]</a>
-At last, no longer able to restrain the feelings which crowded on
-him, he exclaimed&mdash;‘I have been sinful, O Lord, and thou wouldst be
-only just wert thou to withhold thy grace from me! Nevertheless, for
-the sake of thy mercy, suf<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span>fer not the dread of pain or of death to
-lead me ever to deny thee or thy truth.’<a name="FNanchor_180_180" id="FNanchor_180_180"></a><a href="#Footnote_180_180" class="fnanchor">[180]</a> Thenceforward he set
-himself to serve zealously the master whose mighty love he had felt.
-The world appeared to him like a vast sea, full of movement, on which
-men are ever rudely tossed until they have entered into the haven of
-the Gospel. The fisherman became a fisher of men. He exhorted his
-friends and acquaintances to seek God, and he replied to the priests
-with firmness. On one occasion, when they urged him to do some pious
-works which deliver from purgatory, he answered, ‘I know of no other
-purgatory than Christ’s passion and the tribulations of this life.’
-Straiton was carried off to Edinburgh, and cast into prison.</p>
-
-<p>There was another Scotchman, Norman Gourlay, who after taking holy
-orders had travelled on the continent, and had there been enlightened
-by the word of the Gospel. Convinced that ‘marriage is honorable in
-all,’ Gourlay had married on his return to Scotland; and when a priest
-reminded him of the prohibition by Rome, ‘The pope,’ replied he, ‘is no
-bishop, but an Antichrist, and he has no jurisdiction in Scotland.’</p>
-
-<p>On August 26, 1534, these two servants of God were led into a hall of
-Holyrood Abbey. The judges were seated, and with them the king, who,
-appareled in red from head to foot, seemed to be there for the purpose
-of assisting them. James V. pressed these two confirmed Christians
-to abjure their doctrines. ‘Recant; burn your bill,’<a name="FNanchor_181_181" id="FNanchor_181_181"></a><a href="#Footnote_181_181" class="fnanchor">[181]</a> he said to
-them; but Straiton and Gourlay chose rather to be burnt themselves. The
-king, affected and giving way, would fain have pardoned them; but the
-priests declared that he had no authority to do so, since these people
-were condemned by the Church. In the afternoon of August 27 a huge pile
-was lit on the sum<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>mit of Calton Hill, in order that the flames might
-be visible to a great distance; and the fire devoured these two noble
-Christians. If the Reform was afterwards so strong in Scotland it was
-because the seed was holy.</p>
-
-<p>Enough however was not done yet. All these heresies, it was thought,
-proceed from Hamilton; his family must therefore be extirpated from the
-Scottish soil. But Sir James, a good-natured man, an upright magistrate
-and a lover of the Gospel, was for all that not in the humor to let
-himself be burnt like his brother. So, having received one day an order
-to appear before the tribunal, he addressed himself immediately to the
-king, who had him privately told not to appear. Sir James therefore
-quitted the kingdom; he was then condemned, excommunicated, banished,
-and deprived of his estates, and he lived for nearly ten years in
-London in the utmost distress.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">TRIAL OF CATHERINE HAMILTON.</div>
-
-<p>His sister Catherine was both a warm-hearted Scotchwoman and a decided
-Huguenot. She would not make her escape, but appeared at Holyrood in
-the presence of the ecclesiastical tribunal and of the king himself.
-‘By what means,’ they said to her, ‘do you expect to be saved?’&mdash;‘By
-faith in the Saviour,’ she replied, ‘and not by works.’ Then one
-of the canonists, Master John Spence, said at great length&mdash;‘It is
-necessary to distinguish between various kinds of works. In the first
-place, there are works of <i>congruity</i>, secondly, there are works of
-<i>condignity</i>. The works of the just are of this latter category, and
-they merit life <i>ex condigno</i>. There are also <i>pious</i> works; then works
-of <i>supererogation</i>;’ and he explained in scholastic terms what all
-these expressions meant. These strange words sounded in Catherine’s
-ears like the noise of a false-bass (<i>faux-bourdon</i>). Wearied with this
-theological babbling, she got excited, and exclaimed&mdash;‘Works here,
-works there.... What signify all the works?... There is one thing alone
-which I know with certainty, and that is that no<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span> work can save me,
-except the work of Christ my Saviour.’ The doctor sat amazed and made
-no answer, while the king strove in vain to hide a fit of laughter. He
-was anxious to save Catherine, and made a sign for her to come to him;
-he then entreated her to declare to the tribunal that she respected the
-Church. Catherine, who had never had a thought of setting herself in
-rebellion against the higher powers, gave the king leave to say what he
-wished, and withdrew first into England, then to France. She probably
-entered the family of her husband,<a name="FNanchor_182_182" id="FNanchor_182_182"></a><a href="#Footnote_182_182" class="fnanchor">[182]</a> who, during his lifetime, was a
-French officer in the suite of the duke of Albany.</p>
-
-<p>But these punishments and banishments did not put an end to the storm.
-Several other evangelical Christians were also obliged at that time
-to leave Scotland. Gawin Logie, a canon of St. Andrews, and principal
-regent of St. Leonard’s College, at which Patrick Hamilton had
-exercised so powerful an influence, had diffused scriptural principles
-among the students to such an extent that people were accustomed to
-say, when they would make you understand that anyone was an evangelical
-Christian, ‘He has drunk at the well of St. Leonard’s.’ Logie quitted
-Scotland in 1534. Johnston, an Edinburgh advocate, Fife, a friend of
-Alesius, M’Alpine, and several others had to go into exile at the same
-time. The last-named, known on the continent by the name of Maccabæus,
-won the favor of the King of Denmark, and became a professor at the
-university of Copenhagen.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VIII.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">THE KING OF SCOTLAND BREAKS WITH ENGLAND, AND ALLIES HIMSELF WITH
-FRANCE AND THE GUISES.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm">(1534&ndash;1539.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BREAK WITH ENGLAND.</div>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding the literary and liberal pretensions of Francis I.,
-the ultramontane spirit seemed secure of a triumph in France. There
-doubtless existed freer and holier aspirations, but certain of the
-bishops were more popish than the pope, and kings found it convenient
-to show themselves very indulgent to the licentiousness of the clergy,
-provided that they in return would lend a hand in support of their
-despotism. The priests of Scotland therefore redoubled their efforts to
-make a breach between James and his uncle of England, and to ally him
-with the eldest daughter of the papacy.</p>
-
-<p>Henry VIII., who received into his realm many of the exiles who were
-driven from their own country, was troubled at seeing his nephew throw
-himself into the arms of the Roman pontiff. It was for the interest
-of England that Scotland should not take a course opposed to her own:
-the whole of Great Britain ought to cast off the authority of the pope
-at the same time. The Tudor, impatient to reach this end, conceived
-the project of giving his daughter Mary in marriage to the King of
-Scotland; and in order to bring about by degrees a reconciliation,
-he determined to send Lord William Howard to Scotland. To this
-intent he had instructions drawn up in full detail to the effect
-following:<a name="FNanchor_183_183" id="FNanchor_183_183"></a><a href="#Footnote_183_183" class="fnanchor">[183]</a>&mdash;First after your arrival at the court of the king<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span> my
-nephew, you will offer on our part the most friendly greetings, you
-will thank him for his noble present of falcons, and you will assure
-him that the ties of blood which unite us lead me to rejoice at every
-piece of good fortune that befalls him. You will then practise with
-the lord treasurer by some means to get you the measure of the king’s
-person, and you will cause to be made for him the richest and most
-elegant garments possible, by the tailor whom you will have at hand for
-that intent. Then you will tell him that I am greatly desirous to have
-conference with him.</p>
-
-<p>Henry VIII., full of hatred for the papacy, and anxious to see other
-kingdoms strengthen his position by following his example, urged
-his nearest neighbors to found, as he had done, national churches
-acknowledging no other head than the king. He had seen his endeavors
-fail in France, and was all the more desirous of succeeding in
-Scotland. As uncle to the king, the task seemed easy to him. To
-accomplish it he was resolved to use all means, and among others he
-sought to gain over the king by fine clothes made after the London
-fashion. He sent to him at the same time some books against the usurped
-authority of the pope.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DR. BARLOW’S EMBASSY</div>
-
-<p>In October, Dr. Barlow, prior of Bisham, one of the king’s councillors,
-‘a man sufficiently instructed,’ wrote Henry to James, ‘in the
-specialities of certain great and weighty causes,’<a name="FNanchor_184_184" id="FNanchor_184_184"></a><a href="#Footnote_184_184" class="fnanchor">[184]</a> arrived in
-Scotland, and the queen-dowager Margaret procured him a private
-conversation with her son.<a name="FNanchor_185_185" id="FNanchor_185_185"></a><a href="#Footnote_185_185" class="fnanchor">[185]</a> The pope’s partisans at once took the
-alarm, and conjured James not to read the books which Henry VIII.
-had sent to him; they depicted the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span> unheard-of dangers to which he
-would expose his person, his crown, and his kingdom by following
-his uncle’s example. They had the best of it, and James commanded a
-reply to be written to Cromwell, that assuredly no means would be
-neglected of strengthening the bonds of friendship between the two
-sovereigns; but that, in Scotland, there could be no agreement with
-the King of England ‘<i>in the opinions concerning the authority of the
-pope and kirkmen</i>.’<a name="FNanchor_186_186" id="FNanchor_186_186"></a><a href="#Footnote_186_186" class="fnanchor">[186]</a> ‘Here be,’ wrote Barlow to Cromwell, ‘plenty
-of priests, sundry sorts of religions, multitudes of monks, flocking
-companies of friars, yet among them all so many is there not a few, no
-not one, that sincerely preacheth Christ.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It shall be no more dyspleasant for me to depart,’ he wrote on May 23,
-1536, ‘than it was for Lot to pass out of Sodom.’<a name="FNanchor_187_187" id="FNanchor_187_187"></a><a href="#Footnote_187_187" class="fnanchor">[187]</a></p>
-
-<p>Henry was not discouraged, and he sent Lord William Howard a second
-time, in February, 1535. At a solemn session which was held at Holyrood
-with great pomp, Howard delivered to James V., at one and the same
-time, the order of the Garter, which Charles V., Francis I., and
-King Ferdinand had already received, and a declaration touching the
-ecclesiastical supremacy. The king accepted the order with respect,
-and handed over the declaration to his bishops to do what they wished
-with it.<a name="FNanchor_188_188" id="FNanchor_188_188"></a><a href="#Footnote_188_188" class="fnanchor">[188]</a> In vain had Henry given James a glimpse of the prospect
-of sitting on the throne of England by marrying his daughter Mary;
-the priests, and especially Beatoun, got the proposals rejected, from
-which they anticipated nothing but evil. They represented to him the
-risk which he would run if he went to London and put his head at the
-disposal of so treacherous and cruel a prince; and what admiration
-posterity would cherish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span> for him, if at the time when all Europe was
-threatening the Church, he should remain true to the faith of his
-forefathers.</p>
-
-<p>Among the Scottish people there were earnest aspirations after the
-Gospel: but in that country, as in France, the priesthood and the
-government forcibly repressed them. The more the state separated itself
-from the pope in the south of Britain, the more it clung to him in
-the north. The king, now become the direct instrument of the clergy,
-required the parliament to check the progress which the Bible seemed to
-be making in Scotland; and on June 8 this body, adding severity to the
-former laws, enacted that whosoever possessed a New Testament should
-deliver it to his bishop under pain of confiscation and imprisonment,
-and that all <i>discussion</i> about <i>religious opinions</i> was prohibited.
-It gave permission, however, to <i>clerks of the schools to read that
-book, in order that they might the more efficiently contend against
-its adherents</i>. Many priests, monks, and students therefore read the
-New Testament; but this reading produced a quite contrary effect, for
-it led them to receive and to defend the Gospel. This could not but
-irritate the king and his priests, and make them feel still more the
-necessity of an alliance with some ultramontane power. The conversion
-of a Churchman who, through his family, was connected with the court,
-especially attracted their attention.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THOMAS FORREST.</div>
-
-<p>In a small island in the Firth of Forth, not far from Edinburgh,
-stood the ancient abbey of St. Colme, occupied by Augustinian canons.
-Distinguished among them was the son of the master of the stables
-to King James IV. His name was Thomas Forrest, and he is not to be
-confounded with the Benedictine, Henry Forrest, of whom we have already
-spoken. A quarrel had broken out between the abbot and the canons;
-the latter, in order to support their claims, seized the deeds of
-foundation of the monastery. The abbot came in, scolded them<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span> sharply,
-recovered the volume, and gave them in its place an old folio of St.
-Augustine. The canons scornfully turned their backs on the book and
-went back to their cells.</p>
-
-<p>Forrest, left alone, looked at the volume. A work of the great
-Augustine interested him. He took it into his cell, read it, and
-ere long was able to say, with the bishop of Hippo&mdash;‘That which the
-dispensation of works commands, is accomplished by the dispensation of
-grace. O happy and blessed book!’ he would often say, ‘God has made
-use of thee to enlighten my soul.’<a name="FNanchor_189_189" id="FNanchor_189_189"></a><a href="#Footnote_189_189" class="fnanchor">[189]</a> St. Augustine led Forrest to
-the Gospel, and he was not long in making known to his brethren the
-treasure which he had found in the writings of this Father and in the
-New Testament. Aged men stopped their ears. ‘Alas,’ said the son of the
-king’s master-stabler, ‘the <i>old</i> bottles will not receive the <i>new</i>
-wine.’<a name="FNanchor_190_190" id="FNanchor_190_190"></a><a href="#Footnote_190_190" class="fnanchor">[190]</a> The old canons complained to the abbot, and the abbot said
-to Forrest, ‘Look after your own salvation, but talk as other men do.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Before I will recant,’ he replied, laying his hand on his breast,
-‘this body shall be burnt and the wind shall scatter its ashes.’ The
-abbot, anxious to be rid of this innovator, gave him the parish of
-Dollar.</p>
-
-<p>Forrest was one of those men who receive the grace which is offered
-them not only lovingly but with a vehement impetuosity. While many lay
-sleeping he was vigorously going forward to take the kingdom of God.
-There were in him those marvellous impulses, that grand earnestness,
-which the Gospel denotes in the saying, ‘the violent take it by force.’
-He used to study from six in the morning till midday: he learnt every
-day three chapters of the Bible: in the afternoon visited families,
-instructed his parishioners, and endeavored to bring souls to God. When
-he returned in the evening to his vicarage, wearied with his labors, he
-used to say to his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span> servant, ‘Come, Andrew,’ and making him sit down
-beside him, piously recited the three chapters of the Word of God which
-he had learnt in the morning, hoping thus to fix them in his own memory
-and to impress them on the soul of his servant.<a name="FNanchor_191_191" id="FNanchor_191_191"></a><a href="#Footnote_191_191" class="fnanchor">[191]</a> A party of monks
-having invaded his parish to sell indulgences there, Forrest went into
-the pulpit and said, like Luther, ‘You cannot receive pardon for your
-sins either from the pope or from any created being in the world, but
-only by the blood of Jesus Christ.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FORREST AND THE BISHOP.</div>
-
-<p>His enemies hastened to denounce him to the bishop of Dunkeld, calling
-upon him to put a stop to conduct so strange. ‘My joy dean Thomas,’
-said the bishop to him, ‘I am told that you preach every Sunday. That
-is too much. Take my advice, and don’t preach unless you find any
-good gospel or any good epistle that setteth forth the liberty of
-Holy Church.’&mdash;‘My lord,’ replied Forrest, ‘I would wish that your
-lordship preach also every Sunday.’ ‘Nay, nay, dean Thomas,’ said
-the bishop, alarmed, ‘let that be.’&mdash;‘Whereas your lordship biddeth
-me preach,’ continued Forrest, ‘when I find any <i>good</i> epistle, or a
-<i>good</i> gospel, truly, my lord, I have read the New Testament and the
-Old, all the gospels, all the epistles, and among them all I could
-never find an evil epistle or an evil gospel; but if your lordship
-will shew me the good and the evil ones, I will preach the former and
-pass over the latter.’ The bishop, more and more affrighted, exclaimed
-with all his might,<a name="FNanchor_192_192" id="FNanchor_192_192"></a><a href="#Footnote_192_192" class="fnanchor">[192]</a> ‘Thank God, I never knew what the Old and New
-Testament was, and I will to know nothing but my <i>portuese</i><a name="FNanchor_193_193" id="FNanchor_193_193"></a><a href="#Footnote_193_193" class="fnanchor">[193]</a> and my
-<i>pontifical</i>!’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>For the moment Forrest escaped death. The bishop’s saying got abroad
-in Scotland, and people used for a long time to say to any ignorant
-person, ‘<i>Ye are like the bishop of Dunkeldene that knew neither new
-nor old law</i>.’<a name="FNanchor_194_194" id="FNanchor_194_194"></a><a href="#Footnote_194_194" class="fnanchor">[194]</a></p>
-
-<p>The discontent of the people with the clergy went on increasing, and
-at a provincial council which met at Edinburgh in March, 1536, Sir
-James Hamilton, in the king’s name, demanded various reforms. The men
-of the kirk were indignant. ‘Never had they been so ill content,’ said
-Angus.<a name="FNanchor_195_195" id="FNanchor_195_195"></a><a href="#Footnote_195_195" class="fnanchor">[195]</a></p>
-
-<p>The monks, in alarm, began to attack the Reformation from their pulpits.</p>
-
-<p>Bishop Barlow, the English envoy, thought the moment a favorable one
-for reform in Scotland. ‘If I may obtain the king’s license,’ he wrote
-to Cromwell, then first secretary of state to Henry VIII., ‘otherwise
-shall I not be suffered to preach, I will not spare for no bodily
-peril, boldly to publish the truth of God’s Word among them. Whereat
-though the clergy shall repine, yet many of the lay people will gladly
-give hearing. And until the Word of God be planted among them, I
-suppose their feigned promises shall be finally found frustrate without
-any faithful effect.’<a name="FNanchor_196_196" id="FNanchor_196_196"></a><a href="#Footnote_196_196" class="fnanchor">[196]</a></p>
-
-<p>It seemed as if the hopes of the Anglican bishop were beginning to be
-realized. It was rumored that the King of Scotland, offended at the
-reception which his demands had met in the council, was going to have
-a conference with his uncle. The prelates thought that if that project
-were carried out they were undone. ‘Pray do not allow,’ they said to
-the king, ‘a single word to be spoken by the King of England to induce
-you to adopt his new constitutions of the Scripture.’<a name="FNanchor_197_197" id="FNanchor_197_197"></a><a href="#Footnote_197_197" class="fnanchor">[197]</a> James was
-willing and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span> unwilling: but he yielded, and the interview with the
-terrible Tudor was given up. But the bishops were not yet freed from
-their alarm; they dreaded the influence of the English ambassadors, and
-that of the queen-mother, and they feared that they might not be strong
-enough another time. In order to confirm the prince in his resolution,
-they conceived the plan of getting him to request a brief from the pope
-to <i>forbid</i> his holding intercourse with Henry VIII. Thompson, the
-apostolic prothonotary, was secretly charged with this strange mission,
-and the priests thought it a capital stroke to ask the King of England
-to grant this agent a passport, taking good care to conceal from him
-the object of the mission. Henry, not at all suspicious, agreed to
-their request, and these cunning clerks could laugh together at their
-paltry trick. But the queen-mother, when she became acquainted with
-all these intrigues, sharply rebuked her son. Sensitive and violent,
-as weak men frequently are, James forgot all respect, and accused his
-mother of accepting gifts from the king her brother to betray the
-king her son. Margaret indignantly declared that she would return to
-London,<a name="FNanchor_198_198" id="FNanchor_198_198"></a><a href="#Footnote_198_198" class="fnanchor">[198]</a> and the two English envoys hastened their departure from
-Scotland. The Scottish clergy had been very much alarmed at the project
-formed by Henry VIII. of giving his daughter Mary to his nephew; but
-the daughter of Catherine of Aragon would not have been wanting in
-submissiveness to the pope. The clerical party, having succeeded in
-stirring up quarrels in the royal family, between the mother and the
-son and between the uncle and the nephew, and anxious to make the
-proposed union forever impossible, hinted to the young prince that the
-eldest daughter of the King of France, the sister-in-law of Catherine
-de’ Medici, would be for him a far more glorious and advantageous
-alliance. This scheme pleased James, and when the rumor ran that the
-emperor was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span> on the point of invading France, the King of Scotland,
-in order to win the favor of the father of the bride whom he desired,
-offered to him the aid of his army.<a name="FNanchor_199_199" id="FNanchor_199_199"></a><a href="#Footnote_199_199" class="fnanchor">[199]</a> Then he set sail, September
-1, with six vessels, accompanied by a suite of five hundred persons,
-all of noble or gentle birth. In ten days he reached Dieppe,<a name="FNanchor_200_200" id="FNanchor_200_200"></a><a href="#Footnote_200_200" class="fnanchor">[200]</a> and
-without consulting the opinion of his uncle, he asked for and obtained
-the hand of Madame Madeleine, who had been very tenderly brought up
-by her aunt, Margaret of Valois.<a name="FNanchor_201_201" id="FNanchor_201_201"></a><a href="#Footnote_201_201" class="fnanchor">[201]</a> The Scottish priests were in
-high glee, because in their view this alliance with France tended to
-strengthen the papacy in Scotland; but their joy was premature. The
-kings of France were beginning to assume an air of superiority towards
-Scotland, which was offensive to a nation proud though small. It was
-far worse afterwards, when Henry II., king of France, marrying his son
-to Mary Stuart, required that princess to sign contracts which were
-humiliating to ancient Caledonia.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MADELEINE DE VALOIS.</div>
-
-<p>James had found in Madeleine an accomplished princess. Her health was
-frail, but her heart was virtuous and her soul was no stranger to
-the piety of her aunt. How great a gain for the Reformation if there
-should be seated on the throne of Scotland a queen who was a lover
-of the Word of God! James embarked with his young wife on a fleet of
-seventeen sail. On reaching Leith, the amiable queen, who was of noble
-bearing though of unhealthy aspect, set foot on land, knelt down on
-the shore, and taking up a handful of the sand of Scotland, kissed it
-with deep feeling, and implored God’s blessing on her beloved husband
-and on her new country. Madeleine was received at Edinburgh with great
-enthusiasm by the people and the nobles; but the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span> churchmen, better
-informed than they were at first, were disquieted, and were afraid that
-this princess would diffuse around her the evangelical opinions of the
-sister of Francis I. This happiness was not in store for Scotland.
-The flower transplanted into that rough climate withered and fell.
-On July 2 [1537] the queen breathed her last. All who had known her,
-except the priests, deeply regretted her. Buchanan, struck with such
-glory and such mourning, composed an epitaph on her in Latin verse,
-to the following effect:&mdash;‘I was wife of a king, daughter of a king,
-niece of a king, and, according to my wish and my hope, I was to become
-mother of a king. But cruel death, unwilling that I should stand on the
-highest pinnacle of honor that a mortal creature can attain to, has
-laid me in this tomb before that bright day dawned.’<a name="FNanchor_202_202" id="FNanchor_202_202"></a><a href="#Footnote_202_202" class="fnanchor">[202]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SECOND MARRIAGE OF JAMES V.</div>
-
-<p>The prelates began to bestir themselves immediately to negotiate
-another French marriage, but one which should be at the same time what
-the first had not been,&mdash;a Romish marriage. They did not intend to be
-taken in a second time. The ardent David Beatoun, the primate’s nephew,
-who had accompanied the king to Paris, returned to France immediately
-after the death of the young queen, in order to seek for James V. a new
-alliance agreeable to the priests. David, who was very well liked at
-the court of St. Germain, was made bishop of Mirepoix, by Francis I.,
-and through his intervention was afterwards created cardinal. His whole
-life was to be consecrated to a conflict with the Gospel in Scotland.
-Now for this end he needed a fanatical queen, and it was not difficult
-to find one.</p>
-
-<p>There was at that time at the court of France a family which was
-beginning to be known for its zeal for the papacy. Claude de
-Lorraine, Duke of Guise, who had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span> married Antoinette de Bourbon, had
-distinguished himself on several occasions, and particularly at the
-battle of Marignano. Surrounded by six sons and four daughters, he
-founded a powerful house, which at a later period was near taking
-the throne from the Valois and the Bourbons. Hence, the last word of
-Francis I. to his son was this, ‘Beware of the Guises!’ It appears
-that James, during his visit to France, had seen and observed the
-eldest of the duke’s children, Mary, a young woman of three-and-twenty,
-widow of Louis of Orléans.<a name="FNanchor_203_203" id="FNanchor_203_203"></a><a href="#Footnote_203_203" class="fnanchor">[203]</a> To her Beatoun addressed himself. The
-alliance was promptly concluded. The Scottish clergy triumphed; but the
-evangelical Christians saw with sorrow ‘this egg taken from the bloody
-nest of the Guises’<a name="FNanchor_204_204" id="FNanchor_204_204"></a><a href="#Footnote_204_204" class="fnanchor">[204]</a> brought into their native land.</p>
-
-<p>The young queen, having arrived at St. Andrews on June 16, 1538, strove
-to gain the affection of the king and of her mother-in-law. She failed
-to win the favor of the people; but the priests were enamored of her,
-and feeling themselves thenceforth sure of the victory, they began to
-set the authority of the pope higher than ever in their discourses.<a name="FNanchor_205_205" id="FNanchor_205_205"></a><a href="#Footnote_205_205" class="fnanchor">[205]</a></p>
-
-<p>The pope then, through cardinal Pole, proposed an alliance between
-the emperor and the kings of France and Scotland for the invasion of
-England; and at the same time he withdrew from Henry VIII. and his
-successors the title of <i>Defender of the Faith</i>, and transferred it to
-the crown of Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>James V., the slave at once of his wife and his bishops, seemed to be
-positively chained to the chariot of the Roman pontiff.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IX.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">DAVID BEATOUN ESTABLISHES HIS INFLUENCE: PERSECUTION REVIVES.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm">(1539.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DAVID BEATOUN.</div>
-
-<p>A man with whom we have already made acquaintance was now for
-eight years to play a prominent part in Scotland, and to contend
-energetically against the Reformation. This was David Beatoun, one
-of the members of the Fifeshire family, and nephew of archbishop
-James. He belonged to the class of minds which take their place
-with enthusiasm under an absolute government, and become its most
-formidable instruments. Thoroughly at home and highly esteemed at the
-court of France, it was he who had conducted the negotiations for the
-king’s marriage, first with Madeleine of Valois, afterwards with Mary
-of Lorraine. But his intent was to devote his life to a union more
-sublime&mdash;that of Scotland and the papacy. Animated with hearty sympathy
-for Gregory VII., Boniface VIII., and Innocent III., he believed, as
-they did, that Rome, formerly mistress of the pagan world, should now
-be mistress of the Christian world. In his eyes all authority emanated
-from her, and he was resolved to consecrate to her his life, his
-energies, and everything that he possessed. As he meant to fight with
-carnal weapons, he must attain some dignity which would invest him with
-authority to make use of them. He speedily attained his end. Paul III.,
-alarmed at seeing the separation of England from Rome, and fearing lest
-Scotland, as she had a nephew of Henry VIII. for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span> her king, should
-follow her example, was anxious to have in that country one man who
-would be absolutely devoted to him. David Beatoun offered himself.
-The pope created him cardinal in December 1538, and thenceforth the
-<i>red</i>, a color thoroughly congenial with him, became his own, and as
-it were his symbol. Not that he was by any means a religious fanatic;
-he was versed neither in theology nor in moral philosophy. He was a
-hierarchical fanatic. Two points above all were offensive to him in
-evangelical Christians: one that they were not submissive to the pope;
-the other, that they censured immorality in the clergy, for his own
-licentiousness drew on himself similar rebukes. He aimed at being in
-Scotland a kind of Wolsey, only with more violence and bloodshed. The
-one thing of moment in his eyes was that everything in church and state
-should bend under a twofold despotism. Endowed with large intelligence,
-consummate ability, and indomitable energy, he had all the qualities
-needed to insure success in the aim on which his mind was perpetually
-bent without ever being diverted from it. Passionately eager for his
-projects, he was insensible to the ills which must result from them.
-One matter alone preoccupied him: the destruction of all liberty. The
-papacy divined his character, and created him cardinal.</p>
-
-<p>For the suppression of evangelical Christianity, which upheld the
-supreme authority of the Divine Word in the presence of the tiara and
-its oracles, Beatoun needed the royal support. His first step therefore
-must be to make himself master of the king. This was not difficult. The
-nobility had rights which they meant to make respected, and which the
-crown wished to take away. The king and the cardinal were naturally
-impelled to unite against the Gospellers and the nobles. In addition,
-James V., a prince of good natural endowments both of body and of
-mind, and of a frank and amiable disposition, was strongly inclined
-to sensual pleasures.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span> In order to keep him out of the way of state
-affairs, the courtiers and the regent had fostered in him the taste for
-intrigues and adventures of gallantry, a vice which he never got rid of
-even after his marriage.<a name="FNanchor_206_206" id="FNanchor_206_206"></a><a href="#Footnote_206_206" class="fnanchor">[206]</a> Dissolute as a man, prodigal as a king,
-and superstitious as a Catholic, he could not but easily fall under the
-sway of superior minds,<a name="FNanchor_207_207" id="FNanchor_207_207"></a><a href="#Footnote_207_207" class="fnanchor">[207]</a> especially if they promised him money, and
-that Beatoun could do.</p>
-
-<p>Henry VIII., who, like his nephew, was habitually in want of money, had
-sought it in the treasures of the monasteries and other ecclesiastical
-institutions. The King of Scotland might be tempted to follow that
-example. Beatoun, and the other ecclesiastical dignitaries who were
-about the prince, discovered a certain means of preventing it. Instead
-of taking the money of the clergy, they said, let the king take that of
-the Gospellers; let the property of those who may be condemned to death
-for their faith, and even that of those who, after having embraced
-the Reform, may abjure it, be confiscated for his majesty’s benefit.
-This scheme was all the more seductive in that, while it secured their
-wealth to the clergy, it at the same time deprived the friends of the
-Reformation of theirs. This was killing two birds with one stone. The
-plan gives a special character to the Scottish persecutions. The cruel
-Gardiner said in England, that when people went stag-hunting they
-must fire at the leader of the herd, and that the same course must be
-pursued in hunting the Gospellers. In Scotland it was agreed not to
-harass those poor Christians who had nothing to leave at their death.
-Why seize these lean sheep? The knife must be laid on the big fat
-ones&mdash;on those which have a rich<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span> fleece. War on the rich! This was
-the cry raised by the party of the persecutors. For about four years
-the sword had not been drawn from its scabbard, and the horror excited
-by the persecution of 1534 had, as it seemed, subsided. The Gospel
-had reaped advantage from the lull: the number of those who confessed
-Christ as their only Saviour had increased, and thus the irritation of
-the priests was soon aroused again.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">WAR ON THE RICH.</div>
-
-<p>Martin Balkerley, a wealthy citizen of Edinburgh, was confined in the
-castle at the time when David Beatoun was going to be made cardinal at
-Rome. The latter had already acquired great influence. As coadjutor
-to his uncle, the archbishop of St. Andrews, who was then advanced in
-years and in ill health, and whom he was to succeed, the administration
-of all ecclesiastical affairs was even then in his hands.<a name="FNanchor_208_208" id="FNanchor_208_208"></a><a href="#Footnote_208_208" class="fnanchor">[208]</a>
-Balkerley, who was imprisoned for reading the prohibited books,
-complained as follows: ‘I have done nothing,’ said he, ‘but refuse to
-give up my book of matins to the officer.’ The king sent him back to
-Beatoun, who then referred the case to the privy council. The lords
-composing the council promised the accused his liberty on condition of
-his giving a ransom of one thousand pounds sterling, an enormous sum
-according to the value of money at that period. This ransom was paid on
-February 27, 1539, but Balkerley remained in prison. It was not enough.
-Beatoun, who had then been cardinal for a month or two, demanded an
-additional ransom of double the amount. Three rich Scotchmen offered
-themselves as bail on March 7, pledging themselves that the prisoner
-would do the king’s will. Five days later he was set at liberty. Thus
-the sum of three thousand pounds, paid down, was at length thought
-sufficient to expiate the crime of reading the New Testament.</p>
-
-<p>Beatoun did not think it necessary thenceforward to have recourse to
-the privy council. His arrogance had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span> increased, and he assumed a
-haughty air. As the consuls of ancient Rome had their lictors, who
-bore the <i>fasces</i> before them as the symbol of their power, so the
-cardinal, whithersoever he went, had the cross carried before him; and
-this symbol of the love of God, which signifies <i>pardon</i>, signified,
-when it preceded Beatoun, <i>condemnation</i>, and spread terror everywhere.
-The cardinal claimed to be master of souls, and to dispose of the
-lives of men. The money which he had so shamefully acquired served
-only to stimulate his desire to get more by the same means. Several
-eminent and wealthy citizens&mdash;Walter Stewart, son of Lord Ochiltree,
-Robert Forester, brother of the laird of Arngibbon, David Graham, John
-Steward, son of Lord Methven, with others belonging to the <i>élite</i> of
-Scotland&mdash;were thrown into prison. In the castles, and in the towns of
-Stirling, Edinburgh, Perth, and Dundee, numerous families were left
-desolate.<a name="FNanchor_209_209" id="FNanchor_209_209"></a><a href="#Footnote_209_209" class="fnanchor">[209]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MISSION OF THE DUKE OF NORFOLK.</div>
-
-<p>Henry VIII. saw in these acts of the government of his nephew the
-signal of an impending attack, and he sent one of the greatest lords
-of his court, the duke of Norfolk, to Berwick and to Carlisle to
-watch Scotland. Norfolk attentively investigated the condition of
-that country, and perceived there two opposite currents. ‘The clergy
-of Scotland,’ he wrote to London, ‘be in such fear that their king
-should do there as the king’s highness hath done in this realm, that
-they do their best to bring their master to the war; and by many ways
-I am advertised that a great part of the temporalty there would their
-king should follow our example, which I pray God give him grace to
-come unto.’<a name="FNanchor_210_210" id="FNanchor_210_210"></a><a href="#Footnote_210_210" class="fnanchor">[210]</a> Presently Norfolk learnt that James V. was making his
-cannon ready; that a proclamation was published at Edinburgh and in all
-parts of Scotland, enjoining every man between the ages of sixteen and
-sixty to be in readiness<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span> to set out; and that the fanatic cardinal was
-gone to the continent to make sure of the aid which Scotland might hope
-for, both from the king of France and from the pope. Norfolk ere long
-saw with his own eyes the sad effects of the intrigues of the clergy.
-Not a day passed but some gentlemen and priests, who were compelled to
-flee the country because they had had the audacity to read the Holy
-Scriptures in English, came to him to seek a refuge. ‘Ah,’ they to said
-him, ‘if we should be captured we should be put to execution.’<a name="FNanchor_211_211" id="FNanchor_211_211"></a><a href="#Footnote_211_211" class="fnanchor">[211]</a>
-In the midst of these persecutions and preparations for war, James,
-initiated in the art of Roman policy, feigned the most pacific
-sentiments. ‘You may be sure,’ he said to one of the English agents,
-‘that I shall never break with the king, my uncle.’ But Norfolk was not
-deceived: he felt the greatest distrust of the influence of Mary of
-Guise. ‘The young queen,’ he wrote to Cromwell, ‘is all papist.’<a name="FNanchor_212_212" id="FNanchor_212_212"></a><a href="#Footnote_212_212" class="fnanchor">[212]</a>
-That ill-starred marriage linked in his eyes the family and the realm
-of the Stuarts with France and the papacy.</p>
-
-<p>Norfolk was not wrong. The cardinal, having won over the king by
-flattery and by the heavy fines extorted from the evangelical
-Christians, was eager to take advantage of the circumstance for the
-destruction of the Reform and the satisfaction of some grudges of
-long standing. A monk named Killon, possessing some poetic talent,
-had composed, after the fashion of the age, a tragedy on the death of
-Christ. On the morning of Good Friday, probably in 1536, a numerous
-audience had assembled at Stirling to hear it. The king himself and
-the court were present. The piece presented a lively picture of the
-spirit and the conduct of the Romish clergy. The action was animated,
-the characters well marked, and the words vigorous and sometimes rude.
-Fanatical priests and hard-hearted Pharisees instigated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span> the people to
-demand the death of Jesus, and procured from Pilate his condemnation.
-The design of this work was so marked that the simplest folk said to
-one another, ‘It is just the same with us: the bishops and the monks
-get those persecuted who love Jesus Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_213_213" id="FNanchor_213_213"></a><a href="#Footnote_213_213" class="fnanchor">[213]</a> The clergy abstained
-for the moment from molesting Killon, but they took note of his daring
-drama.</p>
-
-<p>Another Gospeller had left very unpleasant memories in Beatoun’s mind.
-This was the good dean Forrest, who had boldly said that he had never
-found either a bad epistle or a bad gospel. The cardinal was only
-waiting for an opportunity to arrest him, Killon, and others. He had
-not long to wait. When the vicar of Tullybody, near Stirling, was
-married, Forrest and Killon had attended the ceremony, as well as a
-monk named Beverage, Sir Duncan Sympson, a priest, a gentleman named
-Robin Forrester, and three or four other people of Stirling.<a name="FNanchor_214_214" id="FNanchor_214_214"></a><a href="#Footnote_214_214" class="fnanchor">[214]</a>
-At the marriage feast, at the beginning of Lent, they had eaten
-flesh, according to that word of St. Paul, ‘Whatsoever is sold in
-the shambles, that eat.’ On March 1, 1539, or according to some
-authorities, on the last day of February,<a name="FNanchor_215_215" id="FNanchor_215_215"></a><a href="#Footnote_215_215" class="fnanchor">[215]</a> they were all seized and
-taken before the cardinal and the bishops of Glasgow and Dunkeld, who
-indulged in practices far more criminal than the eating of what God
-made for that purpose.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROSECUTION OF FORREST AND KILLON.</div>
-
-<p>The official accuser, John Lauder, one of Beatoun’s creatures,
-addressing Forrest rudely, said to him&mdash;‘False heretic! thou sayest it
-is not lawful to kirkmen to take their teinds [tithes] and offerings
-and corpse<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span> presents.’ And the dean Forrest replied, ‘Brother, I said
-not so: but I said it was not lawful to kirkmen to spend the patrimony
-of the kirk as they do, as on riotous feasting and on fair women, and
-at playing at cards and dice: and neither the kirk well maintained
-nor the people instructed in God’s Word, nor the sacraments duly
-administered to them as Christ commanded.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Accuser</i>: ‘Dare thou deny that which is openly known in the country?
-that thou gave again to thy parishioners <i>the cow</i> and the <i>upmost
-cloths</i>, saying you had no right to them? ’</p>
-
-<p><i>Dean</i>: ‘I gave them again to them that had more mister [need] than I’</p>
-
-<p><i>Accuser</i>: ‘Thou false heretic! thou learned all thy parishioners to
-say the Paternoster, the creed, and the Ten Commandments <i>in English</i>.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Dean</i>: ‘Brother, my people are so rude and ignorant they understand
-no Latin, so that my conscience provoked me to learn them the words
-of their salvation in English, and the Ten Commandments which are the
-law of God, whereby they might observe the same. I teached the belief,
-whereby they might know their faith in God and Jesus Christ his Son,
-and of his death and resurrection. Moreover I teached them and learned
-them the Lord’s own prayer in the mother-tongue, to the effect that
-they might know how they should pray.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Accuser</i>: ‘Why did you that? By our acts and ordinances of our holy
-father the pope?’</p>
-
-<p><i>Dean</i>: ‘I follow the acts of our master and Saviour Jesus Christ, and
-of the apostle Paul, who saith that he had rather speak five words to
-the understanding and edifying of his people than ten thousand in a
-strange tongue which they understand not.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Accuser</i>: ‘Where finds thou that?’</p>
-
-<p><i>Dean</i>: ‘In my book here, in my sleeve.’</p>
-
-<p>At these words the accuser, rushing at a bound on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span> dean, snatched
-from his hands the New Testament, and holding it up, said with a loud
-voice, ‘Behold, sirs, he has the book of heresy in his sleeve that
-makes all the din and play in our kirk.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Dean</i>: ‘Brother, ye could say better if ye pleased, nor to call the
-book of the Evangel of Jesus Christ the book of heresy.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is enough to burn thee for,’ said the accuser, coolly.<a name="FNanchor_216_216" id="FNanchor_216_216"></a><a href="#Footnote_216_216" class="fnanchor">[216]</a></p>
-
-<p>Five of these pious men were immediately condemned to death and were
-taken the same day to the castle hill, where the piles were ready; and
-the king, following the example of Francis I., was present with his
-court at this cruel execution.<a name="FNanchor_217_217" id="FNanchor_217_217"></a><a href="#Footnote_217_217" class="fnanchor">[217]</a> Those who went first to the stake
-piously and wonderfully consoled those who were to follow them. ‘At
-the beginning of 1539,’ says Buchanan, ‘many suspected of Lutheranism
-were arrested; five were burnt at the end of February, nine recanted,
-and others were sentenced to banishment.’<a name="FNanchor_218_218" id="FNanchor_218_218"></a><a href="#Footnote_218_218" class="fnanchor">[218]</a> The same day orders
-were issued to confiscate the property of those who had been declared
-heretics.<a name="FNanchor_219_219" id="FNanchor_219_219"></a><a href="#Footnote_219_219" class="fnanchor">[219]</a> The king, the cardinals, and their subordinates took
-their reward out of the penalties.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">GEORGE BUCHANAN.</div>
-
-<p>The illustrious Buchanan was himself in prison at that time. He was
-thirty-two years of age, and after a residence at the university of
-Paris, he had returned to Scotland and had been named preceptor to
-the earl of Murray, a natural son of James V. He was a poet as well
-as a historian, and his genius grew and developed itself under the
-influence of the classical poetry which charmed his leisure hours.
-There was something sharp<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span> and biting in his temperament, peculiarly
-apt for satire; and he had not spared the clergy in his <i>Somnium</i>, his
-<i>Palinode</i>, and above all in his satire against the <i>Franciscans</i>. It
-was for this last poem he was imprisoned. The companies of monks had
-keenly resented his sarcasm, and there was not a man in all Scotland
-whose death was more eagerly desired by the Romish party. It was said
-that the cardinal offered the king a considerable sum of money in
-order to compass it. However that may be, Buchanan was at that time
-a prisoner and was carefully watched in the prison of St. Andrews,
-some of the guards even spending the night in his room. The young man,
-already an illustrious writer, knew that they were seeking his life;
-the death of five martyrs showed him clearly enough the fate which
-awaited himself. One night he perceived that his keepers had fallen
-asleep.<a name="FNanchor_220_220" id="FNanchor_220_220"></a><a href="#Footnote_220_220" class="fnanchor">[220]</a> He went on tiptoe towards the window, and climbing up
-the walls, succeeded, although with difficulty, in getting out. He
-then passed on and surmounted other obstacles as great;<a name="FNanchor_221_221" id="FNanchor_221_221"></a><a href="#Footnote_221_221" class="fnanchor">[221]</a> and thus
-by the aid of God, and stimulated by the desire of saving his life,
-‘he escaped the rage of those that sought his blood.’<a name="FNanchor_222_222" id="FNanchor_222_222"></a><a href="#Footnote_222_222" class="fnanchor">[222]</a> He betook
-himself to France, taught for several years in the Collège de Guienne
-at Bordeaux, and afterwards in a college at Paris. Henry Stephens,
-when he published at Paris the first edition of Buchanan’s Paraphrase
-of the Psalms, calls him on the title-page of the book, ‘Poetarum
-nostri sæculi facile princeps.’ His escape took place, as nearly as we
-can learn, in March 1539. Many Gospellers, as we have said, followed
-the example of Buchanan that same month. As for himself, he appears
-at that period of his life to have been nothing more than one of the
-numerous poets and prose-writers who were then attacking the vices and
-the follies of the Romish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span> clergy. But while attacking superstition,
-Buchanan did not fall as many did into infidelity: he adhered heartily
-at a later period to the evangelical reform, and Knox bears noble
-witness to him.<a name="FNanchor_223_223" id="FNanchor_223_223"></a><a href="#Footnote_223_223" class="fnanchor">[223]</a></p>
-
-<p>Beatoun, while sacrificing many victims, had lit a fire on elevated
-ground, ‘to the effect that the rest of the bischoppes myght schaw
-thame selfis no less fervent to suppress the light of God.’<a name="FNanchor_224_224" id="FNanchor_224_224"></a><a href="#Footnote_224_224" class="fnanchor">[224]</a> That
-signal was not made in vain. In the town of Ayr, in the midst of
-the rich plains of that fertile county, was a young gentleman named
-Kennedy, about eighteen years of age, who had received a liberal
-education, and had tasted of the Gospel, without however attaining a
-well-grounded faith; a state sufficiently accounted for by his years.
-Gifted with some poetic faculty he had not spared the ignorance of the
-priests. Kennedy was seized and cast into prison.</p>
-
-<p>In the same diocese, that of Glasgow, there lived in a convent of the
-Cordeliers one of those enlightened and pious monks who shone like
-stars in the deep night of the age. His name was Jerome Russel; his
-character was good, his wit ready, and his mind enriched with literary
-acquirements. Wharton, writing to Lord Cromwell in November 1538,
-speaks of a friar John, a well-informed man who was imprisoned at
-Dumfries at the instance of the bishops, and who had been loaded with
-chains because he professed respecting the law of God the same opinions
-which were held in England.<a name="FNanchor_225_225" id="FNanchor_225_225"></a><a href="#Footnote_225_225" class="fnanchor">[225]</a> It is not to be doubted that he speaks
-of Russel. Dumfries is not far from Ayr.</p>
-
-<p>The archbishop of Glasgow, Gawin Dunbar, was not of so persecuting a
-spirit as Beatoun, and as lord chancellor he was invested with the
-highest authority in the state. It was then the summer of 1539, and as
-Beatoun,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span> although named cardinal, had not yet received the pontifical
-act which conferred on him that dignity, he could not have dared to
-appear in the diocese of Glasgow with his cross borne before him. But
-it was not enough for him to know that the learned Russel and the young
-Kennedy were in prison, he must get them burnt. Consequently he sent to
-Glasgow his favorite agent Lauder, who could affect insinuating manners
-and put on exaggerated pretensions to compass his ends. The clever
-notary Andrew Oliphant and the ardent monk Mortman accompanied him,
-charged to obtain from the archbishop the promise ‘that he would imbrue
-his hands in the blood of the friends of God.’ Knox therefore calls
-these three men <i>Satan’s sergeants</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">TRIAL OF KENNEDY AND RUSSEL.</div>
-
-<p>Having reached Glasgow the three men got round the chancellor-prelate,
-and demanded of him far more than he could lawfully grant: he was not
-only to have the two evangelical Christians examined, he must put them
-to death. What reproaches he would incur if he protected heretics! what
-praises would he not win if he were ardent in serving the Church! Gawin
-yielded, and Russel and Kennedy were put on their trial. They appeared
-before the court, over which the archbishop himself presided, and the
-proceedings began. Thanks to the inventive zeal of Lauder and his
-colleagues, numerous charges were brought forward against the accused.
-Kennedy had an upright soul, but had rather an inclination to the faith
-than faith itself. The imposing display of judicial pomp, the gravity
-of the accusations, the severity of the punishment which was preparing,
-and the horrible agony which was to precede it, all disturbed the young
-man; he was distressed, and being sharply pressed to retract what he
-had written, he was intimidated and went astray.</p>
-
-<p>Russel, on the other hand, whose faith, the fruit of close examination
-of the Word of God, was developed and established by long-continued
-studies, appeared full<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span> of decision. He replied with wisdom to his
-accusers, defended by powerful proofs the doctrines which he professed,
-and repulsed with calmness, dignity, and intrepidity the false
-accusations of his enemies. His words had an unlooked-for result: they
-reawakened the conscience of his young companion. The Spirit of God,
-the Spirit of all consolation, worked in him. The Christian life, which
-had scarcely begun in his heart, now expanded itself. ‘He felt himself
-as it were a new creature; his mind was changed;’ a living faith filled
-his heart; he was confirmed in his resolution.<a name="FNanchor_226_226" id="FNanchor_226_226"></a><a href="#Footnote_226_226" class="fnanchor">[226]</a> From that time he
-no longer hesitated to give up his life for the truth. The happiness
-which he had lost came back to him; his countenance brightened, his
-tongue was loosed, there was a radiance in his whole person; and,
-falling on his knees, he exclaimed with joy&mdash;‘O eternal God, how
-wondrous is that love and mercy that thou bearest unto mankind, and
-unto me the most caitiff and miserable wretch above all others; for
-even now, when I would have denied thee and thy Son, our Lord Jesus
-Christ, my only Saviour, and so have casten myself in everlasting
-damnation, thou by thine own hand hast pulled me from the very bottom
-of hell, and makest me to feel that heavenly comfort which takes from
-me that ungodly fear wherewith before I was oppressed. Now I defy
-death.’ Then, rising, he turned towards his persecutors and said, ‘Do
-what ye please; I praise God I am ready.’<a name="FNanchor_227_227" id="FNanchor_227_227"></a><a href="#Footnote_227_227" class="fnanchor">[227]</a></p>
-
-<p>The prayer of Kennedy touched the archbishop of Glasgow. He was
-disturbed. ‘It is better to spare these men,’ said he; ‘executions
-such as those which have taken place only do harm to the cause which
-they are meant to serve.’ The cardinal’s agents resolved to frighten
-the prelate, whose weakness they well knew,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span> and they cried out
-lustily&mdash;‘Take care what ye are doing, my lord. Will ye condemn all
-that my lord cardinal and the other bishops and we have done? If so ye
-do, ye show yourself enemy to the kirk.’ Fear fell on the archbishop.
-Repressing the pity which had touched him, and silencing his conscience
-for the sake of preserving his reputation and his comfortable and easy
-life, he gave way.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEIR MARTYRDOM.</div>
-
-<p>Russel had remained calm till then, but exasperated by the calumnies of
-his enemies, indignant at the weakness of the archbishop, and confident
-in his own innocence, he said with dignity&mdash;‘This is your hour and
-power of darkness; now sit ye as judges, we stand wrongously accused,
-and more wrongously to be condemned; but the day shall come when our
-innocency shall appear, and that ye shall see your own blindness, to
-your everlasting confusion. Go forward, and fulfil the measure of
-your iniquity.’ Russel and Kennedy, condemned to the flames, were
-immediately handed over to the secular power.</p>
-
-<p>The day following, as they passed to the place of execution, Russel
-thought that he perceived some apprehension in his friend. ‘Brother,’
-said he, ‘fear not: more potent is he that is in us than is he that
-is in the world. The pain that we shall suffer is short and shall be
-light, but our joy and our consolation shall never have end.’ They who
-heard it were wonderfully affected. When the two martyrs arrived at
-the pile, they fell on their knees and prayed; then, rising, they were
-bound to the stake without uttering a word, and supported the fire with
-patience, making no sign of fear. ‘They won the victory over death,
-looking with faith,’ says a historian, ‘for everlasting habitations.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER X.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">TERGIVERSATIONS OF KING JAMES V.&mdash;NEGOTIATIONS WITH HENRY VIII.&mdash;THEY
-FAIL.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(1540&ndash;January, 1542.)</p>
-
-<p>The Romish party was not yet satisfied. ‘These cruel beasts,’ says
-Knox, ‘did intend nothing but murder in all quarters of the realm.’
-James was surrounded with men who urged him on in that direction.
-Many of his courtiers, associates of his dissipation, instigated
-him to persecution because they were pensioners to priests for that
-purpose.<a name="FNanchor_228_228" id="FNanchor_228_228"></a><a href="#Footnote_228_228" class="fnanchor">[228]</a> Oliver Sinclair was the foremost of these secret tools
-of the clergy. The cardinal’s influence was increased by circumstances
-which occurred at this time. Archbishop James Beatoun died in the
-autumn of 1539, after having attended as a witness at the baptism of
-the king’s eldest son. By his last will he left his archbishopric of
-St. Andrews to his nephew David, who, when confirmed by the king, was
-thenceforth both cardinal and primate of Scotland.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES V. AND HIS BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>Henry VIII. was induced by these changes to take fresh steps towards
-gaining over his nephew. He was acquainted with the cardinal, and knew
-his relations with France and the papacy. At the beginning of 1540
-Sir R. Sadler was sent to Scotland.<a name="FNanchor_229_229" id="FNanchor_229_229"></a><a href="#Footnote_229_229" class="fnanchor">[229]</a> The moment was well chosen.
-James V. was just then fully disposed to make peace with his uncle.
-The Lords Murray, Huntley, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span> Bothwell were in disgrace, and James
-wrote to Henry VIII. as his ‘dearest brother and uncle,’ and commended
-himself to him in his most hearty and affectionate manner. Henry sent
-him presents and the most gracious messages, inquiring earnestly after
-his health; and all this courtesy James received in the most amiable
-manner imaginable. Henry however meant to go to the main point, and
-Thomas Eure, one of his envoys, strove to discover what were the
-purposes of the King of Scotland respecting the bishop of Rome and the
-Reformation. One of the councillors, Ballenden, replied to him with
-great politeness, ‘The King of Scottes himself, with all his temporall
-counsaile, was gretely geven to the reformation of the mysdemeanors of
-busshops, religious personnes, and priests within the realme.’<a name="FNanchor_230_230" id="FNanchor_230_230"></a><a href="#Footnote_230_230" class="fnanchor">[230]</a>
-James gave even then some proofs of this disposition. On the day of
-the Epiphany, January 6, 1540, there was a grand feast at the court,
-and a dramatic spectacle was given in the palace of Linlithgow. The
-king, the queen, and all the councillors spiritual and temporal were
-present; and the purport of the piece was to exhibit the presumption of
-the bishops, the iniquities of the courts spiritual, the evil ways of
-the priests, and in one word, the ‘noughtines’ of such religion as then
-existed. Perhaps the king was minded to let the bishops hear a sermon
-in that shape. It is very unlikely that anyone would have dared to give
-such a spectacle without his authority. However that may be, James was
-struck with it; and when the piece was finished, he had the archbishop
-in Glasgow, chancellor of the realm, called to him, as well as the
-other bishops, whose thoughts and fears during the representation may
-be imagined. ‘I exhort you,’ said the king to them, ‘to reform your
-fashions and manners of living. If you do not, I will send six of the
-proudest of you unto my uncle of England,<a name="FNanchor_231_231" id="FNanchor_231_231"></a><a href="#Footnote_231_231" class="fnanchor">[231]</a> and after he has put
-them in order, I will do the same with the rest if they<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span> will not
-amend.’ The chancellor, in consternation, humbly answered, ‘One word
-of your grace’s mouth shall suffice them to be at commandment.’ James
-rejoined immediately and angrily, ‘I shall gladly bestow any words of
-my mouth that can amend them,’ The notion of applying to Henry VIII.
-to set his bishops right was original; and the prelates of Scotland,
-knowing that that preceptor did not spare the rod nor even the sword,
-trembled to the very marrow of their bones. Ballenden, in confirmation
-of these new intentions of James, said to Thomas Eure, ‘The king is
-fully minded to expel all spiritual men from having any authority by
-office under his grace, either in household or elsewhere.’ It appears
-that the author of the drama, author also in part of the change wrought
-in the prince, was Sir David Lyndsay, who had been the king’s guardian
-and companion during his minority. This bold man of letters composed
-many satires against the superstitions of the age, and above all
-against the ignorance and licentiousness of the clergy; but the king
-never allowed the cardinal to lift a finger to harm him.</p>
-
-<p>The convictions of James were not very deep, and his own life was not
-such as to give him the right to criticise the lives of the bishops. So
-long as this liberal humor of the prince lasted, the cardinal seems to
-have abstained from demonstrations hostile to the reform of the Church.
-He was sure of getting him to change his mind, and he did not trouble
-himself about comedies to which he was bent on replying by tragedies.
-He was not long in showing his inflexibility, and the capricious humor
-of the king again bent under his immovable firmness. Other men have
-been named great, just, or well-bred. Beatoun deserved to be called
-persecutor. This surname, which history inflicts on him as a disgrace,
-he seems to have aspired to as a glory.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SIR JOHN BORTHWICK.</div>
-
-<p>Beatoun assembled at St. Andrews the prelates and the nobles who
-enjoyed his confidence. An elevated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span> seat was provided for him in the
-cathedral, and he sat there in his twofold character of primate and of
-cardinal. The earls of Huntley, Arran, and Montrose, the earl Marshall,
-and Lords Erskine, Lyndsay, Fleming, Seaton, and many other barons and
-men of rank, Gawin, archbishop of Glasgow and chancellor, the bishops
-of Aberdeen, Galloway, and others besides, abbots and priors, deans
-and doctors of theology, were around him. David Beatoun, proud to see
-beneath him that illustrious and brilliant assembly, began to speak.
-He set forth with warm feeling the dangers to which the multiplication
-of heretics was exposing the Roman faith: the audacity with which they
-avowed their opinions, even at the court, where they found too much
-support, he added, alluding thus to the famous dramatic representation
-with which James had been so struck. Then impatient to show the serious
-import of his words, he announced that he had cited before that
-assembly Sir John Borthwick, brother of the lord of the same name,
-provost of Linlithgow, who had probably had a hand in the satirical
-drama. ‘This heretic gives out,’ he said, ‘that the pope has no more
-authority than other bishops, that his indulgences have no other
-effect than to deceive the people, that the religious orders ought to
-be abolished, that all ecclesiastics are at liberty to marry, and in
-short, that the Scots, blinded by their clergy, do not profess the true
-faith. He reads and circulates the New Testament in English, and divers
-treatises of Melanchthon, Œcolampadius, and Erasmus, and refuses to
-submit to the see of Rome.’</p>
-
-<p>Borthwick, instead of going to St. Andrews, set out in all haste for
-England, where he was well received by Henry VIII., and was afterwards
-employed by him as one of his commissioners to the princes of Germany.
-But although Beatoun could not send the lamb to the slaughter, he could
-at least find the way to possess himself of the fleece. On May 28 the
-confiscation of Sir<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span> John’s property was pronounced and his effigy was
-burnt, first at St. Andrews and two days after at Edinburgh. The fire
-did him no great harm, but it served to give a certain point to the
-cardinal’s discourse.<a name="FNanchor_232_232" id="FNanchor_232_232"></a><a href="#Footnote_232_232" class="fnanchor">[232]</a></p>
-
-<p>The king had now again returned, under the influence of the cardinal,
-to the side of Rome. This prince, so thoughtless, hasty, violent, and
-unprincipled, bent before every breeze and changed his opinion and his
-will at a word from those who were about him. Money he wanted, and
-he would have received it from one party as readily as from another,
-from the nobles as well as from the priests: but the latter were more
-persevering and more skilful in finding out the crowns of which he had
-need. ‘They are always at the king’s ear,’ said Sadler, one of the
-envoys of Henry VIII. Sir James Hamilton, his treasurer, was at his
-left ear, and Beatoun, the cardinal, at his right. The treasurer had
-at that time received large sums from the cardinal for the king, and
-James, won by that argument, pronounced himself against the friends
-of the Reformation with the passion which he had before shown towards
-the prelates. Sir James Hamilton, brother of the earl of Arran, a
-man of dishonorable character, cruel, and the murderer of the earl
-of Lennox, was then invested by command of the king with functions
-resembling those of an inquisitor. ‘I charge you,’ said James, ‘to
-seize all persons suspected of heresy, and to inflict on them after
-judgment such penalties as they have deserved.’ In the excess of his
-popish zeal he exclaimed,’Not a man of that sort shall find any mercy
-at my hands, not even my own son, if it were proved that he was in the
-number of the guilty.’ This declaration alarmed many. It was plain
-that an inquisitorial court was to be set up, and Hamilton was already
-preparing everything for that end. But on a sudden he was himself
-thrown into the prison in which he meant to confine the friends of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span> the
-Reformation. Accused either justly or unjustly of treason, even of a
-conspiracy against the life of the king, he was arrested, and James, in
-his wrath, had him put to death in August 1540.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BIRTH OF A SON TO JAMES.</div>
-
-<p>James spoke of his son. He had indeed a son, but one not old enough to
-excite any fears with respect to what he called heresy. The child was
-born on May 22, 1540, and had been named James after his father. ‘He is
-fair and lively,’ wrote the king to his uncle Henry VIII., ‘and will
-succeed to us and this our realm.’<a name="FNanchor_233_233" id="FNanchor_233_233"></a><a href="#Footnote_233_233" class="fnanchor">[233]</a> Very proud of this son and of
-having an heir, he felt his crown to be more secure than ever,<a name="FNanchor_234_234" id="FNanchor_234_234"></a><a href="#Footnote_234_234" class="fnanchor">[234]</a> and
-began to contemn the nobles. ‘They will no longer dare,’ said he, ‘to
-attempt anything against my house.’</p>
-
-<p>The baptism of the boy took place May 28, and on the next day the king
-embarked on some voyage. Nobody could give an explanation of this
-abrupt departure. Some said that the king was going to France, others
-said to Ireland, where the leading men, it was reported, would take
-him for their king.<a name="FNanchor_235_235" id="FNanchor_235_235"></a><a href="#Footnote_235_235" class="fnanchor">[235]</a> ‘I am only going to visit the isles, to put
-everything in order,’ he wrote to Henry VIII. The cardinal and the
-prelates resolved to take advantage of his absence. The king, they saw,
-was in ill humor with the nobles, and all those who were suspected in
-the matter of doctrine must be got rid of. But one discreet man, James
-Kirkcaldy of Grange, the lord treasurer, having received information
-of this project, made it known to the king, and set before him all the
-calamities to which he would expose himself if he gave his support
-to the conspiracy. James, once more turning about, was enraged at
-this intrigue hatched in his absence. The cardinal, attended by many
-bishops, came to Holyrood palace to greet him, and presented to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span>
-him a paper on which were inscribed the names of nobles suspected
-of heresy and of whom it would be well to get rid. He dwelt even on
-the gain which would flow to the crown from that course. James said
-sharply&mdash;‘Pack, you jefwellis!<a name="FNanchor_236_236" id="FNanchor_236_236"></a><a href="#Footnote_236_236" class="fnanchor">[236]</a> Get ye to your charges and reform
-your own lives: be not instruments of discord betwixt my nobility and
-me: or else I vow to God I shall reform you by sharp whingers if ever I
-hear such motion of you again.’</p>
-
-<p>The prelates, astounded at this rebuke, withdrew in confusion, and gave
-up their scheme for a time.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SCOTT OF PITGORNO.</div>
-
-<p>A second son was born to James in the town of Stirling in April 1541,
-and this event both heightened his joy and increased his pride. His
-happiness however was frequently disturbed. Certain people were
-incessantly endeavoring to deceive him. Hateful informers denounced
-to him one or other of his earls, his barons, and other subjects, as
-bent on taking his life, and thus threw him into a state of great
-alarm. In another direction some of his favorites were leading him
-to blameworthy acts. He had to pay dearly for his errors, and was
-punished by his very crimes. His mind was often in a state of gloomy
-reverie. Thomas Scott of Pitgorno, a courtier who had enjoyed his
-good graces and had been named by him lord of Lefries, and afterwards
-promoted to a higher office in the administration of justice,<a name="FNanchor_237_237" id="FNanchor_237_237"></a><a href="#Footnote_237_237" class="fnanchor">[237]</a> had
-been guilty of many misdeeds. He was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span> accused, among other things, of
-having plundered pretended Lutherans, and it was added that the king
-had gained something by it. Remorse tormented these two wretched men.
-One night, while James was at Linlithgow, he dreamed that he saw Scott
-coming towards him surrounded by a company of devils, and that he
-heard him say in a sepulchral tone&mdash;‘Woe to the day that ever I knew
-thee or thy service. For, for serving of thee against God, against
-his servants, and against justice I am adjudged to endless torment.’
-The king awoke in terror. With a loud voice he called for torches (it
-was midnight), and he made all who were in the palace get up, and
-said to them&mdash;‘Thomas Scott is dead! He has appeared to me.’ He then
-related his horrible dream. That same night Thomas Scott, then at
-Edinburgh, was stricken with a terrible agony. ‘I am damned,’ said he,
-‘I am damned! It is by the just judgment of God&mdash;<i>justo Dei judicio
-condemnatus sum</i>.’ He died in the midst of these torments. James heard
-of this death the next morning and was still more terrified. Such is
-the tale of the chroniclers and historians of Scotland.<a name="FNanchor_238_238" id="FNanchor_238_238"></a><a href="#Footnote_238_238" class="fnanchor">[238]</a> It is
-certainly wonderful, but stranger coincidences have been known.</p>
-
-<p>James had yet other causes of uneasiness. His sleepless nights were
-disturbed, gloomy, and agitated; and even the light of morning did not
-disperse his inward darkness. The death of Hamilton, whose execution
-he had hastily ordered on mere suspicion, frequently gave him bitter
-pain. That unfortunate lord had done for the prince all that he had
-wished; and the latter now asked himself whether he had done well to
-deprive himself of so devoted a secretary. Perhaps he was innocent.
-He might have been calumniated. One night, at Linlithgow, James saw
-Hamilton in a dream, with his sword drawn, rush upon him and cut off
-first his right then his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span> left arm,<a name="FNanchor_239_239" id="FNanchor_239_239"></a><a href="#Footnote_239_239" class="fnanchor">[239]</a> saying to him, ‘Take that!
-while thou receive a final payment for all thine impiety.’ James
-awoke trembling, and asked himself what this dream could mean. His
-imagination was impressed by it. He mused mournfully on the strange
-vision, and expected that some heavy blow was about to fall on him. It
-was in this state of mind that a message reached him from Stirling that
-his son Arthur has just died. Shortly after, another message came from
-St. Andrews to announce to him that his son James was dead. These two
-young princes, his hope, his joy, and his glory, were no more. Within
-twenty-four hours of each other (some say at the same hour), they had
-been taken from him. He now comprehended his dream. His two arms were
-already cut off: it only remained for him to lose his own life, and all
-would be accomplished. Nothing could divert this prince, who was guilty
-at once of profligacy and of persecution: nothing could beguile his
-grief. His heart was broken, his mind was disordered.</p>
-
-<p>He shut himself up, and the only person whom he would see was his
-mother. Unhappy father! unhappy king! The queen-dowager did all she
-could to console her son and her daughter-in-law. ‘I am never from
-them,’ she wrote to her brother, Henry VIII., May 12, 1541, ‘but ever
-in their company.’ It appears that by this large sorrow the natural
-affections were reawakened in the king. He wrote to his uncle that he
-desired to see good will and the most perfect friendship and peace
-prevail between them.<a name="FNanchor_240_240" id="FNanchor_240_240"></a><a href="#Footnote_240_240" class="fnanchor">[240]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION.</div>
-
-<p>While James was thus taken up with his sorrows alone, the doctrine of
-the Reformation made progress, and, if only liberty were accorded to
-it, its triumph in Scotland appeared to be at hand. A great multitude
-of the common people, both in the country districts and in the towns,
-held meetings more or less secretly at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span> which they heard the Holy Word
-read and even explained. By 1540 many eminent men had received the
-evangelical doctrine. The earls of Errol and of Glencairn, the Lords
-Ruthven and Kilmaurs and their children, Sir David Lyndsay, Sir James
-Sandilands, Melville of Raith, and a large number of other influential
-persons appeared to be attached to the Gospel by genuine conviction.</p>
-
-<p>Henry VIII., when informed of this state of things, thought that he
-ought to avail himself of it for his own advantage. His favorite notion
-was to engage the King of Scotland to make his country independent
-of Rome, and as James was his nephew he did not despair of success.
-As long ago as 1535 he had sent Barlow to him with books against the
-authority of the pope. That measure failed. Next he had despatched Lord
-Howard to James, who was still unmarried, to offer to him the hand of
-his daughter Mary, and with her the prospect of the crown of England,
-if he would establish the royal supremacy in the Church. Another
-failure. In 1540 Henry had charged Sir Ralph Sadler to set before James
-the advantages which he would obtain from a Reformation, and to propose
-an interview with him. Sadler, in order to counteract beforehand the
-cardinal’s influence, communicated to the King of Scotland some letters
-from that prelate to the pope, which had been intercepted by the
-English, and from which it was manifest that Beatoun’s aim was to place
-the state in subjection to the Romish Church. The prince answered with
-a smile that the cardinal had already shown him those letters.<a name="FNanchor_241_241" id="FNanchor_241_241"></a><a href="#Footnote_241_241" class="fnanchor">[241]</a></p>
-
-<p>All the endeavors of the English envoy had proved futile. At bottom,
-the end which Beatoun was pursuing was the ruin of Henry VIII.; and in
-order the more surely to attain it, he was ambitious to be appointed
-legate <i>a latere</i>, a dignity which would invest him in Scotland
-with the extraordinary powers which he did actually<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span> obtain. He did
-everything to conduct to a happy issue the alliance against England
-which had been previously projected by the pope. The English Council of
-the North wrote to Cromwell&mdash;‘We think that the cardinal of Scotland
-intendeth to take his journey towards Rome in Lent next coming, and
-we think it should appear by the schedule of instructions herein
-inclosed, which was taken on a ship lost at Bamborough, that the Scots
-intend some mystery with some of their allies.’<a name="FNanchor_242_242" id="FNanchor_242_242"></a><a href="#Footnote_242_242" class="fnanchor">[242]</a> Henry, alarmed
-at this news, caused fresh entreaties to be pressed on his nephew.
-His ambassadors promised James that if he would go to York to confer
-with his uncle, the meeting would have the happiest consequences for
-him, and would afford him the most unanswerable proof of the love
-which Henry bore him.<a name="FNanchor_243_243" id="FNanchor_243_243"></a><a href="#Footnote_243_243" class="fnanchor">[243]</a> It appears even that one of them, speaking
-of the feeble health of prince Edward, held before the eyes of James
-Stuart the brilliant prospect of the crown of England, leaving Mary
-and Elizabeth entirely out of sight. The nobles of Scotland, natural
-enemies of the priests, urged the king to agree to the interview with
-his uncle. Articles were drawn up at the beginning of December 1541,
-by the commissioners of Scotland and England. They purported that King
-James would meet his dear uncle, the King of England, on January 15,
-1542, at the city of York, for the purpose of mutual communications
-tending to increase their cordial love, to draw closer the ties of
-blood, and to promote the prosperity of their kingdoms.<a name="FNanchor_244_244" id="FNanchor_244_244"></a><a href="#Footnote_244_244" class="fnanchor">[244]</a> These
-articles raised Henry to the summit of his wishes, and he took measures
-immediately for imparting to this interview extraordinary solemnity
-and brilliancy. This conference of the two kings made a great noise in
-Scotland, and preparations were also made<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span> there. Henry VIII. set out
-and went to York full of hope. Uncle and nephew were at last to see
-each other, and to talk together, and every one saw that this meeting
-would have weighty consequences. Never was Scotland nearer having a
-reform after the fashion of Henry VIII.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROJECTED INTERVIEW AT YORK.</div>
-
-<p>No one understood this better than Beatoun. What he feared more than
-all besides was that the power of the Romish hierarchy would be
-abolished, and the Gospel be put in its place. The cardinal, for the
-first time in his life, had been anticipated, surpassed in cleverness
-and in influence. He did not however lose courage, but with all the
-adherents of his party applied himself to the task with all his soul.
-They sowed hatred between the king and the nobles. They employed all
-imaginable means to dissuade the king from the fatal meeting. At first
-they sought to alarm him. ‘By going to York,’ said the cardinal to him,
-‘you will expose yourself to the suspicions of the emperor, you will
-make an enemy of your old ally the King of France, and you will bring
-down on yourself the disgrace of the pope. In short’ (and it was this
-which most terrified James), ‘you will expose yourself to the greatest
-dangers. This treacherous king will keep you prisoner in England as
-James I. was kept in former days.’ James replied that he had given
-his word, and that the king was awaiting him, that to absent himself
-from the <i>rendezvous</i> would lead to war with England, and that he
-had not the means of carrying it on. The cardinal was amazed at this
-independence of the king, for he was not accustomed to it. Discerning
-more and more clearly the greatness of the peril, his bishops and he
-agreed that there was but one means available for inducing James to
-renounce his purpose. As this prince was always in want of money, they
-sought to gain him by gifts of large sums.<a name="FNanchor_245_245" id="FNanchor_245_245"></a><a href="#Footnote_245_245" class="fnanchor">[245]</a> This<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span> argument did not
-miss the mark. They then appealed to him anew and said&mdash;‘Sire, there is
-a good deal of money in Scotland, and it is easy to get possession of
-it. If war should break out, the clergy will give you thirty thousand
-crowns per annum, and you will be able to get a hundred thousand more
-by confiscating the property of heretics, if you will only authorize
-proceedings against them by a judge whom we will name to you and who
-is well qualified for the purpose. Will you spare this wicked people?
-Do they not read the Old and New Testaments? Are they not in rebellion
-against the authority of the pope and against the king’s majesty?
-Have they not, by new and detestable errors, troubled the churches,
-destroyed piety, and overthrown institutions established for many
-centuries? They refuse to the priests whom God has consecrated all
-obedience and respect. But there must be no delay.’ James yielded. He
-conceded to the bishops the inquisition which they claimed, and sent
-Sir James Learmont, one of the officers of his court, to offer his
-excuses to his uncle. Of all James’s proceedings this was the most
-perilous.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XI.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">WAR BETWEEN ENGLAND AND SCOTLAND&mdash;DEATH OF JAMES V.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm">(1542.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PREPARATIONS FOR WAR.</div>
-
-<p>It is easy to imagine the wrath of Henry VIII. when he found himself
-alone at York. He had made an agreement with his nephew; he had left
-London to have a conference with him; he had made great preparations;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span>
-he had gone to the north; and then the young man was missing at the
-<i>rendezvous</i>! He was beside himself with anger. His sister, the mother
-of James, had died at the end of November 1541. But even if she had
-lived it was hardly likely that her influence would have appeased the
-rage of the king. He was provoked not only because his favorite project
-broke down just at the moment when he expected to see it carried out,
-but still more by the intolerable affront which the King of Scotland
-had just offered him. He could not endure it, and he swore that he
-would wash his name and his memory of that insult by a startling act of
-vengeance. He wrote to James letters full of the sharpest reproaches
-and the most violent menaces. ‘I have still in my hand,’ said he,
-‘the very rod which chastised your father.’ That rod was the duke of
-Norfolk, who while earl of Surrey had commanded at Flodden, where James
-IV. was killed. Henry immediately authorized piratical expeditions
-by sea, and invasions on the Scottish borders; but these pirates and
-marauders were only the precursors of the chastisements which he was
-preparing.</p>
-
-<p>James was frightened; and as it was to please his prelates that he had
-failed to keep his promise, it was his wish that the expenses of the
-war should fall on them. He told them that, thanks to them, he was
-going to war with the King of England, and demanded the subsidies which
-they had promised. ‘If you do not furnish me with them,’ he added,
-‘I shall have no choice but to confer with my uncle and satisfy his
-wishes.’ This menace terrified the prelates; ‘for rather would they
-have gone to hell.’<a name="FNanchor_246_246" id="FNanchor_246_246"></a><a href="#Footnote_246_246" class="fnanchor">[246]</a> What would France say? What would the pope
-say? thought the cardinal. The bishops promised mountains of gold.
-After deliberation on the matter, they agreed to give the king fifty
-thousand crowns a year so long as the war lasted. They added, that
-their servants and other dependents who were exempt from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span> military
-service would take up arms. These promises filled the heart of the
-rash young monarch with confidence and pride. Troops were sent to
-Jedburgh and to Kelso, and the priests and all their party were pluming
-themselves on their wealth and their power, and talking of nothing
-but their victory. They were mad with joy, and were already dreaming
-of again bringing England under the papal sway. It was possible for
-an instant to suppose that they were right. The parliament of England
-had not shown itself so forward as the clergy of Scotland; its members
-had closed their ears to Henry’s demands for money. This slackened
-his preparations for war. There were, however, some troops on the
-frontier, and they formed the design of seizing Jedburgh. The earl
-Angus and Sir George Douglas, his brother, who had been banished from
-Scotland for some years, joined these troops, which numbered four
-thousand men. But the Scots had taken their measures. Lord Huntley, at
-the head of a large force, encountered the English troops at Halidon
-on August 24. The fight was already begun, when another Scottish party
-appeared. The English, perceiving that they were in danger of being
-surrounded, retreated. Only a few were killed, but very many were taken
-prisoners.<a name="FNanchor_247_247" id="FNanchor_247_247"></a><a href="#Footnote_247_247" class="fnanchor">[247]</a></p>
-
-<p>There was no longer any limit to the joy of prelate and priest. They
-encouraged the king; they vaunted themselves as if they had in person
-gained a victory. In bishops’ palaces, in the parsonages of priests,
-and in the convents of monks, nothing was heard but shouts of triumph.
-‘All is ours,’ said they; ‘they are but heretics. If we be a thousand
-and they ten thousand, they dare not fight. France shall enter the
-one part and we the other, and so shall England be conquered within a
-year.’<a name="FNanchor_248_248" id="FNanchor_248_248"></a><a href="#Footnote_248_248" class="fnanchor">[248]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROJECTS OF HENRY VIII.</div>
-
-<p>James, notwithstanding his imprudence, did not indulge in these foolish
-illusions. He knew that Henry VIII.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span> was much stronger than himself.
-The blow which the wrath of his uncle had inflicted on him made him
-turn from left to right. He wished to take advantage of the petty
-victory of Halidon for making peace with England. Persecution ceased in
-Scotland, and liberty of conscience was more liberally granted. On the
-day after the engagement, and before James was informed of the result,
-he had already written to Henry, and had asked him for passports for
-his plenipotentiaries. On September 1 he wrote to him again: ‘We assure
-you, dearest uncle,’ said he, ‘there is within our realm neither of
-spiritual nor temporal state that may or shall change our favor and
-kindness toward you.’<a name="FNanchor_249_249" id="FNanchor_249_249"></a><a href="#Footnote_249_249" class="fnanchor">[249]</a> But Henry was not of such an easy temper:
-he bore in mind the affront at York, and he intended to avenge it.
-He forbade the ambassadors of his nephew to pass beyond that city.
-During this time he was collecting all kinds of munitions of war, and
-in very large quantities. He assembled an army such as Scotland had
-not for a long time seen at her borders, and gave the command of it to
-that duke of Norfolk who was to defeat the son as he had defeated the
-father. The King of England wanted also to be the king of Scotland,
-and wished that the whole of Great Britain should belong to the same
-prince. This dream was one day to be realized, but with this great
-difference, that it would not be the King of England who should become
-king of Scotland, but the King of Scotland who should become king of
-England. We find in the State Papers the following despatch, addressed
-by the English privy council to the archbishop of York:&mdash;‘Minding to
-have the king’s majesty’s title to the realm of Scotland more fully,
-plainly, and clearly set forth to all the world, that the justness of
-our quarrel and demand may appear, we have appointed certain learned
-men to travail in the same. And for because we knew that your lordship
-in times past hath taken some pains in the same thing,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span> we pray you not
-only to cause all your old registers and ancient places to be sought,
-where you think anything may be found for the more clear declaration
-to the world of his majesty’s title to that realm, and so what shall
-be found to certify us thereof accordingly; but also to signify unto
-us what ancient charters and monuments for that purpose you have seen,
-and where the same are to be sought for.’ For having failed to make the
-promised visit, James must lose his crown. Once let the King of England
-have possessed himself of Scotland (thanks to his soldiers, without
-doubt, more than to his charters and muniments), he would banish popery
-and establish his own bishops in its place, and above all his own
-papacy.</p>
-
-<p>Henry published a manifesto in which he declared that his nephew had
-been the aggressor. He claimed for the Tudors the crown of the Stuarts.
-He resented as bitterly as ever the wound received at York; and the
-vengeance which he reckoned on taking was to be cruel, memorable,
-and revolutionary. The energy of the uncle was as conspicuous as
-the feebleness of the nephew; and when James wrote again with all
-<i>naïveté</i>, ‘I love you,’ Henry replied savagely, ‘I hate you.’</p>
-
-<p>Norfolk, impatient to avenge the retreat from Halidon, determined to
-make an inroad into Scotland before the whole of the army was mustered.
-He therefore marched from Berwick, at the northeastern extremity of
-England, ravaged the country districts, took several unimportant
-places, got himself into various scrapes, and announced that he should
-immediately appear at Edinburgh. But within eight or ten days after
-passing the Borders he withdrew. He had merely paid an unceremonious
-visit, preliminary to one official and in state.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MUTINY OF THE SCOTS.</div>
-
-<p>Meanwhile James was putting himself into a position to receive that
-visit gallantly, and was assembling his army before Edinburgh. He had
-there about twenty thousand men, besides ten thousand more on the
-frontier, under<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span> the command of the earl of Huntley. But dissension
-prevailed in his camp. There were some who cared little for the old
-doctrine, but who were eager above everything to break the iron yoke
-of the cardinal. Others there were, attached to the Douglases and the
-Anguses, who were in the English army, and who had no mind to fight
-against them. Others, again, feeling the inferiority of the Scottish
-army, steadily insisted that they ought to remain strictly on the
-defensive. On a sudden, the Scots encamped at Fala learnt that for want
-of supplies the English were retreating on the Tweed. James, who was
-easily excited, immediately called together his lords, and exclaimed,
-‘Forward! follow me into England!’ His words were received in a gloomy
-silence. ‘We are ready, sire,’ said some of the lords to him, ‘to risk
-life and whatsoever we have to defend your person and your realm,
-but we do not see any sufficient reason for invading England. Our
-provisions are spent, our horses wearied; and as for ourselves, we
-have so long been absent from our homes, that we think it high time to
-return.’</p>
-
-<p>James dissembled his chagrin, and even assumed an air of approval
-of the discretion of his lords. But he trembled to see his kingly
-authority trampled under foot by his subjects. He was plainly master
-no longer. His subservience to the priests had ruined him. The nobles
-and the common soldiers, instead of falling upon the English, returned
-every man to his own home, and the king, abandoned and left almost
-alone, consumed by the profound vexation which was gradually wearing
-him away, returned mournfully to Edinburgh.</p>
-
-<p>It was now November 2 or 3. He immediately convoked a council at
-Holyrood palace. But in his rage against the nobles, he summoned only
-the bishops, the priests, and their partisans; all those who made a
-trade of pandering to the passions of the prince and who had no other
-aim but to secure the triumph of the clergy.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span> When they saw the king’s
-discouragement, and his anger against the nobles, they persuaded
-themselves that the moment was come for them to make an end of their
-enemies. That, they thought, would not be very difficult. These men,
-branded by public opinion, did not care to furnish evidence in support
-of their denunciations. The only trouble they took was to deprive
-the innocent of all means of clearing themselves. They thought that
-it would for the moment suffice them to obtain a hearing, to accuse
-some noble of heresy and to call as witnesses certain men of infamous
-character in their own pay. With one accord, therefore, they all strove
-to inflame the king against the Reformation and its friends. Oliver
-Sinclair, among the laymen, distinguished himself in these proceedings,
-and among the churchmen, Beatoun. ‘The cardinal and the priests,’ it
-was said, ‘cast fagots in the fire with all their force.’<a name="FNanchor_250_250" id="FNanchor_250_250"></a><a href="#Footnote_250_250" class="fnanchor">[250]</a> They
-drew up a list containing the names of all of whom they wished to be
-rid. There were the names of about one hundred nobles, among whom were
-Lord Hamilton, the first person of the realm after the king, the earls
-of Cassilis and Glencairn, the earl Marshal, and other nobles, all well
-disposed towards the Word of God.<a name="FNanchor_251_251" id="FNanchor_251_251"></a><a href="#Footnote_251_251" class="fnanchor">[251]</a> This fact shows what progress
-the Reformation had made in Scotland. The majority of these <i>suspects</i>,
-to be sure, were not decided evangelical Christians, but they had
-leanings that way. Once already James had refused to accept such a
-list. But the case was different now, and he accepted it at once, and
-expressed to the prelates his regret that he had so long set their
-counsels aside. ‘I see clearly at this moment that you are right,’
-he said; ‘the nobles neither desire my honor nor my continuance; for
-they would not ride a mile for my pleasure to follow enemies. Will
-ye therefore find me the means that I may have raid made in England
-without<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span> their knowledge and consent, that may be known to be my own
-raid, and I shall bind me to your counsel forever.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">A PROSCRIPTION LIST.</div>
-
-<p>The joy of the cardinal and his friends was unbounded. They
-congratulated each other, they clapped their hands;<a name="FNanchor_252_252" id="FNanchor_252_252"></a><a href="#Footnote_252_252" class="fnanchor">[252]</a> the game was
-won. They made promises one to another of diligent service, discretion,
-and fidelity. They encountered however some few difficulties. The king
-required before all else an invasion, and he wanted to be able to say
-to the nobles, ‘Where you fell back I advanced and have conquered.’ How
-proceed so as to insure success in the enterprise? They resolved to
-select as the battle-field not the east, in the direction of Berwick,
-where the forces of Henry VIII. lay, but the northwestern quarter,
-which was stripped, left without an army, almost without a garrison.
-Carlisle would presently be taken, and James would triumph at the same
-time over the nobles and the king of England.</p>
-
-<p>He attached the utmost importance to this deed of arms. The royal
-banner was secretly brought out, letters were addressed to the men
-selected by the priests, inviting them to meet the king on such a
-day, at such a place. The bishops undertook to bear the expenses of
-this affair. The cardinal and the earl of Arran, by way of diversion,
-went eastward, as if the Scots purposed to pass the frontier in that
-quarter, where frequent combats had taken place between them and
-the English. The king, satisfied with all these preparations, and
-entertaining no doubt of success, accepted the fatal list presented by
-the cardinal and put it into his pocket. Immediately after his triumph
-and in the very midst of his glory, all those suspected should be
-seized and executed. The Reformation should be extinguished, and Rome
-should definitively reign. Everything was to be done with the strictest
-secrecy.</p>
-
-<p>On the night before the day appointed for setting out, James slept at
-Lochmaben,<a name="FNanchor_253_253" id="FNanchor_253_253"></a><a href="#Footnote_253_253" class="fnanchor">[253]</a> where stood one of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span> royal castles. There, without
-incurring any danger, he was as near as possible to the scene of the
-exploits all the honor of which he wished to reap. Troops arrive from
-all sides, without any knowledge of what was wanted with them. On the
-day fixed, at midnight, the trumpets sound, the companies are formed,
-and the command is given to march forward ‘in the suite of the king,’
-who was supposed to be with the expedition. At daybreak begins the
-campaign which is to deliver up Scotland into the cruel hands of the
-cardinal. The Scots approach the territory of England and pass the
-water without meeting any resistance. They set fire to the houses and
-corn fields which lie on their way, and the poor dwellers in those
-country places, starting out of their sleep, see before them to their
-great amazement an army of ten thousand men, and flames shooting up on
-all sides. They tremble with fright and resign themselves to despair,
-wondering in themselves how such an army could possibly have advanced
-so far without their having the faintest suspicion of it. Whence comes
-it? Whither is it going? Is it come from the abyss of hell?</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ROUT OF THE SCOTS.</div>
-
-<p>Everything about this expedition was indeed extraordinary, and even the
-Scots themselves did not know who was in command. Lord Maxwell, warden
-of the western marches, was present, and to him that office naturally
-belonged; but neither he nor the troops knew anything at all about the
-matter. At ten o’clock an unexpected event occurred. The Scots finding
-themselves on English ground at Solway, the trumpets were sounded,
-the army halted, and the royal flag was displayed and floated in the
-midst of them. The wretched Oliver Sinclair mounted on a kind of shield
-formed by lances which rested on the shoulders of some of the soldiers.
-He presented letters which had been sent him by the king. This prince,
-in the belief that this worthless courtier was a great captain, had
-named him commander-in-chief. These letters were read to the army, and
-the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span> favorite had himself proclaimed lieutenant-general, with orders to
-render obedience to him as to the king himself. By what the courtiers
-said, to put Sinclair at the head of the army was to make victory
-certain. James would not rely upon any of his nobles. Not one of them
-was to have the glory of the expedition; it was to be the achievement
-of James, to whom the command belonged. Maxwell was present at that
-ceremony, seeing everything, hearing everything, and he was astounded
-at it, ‘but he thought more than he spoke.’<a name="FNanchor_254_254" id="FNanchor_254_254"></a><a href="#Footnote_254_254" class="fnanchor">[254]</a> Other lords who were
-present did the same. No sooner had the proclamation been read than
-murmurs, discouragement, and disorder spread through the army. At the
-same time the English took up arms in all haste, ten in one company,
-twenty in another. Carlisle closed its gates, and shortly after about
-five hundred horsemen appeared on the neighboring heights for the
-purpose of reconnoitring the Scottish force.<a name="FNanchor_255_255" id="FNanchor_255_255"></a><a href="#Footnote_255_255" class="fnanchor">[255]</a> The Scots took these
-horsemen for the advance guard of the army of the duke of Norfolk, and
-being seized with a panic terror, many of them broke from the ranks.
-Some wanted to fight, others wanted to fly. Everything was disorder and
-confusion. The troops disbanded and took to flight in all directions.
-Lord Maxwell, who had foreseen from the first moment the end of this
-mad business, alighted from his horse and spoke to some friends. ‘To
-horse and fly,’ they said to him. ‘Nay,’ replied he, ‘I will rather
-abide here the chance that it shall please God to send me than to go
-home and then be hanged.’<a name="FNanchor_256_256" id="FNanchor_256_256"></a><a href="#Footnote_256_256" class="fnanchor">[256]</a> The Scots, both horse and foot, threw
-away their arms and ran with all their might. A great number of them
-were taken prisoners by the soldiers of Henry VIII., and some were
-captured by Scottish adventurers and sold to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span> the English.<a name="FNanchor_257_257" id="FNanchor_257_257"></a><a href="#Footnote_257_257" class="fnanchor">[257]</a> To such
-a degree had James’s soldiers lost heart, that those who did not fall
-into the hands of men rushed into houses and surrendered themselves
-to women.<a name="FNanchor_258_258" id="FNanchor_258_258"></a><a href="#Footnote_258_258" class="fnanchor">[258]</a> The water had to be recrossed: the tide was high, the
-river deep. Many were drowned, and a good number of those who escaped
-the river perished in the marshes. Oliver Sinclair, who was ‘fleeing
-full manfully,’<a name="FNanchor_259_259" id="FNanchor_259_259"></a><a href="#Footnote_259_259" class="fnanchor">[259]</a> was captured without having struck a single
-blow. The most distinguished among the Scottish nobles, the earls of
-Cassilis and Glencairn, the Lords Somerville, Grey, and Oliphant, were
-seen laying down their arms. Maxwell found thus the fate which he had
-desired. These lords and gentlemen were sent to London and committed
-to the Tower. Two days after, Henry commanded that they should pass
-through the streets of London on foot, exposed thus as a spectacle to
-the populace,<a name="FNanchor_260_260" id="FNanchor_260_260"></a><a href="#Footnote_260_260" class="fnanchor">[260]</a> like the captives who adorned the triumphs of Roman
-generals. When they arrived at the palace, they were received there by
-the Lord Chancellor, who addressed to them severe rebukes, accused them
-of having violated the faith of treaties, and extolled the goodness and
-clemency of Henry VIII., who assigned them various houses for their
-abode.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MURDER OF AN ENGLISH ENVOY.</div>
-
-<p>During the battle, if such a word is to be used, James, who took good
-care to keep out of it, was concealed in his castle at Lochmaben,
-northeast of Dumfries.<a name="FNanchor_261_261" id="FNanchor_261_261"></a><a href="#Footnote_261_261" class="fnanchor">[261]</a> There he was awaiting the issue of that
-famous expedition which was to be his title to glory. He had made
-sure of taking at the first blow the town of Carlisle, situated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span> at
-a distance of some miles from the frontier, and formerly one of the
-principal military posts of the Romans, at which the wall of Hadrian
-terminated, and which had been more than once besieged and taken.
-Thence he hoped to pass on and reach York, and pay an <i>armed</i> visit
-to his dear uncle there. He was expecting the tidings of his triumph,
-when some of the fugitives made known to him the total rout of his
-army. Overwhelmed with sudden fear and astonishment, he could hardly
-utter a word. It was night when he heard of his defeat, and not daring
-to venture before daylight into unknown, untrodden ways, he retired to
-bed, but without finding the least repose. His distress was unbounded.
-He experienced the most acute pangs, could hardly breathe, and only
-uttered some vague cries. The manner in which his unworthy favorite
-had deceived his expectation, his defeat and flight, disturbed him as
-much as the victory of the English. He got up, paced up and down in
-his chamber, uttered lamentations, and cried out&mdash;‘Oh, fled Oliver? Is
-Oliver taken? Oh, fled Oliver?’<a name="FNanchor_262_262" id="FNanchor_262_262"></a><a href="#Footnote_262_262" class="fnanchor">[262]</a> He was attacked with a kind of
-catalepsy. The constant contemplation of that extraordinary defeat and
-of the conduct of that despicable man on whom he had rested his hopes
-had in some degree suspended sensation in him, and he lay as in a long
-and painful trance until his death, continually repeating, ‘Oh, fled
-Oliver?’</p>
-
-<p>The next morning, November 25, 1542, the king returned to Edinburgh.
-He could hardly conceal his disgrace in his splendid palace; and there
-a new disgrace was reported to him which still further heightened
-his grief. On November 14, two envoys from the duke of Norfolk had
-arrived there with a letter addressed to the king. The cardinal had
-replied that he was gone a-hunting in Fifeshire. Ten days later, on
-the fatal day of Solway, towards evening, when the English envoys on
-their return were approaching Dunbar, one of them,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span> J. Ponds, Somerset
-herald, was attacked by two men and assassinated. James, when he
-heard of this on his return, was in consternation. It might seriously
-aggravate the crisis which was already so alarming. Notwithstanding the
-painful state in which he then was, he wrote immediately to his uncle:
-‘Be assured that punishment shall thereafter follow according to the
-quality of the crime, and that there is no prince now living who could
-be more afflicted than we are that such an odious crime should remain
-unpunished.’ He offered to send ambassadors and heralds to explain the
-criminal deed.<a name="FNanchor_263_263" id="FNanchor_263_263"></a><a href="#Footnote_263_263" class="fnanchor">[263]</a> That was probably the last letter written by the
-king.</p>
-
-<p>James had a painful interview with the cardinal, who might now
-understand to what a condition his hatred of the Reformation and his
-ambition had reduced the king and the realm. James, who believed
-himself pursued by a fatal destiny, took account sorrowfully, when
-left alone, of his treasures and his jewels; and then, full of shame
-and melancholy, and afraid to show himself to anyone whomsoever in his
-capital, set out secretly for Fifeshire. He stopped at Hallyards, where
-he was warmly received by the lady of Grange, a respectable and pious
-woman, whose husband was absent at the time. This Christian woman,
-observing at supper that the prince was plunged in melancholy, sought
-to comfort him, and exhorted him to bow with resignation to the will of
-God. ‘My portion of this world is short,’ sorrowfully answered James;
-‘in fifteen days I shall be with you no more.’ Some time afterwards one
-of the officers of his court having said to him, ‘Sire, Christmas is
-nigh; where will your majesty wish to celebrate that festival?’ James
-replied with a scornful smile, ‘I cannot tell: choose ye the place. But
-this I can tell you, on Yule day ye will be masterless, and the realm
-without a king.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LAST HOURS OF JAMES V.</div>
-
-<p>Haunted by these thoughts, the king went thence to Carney castle,
-and next to his palace at Falkland, where<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span> he took to his bed. It
-would have been natural for him to go to Linlithgow, to his queen,
-who was on the point of giving birth to a child. He chose rather to
-be at a distance from her. Loose living is incompatible with domestic
-happiness. No symptom showed that his death was near. James, however,
-was always repeating the words, ‘Before such a day I shall be dead.’
-His courtiers, astonished and afflicted, said to one another that if
-the queen gave him a son, the happiness so much desired would restore
-him; but on December 8, 1542, she gave birth to a girl&mdash;the celebrated
-Mary Stuart. On learning that the newborn infant was a girl, James,
-wounded afresh in his dearest wish, turned to the wall, away from those
-who had brought him the sad tidings. ‘The devil go with it,’ he said;
-‘it will end as it began; it came with a lass, and it will go with a
-lass.’<a name="FNanchor_264_264" id="FNanchor_264_264"></a><a href="#Footnote_264_264" class="fnanchor">[264]</a> He saw his family extinct, his crown lost. Other Stuarts,
-however, bore it after Mary. Both Scotland and England, unhappily, knew
-that to their cost. But this circumstance&mdash;the hope frustrated of a son
-to take the place of the two which he had lost&mdash;was a fresh and fatal
-blow for the unfortunate James:</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>De douleur en douleur il traversait la vie.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>The cardinal presented himself at the castle. His visit was natural at
-that moment. But the ambitious prelate, supposing the king to be near
-death, came not to console him, but to secure his own position. As the
-king in his present dangerous state could only hear with difficulty,
-the primate cried in his ear&mdash;‘Take order, sir, with the realm. Who
-shall rule during the minority of your daughter? Ye have known my
-service; what will ye have done? Shall there not be four regents
-chosen, and shall not I be principal of them?’ The clever prelate
-succeeded in getting a document prepared which was in his favor. The
-king was sinking. But the memory of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span> Solway ran continually in his
-head, and disturbed his last moments. ‘Fie,’ cried he; ‘fled is Oliver?
-is Oliver taken? All is lost.’ On December 14, 1542, at the age of
-thirty-two, six days after the birth of Mary Stuart, James V. died.
-When disrobing him, they found in his pocket the famous proscription
-list. What was to come of that now?</p>
-
-<p>James was buried at Holyrood January 8, and the cardinal who had driven
-him along that fatal path in which he was to meet death presided at the
-ceremony. This prince, thus taken away in the flower of his age, died
-not so much of disease as of a broken heart.<a name="FNanchor_265_265" id="FNanchor_265_265"></a><a href="#Footnote_265_265" class="fnanchor">[265]</a> ‘The sorrow of the
-world worketh death.’ He had understanding, but it was uncultivated; he
-was moderate in respect to the pleasures of the table, but he had been
-thrown in his youth into other irregularities, from which he never got
-free. He might be seen in the bitterest winter weather, on horseback
-night and day, endeavoring to surprise the freebooters in their
-retreats; and poor men had always easy access to him. But for want of
-thoughtfulness and solid principles he was incessantly tossed to and
-fro between the nobles and the priests, and whichever of these two was
-the most adroit easily took the upper hand. He sinned much, but perhaps
-he was still more ‘sinned against.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XII.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">REGENCY OF THE EARL OF ARRAN.&mdash;IMPRISONMENT OF BEATOUN.&mdash;TREATY OF
-PEACE WITH ENGLAND.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(1542&ndash;March 1543.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">GENERAL DEPRESSION.</div>
-
-<p>The political and religious events in the midst of which James V. had
-been taken from Scotland were of so grave a character that the wisest
-heads felt some alarm, and expected to see a storm break forth such as
-no one had ever seen the like.<a name="FNanchor_266_266" id="FNanchor_266_266"></a><a href="#Footnote_266_266" class="fnanchor">[266]</a> An unexpected blow, considering the
-youthful years of the prince, had fallen on the nation. With eyes fixed
-on the future, nobles and people talked together of their fears and the
-faintness of their hopes.<a name="FNanchor_267_267" id="FNanchor_267_267"></a><a href="#Footnote_267_267" class="fnanchor">[267]</a> In the Lowlands, in the heart of the
-Highlands, at Edinburgh, at Glasgow, at Stirling, and in other towns
-of Scotland, men with pale faces and a restless air were questioning
-one another in distress of mind about the fate in reserve for their
-country. The shameful defeat at Solway, which had given the king his
-death-blow, had filled the people with mourning and dread. The most
-illustrious lords of Scotland, taken prisoners by the English, had been
-exposed to the gaze of the citizens of London. Those who still remained
-in Scotland were divided by implacable hatred, and by religious views
-diametrically opposed to each other; and it was anticipated that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span>
-dissensions long suppressed by the fear of the king would now burst
-forth. The cardinal and the bishops, giving themselves up without
-restraint to their passion for dominion, were going to take advantage
-of the death of James to bring the people into subjection. Henry VIII.,
-glorying in the unexpected victory which he had just won, did not fail,
-now that his nephew was no more, to turn to account (and in what a
-fashion!) his pretensions to Scotland. For maintaining order in the
-country there was a queen eight days old. The next heir to the crown
-after her, Hamilton, earl of Arran, was not fitted by his virtues, or
-his intelligence, or his courage to rule the people. Many destructive
-agencies were at work in Scotland; loud lamentations were heard. One
-thing alone could save the country&mdash;the Gospel.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ALLEGED WILL OF JAMES V.</div>
-
-<p>The king being dead, it appeared to Beatoun that the public troubles
-offered him a favorable opportunity for becoming master, for securing
-the triumph of the French party, for abolishing the Reformation, and
-establishing the supremacy of the clergy. Since Scotland was abased,
-he was to be exalted. It was needful to act quickly. The nobles who
-were recently made prisoners, and those who had for a long time lived
-in exile in England, were about to return. The cardinal knew well that
-they detested his subservience to the pope, his ambition, and his
-arrogance; and he had no doubt that they would vigorously oppose him.
-The earl of Arran, next heir after Mary to the crown, was it is true
-in Scotland, and seemed to be called to make head against him; but the
-haughty cardinal made little account of that. The earl is unambitious,
-said he; he has no energy, and all his wish is to have nothing to do.
-Besides, Arran was his near relation, a son of one of his aunts.<a name="FNanchor_268_268" id="FNanchor_268_268"></a><a href="#Footnote_268_268" class="fnanchor">[268]</a>
-The king had scarcely breathed his last when the cardinal went boldly
-to the queen-mother at Linlithgow, fortified with the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span> document on
-which he assumed to found his pretensions. ‘Welcome, my lord,’ said
-the queen, who as yet knew nothing more than the serious illness of
-her husband; ‘is not the king dead?’ Mary of Guise supposed that the
-first prelate of the kingdom was come solely to announce to her the
-sovereign’s death. But Beatoun had another end in view in this visit.
-Without loss of time he produced the king’s testament containing the
-nomination of a regency composed of the cardinal and the earls of
-Argyle, Huntley, and Murray, the first-named to be president of the
-council and guardian to the royal infant. This document was generally
-considered to have been extorted from the dying king. Many persons
-even believed that the cardinal’s agent had guided the hand of the
-dead king, and obtained a signature in blank which the cardinal
-had afterwards filled up at his own will. Buchanan states that the
-cardinal, having gained over a certain priest named Balfour, had with
-his assistance forged a false testament. Knox, Sadler, and Lesley
-also speak in the same way.<a name="FNanchor_269_269" id="FNanchor_269_269"></a><a href="#Footnote_269_269" class="fnanchor">[269]</a> At the market-cross at Edinburgh the
-cardinal had proclamation made, on the Monday after the king’s death,
-of the alleged deed which made him the first personage in the realm.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the Scots were indignant at this proceeding, and said openly
-that both the regency and the guardianship of the infant Mary belonged
-to Hamilton, earl of Arran, who, as next heir to the crown through his
-grandmother, the daughter of James II., would be king, it was said,
-if the little princess should chance to die. Had not her two brothers
-died in their infancy? The general hatred of the cardinal, and the
-horror felt at the thought of living under the government of a priest,
-impelled a large number of people to support the cause of Hamilton.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span>
-‘Occasion offers herself to you,’ they said to him; ‘do not let her
-pass.’ The laird of Grange especially urged this noble to maintain his
-rights. But Arran, for want of spirit, was ready to abandon them. It
-was at last determined to call together the nobility of the realm, that
-they might decide to whose hands the government should be intrusted
-during the minority. The nobles met on the appointed day. The cardinal
-and his partisans resisted with all their might the proposal to commit
-the government of the realm to the earl of Arran. ‘The Hamiltons,’ said
-they, ‘are cruel murderers, oppressors of innocents, proud, avaricious,
-double and false, and finally, the pestilence in this commonwealth.’
-Arran had, indeed, given himself up to the domination of dishonorable
-men. However, he remained calm, and contemned these insults. ‘Call me
-what you please,’ replied he, ‘but defraud me not of my right. Whatever
-my friends have been, yet unto this day has no man cause to complain
-upon me. Neither yet am I minded to flatter my friends in their evil
-doing, but by God’s grace shall be forward to correct their enormities.
-Therefore yet again, my lord, in God’s name I crave that ye do me no
-wrong, nor defraud me of my just title before ye have experience of my
-government.’ This appeal touched the hearers, and all cried out that
-unless the fear of God and his righteousness were trampled under foot,
-the claim of Arran could not be rejected. He was therefore proclaimed
-governor of Scotland, in spite of Beatoun; and the king’s palace, his
-treasures, his jewels, and other chattels of the crown were delivered
-up to him by the officials who had charge of them. This took place on
-January 10, a few days after the cardinal’s proclamation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ARRAN PROCLAIMED REGENT.</div>
-
-<p>Arran, it is true, was not distinguished for his virtues nor for his
-intelligence, but he was very generally liked, as weak men often are.
-‘The earl of Arran,’ wrote Lord Lisle to Henry VIII., ‘is himself a
-good soft God’s man,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span> and loveth well to look on the Scripture, but he
-hath many that ruleth about him of his kin which be shrewd and evil
-men.’<a name="FNanchor_270_270" id="FNanchor_270_270"></a><a href="#Footnote_270_270" class="fnanchor">[270]</a> Never had any regent been received with so much liking and
-hope, and this was the case especially because people were glad to be
-delivered from the cardinal. It was thought that he would reform all
-that went wrong in the church or state, and his first acts corresponded
-with this hope.<a name="FNanchor_271_271" id="FNanchor_271_271"></a><a href="#Footnote_271_271" class="fnanchor">[271]</a> That Arran should thus get possession of power
-was astonishing, for he was as weak as Beatoun was strong, and the
-weakest, they say, always goes to the wall. In this case the reverse
-happened. But many people thought that the arrangement would be only
-temporary. Arran was the earthen pot of the fable, Beatoun the iron
-pot, and it was not difficult to foresee which of the two would break
-the other. It was not long before Arran gave a proof of his too easy
-temper. Instead of adopting measures for withdrawing the realm from
-the influence of Beatoun, as soon as the latter claimed to be made
-chancellor of Scotland, Arran committed that office to his hands, in
-order to alleviate the disgrace to which the assembly of the nobles had
-just subjected him.<a name="FNanchor_272_272" id="FNanchor_272_272"></a><a href="#Footnote_272_272" class="fnanchor">[272]</a> The ambitious cardinal, however, did not long
-keep that post of influence.</p>
-
-<p>Many eminent and pious men supported the cause of the earl of Arran.
-One of his first acts was to appoint as his chaplains, on the
-recommendation of those supporters, two ministers who preached the
-pure Gospel. A former Dominican, Thomas Guillaume (or Williams), who
-had been very eminent in his order, having been converted by the Word
-of God, had thrown off his cowl. He was called to preach at Edinburgh.
-The soundness of his judgment, the purity of his doctrine, the force
-of his eloquence, and the clearness of his exposition of Scripture,
-together with a certain moderation in contro<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span>versy, attracted a crowd
-to his preaching. The regent associated with him another evangelical
-minister, John Rough. He had entered a convent at seventeen years of
-age, had twice visited Rome, and having been painfully shocked by what
-he had seen there, he had embraced the Reformation. Less of a scholar
-than Guillaume, he was more simple-minded, and more ardent against
-superstition and impiety, and against the authority of the pope. Arran,
-urged on by his evangelical friends, sent his faithful ministers into
-various parts of the kingdom. Among their numerous hearers was Knox,
-and it was while listening to Guillaume that the great reformer began
-to be acquainted with the beauty of evangelical truth.<a name="FNanchor_273_273" id="FNanchor_273_273"></a><a href="#Footnote_273_273" class="fnanchor">[273]</a></p>
-
-<p>But while those who had their hearts opened to the truth received with
-joy the words of the two chaplains, the monks, the priests, and all
-the friends of the papacy attacked them vehemently. ‘Heresy! heresy!’
-cried a Franciscan named Scot; ‘Guillaume and Rough will carry the
-governor unto the devil.’ And all the monks and sacristans took up
-the cry, ‘Heresy!’ A man named Watson, of the household of the bishop
-of Dunkeld, composed a satirical ballad against the chaplains and the
-regent which had a great vogue. The cardinal on his part was moving
-heaven and earth, and worried Arran to silence the two preachers. ‘All
-these men,’ says Knox, ‘roupit [croaked] as they had been ravens, yea
-rather they yelled and roared as devils in hell.’ For the moment, these
-cries were futile. The divine Word prevailed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROPOSAL OF HENRY VIII.</div>
-
-<p>While these things were passing in Scotland, Henry VIII. was fully
-occupied in England. The death of James had startled him, and his
-first thought had been that the succession must fall to him. He would
-unite the two kingdoms, and it would be an immense advantage<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span> to Great
-Britain to be all under one government, and that his own. To this end a
-marriage should be concluded between his son Edward, aged five years,
-and the young Queen of Scotland, aged a few days. He lost no time
-in sending for the most notable of the Scottish captives to Hampton
-Court palace, where he was then residing. The earls of Cassilis and
-Glencairn, and the Lords Maxwell, Fleming, and Grey, men who only a
-few days before had been made a spectacle to the populace of London,
-appeared before him. He stated to them his project. ‘God,’ said he,
-‘now offers you a most favorable occasion for establishing agreement
-and peace in Great Britain. Let a contract be concluded between your
-queen and my son. I offer to set you at liberty if you will pledge
-yourselves to do all you can to get the consent of the regent and of
-the other nobles of Scotland to this marriage.’ The project highly
-pleased the lords, for they saw in it a certain means of obtaining not
-only liberty for themselves, but a lasting peace for their country.
-Agreement was made that the Queen Mary should marry the prince Edward
-when she was ten years old. After this conference the noble prisoners
-set out, December 29, on their way to Scotland, to secure the success
-of their scheme.</p>
-
-<p>Henry, however, did not yet feel himself secure, and he wanted to have
-the young queen in his own hands and some others with her. He had no
-confidence in Scotland, knowing how easily she might tack about: and he
-was afraid of the cardinal’s cleverness. Consequently, on January 9 he
-wrote to viscount Lisle, then lord warden of the military frontiers of
-England. ‘It is essential,’ said he, ‘to get the child, the person of
-the cardinal, and of such as be chief lettes of our purpose, and also
-of the chief holds and fortresses into our hands.’<a name="FNanchor_274_274" id="FNanchor_274_274"></a><a href="#Footnote_274_274" class="fnanchor">[274]</a> Henry’s fears
-were not without foundation. At the moment of James’s death everyone
-foreboded a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span> war with the powerful King of England. But the Scottish
-lords whom Henry had set at liberty arrived on January 24. They were
-accompanied by the earl of Angus and his brother, Sir George Douglas,
-who had long endured the life of exiles in England. These lords
-hastened to fulfil the commission of Henry VIII. On their admission to
-the council, of which the regent was president, they laid before it the
-proposal of marriage between the heirs of the two crowns. The earl of
-Arran and the great majority of the members of the council appeared to
-be favorable to it; but the cardinal, supported by the queen-mother,
-strenuously opposed it. In their judgment nothing was more dangerous
-for Scotland, nothing could be more offensive to France and to Rome.
-Now Mary of Guise and Beatoun were the representatives of these powers.
-The more chance there seemed to be of the adoption of the proposal
-by the council, the more Beatoun struggled and the more vehement the
-resistance he offered to it. He incessantly interrupted the debate: he
-put questions to other members: he thus hindered them from speaking
-and made the taking of votes altogether impossible.<a name="FNanchor_275_275" id="FNanchor_275_275"></a><a href="#Footnote_275_275" class="fnanchor">[275]</a> The majority
-of the council revolted against conduct so unparliamentary, which did
-not allow them the free exercise of their right. The other members, and
-especially the Scots who were just come from England, were indignant.
-The latter conceived a bold design which did not occur to anyone else.
-They would turn the cardinal’s insolence to account in getting him
-wholly set aside. It was proposed that Beatoun should be excluded
-from the assembly and confined in an apartment of the palace<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span> until
-the votes had been collected. This plan was at once voted and carried
-out.<a name="FNanchor_276_276" id="FNanchor_276_276"></a><a href="#Footnote_276_276" class="fnanchor">[276]</a> What a blow for this proud priest! He, primate, cardinal,
-legate of Rome, the most important personage of the realm, as he
-thought, to find himself excluded from the council and treated as a
-prisoner! He was not even to regain his liberty very soon. Never,
-perhaps, had any assembly struck so unlooked for a blow. The Scottish
-lords had arrived January 24, and the discussion and exclusion of the
-cardinal certainly took place on the 25th or 26th. The prelate was
-removed to the prison at Dalkeith.<a name="FNanchor_277_277" id="FNanchor_277_277"></a><a href="#Footnote_277_277" class="fnanchor">[277]</a> The earls of Huntley, Murray,
-and Bothwell demanded his liberation and offered themselves as his
-bail, but they did not succeed in obtaining it. The voting resulted in
-a resolution in favor of the marriage and of the union with England; it
-only remained for parliament to confirm it.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RESULTS OF BEATOUN’S ARREST.</div>
-
-<p>The Scottish lords who had returned from England, above all the earl
-of Angus and his brother, had learnt during their sojourn in London
-not to spare the cardinals and other Romish dignitaries. The stormy
-presumption of the cardinal in the council had been the occasion of
-the measure adopted against him; but these lords perfectly understood
-that unless the cardinal were kept in confinement there could be no
-religious nor even civil liberty in the land. ‘It is not possible,’
-says Calvin, ‘to deprive an able and powerful tyrant of his supremacy
-except by first taking away his arms and bringing against him a
-force superior to his own. He will never quit his post of his own
-accord.’<a name="FNanchor_278_278" id="FNanchor_278_278"></a><a href="#Footnote_278_278" class="fnanchor">[278]</a> Sir George Douglas, brother of Angus, went to Berwick
-where Lord Lisle was stationed, and pointed out to him that in sending
-the cardinal to prison they had given him certain proof of their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
-activity. Lisle immediately reported it to the Duke of Suffolk,
-brother-in-law of Henry VIII.<a name="FNanchor_279_279" id="FNanchor_279_279"></a><a href="#Footnote_279_279" class="fnanchor">[279]</a> All the friends of the Gospel, and
-even the Scottish political party, looked on that measure as a great
-deliverance. Beatoun, however, was not surrendered to Henry VIII., as
-he had required him to be.</p>
-
-<p>It is hardly possible to imagine the effect produced in Scotland by
-this bold deed. The bishops and the priests as soon as they heard of
-the extraordinary proceeding were beside themselves. All the clergy,
-struck with horror, at once adopted the same course as they would have
-done if Scotland were laid under an interdict by the pope. The churches
-were closed, religious services were suspended, and the priests refused
-to discharge any of their functions. One might have conjectured that
-some appalling crime had been committed, and that the whole nation was
-excommunicated. A funereal veil hung over Scotland. The Romish clergy
-accused those who had laid hands on the cardinal not only of injustice
-but of sacrilege. The people, submissive in some places to the bidding
-of their priests, and even many lords, cried out with the others.
-Argyle left Edinburgh, retired to his estates, and assembled his clan.
-Lord Lisle wrote to London, February 1, ‘Since the cardinal was seized,
-no one in Scotland can get a priest to sing masse, to christen or
-bury.’<a name="FNanchor_280_280" id="FNanchor_280_280"></a><a href="#Footnote_280_280" class="fnanchor">[280]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PARLIAMENT AT EDINBURGH.</div>
-
-<p>The Scottish Parliament was to open at Easter, and the moment
-was approaching. Instead of one there would be (so to speak) two
-parliaments. The party of the opposition, the earls of Huntley, Argyle,
-Murray, and Bothwell, a very great number of barons, knights, bishops,
-and abbots, met at Perth a week before the day of convocation, and
-having drawn up certain articles, they sent them to the regent and his
-council by the hands of the bishop of Orkney and Sir John Campbell,
-uncle to the earl of Argyle. Let the cardinal, they said,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span> be set at
-liberty; let the New Testament be interdicted; let the regent confer
-with us on all affairs of the realm, and let other ambassadors be
-sent to the King of England, charged with a quite different mission
-from that which has been determined on. The regent by the advice of
-his council declined to accede to ‘demands so unreasonable.’ The next
-step, immediately taken, was to send a herald-at-arms to Perth, to
-summon the lords who were there to Edinburgh, under penalty of treason,
-to discharge their duties. This citation took effect. The earl of
-Murray, the bishops, and abbots arrived on the eve of the opening of
-parliament. The other lords presented themselves later. Argyle alone
-remained on his estates. His two uncles, however, offered excuse for
-him, on the ground of ill health.<a name="FNanchor_281_281" id="FNanchor_281_281"></a><a href="#Footnote_281_281" class="fnanchor">[281]</a></p>
-
-<p>Parliament opened on Monday, March 12. The assembly was numerous,
-for the gravity of the occasion was universally understood. ‘This
-parliament,’ said the earl of Angus, ‘is the most <i>substantial</i> that
-was ever seen in Scotland; the three estates are present in great
-force, and the multitude of on-lookers is so great that no more
-could find lodging in the two towns of Edinburgh and Leith.’ The
-first resolution of this important assembly approved the marriage of
-prince Edward and the little Queen Mary, and empowered ambassadors to
-negotiate it with England.<a name="FNanchor_282_282" id="FNanchor_282_282"></a><a href="#Footnote_282_282" class="fnanchor">[282]</a> The second resolution (Tuesday) was the
-confirmation of the earl of Arran in the office of regent. On Wednesday
-the earl of Angus and his brother were reinstated in the honors and the
-estates of which they had been deprived during their fifteen years’
-exile. On Thursday the most important of all the resolutions of this
-body was to be presented and debated.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Maxwell, whom the folly of James V. had deprived of the command in
-the affair at Solway, was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span> generally known as ‘a man of good intentions
-with respect to the Word of God.’ He had not openly professed the
-evangelical doctrine so long as the cardinal was in possession of the
-supreme power; but his sojourn in England, though short, had induced
-him to take a more decisive course. He rose and introduced a bill
-providing ‘that all the subjects of the kingdom might read the Holy
-Scriptures in their mother-tongue.’ The debate began immediately.
-Dunbar, archbishop of Glasgow, who since the imprisonment of the
-cardinal had become chancellor of the realm, declared that he would
-oppose the motion in his own name and in the name of all the prelates,
-at least until the period when a provincial council of all the clergy
-of Scotland should have decided the question. ‘Wherefore,’ answered
-the friends of the Scriptures, ‘should it not be lawful to men that
-understood no Latin, to use this word of their salvation in the tongue
-they understand, as it was for Latin men to have it in Latin, Grecians
-and Hebrews to have it in their tongues.’ ‘The kirk,’ replied the
-priests, ‘had forbidden all kind of tongues but these three.’ ‘When was
-that inhibition given?’ retorted the friends of the Gospel. ‘Christ
-has commanded his word to be preached to all nations. Now if it ought
-to be preached to all nations, it must be preached in the tongue they
-understand. Now if it be lawful to preach it in all tongues, why shall
-it not be lawful to read it and to hear it read in all tongues? To the
-end that the people may try the spirits according to the commandment of
-the apostle.’<a name="FNanchor_283_283" id="FNanchor_283_283"></a><a href="#Footnote_283_283" class="fnanchor">[283]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FREEDOM TO READ THE BIBLE.</div>
-
-<p>The prelates finding themselves beaten admitted that the Holy
-Scripture might indeed be read in the vulgar tongue, provided that the
-translation were true. Some of the members of the assembly then handed
-to the priests some copies of the Holy Scriptures which they drew from
-their pockets, and begged them to point out any faults they could find
-in them. The prelates, in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span> great embarrassment, began to make search,
-turned over the leaves of the book, opening it at the beginning, at the
-end, and in all parts, taking infinite pains to find some mistake. But
-nothing could be found. At last, ‘Here,’ said one of them, ‘here is
-a passage to be reprehended; love is put in the place of <i>charity</i>.’
-‘What difference is there,’ it was replied, ‘betwixt the one and the
-other? It seems you do not understand the Greek term ἀγάπη.’ Before the
-Greek word the priests stood dumb.<a name="FNanchor_284_284" id="FNanchor_284_284"></a><a href="#Footnote_284_284" class="fnanchor">[284]</a></p>
-
-<p>The deputies of the burgesses and a part of the nobles then required
-that the reading asked for should be permitted; as well as the reading
-of Christian treatises, until such time as the clergy should give a
-better translation of the Bible. The prelates still stood out; but at
-length, reduced to silence, they submitted, and it was enacted by Act
-of Parliament that ‘all men and women should be free to read the Holy
-Scriptures in their own tongue or in the English tongue, and that all
-acts passed to the contrary should be abolished.’ This bill, which
-passed on March 15, was promulgated on the 19th, and sent into all
-parts of the kingdom by order of the regent. The priests immediately
-began to cry out with one voice against him as the promoter of
-heresy.<a name="FNanchor_285_285" id="FNanchor_285_285"></a><a href="#Footnote_285_285" class="fnanchor">[285]</a></p>
-
-<p>This was the first public Act passed in Scotland in favor of religious
-liberty. The victory, says Knox, which Christ Jesus then won over
-the enemies of his truth was of no little importance. The trumpet of
-the Gospel gave at once a certain sound, from Wigton to Inverness,
-from south to north. No small comfort was given to the souls, to the
-families, who till then durst not read the Lord’s Prayer or the Ten
-Commandments in English through fear of being accused of heresy. The
-Bible, which had long lain hidden in some out-of-the-way corner, was
-now openly placed on the tables of pious and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span> well-informed men. The
-New Testament was indeed already widely circulated, but many of those
-who possessed it had shown themselves unworthy of it, never having read
-ten sentences in it through fear of men.</p>
-
-<p>Now they brought out their New Testaments, and ‘they would chop their
-familiars on the cheek with it.’<a name="FNanchor_286_286" id="FNanchor_286_286"></a><a href="#Footnote_286_286" class="fnanchor">[286]</a> ‘Here,’ said they, ‘this book has
-lain hid under my bed feet these ten years.’ Others, on the contrary,
-exclaimed with joy, ‘Oh, how often have I been in danger for this
-book! how secretly have I stolen away from my wife at midnight to read
-upon it in that lonely silent hour!’ Some, who were minded to turn
-everything to account, made a great parade of their joy, on purpose
-to pay court to the regent, who was then esteemed the most fervent
-Protestant in all Europe. ‘But in general,’ add the historians, ‘the
-knowledge of God was wonderfully increased by the perusal of the sacred
-writings, and the Holy Spirit was given in great abundance to simple
-men.’ Many works were also published at the same time in Scotland,
-which were intended to disclose the abuses of the Romish Church, and
-others of the same character were brought from England. That important
-Act of the Scottish parliament was never repealed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MISSION OF SIR R. SADLER.</div>
-
-<p>While these wholesome measures were being adopted, the alliance of the
-country with England appeared to be growing stronger; and even if a
-purely evangelical reformation was not to be looked for, the ties which
-bound Scotland to Rome must certainly be broken. On Sunday afternoon,
-March 18, the day after the closing of the session of parliament,
-arrived Sir Ralph Sadler, an envoy from Henry VIII. He betook himself
-that very evening to Holyrood, and there learnt from the regent the
-resolutions which had just been taken. Sadler was charged with the duty
-of concluding the marriage contract between Edward and Mary, as well as
-the project<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span> of a perpetual alliance between the two countries.<a name="FNanchor_287_287" id="FNanchor_287_287"></a><a href="#Footnote_287_287" class="fnanchor">[287]</a>
-Sadler, who acted in the business with his utmost energy, soon found
-that the Scots were not prepared to go to the same length as his
-master. ‘In my opinion,’ he wrote (March 27), ‘they had lever suffer
-extremity than come to the obedience and subjection of England: they
-will have their realm free and live within themselves after their own
-laws and customs.... I think assuredly all the nobles and the whole
-temporality of this realm desire the marriage and to join with us
-in perfect friendship: in which case I think also they will utterly
-abandon France.’ This was not what Henry was aiming at. After the death
-of the young princess, the Tudors, in his view, were to inherit her
-kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>The alliance, nevertheless, was concluded. On July 1 the earl of
-Glencairn, Sir George Douglas, Learmont, and Balnaves, the Scottish
-envoys, signed at Greenwich the treaty of marriage and of peace. This
-treaty was solemnly read, August 25, in Holyrood abbey, and was there
-signed, sealed, and approved by the regent and the nobles. The queen
-was to remain in Scotland until she should be ten years old, and then
-be taken into England to be educated. Three Scottish lords should be
-given as hostages to Henry; and in confirmation of the alliance a
-consecrated wafer, according to a Romish usage, was broken between
-the regent and Sir R. Sadler, the representative of Henry VIII. Each
-of them received and ate half of it, in token of their unity and as a
-pledge of their fidelity,&mdash;a strange method of cementing an alliance
-which had for its end the destruction of Romish superstitions. The
-treaty was published everywhere as a basis of perpetual agreement; but
-the union of the two nations had still many a storm to encounter.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIII.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">BEATOUN IS LIBERATED AND RECOVERS HIS POWER.&mdash;BREACH OF THE
-TREATY.&mdash;FRESH PERSECUTION.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(March, 1543.&ndash;Summer of 1544.)</p>
-
-<p>At present everything was getting on well in Scotland, and the
-continuance of this well-being was all that was desired. The severest
-eye could find nothing to censure in the court of the regent; and he
-acted with so much moderation in the government that not a single
-complaint was heard of his administration. Arran was as much respected
-and obeyed as any king could have been. All men were promising
-themselves a quiet life, when a sudden gust upset everything.</p>
-
-<p>There was one party which was full of wrath at the recent changes.
-The alliance of Scotland with England, the imprisonment of the
-cardinal, the regency of Arran, the freedom conferred on the Holy
-Scriptures,&mdash;all these things filled the friends of the papacy with
-excitement and horror, whether at Rome, in France, or in Scotland. The
-earl of Lennox had arrived from Paris for the purpose of giving his
-support to the French party in Scotland; and he flattered himself that
-he should be appointed regent, and even that he should marry the queen
-dowager. The pope had sent the legate Marco Grimani into Scotland, with
-orders to join the cardinal, the earl of Lennox, and all the other
-adversaries of Arran; to fulminate anathemas, and to use all other
-means which he could devise for effecting the fall of the regent and
-the elevation of the cardinal.<a name="FNanchor_288_288" id="FNanchor_288_288"></a><a href="#Footnote_288_288" class="fnanchor">[288]</a> Gri<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span>mani and Lennox expected to
-find the material all ready, so that it would be an easy task for them
-to set fire to it. They were not entirely mistaken. The ultramontanes
-of Scotland were in a rage with the regent and with the lords who were
-on his side.<a name="FNanchor_289_289" id="FNanchor_289_289"></a><a href="#Footnote_289_289" class="fnanchor">[289]</a> Their scheme was to liberate the cardinal, who should
-then go with his adherents to Linlithgow, get possession of the young
-queen and depose the regent.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE ABBOT OF PAISLEY.</div>
-
-<p>Lennox and Grimani had not come from the continent alone. Two Scottish
-priests, who had lived for a long time in France and had there become
-imbued with Roman Catholicism of the deepest dye, landed in Scotland
-in the month of April. These men were likely to do, perhaps, more than
-all others towards the restoration of ultramontanism. They were John
-Hamilton, abbot of Paisley, a natural brother of the regent, and Master
-David Panter,<a name="FNanchor_290_290" id="FNanchor_290_290"></a><a href="#Footnote_290_290" class="fnanchor">[290]</a> who was afterwards bishop of Ross. Their learning,
-their lowliness, and their religion were much talked of, and people
-thought that their coming would prove a great comfort to the Church of
-God.<a name="FNanchor_291_291" id="FNanchor_291_291"></a><a href="#Footnote_291_291" class="fnanchor">[291]</a> ‘They will soon,’ it was said, ‘go into the pulpit and truly
-preach Jesus Christ.’</p>
-
-<p>The abbot of Paisley was admitted to intimacy with the regent. He
-might converse with him at any time, and he undertook to break down
-bit by bit the evangelical views of Arran and to sunder his connexion
-with England. First of all, it was necessary to get rid of the two
-evangelical chaplains. The two priests therefore began, immediately
-after their arrival, to disparage the preaching of Williams and Rough.
-The abbot of Paisley had always some fault to find. ‘Their sermons,’<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>
-said he to his brother, ‘are heretical and scandalous.’ The latter,
-naturally weakminded,let himself be caught. Williams was ordered to
-put an end to his preaching, and he set out for England. Rough was
-sent to preach in Kyle, where for some time there had been lovers of
-the Bible. This was not enough. The men of sound judgment and genuine
-piety who were about the regent, and who had contributed to the general
-prosperity and peace, must also be removed out of the way. What
-terrors, what promises, ‘what boxes full of enchantments,’ says Knox,
-these two priests had brought with them from France, no one could tell.
-Be it as it may, some were got rid of by crafty expedients, others by
-false insinuations. ‘If you remain, your life is at stake,’ they said
-to them. At the same time the partisans of the clergy, who had till
-then held themselves aloof from the court, winged their way thither
-like ravens to the carrion.<a name="FNanchor_292_292" id="FNanchor_292_292"></a><a href="#Footnote_292_292" class="fnanchor">[292]</a> One day when there was a great
-gathering at Holyrood, and the regent saw around him at the same moment
-both the faithful attendants who had deserved well of their country
-and the fanatical supporters of the cardinal, one of the latter cried
-out in a voice loud enough for Arran and all present to hear him, ‘My
-lord governor and his friends will never be at ease nor quietness till
-that a dozen of these knaves that abuse his grace be hanged.’<a name="FNanchor_293_293" id="FNanchor_293_293"></a><a href="#Footnote_293_293" class="fnanchor">[293]</a>
-After that, people saw the men whose labors had been so useful to
-Scotland,&mdash;Durham, Borthwick, Bothwell, the laird of Grange, Balnaves,
-Ballanden<a name="FNanchor_294_294" id="FNanchor_294_294"></a><a href="#Footnote_294_294" class="fnanchor">[294]</a> and Sir David Lyndsay,&mdash;withdraw from the court, while
-he who had threatened them with the gallows received a pension for his
-insolent speech.</p>
-
-<p>The liberation of the cardinal could be no longer deferred. He was
-imprisoned at Dalkeith on January 26, was removed thence to Seaton,
-next to Blackness<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span> castle on the Forth, and finally to St. Andrews, the
-seat of his archbishopric. There he was set at liberty at the request,
-especially, of the queen-mother, who had never ceased her intercession
-for him.<a name="FNanchor_295_295" id="FNanchor_295_295"></a><a href="#Footnote_295_295" class="fnanchor">[295]</a> Once free, this arrogant man, exasperated by the affront
-which had been offered him, thought only of recovering his own power
-and of reëstablishing the cause of the papacy.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">INTRIGUES OF BEATOUN.</div>
-
-<p>He now had frequent communication with Mary of Guise, and shared her
-indignation at the favors granted to the Scottish nobles just returned
-from England, who had passed from exile to the most influential
-positions. They resolved to do their utmost to reëstablish the alliance
-with Francis I. and the pope. The cardinal completely won over the earl
-of Bothwell, and the Lords Home, Buccleugh, and others. He induced
-such of them as were on the frontier to make inroads on the English
-territory. He assembled at St. Andrews, on July 6, the earls of Lennox,
-Argyle, Huntley, and Bothwell, Lord Home, and the other noblemen and
-gentlemen who were favorable to the pope; and at this conference they
-determined to oppose the regent, who instead of executing their designs
-was only bent on promoting heretical opinions.<a name="FNanchor_296_296" id="FNanchor_296_296"></a><a href="#Footnote_296_296" class="fnanchor">[296]</a></p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Beatoun found opportunities for secret interviews with
-the regent’s brother, who had everything in his own hands; for this
-bastard was as remarkable for force of character as his legitimate
-brother was for the want of it. The cardinal did not confine himself to
-intrigues in high places, but he had it at heart to win the multitude,
-and he tried all imaginable schemes in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span> order to succeed.<a name="FNanchor_297_297" id="FNanchor_297_297"></a><a href="#Footnote_297_297" class="fnanchor">[297]</a> When
-he thought that he had at last secured his position, both above and
-below, he convoked the clergy at St. Andrews. The bishop, abbot, and
-primate unfolded before this assembly all the dangers which were then
-impending over Scotland. ‘In order to avert them,’ said he, ‘contribute
-generously from your purses, and urge all your friends to do the same.
-Tell them that their property and their lives are at stake. Nay, more
-than that,’ he exclaimed, ‘our task is to prevent the ruin which
-is threatening the universal church of the pope.’<a name="FNanchor_298_298" id="FNanchor_298_298"></a><a href="#Footnote_298_298" class="fnanchor">[298]</a> The clergy
-declared that they would place all their resources at his disposal, and
-determined to set on foot a general subscription. ‘The cardinal,’ wrote
-the ambassador Sadler to Lord Parr, brother of the Queen of England,
-‘the cardinal here hath not only stirred almost this whole realm
-against the governor, but also hath procured the earl Bothwell [and
-others] to stir all the mischief and trouble they can on the Borders,
-and to make roads and incursions into England, only of intent to break
-the peace and to breed contention and breach between both realms.’<a name="FNanchor_299_299" id="FNanchor_299_299"></a><a href="#Footnote_299_299" class="fnanchor">[299]</a>
-At the same time the monks were preaching passionately against the
-union with England; and the population, excited by them, was in
-agitation and ready to revolt, threatening those who were opposed to
-the Church of Rome, and even insulting the English ambassador. Jesters
-used to assail both him and his suite with insolent speeches. But the
-envoy of Henry VIII., knowing that the one matter of moment for his
-master was to succeed, took these indignities patiently, through fear
-of hastening a rupture.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE HOSTAGES REFUSED.</div>
-
-<p>As Scotland was under obligation to give hostages to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span> England as
-security for the execution of the treaties, the cardinal set himself
-strenuously against the measure, not only with those of his own
-faction, but also with those of the other side. He was prodigal of
-promises to the relations and the friends of the intended hostages,
-in the hope of inducing them to oppose their delivery to England. The
-same influences were brought to bear on the regent. On the day fixed
-for giving up the lords to the English ambassador, the latter went
-to the regent, and after making complaint of the insults to which
-he was exposed, demanded the hostages. The regent promised that the
-perpetrators of the outrages of which Sadler complained should be
-punished. ‘As for the hostages,’ he added, ‘the authority with which I
-am invested is of such a nature that, while I have rights as against
-the queen’s subjects, they also have their rights as against me. You
-are yourself a witness of the immense agitation stirred up by the
-cardinal.<a name="FNanchor_300_300" id="FNanchor_300_300"></a><a href="#Footnote_300_300" class="fnanchor">[300]</a> All my plans are upset, and, carried away by the force
-of popular passion, I can no longer answer for anything.’<a name="FNanchor_301_301" id="FNanchor_301_301"></a><a href="#Footnote_301_301" class="fnanchor">[301]</a> Arran
-was indeed wanting in the strength to stand against such a storm as
-was conjured up by the cardinal. Weakminded himself, he bent before
-the violence of those who had powerful convictions. Sadler, indignant
-at his refusal, called upon the Scots who had been captives in England
-to return to their confinement, as they had pledged themselves to do
-in case the treaty should be violated. Kennedy, earl of Cassilis, was
-the only one who kept his word. He set out for London, in spite of the
-pressing entreaties of his own circle.<a name="FNanchor_302_302" id="FNanchor_302_302"></a><a href="#Footnote_302_302" class="fnanchor">[302]</a> Henry, touched by this
-act of good faith, generously sent him back to Scotland with his two
-brothers who had remained as hostages.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The clerical reaction was steadily gathering fresh force. In pursuance
-of the colloquy of July 6, the nobles hostile to the regent assembled
-some troops; and on July 21 they arrived, at the head of ten thousand
-men, at Leith, the port of Edinburgh. At the same moment Arran, the
-earl of Angus, Lord Maxwell, and their friends were at Edinburgh, at
-the head of their armed force. There was equal animation on both sides.
-They might have been likened to two electric clouds, whose lightning
-was ready to burst forth with violence. However, the two opposed bodies
-of troops remained motionless for five or six days. ‘What will be the
-end of this,’ wrote Sadler to Lord Parr, ‘I cannot tell; but my opinion
-is that they will not fight for all their bragges.’<a name="FNanchor_303_303" id="FNanchor_303_303"></a><a href="#Footnote_303_303" class="fnanchor">[303]</a> In fact, they
-did not fight.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">IRRESOLUTION OF ARRAN.</div>
-
-<p>The two queens were at Linlithgow palace, in which the young Mary was
-born. The regent and the cardinal each gave out that the queens were
-on his side, but all the sympathies of the queen-mother were with the
-cardinal. The latter, accompanied by the earls of Argyle, Huntley,
-and Bothwell, and by many bishops, went to Linlithgow. Supposing that
-the princesses were not safe there, he persuaded them to go with him
-to Stirling, which they did. These lords talked without reserve among
-themselves, and with the queen, of deposing the regent, on the ground
-of disobedience to their holy mother the Church. This greatly alarmed
-Arran, who at that same time was persecuted by the abbot of Paisley,
-his natural brother. ‘Consider,’ said the latter, ‘the danger to
-which you expose yourself by allowing the authority of the pope to be
-impaired. It is the authority on which your own rests.’ As Arran was in
-dread of the anger of Henry VIII., the abbot exalted to the utmost the
-power of the King of France, and the great advantages of an alliance
-with him. But above everything else he insisted on the obligation of
-making peace with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span> the Church, ‘out of whose pale,’ he repeated, ‘there
-is no salvation.’ The poor regent, weak, inconstant, and not at all
-grounded in the faith of the Gospel, halted between the wish to follow
-the advice of his brother and the shame involved in abandoning his
-party and giving the precedence to the cardinal. He wavered between
-the pope and the Gospel, between France and England. His irresolution
-was torture to him; he endured bitter pangs. The abbot never wearied
-of repeating the question, ‘What will ye do? will you then destroy
-yourself and your house for ever?’<a name="FNanchor_304_304" id="FNanchor_304_304"></a><a href="#Footnote_304_304" class="fnanchor">[304]</a> He hesitated no longer. Beaten
-on all sides by contending waves; conscious that his forces were
-inferior to those of his adversaries; hemmed in by the snares of the
-cardinal, who chose rather to gain him by terror than to subdue him
-by arms; abandoned by many of the nobles; no longer in favor with the
-people, who were offended by his weakness; lowered in the esteem of
-his own friends, and disgraced in the eyes of the English, the unhappy
-man at last took the fatal leap. Nine days after the ratification of
-the alliance with England, and only six days after he had published
-a proclamation against the cardinal, Arran secretly stole away from
-Holyrood palace, betook himself to Stirling on September 3, and threw
-himself into the arms of his cousin Beatoun.</p>
-
-<p>This was not all. He was resolved also to throw himself into the arms
-of the pope; desirous only of doing so without too much ostentation,
-and fancying, says Buchanan, that he could thus lessen the infamy of
-this base deed. For this purpose the convent of the Franciscans was
-chosen.<a name="FNanchor_305_305" id="FNanchor_305_305"></a><a href="#Footnote_305_305" class="fnanchor">[305]</a> The queen-mother attended. For a Guise the scene was one
-of exquisite enjoyment such as Mary<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span> would not willingly lose. Some of
-the courtiers who were devoted to Rome were also present. There, in the
-dim light of the chapel, that weak man, to whom people had been looking
-for the triumph of the Reformation in Scotland, fondly fancying that
-he was performing a secret action, knelt down before the altar, humbly
-confessed his errors, trampled under foot the oaths which he had taken
-to his own country and to England, renounced the evangelical profession
-of Jesus Christ, submitted to the pope, and received absolution of
-the cardinal.<a name="FNanchor_306_306" id="FNanchor_306_306"></a><a href="#Footnote_306_306" class="fnanchor">[306]</a> The spectators exulted in Arran’s humiliation. The
-wretched man continued indeed to be regent in name, but from that hour
-he possessed nothing more than the phantom of authority, having for his
-own governor the lord cardinal. He therefore fell into contempt, and
-those even for whom he had sacrificed everything had no respect for
-him. ‘He who will save his life shall lose it.’</p>
-
-<p>The report of his perjury spread rapidly abroad. Few were surprised
-to hear it, but a great many were angry. The English ambassador wrote
-to him as follows: ‘Forasmuch as I do hear sundry reports of your
-sudden departure to Stirling, which if they were true in part ... might
-highly touch your honor: ... I cannot well satisfy myself without
-the address of these my letters unto your lordship, only to require
-of your goodness to signify unto me how you do remain towards the
-king’s majesty and the accomplishment of your oath and promise afore
-expressed. I beseech your lordship to let me know the truth by your
-own advertisement, to the intent that I may undelayedly write the same
-to the king’s majesty before he shall receive any sinister or wrong
-informations in that behalf, which might percase alter his highness’
-affection and good opinion conceived towards you. Whereof for my part I
-would be right loath.’<a name="FNanchor_307_307" id="FNanchor_307_307"></a><a href="#Footnote_307_307" class="fnanchor">[307]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CORONATION OF MARY STUART.</div>
-
-<p>Another ceremony followed that of the abjuration. It was the coronation
-of the little queen, which took place on September 9, with great
-pomp. The alliance between Scotland and France was renewed, and fresh
-promises were made to Francis I. The cardinal thus brilliantly opened
-his reign, and by placing the crown on the head of a little girl, he
-said to himself that at least he had no need to fear that the child
-would take it into her head to thwart his schemes.<a name="FNanchor_308_308" id="FNanchor_308_308"></a><a href="#Footnote_308_308" class="fnanchor">[308]</a></p>
-
-<p>Henry VIII. was in consternation. The abjuration of the regent and the
-political revolution which accompanied it upset his most cherished
-plans. But the ratification of the treaty with him was so recent
-that the question might be raised whether the whole of this Stirling
-business was anything more than a transient mistake, the fruit of
-Arran’s weakness. He therefore enjoined his ambassador to use his
-utmost endeavors to recall the regent to his first intentions. It
-appeared to Henry impossible that Arran should act in a manner so
-foolish, so dishonorable, so cruel, so pitiless for Scotland, as not
-only to throw away all the advantages offered to himself, but still
-more to give up his country to fire and sword and to all the calamities
-of a terrible war. All these considerations urged by Sadler were
-fruitless. At length, indignant at the perjury and the insult, Henry
-recalled his ambassador, declared war on Scotland, ordered the seizure
-of the numerous Scottish ships which lay in his ports, threw into
-prison the seamen and the merchants, and sent a herald to announce to
-the Scots ‘that they had covenanted with a prince of honor that would
-not suffer their disloyalty unpunished and unrevenged, whose power and
-puissance, by God’s grace, is and shall be sufficient against them to
-make them know and feel their own faults and offences. Fear,’ said he,
-‘the hand of God over you.’ It was war, war with all its horrors of
-fire and sword, that Henry in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span> his wrath had determined to wage with
-Scotland. ‘You shall beat down and overthrow the castle of Edinburgh,
-burn and sack the capital, with Holyrood and Leith and the villages
-around, putting man, woman, and child to the sword without exception.
-To overthrow St. Andrews so as the upper stone may be the nether, and
-not one stick stand by another.’<a name="FNanchor_309_309" id="FNanchor_309_309"></a><a href="#Footnote_309_309" class="fnanchor">[309]</a> The wrath of Henry was terrible;
-but nothing could alarm the presumptuous cardinal. When he heard of the
-imprisonment of the Scottish merchants and seamen, he smiled and said
-jestingly, ‘When we have conquered England we will make compensation to
-the merchants.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE EARL OF LENNOX.</div>
-
-<p>When the cardinal came out of prison, his eyes had fallen on two men
-who stood in his way. One of these was the regent, and he had got rid
-of him by becoming his master. The other was the earl of Lennox, a man
-formidable by his rank and his pretensions, who had even supposed it
-possible that he might marry the queen-mother. But Mary of Guise, like
-all her kindred, was a fanatical devotee of Rome, and at the instance
-of the cardinal she prayed the King of France to recall Lennox on any
-specious pretext, adding that his residence in Scotland might lead to
-a disturbance of peace. Lennox saw that they were trifling with him.
-He was quite as versatile as Arran but more capable, and seeing that
-he had lost the favor of France, he offered his services to the King
-of England, who eagerly accepted them. Lennox was then looked upon as
-the head of Scottish Protestantism. The two foremost lords of Scotland
-had performed a feat of what is vulgarly called <i>chassé-croisée</i>. The
-leader of the Protestants had become a papist, and the man of the
-court of Francis I. had turned Protestant. Instead of the daughter of
-the Guises, he married Lady Margaret Douglas, a niece of Henry VIII.
-That is how men of the world manage matters. Evangelical religion<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span>
-had not lost much in losing Arran. Neither had it gained more by
-acquiring Lennox. These men were only moved by political interests, and
-Scottish Protestantism more than any other was to reject these shameful
-combinations of Christ and Baal, and was to have one king alone, Jesus
-Christ.</p>
-
-<p>The cardinal, victorious along the whole line, set himself immediately
-to the work which he had most at heart,&mdash;to crush the Reformation. The
-law which authorized the reading of Holy Scripture had borne its fruit,
-and ‘in sundry parts of Scotland,’ says the chronicler, ‘thereby were
-opened the eyes of the elect of God to see the truth and abhor the
-papistical abominations.’<a name="FNanchor_310_310" id="FNanchor_310_310"></a><a href="#Footnote_310_310" class="fnanchor">[310]</a> This abhorrence might possibly drive
-them to deplorable excesses, an instance of which we are soon to see.</p>
-
-<p>There were at Perth, on the left bank of the pleasant river Tay, some
-friends of the Reformation. Endowed for the most part with genuine
-piety, they held meetings, read the Holy Scriptures together, searched
-out their meaning, and gave or listened to the exposition of them.<a name="FNanchor_311_311" id="FNanchor_311_311"></a><a href="#Footnote_311_311" class="fnanchor">[311]</a></p>
-
-<p>They had also at times simple social meals together. Certain priests
-of the town, with whom they were connected, and whose character
-they esteemed without sharing their opinions, were invited to these
-gatherings. The churchmen ate, drank, and talked with them, and thought
-themselves fortunate to be invited to these honest men’s houses.<a name="FNanchor_312_312" id="FNanchor_312_312"></a><a href="#Footnote_312_312" class="fnanchor">[312]</a>
-This circumstance shows a large-heartedness among these Christian folk
-of Perth, which could see and appreciate whatever good qualities their
-adversaries possessed. They did not, however, tie themselves down
-to the Roman rules about meat-days and fish-days, rules from which
-exemption may be had for a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span> little money: and one Friday it happened
-that a goose appeared on their table.</p>
-
-<p>Three of these people, Robert Lamb, William Anderson, and James
-Raveleson, daring characters and given to raillery, were among those
-who were taken up with Reform on its negative side. They were disgusted
-at the abuses of the monastic life, and the Franciscans most of all
-offended them. The sight of one of these mendicant friars in the
-street, with his brown frock, his girdle of cord, his cowl, and his
-bare feet, excited in them the keenest aversion. ‘These monks,’ as has
-been said by a very distinguished Catholic priest, ‘feign chastity, but
-they know what voluptuousness is, and they often outdo men of the world
-in luxurious indulgence.’<a name="FNanchor_313_313" id="FNanchor_313_313"></a><a href="#Footnote_313_313" class="fnanchor">[313]</a> And yet these monks pretend that all
-that is needed for salvation is to put on a frock of their order at the
-moment of death. In the judgment of Anderson and of his two friends,
-the founder of that order, who was nevertheless a better man than
-most of his successors, must have been the devil himself. They took
-therefore an image of Francis of Assisi, nailed rams’ horns on the head
-and hung a cow’s tail behind, and having thus given to it the semblance
-of a demon, they hung it. The Scots are not jesters by nature. They are
-on the contrary earnest and energetic towards those whom they oppose;
-and this blameworthy execution was carried out by these three men with
-imperturbable gravity.<a name="FNanchor_314_314" id="FNanchor_314_314"></a><a href="#Footnote_314_314" class="fnanchor">[314]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RAVELESON AND LAMB.</div>
-
-<p>Among these reformed Christians of Perth there were some manifestations
-of opinion characterized by simplicity and decision, which however
-occasionally took a strange shape. One of the women who frequented the
-evangelical meetings, Hellen Stirke, was near her confinement, and in
-her hour of travail, when surrounded by female friends and neighbors,
-all of them fervent<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span> worshippers of the Virgin Mary, she called upon
-God and upon God alone in the name of Jesus Christ. The women said
-to her&mdash;‘You ought to call upon the Virgin. Is not Mary immaculate
-as Christ is, and even above him as first source of redemption? Is
-she not the queen of heaven, the head of the church?’ The Franciscan
-friars were continually impressing on the minds of these good women
-the notion that no one could obtain a blessing from God ‘except by the
-dispensation of his pious mother.’<a name="FNanchor_315_315" id="FNanchor_315_315"></a><a href="#Footnote_315_315" class="fnanchor">[315]</a> Hellen revered Mary as a holy
-and blessed woman, but she held her to be of the same nature as other
-women, and she told her neighbors so. It was of his mercy, as Mary
-herself said, that God had looked upon the low estate of his servant.
-That her friends might better understand her meaning, she boldly added,
-‘If I had lived in the days of the Virgin, God might have looked
-likewise to my humility and base estate, as he did to the Virgin’s,
-and might have made me the mother of Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_316_316" id="FNanchor_316_316"></a><a href="#Footnote_316_316" class="fnanchor">[316]</a> The women about her
-could not believe their own ears, and her words, reported in the town
-by her neighbors, were counted execrable in the judgment of the clergy
-and of the multitude.</p>
-
-<p>If St. Francis was Anderson’s nightmare, the pope was Raveleson’s.
-But the latter gave expression to his sentiments in a less insulting
-fashion. When he had built a house of four stories, he placed at the
-top of his staircase, by way of ornament, over the last baluster and
-the supporting tablet which masked it, the triple diadem of the pope,
-carved in wood. This was not a very criminal act: a good papist might
-have done the like. But Raveleson, doubtless, meant to show thereby
-that in his house the pope was consigned to the top story. Be that as
-it may, he paid dear for it.</p>
-
-<p>These Protestants of Perth were certainly originals,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span> of which not many
-copies were to be found. There were some of them, however, who were
-free from these eccentricities while displaying no less courage. On one
-occasion, when a monk named Spence very loudly asserted in the church
-that ‘prayer made to saints is so necessary that without it there could
-be no hope of salvation to man,’ Robert Lamb rose and accused him
-before the whole assembly of teaching false doctrines. ‘In the name of
-God,’ said he, ‘I adjure you to speak the truth.’ The friar, stricken
-with fear, promised to do so; but there was so much excitement and
-tumult in the church that the monk could not make himself heard, and
-Robert, at the peril of his life, barely escaped the violence of the
-people. The women, above all, uttered piercing screams, and urged on
-the multitude to the most cruel actions.<a name="FNanchor_317_317" id="FNanchor_317_317"></a><a href="#Footnote_317_317" class="fnanchor">[317]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE PERTH PROTESTANTS.</div>
-
-<p>The cardinal, in January, 1544, seeing that his authority was firmly
-established, thought that the time was come for suppressing the
-Reformation and glorifying the pope. Having heard of what was going on
-at Perth, he set out for that place, taking with him the regent, some
-of the chief lords, bishops, and judges. When he reached Perth on St.
-Paul’s day, January 19, he ordered the seizure of Robert Lamb, William
-Anderson, James Hunter, James Raveleson, James Finlason, and Hellen
-Stirke his wife,<a name="FNanchor_318_318" id="FNanchor_318_318"></a><a href="#Footnote_318_318" class="fnanchor">[318]</a> and had them imprisoned the same evening in the
-Spay Tower.</p>
-
-<p>On the following morning the prisoners appeared before their judge.
-They were accused on several grounds, and particularly of having met
-together to hear the Holy Scriptures read. A special charge was made
-against Lamb of having interrupted a friar. ‘It is the duty of no
-man,’ he answered, ‘who understands and knows the truth to hear the
-same impugned without<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span> contradiction. There are sundry here present in
-judgment who, while they know what is true, are consenting to what is
-false; but they will have to bear the burden in God’s presence.’<a name="FNanchor_319_319" id="FNanchor_319_319"></a><a href="#Footnote_319_319" class="fnanchor">[319]</a>
-The six prisoners were condemned to death, and were cruelly treated.
-Many of the inhabitants of Perth were deeply interested in their case,
-and appealed to the regent to save their lives. But when Arran spoke
-a word to the cardinal in their behalf, the latter replied, ‘If you
-refuse to take part in the execution of this sentence, I will depose
-you.’ Arran trembled, and held his peace.</p>
-
-<p>The friends of the victims, then, remembering that certain priests in
-the town had frequently sat at the tables of the accused, entreated
-them to bear in mind their old friends who were then in misfortune, and
-to intercede with the cardinal in their behalf. But these poor priests
-were terrified at the thought that the cardinal might hear of their
-former relations with the condemned, and they answered that they would
-much rather see them dead than living. That was their way of showing
-their gratitude. So the chronicler, whose phrase is not always elegant,
-adds, ‘So cruel are these beasts, from the lowest to the highest.’</p>
-
-<p>Agitation was increasing in the town. The cardinal had ready a great
-band of armed men, who were charged to conduct the victims to the place
-of execution. Robert Lamb, standing at the foot of the gallows, said to
-the people, ‘Fear God, and forsake the pope.’ Then he announced that
-calamity and ruin would not be slow to light upon the cardinal.<a name="FNanchor_320_320" id="FNanchor_320_320"></a><a href="#Footnote_320_320" class="fnanchor">[320]</a>
-The five Christians comforted one another with the hope ‘that they
-should sup together in the kingdom of heaven that night.’</p>
-
-<p>Hellen desired earnestly to die with her husband, but this was not
-permitted her. At the moment of their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span> parting she gave him a kiss
-and said, ‘Husband, rejoice, for we have lived together many joyful
-days; but this day in which we must die ought to be most joyful unto
-us both, because we must have joy forever. Therefore I will not bid
-you good-night, for we shall suddenly meet with joy in the kingdom
-of heaven.’ She was then taken to a pond to be drowned. She was
-holding her infant in her arms and giving it suck for the last time.
-But this pathetic incident did not touch the pitiless hearts of her
-executioners. She had entreated her neighbors to take care of her
-children. She took the ‘sucking bairn’ from her breast and gave it
-to the nurse, and was then flung into the water. The cardinal was
-satisfied.<a name="FNanchor_321_321" id="FNanchor_321_321"></a><a href="#Footnote_321_321" class="fnanchor">[321]</a></p>
-
-<p>From Perth the cardinal passed into Forfarshire, always dragging along
-with him the unhappy regent. Many inhabitants of that region appeared
-before him for having committed the hateful crime of reading the New
-Testament. Among them was a Dominican named John Rogers, a man of piety
-and learning, who, by preaching Christ in Forfarshire, had led many
-souls into peace. He was confined with others in the castle of St.
-Andrews, and a few days later his dead body was found at the foot of
-the walls. It was very generally believed that the cardinal had ordered
-him to be put to death in his dungeon, and to be thrown over the
-walls. A report was then circulated that the prisoner, in attempting
-to escape, had fallen on the rocks and been killed. A considerable
-number of Scots, among them Sir Henry Elder, John Elder, Walter Piper,
-Lawrence Pullar, and others were banished, merely on suspicion of
-having read the Gospel.<a name="FNanchor_322_322" id="FNanchor_322_322"></a><a href="#Footnote_322_322" class="fnanchor">[322]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE ENGLISH FLEET AT LEITH.</div>
-
-<p>The cardinal now returned to Edinburgh, and took the regent with him.
-He was perfectly satisfied with his campaign, and was meditating
-fresh exploits of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span> same kind, when, at the very moment of his
-saying ‘Peace and security,’ a fleet appeared at sea. Messengers came
-suddenly to announce to the regent and the cardinal that a multitude of
-vessels were entering the Firth of Forth, and were making for Leith and
-Edinburgh. ‘It is the English,’ said most people, ‘and it is greatly to
-be feared that they will land.’ The cardinal dissembled his anxiety,
-affected to smile and to jest, and said, with a contemptuous air, ‘It
-is but the island fleet; they are come to make us a show and to put
-us in fear. I shall lodge the men-of-war in my eye that shall land in
-Scotland.’<a name="FNanchor_323_323" id="FNanchor_323_323"></a><a href="#Footnote_323_323" class="fnanchor">[323]</a> Then he went to his dinner-table, and talked with every
-one as though no danger were threatening. All Edinburgh was eager to
-gaze on the wonderful vessels, and great crowds assembled for that
-purpose on the castle hill and on the heights near the town. ‘But what
-then can it all mean?’ people said to one another. By a little after
-six o’clock in the evening more than two hundred ships had cast anchor
-in Leith roads. The admiral had a ship’s boat launched, which began
-carefully to take soundings from Granton craigs to East Leith. All
-sensible men understood what it meant, but if any one of them uttered
-what he thought, the clerics shrugged their shoulders. All men went to
-bed, just as if those ships had brought their broadsides to bear for
-the defence of the sleepers.</p>
-
-<p>At daybreak on Sunday, May 4, Lord Lisle, who was in command of the
-fleet, ordered the disembarkation. The pinnaces and other small vessels
-approached as near as they could to the shore, while the larger vessels
-discharged their men into the long-boats, and so they got to land.
-By ten o’clock the operation was completed, and the spectators from
-Edinburgh beheld, to their great astonishment, more than ten thousand
-men under arms. The cardinal and the regent, dropping their false show
-of calmness, appeared now very much alarmed,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span> and, forgetting their
-ridiculous bluster and bragging, jumped into a carriage and fled as
-fast as their horses could carry them. They did not halt till they
-had put twenty miles of country between them and the danger which
-frightened them. Before starting they had given orders, for the purpose
-of pacifying the English, that the earl of Angus, Sir George Douglas,
-and two other lords, advocates of the English alliance, who had been
-cast into prison at Blackness, should be set at liberty. This was done
-that night, and Sir George said, merrily, ‘I thank King Henry and my
-gentle masters of England.’<a name="FNanchor_324_324" id="FNanchor_324_324"></a><a href="#Footnote_324_324" class="fnanchor">[324]</a></p>
-
-<p>The troops which had landed entered Leith, under the command of
-the earl of Hertford, between twelve and one o’clock, after having
-dispersed a small body of men which resisted them. As they found dinner
-ready in all the houses, and the tables loaded with wines and victuals,
-they sat down and refreshed themselves. On Monday, May 5, two thousand
-English horsemen came from Berwick to reinforce the infantry, and the
-whole army, after taking one day’s rest, forced the gates of Edinburgh
-on Wednesday and entered the town. People called to mind the terrible
-threats of Henry VIII. The town was first pillaged and then burnt. The
-palace of Holyrood, Leith and the environs shared the same fate. The
-English were not able to take the castle, and after having satiated
-themselves with pillage, burning, and eating, they carried off their
-plunder to the ships. The English army returned to their own country
-by way of Berwick, sacking and burning Haddington and Dunbar, castles,
-country seats, and all the districts through which they passed. The
-army had lost only forty men.<a name="FNanchor_325_325" id="FNanchor_325_325"></a><a href="#Footnote_325_325" class="fnanchor">[325]</a></p>
-
-<p>Henry VIII. had entertained the vastest projects. His aims were that
-Scotland should renounce the French<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span> alliance; that the queen should be
-placed in his own household; that the title of elector of the kingdom
-should be given to him; that Lennox should be named regent in the place
-of Arran; and that the Word of God should be preached, of course in his
-own way. This appears from the instructions given by himself to the
-governors of the marches.<a name="FNanchor_326_326" id="FNanchor_326_326"></a><a href="#Footnote_326_326" class="fnanchor">[326]</a> But he felt it necessary to postpone his
-scheme, and to content himself with the chastisement inflicted on the
-capital. We have to encounter facts such as these in the history of
-every people and of all ages. It is impossible to narrate or to read
-them without horror. Happily, Scotland at this epoch offers to our
-notice facts of a quite different kind, which are within the province
-of Christian civilization.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER XIV.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">WISHART: HIS MINISTRY AND HIS MARTYRDOM.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(Summer of 1544-March, 1546.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">GEORGE WISHART.</div>
-
-<p>In the summer of 1544, shortly after the events of which we have
-just spoken, a pious man, George Wishart, returned from England to
-Scotland. He was a brother of the laird of Pittarow, in the county of
-Mearns. While at Montrose, in 1538, he had read the Greek New Testament
-with several youths whom he was educating, and had been cited by the
-bishop of Brechin to appear before him. Wishart had then retired to
-Cambridge, and there he devoted himself to study for six years. In
-1544, the Scottish commissioners who came into England respecting
-the treaty with Henry VIII. took him back with them, to Scotland. He
-went first to Montrose, his old abode, and thence to Dundee, where he
-wished<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span> to preach the Word of God. His personal appearance was entirely
-prepossessing. He was amiable, unassuming, polite. His chief delight
-was to learn and to teach. He was tall; his black hair was cut short,
-his beard was long. His physiognomy was indicative of a somewhat
-melancholy temperament. He wore a French cap of the best material, a
-gown which fell to his heels, and a black doublet. There was about
-his whole person an air of decorum and grace. He spoke with modesty
-and with great seriousness. He slept on straw, and his charity had
-no end, night nor day. He loved all men. He gave gifts, consolation,
-assistance: he was studious of all means of doing good to all and hurt
-to none. He distributed periodically among the poor various articles
-of clothing, always ‘saving his French cap, which he kept the whole
-year of my being with him,’ says the Cambridge student who drew this
-portrait of Wishart just before the latter set out for Scotland.<a name="FNanchor_327_327" id="FNanchor_327_327"></a><a href="#Footnote_327_327" class="fnanchor">[327]</a></p>
-
-<p>Wishart’s reputation having preceded him, a multitude of hearers
-gathered about him at Dundee. He expounded in a connected series of
-discourses the doctrine of salvation, according to the Epistle to the
-Romans, and his knowledge and eloquence excited general admiration.
-But the priests declared everywhere that if he were allowed to go on,
-the Roman system must inevitably fall to the ground. They therefore
-sought the assistance of an influential layman, Robert Mill, who had
-once professed the truth, but had since forsaken it. One day, just
-as Wishart was finishing his discourse, Mill rose in the church and
-forbade him in the queen’s name and the regent’s to trouble them any
-more. Wishart was silent for awhile, with his eyes turned heavenward,
-and then looking sorrowfully on the assembly he said&mdash;‘God is witness
-that I never minded [intended] your trouble, but your comfort. But I am
-assured that to refuse God’s Word and to chase from you his messen<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span>ger
-shall not preserve you from trouble, but shall bring you into it. I
-have offered unto you the word of salvation, and with the hazard of
-my life I have remained among you. But and [if] trouble unlooked for
-apprehend you, turn to God, for He is merciful. But if ye turn not at
-the first he will visit you with fire and sword.’ When he had thus
-spoken, he came down from the pulpit and went away at once into the
-western part of Scotland.<a name="FNanchor_328_328" id="FNanchor_328_328"></a><a href="#Footnote_328_328" class="fnanchor">[328]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS PREACHING.</div>
-
-<p>Having arrived at Ayr, he preached there to large numbers of people
-who gladly received his words. Dunbar, bishop of Glasgow, as soon
-as he was informed of it, hastened to the town with a body of men
-and took possession of the church in order to prevent Wishart from
-preaching. The reformer’s friends were indignant at this step. The earl
-of Glencairn, the laird of Loch Norris,<a name="FNanchor_329_329" id="FNanchor_329_329"></a><a href="#Footnote_329_329" class="fnanchor">[329]</a> and several gentlemen of
-Kyle went to Wishart and offered to get possession of the church and
-to place him in the pulpit. ‘No,’ said the evangelist, wisely, ‘the
-bishop’s sermon will not much hurt: let us go to the market-cross.’
-They did so, and he there preached with so much energy and animation
-that some of his hearers, who were enemies of the truth till that day,
-received it gladly. Meanwhile the bishop was in the church with a very
-small audience. There was hardly anyone to hear him but some vestry
-attendants and some poor dependents. They were expecting a sermon, but
-he had forgotten to put one in his pocket. He made them the best excuse
-he could. ‘Hold us still for your bishop,’ he said, ‘and we shall
-provide better the next time.’ He then with haste departed from the
-town, not a little ashamed of his enterprise.<a name="FNanchor_330_330" id="FNanchor_330_330"></a><a href="#Footnote_330_330" class="fnanchor">[330]</a></p>
-
-<p>Wishart persevered in his work, and his reputation spread all around.
-The men of Mauchlin came and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span> asked him to preach the Gospel to them
-on the following Sunday. But the sheriff of Ayr heard of it, and sent
-a body of men in the night to post themselves about the church. ‘We
-will enter by force,’ said Hugh Campbell to Wishart. ‘Brother,’ replied
-the evangelist, ‘it is the word of peace which God sends by me; the
-blood of no man shall be shed this day for the preaching of it. I find
-that Christ Jesus oftener preached in the desert, at the seaside, and
-other places judged profane, than he did in the temple of Jerusalem.’
-He then withdrew to the country, saying to the people who followed him
-that the Saviour was ‘as potent upon the fields as in the kirk.’ He
-climbed up a dike raised on the edge of the moorland, and there, in the
-fair warm day, preached for more than three hours. One man present,
-Lawrence Ranken, laird of Shield, who had previously led a wicked life,
-was impressed by what he heard. ‘The tears ran from his eyes in such
-abundance that all men wondered.’<a name="FNanchor_331_331" id="FNanchor_331_331"></a><a href="#Footnote_331_331" class="fnanchor">[331]</a> Converted by that discourse,
-the laird of Shield gave evidence in his whole after-life that his
-conversion was genuine. Wishart preached with like success in the whole
-district. The harvest was great, says one historian.</p>
-
-<p>The reformer heard on a sudden that the plague had broken out at Dundee
-four days after he left the town, and that it was raging cruelly. He
-resolved instantly to go there. ‘They are now in trouble and they need
-comfort,’ he said to those who would fain hold him back: ‘perchance
-this hand of God will make them now to magnify and reverence that word
-which before, for the fear of men, they set at light part.’</p>
-
-<p>He reached Dundee in August, 1544, and announced the same morning that
-he would preach. It was necessary to keep apart the plague-stricken
-from those who were in health, and for that purpose he took his station
-at the east gate of the town. Those who were in health<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span> had their
-place within the city, and those who were sick remained without. Such
-a distribution of an audience was surely never seen before! Wishart
-opened the Bible and read these words&mdash;‘He sent his word and healed
-them.’ (Ps. cvii. 20.) ‘The mercy of God,’ said he, ‘is prompt to fall
-on all such as truly turn to Him, and the malice of men can neither eik
-nor pair [add to nor diminish] his gentle visitation.’<a name="FNanchor_332_332" id="FNanchor_332_332"></a><a href="#Footnote_332_332" class="fnanchor">[332]</a>&mdash;‘We do not
-fear death,’ said some of his hearers; ‘nay, we judge them more happy
-that should depart, than such as should remain behind.’ That east gate
-of Dundee (Cowgate) was left standing in memory of Wishart when the
-town walls were taken down at the close of the eighteenth century, and
-it is still carefully preserved.</p>
-
-<p>Wishart was not satisfied with speech alone, he personally visited the
-sick, fearlessly exposing himself to infection in the most extreme
-cases. He took care that the sick should have what they needed, and the
-poor were as well provided for as the rich.</p>
-
-<p>The town was in great distress lest the mouth from which so much
-sweetness flowed should be closed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ATTEMPT TO MURDER WISHART.</div>
-
-<p>Nevertheless, at the cardinal’s instigation, says Knox, a priest named
-Wighton took a sword, and concealing it under his gown mixed with the
-crowd as if he were a mere hearer, and stood waiting at the foot of the
-steps by which Wishart must come down. The discourse was finished, the
-people dispersed. Wishart, whose glance was keen and whose judgment was
-swift, noticed as he came down the steps a priest who kept his hand
-under his gown, and as soon as he came near him he said, ‘My friend,
-what would ye do?’ At the same moment he laid hold of the priest’s hand
-and snatched the weapon from him. The assassin fell at his feet and
-confessed his fault. Swiftly ran the report that a priest had attempted
-to kill the reformer, and the sick who heard it turned back and cried,
-‘Deliver the traitor to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span> us, or else we will take him by force.’ And so
-indeed they rushed on him. But Wishart put his arms round the assassin.
-‘Whosoever troubles him,’ said he, ‘shall trouble me, for he has hurt
-me in nothing.’ His friends however insisted that for the future one of
-them, in arms, should accompany him whithersoever he went.<a name="FNanchor_333_333" id="FNanchor_333_333"></a><a href="#Footnote_333_333" class="fnanchor">[333]</a></p>
-
-<p>When the plague had ceased at Dundee, Wishart thought that, as God had
-put an end to that battle, he called him to another. It was indeed
-proposed that he should hold a public disputation. He inquired of the
-bishops where he should be heard. But first he went to Montrose ‘to
-salute the kirk there,’ and although sometimes preaching the Gospel,
-he was ‘most part in secret meditation, in the which he was so earnest
-that night and day he would continue in it.’<a name="FNanchor_334_334" id="FNanchor_334_334"></a><a href="#Footnote_334_334" class="fnanchor">[334]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS NIGHT OF PRAYER.</div>
-
-<p>While there he received a letter purporting to be written by his friend
-the laird of Kynneir, who being sick desired him to come to him.<a name="FNanchor_335_335" id="FNanchor_335_335"></a><a href="#Footnote_335_335" class="fnanchor">[335]</a>
-It was a trick of the cardinal. Sixty armed horsemen were lying in
-wait behind a hill to take him prisoner. He set out unsuspecting,
-but when he had gone some distance, he suddenly stopped in the midst
-of the friends who were accompanying him and seemed absorbed in deep
-musing. Then he turned and went back. What mean you?’ said his friends,
-wondering. ‘I will go no further,’ he replied: ‘I am forbidden of
-God. I am assured there is treason.’ Pointing to the hill he added,
-‘Let some of you go to yon place, and tell me what they find.’ These
-brave men reported with all speed what they saw. ‘I know,’ said he,
-‘that I shall end my life in that bloodthirsty man’s hands, but it
-will not be of this manner.’ Shortly after, he set out for Edinburgh
-in spite of the entreaties of the laird of Dundee, and went to lodge
-at Innergowrie at the house of a Christian man named James Watson. A
-little after midnight two men of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span> good credit who were in the house,
-William Spalding and John Watson, heard him open his door and go down
-stairs. They followed him secretly, and saw him go into the garden and
-walk for some time up and down an alley. Wishart, persuaded that he was
-drawing near to his end, and thinking of the horrors of martyrdom and
-of his own weakness, was greatly agitated and felt the need of calling
-upon God that he might not fail in the midst of the conflict. He was
-heard sighing and groaning, and just as day began to dawn, he was seen
-to fall on his knees and afterwards on his face. For a whole hour his
-two friends heard confused sounds of his prayer, interrupted now and
-then by his tears. At length he seemed to grow quiet and to have found
-rest for his soul. He rose and went quietly back to his chamber. In
-the morning his anxious friends began to ask him where he had been.
-He evaded the question. ‘Be plain with us,’ they said, ‘for we heard
-your groans, yea, we heard your mourning, and saw you both upon your
-knees and upon your face.’&mdash;‘I had rather ye had been in your beds,’
-said he, ‘for I was scarce well occupied.’ And as they urged him, he
-spoke to them of his approaching death and of his need of God’s help.
-They were much saddened and wept. Wishart said to them&mdash;‘God shall
-send you comfort after me. This realm shall be illuminated with the
-light of Christ’s Evangel as clearly as ever was any realm since the
-days of the apostles. The house of God shall be built into it: yea, it
-shall not want, whatsoever the enemy imagine to the contrary, the very
-cape-stone’ [top-stone].<a name="FNanchor_336_336" id="FNanchor_336_336"></a><a href="#Footnote_336_336" class="fnanchor">[336]</a> Meaning, adds Knox, that the house of God
-should there be brought to full perfection. Wishart went on&mdash;‘Neither
-shall this be long to; there shall not many suffer after me, till
-that the glory of God shall evidently appear and shall once triumph
-in despite of Satan. But alas! if<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span> the people shall be afterwards
-unthankful, then fearful and terrible shall the plagues be that after
-shall follow.’ Wishart soon after went into the Lothians, i. e. into
-the shires of Linlithgow, Edinburgh, and Haddington.</p>
-
-<p>A man like Wishart assuredly belongs to the history of the Reformation.
-But there is another motive leading us to narrate these circumstances.
-The great reformer of Scotland was trained in the school of Wishart.
-Among those who followed the latter from place to place as he preached
-the Gospel was John Knox. He had left St. Andrews because he could not
-endure either the superstition of the Romish system or the cardinal’s
-despotism, and having betaken himself to the south of Scotland he had
-been for some time tutor in the family of Douglas of Langniddrie. He
-had openly professed the evangelical doctrine, and the clergy in their
-wrath had declared him a heretic and deprived him of the priesthood.
-Knox, attracted by the preaching and the life of Wishart, attached
-himself to him and became his beloved disciple. In addition to his
-public discourses, to which he listened with eager attention, he
-received also instructions in private. He undertook for Wishart a duty
-which was full of danger, but which he discharged joyfully. During
-Wishart’s evangelical excursions he kept watch for the safety of his
-person, and bore the sword which his friends had provided after the
-attempt of the Dundee priest to assassinate him. Knox was soon to bear
-another sword, the sword of the Spirit, like his master.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS PREACHING.</div>
-
-<p>The earl of Cassilis and some other friends of Wishart had appointed to
-meet him at Leith, and as that town is very near Edinburgh, they had
-advised him not to show himself until their arrival. After awaiting
-them for a day or two he fell into a deep melancholy. ‘What differ I
-from a dead man,’ said he, ‘except that I eat and drink? To this time
-God has used my labors to the disclosing of darkness, and now I lurk as
-a man that was ashamed and durst not show himself before men.’&mdash;‘You<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span>
-know,’ said his friends, ‘the danger wherein ye stand.’ ‘Let my God,’
-he replied, ‘provide for me as best pleases him.’ On the following
-Sunday, fifteen days before Christmas, he preached on the parable
-of the sower.<a name="FNanchor_337_337" id="FNanchor_337_337"></a><a href="#Footnote_337_337" class="fnanchor">[337]</a> From Leith he went to Brownston, Langniddrie and
-Ormiston, and preached on the Sunday both morning and afternoon at
-Inveresk to a large concourse of people. Two Franciscan friars came and
-stood by the church door, and whispered something to those who were
-going in to turn them back. Wishart observing this said to some who
-were near the pulpit, ‘I heartily pray you to make room to these two
-men; it may be that they be come to learn.’ Then addressing the monks
-he said, ‘Come near, for I assure you ye shall hear the word of verity,
-which shall either seal unto you this same day your salvation or your
-condemnation.’ He continued his discourse, but the two friars, who had
-taken up their places, did not cease whispering right and left, and
-troubling all that stood near them. Wishart turned sharply to them and
-said&mdash;‘O sergeants of Satan, and deceivers of the souls of men, will ye
-neither hear God’s truth nor suffer others to hear it? Depart, and take
-this for your portion; God shall shortly confound and disclose your
-hypocrisy within this realm; ye shall be abominable unto men, and your
-places and habitations shall be desolate.’ He then resumed his sermon,
-and preached with so much power that Sir George Douglas, brother of the
-earl of Angus, who was present at the meeting, said publicly after the
-sermon, ‘I know that my lord governor and my lord cardinal shall hear
-that I have been at this preaching (for they were then in Edinburgh).
-Say unto them that I will avow it, and will not only maintain the
-doctrine that I have heard, but also the person of the teacher to the
-uttermost of my power.’ Those who were present greatly rejoiced at
-these words, spoken by so influential a man. As for Wishart, it was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span>
-enough for him to know that God keeps his own people for the end to
-which he calls them.<a name="FNanchor_338_338" id="FNanchor_338_338"></a><a href="#Footnote_338_338" class="fnanchor">[338]</a> He preached in other places to large numbers,
-and with all the more fervor for his persuasion and assertion that the
-day of his death was at hand.</p>
-
-<p>After Christmas he passed into Haddingtonshire. The cardinal, hearing
-of his purpose, had informed the earl of Bothwell, who immediately
-let it be known, both in the town and in the country, that no one
-was to go and hear that heretic under pain of his displeasure. The
-prohibition of this powerful lord had its effect. The first day there
-was a large gathering to hear Wishart, but the next day his audience
-was very small. A new trial now came to afflict him. His friends in
-western Scotland had promised to come to Edinburgh to discuss with him
-the means of advancing the cause of the Gospel. Now on the third day
-after his arrival in Haddingtonshire, when he had already entered the
-church and was about to go into the pulpit, a messenger approached and
-handed him a letter. He opened it. His friends at Ayr and other places
-wrote to tell him that certain obstacles prevented them from fulfilling
-their promises. Struck with sorrow, ‘he called for John Knox, who had
-waited upon him carefully from the time he came to Lothian.’<a name="FNanchor_339_339" id="FNanchor_339_339"></a><a href="#Footnote_339_339" class="fnanchor">[339]</a> ‘I
-am wearied of the world,’ said he, ‘for I perceive that men begin
-to be weary of God.’ Knox wondered that Wishart should enter into
-conversation with him before sermon, which he was never accustomed to
-do, and said to him, ‘Sir, the time of sermon approaches, I will leave
-you for the present to your meditations.’ He then took the letter and
-withdrew.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS LAST SERMON.</div>
-
-<p>Wishart, left to himself, began to walk about slowly at the back of the
-high altar. He paced to and fro, sad<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span>ness depicted on his countenance,
-and everything about him revealing the deep grief that was in his soul.
-This lasted about half an hour. At length he passed into the pulpit.
-The audience was small, as it had been the day before. He had not power
-to treat the subject which he had proposed: his heart was too full,
-and he must needs unburden it before God. ‘O Lord,’ said he, ‘how long
-shall it be that thy holy Word shall be despised and men shall not
-regard their own salvation? I have heard of thee, Haddington, that in
-thee would have been at a vain clerk-play two or three thousand people,
-and now to hear the messenger of the eternal God, of all the town or
-parish cannot be numbered one hundred persons. Sore and fearful shall
-the plagues be that shall ensue this thy contempt, with fire and sword
-shalt thou be plagued. And that because ye have not known nor will
-not know the time of God’s merciful visitation.’ After saying these
-words he made a short paraphrase of the second table of the law. He
-exhorted to patience, to the fear of God, and to works of mercy; and
-impressed by the presentiment that this was the last time he should
-publicly preach, he made (so to speak) his last testament, declaring
-that the spirit of truth and judgment were both in his heart and on his
-lips.<a name="FNanchor_340_340" id="FNanchor_340_340"></a><a href="#Footnote_340_340" class="fnanchor">[340]</a></p>
-
-<p>He quitted the church, bade farewell to his friends, and then prepared
-to leave the town. ‘I will not leave you alone,’ said Knox to him.
-But Wishart, who had his approaching end constantly before his eyes,
-said&mdash;‘Nay, return to your bairns [his pupils], and God bless you. One
-is sufficient for a sacrifice.’ He then compelled Knox to give up the
-sword, and parted with him. The laird of Ormiston, who was at the time
-with Wishart, had invited him to his house in the country. They set
-out on their journey with several gentlemen of the neighborhood. The
-cold was severe, and they therefore<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span> travelled on foot. While at supper
-Wishart spoke of the death of God’s children. Then he said with a
-cheerful smile&mdash;‘Methinks that I desire earnestly to sleep. We’ll sing
-a psalm.’ He chose Psalm li., and struck up the tune himself:&mdash;‘Have
-mercy upon me, O God, according to thy loving kindness.’ As soon as the
-psalm was ended, he went to his chamber and to bed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ARREST OF WISHART.</div>
-
-<p>A little before midnight a troop of armed men silently approached,
-surrounded the house that no one might escape, and demanded Wishart.
-But neither promises nor threats could induce Ormiston to deliver up
-his guest. They then went for the earl of Bothwell, the most powerful
-lord of that region. Bothwell came, and said to the laird&mdash;‘It is
-but vain to make him to hold his house, for the governor and the
-cardinal with all their power are coming. But and if you will deliver
-the man unto me, I will promise upon my honor that he shall be safe
-and sound, and that it shall pass the power of the cardinal to do
-him any harm or scathe.’ Ormiston, confiding in this promise, told
-Wishart what had occurred. ‘Open the gates,’ replied he, immediately;
-‘the blessed will of my God be done.’ Bothwell entered, with several
-gentlemen who accompanied him. Wishart said to him, ‘I praise my God
-that so honorable a man as you, my lord, receives me this night in
-the presence of these noblemen; for now I am assured that, for your
-honor’s sake, ye will suffer nothing to be done unto me besides the
-order of law.’ The earl replied&mdash;‘I shall preserve your body from all
-violence, neither shall the governor nor cardinal have their will over
-you: but I shall retain you in my own hands till that either I shall
-make you free or else restore you in the same place where I receive
-you.’ Immediately after giving this promise, the earl set out with
-Wishart for Elphinston. The cardinal, bent on getting possession of
-Wishart’s friends, sent five hundred horsemen to Ormiston to seize the
-laird, together with the lairds of Brownston and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span> Calder. Brownston
-fled through the woods, but the other two were carried off to Edinburgh
-castle. Wishart was removed to the strong castle of Hailes on the banks
-of the Tyne, the principal mansion of Bothwell in the Lothians.<a name="FNanchor_341_341" id="FNanchor_341_341"></a><a href="#Footnote_341_341" class="fnanchor">[341]</a></p>
-
-<p>That did not satisfy the cardinal, who wanted Wishart more than all.
-The queen-mother, Mary of Guise, who was not on friendly terms with
-Bothwell, promised him her support if he would give up the evangelist.
-The cardinal, on his part, ‘gave gold, and that largely.’ ‘Gold and
-women have corrupted all worldly and fleshly men from the beginning,’
-says Knox.<a name="FNanchor_342_342" id="FNanchor_342_342"></a><a href="#Footnote_342_342" class="fnanchor">[342]</a> The earl raised some objections: ‘but an effeminate
-man,’adds Knox, ‘cannot long withstand the assaults of a gracious
-queen.’ Wishart was first taken to Edinburgh castle, and at the end of
-January, 1546, the regent gave him up to the cardinal, who confined
-him at St. Andrews, in the sea tower. The assistance of a civil judge
-was, it seems, necessary to give validity to the judgment. The cardinal
-requested one of Arran, but one of the regent’s councillors, Hamilton
-of Preston, said to him&mdash;‘What, will you deliver up to wicked men those
-whose uprightness is acknowledged even by their enemies? Will you put
-to death those who are guilty of no more crime than that of preaching
-the Gospel of Christ? What ingratitude towards God!’</p>
-
-<p>The regent consequently wrote to the cardinal that he would not
-consent that any hurt should be done to that man without a careful
-investigation of his cause. The cardinal, on receiving this letter,
-flew into a violent passion. ‘It was only for civility’s sake,’ said
-he, ‘that I made the request. I and my clergy have the power in
-ourselves to inflict on Wishart the chastisement which he deserves.’
-He invited the archbishop of Glasgow,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span> and all bishops and other
-dignitaries of the Church, to assemble at St. Andrews on February 27
-to consult on the matter, although it was already decided in his own
-mind.’<a name="FNanchor_343_343" id="FNanchor_343_343"></a><a href="#Footnote_343_343" class="fnanchor">[343]</a></p>
-
-<p>The next day the dean of St. Andrews went to the prison where Wishart
-was confined, and summoned him in the cardinal’s name to appear before
-the judges on the morrow. ‘What needed,’ replied the prisoner, ‘my
-lord cardinal to summon me to answer for my doctrine openly before
-him, under whose power and dominion I am thus straitly bound in irons?
-May not my lord compel me to answer to his extorted power?’ On March
-1 the cardinal ordered all the household servants of his palace to
-put themselves under arms. The civil power, it is remembered, had
-refused to take part in the proceedings, and therefore Beatoun took
-its place. His men at once equipped themselves with lances, swords,
-axes, knapsacks, and other warlike array. It might have been thought
-that some military action was in hand, rather than a gathering of
-priests who assumed to busy themselves about God’s Church. These armed
-champions, putting themselves in marching order, first escorted the
-bishops with great ceremony to the abbey church, and then went for
-Wishart. The governor of the castle put himself at the head of the
-band, and so they led the prisoner ‘like a lamb to sacrifice.’ As he
-entered the door of the abbey church he threw his purse to a poor
-infirm man lying there, and at length he stood in the presence of the
-numerous and brilliant assembly. To invest the proceedings with due
-formality, Beatoun had caused two platforms to be erected, facing
-each other. Wishart was set on one of them, and the accuser, Lauder,
-took his place on the other. The dean, Winryme,<a name="FNanchor_344_344" id="FNanchor_344_344"></a><a href="#Footnote_344_344" class="fnanchor">[344]</a> then appeared in
-the pulpit. This worthy church<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span>man, who was charged to deliver the
-customary sermon, was secretly a friend to the Gospel. He read the
-parable of the ‘good seed’ and the tares (Matt. xiii. 24-30), and set
-forth various pious considerations which told more against the judges
-than against the accused, and which the latter heard with pleasure.
-Winryme concluded, however, by saying that the tares were heresy,
-and that heretics ought to be put down in this life by the civil
-magistrate; yet in the passage he was treating stood the words, ‘Let
-both grow together until the harvest.’ It remained to ascertain which
-were heretics, the judges or the accused.<a name="FNanchor_345_345" id="FNanchor_345_345"></a><a href="#Footnote_345_345" class="fnanchor">[345]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PREPARATIONS FOR HIS TRIAL.</div>
-
-<p>When the sermon was ended, the bishops ordered Wishart to stand up
-on his platform to hear the accusation. Then rose the accuser, John
-Lauder, a priest whom the chronicler calls a monster, and, facing
-Wishart, unrolled a long paper full of threatenings and devilish
-maledictions, and, addressing the guiltless evangelist in cruel words,
-hurled pitilessly at him all the thunders of the papacy. The ignorant
-crowd who heard him, expected to see the earth open and swallow the
-unhappy reformer; but he remained quiet, and listened with great
-patience and without a change of countenance to the violent accusations
-of his adversary. When Lauder had finished reading at the top of his
-voice the threatening indictment, he turned to Wishart, his face ‘all
-running down with sweat,’ says the chronicler, ‘and frothing at the
-mouth like a boar, he spat at Mr. George’s face, saying, What answerest
-thou to these sayings, thou renegade, traitor, and thief, which we have
-duly proved by sufficient witness against thee?’<a name="FNanchor_346_346" id="FNanchor_346_346"></a><a href="#Footnote_346_346" class="fnanchor">[346]</a></p>
-
-<p>Wishart knelt down and prayed for the help of God. Then rising, he made
-answer with all sweetness&mdash;‘My lords, I pray you quietly to hear me,
-so that instead of condemning me unjustly, to the great peril of your
-souls,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span> you may know that I have taught the pure Word of God, and that
-you may receive it yourselves as the source from which health and life
-shall spring forth for you. In Dundee I taught the Epistle of St. Paul
-to the Romans, and shall show your discretions faithfully what fashion
-and manner I used when I taught, without any human dread....’</p>
-
-<p>At these words the accuser interrupted him, and cried with all his
-might, ‘Thou heretic, renegade, traitor, and thief, it was not lawful
-for thee to preach, ... and we forethink that thou hast been a preacher
-too long.’ Then all the prelates, terrified at the thought that he was
-going to set before that vast audience the very substance and pith
-of his teaching, said one to another, ‘He is so crafty, and in Holy
-Scriptures so exercised, that he will persuade the people to his own
-opinion and raise them against us.’ Wishart, perceiving that he had no
-chance of a fair hearing before that ecclesiastical court, said, ‘I
-appeal from my lord cardinal to my lord the governor.’ ‘What,’ replied
-Lauder, ‘is not my lord cardinal the second person within this realm,
-chancellor of Scotland, archbishop of St. Andrews, bishop of Mirepoix
-[in Languedoc], commendator of Arbroath, <i>legatus natus, legatus a
-latere</i> ...?’ He recited so many titles, says the chronicler, that
-you might have laden a ship with them, much sooner an ass.<a name="FNanchor_347_347" id="FNanchor_347_347"></a><a href="#Footnote_347_347" class="fnanchor">[347]</a> ‘Whom
-desirest thou to be thy judge?’ cried Lauder.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE TRIAL.</div>
-
-<p>Wishart replied with meekness, ‘I refuse not my lord cardinal, but
-I desire the Word of God to be my judge, and the temporal estate,
-with some of your lordships mine auditory; because I am here my lord
-governor’s prisoner.’ But the priests mocked him, saying, ‘Such
-man, such judge!’ According to them, the laymen who might have been
-appointed his judges were heretics also, like him.</p>
-
-<p>The cardinal, without further delay, was going to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span> have sentence of
-condemnation passed; but some who stood by counselled him to read the
-articles of accusation, and to permit Wishart to answer to them, in
-order that the people might not be able to say that he was condemned
-without a hearing.</p>
-
-<p>Lauder therefore began&mdash;‘Thou, false heretic, renegade, traitor, and
-thief, deceiver of the people, despisest the holy Church’s, and in like
-case contemnest my lord governor’s authority; for when thou preachedst
-in Dundee, and wert charged by my lord governor’s authority to desist,
-thou wouldst not obey, but perseveredst in the same. Therefore the
-bishop of Brechin cursed thee, and delivered thee into the hands of the
-devil, and gave thee in commandment that thou shouldst preach no more;
-yet notwithstanding thou didst continue obstinately.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Wishart</i>: ‘My lords, I have read in the Acts of the Apostles that it
-is not lawful for the threatenings and menaces of men to desist from
-the preaching of the Evangel.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Lauder</i>: ‘Thou, false heretic, didst say that a priest standing at the
-altar saying mass was like a fox wagging his tail in July.’<a name="FNanchor_348_348" id="FNanchor_348_348"></a><a href="#Footnote_348_348" class="fnanchor">[348]</a></p>
-
-<p><i>Wishart</i>: ‘My lords, I said not so. These were my sayings: the moving
-of the body outward, without the inward moving of the heart, is nought
-else but the playing of an ape, and not the true serving of God.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Lauder</i>: ‘Thou false heretic, traitor, and thief, thou saidst that the
-sacrament of the altar was but a piece of bread baken upon the ashes.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Wishart</i>: ‘I once chanced to meet with a Jew when I was sailing upon
-the water of the Rhine. By prophecies and many other testimonies of the
-Scriptures I approved that the Messiah was come, the which they called
-Jesus of Nazareth. He answered, You adore and worship a piece of bread
-baken upon the ashes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span> and say that is your God. I have rehearsed here
-but the sayings of the Jew, which I never affirmed to be true.’ At
-these words the bishops shook their heads, spitting on the ground and
-crying out, and showed in all ways that they would not hear him.</p>
-
-<p><i>Lauder</i>: ‘Thou, false heretic and renegade, hast said that every
-layman is a priest, and that the pope hath no more power than another
-man.’</p>
-
-<p><i>Wishart</i>: ‘I have read in some places of St. John and St. Peter, of
-the which one sayeth, He hath made us kings and priests; the other
-sayeth, He hath made us the kingly priesthood. Wherefore I have
-affirmed any man, being cunning and perfect in the Word of God and the
-true faith of Jesus Christ, to have his power given him of God. And
-again I say, any unlearned man, and not exercised in the Word of God,
-nor yet constant in his faith, whatsoever estate or order he be of,
-hath no power to bind nor to loose.’<a name="FNanchor_349_349" id="FNanchor_349_349"></a><a href="#Footnote_349_349" class="fnanchor">[349]</a></p>
-
-<p>These words greatly amused the assembly; the reverends and the most
-reverends burst out laughing, mocking Wishart, and calling him an
-imbecile. The notion that a layman should have a power which the holy
-father had not seemed to them the very height of madness. ‘Laugh ye,
-my lords?’ said the messenger of Christ. ‘Though that these my sayings
-appear scornful and worthy of derision to your lordships, nevertheless
-they are very weighty unto me and of great value, because they stand
-not only upon my life but also the honor and glory of God.’</p>
-
-<p>Some pious men who were in the assembly were indignant at the madness
-of the prelates and affected by the invincible patience of Wishart.
-But others cried aloud, ‘Wherefore let we him speak any further?’ A
-man named John Scot, who stood behind Lauder, said to him. ‘Tarry not
-upon his witty and godly answers, for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span> we may not abide them, no more
-nor the devil may abide the sign of the cross when it is named.’<a name="FNanchor_350_350" id="FNanchor_350_350"></a><a href="#Footnote_350_350" class="fnanchor">[350]</a>
-There was no due form of trial, nor any freedom of discussion, says
-Buchanan, but a great din of voices, shouts of disapprobation, and
-hateful speeches. The accuser thundered from his platform, but that was
-all.<a name="FNanchor_351_351" id="FNanchor_351_351"></a><a href="#Footnote_351_351" class="fnanchor">[351]</a> The bishops unanimously pronounced that the pious Wishart
-must be burnt. Falling on his knees, Wishart prayed and said&mdash;‘O
-immortal God, how long shalt thou suffer the wodness [madness] and
-great cruelty of the ungodly to exercise their fury upon thy servants
-which do further thy Word in this world. O Lord, we know surely that
-thy true servants must needs suffer persecution for thy name’s sake,
-affliction and troubles in this present life which is but a shadow; but
-yet we desire thee, merciful Father, that thou defend thy congregation
-which thou hast chosen before the beginning of the world.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SENTENCE.</div>
-
-<p>The sentence must be pronounced, but the bishops were afraid to
-pronounce it before the people. They therefore gave orders to have the
-church cleared, and this could only be done slowly, as many of the
-people who had a wish to hear Wishart were removed with difficulty.
-At length, when the prelates and their colleagues found themselves
-almost alone, sentence of death was passed on Wishart, and the cardinal
-ordered his guards to take him back to the castle. Confined in the
-governor’s room, he spent the greater part of the night in prayer.
-The next morning the bishops sent to him two friars who asked him if
-he did not want a confessor. ‘I will make no confession unto you,’ he
-answered; ‘go and fetch me yonder man that preached yesterday, and I
-will make my confession unto him.’ When Winryme was come, they talked
-together for some time. Then<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span> the dean said, ‘Have you a wish to
-receive the sacrament of the supper?’ ‘Assuredly,’ replied Wishart, ‘if
-it be administered according to the institution of the Lord, with the
-bread and the wine.’ Winryme then went to the cardinal and declared to
-him that the man was innocent. Beatoun, inflamed with anger, said, ‘And
-you, we have long known what you are!’ Winryme having inquired if he
-might give the sacrament to the prisoner. ‘No,’ replied the cardinal,
-‘it is not fitting to grant any of the benefits of the Church to a
-heretic.’<a name="FNanchor_352_352" id="FNanchor_352_352"></a><a href="#Footnote_352_352" class="fnanchor">[352]</a></p>
-
-<p>The next morning at nine o’clock the governor of the castle informed
-Wishart that the communion was refused him. Then, as he was going to
-breakfast with his dependents and servants, he invited Wishart to join
-them at the meal. ‘Right willingly,’ he answered, ‘especially because I
-know that you and yours are good men and are united with me in the same
-body of Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_353_353" id="FNanchor_353_353"></a><a href="#Footnote_353_353" class="fnanchor">[353]</a></p>
-
-<p>When the table was spread and the members of the household had taken
-their places, Wishart said to the governor, ‘Give me leave, for
-the Saviour’s sake, to make a brief exhortation.’ It was to him an
-opportunity of celebrating the true Supper. He reminded his hearers
-of the institution of the sacred feast, and of the Lord’s death. He
-exhorted those who sat at table with him to lay aside all hatred, to
-love one another and to lead a holy life. After this he gave thanks,
-and then took the bread and brake it, and gave of it to such as he knew
-were willing to communicate, and bade them feed spiritually on Christ.
-Taking a cup, he spoke of the blood shed for the remission of sins,
-drank of it and gave them to drink. ‘I shall no more drink of this
-cup,’<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span> said he, ‘no more eat of this bread in this life; a bitterer
-draught is reserved for me, because I have preached Christ. Pray that
-I may take that cup with patience, as the Lord’s appointment.’ He
-concluded with further giving of thanks and then retired to his chamber.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FINAL PREPARATIONS.</div>
-
-<p>On a plot of ground to the west of the castle and not far from the
-priory, men were already busily engaged, some in preparing the pile,
-others erecting the gallows. The place of execution was surrounded by
-soldiers, and the gunners had their cannon in position and stood beside
-them ready to fire. One would have thought that preparations were
-making for a siege. The cardinal had ordered these measures fearing
-lest Wishart’s many friends should take him away, and perhaps still
-more for the sake of making a display of his own power. Meanwhile
-the windows in the castle-yard were adorned with hangings, silken
-draperies, and velvet cushions, that the cardinal and the prelates
-might enjoy at their ease the spectacle of the pile and of the tortures
-which they were going to inflict on that righteous man.<a name="FNanchor_354_354" id="FNanchor_354_354"></a><a href="#Footnote_354_354" class="fnanchor">[354]</a></p>
-
-<p>When all was ready, two of the deathsmen entered Wishart’s prison. One
-of them brought and put on him a coat of black cloth, the other tied
-small bags of powder to various parts of his body. Next they bound his
-hands firmly behind him, put a rope round his neck and a chain about
-his waist, and led him forth in the midst of a party of soldiers. When
-he came to the pile he knelt down and prayed. Then he rose and said
-to the people&mdash;‘Christian brethren and sisters, be not offended in
-the Word of God for the affliction and torments which ye see already
-prepared for me; but I exhort you that you love the Word of God, and
-suffer patiently and with a comfortable heart, for the Word’s sake
-which is your undoubted salvation and everlasting comfort. My doctrine
-was no old wives’ fable after the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span> constitutions made by men. But for
-the true evangely, which was given to me by the grace of God, I suffer
-this day by men, not sorrowfully, but with a glad heart and mind. For
-this cause I was sent: that I should suffer this fire, for Christ’s
-sake. This grim fire I fear not. Some have said of me that I taught
-that the soul of man should sleep until the last day. But I know surely
-and my faith is such that my soul shall sup with my Saviour Christ this
-night (ere it be six hours), for whom I suffer this.’<a name="FNanchor_355_355" id="FNanchor_355_355"></a><a href="#Footnote_355_355" class="fnanchor">[355]</a> Then he
-prayed&mdash;‘I beseech thee, Father of heaven! to forgive them that have of
-any ignorance or else have of any evil mind forged any lies upon me: I
-forgive them with all my heart. I beseech Christ to forgive them that
-have condemned me to death this day ignorantly.’ The hangman fell on
-his knees before him and said, ‘I pray you forgive me.’ ‘Come hither
-to me,’ replied Wishart; and he kissed him, and added, ‘Lo, here is
-a token that I forgive thee. My heart, do thine office.’ He was then
-bound with ropes to the stake, and said, ‘Saviour of the world, have
-mercy on me! Father of heaven, into thy hands I commit my spirit.’ The
-executioner lighted the fire. The cardinal and his accomplices beheld
-from the windows the martyr and the fire which was consuming him. The
-governor of the castle watching the flames exclaimed, ‘Take courage.’
-Wishart answered, ‘This fire torments my body, but noways abates my
-spirit.’ Then catching sight of the cardinal at the window with his
-courtiers, he added, ‘He who in such state, from that high place,
-feedeth his eyes with my torments, within few days shall be hanged out
-at the same window to be seen with as much ignominy as he now leaneth
-there in pride.’<a name="FNanchor_356_356" id="FNanchor_356_356"></a><a href="#Footnote_356_356" class="fnanchor">[356]</a> Some authors consider these words, reported by
-Bu<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span>chanan, to be an instance of that <i>second sight</i> with which they
-allege the Scots to be endowed. Wishart, however, did not need an
-extraordinary revelation to teach him that ‘the wicked goeth away in
-his wickedness.’ He had hardly uttered those words when the rope was
-tightened about his neck, so that he lost the power of speaking. The
-fire reduced his body to ashes; and the bishops, full of steadfast
-hatred of this servant of God, caused an order to be published that
-same evening through all the town, that no one should pray for their
-victim under the severest penalties. They knew what respect was felt
-for him by many even of the Catholics themselves.</p>
-
-<p>There are people who say that religion is a fable. A life and a death
-such as those of Wishart show that it is a great reality.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER XV.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">CONSPIRACY AGAINST BEATOUN.&mdash;HIS DEATH.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(March To May 1546.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FEELING CONCERNING WISHART’S DEATH.</div>
-
-<p>The death of Wishart excited in Scotland feelings of very diverse
-character. The bishops and their adherents extolled to the skies the
-cardinal who, without troubling himself about the regent’s authority,
-and suppressing the insolence of the people, had constituted himself
-the defender of Rome and of the priesthood. ‘Ah,’ said they, ‘if the
-Church had formerly had such champions, she would keep all things under
-her dominion by the very force and weight of her majesty.’</p>
-
-<p>Simple-hearted Christians lamented the martyrdom without a thought of
-revenge. But one part of the people, and with them several of the most
-eminent men,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span> condemned aloud at table and everywhere the cardinal’s
-cruelty, and declared that the blood which had been shed called for
-vengeance. Even those who, without sharing Wishart’s views, were
-actuated by just and generous sentiments, asked themselves what hope
-they could have of preserving their liberties under the most cruel of
-tyrants; under a prelate who made war alike on men and on God; who
-pursued with his enmity every one that possessed wealth or was animated
-by piety, and sacrificed them to his caprice like beasts taken from
-the stall;<a name="FNanchor_357_357" id="FNanchor_357_357"></a><a href="#Footnote_357_357" class="fnanchor">[357]</a> who gave his sanction to connections with worthless
-mistresses, and dissolved lawful marriages at his pleasure; who in his
-own house wallowed in debauchery with prostitutes, and out of doors, in
-his wrath, revelled in the slaughter of innocent men and in the blood
-of heretics.<a name="FNanchor_358_358" id="FNanchor_358_358"></a><a href="#Footnote_358_358" class="fnanchor">[358]</a> Such is the portrait of Beatoun drawn by Buchanan.</p>
-
-<p>The cardinal, who could not remain ignorant of these speeches, was
-desirous of strengthening his power by means of new alliances. He
-therefore gave one of his daughters, Margaret Beatoun&mdash;whose mother
-was Mary, daughter of Sir James Ogilvy&mdash;in marriage to David Lindsay,
-son of the earl of Crawford, with a portion of four thousand marks.
-The nuptials were celebrated with a magnificence almost royal. That a
-priest could celebrate with so much parade the nuptials of his daughter
-showed that he was destitute even of that honorable shame which is
-excited by the dread of anything that violates decency. He believed
-himself to be stronger than all Scotland, and by his despotic measures
-he was constantly adding to the number of his enemies.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONSPIRACY AGAINST BEATOUN.</div>
-
-<p>Among those who had served him with the utmost devotion was Norman
-Lesley, brother of the earl of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span> Rothes. On occasion of Lesley’s
-reminding the cardinal of certain promises which he had made to him,
-they got to high words and parted bitter foes.<a name="FNanchor_359_359" id="FNanchor_359_359"></a><a href="#Footnote_359_359" class="fnanchor">[359]</a> Thenceforth
-Lesley was head of the disaffected, and by setting before his friends
-the intolerable pride of the cardinal he induced them to join in a
-conspiracy against his life.<a name="FNanchor_360_360" id="FNanchor_360_360"></a><a href="#Footnote_360_360" class="fnanchor">[360]</a> His uncle, John Lesley, did not
-shrink from saying before them all, clapping his right hand at the
-same time on his sword, ‘This hand shall draw this old sword, and they
-two shall be the cardinal’s confessors,’ meaning thereby that they
-should dismiss him into the other world. The saying was reported to
-Beatoun, but he made light of it, fancying himself perfectly safe in
-the blockhouse&mdash;a kind of fortress&mdash;which he had built. ‘I laugh at all
-that noise,’ said he, ‘and I would not give a button for such bragging.
-Is not my lord governor mine? Witness his eldest son their pledge at
-my table. Have I not the queen at my own devotion? Is not France my
-friend, and am not I friend to France? What danger should I fear?’
-Nevertheless Beatoun, for the purpose of cutting off those who troubled
-him, ordered all his creatures, gentlemen of Fifeshire, to meet him at
-Falkland on Monday, May 31. The Lesleys and a certain number of their
-friends were to be taken prisoners and put to death. On the other side,
-Lesley and his accomplices had no embarrassing scruples at all. The
-right of the strongest was still frequently appealed to in that half
-barbarian age. A <i>coup d’état</i>, with deeds of violence, was a quite
-familiar occurrence. These nobles looked on Wishart’s death, without
-the concurrence of the civil judges, which the lawful government
-had refused, as a murder; and they considered that as Beatoun was a
-murderer he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span> ought to be himself put to death. They did not reflect
-that they were making themselves guilty of the very crime which Beatoun
-had committed, that of putting themselves in the place of the regular
-judges. The right of war between feudal lords, which had not yet ceased
-to be recognized, sufficed to justify them in their own eyes. It was
-arranged that Norman Lesley, with his brother and four of his friends,
-should go to St. Andrews, where the cardinal was residing, and that
-they should take up their lodging in the hostelry at which they were
-accustomed to stay, so as not to awaken any suspicion. They entered the
-town accordingly, and without fear, although the place swarmed with the
-friends, dependents, and creatures of the mighty primate. Some of the
-inhabitants who shared their views held themselves in readiness at the
-first signal to give them assistance. They agreed to seize the castle
-at early morning, before the household were up.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SEIZURE OF THE CASTLE.</div>
-
-<p>On Friday, May 28, in the evening, Norman Lesley arrived at St.
-Andrews, where he found William Kirkaldy of Grange awaiting him. John
-Lesley, on whom the cardinal’s suspicions chiefly fell, came last. The
-conspirators took counsel in the night, and on Saturday, May 29, at
-three o’clock in the morning, started on their enterprise, the capture
-of a strong castle which was held by more than a hundred men prepared
-for resistance. They came by various ways, and met in the churchyard of
-the abbey, not far from the castle. Beatoun, well knowing the feelings
-of indignation which his proceedings had aroused in the country, even
-amongst his own flatterers, had determined to turn his place of abode
-into a citadel fit to stand a siege.<a name="FNanchor_361_361" id="FNanchor_361_361"></a><a href="#Footnote_361_361" class="fnanchor">[361]</a> The works were in progress,
-and this circumstance facilitated the daring attempt now to be made
-by his enemies. The primate pressed the work on so urgently that it
-hardly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span> ceased by day or by night. Consequently the gates were open
-early in the morning, and the drawbridge was let down for the workmen
-to bring in stone, mortar, and other necessary building materials. The
-Lesleys, who with some of their companions were concealed in a small
-house near the gates, had sent thence William Kirkaldy and six others.
-These having passed the gates hailed the porter, and said to him, ‘Is
-my lord cardinal waking?’ ‘No,’ replied he. Mary Ogilvy, the mother of
-Margaret and of two sons, David and Alexander Beatoun, had spent the
-night at the castle. She was seen going away early in the morning by
-the private postern.<a name="FNanchor_362_362" id="FNanchor_362_362"></a><a href="#Footnote_362_362" class="fnanchor">[362]</a> The cardinal, at the moment of the arrival
-of the Lesleys and their friends, was in a sound sleep. While William
-Kirkaldy was talking to the porter, and the latter was about to show
-him the way, Norman and John Lesley came up one after the other with
-arms. The porter, in alarm, would have put himself on the defensive;
-but one of the conspirators broke his head, got possession of his
-keys, and threw his body into the fosse. At that moment the workmen,
-numbering more than a hundred, fled through the wicket-gate at full
-speed, and William Kirkaldy took possession of the private postern,
-‘fearing that the fox should have escaped.’ As the assailants were
-only sixteen, they felt the need of proceeding with great caution. The
-leaders sent four of their company, among whom were Peter Carmichael, a
-tall, stout-hearted gentleman, and James Melville of Cumbec, to guard
-the cardinal’s door and see that no one gave him warning of his danger.
-Others of the company, who had some acquaintance with the place and the
-people, were set to watch the bedrooms of the officers and servants of
-the cardinal. Distributing themselves in small groups, they entered the
-rooms successively, found the occupants half asleep, and said to
-them, ‘If you utter the faintest cry you are dead<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span> men!’<a name="FNanchor_363_363" id="FNanchor_363_363"></a><a href="#Footnote_363_363" class="fnanchor">[363]</a> Those men
-therefore, in their fright, dressed themselves hastily and were led out
-of the castle, no violence being done to any of them and no noise made.
-The only person whom they left in the castle was the regent’s eldest
-son. John Lesley, alone in this vast abode, knocked loudly at the
-cardinal’s door. ‘What means that noise?’ said he. ‘That Norman Lesley
-has taken the castle,’ was the reply; ‘open.’ At these words Beatoun
-ran towards the postern, but seeing that it was guarded, he returned
-straightway into his room, seized his two-handed sword, and bade his
-valet barricade the door. ‘Open,’ they cried again. The cardinal
-answered, ‘Who calls?’&mdash;‘My name is Lesley.’&mdash;‘Is that Norman?’&mdash;‘Nay,
-my name is John.’ The cardinal, remembering John’s words, cried, ‘I
-will have Norman, for he is my friend.’&mdash;‘Content yourself with such as
-are here, for other shall ye get none,’ replied John. While the knocks
-at the door grew louder, the cardinal seized a box of gold and hid it
-in a corner. Then he said, ‘Will ye save my life?’&mdash;‘It may be that we
-will,’&mdash;said John.&mdash;‘Nay,’ replied Beatoun, ‘swear unto me by God’s
-wounds, and I shall open to you.’</p>
-
-<p>Then John Lesley cried out, ‘Fire! fire!’ The door was too strong to
-burst open, and they brought a grate full of burning coals. Just as
-it was ready the cardinal ordered the door to be opened. Lesley and
-his companions rushed into the chamber and found Beatoun seated on a
-chair. Lesley threw himself violently upon him. ‘I am a priest! I am a
-priest!’ exclaimed the cardinal. ‘Ye will not slay me!’</p>
-
-<p>But Lesley struck him with his sword, and Carmichael, full of wrath,
-did the same. Melville, a man of gentle and serious character, says
-Knox,<a name="FNanchor_364_364" id="FNanchor_364_364"></a><a href="#Footnote_364_364" class="fnanchor">[364]</a> seeing his comrades in so great a rage, checked them. He
-said, ‘This work<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span> and judgment of God, although it be secret, yet ought
-to be done with greater gravity.’ Melville and others, by reason of
-the ignorance and the prejudices of the age, sincerely believed in
-the legal virtue of the Mosaic system, abolished by the Gospel, which
-conferred on certain persons the right of killing a murderer, but which
-founded at the same time the cities of refuge in which the guilty man
-should be safe from the vengeance of the pursuer.<a name="FNanchor_365_365" id="FNanchor_365_365"></a><a href="#Footnote_365_365" class="fnanchor">[365]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MURDER OF BEATOUN.</div>
-
-<p>Melville forgot that there was no city of refuge for Beatoun. Regarding
-him as a murderer, and not supposing that by killing him he did himself
-incur the guilt of murder, he presented to him the point of his sword,
-and said gravely to him, ‘Repent thee of thine former wicked life, but
-especially of the shedding of the blood of that notable instrument of
-God, Mr. George Wishart; which albeit the flame of fire consumed before
-men, yet cries it a vengeance upon thee, and we from God are sent to
-revenge it. Here before my God I protest that neither the hatred of thy
-person, the love of thy riches, or the fear of any trouble thou couldst
-have done to me in particular, moved or moveth me to strike thee.’ And
-he struck him with his sword.</p>
-
-<p>The cardinal fell under repeated blows, without a word heard out of his
-mouth except these, ‘I am a priest! I am a Priest! Fie, fie! All is
-gone!’<a name="FNanchor_366_366" id="FNanchor_366_366"></a><a href="#Footnote_366_366" class="fnanchor">[366]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was very soon known all over the city that the castle had been
-taken. The friends and the creatures of the cardinal rose very quietly
-from their beds, says Buchanan, armed themselves, and presently
-appeared in a crowd about the fosse. They shouted with all their might,
-uttered threats and insults, and demanded shells and all the necessary
-means for making the assault. ‘You are making much noise to little
-purpose,’ said those in the castle to them; ‘the best it were to you to
-return to your own houses.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The crowd answered, ‘What have ye done with my lord cardinal? Let us
-see my lord cardinal!’&mdash;‘The man that you call the cardinal,’ it was
-replied, ‘has received his reward, and in his own person will trouble
-the world no more.’ But his partisans only cried the louder, ‘We shall
-never depart till we see him,’ still persuaded that he was alive. Then
-one or two men took up the body, and bearing it to the very window
-at which a little while before Beatoun had sat to contemplate with
-gladness, and as if in triumph, the execution of the pious Wishart,
-exposed it there to the gaze of all.<a name="FNanchor_367_367" id="FNanchor_367_367"></a><a href="#Footnote_367_367" class="fnanchor">[367]</a> Beatoun’s friends and the
-populace, struck with amazement and terror by the unexpected sight, and
-remembering Wishart’s prediction, dispersed in gloom and consternation.</p>
-
-<p>The tidings of this murder were speedily spread over all the land, and,
-while some angrily denounced it, others welcomed it as an event which
-restored their country to liberty. There were indeed some who, like
-James Melville, reckoned it a lawful act. But even among the enemies of
-the cardinal there were men wise and moderate, who looked on the murder
-with horror. It is remarked by one historian that of those who took
-part in it few escaped the judgment of God, who punishes transgressors
-by smiting them with the same stroke with which they have smitten
-others.<a name="FNanchor_368_368" id="FNanchor_368_368"></a><a href="#Footnote_368_368" class="fnanchor">[368]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Lesleys and their friends remained masters of the castle, and
-they kept with them James, Lord Hamilton, afterwards earl of Arran,
-the regent’s eldest son, whom Beatoun had detained as his hostage,
-and who now became theirs. One of the conspirators, who believed that
-in delivering Scotland from the tyrant they had done a praiseworthy
-deed, William Kirkaldy,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span> went to London. He obtained from Henry VIII.,
-who considered the taking of the castle and the events which had
-accompanied it to be a lawful revolution, a declaration that he was
-prepared to take the party under his protection, on condition, however,
-that the marriage contract between Edward and Mary should be carried
-out. As communication by sea was easy between the castle and London,
-English ships conveyed thither all supplies that were needful.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OPINIONS ON THE MURDER.</div>
-
-<p>Hamilton, a bastard brother of the regent, was named by him archbishop
-of St. Andrews, and was confirmed by Pope Paul III. This energetic
-prelate immediately pressed on his brother the duty of besieging the
-castle and of punishing all those who had taken it. He was strongly
-supported by others. On August 23, 1546, the main body of the army
-set out from Edinburgh to form the siege; but at the end of July,
-1547,<a name="FNanchor_369_369" id="FNanchor_369_369"></a><a href="#Footnote_369_369" class="fnanchor">[369]</a> the capture of the fortress being evidently hopeless, terms
-were made with the besieged advantageous to them, but which neither
-side had any intention of observing. This period forms an important
-epoch, and we must suspend for a while the course of our narrative.</p>
-
-<p>We have now traced the history of the ministry and the martyrdom of
-Patrick Hamilton and George Wishart. We shall have by-and-by to trace,
-<i>Deo adjuvante</i>, the mighty action of the third and greatest of the
-Scottish reformers, John Knox.</p>
-
-<p>The period, the history of which we have just gone over, was one of
-active persecution. It remains for us to recount the events of the
-contest with the papacy, into which the Scottish nobility energetically
-entered, and the victory of the Reformation. Without entering at
-present upon the narrative of facts, we shall cast a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span> glance forward
-in order to point out what was to give the victory to evangelical
-Christianity. Assuredly it was not such actions as the capture of the
-castle and the violent death of the persecutor. Such things are more
-likely to ruin a cause than to save it. The Christian life and death
-of Wishart contributed far more powerfully than the death of Beatoun
-to the advancement of the kingdom of God. The history of the Scottish
-Reformation serves to show the untruth of one assertion frequently made
-by the enemies of the Reform.</p>
-
-<p>According to them, the Reform could triumph only in those countries in
-which it had the protection of princes. This is a serious error. It was
-not the bloodthirsty Philip II. who established the Reformation in the
-United Provinces of the Netherlands. It was neither the feeble James
-V. nor the popish Mary Stuart who secured its triumph in Scotland.
-That worthy niece of the Guises sought only to crush it. A stronger
-arm than theirs fought against those mighty ones and gave the victory
-to the weak. The enemies of the Reformation made use in Scotland of
-the very weapons which in Italy, in Spain, and elsewhere arrested the
-movement of regeneration. The reformers were burnt also in Scotland,
-but the Reform arose out of their ashes. It was neither to their
-character nor to their strength that the Scots attributed the triumph.
-They knew that Jesus is the king of the Church, and that it is he who
-saves it. This is the feature which more than any other, as we shall
-see, characterized the Scottish Reformation. Andrew Melville said to
-James VI., ‘Sire, there are two kings and two kingdoms in Scotland.
-There is King James, the head of the state, and there is Jesus Christ
-who is head of the Church.’<a name="FNanchor_370_370" id="FNanchor_370_370"></a><a href="#Footnote_370_370" class="fnanchor">[370]</a> To the king enthroned at Rome, the
-Scottish Reformation opposed the king enthroned in heaven, and to him
-it attributed the victory.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PRIEST AND PASTOR.</div>
-
-<p>But in proclaiming this supreme authority, the reformation in Scotland
-also established the duties and the rights of Christians. The charge
-of leading the Church in conformity with the law of God was there
-intrusted to general assemblies elected by the free choice of a
-Christian people.<a name="FNanchor_371_371" id="FNanchor_371_371"></a><a href="#Footnote_371_371" class="fnanchor">[371]</a> The clergy had ruled in Scotland throughout
-the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, and during the first part of
-the sixteenth. The Reformation rescued the country from that clerical
-domination, and gave to it the first of all liberties, the freedom of
-faith. For centuries three powers had existed there,&mdash;the king, the
-nobles, and the priests, and the last had kept the upper hand. After
-the Reformation, two of these still remained, the king and the nobles;
-but the people took the place of the clergy. It was under a popular
-form, that of Presbyterianism, that the Church of Scotland constituted
-itself. The feudal castles had for some time still a marked influence
-on the destinies of the country; but the tide of national and Christian
-life was steadily rising all round their walls and soon overflowed the
-ancient battlements which crowned the summits of those old fortresses.
-Laymen, the deputies of the people, obtained a voice in the presbytery,
-in the synod, and in the general assembly. Thus, by successive steps,
-the voice of the people became, through the influence of Reform, the
-expression of the main force of the country.</p>
-
-<p>It is a grave error to attribute, as some have done, to the Protestant
-pastors of Scotland an incomprehensible domination, ‘an authority
-nowise inferior to that which they had exercised as Catholic priests,’
-and to represent them as ‘the most effectual obstacle to popular
-progress.’<a name="FNanchor_372_372" id="FNanchor_372_372"></a><a href="#Footnote_372_372" class="fnanchor">[372]</a> Nothing has in fact been less like the haughty Catholic
-prelates of St. Andrews, Glasgow, and other dioceses, than a Scottish
-minister. The Reformation gave to Scotland not only Christian truth,
-but religious and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span> political liberty besides. There, as everywhere,
-it took from the priesthood its magic and its supremacy, which had
-been its two main attributes in the Middle Ages. The ministers, whom
-it substituted for the priests, having no longer the marvellous power
-of transforming a bit of bread into God the Creator,&mdash;these disciples
-of Jesus, no longer seated on the despotic throne of the confessional
-to give pardon for sins, became simple heralds of the divine Word.
-This holy Word has its place in every family and reigns supreme in
-the Church. Thus, ministers have ceased to be masters and have become
-servants. The real offence of these Scottish pastors, in the sight of
-their detractors, is that they have always been a great obstacle, not
-to the progress of the people and of civilization, as some have said,
-but to the progress of unbelief and materialism. Now these mischievous
-doctrines are mortal enemies to the freedom and prosperity of nations.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<p class="center p-left xl">BOOK XI.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm">CALVIN, AND THE PRINCIPLES OF HIS REFORM.</p>
-
-<hr class="r25" />
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER I.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">CALVIN AT GENEVA AND IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">(1536.)</span></h2>
-
-<p>For years, and even for centuries, persistent and perilous endeavors
-had been made at Geneva for a firm establishment of freedom. We have
-already described some of the impressive scenes which marked the
-successful close of these efforts at the beginning of the sixteenth
-century, the noble principles and the mighty words of the energetic
-laborers in this great enterprise.<a name="FNanchor_373_373" id="FNanchor_373_373"></a><a href="#Footnote_373_373" class="fnanchor">[373]</a> It would certainly be going too
-far to consider their labors and the truths which they announced as the
-source whence our modern liberties have sprung. But it is impossible to
-study the events of that epoch without emotion, or without recognizing
-aspirations, principles, sacrifices, and actions worthy of admiration,
-which were in fact the first great burst of light, the first noteworthy
-manifestation of the politics and the virtues which must determine the
-existence and make the prosperity of nations.<a name="FNanchor_374_374" id="FNanchor_374_374"></a><a href="#Footnote_374_374" class="fnanchor">[374]</a></p>
-
-<p>That small town was, however, to give to the world a higher lesson
-still. It was to do for religion what it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span> had first done for politics,
-and to render to faith the service which it had rendered to freedom.
-These two achievements are closely related to each other; and it is
-one of the characteristics of this history, that while it attributes
-transcendent importance to Christian truth and life, it recognizes
-at the same time all that is great and salutary in freedom. If the
-author, as some have thought, had erred in assigning too high a place
-to the heroic struggles to which Geneva owed her independence, he would
-assuredly regret that he had not more skilfully handled the pen of
-the historian for the purpose of immortalizing the great men and the
-heroic actions of which the smallest and humblest of states afforded
-the spectacle. But he would count himself fortunate if he should,
-nevertheless, have contributed to bring into clear light the great
-maxim, that political freedom and Christian truth must advance hand
-in hand for the salvation of nations and the salvation of souls. Of
-course, a blind demagogy, the formidable rock of our age, is at once
-contrary to freedom and hostile to religion.</p>
-
-<p>Geneva was fitted by various concurring conditions to play a part from
-which the small extent of her territory seemed inevitably to shut her
-out. Situated as this town was between Italy, France, and Germany, its
-position formed the central point of the three great nations who were
-distinguished in the first half of the sixteenth century for their new
-or newly awakened love of letters, philosophy, and the arts. On several
-occasions Frenchmen, Italians, and Germans came in large numbers to
-settle at Geneva. By the reception of these three diverse elements into
-her bosom she seemed to be called to blend them with each other and to
-harmonize their opposing qualities. If any spark from the evangelical
-fire which was then kindled should chance to escape from either of
-those countries and to fall on the materials thus prepared at the foot
-of the Alps, it might<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span> kindle a great fire, and might make Geneva a
-hearth from which light, radiating far and wide, should contribute to
-scatter the humiliating darkness which Rome and those princes whose
-power was at her service then made to weigh heavily on the nations.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN CALVIN.</div>
-
-<p>This is what actually came to pass. To convert the spark into a pure,
-vivid, dazzling light, there was need of an intellect of vast depth, a
-will of vast energy, and a faith of vast power.</p>
-
-<p>God sent the man that was needed.</p>
-
-<p>A young stranger, a native of Picardie, had lately arrived at Geneva.
-It had not occurred to him nor to his friends that he could be the
-organ by whose agency and means God would bring about such great ends.
-After his arrival Farel still continued to hold the first place in
-the city. This young man, John Calvin, was naturally timid, and was
-possessed by a dread of publicity which had already shown itself at
-Basel and which led him to shun every occasion that would draw public
-attention to himself. He was fond of study and of writing: and in that
-path he believed that it was appointed for him to contribute to the
-diffusion in the world of a truth which was already dearer to him than
-life. He purposed to turn to account that one talent in retirement,
-without quitting his study. That is what he was then doing at Geneva.
-He was steadily engaged in translating into French his ‘<i>little book</i>,’
-the <i>Institution Chrétienne</i>, which he hoped ere long to send to his
-friends in France.<a name="FNanchor_375_375" id="FNanchor_375_375"></a><a href="#Footnote_375_375" class="fnanchor">[375]</a> The letter mentioned in the note shows clearly
-that the <i>Institution Chrétienne</i> was first written in Latin.</p>
-
-<p>Farel wished for more: he desired Calvin to become,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span> at Geneva,
-pastor, preacher, and doctor. The young man refused this threefold
-function. The office of pastor would have required him to take part
-in the government of the Church, and he was not willing to do so. As
-to the office of preacher, we have the most positive testimony of his
-contemporaries and of his most intimate friends that, in the fresh
-glow of his faith, he had simply undertaken the task of an evangelist
-in some districts of France. But the post which was offered to him at
-Geneva would have compelled him to mix more or less in public affairs
-and in the debates of the councils. He trembled at the thought, and
-wished rather to confine himself strictly within the bounds of that
-literary and theological life which he loved so well. He consented
-therefore to dwell in the city, not for the purpose of preaching, but
-to read in theology.<a name="FNanchor_376_376" id="FNanchor_376_376"></a><a href="#Footnote_376_376" class="fnanchor">[376]</a> He went even further. ‘I would not,’ he said,
-‘bind myself to undertake an official charge.’<a name="FNanchor_377_377" id="FNanchor_377_377"></a><a href="#Footnote_377_377" class="fnanchor">[377]</a> He consented to
-make trial of teaching, but without any title or any engagement, and
-thus reserved to himself perfect liberty. Probably no one ever entered
-as he did on a career at once painful and brilliant without suspecting
-its results, and even rejecting it with his utmost energy.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHURCH DISCIPLINE.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin commenced his work as Reader in the Holy Scriptures at Geneva,
-or, as he styles himself, Professor of Sacred Literature in the
-Genevese Church. His lectures were delivered not in any house or in
-any academic hall, but in the cathedral itself, a circumstance which
-invested his teaching with an importance of which Calvin had certainly
-not dreamed. The doors were opened for this novel service in the
-afternoon, and the Genevese, who felt the need of substantial teaching,
-crowded to hear the young doctor. He expounded several books<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span> of the
-New Testament, particularly the Epistles. One characteristic of his
-manner of teaching at Geneva from the first was the combination of
-simplicity and solidity. A new light was then rising. It was not,
-to be sure, the sun in its brightness. The timidity and the shyness
-which Calvin attributes to himself may well have shown themselves in
-his first attempts. The <i>Commentaries</i> on the New Testament, which he
-published at a later period, have a completeness which his earliest
-expositions could not attain. But they are a sufficiently faithful
-representation of the kind of teaching which he adopted at St. Peter’s
-church. It was not grammatical and etymological explanation of the
-text; nor was it, on the other hand, a pathetic discourse. Calvin set
-forth in clear light everything in the Scriptures which characterizes
-the Christian doctrine and life. He first meditated on his subject,
-then delivered his lectures extempore; and the animated and powerful
-individuality of the master imparted to them an influence which carried
-away and multiplied his hearers. It was not in his nature to do a
-merely intellectual task. He consoled, he exhorted, he censured. But
-his chief aim was to illustrate the labor of love which Jesus Christ
-had accomplished, and to make known its necessity and grandeur. Two
-points in the Christian doctrine especially struck him, the one dark
-and mournful, the other bright like sunshine. ‘Our souls,’ said he,
-‘are an abyss of iniquity, so that we are compelled to have recourse to
-the fountain of all good, which is Jesus Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_378_378" id="FNanchor_378_378"></a><a href="#Footnote_378_378" class="fnanchor">[378]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHURCH DISCIPLINE.</div>
-
-<p>The exposition, defence, and application of the great facts of
-Christianity formed the substance of Calvin’s work at Geneva and in
-Christendom. It is a mistake to suppose that his principal business was
-the introduction and the maintenance of discipline in the Church. It is
-not to be doubted that he wished for order: that he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span> wished absolutely
-for a Christian way of life; but it was not he who, as some believe,
-first introduced measures of discipline, nor was the maintenance of
-those measures the task of his life. Speaking of them,<a name="FNanchor_379_379" id="FNanchor_379_379"></a><a href="#Footnote_379_379" class="fnanchor">[379]</a> he defends
-himself from the charge of being their author. ‘I observe and do
-whatsoever I have found,’ said he, ‘as one who takes no pleasure in
-making any innovation.’ It was the magistrate, who, being in Geneva
-head both of the Church and of the state, prescribed and enforced the
-laws of discipline. Before Calvin’s arrival at Geneva, we have seen how
-De la Rive was sentenced to banishment for having his child baptized
-by a priest. The year before some men, women, and magistrates had
-been condemned to the <i>crotton</i> (black hole) for immorality. At the
-moment at which this stranger, whose name even was hardly known, had
-just crossed the threshold of the city&mdash;on the eve of the day on which
-Farel was to introduce him to the magistrate (Monday, September 4,
-1536)&mdash;a remarkable scene was taking place in the Council of the Two
-Hundred, which seems placed at that epoch as if on purpose to resolve
-distinctly the question which engages our attention. ‘Gentlemen,’ said
-the syndics, ‘we have all pledged ourselves in public council to live
-according to the Gospel, and nevertheless there are some here who do
-not go to preaching.’ At these words the councillor and former syndic
-Richardet, a fine, tall, and powerful man, but very passionate, rose
-in wrath and exclaimed with loud voice, ‘Nobody shall lord it over my
-conscience; and I will not go to sermon at the bidding of a Syndic
-Porral.’<a name="FNanchor_380_380" id="FNanchor_380_380"></a><a href="#Footnote_380_380" class="fnanchor">[380]</a> Porral, a man of highly cultivated mind and a very
-active magistrate, had declared himself decisively for the Reform,
-and he was even charged to prosecute certain classes of delinquents.
-It had been enacted, on July 24, that those who refused to go to the
-preaching must quit the city<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span> in ten days. Richardet was not alone in
-his resolution. The question having been put to J. Philippe and two
-other councillors whether they would attend the preaching of the Word
-of God, ‘We will not be compelled,’ they said, ‘but will live in our
-liberty.’ These citizens were right in maintaining their liberty, and
-the magistrates were in the wrong. Calvin was far away from Geneva on
-July 24; and, generally speaking, he was not of so peremptory a temper
-as some imagine. There was a certain sphere in which he maintained
-liberty, and maintained it even against powerful adversaries. ‘Touching
-ceremonies,’ thus he wrote to the formidable lords of Berne, ‘they are
-things indifferent, and the churches are free to adopt a diversity of
-them.’<a name="FNanchor_381_381" id="FNanchor_381_381"></a><a href="#Footnote_381_381" class="fnanchor">[381]</a> Still, we cannot deny it, Calvin thought&mdash;and these are his
-own words&mdash;that since there is no house, however small it be, which
-can be maintained in its proper state without discipline, it is much
-more requisite in the Church, which ought to be better ordered than
-any house. He went further. He asserted that the state has the right
-and is bound to take notice of matters of discipline, and to punish
-transgressors. It is to be regretted that the fine genius of Calvin did
-not make an exception in this case to the rule adopted ten centuries
-earlier by all Christendom, and that he did not convince the state that
-its heavy hand must not intervene in matters of religion. It is however
-fair to ask ourselves whether, in the sixteenth century, such an effort
-would not have been a superhuman task.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin himself made known to us his own thought when he said, ‘<span class="smcap">The
-doctrine of our Lord Jesus Christ is the soul of the Church</span>.’<a name="FNanchor_382_382" id="FNanchor_382_382"></a><a href="#Footnote_382_382" class="fnanchor">[382]</a>
-He set forth that doctrine in the church of St. Peter just as it is
-found in Scripture, and so diffused it in the world. Certainly it was
-not by discipline that he made his con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span>quests. He bore the torch of
-truth. Devoid of ambition, having no designs reaching beyond Geneva,
-without any secret policy such as the Jesuits are skilled in, and
-armed with one weapon only, the truth, he triumphed over the greatest
-difficulties. Farel, Viret, Beza would not have sufficed. In this man
-of feeble constitution and humble aspect there were an unquenchable
-resolution, an energetic will. <i>He held fast, as seeing him who is
-invisible.</i> Established in this small town, he became God’s instrument,
-first for the spread of the Reformation in the West, then for defending
-it against the attacks of Rome and Loyola and Philip II. A new time was
-born for the world.</p>
-
-<p>Nevertheless it was not Calvin alone, as some appear to believe,
-who effected this great revolution. Had he come into the midst of a
-people indolent and effeminate, such victories would not have been
-won. But the Genevese had been preparing for centuries, by means of
-the struggles which they had gone through, for the maintenance of
-their liberty. A life of toil, incessant industry, and rude combats
-had inured them to blows. Their souls had been elevated. They were
-naturally keen and decisive; but that iron, already brilliant, had
-acquired by tempering an inflexible hardness. The heroism of the
-Huguenots of Geneva became one of the elements which contributed to
-the triumph of the Reformation. The character of those strong men was
-as essential to the work as coal is for the conversion of iron into
-steel. It was not Calvin the individual, it was Geneva in its entirety,
-that vanquished Rome. The energy of the Bertheliers, the Lévriers,
-and of many others, was one of the ingredients of the moral energy
-of which Geneva became the hearth, and which had almost disappeared
-from history. The most earnest of the Genevese Huguenots joined the
-reformer; the masses supported him; and some Frenchmen who had passed
-through the sieve of persecution, worthy also to be called Huguenots,
-gave<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span> the hand to the sons of Geneva. And when, after achieving its
-triumph, the Reformation found itself attacked by a numerous and
-powerful army, assembled under the banners of kings, of Ignatius
-Loyola, and the pope, Geneva and the men of her school, who were found
-in all parts of Christendom, were able to resist the hostile force, and
-to say to it, ‘No further shalt thou go!’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN RETAINED AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>There was, indeed, in the struggle for the renewal of Christendom, one
-will which conceived, one personality which acted, one voice which
-resounded with a force till then almost unknown, and in a thousand
-directions: it was, next to Luther’s, that of Calvin. But while a great
-general is indispensable in the day of battle, so also is an army
-trained by him for energetic conflict. The part which Geneva played
-in the sixteenth century is not explained by the character of one man
-alone, but by many concurrent circumstances both moral and political.
-That army, created by a vivifying breath from on high, was soon in
-action wherever a struggle became necessary. Those soldiers went forth
-into the world, braved danger, displayed their colors, and proclaimed
-salvation, until at length Rome gave them the martyr’s death, and
-God gave them the crown of immortality. <span class="smcap">Calvin</span> and the
-<span class="smcap">Huguenots</span>, that is the great motto of the sixteenth century.</p>
-
-<p>Farel, as we have seen, had taken on himself the responsibility
-of enrolling the young doctor and of opening to him the church of
-St. Peter. Charmed with Calvin’s method of exposition of the Holy
-Scriptures, that veteran champion of the Reformation expressed his
-opinion on the subject to the magistrates. On Tuesday, September 5,
-1536, the day after the famous altercation respecting religious liberty
-had taken place in the Council of the Two Hundred, William Farel
-appeared before the council and gave an account of the teaching of the
-young foreigner, which some of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span> members of that body had probably
-attended, and added&mdash;‘The lectures which this Frenchman<a name="FNanchor_383_383" id="FNanchor_383_383"></a><a href="#Footnote_383_383" class="fnanchor">[383]</a> has begun
-at St. Peter’s are very necessary. I therefore entreat you to retain
-him and to make provision for his maintenance.’ The council determined
-to advise that the stranger, whose name was not even uttered, should be
-retained. Many had seen him. The pale countenance, the spare form, the
-modest bearing, the timorous air of this refugee of twenty-seven, had
-not given the impression of his being a person of note. The council did
-not even make him a present of a dress or anything of the kind, as it
-was customary to do. It waited, no doubt, to see whether it was worth
-while. The man whose name was shortly to fill the city and the whole
-Christian world, entered almost <i>incognito</i> into Geneva. Every one was
-at that time thinking of Farel. On September 8 that reformer, ‘having
-addressed a remonstrance to the council,’ it was resolved ‘that since
-the writings of the aforesaid Guillaume <i>are so divine</i>, he should
-preach at six o’clock in the morning in the church of St. Germain, and
-that the councillors should be bound to attend there, and pass thence,
-at seven, into the council.’<a name="FNanchor_384_384" id="FNanchor_384_384"></a><a href="#Footnote_384_384" class="fnanchor">[384]</a></p>
-
-<p>Calvin’s lectures were soon interrupted. At the end of September,
-Farel with his young friend as his assistant quitted Geneva to go to
-Lausanne, whither an urgent duty called them. An important assembly was
-going to be held in the chief city of the Pays de Vaud.</p>
-
-<p>Farel, Viret, and other evangelists, as already related, had introduced
-the Reformation into such parts of that country as were subject to
-the Swiss cantons; but the other parishes of that fair land had
-still remained subject to the pope. Meanwhile Luther’s writings were
-everywhere circulated, the eyes of the people began to be opened,
-and several evangelists, particularly Jean<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span> Lecomte, a gentleman of
-Picardie, had preached the Gospel in various places. The occupation
-of the country by the Bernese, on occasion of the expedition which
-delivered Geneva in 1536, hastened the fall of Roman Catholicism. When
-the Bernese had taken Yverdon with the sword, they transformed the
-church of that town in a somewhat soldierly fashion. They bluntly put
-an end to the exercise of the Romish religion; appointed Malingre to
-be minister; on March 15 had their religious ordinances published;
-burnt, March 17, the images out of the churches in the market-place,
-and ordered the ministers to preach in temples cleared of those
-abominations. Lecomte, Tissot, Meige, and other evangelists introduced
-the Reform, but by the spiritual means of preaching, at Cossonay,
-Montagny, Yvonand, Sainte-Croix, and other places. Avenches and Lutry
-showed themselves decidedly Catholic, and they determined that if by
-any chance a minister should go there, they would not go to hear him.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE GOSPEL IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.</div>
-
-<p>In March 1536, as Viret and Fabry were passing near Yverdon during the
-siege of that town by the Bernese army, some Lausannese officers who
-were serving in it and who were acquainted with Viret, stopped him and
-said, ‘When Yverdon is taken, we shall go to Lausanne: come with us
-and preach the Gospel there in spite of the bishop.’ They did so. The
-amiable and discreet Viret would have been ill pleased to see Lausanne
-reformed by the military method, like Yverdon. He preferred the sword
-of the Spirit to that of the Bernese soldiery. He would choose that, in
-the sloping streets of that city and within its beautiful cathedral,
-the still small voice should be heard, and not the hissing of the
-tempest and the crash of thunder. He preached therefore the ‘glad
-tidings of great joy,’ and preached them with success, in the church
-of the convent of St. Francis. The Canons complained bitterly to the
-council. ‘A strange thing this,’ they said, ‘to see in Lausanne <i>two</i>
-preachers at a time!<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span> A whole multitude of do-nothing monks, well and
-good! But two preachers of Jesus Christ, what useless waste!’ ‘The less
-preaching there is the better,’ said the friends of Rome. ‘The more
-preaching the better,’ said the friends of the Gospel. If the Canons
-did their duty, remarked some one, instead of two preachers we should
-have thirty.<a name="FNanchor_385_385" id="FNanchor_385_385"></a><a href="#Footnote_385_385" class="fnanchor">[385]</a> The burgesses, as usual, took a middle course which
-must fail to satisfy either one party or the other. They resolved that
-the evangelists should preach in the church of Mary Magdalene, but
-without removing the altars, the fonts, the organs, the images, and
-other decorations, ‘which did no harm to anybody,’ said the burgesses;
-and that the friars of the Dominican order should also celebrate in the
-same church the Roman Catholic service in the usual way.<a name="FNanchor_386_386" id="FNanchor_386_386"></a><a href="#Footnote_386_386" class="fnanchor">[386]</a> That is
-what the great Saxon reformer called ‘trying to bring together Luther
-and the pope.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">IMAGE WORSHIP.</div>
-
-<p>Viret therefore preached in that church. But when Lent was come, the
-Dominican Monbouson began to discourse in the cathedral, and maintained
-their Romish traditions with violence and plenty of lying. Viret was
-informed of it, and as he thought that the best way to refute the
-papal doctrine was to make it distinctly known, he put in writing the
-assertions of the friar and called upon him publicly to defend them,
-announcing that he was prepared to reply to him. Monbouson felt strong
-enough to maintain his thesis when he stood surrounded by a whole
-phalanx of scholastic doctors and had nobody to contradict him, but he
-grew pale in the presence of the young Viret. ‘Ah,’ said he, ‘I would
-gladly do what you propose at Avignon, at Paris, or at Dôle; but at
-Lausanne there is nobody capable of judging of the matter.’&mdash;‘You ought
-then to preach only at Dôle, Paris, or Avignon,’ replied Viret; ‘but
-since you have lied at Lausanne, it is at Lausanne that satisfaction
-is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span> due.’ Then the friar, anxious to get out of his embarrassment,
-withdrew in the quietest manner and disappeared.<a name="FNanchor_387_387" id="FNanchor_387_387"></a><a href="#Footnote_387_387" class="fnanchor">[387]</a> The reformed
-Christians did not think, with those gentlemen of Lausanne, that
-images, altars, etc., did nobody any harm. They believed that the
-paintings did harm. They believed that the people, thanks to the
-images, made for themselves many minor gods before which they bent
-their knees in order to obtain this or that favor, or the healing of
-this or that malady: that the visible made them forget the invisible:
-that it was frightful to think that, every time some simple soul
-came to worship God in his temple, those figures of saints became
-occasions of falling or of scandal. ‘Alas!’ they said, ‘how many
-poor creatures called to be children of God have been made by those
-images children of the devil!’ Those, therefore, of the reformed of
-Lausanne, in whose judgment the pictures of saints and angels seduced
-and almost inevitably led astray the weak, began to stir in the matter.
-Commencing with the church of the Magdalene, they removed the images
-and the altars and broke or burnt them. Then betaking themselves
-to the church of St. Francis, they did the same there, and counted
-themselves happy in thus keeping the commandment, <i>Thou shalt have
-no other gods before me</i>. The old folk of Lausanne, who were already
-disconsolate at being left without a bishop, were still more distressed
-when they found themselves deprived of their images and their masses;
-and they sent deputies to Berne to complain of it. The Bernese council
-listened to them with all politeness, and dismissed them with good
-words. Lausanne then sent another deputation, consisting of twelve
-persons of distinction. At Berne they were asked, ‘What is it that you
-want?’ ‘Two masses weekly,’ they replied, according to a Lausannese
-manuscript.<a name="FNanchor_388_388" id="FNanchor_388_388"></a><a href="#Footnote_388_388" class="fnanchor">[388]</a> If the statement is true, the request was certainly
-very moderate for zealous Catholics. The con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span>cession was made to
-them, but it was coupled with the condition that they should provide
-ministers for all the churches that asked for them. At the same time
-they gave them to understand that it would be well to hold at Lausanne
-a great disputation on religion, in order to decide between Rome and
-Reform. That was a good deal to ask for the two masses which were
-granted them.</p>
-
-<p>The Bernese, indeed, were anxious that the Vaudois, whose country they
-had recently conquered, should attach themselves to the Reformation.
-It was no doubt partly from a regard to political interests that they
-wished this, but they did not overlook the interest of religion.
-Be that as it may, the reformation of religion in that country was
-a source of great prosperity both temporal and spiritual. The Pays
-de Vaud was to offer the stranger, at a later time, not only those
-beauties of nature which excite our admiration, but still more,
-numerous examples of sincere and vital piety, which is far sweeter
-and pleasanter than its lakes, and more sublime than its peaks and
-glaciers. The seed which was scattered at the epoch of the Reformation,
-in its valleys and on its mountains, was truly the Word of God; and one
-cannot but see there the fulfilment of that ancient oracle, <i>He that
-soweth to the Spirit shall of the Spirit reap everlasting life</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The conversion of Yverdon had been somewhat checked by the siege which
-the town had sustained. The lords of Berne wished in general to employ,
-like Viret, evangelical means; to reveal to their new subjects the
-grosser superstitions under whose yoke they had been held, and to give
-them the knowledge of the truth. For that end they resolved to appoint
-first a public disputation such as had been held at Zurich, Berne,
-and Geneva. As soon as the report was circulated in the country that
-a great assembly for discussion on matters of faith was to be held at
-Lausanne, the priests and their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span> friends were alarmed. The excitement
-extended to all the villages. The friends of the papacy expected to see
-black clouds gathering on the horizon, and a violent storm presently
-burst on the old ship which had carried their fathers, and make it
-founder, thus engulfing in the depths of the sea all the traditions of
-their doctrine and all the pomps of their worship. They determined to
-do everything in their power to oppose such an assembly, and they wrote
-to the bishop and to the council at Friburg, to the pope and to the
-emperor.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">A DISPUTATION APPOINTED.</div>
-
-<p>The cry of distress which they uttered was heard. The council of
-Friburg sent a deputation to Berne to oppose the projected meeting.
-Charles V., who was then in Italy, addressed a letter to the council
-of <i>his imperial city</i>, requiring it ‘to prevent that disputation as
-well as any change in matters of faith, to restore everything to its
-former state, to allow nothing contrary to the tenor of his edicts, and
-to await quietly the council.’ This missive was dated from Savigliano,
-July 3, 1536.<a name="FNanchor_389_389" id="FNanchor_389_389"></a><a href="#Footnote_389_389" class="fnanchor">[389]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was evident that the country had arrived at a critical pass, and
-that it was necessary to find some way of escape. The remedy proposed
-by the priests and the monks was,&mdash;to draw back. They assailed the
-Reformation from the pulpit, and they hurried from house to house and
-circulated in the streets the most outrageous reports against the
-reformed and the Reformation. Some of them opposed the disputation by
-asserting that ‘the ministers are magicians who have in their service
-a multitude of demons by means of which they bewitch their hearers.’
-Other priests made up their mind to put a good face on the matter.
-They blustered a good deal; they bragged of having already won many
-a victory over their adversaries. ‘Let them only give us permission
-to contend with them in a regular discussion,’ they said, ‘and we are
-strong enough to beat them.’<a name="FNanchor_390_390" id="FNanchor_390_390"></a><a href="#Footnote_390_390" class="fnanchor">[390]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The council of Berne no longer hesitated. Without awaiting the possible
-decision of the emperor, they issued, July 16, an edict in opposition
-to the orders of Charles. ‘We desire,’ the edict ran, ‘that the people
-of our territories, (which by the grace of God we have justly acquired
-by conquest,) should walk with all their hearts in the way which our
-Lord has commanded. Nevertheless that has not been done, and even gross
-insults have been offered to the preachers and to those who wished to
-follow the Gospel. Desirous of putting in order all these confused
-affairs, we enjoin all priests and monks, as well as the preachers,
-to present themselves at Lausanne, on October 1 next, for the purpose
-of proving what they believe, freely and frankly, by argument on the
-grounds of Holy Scripture. We address this appeal not only to those
-of our own territories, but to all comers and goers, of whatsoever
-nation they be, and we promise them safe-keeping. We further order that
-our priests and preachers attend the assembly from its opening to its
-close, without default, and under pain of our indignation.’<a name="FNanchor_391_391" id="FNanchor_391_391"></a><a href="#Footnote_391_391" class="fnanchor">[391]</a></p>
-
-<p>A few days after the edict of Berne, some Savoyard ambassadors, on
-their way to the diet of Berne, delivered the emperor’s letter to
-the council of Lausanne. That body having laid on the table side by
-side the epistle of his Catholic majesty and the edict of the lords
-of Berne, found themselves, to their great dismay, placed between the
-anvil and the hammer. Pressed thus by the two conflicting parties,
-they foresaw nothing but calamity whether they resisted the one or
-the other. The imperial document was read to the general council July
-23. Its members, the majority of whom were attached to the Romish
-Church, thought that the wisest plan was to obey the most powerful,
-and therefore, sheltering themselves under the order of the great
-poten<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span>tate, they enacted that the parties should live peaceably
-together, but that no innovation should be made until after the
-decision of the council. At the same time a deputation set out for
-Berne in order to prevent the disputation. But all was useless. Berne
-was stronger than the Emperor Charles V. That prince was in Italy, and
-the absent are in the wrong.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER II.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">THE DISPUTATION AT LAUSANNE.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(October, 1536.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE DISPUTATION AT LAUSANNE.</div>
-
-<p>The disputation of Lausanne inaugurates with a certain grandeur the
-Reformation of the Vaudois. Some look upon it as merely a Bernese
-project. But that imposing assembly, among whose speakers were all or
-nearly all the reformers of western Switzerland; at which the great
-evangelical questions were discussed; and by means of which some of
-those who were present were converted; is evidence that the Reform
-was truly the work of God. The Reformation had begun in that country,
-obscurely and modestly, in some districts on the banks of the Rhone,
-on the shores of the lake of Neuchâtel, and in others besides. It now
-announced itself with power, and the mass of the people were going to
-embrace it. Men discourse much in books about the beautiful. We find
-true beauty, Christian beauty, evangelical, inward, more veiled perhaps
-than that of the world, but more pure and more solid, in the doctrine
-then proclaimed at Lausanne, and often in the manner in which it was
-set forth, although we have to make allowance for the time. We find it
-in the Farels, the Calvins, the Virets and other heroic men of that
-epoch, who lived<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span> with God, who were unwearied in their work, and were
-always ready to give their lives for the truth which they proclaimed.
-That synod was a beautiful portico erected to lead men into a temple of
-divine beauty.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PREPARATIONS AT LAUSANNE.</div>
-
-<p>Farel was preparing for the disputation; and on the Roman Catholic
-side there was much ado to find valiant champions. At Lausanne there
-was no canon, no priest, no monk who came forward to defend the
-doctrine by which till that day they had lived. It was necessary to
-beat to arms elsewhere. They did so; and at the end of September
-the Dominican Monbouson, Michod dean of Vevey, the vicars Drogy
-and Berrilly, and others besides, arrived, in the town. Two laymen
-alone represented Lausanne, the captain of the youth,<a name="FNanchor_392_392" id="FNanchor_392_392"></a><a href="#Footnote_392_392" class="fnanchor">[392]</a> Fernand
-de Loys, and the French physician Blancherose. The latter was ‘<i>un
-homme tenant de la lune</i>’ (something of a lunatic), said the Catholic
-Pierrefleur, ‘who blends in his discussions medicine and theology, and
-excites boundless merriment.’ Viret, Marcourt, and Lecomte appeared
-for the reformed. From Geneva came Chapuis, a former Dominican, then
-pastor at Compesières, and Jacques Bernard, formerly superior of the
-Cordeliers. But the man who chiefly attracted attention was Farel, who
-was accompanied by a young man pale and modest, unknown by sight to
-most, and who appeared to be his assistant. It was John Calvin. Farel
-had urged him to come to Lausanne, but Calvin shrank from the thought
-of speaking in that great assembly. Still he was deeply interested in
-its proceedings. ‘The Senate of Berne,’ said he, ‘has declared that
-everyone is at liberty to state his objections freely, without need to
-fear being disturbed in consequence of it. That is the fittest means
-of exposing the ignorance of those who set themselves against the
-Gospel.’<a name="FNanchor_393_393" id="FNanchor_393_393"></a><a href="#Footnote_393_393" class="fnanchor">[393]</a> These two men had set out in com<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>pany with the Syndic
-Porral, and they arrived with many others at the cathedral, in which
-the disputation was to be held. An amphitheatre had been constructed.
-The altars, pictures, statues, and rich ornaments of the Romish worship
-still displayed their magnificence; and even the canons, who were
-determined to keep silence, but nevertheless wished to do something,
-had brought out of their hiding-places the image of the holy Virgin and
-all those of the saints, trusting more, it would seem, to the eloquence
-of those dumb figures than to their own.</p>
-
-<p>On the side of the Reformation there was no other preparation but
-some simple evangelical theses drawn up by Farel, and affixed to the
-doors of all the churches. They were entitled, ‘Conclusions which are
-to be discussed at Lausanne, a new province of Berne.’ In the form of
-ten articles it was declared,&mdash;that Holy Scripture teaches no other
-justification than that which is by faith in Jesus Christ, once for
-all offered in sacrifice&mdash;that it acknowledges no other head, priest,
-saviour, or mediator of the Church than Jesus Christ, seated at the
-right hand of God;&mdash;that it gives the name ‘Church of God’ only to
-the assembly of those who believe in their redemption by Jesus Christ
-alone. The other seven articles established the sacraments of baptism
-and the Lord’s supper&mdash;the ministry of the Word of God&mdash;confession
-made to God&mdash;absolution coming from God&mdash;spiritual service rendered
-to God, such as is ordained by the Word, and without the infinite
-mockeries which pervert religion&mdash;the civil magistrate ordained of God
-to maintain the peace of the Republic&mdash;marriage a divine institution
-for any class whatsoever&mdash;and the free use, so it be with charity, of
-things indifferent.<a name="FNanchor_394_394" id="FNanchor_394_394"></a><a href="#Footnote_394_394" class="fnanchor">[394]</a></p>
-
-<p>On Sunday, October 1, all the bells were set a-going, and a great crowd
-filled the cathedral. But the lords<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span> of Berne, in whose presence the
-disputation was to take place, had not yet arrived. It was a great
-disappointment. However, the opening took place on Sunday, although
-the discussion only began on Monday. It was Farel, the senior of the
-French reformers, the great champion of the Gospel in the district of
-Geneva, Vaud, and Neuchâtel, that Christian man, at once so learned and
-so pious, so devout and so active, who made the first speech, in which
-his design was to prepare the minds of those present for a becoming
-and Christian conference.<a name="FNanchor_395_395" id="FNanchor_395_395"></a><a href="#Footnote_395_395" class="fnanchor">[395]</a> He said,&mdash;‘While Satan leads the sheep
-astray in order to destroy them, our Lord seeks to bring them back
-to his holy flock in order to save them. We shall never attain real
-unity except by means of the truth. A safe-conduct has therefore been
-given to all, to go and come, to speak and to hear, as shall seem good
-to them, for the truth must not be hidden. May it be the truth that
-wins the day! If I myself were wholly vanquished and put to confusion,
-while the truth had its triumph, I should count that the greatest gain
-and the best possible victory. Let all therefore, whether priests
-or preachers, have respect to the great shepherd Jesus Christ, who
-gave his body and his blood for the poor people. Let us prefer to be
-nothing, if only the poor sheep, gone so far astray, may find the right
-way, may come to Jesus and give themselves to God. That will be better
-than if we should gain all the world and lose those for whom Jesus
-died. If any man will exalt himself against Jesus, if any man will
-light against the faith, it would be better for him if he had never
-been born. Let us not despise our neighbor. Let us not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span> mock him. Let
-us not shut the door of the kingdom of heaven and take away the key of
-knowledge. Let us be free from all hatred and rancor. Let us love all
-men, pray for all men, do good to all men. Let us visit the poor and
-the afflicted, that is the true pilgrimage. Those little ones are the
-images of God, and it is to those images that we ought to resort, to
-them that we should carry food and candles.... My dear brethren, when
-you hear the bell ring, present yourselves here in God’s name, in peace
-and unity, without disturbance or murmuring.’ This was indeed a good
-and Christian address, and after hearing it the assembly dispersed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAREL’S DISCOURSE.</div>
-
-<p>On Monday, October 2, at seven o’clock in the morning, the cathedral
-was again filled, and ‘as soon as the shrill sound of the bell had
-ceased, there appeared on the platform the ambassadors of Berne,’ J.
-J. de Watteville, formerly <i>avoyer</i>,<a name="FNanchor_396_396" id="FNanchor_396_396"></a><a href="#Footnote_396_396" class="fnanchor">[396]</a> J. de Diesbach, and the
-<i>baillifs</i> of Yverdon and Lausanne. They were easily recognized by
-their red and black doublets, skirts, and hose. The council of Geneva
-had sent as its representative the Syndic A. Porral, a warm friend
-of Reform. Presidents were chosen from among the men of Berne and
-Lausanne. Then Farel rose and read his first thesis, which treated of
-man’s justification before God, developed and proved it.</p>
-
-<p>When he had finished, the vice-bailiff of Lausanne said aloud, ‘If
-any man has aught to say against these first conclusions, let him
-come forward and we shall willingly listen to him.’ The canons of the
-cathedral then rose, who were determined not to carry on but to prevent
-the discussion, and one of them, Perrini, said, ‘When doubts arise
-respecting the faith, they must be resolved according to the true sense
-of the Scriptures. Now, that is lawful only to the Church universal,
-which is not liable to error. Therefore, we, the provost and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span> canons of
-this church, do solemnly protest against this controversy, and refer it
-to the next council.’<a name="FNanchor_397_397" id="FNanchor_397_397"></a><a href="#Footnote_397_397" class="fnanchor">[397]</a></p>
-
-<p>This proposal not to proceed was inadmissible. The courageous Farel
-opposed it. ‘It is nowhere asserted in the Scripture,’ said he, ‘that
-any particular Church is liable to error and that the universal Church
-is exempt from it. On the contrary, it is to a particular Church that
-Jesus Christ addresses the words, <i>Where two or three are gathered
-together in my name, there am I in the midst of them</i>. This promise
-cannot fail. The Canons refrained from accusing by their protest all
-the early doctors and the holy fathers, for whom they make pretence of
-so much reverence. We find in fact, in the writings of those ancients,
-only particular disputations, held for the purpose of examining
-articles at that time controverted. There are ten such articles in
-Cyprian, and twenty or thereabouts, in Augustine. If they accuse us,
-who are now assembled here, how shall they defend their own provincial
-councils, their monks’ chapters, all their schools and Sorbonnes, in
-which they hold conferences for the research of truth? Most of those
-whom they have condemned as heretics were not condemned in a general
-council, but in some particular assembly. Paul, speaking with reference
-to churches as they were, scattered in towns or villages, said, <i>Let
-the prophets speak two or three, and let the other judge</i>. (1 Cor. xiv.
-29.)</p>
-
-<p>‘And how do these reverend gentlemen prove that the Church general
-cannot err? This is their pretty assertion, invented too by them,
-according to their excellent custom. They say that our Lord prayed
-for St. Peter that his faith might not fail. Who then has revealed
-to them the fact, either asleep or awake, that Peter is the Church
-universal? If it were indeed represented by St. Peter, then it would
-follow that the Church universal may, in one single day, three times
-deny Jesus Christ, as Peter did so after that word had been spoken to
-him.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span> If an assembly of the Church universal were the only body capable
-of resolving doubts, then all the martyrs of Jesus Christ, who in the
-first three centuries set the seal with their blood to the truth of the
-Gospel, would have suffered death for things doubtful, for the Church
-universal had not yet been assembled in general council.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE DISPUTATION.</div>
-
-<p>‘If there be now a universal council which pretends to infallibility,
-let it then show us that it assembles <i>in the name of Jesus</i>! A holy
-company indeed is that of the pope and his cardinals! Fair pillars of
-the church are bishops and prelates! Great zealots for the faith are
-the monks! It is greatly to be doubted whether, if all that multitude
-were thoroughly sifted, one man among them would be found deserving to
-be called a true member of the Church of Christ! It is of men who are
-all trying to get the benefices and the dignities of the Church that a
-general council consists, and this calls itself the Church universal.
-Ah! to secure their wealth, their honor, and their gain, they would be
-ready not only to trample in the dust the word of Jesus Christ, but
-they would go further and put himself to death, if he were present
-in his own person. Such is the fine band with whom, if we take their
-word, the Holy Spirit dwells! If any man offer to contend with them on
-reasonable grounds, proceedings will be taken against him to punish him
-for his audacity, and, as was the case at the council of Constance, he
-will be condemned and burnt.’<a name="FNanchor_398_398" id="FNanchor_398_398"></a><a href="#Footnote_398_398" class="fnanchor">[398]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus spake Farel. We may perhaps think some of his remarks severe, but
-if we take into account the time, the form of his speech is certainly
-not amiss, and the substance of it is unanswerable. After that
-discourse, the Dominican Monbouson and the reformer Viret argued on the
-same subject till eleven o’clock. Then the call was heard, ‘Retire for
-dinner,’ and the meeting broke up. In the afternoon the old priests and
-monks of Thonon, who had bragged that they would<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span> put the ministers to
-confusion, were in the assembly. Fabry, who was well acquainted with
-Thonon and its clergy, invited them to speak. Not one of them did so.
-Two of them declared that they believed the theses to be true, and most
-of the others contented themselves with giving their adhesion to the
-protest of the canons.</p>
-
-<p>On Tuesday, October 3, Dr. Blancherose (of whom it was said <i>il tenait
-de la lune</i>) addressed the assembly. Even if the clergy were silent he
-thought himself quite competent to maintain his cause. ‘Magnificent
-and mighty lords,’ he began, ‘I am a physician; my profession is that
-of medicine, not that of theology.’ To which Farel politely answered,
-‘To be a physician does not at all clash with true theology. St. Luke
-was a physician likewise.’&mdash;‘I have taught,’ said Blancherose, ‘in many
-cities and universities of France; moreover, I was once physician to
-the king, and afterwards to the princess of Orange.’ He then began to
-set forth strange theories on what he called the <i>monarchies</i> of the
-Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost. Caroli was present. It is known
-that this inconsistent and whimsical man was sometimes a Papist and
-sometimes a Protestant. For the moment he was Protestant. So he raised
-the cry, just as if he were with a hunting party, ‘A hare started out
-of the Donatist warren!’ The priests themselves were not particularly
-pleased with their lay companion in arms. Mimard, therefore,
-schoolmaster of Vevey, and Jacques Drogy, vicar of Morges, hastened to
-the rescue, hoping to retake from the enemy what he had carried off.
-But their attempt had no great success.</p>
-
-<p>Drogy renewed his speech on Wednesday, October 4. He must have
-known well what kind of life was led by many priests, monks, and
-laymen, who at the same time that they were doing everything to save
-themselves by legal works, found therein a support, and, so to say, an
-indulgence, for giving themselves up unscrupulously to an impure life.
-Nevertheless, he showed that he was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span> greatly alarmed, and no doubt
-sincerely, at the dangers to which the doctrine of justification by
-faith alone would expose the work of sanctification. He therefore said,
-‘If you say that a man is justified by faith and not by works, people
-will not take the trouble to live well.’ Drogy was seeking light. The
-sayings of the reformers had disturbed him, and all that he desired was
-to see the truth clearly.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE CHURCH AND THE SCRIPTURES.</div>
-
-<p>Caroli, once Romanist and now Protestant, whose inconsistencies we
-have seen and shall again see, spoke on this occasion with fairness.
-As doctor of the Sorbonne and a man of intelligence, he was well
-acquainted with the doctrine; only he did not walk according to its
-teaching. He rose and said, ‘To allege that works must be partners in
-justification is to enervate Jesus Christ; that is, to say that he
-alone is not sufficient to justify us. If a man be absolved through
-faith, it is certainly not in order that he may again begin doing evil.
-Just as when a king grants a pardon, it is not that the man may repeat
-his offence. God forgives all my offences only in order that I may do
-good works. Are you not yourselves in the habit of saying to a dying
-man, God is a greater <i>pardoner</i> than man is an offender? The death of
-Jesus is more effectual in the punishment of sin than the death of all
-mankind.’<a name="FNanchor_399_399" id="FNanchor_399_399"></a><a href="#Footnote_399_399" class="fnanchor">[399]</a></p>
-
-<p>The laity were ashamed to see their cause so ill defended by their
-priests. The captain of the youth of Lausanne, Fernand de Loys,
-therefore entered the lists. He was a clear-headed man; he had learnt
-carefully some theses of the Romish theology, and had a little of that
-presumption which is frequently seen in the young men of whom he was
-one of the chiefs. He came forward, with his baton raised, speaking
-bluntly and without palliation. ‘The Church is before the Scripture,
-worthier than the Scripture, and invested with higher authority.
-Now the Church teaches justification by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span> works.’ Farel, roused by
-hearing such assertions, exclaimed, ‘Which is first, the Church or
-the Scripture?... Certainly, the Scripture is before the Church. The
-Church has its existence through the Word of God; and Jesus himself
-proved what he said by reference to the Scriptures.’ Upon this the
-physician Blancherose thought he must come to the aid of the captain of
-the young men, and said to Farel, ‘In saying so much of faith, and in
-making it the cause of all good, you are very much like the sorcerers
-and enchanters, who, through the faith which they have in certain
-words, pretend to do so many great and wonderful things.’ Farel, taking
-little heed to these jests, said, ‘Jesus was beaten and wounded; he
-bore the discipline for our sakes; for us he died.’ The master of the
-Catholic school of Vevey, who was present, seems to have had a truer
-Christian feeling than his colleagues, and, profiting by Farel’s words,
-he said, ‘Precisely so; it is Jesus who justifies us, and not faith.’
-This was more serious. Farel therefore supported the first part of the
-proposition. In opposing the second part, he said&mdash;‘Yes, it is Jesus
-alone who justifies; but he justifies only those who receive him by
-faith, and he dwells in those who believe. But as for those who do not
-believe in him, he is for them only a stone of stumbling and of ruin.’</p>
-
-<p>The truth began to be pursued more closely. The reverend Jean Michod,
-of Vevey, who had studied at Paris and was acquainted with the
-interpretations of Romish theology, rose and said&mdash;‘St. Peter tells
-us that there are unlearned persons who pervert the Holy Scriptures
-to their own destruction. I have often listened to wise doctors at
-Paris, and they all declared that that passage of the Epistle to
-the Romans&mdash;<i>A man is justified by faith without the works of the
-law</i>&mdash;had reference exclusively to the Jewish <i>ceremonies</i>, such as
-circumcision.’ Then turning to Caroli, ‘You, sir, our master,’ said
-he, ‘I have heard you at Paris, at the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span> College of Cambrai, expound
-that passage in the same way.’ That was an <i>argumentum ad hominem</i>,
-and Michod believed that the circumstances peculiar to the person
-himself to whom he addressed it rendered it unanswerable. But Caroli,
-who was not deficient in presence of mind, replied, ‘The fact is that
-I was at that time one of those unlearned persons of whom St. Peter
-speaks in the passage which you have just cited, who <i>pervert the
-Holy Scriptures</i>. But God has now given me the true understanding of
-the matter. I have changed, and it will be well for you to do the
-same.’<a name="FNanchor_400_400" id="FNanchor_400_400"></a><a href="#Footnote_400_400" class="fnanchor">[400]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE REAL PRESENCE.</div>
-
-<p>In the afternoon of the third day they passed to the second thesis,
-affirming that Jesus is the only pontiff. As no one raised an
-objection, even in favor of the pope, which was a very significant
-fact, they went on to the third proposition, respecting the true
-Church. <i>That Church</i>, it was said, <i>Christ, who in his corporal
-presence has been taken away from us, fills, governs, and vivifies by
-his Holy Spirit</i>. The Roman Catholics took advantage of the thesis to
-turn the discussion on the corporal presence. Blancherose, who was
-always confident that he could answer everything, rose first, and
-began to speak of the sun and of all sorts of things. He undertook to
-prove the doctrine of transubstantiation by the example of an egg,
-which is converted into a chick, which chick is afterwards eaten by
-a man. Viret did not think that strange argument deserving of a very
-grave answer. ‘That proof,’ he said, ‘reverses the order of things.
-To make it applicable, it would be necessary for the priests to sit
-on the object transformed, as hens sit on their eggs.’ Blancherose,
-having offered other instances of the same kind, was invited to carry
-on the discussion by the Scripture, and not by proofs taken from the
-sun, which is everywhere at once, from hens, from their eggs changed
-into chicks, and from chickens which are eaten, and from other natural
-transformations.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On Thursday, October 5, in the morning, the presidents, offended by
-the extravagances of the doctors, and perceiving that the method till
-then pursued would entail digressions and interminable prolixity,
-announced that, instead of resuming the debate, and with the hope of
-shortening the proceedings, the following alternative would be offered
-to all canons, abbots, priors, monks, curés, and vicars in the whole
-country, as well as to the ministers: ‘Argue, get some one to argue for
-you, or subscribe the theses.’ All were then called by name, and those
-who declared themselves willing to subscribe passed into the choir.
-Megander, a minister of Berne, exhorted them to preach nothing but the
-pure Word of God, and after that they were allowed to withdraw if they
-wished. But those who declined to adhere to the theses were ordered to
-remain to the close of the disputation.</p>
-
-<p>In the afternoon, Mimard appeared with a long manuscript of his own
-composition, intended to vindicate the mass. The subject was treated
-under thirteen heads, which did not seem to promise much for shortening
-the business. Mimard was, at any rate, a serious speaker, although
-a little dull and rather prolix. ‘Do you pretend,’ he said, ‘to be
-wiser and more enlightened by the Holy Spirit than the holy doctors,
-St. Augustine, St. Jerome, St. Ambrose, and St. Gregory, who all
-believed in the real presence? If you reject them as unlearned, it is
-merely because they are opposed to you.’ Farel replied on the thirteen
-heads, without omitting one of them. What was said by each of the two
-champions may easily be imagined. The subject has already been so
-frequently brought forward that it is needless to spend more time over
-it now. But there was present in the assembly one young theologian,
-who rejoiced to hear his friends defending the true doctrine, and
-who by reason of his youth and his modesty had been kept silent till
-that time. It was Calvin. For four days he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span> had sat there without
-speaking, contenting himself with the part of a hearer. But he had a
-brave heart. That Ambrose, that Augustine, those other doctors, he was
-well acquainted with them. He knew their words by heart. They were
-his friends, and he could not stand by and see them insulted by being
-ranked with the pope’s army. He could not be silent any longer; his
-heart burnt within him, and he felt impelled to defend the principles
-which were brought to light by the Reformation. But he wished also to
-restore to those great men of Christian antiquity, and above all to his
-beloved Augustine, the honor which was due to them. This was the first
-occasion on which Calvin took part in any of the great discussions of
-the time, and it is worth while to listen to him.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SPEECH OF CALVIN.</div>
-
-<p>‘I have abstained from speaking till this moment,’ he said, ‘and it
-was my intention to abstain to the end, perceiving that any speech of
-mine was unnecessary, because my brethren Farel and Viret have made
-sufficient reply. But the reproach which you have uttered against us
-with regard to the ancient doctors compels me to show again briefly how
-grievously you err in accusing us on this point.</p>
-
-<p>‘We despise them and reject them altogether, you say, and that because
-we find them opposed to our cause. Verily, all the world, we own, might
-esteem us not only rash men, but arrogant beyond measure, if we held
-in derision such servants of God, and considered them <i>asses</i>, as you
-say we do. Those who make pretence of holding them in great reverence,
-frequently honor them less than we do, and would not deign to employ
-in reading their works the time which we gladly devote to it. But we
-do not exalt their authority to such a height as to allow it to lessen
-the dignity of the Word of the Lord, to which, exclusively, entire
-obedience ought to be given in the Church of Christ. We should fear
-being found rebels against that Word of the Lord which asks whether<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span>
-his people ought not to be content with <i>his voice</i>, and which adds,
-<i>without hearing either the living or the dead</i>. Yes, we do rest in
-his sacred Word, and we fasten on it our hearts, our understandings,
-our eyes, our ears, without turning aside to the right hand or to the
-left. <i>If any one speak</i>, says Peter, <i>let him speak as the oracles of
-God</i>; we therefore teach the people of Jesus not human doctrines, but
-heavenly wisdom. With the ancient doctors, we seek for God’s truth,
-with them we listen to it and keep it with all reverence, reserving to
-the Lord this glory, <i>that his mouth alone be opened in the Church, to
-speak with authority</i>. Let every ear then hear him, and let every soul
-be ready to obey him!</p>
-
-<p>‘As to your assertion that we despise the fathers because they are not
-on our side, it would be easy for me to show that whatever matters are
-in controversy between us, that assertion is no more true than your
-reproach. But, to confine myself to the subject before us, I will lay
-before you only a small number of passages of such a character that
-there will be nothing left for you to reply to.’</p>
-
-<p>Calvin had not with him the voluminous works of the fathers; but his
-memory was a library abridged. Tertullian, Chrysostom, and the writers
-of his time, especially Augustine, came immediately to his aid.
-‘Tertullian,’ said he, ‘when refuting Marcion, speaks thus, “Christ
-in the supper has left us the <i>figure</i> of his body.” The author of
-the commentary on St. Matthew, contained in the works of Chrysostom,
-says, “It is a far greater offence to defile ourselves, who are the
-true vessels in which God dwells, than to profane the vessels in which
-the supper is administered, since that <i>the real body of Jesus Christ
-is not contained in them</i>, but only the mystery of his body.” St.
-Augustine, in his twenty-third Epistle,<a name="FNanchor_401_401" id="FNanchor_401_401"></a><a href="#Footnote_401_401" class="fnanchor">[401]</a> says, “The bread and the
-wine, which are sacraments of the body and blood of Christ, <i>we call
-them<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span> in a certain sense</i> (<i>quodammodo</i>) his body and his blood.” And
-in his book against Adimantus, he adds, “The Lord did not hesitate to
-say, This is my body, when he gave the <i>sign of his body</i>.” Weigh all
-these words, every syllable of them if you will, and see whether these
-declarations in any way favor your error. When you taunt us with the
-charge that the ancients are against us, everybody sees your rashness.
-Assuredly, if you had read only a few pages you would not have been
-so bold; but you have not even seen the covering of the book. The
-foregoing testimonies, which may easily be pointed out, prove it.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DOCTRINE OF THE FATHERS.</div>
-
-<p>At this point, Calvin, wishing to show fully how chimerical the Romish
-opinion is, offered one or two considerations which, while they display
-his fine intelligence, are not lacking in solidity. ‘It is not without
-reason,’ he said, ‘that we reject the foolish opinion which the craft
-of Satan introduced into the world. In the supper we certainly eat
-the same body of Christ as the apostles ate at its institution, and
-it must be either his mortal body or his glorified body. If it be his
-mortal body, Jesus is then at this hour mortal and passible, while the
-Scripture declares to us that he has laid aside all infirmity. If it
-be his immortal and glorified body, Jesus, at the first supper, was in
-a certain place (seated at the table) in his mortal and passible body,
-and he was in another place (in the hands and mouths of his disciples)
-in his immortal and glorified body. The dreams of Marcion were never so
-fantastic!...’</p>
-
-<p>Calvin, however, went further and, knowing the importance which Rome
-attached to the letter, felt bound to show to what that method leads.
-He has explained his own doctrine elsewhere in a more complete manner,
-but we must not suppress what he said on this solemn occasion. ‘If you
-tie yourselves to words,’ said he, ‘if you so rigorously insist on
-these words, <i>Hoc est corpus meum</i>, you are compelled by such verbal
-strict<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span>ness to separate the body of the Lord from his blood. For he
-said, <i>This is my body</i>, pointing to the bread, and when pointing to
-the wine, <i>This is my blood</i>. Now, to imagine that the body of Christ
-was separated from his blood is an abominable thing. I know that you
-evade this by what you call the <i>concomitance</i>. But do not allege it,
-for it is mere mockery. If the real body is in the cup, as you affirm
-it to be, the Lord of truth then spoke falsely when he said, <i>This is
-my blood</i>.</p>
-
-<p>‘No, it is neither the natural body nor the natural blood of our Lord
-Jesus which is given to us in the holy supper. But there is a spiritual
-communication, by virtue of which he gives to us all the grace that
-we can receive from his body and his blood. <i>Christ makes us truly
-participants, but altogether in a spiritual way, by the bond of his
-Holy Spirit.</i> St. Luke and St. Paul write that Jesus said, <i>This is
-the new testament in my blood</i>; that is to say, the new alliance which
-the Father has made with us, blotting out our iniquities by his mercy,
-receiving us into his favor that we may be his children, and writing
-his law in our hearts by his Spirit; an alliance really new, and
-ratified and confirmed by the body and the blood of Jesus Christ.</p>
-
-<p>‘Constrained by reasons so forcible, we interpret the Scripture
-according to the true analogy of faith. We do not put glosses on it out
-of our own heads, and we give no explanation which is not expressed in
-itself.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONVERSION OF JEAN TANDY.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin was silent. The young man, whose face was unknown but full
-of expression, had been listened to with astonishment, and people
-recognized in him a master. Everyone felt the force of his words,
-and no one raised an objection. ‘At this point,’ say the Acts of the
-Disputation, ‘both the Mimards and the Blancheroses remained without
-making any attempt to reply.’ The minds of the hearers seemed to be
-enlightened by fresh knowledge. This was soon evident.</p>
-
-<p>A monk of the order of Cordeliers, the Franciscan<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span> Jean Tandy,<a name="FNanchor_402_402" id="FNanchor_402_402"></a><a href="#Footnote_402_402" class="fnanchor">[402]</a> who
-had been present at the disputation from its opening, listened with
-eager interest to Calvin’s speech, and felt that its truth reached him.
-His heart was affected, his understanding was satisfied. He embraced by
-faith the sacrifice of the Saviour; and, according to the expression
-of the Evangelist, he ate of his flesh and drank his blood. For awhile
-he sat silent, awaiting the objections which might be offered. But
-‘when he saw that those who had taken part in discussion till that hour
-had their lips closed,’ he took courage, rose and said, the assembly
-listening to him attentively&mdash;‘Holy Scripture teaches that there is
-no remission for the sin against the Holy Ghost. Now this sin is that
-of men who, through unbelief, willing to contend against the clearest
-truth, choose rather to exalt themselves against God and his Word than
-to humble themselves and obey him. As I desire now not to resist the
-truth, but to receive it and confess it openly, I acknowledge before
-you all that I have long been mistaken. While I thought that I was
-living in a state of perfection, as they had given me to understand, I
-have been, on the contrary, only the servant of men, submitting myself
-to their traditions and commandments. Nothing is good but that which
-God commands. I have heard the truth. I see that I must hold fast to
-Jesus alone, must stand to his Word, and must have no other head,
-leader, or Saviour, but him who by his sacrifice has made us acceptable
-to the Father. I will henceforth live and die according to his Gospel.
-I ask forgiveness of God for all that I have done and said against
-his honor. I ask pardon of you and of all the people, so far as by my
-preaching or by my life I have taught you amiss, or have given you a
-bad example. And since, by following the rule of the Cordeliers and
-assuming this garb of dissimulation, I have been led out of the right
-way, at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span> this moment in which I renounce all superstition, I abandon
-also this garb full of all hypocrisy and trumpery.’ As he uttered these
-words, Jean Tandy cast off his monastic dress, and then added&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>‘Let no one be offended, but let each examine himself and confess that
-if the state in which he has lived be contrary to the will of God, he
-ought not to persevere in it, nor to reënter after quitting it. I will
-live as a Christian, and not as a Cordelier; according to the Gospel of
-Jesus, and not according to the rule of the monks; in true and living
-faith in Christ, and united with all true Christians. To this God calls
-us all, to the intent that, instead of being divided into so many
-rules, we may be all one in Jesus Christ.’</p>
-
-<p>This frank, noble, and affecting conversion gave great joy to those
-who loved the Gospel, and Farel, as their spokesman, said, ‘How great
-God is! how good and how wise! How he smites and heals, how he casts
-down to hell and brings up again to heaven, we see with our own eyes.
-What superstition is there equal to that of the Cordeliers, in which
-the enemy has with so much skill colored his work that even the elect
-are deceived! Let us rejoice, therefore, that the poor sheep which was
-straying on the mountains and in the deserts, in the midst of wolves
-and wild beasts, now, by the grace of the Lord, abandoning the barren
-deserts, the vexatious thorns of human traditions, is entering into his
-fold, and finds now his pasture in God’s holy Word.’</p>
-
-<p>‘This done,’ add the Acts, ‘because it was late, everyone retired.’<a name="FNanchor_403_403" id="FNanchor_403_403"></a><a href="#Footnote_403_403" class="fnanchor">[403]</a></p>
-
-<p>The last theses were discussed during the remaining two or three days,
-and for the most part by the same combatants, each of the champions
-expressing himself well or ill, according to his character and the
-spirit which actuated him. ‘The Lord,’ said the intelligent and
-spiritual Viret, ‘commands Peter to <i>feed his sheep</i>,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span> but according
-to the well-known by-word, the Romish court want <i>no sheep without
-wool</i>.<a name="FNanchor_404_404" id="FNanchor_404_404"></a><a href="#Footnote_404_404" class="fnanchor">[404]</a> The true key of the kingdom of heaven is the Gospel of the
-Lord, but the pope and his priests have devised others which close the
-door instead of opening it. If the pope be willing to imitate Jesus and
-Peter, let him then go about hither and thither in every place, seeking
-and saving souls. The apostles had no holy see like the Romish pontiff.
-They were not often even seated, except, indeed, it were in a prison.
-And instead of a triple crown and a chain of gold, they had chains of
-iron on their hands and their feet.’<a name="FNanchor_405_405" id="FNanchor_405_405"></a><a href="#Footnote_405_405" class="fnanchor">[405]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE TRINITY OF BLANCHEROSE.</div>
-
-<p>Dr. Blancherose, who unhesitatingly considered himself the most valiant
-of the defenders of Rome, began now to lose heart. His only consolation
-was in the thought that if he were beaten it was not for want of
-talent, but because he stood alone; and quoting a word of the ancients,
-he said, ‘The opponents (reformers) are too strong, and as some one
-said, Hercules himself could do nothing against two.’<a name="FNanchor_406_406" id="FNanchor_406_406"></a><a href="#Footnote_406_406" class="fnanchor">[406]</a> The two, in
-his case, were doubtless Farel and Calvin.</p>
-
-<p>He continued to complain of his comrades in the fight. ‘Instead of
-aiding me,’ he said, ‘the priests have begged me to begone. There are
-six score of us, they added, who will be compelled, if the disputation
-is to last much longer, to sell our gowns and hoods to pay our
-hosts.’ Then, after this trifling, returning to his grand theses, the
-fantastical doctor said, ‘The holy Trinity represents three monarchies.
-The father represents the emperor; the Son represents the pope; and
-the third monarchy, which is only now beginning, is that of the Holy
-Spirit, and <i>belongs to physicians</i>.’ Thus he claimed a great part
-for himself. This recalled him to his duty, and he applied himself to
-matters within his grasp. ‘The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span> time of Lent, in which people fast,’
-he said, ‘has been well regulated, because in the spring nature is
-awakening, the blood is warm and impels to pleasure, and, moreover,
-people have eaten a good deal during the winter.’ The energetic Farel,
-who knew as well as the doctor how to be popular and sarcastic, met
-him on his own ground, and replied in his medical language, ‘that, on
-the contrary, the least fitting season had been fixed for Lent; for in
-the spring the poor people work in the fields and the vineyards, and
-after having crammed themselves with flesh in the winter, they give
-them well-salted, fish, hot spices, etc. This method gives origin to
-legions of maladies, so that the priests make their harvest of them and
-the doctors their vintage. The sicknesses put money into the purses of
-these two classes of men, especially into those of the Romish priests,
-according to the anagram of <i>Roma</i>. If each letter of that word be
-taken as the initial of another word, we get the sentence, <i>Radix
-Omnium Malorum Avaritia</i>: Rome is avarice, the root of all evil. She
-shows this in all kinds of ways, but above all in granting for a money
-payment the liberty to eat flesh, which otherwise she prohibits and
-declares to be a sin.’<a name="FNanchor_407_407" id="FNanchor_407_407"></a><a href="#Footnote_407_407" class="fnanchor">[407]</a> It is clear that Farel knew how to profit
-by that precept, <i>Answer a fool according to his folly</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The vicar of Morges, Drogy, a man more enlightened than the others,
-and who saw clearly the weakness of the Romish teaching, apologized
-in the best way he could for his comrades, and made excuse for their
-defeat. ‘The poor priests are ignorant,’ he said, ‘and they deserve to
-be pitied. It is no great glory for the ministers to have beaten them.
-What they want is time given them for study, and a long time too; but
-instead of that they have been pitilessly bantered.’ ‘Do not take as
-insults,’ said the amiable Viret, ‘the charitable admonitions which we
-have given them. So far from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span> wishing them any harm, we are ready to
-shed our blood for their salvation.’ ‘No doubt,’ added the reformer
-Marcourt, who had not hitherto spoken, a man of much good sense, but
-somewhat more severe than Viret, ‘no doubt the poor priests deserve
-to be pitied, but still more the poor people. No man would intrust a
-flock of sheep to a shepherd who was blind and dumb; why then are the
-churches placed under leaders who are blind and unable to explain the
-Word of God?’<a name="FNanchor_408_408" id="FNanchor_408_408"></a><a href="#Footnote_408_408" class="fnanchor">[408]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN AND HILDEBRAND.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin then rose to speak again, and without stopping to argue with
-the feeble apologists of Rome, who were sufficiently refuted, he
-selected for his adversary the most illustrious and the most valiant
-of the champions of the papacy, the man who was indeed its chief
-founder, Hildebrand, made pope under the name of Gregory VII. These
-two men were well fitted to contend with equal strength in the lists.
-It is a pity that five centuries stood in the way of their measuring
-their forces hand to hand. It was Hildebrand who had launched over
-Christendom these stupendous assertions, ‘that the name of the pope
-is sole in the world,&mdash;that the Romish Church never did err and never
-will err,&mdash;that the pope may depose the emperor, and that all princes
-must kiss his feet.’<a name="FNanchor_409_409" id="FNanchor_409_409"></a><a href="#Footnote_409_409" class="fnanchor">[409]</a> Calvin frequently contended against these
-presumptuous lies,<a name="FNanchor_410_410" id="FNanchor_410_410"></a><a href="#Footnote_410_410" class="fnanchor">[410]</a> and he had done so before this time, at least
-to some extent. On this occasion he made use of a document written
-by a cardinal, a contemporary of Hildebrand, which relates, among
-other things, that that pope, wanting for once <i>to get through his
-incantations</i>, took the bread which he affirmed to be God, and threw
-it into the fire.<a name="FNanchor_411_411" id="FNanchor_411_411"></a><a href="#Footnote_411_411" class="fnanchor">[411]</a> An occasion for the natural exclamation, ‘Say
-now that the bread is your God!’ This story,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span> told by a cardinal at
-the expense of a pope, appears to us to be apocryphal. But it is quite
-true, as we know from the relations which existed between Gregory VII.
-and Berenger, that the famous pontiff had doubts about the doctrine of
-transubstantiation, and that he did not pronounce himself in support
-of it until he perceived that his enemies would take advantage of his
-doubts on the subject to strike a blow at his hierarchical rights and
-supreme authority.</p>
-
-<p>When the debate on the ten theses had been brought to a close, Farel
-entered the pulpit, in the afternoon of Sunday, October 8, and
-delivered the closing discourse. We shall allow the orator to speak
-his own language, although it be not always that of our age, for it
-is essential that the Reformation should be set before us just as
-it actually appeared. Farel was struck with the fact that a band of
-ministers, feeble men and few in number, had been capable, in that
-conflict of eight days, of filling mighty Catholicism with alarm and
-vanquishing it. He remembered, too, how when he arrived at Aigle, at
-Neuchâtel, at Geneva, poor, weak, and contemptible in the eyes of
-many, he had seen the papacy reel and fall down before the Word of
-God. ‘What is it then,’ said he, ‘which makes you tremble, you who are
-a great multitude covering the whole land? What! a poor prophet makes
-his appearance, alone in the face of so many rich men; unknown and
-friendless before so many people who have powerful allies; he knows not
-whither to go, has no one to speak to, while you are all comfortably
-lodged, you all know one another, and fill the whole world with terror.
-Of what then are you afraid? The prophet will not strike you, for he is
-unarmed. When, for one reason or another, a whole city or even a whole
-people revolts against you, you have no fear at all, and you act even
-worse than usual.... Whence is this difference? Is one then more than a
-multitude? The fact is this: With that poor prophet comes the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span> truth,
-the wonderful truth of God, which is mightier than all men, and which,
-whenever it encounters enemies, pursues them, confounds them and puts
-them to flight, while they are unable to make any resistance.’<a name="FNanchor_412_412" id="FNanchor_412_412"></a><a href="#Footnote_412_412" class="fnanchor">[412]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAREL’S CLOSING DISCOURSE.</div>
-
-<p>Farel did not confine himself to giving the solution of the enigma.
-He desired above all to teach consciences and to lead souls to Jesus
-Christ, while he rescued them from the pope. This was the great aim of
-his long life. That is the reason why, in addressing a vast audience,
-he cried out, ‘Come then to Jesus, to Jesus who hath borne our sorrows,
-and trust wholly in him that you may be saved. Abandon the perverse
-doctrines which the pope and his servants teach, the masses and the
-confessions, the absolutions, indulgences, and pardons for life. Run
-no more hither and thither to the broken cisterns. Trust no longer
-in persons so impotent and so cruel; receive neither the pope nor
-Mohammed, nor anyone who assumes to govern you by his own ordinances.
-Hold fast to the sole head, Jesus, who when he entered into the great
-sanctuary, offered to his Father his own blood, thus making peace
-between God and us, so that Christians are made immortal. If you trust
-in the pope you will be put to shame when you hear from the mouth of
-God these words: Who commanded what you have done? You have had the
-popes for your gods.... Go then, and let them save you if they can.
-Then will come upon you great desolation. It is greatly to deceive
-yourselves to seek Jesus Christ in the wafers of the priests, in bread,
-in wine, in flesh, in tears, thorns, nails, wood, shrouds, cloths, and
-all the other mockeries which Rome offers you, which lay low everything
-that is of God. It is in another way, it is in his Spirit, it is by
-faith, that you must seek the Saviour. A church of Jesus, governed
-by its spouse, does not receive all these papal errors; it directs
-poor sinners to God, that he may open their hearts, and that they may
-implore his mercy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>‘Then do not send your wives nor your daughters to those whom you know
-so well. Do not give your souls up to the guidance of men to whom you
-would hardly like to intrust your sheep. Let all go to God, go to him
-with the heart, for it is the heart he asks for and not our money. To
-sing a mass, to mutter prayers and <i>Ave Marias</i> before a piece of wood,
-to make so many journeys hither and thither; these are not what he
-wants of us. He wants us to cling wholly to him alone, and he will save
-us.’</p>
-
-<p>Farel then turning to the priests, of whom there was a large number
-present, said to them, ‘Leave off then, you poor priests, who till
-now have been deceived, and have deceived others, leave off teaching
-that without your confessions, your penances, your satisfactions and
-absolutions, whether made in this world or in the world to come, it is
-not possible to enter into paradise. Lead your sheep to the shepherd
-who gave his life for them. The church of Jesus gets nothing out of all
-your trash. God does not care how you muffle yourselves up, what sort
-of shirts you wear under your gowns, whether your cloaks are bordered
-in the proper way, or whether you keep in good condition the ornaments
-and furnishings of your chapels and altars. To place salvation in these
-outward things is to reverse the doctrine of Jesus, for <i>the kingdom of
-God is within you</i>.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS APPEAL TO THE PRIESTS.</div>
-
-<p>Farel, as he closed his discourse, raised a song of triumph, and
-pointed out that the Reformation did not adopt the weapons of its
-adversaries, but that its method formed the most striking contrast to
-theirs. ‘Many,’ said he, ‘have tried to assail my propositions, but the
-truth has been the strongest. Yet the priests and the monks have been
-subjected to no secret interrogatories; they have not been forbidden
-to speak; they have not been threatened with prison or with death; no
-deathsmen have appeared on the scene to settle the questions before us
-by fire or sword. All have been<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span> kindly invited. All those who wished
-to dispute have been listened to, and no one has taken offence even at
-their frequent repetitions. Receive then the holy doctrine of Jesus
-which has been set before you, and let him alone suffice you. One
-better, wiser, or more powerful, we cannot find. Be Christians; be no
-longer papists.</p>
-
-<p>‘O priests, canons, and monks, if henceforth you have no more the
-honors which you have previously enjoyed, if you should not be so well
-treated and fed, do not on that account destroy yourselves and the poor
-people. Better is it to enter into life eternal with the poor Lazarus
-than go with the rich bad man to hell. Leave, then, your songs and
-your masses, and follow Jesus. Instead of chanting Latin before the
-people, preach to them the sacred Gospel. When some came like brigands
-to kill us, we did not demand vengeance, but grace and forgiveness for
-them. And now we ask that you may be joyfully and tenderly received, as
-wandering sheep returning to the fold.</p>
-
-<p>‘And you, my lords,’ said Farel, addressing the delegates from Berne,
-‘since God has led you to the conquest of this country, and has
-committed its people to you as a child is committed to its father, see
-to it that God be holily honored in the lands which are intrusted to
-your rule. Let not Jesus be to you of less estimation than the poorest
-man in the land. May God touch the hearts of all kings and lords, to
-the end that the poor people may live according to God’s will, without
-war and in peace; that human blood may not be shed; that a man who is
-made in God’s image may not kill his fellow who is made in the same
-image; but that each may love and aid his neighbor as he would that
-his neighbor should aid him. And may all those who have suffered for
-the faith in Jesus be strengthened to persevere even to the end, and
-declare the goodness and the power of God, so that all the earth may
-worship him.’<a name="FNanchor_413_413" id="FNanchor_413_413"></a><a href="#Footnote_413_413" class="fnanchor">[413]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER III.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">EXTENSION OF THE REFORM IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(End of 1536.)</span></h2>
-
-<p>The assembly of Lausanne was a great event for the Vaudois; it was
-talked of in every village. Berne, by her ordinance, ‘that all priests,
-monks, and other people of the Church, whatever they might be, should
-appear,’ had awakened universal attention. While there was one great
-disputation at Lausanne, there were many little ones in the towns and
-villages. They discussed the <i>pros</i> and the <i>cons</i>, and they wondered
-whether the priests on their return would be converted to the <i>new
-faith</i> or not. At Lausanne itself, hardly had a session closed, and
-the crowd passed out of the doors of the beautiful cathedral, than the
-debates were renewed in the streets and in private houses.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RESULTS OF THE CONFERENCE.</div>
-
-<p>The results of the conference were not long in showing themselves.
-Some, like the Cordelier Tandy, owned themselves convinced, took the
-side of the Reformation, and became in their turn its missionaries.
-Ministers and laymen were seen traversing all the land, reporting the
-discussions, showing that the evangelical religion is indeed the true,
-and intensifying the universal excitement. The two deputies sent by
-the parish of Villette, Sordet and Clavel, were so much impressed by
-the truths expounded by Farel and his friends, that they took Viret
-back with them to Cully, that he might preach there. The whole country,
-indeed, was not converted, but the light was penetrating from place to
-place,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span> even into the remotest corners. Not only was there the bright
-flame in those fair regions, but there was also the warmth, which was
-further diffused than the light, quickening and transforming hearts.</p>
-
-<p>At Lausanne itself the first effect of the disputation was remarkable,
-and showed clearly that morals were quite as much as doctrine the
-business of the Reformation, and that they were possibly its most
-distinctive characteristic. Only two days after the close of the
-disputation, on October 10, the council, very much engrossed by the
-great event which had just taken place, resolved ‘to destroy once
-for all the houses of ill-fame which existed in the town,’ to drive
-away the foul women who lived in them, as well as all others who were
-known to be leading an evil life. On Thursday, October 12, the order
-given to those ‘unfortunates’ to quit the city and the bailiwick was
-published with sound of trumpet in all the streets.<a name="FNanchor_414_414" id="FNanchor_414_414"></a><a href="#Footnote_414_414" class="fnanchor">[414]</a> It has been
-said that morals are the science of man.<a name="FNanchor_415_415" id="FNanchor_415_415"></a><a href="#Footnote_415_415" class="fnanchor">[415]</a> The Lausannese edileship
-thought that they were especially the science of the magistrate.
-Those discussions, in which justification by faith had been the chief
-subject in question, had for their first consequence works of Christian
-morality. This proceeding of the magistrates gave great joy to those
-who had taken part in the disputation. They saw in it the apology for
-their doctrine. ‘When justification by faith is spoken of,’ remarks
-one of them,<a name="FNanchor_416_416" id="FNanchor_416_416"></a><a href="#Footnote_416_416" class="fnanchor">[416]</a> ‘the mind of man takes the matter the wrong way,
-and is shocked, like a ship which, instead of keeping to the right
-course marked out for it, drives on to strike first on one rock then
-on another. The death of Christ is efficacious for extinguishing the
-evil of our flesh, and his resurrection for originating in us a new
-condition of better nature.’</p>
-
-<p>The people drew from the disputation another consequence. The most
-ardent even of the reformers had,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span> while the debates lasted, tolerated
-the images in the cathedral. Viret had shown that God prohibited
-them, and that they turn men away from the true service of God. ‘The
-priests,’ he had said, ‘for their convenience set in their own place
-preachers of wood and of stone, the images, arraying them in rich
-garments at the cost of the poor. And as for themselves, they sleep,
-they make good cheer, and are free from care. These images are their
-vicars, they do their work, and they cost nothing to feed. And the poor
-people are stupefied and kiss the wood and the stone.’<a name="FNanchor_417_417" id="FNanchor_417_417"></a><a href="#Footnote_417_417" class="fnanchor">[417]</a> No one had
-answered Viret. It was in vain that the defenders of images had been
-invited to come forward; not one appeared. For the reformed it seemed
-therefore a legitimate course to remove them from the cathedral. A
-sinister rumor of this project alarmed the canons, and they resolved to
-do their utmost to resist the impious proceeding. They took the keys
-of the cathedral and, running to the sacred edifice, closed the doors
-that no one might be able to carry off the objects of their veneration.
-In spite of all their precautions one of the images was removed. The
-fact was immediately noised over the town. The most grievous blow had
-just fallen on our great Lady of Lausanne! The reformed honored the
-mother of the Saviour as a blessed woman, but they refused to make a
-goddess of her. The clamor and threats of the priests recalled to mind
-the cries of the worshippers of Diana at Ephesus, spoken of in the Acts
-of the Apostles, who said, ‘The temple of the great goddess Diana is
-in danger of being despised and her magnificence of being destroyed,
-whom all Asia and the world worshippeth.’<a name="FNanchor_418_418" id="FNanchor_418_418"></a><a href="#Footnote_418_418" class="fnanchor">[418]</a> The canons not feeling
-themselves strong enough for the occasion, betook themselves to the
-council, gave up to them the keys of the cathedral, and implored them
-to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span> protect the building and what it contained.<a name="FNanchor_419_419" id="FNanchor_419_419"></a><a href="#Footnote_419_419" class="fnanchor">[419]</a> But the reformed,
-who earnestly longed to see worship given to God alone, turned their
-back on those figures of wood and stone:</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Dès maintenant, trompeuse idole,</div>
- <div>D’un culte honteux et frivole,</div>
- <div>Nous n’entourons plus tes autels.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BERNESE ORDINANCES.</div>
-
-<p>It was the intention of the authorities to oppose the arbitrary removal
-of images by private persons. But these same authorities lost no time
-in suppressing them by their own act throughout the country. A few days
-later, Thursday, October 19, the chief magistrate and the councillors
-of Berne addressed all their trusty subjects of Vaud, and announced
-to them by proclamation that being bound to govern them not only by
-means of ‘corporal and outward ordinances, but also by exercising all
-diligence to see that they walked according to the will of God, in
-the true and living faith which brings forth good works; considering
-that the ten conclusions which had been discussed at Lausanne were
-based on Holy Scripture, they enjoined everyone to abstain from all
-papistical ceremonies, sacrifices, and institutions; to cast down
-all images and idols, as well as the altars, and this in an orderly
-manner without disturbance; to hear the Word of God, to receive the
-preachers with kindness, and not to molest and worry them, so that all
-may dwell together in true peace, brotherly love and union.’<a name="FNanchor_420_420" id="FNanchor_420_420"></a><a href="#Footnote_420_420" class="fnanchor">[420]</a> These
-ordinances in the matter of religion and worship would seem strange in
-our day; and we might wonder whether such would be tolerated even in
-Japan. But they were in accordance with the spirit of that time, and
-the rulers of Berne were doing their best.</p>
-
-<p>The Reformation achieved greater triumphs still than the abolition of
-images. It could count souls won to the Gospel, not only among the
-general population<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span> of the country, but also among the very champions
-of Rome who had encountered Farel. The amiable captain of the youth,
-Ferdinand de Loys, embraced the glorious promises of the Gospel,
-and subsequently exerted himself with great earnestness to maintain
-Protestantism in France. Moreover, a brilliant testimony to his zeal
-was given him. Soubise sent him grateful acknowledgment, as well on his
-own behalf as on behalf of the prince of Condé, the Admiral (Coligny)
-and other princes and lords.<a name="FNanchor_421_421" id="FNanchor_421_421"></a><a href="#Footnote_421_421" class="fnanchor">[421]</a> By arrangement with the lords of
-Berne, Valais, and Neuchâtel, he had sent to him some men; these men
-(<i>gens</i>), however, we must add, appear to have been not evangelists but
-soldiers. A priest who had taken part in the defence of the papacy, but
-who had been convinced by the powerful words of the reformers, Dom Jean
-Drogy, also embraced the evangelical faith. He became afterwards pastor
-at Bevay in the territory of Neuchâtel. Megander, too, wrote on October
-19, to the ministers of Zurich, ‘The disputation of Lausanne has had
-the happiest results.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAROLI AND VIRET.</div>
-
-<p>These successes encouraged the friends of the Reform, and the Bernese
-government demanded of the authorities of Lausanne the definitive
-establishment of the evangelical faith and worship. The canons opposed
-the measure with all their energy, alleging that reverence is due to
-all old customs and religions; they conjured the rulers of Lausanne
-not to allow their city to be faithless to Rome. At the same time they
-sent deputies to Berne. But the council was already treating with the
-lords of Berne, partly swayed by conviction and partly by prudence.
-The Bernese were disposed to grant various rights, advantages, and
-privileges to their new subjects, on condition of their renouncing the
-foreign authority of the pope, with which they well knew that it was
-impossible to be on good terms, and of their receiving the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span> Gospel,
-which enlightens the mind, gives peace to the soul, and promotes the
-prosperity of nations. They knew also that in order to persuade men, it
-is necessary to act kindly towards them. Consequently, on November 1, a
-contract was concluded at Berne, by virtue of which their excellencies
-conceded to the burgesses of Lausanne the higher, middle, and lower
-jurisdiction in civil and criminal causes, various convents and abbeys,
-the châlet and the mill of Gobet, and certain vineyards. With these
-gifts the Bernese coupled the promise that, as soon as ‘popery and
-its mummery should be abolished,’ their excellencies would exercise
-generosity towards the priests. This <i>grande largition</i> was read on the
-5th of the same month in grand council at Lausanne, and was solemnly
-ratified. Meanwhile the chiefs of Berne presented, November 5, to the
-chiefs of Lausanne, as first pastor, Caroli, who was a doctor of the
-Sorbonne, and whose fluent talk and engaging manners prepossessed men
-in his favor. At this choice the friends of the Gospel were indignant.
-Viret, who had for so many years labored for the diffusion of the
-light in his own country, and had done so with perfect earnestness,
-wisdom, and self-renunciation, at the risk of his life&mdash;Viret, the
-true Vaudois reformer&mdash;saw this new man, unfit as he was for the work
-to be done, preferred to himself. The pastors of Geneva wrote to
-Lausanne&mdash;‘Everyone knows the labors, the faith, the zeal of Viret,
-and we are astonished to learn that they are treating him in that
-way. We cannot endure it without complaining. If ever it becomes us
-to be indignant, surely it is on this occasion.’<a name="FNanchor_422_422" id="FNanchor_422_422"></a><a href="#Footnote_422_422" class="fnanchor">[422]</a> The Bernese
-lords settled Caroli comfortably in the house of the canon Benoît de
-Pontareuse, which had beautiful gardens in which he might philosophize
-and entertain himself as Epicurus did of old. They assigned him,
-besides, an annual salary of five hundred florins. His wife displayed
-a degree of luxury which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span> was offensive. Viret was joined with him
-as second pastor, but no tithe was assigned to him, nor any means of
-living. De Watteville contented himself with requesting him to show
-respect for the great merit of his colleague. The Bernese, however,
-very soon discovered that they had been mistaken in this matter. They
-therefore wrote to Viret, December 1, that since he was already well
-acquainted with the country, and Caroli was a sort of novice, they
-advised him to give Caroli a gratuity, ‘advancement and service,
-and this by way of charity.’<a name="FNanchor_423_423" id="FNanchor_423_423"></a><a href="#Footnote_423_423" class="fnanchor">[423]</a> This was not giving Viret a sort
-of guardianship of Caroli, as has been said. On the contrary, Farel
-complained a few days later that it was difficult to say whether the
-Bernese or the Lausannese cared least for Viret.<a name="FNanchor_424_424" id="FNanchor_424_424"></a><a href="#Footnote_424_424" class="fnanchor">[424]</a> The Bernese
-merely admitted that the Vaudois reformer, being a native of the
-country, had more experience of its customs, ‘of the popular way of
-doing things.’ Viret subsequently received a lodging in the Franciscan
-convent, with a salary of thirty florins and a certain allowance of
-wine and wheat. It was not one-third of the pay of Caroli. Some of the
-reformed lent furniture to the humble minister for his room, because he
-had no means of buying any.<a name="FNanchor_425_425" id="FNanchor_425_425"></a><a href="#Footnote_425_425" class="fnanchor">[425]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REFORM AT VEVEY.</div>
-
-<p>Of all the districts of the Pays de Vaud, Vevey, a town situated in
-that lovely region which, at the extremity of the lake of Geneva, is
-so rich both in grace and in brilliancy, appears to have been the most
-inclined to embrace the Reform. For eight years past Aigle and the
-surrounding villages had heard the Gospel by the ministry of Farel.
-The ministers who came and went from Berne to Aigle, and from Aigle
-to Berne, passed through Vevey, and left light behind them in their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span>
-passage. Moreover, there was frequent intercourse between the people of
-the government of Aigle and the people of Vevey. One historian worthy
-of credit is even led to believe that the dean Michod and the regent J.
-Mimard returned from Lausanne to their own town convinced of the truth
-of the theses which they had at first attacked.<a name="FNanchor_426_426" id="FNanchor_426_426"></a><a href="#Footnote_426_426" class="fnanchor">[426]</a> Even if they were
-not themselves much troubled, they might by their narrations awaken
-in the people the desire to become acquainted with the Gospel which
-had been proclaimed with so much life by Farel, Viret, and Calvin. At
-that epoch of the Reformation there was no other public disputation at
-which so large a number of the champions of papal dogmas passed over to
-the banner of the Gospel. The men of Vevey spontaneously asked for a
-pastor; and one was sent them, November 24, whose name was Daillé. This
-name became distinguished in the seventeenth century as that of one of
-the most learned ministers of the Reformed Churches.</p>
-
-<p>The Gospel met with opposition in the district of La Vaux, which lies
-between Vevey and Lausanne. At a consultative meeting, held October
-15, the deputies of La Vaux had demanded a general assembly, and had
-declared that they would oppose ‘any innovation in the churches.’ Those
-of Lutry, a small town bordering on Lausanne, were of the same mind.
-But when the bailiff of Lausanne came three days after to dine there,
-the wind began to change. The magistrates, flattered with this visit,
-offered him with high compliments the wine of honor (<i>vin d’honneur</i>);
-and all their zeal was limited to getting the papacy buried in the most
-decorous manner possible. When the bailiff presented himself, November
-2, to burn the images and destroy the altars, the municipal officers
-demanded permission to remove them themselves, desiring to do it with
-more delicacy. They caused the <i>Corpus Domini</i> to be carried into the
-<i>Grotto</i>,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span> where they gave it an honorable position, and lighted lamps
-just as if it were in the church. They also put there the vessel of
-holy water, covering it up carefully. Some weeks later, January 16,
-1537, there appeared, on the part of Berne, one Matthieu de la Croix,
-a converted monk, a man of discretion and benevolence. He said to the
-council, ‘I offer to preach, if you approve it, and even to preach
-every day if you will assent to it; and further, when any one dies I
-will deliver a sermon for the consolation of the family.’ Anxious still
-more powerfully to work upon their hearts, he added, ‘I propose that a
-request be addressed to the lords of Berne in favor of the poor.’ One
-might fancy that De la Croix did nothing more than put in practice the
-proverb, <i>More flies are to be caught with honey than with vinegar</i>.
-But there is nothing to show that his gracious way did not proceed
-from a sincere charity. This zeal for their commune touched the hearts
-of the Lutry people, and they accepted the ministry of this man of
-goodwill, and at the same time added to their acceptance the express
-request to Berne to maintain the poor. On February 8, 1537, the church
-was cleansed, and the stones of the altar were removed to a place
-apart.<a name="FNanchor_427_427" id="FNanchor_427_427"></a><a href="#Footnote_427_427" class="fnanchor">[427]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SEARCH FOR MINISTERS.</div>
-
-<p>The great transformation was being effected in the whole country. The
-lords of Berne, understanding, doubtless, that their hands were not
-the right ones for the task, had wisely intrusted to Farel the care
-of providing for the spiritual wants of the people. Unfortunately it
-was not a very easy matter. ‘He looked round on all sides for faithful
-ministers, but could hardly find any.’ The nomination of Caroli by
-the Bernese magistrates had annoyed him. He was afraid that men who
-preached in its purity the cross of Christ would not be accepted.
-‘They do not care much for those who preach Jesus Christ purely, and
-they praise to the skies braggarts and hypocrites.’ However, he was
-not disheart<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span>ened. ‘Write,’ said he to his friend Fabri, ‘beseech,
-come to our aid; send us competent men.’ One circumstance, unhappy
-in itself, facilitated Farel’s work. Persecution was driving many
-evangelical Christians out of France; and these men, full of love for
-the faith which they had confessed in their native land, rejoiced
-in the opportunity of preaching it in the beautiful valley of the
-Leman. Farel, who was at that time the real bishop of these churches,
-was indefatigable in his inquiries. As soon as he had found any
-pious ministers, he recommended them to the lords of Berne, and the
-bailiffs settled them in the various parishes. But as there were not
-ministers enough for all, the same pastor had frequently to preach in
-three different churches. A few priests were called to the ministry,
-who did not seem to be mere deserters, with Christ on the lips only.
-These were, in addition to those already mentioned, Tissot, Gredat,
-Goudot, Meige, Malingre de la Molière, Motin, and Jacques d’Yverdon.
-Some others also took charge of souls. Dubois was sent to Payerne, Du
-Rivier to Moudon, Le Coq to Morges, J. Vallier to Aubonne, Melchior
-d’Yvonant to Rolle, Morand to Nyon, Furet to Coppet, Colomb to Concise,
-Masuyer to Cossonay, Epilon to Yvonant, and Eustache André (also named
-Fortunat), to Cully.<a name="FNanchor_428_428" id="FNanchor_428_428"></a><a href="#Footnote_428_428" class="fnanchor">[428]</a> For the most part they were foreigners. Some
-of them had attended the disputation, and had been gained over by the
-Christian eloquence of Farel, Viret, and Calvin. But whether they came
-from the battle of Lausanne or from the ruder battles of France, they
-all desired to publish the good news of the Gospel; and some of them
-were inflamed with a zeal so ardent that ‘that one passion swallowed
-up all others.’ They were well aware that they would have to face a
-keen opposition; but ‘they were going willingly to offer their heads,
-to receive all the obloquy which evil-minded men cast on God.’ The
-following is the formula, somewhat free in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span> character, which the lords
-of Berne usually employed in their letters to these evangelists:&mdash;‘Have
-ordered that thou, forthwith on receiving these presents, go to our
-bailiff of&mdash;&mdash;, who will present thee to our subjects of &mdash;&mdash;, and then
-thou wilt exercise the office of minister of the Gospel, according to
-the grace which God has given thee.’ The bailiffs, for the purpose
-of preparing people’s minds, went frequently beforehand with Viret
-and other ministers into parishes that were to be provided for. They
-preached and endeavored to make evident the great benefits of the
-Reformation. But there was many a village in which the curé endeavored
-to keep the people away from the sermon, excited his friends, who threw
-stones at those who were hearers, and did the worst they could.<a name="FNanchor_429_429" id="FNanchor_429_429"></a><a href="#Footnote_429_429" class="fnanchor">[429]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">TRIALS OF FABRI.</div>
-
-<p>Farel persevered in his exertions, exhorting and consoling. Fabri,
-pastor at Thonon, in the Chablais, had to pass through trials of
-special severity. He wrote to Farel, ‘I cannot tell you how cruel are
-the crosses which so violent an opposition lays upon me.’ Farel was
-prompt to offer him consolation, and he shows in his answer how well he
-had himself learnt to profit by the blows struck at him by the enemies
-of the Gospel. ‘There is no ground for dejection,’ said he, ‘although
-so many distresses weigh on you. It is in this way that the Lord
-teaches us to depend entirely on him, and to call down by our sighing
-the favor of our heavenly Father, which we are so backward to do.’ At
-the same time Farel communicated to his friend his own experiences, and
-made fresh allusion to the case of Caroli and Viret, which appears to
-have greatly troubled him. ‘I am bidden,’ he said, ‘to call ministers
-from all quarters, but where to find them I cannot tell. People slight
-those who are the fittest, and who always breathe Jesus Christ; but
-they exalt to the skies those who are mere masks,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span> and breathe nothing
-but arrogance. Some ministers, of too fastidious taste, are unwilling
-to come into this country; they would rather bury themselves in the
-tombs of Egypt than eat manna in the desert and be led by the pillar of
-fire.’<a name="FNanchor_430_430" id="FNanchor_430_430"></a><a href="#Footnote_430_430" class="fnanchor">[430]</a> At the same time that Farel wrote to Fabri at the foot of
-the Alps, he wrote also to Hugues, pastor of Gex, at the foot of the
-Jura. ‘Act with firmness,’ he said to him, ‘but with wisdom and without
-passion. Put forward weighty proofs drawn from Scripture, and let your
-words always be accompanied with the moderation of Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_431_431" id="FNanchor_431_431"></a><a href="#Footnote_431_431" class="fnanchor">[431]</a> He
-wrote likewise to many others. Calvin began at this time to exercise
-the functions pertaining to the government of the Church. A minister,
-Denis Lambert, formerly a monk, but who having been since 1534 pastor
-in the country of Neuchâtel, had been chosen almoner to the little army
-which marched in 1534 to the aid of Geneva, and fought the battle of
-Gingins, had been settled by the Bernese as pastor in the neighborhood
-of that town. He had remained full of monkery (<i>moinerie</i>), and he
-had a wife of sorry reputation; so that their life and their manners
-might ruin, but could not build up the Church. Some better ministers,
-particularly Henry de la Mare, having been preferred to him, he flew
-into a great rage at a colloquy held at the beginning of December,
-1536. ‘Everybody persecutes me,’ he exclaimed; ‘it is not on the part
-of men that I am sent!’ And he loaded his colleagues with insults,
-threats, and innumerable calumnies. ‘Truly,’ said Farel, ‘the man
-speaks like a Mars or a Bacchus.’<a name="FNanchor_432_432" id="FNanchor_432_432"></a><a href="#Footnote_432_432" class="fnanchor">[432]</a> ‘It is not I,’ Farel said to
-him, ‘that made you a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span> preacher; I always suspected you too much.’
-‘No,’ replied Denis, ‘I was sent by the Bernese, and we shall see
-whether you dare resist them.’ Calvin then rose to speak, and we must
-notice it as the first occasion of his taking part in the government of
-the Church. He entreated Denis in the name of them all to resign the
-holy ministry, promised that he should be provided for. Denis cared
-nothing for this young doctor, and refused to comply with his request.
-Farel desired to separate him from the population to which his life was
-a scandal. The Bernese bailiff of Thonon thought that Denis was monk
-from head to foot, and that he ought to be relegated to the convent of
-the Augustinians of that town.</p>
-
-<p>Although they were influenced quite as much by political as by
-religious motives, and made some mistakes, as in the case of Caroli,
-the lords of Berne neglected no means of enlightening the Vaudois, and
-of leading them to accept with their heart the evangelical doctrines.
-They enjoined on all fathers and mothers, all pastors and bailiffs,
-the duty of seeing that children were well instructed according to the
-Gospel. Without going so far as to say, as some have alleged, that
-education is everything, the Bernese did believe that <i>if a child be
-trained up in the way he should go, he will not depart from it</i>.<a name="FNanchor_433_433" id="FNanchor_433_433"></a><a href="#Footnote_433_433" class="fnanchor">[433]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BERNESE EDICT OF REFORMATION.</div>
-
-<p>To crown its work, the council of Berne made, on Christmas eve,
-December 24, 1536, a complete edict of reformation for its new
-territories; and at the beginning of 1537 it caused proclamation to be
-made in all the country that the ministers were to preach purely the
-Word of God; that they were to celebrate only two sacraments, baptism
-and the supper; that it was lawful to eat flesh at any time; that
-ecclesiastics were not forbidden to marry; that all popish ceremonies,
-masses, processions, lustrations, pilgrimages, and ringing of bells
-for the dead and for bad weather, were abolished.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span> These were followed
-by many ordinances against gluttony, drunkenness, impurity, adultery,
-blasphemy, gaming, military service abroad, and dancing. Three modest
-dances for marriage festivals were, however, conceded.<a name="FNanchor_434_434" id="FNanchor_434_434"></a><a href="#Footnote_434_434" class="fnanchor">[434]</a> Priests
-and monks were at liberty to remain in the country, where they
-received fitting allowances, or if they preferred it, to withdraw
-into a Catholic country. The canons of Lausanne having no wish to be
-witnesses of such a reform, took the latter course. They crossed the
-lake and settled at Evian. The sisters of Sainte-Claire of Vevey did
-the same.<a name="FNanchor_435_435" id="FNanchor_435_435"></a><a href="#Footnote_435_435" class="fnanchor">[435]</a></p>
-
-<p>Calvin and the other ministers of Geneva and its neighborhood watched
-with interest the changes which were taking place in the Pays de Vaud.
-But they did not conceal from themselves how much there still remained
-to do. On October 13, Calvin, before he started for Berne, whither
-he was summoned, wrote from Lausanne to one of his friends&mdash;‘Already
-in many places the idols and the altars of the papacy have begun to
-totter, and I hope that ere long all the superstitions that still
-prevail will be abolished. The Lord grant that idolatry may be
-altogether uprooted in all hearts.’<a name="FNanchor_436_436" id="FNanchor_436_436"></a><a href="#Footnote_436_436" class="fnanchor">[436]</a> These words characterize the
-condition of the Pays de Vaud at that epoch.</p>
-
-<p>On November 21, 1536, a conference was held at Geneva, at which the
-pastors of the surrounding districts appear to have been present. Those
-of the Pays de Gex and of the Chablais undoubtedly attended.<a name="FNanchor_437_437" id="FNanchor_437_437"></a><a href="#Footnote_437_437" class="fnanchor">[437]</a> A
-letter addressed by the conference to their brethren of Lausanne and
-of Vaud sufficiently refutes the calumnies<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span> cast upon the Reformation,
-and shows to what extent the reformers took heed of the purity of
-the Church. ‘The pontifical tyranny has been overthrown,’ they said;
-‘silence has been imposed upon the monks, because of their doctrines
-and their unchaste lives. Brethren, take heed lest another tyranny
-erect itself in place of the former. See that order and discipline be
-maintained among you, and everything that becomes a holy assembly. To
-that end seek your directions, not from any pontiff, nor in the rites
-of the pope, but from Jesus Christ and in his Word.... Examine with
-the utmost care the brethren whom you accept as pastors; see that
-their doctrine be pure and their lives spotless. Inform yourselves
-even of their family and the family of their wives, as St. Paul
-enjoins. Without such care you will prepare your own ruin and that of
-your people. As for ceremonies, let them be wholesome. Exercise your
-Christian liberty, but in such a way as to cause offence to no one.’
-The pastors of Geneva, they said, had received two letters in which
-they found no Christian charity or moderation at all, but which savored
-of pontifical authority. This passage doubtless refers to Caroli.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">THE REFORM AT GENEVA.&mdash;FORMULARY OF FAITH AND OF DISCIPLINE.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(End of 1536&ndash;1537.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LIBERTY AND AUTHORITY.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin had displayed at Lausanne a steadfastness in the faith, and
-a faculty of unfolding his views, which attracted more and more
-attention to him. Bucer and Capito, in reading his <i>Institution</i>,
-had already recognized the lofty reach of his intellect, and they
-eagerly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span> desired to have a conference with him on the evangelical
-doctrine. They both wrote to him on December 1. ‘We acknowledge,’ said
-Bucer, ‘that it is the Lord’s will to make use of you abundantly for
-the good of our churches, and to make your ministry greatly useful.
-We desire to be in agreement with you in all things, and we will go
-to meet you wherever you please.’<a name="FNanchor_438_438" id="FNanchor_438_438"></a><a href="#Footnote_438_438" class="fnanchor">[438]</a> Thus, then, the Strasburgers
-acknowledged in Calvin a vocation for all the churches. They saw in him
-the reformer. The author of the <i>Institution</i> had in fact conceived
-an ideal of a Church which was to take the place of the papacy&mdash;an
-ideal difficult, perhaps impossible of realization in this world, but
-to which he desired that Geneva should make as near an approach as
-possible. Luther had announced with power the doctrine of remission of
-sins, without concerning himself much about the constitution of the
-Church. That doctrine, by penetrating the hearts of men, was to form
-the congregation of the Lord. The great aim of Calvin was certainly to
-proclaim before everything, like Luther, the redemption accomplished
-by Jesus Christ, and the salvation which it gives; but he sought also,
-more than the German reformer, to found a faithful Church, which, being
-quickened and sanctified by the virtue of God’s word and the grace
-of the Holy Spirit, should truly be the body of the Lord. Zwingli
-had also busied himself with this subject; but there is an important
-difference between the labors of the reformers of Zurich and Geneva.
-At Zurich, Zwingli had looked downward: it was the people, so far as
-they believed in the Scriptures, who were the foundation of the Church.
-Calvin, on the other hand, looked upward, and placed the origin and the
-subsistence of the Church in God himself. At Zurich, the Church existed
-by the will of the reformed majority of the nation; at Geneva, it was
-the will and the Word of God that formed it. At Zurich, the <i>fulcrum</i>
-was in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span> liberty; at Geneva, in authority. Both of these are salutary;
-but each has its own danger. The best system is that in which authority
-and liberty are combined; but this is not always easy to realize.</p>
-
-<p>After Calvin’s return from the disputation of Lausanne, he resumed
-his lectures and expositions of St. Paul’s Epistles in the church of
-St. Peter. These lectures were well attended, and created an interest
-which continually increased. Ere long, the superiority of the young
-doctor and of his teaching, at once so profound and so animated,
-excited in the Genevese the desire that he should definitely settle
-among them. Towards the close of the year 1536, the office of pastor
-was added to that of doctor. ‘He was elected and declared such in that
-church by regular election and approbation.’<a name="FNanchor_439_439" id="FNanchor_439_439"></a><a href="#Footnote_439_439" class="fnanchor">[439]</a> Calvin, at a later
-period, felt bound to insist, in his letter to Cardinal Sadoleto,
-on the regularity of that call. ‘In the first place,’ said he, ‘I
-discharged in that church the office of reader, and afterwards that of
-minister and pastor. And as far as regards my undertaking the second
-charge, I maintain for my right that I did so lawfully and by a regular
-call.’<a name="FNanchor_440_440" id="FNanchor_440_440"></a><a href="#Footnote_440_440" class="fnanchor">[440]</a></p>
-
-<p>Calvin had not forgotten France, and he never did forget her. He had
-himself just instigated an intervention<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span> of several German and Swiss
-towns in favor of the French Protestants. It was doubtless on this
-subject that he wrote from Lausanne to his friend François Daniel,
-October 13, 1536: ‘To-morrow, if the Lord will, I am going to Berne,
-respecting a business of which I will speak to you another time. I am
-afraid that it may even be necessary for me to go as far as Basel,
-notwithstanding the state of my health and the present ungenial
-season.’<a name="FNanchor_441_441" id="FNanchor_441_441"></a><a href="#Footnote_441_441" class="fnanchor">[441]</a> But nevertheless, without forgetting his old country, he
-attached himself to his new one. That republic appeared to suit his
-taste. Having become pastor at Geneva, he gave his attention to what
-he had to do in order to substitute for the Church of the pope a real
-evangelical Church.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE INDIVIDUAL AND SOCIETY.</div>
-
-<p>Farel, Viret, and Froment had begun the work at the right end. In
-building a temple the first process is the cutting of the stones one by
-one. Science has sometimes disparaged the individual. She has said, ‘An
-individual, of whatsoever species it be, is nothing to the universe;
-a hundred individuals, or a thousand, they are still nothing.’<a name="FNanchor_442_442" id="FNanchor_442_442"></a><a href="#Footnote_442_442" class="fnanchor">[442]</a>
-It is not so with individuals that have souls. Christ anticipated
-and refuted these audacious assertions when he said, ‘What shall it
-profit a man if he gain the whole world and lose his own soul?’ It
-was by the conversion of individuals (Cornelius, Lydia, &amp;c.) that the
-Apostles established the Christian religion in the world; and it was
-by proceeding in the same way that Farel and his friends laid the
-foundations of Reform. Calvin, while appreciating this work, felt
-nevertheless that another was necessary. After analysis must come
-synthesis; and after the individual, society. Catholicism neglected
-the individual, and concerned<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span> itself almost exclusively with society.
-The Gospel proceeds otherwise. Farel had been everywhere, enlightening
-minds one by one with the torch of the Word. It was now needful to bind
-together the souls thus enlightened. The Christian individual must
-first be created, afterwards the Christian Church. The Reformation
-had begun in Geneva with the law of life. Another law, the law of
-unity, must now be fulfilled. Calvin was alarmed when he considered
-the state of Geneva. ‘When I first came into this town,’ said he,
-‘there was as it were nothing&mdash;no morals, no discipline, no life.
-Preaching went on, and that was all. To be sure they burnt the idols,
-but there was no reformation at all.’<a name="FNanchor_443_443" id="FNanchor_443_443"></a><a href="#Footnote_443_443" class="fnanchor">[443]</a> This judgment is perhaps
-too severe. It was twenty-eight years after the time referred to that
-Calvin thus expressed himself; and the ‘wonderful conflicts’ which he
-had been engaged in may possibly have led him to depict in too dark
-colors the church which Farel had left to him. Be that as it may,
-Calvin, while attaching the utmost importance to individual conversion,
-was profoundly convinced that a task of another kind remained to be
-achieved. We find that the same conviction possessed Luther when he
-returned to Wittenberg after his confinement in the Wartburg. It is the
-conviction that upon the revolutionary principle (and the revolution,
-we must admit, had been necessary and admirable) the conservative
-principle must erect itself.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DIVISION AMONG THE HUGUENOTS.</div>
-
-<p>When a brilliant victory is won, we usually find, both in the world
-and in the Church, that a number of men gather around the victor who
-have indeed something in common with him, but who have at the same
-time characters and propensities opposed to his own. All who muster
-and fight under the same flag, however, have not always the same
-thoughts and the same affections as the brave warrior who hoists the
-flag. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span> Genevese, who were designated by the name of Huguenots,
-had declared for the Reformation because it attacked the abuses and
-the superstitions of popery, and because, in bidding them prove all
-things, it restored to them those privileges of free men of which Rome
-had robbed them; many had also been attracted by the love of novelty,
-others by the prospect of a new career opened to their ambition. There
-were doubtless a certain number of citizens who sincerely agreed with
-the Reformation, with the faith which it professed, and with the morals
-which it prescribed; but they did not form the most numerous class. In
-any expedition of great daring, and which exposes to many toils and
-privations, we know that many of the soldiers quit the standard under
-which they first ranked themselves; so it was inevitable that a large
-number of the Genevese would abandon the flag around which they had
-rallied, and would place themselves in opposition to the leaders whom
-at first they had followed. Calvin was not long in observing this.
-‘The abomination of papistry,’ said he, ‘is now cut down by the power
-of the Word.<a name="FNanchor_444_444" id="FNanchor_444_444"></a><a href="#Footnote_444_444" class="fnanchor">[444]</a> The senate has decreed that its superstitions, with
-all their <i>paraphernalia</i>, shall be suppressed, and that religion
-shall be regulated in the city according to the purity of the Gospel.
-However, the form of the Church does not appear to us to be such as the
-legitimate exercise of our office requires. Whatever others may think,
-we for our part cannot imagine that our ministry ought to be anything
-so slight as that when once we have preached our sermon, we have
-nothing to do but to fold our arms, like people that have done their
-task.’</p>
-
-<p>Calvin’s first thought for insuring a prosperous state of things in
-Geneva&mdash;and this deserves to be noticed&mdash;was that it was essential to
-pay great attention to Christian instruction. He had no sooner returned
-from his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span> journey than he began to draw up a catechism, to which he
-added a confession of faith.<a name="FNanchor_445_445" id="FNanchor_445_445"></a><a href="#Footnote_445_445" class="fnanchor">[445]</a> Although his own word was full of
-force and authority, it was to the understanding, to the conscience,
-and to conviction that he appealed. The Holy Scriptures possessed in
-his eyes an infallible authority to which every soul of man is bound
-to submit. Nevertheless, he did not mean that men were to submit in a
-slavish manner, as Rome required; He would have them understand the
-Holy Scriptures in order that they might grasp their truth and beauty.
-‘It is mere nothing,’ said he, ‘that words are thrown out, until
-our minds are enlightened by the gift of intelligence. If we cannot
-comprehend with our own understanding and know what is right, how
-should our will suffice to obey?’<a name="FNanchor_446_446" id="FNanchor_446_446"></a><a href="#Footnote_446_446" class="fnanchor">[446]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was not difficult for the author of the <i>Institution Chrétienne</i> to
-compose, according to the same notions, a book designed for religious
-instruction. Calvin therefore prepared a catechism in French, which was
-not divided into question and answer. It seemed, from the way in which
-it was drawn up, less fitted to be placed in the hands of children than
-of masters, as a clue; or rather in the hands of adults, to aid their
-attempts after self-instruction. It appears, nevertheless, that the
-book was also used by children. It has hitherto been found impossible
-to discover a single copy of it. It is conjectured that the leaves of
-the book were used up, being torn out with the wear and tear of daily
-lessons, as frequently happens still with school-books.<a name="FNanchor_447_447" id="FNanchor_447_447"></a><a href="#Footnote_447_447" class="fnanchor">[447]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN’S CATECHISM.</div>
-
-<p>A Latin translation of the catechism appeared at Basel in 1538.<a name="FNanchor_448_448" id="FNanchor_448_448"></a><a href="#Footnote_448_448" class="fnanchor">[448]</a>
-This catechism reveals in its first lines the true thought, the real
-mind of Calvin. We say<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span> the real mind, because it is very different
-from that attributed to Calvin by so many men who are filled with
-prejudices, and for whom the word <i>Calvinism</i> is like a scarecrow set
-up on the top of a pole in the fields to frighten timid birds. ‘There
-is not a man in existence,’ said he, ‘no matter how uncivilized he be,
-no matter though his heart be altogether savage, that is destitute of
-the religious sentiment. It is certain that the end for which we were
-created is to know the majesty of our Creator, and to embrace him when
-known, and to adore him with all fear, love, and reverence.’<a name="FNanchor_449_449" id="FNanchor_449_449"></a><a href="#Footnote_449_449" class="fnanchor">[449]</a> Of
-course this declaration does not show that Calvin was blind to the
-evil that is in humanity. It does not prevent his declaring that ‘the
-heart of man, which the poison of sin has penetrated to its inmost
-depths, sins, not because it is constrained by necessity, but because
-the will impels him to it.’ Calvin afterwards expounds, with the hand
-of a master, the three great articles of the Christian Church&mdash;the
-Decalogue, the Apostles’ Creed, and the Lord’s Prayer. But this is not
-the place for a copy of his exposition.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin, at the same time that he provided instruction for the young,
-interested himself warmly in the character of the men and women who
-were called to become members of the Church of God. As he longed for
-a pure Church, his first care was to ascertain the purity of faith
-and life of those who composed it. The great diversity of religious
-opinions which then prevailed in Geneva troubled him, for he knew
-that <i>every house divided against itself shall not stand</i>. ‘How,’
-said he, ‘can we receive into a Church of the Gospel people who,
-for all we know, may not have renounced papistical idolatries and
-superstitions?’<a name="FNanchor_450_450" id="FNanchor_450_450"></a><a href="#Footnote_450_450" class="fnanchor">[450]</a> The members composing a Church ought, in his
-judgment, to be united by a bond both holy and strong. As Geneva had to
-contend against the Goliath of the papacy, her strength must be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span> found
-in faith and union. Sound doctrine must be imprinted on the hearts
-of the Genevese, in order that neither mysticism, nor infidelity,
-nor a fanatical enthusiasm might approach to enfeeble and lead them
-astray. Christians must ‘lean upon the promises of God with trust and
-certainty, that they may stand firm against all the artillery which
-might threaten the destruction of their confidence.’<a name="FNanchor_451_451" id="FNanchor_451_451"></a><a href="#Footnote_451_451" class="fnanchor">[451]</a></p>
-
-<p>Before Calvin’s arrival, Farel had spoken to the council about the
-necessity of preparing the edicts for establishing unity in matters
-of religion at Geneva, but nothing had been done. Now that Calvin was
-come, he conversed with his old colleague on the means of <i>making the
-people live in the faith of God</i>. The two friends agreed to prepare a
-confession of evangelical faith, and the author of the <i>Institution
-chrétienne</i> was in reality charged with the task of drawing it up;
-not however without consulting Farel, who was better acquainted with
-Geneva, and more clearly understood what was expedient, than the
-newly arrived teacher. The biographers of Calvin, who were also his
-friends and knew his labors better than any one, speak of this matter.
-‘When he was named pastor,’ says one of them, ‘he prepared a brief
-formulary of doctrine and discipline.’<a name="FNanchor_452_452" id="FNanchor_452_452"></a><a href="#Footnote_452_452" class="fnanchor">[452]</a> ‘Then (after the Lausanne
-disputation),’ says another, ‘a formula of Christian faith was published
-by Calvin.’<a name="FNanchor_453_453" id="FNanchor_453_453"></a><a href="#Footnote_453_453" class="fnanchor">[453]</a> It has been asserted that Calvin’s formula is lost,
-but that Farel had at the same time prepared another, and that the
-latter is preserved. In this assertion there are two statements highly
-improbable: first, that separate confessions of faith were drawn up at
-the same time by Calvin and Farel, for the same purpose: second, that
-it is Calvin’s which is lost, and Farel’s that is preserved.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE CONFESSION OF FAITH.</div>
-
-<p>Whatever the fact may be, Farel, on November 10, presented the
-Confession to the council; and that was quite natural. He had stood
-for years in close relation with that body, and was recognized by it
-as the chief leader in the Church: while Calvin, a new-comer, and
-somewhat shy, was not fond of showing himself, and least of all of
-appearing before the Council of the Two Hundred. Farel, therefore,
-having been introduced into the hall of the great council, communicated
-the document to them. He stood in the presence of the deputies of the
-people of Geneva, who were invested with large powers and whom it was
-dangerous to offend. But, although he took into consideration the
-religious state of those whom he addressed, he laid before them the
-purport of the Christian dispensation with that freedom, clearness, and
-courage which were characteristic of the epoch of the Reformation, and
-which appear strange to a generation more enervated, more unbelieving,
-and more timid. ‘The rule of our faith and our religion,’ said he, ‘is
-Holy Scripture alone, without admixture of anything invented by the wit
-of man. We worship one God only, not putting our trust in any creature,
-whether angel or saint, or men still living on the earth. Man, who is
-by nature full of corruption, stands in need of enlightenment from God
-that he may attain to the true knowledge of his salvation; and all that
-is lacking in ourselves we receive from Christ. By his righteousness
-we obtain remission of our sins. By the shedding of his blood we are
-cleansed from all our stains. By his Holy Spirit we are born again in a
-new spiritual nature. By our communion with him, the works which we do
-are made acceptable to God.’<a name="FNanchor_454_454" id="FNanchor_454_454"></a><a href="#Footnote_454_454" class="fnanchor">[454]</a></p>
-
-<p>It has been observed that this confession of faith, in twenty-one
-articles, does not set forth the Christian<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span> doctrines in so complete
-and didactic a manner as Calvin subsequently did. From this
-circumstance it has been inferred that it was composed by Farel. A
-reply to this reasoning is furnished in the statement of Theodore
-Beza,&mdash;that the confession was adapted to the wants of the Genevese
-Church, which had then hardly escaped from the corruptions of the
-papacy. Calvin and Farel had given especial prominence to those
-truths which stood in opposition to papal errors, and had not felt
-it necessary to establish the doctrines which the Romish Church
-had retained: for example, the doctrine of the Trinity. At a later
-period, when these doctrines were controverted by men who professedly
-adhered to the Reformation, Calvin felt the need of formally avowing
-them; and this he did in his <i>Sommaire de la doctrine chrétienne</i>.
-Further, we would willingly admit that there may have been, as some
-competent judges suppose, a confession of faith prepared by Farel,
-and that it was that which was presented to the people, if the two
-contemporary writers whom we have cited were not silent about such
-a document, and did not insist on that of which Calvin was author.
-But there is stronger evidence still. Calvin himself, when speaking
-of the publication of his catechism, says, ‘that he annexed to it <i>a
-confession which was sanctioned</i> (<i>editam</i>, published) <i>by the solemn
-oath of all the people</i>.’<a name="FNanchor_455_455" id="FNanchor_455_455"></a><a href="#Footnote_455_455" class="fnanchor">[455]</a> To us this appears to be decisive.
-We shall presently see that the spirit pervading that confession is
-exactly the spirit which at that time animated Calvin. If anyone
-asserts the contrary, he must have forgotten the dispute which took
-place between Calvin and Caroli. The best reception was given to the
-work from the moment of its presentation to the government. The council
-resolved, say the registers, that the articles proposed by Farel should
-all be adopted.<a name="FNanchor_456_456" id="FNanchor_456_456"></a><a href="#Footnote_456_456" class="fnanchor">[456]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FREQUENT COMMUNION.</div>
-
-<p>If the rule of faith were Christian, the rule of morals must be pure.
-At the beginning of the year 1537, Calvin, doubtless in conjunction
-with Farel, prepared a memoir on the subject of order in the Church.
-On January 15 Farel stated the fact to the council; and the next
-day the articles ‘presented by Master Guillaume Farel and the other
-preachers’ were read before the Two Hundred.<a name="FNanchor_457_457" id="FNanchor_457_457"></a><a href="#Footnote_457_457" class="fnanchor">[457]</a> The ministers
-said,<a name="FNanchor_458_458" id="FNanchor_458_458"></a><a href="#Footnote_458_458" class="fnanchor">[458]</a>&mdash;‘Considering what trouble and confusion prevailed in our
-city before the Gospel was received by common consent, it has been
-found impossible to bring everything into good order at once. But now
-that it hath pleased the Lord to establish his rule here somewhat more
-perfectly, we have thought it good and profitable to confer on these
-matters; and we have decided to lay before you these articles.’</p>
-
-<p>There was no ground of objection to this introduction.</p>
-
-<p>‘It would be desirable,’ continued Calvin and his friends, ‘that the
-holy supper of Jesus Christ should be celebrated every Sunday at the
-least, since we are <i>made, in it, partakers of the body, the blood, the
-life, the spirit, and all the benefits of Jesus Christ</i>, and because
-it is an admonition to us to live as Christians in brotherly unity. It
-was not instituted for commemoration two or three times in a year, but
-for frequent observance. Such was the practice of the ancient Church,
-until the abomination of masses was introduced, the effect of which was
-the entire abolition of the Lord’s supper. However, as we foresee that
-by reason of the infirmity of men, there might be some danger of that
-sacred mystery falling into contempt through so frequent a celebration,
-we have judged it well that the holy supper should be observed once a
-month.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It was natural that such good Christians as these reformers should
-desire frequent communion. But the lesser council was of opinion that,
-for the majority, the supper would be more solemn and more beneficial
-if it were less frequent. It was therefore resolved to propose to the
-Council of the Two Hundred that it should be celebrated not more than
-four times in the year.<a name="FNanchor_459_459" id="FNanchor_459_459"></a><a href="#Footnote_459_459" class="fnanchor">[459]</a> The reading of the memoir of the pastors
-was continued.</p>
-
-<p>‘But the main point is that the supper, which was instituted for the
-purpose of uniting Christians in one spirit with their head and with
-each other, should not be defiled and contaminated by any persons
-whose evil life shows plainly that they do not belong to Jesus Christ.
-We must not associate, says St. Paul, with those who are notoriously
-profligate, covetous, idolatrous, railers, drunkards, or thieves. Care
-must therefore be taken that only those come to the supper who are
-approved members of Jesus Christ. To this end, our Lord established in
-his Church the correction and discipline of <i>excommunication</i>. This
-discipline existed in the Church until wicked bishops, or rather say
-brigands assuming the title of bishops, converted it to an instrument
-of tyranny, and abused it for the gratification of their own evil
-lusts, to such a degree that, at the present day, excommunication is
-one of the most cursed things to be seen in the realm of the pope. It
-has therefore seemed to us expedient that this discipline should be
-restored in the Church, according to the rule laid down in Scripture.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EXCOMMUNICATION.</div>
-
-<p>‘Choose ye therefore certain persons of good report, belonging to all
-quarters of the city, who may have an eye on each man’s life, in order
-that, if they discover open vice in any one, the latter may be exhorted
-by one of the ministers in a brotherly way to amend his life. If he
-will not listen to the exhortation, then let the minister report to
-the assembly what he has done for the reclamation of the sinner. If he
-still persist in evil, then<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span> the time will be come to excommunicate
-him; that is, to treat him as cast out of the society of Christians.
-Should there be any who only laugh at your excommunication, it will be
-for you to consider whether, in the long run, that contempt for God
-and his Gospel is to be suffered.’ After thus insisting on a moral
-life, the reformers required that the confession of faith which they
-had presented should be put in force. ‘It is much to be suspected,’
-said the ministers, ‘if it be not even plainly apparent, that there
-are many of the inhabitants of this city who have not by any means
-submitted to the Gospel, but still cherish in their hearts all manner
-of superstitions. It would be a highly expedient course to begin in
-the first place to ascertain who are willing to avow themselves of the
-Church of Jesus Christ, and who are not. If those who are in agreement
-with us in respect to the faith are to be excommunicated solely because
-of their vices, much more ought those to be excommunicated who are
-wholly opposed to us in religion; for there is no division greater than
-that which is made by the faith. As yet it has not been ascertained
-what doctrine each man holds; but this is <i>the real beginning of a
-church</i> (<i>le droit commencement d’une Église</i>). The remedy which has
-occurred to us is that all the inhabitants of this city should be
-bound to make confession and give a reason for their faith. And you,
-Gentlemen of the Council, make you confession in your council, and
-thus, by example show what each man will have to do.’</p>
-
-<p>We have said that before Calvin’s arrival at Geneva, rules of
-discipline were in existence and in force. There is here however
-something new, as is evident from the language of the pastors. It is
-<i>excommunication</i>. This is a point of great importance, for it was
-on this subject that violent conflicts soon after began in Geneva.
-It does not however appear, from the official records, that the
-articles met with any opposition in the council. Surely a Christian
-life and a Christian faith ought to charac<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span>terize a Christian society.
-If profligates and drunkards ought not to be admitted to what the
-world calls good society, much more, they thought, ought they to be
-excluded from a religious society. Moreover, they were <i>laymen</i> of good
-report who were to watch over moral order, and even those laymen were
-appointed by other laymen, members themselves of the council. This
-fact made a great difference between the Romish discipline and that
-which the reformers desired. In this case there was no suggestion of a
-reign of clericalism; and this doubtless contributed to the adoption
-of the rules. Calvin was convinced that morality ought to distinguish
-the reformed Church from the deformed (<i>l’église réformée de l’église
-déformée</i>). Was it not dissolute living, both on the part of the laity,
-and still more on the part of the monks and the priests, which had
-called forth in the Church the sharpest rebukes? It was not possible
-to purify the faith without purifying the life. That would have been
-a flagrant contradiction. If the Reformation made light of morality,
-it would destroy itself as Rome had done. With regard to doctrine, no
-one supposed that the reformed Church could hold in its bosom either
-Roman Catholics or pantheists who believed neither in God nor in the
-immortality of the soul. Why then should it tolerate impure persons or
-robbers? All this is true: but nevertheless there is something in the
-system that does not work smoothly. Calvin was right, and he was wrong
-too. We shall have to say wherein lay his truth and wherein his error.</p>
-
-<p>The articles presented to the senate dealt also with the spiritual
-songs of the Church. If only the minister speak, worship remains cold:
-but the singing ‘has power to raise our hearts to God,’ said Calvin,
-‘and to stimulate us to exalt his name.’ He urged the education of
-children, ‘in order to correct the wonderful rudeness and ignorance in
-which they were left through the negligence of their parents, and which
-is not by any means<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span> allowable in the Church of God.’ Then he treated
-of the order of marriage, ‘a subject involved in much confusion by the
-pope, who undertook to establish degrees at his own pleasure.’ Calvin
-closed his articles with an eloquent exhortation to the council. ‘Take
-not these admonitions,’ said he, ‘as coming from us, but from Him who
-gives them in his Word. And should any one allege the difficulty of
-putting them in practice, let it not trouble you; for we must cherish
-the hope that whenever we are willing to do what God has commanded, His
-goodness will prosper our enterprise and bring it to a good end, as you
-yourselves have found by experience to this day.’</p>
-
-<p>Calvin thus set about his task like a great master. A catechism which
-bore at once the impress of genius and of piety: a confession of faith,
-pure and living: a Church order which had for its aim the removal of
-vice and the quickening of piety:&mdash;these formed the threefold labor
-with which the illustrious reformer began his work.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE ARTICLES APPROVED.</div>
-
-<p>The articles, after being sanctioned by the lower council, were carried
-the same day before the Council of the Two Hundred, and were allowed.
-The council further decreed that no shops should be open on Sundays
-during the time of divine service: that all persons who had images and
-idols in their houses should destroy them or bring them to be burnt:
-that no one should sing foolish songs nor play at games of chance: and
-finally that the syndic Porral and Jean Goulaz should be commissioned
-to see to the maintenance of good morals in the city, and that people
-led lives conformed to the will of God.<a name="FNanchor_460_460" id="FNanchor_460_460"></a><a href="#Footnote_460_460" class="fnanchor">[460]</a> The choice of Porral was
-very good: that of Goulaz, who was personally no enemy to play or to
-taverns, was not so good. The council showed by these measures with
-what seriousness it meant to proceed in the accomplishment of the
-Reformation. Soon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span> after it adopted another resolution. Many children
-of Geneva were sent away to various places and intrusted to foreign
-governors. The council decreed, January 30, that those persons who had
-children at schools not in Geneva, should have them brought into that
-town or placed in other <i>Christian</i> schools; that otherwise the said
-children would be deprived of citizenship.<a name="FNanchor_461_461" id="FNanchor_461_461"></a><a href="#Footnote_461_461" class="fnanchor">[461]</a> This was a rigorous
-measure; but it shows what spirit actuated the council, and its zeal in
-the cause of sound education.</p>
-
-<p>These important acts met with no opposition even from the citizens who
-subsequently so sturdily resisted the rules of discipline. There was
-however a certain show of opposition, but it was in mere sport. The
-high-spirited youth of the town, easily excited, indulged in laughter
-and sarcasm. They were especially annoyed at the zeal of the syndic
-Porral, which crossed them in their pastimes; and when new syndics
-had been elected, February 4, and Porral went out of office, these
-youngsters began the next day to <i>play at Picca-Porral</i>. They wore in
-the hat, as a badge, a leek (<i>porreau</i>), and served at their feasts a
-dish of leeks. Each of them would prick the <i>porral</i> with abundance
-of jests. ‘Légier Beschaut and some other young men of the town’ were
-imprisoned, February 5, for this sport.<a name="FNanchor_462_462" id="FNanchor_462_462"></a><a href="#Footnote_462_462" class="fnanchor">[462]</a> Porral requested Farel to
-accompany him to the prison, for the purpose of admonishing them. But
-the young folk did not profit by it. Some have called them frolicsome,
-others dissolute. We think that the former term is the most fitting.
-As the council saw in the proceedings of the young culprits, says a
-contemporary,<a name="FNanchor_463_463" id="FNanchor_463_463"></a><a href="#Footnote_463_463" class="fnanchor">[463]</a> more of youth and foolishness than of malicious
-intention, they set them at liberty four days after their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span> arrest,
-under promise to appear again when required. It is very likely that
-Porral had acted with a little too much rigor in this affair.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN’S REQUIREMENTS.</div>
-
-<p>The Genevese people testified their hearty acceptance of this
-Christian constitution by electing, February 5, syndics devoted to
-the Reformation. Other candidates of note were rejected. It was
-acknowledged that the equality of the citizens was established by
-this constitution, the rules applying to all alike, ‘and families of
-the highest distinction being bound to submit like other people.’
-This gratified the commonalty. Calvin, however, did not indulge in
-illusions. He was afraid that a certain number of citizens, and even
-some of the highest eminence, would oppose the Reform; and he urgently
-required that all should be called upon to profess it. ‘In default
-of this,’ he said, ‘he would stay no longer at Geneva.’<a name="FNanchor_464_464" id="FNanchor_464_464"></a><a href="#Footnote_464_464" class="fnanchor">[464]</a> What he
-had presented was for the benefit of all. If all would not accept it,
-he would go away, for he had no intention of invading or usurping by
-force or by fraud. On March 13, the council resolved to see to the
-Lord’s Supper, and to the observance of the other articles.<a name="FNanchor_465_465" id="FNanchor_465_465"></a><a href="#Footnote_465_465" class="fnanchor">[465]</a> On
-April 17 it was decreed that a syndic, the captain of the quarter,
-and the tithing men (<i>dizeniers</i>) should visit all the houses of the
-tithings (<i>dizaines</i>) to propose the articles respecting the faith.
-On the 27th of the same month it was resolved to print the confession
-of faith, and to furnish a sufficient number of copies to the tithing
-men for the inhabitants of their tithings, in order that when the
-people should be visited they might be better instructed and well
-informed.<a name="FNanchor_466_466" id="FNanchor_466_466"></a><a href="#Footnote_466_466" class="fnanchor">[466]</a> Each man should know what he was going to do; there
-must be no surprise. Calvin, indeed, was not content with the mere
-instruction of the Genevese in accordance with the confession. It<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>
-would have sufficed Saunier, who saw with regret, at least at this
-time, that adhesion to the formula of the confession was required of
-every Genevese.<a name="FNanchor_467_467" id="FNanchor_467_467"></a><a href="#Footnote_467_467" class="fnanchor">[467]</a> But it was not enough for Calvin that the document
-should be officially recognized by the council as an expression of the
-faith of the Genevese, a course which had been deemed satisfactory in
-other places. He demanded that each individual should accept it. He
-did not believe that the state was in this case responsible for the
-people. Every Genevese was responsible before God. He did not want
-religion in the mass. Does not Christ say, <i>Whosoever shall confess me
-before men</i>? Whosoever&mdash;that is, each individual. This is perfectly
-true; but the mistake is to suppose that, in order to confess Christ,
-it is necessary to sign a theological confession. ‘If thou believest
-in thy heart, thou shalt be saved,’ says Paul. We are reminded of a
-poor woman who desired participation at the supper, and whose pastor
-subjected her to an examination on the three offices of Christ, as
-prophet, priest, and king. ‘Ah, sir,’ she replied, ‘I know nothing
-of those things, but I am ready to die for him.’ ‘That will do,’
-said the minister, with some sense of shame. Theology is necessary
-to theologians; it must not be demanded of simple folk. The three
-leading ministers, Farel, Calvin, and Courault, the latter blind and
-old, being of the same mind on the subject, appeared before the Two
-Hundred, presented their formula, and earnestly pressed the council to
-give glory to God by confessing His truth. ‘It is right,’ said Calvin,
-‘that in so sacred a duty you, who are bound to set an example of all
-virtue, should go before the people.’ But that was not enough for him.
-‘Then,’ he added, ‘assemble the country by tithings, and let every man
-swear to this confession.’<a name="FNanchor_468_468" id="FNanchor_468_468"></a><a href="#Footnote_468_468" class="fnanchor">[468]</a> The council<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span> adopted the views of the
-reformer, which Saunier himself had embraced. All the tithing men were
-summoned to give first their own adhesion; and the council charged them
-to exhort those over whom they were set to follow the commandments of
-God, and to bring their men (<i>leurs gens</i>) to St. Peter’s, tithing
-by tithing (there were twenty-eight of them), to adhere to the
-confession. The adhesion was given through the medium of the tithing
-men, successively, and not simultaneously. A principle, from which
-there was no deviation, excluded women from the general council. But in
-this instance the assembly was of a religious rather than a political
-character. It was well known how great the influence of woman is in
-the family as regards religion. It is therefore possible that both men
-and women were summoned together to St. Peter’s, distributed in groups
-by their tithing men. The decree which we have just cited directs them
-to bring their <i>gens</i>, a word which may include both sexes. However,
-we have found no positive evidence on this point. One single fact
-appears to indicate that women were present. On September 28, 1537, the
-council dealt with the case of <i>Jeanne la Gibescière</i>, who would not
-swear to the new reformation, and banished her on that account. But
-more than a month earlier, on August 21, this same Jeanne, belonging
-to a particular sect (<i>the Spirituals</i>), on its being proposed to
-her to swear to the new reformation, had refused to do so, and had
-consequently been placed under arrest. That case, therefore, cannot be
-alleged as an absolute proof that women also swore to the confession at
-St. Peter’s.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONVOCATION OF THE PEOPLE.</div>
-
-<p>Accordingly, on Sunday, July 29, the council assembled in the
-cathedral, and the tithings passed in successively. Young people who
-had attained their majority, and old men with white hair, perhaps women
-as well as men, came forward. Rozet, secretary to the council, read the
-confession of faith. Next came the oath of fidelity and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span> obedience,
-which each in his turn took by lifting up his hand.<a name="FNanchor_469_469" id="FNanchor_469_469"></a><a href="#Footnote_469_469" class="fnanchor">[469]</a> ‘The people,’
-says Calvin, ‘show no less alacrity in taking the oath than the senate
-had shown diligence in publishing it.’<a name="FNanchor_470_470" id="FNanchor_470_470"></a><a href="#Footnote_470_470" class="fnanchor">[470]</a> A large number of the
-Genevese professed with all their heart the evangelical doctrines.</p>
-
-<p>Nevertheless, the opinion of Saunier might be supported by weighty
-reasons. If he was opposed to the imposition of a personal engagement,
-it was because he knew that the confession was not the exact expression
-of the faith of each individual; that some of those who would swear to
-it did not understand it either wholly or in part; and that others,
-while understanding it better, had only an intellectual belief, which
-might fail when assailed by captious objections. Individuality did
-not appear to be at that time adequately respected. But the public
-profession of faith of July 29 had been so solemn a proceeding that
-many rejoiced at it. There were however many people who abstained from
-joining in it, because they were still attached to Roman Catholicism.
-There were also a certain number who were unwilling to submit to moral
-discipline. George Lesclefs and his servant said that they could not
-bring their minds to swear to keep the ten commandments, because they
-were so difficult.<a name="FNanchor_471_471" id="FNanchor_471_471"></a><a href="#Footnote_471_471" class="fnanchor">[471]</a> Others refused to take the oath from a spirit
-of political independence.</p>
-
-<p>Nevertheless, we may assert in a general way that the people gave
-their adhesion to the confession; and that was a glorious day for the
-Reformation on which those hands were lifted up for the Gospel in the
-old cathedral of St. Peter. The sky, indeed, was afterwards clouded,
-but that day was clear and serene.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE OATH REFUSED BY MANY.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin might well rejoice in having obtained results<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span> so large in so
-short a time; and his colleagues rejoiced with him. The aged Courault,
-persecuted in France, had been compelled to take refuge in Basel; and
-Calvin, knowing that although deprived of sight, ‘he was clear-sighted
-with the eyes of the mind,’ had called him to Geneva. Courault was
-happy to find himself a witness in that city of the triumph of the
-Reformation, which had been so rudely assailed in his native country.
-Farel, on his part, saw that God was crowning the work that had cost
-him so much labor. He displayed at all times unwearied zeal and heroic
-courage; and his continual prayers in behalf of the Reformation were
-so fervent, that those who heard them felt themselves lifted up to
-heaven, says Beza. Farel had cast the seed into the ground, and had
-seen the stalk spring up. Now, to the time of sowing succeeded the time
-of harvest. The ear had appeared, the grain was formed in the ear, and
-another laborer, a robust harvestman, had come to cut the wheat and
-bind the sheaves. But this excited no envy in him. On the contrary,
-his Christian soul acknowledged with thanksgiving the precious gifts
-bestowed on Calvin. The superiority of his intellect, the extent of
-his acquirements, the accuracy of his judgment, and his faculty for
-organization, filled the old pioneer with admiration and respect. He
-was delighted to see a constantly increasing auditory thronging into
-the cathedral to hear Calvin expound the Holy Scriptures. Thenceforth
-the old man sat almost a disciple at the feet of the young doctor.
-On all subjects he desired Calvin’s opinion, and he looked on him as
-the man chosen of God to complete the Reformation. Calvin on his part
-gave to Farel the honor which was due to him. ‘After you had begun to
-build up this Church of Geneva, with great labor and danger,’ he said,
-‘I came in unexpectedly in the first instance as <i>conductor</i>, and
-afterwards I remained as your successor, to carry on the work which
-you had well and happily begun.’<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span> This cordial relation between Calvin
-and Farel, in spite of the difference of their ages, is among the
-most beautiful instances of the kind in history. Calvin subsequently
-extolled what he called <i>their sacred friendship and union</i>, and said
-affectionately, ‘You and I are one.’<a name="FNanchor_472_472" id="FNanchor_472_472"></a><a href="#Footnote_472_472" class="fnanchor">[472]</a> There was between them, says
-Calvin on another occasion, a good understanding and a friendship
-which, consecrated by the name of Christ, was profitable to his Church.</p>
-
-<p>The school, placed under the direction of Saunier, likewise flourished.
-Lessons began at five o’clock in the morning.<a name="FNanchor_473_473" id="FNanchor_473_473"></a><a href="#Footnote_473_473" class="fnanchor">[473]</a> The pupils were
-instructed ‘in the three most excellent languages, Greek, Hebrew,
-and Latin, in addition to the French, which, in the opinion of the
-learned, is by no means to be despised.’ Mathurin Cordier, formerly
-Calvin’s teacher, soon devoted himself to this task. Numerous scholars,
-attracted to Geneva by the great work which was being achieved there,
-came from Basel, Berne, Bienne, Zurich, and other places, to study
-there. These messmates lived at the College, with Saunier, whose house
-was ordered in a Christian manner. ‘Daily, before they sat down to
-meat, one of them read aloud a chapter of the Bible and all the rest
-listened. While seated at the table, they each repeated a sentence
-of Holy Scripture.’<a name="FNanchor_474_474" id="FNanchor_474_474"></a><a href="#Footnote_474_474" class="fnanchor">[474]</a> Thus were fashioned the strong men of the
-sixteenth century. The system which excludes from the school the Bible
-and even religion, that is to say, the regenerative and training
-element, will never form the like.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DISCIPLINE.</div>
-
-<p>The reformers, whose intercourse with each other was pleasant and
-refreshing, enjoyed in addition the approval of the majority of
-the people, and particularly of the magistrates. Receiving so much
-encouragement in their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span> ministry, they were brave, active, and
-unwearied in their calling. Far from being weighed down with their
-great task, they appeared rather to grow stronger under the burden;
-and this is a distinctive mark of great men. If any difficulty arose,
-if any village were in need of a preacher, Farel and Calvin applied
-with confidence to the council, which usually acceded to their request,
-and acted even with generosity.<a name="FNanchor_475_475" id="FNanchor_475_475"></a><a href="#Footnote_475_475" class="fnanchor">[475]</a> When a good citizen pointed out,
-February 13, that Calvin had not yet received anything, the council
-decreed to present him with <i>six écus</i>.<a name="FNanchor_476_476" id="FNanchor_476_476"></a><a href="#Footnote_476_476" class="fnanchor">[476]</a> The next day, Farel, with
-his brother and Saunier, applied for the grant of citizenship; it was
-resolved that they should receive it free of charge. Calvin did not
-become a citizen of Geneva till a later period. Nor was he the only
-one who deferred that matter. Other celebrated Frenchmen declined the
-citizenship of Geneva, their city of refuge, on the ground that they
-could not renounce France. That love for the old country was probably
-one of the motives which led Calvin to put off for three-and-twenty
-years becoming a citizen of the city of which he was the very soul. On
-February 27 they presented to Saunier thirty measures of wheat; and, on
-June 6, <i>six écus</i> to Courault. The gifts were not large, but every age
-has its own measure.</p>
-
-<p>The council, which concerned itself about the wants of the ministers,
-watched likewise, in conformity with the constitution, over the wants
-of the Church and the purity of morals. Letters were written, February
-7, at the request of Farel, to Besançon and to Neuchâtel, respecting
-Olivétan’s Bible.<a name="FNanchor_477_477" id="FNanchor_477_477"></a><a href="#Footnote_477_477" class="fnanchor">[477]</a> The lay magistrates were severe. On the 23d of
-the same month, a player and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span> sharper, who was cheating the people
-out of their money, was sentenced to be exposed for an hour, with his
-fraudulent cards hung round his neck. The ‘<i>grand Francois</i>,’ guilty of
-impurity, had to give as a fine a halter, eighteen feet long, such as
-is used for tying up cattle. A man and woman guilty of adultery, were
-banished, June 1, for a year. On March 13 the council, intruding even
-into the spiritual domain, determined to make arrangements about the
-Lord’s Supper and other things.<a name="FNanchor_478_478" id="FNanchor_478_478"></a><a href="#Footnote_478_478" class="fnanchor">[478]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus Geneva took an important place both as a Church and a school.
-Foreigners resorted to it, or sent their children there. The beauty of
-its situation formed also a powerful attraction. Of all descriptions
-of Geneva, the following is doubtless one of the most ancient. ‘Do
-not imagine,’ said Saunier, ‘that Geneva is some frightful, almost
-uninhabitable town, in the midst of barren and solitary rocks. The
-streets, with a few exceptions, are broad and in good condition, and
-there are several large public places. Encircled by a continuous chain
-of mountains, it has nevertheless on all sides a tract of level country
-extending round it in the form of a great theatre. As for the lake, it
-is difficult to say in what respect it is of most value to the city,
-whether for profit, for defence (<i>parement</i>), or for beauty. The water
-is not at all muddy or turbid, but to the very bottom is clear as fine
-glass, so that people take a wonderful pleasure in looking at it. To
-sum up, the said town is situated on the frontiers of three great
-countries, to wit, Gaul, Germany, and Italy, as it were a place marked
-out (<i>députée</i>) for gatherings of merchants.’<a name="FNanchor_479_479" id="FNanchor_479_479"></a><a href="#Footnote_479_479" class="fnanchor">[479]</a> Geneva was going to
-be marked out for other gatherings. ‘Already Mathurin Cordier,’ says a
-contemporary, ‘a man more<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span> skilful in training schools in the French
-tongue than any man of our time has been, brought with him a large
-number of learned men.’<a name="FNanchor_480_480" id="FNanchor_480_480"></a><a href="#Footnote_480_480" class="fnanchor">[480]</a> We have already spoken elsewhere of the
-arrival of young Englishmen at the foot of the Alps, for the sake of
-enjoying intercourse with Calvin. Saunier’s description shows that the
-reformers were not unobservant of the beauties of nature. They loved
-them, and contemplated them at Geneva in the height and perfection of
-their majesty.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER V.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">CALVIN CONTENDS WITH FOREIGN DOCTORS, AND IS ACCUSED OF ARIANISM.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(March to June, 1537.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ARRIVAL OF FOREIGN DOCTORS.<br />
-THE SPIRITUALS.</div>
-
-<p>The peace and satisfaction which were the fruit of the settled order,
-and even of the beauty of the places in which these great changes had
-been effected, did not long remain undisturbed. Some foreign doctors
-came to Geneva, Herman of Liége and Andrew Benoît, the latter also a
-native of the Netherlands, both of them belonging to that enthusiastic
-sect, some of whose leaders Calvin had previously encountered
-in France, and who called themselves the Spirituals.<a name="FNanchor_481_481" id="FNanchor_481_481"></a><a href="#Footnote_481_481" class="fnanchor">[481]</a> These
-sectaries had found their way into western Europe, but Germany and the
-Netherlands were, above all, their proper countries. The German mind
-has a philosophical and even mystical tendency, which gives rise to a
-longing to penetrate deeper than the Bible itself into the knowledge
-of divine things. The central position of Geneva, the important
-revolution in politics and reli<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span>gion which had just been accomplished
-there, excited in those sectaries the hope of establishing themselves
-in the city for the purpose of spreading themselves afterwards over
-France, Italy, and other countries. These new doctors, from the time of
-their arrival, had labored to diffuse their opinions, and had gained
-partisans. Among these were some members of the council.<a name="FNanchor_482_482" id="FNanchor_482_482"></a><a href="#Footnote_482_482" class="fnanchor">[482]</a> Proud of
-this first success, they expected to substitute in Geneva their dreams
-for the Gospel. The claim set up by these Spirituals, of penetrating
-further into the truth than the reformers did, gave them a certain
-attractiveness for minds eager for novelties. They boldly announced
-that they were willing to dispute with the preachers. As early as March
-9 they were called before the council, and were invited to communicate
-in writing the articles which they intended to maintain.<a name="FNanchor_483_483" id="FNanchor_483_483"></a><a href="#Footnote_483_483" class="fnanchor">[483]</a> Herman
-and Benoît complied with this request, and delivered their theses to
-the council. The council took them into consideration on March 13. In
-calling themselves the <i>Spirituals</i>, these men meant to assert that the
-spirit alone acted in them. Their doctrine was a more or less gross
-kind of Pantheism. They did not think, in general, ‘that the soul was
-a substance, a creature having essence; it was merely, in their view,
-the property which a man has of breathing, of moving, and of performing
-other vital actions.<a name="FNanchor_484_484" id="FNanchor_484_484"></a><a href="#Footnote_484_484" class="fnanchor">[484]</a> They said that in place of our souls it is
-God who lives in us, and does in us all the actions pertaining to
-life. God became the creature,’ adds Calvin, ‘and the latter was no
-longer anything.’<a name="FNanchor_485_485" id="FNanchor_485_485"></a><a href="#Footnote_485_485" class="fnanchor">[485]</a> An assassination having been committed at Paris,
-Quintin, a leader among the Spirituals, replied to some who asked him
-who committed it, ’Tis thou, ’tis I, ’tis God, for what thou and I
-do, ’tis God that does it.’ They had also peculiar ideas respecting
-Jesus Christ. They did not hold that he had been very<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span> man, but made
-him a kind of phantom, as to his body. They held similar errors about
-baptism, excommunication, the magistrate, oaths, and other matters.
-We are not in possession of the articles which they presented to the
-council, and it is probable that they did not put forward the most
-offensive points of their system. But the majority of the council
-‘believed that it would be dangerous to discuss those articles in
-public, on account of the weakness (<i>tendrité</i>) of men’s minds. They
-therefore determined to give them a hearing on the following day, March
-14, but only in the Council of the Two Hundred.’<a name="FNanchor_486_486" id="FNanchor_486_486"></a><a href="#Footnote_486_486" class="fnanchor">[486]</a></p>
-
-<p>The sensation created in the city by the presence of Herman and Benoît,
-and the eagerness with which certain citizens were pleased to listen
-to them, had not escaped the notice of the reformers. If these doctors
-were not refuted, Geneva, withdrawn from the errors of the papacy,
-might fall into the dreams of Pantheism. The reformers therefore asked
-permission to attend the sitting. Herman and Benoît expounded their
-system. The council wished to hush up the affair; but Farel, confident
-in the force of truth, requested that it might be publicly discussed.
-His entreaties were complied with, and the debate was fixed for the
-next day, March 15.<a name="FNanchor_487_487" id="FNanchor_487_487"></a><a href="#Footnote_487_487" class="fnanchor">[487]</a></p>
-
-<p>The disputation took place in the grand auditory of Rive, on March
-15, 16, and 17, and on each occasion lasted the whole day. No report
-of these debates has come down to us. But some notion may be formed
-of them from the two tractates which Calvin devoted to the exposition
-and refutation of the system.<a name="FNanchor_488_488" id="FNanchor_488_488"></a><a href="#Footnote_488_488" class="fnanchor">[488]</a> The discussion was very animated.
-The reformers so forcibly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span> confuted, by the Word of God alone, the
-doctrines advanced by the two Spirituals in the public disputation,
-that the whole tribe thenceforth disappeared from that Church.<a name="FNanchor_489_489" id="FNanchor_489_489"></a><a href="#Footnote_489_489" class="fnanchor">[489]</a>
-The Council of the Two Hundred having assembled, March 18, declared
-that the assailant was not <i>sufficient</i>, that is to say, that
-his opinions were erroneous. But they remarked that this disputation
-might beget differences, and that the faith might be imperilled. The
-reformers were therefore forbidden for the future to engage in such
-discussions. Then Herman and Benoît being called in, the syndics said
-to them, ‘We have been quite willing to hear you, for we listen to
-everybody, but <i>seeing that you are not able to prove the truth of
-your propositions by Holy Scripture</i>, we have pronounced them to be
-<i>contrary to the truth</i>. Are you willing to retract, and to return to
-God and ask his forgiveness?’ ‘We submit to the will of God,’ they
-replied, ‘but we will not by any means retract our words.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EXPULSION OF THE SPIRITUALS.</div>
-
-<p>Those of the Genevese who had taken them from the time of their coming
-for good evangelical Christians had called them <i>brethren</i>. But these
-foreigners had shown themselves very quarrelsome; and having refused
-even to pray with the Christians of Geneva&mdash;an offensive sign of their
-sectarian spirit&mdash;they were no longer called by the name of brethren.
-However, no penalty was at that time imposed on them, in the hope
-that they might be brought to more Christian sentiments. But that was
-indulging in a mere illusion. It was therefore decreed, according
-to the custom of the age, that these doctors, and every member of
-their sect, should be banished for ever from Geneva, under pain of
-death. ‘The most admirable feature of this business,’ said the early
-biographers of Calvin, ‘is, that if some churches of Germany have been
-delivered from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span> these doctors, they were so by mere rigor of justice;
-while at Geneva <i>the magistrate had no hand in it</i>.’<a name="FNanchor_490_490" id="FNanchor_490_490"></a><a href="#Footnote_490_490" class="fnanchor">[490]</a> Certainly,
-he did not employ against them either imprisonment or torture; Calvin
-endeavored only to convince them by argument. But banishment, under
-pain of death, is nevertheless a very palpable act of the magistrate.
-On the other hand, it is also a mistake to say that the Registers
-knew nothing of Calvin’s victory.<a name="FNanchor_491_491" id="FNanchor_491_491"></a><a href="#Footnote_491_491" class="fnanchor">[491]</a> On the contrary, the decree of
-the council was expressly based on the fact that the doctors had been
-unable to prove the truth of their propositions by Holy Scripture.</p>
-
-<p>These were not the only attacks which the reformers had to sustain at
-the outset of their career. There were certain restless spirits who saw
-with vexation Calvin, Farel, and Viret at the head of the Reformation
-in French-speaking lands, and who wished to deprive them of their
-position, that they might occupy it themselves. These new troubles,
-caused by jealousy and ambition, were of a sharper kind, and lasted
-longer.<a name="FNanchor_492_492" id="FNanchor_492_492"></a><a href="#Footnote_492_492" class="fnanchor">[492]</a> Their originator was that doctor of the Sorbonne, Caroli,
-whom we saw arrive from France at Geneva at the time of the great
-disputation of 1535.<a name="FNanchor_493_493" id="FNanchor_493_493"></a><a href="#Footnote_493_493" class="fnanchor">[493]</a> Caroli was a sort of theological adventurer.
-He did not at heart care for the sacred end which the Reformation had
-in view. An incurable levity, which would not allow him to adhere
-to any party, a liking for anything which seemed to him new and
-fashionable, a burning thirst for glory and for fortune, a craving for
-liberty to satisfy his vicious inclinations, these were the feelings
-which actuated him, and threw him into a camp which he soon abandoned
-to seek in another the gratification of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span> the same evil desires. Vain,
-proud, cringing, and inconsistent, he appeared as an assailant of the
-monks when a sort of reformation was in vogue in France. Next, when
-the era of persecution had begun, he made his escape to Geneva. The
-object of his dreams was to become a sort of bishop, to govern the
-reformed churches in French Switzerland; and he proposed to establish
-a doctrine which should hold a middle place between the Gospel and the
-pope. He had made acquaintance with the principal cities of his future
-diocese. From Geneva he had gone to Neuchâtel, and there he had become
-pastor, and had married. We have seen him appointed first pastor at
-Lausanne. ‘In every place that he visited he left some traces of his
-baseness.’<a name="FNanchor_494_494" id="FNanchor_494_494"></a><a href="#Footnote_494_494" class="fnanchor">[494]</a> He tacked before every breeze. In a little while he
-passed from the Romish camp into the Protestant; then, because the
-reformers remonstrated with him, he returned to his vomit, according
-to the Scripture phrase; quitted the papal hierarchy a second time,
-to associate with the evangelicals; and finally ended his roving and
-wretched life at Rome. Caroli is one of the most despicable characters
-of that epoch&mdash;one of those ecclesiastical Don Quixotes who boast of
-smiting all their enemies. Besides vainglory, he had another passion
-quite as intense&mdash;hatred. He detested Farel, who had known him at Paris
-and had rebuked him for his vices. He detested Viret, who had once
-preached on impurity before him; a sermon which Caroli, convicted by
-his own conscience, thought was meant for him. In vain Viret assured
-him that he had preached for everybody: Caroli never forgave him. And
-lastly, the high esteem in which Calvin was held filled this Parisian
-doctor with envy and jealousy. He was hardly settled at Lausanne when,
-eager to realize his dreams, he demanded at Berne the oversight of
-a certain number of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span> pastors and of churches. The Bernese refused
-this, and at the same time begged Viret to aid with his advice a
-foreigner who did not perfectly know the country, and decreed that no
-innovation should be introduced among the people by any pastor without
-a preliminary deliberation of all the brethren.<a name="FNanchor_495_495" id="FNanchor_495_495"></a><a href="#Footnote_495_495" class="fnanchor">[495]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHARACTER OF CAROLI.</div>
-
-<p>Caroli was not at all inclined to submit to this rule. A fantastic
-schoolman, he was fond of putting forward strange paradoxes, and
-of raising discussions which irritated men’s minds and gave him an
-opportunity of showing off his cleverness. That sort of thing was a
-remnant of the Middle Ages; but the age of the Reformation demanded
-a different method. Caroli was an anachronism. His rank as doctor
-of the Sorbonne ought, in his view, to set him at the top of the
-ecclesiastical hierarchy, before which the rude herdsmen of Helvetia
-must bend. He meant to make a reformation <i>sui generis</i>, to advance
-views peculiar to himself, and to set up doctrines to which no one
-had before attained. An opportunity soon presented itself. Viret,
-his young colleague, having gone to pay a visit to his friends at
-Geneva, Caroli took advantage of his absence, and, ascending the
-pulpit, read a series of theses tending to prove that prayers ought
-to be made for the dead. ‘I have no intention,’ he said as he closed,
-‘of taking lessons from a young man,’ thus pointing to Viret. It was
-plain, from his gestures, his voice, his words so arrogant and so full
-of tartness, that he was over-excited.<a name="FNanchor_496_496" id="FNanchor_496_496"></a><a href="#Footnote_496_496" class="fnanchor">[496]</a> Viret, being informed by
-one of his friends, soon returned, and rebuked him for his freak. But
-Caroli, proud of what he impudently called his discovery, replied&mdash;‘I
-do not believe in purgatory, nor do I suppose that the dead can be
-comforted by the prayers of the living; those things are mere fictions.
-But I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span> believe that we ought to ask God to hasten his judgment for
-the happiness of his saints and of all the members of the Church,
-the Virgin, the prophets, and the apostles, who will be the first to
-profit thereby.’<a name="FNanchor_497_497" id="FNanchor_497_497"></a><a href="#Footnote_497_497" class="fnanchor">[497]</a> Caroli thus pitched his tent between Rome and
-the Gospel, being neither with the one nor with the other, but being
-merely himself. That was his wish. Had he only urged the Church to
-say to the Lord, ‘Come quickly,’ he would have spoken in conformity
-with Holy Scripture. But his intention was that the prayer should be
-offered in favor of the dead, a pretence which finds no justification
-in the Bible. Viret replied to him&mdash;‘You know that we ought not to
-preach any merely private views without having first communicated
-them to one another. If you have found in Scripture any instruction
-which is unknown to me, I will freely embrace it; but if you preach
-some erroneous doctrine, allow me, as your colleague, to make some
-observations on it.’<a name="FNanchor_498_498" id="FNanchor_498_498"></a><a href="#Footnote_498_498" class="fnanchor">[498]</a> That was just what Caroli did not want. He
-answered Viret haughtily, and proudly maintained his doctrine.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAROLI AT LAUSANNE.</div>
-
-<p>Many friends of the Gospel looked to Calvin, who enjoyed their entire
-confidence, and begged him to go immediately to Lausanne. This he did.
-Farel would have liked to accompany him; but the Bernese requested
-him to look after his own church and not after theirs. Delegates from
-Berne were sent to Lausanne, and a kind of consistory was thus formed,
-in which Calvin, it appears, stated the case. But the proud Caroli,
-who thought it beneath his dignity to make any defence, refused in the
-haughtiest manner to give the least explanation of his conduct. He was
-greatly annoyed to find himself accused by Calvin, whose supe<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span>riority
-was so troublesome to him. He immediately formed his plan. He resolved
-to turn against the reformer the sword with which the latter had
-threatened him, and to plunge it into him up to the hilt. ‘If the
-minister of Geneva,’ he exclaimed, ‘has shown so much zeal in bringing
-this business before your assembly, it is a shameful conspiracy, the
-only object of which is to ruin me completely.’ Viret then spoke, and
-so clearly set forth the subterfuges and calumnies of Caroli, that
-the assembly condemned him to make a retractation, regardless of his
-<i>amour propre</i>. Astounded by a sentence so severe, this man, who so
-easily passed from one extreme to another, humbled himself, and with
-lamentings and tears asked for pardon. Calvin was touched by this
-demeanor, and in the abundance of his moderation prayed the assembly to
-spare Caroli the act which wounded his pride. Viret did the same. Their
-request was granted. The doctor of the Sorbonne had then nothing better
-to do than to retire quietly to his own house, with a grateful feeling
-towards his two noble adversaries. But their well-meant interposition
-had not really softened him; his humility was a mere feint. He was
-determined at all cost to reach his end and become the foremost man in
-the Church. Jealous of the influence exercised by Calvin, Farel, and
-Viret in Switzerland, he said to himself that in order to get firmly
-seated in the saddle, the man already riding must first be dismounted.
-The ruin of these three doctors was the task which he had to undertake.
-He felt sure of the secret support, at least at Geneva, of some of the
-leading men; and he flattered himself that he should be able to involve
-Calvin in hopeless embarrassment.<a name="FNanchor_499_499" id="FNanchor_499_499"></a><a href="#Footnote_499_499" class="fnanchor">[499]</a> He resolved therefore to assume
-the character of accuser, and to reduce his enemies to play the part of
-the guilty and the accused.</p>
-
-<p>People thought that they had done with this man,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span> and the assembly was
-on the point of breaking up, when he suddenly rose, with a preoccupied
-look, as if he had some burden on his conscience of which he was
-anxious to be rid. ‘For the glory of God,’ said he, speaking in a
-declamatory tone, ‘for the honor of the lords of Berne, for the purity
-of the faith, for the safety of the Church, for the public peace, and
-for the relief of my own conscience, I have now to set before you,
-my honorable lords, a matter on which I have long kept silence. The
-silence must now be broken. I must speak. There are in the city of
-Geneva, as well as in your country, many ministers who are tainted with
-the Arian heresy.’ Putting himself forward like a second Athanasius, he
-named a great number of ministers, good men, whom he declared guilty
-of the error of Arius, but without giving any evidence at all.<a name="FNanchor_500_500" id="FNanchor_500_500"></a><a href="#Footnote_500_500" class="fnanchor">[500]</a>
-Calvin was among the first in this catalogue of heretics. To accuse him
-of being an Arian required an audacity and a passion carried to the
-pitch of madness. It appears that he was even accused, in common with
-his friends, of maintaining the errors of the Spaniard Servetus.<a name="FNanchor_501_501" id="FNanchor_501_501"></a><a href="#Footnote_501_501" class="fnanchor">[501]</a>
-The Genevese theologians had very recently encountered and defeated an
-Arian at Geneva, Claude of Savoy. There was something more than passion
-in this attack; there was absurdity. Calvin leaning towards Deism,
-indeed! The Reformation was not a beginning of Deism, with which stupid
-enemies have charged it: it was a reëstablishing of Christianity.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN ACCUSED OF ARIANISM.</div>
-
-<p>The reformer was struck with astonishment. ‘It had never entered into
-my imagination,’ he wrote, ‘that we had to fear being accused on this
-point.’<a name="FNanchor_502_502" id="FNanchor_502_502"></a><a href="#Footnote_502_502" class="fnanchor">[502]</a> Calvin per<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span>ceived the scope of the attack which Caroli had
-just made. If he were to remain under this charge, his ministry would
-be compromised, his zeal suspected, his labors fruitless. Discord would
-be thrown into the evangelical camp, and Rome exult to see the most
-devoted champions of the Reformation accused of denying the divinity of
-the Saviour. The reformer immediately rose; and without any exhibition
-of violence, with which his enemies are always ready to reproach him,
-he pointed out with much spirit the inconsistency of his opponent.
-‘Only a few days ago,’ he said, ‘Caroli invited me to his table. I was
-at that time a <i>very dear brother</i>. He bade me present his compliments
-to Farel; he treated as Christians all those whom he looks on to-day as
-heretics, and protested that he wished to maintain for ever a brotherly
-union with us. Where, at that time, was the glory of God, where the
-purity of the faith and the unity of the Church?’ Then, turning towards
-the doctor of the Sorbonne&mdash;‘How could you,’ he said, ‘conscientiously
-celebrate the holy supper on two occasions with an Arian associate?
-From what source have you learnt that I am tainted with that heresy?
-Tell me, for I will clear myself of that infamy.’ As Caroli brought
-forward no evidence, the reformer appealed to the catechism which he
-had recently published. ‘This is the faith,’ said he, ‘which I have but
-lately professed. We confess that we believe in the Father, in the Son,
-and in the Holy Spirit; and when we name the Father, the Son, and the
-Spirit, we do not imagine to ourselves three gods. But we believe that
-Scripture and the experience of piety show us the Father, the Son, and
-the Spirit in simplest divine unity.’<a name="FNanchor_503_503" id="FNanchor_503_503"></a><a href="#Footnote_503_503" class="fnanchor">[503]</a></p>
-
-<p>Caroli was not by any means satisfied. The words<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span> in his view essential
-were missing. Calvin thought it advisable, in works of a practical and
-popular character, to avoid the use of expressions which are not found
-in holy Scripture. Therefore he had avoided the use, in the passage
-cited, of the terms <i>Trinity</i>, <i>substance</i>, or <i>persons</i>. Luther had
-done the same. ‘This term, <i>Trinity</i>,’ said he, ‘is nowhere to be
-found in holy Scripture; it was invented by men. Moreover the word
-is frigid, and it is far better to say <i>God</i> than <i>Trinity</i>.’<a name="FNanchor_504_504" id="FNanchor_504_504"></a><a href="#Footnote_504_504" class="fnanchor">[504]</a>
-Calvin, who was full of spirit and life, was afraid that by the use of
-these theological terms Christianity should be placed solely in the
-understanding of the man and of the child, and not in his conscience,
-his heart, his will, and his works. He had employed them the year
-before in the first edition of his <i>Institution</i>, which was intended
-for professed theologians:<a name="FNanchor_505_505" id="FNanchor_505_505"></a><a href="#Footnote_505_505" class="fnanchor">[505]</a> but he had excluded them both from his
-<i>Confession</i>, prepared chiefly for the laity, and from his <i>Catechism</i>,
-composed for children. All this did not pacify Caroli, who, if he was
-orthodox, was only orthodox in the head. He alleged that if Calvin
-was innocent of Arianism, he was guilty of Sabellianism. ‘You will be
-under suspicion on that matter,’ said he, ‘until you have subscribed
-the Athanasian creed.’ ‘My practice,’ replied Calvin, ‘is not to
-approve of anything as in conformity with the Word of God until after
-due consideration.’ Caroli, thinking that the Athanasian creed was
-compromised by this reserve, flew into a passion and cried out, ‘that
-this avowal was unworthy of a Christian.’<a name="FNanchor_506_506" id="FNanchor_506_506"></a><a href="#Footnote_506_506" class="fnanchor">[506]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONVOCATION OF A SYNOD.</div>
-
-<p>Up to this moment Calvin had restrained himself; but he felt deeply
-the injustice of the doctor’s accusations. When he had received an
-unmerited blow, he not seldom replied by striking another himself. The
-blow was just, but sometimes rather sharp. ‘You will not find any one,’
-he said to Caroli, ‘more earnest than I am in maintaining the divinity
-of Jesus Christ. I think that I have given a sufficiently clear account
-of my faith. My works are in everybody’s hands, and all the orthodox
-churches approve my doctrine. But as for you, what evidence have
-you ever given of your faith, except possibly in public-houses and
-the haunts of vice? For it is in such places that you have hitherto
-practised.’</p>
-
-<p>Caroli, knowing all that could be told of his abandoned life, and
-as cowardly as he was rash, trembled when he found that Calvin was
-approaching that subject. In order to break the force of the blow, he
-retracted his charge, and declared that the writings of his opponent
-were good; that he had always spoken well of the Holy Trinity; and that
-no accusation could be drawn up against him, ‘provided that he did not
-support the cause of Farel.’ Caroli feared Farel less than Calvin, and
-hated him more. Viret then spoke, and compelled the presumptuous doctor
-to retract what concerned himself (<i>Viret</i>). ‘These retractations are
-not sufficient,’ said the two reformers; ‘we mean to defend likewise
-the cause of Farel and of our other absent brothers, whom you have
-unjustly accused.’ The delegates of Berne, when they saw what an
-important character the debate was assuming, declared that it was
-necessary to carry it before a general assembly, and undertook to get
-one held. The meeting then broke up.<a name="FNanchor_507_507" id="FNanchor_507_507"></a><a href="#Footnote_507_507" class="fnanchor">[507]</a></p>
-
-<p>These circumstances occurred in February. Calvin, on his return to
-Geneva, fearing that the Bernese delegates might be slow to fulfil
-their promise, and per<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span>ceiving moreover that this affair concerned the
-Church rather than the state, persuaded the ministers of Geneva to
-write to the ministers of Berne, pressing them to take the matter in
-hand.<a name="FNanchor_508_508" id="FNanchor_508_508"></a><a href="#Footnote_508_508" class="fnanchor">[508]</a> He wrote himself to Megander, the chief among the Bernese
-pastors. ‘I cannot find words,’ he said, ‘adequately to express the
-imminent peril to which the Church will be exposed if this business
-be indefinitely postponed. The influence which your position gives
-you lays on you more than any one else the obligation to use all your
-efforts to promote an early meeting of the assembly. You cannot imagine
-how severely the blow struck by Caroli has shaken the foundation which
-we have laid. People are saying, especially, even in country places,
-that we ought to begin by agreeing among ourselves before we think of
-converting others. Let us not allow the coat of the Gospel, woven in
-one piece, to be rent by wicked men. Do all that is possible to secure
-the meeting, before Easter, of all the French-speaking ministers who
-live under the government of your republic.’<a name="FNanchor_509_509" id="FNanchor_509_509"></a><a href="#Footnote_509_509" class="fnanchor">[509]</a> Easter fell in that
-year on April 1.</p>
-
-<p>As the reformer received no satisfactory reply, he set out for Berne
-in the first fortnight in March, and implored the magistrates, the
-councillors, and the pastors to convoke the synod immediately. This
-was refused him, probably on account of the business which accumulates
-during the weeks preceding the feast of Easter; but they promised him
-that the assembly should be convoked immediately after Easter.<a name="FNanchor_510_510" id="FNanchor_510_510"></a><a href="#Footnote_510_510" class="fnanchor">[510]</a>
-We see what courage and activity Calvin displayed; this was one of
-the signs of his genius. Farel, on the contrary, was worn out by the
-distress of mind which this affair had occasioned him. His condition
-was afflicting to his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span> friends. ‘I should never have believed,’ said
-Calvin to Viret, ‘that with his iron constitution he could have been so
-pulled down.’ Farel’s age and his immense labors, however, accounted
-for his state. Calvin, alarmed at the prospect of losing so invaluable
-a fellow-laborer, wrote to Viret: ‘It is indispensable that you should
-return to us, unless we are prepared to see Farel die of grief. If we
-allow a breach to be made in the Genevese Church, I am afraid that
-schism will tear it to pieces.’<a name="FNanchor_511_511" id="FNanchor_511_511"></a><a href="#Footnote_511_511" class="fnanchor">[511]</a> Instead of diminishing, the
-energy of Calvin appeared to increase, for he felt the justice of his
-cause. ‘I am ready,’ he said, ‘to maintain the contest with the utmost
-energy. The charges, first of Arianism, and then of Sabellianism, have
-not greatly disturbed us; our ears have been long accustomed to such
-calumnies, and we are confident that they will all end in smoke.’<a name="FNanchor_512_512" id="FNanchor_512_512"></a><a href="#Footnote_512_512" class="fnanchor">[512]</a>
-The valiant champion therefore awaited fearlessly the convocation of
-the synod. The council of Geneva, on receiving the letters from the
-lords of Berne respecting this gathering, invited the <i>preachers</i> to
-go thither; and on May 11 the treasurer placed in Farel’s hands fifty
-florins, to cover the expenses of the journey.<a name="FNanchor_513_513" id="FNanchor_513_513"></a><a href="#Footnote_513_513" class="fnanchor">[513]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SYNOD OF LAUSANNE.</div>
-
-<p>The assembly met at Lausanne. On May 13<a name="FNanchor_514_514" id="FNanchor_514_514"></a><a href="#Footnote_514_514" class="fnanchor">[514]</a> there were seen entering
-the church of St. Francis the banderet Rodolph de Graffenried, Nicholas
-Zerkinden, secretary of state, the pastor Grosmann, commonly called
-Megander, and another deputy from Berne. From Geneva came Calvin,
-Farel, and Courault; about twenty ministers from Neuchâtel, and a
-hundred pastors from the Pays de Vaud, among the latter, Viret. Caroli,
-it seems, came with a bag such as barristers are accus<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span>tomed to carry,
-containing the brief of his proceedings.<a name="FNanchor_515_515" id="FNanchor_515_515"></a><a href="#Footnote_515_515" class="fnanchor">[515]</a> Megander was president.
-He stated that the assembly had met in consequence of the charge
-brought by Caroli against several ministers, of not believing in the
-Trinity, nor in the divinity of Jesus Christ. Then addressing Viret, a
-subject of Berne, he inquired what was his opinion on that doctrine.
-‘When we confess one only God,’ replied the pastor of Lausanne, ‘we
-comprehend the Father, with his eternal Word, and his Spirit, in one
-single and divine essence. Nevertheless we do not confound the Father
-with the Word, nor the Word with the Spirit.’ Caroli rose and said
-with bitterness, ‘This profession is too short, too dry, too obscure.
-No mention is made in it of the <i>Trinity</i>, nor of <i>substance</i>, nor
-of <i>person</i>.’ Then taking a declamatory tone, he began to recite the
-Nicene creed, afterwards the Athanasian creed, making undignified
-gestures with his hands and arms, and moving his head and his body
-about in such an extraordinary way that the grave assembly could not
-refrain from laughter. In closing his speech, he said to his adversary,
-‘Nothing can clear you from the charge of heresy except your signing
-the three œcumenical creeds.’<a name="FNanchor_516_516" id="FNanchor_516_516"></a><a href="#Footnote_516_516" class="fnanchor">[516]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAROLI UNMASKED.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin listened to him without interrupting him; but he could no longer
-keep silence. A justification on his part was almost superfluous. He
-had fully professed the doctrine in his popular writings; he had even,
-as we have seen, employed the terms of the school in his theological
-<i>Institution</i>. But the point of importance for the safety of the Church
-was to make his adversary known, to tear the mask from his face. That
-man, of dissolute life, destitute of convictions, destitute of faith,
-whose only thought was how to get possession of the highest<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span> place,
-and who was endeavoring to conceal the licentiousness of his evil life
-under the pretence of religion, dared to accuse, with hypocritical
-lips, the faithful servants of God. A course so revolting roused
-Calvin’s indignation; and from his lips fell such earnest words as
-were inspired by the fraud, the vices, and the shamelessness of his
-adversary. He completely stripped the man. ‘What wickedness this is,’
-said he, ‘without any cause but mere lawless passions, to disturb the
-Church and to check the progress of the Gospel by bringing atrocious
-accusations against persons entirely innocent, who have rendered the
-most conspicuous services to the truth! Caroli sets up a quarrel with
-us about the distinction of the persons in God. I am going to examine
-him in turn, but I take up the subject at a higher point, and I ask
-him if only he believes in God. I declare before God and before men,
-that he has no more faith in the divine Word than the dog and the swine
-that trample under foot holy things.’ Some will perhaps exclaim against
-this language, but it must be remembered that Calvin took these two
-words from holy Scripture, where they are used to mark two different
-characters, of both of which we must equally beware.<a name="FNanchor_517_517" id="FNanchor_517_517"></a><a href="#Footnote_517_517" class="fnanchor">[517]</a> ‘Give not
-that which is holy unto the dogs,’ said Jesus, ‘neither cast ye your
-pearls before swine.’ The swine represent men defiled by debauchery,
-and the dog is the beast that barks, pursues, and bites. These two
-kinds of excess precisely characterized Caroli.</p>
-
-<p>But Calvin did not stop there. He did not mean that people should be
-able to say that the ministers were not cleared of the charges brought
-against them. He therefore made a confession which had been beforehand
-approved by his colleagues. ‘When we distinguish the Father, his
-eternal Word, and his Spirit,’ said he, ‘we believe, in common with
-ecclesiastical writers, that in the simple unity of God there are
-three hypostases or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span> substances, which, although they be one sole and
-identical essence, are nevertheless not confounded with each other.
-With respect to Jesus Christ,’ he added, ‘before taking on himself our
-flesh, he was the eternal Word, begotten of the Father before time was,
-very God, of one same essence, power, and majesty with the Father,
-Jehovah himself, who has ever existed of himself, and gives to others
-the property of existing.’<a name="FNanchor_518_518" id="FNanchor_518_518"></a><a href="#Footnote_518_518" class="fnanchor">[518]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN AND THE EARLY CREEDS.</div>
-
-<p>This declaration baffled Caroli; and now, after having very strongly
-asserted that Calvin was not orthodox enough, he began to cry out that
-he was too much so. ‘What,’ said he, ‘you attribute to Jesus Christ
-the name and the nature of Jehovah; you say that he has of himself
-the divine essence!’ Calvin replied, ‘If we attentively consider
-the difference between the Father and the Word, we must acknowledge
-that the Word proceeds from the Father. But if we concern ourselves
-with the essence itself of the Word, so far as the Word is God with
-the Father, all that is said of the one must likewise be said of the
-other.’<a name="FNanchor_519_519" id="FNanchor_519_519"></a><a href="#Footnote_519_519" class="fnanchor">[519]</a> Caroli, giving up the matter, took refuge in the words.
-‘In your confession,’ said he, ‘there is not the word <i>Trinity</i>, there
-is not the word <i>person</i>.’ Then, wishing to compel Calvin and the other
-ministers to adopt the confessions made by men,&mdash;‘I demand,’ said he,
-‘that you sign the three ancient creeds.’ Calvin and the ministers
-who were with him would have given their signature under other
-circumstances, but they now refused it for very wise reasons. ‘Caroli,’
-they said, ‘by compelling us to sign, wishes to throw suspicion on our
-faith. We do not consider it fitting to show him so much deference.
-Moreover, we will not, by our example, promote the introduction into
-the Church of a <i>tyranny</i> which would brand every man as a heretic who
-will not express himself in terms dic<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[317]</a></span>tated by another.’<a name="FNanchor_520_520" id="FNanchor_520_520"></a><a href="#Footnote_520_520" class="fnanchor">[520]</a> Herein
-Calvin gave proof at the same time of a magnanimity and a fidelity
-which do him honor. Every Church, in his opinion, ought to confess its
-doctrine, but he would rather that the confession should be the product
-of the life and the faith of those who make it; and not a mere return
-to ten or twelve centuries back, in order to seek the truth in the
-antiquated phrases of another age. He professed with all his heart the
-doctrine enunciated in the early creeds, the Nicene and the so-called
-Athanasian, which set forth, perhaps with superfluity of words, but
-nevertheless with much force, a faith which is dear to Christian men.
-But he felt that these writings were wanting in evangelical simplicity.
-The phrases ‘God of God, Light of Light’ (Θεὸς ἐκ Θεοῦ, Φῶς ἐκ Φωτὸς),
-used in the Nicene creed, appeared to him less apostolic than Oriental
-in their character. It shocked him that the <i>Quicunque</i>, better known
-under the name of the Athanasian creed, just at the time when it is
-going to make subtle distinctions, such as the faith of a simple
-Christian man cannot comprehend, should begin by asserting&mdash;‘Whosoever
-will be saved, before all things it is necessary that he hold the
-Catholic faith (that of the creed). Which faith, except every one do
-keep whole and undefiled, without doubt he shall perish everlastingly.’
-Caroli’s ignorance as to this profession of faith was so great that
-he believed it was drawn up at Nicæa in <span class="smcap">A.D.</span> 325, and by
-Athanasius. This was startling to Calvin. The creed appears, in
-fact, to have been formed gradually in the African church, some of
-its formulæ being met with towards the close of the seventh century;
-but it did not exist as a whole until the age of Charlemagne, nearly
-five centuries after the council of Nicæa. That was an age in which,
-if the doctrine of the divine nature was truly stated, the doctrines
-of jus<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[318]</a></span>tification by grace and of the new birth by the Spirit were
-obscured. Semi-Pelagianism was more and more invading the Church;
-literary and scientific culture, decried by the monks as belonging to
-paganism, was becoming rare; the state, not content with deciding on
-the exterior relations of the Church, published edicts on the articles
-of faith or of doctrine; miracles were alleged to be wrought by relics;
-the bishops of Rome assumed the title of universal bishop, a title
-branded by Gregory the Great as antichristian; the controversy about
-images was especially agitating men’s minds; both the Church and the
-state were in the utmost confusion; the bishops took up arms against
-the lords; the clergy, both regular and secular, were without culture
-and without discipline; and, in one word, Christianity had lost the
-life which was peculiarly its own. It was, doubtless, the existence
-of this melancholy condition of society at the period in which the
-<i>Quicunque</i> was formed that induced Calvin to make reservations, and to
-declare that it was to the belief in one only God that he made oath,
-and not to the belief of Athanasius, whose creed no genuine Church
-would have accepted.<a name="FNanchor_521_521" id="FNanchor_521_521"></a><a href="#Footnote_521_521" class="fnanchor">[521]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SYNOD OF BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>The synod, having heard both parties and maturely considered the
-matter, acknowledged the confession of the Genevese ministers to
-be good and orthodox; and they condemned Caroli, and declared him
-henceforth unworthy to fulfil the functions of the ministry. ‘We
-have, by our refutation,’ said Calvin, ‘exhausted all that bag of
-Caroli’s;<a name="FNanchor_522_522" id="FNanchor_522_522"></a><a href="#Footnote_522_522" class="fnanchor">[522]</a> with regard to ourselves there now remains not the
-slightest suspicion.’ Caroli appealed from the sentence of the synod
-to the lords of Berne.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[319]</a></span> Who was right? Who was wrong? Calvin or
-Caroli? Judgments have differed on the point. Some have said, ‘The
-denunciation by Caroli was not altogether unfounded; it is no wonder
-that he declared himself dissatisfied and maintained his charge.’
-Others have added that Calvin fell on his adversary with a violence
-which made the assembly tremble, and which afforded the first instance
-of that fearful anger with which so often afterwards he struck down
-those who were against him.<a name="FNanchor_523_523" id="FNanchor_523_523"></a><a href="#Footnote_523_523" class="fnanchor">[523]</a> This is not our opinion. As to his
-expressions, Calvin’s defence is not so terrible, so passionate, if we
-call to mind the sort of man with whom he had to deal; and as for the
-hardest words of the reformer, they are, as we have seen, two which he
-adopted from the Saviour himself. As to the substance of the defence,
-he would not bring forward, as Roman Catholics do, human authorities;
-he preferred to hold fast to the Word of God. That is his chief glory,
-and therein does he show himself a genuine reformer, as Luther did. His
-adversary was an immoral character, and the Reformation would make no
-covenant with immorality. Who would blame him for that? Calvin could
-not consent that a dissolute man, whose hand was stained with the
-blood of the saints, should pass for an Athanasius, one of the noblest
-of the ancient doctors of the Church. He was, above all, profoundly
-afflicted by the thought that the blow struck by that man was shaking
-the foundations of the spiritual building which was being erected to
-the glory of God.</p>
-
-<p>These debates made a great noise in other lands. All kinds of rumors
-were current at a distance, and evil reports were circulated about the
-Genevese reformers. People were asking one another what this contest
-between Caroli and Calvin was about, and they waited impatiently for
-the issue of it. French vivacity had been offensive to some theologians
-of German Switzer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[320]</a></span>land. Megander himself complained to Bullinger of the
-annoyance which those turbulent Frenchmen had caused him.<a name="FNanchor_524_524" id="FNanchor_524_524"></a><a href="#Footnote_524_524" class="fnanchor">[524]</a> People,
-however, were as easily agitated in German Switzerland, and even in
-the land of Luther. Some Catholics began to attach importance to these
-struggles, and to take advantage of them. Letters were exchanged on
-the subject. Bucer and Capito wrote from Strasburg, the former to
-Melanchthon, the latter to Farel; and Myconius wrote from Basel to
-the assembly itself. This must needs invest with more solemnity the
-judgment on the appeal which was about to be heard at Berne.</p>
-
-<p>‘On May 24, Guillaume Farel requested of the council of Geneva to send
-to that city Master Cauvin (Calvin) for any battle (<i>journée</i>) there
-was to be, to take part in the disputation. Upon which it was resolved
-that he should go.’<a name="FNanchor_525_525" id="FNanchor_525_525"></a><a href="#Footnote_525_525" class="fnanchor">[525]</a> Berne had shown a certain favor towards
-Caroli. It might therefore be feared that the judgment pronounced at
-Lausanne would not be confirmed. We cannot tell what the sentence would
-have been if it had been pronounced by the state authorities. But the
-council, finding that it was a question of doctrine, had convoked at
-Berne the synod of the Bernese Church for the end of May. The debate
-was opened in the presence of the great council, which doubtless took
-part so far in the cause. The would-be Athanasius supported his charge
-with confidence and a haughty spirit, assuming to play in the sixteenth
-century the part which the great bishop of Alexandria had played in the
-fourth. Calvin completely justified both himself and his colleagues.
-Consequently the reformer was once more entirely acquitted, and
-declared free not only from all fault but also from all suspicion. As
-for Caroli, he was pronounced a slanderer, and as such condemned.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">[321]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONDEMNATION OF CAROLI.</div>
-
-<p>When that was over, the lords of Berne inquired of Calvin, Farel, and
-Viret whether Caroli was, so far as they knew, guilty in any respect,
-either in his private life or especially in his ministry. As soon as
-he heard these words, the doctor of the Sorbonne, seeing that his own
-turn was come, was terror-struck, and vehemently opposed the inquiry.
-‘Those whom I have just accused of great crimes,’ said he, ‘cannot be
-allowed to bring formal charges against me.’ ‘You have indeed accused
-them,’ replied the Bernese, ‘and without being able to substantiate
-your charges. Why then should they not be allowed to accuse you?’ And
-the doctors were enjoined to communicate anything they knew with regard
-to him. Thereupon this man, who had no heart, no moral sentiment,
-was disconcerted; and as he dreaded above all the revelations of his
-adversaries, he fancied that the best way to avert them was to accuse
-himself. He began therefore to confess the faults with which he knew
-that Farel and his friends were well acquainted&mdash;the debaucheries to
-which he had addicted himself in France, the meanness with which he had
-dissembled his sentiments in matters of religion, and the cruel perfidy
-which had prompted him to deliver to death two young Christians whose
-way of thinking he himself approved. It was a strange sight! Here was a
-singular penitent, without repentance and without scruple, assuming a
-contrite air and confessing his faults solely because he hoped in that
-way to secure exemption from punishment. ‘A devil’s penitent!’ said
-Tertullian in such cases.</p>
-
-<p>Farel had let him speak; nevertheless he did not think that he was
-thereby discharged from the injunction which had been given him. He
-was acquainted with certain traits of Caroli’s life which might give
-the lords of Berne the intelligence of which they were in need. He
-narrated the shameful licentiousness of the man, who had lived at Paris
-with women of the vilest<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">[322]</a></span> reputation, and had actually been accused of
-keeping five or six at a time. He showed how two young men, carried
-away by their zeal against images, had taken it into their heads to
-hang some of them; and how that same Caroli, who at that time professed
-that the worship of images diverts men from the knowledge of the true
-God, had caused these youths to be kept in the prison into which they
-had been cast until two judges arrived, who had them delivered over to
-the executioners. Viret related the discussion which he had held with
-Caroli on the subject of prayers for the dead; and, at the request of
-the Bernese, reported various details of his conduct, among others his
-drunkenness, which had more than once exposed him to the derision of
-the public.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BERNE PROMOTES THE REFORMATION.</div>
-
-<p>In consequence of these debates, Caroli was deprived of his functions
-by the synod. The great council of Berne confirmed this sentence;
-pronounced Farel, Calvin, and Viret innocent of the charges brought
-against them; condemned Caroli to banishment as guilty of slander
-and other excesses; and remitted the cause to the consistory to be
-formally terminated. As the presumptuous doctor was unwilling to
-submit to that authority, the parties were summoned before the civil
-magistrates (<i>avoyers</i>) and the councils. Calvin, Farel, and Viret
-accordingly presented themselves, June 6, but Caroli did not appear.
-An usher, sent by the lords of Berne to seek him, brought word that he
-had disappeared.<a name="FNanchor_526_526" id="FNanchor_526_526"></a><a href="#Footnote_526_526" class="fnanchor">[526]</a> He had in fact fled early in the morning, and had
-taken the road to Soleure. From that place he withdrew into France, to
-the cardinal of Tournon, the great enemy of the Reformation. The latter
-obtained absolution for Caroli from the pope. The wretched man had
-hoped that, by returning into the Roman Church, he should get a good
-benefice; but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">[323]</a></span> he found that he was held in equal contempt by Catholics
-and Protestants. To close the affair, it was agreed to approve the
-terms Trinity, substance, and persons (Calvin himself had made use of
-them); but at the same time that if any pious man declined to employ
-them, ‘he should not be cast out of the Church, nor should be looked on
-as one who thought wrongly as to the faith.’<a name="FNanchor_527_527" id="FNanchor_527_527"></a><a href="#Footnote_527_527" class="fnanchor">[527]</a></p>
-
-<p>This episode in Calvin’s life shows us not only his firm attachment
-to the truth, which everyone acknowledges, but likewise a spirit of
-freedom which is ordinarily denied to him. It is clear that with
-him the Word of God stood before all, and that the faith, the life,
-and essence of Christianity had more value in his eyes than mere
-traditional terms, which are not to be found in the Scriptures.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER VI.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">CALVIN AT THE SYNOD OF BERNE.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(September, 1537.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<p>This was not the only triumph which Calvin achieved, nor the only synod
-of Berne in which he took part. Keen debates were at that time going
-on in the evangelical Churches of Switzerland. They had gradually
-arisen after the disaster of Cappel in 1531. In the canton of Soleure
-the Reformation had indeed been crushed by the intervention of the
-Catholics, although the majority in the country and a minority in
-the town were Protestants. But other cantons had remained faithful
-to the Reform. In Bullinger, Zurich had found a worthy successor to
-Zwingli; and Oswald Myconius<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">[324]</a></span> happily filled the place of the amiable
-Œcolampadius at Basel. Berne, not satisfied with having adopted the
-Reformation herself, eagerly promoted its establishment everywhere.
-The great question which was then under discussion was this&mdash;Should
-the Swiss Churches unite themselves with the Lutheran Churches or not?
-Bucer, at Strasburg, warmly advocated the union; and the magistrates,
-above all those of Berne, were not at all opposed to it. They had
-political skill enough to perceive that the Church of the Reformation,
-then so formidably threatened, had need to combine its whole forces.
-The pastors of Berne, Haller, Megander, and Kolb, were desirous of
-extending a friendly hand to Luther; but those free Swiss, disciples
-and friends of Zwingli, disliked the equivocal formulæ of Bucer. The
-Zuricher Megander, in particular, a learned professor and an eloquent
-preacher, but of rash character, violent and somewhat domineering,
-designated by his opponents the <i>ape of Zwingli</i>,<a name="FNanchor_528_528" id="FNanchor_528_528"></a><a href="#Footnote_528_528" class="fnanchor">[528]</a> had set himself
-the task of maintaining at Berne the theology of the Zurich reformer.
-As Haller and Kolb were then enfeebled by age and ill-health, Megander
-exercised a powerful influence over the country pastors; and the
-magistrates themselves, aware of his abilities, committed to his hands
-the most important affairs. The Zurichers had drawn up a confession on
-the Lord’s supper in conformity with Bucer’s wishes. Basel, St. Gall,
-and Schaffhausen had approved it; but Megander induced his colleagues
-to reject it. The French diplomatists also, who were anxious to obtain
-the assistance of the Swiss and German Protestants against Charles
-V., said&mdash;‘All the Swiss towns agree with Luther except these Bernese
-blockheads, who walk backwards like crabs, and stick<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">[325]</a></span> obstinately to an
-opinion which they cannot possibly defend.’<a name="FNanchor_529_529" id="FNanchor_529_529"></a><a href="#Footnote_529_529" class="fnanchor">[529]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE ZWINGLIANS AT BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>The Bernese magistrates, however, were not willing to break with their
-allies. The war against Savoy, which they had undertaken in 1536,
-for the defence of Geneva and the occupation of the Pays de Vaud,
-had convinced them of the need of their support. Consequently, they
-sent delegates to the four colloquies which were held that same year
-at Basel, to take into consideration the agreement with the doctors
-of Wittenberg. But the council, so far from breaking with Megander,
-put him at the head of these theologians. So the confession which was
-prepared at the first of these colloquies, in January 1536 (the second
-conference of Basel and the first of Switzerland,) when speaking of
-eating the body and drinking the blood of Christ, added that this
-took place only in a spiritual sense. This displeased Bucer. The
-Zwinglians, in turn, called him ‘a doubled-faced man,’ and said that
-this pretended peacemaker brought division into the Helvetic Churches.
-It was to no purpose that his defence was undertaken by Myconius, who,
-since 1532, had presided as overseer of the Church at Basel, and the
-learned professor Grynæus. The Zwinglian party would not hear a word
-about an agreement with the <i>Strasburg trimmer</i>. Various circumstances
-occurred to bring about a change in this state of things. The Swiss
-and the Bernese themselves were touched by the beautiful letter which
-Luther had written to the burgomaster of Basel, in which he spoke
-approvingly of the confession drawn up in that city. The aged Kolb,
-pastor of Berne, had died at the end of 1535; and on February 25,
-1536, Haller also had passed into the unseen world. A great change
-then took place in Berne. Kunz, a man of a very different spirit from
-Zwingli and Haller, became pastor in the place of Kolb. Having studied
-at Wittenberg, he was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">[326]</a></span> a passionate admirer of Luther and of his
-doctrine. Of ardent temperament, Kunz longed to promote the triumph of
-his master’s doctrine, and so much the more as he was his inferior in
-respect to the living faith of the Gospel. Sebastian Meyer, a former
-Franciscan, who from the beginning of his ministry had been remarkable
-for the violence of his discourses, and who was a friend of Bucer, had
-taken the place of Haller. The council had probably been influenced in
-the election of these men by the Strasburg doctors, with whose projects
-the members were more and more pleased. Thus it seemed likely that in
-Berne the Lutheran party would succeed the Zwinglian. The new pastors,
-however, did not immediately set up their claim; they rather applied
-themselves to the preparation of men’s minds, and their conquests
-were very numerous, especially among politicians. But Megander, the
-inflexible Zwinglian, still kept the upper hand; and it was he who
-spoke in the name of Berne in the Swiss assemblies. Bucer, doubtless,
-had him in mind when he complained to Luther ‘of those untractable
-heads which are found in Switzerland, which for every trifle make so
-much ado.’<a name="FNanchor_530_530" id="FNanchor_530_530"></a><a href="#Footnote_530_530" class="fnanchor">[530]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">A PATCHED-UP PEACE.</div>
-
-<p>The new pastors of Berne, encouraged by their friends abroad, threw
-off the restraint which they had at first imposed on their speech.
-Sebastian Meyer, in particular, giving way to his natural disposition,
-thoroughly headlong and incautious, taught publicly that in the supper
-the body of Christ is truly eaten and his blood truly drunk, but took
-care to add, <i>by faith</i>. Kunz supported him. The conflict thus began.
-Megander and Erasmus Ritter started up to oppose this doctrine; and
-Meyer did not hesitate to say in the colloquies that the doctrine of
-the supper had never been rightly taught in the canton of Berne. The
-Bernese council convoked a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">[327]</a></span> synod, at which three hundred ministers
-of the German and French cantons of Switzerland were present. Meyer,
-together with Kunz, vividly depicted the evils which would be involved
-in a rejection of the agreement. Erasmus Ritter, with Megander, replied
-that an agreement was certainly very much to be desired, but that the
-truth must not be sacrificed to it. The Zwinglian party had the best
-of it. They agreed to stand by the second confession of Basel, and to
-avoid the use of terms which gave origin to the disputes; such as,
-<i>corporal</i>, <i>real</i>, <i>natural</i>, <i>supernatural</i>, <i>invisible</i>, <i>carnal</i>,
-<i>miraculous</i>, <i>inexpressible presence</i>. But this patched-up peace was
-of short duration. The secret correspondence between Bucer and Luther
-having been published, the Zwinglians were scandalized, people’s minds
-were thrown into agitation, and the edifice of concord, which they had
-toiled to rear, threatened to crumble away. Bucer then applied to the
-council of Berne, and requested it to convoke a synod at which he might
-be allowed to vindicate himself. ‘This whole business of the supper,’
-said he, ‘is a mere dispute about words, but it is of the utmost
-importance to put an end to it; and I appeal to the justice of the
-Bernese magistrates, who cannot allow a man, whoever he may be, to be
-condemned before he is heard.’ Another synod was consequently convoked
-at Berne, for the month of September.<a name="FNanchor_531_531" id="FNanchor_531_531"></a><a href="#Footnote_531_531" class="fnanchor">[531]</a></p>
-
-<p>Everybody was aware of the importance of this assembly. Bucer and
-Capito arrived in the city, provided with a letter of introduction
-from the magistrates of Strasburg, and accompanied by two theologians
-from Basel, Myconius and Grynæus, who though sincerely adhering to
-the reformed party, earnestly desired the union. Almost at the same
-time, three ministers from the French cantons, who had been specially
-invited, entered Berne; they were Calvin, Farel, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">[328]</a></span> Viret. Those who
-knew that at Geneva they allowed neither unleavened bread nor baptismal
-fonts, nor the feasts and rites to which the Lutherans were strongly
-attached, could entertain no doubt that these bold champions would
-take the side of the Zwinglians. The pastors of the canton of Berne
-were represented only by delegates of classes. The government, fearing
-lest the spirit of discord should mar the meeting, requested Bucer
-and Capito to confine themselves to their own justification, and not
-to meddle with other matters. They were not even permitted to preach,
-except on condition that they did not introduce disputed topics in
-the pulpit. The assembly met at the Town Hall, in the presence of the
-two councils of the republic, and under the presidency of the mayor
-(<i>Schultheiss</i>) de Watteville. After the customary formalities, this
-magistrate invited the Strasburgers to begin. ‘Union in matters which
-concern the glory of God and the benefit of the Church,’ said Bucer,
-‘is already established in a great number of kingdoms, duchies, and
-principalities; and the churches of the Swiss confederation form almost
-the only exception, it is thus that Satan opposes the kingdom of God.
-Yes, it is to Satan that are owing those suspicions which are prevalent
-respecting the agreement which we are striving to bring about. We
-demand that passion should be silenced, and that God should be regarded
-rather than men. You have lent one ear to calumny, lend the other now
-to the voice of truth. If you condemn us, you will condemn many other
-Churches, and particularly that Church whose representatives met at
-Smalcalde, and which includes within its pale many learned and pious
-men.’ Bucer next, desirous of clearing himself from the reproaches
-which had been addressed to him, pointed out that Zwingli and Luther
-had set out from two different points of view; Zwingli striving to keep
-as far away as possible from the Roman dogma of transubstantiation,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">[329]</a></span>
-and Luther endeavoring to maintain that there is nevertheless some kind
-of real presence in the bread. In making afterwards his own confession
-of faith, he said, ‘No, the bread and the wine are not mere signs;
-the presence of Christ by faith is not a mere logical presence, not
-imaginary, such as that which I have when I say, for instance, that I
-now see my wife at Strasburg.<a name="FNanchor_532_532" id="FNanchor_532_532"></a><a href="#Footnote_532_532" class="fnanchor">[532]</a> Faith requires something higher than
-that. When I say with you, Christ is present in a celestial manner,
-and with Luther, Christ is present in an essential manner, I express
-fundamentally one and the same faith.’ On the following day, Capito
-coming to the support of his colleague, preached a sermon in which he
-endeavored to show that Zwingli and Œcolampadius were in agreement with
-Luther. They were so on the essential point of seeking and finding in
-the supper a true communion with the Saviour.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BUCER’S VIEWS.</div>
-
-<p>Megander had been charged with the duty of speaking on behalf of the
-synod. Brevity and moderation had been recommended, lest any imprudent
-word should give rise to a dispute. For him this task was not an easy
-one. In fact, the next day he attacked Bucer and Capito with some
-vehemence, upbraiding them for being with Luther rather than with the
-Swiss, and with having, in other places, signed <i>certain acts</i> which
-the Swiss could not sign. ‘I have,’ said he, in drawing to a close,
-‘some letters in which Bucer is spoken of. However, I think better
-of him than those letters, and I should be pleased if we could agree
-with him.’ Unhappily, they were far enough from such agreement. The
-discussion grew warm. ‘You teach children in your catechism,’ said
-Bucer, ‘to receive a sign in the supper, without reminding them of the
-thing signified.’ ‘How then,’ exclaimed some of the Bernese ministers,
-‘can you pretend that we hold the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">[330]</a></span> same faith?’ ‘Let Bucer speak,’
-said Megander; ‘we will reply to him in the afternoon.’ But, in that
-afternoon sitting, Bucer began anew to discourse to the Swiss about the
-sacrament. ‘Enough of these homilies,’ said Megander, impatiently. ‘You
-shut our mouths,’ said Bucer. ‘Let all those,’ said Megander, ‘who have
-anything to say speak freely.’ But not one of the Bernese pastors rose.</p>
-
-<p>A good understanding seemed impossible. The leaders on both sides
-were angry and provoked each other. The vessel of concord, built by
-the careful toil of the pastors of Strasburg, was violently tossed
-and was going to founder in the Helvetic waters. Disagreeing in
-doctrine, said one of those who were present on this occasion, there
-was nothing between them but debate, a deadly plague in a Church. Where
-were they to find the last plank, the desperate resource for escape
-from shipwreck? They must founder, or be saved as if by miracle. A
-young man, of only eight-and-twenty, but known for his love of the
-Holy Scriptures and his slight respect for tradition, was sorrowfully
-contemplating these discussions. It was John Calvin, he who called the
-discussions ‘a deadly plague’ for the Church. His convictions were free
-and spontaneous. They did not proceed, as with others, from a desire
-for compromise, but from a perception of what is the essence of the
-faith. He would not at any price have sought some expedient for the
-union of minds by a sacrifice of truth. But he knew by experience the
-power of the Holy Spirit; and he was the man called to stand between
-the two armies, to get the sword returned to its sheath, and to found
-unity and peace.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">INTERVENTION OF CALVIN.</div>
-
-<p>We almost hesitate to report his words, because they will be difficult
-to comprehend. He spoke, for the faithful, of a complete union with
-Christ, even with his flesh and his blood, and nevertheless of a
-union which is effected only by the Spirit. Calvin’s speech was of
-so<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">[331]</a></span> much importance that we cannot think of suppressing it. Vulgar
-minds insist on comprehending everything as they do the working of a
-steam-engine; but the greatest minds have acknowledged the reality
-of the incomprehensible. Descartes said that ‘in order to attain a
-true idea of the infinite, it is not in any sense to be comprehended,
-inasmuch as incomprehensibility itself is contained in the formal
-definition of the infinite.’ ‘Infinity is everywhere, and consequently
-incomprehensibility likewise,’ said Nicole.<a name="FNanchor_533_533" id="FNanchor_533_533"></a><a href="#Footnote_533_533" class="fnanchor">[533]</a> The Christian
-however comprehends to a certain extent the mystery which we are now
-considering, and above all he experiences its reality. ‘If, as the
-Scriptures clearly testify,’ said Calvin at the synod of Berne (1537),
-‘the flesh of Christ is meat indeed, and his blood is drink indeed, it
-follows that if we seek life in Christ, we must be thereby veritably
-fed. The spiritual life which Christ gives us consists not only in his
-making us alive by his Spirit, but in his rendering us, by the power of
-his Spirit, partakers of his life-giving flesh, and by means of this
-participation, nourishing us for eternal life.<a name="FNanchor_534_534" id="FNanchor_534_534"></a><a href="#Footnote_534_534" class="fnanchor">[534]</a> Therefore, when we
-speak of the communion which the faithful have with Christ, we teach
-that they receive the communication of his body and his blood, no less
-than that of his Spirit, so that they possess Christ wholly.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is true that our Lord has gone up on high, and that his local
-presence has thus been withdrawn from us. But this fact does not
-invalidate our assertion, and that local presence is by no means
-necessary here. So long as we are pilgrims on the earth, we are not
-contained in the same place with him. But there is no obstacle to the
-efficacy of the Spirit; he can collect and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">[332]</a></span> unite elements existing
-in far separated places. The Spirit is the means by which we are
-partakers of Christ. That Spirit nourishes us with the flesh and the
-blood of the Lord, and thus quickens us for immortality. Christ offers
-this communion under the symbols of bread and wine to all those who
-celebrate the supper aright and in accordance with his institution.’</p>
-
-<p>Such was Calvin’s speech. ‘I embrace as orthodox,’ said Bucer, ‘this
-view of our excellent brothers Calvin, Farel, and Viret. I never held
-that Christ was locally present in the holy supper.<a name="FNanchor_535_535" id="FNanchor_535_535"></a><a href="#Footnote_535_535" class="fnanchor">[535]</a> He has a real
-finite body, and that body remains in the celestial glory. But in
-raising us by faith to heaven, the bread which we eat and the cup which
-we drink are for us the communication of his body and his blood.’</p>
-
-<p>Calvin wrote down his view. Bucer appended to it the words last
-reported. Capito signed them. Bucer even succeeded, by dint of
-moderation and kindliness, in <i>taming</i> Kunz; and the latter showed
-in this instance some goodwill. ‘But,’ said Calvin at a later time,
-‘that single moment was soon past, and he became worse than himself.’
-The synod acknowledged the Strasburgers as justified, as faithful,
-as Christians, and their confession of faith as not in any respect
-contrary to the Helvetic confessions. Megander was invited to modify
-his catechism to a small extent so far as it treated of the doctrine
-of the supper, and this he agreed to do. The deputies of the pastors
-of the canton went to the hostelry where Bucer and Capito lodged, and
-requested their co-operation in putting an end to the difficulties
-which existed between the ministers of the city. The council itself
-exhorted these pastors to concord and peace. Such was the force of
-the speech of a single man, that at the moment when the waves were in
-stormiest agitation, there was suddenly a great calm.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">[333]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>God was in the midst of us, said one of the attendants. The divine
-power had employed the speech of the reformer to appease the tumult and
-establish agreement and unity.<a name="FNanchor_536_536" id="FNanchor_536_536"></a><a href="#Footnote_536_536" class="fnanchor">[536]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">GENEVA.&mdash;THE CONFESSION OF FAITH SWORN AT ST. PETER’S.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(End of 1537.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>It was not only in his relations with those Christian men, Megander and
-Bucer, or with the wretched Caroli, that Calvin’s efforts were crowned
-with success. Happy presages seemed to announce to him a blessed and
-powerful ministry at Geneva. His reformation, as we have seen, was
-not only doctrinal but moral, a fact of the highest importance for
-the Church and for the people. But, as happens in all human affairs,
-a few spots sullied this beautiful aspect of his work. Rules were
-introduced which were too circumstantial, and a mode of repression
-which was too legal. Calvin found at the time a sympathy on the part of
-the magistrates which was pleasant to him, but which at the same time
-intruded the civil power into matters for which the moral influence of
-the Church ought to have sufficed. All his requests were complied with.
-He asked, together with Farel, for four preachers and two deacons, and
-they were granted. He represented that there was a preacher, a good
-man from Provence, who would fain retire to Geneva; and they gave him
-a place.<a name="FNanchor_537_537" id="FNanchor_537_537"></a><a href="#Footnote_537_537" class="fnanchor">[537]</a> One of the most violent politicians, Janin, surnamed
-Colony, a great lover of novel<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">[334]</a></span>ties, after ardently embracing the
-Reformation, had thrown himself with his natural impetuosity into the
-notions of the <i>Spirituals</i> or Anabaptists, and was uttering everywhere
-audacious speeches on matters of faith. The council requested him
-‘not to grieve the preachers,’ and added grave menaces in case he
-should refuse to be corrected.<a name="FNanchor_538_538" id="FNanchor_538_538"></a><a href="#Footnote_538_538" class="fnanchor">[538]</a> Another citizen, a hosier, who
-was suspected of holding the same views, having been exhorted by the
-pastors and the magistrates, declared that his doubts about baptism had
-vanished, and took an oath, says the Register, ‘to live as we do.’<a name="FNanchor_539_539" id="FNanchor_539_539"></a><a href="#Footnote_539_539" class="fnanchor">[539]</a>
-On October 5, Farel and Calvin announced that they would administer the
-supper, but ‘that there were some who kept aloof, holding the opinions
-of Benoît and Herman; and others who still kept their beads, which are
-implements of idolatry.’ Thereupon the council determined ‘to take away
-all the beads.’ That was far easier than to take away the faith of
-which the beads were a sign.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PARTIES AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>Nothing could check the zeal of Calvin. On October 30 he presented
-himself to the council, and set forth various grievances. ‘The
-hospital,’ he said, ‘is very poorly furnished, and the sick are
-suffering in consequence. Geneva has a Christian school, and
-nevertheless some children go to the school of the papacy. Lastly it
-is to be feared that dissensions will arise between the citizens, for
-while some have taken the oath as to the manner of living, others have
-not done so.’ The sick, the young, and peace among the citizens, these
-were the matters which occupied the mind of the reformer, subjects well
-worthy of his attention. The council decreed&mdash;‘The hospital shall be
-supplied; all children shall be bound to go to the Christian school,
-and not to the papistical; and the confession shall be required of all
-who have not yet made it.’ This last point must inevitably be the most
-difficult. A conflict was about to begin, and what would be its result?
-We have just<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">[335]</a></span> seen that there were in Geneva two parties, more or less
-considerable, who set themselves in opposition to the evangelical
-Reformation&mdash;the Roman Catholics and the Spirituals or Anabaptists.
-But there was yet a third party, more respectable and therefore more
-formidable. The Genevese people were naturally restless, and delighted
-in freedom and in pleasure. At first they had warmly embraced the
-Reformation, merely thinking that they should thereby be delivered from
-their bishop and from the practices which they disliked. But as soon as
-the Reformation demanded a Christian faith and life, the ardor of the
-Genevese rapidly diminished. The severity of Calvin and his colleagues
-chilled the violent ebullition of their zeal. They felt the ordinances
-imposed on them to be troublesome and exorbitant. Moreover, it was not
-only the jolly fellows, the lovers of pleasure and the libertines as
-they are called, who were refractory. It would be a great mistake not
-to acknowledge that in the ranks of the opposition there were other
-motives and other men.</p>
-
-<p>We have already related the heroic struggles which had restored to
-Geneva her freedom and her independence.<a name="FNanchor_540_540" id="FNanchor_540_540"></a><a href="#Footnote_540_540" class="fnanchor">[540]</a> We did so, less on
-account of their intrinsic interest than because they exercised a
-powerful influence, whether for good or for evil, on the Reformation.
-We have seen how political emancipation permitted and was favorable to
-religious emancipation. We have now to observe the obstacles raised
-up by those who, while they rejected popery, did not embrace the
-Gospel. The Huguenots (that is, as our readers will recollect, the
-name which was given to the partisans of the alliance with the Swiss
-Confederation) were divided after Calvin’s arrival. Some of them were
-friendly to and supported the Reformation; others pronounced themselves
-against him, and opposed his work. The opposition did not consist<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">[336]</a></span>
-merely of men of the lowest rank, vulgar and dissolute. There were on
-both sides, in the great national party, some generous characters,
-some honorable citizens. Unfortunately, as the State and the Church
-were at that time not only united but blended with each other, these
-two parties were at the same time both right and wrong. The political
-Huguenots were right with respect to the State, and in error respecting
-the Church; and the evangelical Christians were right with respect
-to the Church, and in error with respect to the State. To make the
-confusion greater still, the true principles of Church and State were
-at that period very little understood. Many of the eminent citizens
-who had exposed themselves to famine, pillage, and death for the sake
-of being free, who had resolved not to have for their master either
-their bishop, or the Duke of Savoy, or the King of France, or even
-Berne; who had marched in the van for the political emancipation of
-Geneva; now asserted their right to enjoy in peace the liberty for
-which they had so long fought. We have admired them in their heroical
-struggles. We will not brand them in this new opposition. Politically
-they were right. In a certain sense they were also right religiously.
-The religion of Jesus Christ will not be imposed by force, and it
-rejects all compulsion. In the attempt to establish itself in any town,
-it refuses alike the intervention of the martyr-fires of the Holy
-Office and the decrees of a council of state. Jesus Christ said, <i>Wilt
-thou be made whole?</i> This is not the place for an inquiry into the
-aids which this will of man receives from on high: we hold simply to
-the declarations of the Saviour, and we say that man ought to feel the
-want of the Gospel, and if he does not want it, no one has any right
-to impose it on him. To act as the syndics then did was to ignore the
-divine spirituality of the kingdom of God, and to make of it a human
-institution. Another motive may possibly have contributed to arouse
-opposition. Farel, Calvin, Courault, Saunier, Froment,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">[337]</a></span> and Mathurin
-Cordier were foreigners, Frenchmen. They had drawn around them their
-brothers, their cousins, and some of their friends. These foreigners
-appeared to be taking the upper hand in Geneva, and this hurt the
-feelings of the old citizens. They wished that Geneva should belong to
-the Genevese, as France did to the French and Germany to the Germans.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAITH BY COMPULSION.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin having pointed out to the council, October 30, the danger to
-which the republic was exposed by the existence within it of two
-opposing parties, it was decreed that those citizens who had abstained,
-on July 29, from swearing to the evangelical confession, should be
-called upon to do so without delay; and November 12 was appointed for
-that purpose. Calvin, Farel, and their friends, who assuredly knew the
-worth of a voluntary adhesion, did what they could to induce opponents
-to receive the Gospel with all their heart, and not to separate
-themselves from their fellow-citizens in a matter of such moment. They
-urged them with kindness to listen to the good tidings of salvation,
-and affectionately exhorted them to peace and union.<a name="FNanchor_541_541" id="FNanchor_541_541"></a><a href="#Footnote_541_541" class="fnanchor">[541]</a> There were
-indeed some vexatious proceedings. A tithing man (<i>dizenier</i>) having
-in his district two young lads who refused obstinately to answer to
-the summons, gave them legal notice of the order of the council, and
-cited them to obey it. Thereupon these two opponents flew into a rage
-and assaulted him, and for this they were imprisoned. But this was the
-only case of the kind. Kindliness, however, had little more effect than
-violence. In vain mild persuasion flowed from the lips of the ministers
-and their friends; it repelled instead of attracting.</p>
-
-<p>At length November 12 arrived. Each tithing man having called together
-those of his quarter who had not yet taken the oath, they were
-conducted to St. Peter’s in groups, tithing by tithing. The looks of
-the people were fixed on these late comers. They were counted,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">[338]</a></span> but the
-whole number was not large. Many did not come at all; ‘and likewise,
-of those who lived in the Rue des Allemands, not one came.’<a name="FNanchor_542_542" id="FNanchor_542_542"></a><a href="#Footnote_542_542" class="fnanchor">[542]</a> This
-was a blow for the friends of the Reformation. The Rue des Allemands
-(of the German Swiss) was chiefly inhabited by those who had early
-declared themselves for liberty, and afterwards for the Reformation,
-and who had adhered to the Helvetic confessions. When the Genevese
-Catholics, March 28, 1533, had attacked this party by force of arms, it
-was in the Rue des Allemands that the reformed were drawn up in order
-of battle, five in a row. It was there that the most pious had said,
-‘There is not one single drop of comfort assured to us except in God
-alone.’ It was there that all had exclaimed, ‘Rather die than give way
-a single step.’<a name="FNanchor_543_543" id="FNanchor_543_543"></a><a href="#Footnote_543_543" class="fnanchor">[543]</a> And now, of all those who inhabited that street,
-not a single man came! Doubtless some of them had already sworn to
-the confession. But there were probably some also who objected to the
-doctrine, and others who, like Desclefs, felt the divine commandments
-too hard for them to pledge themselves to keep them. But what chiefly
-repelled these Huguenots was the fact that an act was commanded which
-they knew they were free to do or not to do. They were determined not
-to bend under that yoke. After having dared all kinds of hardship for
-the sake of winning their freedom, they did not intend that, when they
-had gained it in the state, it should be snatched away from them in the
-Church. They were more in the right perhaps than they imagined; for it
-is hardly likely that they fully understood this great principle, ‘The
-power of the magistrate ends at the point at which that of conscience
-begins.’ The difficulty was still more increased by the circumstance
-that ‘those who had refused to swear to the confession, whether
-Catholics or Huguenots, were among the most influential persons in the
-city.’ Such is the testimony<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">[339]</a></span> of Rozet, the secretary of state, who is
-assuredly a witness above suspicion. But the syndics and their council
-were no more disposed to give way than their adversaries. They thought
-that they had as much right to impose that act as to order a military
-review. On the same day the council decreed ‘that those who will not
-take the oath to the Reformation must go and dwell in some other place,
-where they may live according to their fancy.’ Two days later the Two
-Hundred confirmed the decree, expressing themselves somewhat bluntly,
-‘that they must quit the city, since they will not obey.’<a name="FNanchor_544_544" id="FNanchor_544_544"></a><a href="#Footnote_544_544" class="fnanchor">[544]</a> The
-bow was tightly bent, and no one was willing to unbend it. The crisis
-became more violent; a shock and a catastrophe were inevitable. The
-only question was, who would be the victims.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OPPONENTS OF COMPULSION.</div>
-
-<p>The citizens thus lightly banished from their native land by the
-council could hardly believe their own ears. What! they had delivered
-Geneva, ‘and will Geneva drive them away?’ Is it resolved that they
-must forsake their homes, their families, their friends, to go and
-eat the bread of the stranger? They murmured aloud and stoutly stood
-out against this strange edict, confident in their strength and their
-number. ‘There was no obedience at all;’ no one thought of packing
-up. ‘The hostile band was of such a character that the lords dared
-not execute their own decree.’ Complaints and threats grew louder
-from day to day. The most influential men exclaimed&mdash;‘The present
-syndics were elected by means of underhand dealings and intrigues.
-They have violated our franchises and made an attack on our liberties.
-There are three or four among them who do just as they will with the
-ordinary council, and even with the great council. We must take the
-government of the republic out of the hands of these two councils, and
-henceforth everything must be managed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span> by a general council. These
-gentlemen want to reign over us as princes; but it is the people, it
-is we ourselves, who are princes.’ These powerful malcontents, among
-whom De Chapeaurouge distinguished himself, sought even to gain over
-those of their friends who had already taken the oath, and addressed to
-them the most vehement reproaches. Many of the latter were shaken, and
-sought to excuse themselves. They laid the blame on the secretary of
-the town. They reprimanded him (<i>l’impropéraient</i>) and blamed him for
-getting them to swear without knowing what they were doing. Some even
-of those who had sworn ‘adhered to the rebels.’ All these malcontents
-excited one another more and more, and they thought of nothing but of
-securing for themselves at the next election the place of the syndics.
-The authoritative act of the council was to bring about the revolution.</p>
-
-<p>Ambassadors of Berne were at Geneva at the time on some question of
-jurisdiction, and the opposition party endeavored to gain them over
-to their cause. This was not difficult. Calvin and Farel had adhered
-to the confession of Basel, which was likewise received at Berne. Now
-adherence to another confession was in their eyes a violation of the
-first oath. One day, at an entertainment at which the Bernese deputies
-were present with the magistrates and the notabilities of Geneva, one
-of the ambassadors said with a loud voice that all those who had taken
-the oath to the confession of Calvin and Farel were perjured persons.
-One of the leaders of the opposition, Jean Lullin, who was there, was
-delighted to hear it and did not fail to publish the rash remark. It
-seemed to be a giving up of the cause to the opposition, which, proud
-of finding the Bernese on its side, believed its victory secured. The
-people began to be restless; and many, whom the council registers
-call <i>the mutineers</i> cried out in the streets that ‘everything was to
-be settled in a general council.’ These signs of resist<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">[341]</a></span>ance greatly
-afflicted the reformers and, says a chronicler, ‘put Calvin about
-(<i>pourmenait</i>) in a strange way.’ Within the walls of Geneva the
-agitation increased. The day grew dark, and a storm appeared ready to
-burst forth.<a name="FNanchor_545_545" id="FNanchor_545_545"></a><a href="#Footnote_545_545" class="fnanchor">[545]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE GENERAL COUNCIL.</div>
-
-<p>The council was deeply moved. Its members were accused of having
-obtained their seats by illegal practices, and appeal was made to the
-people. It seemed indeed as if it would be needful for the general
-council to decide between them and their adversaries. The syndics
-therefore, on November 23, convoked the Two Hundred to deliberate on
-the matter. The latter showed themselves determined to support the
-government. The magistrates in office must not think of resigning,
-they said, nor attach so much importance to these clamors. ‘All this
-noise is made by certain people who have no mind to amend their
-ways and who want to take the place of the syndics.’ Nevertheless,
-everyone perceived that it was impossible to refuse the convocation
-of a general council. It was necessary, besides, to name a deputation
-to Berne to treat of important business. The day fixed was Sunday,
-November 25. It was agreed to prepare some fair ordinances to be read
-to the assembled people. The opposition were aiming at getting rid not
-only of the magistrates but of the reformers. What took place in the
-council is therefore of great importance. It was the beginning of the
-counter-reformation.</p>
-
-<p>On the day appointed, the Two Hundred, in order to impart more
-solemnity to their proceedings, assembled at the Town Hall and thence
-accompanied the syndics and the council to St. Peter’s church. These
-magistrates felt keenly the accusations which were spread abroad
-against them by the opposition; and having a good conscience they
-wished the people to decide between<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">[342]</a></span> them and their calumniators.
-Consequently, when the assembly had been formed, the following
-<i>remonstrance</i> was addressed to the people in the name of the syndics
-and the councils.</p>
-
-<p>‘Magnificent, discreet, most dear and honored lords,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>‘The lords syndics whom you have elected according to your custom, as
-likewise their ordinary council, that of the Sixty and that of the Two
-Hundred, feel hurt by the talk of some private persons, who speak as if
-they had charge of the general council, alleging that the said councils
-were elected by intrigues and have violated the franchises; that it
-is they (the opponents) who are princes, and that they wish that for
-the future everything should be transacted in a general council. The
-syndics and councils desire to learn from you, gentlemen, before they
-proceed further in the investigation of the matter, whether you allow
-that. You know whether or not your magistrates were elected by the
-intrigues of three or four citizens, as they are alleged to have been.
-You know that the four syndics were chosen by you in general council;
-and while in time past the ordinary council was chosen by the four
-syndics, this election, since 1530, has been made by the Council of the
-Two Hundred.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROCEEDINGS AT THE COUNCIL.</div>
-
-<p>‘Elected thus, the councils ask you whether you will not acknowledge
-them as your magistrates, that they may continue to exercise the power
-which God has given them by your general election. They are prepared
-to submit to punishment with all legal rigor, if it be found that they
-are in fault; but if it be otherwise, they demand that those who defame
-them should suffer chastisement, so that God may not be angry with us,
-nor take away the spiritual lordship and liberty which he has given us
-by his Son Jesus Christ. Assuredly he has shown us more favor than he
-ever did to the children of Israel. But it might happen to us as it did
-to the Romans, who by civil discords of this sort lost little by little
-the empire which they had acquired over the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">[343]</a></span> world, and fell into the
-bondage in which they still remain.</p>
-
-<p>‘We ought to pray God to send us well-instructed and Godfearing men to
-administer justice. But if we will treat them with contempt, we shall
-by-and-by find no one to serve us. Well may the heart of a citizen ache
-when, after laying aside his private affairs to serve the community, he
-gets for his reward the censure of those who dread correction and will
-not obey the lawful authorities.</p>
-
-<p>‘Come then, gentlemen, one after the other, peaceably to give your
-opinion, <i>yes</i> or <i>no</i>, in order that all things may be done well and
-orderly, to the glory of God and our own great benefit.’<a name="FNanchor_546_546" id="FNanchor_546_546"></a><a href="#Footnote_546_546" class="fnanchor">[546]</a></p>
-
-<p>One might have expected that, after this declaration, the leaders of
-the opposition, De Chapeaurouge and his adherents, would state in
-due form their alleged grievances. They remained silent. This was an
-acknowledgment that their accusation was unfounded. They would have
-found it difficult to assert that the election of the magistrates had
-been due to the intrigues of a few individuals, in the presence of the
-people who had themselves made that election freely and honorably.
-Moreover, ten weeks only had to elapse before the regular renewal of
-the council; and the opposition did not think that they ought to unmask
-their batteries so long beforehand. It would be better to employ the
-time in preparing the change which they wished to bring about. Thus,
-therefore, after the address of the syndics there was a long silence.
-After some time De Chapeaurouge rose; but instead of speaking as a
-tribune who seeks to draw the people after him, he made a remark on
-acoustics; ‘We cannot hear well,’ said he, ‘the place gives a dull
-sound.’ There are none so deaf as those who will not hear. In fact, the
-chief of the opposition pretended that the challenge and invitation
-of the council had not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">[344]</a></span> reached his ears, and that this excused his
-making a reply. ‘Is a second reading desired?’ said the first syndic;
-no one demanded it. As the leaders were silent, the youngest and most
-blustering of their followers began to speak. The opportunity was too
-tempting not to cry out, and instead of the great piece which was
-looked for, a little one was produced. Men destitute of culture and
-acquirements attacked the chief magistrates. One man, who had just
-come out of prison, flung in the face of the reformers the most absurd
-accusations. There was an ebullition in the assembly; a tempest in a
-teacup. The young people caused this first outbreak of excitement,
-which they show in their pursuit of pleasure and which they easily
-transfer to public affairs. Claude Sérais, a tailor, one of those
-who in February had played at <i>Picca-Porral</i>, came forward and laid
-a complaint against Ami Perrin, who enjoyed great respect. It was he
-who had accompanied Farel the first time that he preached (in 1534)
-in the convent of Rive. He had not heartily embraced the Reformation,
-but he was still associated with the reformers. ‘Perrin,’ said Sérais,
-‘said that there are traitors at Geneva, people who speak ill of the
-preachers. He said that Porral was a good man.’ As Porral was a great
-friend of the Reformation, he was at least as hateful to these people
-as Farel and Calvin. ‘I replied to him,’ said Sérais, ‘that if he were
-so, he had no occasion to bring Farel to the prison, to preach to
-us as if we were thieves who were to be prepared for death.’ ‘Yes,’
-cried one of those who had been in prison with Sérais, Jacques Pattu,
-‘yes, they brought Farel to prison and he told us that he would sooner
-drink a glass of blood than drink with us.’ Scarcely had he let fall
-these strange words, when Pierre Butini mounted on a bench and cried
-out, ‘The franchise has been taken from us by the Porrets (Porral’s
-friends), for we were seized, many good men, without informations and
-without plaintiffs.’&mdash;‘I complain,’ resumed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">[345]</a></span> Pattu, ‘that they gave me
-the halter without cause,’&mdash;‘I complain,’ said Sérais, further, ‘that
-Claude Bernard told me that I would not go to hear Farel preach.’&mdash;‘Let
-the others speak now!’ cried Baudichon de la Maisonneuve, annoyed at
-Sérais beginning over again. But the friends of Sérais cried, ‘And we,
-we will have Baudichon hold his tongue.’ Then Etienne Dadaz, resuming
-the series of grievances, said, ‘I complain that I have been sent to
-prison and accused of meaning to sell the town.’&mdash;‘Thou oughtest to be
-silent,’ said the syndic Goutaz, ‘for thou hast brought from France
-articles designed to make us subjects of the king.’ On which Dadaz
-replied, ‘It is not I who made them, it is M. de Langey who gave them
-me.’ This was certainly not justifying himself, for Langey was a
-minister to the king.<a name="FNanchor_547_547" id="FNanchor_547_547"></a><a href="#Footnote_547_547" class="fnanchor">[547]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONFUSED COMPLAINTS.</div>
-
-<p>The most reasonable of the leaders saw that they must put a stop to
-these turbulent complainings, which were ruining their interests. The
-former syndic, Jean Philippe, a friend of freedom and courageous, but
-also rash and leading a loose life, began to speak, and, addressing
-the secretary of the council, Rozet, accused him of having caused the
-confession to be sworn which he declared he had not sworn. This was not
-escaping from the question, but plunging into it. This was the master
-grievance of the opposition, and the matter to be investigated. ‘We
-did ill to swear it,’ said Jean Lullin. ‘The ambassadors of Berne have
-told us that we were perjured.’ De Chapeaurouge himself, who at first
-had kept silence, getting enraged with the secretary of the council,
-Rozet, who had caused the confession to be sworn, accused him of being
-‘a witness of Susanna’ (that is to say, a false witness). ‘Gentlemen,’
-said the respectable Rozet, with much feeling, ‘I have served you
-long, and I have neither done wickedly nor borne false witness; and
-here is De Chapeaurouge making me out to be a <i>witness of Susanna</i>!’
-Chapeaurouge replied, ‘You told me,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">[346]</a></span> before the syndic Curtet, that
-you had no conscience at all.’ Curtet answered, ‘I never heard that;’
-and everyone began to laugh. Jean Philippe, a clever man, then made a
-proposition which he thought likely to satisfy the opponents. He wished
-to place the syndics under guardianship. ‘Gentlemen,’ he said, ‘it
-would be a long task to listen in this place to all these plaintiffs
-and to provide for them. It seems to me better that we should
-choose, in general council, twenty-five men.’ These were twenty-five
-superintendents whom he wished to set over the syndics and the council,
-as representatives of the people. ‘That done,’ continued Philippe,
-‘these gentlemen will hold their Little and Great Councils, and the
-plaintiffs shall be heard before all.’ Naturally, Philippe wished
-these twenty-five to be of his party. The syndics understood and were
-indignant. ‘Do you mean, then,’ said they, ‘to have men set over us?’
-The crafty Philippe did not lose the thread. ‘Not <i>men</i> over you,’ he
-said, ‘but the general council is over all.’ Then, like a very tribune,
-he turned boldly to the people. ‘Gentlemen,’ said he, ‘do you not
-intend that the general council should be supreme over all?’ Instantly
-the cry was heard from all sides, ‘Yes, yes!’ The opposition succeeding
-thus in getting the people on their side, the days of the party in
-power were numbered. The syndics hastened to cut short. ‘Now then,’
-said the syndic Curtet, let us talk of business.’<a name="FNanchor_548_548" id="FNanchor_548_548"></a><a href="#Footnote_548_548" class="fnanchor">[548]</a></p>
-
-<p>It then occurred to them that the general council had to appoint
-deputies to go to Berne. The three leaders of the opposition, Jean
-Philippe, Ami de Chapeaurouge and Jean Lullin, were proposed by the
-council itself, which would much rather see them at Berne, where
-they might support the cause of the republic, than at Geneva, where
-they were making war on the government. But the three opponents saw
-through the trick. ‘For my part,’<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">[347]</a></span> said Lullin, ‘I have an excuse
-which prevents my going.’ ‘I hold to what was decreed,’ said Philippe,
-‘that those who have begun the business should go thither to complete
-it.’&mdash;‘I say the same,’ added De Chapeaurouge. The three conspirators
-(if we may give them such a name) will therefore spend the winter at
-Geneva, and they will not be idle there.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">VINDICATION OF THE REFORMERS.</div>
-
-<p>The angry recriminations, the rash charges, and the turbulent movements
-of this council came to the ears of the reformers, and the report
-gave them much pain. The next day therefore, November 26, when the
-Council of the Two Hundred assembled, Farel and Calvin appeared before
-them. The former said, ‘Sérais accuses me of having said that rather
-than drink with him, I would drink a glass of <i>his</i> blood. Now what
-really passed was this. One of them having said to me, You wish us
-no good, I answered, I wish you so much harm that I would willingly
-<i>shed my blood for you</i>.’ Then coming to the essential point; ‘I have
-heard,’ continued Farel, ‘that they call those <i>perjurers</i> who have
-sworn the confession. If you examine carefully its contents, you will
-find that it is made in conformity with God’s Word, and is adapted to
-unite the people. You have not sworn to anything else than to hold
-fast faith in God, and to believe in his commandments.’ One of the
-members said, ‘It is not we, it is the deputies from Berne who spoke
-of perjury.’&mdash;‘We should very much like to know when they did so,’
-replied Farel, astonished. ‘They spoke of it at table, in the presence
-of people,’ said the syndics Curtet and Lullin. ‘We offer to maintain
-this confession at the cost of our lives,’ replied the reformers. The
-syndics, beginning to fear lest the murmurs of the people should be
-excited, entreated the preachers to be careful that this business might
-end well.</p>
-
-<p>The discovery that the lords of Berne blamed them in the affair of the
-confession was a very heavy blow to the reformers. If that powerful
-city should unite with the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">[348]</a></span> party of the opposition, the Reformation
-would be in great danger. They were not long in finding that their
-fears were not unfounded. The Bernese, who intended to act as if they
-had the superintendence of the Church of Geneva, wrote to Farel and
-Calvin&mdash;‘It has come to our knowledge that you, Calvin, have written to
-certain Frenchmen at Basel that your confession has been approved by
-our congregation, and that our preachers have ratified it, which will
-not be proven (<i>ne constera pas</i>). On the contrary, it is you and Farel
-who have been consenting parties to sign our confession made at Basel,
-and to hold to it. We are amazed that you should attempt to contravene
-it. We pray you to desist from the attempt, otherwise we shall be
-compelled to have resource to other remedies.’<a name="FNanchor_549_549" id="FNanchor_549_549"></a><a href="#Footnote_549_549" class="fnanchor">[549]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was supposed at Berne that the two confessions differed, while in
-fact they were fundamentally the same; and the lords of that city
-believed that if Geneva had a confession of her own, their ascendancy
-would be risked. That young Frenchman, who had arrived only the year
-before, had a soul, as they thought, too independent. He was ready to
-break the ties which bound Geneva to the Swiss Churches. Calvin saw how
-matters stood. He felt that it was necessary to enlighten the Bernese
-about the confession of Geneva, and therefore set out immediately with
-Farel for Berne. The two reformers represented to the council that the
-confession which they had prepared, so far from making them perjurers,
-confirmed the confession of Basel. At the same time they presented it
-to the Bernese senate. That body had it examined, and it was pronounced
-to be very good. ‘We are going to send ambassadors,’ said the Bernese
-lords, ‘and they will declare to your general council that the words
-spoken by our deputies were not uttered in our name.’ The satisfaction
-made was brilliant.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">[349]</a></span> The reformers had gained their cause.<a name="FNanchor_550_550" id="FNanchor_550_550"></a><a href="#Footnote_550_550" class="fnanchor">[550]</a> They
-returned to Geneva without delay; and having been received, December
-10, in the ordinary council, they communicated to it the happy issue of
-their journey.<a name="FNanchor_551_551" id="FNanchor_551_551"></a><a href="#Footnote_551_551" class="fnanchor">[551]</a> But there were at Berne certain persons who desired
-to see the Church of Geneva placed in subordination to that of Berne.
-The projected embassy might baffle their schemes, and they resolved to
-prevent it. For that purpose they did not shrink even from blackening
-the reformers. They asserted that the Genevese preachers had said in
-their sermons that <i>all the mischief</i> came from Germany! (that is to
-say, from German Switzerland, from Berne). The Bernese changed their
-mind, and wrote to Geneva, ‘that they would not send ambassadors.’<a name="FNanchor_552_552" id="FNanchor_552_552"></a><a href="#Footnote_552_552" class="fnanchor">[552]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEIR VINDICATION AT BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin and Farel were struck with astonishment. The letter from Berne
-had arrived on December 13. On the morning of the 14th they went to
-the council and asked that the Two Hundred might be convoked for
-the afternoon. Before that assembly they repeated that after having
-heard them, the Bernese magistrates had declared that ‘the thing (the
-confession) had been well done.’ As to the charge of having said
-that <i>all the mischief came from Germany</i>, they pointed out, that as
-ambassadors were about to be sent to Berne, they ought to be instructed
-to ascertain who it was that had reported such things. The council
-determined that Farel himself should go to Berne with the ambassadors,
-and should make inquiry.<a name="FNanchor_553_553" id="FNanchor_553_553"></a><a href="#Footnote_553_553" class="fnanchor">[553]</a></p>
-
-<p>The deputies of Geneva, charged with the defence before the Bernese
-government, of certain interests of state, were Claude Savoye,
-Michel Sept, Claude Rozet, secretary of the council and father of
-the chronicler; all of them true friends of the reformers and the
-magis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">[350]</a></span>trates; and Jean Lullin, who had at last consented to form part
-of the embassy, and who was the only member of the opposition.<a name="FNanchor_554_554" id="FNanchor_554_554"></a><a href="#Footnote_554_554" class="fnanchor">[554]</a>
-They went to Berne with Farel; and the latter having given satisfactory
-explanations, the Bernese magistrates wrote, December 22, to Geneva,
-‘that they and their preachers had found the Genevese confession to
-be according to God’s will and the Holy Scriptures, and thereby in
-conformity with their own religion.’ They added, ‘Set then these
-matters in good order. May dissensions cease, and may the sinister
-intrigues of the wicked be confounded.’<a name="FNanchor_555_555" id="FNanchor_555_555"></a><a href="#Footnote_555_555" class="fnanchor">[555]</a></p>
-
-<p>Would the passions which actuated one part of the Genevese people allow
-them to follow such good counsel? They were not to wait long for an
-answer to this question.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER VIII.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">TROUBLES IN GENEVA.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(Jan. and Feb. 1538.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">AGITATION IN GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>Six days later, December 28, Farel and Calvin appeared before the
-council, and stated that they were about soon to celebrate the Lord’s
-supper, and requested to be sustained in their <i>admonition to those
-who were leading evil lives</i>.<a name="FNanchor_556_556" id="FNanchor_556_556"></a><a href="#Footnote_556_556" class="fnanchor">[556]</a> An exhortation to live well had
-nothing revolting about it. If a man is living ill, it becomes a duty
-to entreat him to live well. That is most of all the duty of faithful
-pastors, especially on the approach of the supper. But what need had
-the ministers of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">[351]</a></span> being <i>sustained</i> by the magistrate? This request
-transformed a religious act into a matter of civil business, and thus
-totally altered its nature. The answer to be made to the reformers
-was put off until the return of the delegates sent to Berne. This
-step of the reformers was irritating to those who supposed they would
-be among the subjects of the admonition. Claude Sérais, who had a
-free tongue, that source of all debate, said daringly in the presence
-of a numerous company, ‘Farel is a bad man.’<a name="FNanchor_557_557" id="FNanchor_557_557"></a><a href="#Footnote_557_557" class="fnanchor">[557]</a> Others took part
-with him in censuring the ministers. They indulged in detraction, in
-aspersions, in cutting speeches; they cast about in all directions
-for anything which might be taken amiss. It was but a small fire at
-first, but little by little it spread far and wide. On January 1 and
-2 (1538) the council was occupied with the affair, and resolved that
-‘those who had circulated insults against the preachers about the
-town should be taken before the lieutenant, at the instance of the
-attorney-general.’ ‘We shall see,’ they said, ‘who is bad, and the bad
-shall be punished.’<a name="FNanchor_558_558" id="FNanchor_558_558"></a><a href="#Footnote_558_558" class="fnanchor">[558]</a> The preachers made no complaint; but it was
-their unfortunate application to the council which had given occasion
-to these insults. This agitation would certainly not have arisen had
-each pastor, in conformity with the precept of Jesus Christ&mdash;‘Go and
-tell him his fault between thee and him alone’&mdash;addressed those who
-were blameworthy kindly and privately. One fact, however, exonerates
-the preachers: they were not at liberty to act otherwise than they
-did. The state had resolutely placed itself above the Church, and was
-intermeddling with matters which pertained only to the pastors. If the
-latter had rebuked some citizens without the consent of the council,
-they would certainly have been liable to rebuke themselves. The fault
-was above all with the magistrate. Geneva sailed for some years<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">[352]</a></span> on a
-high tide of <i>Cesaropapia</i> (government of the Church by the state).<a name="FNanchor_559_559" id="FNanchor_559_559"></a><a href="#Footnote_559_559" class="fnanchor">[559]</a></p>
-
-<p>On January 3 the reformers presented themselves again before the
-council. They did not come to complain of the insults to which they had
-been subjected. They proposed a nobler object, the union of all the
-members of the Church in the same faith and the same charity. They drew
-a vivid picture of the discord which was increasing day after day, and
-of the divisions which were fomented in the republic by restless and
-factious spirits; and they represented that one of the best methods of
-applying a remedy would be to keep the disturbers away from the supper.
-‘As it is determined to celebrate it on Sunday next,’ they said, ‘we
-are of opinion that, those persons should not be admitted. On this
-point we desire the opinion of the council.’<a name="FNanchor_560_560" id="FNanchor_560_560"></a><a href="#Footnote_560_560" class="fnanchor">[560]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE CHURCH AND THE STATE.</div>
-
-<p>This exclusion proposed to the senate is one of the gravest facts in
-the reformation of Geneva, and it kept up excitement in the city for
-nearly a whole generation. Wherein then were the reformers right, and
-wherein were they wrong? A society is a collection of men who, while
-differing on some matters, are in agreement on the subject which is the
-very essence of their union. A society of financiers is not composed
-of people who know nothing of money matters. It is not the unlearned
-who are admitted to a learned faculty. A regiment is not recruited
-with one-armed men. Men who know nothing of French are not elected
-to form the Forty of the Academy. It is just the same with Christian
-society. Its members may differ in many respects&mdash;political, literary,
-social, etc.&mdash;but Christian faith must actuate them all. A Jew or a
-Mohammedan does not belong to the Church of Jesus Christ; and a man who
-rejects the facts, the doctrines, and the duties of Christianity is
-not a Christian. ‘Birds of a feather flock together,’ says a common<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_353" id="Page_353">[353]</a></span>
-proverb. Ought the reformers to ignore such an elementary truth? There
-were still some Roman Catholics at Geneva; there were the so-called
-<i>Spirituals</i>, many of whom did not believe even in the immateriality
-of the soul; there were also a great number of citizens who did not
-consent to the faith as set forth in the confession made at St.
-Peter’s. Should such a confused mass, in which it would be impossible
-to know where one was, form the Church of Geneva? Should that Church be</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>‘De tant d’objets divers le bizarre assemblage?’<a name="FNanchor_561_561" id="FNanchor_561_561"></a><a href="#Footnote_561_561" class="fnanchor">[561]</a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>Would it not in such a case remind one of certain monsters, which are
-spoken of by the ancients, possessing a conformation which was against
-nature? The reformers were with the truth when they answered No. But
-where they were wrong was in requiring all the citizens to take an oath
-to their confession. Was it possible for them to fancy that the act by
-which Geneva had broken with the pope had transformed, as by the stroke
-of the enchanter’s wand, all the Genevese, so that from that moment
-they all believed heartily, and ought all to make confession with their
-lips? <i>Nascitur homo, fit Christianus</i>, said Tertullian in the second
-century. One <i>is born</i> a man, but one <i>becomes</i> a Christian. To pretend
-that all those who belonged to the state belonged at the same time to
-the Church was irrational. To decree that those who would not take the
-oath to the confession should depart from the city and go elsewhither
-was iniquitous. What, drive from Geneva the men to whom Geneva owed
-her independence! Such an enormity could not fail to lead to a
-revolution. The fusion of the Church and the state in a single society
-is the origin of those blemishes which in some instances disfigured
-the otherwise glorious work of the Reformation. But how to settle the
-dilemma? how admit two contradictory propositions? How to exclude and
-to keep at the same time?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">[354]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The early Church accomplished this. It had its ἀκροώμενοι, <i>audientes</i>,
-hearers. Instead of excluding those whose faith was not yet formed,
-it invited them lovingly to hear the preaching of the Word. They
-attended the service and joined in the prayers, without taking part
-in the mysteries of the Lord’s supper, which they shrank timidly from
-approaching. And when in their experience that great process of the
-Christian life was accomplished of which St. Paul speaks&mdash;<i>Faith cometh
-by hearing</i>&mdash;they shared the communion at the sacred feast. Perhaps
-Geneva was not yet ripe for this order of things.<a name="FNanchor_562_562" id="FNanchor_562_562"></a><a href="#Footnote_562_562" class="fnanchor">[562]</a></p>
-
-<p>The council assembled the Two Hundred to consider what answer should
-be made to the reformers. Since the scenes which had taken place in
-the council of November 25, the syndics had become more timid. They
-dreaded whatever might provoke the people and drive them on to any
-rash proceeding, and they felt less inclined to support the reformers.
-A letter was read from Berne which bore approving testimony to the
-confession, and exhorted to concord. Three of the members who had not
-sworn the confession&mdash;De Lesclefs, Manlich, and Ameaux&mdash;were urged to
-do as others had done. The first two took the oath required; Ameaux
-alone refused. The council then believing that they had gone far
-enough, recoiled from a measure which might have grave consequences,
-and determined ‘not to refuse the supper to any one.’<a name="FNanchor_563_563" id="FNanchor_563_563"></a><a href="#Footnote_563_563" class="fnanchor">[563]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus did the magistrates give a flat refusal to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">[355]</a></span> ministers. It
-was a lesson for Calvin and his friends. This decision was contrary
-to their convictions; but as they knew that the council was at heart
-friendly to the Reformation, they did not feel bound to oppose its
-will. They gave proof of moderation, conciliation, and patience. Some
-will perhaps say that they pushed these virtues too far. They yielded.
-That is not the crime of which they are commonly accused. The supper
-was celebrated, and there was no disturbance.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DISORDERS.</div>
-
-<p>But although the communion passed off in an orderly manner, troubles
-arose afterwards. The opposition party looked on this general admission
-as a triumph for them; and as they saw that the representations of the
-ministers were no longer listened to by the councils, their audacity
-increased. Again were seen bands of men, consisting of the least
-respectable classes of the people, parading the city with green flowers
-in their hats. They indulged in acts of violence; they annoyed those
-who had sworn to the Reformation; ‘they drew their swords and terrified
-others into flight.’ The taverns were thronged with these people, who
-ate and drank to excess. Puns and sarcasms were showered on all sides.
-Even holy things were turned into ridicule. Just as St. Paul addressed
-his Epistles to his <i>brethren in Christ</i>, so the evangelical Christians
-of the Reformation gave each other that title. The wags had noticed
-it, and did not fail to laugh at it. ‘A party of drunken men,’ say
-the Registers of January 16, ‘went in the night through the town and
-to the wine-shops, mocking the preachers and saying to each other,
-‘<i>Thou art one of the brethren in Christ</i>,’ and other things of the like
-kind. These mockers having come to the Lord’s supper, to which all
-were admitted by order of the Council, gave themselves in jest the name
-of <i>brethren</i>. Jean d’Orbe said to Claude Jaccard, ‘Art thou of the
-<i>brethren in Christ</i>?’ and swearing a great oath, he added, ‘Thou wilt
-repent of it.’ Many persons, alarmed at these dis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">[356]</a></span>orderly proceedings,
-trembled for the general council which was to be held fifteen days
-later. ‘Many a sword-thrust will be given there,’ they said, ‘so
-that we shall not wish to go.’ The discord which prevailed in Geneva
-agitated also the neighboring country districts. The Council of the
-Two Hundred was deeply affected by all these reports, and determined
-to have inquiry made and to punish the guilty. The measure which the
-council adopted in order to prevent disturbances was precisely that
-which actually gave rise to them.<a name="FNanchor_564_564" id="FNanchor_564_564"></a><a href="#Footnote_564_564" class="fnanchor">[564]</a></p>
-
-<p>All these things greatly afflicted Calvin, and he had at the same time
-other sorrows to bear. A man of mild disposition, with a spirit given
-to contemplation, on which the incessantly renewed struggles to which
-the reformer was called made a most painful impression, was at that
-time living in intimate friendship with him. Louis du Tillet, canon
-and archdeacon of Angoulême, had been first won to the Gospel by the
-lively piety of Calvin, whom he had followed to Switzerland, to Italy,
-and to Geneva. But by slow degrees a perceptible difference grew up
-between the master and the disciple. In Du Tillet’s view the doctrine
-of the Church was the essential matter, and the re-establishment of
-the apostolic Church ought to be the aim of the Reformation. ‘Let us
-protest,’ said he, ‘against the abuses of the Roman Church, but let
-us re-establish the Catholicism of the first centuries. It is there
-that lies hidden the Christian germ; let us beware of arresting its
-developments. The Reformation, unless it is to disappoint the fair
-hopes which it has excited, must re-establish in the world the one
-holy, universal Church. The only way open to us for accomplishing the
-work which the state of Christendom claims at our hands, is to go
-back to the beginning, and to re-establish the Church of the first
-ages. Alas! fatal discords are already threatening to make division
-in the new Church. May the hand of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span> God recall her from this error,
-and establish her on the foundation of the apostles and the fathers.
-The Reformation must not, while highly exalting Jesus Christ, too much
-abase the Church. Let us take care that the torrent which we turn
-into the stables to cleanse them do not carry away the walls and the
-foundation. The reform of the Church must not become its annihilation.
-Assuredly the Catholic Church is the pillar of the truth, and the
-consent of this Church is the infallible support and the full assurance
-of the truth.’<a name="FNanchor_565_565" id="FNanchor_565_565"></a><a href="#Footnote_565_565" class="fnanchor">[565]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LOUIS DE TILLET.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin was at no loss for an answer to his friend, the Old Catholic. He
-pointed out to him that where falsehood reigns there can be no Church;
-that the state of the papacy, although it might still hold some remains
-of truth, was such that those who abandoned it did not create a schism.
-He added, that we could not wait until the papacy reformed itself; that
-the councils assembled in the fifteenth century, and even earlier, for
-the purpose of working out that the reform, had all failed. He insisted
-that it was not to Catholicism of the first five or six centuries
-that we must return, but to the Gospel&mdash;to the sacred writings of
-the apostles&mdash;in which the truth was taught in its purity. Calvin
-maintained his thesis with energy, nay, as he said, with rudeness.<a name="FNanchor_566_566" id="FNanchor_566_566"></a><a href="#Footnote_566_566" class="fnanchor">[566]</a>
-Driven from point to point, hesitating between the doctrine of the Holy
-Scriptures and that of the councils and the fathers, melancholy and
-pining, Du Tillet secretly quitted Geneva, adopted the resolution of
-re-entering the Catholic Church, and told Calvin so.</p>
-
-<p>The reformer wrote to him, January 31, 1538, with moderation and
-humility, but at the same time firmly. ‘What afflicts me most of all,’
-he said to him, ‘is the fear of having hurt your mind by my imprudence,
-for I confess that I have not exhibited in my intercourse with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_358" id="Page_358">[358]</a></span> you
-the modesty which I owed to you. I cannot, however, conceal from you
-that I was greatly astonished on learning your intention and the reason
-which you assign in your letters to me. This change, so suddenly made,
-seemed very strange, considering the constancy and the decision which
-you displayed. It is separation from the Church to join ourselves to
-that which is contrary to it.’<a name="FNanchor_567_567" id="FNanchor_567_567"></a><a href="#Footnote_567_567" class="fnanchor">[567]</a> This did not prevent Du Tillet from
-again becoming and remaining a Roman Catholic.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE TWO PARTIES.</div>
-
-<p>However, Calvin’s attention was at this time attracted and absorbed by
-other objects. The disturbances which were agitating Geneva did not
-arise exclusively from religious doctrines. The opposition wanted to
-get into power; and if it succeeded, the days of the Reformation were
-apparently numbered. The leaders acted prudently, but they could not
-restrain the restlessness of their adherents. There were two entirely
-distinct parties in the republic. The one aimed at any cost to take the
-government out of the hands of the syndics and councillors who favored
-the reformers, and to occupy their place; the other wished to appoint
-magistrates who would persevere in the course on which the council had
-entered. The two parties were now face to face. The attacking party
-marched to the assault with decision and much noise, determined to come
-to blows if necessary. ‘Insults and outcries were multiplied throughout
-the town, both by night and by day.’<a name="FNanchor_568_568" id="FNanchor_568_568"></a><a href="#Footnote_568_568" class="fnanchor">[568]</a> Excitement was daily becoming
-more intense. ‘Next Sunday syndics are to be appointed,’ it was said;
-‘there will be strife; we must go to the election in arms.’ One of the
-most furious of the opponents, who carried leeks in his hat, cried out,
-‘To-day we are wearing <i>green</i> gillyflowers, but the day will make
-plenty of <i>red</i> heads.’<a name="FNanchor_569_569" id="FNanchor_569_569"></a><a href="#Footnote_569_569" class="fnanchor">[569]</a> These symptoms alarmed not only the aged
-and the sick, but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">[359]</a></span> also moderate men, who are sometimes a little timid.
-To make use of menaces in order to keep citizens of the opposite party
-from voting, is commonly enough the practice of a blind demagogy. It
-gained its end. These violent speeches greatly grieved the pastors.
-Fearing that blood would be shed, they appeared, February 1, two days
-before the election, before the Council of the Two Hundred, and made
-a wise (<i>belle</i>) remonstrance. The lieutenant of police, Henriod
-Dumolard, one of the champions of freedom, who enjoyed general respect,
-confirmed these fears ‘from good information.’ The council determined
-to imprison those who had threatened to shed blood, and to take other
-measures for the purpose of preventing on the appointed day either
-tumult or conflict.</p>
-
-<p>But if the violent members of the opposition injured their influence,
-the abler men dealt effective blows at the order of things established
-by the reformers and the magistrates. They called to mind the ancient
-franchises of Geneva and the battles fought in their defence. They
-showed that the bishop himself had not required of them so positive an
-adhesion to doctrine, nor imposed on them ordinances so harassing in
-respect to morality. Under the pretext of aiming at the maintenance
-of freedom, these men acquired high esteem among the people.<a name="FNanchor_570_570" id="FNanchor_570_570"></a><a href="#Footnote_570_570" class="fnanchor">[570]</a>
-They wished, nevertheless, so they said, for reform. Doubtless they
-did. But if we may judge by their opposition to the confession and
-to discipline, they wanted a reform without either faith or law.
-Such was not that of Calvin; and this alone, in the grand crisis of
-the sixteenth century, and in the midst of attacks so numerous and
-so varied, could make Geneva a strong and invincible city. The vital
-doctrines of Christianity, which are the salvation of the individual,
-are likewise necessary to the prosperity of nations. This is proved
-by great examples. Geneva without the Gospel, without Calvin, would
-not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">[360]</a></span> have won the sympathy of the evangelical nations, nor would she
-have possessed the moral force to surmount great perils. Weakened,
-enervated, and corrupted, this city would soon have lost her
-independence, as all those free cities of the Middle Ages in Italy
-and elsewhere did. These were one after another compelled to stoop
-under the sword of their neighbors and under the yoke of Rome. A free
-people must have a religion of high quality (<i>de bon aloi</i>). To invite
-the nations to cast Christianity out of their bosom, as some rash
-or criminal voices did, is to invite them to put to death liberty,
-morality, and prosperity. It is to preach suicide to them.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ELECTION OF SYNDICS.</div>
-
-<p>Was Geneva, then, going to make trial of it? February 3, the day of
-election, at length arrived. The opposition, which was at the outset a
-minority, but a minority of the inflexible kind which generally wins,
-had succeeded in persuading the people that if they wished to keep
-their liberties they must change the government. The council general
-assembled in the cloisters of St. Peter’s, and the first syndic said,
-after the customary formalities&mdash;‘The election of syndics is a matter
-of so great importance, that it will be enough to occupy us to-day
-without any other business. Let everyone give his vote peaceably, and
-let no one be so rash as to stir up disorders, either by word or by
-sword. Any man who does so will be sent to prison, and will afterwards
-be punished according to his desert.’ The Two Hundred, according to
-custom, presented eight names, and the council general was to retain
-four of them. Two secretaries were at hand to enter the votes; and
-presently the citizens, coming forward group by group, gave their
-votes. Of the eight candidates the people chose three who had put
-themselves at the head of the opposition, and whom the impartiality of
-the Two Hundred had led them to present with the others. These three
-were Claude Richardet, who, with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_361" id="Page_361">[361]</a></span> furious gesture, had declared that
-they would not get him to go to prison; Jean Philippe, who had proposed
-in the council general to name twenty-five citizens to watch the
-syndics; and Jean Lullin, who had accused the council of violating the
-franchises. These three enemies of the new order of things were named
-syndics. But there must be four of them. The opposition intended that
-the fourth should likewise be one of their party, but it did not find
-another set down in the list of the council. Regardless of the rule on
-that point, they chose a citizen who had not been proposed by the Two
-Hundred&mdash;De Chapeaurouge&mdash;who had greatly compromised himself by the
-vehemence of his speeches against the reformers. On February 4 and 5
-the election of councillors as assistants to the syndics was conducted
-in almost the same spirit.</p>
-
-<p>The victory of the opposition was complete. A great revolution had
-been wrought in this small city. The citizens had come to a decision
-of such a character as must excite disturbances and prepare the way
-to their ruin. This soon became apparent among the lower classes.
-The election was followed, especially at night, by noisy promenades,
-licentious songs in the taverns, insults and blasphemies. At Geneva,
-as in France, the song was one form of opposition. The people feasted,
-drank, and made songs on their enemies. Thus these lawless subjects
-had their triumph after their own fashion. But Calvin and Farel did
-not hesitate to present themselves before the council in which their
-antagonists sat, and to demand the suppression of these disorders.
-The new syndics were the most decided of the citizens in the sense
-opposed to the reformers; but they were intelligent men, and they
-had no wish that the mischief should run to an extreme. History,
-moreover, gives us many examples of a change effected in individuals
-by accession to power. Sometimes an ecclesiastic vehemently opposed
-to the encroachments of the Roman<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_362" id="Page_362">[362]</a></span> see has been made pope, and he has
-thereupon become the most thoroughgoing papist. The magistrates had
-no wish to compromise themselves at the outset by making common cause
-with the libertines; they therefore ordered that justice should be
-done at the demand of the pastors. The sound of the trumpet was heard
-in the streets, and the officer of the council cried, ‘No one shall
-sing indecent songs containing the names of the inhabitants of Geneva;
-no one shall go into the city without a candle after nine o’clock at
-night; no one shall create excitement or strife, under pain of being
-imprisoned on bread and water, for three days for the first offence,
-six days for the second, and nine for the third.’<a name="FNanchor_571_571" id="FNanchor_571_571"></a><a href="#Footnote_571_571" class="fnanchor">[571]</a> Immediately
-after its election the new council had given a proof of moderation and
-impartiality. Jean Jacques Farel, a brother of the reformer, having
-replied to the threats of the opposition that he would go armed to the
-council general, had been sent to prison by the council formed of his
-own party. After the new election Farel interceded for his brother, and
-the new council, in its session of February 5, released him, because he
-had, according to the Registers, already remained three or four days
-in prison. The blustering fellows thought it very strange that the
-magistrates, who set Farel’s brother at liberty, should reward them,
-the men who had placed them in office, by prohibiting songs at their
-tables, in the midst of their cups, which were so delightful to them.
-But notwithstanding these appearances, the revolution was none the
-less profound and decisive; and it is doubtful whether, even after the
-trumpet-blast, the disorders ceased.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MONTCHENU AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>The conduct of the syndics with regard to those who had preceded them
-showed immediately that they did not lose sight of one of the chief
-objects of their election. A Frenchman, the Seigneur de Montchenu,
-being at Geneva, caused letters to be sent to three Genevese<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_363" id="Page_363">[363]</a></span>
-councillors, Claude Richardet, Claude Savoye, and Michel Sept, in which
-it was stated that if the Genevese would become subjects of the King
-of France, he would leave to them their usages and liberties, would
-fortify their city, and answer for them when attacked. Berne took alarm
-on hearing this, and cautioned the Genevese to be on their guard. When
-the councils met they ordered answer to be made to the French agent
-that Geneva would no more entertain such projects, and decreed that
-every Frenchman found wandering on the territory of the republic should
-be expelled. It was not easy to treat the letter which had been written
-to them as a crime on the part of the three Genevese, especially as the
-first to whom it was addressed was Claude Richardet, then syndic, the
-fierce enemy of the ministers and the priests. Nevertheless they found
-means of employing these letters without taking Richardet into account.
-He, however, was not only compromised, like the other two, in having
-received a letter, but there was one grave fact against him. Montchenu
-having presented himself by night, with some horsemen, at the gates of
-Geneva, Richardet, syndic at the time, went to them at their request,
-ordered the great gate to be opened, and introduced the Frenchmen into
-the city. Montchenu having proposed to Richardet to go to supper with
-him at the Tête-Noire, he declined. When he was subsequently called
-upon by Claude Savoye to explain this circumstance in the council,
-Richardet stated that he had thought that Montchenu was going on an
-embassy into Germany to bring soldiers for the king. If this adventure
-had happened to either of the other Genevese who had received the
-letter, Claude Savoye, for instance, what would not have been said?
-But Richardet was as innocent as his compatriots. A Genevese does not
-betray his country. For the rest, he assured the council that he had
-had no intention but to please it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_364" id="Page_364">[364]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Whatever the fact may have been, on the proposition of Monathier, one
-of the most violent members of the party then in power, the council
-suspended Claude Savoye and Michel Sept from their functions until
-this business should be cleared up. It has been remarked that, to take
-advantage of their ascendency in order to get up any bad case against
-their antagonists, was a traditional propensity which Genevese parties
-had too long indulged.<a name="FNanchor_572_572" id="FNanchor_572_572"></a><a href="#Footnote_572_572" class="fnanchor">[572]</a> Similarly, three of the former syndics and
-a councillor were suspended on account of charges brought by people
-of doubtful respectability. In this way the new government secured a
-majority in the Council of the Two Hundred.<a name="FNanchor_573_573" id="FNanchor_573_573"></a><a href="#Footnote_573_573" class="fnanchor">[573]</a> A pitiful victory of
-party spirit! Everyone was eagerly hunting up grievances against the
-fallen magistrates.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONFUSION OF CHURCH AND STATE.</div>
-
-<p>It appears that Calvin blamed this proceeding, and, holding it to be
-contrary to justice and to truth, called it the work of him whom the
-Scriptures name <i>the father of lies</i>. Hereupon it was determined to
-warn the preachers that they must not intermeddle with the business of
-the magistrate, but preach the Gospel.<a name="FNanchor_574_574" id="FNanchor_574_574"></a><a href="#Footnote_574_574" class="fnanchor">[574]</a> Calvin felt this deeply.
-Is not justice also in the Gospel? Ought not a minister to demand it?
-So much hostility was at that time exhibited against the reformers by
-the majority of the Genevese, that the Bernese themselves, when they
-came to Geneva to oppose Montchenu, undertook their defence. Farel was
-accused of having said at Berne, ‘There is strife at Geneva because one
-party wants the mass and another the Gospel.’&mdash;‘Farel never said such a
-thing,’ said the Bernese to the general council; ‘we beg you to treat
-him with favor, for he has freely made known the Gospel.’ Certainly
-Calvin, Farel, and all the pastors ought to set an example of respect
-for the authorities. But the state and the Church were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_365" id="Page_365">[365]</a></span> then so closely
-united that they were almost confounded with one another; and as the
-magistrates themselves dealt with religion in their councils, it is not
-to be wondered at that the ministers should speak of the proceedings
-of the councils in their sermons. The independence of the temporal and
-the spiritual was as yet far off. It must not be forgotten that it was
-for Geneva a creative epoch. Magistrates and reformers were working
-at the organization of the State and the Church. Moreover, in this
-business morality was in question, and no wonder that the ministers
-of God thought that morality was within their province. But the
-magistrates looked on the matter in another light, and did not intend
-that anyone should give them a lecture. Calvin was fettered not only in
-his preaching but still more in the discharge of his pastoral duties.
-‘In general,’ he wrote to Bullinger, February 21, ‘we are looked on
-here as preachers rather than pastors. We cannot have a Church that
-will stand unless the discipline of the apostles be restored.’ However,
-he had not lost hope. ‘There is much alteration which we earnestly
-desire,’ he further wrote to his friend at Zurich, ‘but which can be
-effected only by our applying ourselves to it with faith, diligence,
-and perseverance. Oh, that a pure and sincere agreement might at length
-be established among us! Would there be any obstacle in the way of the
-meeting of a synod, at which everyone might propose what he believed to
-be useful to the Churches?’<a name="FNanchor_575_575" id="FNanchor_575_575"></a><a href="#Footnote_575_575" class="fnanchor">[575]</a></p>
-
-<p>Having lost all hope in the institutions of the state, the reformer
-turned his attention to those of the Church. So long as sincere friends
-of the Reformation had been in power, Farel and Calvin had displayed
-a spirit of concession even on important points. When the council,
-for instance, had determined that the supper should not be refused
-to anyone, they had yielded. But now, when<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">[366]</a></span> they saw at the head of
-affairs men who were opposed to order in the Church, they no longer
-felt it their duty to yield. They will not allow the state authorities
-to organize the spiritual body at their will. They will contend against
-notions contrary, as they think, to the Word of God. They will contend
-against them by their prayers and efforts, and by their resistance. The
-moment is come for them to say with Luther, I can do no otherwise (<i>Ich
-kann nicht anders</i>). There was enough in such a resolution to arouse
-a storm. But other blasts, not less impetuous, and blowing from other
-quarters, were soon to assail the reformers.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER IX.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">STRUGGLES AT BERNE.&mdash;SYNOD OF LAUSANNE.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">(1538.)</span></h2>
-
-<p>The state of affairs at Berne had changed since the synod of September
-1537, at which Calvin, appearing on the scene as the messenger of
-peace, had brought in concord after strife. Megander, Erasmus Ritter,
-and Rhellican complained of the progress of <i>Bucerism</i>, and their
-adversaries complained of them as disturbers. Megander, it may be
-recollected, had agreed at the time of the synod to amend his catechism
-to a small extent. Now Bucer himself had in his zeal undertaken the
-task, and the council, without consulting Megander, had printed the
-revised and amended catechism. This was an act at once imprudent and
-wanting in respect. The lords of Berne were accustomed to play to
-some extent the part of autocrats. Megander was deeply wounded; and
-presenting himself before the council with Erasmus Ritter, he declared
-that he was fully determined not to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_367" id="Page_367">[367]</a></span> become a Lutheran, and that
-consequently he could not allow the corrections of Bucer. Kunz and
-Sebastian Meyer on the other hand stoutly defended the catechism as
-revised by the Strasburg doctor.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">STRUGGLES AT BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>The State, when it intrudes into theological discussions, is wanting
-in the necessary tact, and is too often influenced by considerations
-foreign to religion. The council replied magisterially that the
-catechism was in conformity with Scripture; and it added despotically
-that Megander and Ritter must accept it as it is, or they would be
-immediately deprived of their offices. Ritter, who did not find in the
-catechism anything which at bottom imperilled the Christian faith,
-submitted. But Megander raised objections more or less well founded.
-He was wounded in his <i>amour-propre</i> as author, and observing the
-eagerness of his adversaries to annoy him, he perceived that his
-position at Berne had become untenable. Therefore he held his ground
-and received his <i>congé</i>: a measure in which, however, they showed
-a certain consideration. It was the end of the year 1537. He then
-withdrew to Zurich, which received him with open arms.<a name="FNanchor_576_576" id="FNanchor_576_576"></a><a href="#Footnote_576_576" class="fnanchor">[576]</a></p>
-
-<p>This proceeding of the Bernese government excited a great sensation.
-Zurich addressed to Berne a sharp remonstrance. The country pastors
-of the canton of Berne complained loudly of the government and of
-the ecclesiastical councillors, and inquired whether these gentlemen
-meant to abjure the Reformation. A meeting was held at Aarau, January
-22, 1538, at which it was resolved to make representations to the
-council; and the dean of Aarau, Zehnder, named chief of the deputation,
-presented the complaint. February 1 was fixed for the hearing of the
-two opposing parties. But while Kunz and his colleagues were admitted
-into the council chamber and took their places by the side of the
-president, the dean and the country ministers waited at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_368" id="Page_368">[368]</a></span> the door. No
-sooner were they admitted than Kunz addressed them with a haughty air,
-and rebuked them in a loud and stern voice. The country deans replied
-that they did not mean to be ruled by the city ministers as boys are by
-their schoolmaster. The discussion grew warm,<a name="FNanchor_577_577" id="FNanchor_577_577"></a><a href="#Footnote_577_577" class="fnanchor">[577]</a> and even the members
-of the council took part in the quarrel.</p>
-
-<p>Theological motives, as we may see, were not the only cause of the
-opposition raised by the country ministers. There were, besides, the
-rule which the city ministers assumed to exercise, and the power which
-the council arrogated to itself in the Church, and by virtue of which
-it had despotically deprived Megander. The country party did not want
-an aristocracy of the city clergy; the city party, lay and clerical,
-understood this. Little by little, therefore, they both lowered their
-tone, and instead of quarrelling they sought reconciliation. The city
-members assented to two alterations in the catechism revised by Bucer,
-and they declared that the country deputies had acted honorably. The
-latter on their part acknowledged that their colleagues of Berne had
-not become faithless to the Reformation. Apologies were made for the
-sharpness which had been imparted to the discussion. The city ministers
-paid visits to those from the country; they conducted them to the house
-of the provost, the first ecclesiastic of the canton, who gave them the
-warmest reception; they ate and drank together; and at last these good
-Swiss parted on the best terms with each other.<a name="FNanchor_578_578" id="FNanchor_578_578"></a><a href="#Footnote_578_578" class="fnanchor">[578]</a> The cordial letter
-which Luther had written to the Swiss, December 1, 1537,<a name="FNanchor_579_579" id="FNanchor_579_579"></a><a href="#Footnote_579_579" class="fnanchor">[579]</a> soothed
-their minds still more. The doctrine set forth by Calvin at the synod
-of September, to which Bucer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_369" id="Page_369">[369]</a></span> and Capito had given their adhesion, was
-recognized at Berne as the true doctrine. Erasmus Ritter, above all,
-was heartily devoted to it. There was some hope of finding in it a
-basis of union; and by its means the petty divisions of Protestantism
-were to disappear.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EXILE OF MEGANDER.</div>
-
-<p>Unfortunately, Luther has always had some disciples who were more
-Lutheran than himself. Kunz and Sebastian Meyer were of that number.
-Dissatisfied with Calvin’s confession, which to them was an irksome
-yoke, they were eager to shake it off. A new minister, just then called
-to Berne, joined them; but as he was endowed with a quiet, prudent,
-and tractable disposition, he constantly sought, although a decided
-follower of Luther, to moderate his two violent colleagues. This was
-Simon Sulzer. He was an illegitimate son of the Catholic provost of
-Interlaken, and had spent his earliest youth in the châlets and on
-the magnificent Alps of the Hasli. Haller had afterwards found him in
-a barber’s shop where he was earning a living in a humble way; and
-discovering his great abilities, he had recommended him to the council.
-In 1531 Sulzer became Master of Arts at Strasburg. The council of Berne
-had then intrusted to him the task of directing the establishment
-of schools in all the places of the canton which had none. He had
-afterwards applied himself to theology; had gone to Saxony for the
-purpose of holding intercourse with Luther, and on his return had been
-named professor of theology at Berne, as successor of Megander. Step by
-step he became the most influential representative in Switzerland of
-the system which aimed at union with the German reformer.<a name="FNanchor_580_580" id="FNanchor_580_580"></a><a href="#Footnote_580_580" class="fnanchor">[580]</a></p>
-
-<p>Kunz, whose aim was the same, was not only a votary of tradition, in
-opposition to the Scriptural spirit of the Genevese minister, but he
-was also a man actuated by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_370" id="Page_370">[370]</a></span> strong personal enmities. Calvin, although
-he did not wholly approve of Megander, had emphatically signified the
-pain which he had felt at his deprivation. ‘What a loss to the Church,’
-he wrote to Bucer, January 12, 1538, ‘and how the enemies of the Gospel
-will exult when they see that we begin to banish our pastors; and
-that instead of considering how to overcome the powerful adversaries
-in whose presence we stand, we are inflicting mortal wounds on one
-another. This news of the deprivation of Megander has struck us as
-sharp a blow as if we had been told that great part of the Church of
-Berne had fallen down.<a name="FNanchor_581_581" id="FNanchor_581_581"></a><a href="#Footnote_581_581" class="fnanchor">[581]</a> I admit that there was a mixture of what
-is human in his cause. But would it not be better to retain such a man
-and forgive him that trifling weakness, than to deprive him of his
-ministry, to the dishonor of God and of his Word, to the great injury
-of the Church, and with serious risk for the future? True, Sebastian
-Meyer and Kunz remain; but what can the former do except ruin the cause
-of the Gospel by his extravagances,<a name="FNanchor_582_582" id="FNanchor_582_582"></a><a href="#Footnote_582_582" class="fnanchor">[582]</a> and by the violent outbreaks
-in which, when he is no longer master of himself, he indulges? As for
-Kunz, I can hardly trust myself to say what he is. Farel tells me that
-when he had lately to do with him, he never saw any beast more furious.
-His countenance, his gestures, his words, and his very complexion, said
-he, reminded him of the Furies.’<a name="FNanchor_583_583" id="FNanchor_583_583"></a><a href="#Footnote_583_583" class="fnanchor">[583]</a> It is true that Calvin wrote
-thus to a friend, to Bucer. He said to him, ‘If I speak so freely to
-you, it is because I know to whom I am writing.’ But it was hardly
-possibly that Kunz should not hear from some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_371" id="Page_371">[371]</a></span> one what Calvin thought
-of him. He became his mortal enemy, and he cherished the like hatred
-towards the other ministers of Geneva.<a name="FNanchor_584_584" id="FNanchor_584_584"></a><a href="#Footnote_584_584" class="fnanchor">[584]</a> He let no opportunity
-escape him of opposing them. It was to no purpose that the Genevese
-sought to show him that they were not his enemies, and to appease him
-by their moderation. It was gratifying to him to appoint ministers in
-the Bernese territories about whom Calvin had expressed himself in the
-severest manner;<a name="FNanchor_585_585" id="FNanchor_585_585"></a><a href="#Footnote_585_585" class="fnanchor">[585]</a> and when competent men had been examined and
-approved at Geneva, he would not receive them until after they had been
-re-examined by the Bernese classes.<a name="FNanchor_586_586" id="FNanchor_586_586"></a><a href="#Footnote_586_586" class="fnanchor">[586]</a> Calvin however knew better
-than Kunz. ‘What do such beginnings forebode?’ exclaims Calvin; ‘while
-he fancies that he is inflicting lashes on us he is in fact preparing
-his own ruin. Assuredly, if that be the will of God, he will fall into
-the pit which he has digged, rather than continue to be the cause of so
-great troubles to the Church of Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_587_587" id="FNanchor_587_587"></a><a href="#Footnote_587_587" class="fnanchor">[587]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RELATIONS OF CHURCH AND STATE.</div>
-
-<p>In addition to the question of Lutheranism, there was also that of
-the relations between the Church and the State, which was a subject
-of difference between Berne and the Genevese reformers. At Berne the
-magistrate was considered, according to the views of Zwingli, the
-representative of the members of the flock; he was the bishop; the
-Church was a State Church. Calvin on the contrary, who had seen in
-France how the state treated the Reformation, wished for the autonomy
-of the Church. He did not indeed demand the complete separation of
-Church and State, but he desired that each of these two societies
-should have its own government. This was the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_372" id="Page_372">[372]</a></span> end for which he was
-striving, and Kunz, when once aware of it, was still more enraged. To
-these two questions was added that of worship. On this matter, as on
-others, Kunz was the ape of Luther, as Megander was of Zwingli. Calvin
-was no imitator of either the one or the other, but adopted generally a
-middle course. With respect to worship he wished for great simplicity.
-Berne had retained certain Catholic usages. They baptized as formerly
-in a baptistery; at Geneva they put away the font and made use of a
-simple vessel. Berne, at the supper, used wafers and unleavened bread;
-Geneva used common bread. Berne had retained several festivals, even
-that of the Annunciation of the Virgin; Geneva celebrated none but the
-Lord’s day, the Sunday.<a name="FNanchor_588_588" id="FNanchor_588_588"></a><a href="#Footnote_588_588" class="fnanchor">[588]</a> Farel having found these usages, at least
-in part, among the Vaudois, in the visit which he made to those valleys
-in 1532, had introduced them at Geneva, and Calvin, finding them there,
-had made no change.</p>
-
-<p>Kunz detested these practices, and directed attention to them at Berne.
-The Lords of Berne saw these differences with regret, either because
-they intended to exercise a certain supremacy over the Church of
-Geneva, which they thought was indebted to them to a great extent for
-its reformation, and because they desired to see it in all respects
-like their own: or because they were afraid that these diversities
-would furnish the Catholics with weapons: or because the Churches of
-the canton of Vaud seemed inclined to adopt the order of Geneva and
-not that of Berne, which in the eyes of those gentlemen was almost an
-act of rebellion. The Bernese bailiffs forbade the Vaudois pastors of
-their department to receive Calvin and Farel at their colloquies, or
-to attend themselves those which were held at Geneva.<a name="FNanchor_589_589" id="FNanchor_589_589"></a><a href="#Footnote_589_589" class="fnanchor">[589]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_373" id="Page_373">[373]</a></span> Farel, who
-had rendered signal services to Berne and to Vaud, was now forbidden
-to appear in the canton, into which, nevertheless, the fanatic
-‘Spirituals’ had free admission. The reformer was indignant. ‘The
-Lord reward Kunz according to his deserts,’ he wrote to Fabri. ‘Yes,
-the Lord destroy those who go on destroying the Church.’<a name="FNanchor_590_590" id="FNanchor_590_590"></a><a href="#Footnote_590_590" class="fnanchor">[590]</a> These
-expressions are, as we think, more in the spirit of the Old Testament
-than of the New.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SYNOD AT LAUSANNE.</div>
-
-<p>The Bernese magistrates, in order to establish an outward unity, to
-which they attached great importance, as politicians generally do,
-determined to convoke a synod at Lausanne, and they wrote on the
-subject, March 10, to the magistrates of Geneva. The Council of the
-Two Hundred were quite inclined to adopt the usages of Berne as far as
-regarded ceremonies. Calvin and Farel having expressed to the council
-a desire to attend the proposed assembly, it was decided to send
-them, but at the same time to associate with them the councillor Jean
-Philippe.</p>
-
-<p>The synod met at Lausanne, March 31. The temper of the Bernese was more
-dictatorial than conciliatory. The lords of Berne had indeed requested
-that Calvin and Farel should go to Lausanne; but instead of expecting
-of the assembly a work of conciliation, they had positively stipulated,
-in a letter to the council of Geneva, that the Genevese preachers must
-pledge themselves beforehand to adopt the order of worship established
-at Berne; and that on this condition only would they be allowed to take
-part in the deliberations of the synod. If their adhesion were not
-given before the meeting, they should be heard afterwards and should
-be separately treated with. The Genevese reformers, therefore, were
-invited neither to a free assembly nor a free discussion. No other
-right was conceded to them but that of sub<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">[374]</a></span>mission. The Bernese added
-that the motive of this strange proceeding was to avoid giving their
-neighbors an opportunity of slandering the reformed religion, and to
-promote the union of the Churches. But the latter object, and through
-it the former, too, would probably have been more promptly attained by
-treating the ministers of Geneva in a brotherly and not in a despotic
-spirit. ‘The Bernese,’ according to Rozet, ‘inquired in a friendly
-way of Farel and Calvin on their arrival, whether they accepted their
-ceremonial.’ The reformers replied ‘that the subject was well deserving
-of discussion.’ Discussion was refused to them.<a name="FNanchor_591_591" id="FNanchor_591_591"></a><a href="#Footnote_591_591" class="fnanchor">[591]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Bernese senate had named Kunz one of the presidents of the synod.
-Associated with him were the ministers of Erasmus Ritter, and two
-members of the great council, Huber and Amman. Kunz was one of those
-overbearing characters which inspire awe in other men, and whose
-influence is almost irresistible. His colleagues, moreover, were in
-agreement with him. The affair did not encounter any difficulty. The
-synod, which opened on March 31, unanimously accepted the usages of
-Berne,&mdash;the baptisteries, the unleavened bread at the supper, and the
-festivals, including that of the Annunciation of the Virgin.</p>
-
-<p>Did Calvin and Farel attend the synod or not? It seems hardly probable
-that they would be willing by their presence to give a kind of sanction
-to an assembly from which they were virtually excluded. The letter
-of Berne to Geneva seems, moreover, to indicate clearly that unless
-they humbly received the ecclesiastical decisions of the magistrates
-and councils of Berne, they would only have a hearing apart. A highly
-partial biographer<a name="FNanchor_592_592" id="FNanchor_592_592"></a><a href="#Footnote_592_592" class="fnanchor">[592]</a> states that they were seen in the town and
-even that they ‘went outside of it for pleasure.’ There<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">[375]</a></span> would have
-been no great harm in their taking walks on the surrounding hills and
-on the banks of the Aar, enjoying the beauties of Swiss scenery, while
-they waited till it should please the lords of Berne to permit them to
-speak. But they would have been open to blame for not attending the
-synod if the order of Berne had not absolutely prohibited them. History
-therefore has been guilty of an error in that, while she mentions their
-absence from the synod, she has not reported the fact which justifies
-it; that is to say, the strange requirement of Berne,&mdash;a grave
-omission, which we would fain think was unintentional.<a name="FNanchor_593_593" id="FNanchor_593_593"></a><a href="#Footnote_593_593" class="fnanchor">[593]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ABSENCE OF CALVIN AND FAREL.</div>
-
-<p>The conference between Calvin and Farel and the delegates of Berne
-took place. The ministers of Geneva, while they objected to the use
-of baptisteries and unleavened bread, had no intention of causing
-division on account of such things. They adhered more firmly to their
-views respecting festivals. ‘On what ground,’ said Calvin, ‘will you
-honor the day of the circumcision more than that of the death of the
-Redeemer?’ In fact, Good Friday was not celebrated at Berne. Kunz was
-silent.<a name="FNanchor_594_594" id="FNanchor_594_594"></a><a href="#Footnote_594_594" class="fnanchor">[594]</a> Calvin and Farel wished that questions of this kind should
-be settled, not by delegates of the government but by the Church in
-its assemblies. They demanded therefore that the decision should be
-referred to a synod of the whole Reformed Church of Switzerland, which
-was to be held without delay at Zurich. All appearance of compulsion
-would thus be avoided; liberty and order would be equally respected,
-and the Church would be spared much grievous dissension. ‘There was an
-excellent remedy,’ Calvin wrote afterwards to the Zurichers, ‘by means
-of which danger might<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_376" id="Page_376">[376]</a></span> have been obviated; it was that we should be
-invited to your synod. But this we could not obtain.’<a name="FNanchor_595_595" id="FNanchor_595_595"></a><a href="#Footnote_595_595" class="fnanchor">[595]</a></p>
-
-<p>When the lords of Berne found that their delegates had failed in their
-conference with the Genevese ministers, they resolved to write, on the
-same day, April 15, two letters: one to Calvin and Farel, the other to
-the council of Geneva, having no doubt that this clever contrivance
-would succeed. Their two missives were very nearly alike. They urged
-the ministers to accept the decision of the synod, without waiting for
-the assembly at Zurich, in order that the two Churches, united in the
-fundamentals of the faith, might likewise be in conformity in matters
-of ceremonial. And to the council they addressed entreaties to accept
-the same decision, ‘in the hope that Masters Farel and Calvin, although
-they had raised some difficulties, would advise for the best.’<a name="FNanchor_596_596" id="FNanchor_596_596"></a><a href="#Footnote_596_596" class="fnanchor">[596]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER X.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">THE COUNTER-REFORMATION PREVAILS.&mdash;CALVIN AND FAREL REFUSE TO
-GIVE THE LORD’S SUPPER.&mdash;THE PULPIT IS CLOSED TO THEM.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(April 15 to 20, 1538.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RESISTANCE OF CALVIN.</div>
-
-<p>The very circumstances which inspired the confidence of Berne were
-exactly those which roused the resistance of Calvin. Those powerful and
-magnificent lords could not believe that so dignified an intervention
-would fail to secure submission; and Calvin could not consent that
-the interests of the Church of Christ should be regulated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_377" id="Page_377">[377]</a></span> by the
-magistrate, like those of the highways and the soldiery. Besides,
-in the present case, the question was about foreign magistrates. To
-their intervention the citizen and the Christian could not but be
-equally opposed. Calvin wished to maintain the principle of religious
-liberty, and he requested that time should be allowed him to come to
-an understanding with the other Churches. However, if the letter to
-the ministers was unsuccessful, that sent to the council had a success
-so abundant that it not only surpassed the hopes of the Bernese,
-but crossed their desires and threw an obstacle in the way of their
-projects. The syndics who had been named in a spirit hostile to the
-reformers, and all the citizens who had placed them in office, were
-delighted to see variance between Berne and Calvin and Farel. For them
-it was a piece of real good fortune, although for the ministers it was
-a grievous event. The two states, Berne and Geneva, acting in unison,
-would soon get the better of two poor ministers. Further, the council
-was at this time in a bad humor. The third preacher, the aged and
-energetic Courault, who had remained at Geneva, had blamed the syndics
-in one of his sermons, and it was resolved to reprimand him. It is safe
-to rely, in this matter, on what the Registers state. It is not right
-to receive, as some have done, the burlesque and lying imputations of
-the notorious slanderer Bolsec, who, ‘after the example of Herostratos,
-chose to pass down to posterity branded with infamy.’<a name="FNanchor_597_597" id="FNanchor_597_597"></a><a href="#Footnote_597_597" class="fnanchor">[597]</a> The council
-forbade Courault to preach. This was the state of things when the
-letters from Berne arrived. The council immediately gave orders that
-Calvin and Farel should appear before them on Friday, April 19. It
-was the Holy week, and that day was the day of the Passion. This
-consideration caused no hesitation on the part of the enemies of the
-Reformation. As the holy supper was to be celebrated two days later on
-Easter<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_378" id="Page_378">[378]</a></span> Sunday, they were anxious to hurry forward the business. The
-ministers then found themselves between the anvil and the hammer; they
-must submit or fall, and do which they would, they would be weakened
-and lowered. The secretary having read the letter from Berne, the first
-syndic declared to the reformers that the council was determined to
-accede to the demand of that city, and to conform to the usages there
-established with respect to ceremonies. Then he asked them if they
-would themselves observe them, and requested them to answer Yes or No.
-Calvin and Farel demanded the time necessary, not merely, as has been
-asserted, for reflection on the subject, but also and especially, that
-the question might be settled by the competent authorities, the Swiss
-synod, which in ten days (April 29) was to be held at Zurich. Meanwhile
-they begged that no innovation should be made until the next supper. In
-making this request Calvin pledged himself to accept whatever should
-be decreed by that legitimate authority. This was on his part a large
-concession. To his Scriptural and just judgment it did not appear
-consistent, after separating from Roman Catholicism, still to retain
-any part of the system, even were it only a trifle, such as unleavened
-bread, baptisteries, and festivals. To one of the latter, especially,
-he felt great objection. He knew that small concessions lead on to
-large ones, and he feared that Rome would act according to the proverb,
-and if you gave an inch would take an ell. It is needless to repeat how
-decided and firm Calvin was, and yet, out of love for peace and for
-unity, he conceded to his adversaries what he might justly have refused
-them. All he asked was that they would wait for ten days the decision
-of the synodal authority. This, assuredly, was not saying No in an
-absolute manner.<a name="FNanchor_598_598" id="FNanchor_598_598"></a><a href="#Footnote_598_598" class="fnanchor">[598]</a> It was quite the reverse; and the adversaries
-of Calvin ought rather to have wondered at his compliance than have
-blamed him for his inflexible<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_379" id="Page_379">[379]</a></span> obstinacy. His request was fair, and it
-ought to have been granted. But they would not listen to it. It was
-ordered that the supper should be celebrated conformably to the Bernese
-usage; and the council appointed the magistrates who were to take care
-that it was thus celebrated in the churches of St. Peter, St. Gervais,
-and Rive. It may be asked how it was that men who were by no means
-remarkable for their attachment to traditional observances should be so
-obstinate in sacrificing the ritual of Geneva to the ritual of Berne.
-Impartial judges have said, ‘The Council had taken this resolution in
-order to win over the Bernese and to implicate them in the opposition
-to the reformers.’<a name="FNanchor_599_599" id="FNanchor_599_599"></a><a href="#Footnote_599_599" class="fnanchor">[599]</a> We confess that this explanation appears to us
-very probable.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DISTURBANCES AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>This decision was despotic, and in that very quality was in accordance
-with the order which the councils intended to establish at Geneva, that
-of <i>Césaropapia</i>, in which the prince and the magistrate, taking the
-place of the pope, settle everything in the Church. The inflexibility
-of the council on the one side and the firmness of the reformers on
-the other came into collision, and the result was a shock to the
-people which troubled their everyday life and could not, but lead to
-a conflict. Those who formed the lowest section of the opposition,
-excited and agitated, began to cry out against the resistance of the
-ministers, and they thought that if the latter would not obey with a
-good grace, they must be compelled to yield by terror and by force.
-If the people were to express their will with energy, if they took up
-arms, and filled the streets and massed themselves like roaring waves
-in front of the houses of Farel, Calvin, and Courault, those men, no
-matter what their strength might be, would have no choice but to give
-way before that impetuous torrent. ‘Thereupon,’ says<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_380" id="Page_380">[380]</a></span> the chronicler
-Rozet, ‘great excesses and blasphemies were committed. Dissolute men
-went about the town by night in dozens, armed with arquebuses, which
-they discharged in front of the ministers’ houses. They shouted, <i>The
-Word of God!</i> and after that, <i>The word of Andrew!</i> They threatened
-to throw them into the Rhone if they did not come to some agreement
-with the magistrates respecting the ceremonies in question; and these
-proceedings, all open and notorious, went unpunished.’<a name="FNanchor_600_600" id="FNanchor_600_600"></a><a href="#Footnote_600_600" class="fnanchor">[600]</a> It is not
-easy to ascertain what the cry, <i>The word of Andrew</i>, meant.<a name="FNanchor_601_601" id="FNanchor_601_601"></a><a href="#Footnote_601_601" class="fnanchor">[601]</a>
-The cry, <i>To the Rhone!</i> was invariably heard at Geneva when popular
-risings took place. Froment was greeted with it when he began to preach
-the Gospel there; and some women would have thrown him <i>over the
-bridge</i> (<i>du pont en bas</i>) if a party of men had not rescued him. They
-did not, indeed, fling every one into the Rhone whom they threatened;
-but these cries could not but seem to Farel and Calvin a mournful
-return for their great and severe labors.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">INDIGNATION OF COURAULT.</div>
-
-<p>These disorderly deeds had lamentable consequences. Neither Farel
-nor Calvin complained of them. They had now at heart interests more
-important than their own, more precious even than their lives. They
-did not return evil for evil. But the former preacher to the Queen
-of Navarre, the blind and aged Courault, was not so forbearing. He
-likewise had heard these insults. A man of integrity and devoted to
-duty, he had at the same time a heart easily wounded, and he knew how
-to speak hard words. The night between Friday and Saturday, during
-which these cries had resounded in the city, was not a pleasant or a
-peaceful one for him. He was more irritated, perhaps, on account of
-the indignities which were heaped upon Calvin and Farel than<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_381" id="Page_381">[381]</a></span> for what
-concerned himself. Chagrin, disquietude, and anger kept him sleepless.
-His blood was heated, his heart was incensed, his imagination inflamed.</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">‘Je me tourne et m’agite et ne peux nulle part</div>
- <div>Trouver que l’insomnie, amère, impatiente,</div>
- <div>Qu’un malaise inquiet et qu’une fièvre ardente.’<a name="FNanchor_602_602" id="FNanchor_602_602"></a><a href="#Footnote_602_602" class="fnanchor">[602]</a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>The state of poor old Courault seems to be described in these lines.
-To him these disorders were intolerable, and he said that if men
-should hold their peace the very stones would cry aloud. He would cry
-out, and cry out in the pulpit. True, that was forbidden him; but no
-matter, in spite of the prohibition of men he would preach. He rose
-very early and went to St. Peter’s church to perform the service of
-six o’clock <span class="smcap">A.M.</span>, with no other preparation, alas! than the
-distress and bitterness which had preyed on his mind through the
-night. The character of his preaching was not such as was wanted for a
-people so sensitive as the Genevese. His eloquence somewhat resembled
-that of the monks to whose order he had belonged, which consisted,
-for the most part, in making a noise and in shouting.<a name="FNanchor_603_603" id="FNanchor_603_603"></a><a href="#Footnote_603_603" class="fnanchor">[603]</a> His mind
-was not cultivated, but he had a glowing imagination, which animated
-his discourse and enabled him to hit hard blows. Although he was of
-a more serious turn, he shared, to some extent, the faults of the
-most illustrious orators of the preceding period, Barletta, Maillard,
-and Menot; and he sometimes attacked, as they did, the vices of his
-hearers by satire occasionally delicate and occasionally coarse, but
-always prompted by a good and grave intention. He would now discharge
-his conscience. Let them put him in prison, banish him, or beat
-him soundly; his soul, wearied with grief, must burst its bonds.
-He uttered, doubtless, some excellent things, some true and pious
-words;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_382" id="Page_382">[382]</a></span> but, agitated as he was, he allowed himself to indulge in that
-intemperate mode of speech which was then so common. With his spirit
-still disturbed by those noisy and tumultuous crowds collected under
-the windows of the reformers, from the midst of which came redoubled
-shouts, jesting songs, insults, accusations, and menaces, he likened
-them to the ‘kingdom of the frogs,’ that from the bosom of the marshes
-croak and make a loud noise. Then recalling a vulgar phrase, the old
-Frenchman, hardly escaped from the rough life of persecution, inquired
-of the Genevese what they complained of,&mdash;they who were ‘like rats in
-straw,’ that is to say, were folk greatly at their ease, possessing
-everything they could wish and in want of nothing.<a name="FNanchor_604_604" id="FNanchor_604_604"></a><a href="#Footnote_604_604" class="fnanchor">[604]</a> In another
-passage, rising to a higher strain, and recalling the image of
-Nebuchadnezzar, with its head of gold and its feet part of iron and
-part of clay, fragile and broken by a little stone, he predicted to the
-syndics and councils that as intrigue had placed them in office they
-would not long retain their power. ‘You, gentlemen of the government,’
-said he, ‘you have feet of wax.’ These feet, in his opinion, would soon
-melt in the sunshine of their victory and prosperity. This comparison,
-imitative of Biblical style, was not unbefitting to a preacher, and
-the prophecy which it contained did not fail of accomplishment. At the
-news of this minister preaching in defiance of the prohibition, and
-at the report of his sayings, which were most likely misrepresented,
-the government felt that they were insulted, and determined to act
-rigorously. Officers of state went to the old man’s house, arrested
-and took him to prison. It was the eve of Easter Day. It was customary
-to make presents at that period; and this was the present which was
-bestowed on the aged, noble, but free-spoken minister<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_383" id="Page_383">[383]</a></span> and confessor of
-Christ, who had already experienced treatment too rough at the hands of
-the adherents of the pope in the kingdom of France.<a name="FNanchor_605_605" id="FNanchor_605_605"></a><a href="#Footnote_605_605" class="fnanchor">[605]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROTEST AGAINST HIS IMPRISONMENT.</div>
-
-<p>The news of the imprisonment of Courault rapidly spread through Geneva,
-and deeply affected the friends of the Reformation. A pastor in prison!
-Yes, and justly, if he were guilty of any common offence. But he had
-done what he believed to be his duty. From the Christian pulpit he
-had rebuked scandalous excesses, and on that account he was committed
-to prison, while those who were really guilty of them were let alone
-and went unpunished.<a name="FNanchor_606_606" id="FNanchor_606_606"></a><a href="#Footnote_606_606" class="fnanchor">[606]</a> It appears from the protocol of the 19th,
-that two men, forming part of the band which had gone about singing by
-night and had made disturbances at Rive, had been themselves placed
-in confinement. But the place and the date of that affair prove that
-it was on a quite different charge. The incarceration of Courault
-filled Calvin and Farel with sorrow, for they esteemed their old and
-venerable colleague, and they knew how much he had already suffered
-for the truth’s sake. Some of the councillors and citizens friendly
-to the Reformation resolved to protest against the imprisonment of
-their pastor. Claude Savoye, Michel Sept, Lambert, Chautemps, Domaine
-d’Arlod, Claude and Louis Bernard, Deserts, Claude Pertemps, and many
-others joined Calvin and Farel, and they all went together in a long
-procession to the Hôtel de Ville. They entered the hall of the council,
-and found there two out of the four syndics, and these the men who were
-most against them, Richardet and de Chapeaurouge.</p>
-
-<p>Farel spoke first. He complained that they had acted ‘ill, wickedly,
-and unjustly in putting Courault in prison,’ and demanded that the
-Council of the Two Hundred should be assembled. The laymen thought
-it strange<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_384" id="Page_384">[384]</a></span> that their adversaries should not be satisfied with
-announcing, like Richardet, that they would not go to the preaching,
-but should seem to intend also to deprive their fellow-citizens of
-it by committing the preachers to prison. The notion that a syndic
-should presume to hinder him from hearing the Word of God especially
-irritated Michel Sept. ‘They shall preach!’ he said, vehemently.
-Farel, remembering all that he had done and borne through long years
-for this city of Geneva, to the emancipation of which he had probably
-contributed more than any other man by his teaching, his courage, his
-prayers, and his deeds, said to the magistrates, ‘Without me you would
-not be what you are.’</p>
-
-<p>The syndics replied that, as the pulpit had been interdicted to
-Courault, and he had nevertheless preached that very morning, and had
-announced that he should continue to do so, they would not set him at
-liberty. The magistrates wished to see if this incident would furnish
-them with an opportunity of attaining the end which they had set before
-them. ‘Will you,’ they said to Farel and Calvin, ‘submit to the letters
-and ordinances of the lords of Berne? In that case we might restore
-to you your colleague.’ This bargain, which consisted in the release
-to them of an innocent prisoner if they on their part would do what
-they held to be wrong, appeared to the ministers a piece of shameful
-trafficking. ‘We will do, in such matters, what God commands,’ they
-replied. However, they were not willing to abandon their colleague.
-They offered to give bail, that he might under that guarantee be set
-at liberty. This proposition was a usual one in such cases, but the
-magistrates declined to accept it, and the reason which they gave
-for their refusal aggravated the harshness of the act. ‘Courault,’
-they said, ‘is not a <i>citizen of Geneva</i>, and he is imprisoned <i>for
-contempt of justice</i>.’ The members of the council were thoroughly bent
-on getting rid of Courault, who was less prudent than his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_385" id="Page_385">[385]</a></span> colleagues.
-It appears from authentic documents, that they even offered Calvin to
-wait, as to the question of ritual, for the decision of the synod of
-Zurich, if he would consent that Courault should be deprived of his
-office of preacher. This Calvin refused.<a name="FNanchor_607_607" id="FNanchor_607_607"></a><a href="#Footnote_607_607" class="fnanchor">[607]</a> The petitioners withdrew,
-much pained by the severity of the council towards their friend, and
-some of the laymen, especially Lambert, complained aloud as they
-quitted the Hôtel de Ville. They spoke of ‘<i>false witnesses</i> who had
-been examined; of <i>traitors</i> in the general council; and it is well
-known,’ they said, ‘who they are.’<a name="FNanchor_608_608" id="FNanchor_608_608"></a><a href="#Footnote_608_608" class="fnanchor">[608]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAILURE OF THE INTERVENTION.</div>
-
-<p>The council met after the departure of the reformers and their friends,
-and again decided that the Lord’s supper should be celebrated the
-next day, Easter Sunday, according to the rites established at Berne,
-and not according to those of Geneva; and it decreed that, if the
-ministers still refused to celebrate it, they should be forbidden to
-preach. One cannot but be astonished at this decision, and at the
-mean spirit which it displays on the part of the council. Simple and
-evangelical usages had been established in Geneva: the citizens had
-been called upon to take an oath in St. Peter’s church to a confession
-of faith which in its spirit is entirely in agreement with those
-practices; and now, in a matter which but little concerns it, in order
-to gratify the lords of Berne, whom it could easily resist when it
-chose to do so, the council determined to compel the ministers to
-observe a ceremony essentially Judaic,<a name="FNanchor_609_609" id="FNanchor_609_609"></a><a href="#Footnote_609_609" class="fnanchor">[609]</a> even at the risk of seeing
-worship suspended and the Church overthrown. This looks very much like
-a pretext, good or bad, which they laid hold of for the purpose of
-getting rid of the reformers. The chief-usher went in the afternoon
-to the pastors to communicate the decree to them. He did<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_386" id="Page_386">[386]</a></span> not find
-Farel, but Calvin, learning from the officer that the civil magistrate,
-without waiting for the resolution of the synod of Zurich, was himself
-deciding this ecclesiastical question, just as if it were an affair of
-military orders to give to an officer, refused to accept the order.
-Thereupon the chief-usher, in the name of the council, prohibited his
-preaching.<a name="FNanchor_610_610" id="FNanchor_610_610"></a><a href="#Footnote_610_610" class="fnanchor">[610]</a></p>
-
-<p>What to do? This was the question which Calvin put to himself. He
-longed for unity and peace in Geneva. He appealed afterwards to the
-Genevese themselves. ‘We take God to witness,’ said he, ‘and your own
-consciences, in the light of his countenance, that while we have been
-among you all our exertions have been directed towards preserving you
-in happy union and pleasing concord. But those who had a mind to form
-a party by themselves have separated from us, and have introduced
-division in your Church and in your city.’<a name="FNanchor_611_611" id="FNanchor_611_611"></a><a href="#Footnote_611_611" class="fnanchor">[611]</a> Lambert’s exclamation,
-when he spoke aloud of <i>traitors</i> and <i>false witnesses</i>, is sufficient
-to show us what was the state of Geneva at that time. Concord was
-nothing more than a lovely dream. The most violent passions were called
-into play. One would have said that God was giving up the inhabitants
-of the city to the unruly motions of their own hearts; and that is the
-most terrible chastisement which he ever employs in the punishment of
-men. Not, indeed, that these motions showed themselves violent alike in
-all. The lower classes were agitated, like their lake when the north
-wind, blowing impetuously, lifts up the waves and dashes them furiously
-on the rocks, the walls, and the banks. But among other classes
-appearances were better kept up. Nevertheless, if any reason were still
-left, it was too often only passion that made use of it for its own
-ends.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_387" id="Page_387">[387]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONFUSION.</div>
-
-<p>The confusion that prevailed in Geneva at this period is attested
-by contemporaries. ‘Popery had indeed been forsworn,’ says Theodore
-Beza,<a name="FNanchor_612_612" id="FNanchor_612_612"></a><a href="#Footnote_612_612" class="fnanchor">[612]</a> ‘but many had not cast away with it those numerous and
-disgraceful disorders which had for a long time flourished in the city,
-given up as it was for so many years to canons and impure priests.
-Some of the families which stood in the highest rank still kept alive
-those old enmities which grew up at the period of the wars with
-Savoy.’<a name="FNanchor_613_613" id="FNanchor_613_613"></a><a href="#Footnote_613_613" class="fnanchor">[613]</a> ‘The mischief had gone to such a length that the city,
-owing to the factious temper of some of the citizens, was divided into
-various parties.’<a name="FNanchor_614_614" id="FNanchor_614_614"></a><a href="#Footnote_614_614" class="fnanchor">[614]</a> ‘Nothing was to be heard,’ says Michel Rozet,
-‘but informations (<i>dénonces</i>) and quarrels between the former and
-the present lords (the former and the new councils), some being the
-ringleaders, others following in their steps; the whole mingled with
-reproaches about the booty taken in the war, or the spoils carried off
-from the churches.’<a name="FNanchor_615_615" id="FNanchor_615_615"></a><a href="#Footnote_615_615" class="fnanchor">[615]</a></p>
-
-<p>‘There was nothing but confusion.’<a name="FNanchor_616_616" id="FNanchor_616_616"></a><a href="#Footnote_616_616" class="fnanchor">[616]</a></p>
-
-<p>Neither the mild admonitions which were at first tried, nor the more
-rigorous reprimands to which recourse was afterwards had, produced any
-effect on the disturbers of the peace, and they failed to put an end to
-their disorderly proceedings.<a name="FNanchor_617_617" id="FNanchor_617_617"></a><a href="#Footnote_617_617" class="fnanchor">[617]</a></p>
-
-<p>‘I have lived here,’ says Calvin himself, when speaking of this period,
-‘engaged in strange contests. I have been saluted in mockery, of an
-evening, before my own<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_388" id="Page_388">[388]</a></span> door, with fifty or sixty shots of arquebuses.
-You may imagine how that must astound a poor scholar, timid as I am,
-and as I confess I always was.’<a name="FNanchor_618_618" id="FNanchor_618_618"></a><a href="#Footnote_618_618" class="fnanchor">[618]</a></p>
-
-<p>Such was the melancholy condition of Geneva according to men who,
-on questions of fact and of public fact, are the most respectable
-authorities that history can produce. She has but few witnesses endowed
-with the moral courage of Michel Rozet, Theodore Beza, and Calvin.<a name="FNanchor_619_619" id="FNanchor_619_619"></a><a href="#Footnote_619_619" class="fnanchor">[619]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERPLEXITY OF THE REFORMERS.</div>
-
-<p>The reformers were in great perplexity. The synod of Lausanne, at
-which the Bernese had opposed the hearing of the representatives of
-the Genevese Church, could not bind the latter. Their resistance to
-the introduction of new usages, which was ordered by the council
-without awaiting the decision of the synod of Zurich, was legitimate.
-If matters of that kind are left to the decision of the civil power,
-the natural order of things is inverted, the autonomy of the Church is
-disowned; and who knows whether, in a turbulent democracy, religion<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_389" id="Page_389">[389]</a></span>
-may not fall into the hands of an excited people who will, according
-to the saying of a celebrated but scoffing writer, take it up ‘to play
-at ball with it, and make it bound upwards as readily with the foot
-as with the fist.’<a name="FNanchor_620_620" id="FNanchor_620_620"></a><a href="#Footnote_620_620" class="fnanchor">[620]</a> However, Calvin could not help asking himself
-whether the actual question, the acceptance of unleavened bread which
-the Jews used to eat at the time of the Passover, was of a sufficiently
-weighty kind to put an end to his ministry at Geneva. He did not
-think it was. ‘If we have at heart,’ he said, ‘union and peace, let
-us seek after a unity of minds in doctrine, rather than insist in a
-too scrupulous manner on a conformity of the most exact kind to this
-or that ceremony. There are some points on which the Lord leaves us
-freedom, in order that our edification may be the greater. Not to be
-careful about this edification, and to seek instead of it a slavish
-conformity, is unworthy of a Christian.’<a name="FNanchor_621_621" id="FNanchor_621_621"></a><a href="#Footnote_621_621" class="fnanchor">[621]</a> Such were Calvin’s views
-on the question about leavened or unleavened bread.</p>
-
-<p>But the question was about a quite different matter. The reformer had
-before him a town in agitation and division, its parties, quarrels,
-hatreds, scoffings, cries, disorders, and scandals. Is this the temple
-in which the festival of peace is to be celebrated? ‘No,’ said he,
-‘the aspect of the Church is not at present such as the legitimate
-administration of our office requires.<a name="FNanchor_622_622" id="FNanchor_622_622"></a><a href="#Footnote_622_622" class="fnanchor">[622]</a> What<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_390" id="Page_390">[390]</a></span>ever people may say,
-we do not believe that our ministry ought to be confined within such
-narrow limits that when once we have delivered our sermon we have
-nothing more to do except to rest as if we had accomplished our task.
-It is more than that; it is that we must with greater vigilance take
-care of those whose blood will be demanded at our hands if they should
-perish through our negligence. This solicitude fills us with distress
-of mind at all times, but when we have to distribute the Lord’s supper,
-then it fiercely consumes and cruelly torments us.<a name="FNanchor_623_623" id="FNanchor_623_623"></a><a href="#Footnote_623_623" class="fnanchor">[623]</a> While the faith
-of many of those who wish to take part in it is in our opinion doubtful
-and even open to suspicion, we see them all rushing headlong and
-pell-mell to the sacred table. And one would say that they are eating
-greedily the wrath of God rather than partaking of the sacrament of
-life.’<a name="FNanchor_624_624" id="FNanchor_624_624"></a><a href="#Footnote_624_624" class="fnanchor">[624]</a> Calvin, as these words show, had still before his eyes that
-riotous communion of January, previous to which the council had decreed
-‘that the supper <i>should not be refused to anyone</i>.’ He recollected the
-disposition, the look, the deportment, with which many had taken part
-in it; he still felt the heaviness of heart which he had experienced
-when giving the bread of life to such men. Now all had grown worse. The
-evil which had then shown itself, bursting the few chains which kept it
-down, now broke forth with violence. The population was excited, angry,
-rebellious. It was no longer merely the profligacy of some individuals;
-there was general perplexity, disturbance, and confusion. The agitation
-was not confined to the coarser minds; some of the most cultivated were
-going beyond all bounds. The saying of a celebrated writer with respect
-to another city might be applied to Geneva, ‘The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_391" id="Page_391">[391]</a></span> devil is let loose on
-this town: within the memory of man so frightful a time has not been
-seen.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">VIOLENCE OF PARTIES.</div>
-
-<p>Was this the moment for celebrating the feast of peace? In the judgment
-of every sensible man it would have been an absurdity. If a feast is
-to be held on board ship, is it to be just when the whirlwind of the
-tempest strikes the vessel, when the sea-waves lift themselves up, when
-those on board shake and totter like a drunken man, while they go up to
-the heavens and down to the abysses? Is that the time for the dance to
-begin, and for the passengers gracefully to execute measured paces, to
-the sound of musical instruments? Or would anyone choose for attendance
-at a sweet and harmonious concert the moment when the hall is on fire?
-And yet it was proposed, in the midst of burning lawless passions,
-to have by force, by the decree of the magistrate, a display of holy
-things which would be nothing but a profanation.</p>
-
-<p>It cannot even be said, as is usually said, that the subject of
-excommunication was in question here. Not to give the supper at
-present did not mean that it should not be given afterwards. Calvin
-had given it. But it was not the time for it. <i>Non erat hic locus.</i>
-The reformer acted with the wisdom of a physician who will not give
-leave to impatient sick folk to take a mountain journey; he will do
-so afterwards, when they have regained their strength, but not now.
-Perhaps there may be individuals among them who will never scale the
-rocks because they will never have the power to do so. But that has
-nothing to do with those who are whole. For the physician there will
-be no more lovely day than that on which, at the head of his party, he
-shall be able to breathe with his friends the keen and healthful air of
-the heights, which at an earlier period would have killed them. That
-joy, we say again, Calvin had once tasted.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin and Farel, having considered everything, took such a resolution
-as circumstances demanded; they<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_392" id="Page_392">[392]</a></span> would not give the supper on the
-following day, which was Easter Day. Having adopted this resolution,
-they communicated it to the authorities. ‘Farel and Calvin,’ says
-Rozet, ‘informed the council that they could not administer the supper
-<i>in the midst of these divisions, gangs, and blasphemies, and with
-profligacies multiplying around them</i>.’<a name="FNanchor_625_625" id="FNanchor_625_625"></a><a href="#Footnote_625_625" class="fnanchor">[625]</a> Such was their motive
-clearly expressed. But they would do more than that. They had been
-prohibited from preaching. What! on this Easter Day should the doors
-of the churches be closed and the pulpit be dumb! Moreover, since
-they had refused to celebrate the supper, they owed to those whom God
-had confided to their ministry to give them their reasons. That was
-not for their harm but for their good, and they were bound to do it.
-Nevertheless, to occupy the pulpit on that day in defiance of the
-prohibition of the government, which was supported by the majority of
-the people, would be a grave affair for these two men, both feeble
-in body, the one in consequence of his labors, and the other by
-constitution. ‘But,’ said Calvin one day, recalling a saying of David,
-‘though <i>a camp, an army</i>, that is to say, everything which is terrible
-and appalling in the world, should rise up against us, though all men
-should conspire to destroy us, we have no fear of all their might, for
-the power of God is far greater. We shall not be entirely free from
-fear; if we were, it would rather be from stupidity than from courage.
-But we shall hold before us the shield of faith, lest our hearts should
-faint or fail through the terrors which beset us.’<a name="FNanchor_626_626" id="FNanchor_626_626"></a><a href="#Footnote_626_626" class="fnanchor">[626]</a> A victory which
-the court of Turin, with the aid of Spain and of the pope, failed to
-gain over the senate and people of Geneva, these two feeble men attempt
-and win. Here was one of the most beautiful triumphs of which the cause
-of religious liberty engaged in a conflict with the despotism of the
-state can boast. It was more than that.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_393" id="Page_393">[393]</a></span> It was Christian heroism which
-prefers the fulfilment of the will of God, with exile, to a comfortable
-abode in one of the fairest countries in the world, with a conscience
-sacrificed and a slavish submission to Cæsar in things pertaining to
-God. It was in this character that the two principal witnesses to
-Calvin’s life regarded it. ‘Thenceforth Calvin,’ says one of them, ‘as
-he was of a spirit essentially heroic, stoutly and steadily resisted
-the seditious, together with the aforesaid Farel.’<a name="FNanchor_627_627" id="FNanchor_627_627"></a><a href="#Footnote_627_627" class="fnanchor">[627]</a>&mdash;‘Farel and
-Calvin,’ says the other, ‘each endowed with a noble and heroic spirit,
-openly declared that they could not celebrate in a religious manner the
-Lord’s supper, among citizens who were so miserably at variance with
-each other, and so opposed to all discipline in the church.’<a name="FNanchor_628_628" id="FNanchor_628_628"></a><a href="#Footnote_628_628" class="fnanchor">[628]</a> The
-decay of Christian principle is the only possible explanation of the
-fact that some should have ventured a judgment on them, contrary to
-that which was pronounced by contemporaries.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XI.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">CALVIN AND FAREL PREACH IN SPITE OF THE PROHIBITION BY THE
-COUNCIL.&mdash;THEY ARE BANISHED FROM GENEVA.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(Easter, 1538.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">APPROACH OF THE CRISIS.</div>
-
-<p>The crisis was approaching. The danger was increasing. Geneva was
-in one of those perilous but decisive moments in which some sudden
-change takes place, whether for better or for worse. The population
-was getting more and more excited. The news that the ministers would
-not celebrate the supper in Geneva raised<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_394" id="Page_394">[394]</a></span> irritation to the highest
-pitch. All explanations were useless; many people would not listen to
-anything; anger had stopped their ears. It is said that in the evening
-the streets were in an uproar, and that bands of factious men were
-shouting against the ministers. It is even added that a masquerade had
-been organized for the purpose of presenting a parody of scenes from
-the Gospel. We are not sure that the libertines went to that length;
-but there was during the evening a great agitation in the town, as the
-next day too plainly showed. These scenes of tumult greatly grieved
-Calvin. If he turned his thoughts to the past, the great sorrows
-which he had already borne in Geneva appeared to him again; and he
-foresaw that those which were approaching would be more bitter still.
-Interfered with in the preaching of the Word, in the administration of
-the sacraments, in the maintenance of apostolical discipline and in
-the organization of the Church (the council refused its consent to the
-division of the town into parishes, a measure which would have greatly
-facilitated the discharge of pastoral duties, and have promoted the
-good of families), what was he to do? ‘I confess,’ he wrote, ‘that the
-first letters by which the senate endeavored to turn aside my will
-from the right path struck me a heavy blow.<a name="FNanchor_629_629" id="FNanchor_629_629"></a><a href="#Footnote_629_629" class="fnanchor">[629]</a> I saw that I was thus
-again plunged into the distresses from which I had hoped that I was
-delivered by the great goodness of God. When I accepted the government
-of this Church, in conjunction with my excellent and most faithful
-colleague Farel, I applied myself in all good conscience to seeking
-out the means by which it might be maintained; and although it was for
-me a very laborious charge, I never thought of abandoning the place.
-I considered myself as set by the hand of God at a post from which
-I could not withdraw. And nevertheless, if I were to tell the least
-part of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_395" id="Page_395">[395]</a></span> cares, or rather of the miseries, which we were forced
-to endure throughout a whole year, I am sure that you would think it
-incredible.<a name="FNanchor_630_630" id="FNanchor_630_630"></a><a href="#Footnote_630_630" class="fnanchor">[630]</a> I can assure you that not a day has passed in which I
-did not ten times wish for death.’<a name="FNanchor_631_631" id="FNanchor_631_631"></a><a href="#Footnote_631_631" class="fnanchor">[631]</a> This Easter eve, when he was on
-the point of exposing himself to the greatest griefs, while giving unto
-God the honor which is due to him, was doubtless one of those days. He
-must drink the cup of the people’s wrath. He, the timid scholar, as he
-declares that he always had been, must now face these furious men. But
-one thought gave him strength; it is the will of God, and his will must
-be done.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EASTER SUNDAY.</div>
-
-<p>Easter Sunday dawned. From early morning great agitation prevailed
-in the town. The adversaries and friends of the reformers were both
-troubled, but in different ways. The former were impatient to see
-if they would really preach notwithstanding the prohibition of the
-council, and to hear what they might have to say. The latter also were
-eager to go to divine service, either from a sentiment of piety or in
-order to defend the ministers in case, as some expected, there should
-be any disturbance in the churches. The movements of the multitude,
-the groups which were forming at various points, the violent speeches
-which were uttered from time to time, all were calculated to inspire
-fear. In timid souls there was also an inward trouble, an anxiety, and
-a heart-ache, inevitable under circumstances so grave. Men, women,
-and children, the roar of the crowd, and the confused voices of the
-people, filled the streets. Strange things were fancied, evil reports
-were circulated. One would almost have said, seeing the general stir,
-that some one was going to be led to execu<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_396" id="Page_396">[396]</a></span>tion. The crowd was drifting
-towards the places of execution. The inhabitants of the right bank
-betook themselves to the church of St. Gervais, in which Farel was to
-preach; those of the left bank and of the upper part of the town to the
-cathedral of St. Peter, where Calvin would preach. They entered the
-doors and filled the churches. The friends of the reformers took their
-places in general about the pulpit. Their adversaries, distributed
-over all parts of the building, and exchanging bold words with each
-other, asked themselves whether it was not their duty to aid the
-magistrate and prevent the ministers from speaking. The district on the
-right bank was that in which most of the opponents of the ministers
-lived. Probably some of their most violent enemies had come from
-other quarters to hear Farel, whose presence was less imposing than
-Calvin’s, and with whom they were more familiarly acquainted. The brave
-evangelist had not ceased for some years lavishing his powers for the
-good of Geneva, and for this they meant to pay him on this day. Farel
-appeared, entered the pulpit, and at the sight of him considerable
-excitement was manifested by the audience. No attempt, however, was
-made to close his mouth. The preaching of this popular orator at the
-present moment was a spectacle which interested them as much as or even
-more than any other. The prayer and the hymns being over, the discourse
-began. Farel, with his intrepid heart, his fervent spirit, his strong
-convictions, and his power of impressing and carrying away his hearers,
-did not conceal the truth. Without dwelling on the question of bread,
-which he declared was a secondary matter, he spoke of the holiness of
-the supper. He remonstrated with the people, as if they intended, in
-his opinion, to defile the holy sacrament,’<a name="FNanchor_632_632" id="FNanchor_632_632"></a><a href="#Footnote_632_632" class="fnanchor">[632]</a> and he declared that,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">[397]</a></span>
-to prevent such a profanation, the holy supper would not be celebrated.
-These words moved the whole assembly, and roused a great part of them
-to indignation. Adversaries became disorderly, friends were in alarm.
-Imaginations were heated, anger burst forth, and outcries were heard.
-<i>In the morning a disturbance was got up against Farel in the church of
-St. Gervais.</i><a name="FNanchor_633_633" id="FNanchor_633_633"></a><a href="#Footnote_633_633" class="fnanchor">[633]</a> But the preacher’s habit was to brave danger; and,
-above all, he knew no fear when unworthy men</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Voulaient du Dieu vivant braver la majesté.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DISTURBANCE AT ST. GERVAIS.</div>
-
-<p class="p-left">He therefore went on. His popular eloquence, his
-animated movements, his imagery so well adapted to make his ideas
-more lively and more obvious, his energetic gestures, his voice like
-thunder, the resounding of which, according to Theodore Beza, made
-his hearers tremble, made him the most captivating of the orators of
-France and Switzerland. Farel, who generally spoke extempore, could
-not but be struck at the spectacle which presented itself to him, for
-the congregation in such circumstances always reacts on the preacher.
-He was standing in the presence of a stormy sea, the surging waves
-of which appeared about to engulf him. But he felt that he stood on
-a rock, and he had learnt long ago to brave the tempest. He then
-courageously unfolded the act of accusation. He set forth those things
-which would profane the supper. He enumerated ‘those divisions, those
-bands, those blasphemies, those profligacies which were multiplying,
-and which made it impossible for the ministers to administer it.’<a name="FNanchor_634_634" id="FNanchor_634_634"></a><a href="#Footnote_634_634" class="fnanchor">[634]</a>
-For a long time people could not listen to him without being charmed,
-but it was quite otherwise at this moment. Men’s minds were more and
-more agitated, hearts were rebellious, the opposition burst forth,
-voices changed by passion were heard, and the disturbance of which the
-chronicler tells filled the church of St. Gervais. Farel, however,
-kept<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">[398]</a></span> the upper hand. His character and his action awed the rebels. His
-friends protected his departure, and he succeeded in reaching his own
-house unharmed.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Calvin was preaching at St. Peter’s. What was passing there?</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN’S MORNING SERMON.</div>
-
-<p>The worship appears to have been quiet and dignified; the scenes of
-St. Gervais, at any rate, were not repeated here. The quarter in which
-the cathedral stood, its imposing and solemn aspect, the composition
-of the congregation, the magistrates, who doubtless were present in
-large numbers, the grave countenance of the reformer, partly explain
-this decorum. But the character of his speech, calm, simple, rich
-in thought, luminous, and illuminating all the subjects of which he
-treated, concise, awe-inspiring, and convincing, without the vivid and
-popular flashes of Farel, doubtless contributed thereto to a great
-extent. Nevertheless Calvin kept back nothing. ‘We protest before
-you all,’ he said, ‘that we are not obstinate on the question about
-bread, leavened or unleavened; that is a matter of indifference which
-is left to the discretion of the Church. If we decline to administer
-the supper, it is because we are in a great difficulty which prompts
-us to this course.’ Then he spoke of the divisions, the bands of men,
-the blasphemies, the profligacies, disorders, abominations, mockery of
-God and his Gospel, the troubles and the sects which prevailed in the
-town. ‘For,’ he said, ‘in public, and without any kind of punishment
-being inflicted for it, a thousand derisive speeches have been uttered
-against the Word of God and likewise against the supper.’<a name="FNanchor_635_635" id="FNanchor_635_635"></a><a href="#Footnote_635_635" class="fnanchor">[635]</a> He then
-stated unreservedly the motives which deterred him from celebrating
-the communion. But he does not appear to have gone further. He had
-doubtless more than once in his discourses transgressed the limits
-of moderation; but it seems that the solemnity of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_399" id="Page_399">[399]</a></span> occasion and
-the dignity of the pulpit led him to suppress those violent phrases
-with which his speech sometimes bristled. He had a difficult task
-to accomplish. He was bound to make these people understand the
-obligations imposed on them by the profession of Christianity. Every
-member of a society has, in fact, certain duties to discharge, which
-are essential to the very existence of the community; in the same
-way, every member of the Church owes to it an edifying and blameless
-life. Christians form but one body, and it is a matter of concern to
-each of its members that God should be honored in them all. Evident
-hypocrisy and shameless depravity, in any man making profession of
-being a Christian, are an injury to the whole Christian society. Union
-with God is incompatible with a state of sin; vice and virtue are two
-things which never go together. To regard as a trifle and a matter
-of indifference the implacable opposition which exists between truth
-and falsehood, between holiness and licentiousness, so that the one
-or the other may be pursued without any ground for preference, is the
-degradation of humanity and the scandal of scandals. If this mode of
-thought prevail, the Christian Church is in a state of suffering;
-it must be defended, it must be saved; and a Church unwilling to be
-defended would be in a very unhealthy condition. More than that, and
-Calvin frequently called it to mind, to maintain the necessity of a
-life conformed to the Word of God is of importance even to the man
-whose conduct is in opposition to his commandments. This necessity is
-insisted on not to destroy but to save him. ‘It is maintained in such a
-manner,’ said Calvin, ‘as to bring him back into the way of salvation,
-and the Church is quite ready to receive him as a friend. She must not
-exercise a too rigorous severity; she must not proceed strictly to
-extremities and show herself inexorable, but must rather come forward
-with gentleness. If this moderation be not carefully adhered to,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_400" id="Page_400">[400]</a></span> there
-is danger that from correctors we should become executioners.’<a name="FNanchor_636_636" id="FNanchor_636_636"></a><a href="#Footnote_636_636" class="fnanchor">[636]</a></p>
-
-<p>These were Calvin’s principles. His discourse has not been handed down
-to us, but it is impossible to suppose that he did not speak according
-to his deepest convictions; and if he did so, that would partly account
-for the calmness with which he was listened to. He was, however,
-mistaken on one point, and this we cannot too fully acknowledge. At
-that time the Church and the state were everywhere almost confounded,
-so that ‘the state did not hesitate to intermeddle in many subjects
-which were within the province of the Church.’<a name="FNanchor_637_637" id="FNanchor_637_637"></a><a href="#Footnote_637_637" class="fnanchor">[637]</a> This was
-particularly the case at Geneva. Of all the reformers, Calvin was the
-one who had it most at heart to establish the autonomy of the Church,
-and thereby a certain independence of the two societies. But, like his
-contemporaries, he adhered to the opinions of his own age and of those
-which had preceded it. The elements of Judaic discipline had, from the
-first century, trenched on the ground of Christian discipline. The
-Reformation doubtless effected everywhere a great change in this state
-of things; but still the state was seen, even at Geneva, thrusting its
-iron arm into the midst of the Christian societies for the purpose of
-striking the guilty. That is a coarse and fatal error, one which every
-true Christian must energetically cast from him. Fortunately there
-could be no question on this point in the great conflict of Easter
-1538. The state was then for the moment separated from the Church, and
-the reformers did not and would not make use of any other weapons than
-those of the Spirit.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS EVENING SERMON.</div>
-
-<p>If the reformer had been able to preach with tranquillity in the
-morning, it was to be otherwise in the evening. The most furious of
-his adversaries thought that they<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">[401]</a></span> owed him something, and in their
-wrath meant to discharge the debt. So long as they had had to do
-only with the good-natured Farel, matters had gone on pretty well,
-notwithstanding his lively sallies; but this young man from Noyon was
-a spirit of a different stamp, and since he came to Geneva everything
-had changed. He had a methodical intellect and the faculty for
-organization. Had he not prepared a fundamental law of the Church, to
-which they had been obliged to take the oath at St. Peter’s? He wanted
-to regulate everything, and this was not convenient. Since Farel had
-been attacked, it was not fair to let Calvin escape. An uproar had
-been made in the morning at St. Gervais; another shall be made in the
-evening at the church of St. Francis at Rive. It was in that convent
-that Farel had for the first time appeared in the pulpit, March 1,
-1534; and there Calvin was to preach, April 21, 1538. The quarter in
-which this convent stood was situated in the lower part of the town,
-not far from the shores of the lake, and it was probably less quiet
-than the neighborhood of the cathedral. The church was speedily filled,
-and Calvin arrived. He began his sermon. Knowing that Farel had been
-treated worse than himself, it is possible that, to leave no ground
-for reproaching himself, he might think it his duty to put a stronger
-emphasis on his words, and to lay stress on certain things, in order to
-make them observed and felt. For the rest, had he spoken like an angel,
-he would not have escaped the tumult. Men’s minds were irritated; the
-thought of resisting this inflexible man had seized on many, and made
-them frantic; they had even taken their swords, and had come to church
-as to a military parade. Violence often remains at first smouldering,
-silent, and makes no sign. It appears to have been so in this case; but
-at some word uttered by the preacher, it revealed itself in a sudden
-explosion. One would have said that a stormy wind passed over that
-crowd, and impressed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_402" id="Page_402">[402]</a></span> on it a passionate movement. In the church of
-Rive there were violent speeches and threatening gestures. This was not
-all. In sight of that orator, whose dignity and power irritated them,
-the most furious drew their swords, and the flash of steel was seen in
-the sanctuary of peace. No one, it is true, directed the fatal edge at
-the throat of the orator. It appears, however, that a struggle took
-place between the friends and the enemies of the Reformation, and that
-arms were crossed; for the great magistrate of Geneva in the sixteenth
-century, Michel Rozet, felt bound to say in his chronicle that the
-affair passed off <i>without bloodshed</i>.<a name="FNanchor_638_638" id="FNanchor_638_638"></a><a href="#Footnote_638_638" class="fnanchor">[638]</a> The syndic Gautier, too,
-looks on this fortunate circumstance as <i>a kind of miracle</i>. Thus,
-after having heard the firing of arquebuses, fifty or sixty times in
-the course of the evening, against his own house, the reformer at this
-hour saw glittering swords brandished against him in the very house of
-God. Luther and other reformers were also tried by such tribulations,
-but in their case they came from the pope and his adherents, not from
-people of their own Church. Was Calvin agitated, or did he remain calm
-in the presence of this outbreak? We do not know. It is probable that,
-while inwardly agitated, he preserved an outward calmness. While some
-of his friends gathered around the pulpit to defend him, there were
-happily found a few moderate men, belonging to both sides, who exerted
-themselves to restore peace, to check the outbursts of passion, and
-to bring to reason those excited men who were dishonoring by their
-violence the temple of the Lord. Gradually feeling calmed down, speech
-became less violent, swords were returned to their scabbards, and
-the storm was laid. The friends of Calvin accompanied and conducted
-him safe and sound to his abode, which was not far off. ‘And in the
-evening, at Rive,’ says the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_403" id="Page_403">[403]</a></span> syndic Rozet, ‘a disturbance broke out
-against Calvin. Swords were drawn; but it was all quelled.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DISTURBANCE AT RIVE.</div>
-
-<p>The same day, after the services, the council met to deliberate on
-the occurrences of the day. Twelve members were present, and these
-were fully determined to punish, not the factious, but the reformers.
-Desirous that their resolutions should be passed by the highest
-authorities of the state, they decreed that the Council of the Two
-Hundred should assemble the next day, and the general council on the
-following day. They could hardly proceed more speedily.</p>
-
-<p>On April 22 the syndics set forth the facts before the Two Hundred,
-dwelling particularly on the subject of the bread, although the
-ministers had stated that that question had nothing to do with their
-resolution. The <i>bread</i> seemed, therefore, to be merely used as a
-pretext. The syndics inquired of the Two Hundred whether they wished
-to adopt the ritual used at Berne. They replied in the affirmative.
-We have seen that the dominant party had obtained a majority in this
-council, and by what means they did so. The syndics next complained
-that the ministers had preached on Easter Day, although the magistrate
-had forbidden it, and they inquired whether they ought not to be
-committed to prison. The Two Hundred would not hear of imprisonment;
-but, with no less severity, they resolved to interdict the three
-ministers, Calvin, Farel, and Courault, from occupying the pulpit in
-the churches of the republic, and to order them to leave the city
-immediately upon the appointment of their successors. It is remarkable
-that, according to the Registers of the council, no mention was made
-either of the charges of licentiousness and blasphemy which Farel
-and Calvin had made in the pulpit, or of the refusal to celebrate
-the supper which had been the consequence. It is easy, however, to
-understand this silence. Those charges, were, undoubtedly, the most
-important fact in the conflict, and the magis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_404" id="Page_404">[404]</a></span>trates, in omitting
-them, were straining at the gnat and swallowing the camel. Calvin
-said subsequently, but not with reference to this special instance,
-‘Hypocrites, while they do not hesitate to give themselves up to
-indulgence in the grossest vices, are all the more austere and rigorous
-in matters which are of comparatively slight importance; and while
-they make pretence in that way of humbling themselves before God, they
-proudly insult him to his face.’<a name="FNanchor_639_639" id="FNanchor_639_639"></a><a href="#Footnote_639_639" class="fnanchor">[639]</a> Licentiousness and blasphemy were
-very unpleasant topics, and on them the council was not at all inclined
-to dwell. Besides, had these grievances been spoken of, there must have
-been an investigation, evidence must have been taken, and witnesses
-called; and all this would have been very troublesome, and have taken a
-long time. Even if the government had commenced proceedings against the
-pastors, to punish them for making those charges, it is very doubtful
-whether they would have gained their cause, at least in the judgment
-of impartial men. It was a far more simple and expeditious plan to
-insist on this single fact, that preaching had been prohibited to the
-ministers, and that nevertheless they had preached. This required no
-proof, for all the town had seen and heard them. It is quite evident
-that it was on this ground they were punished. The council stood on its
-right, but it was assuredly a case to which the saying applies, <i>Summum
-jus summa injuria</i>.<a name="FNanchor_640_640" id="FNanchor_640_640"></a><a href="#Footnote_640_640" class="fnanchor">[640]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DENIAL OF JUSTICE.</div>
-
-<p>After these disorders, these stormy scenes, and the banishment of the
-reformers, what was likely to happen? The bond of religion, so powerful
-to keep in check criminal desires and actions, being once broken,
-would not confusion, already so great, overrun the unhappy city? Would
-not the evangelical faith be trampled under foot? Should we not find
-Protestants themselves willing to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_405" id="Page_405">[405]</a></span> join the mass with the Gospel?
-Would not Rome conspire to reintroduce in Geneva ‘the old religion’?
-Would not political independence itself be endangered? Would not the
-enemies of the Reformation attempt to make some compact with Savoy,
-and would not Berne itself, to whose influence Calvin seemed to be
-sacrificed, imperil the Genevese liberties? These fears, alas, were
-only too well founded! Calvin, who had so rigorously resisted Farel
-when the latter pressed him to settle at Geneva, could not now make up
-his mind to abandon the place. He wished to remain there to contend
-with all his might against the dangers which he saw besetting the
-city. ‘We perceived very clearly,’ he said, ‘that in this extremity,
-the safety of the Church required that she should not be deprived of
-her leaders. We therefore labored to retain our ministry as if it
-had been a struggle for our own existence.’<a name="FNanchor_641_641" id="FNanchor_641_641"></a><a href="#Footnote_641_641" class="fnanchor">[641]</a> Calvin was anxious
-at all cost to prevent any overturn or convulsion in the Church and
-in the State. He felt the necessity of enlightening the people, of
-making them understand the importance of moral conduct, Christian
-faith, and cordial union. ‘It appeared to him,’ said he, ‘far easier
-to uphold the Church at the moment when she was ready to fall, than
-to re-establish her when once she had fallen, and was as good as
-lost.’<a name="FNanchor_642_642" id="FNanchor_642_642"></a><a href="#Footnote_642_642" class="fnanchor">[642]</a> He therefore claimed, and claimed instantly, to be allowed
-to give an account of his reasons to the general council. He would
-explain everything, and the right side would win. It is unjust to deny
-a man accused the opportunity of setting forth the reasons of his
-conduct. But all was fruitless. Were the syndics afraid that Calvin
-would convince the people, or that the people would insult Calvin? We
-can<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_406" id="Page_406">[406]</a></span>not decide the point. However it might be, they refused him what
-was due to him. It was a denial of justice. They preferred to condemn
-him without a hearing. Neither his own representations nor those of his
-colleagues were of any avail. Party spirit went so far as to close the
-mouth of the most eloquent, the most profound, the most learned, the
-most sincere, and the most able man of the age.<a name="FNanchor_643_643" id="FNanchor_643_643"></a><a href="#Footnote_643_643" class="fnanchor">[643]</a></p>
-
-<p>The next day, April 23, the general council met in the cloisters of St.
-Peter’s to decide the fate of the reformers without having heard them.</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Le pire des états, c’est l’état populaire,&mdash;</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p class="p-left">said great men of the seventeenth century.<a name="FNanchor_644_644" id="FNanchor_644_644"></a><a href="#Footnote_644_644" class="fnanchor">[644]</a> We think
-otherwise in the nineteenth. It is nevertheless true that the people
-frequently disappoint the expectation formed of them, and deceive
-themselves. Every age has presented terrible examples of this. The
-people allow themselves to be easily influenced, and they rush headlong
-in the footsteps of those whom they have chosen for guides. This was
-what took place at Geneva. The syndics inquired of the people whether
-they wished to make use of unleavened bread at the supper, as was done
-at Berne, ‘without further dispute.’ The majority was in favor of
-unleavened bread, although they probably did not very clearly know what
-it meant. The syndics then informed the general council ‘that Farel,
-Calvin, and their colleagues had refused to obey the command of the
-magistrate; and inquired whether they would dismiss them or not.’ The
-‘greatest voice,’ that of the majority of the people, in accordance
-with the resolution of the Little and the Great Councils, determined
-that they must leave the city within the next three days.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_407" id="Page_407">[407]</a></span> ‘Thus was
-it ordered, the greater number in the council overcoming the better
-part.’<a name="FNanchor_645_645" id="FNanchor_645_645"></a><a href="#Footnote_645_645" class="fnanchor">[645]</a> Such a course adopted against the most eminent men at that
-time in Geneva, the only ones whose names have come down to posterity,
-and carried out without giving them a hearing, was one of those violent
-measures to which bad governments sometimes have recourse&mdash;a <i>coup
-d’état</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ORDER OF EXPULSION.</div>
-
-<p>Further, this same council deposed the secretary who had read the
-articles of reformation. This secretary was Claude Rozet, who had
-received the oath to the confession of faith on the famous day of July
-29, 1537. While banishing the three ministers, they wished to inflict
-a blow on at least one layman, and they made choice of the man who,
-in his official capacity, had established in Geneva the <i>articles of
-reformation</i>.<a name="FNanchor_646_646" id="FNanchor_646_646"></a><a href="#Footnote_646_646" class="fnanchor">[646]</a></p>
-
-<p>Orders were given to make known to the reformers without delay the
-decree of the people, and the head usher was appointed, without further
-ceremony, to discharge that office. This man, having reached Calvin’s
-house, told him that he was enjoined by decree of the general council
-‘to preach no more in the town, and to take his departure within the
-next three days.’<a name="FNanchor_647_647" id="FNanchor_647_647"></a><a href="#Footnote_647_647" class="fnanchor">[647]</a> The reformer calmly made answer, ‘If we had
-served men, we should certainly be ill repaid; but happily for us we
-serve a greater master, who pays servants even what he does not owe
-them.’<a name="FNanchor_648_648" id="FNanchor_648_648"></a><a href="#Footnote_648_648" class="fnanchor">[648]</a> The usher went next to Farel’s house. His reply to the
-announcement was, ‘Well and good; it is well, it is from God.’ In
-these words of the reformers there is a peace, firmness, and grandeur
-of soul which immediately strike those who read them,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_408" id="Page_408">[408]</a></span> which some
-historians have called heroic,<a name="FNanchor_649_649" id="FNanchor_649_649"></a><a href="#Footnote_649_649" class="fnanchor">[649]</a> and which no one has a right to
-call feigned.<a name="FNanchor_650_650" id="FNanchor_650_650"></a><a href="#Footnote_650_650" class="fnanchor">[650]</a> Meanwhile the council was busied with other matters.</p>
-
-<p>The sorrow of Calvin, however, was deep. Feeling how great had been the
-goodness of God to him, he desired to be grateful for it. ‘Assuredly,’
-he said, ‘no small honor has been conferred on us, in that a leader so
-mighty&mdash;Jesus Christ&mdash;has placed us in the ranks of his servants. We
-are therefore the most unthankful of men if we do not devote ourselves
-entirely to his service.’<a name="FNanchor_651_651" id="FNanchor_651_651"></a><a href="#Footnote_651_651" class="fnanchor">[651]</a> He had devoted himself to that work,
-and the voice of conscience told him that he must give account of
-every soul lost. Successes had from time to time gladdened his soul.
-‘Nevertheless,’ he said with sadness and alarm after his banishment,
-‘seditions occurred in the town, one after another, which caused us
-grief and agitation of no light order. And however timid, weak, and
-spiritless I confess myself to be by nature, I had, nevertheless, from
-the first beginnings to bear up against those impetuous waves.<a name="FNanchor_652_652" id="FNanchor_652_652"></a><a href="#Footnote_652_652" class="fnanchor">[652]</a> I
-cannot express what trouble and distress filled my heart night and day;
-and every time that I think of it I still inwardly tremble.’ It was not
-only the recollection of the past that was grievous, but still more the
-prospect of the future; of the evils which might fall on Geneva, and of
-the great injury which might be done to the Reformation if the torch,
-which ought to cast its rays all around on France, on Italy, and on
-other lands, should be miserably extinguished. This was burden enough
-to weigh down the strongest soul.</p>
-
-<p>On April 25th Courault was set at liberty, and on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_409" id="Page_409">[409]</a></span> following day,
-probably, the three pastors quitted Geneva.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">A PREDICTION OF BONIVARD.<br />
-JOY AND GRIEF.</div>
-
-<p>Thus was fulfilled a prophecy of Bonivard, uttered ten years before. It
-will be remembered that in 1528 some of the Genevese, who were desirous
-of the Reformation only that they might get rid of the priests, with
-their vices and their superstitions, having declared to the prior
-of the depraved ecclesiastics of St. Victor that they wished to put
-in their place ministers of the Gospel who would introduce a true
-Christian Reformation, Bonivard replied to them, ‘If you wish to reform
-others, ought you not in the first place to reform yourselves? Animals
-that live on the same meat naturally hate one another. It is just the
-same with us. We are unchaste; so are you. We are drunkards; you are
-the same. We are swearers, blasphemers; so are you. You want to drive
-us away, you say, to put Lutheran ministers in our place.... Gentlemen,
-take great care what you undertake to do. According to their doctrine,
-a man will be prohibited from gaming and from giving himself up to
-debauchery, and that under a heavy penalty. How that will vex you! You
-will not have had them for two years before you will regret us.’<a name="FNanchor_653_653" id="FNanchor_653_653"></a><a href="#Footnote_653_653" class="fnanchor">[653]</a>
-Bonivard spoke candidly and even rudely, but his words fully confirm
-the testimony and the complaints of Calvin, of Farel, and of Rozet.
-It is all true, even to the time fixed by the prior&mdash;<i>not two years</i>.
-Farel and Calvin undoubtedly showed themselves in this business subject
-to human weaknesses. As they were both men of strong character, they
-easily stimulated each other to an inflexibility to which they were
-naturally inclined. Calvin himself tells us that the prudent Bucer,
-at a later period, wished that they should not live together, lest
-the influence which they had over each other should be hurtful to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_410" id="Page_410">[410]</a></span>
-them.<a name="FNanchor_654_654" id="FNanchor_654_654"></a><a href="#Footnote_654_654" class="fnanchor">[654]</a> They have said themselves that they might have displayed
-more gentleness. But it is impossible not to acknowledge that they did
-what fidelity to the Gospel demanded of them. The question about the
-bread was a little pennant raised by the councils, in opposition to
-the great evangelical banner courageously borne by Calvin and Farel.
-The two classes of combatants in this warm affair were representatives
-of two systems which not only bore no resemblance to each other but
-were diametrically opposed. If the reformers had given way, the great
-cause of religion and of morals would have been injured, the dignity
-of their ministry lowered, and their activity for the extension of
-the kingdom of God in Geneva fettered, perhaps rendered impossible.
-Their compliance in such a case would have been not only blameworthy,
-it would have been blamed. It was for them the question of ‘To be or
-not to be.’ They were bound to strive to win the victory; and if they
-failed to conquer, then they were bound to suffer as witnesses to the
-rejected truth. They had neglected no means of scaling the citadel,
-and of planting on it their noble flag. They had failed, and it only
-remained for them to retreat, conquered and yet in reality conquerors;
-for they had not drawn back one step in the battle, and had thus
-prepared the day of triumph. Leaving behind them the city, with its
-tumult, its menaces, insults, and deeds of violence, Farel and Calvin
-set out for Berne. It was at the end of April. As they passed along
-the shores of the lake in the midst of the beautiful and peaceful
-scenes of nature, they felt greatly relieved. Escaped from those narrow
-walls within which their hearts had been torn with grief and broken
-with sadness, they once more breathed freely. A pure and keen air was
-around them instead of that heavy and thick atmosphere, and it gave
-them new life. ‘When,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">[411]</a></span> on occasion of certain troubles, I was driven
-away,’ said Calvin, ‘I did not find in myself such magnanimity as not
-to rejoice more than was meet&mdash;that then and by that means I was at
-liberty.’<a name="FNanchor_655_655" id="FNanchor_655_655"></a><a href="#Footnote_655_655" class="fnanchor">[655]</a> There was in him, however, no murmuring, no bitterness.
-He had learnt many lessons in the midst of that agitation, especially
-that of self-renunciation. ‘As soon as one becomes a self-seeker,’ he
-said at that period, ‘contests begin: the true principle of action
-for a soldier is to lay aside all pride, and to depend entirely on
-the will of his chief.’<a name="FNanchor_656_656" id="FNanchor_656_656"></a><a href="#Footnote_656_656" class="fnanchor">[656]</a> The will of his chief was that he should
-quit Geneva, and he quitted it; in this very dependence realizing the
-highest independence. Stripped and wounded, like the man who went
-down to Jericho, he felt the Lord near him, who bound up his wounds
-and poured in oil and wine. ‘Let us remember,’ said he further, ‘that
-declaration of Jesus Christ, that no one can inflict a wound on one of
-his little ones but he regards it as inflicted on himself.’<a name="FNanchor_657_657" id="FNanchor_657_657"></a><a href="#Footnote_657_657" class="fnanchor">[657]</a> Then
-glancing towards the friends to whom they were going, ‘We have turned
-towards you, brethren,’ said he, ‘towards you who have been set to feed
-the churches of Christ, under the influence of the Holy Spirit. Ah! if
-it be under the guidance of the same prince, against the same enemy,
-in the same war, and in the same camp that we fight, shall we not be
-greatly stimulated in our endeavor after agreement and harmony?’<a name="FNanchor_658_658" id="FNanchor_658_658"></a><a href="#Footnote_658_658" class="fnanchor">[658]</a>
-He did not lose courage even with respect to the Reformation. ‘The
-Church,’ he said, ‘is not wearied, distressed, or overthrown by
-these struggles and fightings; on the contrary, she derives strength
-from them, she begins to flourish, she is consolidated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_412" id="Page_412">[412]</a></span> by new
-developments.’<a name="FNanchor_659_659" id="FNanchor_659_659"></a><a href="#Footnote_659_659" class="fnanchor">[659]</a> Such, indeed, was the fruit borne by this great
-trial. ‘Events have shown,’ said Theodore Beza, ‘that the providence
-of God appointed these dispensations, to the end that his servant, by
-means of various experience, might be fitted for greater things; and
-that while seditious men destroy themselves by their own violence, the
-Church of Geneva might be purified from all stains.’<a name="FNanchor_660_660" id="FNanchor_660_660"></a><a href="#Footnote_660_660" class="fnanchor">[660]</a></p>
-
-<p>Poor blind Courault did not feel strong enough to follow his two
-colleagues, and therefore took refuge with Fabri, who was pastor at
-Thonon, on the lake of Geneva.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XII.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">GREAT CONFUSION IN GENEVA.&mdash;THE COUNCIL OF BERNE MAKES A FRUITLESS
-INTERVENTION.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(End of April, 1538.)</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, the friends of the Gospel in Geneva had received a very
-severe blow, which had fallen on them in an unexpected way. Many were
-plunged into excessive grief; some lost all hope of ever seeing the
-Gospel honored in that turbulent city. Some mourned silently, others
-spoke their grief aloud. The most pious of them undoubtedly expected
-from the faithfulness of God that restoration of faith, order, and
-prosperity for which they longed so ardently. But ‘all good men,’ says
-Beza, ‘saw with great pain their three pastors, in obedience to the
-edict of banishment,’<a name="FNanchor_661_661" id="FNanchor_661_661"></a><a href="#Footnote_661_661" class="fnanchor">[661]</a> depart from that town to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_413" id="Page_413">[413]</a></span> which they had
-desired to do so much good; and with regretful eyes, or with tender
-thoughts, they followed them as if they could not part with them.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">GREAT CONFUSION IN GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>The vulgar and mischievous demonstrations by which the most lawless
-part of the population celebrated its triumph still further aggravated
-the grief of serious men. The discomfiture of the pastors was laughed
-at and turned into ridicule. Professional jesters have almost all a
-false and superficial wit, and in every country it rains insects of
-this kind.<a name="FNanchor_662_662" id="FNanchor_662_662"></a><a href="#Footnote_662_662" class="fnanchor">[662]</a> They were not wanting at Geneva. We do not know whether
-they went on the stage, but they played in masquerades. Large bodies of
-these jesters were seen parading the streets, laughing, brawling, and
-making disturbances. One of them, and he was the principal personage,
-was holding a fryingpan by its long handle; and in the fryingpan were
-lamp-wicks, which were called in the patois of the country <i>farets</i>.
-Those who surrounded this standard-bearer exclaimed that they had
-fricasseed <i>Farel</i> (and his colleagues with him) like chickens or
-turnips which are cut in pieces and then cooked in a stewpan. These
-poor wretches were at bottom right: the ministers had in fact been
-burned over a slow fire. <i>Bons mots</i> and sarcasms gave a relish to this
-strange dish; and there were persons in those days who would have been
-glad to see the ministers who left Geneva ‘fall out of the fryingpan
-into the fire’&mdash;from one state of vexation into another still worse.
-Insults and derision were showered from all quarters. ‘Processions
-of this sort usually end in debauchery. The citizens took license,’
-says Rozet, ‘for impurity, dancing, games, and drunkenness.’ ‘Nothing
-was talked of but masquerades, gallantries, and excesses in wine and
-good cheer.’<a name="FNanchor_663_663" id="FNanchor_663_663"></a><a href="#Footnote_663_663" class="fnanchor">[663]</a> Thus did the mass of the population celebrate the
-departure of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_414" id="Page_414">[414]</a></span> pastors. ‘The wicked travaileth with iniquity, and
-hath conceived mischief, and brought forth falsehood.’</p>
-
-<p>As for the members of the councils, they let things take their course.
-If they did issue any proclamation for the purpose of repressing these
-disorders, little attention was paid to it. Besides, they did not
-insist on its being obeyed. They attempted, however, to establish a
-Church of some kind. The minister, Henri de la Mare, had not dared,
-in spite of the order which he had received, to preach and administer
-the supper on Easter Day, for fear of offending Farel and Calvin.
-But, like the former superior of the Franciscans Jacques Bernard,
-he had abstained from joining in their protest. These two men were
-intrusted by the council with the functions of the three banished
-ministers. At the same time the lords of Berne were requested to send
-the ministers Marcourt and Morand, who did not come till afterwards.
-The magistrates also ordered the restoration of the baptismal fonts
-which had been taken down, and which were thenceforth to be used at
-the baptism of children. Then they had proclamation made, with sound
-of trumpet, that everyone would have to conform to what had been
-decreed touching the supper, baptism, festivals, etc. But De la Mare
-and Bernard were not men powerful enough to fill the place of Farel
-and Calvin. They were far from enjoying high consideration, and were
-frequently exposed to the criticism and even to the rebukes of their
-hearers. Porral especially made loud complaint of their preaching. The
-council took their part; and one Groli having accused Bernard of not
-preaching according to the Word of God, the critic was condemned ‘to
-beg for mercy at the hands of God and of the law, <i>with both knees on
-the ground</i>.’ Had this happened in the time of Calvin, it would have
-been a very godsend for those who delight in slandering that great
-man; but the punishment was inflicted by his adversaries on one of
-his partisans. The question, however, remains ever the same; and this
-act of compul<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_415" id="Page_415">[415]</a></span>sion in the sphere of religious opinion was even more
-censurable because it was the act of the very men who had driven away
-the reformers for having attempted to infringe on their liberty. There
-were, however, some cases more quietly settled. An influential citizen,
-the former syndic Porral, having also criticised the preachers, the
-council did nothing more than threaten him with its <i>indignation</i>; he
-had not <i>to go down on his knees and beg for mercy</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE REFORMERS AT BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>The exile of the two great reformers and this lamentable state of
-things, which rejoiced the men of the Romish party, everywhere filled
-the friends of the Reformation with sorrow. They wept over ‘the great
-joy of the Pharisees and of the enemies of God’s holy name.’ There were
-groans, prayers, and exclamations. ‘How is it that this town, which the
-Son of God had chosen as his abode and his sanctuary, was nevertheless
-as deeply sunk in its pollutions as before, just as if no single
-drop of God’s grace had ever fallen upon it?’<a name="FNanchor_664_664" id="FNanchor_664_664"></a><a href="#Footnote_664_664" class="fnanchor">[664]</a> People thought
-of Capernaum, which was at first lifted up to heaven and then cast
-down to hell! Calvin perceived that the causes which had led to his
-exile endangered not only the progress but the very existence of the
-Reformation. Terrified at the peril, he was resolved to do his utmost
-to prevent such a calamity.</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Où le danger est grand, c’est là que je m’efforce.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>Will not the Churches and even the States of Switzerland sympathize
-in their trials? Will they not help them to save Geneva? If Roman
-Catholicism were reëstablished there and if by that means Savoy should
-become predominant, the Reformation in Berne and the other cantons
-would be more or less menaced, and the Pays de Vaud might return to
-its former lords. Calvin, assuredly, might have elsewhere a more
-peaceful and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_416" id="Page_416">[416]</a></span> comfortable life than at Geneva; but he had decided to
-‘lose his life,’ and had given it up for God and his kingdom. This
-town, in which he hoped to raise the standard of the Gospel, might have
-become one day a fortress whose formidable front would have repelled
-the combined attacks of the enemy. And now he has to abandon it. He
-hastened to Berne, where he expected to obtain assistance, as formerly
-the Bertheliers and the Besançon Hugh had done, when threatened by the
-forces of Savoy.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE COUNCIL OF BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>The arrival of the two reformers created a sensation in that town. At
-the sight of that Farel whose labors in French Switzerland had been
-for ten years crowned with such signal success; of that Calvin who
-was already hailed as a master-spirit; of those two men banished,
-driven away, having no refuge, men’s minds were struck and their
-hearts touched. The Bernese magistrates themselves had not anticipated
-measures so extreme. Admitted to the council April 27, the reformers
-said,&mdash;‘We have been falsely accused. The Genevese (<i>Messieurs de
-Genève</i>) have brought forward two charges: the one that we have
-rebelled against their commands, and the other that we have refused
-to conform to the ceremonies in use at Berne. These accusations are
-both false; for we have done all that we could to obey them, and never
-did we directly refuse such conformity, but on the other hand we have
-rather protested our willingness to consider in what manner it could
-best be arranged for the edification of the church. Further, it is
-evident that these accusations are a mere cloak, for these gentlemen
-were prepared to consent that this affair of ritual should be postponed
-till the assembly at Zurich, on condition that we would consent to
-our colleague Courault being deprived of his office as preacher. But
-to this, as contrary to the express word of Scripture, we refused to
-agree. On Easter Day we protested that if we did not administer the
-supper it was not on account of the unleavened bread, the use of which
-is in itself a matter of indifference, but for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_417" id="Page_417">[417]</a></span> fear of profaning a
-mystery so holy,&mdash;unless the people were better disposed. The reason
-we gave was this,&mdash;the disorders and abominations prevailing at this
-time in the town, as well execrable blasphemies and mockings of God and
-of his Gospel, as disturbances, sects, and divisions. In public, and
-unrepressed, a thousand derisive speeches are uttered against the Word
-of God and even against the supper. And, more than that, the members
-of the council have all along refused us leave to state our reasons;
-and, without hearing us, they have stirred up against us both the Two
-Hundred and the people, making charges against us which are not true
-either in God’s sight or in the sight of men. By acting thus they show
-plainly that they are only seeking for slanders and scandals to defame
-the Gospel. And it is a fact that, six months ago, there was a rumor
-at Lyons and at other places in France of such a nature that some
-merchants were desirous of selling goods for large sums <i>payable when
-we should be expelled</i>!... From this it appears that there are secret
-intrigues of long standing. Likewise they are not content with loading
-us with ignominy, but they have several times exclaimed that we should
-be thrown into the Rhone.’ The reformers having thus spoken handed in a
-memoir in which the same grievances were set forth.<a name="FNanchor_665_665" id="FNanchor_665_665"></a><a href="#Footnote_665_665" class="fnanchor">[665]</a></p>
-
-<p>This discourse was severe; but the evil was great. It is useless to
-deny it; the evidence is too positive. All the people, indeed, were
-not guilty of these disorders and mockeries; but it happened then, as
-it too often happens, that the agitators took the upper hand and good
-men held their peace. We must also observe what Calvin said, that he
-feared a profanation of the mystery of the supper, <i>unless the people
-were better disposed</i>. He allows, therefore, a better disposition of
-the people; he desires it; and then, he is certainly ready to celebrate
-the sacred<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_418" id="Page_418">[418]</a></span> feast. As to his assertion that his colleagues and he
-<i>had done all that in them lay</i> to obey the magistrates, he indicates
-clearly thereby that something <i>did not lie in their power</i>; to wit,
-to act against their conscience and the command of God. Many in their
-own time blamed them for this; but who now will make it a matter of
-reproach? The most strenuous upholders of the union of church and state
-say themselves, ‘That no state authority ought to interfere with any
-man’s religious belief. If such a principle were really involved in
-the maintenance of an established church, I should probably have been
-found on the other side.’<a name="FNanchor_666_666" id="FNanchor_666_666"></a><a href="#Footnote_666_666" class="fnanchor">[666]</a> No man, in our days, will censure the
-reformers. In maintaining the independence of the faith, they did what
-they were bound to do.</p>
-
-<p>The council of Berne, which was not swayed by passion, like that of
-Geneva, saw clearly into these matters, and was impressed with a sense
-of the danger which was impending over their allies. Without loss of
-time, they wrote the same day to their ‘singular good friends and
-loyal fellow-citizens’: ‘Masters G. Farel and Calvin have this day
-appeared before us and made the complaints comprised in the enclosed
-schedule. We heard them with much sorrow of heart, for if these things
-have actually taken place, they cause great offence and will turn <i>to
-the dishonor of the Christian religion</i>. For this cause we earnestly
-beg you, and in brotherly affection admonish and require you, to
-abate the severity with which you deal with Farel and Calvin, for the
-love of us and to avoid scandal. What we wrote touching conformity in
-matters of ceremonial, we wrote from affection and not by any means
-to constrain you. But you must know <i>that the troubles which exist at
-the present time in your town, and the rigorous treatment which you<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_419" id="Page_419">[419]</a></span>
-adopt towards your preachers, have been very offensive to us, and
-that our enemies are greatly rejoiced at it</i>. Herein you will do us
-a most welcome favor.’<a name="FNanchor_667_667" id="FNanchor_667_667"></a><a href="#Footnote_667_667" class="fnanchor">[667]</a> This was the view of the lords of Berne,
-themselves opponents of Calvin; and they might have a grudge against
-him, particularly in this business, on the subject of unleavened bread.
-But their views were loftier, wiser, and more profoundly religious and
-politic than those of Richardet and his friends.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REPLY OF THE GENEVESE COUNCIL.</div>
-
-<p>On receiving this letter the council of Geneva was still more excited
-than that of Berne had been. The angry feelings which actuated its
-members and which had led them to banish the reformers were not yet
-soothed; and, as it has been remarked, their reply was of such a nature
-as was to be expected from men dominated by passion.<a name="FNanchor_668_668" id="FNanchor_668_668"></a><a href="#Footnote_668_668" class="fnanchor">[668]</a> They wrote
-to Berne that they considered ‘very strange’ the complaints which were
-sent to them; that they ‘could not imagine how Farel and Calvin were
-so bold as to make untrue statements to their Excellencies; that there
-was no great discord in their town, for on the previous Sunday the
-supper had been observed, according to their own ceremonial, by a great
-number of people, all of one mind.’ Which amounted to this&mdash;that the
-pastors having been driven away without a hearing, their hearers being
-intimidated, and the party opposed to the Gospel triumphant, uniformity
-prevailed by means of violence and of fear. This is, indeed, the usual
-result of a <i>coup d’état</i>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">[420]</a></span></p></div>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIII.</h2>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">SYNOD OF ZURICH.&mdash;THE BERNESE AMBASSADORS CONDUCT CALVIN BACK
-TO GENEVA.&mdash;HE CANNOT ENTER THE TOWN.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(End of April to end of May, 1538.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAREL AND CALVIN AT ZURICH.</div>
-
-<p>Farel and Calvin did not allow themselves to hesitate by reason of the
-obduracy of their enemies. They were determined to do all they could
-to save the Church and likewise the town of Geneva from the calamities
-which, in the opinion of good men in Switzerland, must certainly fall
-upon them. The synod of the reformed Churches of this country, to the
-decision of which they had appealed, was now sitting at Zurich. They
-went thither without delay, to inform the assembly of the important
-events which had taken place at Geneva, and to claim its mediation. The
-deputies of Basel, Berne, Schaffhausen, St. Gall, Glaris, Mulhausen,
-and Bienne, in conjunction with the doctors of Zurich, constituted the
-assembly, which sat from April 29 to May 3. Bucer and Capito had also
-come from Strasburg to be present at it. The principal business of the
-synod was the union with Luther, who at that time showed a conciliatory
-disposition. All the members, except Kunz, the Bernese deputy, received
-the two exiles with true Christian cordiality. It appears that Farel
-and Calvin found relief and relaxation in this meeting of brethren.
-From their life at Geneva, constantly in the presence of violent
-adversaries, they had probably experienced a kind of moral tension. But
-the loyal affection of the Swiss allowed their minds to unbend, and
-their souls expanded in the sunshine of charity. After being<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_421" id="Page_421">[421]</a></span> engaged
-on matters relating to the <i>Concordia</i> of Wittenberg, the synod passed
-on to the subject of rites, and decided that with respect to them the
-Churches ought to retain full liberty&mdash;a resolution favorable to Calvin
-and Farel. After settling this point, the synod took into consideration
-the state of Geneva. Calvin laid before it the divisions and troubles
-which afflicted the Church, the forlorn condition to which the good
-Christians were reduced, and the dangers to which the Reformation was
-there exposed. He displayed no obstinacy with respect to subordinate
-points, but immovable firmness on those which he believed to be
-indispensable to the prosperity of Geneva. He readily assented to the
-use of baptismal fonts; and also, he added, the introduction ‘into
-our Church of unleavened bread; but,’ said he, ‘we desire to request
-of the Bernese that this bread should be broken.’<a name="FNanchor_669_669" id="FNanchor_669_669"></a><a href="#Footnote_669_669" class="fnanchor">[669]</a> The act of
-<i>breaking bread</i>, according to the institution and the practice of the
-apostles, appeared to him essential to the symbol which was intended to
-commemorate the body of the Lord offered in sacrifice. He felt somewhat
-perplexed about the question of the festivals; but he gave his consent
-to four of them, on condition that any persons who might desire it
-should be at liberty to work after the service. He was anxious not to
-open the door to the uproar and licentiousness which characterize the
-Roman populations during the latter part of those festival days.<a name="FNanchor_670_670" id="FNanchor_670_670"></a><a href="#Footnote_670_670" class="fnanchor">[670]</a>
-He continued: ‘If there be any thought of reëstablishing us at Geneva,
-we demand first of all that we should be allowed to clear ourselves
-of the calumnies which have been heaped on us. We have been condemned
-unheard, and that,’ said he, ‘is an inhuman, a barbarous proceeding,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_422" id="Page_422">[422]</a></span>
-not to be tolerated.<a name="FNanchor_671_671" id="FNanchor_671_671"></a><a href="#Footnote_671_671" class="fnanchor">[671]</a> Next, it will be essential to establish
-discipline, for want of which all that we may restore would soon be
-overthrown. We demand that the town should be divided into parishes,
-for no order is possible in the church unless the flock be near its
-pastor, and the pastor near his flock. We demand that a seasonable use
-of excommunication should be allowed; and that, for this purpose, the
-council should select in the several quarters of the town upright and
-wise men to whom, by common consent, its control should be intrusted.
-We demand that in the institution of pastors legitimate order should
-be maintained, and that the authority of the magistrate should not
-supersede the laying-on of hands, which ministers ought to receive. We
-demand a more frequent administration of the supper; that it should be
-celebrated, if not according to the custom of the early Church,<a name="FNanchor_672_672" id="FNanchor_672_672"></a><a href="#Footnote_672_672" class="fnanchor">[672]</a>
-at least once a month. We demand that with the public preaching should
-be joined the singing of psalms. Finally, we demand that, as our own
-townsmen bring forward the example of the countries which are subject
-to Berne in justification of lascivious songs and dances,<a name="FNanchor_673_673" id="FNanchor_673_673"></a><a href="#Footnote_673_673" class="fnanchor">[673]</a> the
-Bernese should be entreated to put an end to such profligacy in their
-own states, in order that our people may not take advantage of it to
-justify themselves in similar excesses.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEIR MODERATION.</div>
-
-<p>The above articles, fourteen in number, were in Calvin’s handwriting,
-but they were read to the synod by Bucer.<a name="FNanchor_674_674" id="FNanchor_674_674"></a><a href="#Footnote_674_674" class="fnanchor">[674]</a> Calvin and Farel were
-probably unwilling to put themselves too forward, and preferred to have
-the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_423" id="Page_423">[423]</a></span> question settled on its merits, independently of their personal
-leaning; and they selected the most moderate of the theologians of
-the period to be its exponent. Calvin was not a man to exalt himself
-in the feeling of his own righteousness; he knew by experience that
-‘in many ways we offend all.’ ‘We know,’ he said afterwards to Farel,
-when speaking to him of what had just taken place, ‘we know that
-our adversaries cannot calumniate us to any further extent than God
-permits, and we know the end which He has in view in permitting it at
-all. Let us therefore humble ourselves; unless we choose to contend
-with God because He humbles us;<a name="FNanchor_675_675" id="FNanchor_675_675"></a><a href="#Footnote_675_675" class="fnanchor">[675]</a> but let us not cease to wait on
-Him. “The crown of pride, the drunkards of Ephraim, shall be trodden
-under foot,” said the prophet (Isaiah xxviii. 3). Let us acknowledge
-before God, and before his people, that it is to some extent owing to
-our incompetency, indolence, carelessness, and mistakes that the Church
-committed to our care has fallen into so lamentable a condition. But
-let us also maintain, as it is our duty to do, our own innocence and
-purity against those who by their fraud, malignity and wickedness have
-certainly caused this ruin.’<a name="FNanchor_676_676" id="FNanchor_676_676"></a><a href="#Footnote_676_676" class="fnanchor">[676]</a> Calvin, in charging himself with
-indolence, assuredly went too far. But it was not to his colleague only
-that he spoke in this way; he did not hesitate to express the same
-views before the synod. While depicting the dangers of Geneva, ‘the
-destruction which seemed to threaten’ the edifice reared by Farel and
-himself, ‘We openly acknowledge,’ he said to the deputies of the Swiss
-Churches assembled at Zurich, ‘that in some things we have perhaps been
-too severe, and on those points we are ready to listen to reason.’<a name="FNanchor_677_677" id="FNanchor_677_677"></a><a href="#Footnote_677_677" class="fnanchor">[677]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_424" id="Page_424">[424]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The synod did not censure the reformers. It advised them, indeed,
-to use ‘moderation and Christian gentleness, necessary with that
-uncultivated people;’<a name="FNanchor_678_678" id="FNanchor_678_678"></a><a href="#Footnote_678_678" class="fnanchor">[678]</a> but it acknowledged that, far from
-displaying obstinacy in unimportant matters, the reformers in their
-fourteen articles demanded only what is just, legitimate and important.
-It is true that a Christian ought not to be appointed minister by the
-mere decree of a council of state, but, after examination, by the
-laying-on of hands of the elders or pastors. It is true that a more
-frequent celebration of the Lord’s Supper was according to the Word of
-God. The subject of greatest delicacy was excommunication. But could
-not the Genevese commit the management of it <i>to upright and discreet
-laymen</i>, elected by the councils, themselves an elected body? The good
-sense of the Swiss told them that men entirely destitute of Christian
-character ought not to form part of a Christian society.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE JUSTICE OF THEIR CAUSE.</div>
-
-<p>Not one of the theologians present at the synod seems to have taken
-the cause of Calvin more to heart than the man who, with Melanchthon,
-was perhaps the most cautious of the reformers, Capito. A man of
-naturally gentle spirit, he had nevertheless displayed courage in
-recalling Luther to moderation, and in doing the same afterwards with
-respect to his colleague of Strasburg, Mathias Zell. He approved of
-the course of Farel and Calvin; he even set himself to console them.
-‘There is nothing disgraceful,’ he said to them, ‘in your banishment,
-and we have no fear that it will prove hurtful to the Church. Your
-enemies themselves only reproach you with too much warmth of zeal.
-Unhappily, there are not wanting ministers who teach the Gospel without
-discipline; who prefer to hold an office which they treat<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_425" id="Page_425">[425]</a></span> as nothing
-more than an office that yields profit. This leads to license instead
-of the liberty of Christ.<a name="FNanchor_679_679" id="FNanchor_679_679"></a><a href="#Footnote_679_679" class="fnanchor">[679]</a> Discipline is necessary to the Churches.
-Some persons fancy that what each man may do is no concern of ours;
-as if Christ had not said that if a man has a hundred sheep, and only
-one of them go astray he must go in search of it. What! because the
-authority of the papacy has been cast off, must the power of the Word
-and of the ministry be treated as likewise abolished? Some one may
-say, I know enough of the Gospel; I can read; what do I want with you?
-Preach to those who wish to hear you! Ah! discipline is a thing to
-which our Churches are not accustomed, a thing which flesh and blood
-detest. Ought we then to wonder that you have not been able, you two
-alone, to reform at once a town so large?’<a name="FNanchor_680_680" id="FNanchor_680_680"></a><a href="#Footnote_680_680" class="fnanchor">[680]</a></p>
-
-<p>The assembly therefore approved the fourteen articles presented by
-Calvin and Farel, and then ‘declared the causes of their banishment
-from Geneva to be not legitimate.’<a name="FNanchor_681_681" id="FNanchor_681_681"></a><a href="#Footnote_681_681" class="fnanchor">[681]</a> In the eyes of these Swiss
-Christians assembled at Zurich, these two exiles were the glory of
-the Reformation; doctors whose praise was in all the Churches; two
-of the prime movers in the great transformation which was being
-effected in Christendom. The honor, the duty of the Christians of
-Switzerland, demanded that these pious and illustrious men, victims
-of passions hostile to the Gospel, should be restored to the position
-in which God had set them. The synod, therefore, wrote to Geneva, and
-earnestly requested measures adapted to raise the Church up again,
-and particularly the recall of the pastors. At the same time, it
-recommended the Bernese, and especially Kunz, to support<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_426" id="Page_426">[426]</a></span> this request;
-and Kunz accepted the charge. Zurich being desirous likewise of doing
-something, Bullinger wrote on the subject, May 4, to the provost de
-Watteville. Farel and Calvin then returned to Berne, disposed to endure
-with patience and meekness, but at the same time full of hope.<a name="FNanchor_682_682" id="FNanchor_682_682"></a><a href="#Footnote_682_682" class="fnanchor">[682]</a></p>
-
-<p>A man of whose ill-will they had already had experience was soon to
-disturb their joy. Kunz, who had been first a pastor at Erlenbach,
-had contributed to the Reformation in the lower Siebenthal. He was,
-so far as we can learn, born of a well-to-do family of peasants
-of those parts,<a name="FNanchor_683_683" id="FNanchor_683_683"></a><a href="#Footnote_683_683" class="fnanchor">[683]</a> and had retained a certain rusticity and
-coarseness. A partisan, of energetic character, passionately earnest
-for everything that concerned the cause which he had embraced, blind
-and unjust towards the opposite opinions, with no kindly feeling for
-his adversaries, he fell easily into the indulgence of animosities,
-jealousies, and quarrels; and had sometimes as much trouble to get
-on with those of his own party as to endure those who belonged to
-the other side. With reference to the matter in hand, his hostility
-had to his mind an excuse. If he warmly opposed Calvin and Farel,
-it was because the slight interest which they felt in the question
-about unleavened bread and in other analogous questions might, in
-his opinion, annoy the Germans, whose indefatigable champion in
-Switzerland he had constituted himself. He had appeared to share the
-sentiments expressed to Calvin and Farel by the synod of Zurich, which
-was unanimous in their favor. He had no wish, in the presence of so
-considerable an assembly, to give way to his personal hatred. But the
-reformers were to lose nothing by this reserve. He awaited them at
-Berne. There Kunz would be on his own ground, and let the adversaries
-of human traditions beware!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_427" id="Page_427">[427]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HOSTILITY OF KUNZ.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin and Farel, when they reached Berne, did not find Kunz there.
-They had to wait for him eight days.<a name="FNanchor_684_684" id="FNanchor_684_684"></a><a href="#Footnote_684_684" class="fnanchor">[684]</a> He was at Nidau, at a meeting
-of pastors before whom, forgetting the solemn promise which he had made
-at Zurich,<a name="FNanchor_685_685" id="FNanchor_685_685"></a><a href="#Footnote_685_685" class="fnanchor">[685]</a> he had said, ‘I have been requested to go to Geneva
-to restore those exiles; but I would much rather renounce my ministry
-and quit my country than assist those men who, I know, have treated
-me frightfully.’ This delay, considering the present position of the
-two reformers, put their patience to the proof. They waited, however,
-convinced that the blame would be thrown on them if the business failed
-in consequence of their departure. When at length they heard of the
-arrival of Kunz, they went to his house, and found him in company with
-Sebastian Meyer and Erasmus Ritter. There, in his own house, he let
-himself out at his ease. He began with long complaints and finished
-with violent insults.<a name="FNanchor_686_686" id="FNanchor_686_686"></a><a href="#Footnote_686_686" class="fnanchor">[686]</a> Calvin and Farel, who had not anticipated
-this outburst, received it, however, quietly; for they knew that if
-they answered him with any sharpness, the only effect would be to throw
-the hotheaded Kunz into a great fit of rage.<a name="FNanchor_687_687" id="FNanchor_687_687"></a><a href="#Footnote_687_687" class="fnanchor">[687]</a> Ritter and Meyer
-joined with them in the endeavor to pacify him. When he was a little
-calm, he said to them, ‘I wish to know whether you ask me to interfere
-in your business; for I foresee that if it should end otherwise than
-as you desire, you will blame me for it.’ They assured him three times
-over that they had no intention of changing anything in the mission
-with which the synod had charged him and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_428" id="Page_428">[428]</a></span> which he had accepted. But
-they talked to no purpose. Kunz, who was very desirous to be freed from
-that duty, went on incessantly harping on the same string. At last,
-exhausted with his passion and wearied with the noise that he had made,
-‘I will do,’ said he, ‘what I ought to do.’ They then parted, agreeing
-to discuss the subject on the following day.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS WRATH.</div>
-
-<p>The next day, then, at the hour appointed, Calvin and Farel went to the
-Hôtel de Ville. They had to wait two hours. Then word was brought to
-them that the ministers had too much business in the Consistory to be
-able to attend to them. After dinner the two Genevese reformers again
-presented themselves; and, the assembly having taken up the matter,
-they were very much surprised to hear that the first thing to do was to
-examine carefully the fourteen articles already approved by the synod
-of Zurich. They suppressed the feelings which this indignity excited
-in them and consented. There was hardly a syllable in the articles to
-which objection was not taken;<a name="FNanchor_688_688" id="FNanchor_688_688"></a><a href="#Footnote_688_688" class="fnanchor">[688]</a> and when they came to the question
-of unleavened bread, Kunz lifted up his voice, and apostrophizing the
-two reformers, said, ‘You have disturbed all the Churches of Germany,
-which were till then at peace, by your unseasonable and passionate
-innovations.’ Calvin replied that it was not they who had introduced
-the use of leavened bread; that the practice existed in the early
-Church, and that traces of it were found even in the papacy. But
-Kunz would listen to nothing, and grew more and more violent.<a name="FNanchor_689_689" id="FNanchor_689_689"></a><a href="#Footnote_689_689" class="fnanchor">[689]</a>
-His colleagues, wishing to put an end to this dispute, begged that
-they would pass on to the third article, which related to festivals.
-Thereupon matters became much worse. Kunz did not confine himself to
-loud talking;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_429" id="Page_429">[429]</a></span> he rose violently from the table, and his whole body
-shook with rage, so that his colleagues attempted in vain to restrain
-him.<a name="FNanchor_690_690" id="FNanchor_690_690"></a><a href="#Footnote_690_690" class="fnanchor">[690]</a> ‘It is false,’ said he, ‘that the articles have been approved
-at Zurich.’ ‘On that point we appeal,’ replied Calvin, with firmness,
-‘to the testimony of all who were present at the Synod.’ When Kunz had
-come a little to himself, he accused the two doctors of intolerable
-craft; the articles, he said, being full of exceptions. ‘We thought,
-on the contrary,’ Calvin very justly replied, ‘that we gave evidence
-of sincerity in thus plainly and openly making exceptions where they
-ought to be made.’ The two reformers withdrew with deep feeling from
-the strange scene which they had just witnessed. Two years afterwards,
-Farel still wrote to his friend, ‘Every time that the recollection of
-Kunz returns to my mind, I am filled with horror at that Fury who had
-no consideration for the Church, but whom the devil made beside himself
-with hatred against me.’<a name="FNanchor_691_691" id="FNanchor_691_691"></a><a href="#Footnote_691_691" class="fnanchor">[691]</a> Kunz pretended that the two reformers
-wished to withdraw, and not to keep the promise made at Zurich. Calvin,
-on the contrary, said, ‘We are ready to do anything sooner than not try
-all means of providing for the wants of religion, and of acquitting
-ourselves of our duty towards the Church.’<a name="FNanchor_692_692" id="FNanchor_692_692"></a><a href="#Footnote_692_692" class="fnanchor">[692]</a> As Kunz and his friends
-declined their mission, there was no one else to take the matter in
-hand but the senate of Berne.</p>
-
-<p>A few days later, Farel and Calvin were received by that body. The
-representations which the Bernese were to make at Geneva, in conformity
-with the decisions of the synod of Zurich, could not but be very
-disagreeable to those who wished to introduce the Bernese<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_430" id="Page_430">[430]</a></span> rites into
-that town. Must Berne plead against Berne? Did ever any one hear of
-such a thing? No state whatever voluntarily undertakes to discharge
-such a duty; and least of all a state which, like Berne, had the
-reputation of being positive and inflexible in its views. The council
-therefore attempted to induce Calvin and Farel to renounce their
-fourteen articles, but this they refused to do. They were then asked
-to retire. When they were recalled the same attempt was again made,
-three times over, within an hour.<a name="FNanchor_693_693" id="FNanchor_693_693"></a><a href="#Footnote_693_693" class="fnanchor">[693]</a> ‘It belongs to the Church,’ they
-replied, ‘to establish uniformity in a lawful manner.’ It has already
-been established, said the council. ‘Yes,’ they answered, ‘but by a
-handful of seditious men, who at the same time cried that we should be
-thrown into the Rhone.<a name="FNanchor_694_694" id="FNanchor_694_694"></a><a href="#Footnote_694_694" class="fnanchor">[694]</a> We are resolved to endure everything rather
-than seem to approve the measures adopted for securing uniformity.’
-Farel and Calvin could not answer otherwise: one cannot yield to evil.
-The Bernese council gave way; thus displaying on this occasion an
-independence and a sense of justice that were most honorable.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">AGITATION IN GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>Having once more called in the reformers, the council announced to
-them that two envoys from the senate should accompany them, and that
-when they came within four miles of Geneva, Calvin and Farel should
-stop, while the Bernese lords go on their way. The place named by the
-Bernese was below the village of Genthod; this was perhaps at that time
-on the frontier. The deputies of Berne were to require of the council
-of Geneva the return of Farel and Calvin; and in case they obtained it
-they were to conduct them into the town, and to see to it that they
-were reinstated in their ministry. Farel and Calvin represented that
-if this course were taken they<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_431" id="Page_431">[431]</a></span> would seem to be restored only because
-they acknowledged themselves to be in the wrong, which they could not
-do. They complained also that no minister formed part of the embassy.
-The council, consequently, adopted a new resolution, according to
-which the two reformers should immediately enter the town, and the
-Bernese envoys should present to the people the fourteen articles
-of Zurich, in the presence of Farel and Calvin, in order that, if
-any objection should be raised, the latter might reply to it without
-delay. The reformers should then set forth their cause, and, if their
-justification were accepted, they should be restored to their offices.
-Two ministers, Erasmus Ritter and Viret, were to accompany them. ‘We
-are now setting out on our journey,’ wrote Calvin to Bullinger; ‘may
-it please the Lord to prosper it. To him we look to guide us in our
-goings, and it is from his wise disposal that we expect success.’<a name="FNanchor_695_695" id="FNanchor_695_695"></a><a href="#Footnote_695_695" class="fnanchor">[695]</a>
-The delegation set out, and was joined by Viret at Lausanne.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile it had become known at Geneva that Calvin and Farel were
-returning, under the conduct and the patronage of delegates from the
-state of Berne. This news created much astonishment. What! these two
-ministers were banished for having refused to adopt the ritual of
-Berne, and now Berne takes them into her favor and brings them back!
-Berne appreciated the grandeur of the Reformation and the worth of
-the reformers. But there were some of the Genevese who could not
-see beyond their own walls, and who seemed to have no apprehension
-whatever of the great change which was renewing all Christendom, and
-of which Calvin and Farel were two of the most illustrious agents. The
-confirmation of the tidings caused a great stir in men’s minds. The
-council determined to refuse the reformers permission to enter the
-town, and the most violent of their adversaries resolved to oppose
-their return by force. An ambush was laid at some distance from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_432" id="Page_432">[432]</a></span>
-ramparts, and twenty gladiators, as Calvin calls them, were posted
-in arms at the very gate of the city, as if the repulse of a hostile
-force were intended.<a name="FNanchor_696_696" id="FNanchor_696_696"></a><a href="#Footnote_696_696" class="fnanchor">[696]</a> The deputation was not more than a mile from
-Geneva when a messenger of the council met them.<a name="FNanchor_697_697" id="FNanchor_697_697"></a><a href="#Footnote_697_697" class="fnanchor">[697]</a> He handed to
-the Bernese ambassadors a dispatch from the council, in which it was
-written, ‘To prevent a scandal, do not bring back Farel and Calvin, for
-it would be in violation of the decree passed by the community, and
-of the will of the same.’<a name="FNanchor_698_698" id="FNanchor_698_698"></a><a href="#Footnote_698_698" class="fnanchor">[698]</a> But their conscience bore them witness
-that their cause was good, and they desired to get this acknowledged
-on the part of those whom God had committed to their care. They were
-therefore willing to pursue their journey, not suspecting what awaited
-them. But the Bernese delegates, who had doubtless been informed by
-the messenger of the excited state of the people, strongly urged them
-to give it up. ‘We should have gone on our way calmly,’ said Calvin
-to his friends, when he had heard of the violent measures taken to
-stop them, ‘if the delegates had not forcibly resisted our intention;
-and this saved our lives.’ The fact that their lives were in danger,
-attested by Calvin in a letter addressed to Bullinger a few days after
-the event, cannot be called in question. True, it is easy to invent,
-more<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_433" id="Page_433">[433]</a></span> than three centuries later, contrary hypotheses; but the state of
-agitation prevailing in Geneva, far from invalidating the testimony of
-the reformers, confirms it.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE BERNESE EMBASSY.</div>
-
-<p>The two Bernese ambassadors, accompanied by Viret and Ritter, entered
-Geneva alone, and were immediately received (May 23) by the council.
-They stated that the deputies of the cantons who met recently at Zurich
-had been unanimously of opinion that it was just to allow Farel,
-Calvin, and Courault to re-enter the town in order to explain and
-defend themselves from the accusations made against them; and that if
-their justification were accepted, their restoration to their offices
-could not be refused. ‘Do you not owe this mark of gratitude to them,’
-they said, ‘and especially to Farel, who has undergone so much labor
-and suffering for the good of this people? In short is it not essential
-to deprive the enemies of the Reformation of an occasion for rejoicing,
-as they would rejoice at the banishment without hope of returning of
-the men who established it in Geneva?’ The council replied that it
-could not accede to this demand, because the ministers had been sent
-away by the decision of the Council of the Two Hundred and of the
-general council; the Little Council having only required that they
-should be committed to prison. In consequence of this the Council of
-the Two Hundred was convoked for the next day, May 24. The attendance
-was not at all numerous, only fourteen members being present, doubtless
-because the meeting appeared to be a mere formality, and because
-the battle had to be fought and decided in the general council. The
-members present, among whom were the most thoroughgoing enemies of
-the reformers, decreed that the resolutions previously taken must be
-maintained; and for the rest, they referred the deputies of Berne to
-the assembly of the people.<a name="FNanchor_699_699" id="FNanchor_699_699"></a><a href="#Footnote_699_699" class="fnanchor">[699]</a></p>
-
-<p>On Sunday, May 26, the general council of the citizens<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_434" id="Page_434">[434]</a></span> met. Louis
-Amman and his colleague, Viret and Erasmus Ritter, appeared as
-advocates for the two banished ministers. Amman spoke first. He showed
-the great injustice involved in the banishment of these excellent
-men. They had to do with Farel, who was justly designated the apostle
-of French Switzerland, and with Calvin, the greatest theologian of
-the age. He earnestly requested that they should be recalled, and
-that, according to the rules of equity, their justification should be
-heard, for it was not usual for any man to be condemned unheard. He
-reminded them of the distinguished services of Farel, of the labors
-and hardships which he had undergone for the good of that people. Was
-it not Farel who, in 1532, standing in the midst of the council of
-priests, had seen them rush at him and knock him down with their blows,
-crying, ‘Kill him! kill him!’ One of their attendants had discharged
-his arquebuse at him, and he had been driven from the town with threats
-of being thrown into the Rhone. Since that time to what tribulations
-had he not been exposed! Was it not incumbent on the people of Geneva
-to testify their gratitude to him in some other way than by exile?
-Then Amman spoke of the joy which the adversaries of the Reformation,
-the subjects of the pope, would feel, and did already feel, to see
-Geneva banishing her reformers, and he conjured the citizens not to
-give them such an occasion of triumph and exultation. Next Viret spoke,
-in his own name and in the name of his colleague Ritter; and we know
-how well adapted the mild eloquence of this pious pastor was to soothe
-exasperated spirits. The union of the pastors and the seriousness of
-the ambassador in pleading the cause of the reformers did not fail to
-make an impression. A large assembly is always susceptible of wholesome
-impressions: there is in it a contagion of good. Hearts were moved, and
-the disposition of many was changed. It was possible for the deputies
-to suppose that the battle was won. As<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_435" id="Page_435">[435]</a></span> they were not to attend the
-deliberations of the general council, they went out full of hope.<a name="FNanchor_700_700" id="FNanchor_700_700"></a><a href="#Footnote_700_700" class="fnanchor">[700]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE GENERAL COUNCIL.</div>
-
-<p>But Kunz had spared no pains that this hope might be disappointed. It
-appears that Pierre Vandel, one of the leaders of the party hostile to
-the reformers, had been at Berne. Kunz had possession of the fourteen
-articles proposed by Calvin and approved at Zurich, which doubtless
-had been intrusted to him because the conduct of the business was
-especially placed in his hands. Some expressions made use of in them
-had seemed likely to irritate the people of Geneva. Kunz had placed
-the articles in the hands of Vandel without the knowledge of the
-council.<a name="FNanchor_701_701" id="FNanchor_701_701"></a><a href="#Footnote_701_701" class="fnanchor">[701]</a> Vandel was a man of good family, and one of the most
-violent opponents of the reformers. ‘I believe,’ said Bonivard, ‘that
-he was possessed with a demon while yet in his mother’s womb; as is
-said of St. John with regard to the Holy Spirit. He was not so tall
-as a spindle when he committed homicide, not with his own hand, but
-through malice. He and another man killed likewise the bastard son of
-a canon. He was a great rake, a glutton and a drunkard, talking and
-acting rashly in his drunken fits. His father, a highly respectable
-man, had said a hundred times, “Pierre! Pierre! he will never be worth
-anything; and would God that immediately after his baptism he had been
-dashed against a wall, for he will bring disgrace on our house.” He was
-very vainglorious, dressed himself like a nobleman, and was fond of
-bragging (<i>usait de braveries</i>); for this reason his companions<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_436" id="Page_436">[436]</a></span> called
-him <i>Bobereau</i>.’<a name="FNanchor_702_702" id="FNanchor_702_702"></a><a href="#Footnote_702_702" class="fnanchor">[702]</a> Vandel was very proud of possessing the fourteen
-articles; and when he met on his way anyone who took an interest in
-the exile of the reformers, and who asked him what was likely to
-happen to them, he answered boastfully, according to his wont, but
-without entering further into details, ‘I have in my pocket a poison
-which will be the death of them.’<a name="FNanchor_703_703" id="FNanchor_703_703"></a><a href="#Footnote_703_703" class="fnanchor">[703]</a> The ambassadors of Berne were
-themselves the bearers of these articles, but they had been instructed
-not to read them to the people except in the presence of Calvin and
-Farel, that they might have the opportunity of at once setting aside
-the mischievous inferences which would be drawn from them.<a name="FNanchor_704_704" id="FNanchor_704_704"></a><a href="#Footnote_704_704" class="fnanchor">[704]</a> Vandel
-was at his post in the general council. Hardly had the deputies of
-Berne gone out, when he rose, drew the paper from his pocket, and
-began to read the articles of Zurich,<a name="FNanchor_705_705" id="FNanchor_705_705"></a><a href="#Footnote_705_705" class="fnanchor">[705]</a> as an important piece of
-evidence which must cause the rejection of the demand of Berne. When
-he had read the document he began to comment on it, putting forward
-ill-natured interpretations, and fastening especially on three points
-fitted to excite hatred against the two reformers.<a name="FNanchor_706_706" id="FNanchor_706_706"></a><a href="#Footnote_706_706" class="fnanchor">[706]</a> ‘See,’ said
-he, ‘how, in speaking of the Church of Geneva, they dare to speak of
-<i>our</i> Church, as if it were their property. See how, in speaking of
-the lords of Berne, they call them simply the Bernese, without the
-honorary formula,<a name="FNanchor_707_707" id="FNanchor_707_707"></a><a href="#Footnote_707_707" class="fnanchor">[707]</a> thus with the utmost arrogance putting contempt
-on princes themselves. See how they aspire to tyranny,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_437" id="Page_437">[437]</a></span> for what else
-is excommunication but a tyrannical domination?’ The first two charges
-were baseless and almost childish; and as to excommunication, Calvin
-remarks that the general council of Geneva had allowed it, July 29,
-1537, as ‘a holy and salutary proceeding among the faithful;’ and now
-they were horrified at the very word. The question was constantly
-arising for discussion whether the Church is not, like any other
-society, a union of persons possessing certain common characteristics,
-aiming at a certain object and under certain conditions, <i>a communion
-of persons united by a like Christian faith</i>,<a name="FNanchor_708_708" id="FNanchor_708_708"></a><a href="#Footnote_708_708" class="fnanchor">[708]</a> or whether it is a
-receptacle for everything (<i>un tout y va</i>); which of all definitions
-would be by far the most opposed to the word of its founder.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PIERRE VANDEL.</div>
-
-<p>It had been arranged between Vandel and his friends that, when he
-read or commented on the articles, they should support him with their
-acclamations, in order to inflame the minds of those present.<a name="FNanchor_709_709" id="FNanchor_709_709"></a><a href="#Footnote_709_709" class="fnanchor">[709]</a>
-This plan succeeded. Cries of displeasure, furious and redoubled,
-were soon heard; one might have thought that the harmless articles
-were a statement of the blackest conspiracy. The irritation displayed
-by these partisans infected the whole assembly. It is well known how
-easily the crowd passes from any mood to its opposite. The lungs of a
-few passionate men played the part of bellows in setting all hearts on
-fire.<a name="FNanchor_710_710" id="FNanchor_710_710"></a><a href="#Footnote_710_710" class="fnanchor">[710]</a> A spark was enough to kindle a conflagration. The flames
-spread from place to place; nothing stood against them, at least in
-appearance; and presently the assembly was in a blaze. ‘Bet<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_438" id="Page_438">[438]</a></span>ter die,’
-they shouted, ‘than hear them give us an account of the motives which
-have actuated them!’<a name="FNanchor_711_711" id="FNanchor_711_711"></a><a href="#Footnote_711_711" class="fnanchor">[711]</a></p>
-
-<p>As soon as order was partially restored, the first syndic, Richardet,
-a hot-tempered man, as we know, put to the vote the demand made by
-the ambassadors of Berne; or rather, taking a less regular but more
-artful course, proposed the rejection of the demand. ‘Let all those,’
-he said, ‘who wish that Farel, Calvin, and Courault should not enter
-the town, hold up their hands.’ The secretary of the council said that
-almost all hands were held up. This secretary was Ruffi, who had been
-elected in the place of Claude Rozet on the very day of the banishment
-of the reformers. His partiality was manifest in the fact that he wrote
-at the same time that the fourteen articles contained some untruths;
-untruths which the passionate Vandel himself had not been able to
-detect. It was a piece of gratuitous falsehood, and imputations of
-that kind do not inspire much confidence in anything that Ruffi might
-report. After the voting, the first syndic requested that those who
-wished the preachers to be readmitted to the town and to be heard
-should hold up their hands. ‘A few were raised,’ said Michel Rozet, ‘to
-signify that they wished for the ministers.’ The secretary named two
-or three of them, amongst others Chautemps, in whose house Olivétan, a
-kinsman of Calvin, had lived; but he added, ‘and certain others, few in
-number.’ Timid men, in the presence of the storm which threatened to
-break out, thought it prudent to be silent; some courage was required
-to face it. In fact, at the mere sight of these few hands raised, a
-transport of spite and wrath broke out; they could not endure an act of
-independence, which was at the same time, with many there, an act of
-respect for the reformers and the Reformation. <i>The rage was so great</i>,
-says Rozet, <i>that the first two were compelled to fly</i>. Many<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_439" id="Page_439">[439]</a></span> pursued
-them; some drew their swords; others, ‘glancing at them fiercely,’
-cried out, <i>Kill them! kill them!</i> ‘The majority of votes,’ say the
-Registers, ‘decided that the preachers should not again be admitted
-into the town.’ The people of Geneva thus adopted a resolution which,
-if they had not repented of it, would have prevented light going forth
-from that city, and would have thrown an obstacle in the way of its
-greatness.<a name="FNanchor_712_712" id="FNanchor_712_712"></a><a href="#Footnote_712_712" class="fnanchor">[712]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus was the matter decided. <i>Alea jacta est.</i> The powerful party
-which, in their contest with the pope, the bishop, and the princes
-of Savoy, had taken for their flag liberty and the truth, and had
-transformed Geneva into an evangelical republic, had quarrelled after
-their victory, as very commonly happens, and those who did not wish for
-the Gospel had remained conquerors. But the citizens, <i>few in number</i>,
-who had made their voice heard in the general council, were not the
-only ones who longed for a Christian republic. This minority gradually
-increased, or rather dared to show itself. It continued united,
-fervent, determined, active; and to it ultimately the victory was to be
-given.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER XIV.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">THE BANISHED MINISTERS AND THEIR SUCCESSORS.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(End of 1538.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE REFORMERS SET OUT TO BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>The reformers set out on their journey to Berne. Calvin at length
-breathed freely, but not without sadness; for while he felt himself
-free, as if standing on an invigorating height, he looked on Geneva
-sunk in the flats. It was in fulfilment of a sacred duty that he had
-made a last effort. He had not, succeeded. ‘It is evi<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_440" id="Page_440">[440]</a></span>dent now from
-the experiment that we have just made,’ said he, ‘that it was no
-mere groundless fear that influenced us when, although pressed (at
-Zurich) by the authority of the Church, we could, nevertheless, only
-with great reluctance consent to reënter that labyrinth. Now we have
-got clear of it. We have complied with the desire of all pious men,
-although with no result, except perhaps to render the evil twofold or
-threefold worse than it was before.<a name="FNanchor_713_713" id="FNanchor_713_713"></a><a href="#Footnote_713_713" class="fnanchor">[713]</a> Satan exulted at Geneva and
-in the whole of France on occasion of our first banishment; but this
-refusal to receive us has added not a little to his presumption and
-to that of his members. It is incredible with what recklessness and
-insolence wicked men now give themselves up to all manner of vice;
-with what effrontery they insult the servants of Christ; with what
-violence they make a mock at the Gospel. This is a calamity which to
-us is very painful indeed....’ Afterwards, addressing Bullinger and
-all the ministers of Zurich, he said to them, ‘Entreat the Lord with
-us, dearly beloved brethren, with earnest prayer, that very soon he
-may arise.’<a name="FNanchor_714_714" id="FNanchor_714_714"></a><a href="#Footnote_714_714" class="fnanchor">[714]</a> It is possible that the reports which reached Calvin
-may have been a little exaggerated and that his own phrases may be a
-little sharp; but there is no doubt that the condition of Geneva was at
-this time extremely critical. ‘<i>There was nothing but confusion</i>,’ says
-Rozet; ‘the citizens abandoned themselves to licentiousness, dancing,
-gaming, and drinking. The finger was pointed at those who mourned over
-these things; they were men marked and hated. No preaching could be
-fruitful in the midst of such confusion.’<a name="FNanchor_715_715" id="FNanchor_715_715"></a><a href="#Footnote_715_715" class="fnanchor">[715]</a> The syndic Gautier,
-a man who was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_441" id="Page_441">[441]</a></span> above all a champion of government, and who censured
-Calvin for not acknowledging that the very foundation of every society
-is subordination and obedience, duties to the civil magistrate which
-are as obligatory on pastors as on other men, after examining whether
-Calvin’s complaints were just, pronounced the following sentence:
-‘Calvin was right so far as he had reference to the licentious lives of
-his adversaries, and to their love for libertinism and independence;
-but he was certainly mistaken if he considered them as enemies of God
-for wishing to observe the four principal festivals, and to introduce
-the use of unleavened bread.’<a name="FNanchor_716_716" id="FNanchor_716_716"></a><a href="#Footnote_716_716" class="fnanchor">[716]</a> This is likewise our own opinion.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN AND FAREL AT BERNE.</div>
-
-<p>When they reached Berne, Calvin and Farel found their friends in great
-astonishment at what had taken place. The latter told them that if they
-were not wanted at Geneva, they should stay at Berne. ‘It would be
-unpardonable in you,’ they added, ‘to refuse such a call.’<a name="FNanchor_717_717" id="FNanchor_717_717"></a><a href="#Footnote_717_717" class="fnanchor">[717]</a> To be
-at Berne with Kunz would have been to abandon their lives to perpetual
-dissension. They were in haste to be gone. However, they were anxious
-to express their gratitude to the senate for its conduct towards them,
-and for that purpose they requested an audience. They were put off to
-the following day. Remembering all the delays of their recent sojourn,
-fearing lest they should find themselves beset by claims to which they
-could not yield, and believing that they had discharged their duty
-to the council by the request which they had made, they departed for
-Basel. They did not reach the city without encountering danger on the
-way. They had to cross a river, believed to be the Aar, and one of them
-was almost carried away by the swift current, which was swollen by the
-rain. ‘However,’ wrote Calvin to Viret, ‘the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_442" id="Page_442">[442]</a></span> river was more merciful
-to us than men. The latter had determined, contrary to all right and
-reason, to compel us to undertake this journey, even were it on foot;
-but the Lord, in his compassion, preserved us from all evil.’ From the
-postscript to the same letter it appears that Farel and Calvin crossed
-the river on horseback. It is not known which of the two narrowly
-escaped drowning. They arrived at Basel, wet through with the rain, and
-half dead with fatigue.</p>
-
-<p>At Basel Calvin found a valued friend, Grynæus. Already during the stay
-of the two reformers at Berne he had written to them&mdash;‘I hope that
-by your Christian meekness and your humility you will overcome all
-your adversaries, and take away from the enemies of the Gospel every
-occasion of calumniating you. Oh, that the eyes now sparkling with the
-fire of Satan may be cast down, and that the passion with which men
-are inflamed against your ministry may be quenched!<a name="FNanchor_718_718" id="FNanchor_718_718"></a><a href="#Footnote_718_718" class="fnanchor">[718]</a> Work on, work
-on, my well-beloved brethren, hearts most noble and most holy (<i>optima
-ac sanctissima pectora</i>); be ready for the conflict, arrayed in the
-whole armor of Christian warfare, ready and willing, especially at this
-time, when iniquity prevails, to lead us on with heroic fidelity. Let
-us apply ourselves to the work of the Lord with unconquerable hearts.
-The hatred of those who in this proceeding show themselves so worthy
-of hatred will not win the day. For our part, we are of those who can
-pray for our enemies, much more support and embrace them. Let not the
-senseless judgment of the people, let not the foolish and futile dread
-of popular opinion, disturb you in the least. Rule and protect this
-Church, which threatens to fall, by your courage and your persistency.
-How glorious is the function you will discharge! How solid and real the
-praise which you<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_443" id="Page_443">[443]</a></span> will deserve if, completely forgetting yourselves in
-this cause, you think of Jesus Christ alone!’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEIR RECEPTION.</div>
-
-<p>We can imagine how affectionately Grynæus and his friends received the
-two brethren banished on account of the noble fidelity which they had
-displayed. Grynæus had already invited the reformer, while he was still
-at Geneva, to go to his house rather than bend under the yoke which his
-enemies wished to put on him. ‘We welcome thee joyfully,’ he said to
-Calvin afterwards, ‘as our brother in the Lord, and we embrace thee as
-a distinguished ornament of our Church.’<a name="FNanchor_719_719" id="FNanchor_719_719"></a><a href="#Footnote_719_719" class="fnanchor">[719]</a> Calvin therefore abode
-with Grynæus at Basel, where the most brotherly hospitality was shown
-him. Farel took up his abode in the house of the famous printer, Oporin.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin and Farel bore their great trial with much patience and
-meekness, forgiving their enemies and praying for them, and endeavoring
-to avoid everything which might become an occasion of grief to their
-brethren. Viret was very anxious to see them and to share their
-tribulations. ‘Thou knowest well,’ replied Calvin to him, ‘that no
-greater happiness could befall us at this moment than to talk with thee
-for a short time. But the danger to which the journey would expose thee
-checks our desire: thou wouldst reap more hatred from it than we should
-joy.’ Thus did Calvin think of his friends before thinking of himself.
-It appears, however, that Viret did see him at Basel.<a name="FNanchor_720_720" id="FNanchor_720_720"></a><a href="#Footnote_720_720" class="fnanchor">[720]</a> This was
-doubtless at a later period. Calvin was anxious to avoid everything
-which might lead to any useless dispute. ‘I beg of thee, my dear
-brother,’ he said to Farel, ‘take pains in these evil times to preserve
-whatever can be tolerated. Our brethren must not so obstinately dispute
-about mere<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_444" id="Page_444">[444]</a></span> ceremonies. Let us be free; but let us be the slaves of
-concord and of peace.’<a name="FNanchor_721_721" id="FNanchor_721_721"></a><a href="#Footnote_721_721" class="fnanchor">[721]</a> ‘What I have above all at heart,’ he said
-further to him, ‘is that we may not cause new quarrels, nor be the
-occasion of any strife.’</p>
-
-<p>At the same time, nevertheless, one of the first things which the
-reformers had done after their arrival at Basel was to give an
-account of what had befallen them to their brethren of Zurich and
-Strasburg. Their enemies did not cease, indeed, to pursue them with
-their accusations; and those who had forced them to leave Geneva cried
-out that they were schismatics, forgetting that they themselves had
-compelled the two reformers to separate from their Church. Such is
-party logic. Calvin, Farel, and their friends, therefore, thought
-it advisable to hold a meeting at which delegates from the towns of
-Zurich, Berne, Basel, Strasburg, and one of that place (<i>un dudit
-lieu</i>) (probably Geneva), should attend, and at which it should
-be ‘declared that they had duly and faithfully administered their
-office.’<a name="FNanchor_722_722" id="FNanchor_722_722"></a><a href="#Footnote_722_722" class="fnanchor">[722]</a> They did not, however, eagerly press for this. They knew
-that their judge was in heaven. ‘I can do nothing,’ said Calvin, ‘but
-commend the issue to the great physician, who alone can provide for it
-and give it shape.’<a name="FNanchor_723_723" id="FNanchor_723_723"></a><a href="#Footnote_723_723" class="fnanchor">[723]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALLS AND HESITATIONS.</div>
-
-<p>If Calvin committed himself to God as to his past, he did the same as
-to his future. ‘I withdraw to Basel,’ he says, in the same letter,
-‘awaiting what the Lord will do with me.’ Calls were not wanting.
-They wished to retain him at Basel. Toussaint desired that he should
-settle at Lausanne, or in the canton of Berne, that he might there be
-an example of decision and devotion. Others thought it their duty to
-recommend him to the Duke of Würtemburg.<a name="FNanchor_724_724" id="FNanchor_724_724"></a><a href="#Footnote_724_724" class="fnanchor">[724]</a> But Strasburg appeared<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_445" id="Page_445">[445]</a></span>
-to be the place to choose. Already in November, 1536, Bucer, delighted
-with the <i>Institution</i>, which had just appeared, had asked for an
-interview with Calvin. ‘We will go wherever you wish for the purpose of
-conferring with you on the whole doctrine of Christ.’<a name="FNanchor_725_725" id="FNanchor_725_725"></a><a href="#Footnote_725_725" class="fnanchor">[725]</a> They saw each
-other subsequently at Berne and at Zurich. Bucer and Capito, now that
-they knew he was at liberty and staying at Basel, did not fail to press
-him to come to them. At the beginning of July he went to Strasburg. ‘I
-have been so earnestly entreated to come by the two chief ministers of
-this town,’ he wrote on the 10th of that month, ‘that to satisfy them I
-have made a journey hither.’<a name="FNanchor_726_726" id="FNanchor_726_726"></a><a href="#Footnote_726_726" class="fnanchor">[726]</a> It did not at that time appear likely
-to him that he was to settle there. The terrible conflicts through
-which he had passed at Geneva made him view with alarm the proposal to
-accept a new ministry. He recurred to his studious projects. ‘I shrink,
-above all things,’ said he, ‘from reëntering on the office from which I
-am delivered, considering in what perplexities I was involved from the
-time when I was first engaged in it.’ He adds, ‘there are other reasons
-which I can explain only by word of mouth.’ What were these? Doubtless
-the too accommodating theology of the doctors of that town. Basel was
-his favorite city. He returned thither, saying, ‘It is not the fault
-of the Strasburgers that I am not their guest, but they have burden
-enough without me.’ He might, however, have found good reasons for
-accepting their invitation, for his poverty was so great that he found
-it necessary to sell ‘a part of his books’ for his maintenance.<a name="FNanchor_727_727" id="FNanchor_727_727"></a><a href="#Footnote_727_727" class="fnanchor">[727]</a></p>
-
-<p>The entreaties of the Strasburgers, nevertheless, became more urgent.
-They wrote to Grynæus to do all he could to induce Calvin to settle at
-Strasburg: only they would rather that he should come without Farel,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_446" id="Page_446">[446]</a></span>
-because they were afraid that, if the two Frenchmen were together, the
-Germans would have too great difficulty in bending them to their views.
-This was also the opinion of Grynæus. To give up Farel entirely was
-too great a sacrifice for Calvin to make. He again declined the offer,
-giving as his reason the condition which was imposed on him not to take
-Farel with him.<a name="FNanchor_728_728" id="FNanchor_728_728"></a><a href="#Footnote_728_728" class="fnanchor">[728]</a> ‘I await thy counsel,’ wrote Calvin to his friend;
-and impelled by the warmest affection for this man of God, he adds,
-‘O that I could now fly to thee! I am only held back by the strongest
-motives.’</p>
-
-<p>Farel was not at Basel at that moment, and was not to return thither.
-The tidings of the persecutions which had fallen upon him, of his exile
-and his sufferings, had grieved the people of Neuchâtel, and revived
-in their hearts their old love for the man from whom they had learned
-the elements of the faith. The Council of the Sixty, representatives
-of the city, after calling upon the Lord, communicated to the class
-of ministers the desire which they felt of inviting Farel to become
-their pastor.<a name="FNanchor_729_729" id="FNanchor_729_729"></a><a href="#Footnote_729_729" class="fnanchor">[729]</a> The post was, as we shall see, actually vacant.
-Two councillors and two members of the class went to Basel. ‘Come,’
-they said to him, ‘and complete the building of which you laid the
-foundation.’ Farel, like Calvin, could not make up his mind to accept
-a pastoral charge, but preferred to devote himself to study.<a name="FNanchor_730_730" id="FNanchor_730_730"></a><a href="#Footnote_730_730" class="fnanchor">[730]</a> At
-length, encouraged by his friends, entreated in the name of the Lord,
-and ‘persuaded to it with great earnestness by the German Churches,’
-he consented; but it was on condition that he should introduce in
-the Church the order prescribed in the Holy Scriptures. Having once
-decided, he set out suddenly for Neuchâtel, about the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_447" id="Page_447">[447]</a></span> end of July,
-‘with his customary promptitude,’ says Calvin.<a name="FNanchor_731_731" id="FNanchor_731_731"></a><a href="#Footnote_731_731" class="fnanchor">[731]</a> Thenceforth Farel
-and Calvin were separated; but this removal from each other did not in
-any degree impair the union of their hearts nor the firmness of their
-characters, whatever the moderates of Strasburg might think.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAREL CALLED TO NEUCHATEL.</div>
-
-<p>The latter once more renewed their call. Would not the ministerial
-office conferred on Calvin by a Church of such high standing as that
-of Strasburg be a brilliant justification which would silence evil
-tongues? What good service might he not render there! The empire had
-need of able theologians, and perhaps the Strasburgers desired to
-have him settled among them by way of counterpoise to the powerful
-personality and authority of Luther. Be that as it may, his friends
-on the banks of the Rhine could not bear the thought that so powerful
-a servant of God ‘should be satisfied to live in retirement without
-undertaking any public office;’<a name="FNanchor_732_732" id="FNanchor_732_732"></a><a href="#Footnote_732_732" class="fnanchor">[732]</a> and as he still refused, they took
-steps towards inducing the Genevese to recall the reformer. If he will
-not come to Strasburg, let him go to Geneva. This proceeding appears
-to have had some effect on Calvin. He would go anywhere rather than
-return to the city of his sorrows. The Strasburgers, finding that he
-was somewhat giving way, made a fresh advance. ‘That excellent servant
-of Christ, Martin Bucer,’ says Calvin, ‘addressing to me a remonstrance
-and protest similar to that which Farel had previously made, called me
-to another place. Alarmed by the case of Jonah, which he set before me,
-I persevered still in the office of teacher.’<a name="FNanchor_733_733" id="FNanchor_733_733"></a><a href="#Footnote_733_733" class="fnanchor">[733]</a> Calvin therefore
-went to Strasburg in September, and began to preach in the choir of the
-church of the Dominicans to the French refugees in the town, with whom<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_448" id="Page_448">[448]</a></span>
-were associated other persons, some of whom understood and others did
-not understand the tongue, but all of them were desirous of seeing the
-face and hearing the voice of the famous exile. These refugees, it is
-said, were fifteen hundred in number.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin was no sooner settled at Strasburg than he heard that his
-colleague, the blind old Courault, who, ‘after having fought valiantly
-at Paris for the truth,’<a name="FNanchor_734_734" id="FNanchor_734_734"></a><a href="#Footnote_734_734" class="fnanchor">[734]</a> had first retired to Thonon, and then
-had been called as pastor to Orbe, had departed this life on October
-4, and gone to God. This was a terrible blow for his loving heart. He
-wrote to Farel&mdash;‘I am so dismayed at the death of Courault, that my
-grief overpasses all bounds. Not one of my daily occupations is any
-longer able to fix my attention, and I am incessantly returning to the
-same thought. To the lamentations and pains of the day succeed the
-more terrible torments of the night.’<a name="FNanchor_735_735" id="FNanchor_735_735"></a><a href="#Footnote_735_735" class="fnanchor">[735]</a> This death, so unexpected,
-was attributed to poison. Suspicions of that kind were very common,
-and were in those unhappy times too often justified. Calvin rejected
-this thought, but in spite of himself it was continually presenting
-itself to his imagination.<a name="FNanchor_736_736" id="FNanchor_736_736"></a><a href="#Footnote_736_736" class="fnanchor">[736]</a> He endeavored, nevertheless, to
-console himself and to revive his own courage and that of Farel. ‘All
-testify,’ he said to him, ‘by their grief and their regrets how highly
-they esteemed his courage and his uprightness, and this is a great
-consolation. For us whom the Lord leaves for a time in this world, let
-us hold on in the path which he pursued until we have finished our
-course. Whatever difficulties we may have to encounter, they will not
-prevent us from entering into that rest which is even now his portion.’
-‘When we get there,’ said he on another occasion, ‘it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_449" id="Page_449">[449]</a></span> will be known
-on which side rashness or error was. To that court I appeal from the
-sentence of all the wise. There the angels of God will bear witness
-which are the schismatics.’<a name="FNanchor_737_737" id="FNanchor_737_737"></a><a href="#Footnote_737_737" class="fnanchor">[737]</a> He adds, ‘Only let us stand firm on
-the height we have reached, which commands the field of battle, until
-the kingdom of Christ, at present hidden, shall appear.’</p>
-
-<p>Thus the three pastors expelled from Geneva had each found his place;
-and that of the old blind minister was the best.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">NEW PASTORS AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>It was not long before the Genevese established the institutions
-to which the reformers had objected. It was decreed to reërect the
-baptismal fonts which had been cast down, and to baptize children in
-them, to celebrate the four festivals, and to conform to the ceremonies
-agreed upon. On Whit-Sunday, which this year fell at the beginning
-of June, there were only two pastors at Geneva, Henri de la Mare and
-Jacques Bernard, both Genevese. The Lord’s supper was to be celebrated,
-and for that purpose two ministers were needed in each church. The
-council deputed two of its members to act instead of them, one at St.
-Peter’s, the other at St. Gervais’.</p>
-
-<p>The government exerted itself to find substitutes for the two exiles.
-The states of Berne and Neuchâtel gave up to it Jean Morand, pastor
-at Cully,<a name="FNanchor_738_738" id="FNanchor_738_738"></a><a href="#Footnote_738_738" class="fnanchor">[738]</a> on the shores of the lake of Geneva, and Antoine
-Marcourt, of Lyons, pastor of Neuchâtel, who were installed about the
-end of June. The council determined to give them, considering their
-age and their large families, three hundred Genevese florins;<a name="FNanchor_739_739" id="FNanchor_739_739"></a><a href="#Footnote_739_739" class="fnanchor">[739]</a>
-the two Genevese each had two hundred and fifty florins. We became<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_450" id="Page_450">[450]</a></span>
-acquainted with Marcourt at the synod of Lausanne. He had published
-several treatises on the Eucharist, on the mass; to him likewise
-were attributed the famous placards of 1534, which Florimond Raemond
-believes to have been the work of Farel. The governor and councils of
-Neuchâtel, in resigning Marcourt to Geneva, declared, June 18, ‘that
-they had always found him a man of peace, one who desired, and to the
-utmost of his power maintained, peace and public tranquillity.’ This
-character seems hardly like that of the author of the <i>Placards</i>, one
-of the most violent writings of the sixteenth century, which were
-pronounced by the Roman Catholics<a name="FNanchor_740_740" id="FNanchor_740_740"></a><a href="#Footnote_740_740" class="fnanchor">[740]</a> to be filled with ‘execrable
-blasphemies and horrible threats against the king,’ and which gave rise
-to that bloody persecution by the Valois and the Bourbons of which
-the reformed Christians were the victims for more than two centuries.
-However, we must confess that pacific men are not always consistent. It
-would seem that Marcourt was not so much a man of peace as the people
-of Neuchâtel had said; at least if we take literally what Calvin says.
-‘How our successors will demean themselves,’ he wrote on August 4 to
-Farel, ‘is a point on which we can form an opinion from their first
-proceedings. They break off by their irritable temper every promise of
-peace, and they seem to suppose that the best thing they have to do is
-to tear to pieces both in public and in private the reputation which
-we enjoyed, and to make us as hateful as possible.’<a name="FNanchor_741_741" id="FNanchor_741_741"></a><a href="#Footnote_741_741" class="fnanchor">[741]</a> Calvin is
-especially severe, perhaps too much so, with regard to the two Genevese
-ministers. There was, however, some truth in the last touch in the
-picture which he drew of them for Bullinger: ‘Both of them are very
-ignorant, and when they open their mouths, it is to rave. This does not
-prevent them from assuming an insolent pride.’<a name="FNanchor_742_742" id="FNanchor_742_742"></a><a href="#Footnote_742_742" class="fnanchor">[742]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_451" id="Page_451">[451]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ACCUSATIONS.</div>
-
-<p>These words of Calvin are rather sharp. This is doubtless explained
-by his recent sorrow. Subsequently he expressed himself with more
-moderation. His partisans at Geneva did the same. While the wisest
-men still held their peace, the most violent did not spare their
-adversaries. The two parties were very ill-disposed towards one
-another, and some of those who belonged to them threw off all restraint
-both in their deeds and in their words. Licentious men among the
-enemies of the reformers ‘triumphed over the banished ministers,
-insulted the servants of God, laughed at the Gospel, and abandoned
-themselves to impurity, dancing, gaming, and drunkenness. Nothing was
-talked of but masquerades, gallantries and excesses, and the services
-of the church turned to the disgrace of the Reformation.’ On the other
-side, the most vehement partisans of Calvin and Farel had no mercy on
-the lay and ecclesiastical chiefs under whose administration these
-things took place. They called the new pastors <i>wolves</i>, and the
-magistrates <i>the unrighteous</i>. They murmured as they went out from
-sermon, and their ill-humor was not sparing of criticism. ‘The Gospel
-which is preached at present,’ said Richard after one of the services,
-‘is only <i>the Gospel for twenty days</i>.’ He had no doubt that, when that
-time had elapsed, the new preachers would be dismissed. For this they
-sent him to prison. ‘The syndics of to-day,’ said another, ‘are of no
-use but to bring back lascivious men and women into the town.’ For this
-saying he was expelled from the town for a year.<a name="FNanchor_743_743" id="FNanchor_743_743"></a><a href="#Footnote_743_743" class="fnanchor">[743]</a> ‘The mass is sung
-in Geneva,’ said many, ‘and the people who love the Gospel are expelled
-the town.’ These charges were circulated in Switzerland, and greatly
-alarmed the friends of reform.</p>
-
-<p>None felt these reproaches more keenly than the pastors, for they
-knew that they all recoiled on themselves.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_452" id="Page_452">[452]</a></span> On September 17 they all
-appeared, the two Genevese and the two foreigners, before the council.
-‘Calumniators,’ they said, ‘are spreading reports in the cantons
-which are doing serious injury to the Gospel.’ They requested that
-two of their number might have leave of absence to go and refute the
-slanders, which inflicted a blow on the honor of the town. The request
-was granted. Marcourt and Morand set out for Berne, and presented
-themselves before the assembly of the pastors, in which Kunz could not
-fail to support them. In fact it was resolved at this meeting ‘that
-those who rose against the persons in office at Geneva were worse than
-wicked men, traitors, and Jews.’ The Bernese pastors communicated
-this declaration to the council, which contented itself with deciding
-that if any defamers of Geneva appeared at Berne, information should
-be given to the magistrates of that town. The lay authorities were
-obviously less under the influence of passion than the ecclesiastics.
-It appears even that the council of Berne did not place implicit
-confidence in the report of the Genevese ministers, for one of their
-own number was immediately after sent to Geneva to see with his own
-eyes what was the real state of the Genevese Church.</p>
-
-<p>The complaints made both at Geneva and in other places were well
-grounded. This is proved by the proceedings of the magistrates, who,
-although they were hostile to the reformers, perceived that their
-own honor required them not to authorize licentiousness. It is quite
-certain that people ‘went about the streets at night, uttering cries
-and singing indecent songs;’ that ‘gaming, lewdness, haunting of
-taverns, and drunkenness,’ were common offences; for a decree of July
-19 prohibited them under a penalty of sixty sous for the first time;
-and, as the evil continued, other decisions of a similar character
-were taken on August 20 and October 22. It is certain that, as was
-said in Switzerland, some citizens went to mass, for according to the
-intolerant customs of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_453" id="Page_453">[453]</a></span> the age, they were ordered ‘to leave the town.’
-The councils were seen to be as much opposed to religious liberty as
-Calvin had been. Perhaps they went even further than he would have
-gone; for, on August 20, they ordered the priests who were still on
-Genevese soil to go to sermon if they wished to remain there.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN’S LETTER TO THE GENEVESE.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin, at Strasburg, was watching attentively what was passing at
-Geneva. He heard that a certain number of Genevese kept faithfully
-to the path which they had taken under his direction. Some of his
-adherents cried out rather loudly, but the majority led a quiet life,
-and the most decided of the latter displayed their opposition in no
-other way than by absenting themselves from a form of worship which
-they did not consider to be in conformity with the principles of
-the Gospel. Calvin had not written to them during the first months
-of his exile. He was not willing to lay himself open to the charge
-of attempting to draw them over to himself. But he felt keenly that
-the trials of his friends at Geneva proceeded from their supineness
-in adhering to the Word of God, and that the remedy for them was in
-humbling themselves before God and waiting upon Him for the remedy.
-‘However the affection which he always cherished for them’ did not
-permit him to remain longer silent, and on October 1 he wrote to
-them a letter remarkable for the pacific, discreet, charitable, and
-elevated spirit which it breathed. He addressed it, not to all the
-Genevese, but to those who had received into their hearts the seed of
-the divine Word, and who were still deeply affected by the blow which
-had struck them in the punishment of their pastor. He named them his
-brethren, <i>the relics of the dispersion of the Genevese church</i>. He
-spoke of the love which he bore them. ‘I cannot refrain from writing to
-you,’ said he, ‘to assure you of the affection which I always cherish
-for you. Our conscience is fully persuaded before God that it is by
-his call that we were at one time associated with you,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_454" id="Page_454">[454]</a></span> and it ought
-not to be in the power of men to break such a bond.’ He begs them to
-forget themselves and their sufferings, to forget even the hostility
-of their adversaries. ‘If we lose our time in fighting against men,’
-he said, ‘thinking only of taking vengeance and getting indemnified
-for the injuries which they have done us, it is doubtful whether we
-can overcome them, but it is certain that we shall be overcome by the
-devil. If on the contrary we resist the devices of that spiritual
-enemy, there is no fear then of our not coming off conquerors. Cast
-away every evil affection, be led only by zeal for God, controlled
-by his Spirit and the rule of his Word.’ Calvin went further. He
-showed himself severe to his friends. ‘It is easy for you to justify
-yourselves before men, but your conscience will feel burdened before
-God.’ He did himself what he required of others. ‘I doubt not,’ he
-said, ‘that God has humbled us in order to make us acquainted with our
-ignorance, our imprudence, and our other infirmities, of which I for
-my part have been fully conscious, and which I have no hesitation in
-confessing before the Church. However,’ he adds, ‘we did faithfully
-administer our office. The Lord will cause our innocence to come forth
-like the morning-star, and our righteousness to shine like the sun.’
-But he endeavors chiefly to console the believers of Geneva. ‘Be not
-cast down because it hath pleased the Lord to humble you for a time,
-for he lifts up the humble out of the dust and takes the poor from
-the dunghill. He gives the manna of joy to those who are in tears; he
-gives back light to them that sit in darkness, and he restores to life
-them that walk in the shadow of death. Be of good courage then, and
-endure with patience the chastening of his hand, until the time that
-he reveal his grace to you.’<a name="FNanchor_744_744" id="FNanchor_744_744"></a><a href="#Footnote_744_744" class="fnanchor">[744]</a> It is impossible not to recognize
-the wisdom and the Christian charity which have left their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_455" id="Page_455">[455]</a></span> impress on
-this letter. It is indeed a pastor that speaks. Calvin was so far from
-the excessive strictness imputed to him that he wrote at the same time
-to Farel&mdash;‘If we find in any Church the ministry of the Word and the
-sacraments, it is better not to separate from it. It is not right even
-to do so on the ground that some doctrines are not purely taught in it;
-for there is hardly a Church in existence which does not retain some
-traces of its former ignorance. It is sufficient for us if the doctrine
-on which the Church is founded has its place there and keeps it.’<a name="FNanchor_745_745" id="FNanchor_745_745"></a><a href="#Footnote_745_745" class="fnanchor">[745]</a>
-Calvin held that there are some doctrines fundamental and vital,
-essential to salvation; but he acknowledged that there are others on
-which difference is permissible.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAREL’S LETTER TO THE GENEVESE.</div>
-
-<p>Farel likewise wrote to the Christians of Geneva. He did so even before
-Calvin, in June, in August, and again in November. He expressed to
-them his deep sadness. He would fain be ‘so far away that he could
-hear nothing of the miserable breaking-up and dispersion of the
-Church.’ He strives ‘to banish from his heart the pains, the labors
-that he undertook for that town; for nothing pierces the heart like
-ingratitude; to see evil rendered for good, hate for love, death and
-shame in place of the life and the honor which were procured.’ He
-contents himself with praying for the town and commending it to all who
-are able to give it any assistance. Meanwhile he cannot help seeing
-the unhappy condition in which his own friends and all the faithful of
-Geneva are, deprived of their pastors, and witnessing the triumph of
-their enemies. He shares largely in their troubles; they are his only
-trial. ‘I should be too happy,’ he wrote to them, ‘if you were not so
-unhappy.’ But at the same time he exhorts them to Christian charity
-and gives evidence of it himself. ‘Cherish in your hearts no rancor,’
-he said to his former flock, ‘no root of bitterness, no anger. Do not
-reproach this man nor that man,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_456" id="Page_456">[456]</a></span> but let each one reproach himself: lay
-all the blame on yourselves and say nothing but good of others. Let
-God’s holy will be your rule, and not <i>poor man</i> (the natural man),
-and what is in him.’ He does not hesitate to rebuke his friends. ‘You
-have not obeyed God wholly, but have halted and swerved to one side and
-the other.’ Then he earnestly exhorts them to repentance. ‘You, great
-and small, men and women, cast yourselves humbly before God, with all
-earnestness and love, beseeching his grace, and praying him to turn
-away his anger from you. Yes, cast yourselves before him with sobs
-and tears, with fasting and prayer, like the king of Nineveh and his
-people. Cry, weep, lift up your voices; that your cry going forth from
-the depths of this terrible calamity may reach the ear of God.’<a name="FNanchor_746_746" id="FNanchor_746_746"></a><a href="#Footnote_746_746" class="fnanchor">[746]</a>
-Thus spoke Farel and Calvin.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER XV.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">STRASBURG AND GENEVA.</span><br />
-
-<span class="smcap sm">(End of 1538&ndash;1539.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN AT STRASBURG.</div>
-
-<p>Calvin, meanwhile, notwithstanding the melancholy which sprang from
-the remembrance of his recent struggles, was happy at Strasburg. This
-town, in which, as in a common centre, met the influences of Germany,
-Switzerland, and France, was esteemed, next to Wittenberg, the most
-important seat of the Reformation. It was called the <i>Antioch</i> of that
-epoch, in remembrance of what Antioch was in the apostolic age. Some
-named it subsequently the <i>New Jerusalem</i>, and this partly because
-it was ‘the hostess of the man who gave his name to Calvinism.’<a name="FNanchor_747_747" id="FNanchor_747_747"></a><a href="#Footnote_747_747" class="fnanchor">[747]</a>
-At the period of Calvin’s arrival, Strasburg<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_457" id="Page_457">[457]</a></span> was already the home
-of several distinguished men&mdash;Capito, Bucer, Hedio, Niger, Mathias
-Zell, and others besides, who shone in its Church like precious and
-transparent jewels.<a name="FNanchor_748_748" id="FNanchor_748_748"></a><a href="#Footnote_748_748" class="fnanchor">[748]</a> ‘What gratitude we owe you,’ they wrote to
-Farel, ‘for resigning Calvin to us!’ He was a treasure for them. He
-very much enjoyed their society, and this sojourn was to be beneficial
-to him. Not only did the affection of Strasburg for him heal the wounds
-inflicted by the hostility of Geneva, but his mind was to receive still
-further development. The small city on the shores of the Leman lake
-was a narrow platform on which it was not easy to move about. But on
-reaching Strasburg Calvin set foot on the vast Germanic realm which
-contained so many illustrious men, in which so many profound thoughts
-were stirring, and in which the Reformation had already fought so
-many battles and won so many victories. There were, it is true, some
-opposite teachings, but it was necessary to be acquainted with them.
-Strasburg, moreover, was the place in which doctrines were weighed
-one against the other, and where the labor destined to conciliate
-them was undertaken. At Geneva Calvin might have occupied the post
-of a spectator who attempts to distinguish by means of a telescope
-an action fought at a great distance. But now he was in the thick
-of the battle, learnt to recognize the feeble and the strong, and
-became one of the combatants, or at least one of the negotiators. His
-horizon was widened, his intelligence in this vast sphere would be
-enlarged, his ideas would be developed, would grow, ripen, and move
-with greater freedom. He would be brought under influences to which he
-was not exposed at Geneva, and which would contribute to form the great
-theologian. Embracing at a glance the whole extent of the kingdom of
-God, he would become familiar with its various provinces. Winds blowing
-from so many and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_458" id="Page_458">[458]</a></span> adverse regions would bring to him new reports.
-There would doubtless be sometimes stormy blasts, powerful enough to
-overthrow the strongest, but often also a pure and life-giving air
-fitted to sanctify his Christian energy.</p>
-
-<p>The theological and Christian circle which he entered at Strasburg
-was in more than one way in sympathy with him. He was convinced, as
-the doctors of this town were, that it was necessary not to stick at
-trifling differences, but to consider Christianity in its great facts,
-its great doctrines, the new life which it creates, in the great whole
-on which all the reformers were agreed. All those who took their stand
-on the same rock, Jesus Christ, no matter whether a little higher up
-or a little lower down, ought in his view to join hand in hand. Calvin
-and the theologians of Strasburg were disgusted with the theological
-subtilties and the scholastic nomenclature beneath which the living
-doctrine of the Gospel, especially as to the supper, was stifled. ‘Can
-I in very deed believe that I receive in the holy supper the body and
-the blood of the Lord, <i>substantialiter</i>, <i>essentialiter</i>, <i>realiter</i>,
-<i>naturaliter</i>, <i>præsentialiter</i>, <i>localiter</i>, <i>corporaliter</i>,
-<i>quantitative</i>, <i>qualitative</i>, <i>ubiqualiter</i>, <i>carnaliter</i>? The devil
-has brought us all these terms from the abyss of hell. Christ said
-simply, <i>This is my body</i>. If all these fantastic expressions had been
-necessary, he would certainly have employed them.’ Calvin, like Zell,
-the author of the above passage, found in that heap of qualifying terms
-a mass of rubbish and confusion. There was, however, one difference
-between the doctors of Strasburg and the doctor of Geneva. Bucer and
-Capito were willing to bring union by the way of accommodation, perhaps
-by the use of phrases in a double sense. The eagle of Geneva, soaring
-in the higher regions, called on Christians to have but one thought
-in contemplating one and the same sun, and in attaching themselves to
-one and the same truth.<a name="FNanchor_749_749" id="FNanchor_749_749"></a><a href="#Footnote_749_749" class="fnanchor">[749]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_459" id="Page_459">[459]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS SPIRITUAL JOYS.</div>
-
-<p>Another happiness awaited Calvin at Strasburg. His greatest sufferings
-at Geneva had their source in that state-church, that people-church,
-that shapeless community which comprised the whole nation, believers
-and unbelievers, righteous men and profligates. In its place at
-Strasburg he found some Christians exiled on account of their faith,
-purified by their trial like gold, who had given up all for Christ,
-their righteousness and their life. The mass of professing Christians
-at Geneva had as it were suffocated him. Now at Strasburg he was in the
-midst of brethren and sisters, and almost all of them belonged to his
-own country, France. He breathed freely. The evangelical order intended
-by the apostles prevailed in his Church.<a name="FNanchor_750_750" id="FNanchor_750_750"></a><a href="#Footnote_750_750" class="fnanchor">[750]</a> He preached four times a
-week. He met his elders and deacons once a week for the study of the
-Holy Scriptures and for prayer; and some of those lay friends well
-endowed by God were soon qualified to take the place of their pastor in
-case of his absence, and to edify their brethren. The first supper was
-celebrated in September, and it was repeated every month. How wide the
-difference for Calvin between that repast at Geneva, to which men came
-who drank, gamed, quarrelled, and sang indecent songs, and whom, for
-all that, he had to admit to the communion of the body and the blood
-of the Redeemer, and this brotherly supper at Strasburg, celebrated
-in company with pious Christians, persecuted for righteousness’ sake,
-whose names were written in heaven, and who drew nigh to the Lord with
-devotion, as members of his family! Calvin gave all his attention to
-the cure of souls. If there were any Christians who had not an adequate
-acquaintance with the doctrine of salvation, he instructed them; if any
-were reproached by their own conscience, cast down and in distress, he
-consoled and lifted them up; if any had gone astray from the path of
-righteousness, he re<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_460" id="Page_460">[460]</a></span>buked them. He certainly met with some opposition,
-especially on the part of the younger folk; but he held his ground.
-While he required a pure faith and life, he protested against the
-tyranny exercised by the priests in auricular confession, and declared
-that no man had the right to bind the conscience of his brethren. Thus
-he saw his flock thriving from day to day under his direction.<a name="FNanchor_751_751" id="FNanchor_751_751"></a><a href="#Footnote_751_751" class="fnanchor">[751]</a>
-‘It was at Strasburg that the first Church was organized to serve as a
-model to others,’ says Raemond. A remarkable conversion distinguished
-its early days. Herman of Liége, who had engaged in discussion with
-Calvin at Geneva, was converted by him and joined his Church. He
-embraced the doctrines which Calvin found in the Holy Scriptures, on
-free will, the divinity and humanity of Christ, regeneration, and
-baptism. He was in doubt only as to predestination. Calvin gained other
-victories besides.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">VIEW OF THE LORD’S SUPPER.</div>
-
-<p>He was now not only a pastor, but also a teacher. At the beginning
-of the year 1539, Capito, struck with his gifts for theological
-teaching, entreated him to join that office with his pastorate.
-Although he felt reluctant to do so, from his sense of the difficulty
-of that ministry, he at length consented. Every day he preached in
-the church of St. Nicholas, in which he taught the students of the
-academy. The interpretation of the Scriptures was for him the basis
-of theological science, and for his exposition he selected two of
-the richest books of the New Testament&mdash;the Gospel of St. John and
-the Epistle to the Romans. His plan was to search out the meaning of
-the sacred writer, and to set it forth with an easy ‘brevity which
-did not entail obscurity;’ and for that purpose ‘he took pains to
-regulate and proportion his style.<a name="FNanchor_752_752" id="FNanchor_752_752"></a><a href="#Footnote_752_752" class="fnanchor">[752]</a>’ In his view the Epistle to
-the Romans was ‘a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_461" id="Page_461">[461]</a></span> path to the understanding of the whole Scripture.’
-Some doctors attended these lectures, and expressed their high
-admiration.<a name="FNanchor_753_753" id="FNanchor_753_753"></a><a href="#Footnote_753_753" class="fnanchor">[753]</a> He did not content himself with being at the same
-time pastor and professor, he also worked diligently in his study. He
-revised his <i>Institution</i>, and prepared a second edition; he recast
-his <i>Catechism</i>; he composed a treatise on the Supper, of which he
-sent a copy to Luther. Calvin, like Zwingli, regarded the bread and
-the wine as signs, as pledges that Christ gives to the believer his
-crucified body and his shed blood; that is to say, communicates to him
-the expiatory virtue of his death. He taught that the believer receives
-the body and the blood by faith, which is <i>the mouth of the soul</i>, and
-not by the bodily mouth. But he differed from the reformer of Zurich in
-that he saw in the supper a mysterious union with the glorified person
-of Christ. ‘With good reason,’ he said, ‘the bread is called body,
-since it not only <i>represents</i> him, but also <i>presents</i> him to us. We
-must therefore really receive in the supper the body and the blood of
-Jesus Christ, since the Lord sets forth to us therein the communion of
-both. If God gave us only bread and wine, leaving behind the spiritual
-truth, would it not be the case that he had instituted this mystery
-on fictitious grounds?<a name="FNanchor_754_754" id="FNanchor_754_754"></a><a href="#Footnote_754_754" class="fnanchor">[754]</a> This alliance is effected on our part by
-faith, and on the part of God by his secret and miraculous virtue. The
-Spirit of God is the bond of this participation; that is why it is
-called spiritual. When Luther began his course, he appeared to say that
-the bread was the body of Christ. Œcolampadius and Zwingli appeared to
-leave in the supper nothing but the bare signs without their spiritual
-substance. Thus Luther failed on his side, Zwingli and Œcolampadius on
-their side. Nevertheless, let us not forget the grace which the Lord
-gave to all of them, and the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_462" id="Page_462">[462]</a></span> benefits which he has conferred on us by
-their instrumentality.’<a name="FNanchor_755_755" id="FNanchor_755_755"></a><a href="#Footnote_755_755" class="fnanchor">[755]</a></p>
-
-<p>Luther acknowledged that Calvin’s doctrine went beyond that of Zwingli,
-and expressed the delight which it gave him. As early as October, 1539,
-the Saxon reformer wrote to Bucer&mdash;‘Greet John Calvin respectfully,
-whose book I have read with singular enjoyment.’<a name="FNanchor_756_756" id="FNanchor_756_756"></a><a href="#Footnote_756_756" class="fnanchor">[756]</a> As the treatise
-on the Supper appeared only in 1541, the <i>Institution</i> must be the
-book spoken of, in which the doctrine of the Eucharist was already set
-forth. When the reformer of Germany read the little treatise to which
-we have just referred, he said, ‘Ah, if the Swiss did the same, we
-should now be at peace instead of quarrelling.’<a name="FNanchor_757_757" id="FNanchor_757_757"></a><a href="#Footnote_757_757" class="fnanchor">[757]</a></p>
-
-<p>In addition to his other labors, Calvin attended the theological
-debates in the universities, sometimes even presiding at them. He held
-conferences with the Roman Catholic doctors, at which he defended
-the evangelical theology; thereby acquiring so high a renown that a
-great number of students and even of learned men came from France to
-Strasburg to hear him.<a name="FNanchor_758_758" id="FNanchor_758_758"></a><a href="#Footnote_758_758" class="fnanchor">[758]</a></p>
-
-<p>This man, who already occupied so important a position, was at the
-same time in the most humble circumstances. Poverty was added to
-his other trials. He received from the publishers of his works only
-very low remuneration. He did not think that he had any right to ask
-remuneration from the state or even from the Church; but he would not
-have refused it if it had been<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_463" id="Page_463">[463]</a></span> spontaneously offered to him. He was
-living at this time on a small sum derived partly from his paternal
-inheritance and partly from the sale of his library and other property
-of various kinds. But this was far short of his need, and sometimes
-the payment for his lodging was a great embarrassment. He wrote to
-Farel&mdash;‘I am obliged to live at my own expense, unless I were willing
-to become a burden to my brethren; and my destitution is now so great
-that <i>I do not possess a farthing</i>.<a name="FNanchor_759_759" id="FNanchor_759_759"></a><a href="#Footnote_759_759" class="fnanchor">[759]</a> It is not, you see, so easy
-for me to take care of my health as you with so much kind care counsel
-me to do.’ Calvin afterwards received a salary, but too small to
-suffice even for his modest wants.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEATH OF OLIVÉTAN.</div>
-
-<p>Just at the time when Calvin was gaining new friends at Strasburg, he
-lost some of his oldest and most beloved ones. We have seen his grief
-on hearing of the death of Courault. At the beginning of January 1539,
-he received a letter from Francesca Bucyronia, wife of the physician
-Sinapi, tutor to the children of the Duchess of Ferrara, informing
-him that his cousin Olivétan, one of the first evangelists of Geneva,
-and translator of the French version of the Bible, had just died in
-that town. Calvin’s pain at this news was increased by the report
-that his friend, while at Rome, had taken poison, and that of this
-he died. This was a conjecture at that period commonly put forward
-to account for unexpected deaths. There is little probability of its
-truth. Calvin does not speak of it. He contents himself with calling
-Olivétan <i>our friend</i>, and adds that the natural sorrow which he feels
-must be his apology to his correspondents for his short and disjointed
-letters.<a name="FNanchor_760_760" id="FNanchor_760_760"></a><a href="#Footnote_760_760" class="fnanchor">[760]</a> Few men have had so many friends as Calvin. His was no
-ordinary friendship; it was always felt to be deep and unchangeable.</p>
-
-<p>But Calvin’s thought was at this time occupied with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_464" id="Page_464">[464]</a></span> affection of
-another kind. He believed that those who have received a new life from
-Christ are called to love all those who have received the same grace;
-‘to love them with that simple affection, that natural proneness,
-with which relations love each other.’ It was, however, no exclusive
-love that he required. ‘In bidding us begin by loving the faithful,
-the Lord leads us on, by a kind of apprenticeship, to the loving of
-all men without exception.’<a name="FNanchor_761_761" id="FNanchor_761_761"></a><a href="#Footnote_761_761" class="fnanchor">[761]</a> But union and agreement between the
-children of God was the great need of his heart. When writing to
-Bullinger (March 12, 1539) he said&mdash;‘Satan, who plots the ruin of the
-kingdom of Christ, sows discord between us. Let us all then have a
-cordial agreement with one another, and may it be the same with all the
-Churches. I clasp you in my arms, wishing you all good.’<a name="FNanchor_762_762" id="FNanchor_762_762"></a><a href="#Footnote_762_762" class="fnanchor">[762]</a></p>
-
-<p>With this cordial charity Calvin maintained an indomitable courage.
-Capito was given to looking at the dark sides of things: black thoughts
-often hovered around him and took possession of his imagination. In
-vain his faith strove to lighten the darkness; mournful forebodings
-overwhelmed him, and a dull distress was often read in his countenance.
-One day he protested before God and men that the Church was lost unless
-prompt aid should arrive. Afterwards, when he found that the state of
-things did not improve, he prayed God that he might die.<a name="FNanchor_763_763" id="FNanchor_763_763"></a><a href="#Footnote_763_763" class="fnanchor">[763]</a> It was
-not so with Calvin. ‘Ah,’ said he, ‘the Lord will bless us although
-everything should be against us. Let us therefore try all remedies; and
-if we do not find any to be efficacious, let us nevertheless persevere
-as long as we have any breath of life.’<a name="FNanchor_764_764" id="FNanchor_764_764"></a><a href="#Footnote_764_764" class="fnanchor">[764]</a> It is this uncon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_465" id="Page_465">[465]</a></span>querable
-steadfastness which made Calvin the great reformer.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DESPOTISM AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>The faith of Calvin was not to deceive him. But few voices had been
-raised in his favor at Geneva in the general council of May 26, 1538.
-The minority which adhered to the Reformation had at first shrunk
-away into retirement and silence. The most active men, who are not
-always the wisest, alone had spoken. But gradually the more competent
-influential men appeared, recognized and united with each other, and
-took combined action. The government party made little account of them;
-and as Master Guillaume, as they called Farel, was in the popular
-judgment the chief of the Evangelicals, they used to call these, with
-a shrug of the shoulders, the <i>Guillemins</i>, nor had they a suspicion
-that these people would ever recover themselves. The council, which was
-little disposed to respect individual freedom, less so perhaps than
-Calvin and Farel, ordered all heads of families to attend sermon on the
-Sunday. This order was especially aimed at the friends of the reformers
-and their refusal to hear the ministers who had taken the place of the
-latter, and who, to make themselves agreeable to the magistrate, openly
-censured their predecessors.</p>
-
-<p>Farel and Calvin had established in Geneva not only the Church but
-also the school; and some of their best friends, Saunier and Mathurin
-Cordier were among the most eminent masters. This institution naturally
-remained faithful to its founders, and the conduct of the government
-towards it showed that they looked on it as decidedly opposed to
-their views and opinions. The council did not intend to allow its
-subordinates to show themselves hostile to its scheme for the direction
-of ecclesiastical affairs. However, while they shrank perhaps from
-disorganizing the school, they resolved, sparing at the outset the
-leading men, to give them a lesson by energetically prosecuting one or
-two of their under-masters.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_466" id="Page_466">[466]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Eynard and Gaspard were consequently cited, September 10, before
-the council, which made complaint of their publicly censuring the
-<i>preachers</i>, and inquired of them where they had received the supper
-at Easter and Whitsuntide. They replied that they had not joined in
-the communion anywhere, because St. Paul enjoined <i>that every man
-should examine himself</i>, and that they had not felt in the right frame
-of mind. They had no doubt been unwilling to receive the bread and
-the wine, which are the communion of the body and the blood of the
-Saviour, from the hands of pastors whom they judged unworthy. The
-council ordered them to leave the town in three days. After having thus
-inflicted disciplinary penalties on the humble under-masters, they
-awaited Christmas.</p>
-
-<p>Matters were by that time far worse. Many foreigners, chiefly refugees,
-did not take the supper. They were condemned to leave the town, ten
-days only being allowed to them to set their affairs in order. The
-councillors and other Genevese who had been guilty of the same offence
-were obliged to apologize and to promise ‘to live from this time forth
-according to the way of the town.’ These things did not pass without
-lively altercations; and in consequence of a dispute which took place
-in the street on the night of December 30, 1538, one man was killed
-and many were wounded.<a name="FNanchor_765_765" id="FNanchor_765_765"></a><a href="#Footnote_765_765" class="fnanchor">[765]</a> The most enraged of the refractory party,
-thinking to justify their conduct in attacking the settled ministers,
-called them infidels, corrupters of Scripture, and papists, who tried
-to deceive the people. The pastors, who were certainly not possessed
-of ability enough to fill the place of the eminent doctors banished by
-the council, but who endeavored for the most part to do as much good
-as their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_467" id="Page_467">[467]</a></span> moral and intellectual qualities permitted, were greatly
-annoyed, complained to the council, and desired to withdraw and make
-room for others better qualified than themselves. ‘These reproaches,’
-they said, ‘we find it very hard to bear.’ The council assured them
-that it meant to keep them, and to reconcile them with their accusers.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE REGENTS OF THE COLLEGE.</div>
-
-<p>After this second act of discipline, or rather, at the same time, the
-council undertook a third, of graver character still. In their eyes the
-college was still a fortress in which Calvinism had entrenched itself,
-with the intention of resisting the attacks of its adversaries. The
-magistrate resolved to give the regents an opportunity of declaring
-themselves, and if they offered resistance, to expel them. To join
-the ministers who had succeeded Farel and Calvin, to administer the
-supper with them, to do an act which those great doctors had refused
-to do,&mdash;this was the requirement addressed by the magistrate to
-Saunier, rector of the college, and to the three regents, Mathurin
-Cordier, Vautier, and Vindos. It would have been straining a point
-for them to take the supper; but to be in the number of those who
-administered it, after all the controversies which had taken place, was
-not this ‘to be an occasion of stumbling’ for many, and a taking part
-against those venerated men whose absence they deplored? These four
-professors therefore stated to the council that their conscience did
-not allow them to do what was required. The magistrates ought to have
-considered that this act is not within the province of the regents,
-and that they ought not to do anything which might, by depriving the
-college of the able men who directed it, possibly lead to its ruin.
-But Richardet and his friends were despots who did not intend to allow
-any resistance to their will. On the day after Christmas, they ordered
-the rector and the three regents to quit Geneva in the space of three
-days. Saunier was dismayed. He had a very numerous household. Many
-boys of good family from Basel,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_468" id="Page_468">[468]</a></span> Berne, Zurich, Bienne, and other
-towns, lived in his house; and he had a young daughter, in delicate
-health, whom he would be obliged to take with him in the depth of
-winter. The next day, December 27, he appeared before the Council of
-the Two Hundred, stated the circumstances which we have just related,
-reminded them that he was a citizen of the town, and showed them
-that the resolution which they had adopted might be the ruin of the
-college, which was indispensable to the youth of Geneva. In fine, he
-could not possibly make the necessary arrangements in so short a time.
-This last point was the only one to which the Great Council took any
-heed. It confirmed the resolution of the Little Council, but granted
-to the regents fifteen days to act upon it. He must therefore depart.
-Saunier and his colleagues took the same road as Calvin and Farel had
-taken. Mathurin Cordier, who had received the knowledge of the Gospel
-from the celebrated Robert Etienne, had devoted his life to the task
-‘of training youth in piety and in good morals, cultivating in them
-a pure and elegant style, and the love of literature;’ had composed
-some important works;<a name="FNanchor_766_766" id="FNanchor_766_766"></a><a href="#Footnote_766_766" class="fnanchor">[766]</a> and was one of those antique souls, it has
-been said, who always prefer the public good to their own interest.
-The loss of such a man was irreparable, but it was not final. The
-council sought for substitutes for these men; but they were forced to
-acknowledge that to find them was no easy matter. The first candidate
-who offered himself was rejected because he was a German. The second,
-Claude Viguier, beat one of his pupils so severely as to draw blood.
-The republican magistrates of 1538 placed submission to their arbitrary
-orders before the real interests of the schools and the people.<a name="FNanchor_767_767" id="FNanchor_767_767"></a><a href="#Footnote_767_767" class="fnanchor">[767]</a>
-Calvin seemed to regret the course taken by Saunier. He entreated Farel
-to do<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_469" id="Page_469">[469]</a></span> everything in his power to prevent division and confusion from
-extending, and to induce the brethren no longer to refuse the rites
-adopted by the council.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION OF CALVIN’S FRIENDS.</div>
-
-<p>When this matter was settled, the council undertook another campaign.
-Among the partisans of Calvin and of the Reformation were several
-eminent men whose submission was much desired. The severity which had
-just been displayed towards the learned might induce these citizens
-to yield to the conquerors. Two former syndics especially, Porral and
-Pertemps, looking more at the lamentable occurrences which had attended
-the government appointment of the supper than at the supper itself,
-had not yet been able to bring themselves to sanction blameworthy
-proceedings (the banishment of their well-beloved pastors) by taking
-part in the ceremonies condemned by their friends. They had, it is
-true, received the letter from Calvin which urged them ‘to have
-only a zeal for God moderated by his Spirit and ruled by his Word.’
-But when Christmas drew near, and the supper was to be given with
-unleavened bread, they had hesitated as to what they should do; and
-as they doubted, they had abstained. The council was not inclined to
-decide this case of conscience in an accommodating way. On January 9,
-1539, Porral having appeared and being asked by the council whether
-he would conform to the ordinances respecting the supper, made answer
-at first in a rather vague way; and on being requested to answer
-more distinctly, he said, without entering into the question of the
-ordinances, ‘If it please God, I am ready to take the supper, <i>after
-having examined myself</i>.’ Pertemps spoke to the same effect.<a name="FNanchor_768_768" id="FNanchor_768_768"></a><a href="#Footnote_768_768" class="fnanchor">[768]</a></p>
-
-<p>The friends of Calvin knew that the reformer was distressed at the
-disorders which prevailed in Geneva, and which reduced the town to
-the saddest state. ‘Nothing causes me more sorrow,’ he wrote to his
-friends, ‘than<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_470" id="Page_470">[470]</a></span> the quarrels and the debates which you have with the
-ministers who have succeeded us. There is hardly a hope of amelioration
-while altercation and discord exist. Turn away, then, your minds and
-your hearts from men, and cling solely to the Redeemer.’ Calvin did not
-approve the renunciation of the communion by his friends on the ground
-of its celebration with unleavened bread, and he gave them a serious
-admonition not to disturb the peace on this immaterial question.<a name="FNanchor_769_769" id="FNanchor_769_769"></a><a href="#Footnote_769_769" class="fnanchor">[769]</a></p>
-
-<p>The council did not stop here. There were still some principal citizens
-of whom they had a wish to be rid. Claude Savoye, formerly first
-syndic, who had shown so much love for Geneva and even so much heroism,
-was a friend of the reformers and had censured the council. He was put
-in prison, September 6, 1538, on merely frivolous charges. He refused
-to answer magistrates whom he regarded as his personal enemies. The
-council deliberated whether it should not cause torture to be applied
-to this great citizen. But honorable men revolted against this notion;
-and the council, having nothing against him but presumptions without
-any foundation, contented themselves with taking from him all his
-offices, depriving him of all his rights, and making the town his
-prison. Savoye escaped, went to Berne, and from that city announced to
-the syndics that he resigned the citizenship of Geneva. Jean Goulaz,
-who in 1532 had posted on the walls of the town <i>the great pardon
-of Jesus Christ</i> in opposition to the indulgences of the pope,<a name="FNanchor_770_770" id="FNanchor_770_770"></a><a href="#Footnote_770_770" class="fnanchor">[770]</a>
-informed the council that he likewise renounced the citizenship,
-requested them to release him from his oath, and withdrew. While the
-council were deliberating on his request, he felt it prudent to quit
-the territory. The council, receiving information of this,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_471" id="Page_471">[471]</a></span> ordered
-pursuit to be made. He was overtaken on the bridge of Arve and was
-sent to prison. Michel Rozet says with reference to these various
-prosecutions, ‘Those, in a word, who had banished the ministers,
-omitted no occasion of entirely dislodging their adherents.’<a name="FNanchor_771_771" id="FNanchor_771_771"></a><a href="#Footnote_771_771" class="fnanchor">[771]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SUPPRESSION OF DISORDERS.</div>
-
-<p>An improvement, however, had just been made in the government. On
-February 9, 1539, the general assembly of the people having to elect
-the syndics of the year, not one of the citizens who had played a
-part in the expulsion of Calvin and his friends was chosen. The new
-magistrates were taken from the moderate party, and one of them,
-Antoine Chiccand, was attached to the reformer. The less respectable
-class of the people did not seem to be aware of the change, and they
-celebrated the accession of the new magistrates after a strange
-fashion. It was the time of Carnival, Easter falling that year on April
-6; and although Geneva had no longer any wish for the religion of the
-papacy, this class of the inhabitants still kept up its festivals and
-its amusements. Their pastimes were numerous, burlesque, and even
-indecent. ‘There were mummeries, lewdness, indecent songs, dances, and
-blasphemies. Some went naked about the town with timbrels and pipes,’
-says a contemporary.<a name="FNanchor_772_772" id="FNanchor_772_772"></a><a href="#Footnote_772_772" class="fnanchor">[772]</a> Did these disorderly doings form part of
-the Roman Catholic reaction that was then attracting attention? We do
-not assert this. However it might be, the pastors complained to the
-council, and the latter ordered an inquiry, especially against those
-who went about the streets at night without their clothes. It appeared
-from the inquiry that ‘those who had done so were all young, and had
-intended nothing more than a freak of youthful folly.’ The council
-‘remonstrated’ with the delinquents; and some women who had ‘danced to
-the songs’ were put in prison for a day, and afterwards were severely
-censured by the syndic. Three<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_472" id="Page_472">[472]</a></span> days later the council issued a decree
-which enjoined the people ‘devoutly to listen to the Word of God on
-Sundays, and to govern themselves according to it; not to swear nor
-blaspheme, nor play for gold or silver;’ and forbade them ‘to go about
-the town after nine o’clock without candles, to dance at any dances
-except at weddings, to sing any indecent songs, to disguise themselves,
-or to indulge in masks or mummeries.’</p>
-
-<p>At the time when magistrates who were better disposed towards Calvin
-were called to the government of the republic, a door was opened on
-another side which revealed to the reformer a new world, Germany
-with her doctors and her princes. Calvin was living on the banks of
-the Rhine at the period when the emperor was convoking frequent and
-important assemblies, which were attended by the princes either in
-person or by their delegates, and in which they discussed the deepest
-questions of theology with as much eagerness as diplomatists in
-congress discuss the interests of their respective governments. From
-the year 1535 to 1539 Protestantism had been gaining in strength; it
-had made many conquests in North Germany, and appeared to be on the
-point of winning the decisive victory. The Catholics were beginning to
-lose heart, and the successive congresses at which they required the
-Protestants to come to terms with them might well lead one to call them
-a weakened army which desired only favorable conditions for lowering
-its flag. Calvin watched with his keen eye this astonishing process. He
-continually asserted in his letters that it was not the existence of
-one Church (that of Geneva), but of all Churches, that was at stake.
-There were moments when he thought that he had a glimpse of the triumph
-of the Gospel in Europe; at other times he was seized with great
-despondency. There was a conflict within him. His natural timidity led
-him to shrink from appearing in the Germanic assem<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_473" id="Page_473">[473]</a></span>blies; but his faith
-and his zeal for the kingdom of God made him long to take part in them.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONFERENCE AT FRANKFORT.</div>
-
-<p>Charles V., after making peace with Francis I., had convoked, at
-Frankfort, for the month of February 1539, a conference of evangelical
-and Roman Catholic theologians, who were to endeavor to find a basis
-of agreement. We have not to devote our attention to all the work done
-at the German assemblies which Calvin attended, but only to that which
-concerns him personally. Deputies from Strasburg went to Frankfort,
-but the young French doctor did not accompany them. He contented
-himself with earnestly commending to Bucer the cause of the persecuted
-Protestants. But shortly after, having received a letter from Bucer,
-informing him that he found it was impossible for him to do anything
-for his co-religionists, and hearing at the same time that Melanchthon
-was present at the conferences, his spiritual earnestness overcame
-the timidity of his nature. He was seized with a strong desire to go
-to Frankfort and to converse with the friend of Luther on religion
-and the affairs of the Church. He set out in great haste the next
-day. At Frankfort he met some of the most prominent characters of the
-Reformation. Here were the pious John Frederick, elector of Saxony;
-young Maurice of Saxony, who was one day to prove so formidable to
-Charles V.; the famous landgrave Philip of Hesse, the Duke of Luneburg,
-and many other princes, whose acquaintance could not be a matter of
-indifference to the young reformer. Several of these young princes were
-accompanied by a great number of knights and soldiers, and all appeared
-to be full of courage for the defence of the Gospel. Calvin, in long
-letters to Farel, gave an account of all that he saw and thought. He
-formed a most just conception of the Protestant question in Germany, of
-the disposition of the princes, of the policy of Charles V., and of the
-various matters under discussion. But one man was there whose society
-he coveted more<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_474" id="Page_474">[474]</a></span> than that of all the princes. Calvin’s sojourn at
-Frankfort is especially marked by the conversations which he had with
-Melanchthon ‘on many subjects.’<a name="FNanchor_773_773" id="FNanchor_773_773"></a><a href="#Footnote_773_773" class="fnanchor">[773]</a> Several of the most influential
-men of the Reformation, in Switzerland and in France, were not well
-informed as to the opinions of this celebrated doctor. Calvin wished
-to be able to bear testimony to them with certitude. The great idea of
-the French doctor was agreement between all evangelical Christians.
-He was convinced that it was necessary, not only for the sake of
-obedience to the commandments of Jesus Christ, but further to promote
-the triumph of the evangelical cause. He wished for union, not only of
-the various parties in Germany, but of Germany and Switzerland. Now
-Melanchthon appeared to him the fittest man to bring about agreement
-among the Protestants. No sooner had these two great doctors met and
-exchanged the most kindly greetings, than Calvin opened the question.
-He had communicated to Melanchthon some articles in which his view
-of the supper was set forth in a way to terminate dissension. ‘There
-is no room for controversy between you and me,’ said Melanchthon,
-immediately; ‘I accept your articles.’<a name="FNanchor_774_774" id="FNanchor_774_774"></a><a href="#Footnote_774_774" class="fnanchor">[774]</a> This was a great pleasure
-to Calvin. It was however soon disturbed. ‘But,’ continued the friend
-of Luther, ‘I must confess to you that we have some among us who
-demand something more material, and this so obstinately, not to say so
-despotically,<a name="FNanchor_775_775" id="FNanchor_775_775"></a><a href="#Footnote_775_775" class="fnanchor">[775]</a> that I have found myself for a long time exposed
-to danger because they know that I differ from them on this subject.
-I do not believe that a solid agreement is attainable. But I desire
-that we should abide by the present agreement, such as it is, until the
-Lord lead us by one way or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_475" id="Page_475">[475]</a></span> another into union in the truth.’ Calvin
-perfectly satisfied, hastened to write to Farel&mdash;‘Entertain no more any
-doubt about him, but consider him as holding altogether the same views
-as we do.’ Farel and Calvin found in Melanchthon an important ally.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN AND MELANCHTHON.</div>
-
-<p>There was another question on which Calvin desired to ascertain the
-opinion of Melanchthon; it was that of discipline. On this subject he
-was not fully satisfied. Hardly had he mentioned it when his companion
-began, like others, says Calvin, to lament its absence in the Church.
-‘Ah,’ said Calvin, ‘it is easier to mourn over the miserable state of
-the Church in this respect than to change it. And meanwhile how many
-examples are there which ought to animate us in seeking a remedy for
-this evil! Not long ago a good and learned man, who could not take on
-himself to tolerate vice, was driven from Ulm in disgrace, while his
-colleagues gave him the most honorable references. The news received
-from Augsburg is no better. Some day people will make a sport of
-deposing their pastors and sending them into exile.’ ‘We are in the
-midst of such a storm,’ said Melanchthon, ‘that we can do nothing
-better than give way for a short time to adverse winds.<a name="FNanchor_776_776" id="FNanchor_776_776"></a><a href="#Footnote_776_776" class="fnanchor">[776]</a> We may
-hope that when external foes give us more repose, we shall be able to
-apply ourselves to remedying the evils that are within.’</p>
-
-<p>These conversations of Calvin and Melanchthon possessed a great
-attraction for both of them. We can imagine how interesting was this
-exchange of views between two of the most distinguished minds of the
-age. Their speech was simple, profound, and natural. They listened
-well and replied well. Calvin spoke with great freedom, although
-without dogmatism. The ceremonies of worship in the Lutheran churches,
-the singing in Latin, the images and other things quite as much to
-be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_476" id="Page_476">[476]</a></span> censured, were among the subjects which he had at heart. ‘I must
-confess to you frankly,’ he said to Melanchthon, ‘that this superfluity
-of ceremonies pains me; it seems to me that the forms which you have
-kept are not far removed from Judaism.’<a name="FNanchor_777_777" id="FNanchor_777_777"></a><a href="#Footnote_777_777" class="fnanchor">[777]</a> Calvin having given
-his reasons, ‘I will not dispute with you on this subject,’ said
-Melanchthon; ‘I own that we have among us too many of these senseless,
-or at any rate certainly superfluous rites.<a name="FNanchor_778_778" id="FNanchor_778_778"></a><a href="#Footnote_778_778" class="fnanchor">[778]</a> But it was necessary
-to concede this to the canonists, who show themselves very obstinate
-with respect to it. For the rest, there is no place in Saxony which
-is less overloaded with them than Wittenberg, and even there much of
-this farrago will be thrown overboard. Luther disapproves just as much
-the ceremonies which he has been compelled to keep as he does your
-parsimony in regard to them.’ Calvin when relating this conversation
-to Farel adds, ‘Bucer cannot endure that for the sake of these paltry
-outward observances we should separate from Luther; and I too believe
-that they are not legitimate causes of division.’<a name="FNanchor_779_779" id="FNanchor_779_779"></a><a href="#Footnote_779_779" class="fnanchor">[779]</a> From all these
-conversations Calvin derived the conviction of the complete sincerity
-of Melanchthon, and this he was anxious to communicate to those who
-doubted it.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HENRY VIII. AND MELANCHTHON.</div>
-
-<p>Henry VIII. was at this time requesting that a new embassy should
-be sent to him, and that Melanchthon should be a member of it. The
-princes were not inclined to intrust the mission to this doctor, as
-they feared that he might, for want of firmness of character, make
-imprudent concessions to the king.<a name="FNanchor_780_780" id="FNanchor_780_780"></a><a href="#Footnote_780_780" class="fnanchor">[780]</a> Calvin opened his mind freely
-to Melanchthon on the subject. ‘I swear most<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_477" id="Page_477">[477]</a></span> solemnly to you,’ replied
-the latter, ‘that there is no ground for this fear.’ ‘I rely on him no
-less than on Bucer,’ wrote Calvin to Farel. ‘When the business is to
-treat with those who require to be treated with some indulgence, Bucer
-is animated with so much zeal for the propagation of the Gospel that,
-content with having obtained the most important things, he is perhaps
-sometimes rather too ready to give up those which he looks on as very
-subordinate, and which for all that have their weight.’ Further,
-Calvin’s opinion of Henry VIII. was formed, and he did not conceal
-it. ‘This prince,’ said he, ‘is scarcely half wise.<a name="FNanchor_781_781" id="FNanchor_781_781"></a><a href="#Footnote_781_781" class="fnanchor">[781]</a> He prohibits
-the marriage of priests and bishops, not only under the penalty of
-deprivation of their offices, but by severe punishments besides. He
-maintains the daily masses and the seven sacraments. He has thus a
-mutilated Gospel, half of it torn off, and a Church still full of many
-absurdities.<a name="FNanchor_782_782" id="FNanchor_782_782"></a><a href="#Footnote_782_782" class="fnanchor">[782]</a> He has recently published a new edict, by which he
-endeavors to keep the people from the reading of the Bible; and to
-show you that it is not mere thoughtlessness, but that he takes up the
-matter in earnest, he has lately had a good and wise man burnt because
-he denied the carnal presence of Christ in the bread.’<a name="FNanchor_783_783" id="FNanchor_783_783"></a><a href="#Footnote_783_783" class="fnanchor">[783]</a> Calvin
-afterwards says, ‘The worst of it is that the king tolerates nothing
-but what he has sanctioned with his own authority. Thus it will come
-to pass that Christ shall profit them nothing, except the king should
-be willing to permit him. The Lord will punish such arrogance by some
-notable chastisement.’<a name="FNanchor_784_784" id="FNanchor_784_784"></a><a href="#Footnote_784_784" class="fnanchor">[784]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was determined at Frankfort that another assembly should be held in
-the course of the summer. Melanchthon, soon after his arrival in that
-town, had seen in a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_478" id="Page_478">[478]</a></span> dream a large picture in which was represented the
-figure of Christ on the cross, and around him souls clothed in white.
-The electors of the empire, bearing the ensigns of their dignity, were
-approaching it in regular order. Next after them came an ass, covered
-with a linen cope and dragging after him with a rope the emperor and
-the pope, as if he were going to conduct them to that assembly of the
-blessed.<a name="FNanchor_785_785" id="FNanchor_785_785"></a><a href="#Footnote_785_785" class="fnanchor">[785]</a> ‘I think,’ said Myconius, who was then at Frankfort,
-‘that it is the Germanic ass which the emperor and the pope have
-hitherto ridden so hard and miserably treated.’ The good Melanchthon
-was very much taken up with the thought of leading to Christ all the
-German princes, and even the emperor and the pope; and it appears that
-in his great humility he had represented himself in his dream under the
-figure of an ass. Luther in his reply thinks decidedly that it was a
-two-footed ass.<a name="FNanchor_786_786" id="FNanchor_786_786"></a><a href="#Footnote_786_786" class="fnanchor">[786]</a> Be that as it may, the assembly at Frankfort does
-not appear to have led anybody to the crucified, and especially neither
-pope nor emperor. It would have taken more than one rope to draw them
-thither. Calvin did not wait for the close of the colloquy to return to
-Strasburg.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER XVI.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">CALVIN’S RELATIONS WITH SADOLETO.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">(1539.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MEETING OF PRELATES AT LYONS.</div>
-
-<p>Rome, meanwhile, was not indifferent to what was taking place at
-Geneva. Between the papacy and the Reformation there were action and
-reaction, which kept both in constant agitation. When once the Catholic
-reaction began, not content with mere resistance, it as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_479" id="Page_479">[479]</a></span>sumed the
-offensive. The partisans of the pope, still pretty numerous in Geneva,
-informed the Bishop de la Baume of what occurred in the town; and he,
-who like all dispossessed princes was always expecting to be restored
-to his episcopal see, the sweets of which he remembered better than the
-bitterness, communicated with the pope. The latter gave to La Baume
-the cardinal’s hat, in the hope that this dignity might be a bait to
-draw the Genevese to place themselves once more under the crook of
-their bishop. Then he invited the prelates who were nearest neighbors
-to Geneva to take in hand the cause of their colleague. The Bishops of
-Lyons, Besançon, Lausanne, Vienne, Turin, Langres and Carpentras, met
-the Bishop of Geneva in the first of these towns. ‘The flock,’ they
-said, ‘being now deprived of its pastors, men so eminent, we must seize
-the opportunity to rescue it from the Reformation.’<a name="FNanchor_787_787" id="FNanchor_787_787"></a><a href="#Footnote_787_787" class="fnanchor">[787]</a> Many Genevese
-Catholics had emigrated to Lyons, and they spared no pains to bring
-about the restoration of the prelate. Pierre de la Baume asked of his
-colleagues ‘the recovery of his diocese.’ The Cardinal of Tournon,
-the notorious persecutor of the Vaudois, and the introducer of the
-Jesuits into France, who was at this time archbishop of Lyons, was
-president of the meeting. He had thus an opportunity of satisfying his
-inextinguishable passion against the <i>Calvinists</i>. Jean Philippe, chief
-author of the banishment of Calvin, met with Tournon in the church
-at Lyons, and carried on intrigues with him.<a name="FNanchor_788_788" id="FNanchor_788_788"></a><a href="#Footnote_788_788" class="fnanchor">[788]</a> The affair might
-perhaps have had a violent ending, but that a man was there present of
-a different stamp from the archbishop. This was Cardinal Sadoleto, who,
-as bishop Carpentras, a town in Dauphiné bordering on Savoy, seemed by
-his neighboring position bound to concern<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_480" id="Page_480">[480]</a></span> himself more particularly
-with Geneva. He was connected with Bembo, secretary to Leo X., was a
-great lover of the classics, of philosophy and the arts, and was a man
-of great eloquence, says Beza, but used it for extinguishing the true
-light.<a name="FNanchor_789_789" id="FNanchor_789_789"></a><a href="#Footnote_789_789" class="fnanchor">[789]</a> He very much regretted that the Reformation appeared to be
-taking precedence of the Renaissance. He was, however, of more liberal
-mind than adherents of the pope usually were. He loved Melanchthon. He
-thought that it was not right to address the Genevese in the imperious
-tone of a master, with dogmatic arguments of the school, or with the
-intolerance of inquisitors, but rather in a polite style. Sadoleto was
-therefore instructed to write a letter to the Genevese in which he was
-to invite them mildly to return to the bosom of the Church. That the
-contrivances and efforts of the pope, of the Bishop de la Baume, of the
-Cardinal of Tournon and his colleagues, should issue only in a letter,
-was rather a feeble conclusion.</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Parturiunt montes, nascetur ridiculus mus.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LETTER OF SADOLETO TO GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>But they probably saw that they were powerless to do more. The
-cardinal-bishop hoped to gain over the Genevese ‘by wheedling them with
-fine words to turn them away from Jesus Christ,’ says a contemporary,
-‘and by blaming the ministers of whom God had made use for reforming
-the town.’<a name="FNanchor_790_790" id="FNanchor_790_790"></a><a href="#Footnote_790_790" class="fnanchor">[790]</a> On March 26 his messenger, Jean Durand, of Carpentras,
-was admitted into the hall of the council, and delivered the missive
-addressed by his bishop to his <i>well-beloved brethren</i> the syndics,
-councils, and citizens of Geneva. There was not a word about the
-conference at Lyons. ‘It has seemed good to the Holy Spirit and to me
-to write to you. The reason is that while at Carpentras I have heard
-reports concern<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_481" id="Page_481">[481]</a></span>ing you which partly make me sad and partly give me
-hope.’ Knowing how seductive flattery is, he writes the most beautiful
-eulogy of Geneva. ‘I love the noble aspect of your town, the order and
-form of your republic, the excellence of the citizens, and, above all,
-the exquisite humanity which you display towards all foreign people
-and nations.’ But by the side of this flattering picture he hastens
-to place a portrait not so pleasing of the reformers. ‘Certain crafty
-men, enemies of Christian union and peace, have cast into your town
-the seeds of discord. I hear on one side the weeping, sighing, and
-groaning of our holy Church. On the other side I perceive that these
-innovators are not only pestilential to souls, but also pernicious in
-a high degree to public and private affairs.’ Next he himself makes an
-almost evangelical profession. He exalts the Word of God which, says
-he, ‘does not entangle minds in difficult processes of reasoning; but,
-a heavenly affection of the heart coming to its aid, offers itself with
-clearness to our understandings.’ He exalts the work of Christ, ‘who
-was willing to be our salvation, by suffering death in the flesh and
-afterwards resuming an immortal life.’ He even exalts justification by
-faith, <i>faith alone</i>, which all Roman controversialists curse. ‘This
-everlasting salvation comes to us,’ said he, ‘by faith alone in God
-and in Jesus Christ. When I say <i>by faith alone</i>, I do not mean that
-charity and the duty of a Christian are dispensed with.’ Sadoleto was
-undoubtedly sincere in these professions. He belonged, as is known,
-to a small body of men feebly inclined towards the Gospel, who were
-at that time supported by the papacy in the hope that they would be
-the means of bringing back the Protestants. But he must have known
-well that the doctrine of the reformers, far from dispensing with duty
-and charity, asserted them, made them possible, and at the same time
-necessary.</p>
-
-<p>Having thus gained his hearers, as he thought, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_482" id="Page_482">[482]</a></span> cardinal-bishop
-began the contest. ‘The loss of the soul,’ said he, ‘being the greatest
-ill possible to a man, our duty is, to the utmost of our power, to
-take care. Amidst the waves of our life we are in need of some means
-of escape from striking on the rocks and losing the vessel. This is
-what the Catholic Church has provided for fifteen hundred years; while
-these crafty men only began their innovations against the perpetual
-authority of the Church five-and-twenty years ago.’ Then follows a fine
-rhetorical burst which lacks nothing but truth and solidity. ‘Here is
-the point,’ said he; ‘here is the parting of the ways, the one road
-leading unto life, the other unto everlasting death. Every man arrives
-by his own road before the judgment-seat of the supreme Judge, Catholic
-and Protestant alike, there to have his cause investigated.’</p>
-
-<p>The Catholics get off wonderfully, but when the turn of the
-Evangelicals comes it is quite otherwise with them. Sadoleto takes good
-care not to let the simple faithful ones appear, and brings before
-the tribunal only ‘one of the promoters of these divisions.’ He does
-not name either Luther or Calvin, but it is evident that it is one of
-them that he brings on the scene, probably the latter. Having leave to
-speak, the reformer begins thus: ‘O sovereign God! when I considered
-how all but universally corrupt are the morals of ecclesiastics, I was
-justly moved to anger against them; and when I thought also how much
-time I had spent in the study of theology and of human science, and
-that nevertheless I had not attained in the Church the rank which my
-labors deserved, while other men, my inferiors, were raised to honors
-and to benefices, I induced the greater part of the people to despise
-the decrees of the Church. I asserted that the bishops of Rome had
-falsely usurped the title of vicars of Christ; and having by this
-reputation of learning and wisdom obtained renown among the nations, I
-caused many seditions and divisions in the Church.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_483" id="Page_483">[483]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONCLUSION OF THE LETTER.</div>
-
-<p>Sadoleto having made the reformer speak in this fashion, again
-addresses the men of Geneva, and says to them, ‘How will it turn
-out, then, brethren, whom I wish to be united with me?’ The result
-of this double appearance is inevitable, and the promoter of all
-this evil, ‘taking his stand upon his works, holding in contempt the
-general assemblies of bishops, dismembering the one spouse of Christ,
-and tearing to pieces the Lord’s robe, can only weep for ever over
-his misery, gnashing his teeth even at himself.’ Consequently, the
-cardinal-bishop exhorts his brethren of Geneva, after having removed
-all the mists of error, to abide in union with our holy mother
-Church.<a name="FNanchor_791_791" id="FNanchor_791_791"></a><a href="#Footnote_791_791" class="fnanchor">[791]</a></p>
-
-<p>The reasoning of Sadoleto failed in its basis. He had confounded the
-Reformation of the sixteenth century with the so-called reforms of the
-preceding centuries. Those attempts, numerous enough, aimed at the
-morals of the clergy and the abuses of the Church without attacking
-the doctrine, and they miscarried. But the true Reformation directed
-its efforts against the false doctrines of Rome, in order to put the
-doctrine of the Gospel in its place. ‘It took the bull by the horns,’
-as Luther says, and had him down. Liberal Catholics have imagined, that
-if from the first such a course as Sadoleto’s had been adopted, the
-course of the Reformation would have been entirely different.<a name="FNanchor_792_792" id="FNanchor_792_792"></a><a href="#Footnote_792_792" class="fnanchor">[792]</a> But
-they are mistaken, as the Bishop of Carpentras was, who, aiming his
-blows at an enemy in the air, hit nothing but the air.</p>
-
-<p>The council having heard the letter, very gladly accepted the
-compliments paid to Geneva, sincerely thanked the cardinal’s messenger,
-and charged him to say that a full reply should be sent in due
-course. This was necessary, for the partisans of the pope in Geneva
-praised the cardinal’s letter to the skies, and eagerly circulated
-it in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_484" id="Page_484">[484]</a></span> all directions. But there was no one able to answer it. The
-pastors established by the government were not strong enough to
-venture a struggle with Sadoleto. Morand himself, who was requested
-by the council to undertake it, was incompetent. All those who in any
-degree adhered to the Reformation were in a state of alarm, for they
-understood that silence in this state of things would inevitably be a
-great calamity to Geneva.<a name="FNanchor_793_793" id="FNanchor_793_793"></a><a href="#Footnote_793_793" class="fnanchor">[793]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was on March 26 that the letter in which Sadoleto urged the Genevese
-to forsake the Reformation had been delivered to the council, and on
-the 27th this body resolved to reply to it in due time and place. On
-the 28th several citizens appeared before the council; one of them,
-François Chamois, demanding on their behalf that the confession of
-faith of the Reformation which had been sworn at St. Peter’s, July 29,
-1537, should be withdrawn from the possession of the former official
-secretary, as contrary to their liberties; and that they themselves
-should be released from the oath which they had taken to that
-confession.<a name="FNanchor_794_794" id="FNanchor_794_794"></a><a href="#Footnote_794_794" class="fnanchor">[794]</a> There is so intimate and evident a relation between
-the proposal of Sadoleto and this proceeding of the citizens, the one
-so punctually followed upon the other, that it is very difficult not
-to suppose that the letter of the bishop had much to do in promoting
-the requisition of Chamois and his friends. The audience given by the
-council to the deputy of a cardinal, and the proposal of which he was
-the bearer, were a matter so considerable and of such exciting interest
-that the rumor of it could not fail to spread immediately in this town,
-where people so habitually used to say, ‘What is the news? What is
-talked of? What is going on?’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">IMMEDIATE CONSEQUENCES.</div>
-
-<p>Among the citizens who accompanied Chamois there<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_485" id="Page_485">[485]</a></span> might be some who
-did not belong to the Catholic party, and who merely took advantage
-of the opportunity for getting rid of a confession of faith which
-was burdensome to them. But it is not to be wondered at that some
-Roman writers have looked on the demand of Chamois as the consequence
-of the letter of Sadoleto. Michael Rozet, the son of Claude, says,
-not undesignedly, in his Chronicles, that it was one day after the
-reception at Geneva of the cardinal’s despatch, that the citizens
-<i>protested</i> against the articles. He even adds, ‘There was warning
-from neighbors of a body of armed men in preparation by the enemy,
-and that these had an understanding with a party in the town.’ This
-measure was not unsuccessful. Claude Rozet had received the oaths of
-the citizens on July 29, and in his hands the original of the famous
-articles was still deposited. The council gave him orders to deliver
-them up. However grave a step this might be, it cannot be said that
-the faith was given up with the articles of faith. Many had never held
-this faith, and those who had held it, held it still. Nevertheless, the
-surrender of the fundamental document of the evangelical reformation
-was certainly an important step towards Rome.<a name="FNanchor_795_795" id="FNanchor_795_795"></a><a href="#Footnote_795_795" class="fnanchor">[795]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was soon apparent what was to be thought of the <i>Christian charity,
-and the affection touched with double pity and compassion</i>, of which
-Sadoleto had given assurance. In the very month which followed the
-delivery of his letter, an eminent Genevese, Curtet, castellan of
-Chaumont on the Mount du Vuache, went to Annecy, which was not far
-distant; and during his stay, April 17, in his hostelry, talked with
-the country people of God and his Gospel.<a name="FNanchor_796_796" id="FNanchor_796_796"></a><a href="#Footnote_796_796" class="fnanchor">[796]</a> Among those present was
-Montchenu, who, annoyed at having failed in his scheme for giving up
-Geneva to Francis I., continued to feel much<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_486" id="Page_486">[486]</a></span> bitterness about it; and,
-quite as much out of pique as from hatred of the Reformation, denounced
-the Genevese citizen and inflamed the clergy against him. Curtet was
-seized and burnt alive.</p>
-
-<p>Another Genevese, Jean Lambert, brother of the councillor, had been
-for some time a prisoner in Savoy, on a like charge. A week after the
-execution of Curtet, the public place of Chambery was filled with
-such a crowd as always runs after the terrible spectacle of a violent
-death. Lambert was brought there about three o’clock. He was a ruddy
-and strong young man, and they led him up and down to show him to
-the people. ‘This is one of the bigots of Geneva,’ people said as he
-passed, with other speeches of the like kind. He was taken to the front
-of the castle, where a pile was erected. The provost wanted him to make
-some confession, but Lambert did not open his mouth. ‘Slit his tongue
-if he will not speak,’ barbarously cried the enraged provost to the
-executioner. The priests who stood round their victim would fain have
-compelled him to recite the <i>Ave Maria</i>, but the martyr refused to do
-it. Then addressing the Father who is in heaven, he uttered aloud the
-Lord’s prayer. This provoked the priests and the monks, who cried to
-the spectators, ‘Do not pray for this cursed dog, for he is damned to
-all the devils.’ ‘Lambert died,’ says one of the narratives, ‘for his
-faith in God and without any trial.’ If the words of Sadoleto were
-tender, the deeds of his fellow religionists were harsh.<a name="FNanchor_797_797" id="FNanchor_797_797"></a><a href="#Footnote_797_797" class="fnanchor">[797]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN’S REPLY TO SADOLETO.</div>
-
-<p>The letter of the Bishop of Carpentras could not remain unknown to
-Calvin; in fact it was communicated to him in April by Sulzer, a pastor
-of Berne. The reformer read it, and his first impulse was to consider
-whether it was worth while to reply to it. But apprehending the evil
-which the letter might bring on Geneva, ‘forgetting all the wrongs that
-he had received,’<a name="FNanchor_798_798" id="FNanchor_798_798"></a><a href="#Footnote_798_798" class="fnanchor">[798]</a> and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_487" id="Page_487">[487]</a></span> yielding to the entreaties of his Strasburg
-friends, he undertook the task. ‘It will occupy me for six days,’ he
-wrote to Farel. Calvin’s letter bears date September 1, 1539.<a name="FNanchor_799_799" id="FNanchor_799_799"></a><a href="#Footnote_799_799" class="fnanchor">[799]</a> It
-is an important document, both for the light which it throws on the
-character and the work of Calvin, and because it is necessary to know
-in what manner the blow then struck by Rome at the Reformation was
-parried. This letter, we may say, was the mighty voice which led back
-Geneva to the true Gospel.<a name="FNanchor_800_800" id="FNanchor_800_800"></a><a href="#Footnote_800_800" class="fnanchor">[800]</a> Two feelings are conspicuous in it with
-regard to Sadoleto. Calvin, in addressing one of the most distinguished
-and most enlightened men in the Catholic Church, will speak to him with
-respect and even with praise, but at the same time he will not hide
-from him the indignation aroused by his attacks.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thy surpassing learning,’ says he in beginning his letter, ‘thine
-admirable elegance of speech, have deservedly caused thee to be held in
-high esteem and admiration by the true votaries of polite literature,
-and it is exceedingly painful to me to be obliged by this complaint to
-sully thy fair renown. I should never have undertaken the task if I had
-not been compelled to do so.... No one can suppose that I could have
-abandoned the cause without great cowardice and contempt of my ministry.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thou hast very recently written a letter to the council and people of
-Geneva, and having no wish to display harshness towards those of whom
-thou hadst need in order to gain thy cause, thou hast attempted by soft
-words to circumvent them. Next, thou hast come up impetuously, and
-so to speak, at full speed to discharge thy force against those who,
-according to thy saying, have involved that poor town in trouble by
-their sophis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_488" id="Page_488">[488]</a></span>tries. I would have thee know, Sadoleto, that I am one of
-those against whom thou speakest; and although I am at the present time
-relieved of the administration of the Genevese Church, this does not
-prevent my cherishing towards it a fatherly love.</p>
-
-<p>‘But for thyself, Sadoleto, a foreigner, who hast hitherto had no
-acquaintance at all with the people of Geneva, thou professest on
-a sudden to feel for them singular love and goodwill, of which,
-nevertheless, no fruit ever appeared. Thou who didst serve thine
-apprenticeship at the Court of Rome, that shop of all artifice and
-cunning, who wert not only brought up as it were in the arms of Pope
-Clement, but what is more, made a cardinal, thou hast certainly many
-spots which render thee suspected. The duty of pastors is to lead
-obedient souls straight to Christ; but thy chief aim is to deliver them
-over to the power of the pope.</p>
-
-<p>‘With a view to cast suspicion on us thou taxest us, unjustly (for thou
-well knowest the contrary), with having wished only to gratify our
-ambition and avarice. Certain it is that if I had paid regard to my
-personal advantage, I should never have separated from your faction.
-And who would dare to cast such charges at Farel, who, born of a
-noble house, had no need to ask assistance from others? Was not our
-shortest way of attaining to wealth and honors to accept from the first
-the conditions which you have offered us? For what price would your
-pope then have purchased the silence of many, and for how much would
-he still purchase it to-day? Did we not require that, after having
-assigned to the ministers so much as was fitting for their condition,
-the wealth of the Church, swallowed up by those gulfs, should be
-distributed to the poor as in the primitive Church? Our only thought
-has been the extension of the kingdom of God by means of our littleness
-and lowliness; and to attempt to persuade men of the contrary is a
-thing most unbecoming to Sadoleto, a man of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_489" id="Page_489">[489]</a></span> such high reputation for
-knowledge, prudence, and seriousness.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHRISTIAN ANTIQUITY.</div>
-
-<p>‘The men of Geneva, extricating themselves from the slough of error in
-which they were sunk, have returned to the doctrine of the Gospel, and
-this thou callest abandoning the truth of God! They have retired from
-papal subjection and tyranny in order to have a better ecclesiastical
-government, and this, sayest thou, is a real separation from the
-Church! Surely, Sadoleto, I shall stop thee on the way. Where is, on
-your side, the Word of God, which is the mark of the true Church? If
-a man belongs to God’s army he must be prepared for the battle. See,
-the enemy is quite near; he approaches, he fights, and he is indeed an
-enemy so well-conditioned that no earthly power can resist him. What
-armor will this poor Christian be able to put on, to save him from
-being overwhelmed? It is the Word of God. The soul deprived of the Word
-of God is delivered over to the devil, quite defenceless, to be slain.
-The first attempt of the enemy, therefore, will be to take from the
-combatant the sword of Jesus Christ. The pope, like the “illuminés,”
-arrogantly boasts of possessing the Spirit. But it is to insult the
-Holy Spirit to separate him from the Word.</p>
-
-<p>‘We are more nearly in agreement with antiquity than you our opponents,
-as thou knowest, Sadoleto, and we ask for nothing else than to see
-restored that ancient face of the Church which has been torn to pieces
-and almost destroyed by the pope and his faction. And, not to speak
-of the condition of the Church as constituted by the apostles (which,
-however, we are bound to accept), consider what it was among the Greeks
-in the days of Chrysostom and Basil, and among the Latins in the days
-of Cyprian, Ambrose, and Augustin, and afterwards contemplate the
-ruins which are all that now remain to you. Thou wilt find as much
-difference between the two as between the Church as it flourished under
-David,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_490" id="Page_490">[490]</a></span> and the Church as fallen into all kinds of superstitions under
-Zedekiah. Wilt thou call that man an enemy of antiquity, who, full
-of zeal for ancient piety, longs to restore in their first splendor
-the things which are now corrupted? With what right are we accused of
-having subverted the ancient discipline, by the very party that has
-abolished them?</p>
-
-<p>‘Dost thou not recollect that at the time when our people began to
-appear, nothing was taught in the schools but pure sophistries, so
-tangled and twisted that scholastic theology might well be called a
-kind of secret magic? There were no sermons from which foolish old
-women did not learn more dreams than they could relate in a month by
-their own fireside. The first portion was devoted to obscure questions
-of the schools, to excite the wonder of the poor people, and the
-second portion to merry tales or amusing speculations, to rouse their
-hearts to mirth. But no sooner had our preachers raised their banner
-than the shadows were dispersed, and your preachers, taught by them
-and compelled by shame and the murmurs of the people, were obliged to
-follow their example, although they have still traces of these old
-follies.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thou touchest on justification by faith. But this article, which
-stands supreme in our religion, has been effaced by you from the memory
-of men. Thou allegest that we take no account of good works. If thou
-lookest into my catechism, at the first word thou wilt be silent as
-if overcome. We deny, it is true, that they are of any avail in the
-justification of man, not even so much as a hair, for the Scripture
-gives us no hope except in the goodness of God alone. But while we deny
-the virtue of works in the justification of man, we attribute worth
-to them in the life of the just, for Christ came to create <i>a people
-zealous of good works</i>.’</p>
-
-<p>We pass over the beautiful passages in which Calvin speaks of the
-supper, confession, the invocation of saints,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_491" id="Page_491">[491]</a></span> purgatory, the ministry,
-and the Church, and we come to the moment at which he remembers that
-Sadoleto had cited him and his brethren ‘as criminals before the
-judgment-seat of God.’ He accepts that summons.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN’S DEFENCE.</div>
-
-<p>‘We prick up our ears,’ said he, ‘at this sound of the trumpet which
-the very ashes of the dead will hear in the depths of their graves.’
-And then, not only in his own name but in that of all the reformers,
-Calvin says to God:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>‘I have ever appealed to thy tribunal, Lord, from the accusations
-with which I have been harassed on the earth, and it is with the same
-confidence that I now appear before thee, knowing that in thy judgments
-truth prevails. They have accused me of very grievous crimes and of
-heresy. But in the first place, what have I done? Seeing that, with
-no regard to thy Word, they abused the common people, and made a mock
-at them by I know not what sort of drivelling, I dared to contradict
-their constitutions. Thy Christ was indeed adored as God, but he was
-virtually without honor; for deprived of his virtue and of his power,
-he was lost sight of in the crowd of saints, as if merely one of the
-common mass. There were none who rested in his righteousness alone; and
-if any one, enjoying thy loving kindness and the righteousness of thy
-Son, conceived a sure hope of salvation, this was, they said, rash
-presumption and foolish arrogance. Then, O Lord, thou didst set before
-me thy Word, like a torch, to make me know how pernicious these things
-are; and thou hast touched my heart, to the end that I may hold them in
-abhorrence.</p>
-
-<p>‘They have accused me of schism. But is that man to be reputed a
-traitor who, when he sees the soldiers quitting the ranks, forgetting
-their captain, the battle, and the oath which they have taken,
-scattered, wandering to and fro, raises the standard, calls them back,
-and sets them again in order? To recall them from such wanderings I
-have not given to the wind a strange flag,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_492" id="Page_492">[492]</a></span> but that noble standard
-which it is necessary we should follow, if we would be enrolled in the
-number of thy people. But those whose duty it was to keep the soldiers
-in good order and who have on the contrary cast them into error, have
-laid hands on me, and the conflict has been so furious as to break up
-union. But on which side is the fault? It is for thee, Lord, now to say
-and to decide.</p>
-
-<p>‘If I had desired to maintain peace with those who boast of being
-the foremost in the Church, I could have purchased it only by the
-renunciation of the truth. I have felt it my duty to risk all the
-dangers of the world rather than stoop to a compact so abominable.
-But I do not think that by being at war with those great ones I am at
-variance with thy Church. Thy Son, and thine apostles, had foretold
-that there would be ravening wolves even amongst those who gave
-themselves out for pastors. Was I bound then to give them my hand? The
-prophets were not schismatics by reason of their contending against the
-priests. For my part, confirmed by their example, I have so persisted
-in my course that neither their threats nor their denunciations have in
-the least degree amazed me.</p>
-
-<p>‘Commotions have followed; but as they were not caused by me, they
-ought not to be imputed to me. Thou knowest well, Lord, that I have had
-no other object in view except this, that by thy Word all controversy
-might be terminated. Thou knowest that I have not objected, even at the
-peril of my life, that peace should be restored in the Church. But what
-did our adversaries do? Did they not run off suddenly and furiously to
-the fire, to the gallows, to the sword? Did they not stir up people of
-all ranks to the same rage?... Hence it has come to pass that such a
-war has been kindled. And whatever may be thought, I am freed from all
-fear, since we are before thy judgment-seat where justice and truth
-meet together.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_493" id="Page_493">[493]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HIS FIRST FAITH.</div>
-
-<p>At this point Calvin narrates his conversion. It is an important part
-of his defence, and we cannot omit it. He still addresses the Supreme
-Judge:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>‘As for me,<a name="FNanchor_801_801" id="FNanchor_801_801"></a><a href="#Footnote_801_801" class="fnanchor">[801]</a> Lord, I confessed the Christian faith as I had learnt
-it from my youth.</p>
-
-<p>‘At that time there were but few people to whom was committed the
-pursuit of that divine and secret philosophy, and it was with them
-that the oracles had to be sought. But they had not instructed me
-well respecting either the adoration of thy divinity, or an assured
-hope of salvation, or the obligation of a Christian life. To obtain
-thy mercy they showed no other means than making satisfaction for our
-sins, and blotting out thy remembrance of them by our good works. They
-said that thou wast a rigorous judge, severely avenging iniquity; they
-pointed out how terrible thy look must be, and commanded us to address
-the saints, to the end that through their intercession thou mightest
-be made propitious to us. But when I had done all these things, and
-although to some extent I relied on them, I was very far from having a
-quiet and trustful conscience. Every time that I descended into myself,
-or lifted up my heart to thee, a horror so extreme seized upon me that
-there were neither purifications nor satisfactions that could heal me.
-The more closely I considered my case, the sharper became the stings
-with which my conscience was tormented: there was neither solace nor
-comfort left me.</p>
-
-<p>‘As nothing better was offered me, I pursued the course which I had
-begun, when there arose an entirely different form of doctrine, not
-intended to turn us away<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_494" id="Page_494">[494]</a></span> from the Christian profession, but to trace
-it back to its real source, and to restore it in its purity, cleansed
-from all defilement. Offended with this novelty, I would not listen
-to it; and I confess that at the outset I did courageously resist it.
-One thing especially kept me from believing those people; this was
-reverence for the Church.</p>
-
-<p>‘But after I had consented sometimes to be instructed, I perceived that
-the fear of seeing the majesty of the Church lessened was idle. These
-people showed that there was a wide difference between forsaking the
-Church and correcting the vices with which she was defiled; and that
-if they spoke freely against the Pope of Rome, held to be the vicar of
-Christ and head of the Church, they did so because these titles were
-only idle terrors which ought not to dazzle the eyes of the faithful;
-that the pope had risen to such magnificence only when ignorance
-oppressed the world like deep sleep; that it was by his own authority
-and sole will that he had elected himself, and that we were under no
-obligation to endure the tyranny with which he oppressed the nations,
-if we desired that the kingdom of Christ should remain in its fulness
-amongst us; that when this principality was erected, the genuine order
-of the Church was wholly lost, the keys (ecclesiastical order) wickedly
-falsified, Christian liberty suppressed, and the kingdom of Christ
-totally overthrown.</p>
-
-<p>‘When I began to discover in what a slough of errors I had wallowed
-and with how many stains I was disgraced, desperately alarmed and
-distracted at the sight of the misery into which I had fallen, and
-by the knowledge of the eternal death which was at hand, I condemned
-with tears and groans my former way of life, and esteemed nothing more
-needful for me than to betake myself to thine. What then is left for
-me to do, for me poor and miserable, but to offer to thee, as all my
-vindication, a humble supplication not to impute to me<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_495" id="Page_495">[495]</a></span> the so horrible
-forsaking and estrangement from thy Word, from which thou hast once
-rescued me by thy marvellous kindness?’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE REAL SCHISMATICS.</div>
-
-<p>Having finished his pleading before the Judge, Calvin returns to
-Sadoleto and says: ‘Now, if it seem good to thee, compare this address
-with that which thou hast put into the mouth of thy man, whose defence
-turns only on this hinge, to wit, that he constantly kept the religion
-which had been handed down to him by his forefathers and predecessors.
-His salvation is in great peril, without a shadow of doubt; for on the
-same ground Jews, Turks, and Saracens would escape the judgment of God.
-The tribunal will not then be prepared to accept the authority of men,
-but to maintain the truth of God. Your doctors will not then have a
-stage at hand for the sale, without risk, of their imitation gems, and
-for the abuse of consciences by their trumpery and inventions. They
-will remain what they are, and they will fall by the judgment of God,
-which depends not on popular favor, but on his unchangeable justice.</p>
-
-<p>‘Although thou treatest us with too little humanity in the whole of thy
-letter, it is nevertheless in the last clause, in the plainest terms,
-that thou imputest to us the most enormous of all crimes, to wit, <i>that
-we disperse and tear to pieces the spouse of Jesus Christ</i>. What! would
-the spouse of Jesus Christ be torn in pieces by those who desire to
-present her as a chaste virgin to Christ, and who, finding her polluted
-with many stains, recall her to her plighted faith? Was not the purity
-of the Church destroyed by strange doctrines, disgraced by innumerable
-superstitions, tainted by the worship of images? Indeed, because we did
-not endure that the sacred resting place and nuptial chamber of Christ
-should be thus defiled by you, we are accused of having dismembered
-his spouse. It is you that have been guilty of this laceration, and
-not with regard to the Church only, but with regard to Jesus Christ
-himself, whom you have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_496" id="Page_496">[496]</a></span> miserably cut in pieces. Where is the wholeness
-of Christ, when the glory of his righteousness, of his holiness, of his
-wisdom, is transferred to others?</p>
-
-<p>‘I acknowledge that since the Gospel has appeared anew, great conflicts
-have been occasioned. But it is not at our door that the guilt of this
-is to be laid. We ask for a peace with which the kingdom of Christ
-shall flourish; but you judge that all that is gained for Christ is
-lost to you. Pray the Lord, Sadoleto, that thou and thy people may once
-for all understand that there is no other bond in the church but Christ
-our Lord, who withdraws us from the dissipations of the world to place
-us in the society of his body, to the end that by his only Word and by
-his Spirit, we may be united in one heart and one thought!</p>
-
-<p>‘Strasburg, the 1st day of September, 1539.’</p>
-
-<p>This letter found its way wherever the great question of the age was
-discussed, and made a deep impression. There were in it an impulse, a
-strength, a freedom, and a life which people were not accustomed to
-find in the writings of the Roman doctors. Luther greatly rejoiced in
-it, and soon after its publication sent a ‘respectful’ greeting to
-Calvin. At the same time, struck by the Romish presumption of Sadoleto,
-he added, with a touch of malice, ‘I wish that Sadoleto could believe
-that God is the Creator of men even beyond the borders of Italy.’<a name="FNanchor_802_802" id="FNanchor_802_802"></a><a href="#Footnote_802_802" class="fnanchor">[802]</a>
-He expressed his joy that God raised up men like Calvin, and, far from
-looking on him as an antagonist, he saw in him a doctor who would
-continue what he had himself begun against Antichrist, and with God’s
-help would complete it.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EFFECT OF THE REPLY AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>But it was especially at Geneva that Calvin’s letter made a deep
-impression. The respect which he had shown to Sadoleto prepossessed
-people in his favor; and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_497" id="Page_497">[497]</a></span> the eloquence of his discourse, that gift
-of the soul which he possessed, made him master of men’s minds. In
-his thought and in his expressions there was a close correspondence
-with the disposition of a large number of his readers. Moreover, it
-was impossible to read the two letters without seeing that the young
-evangelical doctor had beaten the Roman cardinal. And then, was not the
-cause in behalf of which Calvin had given battle that of Geneva? Was
-not the defeat of Sadoleto, and thereby also that of his constituents,
-the pope and the conference of Lyons, the greatest service that could
-be rendered to the republic? And finally had not this man whom they had
-driven away spoken of the town which had expelled him with fatherly
-love? Did he not say in his letter, ‘I cannot divert my attention from
-the Church of Geneva; I cannot love it less nor hold it less dear than
-my own soul.... Consider what folly it would be not to lay to heart the
-ruin of those for whose protection I am bound to watch day and night.’</p>
-
-<p>Sadoleto could not conceal from himself the force of the blow which he
-had received, nor did he venture to reply. The general himself being
-beaten, the staff dispersed. There was nothing more said about the
-conference of Lyons, and the Bishop de la Baume was not long before he
-disappeared from the scenes of this world. At the same time that Calvin
-replied to Sadoleto, he wrote to Neuchâtel, Lausanne, and Geneva. He
-called the inhabitants of the latter town to repentance towards God, to
-patient bearing with the wicked, and to peace with their pastors; and
-above all he exhorted them to call upon God.<a name="FNanchor_803_803" id="FNanchor_803_803"></a><a href="#Footnote_803_803" class="fnanchor">[803]</a> Geneva was confirmed
-in her love for a cause which had been so well defended against the
-attacks of one of the most distinguished orators of the age, and the
-gates of the city, lately closed against the reformer, began to open
-again.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_498" id="Page_498">[498]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin had at this time to do with another Catholic doctor of much
-less worth than Sadoleto, Caroli. This man is not worth the trouble of
-dwelling long on anything that concerns him. As he had not succeeded
-in gaining the good graces of the pope or of the Cardinal Tournon,
-he made one more change and turned anew towards the reformers. Farel
-received him with much kindness, believed in his promises and made
-peace with him. Caroli came to Strasburg. Bucer, as kind by nature
-as Farel, nevertheless requested Calvin to make known all the faults
-of the adventurer. This the reformer declined to do, believing that
-it would have no good result; but he invited the haughty doctor to
-confess cordially and sincerely that he had sinned. Instead of this a
-writing was handed to Calvin in which Caroli said, ‘that he left to
-the judgment of the Lord the offences which had been committed against
-himself, and which had induced him to quit the Evangelical Church.’
-The reformer was indignant. ‘This stirred my bile so much,’ said he,
-‘that I discharged it with bitterness. I declared that I would sooner
-die than sign such a paper as that.’ He yielded, however, a little
-to his friends, and said that he would consider the matter with more
-care before giving a decisive answer. Hardly had he returned to his
-own house when he was seized with an extraordinary paroxysm. ‘I could
-find no consolation,’ said he to Farel, ‘but in sighs and tears; and
-what afflicted me most was the circumstance that you were the cause
-of all this mischief. You ought not to have received him anew into
-our communion until he solemnly confessed his offence and declared
-that he repented of it. But now that you have received him, prevent
-at least your people from insulting him.’<a name="FNanchor_804_804" id="FNanchor_804_804"></a><a href="#Footnote_804_804" class="fnanchor">[804]</a> Ere long, however,
-Calvin’s friends at Strasburg and Farel himself acknowledged that
-they had been too indulgent. Caroli, finding<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_499" id="Page_499">[499]</a></span> that the churches of
-Neuchâtel and Strasburg refused to comply with the requests that he
-addressed to them, retired to Metz. From that place he wrote to Calvin
-a letter in which he offered to be reconciled with him if he would get
-a benefice for him. He seemed to wish to overawe him by reproaches and
-idle bravado. Calvin asked him how it came to pass that he had made a
-boast before the adversaries of Christ at Metz that he was prepared to
-convict of heresy the reformer and his friends. He added that he was
-not able to procure for him the church which he asked for, in the first
-place because he had none at his disposal, and further because he could
-not do so while they were not in agreement about doctrines. ‘Turn you
-seriously to the Lord,’ he said to him, ‘and then you will be able to
-return to us with that friendship and brotherly concord which Farel and
-I are prepared, in that case, to show you.’ Caroli did not adopt this
-friendly council. He returned to Rome, and died in a hospital there of
-want and, it is said, of foul diseases.<a name="FNanchor_805_805" id="FNanchor_805_805"></a><a href="#Footnote_805_805" class="fnanchor">[805]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XVII.</h2></div>
-
-<p class="sm center p-left">CATHOLICISM AT GENEVA.&mdash;MARRIAGE OF CALVIN AT STRASBURG.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left smcap sm">(End of 1539&ndash;1540.)</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RESULTS OF CALVIN’S LETTER.</div>
-
-<p>The results of Calvin’s letter to Cardinal Sadoleto, and perhaps to
-some extent of his relations with Caroli, were not slow to appear.
-Henceforward the Catholics had little hope of regaining the ascendency
-at Geneva. Some of them had previously dreamed of this. ‘At this
-time,’ says the chronicler Rozet, ‘the priests <i>lifted up the horn</i>,
-talking about the mass.’<a name="FNanchor_806_806" id="FNanchor_806_806"></a><a href="#Footnote_806_806" class="fnanchor">[806]</a> It was believed that some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_500" id="Page_500">[500]</a></span> priests who
-had retired to the convents of Savoy had received orders to return
-into the territory of the republic, for the purpose of re-establishing
-the Romish worship. It may have been so; but all that appears from the
-statement of Rozet is that certain priests, who had dwelt either in the
-town or in the country, began at this time to defy the prohibitions of
-the council and to say mass. The magistrate resolved to oppose this
-recrudescence of Catholicism, and it is probable that this was partly
-in consequence of Calvin’s letter. The priests who were really taking
-active steps were doubtless few in number; but the council adopted
-a general measure, and ordered that all the Catholic ecclesiastics
-who were on their territory should appear before them on December 23
-(1539). It was further ordered that all those who alleged that the
-mass is good, and should not be able to maintain this assertion after
-conference with the pastors, should be sent away to the place where
-mass is sung (<i>là où on la chante</i>). ‘The tranquillity and security of
-the state,’ says an historian, ‘did not permit them to tolerate any
-other religion than that which had been established by the evangelical
-Reformation.’<a name="FNanchor_807_807" id="FNanchor_807_807"></a><a href="#Footnote_807_807" class="fnanchor">[807]</a> Thirty-three priests made their appearance, in
-great alarm, at the Hôtel de Ville, and they did little honor to their
-doctrine. The thought that if they declared that the mass was good they
-would be banished, doubtless contributed to disincline them to it.
-Each of them was interrogated, and the following are their answers.
-‘Thomas Genoud!’ cried the secretary. The priest replied, ‘<i>The mass is
-wicked</i>.’ Eight of his associates made the same answer pure and simple.
-Others declared themselves likewise against this act of worship, but
-added a few words. Ami Messier being called, said, ‘I wish to live and
-die with Messieurs’<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_501" id="Page_501">[501]</a></span> (members of the council); ‘I have not studied, but
-I believe the mass to be wicked.’ Jean Cottand: ‘It is of no value.’
-Guillaume Vellès: ‘I never believed in it.’ Don Propositi (Prevost):
-‘It is good if Messieurs think it good; bad if Messieurs think it bad.
-For the rest I am not a clerk, and finally ... it is wicked.’ Higher
-respect for the magistrate it was not possible to show. Don Amici
-and his brother: ‘At the good pleasure of Messieurs.’ The spirit of
-accommodation could go no further. The priest Ramel: ‘It is wicked;
-otherwise I should not have married.’ Claude de Lolme: ‘Wicked.’ Jean
-Hugonier: ‘I should not have married if I believed it good.’ Guillaume
-Marchand and Maurice de la Rue: ‘The mass is nothing worth, nor those
-who wish to uphold it.’ Louis Bernard and Th. Collier: ‘Wicked.’ Some
-of them emphasized their condemnation more strongly. Jacques l’Hoste:
-‘The devil take it, for that’s all it’s fit for.’ Jean Louis Nicolas:
-‘It is abominable.’ Jean Sorel: ‘It is the abhorrence of all the world,
-and wicked.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE PRIESTS BEFORE THE COUNCIL.</div>
-
-<p>Others were not so flippant, nor so ready to denounce their former
-faith without embarrassment or constraint. Guillaume Maniglier said,
-‘Neither good nor bad.’ Rodet Villanel said, ‘On my conscience, I could
-not swear; but I esteem it as Messieurs do.’ Jean Volland: ‘I am an
-inexperienced person, and ignorant of the matter. Since the learned are
-at variance about it, I can not judge.’ Thomas Vandel: ‘I do not know.’
-Pierre Bothy: ‘Alas! I could not say whether it is good or wicked; but
-I have not said mass since it was prohibited.’ Antoine Alliod made his
-reservations, and they were not bad: ‘I renounce it, saving the <i>Pater</i>
-and the <i>Credo</i>, the Epistle and the Gospel.’ Etienne de la Maisonneuve
-alone uttered a Christian sentiment: ‘The mass must be wicked, for
-Jesus Christ has made the true redemption.’ Only one of them entirely
-declined to con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_502" id="Page_502">[502]</a></span>demn the mass, and still he did it prudently. Pierre
-Papaz said, ‘I never called it wicked.’<a name="FNanchor_808_808" id="FNanchor_808_808"></a><a href="#Footnote_808_808" class="fnanchor">[808]</a></p>
-
-<p>These were strange declarations, and the council, who expected to find
-the clerks refractory, were extraordinarily surprised to hear them. It
-was a complete breakdown. Compare all these priests, without faith and
-without principle, with the reformers, men so noble and so courageous,
-and it is easy to see to which side victory ought to belong. There was
-barely one of the clerks, Papaz, who could be suspected of having a
-wish to re-establish Catholicism. It is true that ten of those who had
-been summoned did not present themselves; probably those who had been
-the cause of the summons by the council. These men doubtless quitted
-the territory without delay, and without waiting for an order to do so.</p>
-
-<p>There was, however, one man who exhibited a character rather more
-honorable, but he was a layman. On the very benches of the council, of
-which he was a member, sat at that time ‘a papist of great influence
-and reputation,’ says Rozet. This was the former syndic Balard. The
-president, wishing to show no respect of persons, invited him likewise
-to declare whether the mass was good or bad. ‘If I, Balard,’ replied
-he, ‘knew certainly that the mass was good or bad, I should need no
-pressing to say so, but as I do not know with certainty I ought not to
-judge rashly, and you ought not to advise me to do so. I am resolved
-heartily to believe all the articles of our faith, just as the town
-believes them. I wish my body to be united with the body of the
-city,<a name="FNanchor_809_809" id="FNanchor_809_809"></a><a href="#Footnote_809_809" class="fnanchor">[809]</a> as becomes a loyal citizen. You ask me whether the mass is
-good or bad; I reply that I believe<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_503" id="Page_503">[503]</a></span> in the Holy Spirit, in the holy
-universal Church, and as they believe it I believe it.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EX-SYNDIC BALARD.</div>
-
-<p>This answer, which Balard gave in writing, did not satisfy the council,
-which requested him again to say if the mass was bad, yes or no. ‘I
-mean to live according to the gospel,’ replied he, ‘and to believe
-in the Holy Spirit and the Church universal, and I cannot answer as
-to what I do not know.’ This reply caused a great commotion. The
-councillors were shocked and indignant that one of their members
-should obstinately refuse to make the declaration which some priests
-themselves had made, and should doubt of that which the council
-asserted. It was resolved that Balard should be expelled the council,
-and that he and his family should be compelled to leave the town and
-its territories in ten days. The usher carried this decree to him.
-Balard appeared the next day before the Council of the Two Hundred, the
-decree needing confirmation by this body. The sentence had produced
-some effect on him. He said, ‘Since it is the wish of the two councils
-that I should say that the mass is bad, I say that the mass is bad.’
-Then, as if to satisfy his conscience, he added, ‘And as for me, I am
-worse still to judge rashly of that which I do not know. So I cry to
-God for mercy, and I renounce Satan and all his works.’ At bottom the
-second speech of Balard was a retractation of the first, since he added
-that he did not know what he had just asserted. The reply was somewhat
-ambiguous. But who could hear without emotion the cry ‘God have mercy
-on me!’ which the honest syndic immediately uttered?</p>
-
-<p>The next day (December 26) Balard had to appear once more. He now laid
-down his arms, and said simply and categorically that the mass was bad.
-After this he resumed his seat in the council. He did therefore as the
-priests had done, only after having several times repeated previously
-that he could not assert what he did now assert. The excuse offered for
-him is doubt<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_504" id="Page_504">[504]</a></span>less that political interests demanded this declaration.
-But the truth is too precious to be made a sacrifice to political
-interests.</p>
-
-<p>If the cause of Catholicism was declining, that of the reformer was
-rising. In the course of March 1540 his friends wrote to him that he
-might now return to Geneva. But he trembled at the thought of again
-embarking on that troubled sea. ‘I had rather die a hundred times
-elsewhere,’ he wrote to Farel, ‘than place myself on that cross on
-which I should have to bear death a thousand times a day.<a name="FNanchor_810_810" id="FNanchor_810_810"></a><a href="#Footnote_810_810" class="fnanchor">[810]</a> Oppose
-with all your power the projects of those who will strive to get me
-back to Geneva.’ Two months later, Viret, who ardently desired to see
-Calvin resume a task of which he felt the importance, put forward a
-pretext to draw him back to Geneva, and, expressing anxiety about the
-health of his friend, who was really suffering from severe pains in the
-head, conjured him to come to Geneva, as the air of the place would be
-likely to strengthen him. ‘I could not refrain from smiling,’ Calvin
-replied to him, ‘on reading that passage of thy letter. Thou wishest me
-to go to Geneva for the sake of being in good health; why not rather
-say, Hang thyself on the gallows? Better perish once for all than
-be again in that place where I should be put to the torture without
-ceasing.<a name="FNanchor_811_811" id="FNanchor_811_811"></a><a href="#Footnote_811_811" class="fnanchor">[811]</a> If thou wishest well to me, my dear Viret, pray do not
-make this proposal again.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CALVIN’S HOUSEHOLD TROUBLES.</div>
-
-<p>It must be told that at this period Calvin was taken up with a quite
-different matter. He was now nine-and-twenty, and was thinking of
-marriage. His home left much to be wished for. His servant was a
-foolish, hotheaded woman, quick to utter insults, and sparing neither<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_505" id="Page_505">[505]</a></span>
-her master nor those who came to see him. One day she spoke to Calvin’s
-brother with so much impertinence that Anthony, unable to endure it,
-went quietly out of the house, without anger; but declared that he
-would not enter it again so long as that woman was in it. Calvin was
-much grieved about it, and the servant-mistress, observing him, said,
-‘Well, I’m going too,’ and quitted him.<a name="FNanchor_812_812" id="FNanchor_812_812"></a><a href="#Footnote_812_812" class="fnanchor">[812]</a> It has been supposed
-that Calvin’s nature drew him rather towards relations of friendship
-with the brethren, the learned, and colleagues such as Farel, Viret,
-Grynæus, Beza, and others, than to married life. If he had contended
-against celibacy, he had not been in a hurry to escape from it; nay,
-he even made a boast of it, saying, ‘People will not charge me with
-having assailed Rome, as the Greeks besieged Troy, for the sake of a
-woman.’ Doubtless, in wishing to marry he had above all before him
-these words of the first pages of the Bible: <i>It is not good for the
-man to be alone; I will make him an help meet for him</i>. He wished,
-as he said himself, to be freed from the petty worries of life, to
-the end that he might be able the better to apply himself to the
-service of the Lord.<a name="FNanchor_813_813" id="FNanchor_813_813"></a><a href="#Footnote_813_813" class="fnanchor">[813]</a> His friends seem to have been at this time
-busying themselves more than he did about finding him a partner, and
-their object seems to have been to rid him thus of the irksomeness of
-housekeeping, for which he had little relish. But all that we know of
-Calvin’s sentiments, and of his life with his wife, makes it plain
-that he saw in marriage something far higher than the management of
-a household. ‘It is a thing against nature,’ he said, ‘that anyone
-should not love his wife, for God has ordained marriage in order that
-of two there may be made one, one person; a result which, certainly,
-no other alliance can bring about. When Moses says that a man shall
-leave father and mother and cleave unto<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_506" id="Page_506">[506]</a></span> his wife, he shows that a man
-ought to prefer marriage to every other union, as being the holiest of
-all.’<a name="FNanchor_814_814" id="FNanchor_814_814"></a><a href="#Footnote_814_814" class="fnanchor">[814]</a> It has been said that Calvin made a <i>mariage de raison</i>.
-This seems to me doubtful, and every thing indicates at least that when
-once married he had a genuine affection for his wife. There was in him
-a lofty intellect, a sublime genius, but also that love of kindred,
-those affections of the heart, which complete the great man.</p>
-
-<p>As early as February 1539, Calvin’s friends at Strasburg wished him to
-marry. He wrote himself to Farel that the lady would arrive shortly
-after Easter, and expressed a wish to see him present to bless the
-union. This marriage did not take place. Could it be because Calvin did
-not find in that unknown lady the qualities which he sought for? This
-appears probable from the circumstance that two or three months later
-the ardent and energetic Farel, still unmarried though much older than
-his friend, having made him another overture, the young doctor stated
-to him what virtues he wished to find in a wife. ‘I am not,’ said he,
-‘one of that mad kind of lovers who, when once they are smitten with
-the beauty of a woman, are ready at the same time to dote foolishly
-on her faults.<a name="FNanchor_815_815" id="FNanchor_815_815"></a><a href="#Footnote_815_815" class="fnanchor">[815]</a> The only beauty which charms me in a woman is
-chastity, modesty, submission, economy, patience, and the inclination
-to be careful for the health of her husband. If then thou thinkest that
-she of whom thou speakest possesses these qualities, follow up the
-matter; but if thou dost not think so, say no more of it.’ In fact,
-nothing more was said of it. Farel had not been fortunate.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MARRIAGE PROJECTS.</div>
-
-<p>Among the connections of Calvin at Strasburg there was a German
-patrician or noble, a very pious man, who felt the warmest affection
-for Calvin and recognized him as a great man. The thought occurred to
-him of marry<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_507" id="Page_507">[507]</a></span>ing Calvin to his sister; and his wife, who likewise had
-the highest opinion of the reformer, supported her husband with all
-her influence. The young lady, Calvin said himself, was above him in
-rank, and few men would have rejected so flattering a proposal. But the
-rich dower did not allure the reformer, poor as he was. It was indeed
-the very brilliancy of the match that made him hesitate. The young
-maiden, who was probably not pious like her brother, was more struck
-with Calvin’s mean appearance than with his high qualities, and was by
-no means eager to yield to her brother’s wishes. Calvin perceived this.
-He was afraid that the noble maiden would not easily forget her rank
-and her education. He was also very sensitive on another point. The
-wealthy young lady did not understand French. In this circumstance he
-saw a way of escape without offence to the brother and sister-in-law,
-and he told her brother, who appeared inclined to press him unduly
-in the matter, that he required above all that the young lady should
-undertake to learn the French language. She asked for time to consider
-of it. The scheme failed, and Calvin, anxious to put an end to the
-solicitations of the brother, thought of another person who was highly
-spoken of, but whose qualifications seem not to have answered to her
-high reputation. Calvin certainly wished to marry, but it must be with
-a Christian woman. He thought of it frequently. During one of the
-journeys which he made into Germany on religious affairs, sitting one
-day at table with a few friends, one of whom was Melanchthon, the young
-French doctor was dreamy and absent. ‘Our theologian,’ said the friend
-of Luther, ‘is evidently thinking of marrying.’<a name="FNanchor_816_816" id="FNanchor_816_816"></a><a href="#Footnote_816_816" class="fnanchor">[816]</a> The difficulty
-that he experienced in finding such a wife as he wished for speaks in
-his favor, and shows how much he thought of moral qualities. He was,
-however, saddened and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_508" id="Page_508">[508]</a></span> distressed about it. He questioned with himself
-whether it would not be better to give up all thought of marrying. This
-man, to whom it is the fashion to attribute a heart so dry, so hard,
-shows us by his very sufferings, which were soon succeeded by great
-joy, what wealth of true feeling and of tender affection lay in his
-heart. But it was precisely at the time when he nearly despaired that
-he found what he was longing for.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">IDELETTE DE BURE.</div>
-
-<p>There was at that time at Strasburg a pious, grave, and virtuous woman,
-living in retirement, esteemed by all who knew her, and particularly
-by Bucer; a most choice woman, says Theodore Beza.<a name="FNanchor_817_817" id="FNanchor_817_817"></a><a href="#Footnote_817_817" class="fnanchor">[817]</a> She came from
-Liége and her name was Idelette de Bure. Lambert de Bure, probably one
-of her kinsfolk, had been banished from Liége in 1533, with six other
-citizens, because they professed the Gospel.<a name="FNanchor_818_818" id="FNanchor_818_818"></a><a href="#Footnote_818_818" class="fnanchor">[818]</a> It is known that
-Liége was among those cities of the Netherlands in which the awakening
-had been most remarkable. Idelette was a widow. Her husband, Jean
-Storder, had been amongst the number of those who called themselves
-Spirituals. Bucer, it appears, had introduced Calvin to the family, in
-the hope, doubtless, of enlightening Storder. Calvin had held private
-conversations with him, and the Belgian had been converted to the true
-Gospel by the ministry of the reformer. Idelette had probably also
-been converted at the same period. The like change was wrought in
-many of their fellow-religionists. ‘He had the happiness of bringing
-to the faith <i>a very large number who were directed to him from all
-quarters</i>,’<a name="FNanchor_819_819" id="FNanchor_819_819"></a><a href="#Footnote_819_819" class="fnanchor">[819]</a> and amongst others an ex-abbé named Paul Volse, to
-whom Erasmus had dedicated, in 1518, his <i>Chevalier Chrétien</i>, and who
-was a minister at Strasburg. Idelette paid to her children all the
-attention of the tenderest mother, and at the same time administered
-consolation to those who were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_509" id="Page_509">[509]</a></span> in affliction. Calvin had observed
-in her a deep-seated faith, an affection full of devotedness, and a
-Christian courage which enabled her to face all the perils to which the
-confession of Jesus Christ at that time exposed her. This distinguished
-woman, as Theodore Beza calls her, was exactly such a one as Calvin
-wanted. Unfortunately there was one thing which was wanting to her, as
-also to Calvin&mdash;good health. But the soul of Idelette was prospering;
-and the reformer asked for her hand.</p>
-
-<p>The nuptials were celebrated about the end of August 1540, with a
-certain solemnity. Calvin’s friends, and they were many, testified
-their sympathy with him. Some deputies even came from Neuchâtel to
-attend the marriage. The friends of the bridegroom in France likewise
-took part on the occasion. ‘The tidings of thy marriage,’ wrote one
-of his old fellow students at the university of Bourges, ‘was very
-pleasant to us. As thou hast found according to thy wish an upright
-and faithful wife, endowed with the virtues to which thou attachest so
-much value, we hope that this union will be a source of happiness to
-thee.’ It was so. From the beginning of his married life Calvin felt
-happy in having a faithful companion who served the Lord with him, who
-loved her husband, and sought to make life peaceful and sweet to him.
-The happiness which Calvin enjoyed at this time Idelette gave him to
-the last. He prized ever more and more highly the treasure which God
-had intrusted to him. He called Idelette ‘the excellent companion of my
-life,<a name="FNanchor_820_820" id="FNanchor_820_820"></a><a href="#Footnote_820_820" class="fnanchor">[820]</a> the ever-faithful assistant of my ministry.’ ‘Never,’ adds
-he, ‘did she throw the least hindrance in my way.’ Her greatness of
-soul filled him with admiration.<a name="FNanchor_821_821" id="FNanchor_821_821"></a><a href="#Footnote_821_821" class="fnanchor">[821]</a> He understood well that saying
-of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_510" id="Page_510">[510]</a></span> the Bible, that a wise woman is a crown to her husband, and that
-<i>whoso findeth a wife findeth a good thing and obtaineth favor of the
-Lord</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Catherine von Bora and Idelette de Bure, the wives of the two great
-reformers, eminent women, whose surnames are nearly alike, were not
-alike in person or in character. There was also a marked difference in
-the way in which their husbands spoke of them. Catherine is frequently
-mentioned in Luther’s letters to his friends, often, it is true, with
-a touch of archness. Sometimes he calls her <i>Herr Kathe</i>. Calvin, on
-the contrary, seldom speaks of Idelette. We may say indeed that Calvin
-in his letters, as in his life, was always swayed by one sovereign
-thought, to which all others had to yield: the work of God, the glory
-of Jesus Christ, this was the aim of his life. All that concerned his
-mere personal existence and his domestic circumstances was eclipsed
-by Jesus Christ, that sun of righteousness which he delighted to
-contemplate and exalt. There is however another explanation of the
-fact. What Calvin most highly prized in Idelette was ‘the <i>hidden man</i>
-of the heart, the incorruptibility of a meek and quiet spirit,’ her
-modesty. ‘Nothing is more becoming to women than a meek and peaceful
-spirit,’ he said; ‘we know what kind of creature a bold and obstinate
-woman is, who, from pride, vanity, and wantonness, is fond of showing
-herself off. Happy is the woman whose style of dress is modest, who
-does not go gadding about the streets, but keeps the house because of
-her love to her husband and her children.’ Calvin being happy, and
-feeling respect for the modesty and humility that he found in Idelette,
-no more thought of speaking of her in his letters than of seeing her
-gadding about the streets.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ASSEMBLY AT HAGENAU.</div>
-
-<p>Happy both in this Christian union and in the sphere of action which
-opened before him at Strasburg and in Germany, Calvin thought less
-than ever of returning to Geneva. In fact his intercourse with Germany
-became<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_511" id="Page_511">[511]</a></span> more frequent. In June 1540, in accordance with the decision
-come to at Frankfort, a new assembly was held at Hagenau in Alsace,
-at which the doctors of the two parties were to seek a good basis of
-agreement. The Protestant princes, summoned too late, were not present,
-but their envoys and theologians came. Calvin went, ‘by way of rest,’
-he says, as if for relaxation. He was rejoiced to see the Protestant
-doctors ‘thoroughly united together.’ They held several consultations
-among themselves on the way to establish discipline in the Church. This
-was doubtless at Calvin’s instigation. ‘This will be,’ said he, ‘the
-most weighty subject for our consideration.’ As Luther, Melanchthon,
-and other doctors were absent as well as the princes, nothing was
-done; ‘but each one promised to exert himself to the end that at some
-meeting attention should be paid to it.’ Cruciger, a colleague of
-Luther and Melanchthon, who was present at Hagenau, was astonished
-at the knowledge and activity of Calvin. In fact, nothing that
-concerned the evangelical cause escaped him. He perceived distinctly
-the contrivances of politicians. ‘Our adversaries,’ he said, ‘wish
-to extend their league and to weaken ours, but God will avert that
-misfortune. Our friends seek the enlargement of the kingdom of Christ,
-and will not give way. Some Catholics desire nothing but war, and the
-pope has caused 300,000 ducats to be offered to begin it. The emperor,’
-he thinks, ‘would like nothing better than to crush the forces of
-Germany, in order to subdue it with greater ease. But on the one side
-the emperor is so involved that he dare not undertake a war, and on the
-other all the electors wish to have things quietly settled.’ If Calvin
-were not particularly pleased with the pope, he was pleased with the
-archbishops. The following passage is striking enough for quotation:
-‘The Archbishops of Mayence and Treves love peace and the liberties
-of the country, and they think that they would be lost if the emperor
-had subdued us.’ This shows in Calvin<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_512" id="Page_512">[512]</a></span> a fair temper, a man free from
-prejudice.<a name="FNanchor_822_822" id="FNanchor_822_822"></a><a href="#Footnote_822_822" class="fnanchor">[822]</a> ‘The Archbishop of Cologne is not among the worst,’
-says he, ‘for he knows that the Church ought to be reformed, and sees
-clearly that we are superior in respect of truth.’</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><span class="smaller">CHAPTER XVIII.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">GENEVA.&mdash;DISSENSION AND SEVERITY.</span><br />
-
-<span class="sm">(1540.)</span></h2></div>
-
-<p>At the same time that Calvin’s reputation was rising in other
-countries, the judgment formed at Geneva of the men who had compelled
-him to quit the town was daily becoming more unfavorable, and ere long
-opinion was altogether opposed to them. ‘The time was come,’ says
-Theodore Beza, ‘when the Lord had determined to have pity on the Church
-of Geneva.’<a name="FNanchor_823_823" id="FNanchor_823_823"></a><a href="#Footnote_823_823" class="fnanchor">[823]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BERNE AND GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>When, in 1536, the Bernese had repulsed the troops of Savoy and
-insured the independence of Geneva, an arrangement was effected
-between these two states respecting five or six villages belonging to
-the priory of St. Victor, of which Bonivard had been the last prior.
-Geneva had claimed the sovereignty, and had conceded to Berne the
-<i>rights of ancient custom</i> which had belonged to Savoy. The treaty
-not being sufficiently clear, the Bernese claimed prerogatives which
-the Genevese disputed with them. Consequently, on March 6, 1539, the
-council of Geneva sent to Berne Ami de Chapeaurouge, Jean Lullin and
-Monathon, all three of them opponents of Calvin. The first two had
-indeed been syndics in 1538, and as such had taken the lead in the
-banishment of the reformers. They were to settle the matters in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_513" id="Page_513">[513]</a></span>
-dispute, but ‘without infringing on the franchises of the town or on
-the treaty of 1536.’ These delegates signed at Berne, on March 30, a
-treaty comprising twenty-one articles, ‘the most part of which,’ says
-the syndic Gautier, who is moderate in his account, ‘were humiliating
-to the Genevese, and deprived them of their rights over those
-territories.’ The first article of the treaty said in fact, ‘To us of
-Berne the chief lordship, that is to say, <i>the sovereignty</i> over men
-and goods, is entirely to belong.’ The three Genevese were far less
-clever as politicians than the Bernese, and we prefer to attribute
-their error to their inferior diplomatic skill rather than to treason.
-On their return to Geneva they merely reported to the council ‘that
-they had done their work well (<i>avaient bien besogné</i>), and that the
-contract entered into would shortly be brought to Berne.’ It was
-strange that these plenipotentiaries not only should not present the
-treaty, but still more should not state <i>viva voce</i> what it contained.
-‘As they had trifled with the orders which they had received,’ says
-Gautier, ‘they were afraid of being completely ruined if they gave
-an exact account of their management, and they hoped by delaying the
-matter to obliterate the recollections of what might be criminal
-in their proceedings.’<a name="FNanchor_824_824" id="FNanchor_824_824"></a><a href="#Footnote_824_824" class="fnanchor">[824]</a> They reckoned among the members of the
-council many of their kinsfolk and friends. Their word was taken. These
-three councillors, the signatories of the articles, were consequently
-called the <i>Articulants</i>; and the people, adopting a word almost the
-same in sound and more familiar to them, called them the <i>Artichauts</i>
-(Artichokes). This designation was extended to the whole party opposed
-to Calvin, which was at this time in the ascendency.<a name="FNanchor_825_825" id="FNanchor_825_825"></a><a href="#Footnote_825_825" class="fnanchor">[825]</a></p>
-
-<p>About two months later a Bernese <i>bailli</i> (De Thiez) having caused a
-man belonging to the estates of St.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_514" id="Page_514">[514]</a></span> Victor to be put to the torture,
-the council of Geneva complained of it, and the <i>bailli</i> immediately
-justified himself by appealing from them to the treaty concluded
-at Berne. The Genevese magistrates, who were not acquainted with
-it, sent Monathon to procure it. He brought it back, but it was in
-German! The document was returned, in order to be translated into
-French; and when the articles were at last read in the council many
-murmured, and said that most of those points were contrary to the
-rights and the prerogatives of the town. The three deputies justified
-themselves by asserting that this document was not the one which they
-had signed. This statement was credited. The council declared that it
-did not accept the paper, and decreed that the three <i>articulants</i>
-should return to Berne to demand explanations. But in vain did the
-two councils implore and even command Lullin to go; he declared that
-he would sooner quit the town than consent to be a delegate to Berne.
-He had private reasons for not having a mind to this mission. Three
-other notables were associated with De Chapeaurouge and Monathon. The
-two <i>articulants</i> represented to the Bernese that they had not heard
-the articles couched in such terms. But the Bernese replied that it
-was the genuine treaty, and that they would have the council of Geneva
-cited before judges charged to investigate the difficulties existing
-between the two towns, in order to get it condemned to sign and seal
-the treaty. Lambert, one of the deputies who had accompanied Monathon
-and De Chapeaurouge to Berne, heard, in a conversation with some
-people of the town, that at the time of drawing them up, Jean Lullin
-had consented to the articles in German, and had got them passed by
-his colleagues without telling them in French what they contained.
-From this one must infer that Jean Lullin, the only one of the three
-who knew German, remained responsible. The other two, however, still
-lay under the imputation, it must be confessed, of incred<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_515" id="Page_515">[515]</a></span>ible
-thoughtlessness. On April 6 the deputies made their report to the
-council.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">QUARREL ABOUT THE TREATY.</div>
-
-<p>The Bernese, sure of their case, continued to enforce their rights of
-sovereignty, and took pleasure in annoying the Genevese in various
-ways. They even carried their ill-will to the length of cruelty.
-Two murderers, subjects of St. Victor, having been condemned by the
-Genevese magistrates to be beheaded, the Bernese <i>bailli</i> substituted
-the rack, and sent to Geneva the executioner’s bill to be paid.
-Discontent with the government party was increasing from day to day.
-People said that the treaty made at Berne was an act of treason. Was
-it possible that after having ruined religion by expelling Farel and
-Calvin, the same party should ruin the state as well, by sacrificing
-its most precious rights? Some went farther still. Bonnet, a member of
-the Two Hundred, exclaimed, ‘The council mean to deliver up the town to
-the lords of Berne.’ For this rash speech he was put in prison.<a name="FNanchor_826_826" id="FNanchor_826_826"></a><a href="#Footnote_826_826" class="fnanchor">[826]</a>
-But it served to increase the prevailing irritation. Many members of
-the Two Hundred, among whom was Claude Bonna, declared to that council
-that they would never allow the articles drawn up at Berne to receive
-the seal of the republic. The matter at stake was the maintenance of
-the honor of Geneva, her pre-eminence and the justice of her cause,
-perhaps of her very existence. The friends of Calvin declared that the
-powerful town of Berne should not trample their country under foot. The
-opposition to the government had become so strong that, in the sitting
-of August 25, all the members of the Two Hundred cried unanimously, ‘We
-will not submit to these articles, considering that they are opposed to
-our liberties, our franchises, and our good customs.’<a name="FNanchor_827_827" id="FNanchor_827_827"></a><a href="#Footnote_827_827" class="fnanchor">[827]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Bernese, annoyed and irritated by the constant<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_516" id="Page_516">[516]</a></span> refusals of Geneva,
-announced at the beginning of January 1540 that, having an authentic
-document, they summoned their allies of Geneva to Lausanne, for the
-29th of the month, in order that the cause might be decided by judges,
-two from each town. Geneva, on the 21st, named De la Rive and Gerbel
-to go to Lausanne with five assistants. On the 25th the general
-council rejected the treaty, prohibited the deputies from accepting
-a judicial decision, and ordered them to say to the Bernese that the
-people <i>would set fire to the city</i> rather than accept the articles.
-Matters got worse and worse. Berne was inflexible. On the 26th, at nine
-o’clock in the evening, a Genevese, Béguin, arrived at full speed from
-Lausanne with important despatches. The general council, assembled on
-the following day, was greatly excited by them. They caused the three
-<i>articulants</i> to be arrested, and Béguin was instructed to inform the
-Bernese. But the latter commanded their judges to proceed, and the
-Genevese were condemned for contumacy to seal the treaty and to pay
-the costs. The gravity of the situation was at length understood at
-Geneva. The very day, January 27, on which the judgment was delivered
-at Lausanne, the general council, suddenly convoked by the tones of the
-great bell at one o’clock in the morning, had decreed that the deputies
-should sit as judges. But when this news arrived sentence was already
-given. They had dispensed with the Genevese.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">INDIGNATION AT GENEVA.</div>
-
-<p>Great was the consternation at Geneva. On Sunday, February 1, it was
-resolved to close all dissension at home by a general reconciliation,
-in token of which the citizens took each other by the hand.
-Chapeaurouge, Lullin, and Monathon were set at liberty on giving bail,
-and Jean Philippe was named captain-general. This internal peace,
-brought about by the war with which they were menaced from without,
-was solemnized by a procession of the people to the sound of the drum
-through the whole town. The ministers urged the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_517" id="Page_517">[517]</a></span> appointment of a day
-of prayer to celebrate and confirm the reconciliation. But this peace
-was not rooted in the depth of their hearts. ‘Nevertheless,’ says
-Rozet, ‘people still heard talk of several fights in the town,’ and the
-son of the captain-general killed a citizen. The more violent men, when
-they saw the dangers to which the treason or the thoughtlessness of the
-<i>articulants</i> exposed them, exclaimed, ‘Cut off their heads, pack them
-all three in one trunk, and send them to Berne.’<a name="FNanchor_828_828" id="FNanchor_828_828"></a><a href="#Footnote_828_828" class="fnanchor">[828]</a></p>
-
-<p>‘Meanwhile,’ says a contemporary biographer, ‘the Lord was about to
-execute his judgments at Geneva in expressly punishing those who
-while they were syndics had been the cause of driving away Farel
-and Calvin.’<a name="FNanchor_829_829" id="FNanchor_829_829"></a><a href="#Footnote_829_829" class="fnanchor">[829]</a> The councillor De Watteville, De Diesbach, and De
-Graffenried, deputies of Berne, on April 16, declared to the Two
-Hundred that the Bernese wished nothing so much as to give pleasure to
-Geneva, and that, without taking advantage of the sentence pronounced
-at Lausanne, they offered to discuss the affair anew. The general
-council having been convoked on April 25 to decide the matter, no way
-was found of coming to an understanding. These interminable disputes
-with Berne (it took years to settle the question) had aroused the anger
-of the Genevese against the <i>articulants</i> who were the cause of them.
-They believed these men to be more culpable than they really were. The
-assembly was in violent agitation. Groups were formed, and transports
-of wrath burst forth. ‘Justice! justice on the traitors!’ they cried.
-They demanded that, before any deliberation, these deputies should be
-again committed to prison. The three culprits were themselves present
-in the council. The captain-general, Jean Philippe, going up to them
-advised them in a whisper to go out instantly and make their escape.
-The Little Council ordered their immediate incarceration. They had
-signed the under<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_518" id="Page_518">[518]</a></span>taking to appear when called for; but overcome with
-fright, they disguised themselves and quitted the town in great haste,
-thus violating the pledge which they had given. When the lieutenant
-went to their homes to arrest them, they had disappeared. The tidings
-were at once carried to the general council. ‘Let them be summoned
-to appear by sound of trumpet,’ said a citizen, ‘and let seals be
-affixed on their houses.’ ‘Yes! yes!’ cried the people; ‘so be it!’ The
-assembly of the people being dissolved, a great concourse of citizens
-surrounded the town hall and demanded justice with loud voices. The
-public crier, traversing the streets, summoned the three deputies to
-appear in three hours, in default of which they would be immediately
-brought to trial. The Bernese having expressed to the council their
-astonishment that this citation had been made without a word said to
-them about it; ‘Ah!’ was the reply, ‘if we are slow to execute the
-decision of the general council, the people will fall on us!’ The
-general irritation extended at the same time to the pastors who had
-taken the place of Farel and Calvin. These men were alarmed at it,
-and, on April 30, presenting themselves before the council, they made
-a statement of the reproaches which were heaped on them, and requested
-their discharge. After turning away from the reformers, people were
-now turning to them again. ‘At this time,’ says Rozet, a poor woman,
-a foreigner, went about the town crying, What God keeps is well
-kept.’<a name="FNanchor_830_830" id="FNanchor_830_830"></a><a href="#Footnote_830_830" class="fnanchor">[830]</a></p>
-
-<p>The three fugitives having been summoned with sound of trumpet, for
-three days in succession, and failing to appear, the solicitor-general
-presented their indictment in seventy-four counts. Thirty-two witnesses
-made their depositions; and on June 5 De Chapeaurouge, Lullin, and
-Monathon, were condemned by default to be beheaded, as forgers and
-rebels, who had been the cause<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_519" id="Page_519">[519]</a></span> and might again be the cause of great
-evils to the state. Capital punishment was readily inflicted in the
-sixteenth century; but the accused had fled, and it was a long way from
-the sentence to the execution.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JEAN PHILIPPE.</div>
-
-<p>The party which was favorable to the three <i>articulants</i> and hostile
-to the reformers continued to exist in Geneva, and had for its chief a
-capable man, the captain-general Jean Philippe, who was syndic in 1538,
-with Jean Lullin and Ami de Chapeaurouge. These three men, with the
-violent Richardet, had, as we have seen, got Farel and Calvin banished,
-and after having done much harm to the Church, had not hesitated to
-involve the state in the most cruel perplexities. Jean Philippe, by his
-violence, was on the point of still further increasing the troubles of
-the city. ‘A rich man, and not niggardly,’ says Bonivard, ‘he was very
-liberal to his comrades, especially those of the sword; and this made
-him beloved of all. A man of courage for action, he was not prudent
-in his projects, and he no more hesitated to risk his person than his
-purse. Imprudent and impudent, hasty to believe, slow to disbelieve,
-as soon as any hectoring fellow, among those whom he thought fit for
-the battle, made a report to him, he believed it. And he was hard to
-be undeceived because he had not capacity for appreciating a sound
-reason; and this caused him to do many rash things.’ Such was the
-man who had at his beck the party which, after having been supreme
-in Geneva, had just received so severe a check. Jean Philippe could
-not, without annoyance, see the sentence carried out against his
-colleagues; and he understood that the result of it must be the ruin
-of his whole party, unless he succeeded in arresting the course of
-the popular torrent which was now rushing in a direction opposed to
-them. Discontented and murmuring against those who had obliged Lullin
-and De Chapeaurouge to take flight, he was a prey to the bitterest
-apprehensions. After the sentence, Philippe and his adher<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_520" id="Page_520">[520]</a></span>ents ‘banded
-themselves together,’ says Bonivard, ‘and waited for an opportunity of
-vengeance and of reinstating <i>the three</i> in their former honors. Their
-party, in defiance of their opponents, held banquets in the public
-places. After all this thunder there must needs be rain, hail, and fall
-of thunderbolts, to clear the sky.’ The storm indeed did not fail to
-burst forth.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">A RIOT.</div>
-
-<p>A phenomenon was at this time visible at Geneva which has been produced
-in almost all nations; the conquerors were divided amongst themselves.
-The party which in 1538 had banished the reformers was divided into
-two. The more fiery minds were for pushing their victory to an
-extreme, the more discreet, on the other hand, slackened their pace
-and restrained their passions. The impetuous young men of Geneva were
-irritated at seeing the leaders under whom they had fought condemned
-to death and fugitives. On the day after their condemnation, Sunday,
-June 16, many Genevese, according to custom, were assembled on the
-plain of Plainpalais, situated at the gates of the town, and were
-practising archery. Some of them meeting Jean Philippe and his friends,
-shouted at them, ‘Artichokes!’ It will not be forgotten that this was
-the popular nickname given to the <i>articulants</i>. This little word did
-a great deal of mischief. ‘The tongue,’ says Calvin, ‘carries a man
-away and sweeps him along like a flood, just as wild unbroken horses
-whirl along a chariot with such force and swiftness that nothing can
-stop it.’ This is what now occurred at Geneva. The nickname greatly
-annoyed the captain-general, and he swore to take vengeance. ‘There
-are three hundred of us who will one day arise and hamstring so many
-of these evangelists and Lutherans that it shall be a thing never to
-be forgotten.’ This saying was attributed to him, but he afterwards
-denied it. The captain-general, on returning from Plainpalais, went
-to sup with some of his friends at the hotel <i>de l’Ange</i>; while other
-adherents of his were eating and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_521" id="Page_521">[521]</a></span> drinking at his expense at the hotel
-<i>du Brochet</i>. Some of them, after leaving the table, met some citizens
-of the opposite party on the bridge over the Rhone. ‘Nothing more than
-hard words passed between them,’ says Bonivard, ‘with the exception
-of Jean Philippe, who seized a halberd, and, as though he were out
-of his mind, without distinguishing friend from foe, struck blows
-right and left, and wounded two or three persons.’ Then this fierce
-partisan crossed the Rhone to go to St. Gervais, where most of his
-familiar associates lived. He summoned and got them together, a grave
-proceeding for a captain-general, and passing the bridge with them,
-reached the square of La Fusterie. There he found a large body of his
-adversaries. A conflict began. Jean Philippe struck other blows. ‘With
-the point of his halberd he wounded one Jean d’Abères in the breast,’
-says Bonivard, ‘so seriously that he had to be carried to his house.’
-One Jean de Lesclefs gave with his partisan a blow on the head to Ami
-Perrin, ‘a citizen,’ says Bonivard, ‘who was fond of being splendidly
-attired and of good living, and who at this time belonged to the party
-of honest men.’ Claude of Geneva, a friend of Perrin, discharged a
-pistol at Lesclefs, and the shot entering near the heart killed him.
-The captain-general, repulsed, withdrew to his own house with his
-adherents, who kept firing their arquebuses from within. The syndic
-Philippin, wishing to allay the disturbance, was wounded by these men,
-and a servant of one of their own number, putting his head out at
-the window, was also struck. It was very generally believed that the
-captain-general had formed a conspiracy to upset the government which
-had just condemned his friends. It is difficult to decide. We may,
-however, suppose that it was a riot rather than a conspiracy.<a name="FNanchor_831_831" id="FNanchor_831_831"></a><a href="#Footnote_831_831" class="fnanchor">[831]</a></p>
-
-<p>At nine o’clock in the evening of the same day the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_522" id="Page_522">[522]</a></span> council convoked
-the Two Hundred, and gave orders to guard the town-gates to prevent
-the flight of the culprits. The next day, <i>at five</i> in the morning,
-the Council of the Two Hundred held a sitting, gave orders that the
-citizens should assemble in arms before the town-house to support their
-decisions, and commanded the officers of justice to go to the house of
-the captain-general to arrest him and all who should be with him. But
-Jean Philippe, well aware that the position of a commander-in-chief
-of the Genevese militia, who placed himself in open and armed revolt
-against the government, was a very grave one, had quitted his house,
-escaped by the roofs, and thus reached the hostelry of the <i>Tour
-Perce</i>, which belonged to a brother of Lullin. As the agents of the
-council did not find him either at home or elsewhere, proclamation
-was made in the town with sound of trumpet, that whosoever might know
-where he was, was to disclose it. The magistrate was informed, it is
-not known by whom, that the captain-general was concealed in the <i>Tour
-Perce</i>. ‘At once everybody was off thither,’ says Bonivard; ‘then they
-searched for Philippe from cellar to garret, and he was at last found
-lying in the stable under the hay.’ They led him immediately to the
-syndics, who were waiting for him at the door. They had him seized by
-the guards and taken to the <i>Evêché</i> (a prison). But it was effected
-with great difficulty, for it was all that the guards with their
-halberds and the syndics with their bâtons could do to prevent the
-people from killing him in their hands. ‘Here we may see an instance,’
-adds the prisoner of Chillon, ‘of the trust we should place in a
-people.’<a name="FNanchor_832_832" id="FNanchor_832_832"></a><a href="#Footnote_832_832" class="fnanchor">[832]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">TRIAL OF JEAN PHILIPPE.</div>
-
-<p>The witnesses were heard, and Jean Philippe underwent an examination
-on the criminal acts with which he stood charged. These acts were
-proved and he confessed them. The whole town was stirred. The people<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_523" id="Page_523">[523]</a></span>
-cried aloud for justice and said ‘that they would do execution on the
-murderers if the tribunals failed to do it. The preachers themselves
-exhorted to pray and to execute justice.’<a name="FNanchor_833_833" id="FNanchor_833_833"></a><a href="#Footnote_833_833" class="fnanchor">[833]</a> A scene at once pathetic
-and terrible occurred to raise still higher the general excitement.
-Jean d’Abères having sunk under his wounds, ‘his wife caused the body
-of her husband to be carried on a bench to the front of the town-house,
-and accompanied it crying incessantly, Justice! justice! justice!
-weeping and smiting herself.’<a name="FNanchor_834_834" id="FNanchor_834_834"></a><a href="#Footnote_834_834" class="fnanchor">[834]</a> Her children were round her, weeping
-and crying out as she did. A dead body, and especially the body of
-a husband and father, surrounded by those who loved him, has always
-great power to touch the heart. The solicitor-general presented his
-bill of indictment. It set forth that Jean Philippe ‘had always been
-esteemed a seditious man, who had been accustomed to gather round him
-all the restless spirits; that he had assembled them on the previous
-Sunday, taking up arms against the city of Geneva; that in order to
-accomplish his murderous intentions he had placed armed men in his
-house; that he was a murderer and voluntary homicide, his hands dyed
-with blood; that out of the fulness of his heart he had uttered these
-words or the like of them, ‘I will kill so many people that I shall be
-surfeited.’ The solicitor-general moved in conclusion that the council
-should execute justice immediately, ‘as shameless and tumultuous
-proceedings and horrid enterprises, and in the same manner as in cases
-of high treason.’ Sentence was pronounced by the syndic Etienne de
-Chapeaurouge, nephew of one of the fugitives. Philippe was condemned
-‘to have his head severed from shoulders till the soul was separated
-from the body.’ The execution took place the same day. De Chapeaurouge,
-after having pronounced sentence, absented him<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_524" id="Page_524">[524]</a></span>self from the council,
-and one or two others likewise withdrew.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, of the four syndics who had decreed the banishment of Farel and
-Calvin, two had been condemned as forgers and rebels, and a third
-had just been executed as a mover of sedition and a homicide. There
-remained the fourth of them, Richardet. He had united force with
-ridicule, and had said ironically to Calvin when expelling him, ‘The
-gates of the town are wide enough for you to go out.’ As he had taken
-part in the sedition of Jean Philippe, he took fright and wished to
-make his escape. Unwilling to go out by the gates of the town, however
-wide they were, for fear of being recognized and arrested, ‘he let
-himself down through a window in the town walls,’ says Rozet, ‘burst
-(<i>se creva</i>) because he was heavy, and did not live long after.’ ‘As he
-was very fat,’ says Gautier, ‘the rope broke, and the fall caused him a
-contusion of which he shortly after died.’<a name="FNanchor_835_835" id="FNanchor_835_835"></a><a href="#Footnote_835_835" class="fnanchor">[835]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is hardly possible to avoid being struck with the fate of these four
-men. The Greeks conceived the idea of a goddess, Nemesis, charged with
-the duty of overthrowing an insolent prosperity and of avenging crimes,
-who winged her way through the air, encompassed by serpents, provided
-with torches and inflicting terrible vengeance. ‘We cannot pass over,’
-says Rozet, ‘the remarkable judgment of God on the four syndics of
-the year 1538, who being elected by the people as adversaries of the
-religion of the reformation sworn to, had banished the ministers and
-routed their friends. Two years later, in one and the same year,
-in the month of June, all four of them, at the instigation of the
-people themselves, came to confusion and ruin by their crimes.’<a name="FNanchor_836_836" id="FNanchor_836_836"></a><a href="#Footnote_836_836" class="fnanchor">[836]</a>
-History can hardly furnish a more striking illustration of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_525" id="Page_525">[525]</a></span> the truth
-proclaimed by the great poet, ‘Punishment, though lame, seldom fails to
-overtake the guilty.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE WAYS OF GOD.</div>
-
-<p>However, in our opinion, the <i>articulants</i>, though chargeable with
-carelessness and incompetency, were not guilty of treachery. On the
-other hand, it is not fair to attribute to the friends of Farel and
-Calvin some odious acts of which they were completely innocent. It
-has been alleged that on the third day after the execution of Jean
-Philippe, the most religious persons ‘publicly celebrated their victory
-by a feast at the town hall.’ Strong evidence would be necessary
-to establish a fact so adapted to arouse in honorable men aversion
-and indignation; but not a single document is known in which it is
-mentioned.<a name="FNanchor_837_837" id="FNanchor_837_837"></a><a href="#Footnote_837_837" class="fnanchor">[837]</a> We are bound to say, however, that the verdict of
-contemporaries was more severe than our own. ‘These men,’ says Theodore
-Beza, ‘having been cast away like vile dregs, the city began to ask
-again for its Calvin and Farel.’<a name="FNanchor_838_838" id="FNanchor_838_838"></a><a href="#Footnote_838_838" class="fnanchor">[838]</a> All was in course of preparation
-for their return to it. Some vacancies having been made in the council
-by the blows which had just been struck, men were appointed who were
-friendly to the Reformation, and from that time their party formed the
-majority. The far-seeing intelligence of Calvin had foretold that the
-ascendency of his adversaries would be of short duration; and his word
-was fulfilled.</p>
-
-<p>The ways of God are deep and mysterious. Two years previously the
-work of the reformer appeared to be brought to a stand in Geneva.
-His victorious enemies held up their heads in the general council;
-their power seemed invincible; and the few citizens who dared to
-declare themselves on the side of the banished<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_526" id="Page_526">[526]</a></span> ministers found
-themselves threatened and prosecuted, and were compelled to retire
-into silence or to flee their country. The reformers were wandering
-about as exiles in the cantons of Switzerland, not knowing where to
-seek refuge. But time passed on, and the state of things was altered.
-The authors of the proscription sank beneath the weight of their
-faults, and were proscribed in their turn. Geneva was weary of leaders
-without intelligence, and rejected them. No longer able to face the
-perils gathering around it, the city will soon recall and receive as
-liberators the men whom she has driven away as enemies of her freedom.
-Calvin, on his part, had found in exile not weakness but strength. God
-had removed him to a vaster scene, where his horizon was widened. His
-thought had been elevated, his soul strengthened and purified. He had
-seen Germany, and had played a part, not one of the least, in her great
-assemblies; he had held communication with Melanchthon, and established
-a connection between the German Reformation and that of the Swiss
-cantons and of France. The differences between the two great movements
-had grown less; the communion of spirit had been strengthened. On both
-sides a reciprocal influence had been felt. In the next volume we shall
-see Calvin return to his post a greater and stronger man, more master
-of himself, no less firm and no less determined, once more to undertake
-his task and to conduct it to a happy end.</p>
-
-
-<p class="center p-left sm p2">END OF THE SIXTH VOLUME.</p>
-
-<p class="right sm p4"><b>530 BROADWAY, NEW YORK,</b></p>
-
-<p class="r2 sm">November, 1876.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left lg p2"><b>ROBERT CARTER &amp; BROTHERS’</b></p>
-
-<p class="center p-left lg gesperrt"><b>NEW BOOKS.</b></p>
-
-<hr class="r25" />
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Forty Years in the Turkish Empire.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Memoirs of Rev. William Goodell, D.D., late Missionary at Constantinople.
-By <span class="smcap">E. D. G. Prime</span>, D.D.</td>
- <td class="right">2.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">Dr. <span class="smcap">Goodell</span> was the first American Missionary at
-Constantinople, his wife the first American lady that ever
-visited the Turkish Capital, and they both remained at this
-post in labors of usefulness, until in their old age they
-returned to this country to die among their kindred. This
-volume is largely autobiographical, being compiled from Dr.
-<span class="smcap">Goodell</span>’s Letters and Journal, containing also his
-personal Reminiscences written during the last year of his
-life. He was inimitable as a letter writer, and everything
-that came from his pen was marked by spirituality, a
-peculiarly apt use of Scripture language, and a spice of wit
-that enlivened his conversation and his writings to the day of
-his death.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Autobiography and Memoir of Dr. Guthrie.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">2 vols., 12mo. 3.00; Cheap Edition, in 1 vol.</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“His stories which give sparkle and zest to the narrative, and
-greet us on almost every page, are woven together in a picture
-of Scottish life that is wonderfully graphic.”&mdash;<i>Harper’s
-Magazine.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Life and Works of Thomas Guthrie, D.D.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">10 vols. In a box. (The volumes are sold separately).</td>
- <td class="right">15.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>D’Aubigne’s History of the Reformation.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">In the TIME OF CALVIN. Vol. 7.</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>D’Aubigne’s History of the Reformation.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">In the TIME OF CALVIN. 7 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">14.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>D’Aubigne’s History of the Reformation.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">5 vols. in 1. 8vo., 3.00; in 5 vols., 12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">6.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">Without doing violence to historical truth, he seems to
-invest history with all the charms of romance, and with the
-enthusiasm and skill of a poet he sketches on the historic
-page his fascinating and life-like pictures.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Hugh Miller’s Life and Works.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">New edition, very neat. 12 vols., 12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">18.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2">FOOTPRINTS OF THE CREATOR</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">OLD RED SANDSTONE</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">SCHOOLS AND SCHOOLMASTERS</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">TESTIMONY OF THE ROCKS</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">CRUISE OF THE BETSEY</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">FIRST IMPRESSIONS OF ENGLAND</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">POPULAR GEOLOGY</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">TALES AND SKETCHES</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">ESSAYS. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">HEADSHIP OF CHRIST</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">LIFE AND LETTERS. 2 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">3.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“There is in <span class="smcap">Hugh Miller</span>’s geological works
-a freshness of conception, a depth of thought, and a
-purity of feeling rarely met with in works of that
-character.”&mdash;<i>Professor Agassiz.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Hugh Miller’s Life and Letters.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td>By <span class="smcap">Peter Bayne</span>. 2 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">3.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">Mr. <span class="smcap">Bayne</span> carries the absorbed reader with him
-through the whole period, unfolding leaf after leaf of the
-history of a life, certainly one of the most interesting and
-striking as well as useful of this century.</p>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>By the Author of “The Wide, Wide World.”</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">THE LITTLE CAMP ON EAGLE HILL</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">WILLOW BROOK</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">SCEPTRES AND CROWNS</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">THE FLAG OF TRUCE</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">BREAD AND ORANGES</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">THE RAPIDS OF NIAGARA</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Say and Do Series.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Comprising the above 6 vols. on the Lord’s Prayer. In a neat box</td>
- <td class="right">7.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“Every new work of fiction by this gifted author we receive
-with a cordial welcome, for we know that it will be an
-addition to that pure, elevating, and delightful class of
-books which we may love as the fireside literature of our
-country. She writes for the home circle.”&mdash;<i>N. Y. Observer.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Story of Small Beginnings. 4 vols. In a box</td>
- <td class="right">5.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Walks from Eden</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">House of Israel</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Old Helmet</td>
- <td class="right">2.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Melbourne House</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Elsie’s Santa Claus.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Miss <span class="smcap">Joanna H. Mathews</span>, author of the “Bessie Books.”</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Miss Ashton’s Girls.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Miss <span class="smcap">Joanna H. Mathews</span>. Comprising “Fanny’s Birthday
-Gift,” “The New Scholars,” “Rosalie’s Pet,” “Eleanor’s Visit,”
-“Mabel Walton’s Experiment,” and “Elsie’s Santa Claus.” 6
-vols. In a box</td>
- <td class="right">7.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Bessie Books. 6 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">7.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Flowerets. 6 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">3.60</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Little Sunbeams. 6 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">6.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Kitty and Lulu Books. 6 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">6.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“The children in Miss <span class="smcap">Mathews’</span> stories are perfectly
-natural. They get into trouble and get out of it. They say
-sweet things, and sharp things, and funny things, yet all
-the time childish things. They illustrate the right and the
-wrong, but in either case in a manner to attract to the
-former.”&mdash;<i>Albany Express.</i></p>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Dare to Do Right Series.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Miss <span class="smcap">Julia A. Mathews</span>. 5 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">5.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“Miss <span class="smcap">Julia A. Mathews’</span> boys are as live and
-wide-awake as any one could wish, into mischief, now and
-then, like the majority of boys, yet frank and manly withal,
-and not ashamed to ‘own up’ when they find themselves in
-fault.”&mdash;<i>Hearth and Home.</i></p>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Coulyng Castle; or, a Knight of the Olden Days.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">Agnes Giberne</span>. 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Aimee; a Tale of James II.</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Day Star; or, Gospel Stories</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Curate’s Home</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Floss Silverthorn</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Odd One.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Mrs. <span class="smcap">A. M. Mitchell Payne</span>. 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Cash Boy’s Trust</td>
- <td class="right">1.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Rhoda’s Corner</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Fred and Jeanie: How they learned about God.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">Jennie M. Drinkwater</span>. 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Only Ned</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Not Bread Alone</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Brentford Parsonage.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By the author of “Win and Wear.” 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">WHO WON?</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">MABEL HAZARD’S THOROUGHFARE</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">DOORS OUTWARD</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Win and Wear Series. 6 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">7.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Green Mountain Stories. 5 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">6.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Ledgeside Series. 6 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">7.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Butterfly’s Flights. 3 vols.</td>
- <td class="right">2.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Imogen; a Tale.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">Emily Sarah Holt</span>.</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Isoult Barry. 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Robin Tremayne. 12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Well in the Desert. 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Ashcliffe Hall. 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Verena. 12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">White Rose of Langley. 12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Mind and Words of Jesus, Faithful Promiser, and Morning and Night
-Watches.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">J. R. Macduff</span>, D.D. All in one vol. <span class="smcap">Red Line Edition.</span>
-Handsomely bound in cloth, gilt</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Footsteps of St. Paul</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Family Prayers</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Memories of Gennesaret</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Memories of Bethany</td>
- <td class="right">1.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Bow in the Cloud</td>
- <td class="right">0.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Grapes of Eschol</td>
- <td class="right">1.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Sunsets on Hebrew Mountains</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Thoughts of God</td>
- <td class="right">0.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Prophet of Fire</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Altar Incense</td>
- <td class="right">1.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Shepherd and his Flock</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Hart and Water Brooks</td>
- <td class="right">1.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Memories of Olivet</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Noontide at Sychar</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Memories of Patmos</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">St. Paul in Rome</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Tales of Warrior Judges</td>
- <td class="right">1.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Comfort Ye, Comfort Ye</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Healing Waters of Israel</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">The Gates of Prayer</td>
- <td class="right">1.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">A Golden Sunset</td>
- <td class="right">0.35</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Clefts of the Rock</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Pilgrim’s Progress.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Twenty full-page pictures. Handsomely bound in cloth.&nbsp; Gilt
-and black, 4to.</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“The <span class="smcap">Carters</span> have done a good service to the cause
-of juvenile literature in publishing the ‘Pilgrim’s Progress’
-in a style more attractive for boys and girls than any other
-edition before the public.”&mdash;<i>Christian Observer.</i></p>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Nurses for the Needy.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By L. N. R.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Golden Chain.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">Miss Marsh</span></td>
- <td class="right">0.90</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Four Years in Ashantee.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">Ramseyer</span> and <span class="smcap">Kuhne</span></td>
- <td class="right">1.75</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Twelve Months in Madagascar.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Dr. <span class="smcap">Mullens</span></td>
- <td class="right">1.75</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Little Brothers and Sisters.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">Marshall</span>. 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>New A. L. O. E. Books.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">AN EDEN IN ENGLAND. 16mo., 1.25; 18mo.</td>
- <td class="right">0.75</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">FAIRY FRISKET</td>
- <td class="right">0.75</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">THE LITTLE MAID</td>
- <td class="right">0.75</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">THE SPANISH CAVALIER</td>
- <td class="right">0.75</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Alice Neville and Riversdale.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">C. E. Bowen</span>. 4 illustrations</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>All about Jesus.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Rev. <span class="smcap">Alexander Dickson</span>. 12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“I have read it with the delight which every reader of the
-‘Pilgrim’s Progress’ recalls. Compared with the current
-literature of the time it produces a feeling akin to that
-of one who passes from barren sand into the verdure and
-fragrance of a spring garden, when each lily and rose is still
-touched with the morning dew, and rejoicing in the early
-sunshine.”&mdash;<i>From Judge John K. Porter.</i></p>
-
-<p class="sm"><i>This book has been reprinted in England at the earnest request of Mr.</i>
-<span class="smcap">Moody</span>, <i>who gave away nearly 100 copies to friends in Great
-Britain before parting, each containing his autograph</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Nature and the Bible.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">J. W. Dawson</span>, L.L.D., Principal of McGill University, Montreal,
-Canada. With ten full-page illustrations.</td>
- <td class="right">1.75</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">“It contains the well-considered opinions of one who is a
-student of nature, and of the sacred record as well. The
-questions considered are of interest to a great many, both in
-the religious and scientific world.”&mdash;<i>Presbyterian.</i></p>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Shadowed Home, and the Light Beyond.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Rev. <span class="smcap">E. H. Bickersteth</span>, author of “Yesterday, To-day, and
-Forever.”</td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm"><i>By the same author</i>:</p>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Yesterday, To-Day, and Forever.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">12mo. edition, mor., 5.00; full gilt, 3.00; cloth</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Cheap edition, 16mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Reef, and other Parables.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Rev. <span class="smcap">E. H. Bickersteth</span>. 16 illustrations.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Dr. Williams on the Lord’s Prayer.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Dr. Williams on Religious Progress.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">12mo.</td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Suffering Saviour.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By <span class="smcap">F. W. Krummacher</span></td>
- <td class="right">1.50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Works of James Hamilton, D.D.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Comprising “Royal Preacher,” “Mount of Olives,” “Pearl of
-Parables,” “Lamp and Lantern,” “Great Biography,” “Harp
-on the Willows,” “Lake of Galilee,” “Emblems from Eden,”
-and “Life in Earnest.” In 4 handsome uniform 16mo. vols.</td>
- <td class="right">5.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Earth’s Morning; or, Thoughts on Genesis.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Rev. <span class="smcap">Horatius Bonar</span>, D.D.</td>
- <td class="right">2.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>The Rent Veil.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Dr. <span class="smcap">Bonar</span></td>
- <td class="right">1.25</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>Follow the Lamb; or, Counsels to Converts.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">By Dr. <span class="smcap">Bonar</span></td>
- <td class="right">0.40</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>*Carters’ Cheap S. S. Library. No. 1.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Fifty vols. in neat cloth. In a wooden case. Net</td>
- <td class="right">20.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left lg"><b>*Carters’ 50-volume S. S. Library. No. 2.</b></p>
-
-<table summary="books" class="sm">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht1">Net</td>
- <td class="right">20.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="sm">These fifty choice volumes for the Sabbath School Library, or
-the home circle, are printed on good paper, and very neatly
-bound in fine light-brown cloth. They contain an aggregate of
-12,350 pages, and are put up in a wooden case.</p>
-
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> ‘Tanta sanctitatis opinione apud omnes vixerant,
-ut ... cellæ in templa commutarentur.’&mdash;Buchanan, <i>Rer. Scot. Hist.</i>, lib. iv.
-35 Rex.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> ‘Nullus est Papa.’ (Walter Bower, lib. xv. c. 20.) Knox,
-<i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, i. 498.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_3_3" id="Footnote_3_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> ‘Paulus Crawar, in sacris litteris et in allegatione
-Bibliæ promptus et exercitatus.’&mdash;<i>Scoti-Chronicon</i>, vol. ii. p. 495.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_4_4" id="Footnote_4_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, i. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_5_5" id="Footnote_5_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> ‘Sacerdotem domi habebat, qui ipsi et familiæ Novum
-Testamentum lingua vernacula prælegebat.’&mdash;(<i>Regi Scotorum Jacobo V.</i>,
-Alexander Alesius.) There is no paging.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_6_6" id="Footnote_6_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> ‘Terroribus monachorum non nihil perturbatus.’&mdash;(<i>Regi
-Scotorum Jacobo V.</i>, Alexander Alesius.)</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_7_7" id="Footnote_7_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> ‘Ut rex, etiam surgens, complexus sit mulierem.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_8_8" id="Footnote_8_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a></p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>For once the eagle England being in prey,</div>
- <div>To her unguarded nest the weasel Scot</div>
- <div>Comes sneaking, and so sucks her princely eggs.</div>
- <div class="i5">&mdash;Shakespeare, <i>Hen. V.</i>, Act i. sc. 2.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_9_9" id="Footnote_9_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> ‘Hepburnus, Gavini ministris pulsis, arcem valido præsidio
-communit.’&mdash;Buchanan, lib. xiii, 106 Rex.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_10_10" id="Footnote_10_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> Buchanan, <i>Ibid.</i> Spotswood, <i>Hist. of the Church of
-Scotland</i>. London, 1677, pp. 61, 62.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> Knox, Buchanan, Fox, Spotswood, McCrie.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_12_12" id="Footnote_12_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> Alesius relates this story in his ‘Epistola dedicatoria
-<i>Comment. in Johannem</i>.’ Bayle, in the article <i>Alesius</i>, says, ‘Il
-avait été préservé de la mort, par miracle, dans sa jeunesse.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_13_13" id="Footnote_13_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> ‘Hamiltonium familia regium quoque sanguinem attingente,
-natus.’&mdash;<i>Bezæ Icones</i>. This is the opinion of Pinkerton, McCrie, and
-other authors. Others suppose that Sir Patrick Hamilton (of Kincavil)
-was a natural son of Lord Hamilton. But in a charter of April 1498 he
-is called <i>brother-german</i> of James Lord Hamilton, eldest son of his
-father, which seems plainly to mean that he was not half-brother by the
-father’s side; and in a charter of January 1513 he is distinguished
-from another Hamilton, a <i>natural</i> son of the same lord. This last
-circumstance doubtless gave rise to a <i>qui pro quo</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_14_14" id="Footnote_14_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> Pitscottie, <i>Hist. of Scotland</i>. Leland’s <i>Collectanea</i>.
-Lorimer, <i>Patrick Hamilton</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_15_15" id="Footnote_15_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> The inscription sought and found in the <i>Acta rectoria</i>
-of the University of Paris by Professor Rosseeuw Saint-Hilaire, at the
-request of Professor Lorimer, proves that Hamilton studied at Paris.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_16_16" id="Footnote_16_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> ‘My great-grandfather, gudeschir, and father have served
-your Lordship’s predecessors, and some of them have dyed under their
-standartis’.&mdash;John Knox, <i>Hist. of the Reformation</i>, edited by D.
-Laing, ii. p. 323.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_17_17" id="Footnote_17_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> Not to the university of St. Andrews, as was formerly
-supposed. ‘The name occurs ... in the year 1522.... He was seventeen
-years of age.’&mdash;M’Crie, <i>Life of Knox</i>, Note B.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_18_18" id="Footnote_18_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> ‘Velut seditionis fax, volitaret armatus.’&mdash;Buchanan.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_19_19" id="Footnote_19_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a></p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>‘.... At tu, beata Gallia,</div>
- <div>Salve, bonarum blanda nutrix artium,’ &amp;c.</div>
- <div class="i2">&mdash;Buchanani <i>Poemata</i>. Adventus in Galliam.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_20_20" id="Footnote_20_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20_20"><span class="label">[20]</span></a> ‘Potes hunc tyrannum occidere.’&mdash;Major, <i>Sentent.</i>, fol.
-139.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_21_21" id="Footnote_21_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21_21"><span class="label">[21]</span></a> ‘Reges legitimos ab initio creavimus, leges et nobis et
-illis æquas imposuimus.’&mdash;<i>De Jure Regni apud Scotos</i>, p. 24.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_22_22" id="Footnote_22_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22_22"><span class="label">[22]</span></a> ‘Juvenis ingenio summo et eruditione
-singulari.’&mdash;Buchanan, <i>Scot. Hist.</i>, p. 494.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_23_23" id="Footnote_23_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23_23"><span class="label">[23]</span></a> Margaret to Henry VIII.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 17.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_24_24" id="Footnote_24_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24_24"><span class="label">[24]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, pp. 51, 52, 70, 71.&mdash;‘Albany embarked
-probably on May 31.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>, p. 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_25_25" id="Footnote_25_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25_25"><span class="label">[25]</span></a> <i>Acta parl. Scot.</i>, vol. ii. p. 255.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>,
-vol. iv. p. 387.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_26_26" id="Footnote_26_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26_26"><span class="label">[26]</span></a> ‘The young king cannot by himself rede an English
-letter.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 368.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_27_27" id="Footnote_27_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27_27"><span class="label">[27]</span></a> ‘They are at all times of contrary opinion.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>,
-iv. p. 362.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_28_28" id="Footnote_28_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28_28"><span class="label">[28]</span></a> ‘May destroy the king, my son, and me.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>, iv. pp.
-81, 169, 188, 227, 237.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_29_29" id="Footnote_29_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29_29"><span class="label">[29]</span></a> ‘We may have your supplications direct for us unto His
-Holyness.’&mdash;Margaret to Wolsey, <i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 452.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_30_30" id="Footnote_30_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30_30"><span class="label">[30]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, iv. pp. 457-458.&mdash;Scott, <i>Hist. of
-Scotland</i>, i. ch. xxv.&mdash;Lindsay, <i>Chronicles</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_31_31" id="Footnote_31_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31_31"><span class="label">[31]</span></a> ‘I went suddenly thitherward, thinking that I would cause
-to make a good fire of them.’&mdash;MS. Cotton, Galba B., vi. fol. 4.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_32_32" id="Footnote_32_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32_32"><span class="label">[32]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 561.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_33_33" id="Footnote_33_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33_33"><span class="label">[33]</span></a> ‘Most part to the town of St. Andrews.’&mdash;Cotton, MS.
-Calig. ii. 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_34_34" id="Footnote_34_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34_34"><span class="label">[34]</span></a> ‘Disputing, holding, and maintaining divers heresies of
-Martin Luther.’&mdash;Sentence Pronounced against Hamilton. Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv.
-p. 560.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_35_35" id="Footnote_35_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35_35"><span class="label">[35]</span></a> <i>Certain articles preached by him</i> (<i>ibid.</i>) It is clear
-that these articles were preached as early as 1527, before Hamilton had
-quitted Scotland. The sentence states: ‘Faithful inquisition being made
-in <i>Lent last past</i>.’ It is of Lent <i>last past</i> that it speaks. Now the
-sentence was of the last February. The Lent of 1528 was hardly begun.
-Besides, the sentence states that Hamilton, after having preached,
-<i>passed forth of the realm to other parts</i>; which decides the question.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_36_36" id="Footnote_36_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36_36"><span class="label">[36]</span></a> Luther, <i>Ep. to the Galatians</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_37_37" id="Footnote_37_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> <i>See</i> ‘The Sentence against P. Hamilton.’&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>,
-iv. p. 560.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_38_38" id="Footnote_38_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38_38"><span class="label">[38]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 560.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_39_39" id="Footnote_39_39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_39_39"><span class="label">[39]</span></a> ‘Unicus et pietatis et literarum vindex.’&mdash;Registers of
-the University of Marburg, <span class="smcap">A. D.</span> 1527.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_40_40" id="Footnote_40_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> ‘Ad instaurandas liberales disciplinas.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_41_41" id="Footnote_41_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41_41"><span class="label">[41]</span></a> ‘Conference and familiarity.’&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 558.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_42_42" id="Footnote_42_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> <i>Paradoxa Lamberti</i>, in Schultetus, <i>Annales Evangel</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_43_43" id="Footnote_43_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> ‘Cautelæ impiæ.’&mdash;Baum, <i>Lambert d’Avignon</i>, p. 152.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_44_44" id="Footnote_44_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> ‘P. Hamilton, of the county of Linlithgow (in which
-Kincavil is situated), a Scotchman, Master of Arts of Paris.’ The three
-names may still be seen in the registers under the numbers 37, 38, 39.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_45_45" id="Footnote_45_45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_45_45"><span class="label">[45]</span></a> ‘Ex illustrissima Hamiltonum familia, quæ ex summis
-regni Scotiæ et regi sanguine proximius juncta est.’ Baum, <i>Lambert
-d’Avignon</i>, p. 152.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_46_46" id="Footnote_46_46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_46_46"><span class="label">[46]</span></a> ‘Prorsus arbitrarer me extinctum iri.’&mdash;Luther, <i>Epp.</i>
-iv. p. 187.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_47_47" id="Footnote_47_47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_47_47"><span class="label">[47]</span></a> ‘Ut non deserat peccatorem suum.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_48_48" id="Footnote_48_48"></a><a href="#FNanchor_48_48"><span class="label">[48]</span></a> ‘Viel ein <i>aerger</i> Buch wider das Papsthum.’&mdash;Statement
-of Jonas.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_49_49" id="Footnote_49_49"></a><a href="#FNanchor_49_49"><span class="label">[49]</span></a> ‘Hans Luft jam nono die ægrotat.’&mdash;Luther, <i>Epp.</i> iv. p.
-189.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_50_50" id="Footnote_50_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50_50"><span class="label">[50]</span></a> ‘Fere expiravit inter brachia mea heri.’&mdash;Luther, <i>Epp.</i>
-iv. p. 189.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_51_51" id="Footnote_51_51"></a><a href="#FNanchor_51_51"><span class="label">[51]</span></a> ‘In domo mea cœpit esse hospital.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_52_52" id="Footnote_52_52"></a><a href="#FNanchor_52_52"><span class="label">[52]</span></a> ‘Verbum Dei pure tradidi.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_53_53" id="Footnote_53_53"></a><a href="#FNanchor_53_53"><span class="label">[53]</span></a> ‘Me hoc illi consulente.’&mdash;Lamberti dedicatio, <i>Exegeseos
-in Apocalypsim</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_54_54" id="Footnote_54_54"></a><a href="#FNanchor_54_54"><span class="label">[54]</span></a> Patrick’s <i>Places</i>.&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 566.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_55_55" id="Footnote_55_55"></a><a href="#FNanchor_55_55"><span class="label">[55]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i>, and Knox, <i>Hist. of Ref.</i>, i. p. 25.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_56_56" id="Footnote_56_56"></a><a href="#FNanchor_56_56"><span class="label">[56]</span></a> ‘Axiomata doctissime asseruit.’&mdash;Lambert, Dedication,
-<i>Exeges Apocal.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_57_57" id="Footnote_57_57"></a><a href="#FNanchor_57_57"><span class="label">[57]</span></a> Fryth, <i>To the Reader</i>. Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 563.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_58_58" id="Footnote_58_58"></a><a href="#FNanchor_58_58"><span class="label">[58]</span></a> Notes on Patrick’s <i>Places</i>. Fox, <i>Ibid.</i> p. 572.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_59_59" id="Footnote_59_59"></a><a href="#FNanchor_59_59"><span class="label">[59]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> p. 573.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_60_60" id="Footnote_60_60"></a><a href="#FNanchor_60_60"><span class="label">[60]</span></a> ‘Plerique sacerdotum, <i>novitatis</i> nomine offensi,
-contenderunt Novum Testamentum <i>nuper a Martino Luthero</i> fuisse
-scriptum.’&mdash;Buchanan, <i>Hist.</i>, lib. xv. p. 534.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_61_61" id="Footnote_61_61"></a><a href="#FNanchor_61_61"><span class="label">[61]</span></a> Patrick’s <i>Places</i>, in Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 565.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_62_62" id="Footnote_62_62"></a><a href="#FNanchor_62_62"><span class="label">[62]</span></a> ‘To testify the truth, he sought all means.’&mdash;Fox,
-<i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 563.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_63_63" id="Footnote_63_63"></a><a href="#FNanchor_63_63"><span class="label">[63]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, ed. Wodrow, p. 15.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_64_64" id="Footnote_64_64"></a><a href="#FNanchor_64_64"><span class="label">[64]</span></a> ‘Whereunto many gave ear.’&mdash;Spotswood’s <i>Hist.</i>, p. 62.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_65_65" id="Footnote_65_65"></a><a href="#FNanchor_65_65"><span class="label">[65]</span></a> ‘All sorts of people.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_66_66" id="Footnote_66_66"></a><a href="#FNanchor_66_66"><span class="label">[66]</span></a> ‘He spared not to show the errors crept into Christian
-religion,’ &amp;c.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_67_67" id="Footnote_67_67"></a><a href="#FNanchor_67_67"><span class="label">[67]</span></a> ‘To the south of the house of Kincavil, in the <i>craig
-quarter</i>.’&mdash;Charter of 3 Sept. 1507.&mdash;Lorimer’s <i>Hamilton</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_68_68" id="Footnote_68_68"></a><a href="#FNanchor_68_68"><span class="label">[68]</span></a> ‘A great following he had.’&mdash;Spotswood’s <i>Hist.</i>, p. 62.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_69_69" id="Footnote_69_69"></a><a href="#FNanchor_69_69"><span class="label">[69]</span></a> See Fox, <i>Acts and Monuments</i>, iv. pp. 570, 571.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_70_70" id="Footnote_70_70"></a><a href="#FNanchor_70_70"><span class="label">[70]</span></a> ‘Man soll’s dem Papst zuwider thun,’ &amp;c.&mdash;Luther’s
-<i>Tischreden</i>, c. 43.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_71_71" id="Footnote_71_71"></a><a href="#FNanchor_71_71"><span class="label">[71]</span></a> ‘Paulo ante mortem duxit nobilem virginem
-uxorem.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i> 1554.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_72_72" id="Footnote_72_72"></a><a href="#FNanchor_72_72"><span class="label">[72]</span></a> The only author who has mentioned it before us is
-Professor Lorimer, in his <i>Memoirs</i>, 1857.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_73_73" id="Footnote_73_73"></a><a href="#FNanchor_73_73"><span class="label">[73]</span></a> ‘A conjured enemy to Christ Jesus.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Hist. of the
-Ref.</i>, i. p. 15.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_74_74" id="Footnote_74_74"></a><a href="#FNanchor_74_74"><span class="label">[74]</span></a> Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 12.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_75_75" id="Footnote_75_75"></a><a href="#FNanchor_75_75"><span class="label">[75]</span></a> ‘Prædixit etiam se brevi moriturum, cum adhuc apud suos
-esset.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_76_76" id="Footnote_76_76"></a><a href="#FNanchor_76_76"><span class="label">[76]</span></a> Alesius.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_77_77" id="Footnote_77_77"></a><a href="#FNanchor_77_77"><span class="label">[77]</span></a> <i>On the Law and the Gospel.</i> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. pp. 575,
-576.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_78_78" id="Footnote_78_78"></a><a href="#FNanchor_78_78"><span class="label">[78]</span></a> ‘Bona opera non faciunt bonum hominem, sed homo bonus
-facit bona opera.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_79_79" id="Footnote_79_79"></a><a href="#FNanchor_79_79"><span class="label">[79]</span></a> Bayle, <i>Dict. crit.</i>; art. ‘Alesius.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_80_80" id="Footnote_80_80"></a><a href="#FNanchor_80_80"><span class="label">[80]</span></a> ‘Lutheri assertiones refutans, cum applausu
-theologorum.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_81_81" id="Footnote_81_81"></a><a href="#FNanchor_81_81"><span class="label">[81]</span></a> ‘Doctrinæ sententiarum.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_82_82" id="Footnote_82_82"></a><a href="#FNanchor_82_82"><span class="label">[82]</span></a> ‘Verum præter expectationem meam evenit, ut ex ipsius
-colloquio meam errorem agnoscerem.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_83_83" id="Footnote_83_83"></a><a href="#FNanchor_83_83"><span class="label">[83]</span></a> ‘Eorum qui Thomae Aquinatis sectam imitantur inter
-eruditiores habitus.’&mdash;Buchanan, lib. xiv. an. 1527.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_84_84" id="Footnote_84_84"></a><a href="#FNanchor_84_84"><span class="label">[84]</span></a> ‘Erat enim in eo placida natura.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber
-Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_85_85" id="Footnote_85_85"></a><a href="#FNanchor_85_85"><span class="label">[85]</span></a> Knox, Alesius, Spotswood, Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_86_86" id="Footnote_86_86"></a><a href="#FNanchor_86_86"><span class="label">[86]</span></a> ‘Docuit et disputavit palam in Academia, plus minus
-mensem.’&mdash;Alesius, in <i>Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_87_87" id="Footnote_87_87"></a><a href="#FNanchor_87_87"><span class="label">[87]</span></a> ‘Metu cognatorum ejus.’&mdash;Lambert, <i>Apocal.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_88_88" id="Footnote_88_88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_88_88"><span class="label">[88]</span></a> ‘Adhortante rege ipso.’&mdash;Lesley, <i>De Rebus Gestis</i>, &amp;c.
-p. 421.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_89_89" id="Footnote_89_89"></a><a href="#FNanchor_89_89"><span class="label">[89]</span></a> ‘They travailled with the king, that he should pass in
-pilgrimage to St. Duthac.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Reform.</i>, i. p. 16.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_90_90" id="Footnote_90_90"></a><a href="#FNanchor_90_90"><span class="label">[90]</span></a> The fact of this journey has been disputed in spite of
-the testimonies of Knox, Spotswood, and others. But a letter of Angus
-to Wolsey, of March 30, 1528, states that the king was at that time in
-the <i>north country</i>, in the extreme parts of his realm. This evidence
-is decisive.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_91_91" id="Footnote_91_91"></a><a href="#FNanchor_91_91"><span class="label">[91]</span></a> ‘Cum frater Patricii duxisset exercitum.’&mdash;Lambert,
-<i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_92_92" id="Footnote_92_92"></a><a href="#FNanchor_92_92"><span class="label">[92]</span></a> ‘Ventis fuit impeditus.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_93_93" id="Footnote_93_93"></a><a href="#FNanchor_93_93"><span class="label">[93]</span></a> ‘Aliquot millia conscripserunt equitum.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> The
-number is doubtless exaggerated.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_94_94" id="Footnote_94_94"></a><a href="#FNanchor_94_94"><span class="label">[94]</span></a> ‘Very early in the morning.’&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 559.
-The last of February.&mdash;Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, i. 18 and 511. Pridie
-Cal. Martii.&mdash;Lambert, <i>in Johan. Apocal. in Dedicat.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_95_95" id="Footnote_95_95"></a><a href="#FNanchor_95_95"><span class="label">[95]</span></a> Spotswood, <i>Hist. of the Church of Scotland</i>, p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_96_96" id="Footnote_96_96"></a><a href="#FNanchor_96_96"><span class="label">[96]</span></a> Spotswood, <i>Hist. of the Church of Scotland</i>, p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_97_97" id="Footnote_97_97"></a><a href="#FNanchor_97_97"><span class="label">[97]</span></a> M’Crie, <i>Life of Melville</i>, i. note D, p. 416.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_98_98" id="Footnote_98_98"></a><a href="#FNanchor_98_98"><span class="label">[98]</span></a> ‘Cum ii qui missi erant sub noctem ab episcopis hospitium
-ejus obsidissent.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_99_99" id="Footnote_99_99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_99_99"><span class="label">[99]</span></a> ‘Processit ille obvius eis et petit quem
-quærerent.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_100_100" id="Footnote_100_100"></a><a href="#FNanchor_100_100"><span class="label">[100]</span></a> ‘Orans ut discedere permitteret suos.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_101_101" id="Footnote_101_101"></a><a href="#FNanchor_101_101"><span class="label">[101]</span></a> The author, during a visit which he paid to St. Andrews
-in 1845, studied on the spot the places here referred to, having as his
-guide to the beautiful antiquities of St. Andrews the historian of the
-Scottish Church, Dr. Hetherington.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_102_102" id="Footnote_102_102"></a><a href="#FNanchor_102_102"><span class="label">[102]</span></a> ‘Affui ego, spectator tragediæ.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber
-Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_103_103" id="Footnote_103_103"></a><a href="#FNanchor_103_103"><span class="label">[103]</span></a> ‘After the manner of other courtiers in all kinds of
-licentious riotousness.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Hist.</i>, i. App. p. 505.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_104_104" id="Footnote_104_104"></a><a href="#FNanchor_104_104"><span class="label">[104]</span></a> It is in reference to this verse (Ps. xxxvii. 3) that
-Alesius, in his <i>Comm. des Psaumes</i>, narrates the trial of Hamilton.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_105_105" id="Footnote_105_105"></a><a href="#FNanchor_105_105"><span class="label">[105]</span></a> ‘Jusserunt episcopi et theologi ut ei conviciaretur et
-vocaret eum hereticum.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_106_106" id="Footnote_106_106"></a><a href="#FNanchor_106_106"><span class="label">[106]</span></a> Pitscottie, <i>Hist. of Scotland</i>, pp. 133, 134.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_107_107" id="Footnote_107_107"></a><a href="#FNanchor_107_107"><span class="label">[107]</span></a> ‘Mi frater, non ita sentis in animo.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber
-Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_108_108" id="Footnote_108_108"></a><a href="#FNanchor_108_108"><span class="label">[108]</span></a> ‘Hoc dicto ita conscientiam illius percutit.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_109_109" id="Footnote_109_109"></a><a href="#FNanchor_109_109"><span class="label">[109]</span></a> ‘Domum rediens, inciderit in phrenesin.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>
-Buchanan adds, lib. xiv. ad an. 1527, ‘Nunquam ex eo die compos mentis
-fuit.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_110_110" id="Footnote_110_110"></a><a href="#FNanchor_110_110"><span class="label">[110]</span></a> The sentence is given at full length in Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv.
-p. 560.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_111_111" id="Footnote_111_111"></a><a href="#FNanchor_111_111"><span class="label">[111]</span></a> ‘Conclusus inter aliquot millia armatorum.’&mdash;Alesius,
-<i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_112_112" id="Footnote_112_112"></a><a href="#FNanchor_112_112"><span class="label">[112]</span></a> ‘Cum ipse adhuc in mensa sederet, jubet vocari præfectum
-et quærit utrum omnia parata sint.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_113_113" id="Footnote_113_113"></a><a href="#FNanchor_113_113"><span class="label">[113]</span></a> ‘Apprehensa ejus dextera, properat ad locum
-supplicii.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_114_114" id="Footnote_114_114"></a><a href="#FNanchor_114_114"><span class="label">[114]</span></a> ‘Christi cruce cunctis vitæ commodis anteposita.’&mdash;Bezæ
-<i>Icones</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_115_115" id="Footnote_115_115"></a><a href="#FNanchor_115_115"><span class="label">[115]</span></a> ‘Viso palo, ad quam alligandus erat, aperit caput,
-suscipiensque in cœlum, orat.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_116_116" id="Footnote_116_116"></a><a href="#FNanchor_116_116"><span class="label">[116]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, p. 17. Spotswood, p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_117_117" id="Footnote_117_117"></a><a href="#FNanchor_117_117"><span class="label">[117]</span></a> Pittscottie, Lorimer.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_118_118" id="Footnote_118_118"></a><a href="#FNanchor_118_118"><span class="label">[118]</span></a> Pittscottie, Lorimer.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_119_119" id="Footnote_119_119"></a><a href="#FNanchor_119_119"><span class="label">[119]</span></a> ‘Tu, si vera doces, infer digitum huc, ubi totus
-ardeo.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_120_120" id="Footnote_120_120"></a><a href="#FNanchor_120_120"><span class="label">[120]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist.</i>, i. p. 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_121_121" id="Footnote_121_121"></a><a href="#FNanchor_121_121"><span class="label">[121]</span></a> ‘Insania conflictatus mortem obiit.’&mdash;Buchanan, lib.
-xiv. an. 1527.&mdash;‘Ut in phrenesin inciderit, et non longe post mortuus
-sit.’ Alesius, <i>Lib. Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_122_122" id="Footnote_122_122"></a><a href="#FNanchor_122_122"><span class="label">[122]</span></a> The learned Mr. David Laing found a note of this in the
-Records of the Treasury.&mdash;See his appendix to Knox’s <i>Hist. of the
-Ref.</i>, i. p. 515.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_123_123" id="Footnote_123_123"></a><a href="#FNanchor_123_123"><span class="label">[123]</span></a> ‘Commendat matrem amicis.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_124_124" id="Footnote_124_124"></a><a href="#FNanchor_124_124"><span class="label">[124]</span></a> ‘Cum jam scissus per medium ignita catena
-ferrea.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_125_125" id="Footnote_125_125"></a><a href="#FNanchor_125_125"><span class="label">[125]</span></a> ‘Erexit tres digitos, aliis duobus combustis.’&mdash;Alesius,
-<i>Liber Psalm.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_126_126" id="Footnote_126_126"></a><a href="#FNanchor_126_126"><span class="label">[126]</span></a> ‘In igne, ab hora xii. usque ad vi., vespere, sedit
-ustulatus magisquam combustus.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_127_127" id="Footnote_127_127"></a><a href="#FNanchor_127_127"><span class="label">[127]</span></a> ‘Alesii responsio ad Cochlæum.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_128_128" id="Footnote_128_128"></a><a href="#FNanchor_128_128"><span class="label">[128]</span></a> Théodore Beza, <i>Icones</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_129_129" id="Footnote_129_129"></a><a href="#FNanchor_129_129"><span class="label">[129]</span></a> These verses relating to Hamilton occur in a poem, <i>De
-Coronis Martyrum in Scotia</i>, written by John Jonston, the manuscript
-of which is preserved in the Advocates’ Library, Edinburgh. [Note by
-Translator.]</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_130_130" id="Footnote_130_130"></a><a href="#FNanchor_130_130"><span class="label">[130]</span></a> ‘Tunc incandescerunt,’ etc.&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi Scot.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_131_131" id="Footnote_131_131"></a><a href="#FNanchor_131_131"><span class="label">[131]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, i. p. 36.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_132_132" id="Footnote_132_132"></a><a href="#FNanchor_132_132"><span class="label">[132]</span></a> Letters from the doctors of Louvain to the doctors of
-Scotland.&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 561. Knox, <i>Hist.</i>, i. 512.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_133_133" id="Footnote_133_133"></a><a href="#FNanchor_133_133"><span class="label">[133]</span></a> ‘An epistil to the nobil lords of Scotland.’&mdash;Knox,
-<i>Hist.</i>, i. App. 3, p. 544.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_134_134" id="Footnote_134_134"></a><a href="#FNanchor_134_134"><span class="label">[134]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> p. 503.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_135_135" id="Footnote_135_135"></a><a href="#FNanchor_135_135"><span class="label">[135]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, iv p. 499.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_136_136" id="Footnote_136_136"></a><a href="#FNanchor_136_136"><span class="label">[136]</span></a> ‘A sacris libris arcetur.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi contra
-Cochlæum</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_137_137" id="Footnote_137_137"></a><a href="#FNanchor_137_137"><span class="label">[137]</span></a> ‘Vim religionis, inspectis fontibus,
-cognoscant.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_138_138" id="Footnote_138_138"></a><a href="#FNanchor_138_138"><span class="label">[138]</span></a> Bayle, <i>Dict. crit.</i>; art. ‘Alesius.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_139_139" id="Footnote_139_139"></a><a href="#FNanchor_139_139"><span class="label">[139]</span></a> ‘Stringit ferrum in me, meque confodisset,
-nisi duo canonici, eum vi retrahentes, ferrum a meo corpore
-avertissent.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi adv. Cochlæum</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_140_140" id="Footnote_140_140"></a><a href="#FNanchor_140_140"><span class="label">[140]</span></a> ‘Ita ut collapsus, aliquamdiu jacerem
-exanimis.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi adv. Cochlæum</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_141_141" id="Footnote_141_141"></a><a href="#FNanchor_141_141"><span class="label">[141]</span></a> ‘Nisi locus fuisset infectus pestilentia.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_142_142" id="Footnote_142_142"></a><a href="#FNanchor_142_142"><span class="label">[142]</span></a> ‘Ego in latrinam quamdam inducor.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_143_143" id="Footnote_143_143"></a><a href="#FNanchor_143_143"><span class="label">[143]</span></a> ‘Post vigesimum diem extrahit me squalentem ex latrina
-illa.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi adv. Cochlæum</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_144_144" id="Footnote_144_144"></a><a href="#FNanchor_144_144"><span class="label">[144]</span></a> ‘Lavari et nitide vestiri.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_145_145" id="Footnote_145_145"></a><a href="#FNanchor_145_145"><span class="label">[145]</span></a> ‘Jubet me ab ara avelli et in latrinam rapi.’&mdash;Alesius,
-<i>Regi adv. Cochlæum</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_146_146" id="Footnote_146_146"></a><a href="#FNanchor_146_146"><span class="label">[146]</span></a> ‘Certum exitium impendere, nisi fuga mihi
-consulam.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi adv. Cochl.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_147_147" id="Footnote_147_147"></a><a href="#FNanchor_147_147"><span class="label">[147]</span></a> ‘Maximo dolore afficiebar cum cogitarem mihi e patria
-discedendum esse.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_148_148" id="Footnote_148_148"></a><a href="#FNanchor_148_148"><span class="label">[148]</span></a> ‘Patria qua nihil dulcius est bene institutis
-naturis.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_149_149" id="Footnote_149_149"></a><a href="#FNanchor_149_149"><span class="label">[149]</span></a> ‘Ecclesia, cuilibet pio, verius est patria, quam ille
-locus qui nascentem excepit.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi adv. Cochlæum</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_150_150" id="Footnote_150_150"></a><a href="#FNanchor_150_150"><span class="label">[150]</span></a> ‘Cum lacrymantes inter nos vale dixissemus.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_151_151" id="Footnote_151_151"></a><a href="#FNanchor_151_151"><span class="label">[151]</span></a> Comment. on <i>Acts</i>, xx. 37.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_152_152" id="Footnote_152_152"></a><a href="#FNanchor_152_152"><span class="label">[152]</span></a> ‘Media jam nocte in densissimis tenebris solus iter
-aggredior.’&mdash;Comment. on <i>Acts</i>, xx. 37.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_153_153" id="Footnote_153_153"></a><a href="#FNanchor_153_153"><span class="label">[153]</span></a> ‘Acerbissimum patriam et cognatos deserere.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_154_154" id="Footnote_154_154"></a><a href="#FNanchor_154_154"><span class="label">[154]</span></a> ‘Fiducia Christi sustentabar.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_155_155" id="Footnote_155_155"></a><a href="#FNanchor_155_155"><span class="label">[155]</span></a> ‘Equites missi a meo præposito.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_156_156" id="Footnote_156_156"></a><a href="#FNanchor_156_156"><span class="label">[156]</span></a> ‘Me quidem homo germanus admodum excepit, meque sibi
-adjunxit’&mdash;Comment. on <i>Acts</i>, xx. 37. The word <i>germanus</i> in this
-passage doubtless means <i>German</i>, and not <i>kinsman</i>, as some have
-supposed.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_157_157" id="Footnote_157_157"></a><a href="#FNanchor_157_157"><span class="label">[157]</span></a> ‘Oleum misericordiæ, nisi in vase fiduciæ
-ponis.’&mdash;Comment. on <i>Acts</i>, xx. 37.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_158_158" id="Footnote_158_158"></a><a href="#FNanchor_158_158"><span class="label">[158]</span></a> Alesius, <i>De Traditionibus Apostolicis</i>, in dedicatione.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_159_159" id="Footnote_159_159"></a><a href="#FNanchor_159_159"><span class="label">[159]</span></a> ‘Pervagatus sum quamdam Galliæ oram.’&mdash;Alesius, <i>Regi
-adv. Episcop.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_160_160" id="Footnote_160_160"></a><a href="#FNanchor_160_160"><span class="label">[160]</span></a> ‘The sore imprisonment of the erle of Argyll, the
-little exstymation of the erle of Murray and the Lord Maxwell,’
-etc.&mdash;Northumberland to Henry VIII., <i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 598.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_161_161" id="Footnote_161_161"></a><a href="#FNanchor_161_161"><span class="label">[161]</span></a> ‘The erle Bothwell in the night and other
-three.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 597.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_162_162" id="Footnote_162_162"></a><a href="#FNanchor_162_162"><span class="label">[162]</span></a> ‘To crown your Grace in the town of Edinburgh within
-bref tyme.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 574, Sept. 29, 1531.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_163_163" id="Footnote_163_163"></a><a href="#FNanchor_163_163"><span class="label">[163]</span></a> ‘That we may lawfully write ourself <i>prince of England</i>
-and Duke of York.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, iv. p. 599.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_164_164" id="Footnote_164_164"></a><a href="#FNanchor_164_164"><span class="label">[164]</span></a> ‘Of an audacious and bold spirit.’&mdash;Spotswood, p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_165_165" id="Footnote_165_165"></a><a href="#FNanchor_165_165"><span class="label">[165]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, pp. 45, 46.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_166_166" id="Footnote_166_166"></a><a href="#FNanchor_166_166"><span class="label">[166]</span></a> ‘This carnal prince who altogether was given unto the
-filthy lusts of the flesh.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, p. 48.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_167_167" id="Footnote_167_167"></a><a href="#FNanchor_167_167"><span class="label">[167]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> pp. 48-52.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_168_168" id="Footnote_168_168"></a><a href="#FNanchor_168_168"><span class="label">[168]</span></a> <i>Calderwood</i>, i.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_169_169" id="Footnote_169_169"></a><a href="#FNanchor_169_169"><span class="label">[169]</span></a> MS., Advocates’ Library.&mdash;Pitcairn’s <i>Crim. Trials</i>, i.
-p. 161.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_170_170" id="Footnote_170_170"></a><a href="#FNanchor_170_170"><span class="label">[170]</span></a> ‘Mores regi posse sine sacris libris?’ (<i>Alesii Epistola
-contra Decretum quoddam Episcoporum in Scotia.</i>) This letter bears no
-name either of its publisher or of the place where it was printed.
-There is at the end only Anno MDXXXIII.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_171_171" id="Footnote_171_171"></a><a href="#FNanchor_171_171"><span class="label">[171]</span></a> ‘Ut populus paulatim induat ethnicas
-persuasiones.’&mdash;<i>Alesii Epistola contra Decretum quoddam Episcoporum in
-Scotia.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_172_172" id="Footnote_172_172"></a><a href="#FNanchor_172_172"><span class="label">[172]</span></a> This treatise, in the form of a letter, is entitled, <i>An
-expediat laicis legere Novi Testamenti libros lingua vernacula?</i>&mdash;Ex
-Dresda. Id. Junii 1533.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_173_173" id="Footnote_173_173"></a><a href="#FNanchor_173_173"><span class="label">[173]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, iv. pp. 608-611.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_174_174" id="Footnote_174_174"></a><a href="#FNanchor_174_174"><span class="label">[174]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 579.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_175_175" id="Footnote_175_175"></a><a href="#FNanchor_175_175"><span class="label">[175]</span></a> Anderson, <i>Bible Annals</i>, ii. p. 443, note.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_176_176" id="Footnote_176_176"></a><a href="#FNanchor_176_176"><span class="label">[176]</span></a> ‘To the intent that all the people of Forfar might see
-the fire,’ etc.&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 579.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_177_177" id="Footnote_177_177"></a><a href="#FNanchor_177_177"><span class="label">[177]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 579.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_178_178" id="Footnote_178_178"></a><a href="#FNanchor_178_178"><span class="label">[178]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, i. p. 59. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>,
-p. 20.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_179_179" id="Footnote_179_179"></a><a href="#FNanchor_179_179"><span class="label">[179]</span></a> ‘On hearing them he became of a sudden as one enraptured
-or inspired.’&mdash;Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 20.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_180_180" id="Footnote_180_180"></a><a href="#FNanchor_180_180"><span class="label">[180]</span></a> ‘He threw himself on his knees, extended his hands.’
-etc.&mdash;Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_181_181" id="Footnote_181_181"></a><a href="#FNanchor_181_181"><span class="label">[181]</span></a> Spotswood, p. 66.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_182_182" id="Footnote_182_182"></a><a href="#FNanchor_182_182"><span class="label">[182]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, iv. p. 579. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 16.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_183_183" id="Footnote_183_183"></a><a href="#FNanchor_183_183"><span class="label">[183]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 1-6. These instructions,
-which have no date, belong to the second half of the year 1534, and
-they are corrected by the hand of Cromwell, by whom they were also
-probably drawn up. [The instructions extend over five printed quarto
-pages.&mdash;<i>Translator.</i>]</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_184_184" id="Footnote_184_184"></a><a href="#FNanchor_184_184"><span class="label">[184]</span></a> ‘King Henry VIII. to King James V.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, v.
-p. 7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_185_185" id="Footnote_185_185"></a><a href="#FNanchor_185_185"><span class="label">[185]</span></a> ‘Audience he himself only.’ Letter from Margaret to
-Henry VIII. and to Cromwell.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> pp. 10-12.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_186_186" id="Footnote_186_186"></a><a href="#FNanchor_186_186"><span class="label">[186]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, p. 14. Otterburn’s Letters to Cromwell.
-See also the note taken from the <i>Diurnall</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_187_187" id="Footnote_187_187"></a><a href="#FNanchor_187_187"><span class="label">[187]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 52, p. 19.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_188_188" id="Footnote_188_188"></a><a href="#FNanchor_188_188"><span class="label">[188]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 18-20.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_189_189" id="Footnote_189_189"></a><a href="#FNanchor_189_189"><span class="label">[189]</span></a> Calderwood’s <i>Hist.</i> Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 21.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_190_190" id="Footnote_190_190"></a><a href="#FNanchor_190_190"><span class="label">[190]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_191_191" id="Footnote_191_191"></a><a href="#FNanchor_191_191"><span class="label">[191]</span></a> These and other details were communicated by Andrew to
-the minister John Davidson, who inserted them in his <i>History of the
-Scottish Martyrs</i>.&mdash;Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_192_192" id="Footnote_192_192"></a><a href="#FNanchor_192_192"><span class="label">[192]</span></a> ‘Stoutly.’ Fox’s <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 622.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_193_193" id="Footnote_193_193"></a><a href="#FNanchor_193_193"><span class="label">[193]</span></a> [Or <i>portass</i>, a <i>portable</i> breviary, or small
-prayer-book.&mdash;<i>Translator.</i>]</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_194_194" id="Footnote_194_194"></a><a href="#FNanchor_194_194"><span class="label">[194]</span></a> Fox’s <i>Acts</i>. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 22.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_195_195" id="Footnote_195_195"></a><a href="#FNanchor_195_195"><span class="label">[195]</span></a> Letter from Angus to Sir G. Douglas.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_196_196" id="Footnote_196_196"></a><a href="#FNanchor_196_196"><span class="label">[196]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 38.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_197_197" id="Footnote_197_197"></a><a href="#FNanchor_197_197"><span class="label">[197]</span></a> See the Letter from the Queen-mother to Henry
-VIII.&mdash;<i>State Papers.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_198_198" id="Footnote_198_198"></a><a href="#FNanchor_198_198"><span class="label">[198]</span></a> Howard and Barlow to Henry VIII.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, pp.
-46, 48.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_199_199" id="Footnote_199_199"></a><a href="#FNanchor_199_199"><span class="label">[199]</span></a> <i>Unpublished Letters of Margaret of Angoulême</i>, p. 349.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_200_200" id="Footnote_200_200"></a><a href="#FNanchor_200_200"><span class="label">[200]</span></a> Sutchyll’s Letters to the Lord Admiral.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>,
-v. p. 59.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_201_201" id="Footnote_201_201"></a><a href="#FNanchor_201_201"><span class="label">[201]</span></a> ‘Sub amitæ reginæ Navarræ disciplina
-educata.’&mdash;Buchanan, lib. xiv. ad an. 1537. See also <i>Unpublished
-Letters of the Queen of Navarre</i>, p. 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_202_202" id="Footnote_202_202"></a><a href="#FNanchor_202_202"><span class="label">[202]</span></a></p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Regia eram conjux, et regia filia, neptis</div>
- <div>Regia, spe et votis regia mater eram ... etc.</div>
- <div class="i8">Buchanan, <i>Opera</i>, p. 81.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_203_203" id="Footnote_203_203"></a><a href="#FNanchor_203_203"><span class="label">[203]</span></a> ‘Rex, id quod evenit, de exitu uxoris veritus, in illam
-oculos conjecerat.’&mdash;Buchanan, lib. xiv.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_204_204" id="Footnote_204_204"></a><a href="#FNanchor_204_204"><span class="label">[204]</span></a> Kirkton, <i>True History of the Church of Scotland</i>, p. 7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_205_205" id="Footnote_205_205"></a><a href="#FNanchor_205_205"><span class="label">[205]</span></a> ‘The great part of the sermon was in extolling of the
-Richess of Rome authority.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 154.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_206_206" id="Footnote_206_206"></a><a href="#FNanchor_206_206"><span class="label">[206]</span></a> ‘Most vicious prince we shall call, for he neither
-spared manis wieff, nor madyn, no more after his marriage than he did
-before.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref. in Scotland</i>, <i>Works</i>, 1846, i. p. 66.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_207_207" id="Footnote_207_207"></a><a href="#FNanchor_207_207"><span class="label">[207]</span></a> ‘His velut machinis admotis, quum regis animum
-superstitionibus obnoxium labefactassent.’&mdash;Buchanan, lib. xiv. an.
-1535.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_208_208" id="Footnote_208_208"></a><a href="#FNanchor_208_208"><span class="label">[208]</span></a> Spotswood, <i>Church of Scotland</i>, p. 67.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_209_209" id="Footnote_209_209"></a><a href="#FNanchor_209_209"><span class="label">[209]</span></a> <i>Criminal Trials.</i> Anderson, <i>Bible Annals</i>, p. 498.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_210_210" id="Footnote_210_210"></a><a href="#FNanchor_210_210"><span class="label">[210]</span></a> Norfolk to Cromwell, March 29, 1539.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, v.
-p. 154.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_211_211" id="Footnote_211_211"></a><a href="#FNanchor_211_211"><span class="label">[211]</span></a> ‘Daily commeth unto me some gentlemen and some
-clerks.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 154.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_212_212" id="Footnote_212_212"></a><a href="#FNanchor_212_212"><span class="label">[212]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_213_213" id="Footnote_213_213"></a><a href="#FNanchor_213_213"><span class="label">[213]</span></a> ‘The verray sempill people understood that as the
-preastis and pharisyes....’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref. in Scotland</i>, i. p. 62</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_214_214" id="Footnote_214_214"></a><a href="#FNanchor_214_214"><span class="label">[214]</span></a> ‘Because they were at the bridal and marriage of a
-priest.’&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 623.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_215_215" id="Footnote_215_215"></a><a href="#FNanchor_215_215"><span class="label">[215]</span></a> ‘Mars 1, 1539, accusatio hereticorum et eorum
-combustio.’&mdash;<i>Archæologia</i>, xxii. p. 7. ‘The last day of
-February.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref. in Scotland</i>, p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_216_216" id="Footnote_216_216"></a><a href="#FNanchor_216_216"><span class="label">[216]</span></a> Anderson, <i>Annals of the English Bible</i>, ii. 500, 501.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_217_217" id="Footnote_217_217"></a><a href="#FNanchor_217_217"><span class="label">[217]</span></a> ‘Eorum combustio apud Edinburgh rege
-presente.’&mdash;<i>Archæologia</i>, xxii. p. 7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_218_218" id="Footnote_218_218"></a><a href="#FNanchor_218_218"><span class="label">[218]</span></a> ‘Lutheranismo suspecti complures capti sunt, quinque
-cremati.’&mdash;Buchanan, <i>Res Scoticæ</i>, p. 309.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_219_219" id="Footnote_219_219"></a><a href="#FNanchor_219_219"><span class="label">[219]</span></a> Lord Treasurer’s <i>Accounts</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_220_220" id="Footnote_220_220"></a><a href="#FNanchor_220_220"><span class="label">[220]</span></a> ‘Sopitis custodibus.’&mdash;Lord Treasurer’s <i>Accounts</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_221_221" id="Footnote_221_221"></a><a href="#FNanchor_221_221"><span class="label">[221]</span></a> ‘Per cubiculi fenestram evaserat.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_222_222" id="Footnote_222_222"></a><a href="#FNanchor_222_222"><span class="label">[222]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref. in Scotland</i>, p. 71.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_223_223" id="Footnote_223_223"></a><a href="#FNanchor_223_223"><span class="label">[223]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref. in Scotland</i>, p. 71.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_224_224" id="Footnote_224_224"></a><a href="#FNanchor_224_224"><span class="label">[224]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_225_225" id="Footnote_225_225"></a><a href="#FNanchor_225_225"><span class="label">[225]</span></a> ‘One frere Jerome, a well learned man, lyeth in sore
-yerons.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 141.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_226_226" id="Footnote_226_226"></a><a href="#FNanchor_226_226"><span class="label">[226]</span></a> Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 24.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_227_227" id="Footnote_227_227"></a><a href="#FNanchor_227_227"><span class="label">[227]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 65. Spotswood, p. 67. Petrie, <i>History
-of the Church</i>, p. 180.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_228_228" id="Footnote_228_228"></a><a href="#FNanchor_228_228"><span class="label">[228]</span></a> ‘For many of his minions were pensioners to
-priests.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref. in Scotland</i>, p. 67.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_229_229" id="Footnote_229_229"></a><a href="#FNanchor_229_229"><span class="label">[229]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 174.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_230_230" id="Footnote_230_230"></a><a href="#FNanchor_230_230"><span class="label">[230]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 170.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_231_231" id="Footnote_231_231"></a><a href="#FNanchor_231_231"><span class="label">[231]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 170.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_232_232" id="Footnote_232_232"></a><a href="#FNanchor_232_232"><span class="label">[232]</span></a> Spotswood, p. 70. Petrie, p. 180.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_233_233" id="Footnote_233_233"></a><a href="#FNanchor_233_233"><span class="label">[233]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 177.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_234_234" id="Footnote_234_234"></a><a href="#FNanchor_234_234"><span class="label">[234]</span></a> ‘Rex provisus jam hæredibus de sua salute
-securior.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 510.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_235_235" id="Footnote_235_235"></a><a href="#FNanchor_235_235"><span class="label">[235]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 178.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_236_236" id="Footnote_236_236"></a><a href="#FNanchor_236_236"><span class="label">[236]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 82. It is difficult to say what this
-word <i>jefwellis</i> exactly means. Another manuscript has <i>josrellis</i>;
-another <i>jeffels</i>; and a fourth, <i>Jesuits</i>. The last reading is
-improbable. The Jesuits had only been confirmed by the pope the year
-before, and their name had not yet become a term of reproach.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_237_237" id="Footnote_237_237"></a><a href="#FNanchor_237_237"><span class="label">[237]</span></a> The <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 125, contain a letter from him
-to Lord Cromwell, on a political subject, and suggesting that Henry
-VIII. should give his nephew a young lion, in token of his friendship.
-‘He saw one <i>zoung lyoun</i> in Flandris.’ The King of Scotland wished for
-it, and Scott thought that his wish should be gratified.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_238_238" id="Footnote_238_238"></a><a href="#FNanchor_238_238"><span class="label">[238]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref. in Scotland</i>, p. 69. Spotswood, p. 71.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_239_239" id="Footnote_239_239"></a><a href="#FNanchor_239_239"><span class="label">[239]</span></a> ‘J. Hamiltonium ense stricto in se ruentem.’&mdash;Buchanan,
-p. 512.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_240_240" id="Footnote_240_240"></a><a href="#FNanchor_240_240"><span class="label">[240]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 188-190.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_241_241" id="Footnote_241_241"></a><a href="#FNanchor_241_241"><span class="label">[241]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 168.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_242_242" id="Footnote_242_242"></a><a href="#FNanchor_242_242"><span class="label">[242]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 168.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_243_243" id="Footnote_243_243"></a><a href="#FNanchor_243_243"><span class="label">[243]</span></a> ‘Ac prolixe de sui regis amore et benevolentia erga eum
-sponderent.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 516.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_244_244" id="Footnote_244_244"></a><a href="#FNanchor_244_244"><span class="label">[244]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 198.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_245_245" id="Footnote_245_245"></a><a href="#FNanchor_245_245"><span class="label">[245]</span></a> ‘Si animum regis largitionibus immensis
-aggrederentur.’&mdash;Buchanan, <i>Rer. Scot. Hist.</i>, p. 510. D. de Foe,
-<i>Church of Scotland</i>, p. 9. Spotswood, <i>Hist.</i>, pp. 70, 71. Petrie,
-<i>Hist.</i>, p. 181. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_246_246" id="Footnote_246_246"></a><a href="#FNanchor_246_246"><span class="label">[246]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_247_247" id="Footnote_247_247"></a><a href="#FNanchor_247_247"><span class="label">[247]</span></a> ‘Cæsi non adeo multi, plurimi capti.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 512.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_248_248" id="Footnote_248_248"></a><a href="#FNanchor_248_248"><span class="label">[248]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 78.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_249_249" id="Footnote_249_249"></a><a href="#FNanchor_249_249"><span class="label">[249]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 207, 209.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_250_250" id="Footnote_250_250"></a><a href="#FNanchor_250_250"><span class="label">[250]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_251_251" id="Footnote_251_251"></a><a href="#FNanchor_251_251"><span class="label">[251]</span></a> Sadler’s <i>Papers</i>, i. p. 94. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_252_252" id="Footnote_252_252"></a><a href="#FNanchor_252_252"><span class="label">[252]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 86.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_253_253" id="Footnote_253_253"></a><a href="#FNanchor_253_253"><span class="label">[253]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 89.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_254_254" id="Footnote_254_254"></a><a href="#FNanchor_254_254"><span class="label">[254]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 86.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_255_255" id="Footnote_255_255"></a><a href="#FNanchor_255_255"><span class="label">[255]</span></a> ‘Quum circiter 500 equites Angli in propinquis collibus
-cernerentur.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 513.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_256_256" id="Footnote_256_256"></a><a href="#FNanchor_256_256"><span class="label">[256]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 87.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_257_257" id="Footnote_257_257"></a><a href="#FNanchor_257_257"><span class="label">[257]</span></a> Plures a Scotis latronibus capti et Anglis
-divenditi.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 513.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_258_258" id="Footnote_258_258"></a><a href="#FNanchor_258_258"><span class="label">[258]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 88.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_259_259" id="Footnote_259_259"></a><a href="#FNanchor_259_259"><span class="label">[259]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_260_260" id="Footnote_260_260"></a><a href="#FNanchor_260_260"><span class="label">[260]</span></a> ‘Velut ad publicum spectaculum per ora vulgi
-traducti.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 516. Their names and their fortunes are set
-forth in <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 232-235.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_261_261" id="Footnote_261_261"></a><a href="#FNanchor_261_261"><span class="label">[261]</span></a> Lesley says that it was at Carlaverock, but Knox, p. 89,
-and Pitscottie, p. 174, say ‘Lochmaben,’ which seems to me established.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_262_262" id="Footnote_262_262"></a><a href="#FNanchor_262_262"><span class="label">[262]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 89.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_263_263" id="Footnote_263_263"></a><a href="#FNanchor_263_263"><span class="label">[263]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 225-228.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_264_264" id="Footnote_264_264"></a><a href="#FNanchor_264_264"><span class="label">[264]</span></a> Spotswood, p. 71. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 91.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_265_265" id="Footnote_265_265"></a><a href="#FNanchor_265_265"><span class="label">[265]</span></a> ‘Rege in ætatis flore non tam morbo quam mœroris vi
-extincto.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 515.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_266_266" id="Footnote_266_266"></a><a href="#FNanchor_266_266"><span class="label">[266]</span></a> ‘Imminere videbatur tempestas quantam vix ulla
-proximorum sæculorum memoria ... meminisset.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 515.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_267_267" id="Footnote_267_267"></a><a href="#FNanchor_267_267"><span class="label">[267]</span></a> ‘Multi pro sua cujusque spe aut metu varie
-disserebant.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_268_268" id="Footnote_268_268"></a><a href="#FNanchor_268_268"><span class="label">[268]</span></a> ‘Minime turbidus, ex amita cardinalis natus,’&mdash;Buchanan,
-p. 515.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_269_269" id="Footnote_269_269"></a><a href="#FNanchor_269_269"><span class="label">[269]</span></a> ‘Many affirm that a dead man’s hand was made to
-subscribe a blank.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 92. ‘Conducto Balfurio
-sacrificulo mercenario falsum testamentum subjecit.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 515.
-Sadler, <i>Papers</i>, i. p. 38. Lesley, <i>Hist.</i>, p. 169.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_270_270" id="Footnote_270_270"></a><a href="#FNanchor_270_270"><span class="label">[270]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 238, 240. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, pp. 32,
-94.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_271_271" id="Footnote_271_271"></a><a href="#FNanchor_271_271"><span class="label">[271]</span></a> Spotswood, p. 71. Buchanan, Knox.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_272_272" id="Footnote_272_272"></a><a href="#FNanchor_272_272"><span class="label">[272]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 250.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_273_273" id="Footnote_273_273"></a><a href="#FNanchor_273_273"><span class="label">[273]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 95. Spotswood, p. 72. McCrie, <i>Life of
-Knox</i>, p. 21. Edit. 1855.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_274_274" id="Footnote_274_274"></a><a href="#FNanchor_274_274"><span class="label">[274]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 242.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_275_275" id="Footnote_275_275"></a><a href="#FNanchor_275_275"><span class="label">[275]</span></a> ‘Quum cardinalis non solum repugnaret sed obturbando et
-alios interpellando, nihil decerni pateretur.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 517. It
-appears to us that Buchanan, although a contemporary and an eminent
-historian, is in error here. He assigns this opposition of the cardinal
-to the month of March in the parliament, while it is evident that it
-took place on January 26 at the latest.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_276_276" id="Footnote_276_276"></a><a href="#FNanchor_276_276"><span class="label">[276]</span></a> ‘Communi prope omnium consensu cardinalis in cubiculum
-seorsum seclusus est.’&mdash;Buchanan, <i>ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_277_277" id="Footnote_277_277"></a><a href="#FNanchor_277_277"><span class="label">[277]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 242 n.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_278_278" id="Footnote_278_278"></a><a href="#FNanchor_278_278"><span class="label">[278]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Harm. de Matth.</i>, xii. 29.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_279_279" id="Footnote_279_279"></a><a href="#FNanchor_279_279"><span class="label">[279]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. 249.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_280_280" id="Footnote_280_280"></a><a href="#FNanchor_280_280"><span class="label">[280]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. 249.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_281_281" id="Footnote_281_281"></a><a href="#FNanchor_281_281"><span class="label">[281]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 262-264. Angus to Lisle.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_282_282" id="Footnote_282_282"></a><a href="#FNanchor_282_282"><span class="label">[282]</span></a> ‘The marriage of the said queen, and to contract the
-same by their said ambassadors.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_283_283" id="Footnote_283_283"></a><a href="#FNanchor_283_283"><span class="label">[283]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, p. 98.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_284_284" id="Footnote_284_284"></a><a href="#FNanchor_284_284"><span class="label">[284]</span></a> Knox, <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, p. 99.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_285_285" id="Footnote_285_285"></a><a href="#FNanchor_285_285"><span class="label">[285]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i>, p. 100. Spotswood, p. 72. Petrie, <i>Church
-Hist.</i>, p. 182.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_286_286" id="Footnote_286_286"></a><a href="#FNanchor_286_286"><span class="label">[286]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 100.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_287_287" id="Footnote_287_287"></a><a href="#FNanchor_287_287"><span class="label">[287]</span></a> ‘Affuit R. Sadlerius, eques ab Anglo legatus, qui
-nuptias et pacem publicam procuraret.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 517.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_288_288" id="Footnote_288_288"></a><a href="#FNanchor_288_288"><span class="label">[288]</span></a> ‘With his fulmination of cursing, and all other means
-that he shall be able to excogitate.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 286.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_289_289" id="Footnote_289_289"></a><a href="#FNanchor_289_289"><span class="label">[289]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 103.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_290_290" id="Footnote_290_290"></a><a href="#FNanchor_290_290"><span class="label">[290]</span></a> ‘Hamilton, abbas Passerensis, et David
-Panitarius.’&mdash;Buchanan, lib. xv. anno 1543. ‘David Panter.’&mdash;Spotswood.
-‘David Panteyr.’&mdash;Knox.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_291_291" id="Footnote_291_291"></a><a href="#FNanchor_291_291"><span class="label">[291]</span></a> ‘Great esperance there was that their presence should
-have been comfortable to the kirk of God,’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 105.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_292_292" id="Footnote_292_292"></a><a href="#FNanchor_292_292"><span class="label">[292]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 107.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_293_293" id="Footnote_293_293"></a><a href="#FNanchor_293_293"><span class="label">[293]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 107.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_294_294" id="Footnote_294_294"></a><a href="#FNanchor_294_294"><span class="label">[294]</span></a> Spotswood. Knox writes ‘Ballantyne.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_295_295" id="Footnote_295_295"></a><a href="#FNanchor_295_295"><span class="label">[295]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 242. Spotswood, p. 73. In Laing’s
-edition of Knox it is stated in a note, p. 97, ‘He at last obtained
-permission to go to his own castle of St. Andrews, under the guard of
-George, fifth Lord Seaton.’ But the text of Knox, p. 57, says, ‘Was put
-first in Dalkeith, after in Seatoun.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_296_296" id="Footnote_296_296"></a><a href="#FNanchor_296_296"><span class="label">[296]</span></a> ‘He took no heed to them, but to new opinions of
-heresy.’&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, v. 322.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_297_297" id="Footnote_297_297"></a><a href="#FNanchor_297_297"><span class="label">[297]</span></a> ‘The cardinal ceased not to traffic with such of the
-multitude as he might draw to his faction.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 108.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_298_298" id="Footnote_298_298"></a><a href="#FNanchor_298_298"><span class="label">[298]</span></a> ‘Imminentem universæ papanæ Ecclesiæ ruinam
-averteret.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 518.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_299_299" id="Footnote_299_299"></a><a href="#FNanchor_299_299"><span class="label">[299]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 321. Edinb. July 20, 1543.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_300_300" id="Footnote_300_300"></a><a href="#FNanchor_300_300"><span class="label">[300]</span></a> ‘Tanta seditione quantam ipse vides a cardinale
-excitata.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 518. Spotswood, p. 73.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_301_301" id="Footnote_301_301"></a><a href="#FNanchor_301_301"><span class="label">[301]</span></a> ‘Vi publici furoris abreptus.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 519.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_302_302" id="Footnote_302_302"></a><a href="#FNanchor_302_302"><span class="label">[302]</span></a> ‘Recta Londinum, multis reclamantibus, est
-profectus.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_303_303" id="Footnote_303_303"></a><a href="#FNanchor_303_303"><span class="label">[303]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 323.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_304_304" id="Footnote_304_304"></a><a href="#FNanchor_304_304"><span class="label">[304]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 109.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_305_305" id="Footnote_305_305"></a><a href="#FNanchor_305_305"><span class="label">[305]</span></a> ‘Ut infamia flagitii minueretur ad vulgus, non
-propalam, sed in æde Franciscanorum, ... sententiam suam prorex
-mutavit.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 521.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_306_306" id="Footnote_306_306"></a><a href="#FNanchor_306_306"><span class="label">[306]</span></a> ‘He received absolution, renounced the profession of
-Christ Jesus his holy Evangel.’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 109.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_307_307" id="Footnote_307_307"></a><a href="#FNanchor_307_307"><span class="label">[307]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. p. 333. Sept. 8, 1543.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_308_308" id="Footnote_308_308"></a><a href="#FNanchor_308_308"><span class="label">[308]</span></a> ‘At that time was our queen crouned’&mdash;Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p.
-109.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_309_309" id="Footnote_309_309"></a><a href="#FNanchor_309_309"><span class="label">[309]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. 335, 351. Buchanan, p. 524. <i>Bible
-Annals</i>, ii. 529. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 110.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_310_310" id="Footnote_310_310"></a><a href="#FNanchor_310_310"><span class="label">[310]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 623.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_311_311" id="Footnote_311_311"></a><a href="#FNanchor_311_311"><span class="label">[311]</span></a> ‘Their conferences and assemblies, in hearing and
-expounding of Scripture,’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 624.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_312_312" id="Footnote_312_312"></a><a href="#FNanchor_312_312"><span class="label">[312]</span></a> ‘Certain priests did eat and drink in these honest men’s
-houses, to whom they were much bounden.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 625.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_313_313" id="Footnote_313_313"></a><a href="#FNanchor_313_313"><span class="label">[313]</span></a> ‘Variarum copia voluptatum ultra omnem mundanorum
-luxuriam exuberant.’&mdash;M. Clamengis, <i>Ep.</i> 35.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_314_314" id="Footnote_314_314"></a><a href="#FNanchor_314_314"><span class="label">[314]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 624.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_315_315" id="Footnote_315_315"></a><a href="#FNanchor_315_315"><span class="label">[315]</span></a> ‘Nisi secundum ipsius piæ matris
-dispensationem.’&mdash;Bernardus de Bustis, Franciscanus, <i>Sermones</i>, 1500.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_316_316" id="Footnote_316_316"></a><a href="#FNanchor_316_316"><span class="label">[316]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 624.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_317_317" id="Footnote_317_317"></a><a href="#FNanchor_317_317"><span class="label">[317]</span></a> ‘Women who, contrary to nature, addressed them to
-extreme cruelty against him.’&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 623.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_318_318" id="Footnote_318_318"></a><a href="#FNanchor_318_318"><span class="label">[318]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> v. p. 623.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_319_319" id="Footnote_319_319"></a><a href="#FNanchor_319_319"><span class="label">[319]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 624.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_320_320" id="Footnote_320_320"></a><a href="#FNanchor_320_320"><span class="label">[320]</span></a> ‘Prophesied of the ruin and plague which came upon the
-cardinal.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> v. p. 625.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_321_321" id="Footnote_321_321"></a><a href="#FNanchor_321_321"><span class="label">[321]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 118. Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. pp. 623-625.
-Spotswood, pp. 74, 75.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_322_322" id="Footnote_322_322"></a><a href="#FNanchor_322_322"><span class="label">[322]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 119. Spotswood, p. 76.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_323_323" id="Footnote_323_323"></a><a href="#FNanchor_323_323"><span class="label">[323]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 119.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_324_324" id="Footnote_324_324"></a><a href="#FNanchor_324_324"><span class="label">[324]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 119.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_325_325" id="Footnote_325_325"></a><a href="#FNanchor_325_325"><span class="label">[325]</span></a> ‘Urbe spoliata ac deinde incensa ... multos pagos
-arcesque nonnullas et villas hominum nobilium ferro flammaque
-vestarunt.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 525.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_326_326" id="Footnote_326_326"></a><a href="#FNanchor_326_326"><span class="label">[326]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, v. pp. 361-366.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_327_327" id="Footnote_327_327"></a><a href="#FNanchor_327_327"><span class="label">[327]</span></a> Emery Tylney’s Account.&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 626.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_328_328" id="Footnote_328_328"></a><a href="#FNanchor_328_328"><span class="label">[328]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 127. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 28.
-Spotswood, p. 76.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_329_329" id="Footnote_329_329"></a><a href="#FNanchor_329_329"><span class="label">[329]</span></a> Or Leifnorris. See Laing’s note, Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 127.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_330_330" id="Footnote_330_330"></a><a href="#FNanchor_330_330"><span class="label">[330]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_331_331" id="Footnote_331_331"></a><a href="#FNanchor_331_331"><span class="label">[331]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 44. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 20. <i>Hist.</i>,
-p. 129.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_332_332" id="Footnote_332_332"></a><a href="#FNanchor_332_332"><span class="label">[332]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 130.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_333_333" id="Footnote_333_333"></a><a href="#FNanchor_333_333"><span class="label">[333]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 131.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_334_334" id="Footnote_334_334"></a><a href="#FNanchor_334_334"><span class="label">[334]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 131.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_335_335" id="Footnote_335_335"></a><a href="#FNanchor_335_335"><span class="label">[335]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, pp. 29, 30. Spotswood, p. 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_336_336" id="Footnote_336_336"></a><a href="#FNanchor_336_336"><span class="label">[336]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 133. Some MSS. read ‘copestone,’
-‘keapestone,’&mdash;‘keepestone.’ Spotswood, p. 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_337_337" id="Footnote_337_337"></a><a href="#FNanchor_337_337"><span class="label">[337]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 134. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 31.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_338_338" id="Footnote_338_338"></a><a href="#FNanchor_338_338"><span class="label">[338]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 135. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 31.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_339_339" id="Footnote_339_339"></a><a href="#FNanchor_339_339"><span class="label">[339]</span></a> This is the first time that Knox speaks of himself in
-his History (p. 137).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_340_340" id="Footnote_340_340"></a><a href="#FNanchor_340_340"><span class="label">[340]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 138. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>. Spotswood.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_341_341" id="Footnote_341_341"></a><a href="#FNanchor_341_341"><span class="label">[341]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 143. <i>Diurnall of Occurrents</i>, p. 41.
-Spotswood, p. 78.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_342_342" id="Footnote_342_342"></a><a href="#FNanchor_342_342"><span class="label">[342]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 143. Spotswood, p. 79.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_343_343" id="Footnote_343_343"></a><a href="#FNanchor_343_343"><span class="label">[343]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 144. Buchanan, p. 556. Spotswood, p.
-79. Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. 626. Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 33.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_344_344" id="Footnote_344_344"></a><a href="#FNanchor_344_344"><span class="label">[344]</span></a> Fox. In Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, p. 34, the name is written,
-‘Winram.’ In Buchanan, ‘Viniramus.’ In Knox, ‘Winram.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_345_345" id="Footnote_345_345"></a><a href="#FNanchor_345_345"><span class="label">[345]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 627.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_346_346" id="Footnote_346_346"></a><a href="#FNanchor_346_346"><span class="label">[346]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v p. 628. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 152.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_347_347" id="Footnote_347_347"></a><a href="#FNanchor_347_347"><span class="label">[347]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 154.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_348_348" id="Footnote_348_348"></a><a href="#FNanchor_348_348"><span class="label">[348]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 630.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_349_349" id="Footnote_349_349"></a><a href="#FNanchor_349_349"><span class="label">[349]</span></a> ‘He wanteth the instrument by which he bindeth or
-looseth, that is to say, the Word of God.’&mdash;Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 631.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_350_350" id="Footnote_350_350"></a><a href="#FNanchor_350_350"><span class="label">[350]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, v. p. 633.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_351_351" id="Footnote_351_351"></a><a href="#FNanchor_351_351"><span class="label">[351]</span></a> ‘Nulla judicii aut liberæ disceptationis ibi forma fuit:
-accusator enim ... cum summa verborum acerbitate detonabat.’&mdash;Buchanan,
-p. 538. Spotswood, pp. 80, 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_352_352" id="Footnote_352_352"></a><a href="#FNanchor_352_352"><span class="label">[352]</span></a> ‘Non videri æquum ut pertinax hereticus ... ullis
-ecclesiæ beneficiis frueretur.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 538.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_353_353" id="Footnote_353_353"></a><a href="#FNanchor_353_353"><span class="label">[353]</span></a> Scots’ <i>Worthies</i>, pp. 35, 36. ‘Viros vos esse bonos et
-in eodem Christi corpore mecum esse sociatos.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 539.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_354_354" id="Footnote_354_354"></a><a href="#FNanchor_354_354"><span class="label">[354]</span></a> ‘Fenestra ... tapetibus, stragulis sericis et pulvinis
-ornabatur.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 559.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_355_355" id="Footnote_355_355"></a><a href="#FNanchor_355_355"><span class="label">[355]</span></a> Fox, <i>Acts</i>, p. 635.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_356_356" id="Footnote_356_356"></a><a href="#FNanchor_356_356"><span class="label">[356]</span></a> ‘At qui nos tam superbe despicit, intra paucos dies non
-minus ignominiose jacebit quam nunc arroganter cubat.’&mdash;Buchanan, p.
-540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_357_357" id="Footnote_357_357"></a><a href="#FNanchor_357_357"><span class="label">[357]</span></a> ‘Velut pecus ex hara suæ libidini mactaret.’&mdash;Buchanan,
-p. 540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_358_358" id="Footnote_358_358"></a><a href="#FNanchor_358_358"><span class="label">[358]</span></a> ‘Domi cum scortis volutetur; foris in cæde innoxiorum et
-sanguine hæreticorum debaccharetur.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_359_359" id="Footnote_359_359"></a><a href="#FNanchor_359_359"><span class="label">[359]</span></a> ‘Discesserunt utrimque animis infensissimis.’&mdash;Buchanan
-p. 541.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_360_360" id="Footnote_360_360"></a><a href="#FNanchor_360_360"><span class="label">[360]</span></a> ‘Leslius ad suos rediit, intolerandam
-cardinalis superbiam iis exposuit; facile omnes in cædem ejus
-conjurarunt.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 541. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, pp. 172, 173.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_361_361" id="Footnote_361_361"></a><a href="#FNanchor_361_361"><span class="label">[361]</span></a> ‘Cardinalis arcem suam in usum belli
-communiebat.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 542.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_362_362" id="Footnote_362_362"></a><a href="#FNanchor_362_362"><span class="label">[362]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 74.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_363_363" id="Footnote_363_363"></a><a href="#FNanchor_363_363"><span class="label">[363]</span></a> ‘Eos quum semisomnes sigillatim evocassent mortem
-præsentem si quisquam mutiret, comminati.’&mdash;Buchanan, xv. p. 545.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_364_364" id="Footnote_364_364"></a><a href="#FNanchor_364_364"><span class="label">[364]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 177.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_365_365" id="Footnote_365_365"></a><a href="#FNanchor_365_365"><span class="label">[365]</span></a> Numbers, ch. xxxv.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_366_366" id="Footnote_366_366"></a><a href="#FNanchor_366_366"><span class="label">[366]</span></a> Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p. 177.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_367_367" id="Footnote_367_367"></a><a href="#FNanchor_367_367"><span class="label">[367]</span></a> ‘Cadaver exanimatum oculis omnium exponunt, in illo ipso
-loco unde ipse non multo ante Georgii [Wishart] supplicium tam lætus
-spectaverat.’&mdash;Buchanan, p. 542.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_368_368" id="Footnote_368_368"></a><a href="#FNanchor_368_368"><span class="label">[368]</span></a> Spotswood, p. 84.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_369_369" id="Footnote_369_369"></a><a href="#FNanchor_369_369"><span class="label">[369]</span></a> Spotswood, p. 88. The last of July. Knox, <i>Ref.</i>, p.
-205. Buchanan assigns the capture of the castle or the capitulation to
-the month of August 1547. ‘Hæc in mensem Augusti anni <span class="smcap">MDXLVII.</span>
-inciderunt,’ p. 543.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_370_370" id="Footnote_370_370"></a><a href="#FNanchor_370_370"><span class="label">[370]</span></a> Melville’s <i>Diary</i>, pp. 276-278. M’Crie, <i>Andrew
-Melville</i>, ii. p. 66.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_371_371" id="Footnote_371_371"></a><a href="#FNanchor_371_371"><span class="label">[371]</span></a> Second Book of Discipline.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_372_372" id="Footnote_372_372"></a><a href="#FNanchor_372_372"><span class="label">[372]</span></a> Buckle, <i>History of Civilization</i>, ch. xvi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_373_373" id="Footnote_373_373"></a><a href="#FNanchor_373_373"><span class="label">[373]</span></a> See vols. i. and ii. of the second series: <i>The
-Reformation in the Time of Calvin</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_374_374" id="Footnote_374_374"></a><a href="#FNanchor_374_374"><span class="label">[374]</span></a> This thought was expressed to the author by a
-distinguished writer, to whom we owe a remarkable <i>History of the
-French Revolution</i>, published a few years ago.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_375_375" id="Footnote_375_375"></a><a href="#FNanchor_375_375"><span class="label">[375]</span></a> ‘Singulis momentis de Gallica libelli nostri editione
-cogitabamus.’ Letter to Francois Daniel; Lausanne, Oct. 13. 1536. Bibl.
-de Berne. Calvin, <i>Opera</i>, edid. Theol. Argent. vol. x. p. 63. The
-earliest known edition of the <i>Institution</i> in French is that of 1540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_376_376" id="Footnote_376_376"></a><a href="#FNanchor_376_376"><span class="label">[376]</span></a> <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 29. Paris edition of 1864. The Latin
-edition, speaking of the office of preacher, says, ‘Hoc autem primum
-recusavit.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_377_377" id="Footnote_377_377"></a><a href="#FNanchor_377_377"><span class="label">[377]</span></a> <i>Comment. sur les Psaumes</i>, vol. i. p. ix. Paris, 1859.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_378_378" id="Footnote_378_378"></a><a href="#FNanchor_378_378"><span class="label">[378]</span></a> <i>Lettres Françaises de Calvin</i> (J. Bonnet), i. p. 270.
-To the Protector of England.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_379_379" id="Footnote_379_379"></a><a href="#FNanchor_379_379"><span class="label">[379]</span></a> <i>Lettres Françaises de Calvin</i>, ii. p. 30.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_380_380" id="Footnote_380_380"></a><a href="#FNanchor_380_380"><span class="label">[380]</span></a> Registers of the Council of Geneva, Sept. 4, 1536.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_381_381" id="Footnote_381_381"></a><a href="#FNanchor_381_381"><span class="label">[381]</span></a> <i>Lettres Françaises de Calvin</i> to the lords of Berne,
-ii. p. 29.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_382_382" id="Footnote_382_382"></a><a href="#FNanchor_382_382"><span class="label">[382]</span></a> <i>Institution Chrétienne</i>, iv. ch. 12.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_383_383" id="Footnote_383_383"></a><a href="#FNanchor_383_383"><span class="label">[383]</span></a> ‘Iste Gallus.’&mdash;Registers of the Council, Sept. 5, 1536.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_384_384" id="Footnote_384_384"></a><a href="#FNanchor_384_384"><span class="label">[384]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Sept. 8. The church of St.
-Germain, where the Council assembled, is near the Hôtel de Ville.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_385_385" id="Footnote_385_385"></a><a href="#FNanchor_385_385"><span class="label">[385]</span></a> Ruchat, iv. p. 138.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_386_386" id="Footnote_386_386"></a><a href="#FNanchor_386_386"><span class="label">[386]</span></a> <i>Mémoire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 152. Ruchat, iv. pp.
-130-160.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_387_387" id="Footnote_387_387"></a><a href="#FNanchor_387_387"><span class="label">[387]</span></a> Ruchat, iv. p. 142.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_388_388" id="Footnote_388_388"></a><a href="#FNanchor_388_388"><span class="label">[388]</span></a> MS. Pinaut. Ruchat, iv. p. 158.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_389_389" id="Footnote_389_389"></a><a href="#FNanchor_389_389"><span class="label">[389]</span></a> Ruchat, iv. p. 504.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_390_390" id="Footnote_390_390"></a><a href="#FNanchor_390_390"><span class="label">[390]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> p. 366.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_391_391" id="Footnote_391_391"></a><a href="#FNanchor_391_391"><span class="label">[391]</span></a> Edicts of the Lords of Berne. <i>Pièces justificatives</i> of
-Ruchat, iv. p. 500, note 2.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_392_392" id="Footnote_392_392"></a><a href="#FNanchor_392_392"><span class="label">[392]</span></a> ‘Capitaine de la jeunesse.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_393_393" id="Footnote_393_393"></a><a href="#FNanchor_393_393"><span class="label">[393]</span></a> Calvin’s Letter to F. Daniel, Lausanne, Oct. 13,
-1536.&mdash;Bibliothèque de Berne. Calvin, Opp. x. p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_394_394" id="Footnote_394_394"></a><a href="#FNanchor_394_394"><span class="label">[394]</span></a> Acts of the Disputation of Lausanne. <i>Mémoire de
-Pierrefleur</i>, p. 161. Ruchat, iv. pp. 179, 505.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_395_395" id="Footnote_395_395"></a><a href="#FNanchor_395_395"><span class="label">[395]</span></a> The Acts of this Disputation form a handsome manuscript
-volume in folio, preserved in the Library of Berne. The author having
-worked there in 1859, noticed this volume among others. Subsequently,
-Professor Gaussen, who had had a large portion of it copied several
-years before, presented the copy to the author. This narration is
-therefore drawn up from the original text.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_396_396" id="Footnote_396_396"></a><a href="#FNanchor_396_396"><span class="label">[396]</span></a> <i>Avoyer</i> was the title of the first magistrate of the
-Bernese republic. The <i>baillifs</i> were the deputy governors of the
-Bernese dependencies.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_397_397" id="Footnote_397_397"></a><a href="#FNanchor_397_397"><span class="label">[397]</span></a> Acts of the Disputation. Berne MS. folio xviii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_398_398" id="Footnote_398_398"></a><a href="#FNanchor_398_398"><span class="label">[398]</span></a> Acts of the Disputation, fol. xxi. and xxv.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_399_399" id="Footnote_399_399"></a><a href="#FNanchor_399_399"><span class="label">[399]</span></a> Acts of the Disputation of Lausanne, fol. lxix.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_400_400" id="Footnote_400_400"></a><a href="#FNanchor_400_400"><span class="label">[400]</span></a> Acts of the Disputation of Lausanne, fol. lxxv. and
-xcii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_401_401" id="Footnote_401_401"></a><a href="#FNanchor_401_401"><span class="label">[401]</span></a> Edition of Erasmus. 1528.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_402_402" id="Footnote_402_402"></a><a href="#FNanchor_402_402"><span class="label">[402]</span></a> Some authors name him also ‘Caudy’ or ‘Candy;’ Ruchat
-writes ‘Tandi.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_403_403" id="Footnote_403_403"></a><a href="#FNanchor_403_403"><span class="label">[403]</span></a> Acts, fol. xcii.-clxix.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_404_404" id="Footnote_404_404"></a><a href="#FNanchor_404_404"><span class="label">[404]</span></a> ‘Curia Romana non quærit ovem sine lana.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_405_405" id="Footnote_405_405"></a><a href="#FNanchor_405_405"><span class="label">[405]</span></a> Acts, fol. clxxxix., cxc.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_406_406" id="Footnote_406_406"></a><a href="#FNanchor_406_406"><span class="label">[406]</span></a> Ne Hercules quidem contra duos.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_407_407" id="Footnote_407_407"></a><a href="#FNanchor_407_407"><span class="label">[407]</span></a> Acts, fol. ccxix.-ccxxi. and cclxi.-cclxiii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_408_408" id="Footnote_408_408"></a><a href="#FNanchor_408_408"><span class="label">[408]</span></a> Acts, fol. cclxxiii., cclxxiv., cclxxix.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_409_409" id="Footnote_409_409"></a><a href="#FNanchor_409_409"><span class="label">[409]</span></a> ‘Quod solius papæ pedes omnes principes deosculentur,’
-etc.&mdash;<i>Dictatus Papæ</i>, Ep. ii. p. 55.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_410_410" id="Footnote_410_410"></a><a href="#FNanchor_410_410"><span class="label">[410]</span></a> <i>Institution Chrétienne</i>, iv. ch. 6, 7, 8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_411_411" id="Footnote_411_411"></a><a href="#FNanchor_411_411"><span class="label">[411]</span></a> Acts of the Disputation, fol. ccxxxviii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_412_412" id="Footnote_412_412"></a><a href="#FNanchor_412_412"><span class="label">[412]</span></a> Acts, fol. cclxxxvii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_413_413" id="Footnote_413_413"></a><a href="#FNanchor_413_413"><span class="label">[413]</span></a> Farel’s discourse begins at fol. cclxxxv. of the Berne
-MS. and ends at ccci.; Ruchat, iv. p. 361.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_414_414" id="Footnote_414_414"></a><a href="#FNanchor_414_414"><span class="label">[414]</span></a> MS. of Lausanne, p. 516. Ruchat, iv. p. 379.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_415_415" id="Footnote_415_415"></a><a href="#FNanchor_415_415"><span class="label">[415]</span></a> Rollin.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_416_416" id="Footnote_416_416"></a><a href="#FNanchor_416_416"><span class="label">[416]</span></a> Calvin.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_417_417" id="Footnote_417_417"></a><a href="#FNanchor_417_417"><span class="label">[417]</span></a> Acts of the Disputation, fol. ccxiii., ccxiv.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_418_418" id="Footnote_418_418"></a><a href="#FNanchor_418_418"><span class="label">[418]</span></a> Acts, xix. 27.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_419_419" id="Footnote_419_419"></a><a href="#FNanchor_419_419"><span class="label">[419]</span></a> <i>Mémoire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 168. Ruchat, iv. p. 380.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_420_420" id="Footnote_420_420"></a><a href="#FNanchor_420_420"><span class="label">[420]</span></a> <i>Pièces justificatives.</i> Ruchat, iv. p. 520.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_421_421" id="Footnote_421_421"></a><a href="#FNanchor_421_421"><span class="label">[421]</span></a> Letter from the prince of Soubise to F. de
-Loys.&mdash;<i>Pièces justificatives</i> de Ruchat, iv. p. 508.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_422_422" id="Footnote_422_422"></a><a href="#FNanchor_422_422"><span class="label">[422]</span></a> Herminjard, <i>Correspondance</i>, iv. p. 107.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_423_423" id="Footnote_423_423"></a><a href="#FNanchor_423_423"><span class="label">[423]</span></a> Herminjard, <i>Correspondance</i>, iv. p. 94.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_424_424" id="Footnote_424_424"></a><a href="#FNanchor_424_424"><span class="label">[424]</span></a> ‘Qui magis negligant Viretum nostrum, Bernatesne an
-Lausannenses.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 109.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_425_425" id="Footnote_425_425"></a><a href="#FNanchor_425_425"><span class="label">[425]</span></a> <i>Mémoire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 110. Ruchat, iv. p. 385. Le
-Chroniqueur. Herminjard.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_426_426" id="Footnote_426_426"></a><a href="#FNanchor_426_426"><span class="label">[426]</span></a> Ruchat, iv. p. 374.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_427_427" id="Footnote_427_427"></a><a href="#FNanchor_427_427"><span class="label">[427]</span></a> MS. of Lutry, p. 77. Ruchat, iv. p. 377.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_428_428" id="Footnote_428_428"></a><a href="#FNanchor_428_428"><span class="label">[428]</span></a> Herminjard, iv. pp. 62, 92. Ruchat, iv. pp. 365, 411.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_429_429" id="Footnote_429_429"></a><a href="#FNanchor_429_429"><span class="label">[429]</span></a> Farel’s Letter to the bailiff Naegueli, of Nov. 14,
-1536. Herminjard, iv. p. 102.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_430_430" id="Footnote_430_430"></a><a href="#FNanchor_430_430"><span class="label">[430]</span></a> ‘Malunt in sepulcris Ægyptiorum sepeliri, quam manna
-edere columnaque dirigi in eremo.’&mdash;Bibl. de Neuchâtel. Herminjard, iv.
-p. 109.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_431_431" id="Footnote_431_431"></a><a href="#FNanchor_431_431"><span class="label">[431]</span></a> Herminjard, iv. p. 112. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 70.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_432_432" id="Footnote_432_432"></a><a href="#FNanchor_432_432"><span class="label">[432]</span></a> ‘Bacchum vere nobis præstitit vel Martem.’&mdash;Farel to
-Fabri, Dec. 6, Bibl. de Neuchâtel. Herminjard, iv. p. 122.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_433_433" id="Footnote_433_433"></a><a href="#FNanchor_433_433"><span class="label">[433]</span></a> Edict of the Lords of Berne, Ruchat, iv. p. 378. Prov.
-xxii. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_434_434" id="Footnote_434_434"></a><a href="#FNanchor_434_434"><span class="label">[434]</span></a> Ordinances of Reformation of the Lords of Berne, Ruchat,
-iv. p. 522.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_435_435" id="Footnote_435_435"></a><a href="#FNanchor_435_435"><span class="label">[435]</span></a> <i>Mémoire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 166.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_436_436" id="Footnote_436_436"></a><a href="#FNanchor_436_436"><span class="label">[436]</span></a> ‘Faxit Dominus ut ex omnium cordibus idolatria
-corruat.’&mdash;Calvin’s Letter to Francois Daniel. Bib. de Berne.
-Herminjard, <i>Correspondance</i>, iv. p. 89. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_437_437" id="Footnote_437_437"></a><a href="#FNanchor_437_437"><span class="label">[437]</span></a> ‘Fratres qui Genevæ et in vicinia Christum
-annuntiant.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 71. Herminjard, iv. p. 105.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_438_438" id="Footnote_438_438"></a><a href="#FNanchor_438_438"><span class="label">[438]</span></a> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 67. Herminjard, iv. p. 119.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_439_439" id="Footnote_439_439"></a><a href="#FNanchor_439_439"><span class="label">[439]</span></a> <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, in French, p. 29, edit. of 1864.
-There are three lives of Calvin, which down to the present time have
-been generally attributed to Theodore Beza. The first (in French),
-published in 1564, the year of Calvin’s death, is entirely the work of
-Beza. The second, also in French, but more extensive than the first,
-is of the year 1565. It is substantially Beza’s, but was published
-with augmentations by Nicholas Colladon, who was first a pastor at
-Vandœuvres, then, in 1562, at Geneva, became rector in 1564, and
-succeeded Calvin in 1566 in the chair of Theology. This life of Calvin
-was reprinted at Paris in 1864, and the passage we have cited is found
-in it, p. 29. Lastly, Theodore Beza, in 1575, prefixed to Calvin’s
-Letters a Life written in Latin. The work of Colladon is perhaps richer
-as regards facts, although that of Beza is superior in other respects.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_440_440" id="Footnote_440_440"></a><a href="#FNanchor_440_440"><span class="label">[440]</span></a> Epistle of J. Sadoleto, and Reply of Calvin. Geneva,
-Fick, 1860.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_441_441" id="Footnote_441_441"></a><a href="#FNanchor_441_441"><span class="label">[441]</span></a> Calvin’s Letter of Oct. 13 (Library of Berne). Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 63. Letter from the Council of Strasburg to the Council
-of Basel, Nov. 4, 1536. Herminjard, iv. p. 95. Calvin is said to have
-purposed visiting Basel, to set its affairs in order. Our hypothesis
-appears to us to be more in harmony with the letter.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_442_442" id="Footnote_442_442"></a><a href="#FNanchor_442_442"><span class="label">[442]</span></a> Buffon.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_443_443" id="Footnote_443_443"></a><a href="#FNanchor_443_443"><span class="label">[443]</span></a> Calvin’s Farewell. Tronchin MS. Coll. J. Bonnet:
-<i>Lettres Françaises de Calvin</i>, ii. p. 574.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_444_444" id="Footnote_444_444"></a><a href="#FNanchor_444_444"><span class="label">[444]</span></a> ‘Post abominationem papismi, verbi virtute hic
-prostratam.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 319.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_445_445" id="Footnote_445_445"></a><a href="#FNanchor_445_445"><span class="label">[445]</span></a> ‘Jam vero confessionem non sine ratione adjungendam
-curavimus.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 319.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_446_446" id="Footnote_446_446"></a><a href="#FNanchor_446_446"><span class="label">[446]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Comment. on Luke</i>, xxiv. p. 45.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_447_447" id="Footnote_447_447"></a><a href="#FNanchor_447_447"><span class="label">[447]</span></a> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. 43.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_448_448" id="Footnote_448_448"></a><a href="#FNanchor_448_448"><span class="label">[448]</span></a> A version executed by Calvin himself. <i>Opp.</i> v. pp.
-317-362.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_449_449" id="Footnote_449_449"></a><a href="#FNanchor_449_449"><span class="label">[449]</span></a> <i>Opp.</i> v. 323.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_450_450" id="Footnote_450_450"></a><a href="#FNanchor_450_450"><span class="label">[450]</span></a> <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 30. Paris, 1864.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_451_451" id="Footnote_451_451"></a><a href="#FNanchor_451_451"><span class="label">[451]</span></a> Calvin on <i>James</i>, i. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_452_452" id="Footnote_452_452"></a><a href="#FNanchor_452_452"><span class="label">[452]</span></a> <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 29. Paris, 1864.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_453_453" id="Footnote_453_453"></a><a href="#FNanchor_453_453"><span class="label">[453]</span></a> ‘Tunc edita est a Calvino Christianæ doctrinæ quædam
-veluti formula.’&mdash;<i>Vita Calvini</i>, 1575, narrated by Beza.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_454_454" id="Footnote_454_454"></a><a href="#FNanchor_454_454"><span class="label">[454]</span></a> See this confession in Latin, Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 357;
-and in French, in the <i>Pièces Justificatives</i> of Gaberel, i. p. 120.
-Ruchat, iv. p. 111.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_455_455" id="Footnote_455_455"></a><a href="#FNanchor_455_455"><span class="label">[455]</span></a> ‘Jam vero confessionem solemni jurejurando ab universo
-populo editam adjungimus.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 319.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_456_456" id="Footnote_456_456"></a><a href="#FNanchor_456_456"><span class="label">[456]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Nov. 10, 1536.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_457_457" id="Footnote_457_457"></a><a href="#FNanchor_457_457"><span class="label">[457]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Jan. 16, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_458_458" id="Footnote_458_458"></a><a href="#FNanchor_458_458"><span class="label">[458]</span></a> Archives of Geneva. Pièces hist., 1170. Gaberel, i. p.
-102. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_459_459" id="Footnote_459_459"></a><a href="#FNanchor_459_459"><span class="label">[459]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Jan. 16, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_460_460" id="Footnote_460_460"></a><a href="#FNanchor_460_460"><span class="label">[460]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Jan. 16, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_461_461" id="Footnote_461_461"></a><a href="#FNanchor_461_461"><span class="label">[461]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Jan. 30, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_462_462" id="Footnote_462_462"></a><a href="#FNanchor_462_462"><span class="label">[462]</span></a> See the Registers of Feb. 5, 6, and 9, 1537, together
-with the remarks of Flournois appended to one copy of the Registers, p.
-1019.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_463_463" id="Footnote_463_463"></a><a href="#FNanchor_463_463"><span class="label">[463]</span></a> Bolsec, <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, vii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_464_464" id="Footnote_464_464"></a><a href="#FNanchor_464_464"><span class="label">[464]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. de Genève</i>, iv. ch. 9.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_465_465" id="Footnote_465_465"></a><a href="#FNanchor_465_465"><span class="label">[465]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Mar. 13.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_466_466" id="Footnote_466_466"></a><a href="#FNanchor_466_466"><span class="label">[466]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> of the days mentioned.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_467_467" id="Footnote_467_467"></a><a href="#FNanchor_467_467"><span class="label">[467]</span></a> ‘Videbatur initio Sonerius ægre ferre quod exigeretur
-confessionis formula.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> p. 11. Ed. princ. of Geneva. 1575.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_468_468" id="Footnote_468_468"></a><a href="#FNanchor_468_468"><span class="label">[468]</span></a> ‘Ut plebs decuriatim convocata in confessionem istam
-juraret.’&mdash;<i>Calv. Opp.</i> (Stras. Br.), v. p. 320.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_469_469" id="Footnote_469_469"></a><a href="#FNanchor_469_469"><span class="label">[469]</span></a> Registers, July 29. Rozet, <i>Chron. de Genève</i>, iv. ch.
-9.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_470_470" id="Footnote_470_470"></a><a href="#FNanchor_470_470"><span class="label">[470]</span></a> ‘In præstando juramento non minor fuit plebis alacritas,
-quam in edicendo senatus diligentia.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 320.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_471_471" id="Footnote_471_471"></a><a href="#FNanchor_471_471"><span class="label">[471]</span></a> Registers, Sept. 19. Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 43.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_472_472" id="Footnote_472_472"></a><a href="#FNanchor_472_472"><span class="label">[472]</span></a> Dedication of the <i>Epître à Tite</i> (1549). Calvin
-includes Viret in this friendship.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_473_473" id="Footnote_473_473"></a><a href="#FNanchor_473_473"><span class="label">[473]</span></a> Saunier, <i>Ordre et manière d’enseigner en la ville de
-Genève</i>, 1538; reprinted by E. A. Bétant, 1866.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_474_474" id="Footnote_474_474"></a><a href="#FNanchor_474_474"><span class="label">[474]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_475_475" id="Footnote_475_475"></a><a href="#FNanchor_475_475"><span class="label">[475]</span></a> Registers, May 1, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_476_476" id="Footnote_476_476"></a><a href="#FNanchor_476_476"><span class="label">[476]</span></a> Six écus are 18 francs (about 15 shillings).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_477_477" id="Footnote_477_477"></a><a href="#FNanchor_477_477"><span class="label">[477]</span></a> [The French version of the Bible, bearing the name
-of Pierre Robert Olivétan, one of the reformers, was published at
-Neuchâtel in 1535.&mdash;<i>Translator.</i>]</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_478_478" id="Footnote_478_478"></a><a href="#FNanchor_478_478"><span class="label">[478]</span></a> <i>See</i> Registers for the days named. As different dates
-have been assigned, we add that ours are taken from the Registers. We
-only make this remark, which we acknowledge is of no great importance,
-that no one may suspect any trickery in the matter.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_479_479" id="Footnote_479_479"></a><a href="#FNanchor_479_479"><span class="label">[479]</span></a> Saunier, <i>Ordre et manière</i>, etc.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_480_480" id="Footnote_480_480"></a><a href="#FNanchor_480_480"><span class="label">[480]</span></a> Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 239.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_481_481" id="Footnote_481_481"></a><a href="#FNanchor_481_481"><span class="label">[481]</span></a> <i>Hist. of the Reform. in the Time of Calvin</i>, iii. book
-4, ch. 8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_482_482" id="Footnote_482_482"></a><a href="#FNanchor_482_482"><span class="label">[482]</span></a> <i>Chronique de Rozet</i>, book iv. ch. 4.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_483_483" id="Footnote_483_483"></a><a href="#FNanchor_483_483"><span class="label">[483]</span></a> Registers, Mar. 9.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_484_484" id="Footnote_484_484"></a><a href="#FNanchor_484_484"><span class="label">[484]</span></a> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 176.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_485_485" id="Footnote_485_485"></a><a href="#FNanchor_485_485"><span class="label">[485]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> pp. 179 and 180.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_486_486" id="Footnote_486_486"></a><a href="#FNanchor_486_486"><span class="label">[486]</span></a> Registers, Mar. 13.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_487_487" id="Footnote_487_487"></a><a href="#FNanchor_487_487"><span class="label">[487]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> Mar. 14.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_488_488" id="Footnote_488_488"></a><a href="#FNanchor_488_488"><span class="label">[488]</span></a> <i>See</i> ‘Briève instruction pour armer tous bons fidèles,’
-etc.&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> vi. pp. 49-112; and ‘Contre la secte phantastique
-et furieuse des Libertins qui se nomment Spirituels.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> pp.
-149-248.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_489_489" id="Footnote_489_489"></a><a href="#FNanchor_489_489"><span class="label">[489]</span></a> Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>. <i>Vie de Calvin</i> (in French), p.
-31. Paris, 1864.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_490_490" id="Footnote_490_490"></a><a href="#FNanchor_490_490"><span class="label">[490]</span></a> <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, by Beza-Colladon, p. 31.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_491_491" id="Footnote_491_491"></a><a href="#FNanchor_491_491"><span class="label">[491]</span></a> <i>Johann Calvin</i>, by Kampschulte, i. p. 295.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_492_492" id="Footnote_492_492"></a><a href="#FNanchor_492_492"><span class="label">[492]</span></a> ‘Alter ecclesiæ turbator majores et diuturniores turbas
-dedit.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calv.</i>, 1575. p. 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_493_493" id="Footnote_493_493"></a><a href="#FNanchor_493_493"><span class="label">[493]</span></a> Vol. v. book ix. ch. 3 and 4.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_494_494" id="Footnote_494_494"></a><a href="#FNanchor_494_494"><span class="label">[494]</span></a> ‘Ut quocumque venisset, certa suæ turpitudinis impressa
-vestigia relinqueret.’&mdash;Beza, p. 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_495_495" id="Footnote_495_495"></a><a href="#FNanchor_495_495"><span class="label">[495]</span></a> Calvin’s Letter to Megander, probably of Mar.
-1537.&mdash;Library of Geneva. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 85. Herminjard, iv. p.
-187.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_496_496" id="Footnote_496_496"></a><a href="#FNanchor_496_496"><span class="label">[496]</span></a> Herminjard, iv. p. 187.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_497_497" id="Footnote_497_497"></a><a href="#FNanchor_497_497"><span class="label">[497]</span></a> ‘Voluit Carolus ecclesiam catholicam ... semper
-orare ut resurgant, vitamque futuri seculi corpora defunctorum
-consequantur.’&mdash;Megander to Bullinger, Mar. 8, 1537. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p.
-89.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_498_498" id="Footnote_498_498"></a><a href="#FNanchor_498_498"><span class="label">[498]</span></a> Ruchat, v. p. 21. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> p. 89.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_499_499" id="Footnote_499_499"></a><a href="#FNanchor_499_499"><span class="label">[499]</span></a> <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, Beza-Colladon, p. 31.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_500_500" id="Footnote_500_500"></a><a href="#FNanchor_500_500"><span class="label">[500]</span></a> Ruchat, <i>Hist. de la Réf.</i> v. p. 22.&mdash;Calvin’s Letter to
-Megander. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 85.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_501_501" id="Footnote_501_501"></a><a href="#FNanchor_501_501"><span class="label">[501]</span></a> ‘Serveti Hispani pessimum errorem confirmare.’&mdash;Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 103.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_502_502" id="Footnote_502_502"></a><a href="#FNanchor_502_502"><span class="label">[502]</span></a> ‘Quod id ne timere quidem unquam in mentem
-venerit.’&mdash;Calvin to Grynæus. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 108.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_503_503" id="Footnote_503_503"></a><a href="#FNanchor_503_503"><span class="label">[503]</span></a> ‘In simplicissima Dei unitate, et Scriptura et ipsa
-pietatis experientia, Deum patrem, ejus Filium et Spiritum nobis
-ostendunt.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 337, and x. p. 83.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_504_504" id="Footnote_504_504"></a><a href="#FNanchor_504_504"><span class="label">[504]</span></a> Luther, <i>Kirchenpostill</i> (Walch, xi.) <i>am Trinität</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_505_505" id="Footnote_505_505"></a><a href="#FNanchor_505_505"><span class="label">[505]</span></a> ‘Ii quibus tam pietas cordi erat (the opponents of
-Arius and Sabellius) affirmarunt vere immo Deo tres <i>personas</i>
-subsistere, seu (quod idem erat) in Dei unitate subsistere <i>personarum
-trinitatem</i>.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> i. p. 61. Afterwards, Calvin said,
-‘Christus ut quatenus Deus est, sit unus cum patre Deus ejusdem
-<i>naturæ</i> seu <i>substantiæ</i> seu <i>essentiæ</i>, non aliter quam persona
-distinctus.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 61.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_506_506" id="Footnote_506_506"></a><a href="#FNanchor_506_506"><span class="label">[506]</span></a> Calvin to Megander.&mdash;Ruchat, v. p. 25.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_507_507" id="Footnote_507_507"></a><a href="#FNanchor_507_507"><span class="label">[507]</span></a> Calvin’s Letters to Megander and Grynæus.&mdash;Ruchat,
-<i>Hist. de la Réf.</i> v. pp. 22, 23.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_508_508" id="Footnote_508_508"></a><a href="#FNanchor_508_508"><span class="label">[508]</span></a> Calvin to Megander.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_509_509" id="Footnote_509_509"></a><a href="#FNanchor_509_509"><span class="label">[509]</span></a> Calvin to Megander.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_510_510" id="Footnote_510_510"></a><a href="#FNanchor_510_510"><span class="label">[510]</span></a> ‘Quam ob causam Calvinus Bernam veniens obnixe
-petit ut synodus cogeretur, quod abnegatum est homini usque post
-Paschatis.’&mdash;Fueslin, <i>Epp. Ref. Eccl. Helvet.</i> p. 173.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_511_511" id="Footnote_511_511"></a><a href="#FNanchor_511_511"><span class="label">[511]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 95.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_512_512" id="Footnote_512_512"></a><a href="#FNanchor_512_512"><span class="label">[512]</span></a> Calvin to Grynæus, <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 106.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_513_513" id="Footnote_513_513"></a><a href="#FNanchor_513_513"><span class="label">[513]</span></a> Registers of Council of Geneva, May 5 and 11. The florin
-was rather less than half a franc.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_514_514" id="Footnote_514_514"></a><a href="#FNanchor_514_514"><span class="label">[514]</span></a> The synod met, not in March, as has been said
-(Kampschulte, <i>Johann Calvin</i>, i. p. 296), but two months later. See
-preceding note.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_515_515" id="Footnote_515_515"></a><a href="#FNanchor_515_515"><span class="label">[515]</span></a> ‘Quomodo jurisconsulti præcipiunt nempe cum <i>sacco</i>
-paratior.’&mdash;Calvin, <i>Epp.</i> x. p. 107.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_516_516" id="Footnote_516_516"></a><a href="#FNanchor_516_516"><span class="label">[516]</span></a> The Apostles’, Nicene, and so-called Athanasian
-Creeds.&mdash;Ruchat, v. p. 25.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_517_517" id="Footnote_517_517"></a><a href="#FNanchor_517_517"><span class="label">[517]</span></a> Matt. vii. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_518_518" id="Footnote_518_518"></a><a href="#FNanchor_518_518"><span class="label">[518]</span></a> Ruchat, v. pp. 27, 28.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_519_519" id="Footnote_519_519"></a><a href="#FNanchor_519_519"><span class="label">[519]</span></a> ‘Quatenus unus est cum patre Deus, quidquid dici de Deo
-potes in illum competit.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 107.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_520_520" id="Footnote_520_520"></a><a href="#FNanchor_520_520"><span class="label">[520]</span></a> ‘Tantum nolebamus hoc <i>tyrannidis</i> exemplum in ecclesiam
-induci, ut is hereticus haberetur qui non ad alterius præscriptum
-loqueretur.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 120.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_521_521" id="Footnote_521_521"></a><a href="#FNanchor_521_521"><span class="label">[521]</span></a> Nos in Dei unius fidem jurasse, non Athanasii, cujus
-symbolum nulla unquam legitima ecclesia approbasset.’&mdash;The Genevese to
-the Bernese Ministers. MS. of Geneva, Feb. 1537. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 83.
-Ruchat, v. pp. 24-30.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_522_522" id="Footnote_522_522"></a><a href="#FNanchor_522_522"><span class="label">[522]</span></a> ‘Totum illum saccum nostra refutatione sic
-exhausimus.’&mdash;Calvin to Grynæus. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 107.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_523_523" id="Footnote_523_523"></a><a href="#FNanchor_523_523"><span class="label">[523]</span></a> Kampschulte, <i>Johann Calvin</i>, i. p. 296.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_524_524" id="Footnote_524_524"></a><a href="#FNanchor_524_524"><span class="label">[524]</span></a> ‘Quantum negotii nobis facturi sint <i>Galli illi</i> ...
-<i>seditiosi</i>.’&mdash;Megander to Bullinger, Mar. 8, 1537. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p.
-89.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_525_525" id="Footnote_525_525"></a><a href="#FNanchor_525_525"><span class="label">[525]</span></a> Registers of the Council, May 24, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_526_526" id="Footnote_526_526"></a><a href="#FNanchor_526_526"><span class="label">[526]</span></a> The authentic Acts of the Council of Berne are to be
-found in Ruchat, v. p. 39. Calvin, <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 105.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_527_527" id="Footnote_527_527"></a><a href="#FNanchor_527_527"><span class="label">[527]</span></a> ‘Ne abjiciamus eum ab ecclesia, aut tanquam de fide male
-sentientem notemus.’&mdash;Formula Concordiæ de Trinitate. Berne, Sept.
-1537. Ruchat, v. p. 501.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_528_528" id="Footnote_528_528"></a><a href="#FNanchor_528_528"><span class="label">[528]</span></a> ‘Megander est Figuri natus, <i>Simia</i> olim <i>Zwingli</i>
-creditus.’&mdash;Conceni Epist. ad Neobulum, Feb. 2, 1538. Luther, <i>Opp.</i>
-Walch, xvii. p. 2602. Hunderhagen-Beylage, ii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_529_529" id="Footnote_529_529"></a><a href="#FNanchor_529_529"><span class="label">[529]</span></a> Hunderhagen Conflikt, p. 65. Kirchhofer, B. Haller, p.
-219.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_530_530" id="Footnote_530_530"></a><a href="#FNanchor_530_530"><span class="label">[530]</span></a> Buceri Epist. ad Lutherum, Jan. 19. 1537. Hunderhagen
-Conflikt, p. 72.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_531_531" id="Footnote_531_531"></a><a href="#FNanchor_531_531"><span class="label">[531]</span></a> Hunderhagen Conflikt, pp. 73, 79.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_532_532" id="Footnote_532_532"></a><a href="#FNanchor_532_532"><span class="label">[532]</span></a> ‘Wie ich myn Husfrow z’ Strasburg yetzt sieh.’&mdash;-
-Original Protocols of the class of Brugg. Hunderhagen Conflikte, p. 83.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_533_533" id="Footnote_533_533"></a><a href="#FNanchor_533_533"><span class="label">[533]</span></a> Descartes, <i>Réponses aux cinquièmes objections</i>. Nicole,
-<i>Essais de Morale</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_534_534" id="Footnote_534_534"></a><a href="#FNanchor_534_534"><span class="label">[534]</span></a> ‘Vitam spiritualem, quam nobis Christus largitur non in
-eo duntaxat.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> ix. p. 711. Ruchat, v. p. 502. Henry
-Beylage, 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_535_535" id="Footnote_535_535"></a><a href="#FNanchor_535_535"><span class="label">[535]</span></a> Nec unquam sensi Christum dominum in sacra Cœna præ
-sentem localiter.’&mdash;Calvin, <i>Opp.</i> ix. p. 711.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_536_536" id="Footnote_536_536"></a><a href="#FNanchor_536_536"><span class="label">[536]</span></a> Formula Concordiæ. Bernæ, Sept. 22, 1537. Hunderhagen
-Conflikte, p. 90.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_537_537" id="Footnote_537_537"></a><a href="#FNanchor_537_537"><span class="label">[537]</span></a> Registers of the Council, July 3 and Sept. 1, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_538_538" id="Footnote_538_538"></a><a href="#FNanchor_538_538"><span class="label">[538]</span></a> Registers of the Council, July 27.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_539_539" id="Footnote_539_539"></a><a href="#FNanchor_539_539"><span class="label">[539]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> Sept. 11.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_540_540" id="Footnote_540_540"></a><a href="#FNanchor_540_540"><span class="label">[540]</span></a> See <i>Hist. of the Ref.</i>, second series, vol. i. book 1;
-vol. ii. book 3; vol. iii. book 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_541_541" id="Footnote_541_541"></a><a href="#FNanchor_541_541"><span class="label">[541]</span></a> ‘<i>Quibus leni primum admonitione</i> ...’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita
-Calvini</i>, <i>p.</i> 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_542_542" id="Footnote_542_542"></a><a href="#FNanchor_542_542"><span class="label">[542]</span></a> Register of the Council, Nov. 12.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_543_543" id="Footnote_543_543"></a><a href="#FNanchor_543_543"><span class="label">[543]</span></a> See second series, vol. iii. book v. ch. 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_544_544" id="Footnote_544_544"></a><a href="#FNanchor_544_544"><span class="label">[544]</span></a> Registers, Nov. 12 and 15, 1537. Rozet, Chron. MS. of
-Geneva, book iv. ch. 10.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_545_545" id="Footnote_545_545"></a><a href="#FNanchor_545_545"><span class="label">[545]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 10. <i>Vie de
-Calvin</i>, p. 34, Gautier, <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>, book v.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_546_546" id="Footnote_546_546"></a><a href="#FNanchor_546_546"><span class="label">[546]</span></a> Registers, Nov. 25.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_547_547" id="Footnote_547_547"></a><a href="#FNanchor_547_547"><span class="label">[547]</span></a> Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, i. p. 51.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_548_548" id="Footnote_548_548"></a><a href="#FNanchor_548_548"><span class="label">[548]</span></a> Registers, Nov. 25, 1537. <i>Fragments historiques de
-Grenus. Extraits de F. Rocco</i>, same date. Gautier, etc.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_549_549" id="Footnote_549_549"></a><a href="#FNanchor_549_549"><span class="label">[549]</span></a> Archives of Berne. Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 57.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_550_550" id="Footnote_550_550"></a><a href="#FNanchor_550_550"><span class="label">[550]</span></a> ... exultabam, et quis de successu tam bonæ causæ
-dubitasset?’&mdash;Calvin to Bucer, Jan. 12, 1538. Calvin, <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 137.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_551_551" id="Footnote_551_551"></a><a href="#FNanchor_551_551"><span class="label">[551]</span></a> Registers, Dec. 10, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_552_552" id="Footnote_552_552"></a><a href="#FNanchor_552_552"><span class="label">[552]</span></a> Registers, Dec. 14, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_553_553" id="Footnote_553_553"></a><a href="#FNanchor_553_553"><span class="label">[553]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_554_554" id="Footnote_554_554"></a><a href="#FNanchor_554_554"><span class="label">[554]</span></a> Registers, Dec. 15, 1537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_555_555" id="Footnote_555_555"></a><a href="#FNanchor_555_555"><span class="label">[555]</span></a> Archives of Geneva. <i>Pièces historiques</i>, No. 1162. The
-original, according to M. Reuss (Calv. <i>Opp.</i> p. 133), is dated Dec.
-28. One copy bears date Dec. 22.&mdash;[<i>Editor.</i>]</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_556_556" id="Footnote_556_556"></a><a href="#FNanchor_556_556"><span class="label">[556]</span></a> Registers of the day.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_557_557" id="Footnote_557_557"></a><a href="#FNanchor_557_557"><span class="label">[557]</span></a> Registers, Jan. 1, 1538.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_558_558" id="Footnote_558_558"></a><a href="#FNanchor_558_558"><span class="label">[558]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> Jan. 1 and 2.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_559_559" id="Footnote_559_559"></a><a href="#FNanchor_559_559"><span class="label">[559]</span></a> Roget, <i>L’Église et l’État de Genève du vivant de
-Calvin</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_560_560" id="Footnote_560_560"></a><a href="#FNanchor_560_560"><span class="label">[560]</span></a> Registers, Jan. 3. Gautier, <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>, book
-vi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_561_561" id="Footnote_561_561"></a><a href="#FNanchor_561_561"><span class="label">[561]</span></a> Racine.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_562_562" id="Footnote_562_562"></a><a href="#FNanchor_562_562"><span class="label">[562]</span></a> This order prevails in the United States of America.
-In each flock distinction is made between the church, composed of
-communicants, and the congregation, which consists of all those who,
-having religious convictions, take part in all the service except
-the supper. From the congregation the church is regularly recruited;
-and these two bodies, united in charity together, contribute to the
-wants of the flock. [This statement is equally true of the orthodox
-Dissenting churches of Great Britain.&mdash;<i>Translator.</i>]</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_563_563" id="Footnote_563_563"></a><a href="#FNanchor_563_563"><span class="label">[563]</span></a> Registers, Jan. 3 and 4, 1538.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_564_564" id="Footnote_564_564"></a><a href="#FNanchor_564_564"><span class="label">[564]</span></a> Registers, Jan. 16. <i>Chron. MS. de Rozet</i>, book iv. ch.
-10.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_565_565" id="Footnote_565_565"></a><a href="#FNanchor_565_565"><span class="label">[565]</span></a> Letters of Calvin and Tillet, published by the pastor
-Crottet. p. 38, etc.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_566_566" id="Footnote_566_566"></a><a href="#FNanchor_566_566"><span class="label">[566]</span></a> <i>Lettres françaises</i>, i. p. 2. Cal. <i>Op.</i>, x. p. 147.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_567_567" id="Footnote_567_567"></a><a href="#FNanchor_567_567"><span class="label">[567]</span></a> <i>Lettres françaises</i>, i. pp. 1-7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_568_568" id="Footnote_568_568"></a><a href="#FNanchor_568_568"><span class="label">[568]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 12.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_569_569" id="Footnote_569_569"></a><a href="#FNanchor_569_569"><span class="label">[569]</span></a> Registers, Feb. 1.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_570_570" id="Footnote_570_570"></a><a href="#FNanchor_570_570"><span class="label">[570]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 10.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_571_571" id="Footnote_571_571"></a><a href="#FNanchor_571_571"><span class="label">[571]</span></a> Registers, Feb. 12, 1538.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_572_572" id="Footnote_572_572"></a><a href="#FNanchor_572_572"><span class="label">[572]</span></a> Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 72.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_573_573" id="Footnote_573_573"></a><a href="#FNanchor_573_573"><span class="label">[573]</span></a> Registers, Feb. 15 <i>et seq.</i> <i>Chron. MS. de Rozet</i>, book
-iv. ch. 14.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_574_574" id="Footnote_574_574"></a><a href="#FNanchor_574_574"><span class="label">[574]</span></a> Registers, March 11. <i>Chron. MS. de Rozet</i>, book iv. ch.
-14.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_575_575" id="Footnote_575_575"></a><a href="#FNanchor_575_575"><span class="label">[575]</span></a> Calvin to Bullinger, Feb. 21, 1538 (Archives of Zurich).
-Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 153.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_576_576" id="Footnote_576_576"></a><a href="#FNanchor_576_576"><span class="label">[576]</span></a> Actes du Chap. de Brugg. Stettler, Berner Chronik.
-Hunderhagen, Conflikte, p. 91.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_577_577" id="Footnote_577_577"></a><a href="#FNanchor_577_577"><span class="label">[577]</span></a> ‘In summa hierum zanggten wir ein gut wyl.’&mdash;Actes
-originaux de la Classe de Brugg. Hunderhagen, Conflikte, p. 101.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_578_578" id="Footnote_578_578"></a><a href="#FNanchor_578_578"><span class="label">[578]</span></a> ‘Die praedikanten von der Statt assend mit uns,’
-etc.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 103.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_579_579" id="Footnote_579_579"></a><a href="#FNanchor_579_579"><span class="label">[579]</span></a> Luther, <i>Epp.</i> v. p. 83.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_580_580" id="Footnote_580_580"></a><a href="#FNanchor_580_580"><span class="label">[580]</span></a> Kirchhofer, <i>B. Haller</i>, p. 203. Iselin, <i>Hist. Lexicon</i>.
-Hunderhagen, Conflikte, p. 105. Hagenbach, <i>Gesch. d. ersten Baseler
-Conf.</i> p. 90.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_581_581" id="Footnote_581_581"></a><a href="#FNanchor_581_581"><span class="label">[581]</span></a> ‘Quo nuntio perinde perculsi fuimus, ac si Bernensem
-ecclesiam majore ex parte collapsam audissemus’&mdash;Calvin to Bucer.
-Henry, Beylage, 6, p. 36. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 138.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_582_582" id="Footnote_582_582"></a><a href="#FNanchor_582_582"><span class="label">[582]</span></a> ‘Sed quid ille aliud potest, quam suis deliramentis
-invertere Evangelii puritatem?’&mdash;Henry, Beylage, p. 39. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x.
-p. 140.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_583_583" id="Footnote_583_583"></a><a href="#FNanchor_583_583"><span class="label">[583]</span></a> ‘Vultus, gestus, verba, color ipse furias, ut inquit,
-spirabant.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x, p. 141.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_584_584" id="Footnote_584_584"></a><a href="#FNanchor_584_584"><span class="label">[584]</span></a> ‘Nos ita capitaliter odit.’&mdash;Cal. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 141.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_585_585" id="Footnote_585_585"></a><a href="#FNanchor_585_585"><span class="label">[585]</span></a> ‘Quos ad verbi ministerium erigit, dignos esse
-judicamus, qui in patibulum tollantur.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_586_586" id="Footnote_586_586"></a><a href="#FNanchor_586_586"><span class="label">[586]</span></a> ‘Bonos viros, qui a nobis probati sunt, non audet
-coöptare, nisi a tota ejus regionis cui destinantur classe, sint
-explorati.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_587_587" id="Footnote_587_587"></a><a href="#FNanchor_587_587"><span class="label">[587]</span></a> See <i>J. Calvins Leben</i>, by Paul Henry, Th. D., pastor at
-Berlin, vol. i. Bevlage, 6, p. 40.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_588_588" id="Footnote_588_588"></a><a href="#FNanchor_588_588"><span class="label">[588]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 16.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_589_589" id="Footnote_589_589"></a><a href="#FNanchor_589_589"><span class="label">[589]</span></a> ‘Omnibus ministris qui vicinis ecclesiis præsunt
-interdictum fuit ne quid haberent negotii nobiscum aut ullo modo
-commnunicarent.’&mdash;Calvin to Bucer, Jan. 12. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 144.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_590_590" id="Footnote_590_590"></a><a href="#FNanchor_590_590"><span class="label">[590]</span></a> ‘Reddat Dominus Cunzeno juxta id quod meritus est. Qui
-perdere pergunt ecclesiam, perdat eos Dominus.’&mdash;Farel’s Letter to
-Fabri, Jan. 14, 1538. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 145.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_591_591" id="Footnote_591_591"></a><a href="#FNanchor_591_591"><span class="label">[591]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, iv. ch. 16. Roget,
-<i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 82.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_592_592" id="Footnote_592_592"></a><a href="#FNanchor_592_592"><span class="label">[592]</span></a> Bolsec, chap. viii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_593_593" id="Footnote_593_593"></a><a href="#FNanchor_593_593"><span class="label">[593]</span></a> Kampschulte, <i>Johann Calvin</i>, i. p. 310. Roget, <i>Peuple
-de Genève</i>, i. p. 83.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_594_594" id="Footnote_594_594"></a><a href="#FNanchor_594_594"><span class="label">[594]</span></a> ‘Quo jure circumcisio plus haberet honoris quam mors
-Christi? ... Obmutescere coactus esset.’&mdash;Calvin to Haller, <i>Epp. et
-Responsa</i>, p. 102. Hunderhagen Conflikte, p. 132.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_595_595" id="Footnote_595_595"></a><a href="#FNanchor_595_595"><span class="label">[595]</span></a> ‘Optimum erat remedium quo periculo obviaretur, si ad
-vestrum synodum fuissemus vocati. Impetrari non potuit.’&mdash;Calv. ad
-Tigur. Ratisb., Mar. 31, 1541. Archives of Zurich.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_596_596" id="Footnote_596_596"></a><a href="#FNanchor_596_596"><span class="label">[596]</span></a> Registers of the day. <i>Chron. MS. de Rozet</i>, book iv.
-ch. 13. Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, pp. 84, 85.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_597_597" id="Footnote_597_597"></a><a href="#FNanchor_597_597"><span class="label">[597]</span></a> <i>France Protestante</i>, by M. Haag; article Bolsec.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_598_598" id="Footnote_598_598"></a><a href="#FNanchor_598_598"><span class="label">[598]</span></a> Registers of the day.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_599_599" id="Footnote_599_599"></a><a href="#FNanchor_599_599"><span class="label">[599]</span></a> ‘Um die Berner zu gewinnen und ernstlich in die
-Opposition gegen jene (Calvin und Farel) zu verflechten.’&mdash;Hunderhagen,
-Conflikte, p. 133.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_600_600" id="Footnote_600_600"></a><a href="#FNanchor_600_600"><span class="label">[600]</span></a> <i>Chron. MS. of Rozet</i>, book iv. ch. 17.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_601_601" id="Footnote_601_601"></a><a href="#FNanchor_601_601"><span class="label">[601]</span></a> It was perhaps a reference to <i>Andrew</i> Benoît, one of
-the founders of the sect of the Spirituals at Geneva. See p. 299 of
-this volume.&mdash;[<span class="smcap">Editor</span>].</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_602_602" id="Footnote_602_602"></a><a href="#FNanchor_602_602"><span class="label">[602]</span></a> Chénier, <i>Elég.</i> xxiii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_603_603" id="Footnote_603_603"></a><a href="#FNanchor_603_603"><span class="label">[603]</span></a> Valla, <i>Antidot. in Poggium</i>, book iii. p. 357.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_604_604" id="Footnote_604_604"></a><a href="#FNanchor_604_604"><span class="label">[604]</span></a> This is the meaning of the above expression, which has
-been misunderstood by some writers, who have taken it for a gross
-insult.&mdash;See <i>Dict. de l’Académie</i>. Kampschulte, i. p. 310.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_605_605" id="Footnote_605_605"></a><a href="#FNanchor_605_605"><span class="label">[605]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 17. Gautier,
-Hist. MS. book vi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_606_606" id="Footnote_606_606"></a><a href="#FNanchor_606_606"><span class="label">[606]</span></a> Rozet, <i>ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_607_607" id="Footnote_607_607"></a><a href="#FNanchor_607_607"><span class="label">[607]</span></a> Archives of Geneva. <i>Pièces historiques</i>, No. 2101.
-Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 189.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_608_608" id="Footnote_608_608"></a><a href="#FNanchor_608_608"><span class="label">[608]</span></a> Registers of the day. Gautier, <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>,
-book vi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_609_609" id="Footnote_609_609"></a><a href="#FNanchor_609_609"><span class="label">[609]</span></a> ‘Seven days shall ye eat unleavened bread.’ Ex. xii. 15.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_610_610" id="Footnote_610_610"></a><a href="#FNanchor_610_610"><span class="label">[610]</span></a> Registers of the Council, April 20, 1538.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_611_611" id="Footnote_611_611"></a><a href="#FNanchor_611_611"><span class="label">[611]</span></a> Calvin to the Church of Geneva, Oct. 8, 1538.&mdash;<i>Archives
-de Genève.</i> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 251.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_612_612" id="Footnote_612_612"></a><a href="#FNanchor_612_612"><span class="label">[612]</span></a> ‘Papatus ejuratus; sed extrusa simul a plerisque non
-fuerant indigna multa flagitia, quæ in ea urbe canonicis et impuro illi
-clero tot annos addicta diu viguerant.’&mdash;Beza, <i>J. Calv. Vita</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_613_613" id="Footnote_613_613"></a><a href="#FNanchor_613_613"><span class="label">[613]</span></a> ‘Veteres inter quasdam primarias familias inimicitiæ,
-bello Sabaudico susceptæ, adhuc exercebantur.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_614_614" id="Footnote_614_614"></a><a href="#FNanchor_614_614"><span class="label">[614]</span></a> ‘Cum eo usque malum processisset ut civitas privatorum
-quorundam factione, in diversas partes scinderetur.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_615_615" id="Footnote_615_615"></a><a href="#FNanchor_615_615"><span class="label">[615]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 15.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_616_616" id="Footnote_616_616"></a><a href="#FNanchor_616_616"><span class="label">[616]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_617_617" id="Footnote_617_617"></a><a href="#FNanchor_617_617"><span class="label">[617]</span></a> ‘Quibus leni primum admonitione, deinde graviori
-adversus refractarios increpatione, tollendis, quum nihil
-proficeret.’&mdash;Beza, <i>J. Calv. Vita</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_618_618" id="Footnote_618_618"></a><a href="#FNanchor_618_618"><span class="label">[618]</span></a> Calvin’s Farewell to the Genevese Ministers.&mdash;Bonnet,
-<i>Lettres françaises</i>, ii. p. 575.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_619_619" id="Footnote_619_619"></a><a href="#FNanchor_619_619"><span class="label">[619]</span></a> Michel Rozet, son of Claude Rozet, who was at that time
-secretary of the council and editor of the Register, was member of the
-Council of Geneva for nearly sixty years. He was fourteen times elected
-syndic, and was sent on thirty-four missions into Switzerland, France,
-and Germany, and to Turin. He concluded several important treaties
-on the part of Geneva. He was very young at the time of which we are
-speaking, but as his father played a part there which enabled him to
-become acquainted with all that took place, no one could be better
-informed than Michel as to the facts of the period. If there be some
-touches in the <i>Chroniques</i> which are not found in the Registers of
-the Council, that does not in any way invalidate his authority. There
-are some details which a council is unwilling and ought not to insert
-in its Registers. It is needless to speak of Theodore Beza, who was
-unanimously elected to represent the Protestants at the famous Colloquy
-of Poissy, and in honor of whom after his death poets of all nations
-composed poems in Latin, Greek, and Hebrew to the number of fifty-four.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_620_620" id="Footnote_620_620"></a><a href="#FNanchor_620_620"><span class="label">[620]</span></a> Rabelais.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_621_621" id="Footnote_621_621"></a><a href="#FNanchor_621_621"><span class="label">[621]</span></a> ‘Doctrinæ potius animorumque urgeamus unitatem, quam
-cærimoniis ad unguem conformandis morosius insistamus. Indignissimum
-est enim ut in quibus libertatem Dominus reliquit ... servilem
-præterita ædificatione conformitatem quæramus.’&mdash;<i>Catechismus, sive
-Christ, relig. institutio</i>, <i>J. Calvino auctore</i>, <i>Basileæ</i>, anno
-<span class="smcap">MDXXXVIII.</span> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 322.&mdash;Calvin printed this work
-in the year in which he left Geneva; and not after but before his
-departure; <i>mense Martis</i>. See also <i>Vie de Calvin</i> (Bèze-Colladon), b.
-30. Paris, 1864.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_622_622" id="Footnote_622_622"></a><a href="#FNanchor_622_622"><span class="label">[622]</span></a> ‘Nondum ea exstare nobis videbatur ecclesiæ facies quam
-legitima muneris nostri administratio requireret.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 319.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_623_623" id="Footnote_623_623"></a><a href="#FNanchor_623_623"><span class="label">[623]</span></a> ‘Tunc vero acerrime urebat et discruciabat, quoties
-distribuenda erat Domini Cœna.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 319.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_624_624" id="Footnote_624_624"></a><a href="#FNanchor_624_624"><span class="label">[624]</span></a> ‘Omnes tamen promiscue irrumpebant; et illi quidam iram
-Dei vorabant potius quam vitæ sacramentum participabant.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i>
-v.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_625_625" id="Footnote_625_625"></a><a href="#FNanchor_625_625"><span class="label">[625]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, iv. ch. 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_626_626" id="Footnote_626_626"></a><a href="#FNanchor_626_626"><span class="label">[626]</span></a> Calvin <i>sur le Psaume</i> xxvii. 3.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_627_627" id="Footnote_627_627"></a><a href="#FNanchor_627_627"><span class="label">[627]</span></a> Bèze-Colladon, <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 34.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_628_628" id="Footnote_628_628"></a><a href="#FNanchor_628_628"><span class="label">[628]</span></a> ‘Ut magno heroicoque spiritu præditi, Farellus et
-Calvinus ... aperte testarentur....’&mdash;Beza, <i>Calvini Vita</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_629_629" id="Footnote_629_629"></a><a href="#FNanchor_629_629"><span class="label">[629]</span></a> ‘Me non leviter perculsum fuisse.’&mdash;Calvin to the Zurich
-pastors. Pridie Cal. Jun. Henry. Calvin, i. App. p. 82.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_630_630" id="Footnote_630_630"></a><a href="#FNanchor_630_630"><span class="label">[630]</span></a> ‘Incredibile vobis futurum scio si minimam partem vobis
-referam molestiarum, vel potius miseriarum, quæ toto anno devorandæ
-nobis fuerunt.’&mdash;Calvin, i. App. p. 82.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_631_631" id="Footnote_631_631"></a><a href="#FNanchor_631_631"><span class="label">[631]</span></a> ‘Nullum præteriisse diem quo non decies mortem
-optarem.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_632_632" id="Footnote_632_632"></a><a href="#FNanchor_632_632"><span class="label">[632]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, iv. ch. 16. Mém. of
-Farel and Calvin to the Lords of Berne. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 188. Roget,
-<i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 92.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_633_633" id="Footnote_633_633"></a><a href="#FNanchor_633_633"><span class="label">[633]</span></a> Rozet.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_634_634" id="Footnote_634_634"></a><a href="#FNanchor_634_634"><span class="label">[634]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_635_635" id="Footnote_635_635"></a><a href="#FNanchor_635_635"><span class="label">[635]</span></a> <i>Mémoir</i> by Farel and Calvin to the Lords of
-Berne.&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 189.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_636_636" id="Footnote_636_636"></a><a href="#FNanchor_636_636"><span class="label">[636]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Institution Chrétienne</i>, book iv. ch. 12,
-paragraphs 9 and 10.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_637_637" id="Footnote_637_637"></a><a href="#FNanchor_637_637"><span class="label">[637]</span></a> Roget, <i>L’église et l’état à Genève du temps de Calvin</i>,
-p. 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_638_638" id="Footnote_638_638"></a><a href="#FNanchor_638_638"><span class="label">[638]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_639_639" id="Footnote_639_639"></a><a href="#FNanchor_639_639"><span class="label">[639]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Comment. sur Saint Matthieu</i>, xxiii. 24.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_640_640" id="Footnote_640_640"></a><a href="#FNanchor_640_640"><span class="label">[640]</span></a> Registers of Councils, April 2. <i>Chron. MS. de Rozet</i>,
-book iv. ch. 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_641_641" id="Footnote_641_641"></a><a href="#FNanchor_641_641"><span class="label">[641]</span></a> ‘Pro retinendo nostro ministerio non minus laboravimus
-quam si de capitibus nostris certamen fuisset.’&mdash;Calvin to the Pastors
-of Zurich. Prid. Cal. Jun.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_642_642" id="Footnote_642_642"></a><a href="#FNanchor_642_642"><span class="label">[642]</span></a> ‘Multo facilius tum fuisset, labanti ecclesiæ subvenire,
-quam penitus perditam restituere.’&mdash;Calvin to the Pastors of Zurich.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_643_643" id="Footnote_643_643"></a><a href="#FNanchor_643_643"><span class="label">[643]</span></a> Eoque rem perducunt, <i>frustra</i> sese Calvino, cum ejusdem
-sententiæ collegis, ad reddendam <i>omnium</i> rationem offerente.’&mdash;Beza,
-<i>Vita Calvini</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_644_644" id="Footnote_644_644"></a><a href="#FNanchor_644_644"><span class="label">[644]</span></a> Corneille and Bossuet.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_645_645" id="Footnote_645_645"></a><a href="#FNanchor_645_645"><span class="label">[645]</span></a> Bèze-Colladon, <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 35. Beza says the
-same thing in his Latin Life: Majore parte meliorem superante.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_646_646" id="Footnote_646_646"></a><a href="#FNanchor_646_646"><span class="label">[646]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv, ch, 18.
-Registers, April 23.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_647_647" id="Footnote_647_647"></a><a href="#FNanchor_647_647"><span class="label">[647]</span></a> Registers, <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_648_648" id="Footnote_648_648"></a><a href="#FNanchor_648_648"><span class="label">[648]</span></a> Registers, Beza’s Latin Life of Calvin, the French
-Life, Rozet in his Chronicles, subsequently the syndic Gautier in his
-History, all report this answer with unimportant variations.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_649_649" id="Footnote_649_649"></a><a href="#FNanchor_649_649"><span class="label">[649]</span></a> Ruchat, v. p. 66. Trechsel, i. p. 171, etc.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_650_650" id="Footnote_650_650"></a><a href="#FNanchor_650_650"><span class="label">[650]</span></a> ‘<i>Scheinbar</i>,’ Kampschulte, <i>J. Calvin</i>, p. 313.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_651_651" id="Footnote_651_651"></a><a href="#FNanchor_651_651"><span class="label">[651]</span></a> ‘Proinde ingratissima sumus, nisi nos illi devovemus
-totos.’&mdash;Calvin, Omnibus Christi Evangel. religionem colentibus, 1538,
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 321.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_652_652" id="Footnote_652_652"></a><a href="#FNanchor_652_652"><span class="label">[652]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Préface des Psaumes</i>, p. ix.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_653_653" id="Footnote_653_653"></a><a href="#FNanchor_653_653"><span class="label">[653]</span></a> See <i>Hist. of the Reform.</i> 2 series, vol. ii. book iii.
-ch. 6, and Bonivard, <i>Avis des difformes réformateurs</i>, pp. 149-151.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_654_654" id="Footnote_654_654"></a><a href="#FNanchor_654_654"><span class="label">[654]</span></a> ‘Diligenter cavendum monet, ne simul
-conjugamur.’&mdash;Calvin to Farel, Aug. 4, 1538 (Bibl. de Genève). Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 23.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_655_655" id="Footnote_655_655"></a><a href="#FNanchor_655_655"><span class="label">[655]</span></a> <i>Préface des Psaumes</i>, p. ix.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_656_656" id="Footnote_656_656"></a><a href="#FNanchor_656_656"><span class="label">[656]</span></a> ‘Deposita omni contumelia, prorsus a ducis arbitrio
-pendere.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 321.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_657_657" id="Footnote_657_657"></a><a href="#FNanchor_657_657"><span class="label">[657]</span></a> ‘Advertamus ad id quod Christus clamat: non posse servis
-suis vulnus imprimi, quin ipse sibi inflictum imputet.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_658_658" id="Footnote_658_658"></a><a href="#FNanchor_658_658"><span class="label">[658]</span></a> ‘Ad vos peculiariter sermonem convertimus, O fratres,’
-etc.&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. p. 321.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_659_659" id="Footnote_659_659"></a><a href="#FNanchor_659_659"><span class="label">[659]</span></a> ‘Sed vigescit potius, florescit, novisque incrementis
-confirmatur.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 322.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_660_660" id="Footnote_660_660"></a><a href="#FNanchor_660_660"><span class="label">[660]</span></a> ‘Partim ut seditiosis illis ipsorum impetu subversis,’
-etc.&mdash;Beza, <i>Calvini Vita</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_661_661" id="Footnote_661_661"></a><a href="#FNanchor_661_661"><span class="label">[661]</span></a> ‘Tum vero magno cum bonorum omnium dolore tres illi
-edicto parentes.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Calvini Vita</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_662_662" id="Footnote_662_662"></a><a href="#FNanchor_662_662"><span class="label">[662]</span></a> Labruyère.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_663_663" id="Footnote_663_663"></a><a href="#FNanchor_663_663"><span class="label">[663]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 22, Gautier,
-<i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>, book vi. Spon, ii. p. 26.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_664_664" id="Footnote_664_664"></a><a href="#FNanchor_664_664"><span class="label">[664]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 18.
-Registers of the Council, May 7, 10, 16, etc. Hist. MS. of Gautier,
-book vi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_665_665" id="Footnote_665_665"></a><a href="#FNanchor_665_665"><span class="label">[665]</span></a> The Memoir is preserved in the archives of Geneva,
-<i>Pièces historiques</i>, No. 1201.&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 190.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_666_666" id="Footnote_666_666"></a><a href="#FNanchor_666_666"><span class="label">[666]</span></a> These words were uttered in London, in the House of
-Commons, May 9, 1871, by Sir Roundell Palmer (Lord Selborne), who made
-the most remarkable speech against the proposal for separation of
-Church and State.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_667_667" id="Footnote_667_667"></a><a href="#FNanchor_667_667"><span class="label">[667]</span></a> Archives of Geneva. <i>Pièces historiques</i>, No.
-1201.&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 188.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_668_668" id="Footnote_668_668"></a><a href="#FNanchor_668_668"><span class="label">[668]</span></a> Kirchhofer, <i>Das Leben Farels</i>, p. 244.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_669_669" id="Footnote_669_669"></a><a href="#FNanchor_669_669"><span class="label">[669]</span></a> ‘Cupimus a Bernatibus impetratum ut <i>fractionem panis</i>
-nobiscum accipiant’ (Articuli ipsa manu Calvini scripti, Conventu
-Tigurino proposito).&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 190. <i>See</i> Matt. xxvi. 26;
-Luke xxiv. 30; 1 Cor. x. 16; xi. 24; Acts xx. 7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_670_670" id="Footnote_670_670"></a><a href="#FNanchor_670_670"><span class="label">[670]</span></a> ‘Non tamen fenestram ardemus aperire tot turbis, quas
-jam prospicimus, si aliter fiat.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 190.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_671_671" id="Footnote_671_671"></a><a href="#FNanchor_671_671"><span class="label">[671]</span></a> ‘Barbaries enim et inhumanitas non ferenda!’&mdash;Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 190.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_672_672" id="Footnote_672_672"></a><a href="#FNanchor_672_672"><span class="label">[672]</span></a> ‘Continuing daily with one accord in the temple, and
-breaking bread from house to house.’&mdash;Acts ii. 46. ‘Ut frequentior cœnæ
-usus restituatur; si non secundum veteris ecclesiæ consuetudinem, at
-<i>saltem singulis quibusque mensibus semel</i>.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_673_673" id="Footnote_673_673"></a><a href="#FNanchor_673_673"><span class="label">[673]</span></a> ‘Quum in lascivis et obscœnis cantilenis ac choreis ...
-e sua ditione tales spurcitias eliminent.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 190.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_674_674" id="Footnote_674_674"></a><a href="#FNanchor_674_674"><span class="label">[674]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i> p. 204.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_675_675" id="Footnote_675_675"></a><a href="#FNanchor_675_675"><span class="label">[675]</span></a> ‘Humiliemur ergo nisi Deo inhumiliationem nostram
-tendenti velimus obluctari.’&mdash;Calvin to Farel, Basel, Aug. 4, 1538.
-<i>Bibl. de Genève.</i>&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 229.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_676_676" id="Footnote_676_676"></a><a href="#FNanchor_676_676"><span class="label">[676]</span></a> Calvin to Farel, Strasburg, Sept. 1538.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 246.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_677_677" id="Footnote_677_677"></a><a href="#FNanchor_677_677"><span class="label">[677]</span></a> ‘Dass sie in etlicher Dingen hatten vielleicht zu streng
-gewesen, und erklärten sich gern weisen zu lassen.’&mdash;Abschied des Tages
-zu Zurich gehalten. Kirchhofer, <i>Farel’s Leben</i>, i. p. 244.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_678_678" id="Footnote_678_678"></a><a href="#FNanchor_678_678"><span class="label">[678]</span></a> ‘Bey diesem unerbauenen Volk christliche
-Sanftmüthigkeit.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_679_679" id="Footnote_679_679"></a><a href="#FNanchor_679_679"><span class="label">[679]</span></a> ‘Otiosam enim functionem quidam tueri malunt quam
-fructuosam, quidam licentiam pro Christi libertate induxerunt.’&mdash;Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> p. 226. Capito to Farel.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_680_680" id="Footnote_680_680"></a><a href="#FNanchor_680_680"><span class="label">[680]</span></a> ‘Quod vos duo semel tantam urbem reformare non
-potueritis.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 227.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_681_681" id="Footnote_681_681"></a><a href="#FNanchor_681_681"><span class="label">[681]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, iv. ch. 20.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_682_682" id="Footnote_682_682"></a><a href="#FNanchor_682_682"><span class="label">[682]</span></a> Farel and Calvin to Bullinger; mid. June 1538. Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 20.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_683_683" id="Footnote_683_683"></a><a href="#FNanchor_683_683"><span class="label">[683]</span></a> Hundeshagen, Conflikte, p. 70.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_684_684" id="Footnote_684_684"></a><a href="#FNanchor_684_684"><span class="label">[684]</span></a> ‘Octavo demum die, postquam Bernam appuleramus, Cunzenum
-eo se recepisse.’&mdash;Calvin to Bullinger, June, 1538; Henry, Beylage, p.
-48. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 203.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_685_685" id="Footnote_685_685"></a><a href="#FNanchor_685_685"><span class="label">[685]</span></a> ‘Fides ecclesiæ Christi solenniter data.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p.
-53. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 207.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_686_686" id="Footnote_686_686"></a><a href="#FNanchor_686_686"><span class="label">[686]</span></a> ‘Exorsus est Cunzenus longas expostulationes, a quibus
-ad gravissimas contumelias prosiliit.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> p. 49. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> p.
-203.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_687_687" id="Footnote_687_687"></a><a href="#FNanchor_687_687"><span class="label">[687]</span></a> ‘Insanientem in extremam rabiem.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_688_688" id="Footnote_688_688"></a><a href="#FNanchor_688_688"><span class="label">[688]</span></a> ‘Nulla pæne syllaba erat, de qua non litigarent.’&mdash;Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 204.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_689_689" id="Footnote_689_689"></a><a href="#FNanchor_689_689"><span class="label">[689]</span></a> ‘Ille nullis rationibus auscultare, sed crudelius semper
-debacchari.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 204.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_690_690" id="Footnote_690_690"></a><a href="#FNanchor_690_690"><span class="label">[690]</span></a> ‘Ex abaco se proripuit; ac toto corpore sic ebulliebat,
-ut injecta etiam manu retineri a collegis non posset.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x.
-p. 50. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 204.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_691_691" id="Footnote_691_691"></a><a href="#FNanchor_691_691"><span class="label">[691]</span></a> Farel to Calvin, Sept. 6, 1540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_692_692" id="Footnote_692_692"></a><a href="#FNanchor_692_692"><span class="label">[692]</span></a> Calvin to Bullinger. Berne, May 28, 1538.&mdash;Archives of
-Zurich. Calvin, x. p. 201.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_693_693" id="Footnote_693_693"></a><a href="#FNanchor_693_693"><span class="label">[693]</span></a> ‘Ac ter una hora revocati.’&mdash;Calvin to Bucer. Henry,
-Beylage, p. 51. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 205.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_694_694" id="Footnote_694_694"></a><a href="#FNanchor_694_694"><span class="label">[694]</span></a> ‘Recepta autem fuerat a paucis seditiosis eodem decreto,
-quo in Rhodanum præcipitari nos oportebat.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 205.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_695_695" id="Footnote_695_695"></a><a href="#FNanchor_695_695"><span class="label">[695]</span></a> Calvin to Bullinger, Berne, May 20, 1538. Calv. <i>Opp.</i>
-x. p. 201.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_696_696" id="Footnote_696_696"></a><a href="#FNanchor_696_696"><span class="label">[696]</span></a> ‘Constitit non procul mœnibus collocatas fuisse
-insidias; in ipsa autem porta considebant armati viginti
-gladiatores.’&mdash;Calvin to Bucer; Henry, Beylage, p. 52. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x.
-p. 206.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_697_697" id="Footnote_697_697"></a><a href="#FNanchor_697_697"><span class="label">[697]</span></a> ‘Jam unum milliare ab urbe aberramus, cum obviam prodiit
-nuntius qui ingressum interdiceret.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i> The Roman mile is
-doubtless meant, which was about 1,614 yards (1,472 mètres, or about
-one kilomètre and a half). At this distance from Geneva the messenger
-met the deputation, at Sécheron, where the hôtel d’Angleterre formerly
-stood, near the country seats Bartholony and Paccard. According to the
-first arrangement the reformers were to have stopped at a distance of
-about four miles (or about six kilomètres), probably near the road
-called du Saugy, leading to Genthod.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_698_698" id="Footnote_698_698"></a><a href="#FNanchor_698_698"><span class="label">[698]</span></a> Registers, May 22.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_699_699" id="Footnote_699_699"></a><a href="#FNanchor_699_699"><span class="label">[699]</span></a> Registers of the day. <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>, by Gautier,
-book vi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_700_700" id="Footnote_700_700"></a><a href="#FNanchor_700_700"><span class="label">[700]</span></a> ‘Tanta gravitate Ludovicus Ammanus, alter legatus et
-Viretus, qui Erasmi ac suo nomine loquebatur, causam tractarunt ut
-<i>flecti multitudinis animi ad æquitatem</i> viderentur.’&mdash;Calvin to
-Bullinger. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 206. Henry, p. 52. Gautier, MS. book vi.
-Kirchhofer, <i>Leben Farels</i>, p. 249.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_701_701" id="Footnote_701_701"></a><a href="#FNanchor_701_701"><span class="label">[701]</span></a> ‘Clanculum illos submisit.’&mdash;Calvin to Bullinger, Henry,
-p. 52. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 207.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_702_702" id="Footnote_702_702"></a><a href="#FNanchor_702_702"><span class="label">[702]</span></a> Bonivard, <i>Ancienne et nouvelle police de Genève</i>, Mém.
-d’Arch. v. p. 414.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_703_703" id="Footnote_703_703"></a><a href="#FNanchor_703_703"><span class="label">[703]</span></a> ‘Vandelius ille apud multos gloriose in via effutivit se
-venenum nobis letale ferre.’&mdash;Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 52. Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 207.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_704_704" id="Footnote_704_704"></a><a href="#FNanchor_704_704"><span class="label">[704]</span></a> ‘Ne antequam ipsi adessemus.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 207.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_705_705" id="Footnote_705_705"></a><a href="#FNanchor_705_705"><span class="label">[705]</span></a> ‘Illis egressis, unus ex præsidibus senatus articulos
-nostros recitare cœpit.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_706_706" id="Footnote_706_706"></a><a href="#FNanchor_706_706"><span class="label">[706]</span></a> ‘Ad conflandum nobis odium.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_707_707" id="Footnote_707_707"></a><a href="#FNanchor_707_707"><span class="label">[707]</span></a> Most dread, most mighty, high and magnificent lords,
-etc. The formula employed in addressing the council.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_708_708" id="Footnote_708_708"></a><a href="#FNanchor_708_708"><span class="label">[708]</span></a> See the <i>Dict. de l’Acad. française</i>, and the definition
-of the church in all languages.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_709_709" id="Footnote_709_709"></a><a href="#FNanchor_709_709"><span class="label">[709]</span></a> ‘Ita convenerat, ut illo recitante ad inflammandos
-animos plebis acclamarent.’&mdash;Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 52, Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p 206.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_710_710" id="Footnote_710_710"></a><a href="#FNanchor_710_710"><span class="label">[710]</span></a> ‘Valuerunt tamen illa flabella ad accendendos in rabiem
-omnium animos.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_711_711" id="Footnote_711_711"></a><a href="#FNanchor_711_711"><span class="label">[711]</span></a> ‘Potius moriendum quam ut ad reddendam rationem
-audiremus.’&mdash;Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 52. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 206.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_712_712" id="Footnote_712_712"></a><a href="#FNanchor_712_712"><span class="label">[712]</span></a> Registers, 26 June. Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>.
-Gautier, <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_713_713" id="Footnote_713_713"></a><a href="#FNanchor_713_713"><span class="label">[713]</span></a> ‘Nisi forte quod duplo aut triplo malum, quam antea,
-deterius recruduit.’&mdash;Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 53. Calv. <i>Opp.</i>
-x. 207.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_714_714" id="Footnote_714_714"></a><a href="#FNanchor_714_714"><span class="label">[714]</span></a> ‘Ut mature exsurgat.’&mdash;Calvin to Bullinger, Henry, p. 54
-Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. 208.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_715_715" id="Footnote_715_715"></a><a href="#FNanchor_715_715"><span class="label">[715]</span></a> <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 15, 22, 26.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_716_716" id="Footnote_716_716"></a><a href="#FNanchor_716_716"><span class="label">[716]</span></a> Gautier, <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>, book vi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_717_717" id="Footnote_717_717"></a><a href="#FNanchor_717_717"><span class="label">[717]</span></a> ‘Nos nullæ fere veniæ dignos, si tam justam vocationem
-abnueremus.’&mdash;Calvin to Viret. <i>Bibl. de Genève.</i> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p.
-202.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_718_718" id="Footnote_718_718"></a><a href="#FNanchor_718_718"><span class="label">[718]</span></a> ‘O scintillantes igne Satanæ oculos et accensum studium
-in vestrum ministerium dejiciendum.’&mdash;Grynæus to Calvin and Farel.
-Calvin, <i>Epp.</i> x. 196.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_719_719" id="Footnote_719_719"></a><a href="#FNanchor_719_719"><span class="label">[719]</span></a> ‘Pro eximio monumento Ecclesiæ nostræ
-complectimur.’&mdash;Grynæus to Calvin, 1540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_720_720" id="Footnote_720_720"></a><a href="#FNanchor_720_720"><span class="label">[720]</span></a> ‘Claudio Feræo quem <i>mecum vidisti Basileæ</i>.’&mdash;Calvin,
-<i>Epp.</i> p. 25, Mar. 1541, ed. 1575.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_721_721" id="Footnote_721_721"></a><a href="#FNanchor_721_721"><span class="label">[721]</span></a> ‘Servi simus pacis et concordiæ.’&mdash;Calvin, <i>Epp.</i> 11.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. 276.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_722_722" id="Footnote_722_722"></a><a href="#FNanchor_722_722"><span class="label">[722]</span></a> Calvin to Viret, Basel, June 14, 1538. <i>Bibl. de
-Genève.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_723_723" id="Footnote_723_723"></a><a href="#FNanchor_723_723"><span class="label">[723]</span></a> <i>Lettres françaises</i>, i. p. 9.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_724_724" id="Footnote_724_724"></a><a href="#FNanchor_724_724"><span class="label">[724]</span></a> Jean Zwick to Bullinger, May 17, 1538.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_725_725" id="Footnote_725_725"></a><a href="#FNanchor_725_725"><span class="label">[725]</span></a> ‘Veniemus quo tu voles,’ etc.&mdash;Calvin, <i>Epp.</i> p. 6.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. 67.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_726_726" id="Footnote_726_726"></a><a href="#FNanchor_726_726"><span class="label">[726]</span></a> Bonnet, <i>Lettres françaises de Calvin</i>, i. p. 9.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_727_727" id="Footnote_727_727"></a><a href="#FNanchor_727_727"><span class="label">[727]</span></a> Bonnet, <i>Lettres françaises de Calvin</i>, p. 10.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_728_728" id="Footnote_728_728"></a><a href="#FNanchor_728_728"><span class="label">[728]</span></a> ‘De integro tamen excusari, quoniam et adhibere non
-poteram.’&mdash;Calvin to Farel, Henry. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 236.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_729_729" id="Footnote_729_729"></a><a href="#FNanchor_729_729"><span class="label">[729]</span></a> ‘Classis neocomensis ad ecclesias vicinas.’ April 29,
-1541.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_730_730" id="Footnote_730_730"></a><a href="#FNanchor_730_730"><span class="label">[730]</span></a> ‘Licet valde refragati simus.’&mdash;Farel. Pastoribus Tigur.
-Apr. 30, 1541.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_731_731" id="Footnote_731_731"></a><a href="#FNanchor_731_731"><span class="label">[731]</span></a> ‘Solitæ tunc festinationi.’&mdash;Calvin to Farel, Aug. 4,
-1538 (<i>Bibl. de Genève</i>). Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. 228.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_732_732" id="Footnote_732_732"></a><a href="#FNanchor_732_732"><span class="label">[732]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Préface des Psaumes</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_733_733" id="Footnote_733_733"></a><a href="#FNanchor_733_733"><span class="label">[733]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_734_734" id="Footnote_734_734"></a><a href="#FNanchor_734_734"><span class="label">[734]</span></a> ‘Strenue Lutetiæ pro veritate depugnasset.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita
-Calvini</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_735_735" id="Footnote_735_735"></a><a href="#FNanchor_735_735"><span class="label">[735]</span></a> ‘Miserrimi diei tormenta excipiunt acerbiores noctis
-cruciatus.’&mdash;Calvin. <i>Epp.</i> p. 10. <i>Opp.</i> x. 273.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_736_736" id="Footnote_736_736"></a><a href="#FNanchor_736_736"><span class="label">[736]</span></a> ‘Suspicio cui velim nolim cogor locum aliquem
-dare.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_737_737" id="Footnote_737_737"></a><a href="#FNanchor_737_737"><span class="label">[737]</span></a> <i>Lettres françaises</i>, i. p. 23.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_738_738" id="Footnote_738_738"></a><a href="#FNanchor_738_738"><span class="label">[738]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Opp.</i> x. 266.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_739_739" id="Footnote_739_739"></a><a href="#FNanchor_739_739"><span class="label">[739]</span></a> Rather less than a hundred and fifty francs, which would
-be equivalent to more than two thousand francs of the present day; or
-about eighty pounds sterling.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_740_740" id="Footnote_740_740"></a><a href="#FNanchor_740_740"><span class="label">[740]</span></a> Maimbourg, <i>Histoire du Calvinisme</i>, book i.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_741_741" id="Footnote_741_741"></a><a href="#FNanchor_741_741"><span class="label">[741]</span></a> Calvin to Farel. Aug. 4, 1538. <i>Bibl. de Genève.</i> Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 228.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_742_742" id="Footnote_742_742"></a><a href="#FNanchor_742_742"><span class="label">[742]</span></a> Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 117.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_743_743" id="Footnote_743_743"></a><a href="#FNanchor_743_743"><span class="label">[743]</span></a> Registers of the Council. Rozet, <i>Chron. de Genève</i>.
-Gautier, <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>. Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, etc.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_744_744" id="Footnote_744_744"></a><a href="#FNanchor_744_744"><span class="label">[744]</span></a> <i>Lettres françaises</i>, i. p. 11. See also Rozet, <i>Chron.
-de Genève</i>, iv. ch. 26.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_745_745" id="Footnote_745_745"></a><a href="#FNanchor_745_745"><span class="label">[745]</span></a> Calvin, <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 275.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_746_746" id="Footnote_746_746"></a><a href="#FNanchor_746_746"><span class="label">[746]</span></a> <i>Archives de Genève.</i> Letters of Farel, of June 19,
-August 7, and November 8. Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 136. Calvin,
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 210.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_747_747" id="Footnote_747_747"></a><a href="#FNanchor_747_747"><span class="label">[747]</span></a> Fl. Raemond, <i>Naissance de l’hérésie</i>, book vii. ch. i.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_748_748" id="Footnote_748_748"></a><a href="#FNanchor_748_748"><span class="label">[748]</span></a> ‘Quibus tamquam lucidis gemmis, illa tua ecclesia
-fulgebat.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_749_749" id="Footnote_749_749"></a><a href="#FNanchor_749_749"><span class="label">[749]</span></a> Bochrich, <i>Mittheilungen aus der Gesch. der Ev. Kirch
-des Elsass</i>, iii, p. 133.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_750_750" id="Footnote_750_750"></a><a href="#FNanchor_750_750"><span class="label">[750]</span></a> ‘Gallicam ecclesiam, constituta ecclesiastica disciplina
-plantavit.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 6. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 288.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_751_751" id="Footnote_751_751"></a><a href="#FNanchor_751_751"><span class="label">[751]</span></a> Letters of Calvin to Farel, 1538, etc. (<i>Bibl. de
-Genève.</i>) Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 273. Raemond, in <i>loc. cit.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_752_752" id="Footnote_752_752"></a><a href="#FNanchor_752_752"><span class="label">[752]</span></a> Calvin’s epistle to Grynæus, prefixed to the Comment. on
-Ep. to the Romans.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_753_753" id="Footnote_753_753"></a><a href="#FNanchor_753_753"><span class="label">[753]</span></a> ‘Theologiam illic docuit magno cum doctorum omnium
-applausu.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_754_754" id="Footnote_754_754"></a><a href="#FNanchor_754_754"><span class="label">[754]</span></a> <i>De la Cène.</i> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. pp. 439, 440.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_755_755" id="Footnote_755_755"></a><a href="#FNanchor_755_755"><span class="label">[755]</span></a> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> v. pp. 458-460.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_756_756" id="Footnote_756_756"></a><a href="#FNanchor_756_756"><span class="label">[756]</span></a> ‘Salutabis Sturmium et Johannem Calvinum reverenter,
-quorum libellos cum singulari voluptate legi.’&mdash;Luther, <i>Epp.</i> v. p.
-211. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. 402.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_757_757" id="Footnote_757_757"></a><a href="#FNanchor_757_757"><span class="label">[757]</span></a> ‘Helvetii si idem facerent, jam pax esset in hac
-controversia.’ The same thought was expressed by several churches.
-(Mecklenburg, Churpfälz, Würtemberg, Pommern, etc., Kirchenordnungen.)</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_758_758" id="Footnote_758_758"></a><a href="#FNanchor_758_758"><span class="label">[758]</span></a> ‘Quod ex Gallia multi propter Calvinum accesserunt
-studiosi adolescentes atque etiam litterati viri.’&mdash;Sturm, <i>Antipapp.</i>
-vi. p. 21.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_759_759" id="Footnote_759_759"></a><a href="#FNanchor_759_759"><span class="label">[759]</span></a> ‘Ea enim mea nunc est conditio, ut <i>assem</i> a me numerare
-nequeam.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Epp.</i> edit. of 1575, p. 12. <i>Opp.</i> x. 332.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_760_760" id="Footnote_760_760"></a><a href="#FNanchor_760_760"><span class="label">[760]</span></a> Calvin to Farel. (<i>Bibl. de Genève.</i>) <i>Opp.</i> x. 315.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_761_761" id="Footnote_761_761"></a><a href="#FNanchor_761_761"><span class="label">[761]</span></a> Calvin on Romans xii. 10; 1 John v. 1.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_762_762" id="Footnote_762_762"></a><a href="#FNanchor_762_762"><span class="label">[762]</span></a> Calvin to Bullinger, Strasburg, Mar. 12. (<i>Bibl. de
-Genève.</i>)</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_763_763" id="Footnote_763_763"></a><a href="#FNanchor_763_763"><span class="label">[763]</span></a> ‘Quia profectum nullum videt, mortem precatur.’&mdash;Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> x. p. 331.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_764_764" id="Footnote_764_764"></a><a href="#FNanchor_764_764"><span class="label">[764]</span></a> ‘Pergamus tamen usque ad ultimum spiritum.’&mdash;Calv.
-<i>Epp.</i>, Mar. 1539.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_765_765" id="Footnote_765_765"></a><a href="#FNanchor_765_765"><span class="label">[765]</span></a> Calvin’s Letter to Farel, Aug. 4, 1538. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x.
-229. Registers of the Council of Sept. 10, Nov. 28, and Dec. 26, 27,
-and 31. Rozet, <i>Chron. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 24. Gautier, <i>Hist. MS.
-de Genève</i>, book vi. p. 332. Roget, <i>Hist.</i> pp. 123, 124.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_766_766" id="Footnote_766_766"></a><a href="#FNanchor_766_766"><span class="label">[766]</span></a> See their titles, <i>France Protestante</i>, vii, p. 60.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_767_767" id="Footnote_767_767"></a><a href="#FNanchor_767_767"><span class="label">[767]</span></a> Registers of the Council, Dec. 23 and 27, 1538. Rozet,
-iv. 26. Roget, p. 140. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 275.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_768_768" id="Footnote_768_768"></a><a href="#FNanchor_768_768"><span class="label">[768]</span></a> Registers, Dec. 24 and 27 and Jan. 8 and 9. Rozet,
-Gautier, <i>loc. cit.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_769_769" id="Footnote_769_769"></a><a href="#FNanchor_769_769"><span class="label">[769]</span></a> Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 354. Letter of June 24, 1539, to the
-Church of Geneva. ‘Nisi Calvinus serio monuisset ne ob istud ἀδιάφορον
-litem moverent.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Calvini Vita</i>, p. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_770_770" id="Footnote_770_770"></a><a href="#FNanchor_770_770"><span class="label">[770]</span></a> See second series, vol. ii. book iii. ch. 15.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_771_771" id="Footnote_771_771"></a><a href="#FNanchor_771_771"><span class="label">[771]</span></a> Book iv. ch. 28. Gautier, book vi. Registers of the day.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_772_772" id="Footnote_772_772"></a><a href="#FNanchor_772_772"><span class="label">[772]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. 27.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_773_773" id="Footnote_773_773"></a><a href="#FNanchor_773_773"><span class="label">[773]</span></a> ‘Cum Philippo fuit mihi multis de rebus
-colloquium.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Epp.</i>, Mar. 1539. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 331.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_774_774" id="Footnote_774_774"></a><a href="#FNanchor_774_774"><span class="label">[774]</span></a> ‘Iis sine controversia ipse quidem assentitur.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_775_775" id="Footnote_775_775"></a><a href="#FNanchor_775_775"><span class="label">[775]</span></a> ‘Qui crassius aliquid requirunt; atque id tanta
-pervicacia, ne dicam tyrannide.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_776_776" id="Footnote_776_776"></a><a href="#FNanchor_776_776"><span class="label">[776]</span></a> ‘Ut in tanta tempestate ventis adversis aliquantum
-abscondamur.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Epp.</i>, Mar. 1539. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 331.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_777_777" id="Footnote_777_777"></a><a href="#FNanchor_777_777"><span class="label">[777]</span></a> ‘Formam quam tenent non procul esse a
-Judaismo.’&mdash;<i>Epp.</i>, April 1539. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 340.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_778_778" id="Footnote_778_778"></a><a href="#FNanchor_778_778"><span class="label">[778]</span></a> ‘Nimis abundarent in ritibus illis aut ineptis aut certe
-super vacuis.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_779_779" id="Footnote_779_779"></a><a href="#FNanchor_779_779"><span class="label">[779]</span></a> ‘Nec sane justas esse puto discidii causas.’&mdash;<i>Epp.</i>,
-April 1539. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 340.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_780_780" id="Footnote_780_780"></a><a href="#FNanchor_780_780"><span class="label">[780]</span></a> ‘Quod mollitiem animi ejus suspectam habeant.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>
-p. 328.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_781_781" id="Footnote_781_781"></a><a href="#FNanchor_781_781"><span class="label">[781]</span></a> ‘Rex ipse vix dimidia ex parte sapit.’&mdash;<i>Epp.</i>, April
-1539. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 340.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_782_782" id="Footnote_782_782"></a><a href="#FNanchor_782_782"><span class="label">[782]</span></a> ‘Habet mutilum et semilacerum Evangelium, ecclesiam vero
-multis adhuc nugis refertam.’&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_783_783" id="Footnote_783_783"></a><a href="#FNanchor_783_783"><span class="label">[783]</span></a> John Lambert.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_784_784" id="Footnote_784_784"></a><a href="#FNanchor_784_784"><span class="label">[784]</span></a> To Farel, June 21, 1540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_785_785" id="Footnote_785_785"></a><a href="#FNanchor_785_785"><span class="label">[785]</span></a> ‘Post hoc vexit asinus quidam ... qui fune quodam post
-se trahebat Cæsarem et Papam.’&mdash;<i>Corp. Reform.</i> iii. p. 640.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_786_786" id="Footnote_786_786"></a><a href="#FNanchor_786_786"><span class="label">[786]</span></a> ‘Asinum stantem duobus pedibus.’&mdash;Luther, <i>Epp.</i> v. p.
-172.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_787_787" id="Footnote_787_787"></a><a href="#FNanchor_787_787"><span class="label">[787]</span></a> ‘Observata ejus temporis occasione, destitutum tantis
-pastoribus, gregem facile se intercepturum arbitratus.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita
-Calvini</i>, p. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_788_788" id="Footnote_788_788"></a><a href="#FNanchor_788_788"><span class="label">[788]</span></a> Registers, June 7, 1540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_789_789" id="Footnote_789_789"></a><a href="#FNanchor_789_789"><span class="label">[789]</span></a> ‘Sadoletus magna eloquentia homo sed qua imprimis ad
-opprimendam veritatis lucem abutetur.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_790_790" id="Footnote_790_790"></a><a href="#FNanchor_790_790"><span class="label">[790]</span></a> Bèze-Colladon, <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 38.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_791_791" id="Footnote_791_791"></a><a href="#FNanchor_791_791"><span class="label">[791]</span></a> See ‘Sadoleti Epistola ad Genevates.’&mdash;<i>Calvini Opera</i>,
-v. pp. 365-384. We cite the French edition, published at Geneva, 1860.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_792_792" id="Footnote_792_792"></a><a href="#FNanchor_792_792"><span class="label">[792]</span></a> Kampschulte, <i>Johann Calvin</i>, p. 353.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_793_793" id="Footnote_793_793"></a><a href="#FNanchor_793_793"><span class="label">[793]</span></a> ‘Magnum civitati in eo rerum statu damnum.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita
-Calvini</i>, p. 6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_794_794" id="Footnote_794_794"></a><a href="#FNanchor_794_794"><span class="label">[794]</span></a> Registers, Mar. 27, 28, etc. Rozet, <i>Chron. MS.</i> book
-iv. ch. 28. Roget, p. 147.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_795_795" id="Footnote_795_795"></a><a href="#FNanchor_795_795"><span class="label">[795]</span></a> Registers of the day. Rozet, <i>Chron. MS.</i> book iv. ch.
-28. Gautier.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_796_796" id="Footnote_796_796"></a><a href="#FNanchor_796_796"><span class="label">[796]</span></a> Roget, i. p. 163.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_797_797" id="Footnote_797_797"></a><a href="#FNanchor_797_797"><span class="label">[797]</span></a> Registers, April 29, 1539. Report to the Lords of Berne.
-Rozet. Gaberel.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_798_798" id="Footnote_798_798"></a><a href="#FNanchor_798_798"><span class="label">[798]</span></a> ‘Omnium injuriarum oblitus.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p.
-6.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_799_799" id="Footnote_799_799"></a><a href="#FNanchor_799_799"><span class="label">[799]</span></a> Bèze-Colladon, <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 39.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_800_800" id="Footnote_800_800"></a><a href="#FNanchor_800_800"><span class="label">[800]</span></a> The original of this letter is in Latin. See Calv.
-<i>Opp.</i> v. pp. 385-416. Calvin translated it into French in 1540.
-Edition of Geneva, 1860.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_801_801" id="Footnote_801_801"></a><a href="#FNanchor_801_801"><span class="label">[801]</span></a> Calvin puts this passage into the mouth of any one of
-the reformed appearing before the supreme tribunal:&mdash;‘Neque iis qui
-prædicatione nostra edocti ad eamdem nobiscum causam accesserint,
-deerit quod pro se loquantur quando hæc <i>cuique</i> parata erit defensio:
-Ego,’ etc. But there is no doubt that he is relating his own
-history.&mdash;<span class="smcap">Editor.</span></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_802_802" id="Footnote_802_802"></a><a href="#FNanchor_802_802"><span class="label">[802]</span></a> ‘Sadoleto optarem ut crederet Deum esse creatorem
-hominum, etiam extra Italiam.’&mdash;Luther, <i>Epp.</i> v. p. 211. <i>Calvini
-Opera</i>, x. p. 402.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_803_803" id="Footnote_803_803"></a><a href="#FNanchor_803_803"><span class="label">[803]</span></a> ‘Ad tolerantiam adversus improbos ... et ad Dei
-invocationem imprimis exhortetur.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_804_804" id="Footnote_804_804"></a><a href="#FNanchor_804_804"><span class="label">[804]</span></a> Calvin’s letters to Farel, Sept. 1539, Oct. 8, 1539, and
-April 10, 1540. Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. pp. 374-401.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_805_805" id="Footnote_805_805"></a><a href="#FNanchor_805_805"><span class="label">[805]</span></a> Ruchat, <i>Hist. de la Réform.</i> v. p. 134.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_806_806" id="Footnote_806_806"></a><a href="#FNanchor_806_806"><span class="label">[806]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron MS.</i> book iv. ch. xxxiii. Gautier, <i>Hist.
-MS.</i> vi. p. 356, says,&mdash;‘There were some ex-priests who visited at
-certain houses, and whose proceedings were greatly suspected.’ We quote
-from a copy revised by Gautier himself, which belongs to a member of
-his family.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_807_807" id="Footnote_807_807"></a><a href="#FNanchor_807_807"><span class="label">[807]</span></a> Gautier, <i>Hist. MS.</i> iv. p. 356.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_808_808" id="Footnote_808_808"></a><a href="#FNanchor_808_808"><span class="label">[808]</span></a> Registers, Sept. 15 and 22, 1589. Rozet, <i>Chron. MS.</i>
-book iv. ch. xxxiii. Gautier, book vi. pp. 356, 357. Gaberel, <i>Pièces
-Justificatives</i>. Roget, <i>Peuple de Genève</i>, p. 157.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_809_809" id="Footnote_809_809"></a><a href="#FNanchor_809_809"><span class="label">[809]</span></a> Gautier, interpreting this speech, makes him say,&mdash;‘I do
-not pride myself on making a sect apart.’</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_810_810" id="Footnote_810_810"></a><a href="#FNanchor_810_810"><span class="label">[810]</span></a> ‘Sed centum potius aliæ mortes quam ilia crux, in qua
-millies quotidie pereundum esset.’&mdash;Calvin to Farel, Strasburg, Mar.
-29, 1540. <i>Opp.</i> ix. p. 259.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_811_811" id="Footnote_811_811"></a><a href="#FNanchor_811_811"><span class="label">[811]</span></a> ‘Cur non potius ad crucem?’&mdash;Calvin to Viret, Strasburg,
-May 19, 1540. <i>Bibl. de Genève.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_812_812" id="Footnote_812_812"></a><a href="#FNanchor_812_812"><span class="label">[812]</span></a> Calvin to Farel, Strasburg, Oct. 1540. <i>Bibl. de
-Genève.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_813_813" id="Footnote_813_813"></a><a href="#FNanchor_813_813"><span class="label">[813]</span></a> ‘Ut expeditior multis tricis, Domino vacare
-possim.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> ix. Bonnet, <i>Récits du seizième Siècle</i>, p. 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_814_814" id="Footnote_814_814"></a><a href="#FNanchor_814_814"><span class="label">[814]</span></a> Calvin on <i>Ephes.</i> v. 28-33.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_815_815" id="Footnote_815_815"></a><a href="#FNanchor_815_815"><span class="label">[815]</span></a> ‘Non sum enim ex insano amatorum genere, qui vitia etiam
-exosculantur, ubi semel forma capti sunt.’&mdash;Calv. <i>Opp.</i> x. p. 348.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_816_816" id="Footnote_816_816"></a><a href="#FNanchor_816_816"><span class="label">[816]</span></a> ‘Meministi illud Phillippi <i>cogitare te de</i> accipienda
-uxore.’&mdash;Fontanius to Calvin, Jan. 1541. Bonnet, <i>Récits</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_817_817" id="Footnote_817_817"></a><a href="#FNanchor_817_817"><span class="label">[817]</span></a> ‘Lectissima femina,’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 13.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_818_818" id="Footnote_818_818"></a><a href="#FNanchor_818_818"><span class="label">[818]</span></a> <i>Bulletin de Protestantisme français.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_819_819" id="Footnote_819_819"></a><a href="#FNanchor_819_819"><span class="label">[819]</span></a> Beza-Colladon, <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 4.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_820_820" id="Footnote_820_820"></a><a href="#FNanchor_820_820"><span class="label">[820]</span></a> ‘Optima socia vitæ.’&mdash;Calvin to Viret, April 7, 1549.
-<i>Epp.</i> edition of 1575, p. 84.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_821_821" id="Footnote_821_821"></a><a href="#FNanchor_821_821"><span class="label">[821]</span></a> ‘Fida quidem ministerii mei adjutrix fuit. Ab ea ne
-minimum quidem impedimentum unquam sensi.... Hæc animi magnitudo,’
-etc.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_822_822" id="Footnote_822_822"></a><a href="#FNanchor_822_822"><span class="label">[822]</span></a> <i>Lettres françaises de Calvin</i>, i. p. 28, to Du Tailly,
-July 1540.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_823_823" id="Footnote_823_823"></a><a href="#FNanchor_823_823"><span class="label">[823]</span></a> ‘Advenerat illud tempus quo constituerat Dominus
-Genevensis Ecclesiæ misereri.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 7.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_824_824" id="Footnote_824_824"></a><a href="#FNanchor_824_824"><span class="label">[824]</span></a> Gautier, <i>Hist. MS. de Genève</i>, book vi. p. 341.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_825_825" id="Footnote_825_825"></a><a href="#FNanchor_825_825"><span class="label">[825]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS.</i> book iv. ch. xxix. Gautier, <i>Hist.
-MS.</i> book vi. Registers of the Council.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_826_826" id="Footnote_826_826"></a><a href="#FNanchor_826_826"><span class="label">[826]</span></a> Registers, July 9, 24, and 25, August 5 and 6. Rozet,
-book iv. ch. xxxi. Gautier.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_827_827" id="Footnote_827_827"></a><a href="#FNanchor_827_827"><span class="label">[827]</span></a> Registers of the day.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_828_828" id="Footnote_828_828"></a><a href="#FNanchor_828_828"><span class="label">[828]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron.</i> book iv. ch. xxxv. Registers. Gautier.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_829_829" id="Footnote_829_829"></a><a href="#FNanchor_829_829"><span class="label">[829]</span></a> Beza-Colladon, <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 44.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_830_830" id="Footnote_830_830"></a><a href="#FNanchor_830_830"><span class="label">[830]</span></a> Registers. Rozet, Gautier, Roget.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_831_831" id="Footnote_831_831"></a><a href="#FNanchor_831_831"><span class="label">[831]</span></a> <i>Chron. de Rozet</i>, book iv. ch. xxxix. Gautier,
-Deposition of Witnesses. Roget.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_832_832" id="Footnote_832_832"></a><a href="#FNanchor_832_832"><span class="label">[832]</span></a> Bonivard, <i>Ancienne et nouvelle police de Genève</i>, pp.
-48-51. Rozet, <i>Chron. MS.</i> ch. xxxix. Gautier, <i>Hist. MS.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_833_833" id="Footnote_833_833"></a><a href="#FNanchor_833_833"><span class="label">[833]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS.</i> book iv. ch. xl.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_834_834" id="Footnote_834_834"></a><a href="#FNanchor_834_834"><span class="label">[834]</span></a> Bonivard, <i>Ancienne et nouvelle police de Genève</i>, p.
-51. See also Registers, Gautier, Bill of Indictment.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_835_835" id="Footnote_835_835"></a><a href="#FNanchor_835_835"><span class="label">[835]</span></a> Gautier, <i>Hist. MS.</i> book vi. p. 393. Rozet, <i>Chron. MS.
-de Genève</i>, book iv. ch. xli.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_836_836" id="Footnote_836_836"></a><a href="#FNanchor_836_836"><span class="label">[836]</span></a> Rozet, <i>Chron. MS. de Genève</i>, book iv, ch. xli.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_837_837" id="Footnote_837_837"></a><a href="#FNanchor_837_837"><span class="label">[837]</span></a> ‘Zwei Tage später hielten die Sieger (die Frömme) in dem
-Rathhaus ein öffentliches Freudenmahl.’&mdash;Kampschulte, <i>Johann Calvin</i>,
-p. 303. This <i>Freudenmahl</i> is a fable which the German writer too
-readily accepted.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_838_838" id="Footnote_838_838"></a><a href="#FNanchor_838_838"><span class="label">[838]</span></a> ‘His veluti spumæ sordibus ejectis, civitas Farellum
-suum et Calvinum cœpit requirere.’&mdash;Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, p. 7.</p></div></div>
-
-
-
-<p class="transnote">Transcriber’s Note:<br />
-
-1. Obvious spelling, punctuation and printer’s errors have been
-silently corrected.<br />
-
-2. Unbalanced quotation marks were remedied when the change was
-obvious, and otherwise left unbalanced.</p>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION IN EUROPE IN THE TIME OF CALVIN, VOL. 6 (OF 8) ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/65984-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/65984-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a3e2f0e..0000000
--- a/old/65984-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ